“那時刻永遠逝去了,孩子!”
   
   
   1
   
   那時刻永遠逝去了,孩子!
   它已沉沒,僵涸,永不回頭!
   我們望着往昔,
   不禁感到驚悸:
   希望底陰魂正凄蒼、悲泣;
   是你和我,把它哄騙致死,
   在生之幽暗的河流。
   
   2
   
   我們望着的那川流已經
   滾滾而去,從此不再折回;
   但我們卻立於
   一片荒涼的境地,
   象是墓碑在標志已死的
   希望和恐懼:呵,生之黎明
   已使它們飛逝、隱退。
   
   1817年
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   往昔
   
   
   1
   
   你可會忘記那快樂的時刻,
   被我們在愛之亭榭下埋沒?
   對着那冰冷的屍體,我們鋪了
   不是青苔,而是葉子和鮮花。
   呵,鮮花是失去的快樂,
   葉子是希望,還依然留貯。
   
   2
   
   你可忘了那逝去的?它可有
   一些幽靈,會出來替它復仇!
   它有記憶,會把心變為墳墓,
   還有悔恨,溜進精神底濃霧
   會對你陰沉地低聲說:
   快樂一旦消失,就是痛苦。
   
   1818年
   
   查良錚 譯 
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   “別揭開這畫帷”
   
   
   別揭開這畫帷:呵,人們就管這
   叫作生活,雖然它畫的沒有真象;
   它衹是以隨便塗抹的彩色
   仿製我們意願的事物——而希望
   和恐懼,雙生的宿命,在後面藏躲,
   給幽深的穴中不斷編織着幻相。
   曾有一個人,我知道,把它揭開過——
   他想找到什麽寄托他的愛情,
   但卻找不到。而世間也沒有任何
   真實的物象,能略略使他心動。
   於是他飄泊在冷漠的人群中,
   成為暗影中的光,是一點明斑
   落上陰鬱的景色,也是個精靈
   追求真理,卻象“傳道者”①一樣興嘆。
   
   1818年
   
   ①《舊約·傳道書》載:柯希列(或傳道者)說:“凡事都是虛空。”
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   愛底哲學
   
   
   泉水總是嚮河水匯流,
   河水又匯入海中,
   天宇的輕風永遠融有
   一種甜蜜的感情;
   世上哪有什麽孤零零?
   萬物由於自然律
   都必融匯於一種精神。
   何以你我卻獨異?
   
   你看高山在吻着碧空,
   波浪也相互擁抱;
   誰曾見花兒彼此不容:
   姊妹把弟兄輕衊?
   陽光緊緊地擁抱大地,
   月光在吻着海波:
   但這些接吻又有何益,
   要是你不肯吻我?
   
   1819年
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   哀歌
   
   
   哦,世界!哦,時間!哦,生命!
   我登上你們的最後一層,
   不禁為我曾立足的地方顫抖;
   你們幾時能再光華鼎盛?
   噢,永不再有,——永不再有!
   
   從白天和黑夜的胸懷
   一種喜悅已飛往天外;
   初春、盛夏和嚴鼕給我的心頭
   堆滿了悲哀,但是那歡快,
   噢,永不再有,——永不再有!
   
   1821年
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   無常
   
   
   
   我們象遮蔽午夜之月的雲彩;
   它一刻不停地奔跑,閃耀,顫慄,
   嚮黑暗放出燦爛的光輝!——但很快
   夜幕合攏了,它就永遠隱去;
   
   又象被忘卻的琴,不調和的弦
   每次撥弄都發出不同的音響,
   在那纖弱的樂器上,每次重彈,
   情調和音節都不會和前次一樣。
   
   我們睡下:一場夢能毒戕安息;
   我們起來:遊思又會玷污白天;
   我們感覺,思索,想象,笑或哭泣,
   無論抱住悲傷,或者摔脫憂煩:
   
   終歸是一樣!——因為呵,在這世間,
   無論是喜悅或悲傷都會溜走:
   我們的明日從不再象昨天,
   唉,除了“無常”,一切都不肯停留。
   
   1814年
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   
   
   奧西曼德斯
   
   
   
   我遇見一個來自古國的旅客,
   他說:有兩衹斷落的巨大石腿
   站在沙漠中……附近還半埋着
   一塊破碎的石雕的臉;他那縐眉,
   那癟唇,那威嚴中的輕衊和冷漠,
   在表明雕刻傢很懂得那迄今
   還留在這岩石上的情欲和願望,
   雖然早死了刻繪的手,原型的心;
   在那石座上,還有這樣的銘記:
   “我是奧西曼德斯,衆王之王。
   強悍者呵,誰能和我的業績相比!”
   這就是一切了,再也沒有其他。
   在這巨大的荒墟四周,無邊無際,
   衹見一片荒涼而寂寥的平沙。
   
   
   1817年
   
   譯註:奧西曼德斯,古埃及王,據稱其墓在底比斯的拉米西陵中。
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   西風頌
   
   
   
   1
   
   哦,狂暴的西風,秋之生命的呼吸!
   你無形,但枯死的落葉被你橫掃,
   有如鬼魅碰到了巫師,紛紛逃避:
   
   黃的,黑的,灰的,紅得像患肺癆,
   呵,重染疫癘的一群:西風呵,是你
   以車駕把有翼的種子催送到
   
   黑暗的鼕床上,它們就躺在那裏,
   像是墓中的死穴,冰冷,深藏,低賤,
   直等到春天,你碧空的姊妹吹起
   
   她的喇叭,在沉睡的大地上響遍,
   (喚出嫩芽,象羊群一樣,覓食空中)
   將色和香充滿了山峰和平原。  
   
   不羈的精靈呵,你無處不遠行;
   破壞者兼保護者:聽吧,你且聆聽!
   
   2
   
   沒入你的急流,當高空一片混亂,
   流雲象大地的枯葉一樣被撕扯
   脫離天空和海洋的糾纏的枝幹。  
   
   成為雨和電的使者:它們飄落
   在你的磅礴之氣的蔚藍的波面,
   有如狂女的飄揚的頭髮在閃爍,
   
   從天穹的最遙遠而模糊的邊沿
   直抵九霄的中天,到處都在搖曳
   欲來雷雨的捲發,對瀕死的一年  
   
   你唱出了葬歌,而這密集的黑夜
   將成為它廣大墓陵的一座圓頂,
   裏面正有你的萬鈞之力的凝結;  
   
   那是你的渾然之氣,從它會迸涌
   黑色的雨,冰雹和火焰:哦,你聽!
   
   3
   
   是你,你將藍色的地中海喚醒,
   而它曾經昏睡了一整個夏天,
   被澄澈水流的迴旋催眠入夢,  
   
   就在巴亞海灣的一個浮石島邊,
   它夢見了古老的宮殿和樓閣
   在水天輝映的波影裏抖顫,  
   
   而且都生滿青苔、開滿花朵,
   那芬芳真迷人欲醉!呵,為了給你
   讓一條路,大西洋的洶涌的浪波  
   
   把自己嚮兩邊劈開,而深在淵底
   那海洋中的花草和泥污的森林
   雖然枝葉扶疏,卻沒有精力;  
   
   聽到你的聲音,它們已嚇得發青:
   一邊顫慄,一邊自動萎縮:哦,你聽!
   
   4
   
   哎,假如我是一片枯葉被你浮起,
   假如我是能和你飛跑的雲霧,
   是一個波浪,和你的威力同喘息,  
   
   假如我分有你的脈搏,僅僅不如
   你那麽自由,哦,無法約束的生命!
   假如我能像在少年時,凌風而舞  
   
   便成了你的伴侶,悠遊天空
   (因為呵,那時候,要想追你上雲霄,
   似乎並非夢幻),我就不致像如今  
   
   這樣焦躁地要和你爭相祈禱。
   哦,舉起我吧,當我是水波、樹葉、浮雲!
   我跌在生活底荊棘上,我流血了!  
   
   這被歲月的重軛所製服的生命
   原是和你一樣:驕傲、輕捷而不馴。
   
   5
   
   把我當作你的竪琴吧,有如樹林:
   儘管我的葉落了,那有什麽關係!
   你巨大的合奏所振起的音樂  
   
   將染有樹林和我的深邃的秋意:
   雖憂傷而甜蜜。呵,但願你給予我
   狂暴的精神!奮勇者呵,讓我們合一!  
   
   請把我枯死的思想嚮世界吹落,
   讓它像枯葉一樣促成新的生命!
   哦,請聽從這一篇符咒似的詩歌,  
   
   就把我的話語,像是灰燼和火星
   從還未熄滅的爐火嚮人間播散!
   讓預言的喇叭通過我的嘴唇  
   
   把昏睡的大地喚醒吧!要是鼕天
   已經來了,西風呵,春日怎能遙遠?
   
   1819年
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   
   
   給雲雀
   
   
   
   祝你長生,歡快的精靈!
   誰說你是衹飛禽?
   你從天庭,或它的近處,
   傾瀉你整個的心,
   無須琢磨,便發出豐盛的樂音。
   
   你從大地一躍而起,
   往上飛翔又飛翔,
   有如一團火雲,在藍天
   平展着你的翅膀,
   你不歇地邊唱邊飛,邊飛邊唱。
   
   下沉的夕陽放出了
   金色電閃的光明,
   就在那明亮的雲間
   你浮遊而又飛行,
   象不具形的歡樂,剛剛開始途程。
   
   那淡紫色的黃昏
   與你的翺翔溶合,
   好似在白日的天空中,
   一顆明星沉沒,
   你雖不見,我卻能聽到你的歡樂:
   
   清晰,銳利,有如那晨星
   射出了銀輝千條,
   雖然在清徹的晨曦中
   它那明光逐漸縮小,
   直縮到看不見,卻還能依稀感到。
   
   整個大地和天空
   都和你的歌共鳴,
   有如在皎潔的夜晚,
   從一片孤獨的雲,
   月亮流出光華,光華溢滿了天空。
   
   我們不知道你是什麽;
   什麽和你最相象?
   從彩虹的雲間滴雨,
   那雨滴固然明亮,
   但怎及得由你遺下的一片音響?
   
   好象是一個詩人居於
   思想底明光中,
   他昂首而歌,使人世
   由冷漠而至感動,
   感於他所唱的希望、憂懼和贊頌;
   
   好象是名門的少女
   在高樓中獨坐,
   為了舒發纏綿的心情,
   便在幽寂的一刻
   以甜蜜的樂音充滿她的綉閣;
   
   好象是金色的螢火蟲,
   在凝露的山𠔌裏,
   到處流散它輕盈的光
   在花叢,在草地,
   而花草卻把它掩遮,毫不感激;
   
   好象一朵玫瑰幽蔽在
   它自己的緑葉裏,
   陣陣的暖風前來凌犯,
   而終於,它的香氣
   以過多的甜味使偷香者昏迷:
   
   無論是春日的急雨
   嚮閃亮的草灑落,
   或是雨敲得花兒蘇醒,
   凡是可以稱得
   鮮明而歡愉的樂音,怎及得你的歌?
   
   鳥也好,精靈也好,說吧:
   什麽是你的思緒?
   我不曾聽過對愛情
   或對酒的贊譽,
   迸出象你這樣神聖的一串狂喜。
   
   無論是凱旋的歌聲
   還是婚禮的合唱,
   要是比起你的歌,就如
   一切空洞的誇張,
   呵,那裏總感到有什麽不如所望。
   
   是什麽事物構成你的
   快樂之歌的源泉?
   什麽田野、波浪或山峰?
   什麽天空或平原?
   是對同輩的愛?還是對痛苦無感?
   
   有你這種清新的歡快
   誰還會感到怠倦?
   苦悶的陰影從不曾
   挨近你的跟前;
   你在愛,但不知愛情能毀於飽滿。
   
   無論是安睡,或是清醒,
   對死亡這件事情
   你定然比人想象得
   更為真實而深沉,
   不然,你的歌怎能流得如此晶瑩?
   
   我們總是前瞻和後顧,
   對不在的事物憧憬;
   我們最真心的笑也洋溢着
   某種痛苦,對於我們
   最能傾訴衷情的纔是最甜的歌聲。
   
   可是,假若我們擺脫了
   憎恨、驕傲和恐懼;
   假若我們生來原不會
   流淚或者哭泣,
   那我們又怎能感於你的欣喜?
   
   呵,對於詩人,你的歌藝
   勝過一切的諧音
   所形成的格律,也勝過
   書本所給的教訓,
   你是那麽富有,你藐視大地的生靈!
   
   衹要把你熟知的歡欣
   教一半與我歌唱,
   從我的唇邊就會流出
   一種和諧的熱狂,
   那世人就將聽我,象我聽你一樣。
   
   1820年      
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   
   給——
   
   
   
   1
   
   有一個字常被人濫用,
   我不想再濫用它;
   有一種感情不被看重,
   你豈能再輕視它?
   有一種希望太象絶望,
   慎重也無法壓碎;
   衹求憐憫起自你心上,
   對我就萬分珍貴。
   
   2
   
   我奉獻的不能叫愛情,
   它衹算得是崇拜,
   連上天對它都肯垂青,
   想你該不致見外?
   這有如飛蛾嚮往星天,
   暗夜想擁抱天明,
   怎能不讓悲慘的塵寰
   對遙遠事物傾心?
   
   1821年      
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   
   當一盞燈破碎了
   
   
   
   1
   
   當一盞燈破碎了,
   它的光亮就滅於灰塵;
   當天空的雲散了,
   彩虹的輝煌隨即消隱。
   要是琵琶斷了弦,
   優美的樂音歸於沉寂;
   要是嘴把話說完,
   愛的韻味很快就忘記。
   
   2
   
   有如樂音和明光
   必和琵琶與燈盞並存,
   心靈彈不出歌唱
   假如那精氣已經消沉:
   沒有歌,衹是哀悼,
   象吹過一角荒墟的風,
   象是哀號的波濤
   為已死的水手敲喪鐘。
   
   3
   
   兩顆心一旦結合,
   愛情就離開精製的巢,
   而那較弱的一個
   必為它有過的所煎熬。
   哦,愛情!你在哀吟
   世事的無常,何以偏偏
   要找最弱的心靈
   作你的搖籃、居室、靈棺?
   
   4
   
   它以熱情顛疲你,
   有如風暴把飛鴉搖蕩;
   理智將會嘲笑你,
   有如鼕日天空的太陽。
   你的巢穴的椽木
   將腐爛,而當冷風吹到,
   葉落了,你的華屋
   就會把你暴露給嘲笑。
   
   1822年      
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   贊智性美
   
   
   1
   
   某種無形力量的威嚴的陰影
   雖不可見,卻飄浮在我們之中,
   憑藉多變的翅膀訪問多彩的世界,
   如夏風潛行於一個又一個花叢;
   它以閃爍不定、難以捉摸的眼光
   察看每一顆心靈、每一張臉龐,
   如同月華傾瀉在山間的鬆林;
   恰似黃昏的色澤與和諧的樂章,
   恰似星光之下鋪展的浮雲,
   恰似記憶中的樂麯的餘音,
   恰似因美麗而可愛的一切,
   又因神秘而變得更加珍貴可親。
   
   2
   
   美的精靈呵.你飄嚮了何方?
   你的光彩使人類的形體或思想
   變得神聖莊嚴、不可侵犯,
   可你為何棄開我們的國度,飄往他鄉,
   丟下這個虛空、荒涼、陰暗的淚𠔌?
   陽光為何不能永遠編織彩虹,
   桂在那邊的山川的上空?
   為什麽曾經顯形的物體必將失蹤?
   為什麽恐懼、夢幻、死亡、出生
   會給人間的白晝蒙上陰影?
   為什麽人類會充分地容忍
   沮喪與希望、憎根與愛情?
   
   3
   
   從更為崇高的世界沒有傳出任何聲音,
   來回答聖哲或詩人的這些疑問——
   因此.魔鬼、幽靈、天堂這些名稱
   始終是他們的一個徒勞無功的結論,
   衹是脆弱的咒符——它們的魔力
   也不能把懷疑、無常和偶然
   從我們的所見所聞中清除出去。
   唯有你的光輝,如同輕霧飄過山巒,
   或像夜風輕撫寂靜的琴弦,
   彈送出一陣陣柔和的樂聲,
   或像月華灑在午夜的河面,
   把美與真送給人生的不安的夢境。
   
   4
   
   愛情、希望和自尊,如同行雲,
   在藉得的時光裏來去匆匆,飄忽不定。
   你不為人知,卻威嚴可怖,假如
   你和你光榮的隨從居於人的心靈,
   人啊,定會永生不朽,而且無所不能。
   在情人眼中,愛的共鳴時虧時盈,
   是你充當使者,傳遞着愛情——
   對於人類的思想,你是滋養的物品,
   如同黑略培育着微弱的火光。
   切莫離去,縱然你衹是一個幻影,
   切莫離去——否則,墳墓也會
   變成黑暗的現實,如同恐懼和人生。
   
   5
   
   在孩提時代,我曾懷着戰慄的腳步,
   穿過許多靜室和月光下的林莽,
   還有洞穴、廢墟,遍地尋訪鬼魂,
   衹希望與死者進行大聲的交談。
   我呼喚着自幼而知的惡毒的姓名,
   沒有回音,也不見他們的形影——
   當輕風開始調情.有生之物
   從夢中蘇醒.帶來鳥語花香的喜訊,
   在這美妙無比的時刻呵,
   我深深地思索人生的命運,——
   突然。你的幻影落在我的身上,
   我失聲尖叫,抱緊雙手,欣喜萬分。
   
   6
   
   我曾發誓,我要嚮你和你的同類獻出
   我的全部力量,難道我違背了誓言?
   即使現在.我仍以淚眼和狂跳的心,
   對千年的幽靈發出一聲聲的呼喚,
   叫他們走出沉寂的墳墓,他們陪伴我
   在苦讀和熱戀的幻想的亭榭,
   看守嫉妒的黑夜,直至黑夜消隱——
   他們知道,我臉上沒有出現一絲歡悅,
   除非我心中生出希望,相信你會
   使這個世界擺脫黑暗的奴役,
   相信你,令人敬畏的美,
   會帶來這些言語無法表達的東西。
   
   7
   
   當正午過去,白晝變得更為靜穆,
   出現了一種秋天的和諧的音符,
   碧空中也有了一種明媚的色調——
   整個夏天,它們都不曾被人耳聞目睹,
   仿佛夏天不會,也不配擁有這些!
   那麽,讓你的力量,就像自然的真諦,
   侵襲進我的消極的青春,
   並且把安詳賜給我今後的時日——
   我這個人呵,無限崇拜你,
   也崇拜僅容着你的一切形體,
   啊,美麗的精靈,是你的符咒
   使我熱愛整個人類,卻又畏懼自己。
   
   (吳笛譯)
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   
   阿 童 尼 (長詩)
   
   
   
   1
   
   我為阿童尼哭泣——他已經死了!
   噢,為他哭泣吧!雖然我們的淚珠
   融解不了那凍結他秀額的冰霜!
   而你,憂鬱的時刻,卻被歲月挑出
   來承擔我們的損失;請嚮你的同輩
   傳授你的悲哀吧:你該說:“阿童尼
   是和我一同死的;要是‘未來’不敢——
   遺忘‘過去’,他的命運和名聲必是
   一綫光明,一種回音,增添到永恆裏!
   
   2
   
   偉大的母親呵,那時你在哪裏,
   當你的兒子倒下,為暗中飛來的箭
   所射穿?呵,當阿童尼逝去的時候,
   可憐的烏剌尼亞在哪兒?她正閉眼
   坐在天國裏,而在回音的繚繞中,
   她聽到有個回音以輕柔的顫慄
   重新喚起了一切消逝的樂音;
   他正是以此美化死亡底侵襲,
   有如墳頭的花掩蓋下面的屍體。
   
   3
   
   噢,為阿童尼哭泣吧——他已經死了!
   醒來,憂傷的母親,快醒來哀慟!
   但又有什麽用?還是把你的熱淚
   在火熱的眼窩烘幹,讓你嚎啕的心
   象他的心一樣,默默無怨地安息;
   因為他死了,已去到一切美好事物
   所去的地方;噢,別以為那貪戀的陰間
   還會把他嚮人生的地界交出;
   死亡正饕餐他的靜默,譏笑我們的哀哭。
   
   4
   
   最感人的哀悼者呵,再哭一哭吧!
   再哀悼一下,烏剌尼亞!——他死了!
   他,一節不朽的樂章的創造者,
   目盲,衰老,孤獨,一任他祖國的榮耀
   被教士、奴才和自由底扼殺者
   以淫欲和血所奉祀的種種邪惡
   踐踏和污衊;他去了,去到死之深淵
   無所畏懼;但他那光明的魂魄
   仍高懸人間;他是光輝之子的第三個。
   
   5
   
   最感人的哀悼者,再哭一哭吧!
   不是每人都敢攀登那光輝的位置;
   凡是能在時間底暗夜裏自滿的人
   有福了,因為,雖然太陽已經消逝,
   他們的燭光卻在燃燒;另有一些
   崇高的人,被人或神的嫉妒的憤怒
   所擊倒,在燦爛的盛年歸於寂滅;
   更有的還活下去,跋涉着荊棘之途,
   任勞任怨,走嚮美名底恬靜的居處。
   
   6
   
   而今,你最年輕、最珍愛的兒子死了——
   他是你寡居時的養子,他好象
   悲哀的少女所珍愛的蒼白的花,
   是被真情的淚,而非露水所滋養;
   最感人的哀悼者呵,再哭一哭!
   你最後的、最可愛的希望已成泡影;
   他是一朵鮮花,花瓣還沒有張開
   便受到寒氣,沒有結實而喪了命;
   百合被摧折了——風暴也歸於平靜。
   
   7
   
   他已去到高貴的都城,在那兒
   莊嚴的死神正主持他的宮廷
   在美與雕殘中。他以最純淨的呼吸
   換得了一個萬古流芳者的墓塋。
   快來哭吧,趁他的軀體還美好地
   躺在意大利的蔚藍的天空下面,
   靜靜地,仿佛凝結的露水在安睡,
   別喚醒他呵!他定是拋下一切憂煩,
   正享受他那一份深沉而靜謐的安恬。
   
   8
   
   他不會醒來了,噢,永不再醒了!
   在那朦朧的屍房中,迅速地鋪下
   蒼白的死之陰影,而在門口
   隱身的“腐爛”正窺伺,等着引導他
   最後一步抵達她幽暗的住所:
   女魔“饑餓”在坐待,但“憐憫”和“敬畏”
   消減了她的欲火;除非無常和黑暗
   把死之帷幕拉下,遮住他安睡,
   否則,她怎敢把如此美貌的俘虜撕毀?
   
   9
   
   噢,為阿童尼哭泣吧!——燦爛的夢,
   以熱情為羽翼的思想底使者,
   這些是他的牧群,在他年輕心靈的
   蓬勃的泉水邊得到喂養,並獲得
   愛情,他那心靈的樂音;但如今
   已不再在激動的頭腦之間漫遊;
   她們在出生地萎縮,盡圍着變冷的心
   自嘆命苦,因為在甜蜜的誕生之痛後,
   她們不再獲得力量,永遠失去傢的溫柔。
   
   10
   
   有一個夢還緊抱住他冰冷的頭,
   並用月光的羽翼不斷搧他,叫道:
   “我們的愛情、希望、悲傷,並沒有死;
   看他那黯然無光的眼睛的睫毛
   正挑起一滴淚,象睡花瓣上的露珠,
   這必是哪個夢在他腦中留下的。”
   呵,天堂傾圮了的不幸的天使!
   她豈知那正是她自己的淚;她終於
   消逝了,象哭幹淚雨的雲,不留痕跡。
   
   11
   
   另一個夢以一杯晶瑩的露水
   洗滌他的四肢,象在敷灑香膏;
   又一個夢剪下她蓬鬆的捲發
   編織為花環,給他在頭上戴好,
   花環閃着凍結的淚,而不是真珠;
   還有一個夢過份悲傷,立意折斷
   她的弓和箭,仿佛要以這較輕的
   損失,噎住她的哀傷;又為了減緩
   那箭上的火,就把箭放在他的冰頰邊。
   
   12
   
   有一個輝煌的夢落在他的唇上,
   從那嘴裏,她往常每吸一吸氣?
   就會取得力量,從而刺穿了偏見
   並且進入聽者的激蕩的心底
   帶着音樂和電閃:但陰濕的死亡
   已把她在他唇上的吻變為冷冰;
   呵,好象在寒夜的凝聚中,月光的
   蒼白的霧環被隕星突然照明,
   她流過他蒼白的肢體,接着便消隱。
   
   13
   
   還有些別的幻象……“欲望”和“崇奉”,
   有翅的“信念”和遮面幕的“宿命”,
   輝煌和幽暗,還有“希望”和“恐懼”的
   閃爍的化身,和朦朧的形影;
   還有“憂傷”,帶着她的一傢“嘆息”,
   還有“歡樂”,為淚所迷蒙,不是眼睛
   而是臨死的微笑引導她前來的——
   這一切排成了華麗的一列幻影,
   有如秋日小溪上的霧,緩緩移行。
   
   14
   
   一切他所愛過的,並化為思想的:
   優美的聲音,形狀,香味,色彩,
   都來哀悼阿童尼。“清晨”正走上
   她東方的瞭望臺,她的頭髮散開
   (那上面綴滿尚未落地的露珠),
   遮暗了照耀白日的空中的眼;
   在遠方,沉鬱的雷正在呻吟;
   暗淡的海洋不能安靜地睡眠,
   而狂風四處打旋,驚惶地嗚咽。
   
   15
   
   凄迷的“回音”坐在無聲的山中,
   以尚能記起的歌滋養她的悲痛,
   她不再回答風,不再回答泉水,
   也不回答牧人的角號,日暮的鐘,
   或是棲於嫩緑枝頭的鳥的戀情;
   因為她已學不了他的歌了,這歌聲
   比那美少年的話語更令她珍愛
   (是他的輕衊使她變為一片朦朧),
   因此,樵夫若不作歌,便衹聞哀哀之吟。
   
   16
   
   年輕的春天悲傷得發狂,她拋開
   她燦爛的蓓蕾,好象她成了秋天,
   或蓓蕾成了枯葉;因為呵,她既已
   失去歡樂,何必喚醒這陰沉的一年?
   風信子哪曾這樣熱愛過阿波羅?
   水仙花又何曾愛過自己, 象如今
   這樣愛你?它們暗淡而幹枯地
   立於它們青春的沮喪的伴侶中,
   露珠都變成淚,香味變成了悲憫。
   
   17
   
   你的心靈的姊妹,那孤獨的夜鶯
   不曾如此幽怨地哀悼她的伴侶;
   那象你一樣能夠高凌太空的,
   並且在太陽境內以朝氣滋育
   健壯的幼子的鷹隼,儘管繞着
   她的空巢飛翔和嚎叫,也不曾
   象阿爾比安這樣哀悼你:詛咒吧,
   誰竟然刺傷了你純潔的心胸,
   嚇走了其中的賓客,你天使的魂靈!
   
   18
   
   呵,我真悲痛!鼕天來了又去了,
   但悲哀隨着四季的運轉而來臨;
   輕風和流水又唱起歡快的調子;
   螞蟻、蜜蜂和燕子又在人間穿行;
   新的花和葉裝飾了四季的墓;
   熱戀的鳥兒在每個枝頭上結伴,
   並且在田野荊棘中搭氣了青巢;
   緑色的蚯蚓和金蛇,象是火焰
   從昏睡中醒了過來,都嚮外面奔躥。
   
   19
   
   從大地的心髒,蓬勃的生命之流
   川流過樹林,河水,田野,山峰和海洋,
   有如自宇宙開始,上帝降臨到
   混沌以後,生命就帶着運動和無常
   周流過一切;天庭的無數燈盞
   沒入生命之波裏,更輕柔地閃射;
   一切卑微之物都充滿生底渴望,
   它們要散發自己,要在愛情中消磨
   那被復活的精力賦予它們的美與歡樂。
   
   20
   
   腐爛的屍體觸到這陽春之氣?
   便散發為花朵,吐出柔和的氣氳;
   而當日光化為芳香,這些花朵
   有似地面的星星,將死亡燃得通明,
   並譏笑那土中歡騰蠕動的蛆蟲;
   一切死而復活。難道唯有人的頭腦
   要被無形的電閃擊毀,象是一柄劍
   反而毀於劍鞘之前? 呵,衹一閃耀,
   熱熾的原子就在寒冷的寂滅裏融消。
   
   21
   
   唉!我們所愛惜他的一切,要不是
   由於我們的悲傷,竟仿佛未曾存在,
   而悲傷又怎能永延?哦,多麽痛心!
   我們從何而來?為何而生?要在這舞臺
   作什麽戲的演員或觀衆?無論尊卑,
   終必把生命藉來的一切交還死亡。
   衹要天空一朝蔚藍,田野一朝碧緑,
   黃昏必引來黑夜,黑夜必督促晨光,
   月月黯然更替,一年喚醒另一年的憂傷。
   
   22
   
   他不會醒來了,唉,永不再醒了!
   “醒來吧”,“苦難”喊道,“喪子的母親呵,
   從夢中醒來!用眼淚和嘆息
   舒發你的比他更傷痛的深心。”
   一切伴着烏剌尼亞眼睛的幻象,
   一切原來為聽她們姐姐的歌聲
   而靜默的“回音”,現在都喊道:“醒來!”
   象思想被記憶之蛇突然刺痛,
   失色的“輝煌”從溫香的夢中猛然驚醒。
   
   23
   
   她起來了,象是秋夜躍自東方——
   呵,陰慘而凄厲的秋夜,接替了
   金色的白日,因為白日已經展開
   永恆的翅膀,有如靈魂脫離軀殼,
   使大地變成了死骸。悲傷和恐懼
   如此打擊和震撼烏剌尼亞的心,
   如此愁慘地包圍她,竟象一片?
   暴風雨的雲霧,衹催促她飛奔,
   奔嚮阿童尼所靜靜安息着的墓塋。
   
   24
   
   她從安靜的天國跑了出來,
   跑過營帳和鋼石竪立的大城,
   跑過人的心靈,這心呵,對她的
   輕盈的腳步毫不軟縮,卻刺痛
   她無形的,柔嫩的腳掌;她還跑過
   多刺的舌頭,和更為刺人的思想,
   它們阻擋不了她,便把她刺破,
   於是象五月的淚,她神聖的血流淌,
   把永恆的鮮花鋪在卑微的道路上。
   
   25
   
   在那停屍房中,有一刻,死亡
   因為看到這神聖的活力而羞愧,
   赧紅得無地自容;於是阿童尼
   又似有了呼吸,生之淡淡的光輝
   閃過了他的肢體,呵,這在不久前
   她如此疼愛的肢體。烏剌尼亞叫道:
   “別離開我吧,別使我悲凄、狂亂,
   象電閃所遺下的暗夜!”她的哭嚎
   喚醒了死亡,死亡便一笑而起,任她擁抱。
   
   26
   
   “等一等呵!哪怕再對我說一句話;
   吻我吧,盡一吻所允許的那麽久;
   那句話,那個吻,將在我空茫的心
   和熱熾的腦中,比一切活得更久,
   悲哀的記憶將是它們的食糧;
   這記憶呵,既然如今你已死了,
   就象你的一部分,阿童尼!我情願
   捨棄我的生命和一切,與你同道!
   但我卻鎖聯着時流,又怎能從它脫逃!
   
   27
   
   
   “噢,秀麗的孩子!你如此溫和,
   為什麽過早離開了世人的熟徑,
   以你博大的心而卻無力的手
   去挑逗那巢穴中饑餓的妖竜?
   你既然無所防護,那麽,哪兒是
   你的明鏡之盾‘智慧’,和‘輕衊’之矛?
   假如你能耐心等待你的心靈
   象新月逐漸豐盈,走完它的軌道,
   那麽,生之荒原上的惡魔必見你而逃。
   
   28
   
   “那一群豺狼衹勇於追襲弱者;
   那邪惡的烏鴉衹對死屍聒噪;
   鷹隼衹忠心於勝利者的旗幟,
   ‘殘敗’踏過的地方,它們纔敢騷擾,
   並從翅膀散下疫癘來;呵,你看,
   衹要這時代的阿波羅以金弓
   微笑地射出一箭,那一夥強盜
   就逃之夭夭,不但不敢再逞兇,
   而且一齊阿諛那踏住他們的腳踵。
   
   29
   
   “太陽出來時,多少蟲豸在孵卵;
   等他沉落,那些朝生暮死的昆蟲
   便成群地沉入死亡,永不復活,
   惟有不朽的星群重新蘇醒;
   在人生的世界裏也正是這樣:
   一個神聖的心靈翺翔時,它的歡欣
   使大地燦爛,天空失色;而當它沉落,
   那分享或遮暗它的光輝的一群
   便死去,留下精神的暗夜再等巨星照明。
   
   30
   
   她纔說完,山中的一些牧童來了,
   他們的花圈枯了,仙袍也撕破;
   首先是天國的漫遊者,他的聲名
   象天庭一樣在他的頭上覆落,
   呵,一個早年的、但卻持久的碑記,——
   他來了,他的歌聲的異彩被遮沒
   在哀傷裏;愛爾蘭從她的鄉野
   派來她的苦衷底最婉轉的歌者,
   而“愛情”使“悲傷”,象樂音,從他的舌間迸落。
   
   31
   
   在聲名較小的來人中,有一個
   羸弱得象是幽靈;他獨行踽踽,
   有如風雨將息時最後的一片雲,
   雷就是他的喪鐘;他似已倦於
   象阿剋泰翁一般望着自然的美,
   而今他迷途了,他疲弱地馳過
   世界的荒原,因為在那坎坷之途上
   他正追隨他自己的思想,象跟着
   一群獵犬,他就是它們的父親和俘虜。
   
   32
   
   是一個文豹般的精靈,美麗,敏捷——
   是貌似“絶望”的愛情,——是一種神力,
   全身卻綴滿“脆弱”,他簡直不能
   把壓在頭上的“時刻”之重負擔起;
   他是將燃盡的燈,已落下的陣雨,
   他是碎裂的浪花,就在說話的此刻
   豈不已經碎了?致命的太陽微笑地
   曬着憔悴的花;生命儘管用血色
   點燃面頰,但其中的心可能已經殘破。
   
   33
   
   他頭上紮着開過了的三色堇
   和雕謝的、藍白相間的紫羅蘭,
   他手裏拿着木杖,上端是柏枝,
   周圍纏以幽黑的常春藤的枝蔓,
   還不斷滴着日午樹林的露珠;
   木杖顫抖着,因為那跳動的心
   在搖動他無力的手;這個悼亡者
   是最後來到的,他哀哀獨行,
   象是離群的鹿,被獵人的箭所射中。
   
   34
   
   所有的人站開了,聽到他痛苦的
   呻吟,都含淚而笑,因為他們知道,
   他之以異邦語言歌唱新的悲哀,
   未嘗不是藉別人的不幸來哀悼
   他自己的;烏剌尼亞看到這來客的
   丰采,喃喃說:“你是誰?”但他不語,
   衹用手突然撩開三色堇,露出了
   被烙印燙傷的、為血凝固的額際,
   看來象該隱或基督——呵,但願如是!
   
   35
   
   是誰的溫和聲音在對死者哀悼?
   誰以黑鬥篷遮上了自己的前額?
   是誰的影子對白色的屍床
   鬱鬱地彎下,象墓碑一樣靜默?
   他沉重的心悲愴得發不出聲音。
   既然他來了,他,最儒雅的智者,
   教過、愛過、安慰和贊譽過亡故的人,
   我豈能再以唐突的嘆息打破
   他那心中為死者安排的祭禮的沉默。
   
   36
   
   我們的阿童尼飲下了毒鴆——哦!
   哪個耳聾的謀殺者竟狠心
   給青春的生命之杯投一劑災禍?
   現在,那無名的蛆蟲卻要否認
   自己的罪惡了,因為連他也感到
   那樂音一開始就使嫉恨與邪惡
   (除了在一個心胸中還咆哮不休)
   都沉寂了,令人衹想聽優美的歌,
   呵,但那彈奏的手已冰冷,金琴已崩破!
   
   37
   
   活下去吧,誹謗變不成你的名聲!
   活下去!別怕我給你更重的譴責,
   你呵,在不朽的名字上無名的黑斑!
   但你須自知:是你在散播災禍!
   每臨到你的良機,由你任意地
   吐出毒汁吧,讓那毒牙把人咬遍:
   悔恨和自卑將會緊緊追蹤你,
   羞愧將燃燒在你隱秘的額前,
   你會象落水狗似地顫抖——一如今天。
   
   38
   
   我們又何必為我們心愛的人
   遠離世上這群食腐肉的鳶而悲傷?
   他已和永恆的古人同遊同睡了,
   你又怎能飛臨到他所憩息的地方?——
   讓塵土歸於塵土!但純淨的精神
   必歸於它所來自的光輝的源泉;
   作為永恆之一粒,它將超越時續
   和無常,永遠發光,永遠守恆不變,
   而你寒冷的屍灰將堆在恥辱的爐邊。
   
   39
   
   呵,住口,住口!他沒有死,也沒有睡,
   他不過是從生之迷夢中蘇醒;
   反而是我們,迷於熱狂的幻象,
   盡和一些魅影作着無益的紛爭,
   我們一直迷醉地以精神的利刃
   去刺那損傷不了的無物。我們象
   靈房中的屍身在腐蝕,天天被
   恐懼和悲哀所折磨,冰冷的希望
   擁聚在我們的泥身內,象蛆蟲一樣。
   
   40
   
   他是飛越在我們夜影之上了,
   嫉妒和誹謗,憎恨和痛苦,還有
   那被人們誤稱作“歡愉”的不安,
   都不能再觸及他,令他難受。
   他不會再被濁世逐步的腐蝕
   所沾染了,也不會再悲嘆和哀悼
   一顆心的變冷,或馬齒的徒增;
   更不致,當精神本身已停止燃燒,
   把死灰還往無人痛惜的甕中傾倒。
   
   41
   
   不,他活着,醒着,——死的衹是“虛幻”,
   不要為阿童尼悲慟。年輕的早晨,
   讓你的露水變為光輝吧,因為
   你所哀悼的精神並沒有消隱;
   岩洞和森林呵,你們不要呻吟!
   打住,你昏厥的花和泉水;還有太空,
   何必把你的披肩象哀紗一樣遮在
   失歡的大地上?快讓它澄徹無雲,
   哪怕面對那訕笑大地的歡樂的星星!
   
   42
   
   他與自然合一了:在她的音樂中,
   從雷的嘶鳴直到夜鶯的清麯,
   都可以聽到他的聲音;他變為
   一種存在,在光與暗中,在草石裏,
   都可以感覺到;在凡是自然力
   所移的地方,便有他在擴展
   (她已把他的生命納入自己的生命中),
   她以永不怠倦的愛情支配世間,
   從底下支持它,又把它的上空點燃。
   
   43
   
   他本是“美”的一部分,而這“美”呵
   曾經被他體現得更可愛;他的確
   從宇宙精神接受了自己的一份
   (這精神掃過沉悶愚蠢的世界,
   迫使一切事物繼承各自的形態,
   儘管不甘心的渣滓阻撓它飛翔,
   也終必由混沌化入應有的模式;
   最後,它會傾其所有的美和力量
   發自人、獸、草木,躍升為天庭的光)。
   
   44
   
   在時間的蒼穹上,燦爛的星鬥
   可能被遮暗,但永遠不會消亡;
   它們象日月,升到應有的高度,
   而死亡衹是低迷的霧,能遮上
   但卻抹不掉那明光。當年輕的心
   被崇高的神思提自人欲的底層,
   任塵世的愛情和生命為了註定的
   命運而鬥爭,這時呵,死者卻高凌
   幽暗而狂暴的雲層之上,象光在流動。
   
   45
   
   迢遙的,在那無形無體的境域中,
   一些半廢聲譽的繼承者,他們從
   建立在人世思想以外的寶座上
   起立了。查特頓——臉上還沒褪盡
   那莊嚴的痛苦;錫德尼,還象他
   戰鬥,負傷,生活與戀愛時的那般
   嚴肅而溫和:呵,一個純潔的精靈,
   起立了;還有魯甘,死使他受到稱贊:
   他們起來,“寂滅”象受到斥責,退到旁邊。
   
   46
   
   還有許多別人(雖然在世間無名,
   但衹要火花引起的火焰長在,
   他們的才華便輾轉流傳,不致消亡)
   閃耀着永恆底光輝,站了起來。
   “你正是我們的一夥,”他們喊道:
   “是為了你,那無人主宰的星座
   久久在黑暗中旋轉,沒有神主;
   看!唯有它在天庭的和樂中靜默。
   我們的長庚呵,來,登上你飛翔的寶座!”
   
   47
   
   還有誰為阿童尼哭泣?哦,來吧,
   要認清他,認清你自己,癡心的人!
   你的心靈盡可去擁抱懸空的地球,
   並把你精神的光輝,以你為中心
   射往九霄,直到使它博大的光芒
   充滿無垠的太空:然後呢,就退居
   到我們世間的日和夜的一點;
   曠達一些吧,否則你必陷於絶地,
   萬一希望燃起希望,引你到懸崖的邊際。
   
   48
   
   不然就去到羅馬,哦,那墓園
   埋葬的不是他,而是我們的歡樂:
   我們要去憑吊,並非由於那埋在
   自己的荒墟中的時代、宗教和帝國;
   因為,象他那樣的詩人無須從
   世界的蹂躪者藉來不朽的榮譽,
   他已居於思想領域的帝王之列了,
   他們都曾和時代的衰風為敵,
   在逝去的事物中,唯有他們不會逝去!
   
   49
   
   去到羅馬吧,——那兒既有天國,
   又有墓地,城市,林野和荒原,
   那兒,古跡象劈裂的群山高聳,
   有開花的野草,芳鬱的樹叢鋪滿
   在荒墟的赤裸裸的骨骼上;
   去吧,讓那一處的精靈引着
   你的腳步走上一條傾斜的緑徑,
   那兒,象嬰兒的微笑,燦爛的花朵
   正圍繞着草地鋪展開,覆蓋着死者;
   
   50
   
   四周的灰墻都雕殘,沉默的時間
   在蠶食着它,象朽木上的微火;
   一座金字塔的墓陵莊嚴地矗立,
   象化為大理石的火焰,蔭蔽着
   一位古人的屍灰,他正是選擇了
   這一處作為他萬古常青的地方;
   下面是一片田野,後來者就在那兒,
   在晴空下搭起他們的死之營帳,
   迎接我們所失去的他,呼吸剛剛斷喪。
   
   51
   
   站在這兒吧:這些墓塋還很新,
   那把屍骨寄予墓穴中的悲哀
   還保留着它的氣氛;但假如
   這氣氛已消失,請別在這兒打開
   一顆悲哀心靈的淚泉吧!不然,
   回傢後,你會發見你自己的心裏
   也有了苦淚。請在墳墓的幽暗中,
   去尋找人世冷風吹不到的蔭蔽。
   阿童尼已經去了,我們又何必畏懼?
   
   52
   
   “一”永遠存在,“多”變遷而流逝,
   天庭的光永明,地上的陰影無常;
   象鋪有彩色玻璃的屋頂,生命
   以其色澤玷污了永恆底白光,
   直到死亡踏碎它為止。——死吧,
   要是你想和你尋求的人一起!
   到一切流歸的地方!羅馬的藍天,
   花草,廢墟,石象,音樂,文字,不足以
   說明這一切所表達的榮耀底真諦。
   
   53
   
   我的心呵,為什麽猶疑,回步,退縮?
   你的希望去了;在現世的一切中
   再也見不到它;你如今也該跟去!
   從四季的循環,從男人和女人心中,
   一種光彩已經消逝;那尚足珍視的
   衹誘人衝突,拒絶了又使人萎靡。
   柔和的天空在微笑,輕風在喃喃:
   那是阿童尼在招呼!噢,快離去,
   “死”既能使人聚合,何必再讓“生”給隔離!
   
   54
   
   那光明,它的笑正照徹全宇宙;
   那優美,萬物都在其中工作,運行;
   那福澤,是把人玷污的生之詛咒
   所消除不了的;那活命的愛情
   竟被人和獸,陸地、海洋和天空,
   盲目糾纏在生之網裏:它燃燒得
   或明或暗,全靠渴求愛之火焰的人
   怎樣反映了它;而今,它正照臨着我,
   把寒冷人性的最後陰雲也給吞沒。
   
   55
   
   我用詩歌所呼喚的宇宙之靈氣?
   降臨到我了;我的精神之舟飄搖,
   遠遠離開海岸,離開膽小的人群——
   試問:他們的船怎敢去迎受風暴?
   我看見龐大的陸地和天空分裂了!
   我在暗黑中,恐懼地,遠遠飄流;
   而這時,阿童尼的靈魂,燦爛地
   穿射過天庭的內幕,明如星鬥,
   正從那不朽之靈的居處嚮我招手。
   
   1821年      
   
   查良錚 譯
   
   
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   
   解放了的普羅密修斯(第一幕)
   
   
      印度高加索冰山的深𠔌。普羅密修斯被綁在懸崖上。潘堤亞和伊翁涅
      坐在山腳下。時間是夜晚。隨着劇情的進展,天光逐漸發亮。
   
      普羅密修斯 一切仙神妖魔的君王呀,所有那些
   
     聚集在各個光亮和轉動的世界上的
      精靈,除了一個以外,全部由你主宰!
      可是億兆生靈中就衹你我兩個人
      睜着夜不交睫的眼睛對它們了望。
      且看這大地,上面繁殖着你的奴隸,
      你竟然拿恐怖、怨艾和絶望
      去酬報他們的頂禮、祈禱和贊美、
      艱苦的勞動以及大規模傷心的犧牲。
      至於我,你的仇人,恨得你兩眼發黑,
      你卻讓我在我的痛苦和你的迫害中,
      取得了權威和勝利,喪盡了你的威風。
      啊,三千年不眠不睡的時辰,
      每一刻全由刺心的創痛來劃分,
      每一刻又都長得象一年,刻刻是
      酷刑和孤獨,刻刻是怨恨和絶望——。
      這些全是我的王國。它比你打從
      你無人羨妒的寶座上所俯瞰的一切
      要光榮得多,啊,你這威猛的天帝:
      你可不是萬能,因為我不肯低頭
      來分擔你那種兇暴統治的罪孽,
      寧願吊了起來釘在這飛鳥難越的
      萬丈懸崖上,四處是黑暗、寒冷和死靜;
      沒有花草、昆蟲、野獸,或生命的音容。
      啊,我呀,永遠是痛苦,永遠是痛苦!
      無變、無休,也無望!我卻依然存在。
      我問大地,千山萬嶽有否感知?
      我問上天,那無所不睹的太陽
      有否看見?再有那茫茫的大海,
      有的時候洶涌、有的時候平靜——
      這是上天千變萬化的影子,
      散落在下界——我不知道它那些
      澎湃的浪濤可曾聽得我的哀號?
      啊,我呀,永遠是痛苦,永遠是痛苦!
   
      寒冷的月亮把遍地的冰雪凍結成
      水晶的槍尖,刺進了我的心窩;
      鎖鏈冷得發燙,嚙進了我的骨骼。
      生翅的天狗,它的嘴像在你的唇上
      沾到了茶毒,把我的心撕得粉碎;
      許多奇形怪狀的東西在周圍飄蕩,
      這一群夢鄉裏的猙獰的幻象,
      也來嘲笑我;還有撼山震地的惡鬼,
      乘着後面的岩壁分了合,合了又分,
      奉命來扭旋我創傷上的那些鉚釘:
      還有那喧囂紛騰的無底深淵裏,
      風暴的妖精催促着咆哮的狂飆,
      又把尖銳的冰雹亂丟在我身上。
      可是我歡迎白天和黑夜的降臨!
      一個驅逐掉早晨灰白的霜雪,
      另一個帶了星星,又昏沉又緩慢地
      爬上青鉛色的東方;他們會帶來
      一個個沒有羽翼、匍匐前進的時辰,
      裏面有一個——象幽黑的神正驅趕祭牲,
      他會拖曳了你,殘暴的皇帝,來親吻
      這些蒼白的足趾上的血漬,這些足趾
      也許會把你踩死,要是它們不厭惡
      這種懾服的奴隸。厭惡!不!我可憐你。
      何等樣的毀滅將要在廣漠的穹蒼裏
      搜捕你,你卻絲毫沒有抵抗的力量:
      你的靈魂將為了恐怖豁然裂開,
      張着口好象裏面有一個地獄!
      這些話我說來難受,因為我不再憤恨,
      痛苦已經給了我智慧。可是我要記住
      當年對你的詛咒。啊,山嶽呀,
      你們多音的回聲,在瀑布的水霧裏,
      曾響應過那一篇說話,象咆哮的雷鳴!
      啊,溪流呀,你們被皺起的寒霜凍僵,
      聽得了我的聲音渾身顫動,又戰慄地
      爬過遼闊的印度!啊,靜穆的空氣呀,
      燃燒着的太陽走過你,也斂起光芒!
      啊,旋風狂飆呀,你們收起了羽翼,
      懸在死寂的深淵裏,沒有聲息和動靜,
      象那比你更響亮的雷陣一般,把岩石
      當作窩巢!假使我的言語當時有力量,
      雖然我改變了,心裏惡毒的念頭
      都已死亡;雖然一切仇恨的記憶
      都已消滅,可別叫這些話把力量失去!
      我當時詛咒了些什麽?你們全聽見。
   
      聲音一(從山嶽中來)
   
      一共三個三十萬年裏
      我們伏在地震的床席上:
      象人類受到恐怖而抖顫,
      我們在一起膽戰心蕩。
   
      聲音二(從源泉中來)
   
      霹靂灼焦了我們的水流,
      我們都沾上鴆毒的血漿,
      我們經過了荒野和城市,
      被喊殺聲嚇得不敢聲張。
   
      聲音三(從空氣中來)
   
      自從大地蘇醒,我便把
      瘠土飾上了奇異的色彩,
      我寧靜的休息又時常被
      碎心的呻吟摧殘破壞。
   
      聲音四(從旋風中來)
   
      無休無止的歲月裏,我們在
      這些山嶽之間飛舞翺翔;
      無論是雷陣,或火山爆裂,
      無論是天上或地下的力量,
      從不曾使我們驚惶慌張。
   
          聲音一
   
      我們雪白的峰頂從不俯首,
      聽到你煩惱的聲音卻會低頭。
   
          聲音二
   
      我們從沒有帶了這種聲音
      去到印度洋波瀾的中心。
      有位舵工在咆哮的海洋裏
      睡覺,倉皇地在甲板上驚起,
      聽見了便嚷一聲:“大難來咧!”
      立刻象洶濤一樣瘋狂地死去。
   
          聲音三
   
      宇宙間從沒有如此可怕的
      言辭,打碎我靜寂的王國:
      創傷方纔收口,那黑暗
      卻又鮮血一般將白日淹沒。
   
          聲音四
   
      我們嚮後退縮:毀滅的幻夢
      把我們追趕到冰凍的岩洞,
      我們衹得沉默——沉默——沉默,
      雖然沉默是無窮的苦痛。
   
     大地  峻岩峭壁上那些沒有舌頭的洞窟
   
     當時都呼號着,“慘呀廣茫茫的青天
      也回答說,“慘呀!”多少黯淡的國傢
      都聽見紫色的海浪衝上了陸地,
      對着一陣陣颳面的狂風怒吼着,“慘呀!”
   
     普羅密修斯 我聽見許多聲音;並不是我所發出的
   
     聲音。母親呀,你的兒子們和你自己
      竟怨恨着我;要不是我意志堅决,
      你們在神通廣大的嶽夫的淫威下,
      都得象晨風前的薄霧一般消散。
      你不認識我嗎?我便是“提坦”。我把
      我的痛楚,在你們那百戰百勝的
      仇敵前面,竪起了一座阻擋的柵欄。
      啊,岩石胸膛的草坪,冰雪喂哺的溪流,
      它們都橫躺在凝凍的水氣底下,
      我曾經和阿西亞在它們陰涼的
      樹林中閑蕩,從她可愛的眼睛裏
      吸取生命。那個知照你的精靈,為什麽
      現在不願和我說話?我正象去攔阻
      惡鬼拖拉的車輛一般,獨力攔阻住
      那個至尊無上的統治者的欺詐和壓迫:
      他把痛創的奴隸的呻吟聲裝滿了
      你們昏暗的峽𠔌和潮濕的蠻荒。
      弟兄們:為什麽依舊不回答?
   
     大地             他們不敢。
   
     普羅密修斯  有誰敢嗎?我再想聽一聽那個詛咒。
   
     啊,耳邊起了一片可怕的嘁喳的聲音!
      簡直不象聲音:盡在耳朵裏嚌嘈,
      象閃電一樣,在打雷前忽隱忽現。
      說呀,精靈!聽你零落破碎的話聲,
      我知道你一步步在走近,又在愛。
      我怎麽樣詛咒他的?
   
     大地            你不懂得
   
     死鬼的語言,你如何聽得清楚?
   
     普羅密修斯 你是一個有生命的精靈;請你說。
   
     大地 我不敢說生靈的話,衹怕兇暴的天帝
   
     會聽到,他會把我綁上虐酷的刑輪,
      比我現在身受的磨難更要痛楚。
      你是如此的聰明和善良,雖然神道
      聽不出,可是你比神道更有力量,
      因為你有智慧和仁慈:仔細聽吧。
   
     普羅密修斯
      惶恐的念頭象黑暗的陰影,朦朧地
   
     掠過我的腦際,又是快又是深濃。
      我感到眩暈,象是牽纏在戀愛之中;
      可是這並不愉快。
   
     大地              不,你聽不出來:
   
     你是永生的,你完全不懂這一種
      衹有會死的才能懂得的言語。
   
     普羅密修斯            你是誰,
   
     啊,你這一個悲切的聲音?
   
     大地                我是“大地”,
   
     你的母親,當你象一朵燦爛的雲彩,
      一個歡欣的精靈,從她胸懷裏上升,
      她的石筋石脈,直到那棵在寒空中
      抖動着稀零的葉子的參天大樹,
      連最後一絲纖維裏也有快樂在奔騰!
      聽到了你的聲音,她傷心的兒子們
      都拍起他們磕伏在塵垢中的眉毛;
      我們那位萬能的暴君也心驚肉跳,
      臉變白,他便用霹靂把你鎖在此地。
      當時衹見那大千世界在我們周圍
      燃燒和轉動:他們的居民看到了
      我滾圓的光亮在遼闊的天空消失;
      怪異的風暴把海水掀起;那地震’
      所裂破的雪山都噴出了火焰,
      滿頭不祥的赤發不顧一切地撒野;
      閃電和洪水在原野上四處騷擾;
      一個個城市中長滿了青緑的荊棘;
      鋯腹的蝦膜在奢樂的房中掙紮爬行:
      瘟疫和饑荒一同降臨在人類、野獸
      和蟲多身上;花草樹木都得了惡癥;
      麥田、葡萄園和牧場的青草中間
      蔓生着除不盡的毒莠,吸幹了水
      使它們無法滋長,因為我蒼白的
      胸脯為了憂傷而幹涸;那稀薄的空氣——
      我的呼吸——沾染着做母親的怨憤,
      對着她孩子的破壞者噴射。不錯,
      我聽到過你的詛咒,如果你記不得,
      好在我的無量數的海洋和溪流、
      山嶽、洞窟、清風和浩蕩的天空,
      以及那些口齒不清的死亡的幽靈,
      他們都珍藏着那一篇咒文。我們
      私下在歡欣和希望這僭語會實現,
      但是不敢說出口來。
   
     普羅密修斯            可敬的母親!
   
     一切生存在世上受苦的都從你那裏
      多少得到些安慰;即使是短暫的
      鮮花、水果、快樂的聲音和愛。
      這些我也許難以獲得,可是,我求你,
      不要拒絶我聽一聽我自己所說的話。
   
     大地  一切都會對你說。但等巴比倫變灰塵,
   
     魔師左羅亞斯德,我的死去的孩子,
      走在花園裏碰到他自己的幻象;
      看見了人類的最下層,幽靈的顯形。
      你得知道這裏有生和死兩個世界:
      一個就在你眼前,可是另一個
      卻在墳墓下面,那裏居住着
      各式各樣的影子,他們思想和生活,
      直到死亡把他們聚在一起,永不分離;
      那裏還有人類一切的邪思和好夢,
      一切信仰的創造和愛情的期望,
      一切恐怖、奇怪、崇高和美麗的形狀。
      那裏,懸挂在旋風居住的山嶺中間的
      是你那痛苦掙紮的魂靈;一切的神道
      都在那裏,一切無名世界上的權威,
      龐大顯赫的鬼怪,英雄、凡人和野獸。
      還有冥王,一片無邊無際的黑暗;
      還有他,那位至高無上的暴君,坐在
      他金碧輝煌的寶座上。兒呀,
      他們有一個會說出大傢記得的詛咒。
      隨你去召喚哪一個的鬼魂:
      你自己的也好;朱比特的也好;
      哈得斯和堤豐的也好,或是自從你
      遭難以後,打萬惡叢中産生出來
      一直在跌矚我惶恐的兒子們的
      那些更有力量的神道也好。
      你問,他們一定會回答:對於那個
      至尊的報復便會傳遍渺茫的空間,
      正象雨天的風聲穿過荒廢的門戶,
      走進傾壇的宮殿。
   
     普羅密修斯         母親呀;別再讓
   
     我口裏說出什麽惡毒的辭句,
      或是什麽象我說過的那種言語。
      啊,朱比特的幽靈,快上來!快現身!
       伊翁涅
   
      我的羽翼掩住了耳朵;
      我的羽翼遮住了眼睛:
      可是穿過溫柔的翎毛,
      穿過整片銀色的陰影,
      看到一個身形,聽得一陣聲響;
      希望它不是來損害你,
      你已經有了這許多痛創!
      我們早晚看守在你身邊,
      免得我們親姐姐要關念。
   
        潘堤亞
   
      這聲音象九泉之下的旋風,
      象地震、條火燒、又象山崩。
      那形狀象聲音一樣令人惶恐,
      深紫的衣服,上面綴着星辰。
      他那衹青筋暴露的手中
      撐着黃金的皇節,傲視闊步,
      走過那一堆堆過緩的雲叢。
      他面貌殘酷,可是鎮靜、威武,
      他寧願辜負人,不願人辜負。
   
        朱比特的幻象
   
      為什麽這怪異世界的神秘力量,
      用了狂風暴雨,把我這個虛無縹緲的
      魂靈驅趕到此?是什麽生疏的聲音
      在我嘴唇上跳動——完全不象
      我們蒼白的民族在黑暗裏面,
      那種叫人聽了汗毛直竪的口吻?
      再說,驕傲的受難人,你是誰?
   
     普羅密修斯 你這碩大的幻象,一定是他的替身。
   
     我便是“提坦”,他的仇人。你且把
      我希望聽到的話一句句講出來,
      即使沒有思想來指導你空虛的聲音。
   
     大地  聽吧.可縣你們决不能發出回聲;
   
     一切灰色的山嶽和古老的樹林,
      厲鬼作祟的溪泉,仙人居住的洞窟,
      環繞島嶼的河流,快靜心傾聽,
      傾聽你們還不敢出口的言辭。
   
     朱比特的幻象 一個精靈捉住我,在我肚子裏說話。
   
            它撕裂我好象雷火撕裂着烏雲。
   
     潘提亞  瞧呀,他怎樣擡起他巨大的臉盤,
   
              天也變色。
   
     伊翁涅 他講話了!啊,快遮住我!
      普羅密修斯 我看了他這種傲慢的冷漠的舉止、
   
     堅定的輕衊和鎮靜的怨恨的表情,
      還有用冷笑來自嘲的絶望的態度,
      我的那個詛咒就象是白紙上的黑字,
      浮現在我眼前。好吧,你講!快講!
       幻象
   
      惡魔,我不怕你!我又鎮靜,又堅定,
      盡你用陰險毒辣的手段來折磨我,
      你是整個仙界和人類的暴君,
      就衹有一個,你可沒有法子收服。
      盡你在我頭上降下一切災殃、
      駭人的疫瘍、喪魂失魄的恐慌;
      盡你用寒霜和烈火交替着
      侵蝕我,或是在傷人害物的
      暴風雨裏面,帶來了狂怒的雷電、
      刺骨的冰雹,還有大隊的魔鬼和妖仙。
      好吧,盡你狠心做。你原是無所不能.
      我給了你權柄,讓你去控製一切,
      就衹管不住我的意志和你自身。
      盡你在靈霄殿上傳令把人類毀滅。
      盡你叫兇惡的精靈,在黑暗裏,
      作賤所有我心愛的東西:
      盡你用極刑來發泄仇恨,
      來虐待我,同時也虐待他們;
      啊,衹要你在天宮裏做一天皇帝,
      我便一天不想安睡,一天不把頭低。
   
      啊,你是天帝又是萬物的主宰,可是
      你把你的靈魂充塞了這患難的世界,
      天上地下形形色色的東西,見了你,
      都惶恐膜拜;你這威震遐邇的冤傢I
      我詛咒你!但願苦難人的詛咒
      象悔恨般抓緊你這虐待他的仇敵。
      直至你無盡的生命變成了
      一件捆在身上脫卸不掉的毒袍;
      你萬能的威力變成了痛苦的皇冠,
      象閃爍的金箍把你渙散的頭腦緊纏。
      憑我詛咒的力量,讓你的靈魂裏
      積滿了孽障和罪愆,一旦發現天良;
      你便遭殃;你在孤寂中自怨自艾的
      痛楚,將會象地一般久,天一般長。
      且看你,現在坐得十分安詳,
      真是一座驚心動魄的偶像,
      但等那命定的時辰來臨,
      你準會顯露出你的原形。
      作惡多端無非是白費一番心血,
      千載萬世要受到大傢的嘲笑和指斥。
   
     普羅密修斯 這些是我說的話嗎,親娘?
      大地                是你說的。
      普羅密修斯 我真懊悔;言辭是這樣的刺人和無聊;
           憂傷會使人一時盲目,我正是如此。
           我並不想叫任何生靈痛受煎熬。
   
       大地
   
      悲切呀,啊,我多麽悲切!
      嶽夫居然要把你來消滅。
      海和陸呀,快快來哀哭怒號,
      傷心的大地自會同聲悲悼。
      吼叫呀,一切死亡和生存的精靈,
      你們的安慰和保障已被摧毀,消滅幹淨
   
        回聲一
   
      已被摧毀,消滅幹淨:
   
        回聲二
   
      消滅幹淨!
   
        伊翁涅
   
      別怕:這是瞬息即逝的痙攣,
      那“提坦”依舊沒有被人消滅。
      且看那邊雪山頂上的峰巒,
      中間顯出一角蔚藍的空隙,
      有個身形踏着斜飄的天風,
      他一雙穿着金鞋子的腳
      在紫色的羽翼底下閃動,
      正象是玫瑰染紅的象牙,
      現在快要到了,
      他右手舉着盤蛇的魔棒
      在半空中高揚。
   
     潘提亞 這是麥鳩利,他為嶽夫把命令傳遍天下。
   
       伊翁涅
   
      那些九頭蛇盤頂的又是誰,
      張着鐵翅在風中翺翔——
      天地皺緊了眉頭用力指揮,
      象蒸氣一般在後面飛揚——
      這一大群吵吵嚷嚷的妖娘?
   
        潘堤亞
   
      這些是嶽夫掀風作浪的走狗,
      一嚮用呻吟和鮮血來豢養,
      他們駕乘着硫磺般的濃雲,
      衝過了世界的盡頭。
   
        伊翁涅
   
      他們莫非是吃完了舊的死屍,
      又來找新的糧食?
   
        潘堤亞
   
      “提坦”始終是這般堅定,毫不驕矜。
   
     鬼一   啊!我聞到一股生人氣!
      鬼二              看他的眼睛!
      鬼三   虐待他的心思,正象吃死人的鴉鳥,
           在一場惡戰後嗅到了遍地屍體的味道。
      鬼一   你竟敢遲延,傳令官!諸位地獄的竇犬,
   
     提起興致來吧:也許邁亞的兒子
      不久會變成我們的吃食和玩藝——
      誰能長久保持那萬能者的恩寵?
   
        麥鳩利
   
      快跟我滾回你們那些鐵塔裏去,
      去到那火燒和痛號的溪流邊上,
      磨礪你們饑餓的牙齒。奇裏雄,快起來!
      戈耳貢,喀邁拉,起來!還有你,斯芬剋斯,
      最詭譎的惡魔,你也趕快起來,
      你曾把天上的毒酒灌進底比斯城中——
      不自然的戀愛,和不自然的怨恨:
      這些都是你幹下的好事。
   
     鬼一
      啊,求求你;
   
            我們饑渴得要死:別把我們趕回去:
   
     麥鳩利  那麽,蹲着不許作聲。
   
             可憐的受難人呀I
    啊,我真是不願意,我實在不願意;
    天父的意旨逼得我不能不下來,
      給你受一種新的苦楚,一種新的災殃。
      咳:我憐憫你,同時又怨恨我自己,
      因為我沒有一些辦法:自從上次
      見了你回去,天堂便變成了地獄,
    白天黑夜總想到你毀傷的面容,
      含着笑在埋怨我。你聰明、堅定和善良,
      可是單獨和那萬能者去反抗作對,
      簡直沒有用處;那些光潔的明燈——
      他們測量和區分你無法逃避的
      纍人的歲月——早已教導了我們,
      也永遠會教導我們。就說在目前,
      你的迫害者正把一種奇異的力量,
      交給許多地獄裏為非作歹的謀士,
      來鑄造各式各樣意想不到的痛苦,
      我的使命便是把他們帶領到此地,
      或是叫陰間更姦詐、卑污、野蠻的
      惡鬼,留在這兒來完成他們的任務。
        何必如此!你有的是一個秘密,
        萬千生靈中除了你無人知曉,
        這秘密將使皇天的玉璽易手,
        害得至高無上的元首擔驚受怕,
        快把它講出口來,用它去祝告
        御座萬年無疆;你的靈魂也應該
        象在華嚴的神殿裏求靈一般,
        低頭祈禱,叫意志在你倔傲的心中
        屈膝下跪:要知道貢獻和順從能使
        最兇狠、最威猛的變成溫良。
   
     普羅密修斯             惡毒的心腸
   
     竟把豐功化為孽跡。他所有的一切
        全是我的贈與;他卻反而拿我
        無年無月、無晝無夜地鎖在此處:
        不管太陽裂開我灼焦的皮膚,
        不管月明的夜晚那水晶翅膀的雪花
        係纏住我的發絲:我心愛的人類
        又被他的為虎作倀的爪牙恣意蹂躪。
        那個暴君一定逃不過應得的報應:
        這很公平,惡人决計得不到好果;
        他獲得了宇宙,或是失去了一個好友,
        卻衹懂怨恨,畏懼,羞慚;不懂感激:
        他自己作了惡反而要來懲罰我。
        對這種東西發慈悲是絶大的錯誤,
        這會使他更加惱羞,更加猖狂。
        順從,你明明知道我萬不能做到:
      所謂順從,便是那一句致命的話,
      它可以使人類永久受到束縛,
      也可以象西西裏人用發絲係住的劍,
      在他的皇冠上面顫動。叫他來允承我,
      還是我去答應他?我可决不肯答應。
      “罪惡”衹是暫時高踞全能的寶座,
      讓別人去嚮它獻媚吧;他們沒有危險:
      “公理”獲得了勝利,她衹會揮灑
      同情的眼淚,她不會懲罰,因為是
      她自己的錯誤,使不法者作威作福。
      我就忍受着委屈來等待吧。談到現在,
      那報應的時辰應該來得越加近了,
      聽呀,地獄的獒犬都在喧囂;單怕遲延:
      瞧呀!你父親的臉色陰鬱,天也低了。
   
     麥鳩利  啊,但願我們能逃過這個難關:但願
           我不必行兇,你不必受罪:我再問你,
           你可知道嶽夫的權勢有多久多長?
      普羅密修斯 我衹知道那個時間一定會來到。
      麥鳩利 咳!你算不出你還得受多少年痛苦?
      普羅密修斯 嶽夫有一天權勢,我就有一天痛苦
           我不怕多也不想少。
      麥鳩利             且慢,你當真要
   
     投入永久的無垠裏去?在那裏,
        凡是我們想象中計算得出的時間,
        無論千年萬載,不過是一個小點,
        哪怕倔強的心靈,在這種無休無止的
        行程裏也會精疲力竭,直到後來
        變得頭昏眼花、消沉迷惘、沒有歸宿。
        也許你還沒有估計到那些冗長的
        接二連三地受着酷刑的歲月吧?
   
     普羅密修斯 也許沒人估計得出,可是總會過去。
      麥鳩利 你何不暫時去和仙神們住在一起,
             沉湎於聲色的歡樂?
      普羅密修斯           我見了刑罰不怕,
           我也不願離開這個荒涼的山崖。
      麥鳩利  咳!我真弄不懂你,但是又可憐你。
      普羅密修斯 可憐上天那些自怨自艾的奴隸吧,
           不必可憐我,我現在真是心平氣和,
           好象萬道的陽光。啊,何必盡說空話!
           快把那些惡鬼叫來。
      伊翁涅             啊,妹妹,你瞧!
           白熾的火焰把那邊一株披雪的老鬆
           連根裂開;後面咆哮着可怕的天雷!
      麥鳩利  我衹得依順你的話,又聽從他的命令:
           咳!我心頭重重地壓着良心的譴責!
      潘提亞  瞧那天帝的孩兒腳上長着翅膀,
           正沿着晨曦的斜輝飛奔下降。
      伊翁涅  好姐姐,快把羽翼蒙住你的眼睛,
           否則你看了會送命,啊,他們來了,
           數不清的翅膀遮蔽着新生的白天,
           他們的軀體象死一樣空虛。
      鬼一               普羅密修斯!
      鬼二  永生的“提坦”!
      鬼三           上天的奴隸的捍衛者!
      普羅密修斯 衹聽得一聲聲可怕的呼嘯叫着我。
   
     普羅密修斯,那被囚的“提坦”在這裏!
          駭人的身形,你們是誰!你們是些
          什麽東西?想不到嶽夫的萬惡的腦子,
          居然替鬼怪充塞的地獄,製造出這等
          猙獰的幽靈。看到了這些可憎的形象,
          我衹覺自己也變得和他們一模一樣,
          又帶着厭惡和同情一邊笑一邊細看。
   
     鬼一  我們掌管着痛楚、恐懼和失望、
   
     猜忌和怨恨,還有洗不淨的罪惡孽障;
          正象瘦瘠的獵狗,走遍樹林和湖沼,
          搜尋着那受了創傷在呻吟的麋鹿,
          我們追蹤一切啼哭、流血、生存的東西,
          衹等天帝出賣了它們,盡我們來收拾。
   
     普羅密修斯 啊!千百種可怕的職務都出你們擔負,
   
     我認識你們;這些湖沼和回聲
          也熟悉你們翅翼的黑暗和張合的聲音
          可是為什麽你們又從九泉之下,
           帶來這許多比你們更醜陋的傢夥?
   
     鬼二  我們不知道;姊妹們,請呀,請呀!
      普羅密修斯 試問有誰喜愛這種破殘的形骸?
      鬼二  情人相對自然覺得愉快和美麗——
   
     你望着我,我望着你:我們也是如此。
        我們本來和黑夜老娘一樣無形無狀,
        可是正象蒼白的女巫跪在地上,
        采摘着玫瑰去編製她祭典的花冠,
        空中降下了胭脂,染得她兩頰鮮紅,
        我們也把我們犧牲者的痛苦的
        陰影來裹纏在我們自己的身上。
   
     普羅密修斯 你們的本領真可笑,派你們來的那一個
           更是不足道。把苦水對我頭上澆吧。
      鬼一  你以為我們要裂碎你的一根根骨頭,
           抽拔你的一條條神經,象猛火攻心?
      普羅密修斯 痛苦是我的名分,狠毒是你們的本性;
           現在來折磨我吧:我毫不在乎。
      鬼二  你以為
           我們衹是對着你徹夜不眠的眼睛訕笑?
      普羅密修斯 我並不來衡量你們的行為,我衹覺得
           你們作了惡自會受罪。那個暴君
           真不該把你們這些可憐的東西遣派。
      鬼三  你以為我們也和生靈動物一樣,
   
     一個一個把你當作活命的食糧,
         你以為我們撲不滅你靈魂裏的火焰,
         可是要象那高聲喧囂的群氓,
         糾纏着心安理得的最聰明的人們;
         你以為我們要變成你腦子裏面的
         恐怖的念頭,或是變成醜惡的欲望
         環繞着你驚惶的心靈,或是變成血液
    象痛苦般在你麯折的脈絡裏爬行?
   
     普羅密修斯 對,你們現在就是這等模樣。不過
   
     我是我自己的主宰,我能控製住
        我心頭的煎熬和衝突,正象地獄裏
        暴動發生的時候,嶽夫鎮壓你們一樣。
         衆女鬼合唱
          快從天涯和海角,快從海角和天涯,
          快從黑夜入葬和早晨誕生的地帶,
         來,來,來:
          啊,你們歡樂的呼嘯震撼着大小山崖,
          當一個個城市傾坍成為廢墟;你們
          雖然身無羽翼,可是踏遍海面洋心,
          去追尋覆舟和饑饉的蹤跡,坐到
          沒有糧食的破船上去盡情談笑,
         來,來,來!
          拋卻你們鋪在死城底下的
          又低、又冷、又紅的床席:
          拋卻你們的怨恨,象灰燼一般,
           等將來焚燒時再發出火焰;
          你重新撥弄,它又會燎燃,
           噴發的火勢更來得驚險:
          把自咎心種植在年青人
          胸膛裏,害他們神魂顛蕩,
           這是痛苦沒有煽旺的燃料,
         把地獄的秘隱透露出一半,
          讓瘋狂的幻想者去探討;
         要知道驚慌的人比怨恨的人
       更來得殘忍。
         來,來,來:
      我們出了地獄的大門象蒸氣般高升,
         在淨空中乘着颶風狂飆到處飛奔,
         可是你沒有來到,我們總是枉費辛勤.
   
     伊翁涅 姐姐,我又聽得一陣陣翅膀的聲音。
      潘堤亞  這些堅實的山嶽聽到了,簡直象
   
     抖瑟的空氣一般地戰慄:那群翅膀的
        陰影使我的羽翼裏面比黑夜更幽暗。
           女鬼一
           你們的召喚象生翅的車輛,
          在旋風中駛得又快又遠;
           拉我們離開了血濺的沙場。
           女鬼二
          離開了餓草遍地的荒城;
           女鬼三
           依稀聞悲聲,鮮血未沾唇;
           女鬼四
           離開了華麗又冷酷的密室,
           在那裏赤血用黃金來交易’
           女鬼五
           離開了白熾火燙的鍋爐,
           在裏面——
           一個女鬼
           不可講!不可透露!
    你要告訴我的事,我早知底細,
      可是講了出來會泄漏天機,
    就沒法剋服那不屈的勁敵,
     那倔強的頭顱;
    聽憑他藐視着地獄深潛的威力。
           一個女鬼
    把蓋在身上的布撕掉!
           另一個女鬼
               撕掉了。
           衆女鬼合唱
                       暗淡的晨星
    映照着一件悲慘的事實,看來真是駭人。
    你也會昏厥,大力的“提坦”?真是丟臉。
    你還要誇說你啓發了人類精湛的知識?
    你在他心裏燃起了一種狂熱的幹渴,
    這一種幹渴連洪水狂瀾也衝澆不滅,
    希望、戀愛、疑慮、欲求,永遠把他侵蝕。
     有一位溫文的人來到,
     對着血染的地面微笑;
     他的話比他壽長,象毒藥
     使真理、和平、憐憫都萎殆。
     瞧啊,衹見那天邊地角,
      許多百萬居民的城市
     在光亮的空中吐着煙霧.
      啊,且聽那絶望的號呼!
    這是他的溫文的鬼魂
     悲悼他當初引起的虔心。
    再看一蓬蓬火焰快變成
     一盞盞螢火蟲的尾燈:
    死剩下來的都圍着餘燼,
     駭得魂飛魄散。
       歡欣,歡欣,歡欣!
      過往的歲月兜上心頭,它們都記得分明:
      未來是十分黑暗;現在又象一個枕囊,
      上面長滿了針刺,來安頓你失眠的頸項。
         半隊女鬼合唱一
      他蒼白和顫抖的眉毛上,
      一滴滴慘痛的鮮血在流淌。
      現在讓我們暫時把手放;
      快看一個大夢初醒的國傢
    從荒涼中突然地長大,
    它完全依仗真理來保護,
    靠真理的配偶——自由——來帶路,
    這一大群手拉手的兄弟,
    乃是戀愛的兒女……
         半隊女鬼合唱二
                   事實上並不是!
    看他們骨肉自相殺害;
    死亡和罪惡便開始釀醅;
    鮮血象新酒一樣甘美:
    直到絶望來窒息
      這一個奴隸們和暴君們戰勝的世界。
          (衆女鬼隱滅,一女鬼留下。)
   
     伊翁涅  聽呀,姐姐!這一陣低沉而恐怖的呻吟,
   
     肆無忌憚地折磨得善良的“提坦”
        心碎腸斷,正象暴風雨崩夭裂地,
        連野獸在深窟中也聽到海濤的慘叫。
        你敢不敢看那些惡鬼如何收拾他?
   
     潘堤亞 咳!我已經看過兩次,不願再看了。
      伊翁涅 你看到些什麽?“
      潘堤亞              一幕傷心的景象:
          一位態度從容的青年被釘在十字架上。
      伊翁涅 還看到些什麽?
      潘堤亞 我又見天上和地下,
   
     人類的屍體在摩肩接踵地來往,
        可怕到萬分,這是人類的手所造成;
         有些又象是人類心靈的作為,且看
        一不少人竟然為了一顰一笑輾轉喪命:
         還有別種無可名狀的醜惡的東西
         在四處流蕩。我們不必多看吧,憑空
        去增加恐慌:這些呻吟聲己盡夠凄涼。
   
     女鬼   且看這幅象徵的圖畫;那些替代着
           人類受罪、受譴責、受奴役的,反而把
           成千成萬倍的痛苦帶給自己和人類。
      普羅密修斯 把你眼睛裏炯炯有光的幽怨消除掉:
   
     合上你慘白的嘴唇;叫那刺傷的眉毛
        不要再流血,別讓它和你的眼淚混合!
        把你受創的眼珠正視着和平與死,
        你的陣痛便不再會震動那個十字架,
        你死灰的手指便不再會和淤血廝纏。
        啊,可怕呀!我不願把你的名字說出口,
        它已經變成了一種禍殃。我看見
        那些聰明、溫和、高傲和公正的人:
        你的奴隸恨他們,因為他們象你。
        有幾個被惡毒的誑話趕出了心的家庭,
        一個早先降福,晚近悼喪的家庭;
        好象斑爛的虎豹追逐着竄奔的叱鹿;
        有幾個在腌瞻的地窖裏和死屍作伴:
        有幾個——我豈不是聽見大傢在狂笑?——
        包圍在沒有熄滅的火焰裏:強大的帝國
        打我腳邊漂過,好象海水衝斷了根的
        島嶼,它們的兒女在焚燒着的傢門邊,
        通紅的火光裏,被彼此的血揉在一起。
   
     女鬼  血和火你能看見;呻吟的聲音你能聽見,
           聽不見、看不見的更壞的東西還在後面。
      普羅密修斯 更壞的?
      女鬼  人類心靈的窟窿裏永遠填滿了
   
     恐怖:最高傲的人都害怕,害怕他們
        所不屑想象的種種事情完全是真實;
        偽善和習俗使他們的頭腦變成了
        許多人頂禮膜拜的墻坍壁倒的廟宇。
        他們不敢為人類設計美好的境遇,
    可是他們自己並不知道他們不敢。
      善心的人沒有權勢,但見淚水空流。
      有權勢的人缺乏善心:那更值得遺憾。
      聰明的需要仁愛;仁愛的又需要聰明,
      一切最好的事情就這般地糟做一團。
      有些人有力量,有金錢,也能懂得情理,
        可是他們生活在苦難的同胞中間,
        似乎毫無感覺:自己做什麽,自己不知道。
   
     普羅密修斯 你這種話真象是一群生翅的蛇蝎。
           我倒可憐那些它們無從傷害的東西。
      女鬼   你倒可憐起它們來了嗎?我沒話說了!
                          (隱滅。)
      普羅密修斯 真是遭殃!咳!痛苦,痛苦,永遠痛苦!
   
     我閉上我淚盡的眼睛,可是你的罪行,
        在我悲極智生的心靈裏,顯得格外清楚,
        你這個陰險的暴君:啊,墳墓中有平安。
        墳墓把一切美好的事物隱藏起來,
        我是個神道,我沒有法子到那裏去;
         我也不想,去追求:因為,如果怕你迫害,
        兇殘的皇帝呀,那便是失敗,不是勝利。
       看到了你這許多暴行,我的靈魂上
         又增加了新的耐性,但等那時辰到來,
        各種各樣的事情全會換上一個面目。
   
     潘堤亞 你還看到些什麽,
      普羅密修斯              講述和觀看,
   
     兩件事一樣悲慘,你就饒了我一件吧。
       我看到那些名字,大自然神聖的口號,
        一個個金碧輝煌地寫明在那裏;
        許多國傢都環繞在它們的周圍,
        異口同聲地呼喚着:真理、自由、博愛!
        突然有一團烏煙瘴氣從天上掉落在
        它們中間,於是來了糾紛、欺騙和恐懼:
        暴君們都蜂擁而入,把勝利品瓜分。
        這便是我親眼目睹的事實的幽影。
   
     大地   孩兒,我感得到你的痛楚;這是一種
   
     苦難和盛德混合的歡欣。為了使你
        高興,我召來幾個高尚和美好的精靈——
        人類腦子裏那些昏暗的洞窟便是
        他們的傢,他們象鳥雀一般迎風翩躚,
        生活在圍繞世界的思想的太空裏面;
        他們的眼光能穿過那迷蒙的疆域,
        象在玻璃球裏看未來:願他們安慰你!
   
     潘堤亞  看呀,妹妹,那邊擁着一大隊精靈,
           象春天明朗的氣候裏成群的自云,
           在蔚藍的天空中會集!
      伊翁涅               你瞧!還有呢,
           象是溪泉裏的水氣,在沒有風的時期,
           一縷一縷斷斷續續地爬上峽𠔌。
             你聽!這是不是松樹吟唱的歌麯?
           究竟是湖水,還是瀑布演奏的音樂?
      潘堤亞  這聲音卻比一切更悲切,更甜蜜。
   
            衆精靈臺唱
      記不清楚有多少年份,
      我們溫文地保護和帶領
      一切被上天壓迫的生靈;
      我們呼吸着,但是從不肯
      站污,人類思想的氣氛:
      不管它灰暗、昏茫、又潮濕,
      象暴鳳雨塗抹過的天色,
      衹有些奄奄一息的光綫,
    不管它十二分地明淨,
      象無雲的青天,無風的溪泉,
    到處是悠閑、清新和寂靜;
      如同輕風裏面的小鳥,
    如同微波裏面的遊魚,
      如同人類心中的思潮
    在墳墓的上空來往馳驅;
      我們在那裏建築我們的
      洞府,完全象白雲一樣,
      在無邊無際中自由徜徉:
      我們從那裏帶來個預言——
      它由你開始也由你收場!
   
     伊翁涅  一個個越來越多了:它們周圍的空氣
   
     好象星辰周圍的空氣一樣明亮。
         精靈一
    乘着戰場上號角的吼叫,
           我離開了陳舊的教條,
      離開了暴君破碎的旗號,
      穿過了一股衝天的黑氣,
      快,快,快飛到此地,
      有許多呼聲混雜在一起,
      環繞着我同時往上飛——
      自由!希望!死亡!勝利!
      一直到了天空纔消失;
      又有一個聲音在我周圍,
      在我的周圍上下馳騁;
      這就是那愛情的靈魂;
      這就是那希望、那預言——
      它由你開始也由你收場。
         精靈二
      彩虹的拱門,一晃也不晃,
      竪立在洶涌澎湃的海上,
      得勝的暴風雨早已象
    勝利者,又是驕傲又迅速,
      帶走了許多俘虜的雲朵——
    雜亂的一群,幽暗和急促,
    每一片都讓霹靂裂成了
    兩半:我聽見響雷在狂笑:
    巍峨的巨艦全變作廢料,
    在慘暴的死亡下,遺留在
    白浪滔滔的海面。我象
    閃電一般降落在船身上,
    又駕着一聲嘆息奔趕到此——
    那人嘆息一聲把救命板送給
      他的冤傢,情願自己淹死。
         精靈三
      我坐在一位哲人的床旁,
      在他研究的書本邊上,
      桌燈放射着煊紅的光芒,
      這時候夢幻拍着火赤的
      羽翼,飛近了他的枕席,
      我認識它面目一如往昔,
      好久以前它曾經煽動過
      卓越的口才、憐憫和怨怒;
      世界上當時遍地散布
      它的光華所映耀的影子,
      踏着象欲望般神速的腳步,
      它背馱我來到了此處:
      天亮前我得騎了它回程,
      否則哲人醒來要傷心。
         精靈四
      我睡在詩人的嘴唇上,
    正象一位愛情的宿將,
    在他呼吸聲中做着幻夢;
    他並不追求人間的福祉,
    卻把思想的蠻荒裏作祟的
    怪物的殷勤當作糧食。
    他從清晨一直到黃昏,
    盡望着湖面反映的陽光
    照亮花蕊上黃色的蜜蜂,
          不管,也不看,他們是什麽,
          可是他從這些裏面創造出
          比活人更真實的形態,
          一個個永生不滅的嬰孩:
          他們中有一個將我喚醒,
          我立刻前來嚮你請命。
         伊翁涅
         你沒見兩個身形從東西兩方來到,
         好象一對鴿子飛嚮心愛的窩巢?
         它們是托住萬物的空氣孿生的小孩,
         張着平穩的翅膀在杳冥中飛來。
         聽:它們甜蜜、憂愁的嗓子!這是失望
         和愛混合在一起,化作了聲音而消隱。
   
     潘堤亞 你能講話麽,妹妹?我喉嚨裏發不出聲。
      伊翁涅 它們的美給了我嗓音。且看它們
   
     多麽逍遙,翅膀上有雲霞一般的花紋,
        橘黃和蔚藍,加深了又變得象黃金:
        它們的微笑如同星光,照明着天頂。
         衆精靈合唱
        你有沒有看見愛的形狀?
         精靈五
                     當我加快了腳步,
         跨越遼闊的區域,那頭頂星冠的身形張開他
        電光編織的羽翼,象凌空的自云一般掠過,
         他馥鬱的翎毛裏散灑着生命的歡樂的光華,
        他足跡過處,遍地明亮;我走近時已經在消放,
        空虛的毀滅在後面欠伸:睏國在瘋狂中的
       偉大的哲人,無頭的烈士,喪身的慘白青年,
        在黑夜裏忽隱忽現。我四處遨遊,直到你,
       啊,憂愁的君王,在笑顔中把恐怖變作歡喜。
         精靈六
        啊,姐姐!孤獨原來是一個纖弱的東西,
        它不在地面上走動,也不在空氣中飄蕩,
        衹是踏着催眠的步子,用靜寂的羽翼,
        在最好、最溫柔的人心裏,鼓動親切的希望;
       這些人因為羽翼在上面扇拂,那輕快的腳步
        又帶來了悅耳的清音,獲得了虛誕的撫慰,
        幻夢着架空的歡樂,又把妖魔喚作愛,
       醒來卻和我們現在招呼的人一樣,衹見到痛苦。
          合唱
          現在毀滅顯變成了愛的影子,
          跨着死亡的插翅的白色坐騎,
           滿懷破壞的心腸在後面跑,
          連逃得最快的也沒法逃避,
           它踐踏着鮮花,也踐踏着莠草,
         又踐踏着人類和野獸——不論他們
          美或醜,它都象大風大雨般蹂躪。
          可是你將製服這個兇狠的騎將,
          雖然他的心和四肢並無創傷。
   
     普羅密修斯 精靈們!你們怎麽會事先知曉?
   
            合唱
           打從我們呼吸的空氣裏聽得,
         當白雪銷聲匿跡,紅花含苞。
          打從下界的春天得來的消息,
          當輕柔的和風拂動接骨木叢,
           牧羊放牛的人們大傢知道
           白色的山植不久便要開了:
            智慧、公理、愛情、和平,
            眼看它們掙紮着要産生,
              我們便象牧羊兒一樣,
              感到溫煦的和風,這個預言
               由你開始也由你收場。
   
     伊翁涅 那些精靈飛往哪裏去了?
      潘堤亞             他們衹遺下
   
     一些感覺,好象神妙的歌唱和琵琶
        已經停歇,可是彩聲還沒有休止,
        那無孔不入的餘音卻依舊深深地
        在撲朔迷離的靈魂中間縈繞和滾轉,
        如同狹長的山洞裏面有回聲振蕩。
   
     普羅密修斯 這些虛無縹緲的身形多麽窈窕!可是
   
     我感到,除了愛,一切的希望全空虛;
        你是這般遙遠,阿西亞!當我的生命
         洋溢,你會象金蹲盛放美酒一般
         接住它,不讓它沉埋進幹渴的塵埃。
         一切寂然無聲。啊!這個幽靜的早晨
         多麽沉重地積壓在我的心頭;
         即使難免做夢,我也會懷着悲愁
        來睡覺,如果能讓我打個瞌。
      啊,我情願去擔當那命運所指派
      我的職使,做人類的救星和衛士,
      或是讓一切都回覆當初的原狀:
      那裏不再有苦惱,也不再有失意;
      大地會來安慰,上天從此不來磨難。
   
     潘堤亞 你有沒有忘掉在寒冷的黑夜裏,
           陪伴你的那一個,她從來不睡覺,
           除非你的魂靈的陰影落在她身上?
      普羅密修斯 我說過,除了愛,一切希望全空虛:
           你在愛呢。
      潘堤亞          我當真深切地在愛;
   
     可是曉星已經發白,阿西亞在遼遠的
        印度溪𠔌裏——她流放的地方——等候着:
        那地方也曾經象這裏的山峽一樣,
         又是陰峻,又是凄涼,又是凜寒,
    現在卻已經長滿了奇花和異草,
         她周圍的景象完全變了個模樣,
        空氣中,樹林裏,溪流邊,都散布着
        美妙的氣息和聲音,但是你如果
        不和她在一起,這些全會消滅。再會吧!
   
   (第二幕)
   
   第一場
   
         早晨。印度高加索的山峽。景色幽緻。阿西
           亞單獨一人在那裏。
   
     阿西亞 你從滿天的勁風裏降臨到下界:
   
     正象一個精靈;又象是一種感觸,
        使明淨的眼睛充滿了不常有的淚水,
         害得早該平靜的寂寞的胸懷
        加上了心跳;你在狂風暴雨的搖籃中
         飄忽地下降。啊,春天,你當真蘇醒了!
         啊,風的孩子!你如同一場舊夢,
         突然重現——它當初是那般地甜蜜,
         因此現在帶上了些優鬱的滋味;
         象是一個天才,又象是從泥土裏
         長出來的一種歡欣,用金色的雲彩
         裝飾着我們這個生命的荒漠。
         季候到了,日期到了,時後也到了;
         日出時你該來到,我親愛的妹妹。
         我等得你好久,想得你好苦,來吧l
      啊,時光不插翅,簡直慢得象屍蛆!
      青紫的山嶺那邊,橘黃色的早晨
      逐漸地開朗,有一顆蒼白的星
      依舊在閃爍不停;當清風吹散了薄霧,
      它便從分開的隙縫裏把身影反映在
      幽暗的湖面。它在淡下去了。但等
      湖水退落,淨空中交織的彩雲
      收起了金絲銀縷,它又會顯現。
      現在完全不見了!玫瑰色的曙光
      在那邊白雪如雲的峰頂上閃耀,
      我是不是聽見她海緑色的羽翼
      在繹紅的晨成中揮動的聲響,
      演奏出埃俄羅斯島的美妙的音樂?
         (潘堤亞上。)
     我感到;我看見,你兩衹灼熱的眼睛
    透過那消失在淚水中的笑容,
    象是銀色的朝霧裏掩映着的星星。
      啊,我最美麗的好妹妹,你身上
        帶着有那個人的靈魂的影子,
        我沒有了它簡直沒有法子生存。
        你來得多麽遲!一輪紅日早已
    爬出了海面;我的心也想痛了,但等你
    嬌慵的羽翼掠過一塵不染的天空。
   
     潘堤亞 求你原諒,大姐姐!我得了一個好夢,
   
     我的羽翼就象夏天的午風,被花香
       熏透,軟弱無力。我往常總寧靜地睡眠,
       醒來神清氣爽,但是自從神聖的“提坦”
       受着苦刑,又想到你夫妻不得團圓,
       我為了關切和憐憫,心裏也跟你一樣,
       時時刻刻充滿了愛,又長滿了恨;
       我從前在大海底下灰藍色的洞窟裏,
       躲藏在青苔紫萍的深閨中安臥,
       我們嬌小的伊翁涅又白又嫩的臂彎
        始終枕好了我烏黑潮潤的發絲,
        我閡上了眼,把面頰緊緊地偎貼着
        她生氣勃勃的胸脯前那個深奧所在:
        可是現在完全不同了,我變作一陣風,
        卻沒法傳送給你無字的心麯;我溶化進
        千恩萬愛裏面,雖然有甜蜜的感覺,
      睡眠卻從此不得安定;醒着的時候
        更充滿了煩惱和痛苦。
   
     阿西亞  你把眼睛擡起來,
           讓我替你圓夢。
      潘堤亞  我已經告訴過你。
   
     我和我們的小妹妹一同睡在他跟前。
        山邊的煙霧,在月光裏面,聽到了
        我們交頸安眠在寒冷的冰塊底下
         所發出來的聲音,都凝結成霜花。
         我當時便做了兩個夢。一個我記不起了。
         可是在另一個夢裏,普羅密修斯
      攤開了傷痕斑駁、皮色蒼白的四肢,
      再看他那立志不屈、堅心不移的軀體
      正欲放出奇異的光輝,竟使黑夜的
      蔚藍色的天空,明亮得如同白晝;
      他說話的聲音又好象音樂一樣,
      叫有情人聽了,快活得心醉神迷。
      他說:“你的姐姐足跡到處,遍地布滿了
      親愛的氣氛——誰也比不上她的美麗,
      你是她的影子——擡起頭來對我看看。”
      我擡起頭來,衹見那永生不朽的形體,
      全身浸在愛裏面;從他溫柔、飄逸的
      四肢上,從他興奮得閉合不攏的嘴唇
      以及他犀利、昏迷的眼睛裏,涌現出
      象蒸氣一樣的火;他那融化一切的
      力量把我裹緊在它的懷抱中間,
      如同清晨的太陽用它溫暖的氣息
      裹緊了流浪的朝霧來吸取鮮露。
      我眼睛看不見了,耳朵聽不出了,
      身體也動不得了,衹是感覺到
      他的一切流進我的血,和我的血混合,
      我變了他的生命,他變了我的生命,
      我就那樣融化掉了,等到這情形過去,
      深霄裏我渾身上下又凝凍起來,
      抖抖瑟瑟的,好象太陽沉落以後
      一滴滴積聚在松樹枝上的水蒸氣;
      直至思想的光焰逐漸顯現,我方纔
       能夠聽到他的話聲,裊裊的餘音
       正象是繞梁的妙樂;許多聲音裏面,
       我辨別得出的衹是你的名宇;雖然
        在萬籟俱寂的夜晚,我依然在傾聽。
       伊翁涅卻在這時候醒來,對我說:
       “你可猜得出今晚我有些什麽煩惱?
        我以前自己盼望些什麽,自己總知道;
        也從不喜歡鬍思亂想。可是現在
        我簡直說不出我要求些什麽;
        我真不知道;我在想一種甜蜜的東西,
        就想不到也覺得甜蜜;害人的姐姐聽,
        這一定是你在搗鬼;你一定發現了
        什麽古老的妖法,在我瞌睡中
        把我的魂靈偷了去,和你自己的
        魂靈混合在一起:因為正當我們
        現在親吻的時候,從你微啓的嘴唇裏,
        我感到了支持我的甜蜜的氣息;
        我們擁抱着的手臂中間又跳躍着
        我失去了便會昏厥的生命的血液。”
        我沒有回答,因為曉星已經暗淡,
        我急忙飛來你身旁。
   
     阿西亞  你說了許多話
           可是象空氣一樣無從捉摸;啊,讓我看
           你的眼睛,裏面也許有他靈魂的消息:
      潘堤亞  我硬把我的眼睛擡起來,它們
   
          有着千千萬萬的話要嚮你傾訴;
    可是一對眼睛裏面,除了你自己的
      美麗的形象,還能有什麽別的東西?
      你的眼睛又深又藍象無邊的天空,
      在你細長的睫毛下縮成了兩個圈圈;
      暗沉沉不可測量,一個圓球包含着
      一個圓球,一條光綫交織着一條光綫。
   
     潘堤亞 你為什麽好象見到了鬼怪一般?
      阿西亞 這裏面變了個樣:在你眼球的最中心,
   
     我看見一個影子,一個身形;正是他,
    滿臉堆着微笑,象是雲翳圍繞的
     月亮,嚮四面散發着耀目的光彩。
     普羅密修斯,當真是你!啊,不要就走!
     你的那些微笑是不是在告訴我:
     它們的光芒會在這荒涼的世界上,
        建築起輝煌的樓臺,我們可以到
     裏面去相會?那個夢已經給圓出來了。
     我們倆中間的一個身形又是什麽?
     它頭髮蓬亂,和風掠過也會變成粗糙。
     它的眼光又敏捷又撒野,它的軀體
         又衹是一股輕煙,但看那日到中午
        也曬不幹的金色露珠,它們的光亮
    透過了它青灰的長袍。
   
     夢                 快跟!快跟!
      潘堤亞 這是我另外一個夢。
      阿西亞 它不見了。
      潘堤亞 它現在走到了我心裏。我似乎覺得
   
     我們一面坐在這裏,一面有成千成萬
        含苞欲放的花蕾,在那棵受到了
        雷殛的扁桃樹上煥發怒放,忽然
        從斯庫堤亞一抹灰白色的蠻荒裏,
        吹來一陣狂風,用寒霜在地面上
        畫了許多條綫紋:滿樹的花朵
        都飄落下地;可是一張張的葉子
        全給打上了印記,如同風信子的
        鐘形的藍花寫明了阿波羅的悲傷:
        啊,快跟,快跟!
   
     阿西亞           你說的話,一句一句地
   
     使我自己忘懷了的幻夢又活躍着
        各種的形相。我們倆似乎一同在
        那些草坪上徜徉,衹見淡灰色的
        新生的早晨,密層層羊群般的白雲,
        一大隊一大隊由腳步緩慢的清風
        懶洋洋地放牧着跨過萬山千嶺;
        潔白的露水默不作聲地懸挂在
        剛纔透出土面的新鮮的青草上;
        還有許多別的事,我卻想不起了:
     可是清晨的雲彩一片一片地
      飛過紫色的山坡,又逐漸消逝,
      上面清清楚楚寫着;快跟,啊,快跟!
      在仙露簌簌地散落的每一張葉子、
      每一根草上,也好象用火燼打上了
      同樣的烙印;鬆林裏又起了一陣風,
      它搖撼着繚繞在枝椏中間的音樂,
      衹聽得一種低沉、甜蜜、輕微的聲音,
      如同孤魂惜別:快跟,快跟,跟我來!
      我當時就說:“潘堤亞,你對我看看。”
      可是在這一對惹人憐愛的眼睛裏,
      一我依然看見:快跟,快跟!
   
     回聲                   快跟,快跟!
      潘堤亞 崢嶸的岩石,在這春光明媚的早晨,
           似乎有了靈性,在學着我們說話。
      阿西亞  許有什麽別的東西在這峻岩附近。
   
     這一陣聲音多麽清脆!啊,你聽!
        回聲(不露身形)
    我們是回聲:聽!
      我們不能停滯:
      正象露珠閃映。
      一忽就會消逝——
      啊,海神的孩兒!
   
     阿西亞  聽:精靈說話了。它們空氣結成的
           舌尖卻發出了清澈的回音。
      潘堤亞 我聽見。
   
        回聲
          啊,快跟,快跟:
          跟着我們的聲音,
          走進濃密的樹林,
          去到空穴的中心;
       (聲音更遠了。)
           啊,快跟,快跟!
           去到空穴的中心,
          追隨着我們歌聲的飄蕩,
          飛到狂蜂兒飛不到的地方,
          在那裏正午時分也黑暗沉沉,
          嬌弱的夜花吐着芳馨
          在安眠,又見一個個洞穴裏,
          流泉輝映,起着無數的漣漪,
          我們的音樂,又甜蜜、又瘋狂,
          模仿着你輕移纖步的聲響,
          啊,海神的孩兒!
   
     阿西亞    我們要不要去追隨這個聲音?
           它越來越遠,越來越微弱了。
      潘堤亞  聽!它那悅耳的清音重又飄近。
                  回聲
            那深秘的幽處,
            寂靜正在睡覺;
            衹有你的腳步,
            才能把它驚擾;
            啊,海神的孩兒:
      阿西亞  那聲音在遠逝的風中消除了。
   
        回聲
           啊,快跟,快跟!
      穿過空穴的中心,
     追隨着我們飄蕩的歌聲,
     去到那朝露未幹的樹蔭,
     去到湖畔,泉旁,或林中,
     再跨越重重疊疊的山峰;
     去到深坑、幽𠔌、或岩穴——
     傷心的大地在那裏安息。
     她當天眼見你倆分離,
     卻喜現在快要團聚。
       啊.海神的孩兒!
   
     阿西亞 來吧,親愛的潘堤亞,我們手輓手兒,
           一同去跟隨,別等那些聲音渙散。
   
                第二場
          森林。隨處是岩石和洞窟。阿西亞和潘堤亞
           走進森林中去。兩個小“羊神”坐在岩石上
           側耳傾聽。
   
        精靈半隊合唱一
      這一對可喜人兒走過的小路,
    左右全是些藍柏和青鬆,
      一大片濃蔭密佈的樹叢,
     隔開了浩蕩遼闊的蒼空,
    不論太陽、月亮、鳳成雨,
      都透不進這枝葉交織的暗室,
     衹有地面上爬過的輕風,
    送來了一片一片的薄霧,
    穿過斑白、勁挺的老樹,
      它們在碧緑的桂樹葉裏,
     看到了新開的淡黃花叢,
    每一滴露水便送上一顆珍珠;
    可憐有一朵脆弱秀麗的
    草花,卻靜悄悄地萎謝和死亡,
    更也許萬千星鬥中有一顆星
      爬上了黑夜的天頂在彷徨,
      趕着足不停步的迅疾的時光
      還沒有把它遠遠地帶走,
      它在林葉裏找到了個缺口,
      激下它點點金色的光明,
      象雨絲一般水不會相混:
      周圍完全是神聖的黑暗,
      腳下長滿了苔蘚的土壤。
          半隊合唱二
      那邊有許多縱情的夜鶯,
    大白天依然不肯安靜。
      有一隻受不住幽怨或是歡欣,
     在無風無息的常青藤上,。
    被深情熱愛攝去了靈魂,
      死在珠喉宛轉的情侶的懷裏,
      另一隻在花枝中間搖曳,
     等待着那最後一聲歌唱
    懨懨地結束,它立刻接上去,
    為細弱的旋律插上了羽翼,
      越提越高,直到歌聲裏
    波動着另一種感情,整個森林
      寂然無聲;衹聽得暗淡的
      空中有許多羽翼在拍擊,
    又飄來一陣陣美妙的歌音,
      象湖心的蕭聲,所有的聽衆
      快樂得簡直心頭作痛。
          半隊合唱一
      那邊有一陣陣口聲,鼓弄着
    迷人的巧舌,遵照冥王的
    威嚴的法令,藉着銷魂的
    快樂,或是甜蜜的惶恐,把一切
      精靈都引誘上幽秘的小道,
    好象山雪解凍,一條內河船
      被奔騰的急流衝進海去:
     最先有一種輕微的聲音
     走近密談或假寐着的人們,
    喚醒了心頭溫柔的情感,——
      勾引着他們;凡是看見的
      都說泥沼裏煙霧騰騰,
      在他們背後作起一陣清風,
          送他們上路,他們還道是
           自己敏捷的羽翼和足趾
         完全聽從着內心的願望:
         他們便一路嚮前面飄蕩,
         直到那可愛的聲浪變得
         加倍地響亮、加倍地強烈,
          力竭聲嘶地在前面奔馳:
          無數的聲音聚集在一起,
         帶他們飛嚮指定的山嶺,
         如同颶風席捲着烏雲。
   
     羊一  你想不想得出,那些在森林中演奏
   
     如此美妙的音樂的精靈們住在哪裏?
         我們到過一處處最幽僻的洞窟,
         和最隱蔽的樹叢,尋遍了所有的草莽
         可是雖然常聽得,卻始終遇不見:
         他們究竟在何處藏身?
   
     羊二  這倒很難講。
   
      那些熟悉精靈們的行動舉止的
         都說:明淨的湖沼底下長滿着
         淡白的水花,受不住太陽的誘惑,
         冒出水面,變成了泡沫,那就是
        這些精靈們安居的深閨和幽閣,
        在交織的樹葉間透出來的天光之下.
        翠緑和金黃的氛圍裏面蕩漾。
      但等泡沫爆裂他們便騎上了
      他們在這些晶瑩皎潔的圓屋頂下
      呼吸的一股稀薄又熱烈的空氣,
      黑夜中象彗星一般直衝雲霄,
      加快了速率在天頂疾駛來往,
      最後低下頭來,象一團團燃燒的火,——
      重又竄進水底下的淤泥中間。
   
     羊一  如果有些是這樣的情形,又有些——
   
     會不會另是一番光景——生活在
      粉紅的花瓣裏,和青草花的花心裏。
      或是緊緊地偎在紫羅蘭的懷抱裏。
      或是在垂死的花朵最後的香氣裏,
      或是在滾圓的露珠反映的陽光裏,
   
     羊二   啊,我們還可以想象出許多地方。
   
     可是,我們講個不停,正午快要來臨,
      老羊爺眼看他的羊群沒回傢,
      準會生氣,不肯再唱那些聰明可愛的
      歌麯,關於宿命和僥幸;關於上帝,
      和遠古時代的混沌;關於愛。
      以及鎖囚着的提坦的悲慘厄運;
      還有他將怎樣被解放.怎樣使
      全地球團结成一個兄弟聯盟;
      那些愉快的調子慣常來安慰
      我們寂寞的黃昏,慣常把一隻衹
      不羨不妒的夜鶯迷醉得默不作聲。
            第三場
     萬山叢中一座高岩的峰頂。阿西亞和潘堤亞在一起。
   
     潘提亞    那個聲音把我們帶到了此地——
   
     這是冥王的領域,巍峨的大門
        正象是噴煙吐火的火山的裂口,
        裏面不斷地飄出一陣陣仙氣,
        那班流浪的人們,在寂寞的青春中,
         把這種沉迷心竅的生命之酒,
        稱作真理、品德、愛情、天才或歡樂,
        他們一口口喝下去,喝得酷現大醉;
        又提高了嗓子,喊出象酒神一樣的
        歡呼狂叫,全世界都受到了熏陶。
   
     阿西亞    這真不愧是那位偉大權威的宮殿!
   
          大地呀,你是多麽的光榮!如果你
        竟然是那位更可愛的仙神的幻影,
        又和你的真身一般,雖然遭受到
        魔難,身體軟弱可是依然美麗,
        我自會跪倒在你們面前頂禮膜拜。
        真靈驗:我現在已經心生敬念。
      快瞧,妹妹,趁仙氣沒把你頭腦熏醉,
      下邊展開着一大片平原船的濃霧,
      如同廣阔的湖面,鋪滿了清晨的天空,
      青碧的波浪閃出銀色的光亮。
      隱蔽住一個印度的山𠔌。且看它,
      在連續的風勢下打滾,上下環繞,
      使我們腳下的山峰變成了一座孤島:
      我們周圍有的是濃密的樹林,
      光綫暗淡的草坪,流泉映耀的洞窟,
      和千奇百怪到處閑蕩着的雲彩,
      還有高高地在摩天的山嶺上面,
      晨曦突然跳出冰岩,散發萬道金光,
      好象把進濺在大西洋一座小島上的
      那些光明燦爛的浪花帶上了天,
      在風中遍灑着燈火一般的水點。
      山腰裏就這樣築起了許多道墻,
      忽然在那些因解凍而豁裂的深𠔌中,
      傳來一聲瀑布的吼叫,聽得風也慌張,
      這聲響又大又長,大傢聽到了
      如同對着一片肅靜,毛發沭然。
      聽!那終年的積雪,被太陽驚醒過來,
      橫衝直撞地嚮下邊奔跑的聲音:
      天上簸篩了三次大雪,一點一點地
      聚合成這樣又高又厚的東西,好比
      成千成萬翻天覆地的思想積壓在心頭,
      有一天偉大的真理出現,全世界
        同聲響應,四面八方都震動起來,
        和現在這許多山嶽完全一樣。
   
     潘堤亞 你瞧那洶涌的霧海怎樣地泛起了
   
     深紅的泡沫,直送到我們的腳邊!
        正象大海受到月光的吸引,升起來,
        圍住了泥濘的小島上覆舟的難民。
   
     阿西亞 碎片的雲彩疏疏落落地各處分散;
   
     帶它們來的風又把我頭髮吹亂;
        風推雲涌簡直弄得我眼花頭昏。
        你有沒有看見雲霧裏一個個身形?
   
     潘堤亞 她們都在點頭微笑:一綹綹金黃的
   
     發絲中間燃燒着碧油油的火焰!
        來了一個又一個:聽!她們開口了:
          衆精靈唱
          走嚮幽深,走嚮幽深,
            下去,下去!
          穿過睡眠的陰影,
          穿過生和死的
          迷迷糊糊的爭執。
          穿過幕幛和柵欄,
          不管它們是真是假,
          一步步走嚮那遼遠的寶殿,
               下去,下去:
          那聲音正在打轉,
            下去,下去;
          象小鹿吸引獵犬,
      象閃電吸引烏雲,
      象燈蛾吸引燈芯;
      死吸引失望;愛吸引煩悶,
      時光卻兩樣都吸引;
      磁石吸引鋼鐵,今天吸引明天:
             下去,下去!
      穿過昏暗空洞的深淵,
             下去,下去!
      那裏的空氣不明亮,
      太陽和月亮不發光,
      峻岩深穴並沒沾染
      一點兒上天的光輝,
      地下的黑暗也不存在,
      那裏衹住着一位全能的神仙,
             下去,下去!
      在那最深最深的地方,
             下去,下去!
      有道仙旨專為你珍藏,
      象閃電蒙着臉在安睡,;
      又象將熄未熄的火堆,
      深情難忘的最後一面;
    又象豐富的礦藏中間,
    一顆鑽石在黑暗裏放射光焰。
             下去,下去!
    我們纏住了你,帶領你,
             下去,下去:
      連同你身邊那位佳侶.
           別害怕自己不剛強,
           柔順裏自有一種力量,
           使那永生不死的神靈,
           不得不打開生命之門,
           放出那綣伏在皇座下的孽障——
                 別看輕這份力量。
   
           第四場
         冥王的洞府。阿西亞和潘堤亞在一起。
   
     潘堤亞  幕幃後,烏木皇座上坐的是何等形相?
      阿西亞  幕幃揭開了。
      潘提亞  我看見一大團黑暗,
           塞滿了權威的座位,嚮四面放射出
           幽暗的光芒,如同正午時的太陽。
           它無形亦無狀,不見四肢,也不見
           身體的輪廓,可是我們感覺到
           它確實是一位活生生的神靈。
      冥王   你想知道什麽事情,都可以問我。
      阿西亞  你能講些什麽?
      冥王   白天一切你敢問的事情。
      阿西亞  世界是誰創造的?
      冥王               上帝。
      阿西亞  世界上的一切
           又是誰創造的?思慮、情欲、理性、
           志願、幻想?
      冥王            上帝:萬能的上帝。
      阿西亞  感覺是誰創造的?當難得相逢的春風
   
     翩然來臨,或是想起了年輕時期
       情人的聲音,那早已沉寂了的聲音,
       使朦朧的眼睛涌起了滾滾的淚水,
       一霎時,害得新鮮的花朵失去了光彩,
       熙熙攘攘的世界變得十分凄涼:
       這種感覺是誰創造的?
   
     冥王              慈悲的上帝。
      阿西亞 誰創造恐怖、瘋狂、罪惡、懊悔——
   
     它們為一切事物加上了鎖鏈,
       使人類每一個念頭增添了分量,
       背着這種重負接近死亡的陷阱:
       斷絶了的希望,和變作了怨恨的愛情;
      比鮮血更難下咽的自怨自艾的心思,
       那種儘管你一天天哀啼和悲號,
       可是大傢聽了都不理不睬的痛苦,
       還有地獄,和對於地獄的駭懼?
   
     冥王
      他統治着。
      阿西亞 得你把名字說出來。
           受苦受難的世界衹想知道他的名字:
           千萬人的咒駡會打得他永劫不復。
      冥王   他統治着。
      阿西亞 我感到,我也知道。他是誰?
      冥正  他統治着。
      阿西亞 誰統治着?我知道,最初是天和地,
   
      後來是光和愛;接着來了薩登,
        “時間”是他的影子,嫉妒地伏在他座旁。
        地上的生靈便隨他任意播弄,
        如同那些悠然自得的花朵和樹葉,
        以及蠕蟲般的植物,在日光或風勢下
        搖擺,不久便被曬得枯萎,吹得凋謝。
        可是他又剝奪掉他們天生的權利,
        不給他們知識、權力、支配自然的本領;
        不給他們思想,免得他們象光明一般
        來衝破這昏暗的宇宙;也不給他們
        自治能力、偉大的愛,他們渴求着
        這些東西,死活不得。普羅密修斯
        於是把智慧——也就是力量——給了朱比特,
        衹是附帶着一個條件:“讓人類自由”,
       他又替他戴上了九天至尊的冠冕。
        統治者常會忘掉忠信、仁愛、和法律,
       有了萬能的力量,會忘掉切身的朋友;
       嶽夫現在統治了;落在人類身上的,
       首先是饑荒,接着是勞苦和疾病,
       爭執和創傷,還有破天荒可怕的死亡;
       他顛倒着季候的次序,輪流地降下了
      狂雪和猛火,把那些無遮天蓋的
      蒼白的人類驅逐進山洞和岩窟:
      他又把強烈的欲望、瘋狂的煩惱、
      虛偽的道德,送進他們空虛的心靈,
      引起了相互的殘殺和激烈的戰爭,
      他們安身活命的巢穴完全被搗毀。
      普羅密修斯看到了,便把瞌睡在
      忘憂草、驅邪草、不凋花中間的
      大隊希望喚醒,又吩咐這些仙草仙花
      用它們五彩的羽翼將死亡來隱匿;
      他派遣愛情去把分離了的葡萄藤
      係在一起——裏面是生命之酒,人的心靈,
      他又把火來馴服,這種火象猛獸一樣,
      可怕,又可愛,在人類的愁眉下戲耍,
      他又隨着心意去玩弄鋼鐵和金銀——
      這些是強權的奴隸,也是威力的標記——
      還有寶石和毒藥,以及一切埋藏在
      深山和大海底下的奇珍和異寶。
      他給了人類語言,語言創造了思想,
      宇宙間因此有了尺度和準繩;
      還有科學,驚動了天和地,駭得它們
      渾身戰慄,可是並沒有絲毫的損失,
      還有音樂,它使靜心細聽的靈魂
      超升飛騰,擺脫了人間的煩惱,
      如同神仙一般在悠揚的聲浪中漫步。
      人類的手開始模仿自然,到後來
      竟然巧奪天工,他們造出來的肢體
      比它們本身的形狀更加美麗,
      終於叫大理石變得有了靈性,
      一般懷孕的婦人,對他們註視着,
      吸取了愛,反映在她們的女兒身上,
      害得男子們見了失魄又喪魂。
      他說明藥草和泉水的隱藏的力量,
      病人喝了能安眠,死會變得象瞌睡。
      他又告訴我們滿天星辰復雜的
      行動軌道:太陽怎樣遷移他的窩巢;
      晶瑩的月亮用什麽秘訣來化身變形,
      月初月尾的海面不見她滾圓的眼睛。
      他又教導我們,怎樣在海上駕禦
      那些用長風當作翅膀的車輛,
      好象指揮你自己的手和腳一般:
      西方因此結識了東方。一座座城市
      都建築起來,在它們雪白的圓柱間
      有和風來往,又望得見蔚藍的淨空、
      碧緑的海面、和遠處隱約的山嶺。
      普羅密修斯就這般地提高了人類,
      自己卻被懸挂在危崖上,受盡了
      難以避兔的痛創:可是誰把罪惡——
      那種無藥可救的疫病——灑落到下界,
      大傢竟把它當上帝看待,崇拜它的
       光輝;連那位降災者本身也受到了
        它的驅使,破壞了他自己的意旨,
        從此被人間咒駡,被萬物唾棄,
        孤單單地沒有朋友也沒有伴侶?
        這不見得是嶽夫吧:要知他眉頭一皺,
        雖然會震動天延,可是那位鐵鐐鎖住的冤傢
        詛咒他的時候,他竟象奴隸一般顫抖。
        請問誰是他的主宰?他是否也是奴隸?
   
     冥王  一切供罪惡驅使的精靈都是奴隸:
           你該知道朱比特是不是這種精靈。
      阿西亞 你稱誰做上帝?
      冥王   我說的和你說的一樣,
           嶽夫原是生靈萬物中無上的至尊。
      阿西亞 誰是奴隸的主宰?
      冥王  但願無底的深淵
   
     能傾吐它的秘密……可惜深奧的真理
        完全沒有形狀,也完全沒有聲音;
        那麽,何必要你來凝視那旋轉的世界?
        又何必要你來談起命運、時光、機緣、
        僥幸、和變化?要知道,除了永久的愛,
        萬物一切都受着這些東西的支配。
   
     阿西亞 我問了你那些話,你一句句回答了我,
   
      我自能會心;每件事實的本身裏面,
        都包含着一種神意或一種預言。
        我還要問一句;請你象我自己的
        靈魂一般地回答我——如果它知道
      我問的是什麽。普羅密修斯一定會
         象太陽一樣回到這歡欣的世界。
         請問這一個命定的時辰何時來臨?
   
     冥王     瞧!
       阿西亞 我衹見一下子山崩又地裂,紫色的
   
     夜空中,許多長着彩虹羽翼的飛馬,
         拖了一輛輛神車,踩着輕風嚮前奔:
         每一輛車上有一個神色倉皇的禦者
         在催促它們趕路。有幾個回頭張望,
         似乎有大群惡鬼在後面追逐,可是,
         除了閃霎的星星,我不見有什麽身形;
         有幾個眼睛發着紅光,身子往前彎,
         一口口喝着當面衝過來的勁風,
         似乎他們心愛的東西在前面逃遁,
         在這一剎那間,一伸手就可以抓到。
         他們爍亮的發絲如同彗星的尾巴,
         一路放着毫光:大傢爭先恐後地
         嚮前直闖。
   
     冥王     這些便是永生的“時辰”,
           你日夜盼望的“時辰”。有一個在等着你。
      阿西亞 我衹見一個面目猙獰的精靈,
           在峻峭的峰巒間勒住了他的馬繮。
           啊,可怕的禦者,你和你弟兄完全兩樣,
           你是誰?你要把我送到哪裏去?請講。
      精靈   我是某一個命運的陰影,這個命運
           比我的容貌更駭人:不等那邊的星球
           降落,和我一同上升的黑暗便會用
           無盡的夜色蒙住天上的無君的皇位。
      阿西亞 你是什麽意思?
      潘堤亞 瞧那恐怖的陰影,
   
         離開了他的寶座,直衝雲霄。正象是
       驚心動魄的烏煙,從地震所毀壞的
       城市裏飛出來,籠罩住整個海面。
       瞧呀!它登上了車子,嚇得那些馬匹
       拔腳飛奔:再看它在星辰中間驅馳,
       塗黑了夜晚的天色!
   
     阿西亞             居然讓我求應了!
      潘提亞 快看,宮門附近,停着另外一輛車子;
   
     一個象牙的貝殼盛滿了赤色的火焰,
       火焰在那精雕細接的邊緣上
       忽隱忽現;那位年輕的駕車的精靈,
       鴿子一般的眼睛裏充滿着希望;
       他溫柔的笑容吸住了我們的靈魂,
       正象燈光誘引着暗空中的飛蟲。
         精靈
         我用閃電來喂哺馬匹,
          用旋風給它們當作飲料,
         紅色的早晨發亮的時刻,
          它們便在曙光裏面洗澡;
          我相信它們都能使勁飛跑,
         跟我上天吧,海神的女兒。
          它們會踩得黑夜發光;
           它們能奔跑在臺風前頭,
          不等雲霧在山頂消散,
          我們要環遊月亮和地球,
          到了中午我們方纔停留’
          跟我上天吧,海神的女兒。
   
             第五場
   
          車子停留在一座雪山上面的雲端裏。阿西亞、
       潘堤亞和“時辰的精靈”在一起。
   
        精靈
          來到黑夜和白天的邊緣,
           我的馬匹全想休息;
          大地卻輕聲地嚮我規勸:
           它們該跑得比閃電更敏捷;
           該象霹靂火箭一般地性急!
   
     阿西亞    你的聲音使它們厭煩,我的聲音
           能叫它們跑得更快。
      精靈   咳!不可能。
      潘提亞  啊,精靈!我且問你,這布滿雲端的
           光明是哪裏來的?太陽還沒上升呢。
      精靈   太陽不到正午不會上升,有一個
           神奇的力量把阿波羅羈留在天頂,
           空中的光明是你姐姐身上發出來的,
           好象一池清水被玫瑰的影子染紅。
      潘堤亞  是的,我感到……
      阿西亞           妹妹,你怎麽臉色這樣白?
      潘堤亞  啊,你完全變了!我簡直不敢對你望,
   
     我感覺得到可是着不見你。我受不住
       你美麗的光采。大概有什麽神靈
       在好心作法,使你顯示出你的本相。
       海裏的仙女都說那一天波平如鏡,
       海洋豁然分開,你站在筋絡分明的
       貝殼裏上升,又乘着這一片貝殼,
       在那光滑的水晶的海面上飄浮,
       飄浮過愛琴海中的大小島嶼,
       飄浮過那個用了你的名字留傳的
       大陸的邊岸;愛,從你身上迸發出來,
       如同太陽一般散布着溫暖的氣氛,
       把光明照通了天上和人間,照遍了
       深秘的海洋和不見天日的洞窟,
       以及在洞窟中生存的飛禽走獸;
       到後來,悲傷竟然把你的靈魂
       完全蒙住,如同月蝕夜一片漆黑:
       不止我一個人——你心愛的妹妹和伴侶——
       要知道全世界都在盼望着你的憐愛。
        你有沒有聽見,空氣中傳來了
       一切會開口的動物的求愛的聲音?
      你沒有感覺到,那些無知無識的
        風兒也一心一意對你鐘情?聽I
   
     阿西亞 除了他,再沒有比你更好聽的聲音,
   
     你的聲音原是他的聲音的回聲:
        一切的愛都是甜蜜的,不管是人愛你
        或是你愛人。它象光明一般地普遍,
        它那親切的聲音從不叫人厭倦。
        如同漠漠的穹蒼,扶持萬物的空氣,
         它使爬蟲和上帝變得一律平等:
        那些能感動人傢去愛的都有幸福,
        象我現在一樣;可是那些最懂愛的,
        受盡了折磨和苦難,卻更來得快樂,
        我不久便能如此。
   
     潘堤亞    聽!精靈們在講話了。
   
        空中的歌聲
          生命的生命!你的嘴唇訴着愛,
           你的呼吸象火一般往外冒;
          你的笑容還來不及消退,
           寒冷的空氣已經在燃燒;
          你又把笑容隱藏在嬌顔裏,
          誰看你一看,就會魄散魂飛。
          光明的孩兒!你的四肢在發放
           火光,衣衫遮不住你的身體;
           好象晨嘴一絲絲的光芒,
           不待雲散就送來了消息,
    無論你照到什麽.他方;
    什麽地方就有仙氣矚揚。
    美人有的是,可是沒人見過你,
     衹聽見你的聲音又輕又軟——
    你該是最美的美人——你用這種
     清脆的妙樂把自己裹纏;
    大傢都象我一樣失望:
    感到你在身旁,不知你在何方。
    人間的明燈!無論你走到哪裏,
     黑暗就穿上了光明的衣裳,
    誰要是取得了你的歡喜,
     立刻會飄飄然在風中徜徉,
    直到他精疲力竭,象我一般,
    頭昏眼花,可是意願心甘。
         阿西亞
    我的靈魂是一條着了魔的小舟,
    它象一隻瞌睡的天鵝,飄浮
      在你的歌聲的銀色波浪中間;
    你就象天使一般模樣,
    坐在一個掌舵人的身旁,
      四面八方吹來的風,聲調悠揚。
    它好象永遠在飄浮,飄浮,
    沿着遷回麯折的河流,
    經過了山嶽、樹林和深淵,
    經過了草莽中的地上樂園!
      最後,我竟象一個如夢如醉的癡漢,
      橫衝直撞地乘着長風,破着巨浪
      來到了洶涌澎湃的大海中央。
    你的精靈於是張開了羽翮,
    飛進音樂最清高的區域,
      乘着風勢在天廷逍遙翺翔;
    我們就這樣一路往前走,
    沒有指標,也沒有路由,
      任憑美妙的音樂帶着我們流浪;
    最後來到了一座仙島,
    上面長滿了奇花和異草,
    多虧你這位船郎,把我的欲望
    駛進這一個人跡不到的地方:
      在這個地方,愛是我們呼吸的空氣;
      風裏有的是情,波浪裏有的是意,
      天上人間的愛都混合在一起。
   
    我們經過了“老年”的冰窟,
    “中年”的陰暗狂暴的水域,
    “青年”的平靜的洋面(底下有危險)
    我們又經過了晶瑩的內海,
    黑影幢幢的“嬰兒時代”,
      從死亡回到誕生,走進更神聖的一天;
    這裏原是人間的天堂,
      樓臺的頂上百花齊放,
      一條條溪泉婉蜒地流遍
      那些靜靜的碧緑的草原,
      這裏的人周身發出燦爛奪目的金光,
      走在海上,輕歌婉唱;和你有些相象,
      我不敢對他們看,看了就心選神蕩;            
   
   
   (第三幕)
   
   
          第一場
        天廷。朱比特坐在皇座上,忒堤斯和衆神
         仙聚集在他周圍。
   
     朱比特 諸位天神天將,我們一齊來慶祝吧,
   
         你們侍候着我,同享榮華和權勢,
        我從此是權高無上,位極至尊!
        萬物一切都已經嚮我屈服;衹剩下
        人類的心靈,象沒有熄滅的火焰,
        黑騰騰怨氣衝天,又是疑慮重重,
        叫苦連連,祈禱起來滿懷的不樂意,
        一陣陣叛亂的叫囂,可能使我們的
        邃古的帝國發生動搖,雖然我們
        掌握着悠久的信仰,和地獄的恐怖;
       雖然我的毒咒灑滿了動蕩的空間,
        象一片片白雲堆積上草木不生的
        峰尖;雖然他們在我咆哮的黑夜裏,
        一步一步爬上了人生的危崖,
        生活纏繞着他們,象冰霜纏繞着
    赤裸裸的腳,可是他們趾高氣揚地
    挺立在痛苦中間,既不屈又不撓,
    哪裏想到隔不了多久便要摔倒:
    再說我眼前就生下了一個神奇的怪物,
    世界上的人聽到我這個鈎魂攝魄的
    孩兒,誰不害怕!但等那時辰來到,
    這一位來去無形的可怕的精靈,
      便會從冥王的空虛的皇座上升,
      他千古不壞的神臂有着驚人的威力,
      又會降落到人間去踩滅爆發的火花。
      掌酒的仙童!快把天堂的芳醇,
      接二連三地去斟滿金樽和玉器。
      且聽那千嬌百媚的萬花叢中,
      飛揚起和諧的歌聲,普天同慶,
      好象星星底下的露珠一樣鮮明:
      喝吧!諸位長生不老的仙君,喝吧!
      快讓玉液瓊漿在你們的血管裏
      愉快奔騰,讓你們的歡樂的叫囂
      變成極樂世界傳來的妙樂仙音。
                  還有你,
      快到我邊上來,你全身籠罩在欲望的
        光炎裏面,使你和我合成為一體,
        忒堤斯,你這永久的光明的象徵:
        當你沒命地喊出:“無法忍受的威力!
        天哪!饒饒我!我禁不起你熾烈的火焰,
        一直燒到我心裏,我全身的骨肉,
        正象在蠻荒中喝了蛇蝎下過毒的
      露水的人一樣,完全化為膿血,
        我也會消失得無形無蹤。”我們兩個
        強大的精靈就在這時候結合起來,
        生出了一個比我們更強大的第三者,
        他脫離了軀殼在我們中間來往,
        我們看不見他,可是感到他的存在,
        他在等待着顯現本相的時辰,
        (你可聽見狂風裏雷鳴一般的輪聲?)
        他自會離開冥王的寶座,上升天延。
        勝利來了!勝利來了!啊,世界,你可覺得
        他的車乘象地震一樣,隆隆地響遍了
        奧林匹斯山?
      (“時辰”的車子到了。兵王下了車,朝着朱比
        特的皇座走來。)
               可怕的形象,你是誰?你講:
   
     冥王  我是“永久”。不必問那個更恐怖的名字。
   
     快下來,跟隨我去到那陰曹地府。
        我是你的孩子,正象你是薩登的孩子;
     我比你更強;我們從此要一同居住在
      幽冥中間。別把你的霹靂舉起來:
         你下臺以後。天上决不再需要
        也决不再聽任第二個暴君逞威肆虐:
        可是睏獸猶鬥,不死不肯甘休,
         你有什麽本領,趕快動手。
   
     朱比特               可惡的孽種!
   
          你哪怕逃進了九泉之下的巨人監獄,
        我也要把你活活踩死:你還不走?
                     天哪!天哪!
        你絲毫不肯放鬆.一些沒有憐憫,
        啊,你即使叫我的仇人來對我審判,
        雖然他吊起在高加索山上,挨受着
        我長期的虐刑,他也不會這樣作踐我。
        他溫厚、公正、又勇敢。真不愧是一位
        人世間的元首。你是個什麽東西?
        害得我逃避無路,呼籲無門!
                       好吧,
       你我就一同跳進驚濤駭浪裏面,
        好象巨鷹和長蛇,扭做一團,
       廝打得精疲力竭,雙雙沉溺到
       無邊無際的大海底下。我要叫地獄
       放出汪洋似的魔火,讓這荒涼的世界,
       連同你和我——徵服者和被徵服者——
       以及我們爭奪的目標所遺留的殘跡,
       一齊葬進這無底的鬼城。
                       咳!咳!
     雷電風雲都不肯聽我的命令。
        我迷迷糊慣地永遠、永遠往下沉.
        我的冤傢,乘着一段勝利的威風,
        象一團烏雲,壓上我的頭頂!咳:咳!
   
               第二場
   
           阿特蘭地斯島的一條大河口。海神斜倚在岸
           邊;日神站在他身旁。
     海神     你可是說,他被那徵服者的威力打倒了?
      日神     是呀,他們經過了一場惡鬥,嚇得
   
     我管領的太陽失色,四方的星辰也戰慄,
        衹見他一路往下跌,惶恐的眼睛裏
         射出兩道兇光,穿過鎮壓住他的
        又厚又破的黑暗,照耀得滿天通明:
        如同漲紅了臉的落日,那最後的一瞥,
        透過了晚霞,渲染着滿面皺紋的海洋。
   
     海神  他可曾跌進地獄?跌進幽冥的世界?
      日神  他好比一頭巨鷹,在高加索山上的
   
     雲海裏迷了路,雷聲隆隆的羽翼
         被旋風纏住,它呆望着慘淡的太陽,
         卻被閃電射得張不開眼;他竭力掙紮,
         又受到冰雹肆意的毆打,結果是
         四面陰風慘慘,倒栽進無底的深淵.
   
     海神  從此,各處的海洋——我王國的領土——
   
     永遠和上帝形影不離,風來時,
        捲起波浪,再不會沾染一點血漬,
        正象青翠的麥田,在夏天的氛圍裏,
        左搖右搖;我的一條條水流要環繞
        各種民族居住的大陸,和各處富饒的
        海島;青臉的老海仙在琉璃的寶座上,
        帶領了他的一群水淋淋的仙女,
        觀看着華船來往的影子,如同
        人類註意着那滿載光明的月亮,
        帶着太白星在天空中航行的路程,
        這原是它那位不出現的船長的頭飾,
        倒影在黃昏時急速地退潮的海面,
        從此不必再循着斑斕的血跡、
        凄涼的呻吟、奴役和威逼的叫囂,
        去尋覓它們的途徑;到處是光明,
        到處是波光和花影、飄忽的香氣、
        維給的音樂、自由和溫柔的言語,
        還有仙神們心愛的最最甜蜜的歌聲。
   
     日神  我也不再會看到那種悲傷的事情,
   
          使我的心靈象日蝕般遮上一層黑暗,
        可是,別作聲,我的耳朵裏聽見
        那個坐在晨星中的小精靈把銀笛子
        吹出了清脆微細的聲音。
   
     海神                  你該走了,
   
     到了晚上,你的駿馬休息的時候,
        我們再見:那喧嚷的深水已經在
        催我回傢,要喝我寶座旁翡翠罎子裏
        永遠盛滿着的定心安神的藍色仙漿。
        且看碧緑的海裏那許多仙妖,
        玲瓏的肢體穿出了泛泛的水面,
        雪白的臂膀高過了披散的發絲;
        有幾個戴着黑白的花冠,有幾個
        戴着好象星星一般的浪花的皇冕,
        急急忙忙地奔去嚮她們姐姐道喜。
          (一陣波濤的聲音。)
        這是饑餓的海在渴求着安慰。
        別響,小妖怪;我來了。再見吧。
   
     日神                   再見。
   
                第三場
   
           高加索山嶽。普羅密修斯、赫拉剋勒斯、伊
          翁涅。大地、衆精靈全在臺上。阿西亞、潘堤亞
          和“時辰的精靈”一同乘車來到。赫拉剋勒斯為
            普羅密修斯鬆綁。普羅密修斯便從岩崖上走下來。
   
     赫拉剋勒斯  一切神靈裏面最光榮的神靈!
           我全身的力量現在要象奴隸一樣,
           來侍候智慧、勇敢和受盡折磨的愛,
           還有你,你本是它們所化身的形象。
      普羅密修斯 你這些親切話,簡直比我們日夜盼望,
   
     可是拖延了好久纔降臨的自由,
        更來得甜蜜。
                 阿西亞,你這生命之光,
        你的豐姿真是人間難得,天上少有,
        還有你們這兩位嬌滴滴的仙妹,
        多虧你們的眷憐和照顧,竟使
        經年纍月的痛苦變成了甜蜜的回憶,
        我們從此决不分離。那邊有一個洞窟,
        長滿了牽蘿攀藤、香氣襲人的植物,
        鮮葉和好花象簾幃般遮住了日光,
        地上鋪着翡翠般的葉瓣,一激清泉
        在中央縱躍着,發出清心爽神的聲響。
        山神的歡淚凍結得象白雪和自銀,
        又象鑽石的環現,從弧形的屋頂
      往下垂,放射着恍恍惚惚的光亮;
        洞外又可以聽見腳不停步的空氣
        在一棵樹一棵樹中間絮語,還有鳥,
      還有蜜蜂;周圍全是些苔蘚的座位,
   
     粗糙的墻壁上蒙着又長又軟的青草,
      這一個簡陋的居處便是我們的傢宅,
      我們雖然自己永恆不變,卻坐在裏面
      談論着時間的轉移,以及世事的更替。
      有什麽辦法不讓人類變化無常?
      你們如果嘆氣,我偏要和你們打趣;
      還有你,伊翁涅,該唱幾段海上的仙謠,
      唱得我哭,灑下一行行甜蜜的眼淚,
      然後你們再把我逗引得回覆笑顔。
      我們要把蓓蕾和花朵,連同泉水邊
      閃霎着的光彩,別出心裁地放在一起,
      把普通的東西綴合成奇幻的圖案,
      象人間天真爛漫的嬰兒一般遊戲,
      我們要用愛的顔色和辭令,在多情的
      心頭,去探尋那些不可告人的秘密,
      找到了一個再找一個,一個比一個
      更來得親切;我們要象笙蕭一樣,
      被情濃意深的風,用着靈巧的技能,
      把那些輕重緩急,融洽和諧的音節,
      編製出新穎別緻的仙神的麯調;
      人世間一切的回聲,將從四面八方
      駕着神風,好象蜜蜂一樣,離開了
      它們島上的窩巢,——成千上萬朵
      受着海風喂哺的鮮花,——飛到此地,
      帶來了輕微得聽不清楚的情話膩語、
      帶來了憐憫的心腸低訴着的苦衷,
      還有音樂——它自身是心靈的回聲——
       和一切改善及推進人類生活的呼號,
       現在都自由了;還有許多美麗的
       幻象,——起初很模糊,可是當心靈
       從愛的懷抱裏爍亮地升了起來,”
       把積聚的現實的光芒加在它們身上,
       (它們原是愛的許多形式的化身),
       立刻便大放光明——都會來拜訪我們:
       這些全是繪畫、雕塑和熱狂的詩歌,
       以及各種各樣目前還想象不出,
        可是早晚會實現的藝術的兒孫。
        還有些飄零的聲音和黑黢黢的影子,
        那是人類和我們之間的媒介,傳遞着
       最受崇拜的愛,一忽兒去,一忽兒來,
        人類一天天變得聰明和仁愛,
        它們也變得更加漂亮和溫柔,
        罪惡的魔障從此一重一重消毀:
        這便是洞窟裏和洞窟周圍的環境.
          (轉身嚮着“時辰的精靈”。)
        漂亮的精靈,還有一件大事要你辦,
        伊翁涅,你去把你藏在空岩底下,
        草叢中間的那個大法蠃取來給她:
        這法蠃原是老海仙送給阿西亞的
        結婚禮物,他當年曾把一陣仙音
        吹進裏面,等待到了今天來顯靈。
   
     伊翁涅 你這位左等右等纔來到的“時辰”,
   
          你比你的姊妹更好者,也更可愛。
        這就是那個神秘的法蠃。且看淡藍
        逐漸變成了銀灰,在裏面塗抹上
        一層柔軟的卻又耀眼奪目的光彩:
        豈不象沉迷的音樂在那裏安眠?
   
     時辰這當真是海洋中最嬌豔的蠃殼:
        它的聲音一定是又甜蜜又神奇。
   
     普羅密修斯 去吧,駕起你的馬匹,叫它們撒開
   
          旋風一般的蹄子,走遍凡間的城市:
        再一次趕過那繞着地球打轉的太陽;
        但等你的車輛劃破火光溜煙的長空,
        你就吹起你迂回盤旋的法蠃
        散放它偉大的音樂;它會象雷鳴般
        帶動一片片清晰的回聲:到那時,
        你就回來;從此住在我們洞窟近邊。
        還有你,我的母親!
   
     大地              我聽見,我也感到;
   
     你的嘴唇吻着我,那種親熱的力量
        竟然流過了這些石筋石脈,直送進
        堅硬、幽暗的髒腑;這是生命,這是快樂,
        長生不老的青年的溫暖深深地
        在我這衰老又冰冷的軀殼裏循環。
        從此我懷抱裏的孩兒們:一切的植物,
        一切地上的爬蟲,和彩翅的昆蟲,
        一切的飛禽、走獸、遊魚和男女的人類,
        過去經常從我的幹枯的胸脯上
       吸着疾病和痛苦,喝着失望的毒藥,
       將來都要享受到甜蜜的養料,
        他們會象一大群同母所生的
        姊妹羚羊,自得象雪,又快得象風,
       在潺緩的溪流邊把百合花當作食糧.
        露霧籠罩着我的不見陽光的睡眠,
        它們將會在星光下象香油一般流淌;
        夜晚蜷縮的花朵,又會乘它們偃臥的
        時候,來啜飲那經久不變的色素;
        人類和野獸將會在甜蜜的歡夢裏
        積聚起精力,但等明天去盡情作樂;
        那位執掌生死的神靈,隨時會吩咐
        “死”帶來她最後一次的溫存,正象
        母親摟着她孩兒一般,說;“別再離開我。”
   
     阿西亞  啊,母親!你為什麽要把“死”來提起?
           那些死了的,是不是不再愛,不再動,
           不再呼吸和說話?
      大地  回答也沒用處:
   
     你是永生不死的,這一種語言,
        衹有那些和大傢隔絶的死者能懂得。
        死是一重幕幃,活着的把它喚作生命;
        大傢睡了,它便完全揭開。在另一方面,
        溫和的季節卻製造一些溫和的玩意:
        它們帶來了身上披着虹霞的雷雨、
        撲鼻的馨風、掃淨夜空的長尾譽星,
        帶來了燃燒着生命的太陽的利箭,
      又有清靜的月光捧着露珠往下灑;
      它們要把常青的樹葉、不落的花果,
      “來裝飾這些森林和田野,哪怕是
      草木不生的高岩深𠔌也不肯忽略。
      再說你!那邊有一個洞窟,我當初
      看到你受盡苦難,心裏氣得發了瘋,
      我的靈魂就含着一股怨氣衝了進去,
      凡是聞到這股怨氣的也變成瘋狂,
      他們便在洞窟邊蓋了一座廟宇,
      在裏面說神過鬼,求他問卜,引誘得
      那些為非作歹的國傢互相殘殺、
      忘恩負義,正象嶽夫對待你一樣。
      那股怨氣現在變作了紫羅蘭的芬芳,
      從高高的野草叢中裊裊地上升,
      它用素靜的光亮,和那又濃厚、
      又溫柔的緋紅色的氤氳,去布滿
      四周的山岩和材林;它朝暮喂哺着
      那些滋長極快、蛇般身段的駕蘿,
      和牽連纏繞的深暗色的常春藤,
      以及那些含苞未放,煥發盛開,
      或是香氣已經消損了的花朵:
      一陣陣風奔進它們中間,穿過了
      懸挂在它們自己的青緑世界裏
      一個個光亮得象金球般的鮮果,
      又穿過了它們筋絡分明的葉片,
      和琥珀色的花梗,還有一朵一朵
      紫色的花象透明的酒杯,永遠盛滿着
      甘露,精靈們所喜愛的美酒佳釀,
      這些風就帶上一身寶星,金碧輝煌,
      那股芬芳又象白晝的好夢一般。
      插上了翩躚的羽翼到處去翺翔,
      散發着安寧和快樂的念頭,如同
      我心裏的感想一樣,因為你現在
      恢復了自由。這座洞府歸給你了。
      小精靈!快來!
     (小精靈化身作一個長着羽翼的小孩出現。)
          這是我的掌燈使者,
      他在多少年以前熄滅了他的燈,
    盡對着人傢的眼睛癡望,又從裏面
    取得了愛,把他的燈重新點上;
    因為愛便是火——火是我親愛的女兒——
    你們的眼睛裏就有着這種光亮。
    快走,淘氣鬼,快帶領了這幾位神仙,
    跨越尼薩的峰頂,酒神聚會的山頭,
    跋涉印度河和它的支流,再飄渡
    湍急的溪泉和琉璃一般的湖沼,
    衣履不濕,精神不倦,腳步也不遲慢,
    走過深𠔌,登上翠岡,衹見水波不興的
     池潭裏,永存着上面那一座廟宇的
     倒影,精雕細接的圓柱、弓門、楣梁,
     和手掌般的鬥拱,都看得分明,
    裏邊更擠滿了普拉剋西特裏斯手製的
    栩栩如生的偶像,它們大理石的笑容
    使靜寂的空氣載滿了天長地久的愛。
    這廟宇曾經供奉過你,普羅密修斯,
    現在已經荒廢。可是當年有不少個
    爭雄鬥勝的青年,曾經持着火炬,
    來到這黯淡的聖地,嚮你虔心禮拜,
    那火炬使是你的象徵;正象有些人
    緊緊地捧着希望的明燈,經過了
    生命的黃昏,一直走進他們的墳墓,
    如同你抱着“希望”,功德圓滿地到達
    “時間”最後的終點。你們去吧,再見。
    廟宇邊上便是那天造地設的洞府。
   
                第四場
   
           森林。背景是一座洞府。普羅密修斯、阿百
          亞、潘堤亞、伊翁濕和“大地的精靈”一同在
          臺上。
     伊茲涅 姐姐。這模樣兒凡間少有:你看它
   
     在樹葉裏面東落西遊!它頭上發着亮,
        象一顆碧緑的星;它那翠色的光芒
        在金黃的發絲中間閃映!它一邊走,
        一邊把光輝點點滴滴地灑在草上!
        你可認識它?
   
     阿西亞 這就是那個嬌小的精靈:
   
     它時常帶了大地上天。大小星宿
        把這一點光喚作最美麗的遊星。
        它有時在鹹海的浪花裏飄浮;有時
        在迷蒙的雲團裏馳騁;有時乘着人們
        睡覺的時候,在田野和城市裏漫步。
        有時又在山頂或是河面上閑蕩,
        或是象現在一般,在碧緑的草莽裏,
        亂竄亂跑,看見一樣就喜歡一樣。
        在嶽夫登位以前,它心愛我們的大姐,
        每逢空閑的時候,總走來吸飲着
        她眼睛裏流水般的光亮,它說它好象
        被毒蛇噬啃的人一樣,時時刻刻
        感到口渴;它又把童稚的心話對她講,
        告訴她一切它知道和看到的事情,
        它看見過的東西確實不少,可是
        看見了從不去查根問底:它又把她
        喚作親媽媽——因為它自己的來歷,
        自己不明白,我也不明白。
      地精(奔嚮阿西亞)      媽媽,親媽媽!
        我現在能不能象往常一般和你談話?
        我的眼睛盡望着你,快活得乏了,
        能不能就躲進你溫柔的臂彎裏?
        當冗長的中午,空氣裏光亮又寂靜,
        我能不能得閑就在你身旁戲要?
   
     阿西亞 你真可愛,我的好孩子,從此以後
           我可以安心撫養你。講些什麽我聽聽,
           你那種天真的談吐,當初給了我
           多少安慰,現在一定能叫人喜愛。
      地精  媽媽,我一天裏已經聰明了不少,
   
     當然一個小孩子决不會及得上你,
        我也快活得多了,真所謂“福至心靈”。
        你知道那些蛤蟆、蛇蝎和討厭的蟲蛆,
        那些兇狠惡毒的野獸,還有森林裏
        那些長滿着含有毒素的草莓的樹枝,
        當初都阻礙着我在青青世界裏
        自由來去:人類裏面和我作對的,
        他們有些是面貌冷酷;有些是
        滿臉的驕傲和憤怒;又有些冷冷地
        踱着方步;又有些皮笑肉不笑;
      又有些自己無知無識卻要譏誚人傢,
      又有些蒙着各種各樣醜惡的面具。
      再加上骯髒的念頭,遮蓋住了良心。
      還有一班女人,真是醜惡絶頂的東西,
      (可是那些象你一樣仁慈、自由、真誠的,
      即使在你跟前,也依然可算得美麗)
      我隱住了身子在她們床邊經過,
      看見那種虛情假意禁不住心頭作惡。
      可是我最近走到那大城市周圍的
      一些濃林密佈的小山上去閑步:
      衹見一個站崗的瞌睡在城門邊:
      忽聽得一種嘹亮的聲音,震動了
      月光下一處處的望樓;那聲音
      比什麽都好聽,就衹比不上你,
      可是悠長地響着,似乎無有窮盡:
      全城的居民都急急忙忙從被窩裏
      跳了出來,聚集在街道中間,擡起頭
      詫異地對着天上看,那美妙的聲音
    依舊響個不停。我自己就偷偷地
    躲藏在廣場上一個噴水池裏面:
    躺在那裏,好象是一個月亮的影子
    顯現在緑樹蔭下的波濤中間。可是
    隔不多久,我方纔講起的那些使我
    感到痛苦的一個個醜惡的人類形象
    都打空中飄過,被狂風吹得七零八落,
    又逐漸消滅得無形無蹤;留下來的;
        一般人都是些和善可愛的模樣,
        好象卸去了醜陋的化裝,另換上
        一副面目,大傢都覺得十分驚訝,
        互相稱奇,又互相道喜,接着便回去
         重新睡覺。等到第二天太陽升起,
         你可知道那些蛤蟆、蛇蝎和蜥蜴,
        是不是也能變得好看?居然有辦法,
        這邊改一改,那邊換一換,它們的
        惡毒的本質便從頭到尾去除幹淨。
        我描寫不出我的快活,當我看見
        一對翡翠鳥棲息在一根茄藤環繞、
        垂挂在湖面的樹枝上,張開活潑細長的
        嘴喙,一口口吃着鮮明透黃的草莓,
        水心好似天空,呈現出麗影雙雙;
        我心頭就帶了那許多快樂的景象,
        來和你團聚,——這又是最快樂的景象。
   
     阿西亞 我們從今後决不分離,直等到
   
     你那位清白的姐姐,帶領着多情善變、
        冰寒皎潔的月亮,走來看望你那顆
        比她更來得溫暖可是同樣晶瑩的
        光明,她的心便會象四月裏的
        雪花一般地溶化,她又會來愛你。
   
     地精  怎麽;跟阿西亞愛普羅密修斯一樣嗎?
      阿西亞 別鬍扯,淘氣鬼,你的年紀還太小呢。
           你也想面對面癡望着大傢的眼睛,
           擴大着兩人的愛,把四團圓球似的
           熱火,去照耀那月缺時黑夜的天空?
      地精   可是,媽媽,我的姐姐點亮了她的燈,
           我就也不可能保持黑暗。
      阿西亞                你聽;你看!
                (“時辰的精靈”上。)
      普羅密修斯 你聽到、看到的,我們全知道:可是你講。
      地精   當時天上地下都充滿了雷響,等到
   
        聲音休止,一切已經跟先前不同:
        那碰不到、觸不着的稀薄的空氣,
        和那籠罩萬物的陽光,都變了樣,
        好象融化在它們中間的愛的感覺
        把滾圓的世界完全擁抱在它懷裏。
        我眼睛前忽然大放光明,我已經
        能夠看透宇宙間一切的秘密:
        我快活得頭昏眼花,張開了驚倦的
        羽翼,揮動着輕浮的空氣,翩然下降。
        我的馬在太陽裏找到了它們的老傢,
        從此它們早晚餐食着如火如雲的
       菜蔬和鮮花,不必再到各處去奔波;.
        我的月亮一般的車輦也永遠停息在
        那邊的廟宇裏,日日夜夜面對着
        菲狄阿斯為你和阿西亞、大地、我,
        精心製造的石像,還有他所雕刻的
    你們兩位女海仙的形象,可愛得
    和我們所親眼目睹的真身一樣,——
    用來紀念你們準時傳達的喜訊,——
    這廟宇有十二很光彩華麗的石柱,
    支着上面滿雕花朵的圓頂,
    周圍都看得見明淨如水的天空。
    橫梁象一條兩頭的大蟒,還有許多
    石刻的飛鳥似乎又要拍翅奔騰。
    哎喲,我這根舌頭不知滑到哪裏去了,
    你們要聽的話,我一句也沒說呢!
    我方纔講到我翩然下降,來到人間:
    當時,正同現在一樣,簡直快活得
      身體不能動,口裏不能呼吸,靈魂
      也似乎出了竅;我便到人煙稠密的
      地方去閑蕩,我起初很感到失望,
    因為表面上一切並不跟我心裏
      所想象的那樣發生過巨大的變化;
      可是我找尋了不多一會兒,衹見
      許許多多的皇座上都沒有了皇帝,
      大傢一同走路,簡直象神仙一樣,
      他們不再互相諂媚,也不再互相殘害;
      人們的臉上不再顯示着仇恨、
      輕衊、恐懼,不再象地獄門前銘刻着。
      “入此門者,務須斷絶一切希望!”
      沒有人雙眉深鎖,沒有人渾身抖顫,
      也沒有人依舊帶着惶恐的心理
      對另外一個人的眼睛看,看裏面。
      又要發出什麽冷酷的命令,直到
      壓迫者的意志變成了自己的禍殃,
      把自己當作一匹馬,直趕到力盡身亡,
      沒有人再在唇邊皺起亂真的笑紋,
      編造他不屑從口裏說出來的大謊;
      也沒有人嗤着鼻子,把自己心頭的
      愛和希望的火花,都踩成灰燼,
      變作一個自己毀滅的幽魂,又象
      吸血鬼一樣在人叢中躡手躡腳地
      來往,害得大傢都沾染到他的惡癥;
      也沒有人講着那種鄙俗、虛偽、
      冷漠和空洞的談話,口裏稱是,
      心裏卻並不承認,雖然他沒想欺人,
      可是不知怎麽自己對自己也不信任。
      身邊走過的女人都是真實、美麗
      和仁慈,一個個好象自由自在的天仙,
      把新鮮的光明和甘露灑落到人間;
      她們一個個又是溫柔,又是明豔,
      絶不讓一點兒鄙俗的脂粉來玷污。
      口裏說的是以前所想不到的聰明,
      心裏有的是以前所不敢有的熱情,
      周身上下完全改換了一副模樣,
      原來人間已經變得好象是個天堂;
      不再驕傲,不再嫉妒,不再有什麽
      羞恥的事情、也不再有什麽苦水
      來毀壞那解愁忘憂的愛情的甜味。
      皇座、祭壇、法官的椅子和監獄:
      一般可憐的人物有些坐在裏面,
      有些站在邊上;持着王節,戴着法冠,
      執着寶劍和鏈索,或是拿着典籍,
      咬文嚼字把罪孽加在人傢頭上。——
      這些東西都好象是當年不可一世、
      而今已默默無聞的英豪的鬼魂,
      變成了猙獰可怕、原始野蠻的形狀,
      從他們那些還沒有摧殘的紀功碑上,
      得意洋洋地對着他們的徵服者的
      宮殿和墳墓了望:那許多恰合着
      皇帝和教主的身份的雄偉建築,
      象徵着黑暗和專橫的信仰,以及
      跟他們所蹂躪的世界一般廣大的權力,
      現在全化作了塵埃,衹值得我們去
      憑吊和嗟嘆;甚至他們最後一次的
      勝利所截獲的許多兵器和旗號,
      也衹是孤零零地遺留在人間凡世,
      雖然沒有拖倒,卻也沒有人去理睬。
      還有那些神人共誅的醜惡的形象,
      相貌奇怪、野蠻、黑暗、可憎又可怖,
      一個個全是那位混世魔王朱比特
      用了各種各樣名義幻變的化身;
      世界上的國傢都心驚肉跳地拿着
      鮮血和失望破碎的心來供奉,
      又把愛,弄得渾身污垢,一絲不挂,
      拖上了祭壇,在人們不可遏止的
      淚水中間將它活活地來殺害,
      它們害怕,所以獻媚:害怕也就是怨恨。
      那些形象眼看自己很快地在消滅,
      對着他們已放棄的神龕顰眉蹙額。
      那個塗彩的臉幕——粉飾太平的人
      都把它稱作生活——曾經抹上各種顔色,
      裝扮着一切人類所信仰和希望的
      東西,現在卻完全讓大傢扯了下來。
      那個可惡的假面具終於完全撕毀,
      人類從此不再有皇權統治,無拘無束,
    自由自在;人類從此一律平等,
    沒有階級、氏族和國傢的區別,
    也不再需要畏怕、崇拜、分別高低;
    每個人就是管理他自己的皇帝;
    每個人都是公平、溫柔和聰明。
    可是人類是不是從此斷絶了欲念?
    不,他們還沒有脫離罪惡和痛苦,
    原來一切雖然由他們自己作主,
    可是也還免不掉受到命運、死亡
    和變遷的影響,他們依舊會製造出
    又去挨受着那兩重魔障:這些原是
    他們的腳鐐手銬,竟然害得它們
    無法超升那個人跡不到的天堂,
    飛越過那顆在冥空中閃霎的星墾。
   
    (第四幕)
   
          普羅密修斯洞府附近的森林一角。潘堤亞和
          伊翁涅睡在那裏:歌聲逐漸地把她們喚醒。
                  精靈們的歌聲
   
     蒼白的星星全已消逝!
     因為那個捷足的牧童——
     太陽——把它們趕進了柵欄,
     趕進了晨曦的深處,
     他穿上一件使裏月失色的法衣,
       它們便象麋鹿逃避虎倀,
       奔出他蔚藍色的領空。
        可是你們在哪裏?
   
        (一長列幽暗的身形和陰影參差雜亂地走
    過,口裏在歌唱。)
   
           陰影們的歌唱
   
        快來,啊,快來:
        我們一同來扛擡
    這位虛度了多少歲月的老爺爺:
        我們全是些幽魂,
        死去了的“時辰”,
      我們把“時光”送進他長眠的墳瑩。
   
        快堆,啊,快堆。
        用白發,別用青葉!
      包屍布上不要灑露水,要灑限淚!
        再登上花神的空樓。
        采取萎謝的花朵,
      來覆蓋這位“時辰之王”的屍首!
   
        快奔,啊,快奔!
        如同黑夜的陰影,
    抖抖瑟瑟地被白日逐出蒼冥。
        我們渾身溶化,
        好象消散着的水花,
    受不住大晴天的作弄和戲耍:
        一陣陣清風唱出
        它們催眠的歌麯,
    那歌聲在和諧的音調裏逐漸沉寂!
   
           伊翁涅
   
     那些幽暗的身形是什麽精靈?
   
           潘堤亞
   
     全是些衰老又過去了的“時辰”,
      攜帶着它們辛苦地收集的
       許許多多戰利品——
      戰事的勝利全靠“那一位”的大力。
   
           伊翁涅
   
     它們走過了沒有?
   
           潘堤亞
   
                  它們走過了;
       我們話纔出口,它們已經跑掉,
       它們趕過了勁風,往前馳驅。
   
           伊翁涅
   
        啊,去到哪裏藏身?
   
           潘堤亞
   
      去到那黑暗、過去、死亡的地區。
   
          精靈們的歌聲
   
       明淨的雲朵在天空倘祥,
       星星般的露珠在地上閃耀,
       波濤在海洋裏會面聚首,
       原來是暴風雨歡樂得發了狂,
      興高采烈地和它們一同飛奔跳躍!
       它們都興奮得渾身顫抖,
       快活得一個個手舞足蹈。
        可是你們哪裏去了?
       鬆針柏枝都一齊歌唱,
       把舊麯譜成了新調,
       滾滾的海浪和泉水
       也把新奇的音樂來播放,
      仿佛汪洋和大陸上傳來了伯樂,
       大風大雨跟山嶺打趣,
       發出了響雷一般的歡笑。
        可是你們哪裏去了?
      伊翁涅 這些駕車的是誰?
      潘堤亞 他們的車輛在哪裏?
   
          “時辰”半隊合唱一
   
         空氣中和地面上,精靈們的呼聲
       揭開了“睡眠”的綉花幔帳,它當初
         掩蔽我們的身子,遮暗我們的生命,
       在玄冥裏。
   
           一個聲音
   
                在玄冥裏?
   
           半隊合唱二
   
                   啊,在玄冥的深處。
   
           半隊合唱一
   
         千年萬代,我們好象許多嬰孩,
       躺在怨恨和煩惱的幻象裏安息,
         一個兄弟睡着了,另一個便眼睛張開,
       衹見到真實——
   
           半隊合唱二
   
                   比他們的幻夢更惡劣!
   
           半隊合唱一
   
         我們在睡眠中聽得了“希望”的弦琴;
       我們在夢幻裏認識了“愛”的聲調;
         我們感覺到“力量”的指揮,跳躍歡欣——
   
           半隊合唱二
   
       正象海浪在晨光之下歡欣跳躍!
   
           全隊合唱
   
         讓我們踏着清風,翩躚地起舞,
       再把歌聲去穿過靜寂的天光,
         纏住了白日,別讓它走得太快,
       看住了它,把它送進“黑夜”的臥房.
   
         饑餓的“時辰”曾經傢獵犬一樣,
       把白日當作流血的花鹿般追逐,
      看它跌跌撞撞地渾身受了傷,
       跑遍了寂寞歲月裏的深山幽𠔌。
   
         現在且把音樂、舞蹈和光明的
       身形交織成一種神秘的韻律,
         讓“時辰”和強大愉快的精靈們
       象雲朵和太陽的光芒一般團緒。
   
           一個聲音
                        團结!
   
     潘堤亞 看哪,人類的心神化作了許多精靈,
   
          一步步在走近,它們把甜蜜的聲音
        纏繞在身上,當作是鮮豔的衣裳。
   
          精靈們合唱
   
       我們一同來狂歡,
       一同來跳舞和歌唱,
          跟隨着快活的旋風到處飛翔,
       如同那些飛魚,
       跳出印度洋底,
    半醒半睡地和海鳥一塊兒遊戲。
   
         “時辰”們合唱
   
      你們打哪裏來的,如此輕快和狂放,
      問電一般的鞋子穿在你們腳上,
      你們的羽翼象思想一般輕鬆靈敏;
      眼睛又象愛,誰擋得住它的光明?
   
          精靈們合唱
   
        我們來的地方
        便是人類的心房,
      過去又是幽暗、又是穢垢和迷惘,
        現在卻寧靜安閑,
        如同清水的池潭,
      又好比萬象運轉的悠然青天。
   
        我們來的地方
        是神奇又幸福的深淵,
      那邊的洞窟全是水晶的殿堂,
        還有摩天的高樓,
        “思想”高踞在上頭,
      看着你們,快活的“時辰”,舞腳舞手:
   
        我們來的地方
        有着相思牽纏,
      情人們緊緊抓住你蓬鬆的雲𠔌;
        又有青碧的小島,
        “智慧”在嫣然微笑,
      誤你們的船期,更有迷人的海妖.
   
        我們來自人類的
        耳目上端的頭額,
      裏面豐富地寶藏着詩歌和雕刻。
        又有着琮琮的流泉,
        大傢可以任意品嚐,
      “科學”在此地培養她神奇的翅膀。
   
        我們經年纍月
        踏過淚痕和血跡,
      在仇恨、希望、恐怖的地獄裏出人,
        我們乘長風,破巨浪,
        走遍各處的島上,
      難得見幸福的鮮花在島上開放。
   
        我們每一隻腳底,
        全穿上平安的軟履,
      我們的羽翼又灑滿了香油如雨,
        衹見遙遠的地方,
        人類的愛在了望,
      它眼光看到哪裏,哪裏便是天堂。
   
         精靈和“時辰”合唱
   
       那麽,快張起神秘的羅網;
      啊,你們這些玲瓏的精靈,
       強大又高興,快從地角和天邊
      走來,曼舞翩翩,歡歌聲聲,
       好象千千萬萬條河流裏的波浪,
       前推後涌奔赴光明融洽的海洋。
   
          精靈們合唱
   
        我們獲得了戰利品,
        我們的工作已經完成,
      我們自由自在地下沉、上升、飛奔;
        隨你走近或是走遠,
        或是在周圍盤旋,
      或是就在那裹緊地球的黑暗裏打轉。
   
        我們要穿過天上的星星,
        那一隻衹爍亮的眼睛,
      到冰天雪地的中心去移民開墾:
        死亡、混亂、黑夜,聽到
        我們的腳聲就遁逃,
      好象暴風雨一下子把迷霧趕跑。
   
        還有“土地”、“空氣”和“光明”,
        以及那個“大力的神靈”
      追逐得滿天星鬥火速地狂奔;
        還有“愛”、“思想”和“呼吸”,
        這些鎮壓住“死亡”的威力,
      我們飛升,它們就在底下聚集。
        我們要在空曠遼闊的田野,
        用我們的歌聲去建造個世界,
      送給那些“智慧的精靈”去住傢。
        我們要在人類的新世界裏,
        去取得我們的計劃和規律:
      我們的工作叫做“普羅密修斯事業”.
   
         “時辰”們合唱
   
      叫舞伴散開,再把歌隊拆分;
       一部分人離去,一部分人留下.
   
           半隊合唱一
   
      我們被驅趕着一路走上天廷。
   
           半隊合唱二
   
       我們留在人間過迷醉的生涯。
   
           半隊合唱一
   
      又急促,又自由,腳不停步地直闖,
      精靈們要造個新的地球和海洋,
      在决沒有天堂的地方蓋座天堂。
   
           半隊合唱二
   
      又嚴肅,又緩慢,又素靜,又明淨,
      帶領着“白日”,趕過了“黑夜”往前行:
      這光明世界裏的力量取用不盡。
   
           半隊合唱一
   
      我們飄過在集合中的星球,高聲歌唱,
      直到樹林、野獸、雲朵都變了情況:
      混亂變成平靜:靠的是愛,不是恐慌。
   
           半隊合唱二
   
         我們環繞着人間的海洋和山嶺,
          衹見生生死死的快樂的身形
        都作作了歡欣甜蜜的仙樂妙音。
   
         “時辰”和精員合唱
   
         叫舞伴散開,再把歌隊拆分,
          一部分人離去,一部分人留下,
         我們大傢天南地北到處飛奔,
         手執星光般的鏈索,又軟又堅韌,
          拖拉着載滿情露愛雨的雲霞。
   
     潘塔亞  好了!他們走了!
      伊翁涅 他們這般地可愛,
           你一些不覺得有趣?
      潘堤亞  如同空漠的青山,
           當軟綿綿的雲霧化作了一陣細雨,
           它便對着一碧萬裏的長空,笑出了
           千萬點燦爛的淚珠。
      伊翁涅 我們在這裏談話,
           又傳來了新的旋律。這是什麽怪聲?
      潘堤亞  這是那轉動的世界所發出的妙樂,
           它把漣漪一般的空氣當作琴弦,
           撥彈出悠揚飄忽的麯調。
      伊翁涅                 你再聽,
   
     每一句後面總指着委婉的尾聲,
        又清脆,又明淨,一聲聲撩人心思,
        刺進了你的感覺,占據住你的靈魂,
        正象尖銳的星星,穿過鼕天晶瑩的
        寒空,在海水裏欣賞自己的身影。
   
     潘堤亞 且看森林裏有兩處空洞的地方,
   
     上面有許多低垂的樹枝張着天幔,
        衹見一條清溪分成了兩股水流,
        它們經過了密層層的藤蘿和苔蘚,
        低吟着各奔前程,好似姊妹雙雙
        在嘆息中別離,將來在笑聲中團聚;
        它們分了手,一個去到煩惱和多情的
        海島,一個去到甜蜜而幽怨的樹林;
        兩長條光彩神奇的河流,漂浮在
        洶涌澎湃、鈎魂攝魄的聲浪中間,——
        衹聽得它越來越響,越來越急,
         又越來越深,在地下和空中飄蕩。
   
     伊翁涅 我看見一輛車輦,象是細長無比的
   
     小艇,每次當“月份的母親”從她的
        晦暗的夢幻裏醒回,黯淡的天光
        總用來把她送到她西方的洞府;
        車頂上覆蓋着一個球形的篷帳,
         幽暗無光,可是打漆黑的幕端裏
        往外望,山丘樹林完全綫條分明,
        如同妖巫的玻璃球中顯現的形象,
         結實的雲團做車輛,全是些藍玉
         和黃金,正象那些風伯雨師散滿在
         海水裏的東西一樣,上面波光翻動,
        下面又有着日影在奔騰;這些輪子
        越轉越快,越滾越大,好象起着狂風。
        車中坐着一個長着羽翼的嬰孩,
        他的臉色白淨,如同晶明的白雪;
        他的翎翮又象陽光下羽毛一般的
        霜花;他身上的白袍,好似一顆顆
        珍珠穿成,顯出行雲流水般的皺紋,
        遮不住他的四肢,閃閃地發着白光。
        他的頭髮也是白的,好似一條條
        白熾的火焰;他的一雙眼睛卻是
        兩大片水汪汪的黑暗,裏面的神仙
        盡把這黑暗對利箭般的睫毛外邊灑,
        好似暴風雨從雜亂的雲堆裏下降,
        用那不發光的火去調節四周圍
        寒冷和明亮的空氣;他手裏晃着
        一枝抖顫着的月華的光芒,更有
        一種力量在指揮着車頭,帶動雲輪,
        滾過青草、鮮花和波浪,引起了一陣
        悅耳的清音,如同輕露細雨的歌聲。
   
     潘堤亞 再從樹林的另一條隙縫裏,又看見
   
      一個星球象旋風般高歌和狂奔,
        它正同千千萬萬星球一樣,仿佛是
        結實的水晶,它的固體好比一個
        來去無阻的空間,流動着音樂和光明。
        成千纍萬個圓球互相纏繞,互相混雜,
        有青的,有紫的,也有白的和緑的,
        還有金黃色的;星球裏頭又有星球;
      星球和星球中間,每一個空隙
      都擠滿了奇形怪狀的東西,如同
      黑暗深處簇聚着的鬼影和夢魅,
      可是他們完全透明,穿過這一個的
      軀體,能夠看到另一個的身形,
      他們表現出各式各樣的動作,
      你環着我走,我繞着你飛,好象靠了
      各式各樣看不見的軸心在轉動,
      用着奮不顧身的速率滾個不停,
      又緊張,又從容,又莊嚴,又鎮定,
      發出高低的聲響,和緩急的音調,
      唱起狂放的樂麯和清晰的歌詞。
      那個人煙稠密的星球轉得更有力,
      把一條燦爛的河流攪成蔚藍的氣霧,
      回覆了原始的渾飩,大片的光明;
      且說森林中一陣陣野花的幽香,
      還有新鮮的空氣和青草合奏的音樂,
      以及參差的樹葉散發的翡翠光芒,
      環繞着這種快速到自相衝突的轉動,
      似乎變作一團大而無形的力量,
      把感覺壓了下去。那個星球裏面,
      硫磺石灰的懷抱中間,“大地的精靈”
      正瞌睡在它自己收斂起的羽翼
      和捲麯的發絲上邊,象一個玩耍得
      疲倦了的嬰孩;衹見它笑逐顔開,
      兩爿小嘴唇在蠕動,好象一個人
        在睡夢中訴說着他甜蜜的心事。
   
     伊翁涅 它衹是在學唱星球所歌吟的麯調。
      潘堤亞 它頭額上一顆星,放射出碧油油的
   
     火焰,象一把把利劍;又象桂花樹上
        竪起了斬姦除暴的金黃色的槍尖,
        象徵着天上和人間從此接連。
        這許多光芒,如同多少根地軸,
        帶動看不見的輪子,跟着星球旋轉,
        快得比思想更快,地底下到處是
        太陽般的電光,一忽兒直,一忽兒橫,
        它們穿鑿着泥土,進了再進,深了更深,
        一路揭開着土地中心所藴結的秘密:
        無數的礦藏,無量的鑽石和黃金,
        加上許許多多毫無價值的纍贅,
        以及各種各樣意想不到的珍寶;
        一個個深洞幽窟,撐起了晶瑩的
        玉柱,下面鋪滿了素淨的白銀;
        無底的火井;又有涓涓的泉源,
        象喂哺嬰孩般灌註進汪洋和大海,
        蒸發出來的水汽替巍峨的山峰
        披上了富麗堂皇的銀鼠的雪裘。
        那些光芒繼續朝前閃耀,照現出
        湮沒的年代所留下的悲慘遺跡:
        鐵錨、戰艦的船身;變成了石片的
        甲板;箭袋、頭盔、幹戈,和虎頭的
        盾牌;兵車的輪子、繪製着圖微的
      施旗和戰利品,以及披甲的駿馬,
      鬼魂環繞着它們獰笑,陰森森地
      象徵着死的破壞,一重一重的毀滅;
      許多繁華的城市都化作了廢墟,
      泥土埋蓋了當年居住在裏面的
      生靈,他們雖然會死,卻並不是人類;
      你看,那些古怪的骷髏和驚人的手藝,
      他們的雕像,房屋和廟宇;一件件
      神奇的物體都已經摧毀和破裂,
      灰沉沉變積在堅硬黑暗的地下。
      上面又有許多不知名的生翅動物;
      各種魚類堆疊成的鱗片的島嶼;
      一條條長蛇象骨節穿成的鏈子,
      它們纏繞在鐵石上面,或者四盤在
      灰堆裏,原來它們最後的劇痛,
      使它們發出一股死勁,竟把鐵石
      絞成了粉。這些上面又有一種
      渾身鋸齒的爬蟲,它們的氣力能夠
      推山搖嶽,曾經是威震一世的獸壬;
      它們在泥滑的海邊,叢莽的地面,
      象夏天棄屍身上的蟲蛆,不斷地
      在繁殖滋生,直到這個碧緑的地球,
      把洪水當作一件大髦,緊裹在身上,
      它們便吼叫着,喘息着,斷種滅跡,
      似乎有一個神道,高踞在彗星上,
      打天空經過,口裏喝道一聲:“變!”
      它們便象我說的話一樣,從此不見。
   
            大地
   
       啊,快樂,勝利,高興,再加上瘋狂!
       無窮的歡欣如火如焚,如風如浪,
      關不住的愉快象煙霧一般飛騰!
       哈:哈!充滿了得意的心情,
       光明的氣氛把我周身裹緊,
      帶着我往前奔,好象是風捲殘雲。
   
            月亮
   
       我的好哥哥,你到處逍遙邀遊,
       氣和土造成你這快活的圓球,
      有一個精靈象一道毫光,打你身上
       射進我這凝霜結冰的軀體,
       一路散發着火焰般的熱氣,
      有愛,有香味,還有深沉的歌唱:
       刺進了胸膛,刺進了胸膛!
   
            大地
   
       哈!哈:我那七穿八洞的空山,
       豁裂的火岩,歡喜跳躍的噴泉,
      它們都高聲狂笑,笑得沒法停頓,
       各處的海洋、沙漠和深淵,
       高空中無邊無際的洪荒,
      都興風作浪,發出附和的回聲。
   
       它們叫喊得和我一樣響。
       啊,我駕你這萬惡的魔王,
      你存心想把這青碧的宇宙毀滅!
       你居然推出烏雲,降下火雷,
       把我兒女的骨骼打得粉碎,
      變成了一大團血肉模糊的東西,——
   
       害得層樓高閣、棟梁庭柱、
       宮殿、石碑和莊嚴的廟宇,
      以及千山萬嶽,都罩上了火和煙,
       波濤般的森林、花朵和樹葉,
       平時總在我胸懷裏安息,
      也讓你的怨憤踩死了變作泥漿。
   
       且看你現在怎樣淪陷、潰敗、
       躲藏,被大傢吸成一根枯柴,
      把你當作沙漠行軍的一個水杯,
       每人喝上一滴;在你上下周圍,
       把你摧殘盡的空間墊滿了愛,
      如同霹靂擊碎的洞窟裏大放光彩。
   
            月亮
   
       白雪離開我靜止的山頭,
       變成了許多活潑的泉流,
      我的凝固的海洋及歌又舞又發光,
       一個精靈衝出了我的心,
       想不到有一種新的生命
      貼緊我寒冷赤裸的胸脯:這一定是你
       躺在我身上,躺在我身上!
       望着你,我能感到,也能知道,
       鮮葉在爆青,好花都含苞,
      生氣勃勃的身形在我心頭徘徊:
       海上和天空傳來了樂聲,
       雲陣張開翅膀東西飛奔,
      黑沉沉帶來了新蕾所夢求的雨水:
       這就是愛,這全是愛!
   
            大地
   
       它貫穿我花崗石結成的心髒,
       經過牽纏的草根、踩平的土壤,
      走進樹頂上的葉片和最嬌豔的花朵;
       它更推動了風聲和雲影,
       使遺忘了的死者重又蘇醒,
      竟把一位精靈引出了他幽秘的密室。
   
       他猛衝出燈燭全無的深洞,
       象暴風雨般帶着響雷和狂風,
      從烏煙瘴氣的牢獄裏上升到高空
       他那地震般的咆哮和速度,
       駭得錯亂的思想永遠停住,
      直到怨恨、恐怖、痛苦的黑影幢幢。
       離開了“人”,——人是多角度的鏡子,
       他能把世上真實美麗的東西,
      照在裏面,變作妖魔鬼怪,象一片海
       反映着愛;他在同類中間來往,
       象太陽溜過又滑又靜的海洋,
      更從燦爛的天頂灑下生命和光輝;
   
       “人”象是被遺棄的麻風的嬰孩,
       當他看見了一隻病痛的野獸,
      就跟隨着去到暖和的山壑,用溫泉
       洗滌治療,想不到他回轉傢門,
       臉色已經紅潤,母親還當是鬼魂,
      到後來,知道孩兒重生,便涕泅滿面。
   
       啊,“人”呀!你是一條思想的鏈索,
       愛和威力永遠串連在一處,
      又有堅強的意志驅使着萬物生靈;
       正象太陽統治那撲朔迷離的
       共和天國,雖難免峻顔厲色,
      卻是在奮鬥着創造自由的天延。
   
       “人”是許多靈魂合成的一個靈魂,
       支配自然該是他天賦的特性,
      一切都互相交流,象江河接連海洋,
       有了愛,生活便變得美麗,
       勞動、痛苦、憂愁,全換了情緒,
      在人生青緑的樹叢中快樂地徜徉!
   
       他的意志,儘管有卑鄙的欲情、
       荒蕩的娛樂、自私的煩惱和責任,
      不受約束,又有一種威力能使人服從,
       卻象一條駕着長風的巨艇,愛
       掌着舵,驚濤駭浪都不敢撒野,
      震撼着人生的邊岸,走上它的徵程。
   
       一切東西都顯示着他的力量:
       彩色的圖畫和冰冷的石像;
      慈母手中一縷縷縫綴衣裳的絲綫,
       還有語言,這永久神秘的歌唱,
       它用着藝術的諧調來執管
      形式和思想,産生了意義和色相。
   
       閃電是他的奴隸;高冥的穹蒼
       獻出了大小星辰,象一群牛羊,
      它們打他眼前經過,記了數目往前轉!
       雷雨是他的坐騎,在空中馳騁;
       衹聽得纖毫畢露的深淵嚷着問:
      天,你有沒有秘密?我已經被“人”揭穿。
   
            月亮
   
       蒼白的死亡的陰影,終於
       在天上掠過了我的身子,
    好象一幅霜雪和睡眠製成的屍衾;
       我那新織的綉幃左右,
       流連着許多快樂的膩友,
    他們並不威武,又是溫柔又斯文,
       正象你深𠔌中居住的仙神。
   
            大地
   
       當晨曦散發着熱氣,摟抱住
       一半露凝的地球,金黃、碧緑
      又透明,直到它變成插翅的雲霧,
       飄飄忽忽地飛上青天的穹頂,
       等到月亮東升,太陽西沉,
      還挂在海上象一團發着紫光的紅火。
   
            月亮
   
       你現在就被那永生的光輝
       摟抱着,你安靜地橫躺在
      上天神聖的笑容和自己的喜氣中間;
       一切的太陽和萬千的星辰
       拿了一片光明、一個生命、
      一股力量替你盛裝,你把你的衣裳
       穿在我身上,穿在我身上:
   
            大地
   
       我在黑夜的山峰下轉動,
       這山峰懷着歡欣高聳入天空,
      在我醉迷的瞌睡中低吟勝利的歡歌;
       如同青年躺在美麗的陰影裏,
       做着繾綣的好夢,輕聲嘆息,
      光明和熱情坐在他身旁細心侍候。
   
            月亮
   
       正象溫柔甜蜜的月食夜,
       兩顆靈魂在情人的嘴唇間相會,
      興奮變得平靜,明亮的眼睛張不開;
       你的影子覆在我的身上,
       我便也發不出一點兒聲響;
      啊,宇宙間最美麗的星球!我的心懷
       載滿了你的愛,載不下你的愛!
   
     你環繞着太陽急急地轉,
     大千世界中可算得最輝煌,
     一個碧緑又蔚藍的星球
     散發着無比神聖的光流,
     你是天上最亮的一盞燈,
     給上天帶來了生命和光明.
     我原是你純潔的情人,
     長着一對磁石般的眼睛,
     北極的天堂給我一種力量
     使我夜夜陪伴在你身旁:
     我是一個熱愛狂戀的姑娘,
     她那顆柔嫩弱小的心靈上
     過重地載負着深情和密意,
    如癡如醉地侍候着你,
    正象一個新嫁娘,從下到上、
    從右到左、百看不厭地對你望,
    如同酒神,快活得發了瘋,
    繞着阿伽夫在怪異的林中
    舉起的一隻酒杯亂縱亂跳。
    哥哥呀,無論你飛得多麽高,
    我總是緊緊地追隨在你身旁,
    走遍浩浩蕩蕩的穹蒼,
    躲藏在你溫暖的懷抱裏面,
    遮擋住了那荒漠的空間,
    又從你的感覺和視覺裏
    吸取着力量、莊嚴、美麗:
    如同一個情人或一條蜥蜴,
    和什麽在一起就變什麽性質;
    如同紫羅蘭嫵媚的眼睛,
    凝視着一碧無涯的天心,
      跟了它看到的東西改換色調;
    如同灰白又潮潤的晚霧,
    變成一片紫石英的光幕,
      當它偷偷地把西方的山嶽擁抱,
    眼看太陽下沉,
        躺在雪上——
   
            大地
   
       黃昏精疲力竭,
        眼淚汪汪。
         啊,溫柔的月亮,你那愉快的聲音
         傳到我耳朵裏.正象是你的光明,
         清澈又柔和,安慰着海上的船夫們,
       在夏夜靜寂的島嶼間來往;
         啊,溫柔的月亮,你那鏗鏘的辭句
         直穿進我那些深幽和孤僻的洞窟,
         使猛獸神往,又好象用了香油敷抹
       它們所踐踏出來的創傷。
   
     潘塔亞 我從溪泉般的歌聲裏升起來,
           好象跨出一個水光閃爍的澡池——
            陰暗的岩石間,一池油碧的光亮。
   
      伊翁涅  啊!好姐姐,那聲浪已經離開了我們,
           你卻說你恰好從它的波濤裏上升,
           原來你的說話一句一句好象是
           森林中出浴的仙女身上和頭髮上
           灑下來的又明淨又柔軟的水珠。
      潘堤亞 別響!別響!一個偉大的神道,如同
           黑暗一樣,升出了地面,又如夜晚一樣,
           從天上象雷雨般下降;更在空氣裏
           嚮四面爆發,好象日食時一切的
           光亮都收進了太陽的毛孔:衹見
           許多歌唱着的精靈輝映閃耀,
           象流星一般在夜空中疾馳來往。
      伊翁涅 我的耳朵裏感到有說活的聲音。
      潘塔亞 啊,聽!這是天上人間都懂得的語言!
   
              冥王
   
        大地!你是幸福者平靜的王國,
       載滿了神奇的形狀、和諧的音籟。
        美麗的行星呀:你在天上遊樂,
       一路拾掇着散布在道上的情愛。
   
            大地
   
         這聲音使我象露珠一般想逃避。
   
            冥王
   
        月亮!你每晚多情地望着大地,
       正象大地每晚對你看出了神,
        你們對於人類,飛禽和走獸,
       都象徵着美和愛,協調和平靜!
   
            月亮
   
         這聲音使我象樹葉一般地戰兢。
   
            冥王
   
        一切太陽星辰的帝君,一切神道
       和仙妖,衆位天尊!極樂世界裏面
        是你們的住傢,萬千星鬥照耀,
       再沒有風吹雨打,真是幸福無邊;
   
           天上的聲音
   
       我們的共和國,受到祝福.也祝福別人.
   
            冥王
   
      一切安樂的死者!你們把奇妙的詩詞
       不作畫像的彩色,卻當藏身的迷雲,
      無論你們的本性象你們親眼目睹
       受苦受難的宇宙一般永久——
   
                地下的聲音
   
                     或是象我們
       遺留在世上的人那樣變幻和沉淪。
   
            冥王
   
      你們這些妖魔鬼怪,你們在各處安身:
       從人類聰明的頭腦一直到人類
      鐵石的心腸;從星月皎潔的天頂
       一直到蟲蛆嚙食的烏黑的海苔!
   
          一種嘈雜的聲音
   
       你的聲音使我們從遺忘中醒了回來。
   
            冥王
   
      一切把血肉當窩巢的精靈;各種
       走獸和飛禽,各種魚蝦和蟲蠅;
      各種的樹葉和花蕾;閃電和狂風;
       還有寥空中無法馴服的飛霧和流星!
   
           一個聲音
   
       你的嗓音好比靜寂的林子裏的風聲.
   
            冥王
   
      “人”呀,你曾經做過暴君也做過奴隸,
       你曾經欺過人也受過人欺;你的肉身
      要腐爛;你經過了無窮盡的白日和黑夜,
       跋山涉水,從搖籃一直走進墳瑩。
   
           全體神靈
   
       請講!但願你的雋言細語萬古長存!
   
            冥王
   
      今天日子到了,玄冥中響起一陣呼聲,
      要用人間的法寶去打倒天上的暴君,
       那位“徵服者”就被拖進了無底的幽窟:
      “愛”便從它慧心和耐性的寶座裏,
      從它受盡煎熬、最後昏迷的時辰裏,
       從它那光滑得難以站穩、峭險得
      無法攀登、亂石一般的痛苦裏跳出來,
      把安慰的羽翼覆蓋住人類的世界。
   
      溫和、德行、智慧和忍耐,這些全是
      最堅固的保障,象簽條一樣,密封住
       冥穴的洞口,不讓“毀滅”來降災作惡;
      萬一“永久”,一切事跡和時辰的母親,
      管束不嚴,讓那條毒蛇跳出了深阱,
       被它用細繩般的身體把手腳捆縛,
      這些法寶自能拔除一切的妖孽,
      重新來鞏固我們統治的權力。
   
      忍受一切“希望”覺得是無窮的痛苦;
      寬恕一切象“死”和“夜”一般黑暗的罪過,
       打倒那種儼然是無所不能的“權威”。
      全心地愛,別怕睏難,不要放棄希望,
      “希望”自會在艱難中實現它的夢想,
       不要改變,不要灰心,也不要懊悔,
      “提坦”呀,這纔和你的光榮一般,完全是
      善良、偉大和歡欣、自由和美麗;
      這纔可算得生命、快樂、統治和勝利。
   
               邵洵美   譯   THE DAEMON OF THE WORLD.
   
   A FRAGMENT.
   
   PART 1.
   
   [Sections 1 and 2 of "Queen Mab" rehandled, and published by Shelley
   in the "Alastor" volume, 1816. See "Bibliographical List", and the
   Editor's Introductory Note to "Queen Mab".]
   
   Nec tantum prodere vati,
   Quantum scire licet. Venit aetas omnis in unam
   Congeriem, miserumque premunt tot saecula pectus.
   LUCAN, Phars. v. 176.
   
   How wonderful is Death,
   Death and his brother Sleep!
   One pale as yonder wan and horned moon,
   With lips of lurid blue,
   The other glowing like the vital morn,                               _5
   When throned on ocean's wave
   It breathes over the world:
   Yet both so passing strange and wonderful!
   
   Hath then the iron-sceptred Skeleton,
   Whose reign is in the tainted sepulchres,                            _10
   To the hell dogs that couch beneath his throne
   Cast that fair prey? Must that divinest form,
   Which love and admiration cannot view
   Without a beating heart, whose azure veins
   Steal like dark streams along a field of snow,                       _15
   Whose outline is as fair as marble clothed
   In light of some sublimest mind, decay?
   Nor putrefaction's breath
   Leave aught of this pure spectacle
   But loathsomeness and ruin?--                                        _20
   Spare aught but a dark theme,
   On which the lightest heart might moralize?
   Or is it but that downy-winged slumbers
   Have charmed their nurse coy Silence near her lids
   To watch their own repose?                                           _25
   Will they, when morning's beam
   Flows through those wells of light,
   Seek far from noise and day some western cave,
   Where woods and streams with soft and pausing winds
   A lulling murmur weave?--                                            _30
   Ianthe doth not sleep
   The dreamless sleep of death:
   Nor in her moonlight chamber silently
   Doth Henry hear her regular pulses throb,
   Or mark her delicate cheek                                           _35
   With interchange of hues mock the broad moon,
   Outwatching weary night,
   Without assured reward.
   Her dewy eyes are closed;
   On their translucent lids, whose texture fine                        _40
   Scarce hides the dark blue orbs that burn below
   With unapparent fire,
   The baby Sleep is pillowed:
   Her golden tresses shade
   The bosom's stainless pride,                                         _45
   Twining like tendrils of the parasite
   Around a marble column.
   
   Hark! whence that rushing sound?
   'Tis like a wondrous strain that sweeps
   Around a lonely ruin                                                 _50
   When west winds sigh and evening waves respond
   In whispers from the shore:
   'Tis wilder than the unmeasured notes
   Which from the unseen lyres of dells and groves
   The genii of the breezes sweep.                                      _55
   Floating on waves of music and of light,
   The chariot of the Daemon of the World
   Descends in silent power:
   Its shape reposed within: slight as some cloud
   That catches but the palest tinge of day                             _60
   When evening yields to night,
   Bright as that fibrous woof when stars indue
   Its transitory robe.
   Four shapeless shadows bright and beautiful
   Draw that strange car of glory, reins of light                       _65
   Check their unearthly speed; they stop and fold
   Their wings of braided air:
   The Daemon leaning from the ethereal car
   Gazed on the slumbering maid.
   Human eye hath ne'er beheld                                          _70
   A shape so wild, so bright, so beautiful,
   As that which o'er the maiden's charmed sleep
   Waving a starry wand,
   Hung like a mist of light.
   Such sounds as breathed around like odorous winds                    _75
   Of wakening spring arose,
   Filling the chamber and the moonlight sky.
   Maiden, the world's supremest spirit
   Beneath the shadow of her wings
   Folds all thy memory doth inherit                                    _80
   From ruin of divinest things,
   Feelings that lure thee to betray,
   And light of thoughts that pass away.
   For thou hast earned a mighty boon,
   The truths which wisest poets see                                    _85
   Dimly, thy mind may make its own,
   Rewarding its own majesty,
   Entranced in some diviner mood
   Of self-oblivious solitude.
   
   Custom, and Faith, and Power thou spurnest;                          _90
   From hate and awe thy heart is free;
   Ardent and pure as day thou burnest,
   For dark and cold mortality
   A living light, to cheer it long,
   The watch-fires of the world among.                                  _95
   
   Therefore from nature's inner shrine,
   Where gods and fiends in worship bend,
   Majestic spirit, be it thine
   The flame to seize, the veil to rend,
   Where the vast snake Eternity                                        _100
   In charmed sleep doth ever lie.
   
   All that inspires thy voice of love,
   Or speaks in thy unclosing eyes,
   Or through thy frame doth burn or move,
   Or think or feel, awake, arise!                                      _105
   Spirit, leave for mine and me
   Earth's unsubstantial mimicry!
   
   It ceased, and from the mute and moveless frame
   A radiant spirit arose,
   All beautiful in naked purity.                                       _110
   Robed in its human hues it did ascend,
   Disparting as it went the silver clouds,
   It moved towards the car, and took its seat
   Beside the Daemon shape.
   
   Obedient to the sweep of aery song,                                  _115
   The mighty ministers
   Unfurled their prismy wings.
   The magic car moved on;
   The night was fair, innumerable stars
   Studded heaven's dark blue vault;                                    _120
   The eastern wave grew pale
   With the first smile of morn.
   The magic car moved on.
   From the swift sweep of wings
   The atmosphere in flaming sparkles flew;                             _125
   And where the burning wheels
   Eddied above the mountain's loftiest peak
   Was traced a line of lightning.
   Now far above a rock the utmost verge
   Of the wide earth it flew,                                           _130
   The rival of the Andes, whose dark brow
   Frowned o'er the silver sea.
   Far, far below the chariot's stormy path,
   Calm as a slumbering babe,
   Tremendous ocean lay.                                                _135
   Its broad and silent mirror gave to view
   The pale and waning stars,
   The chariot's fiery track,
   And the grey light of morn
   Tingeing those fleecy clouds                                         _140
   That cradled in their folds the infant dawn.
   The chariot seemed to fly
   Through the abyss of an immense concave,
   Radiant with million constellations, tinged
   With shades of infinite colour,                                      _145
   And semicircled with a belt
   Flashing incessant meteors.
   
   As they approached their goal,
   The winged shadows seemed to gather speed.
   The sea no longer was distinguished; earth                           _150
   Appeared a vast and shadowy sphere, suspended
   In the black concave of heaven
   With the sun's cloudless orb,
   Whose rays of rapid light
   Parted around the chariot's swifter course,                          _155
   And fell like ocean's feathery spray
   Dashed from the boiling surge
   Before a vessel's prow.
   
   The magic car moved on.
   Earth's distant orb appeared                                         _160
   The smallest light that twinkles in the heavens,
   Whilst round the chariot's way
   Innumerable systems widely rolled,
   And countless spheres diffused
   An ever varying glory.                                               _165
   It was a sight of wonder! Some were horned,
   And like the moon's argentine crescent hung
   In the dark dome of heaven; some did shed
   A clear mild beam like Hesperus, while the sea
   Yet glows with fading sunlight; others dashed                        _170
   Athwart the night with trains of bickering fire,
   Like sphered worlds to death and ruin driven;
   Some shone like stars, and as the chariot passed
   Bedimmed all other light.
   
   Spirit of Nature! here                                               _175
   In this interminable wilderness
   Of worlds, at whose involved immensity
   Even soaring fancy staggers,
   Here is thy fitting temple.
   Yet not the lightest leaf                                            _180
   That quivers to the passing breeze
   Is less instinct with thee,--
   Yet not the meanest worm.
   That lurks in graves and fattens on the dead,
   Less shares thy eternal breath.                                      _185
   Spirit of Nature! thou
   Imperishable as this glorious scene,
   Here is thy fitting temple.
   
   If solitude hath ever led thy steps
   To the shore of the immeasurable sea,                                _190
   And thou hast lingered there
   Until the sun's broad orb
   Seemed resting on the fiery line of ocean,
   Thou must have marked the braided webs of gold
   That without motion hang                                             _195
   Over the sinking sphere:
   Thou must have marked the billowy mountain clouds,
   Edged with intolerable radiancy,
   Towering like rocks of jet
   Above the burning deep:                                              _200
   And yet there is a moment
   When the sun's highest point
   Peers like a star o'er ocean's western edge,
   When those far clouds of feathery purple gleam
   Like fairy lands girt by some heavenly sea:                          _205
   Then has thy rapt imagination soared
   Where in the midst of all existing things
   The temple of the mightiest Daemon stands.
   
   Yet not the golden islands
   That gleam amid yon flood of purple light,                           _210
   Nor the feathery curtains
   That canopy the sun's resplendent couch,
   Nor the burnished ocean waves
   Paving that gorgeous dome,
   So fair, so wonderful a sight                                        _215
   As the eternal temple could afford.
   The elements of all that human thought
   Can frame of lovely or sublime, did join
   To rear the fabric of the fane, nor aught
   Of earth may image forth its majesty.                                _220
   Yet likest evening's vault that faery hall,
   As heaven low resting on the wave it spread
   Its floors of flashing light,
   Its vast and azure dome;
   And on the verge of that obscure abyss                               _225
   Where crystal battlements o'erhang the gulf
   Of the dark world, ten thousand spheres diffuse
   Their lustre through its adamantine gates.
   
   The magic car no longer moved;
   The Daemon and the Spirit                                            _230
   Entered the eternal gates.
   Those clouds of aery gold
   That slept in glittering billows
   Beneath the azure canopy,
   With the ethereal footsteps trembled not;                            _235
   While slight and odorous mists
   Floated to strains of thrilling melody
   Through the vast columns and the pearly shrines.
   
   The Daemon and the Spirit
   Approached the overhanging battlement,                               _240
   Below lay stretched the boundless universe!
   There, far as the remotest line
   That limits swift imagination's flight.
   Unending orbs mingled in mazy motion,
   Immutably fulfilling                                                 _245
   Eternal Nature's law.
   Above, below, around,
   The circling systems formed
   A wilderness of harmony.
   Each with undeviating aim                                            _250
   In eloquent silence through the depths of space
   Pursued its wondrous way.--
   
   Awhile the Spirit paused in ecstasy.
   Yet soon she saw, as the vast spheres swept by,
   Strange things within their belted orbs appear.                      _255
   Like animated frenzies, dimly moved
   Shadows, and skeletons, and fiendly shapes,
   Thronging round human graves, and o'er the dead
   Sculpturing records for each memory
   In verse, such as malignant gods pronounce,                          _260
   Blasting the hopes of men, when heaven and hell
   Confounded burst in ruin o'er the world:
   And they did build vast trophies, instruments
   Of murder, human bones, barbaric gold,
   Skins torn from living men, and towers of skulls                     _265
   With sightless holes gazing on blinder heaven,
   Mitres, and crowns, and brazen chariots stained
   With blood, and scrolls of mystic wickedness,
   The sanguine codes of venerable crime.
   The likeness of a throned king came by.                              _270
   When these had passed, bearing upon his brow
   A threefold crown; his countenance was calm.
   His eye severe and cold; but his right hand
   Was charged with bloody coin, and he did gnaw
   By fits, with secret smiles, a human heart                           _275
   Concealed beneath his robe; and motley shapes,
   A multitudinous throng, around him knelt.
   With bosoms bare, and bowed heads, and false looks
   Of true submission, as the sphere rolled by.
   Brooking no eye to witness their foul shame,                         _280
   Which human hearts must feel, while human tongues
   Tremble to speak, they did rage horribly,
   Breathing in self-contempt fierce blasphemies
   Against the Daemon of the World, and high
   Hurling their armed hands where the pure Spirit,                     _285
   Serene and inaccessibly secure,
   Stood on an isolated pinnacle.
   The flood of ages combating below,
   The depth of the unbounded universe
   Above, and all around                                                _290
   Necessity's unchanging harmony.
   
   PART 2.
   
   [Sections 8 and 9 of "Queen Mab" rehandled by Shelley. First printed
   in 1876 by Mr. H. Buxton Forman, C.B., by whose kind permission it is
   here reproduced. See Editor's Introductory Note to "Queen Mab".]
   
   O happy Earth! reality of Heaven!
   To which those restless powers that ceaselessly
   Throng through the human universe aspire;
   Thou consummation of all mortal hope!                                _295
   Thou glorious prize of blindly-working will!
   Whose rays, diffused throughout all space and time,
   Verge to one point and blend for ever there:
   Of purest spirits thou pure dwelling-place!
   Where care and sorrow, impotence and crime,                          _300
   Languor, disease, and ignorance dare not come:
   O happy Earth, reality of Heaven!
   
   Genius has seen thee in her passionate dreams,
   And dim forebodings of thy loveliness,
   Haunting the human heart, have there entwined                        _305
   Those rooted hopes, that the proud Power of Evil
   Shall not for ever on this fairest world
   Shake pestilence and war, or that his slaves
   With blasphemy for prayer, and human blood
   For sacrifice, before his shrine for ever                            _310
   In adoration bend, or Erebus
   With all its banded fiends shall not uprise
   To overwhelm in envy and revenge
   The dauntless and the good, who dare to hurl
   Defiance at his throne, girt tho' it be                              _315
   With Death's omnipotence. Thou hast beheld
   His empire, o'er the present and the past;
   It was a desolate sight--now gaze on mine,
   Futurity. Thou hoary giant Time,
   Render thou up thy half-devoured babes,--                            _320
   And from the cradles of eternity,
   Where millions lie lulled to their portioned sleep
   By the deep murmuring stream of passing things,
   Tear thou that gloomy shroud.--Spirit, behold
   Thy glorious destiny!
   
   The Spirit saw                                                       _325
   The vast frame of the renovated world
   Smile in the lap of Chaos, and the sense
   Of hope thro' her fine texture did suffuse
   Such varying glow, as summer evening casts
   On undulating clouds and deepening lakes.                            _330
   Like the vague sighings of a wind at even,
   That wakes the wavelets of the slumbering sea
   And dies on the creation of its breath,
   And sinks and rises, fails and swells by fits,
   Was the sweet stream of thought that with wild motion                _335
   Flowed o'er the Spirit's human sympathies.
   The mighty tide of thought had paused awhile,
   Which from the Daemon now like Ocean's stream
   Again began to pour.--
   
   To me is given
   The wonders of the human world to keep-                              _340
   Space, matter, time and mind--let the sight
   Renew and strengthen all thy failing hope.
   All things are recreated, and the flame
   Of consentaneous love inspires all life:
   The fertile bosom of the earth gives suck                            _345
   To myriads, who still grow beneath her care,
   Rewarding her with their pure perfectness:
   The balmy breathings of the wind inhale
   Her virtues, and diffuse them all abroad:
   Health floats amid the gentle atmosphere,                            _350
   Glows in the fruits, and mantles on the stream;
   No storms deform the beaming brow of heaven,
   Nor scatter in the freshness of its pride
   The foliage of the undecaying trees;
   But fruits are ever ripe, flowers ever fair,                         _355
   And Autumn proudly bears her matron grace,
   Kindling a flush on the fair cheek of Spring,
   Whose virgin bloom beneath the ruddy fruit
   Reflects its tint and blushes into love.
   
   The habitable earth is full of bliss;                                _360
   Those wastes of frozen billows that were hurled
   By everlasting snow-storms round the poles,
   Where matter dared not vegetate nor live,
   But ceaseless frost round the vast solitude
   Bound its broad zone of stillness, are unloosed;                     _365
   And fragrant zephyrs there from spicy isles
   Ruffle the placid ocean-deep, that rolls
   Its broad, bright surges to the sloping sand,
   Whose roar is wakened into echoings sweet
   To murmur through the heaven-breathing groves                        _370
   And melodise with man's blest nature there.
   
   The vast tract of the parched and sandy waste
   Now teems with countless rills and shady woods,
   Corn-fields and pastures and white cottages;
   And where the startled wilderness did hear                           _375
   A savage conqueror stained in kindred blood,
   Hymmng his victory, or the milder snake
   Crushing the bones of some frail antelope
   Within his brazen folds--the dewy lawn,
   Offering sweet incense to the sunrise, smiles                        _380
   To see a babe before his mother's door,
   Share with the green and golden basilisk
   That comes to lick his feet, his morning's meal.
   
   Those trackless deeps, where many a weary sail
   Has seen, above the illimitable plain,                               _385
   Morning on night and night on morning rise,
   Whilst still no land to greet the wanderer spread
   Its shadowy mountains on the sunbright sea,
   Where the loud roarings of the tempest-waves
   So long have mingled with the gusty wind                             _390
   In melancholy loneliness, and swept
   The desert of those ocean solitudes,
   But vocal to the sea-bird's harrowing shriek,
   The bellowing monster, and the rushing storm,
   Now to the sweet and many-mingling sounds                            _395
   Of kindliest human impulses respond:
   Those lonely realms bright garden-isles begem,
   With lightsome clouds and shining seas between,
   And fertile valleys resonant with bliss,
   Whilst green woods overcanopy the wave,                              _400
   Which like a toil-worn labourer leaps to shore,
   To meet the kisses of the flowerets there.
   
   Man chief perceives the change, his being notes
   The gradual renovation, and defines
   Each movement of its progress on his mind.                           _405
   Man, where the gloom of the long polar night
   Lowered o'er the snow-clad rocks and frozen soil,
   Where scarce the hardiest herb that braves the frost
   Basked in the moonlight's ineffectual glow,
   Shrank with the plants, and darkened with the night;                 _410
   Nor where the tropics bound the realms of day
   With a broad belt of mingling cloud and flame,
   Where blue mists through the unmoving atmosphere
   Scattered the seeds of pestilence, and fed
   Unnatural vegetation, where the land                                 _415
   Teemed with all earthquake, tempest and disease,
   Was man a nobler being; slavery
   Had crushed him to his country's blood-stained dust.
   
   Even where the milder zone afforded man
   A seeming shelter, yet contagion there,                              _420
   Blighting his being with unnumbered ills,
   Spread like a quenchless fire; nor truth availed
   Till late to arrest its progress, or create
   That peace which first in bloodless victory waved
   Her snowy standard o'er this favoured clime:                         _425
   There man was long the train-bearer of slaves,
   The mimic of surrounding misery,
   The jackal of ambition's lion-rage,
   The bloodhound of religion's hungry zeal.
   
   Here now the human being stands adorning                             _430
   This loveliest earth with taintless body and mind;
   Blest from his birth with all bland impulses,
   Which gently in his noble bosom wake
   All kindly passions and all pure desires.
   Him, still from hope to hope the bliss pursuing,                     _435
   Which from the exhaustless lore of human weal
   Dawns on the virtuous mind, the thoughts that rise
   In time-destroying infiniteness gift
   With self-enshrined eternity, that mocks
   The unprevailing hoariness of age,                                   _440
   And man, once fleeting o'er the transient scene
   Swift as an unremembered vision, stands
   Immortal upon earth: no longer now
   He slays the beast that sports around his dwelling
   And horribly devours its mangled flesh,                              _445
   Or drinks its vital blood, which like a stream
   Of poison thro' his fevered veins did flow
   Feeding a plague that secretly consumed
   His feeble frame, and kindling in his mind
   Hatred, despair, and fear and vain belief,                           _450
   The germs of misery, death, disease and crime.
   No longer now the winged habitants,
   That in the woods their sweet lives sing away,
   Flee from the form of man; but gather round,
   And prune their sunny feathers on the hands                          _455
   Which little children stretch in friendly sport
   Towards these dreadless partners of their play.
   All things are void of terror: man has lost
   His desolating privilege, and stands
   An equal amidst equals: happiness                                    _460
   And science dawn though late upon the earth;
   Peace cheers the mind, health renovates the frame;
   Disease and pleasure cease to mingle here,
   Reason and passion cease to combat there;
   Whilst mind unfettered o'er the earth extends                        _465
   Its all-subduing energies, and wields
   The sceptre of a vast dominion there.
   
   Mild is the slow necessity of death:
   The tranquil spirit fails beneath its grasp,
   Without a groan, almost without a fear,                              _470
   Resigned in peace to the necessity,
   Calm as a voyager to some distant land,
   And full of wonder, full of hope as he.
   The deadly germs of languor and disease
   Waste in the human frame, and Nature gifts                           _475
   With choicest boons her human worshippers.
   How vigorous now the athletic form of age!
   How clear its open and unwrinkled brow!
   Where neither avarice, cunning, pride, or care,
   Had stamped the seal of grey deformity                               _480
   On all the mingling lineaments of time.
   How lovely the intrepid front of youth!
   How sweet the smiles of taintless infancy.
   
   Within the massy prison's mouldering courts,
   Fearless and free the ruddy children play,                           _485
   Weaving gay chaplets for their innocent brows
   With the green ivy and the red wall-flower,
   That mock the dungeon's unavailing gloom;
   The ponderous chains, and gratings of strong iron,
   There rust amid the accumulated ruins                                _490
   Now mingling slowly with their native earth:
   There the broad beam of day, which feebly once
   Lighted the cheek of lean captivity
   With a pale and sickly glare, now freely shines
   On the pure smiles of infant playfulness:                            _495
   No more the shuddering voice of hoarse despair
   Peals through the echoing vaults, but soothing notes
   Of ivy-fingered winds and gladsome birds
   And merriment are resonant around.
   
   The fanes of Fear and Falsehood hear no more                         _500
   The voice that once waked multitudes to war
   Thundering thro' all their aisles: but now respond
   To the death dirge of the melancholy wind:
   It were a sight of awfulness to see
   The works of faith and slavery, so vast,                             _505
   So sumptuous, yet withal so perishing!
   Even as the corpse that rests beneath their wall.
   A thousand mourners deck the pomp of death
   To-day, the breathing marble glows above
   To decorate its memory, and tongues                                  _510
   Are busy of its life: to-morrow, worms
   In silence and in darkness seize their prey.
   These ruins soon leave not a wreck behind:
   Their elements, wide-scattered o'er the globe,
   To happier shapes are moulded, and become                            _515
   Ministrant to all blissful impulses:
   Thus human things are perfected, and earth,
   Even as a child beneath its mother's love,
   Is strengthened in all excellence, and grows
   Fairer and nobler with each passing year.                            _520
   
   Now Time his dusky pennons o'er the scene
   Closes in steadfast darkness, and the past
   Fades from our charmed sight. My task is done:
   Thy lore is learned. Earth's wonders are thine own,
   With all the fear and all the hope they bring.                       _525
   My spells are past: the present now recurs.
   Ah me! a pathless wilderness remains
   Yet unsubdued by man's reclaiming hand.
   
   Yet, human Spirit, bravely hold thy course,
   Let virtue teach thee firmly to pursue                               _530
   The gradual paths of an aspiring change:
   For birth and life and death, and that strange state
   Before the naked powers that thro' the world
   Wander like winds have found a human home,
   All tend to perfect happiness, and urge                              _535
   The restless wheels of being on their way,
   Whose flashing spokes, instinct with infinite life,
   Bicker and burn to gain their destined goal:
   For birth but wakes the universal mind
   Whose mighty streams might else in silence flow                      _540
   Thro' the vast world, to individual sense
   Of outward shows, whose unexperienced shape
   New modes of passion to its frame may lend;
   Life is its state of action, and the store
   Of all events is aggregated there                                    _545
   That variegate the eternal universe;
   Death is a gate of dreariness and gloom,
   That leads to azure isles and beaming skies
   And happy regions of eternal hope.
   Therefore, O Spirit! fearlessly bear on:                             _550
   Though storms may break the primrose on its stalk,
   Though frosts may blight the freshness of its bloom,
   Yet spring's awakening breath will woo the earth,
   To feed with kindliest dews its favourite flower,
   That blooms in mossy banks and darksome glens,                       _555
   Lighting the green wood with its sunny smile.
   
   Fear not then, Spirit, death's disrobing hand,
   So welcome when the tyrant is awake,
   So welcome when the bigot's hell-torch flares;
   'Tis but the voyage of a darksome hour,                              _560
   The transient gulf-dream of a startling sleep.
   For what thou art shall perish utterly,
   But what is thine may never cease to be;
   Death is no foe to virtue: earth has seen
   Love's brightest roses on the scaffold bloom,                        _565
   Mingling with freedom's fadeless laurels there,
   And presaging the truth of visioned bliss.
   Are there not hopes within thee, which this scene
   Of linked and gradual being has confirmed?
   Hopes that not vainly thou, and living fires                         _570
   Of mind as radiant and as pure as thou,
   Have shone upon the paths of men--return,
   Surpassing Spirit, to that world, where thou
   Art destined an eternal war to wage
   With tyranny and falsehood, and uproot                               _575
   The germs of misery from the human heart.
   Thine is the hand whose piety would soothe
   The thorny pillow of unhappy crime,
   Whose impotence an easy pardon gains,
   Watching its wanderings as a friend's disease:                       _580
   Thine is the brow whose mildness would defy
   Its fiercest rage, and brave its sternest will,
   When fenced by power and master of the world.
   Thou art sincere and good; of resolute mind,
   Free from heart-withering custom's cold control,                     _585
   Of passion lofty, pure and unsubdued.
   Earth's pride and meanness could not vanquish thee,
   And therefore art thou worthy of the boon
   Which thou hast now received: virtue shall keep
   Thy footsteps in the path that thou hast trod,                       _590
   And many days of beaming hope shall bless
   Thy spotless life of sweet and sacred love.
   Go, happy one, and give that bosom joy
   Whose sleepless spirit waits to catch
   Light, life and rapture from thy smile.                              _595
   
   The Daemon called its winged ministers.
   Speechless with bliss the Spirit mounts the car,
   That rolled beside the crystal battlement,
   Bending her beamy eyes in thankfulness.
   The burning wheels inflame                                           _600
   The steep descent of Heaven's untrodden way.
   Fast and far the chariot flew:
   The mighty globes that rolled
   Around the gate of the Eternal Fane
   Lessened by slow degrees, and soon appeared                          _605
   Such tiny twinklers as the planet orbs
   That ministering on the solar power
   With borrowed light pursued their narrower way.
   Earth floated then below:
   The chariot paused a moment;                                         _610
   The Spirit then descended:
   And from the earth departing
   The shadows with swift wings
   Speeded like thought upon the light of Heaven.
   
   The Body and the Soul united then,                                   _615
   A gentle start convulsed Ianthe's frame:
   Her veiny eyelids quietly unclosed;
   Moveless awhile the dark blue orbs remained:
   She looked around in wonder and beheld
   Henry, who kneeled in silence by her couch,                          _620
   Watching her sleep with looks of speechless love,
   And the bright beaming stars
   That through the casement shone.
   
   
   Notes:
   _87 Regarding cj. A.C. Bradley.)
   
   ***
   
   
   ALASTOR: OR, THE SPIRIT OF SOLITUDE.
   
   [Composed at Bishopsgate Heath, near Windsor Park, 1815 (autumn);
   published, as the title-piece of a slender volume containing other
   poems (see "Biographical List", by Baldwin, Cradock and Joy, London,
   1816 (March). Reprinted--the first edition being sold out--amongst the
   "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Sources of the text are (1) the editio
   princeps, 1816; (2) "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (3) "Poetical Works",
   1839, editions 1st and 2nd. For (2) and (3) Mrs. Shelley is
   responsible.]
   
   PREFACE.
   
   The poem entitled "Alastor" may be considered as allegorical of one of
   the most interesting situations of the human mind. It represents a
   youth of uncorrupted feelings and adventurous genius led forth by an
   imagination inflamed and purified through familiarity with all that is
   excellent and majestic, to the contemplation of the universe. He
   drinks deep of the fountains of knowledge, and is still insatiate. The
   magnificence and beauty of the external world sinks profoundly into
   the frame of his conceptions, and affords to their modifications at
   variety not to be exhausted. so long as it is possible for his desires
   to point towards objects thus infinite and unmeasured, he is joyous,
   and tranquil, and self-possessed. But the period arrives when these
   objects cease to suffice. His mind is at length suddenly awakened and
   thirsts for intercourse with an intelligence similar to itself. He
   images to himself the Being whom he loves. Conversant with
   speculations of the sublimest and most perfect natures, the vision in
   which he embodies his own imaginations unites all of wonderful, or
   wise, or beautiful, which the poet, the philosopher, or the lover
   could depicture. The intellectual faculties, the imagination, the
   functions of sense, have their respective requisitions on the sympathy
   of corresponding powers in other human beings. The Poet is represented
   as uniting these requisitions, and attaching them to a single image.
   He seeks in vain for a prototype of his conception. Blasted by his
   disappointment, he descends to an untimely grave.
   
   The picture is not barren of instruction to actual men. The Poet's
   self-centred seclusion was avenged by the furies of an irresistible
   passion pursuing him to speedy ruin. But that Power which strikes the
   luminaries of the world with sudden darkness and extinction, by
   awakening them to too exquisite a perception of its influences, dooms
   to a slow and poisonous decay those manner spirits that dare to abjure
   its dominion. Their destiny is more abject and inglorious as their
   delinquency is more contemptible and pernicious. They who, deluded by
   no generous error, instigated by no sacred thirst of doubtful
   knowledge, duped by no illustrious superstition, loving nothing on
   this earth, and cherishing no hopes beyond, yet keep aloof from
   sympathies with their kind, rejoicing neither in human joy nor
   mourning with human grief; these, and such as they, have their
   apportioned curse. They languish, because none feel with them their
   common nature. They are morally dead. They are neither friends, nor
   lovers, nor fathers, nor citizens of the world, nor benefactors of
   their country. Among those who attempt to exist without human
   sympathy, the pure and tender-hearted perish through the intensity and
   passion of their search after its communities, when the vacancy of
   their spirit suddenly makes itself felt. All else, selfish, blind, and
   torpid, are those unforeseeing multitudes who constitute, together
   with their own, the lasting misery and loneliness of the world. Those
   who love not their fellow-beings live unfruitful lives, and prepare
   for their old age a miserable grave.
   
   'The good die first,
   And those whose hearts are dry as summer dust,
   Burn to the socket!'
   
   December 14, 1815.
   
   
   ALASTOR: OR, THE SPIRIT OF SOLITUDE.
   
   Earth, Ocean, Air, beloved brotherhood!
   If our great Mother has imbued my soul
   With aught of natural piety to feel
   Your love, and recompense the boon with mine;
   If dewy morn, and odorous noon, and even,                            _5
   With sunset and its gorgeous ministers,
   And solemn midnight's tingling silentness;
   If autumn's hollow sighs in the sere wood,
   And winter robing with pure snow and crowns
   Of starry ice the grey grass and bare boughs;                        _10
   If spring's voluptuous pantings when she breathes
   Her first sweet kisses, have been dear to me;
   If no bright bird, insect, or gentle beast
   I consciously have injured, but still loved
   And cherished these my kindred; then forgive                         _15
   This boast, beloved brethren, and withdraw
   No portion of your wonted favour now!
   
   Mother of this unfathomable world!
   Favour my solemn song, for I have loved
   Thee ever, and thee only; I have watched                             _20
   Thy shadow, and the darkness of thy steps,
   And my heart ever gazes on the depth
   Of thy deep mysteries. I have made my bed
   In charnels and on coffins, where black death
   Keeps record of the trophies won from thee,                          _25
   Hoping to still these obstinate questionings
   Of thee and thine, by forcing some lone ghost,
   Thy messenger, to render up the tale
   Of what we are. In lone and silent hours,
   When night makes a weird sound of its own stillness,                 _30
   Like an inspired and desperate alchymist
   Staking his very life on some dark hope,
   Have I mixed awful talk and asking looks
   With my most innocent love, until strange tears,
   Uniting with those breathless kisses, made                           _35
   Such magic as compels the charmed night
   To render up thy charge:...and, though ne'er yet
   Thou hast unveiled thy inmost sanctuary,
   Enough from incommunicable dream,
   And twilight phantasms, and deep noon-day thought,                   _40
   Has shone within me, that serenely now
   And moveless, as a long-forgotten lyre
   Suspended in the solitary dome
   Of some mysterious and deserted fane,
   I wait thy breath, Great Parent, that my strain                      _45
   May modulate with murmurs of the air,
   And motions of the forests and the sea,
   And voice of living beings, and woven hymns
   Of night and day, and the deep heart of man.
   
   There was a Poet whose untimely tomb                                 _50
   No human hands with pious reverence reared,
   But the charmed eddies of autumnal winds
   Built o'er his mouldering bones a pyramid
   Of mouldering leaves in the waste wilderness:--
   A lovely youth,--no mourning maiden decked                           _55
   With weeping flowers, or votive cypress wreath,
   The lone couch of his everlasting sleep:--
   Gentle, and brave, and generous,--no lorn bard
   Breathed o'er his dark fate one melodious sigh:
   He lived, he died, he sung in solitude.                              _60
   Strangers have wept to hear his passionate notes,
   And virgins, as unknown he passed, have pined
   And wasted for fond love of his wild eyes.
   The fire of those soft orbs has ceased to burn,
   And Silence, too enamoured of that voice,                            _65
   Locks its mute music in her rugged cell.
   
   By solemn vision, and bright silver dream
   His infancy was nurtured. Every sight
   And sound from the vast earth and ambient air,
   Sent to his heart its choicest impulses.                             _70
   The fountains of divine philosophy
   Fled not his thirsting lips, and all of great,
   Or good, or lovely, which the sacred past
   In truth or fable consecrates, he felt
   And knew. When early youth had passed, he left                       _75
   His cold fireside and alienated home
   To seek strange truths in undiscovered lands.
   Many a wide waste and tangled wilderness
   Has lured his fearless steps; and he has bought
   With his sweet voice and eyes, from savage men,                      _80
   His rest and food. Nature's most secret steps
   He like her shadow has pursued, where'er
   The red volcano overcanopies
   Its fields of snow and pinnacles of ice
   With burning smoke, or where bitumen lakes                           _85
   On black bare pointed islets ever beat
   With sluggish surge, or where the secret caves,
   Rugged and dark, winding among the springs
   Of fire and poison, inaccessible
   To avarice or pride, their starry domes                              _90
   Of diamond and of gold expand above
   Numberless and immeasurable halls,
   Frequent with crystal column, and clear shrines
   Of pearl, and thrones radiant with chrysolite.
   Nor had that scene of ampler majesty                                 _95
   Than gems or gold, the varying roof of heaven
   And the green earth lost in his heart its claims
   To love and wonder; he would linger long
   In lonesome vales, making the wild his home,
   Until the doves and squirrels would partake                          _100
   From his innocuous hand his bloodless food,
   Lured by the gentle meaning of his looks,
   And the wild antelope, that starts whene'er
   The dry leaf rustles in the brake, suspend
   Her timid steps, to gaze upon a form
   More graceful than her own.                                          _105
   His wandering step,
   Obedient to high thoughts, has visited
   The awful ruins of the days of old:
   Athens, and Tyre, and Balbec, and the waste
   Where stood Jerusalem, the fallen towers                             _110
   Of Babylon, the eternal pyramids,
   Memphis and Thebes, and whatsoe'er of strange,
   Sculptured on alabaster obelisk,
   Or jasper tomb, or mutilated sphynx,
   Dark Aethiopia in her desert hills                                   _115
   Conceals. Among the ruined temples there,
   Stupendous columns, and wild images
   Of more than man, where marble daemons watch
   The Zodiac's brazen mystery, and dead men
   Hang their mute thoughts on the mute walls around,                   _120
   He lingered, poring on memorials
   Of the world's youth: through the long burning day
   Gazed on those speechless shapes; nor, when the moon
   Filled the mysterious halls with floating shades
   Suspended he that task, but ever gazed                               _125
   And gazed, till meaning on his vacant mind
   Flashed like strong inspiration, and he saw
   The thrilling secrets of the birth of time.
   
   Meanwhile an Arab maiden brought his food,
   Her daily portion, from her father's tent,                           _130
   And spread her matting for his couch, and stole
   From duties and repose to tend his steps,
   Enamoured, yet not daring for deep awe
   To speak her love:--and watched his nightly sleep,
   Sleepless herself, to gaze upon his lips                             _135
   Parted in slumber, whence the regular breath
   Of innocent dreams arose; then, when red morn
   Made paler the pale moon, to her cold home
   Wildered, and wan, and panting, she returned.
   
   The Poet, wandering on, through Arabie,                              _140
   And Persia, and the wild Carmanian waste,
   And o'er the aerial mountains which pour down
   Indus and Oxus from their icy caves,
   In joy and exultation held his way;
   Till in the vale of Cashmire, far within                             _145
   Its loneliest dell, where odorous plants entwine
   Beneath the hollow rocks a natural bower,
   Beside a sparkling rivulet he stretched
   His languid limbs. A vision on his sleep
   There came, a dream of hopes that never yet                          _150
   Had flushed his cheek. He dreamed a veiled maid
   Sate near him, talking in low solemn tones.
   Her voice was like the voice of his own soul
   Heard in the calm of thought; its music long,
   Like woven sounds of streams and breezes, held                       _155
   His inmost sense suspended in its web
   Of many-coloured woof and shifting hues.
   Knowledge and truth and virtue were her theme,
   And lofty hopes of divine liberty,
   Thoughts the most dear to him, and poesy,                            _160
   Herself a poet. Soon the solemn mood
   Of her pure mind kindled through all her frame
   A permeating fire; wild numbers then
   She raised, with voice stifled in tremulous sobs
   Subdued by its own pathos; her fair hands                            _165
   Were bare alone, sweeping from some strange harp
   Strange symphony, and in their branching veins
   The eloquent blood told an ineffable tale.
   The beating of her heart was heard to fill
   The pauses of her music, and her breath                              _170
   Tumultuously accorded with those fits
   Of intermitted song. Sudden she rose,
   As if her heart impatiently endured
   Its bursting burthen: at the sound he turned,
   And saw by the warm light of their own life                          _175
   Her glowing limbs beneath the sinuous veil
   Of woven wind, her outspread arms now bare,
   Her dark locks floating in the breath of night,
   Her beamy bending eyes, her parted lips
   Outstretched, and pale, and quivering eagerly.                       _180
   His strong heart sunk and sickened with excess
   Of love. He reared his shuddering limbs and quelled
   His gasping breath, and spread his arms to meet
   Her panting bosom:...she drew back a while,
   Then, yielding to the irresistible joy,                              _185
   With frantic gesture and short breathless cry
   Folded his frame in her dissolving arms.
   Now blackness veiled his dizzy eyes, and night
   Involved and swallowed up the vision; sleep,
   Like a dark flood suspended in its course,                           _190
   Rolled back its impulse on his vacant brain.
   
   Roused by the shock he started from his trance--
   The cold white light of morning, the blue moon
   Low in the west, the clear and garish hills,
   The distinct valley and the vacant woods,                            _195
   Spread round him where he stood. Whither have fled
   The hues of heaven that canopied his bower
   Of yesternight? The sounds that soothed his sleep,
   The mystery and the majesty of Earth,
   The joy, the exultation? His wan eyes                                _200
   Gaze on the empty scene as vacantly
   As ocean's moon looks on the moon in heaven.
   The spirit of sweet human love has sent
   A vision to the sleep of him who spurned
   Her choicest gifts. He eagerly pursues                               _205
   Beyond the realms of dream that fleeting shade;
   He overleaps the bounds. Alas! Alas!
   Were limbs, and breath, and being intertwined
   Thus treacherously? Lost, lost, for ever lost
   In the wide pathless desert of dim sleep,                            _210
   That beautiful shape! Does the dark gate of death
   Conduct to thy mysterious paradise,
   O Sleep? Does the bright arch of rainbow clouds
   And pendent mountains seen in the calm lake,
   Lead only to a black and watery depth,                               _215
   While death's blue vault, with loathliest vapours hung,
   Where every shade which the foul grave exhales
   Hides its dead eye from the detested day,
   Conducts, O Sleep, to thy delightful realms?
   This doubt with sudden tide flowed on his heart;                     _220
   The insatiate hope which it awakened, stung
   His brain even like despair.
   While daylight held
   The sky, the Poet kept mute conference
   With his still soul. At night the passion came,
   Like the fierce fiend of a distempered dream,                        _225
   And shook him from his rest, and led him forth
   Into the darkness.--As an eagle, grasped
   In folds of the green serpent, feels her breast
   Burn with the poison, and precipitates
   Through night and day, tempest, and calm, and cloud,                 _230
   Frantic with dizzying anguish, her blind flight
   O'er the wide aery wilderness: thus driven
   By the bright shadow of that lovely dream,
   Beneath the cold glare of the desolate night,
   Through tangled swamps and deep precipitous dells,                   _235
   Startling with careless step the moonlight snake,
   He fled. Red morning dawned upon his flight,
   Shedding the mockery of its vital hues
   Upon his cheek of death. He wandered on
   Till vast Aornos seen from Petra's steep                             _240
   Hung o'er the low horizon like a cloud;
   Through Balk, and where the desolated tombs
   Of Parthian kings scatter to every wind
   Their wasting dust, wildly he wandered on,
   Day after day a weary waste of hours,                                _245
   Bearing within his life the brooding care
   That ever fed on its decaying flame.
   And now his limbs were lean; his scattered hair,
   Sered by the autumn of strange suffering
   Sung dirges in the wind; his listless hand                           _250
   Hung like dead bone within its withered skin;
   Life, and the lustre that consumed it, shone
   As in a furnace burning secretly
   From his dark eyes alone. The cottagers,
   Who ministered with human charity                                    _255
   His human wants, beheld with wondering awe
   Their fleeting visitant. The mountaineer,
   Encountering on some dizzy precipice
   That spectral form, deemed that the Spirit of wind
   With lightning eyes, and eager breath, and feet                      _260
   Disturbing not the drifted snow, had paused
   In its career: the infant would conceal
   His troubled visage in his mother's robe
   In terror at the glare of those wild eyes,
   To remember their strange light in many a dream                      _265
   Of after-times; but youthful maidens, taught
   By nature, would interpret half the woe
   That wasted him, would call him with false names
   Brother and friend, would press his pallid hand
   At parting, and watch, dim through tears, the path                   _270
   Of his departure from their father's door.
   
   At length upon the lone Chorasmian shore
   He paused, a wide and melancholy waste
   Of putrid marshes. A strong impulse urged
   His steps to the sea-shore. A swan was there,                        _275
   Beside a sluggish stream among the reeds.
   It rose as he approached, and, with strong wings
   Scaling the upward sky, bent its bright course
   High over the immeasurable main.
   His eyes pursued its flight:--'Thou hast a home,                     _280
   Beautiful bird; thou voyagest to thine home,
   Where thy sweet mate will twine her downy neck
   With thine, and welcome thy return with eyes
   Bright in the lustre of their own fond joy.
   And what am I that I should linger here,                             _285
   With voice far sweeter than thy dying notes,
   Spirit more vast than thine, frame more attuned
   To beauty, wasting these surpassing powers
   In the deaf air, to the blind earth, and heaven
   That echoes not my thoughts?' A gloomy smile                         _290
   Of desperate hope wrinkled his quivering lips.
   For sleep, he knew, kept most relentlessly
   Its precious charge, and silent death exposed,
   Faithless perhaps as sleep, a shadowy lure,
   With doubtful smile mocking its own strange charms.                  _295
   
   Startled by his own thoughts he looked around.
   There was no fair fiend near him, not a sight
   Or sound of awe but in his own deep mind.
   A little shallop floating near the shore
   Caught the impatient wandering of his gaze.                          _300
   It had been long abandoned, for its sides
   Gaped wide with many a rift, and its frail joints
   Swayed with the undulations of the tide.
   A restless impulse urged him to embark
   And meet lone Death on the drear ocean's waste;                      _305
   For well he knew that mighty Shadow loves
   The slimy caverns of the populous deep.
   
   The day was fair and sunny; sea and sky
   Drank its inspiring radiance, and the wind
   Swept strongly from the shore, blackening the waves.                 _310
   Following his eager soul, the wanderer
   Leaped in the boat, he spread his cloak aloft
   On the bare mast, and took his lonely seat,
   And felt the boat speed o'er the tranquil sea
   Like a torn cloud before the hurricane.                              _315
   
   As one that in a silver vision floats
   Obedient to the sweep of odorous winds
   Upon resplendent clouds, so rapidly
   Along the dark and ruffled waters fled
   The straining boat.--A whirlwind swept it on,                        _320
   With fierce gusts and precipitating force,
   Through the white ridges of the chafed sea.
   The waves arose. Higher and higher still
   Their fierce necks writhed beneath the tempest's scourge
   Like serpents struggling in a vulture's grasp.                       _325
   Calm and rejoicing in the fearful war
   Of wave ruining on wave, and blast on blast
   Descending, and black flood on whirlpool driven
   With dark obliterating course, he sate:
   As if their genii were the ministers                                 _330
   Appointed to conduct him to the light
   Of those beloved eyes, the Poet sate,
   Holding the steady helm. Evening came on,
   The beams of sunset hung their rainbow hues
   High 'mid the shifting domes of sheeted spray                        _335
   That canopied his path o'er the waste deep;
   Twilight, ascending slowly from the east,
   Entwined in duskier wreaths her braided locks
   O'er the fair front and radiant eyes of day;
   Night followed, clad with stars. On every side                       _340
   More horribly the multitudinous streams
   Of ocean's mountainous waste to mutual war
   Rushed in dark tumult thundering, as to mock
   The calm and spangled sky. The little boat
   Still fled before the storm; still fled, like foam                   _345
   Down the steep cataract of a wintry river;
   Now pausing on the edge of the riven wave;
   Now leaving far behind the bursting mass
   That fell, convulsing ocean: safely fled--
   As if that frail and wasted human form,                              _350
   Had been an elemental god.
   
   At midnight
   The moon arose; and lo! the ethereal cliffs
   Of Caucasus, whose icy summits shone
   Among the stars like sunlight, and around
   Whose caverned base the whirlpools and the waves                     _355
   Bursting and eddying irresistibly
   Rage and resound forever.--Who shall save?--
   The boat fled on,--the boiling torrent drove,--
   The crags closed round with black and jagged arms,
   The shattered mountain overhung the sea,                             _360
   And faster still, beyond all human speed,
   Suspended on the sweep of the smooth wave,
   The little boat was driven. A cavern there
   Yawned, and amid its slant and winding depths
   Ingulfed the rushing sea. The boat fled on                           _365
   With unrelaxing speed.--'Vision and Love!'
   The Poet cried aloud, 'I have beheld
   The path of thy departure. Sleep and death
   Shall not divide us long.'
   
   The boat pursued
   The windings of the cavern. Daylight shone                           _370
   At length upon that gloomy river's flow;
   Now, where the fiercest war among the waves
   Is calm, on the unfathomable stream
   The boat moved slowly. Where the mountain, riven,
   Exposed those black depths to the azure sky,                         _375
   Ere yet the flood's enormous volume fell
   Even to the base of Caucasus, with sound
   That shook the everlasting rocks, the mass
   Filled with one whirlpool all that ample chasm:
   Stair above stair the eddying waters rose,                           _380
   Circling immeasurably fast, and laved
   With alternating dash the gnarled roots
   Of mighty trees, that stretched their giant arms
   In darkness over it. I' the midst was left,
   Reflecting, yet distorting every cloud,                              _385
   A pool of treacherous and tremendous calm.
   Seized by the sway of the ascending stream,
   With dizzy swiftness, round, and round, and round,
   Ridge after ridge the straining boat arose,
   Till on the verge of the extremest curve,                            _390
   Where, through an opening of the rocky bank,
   The waters overflow, and a smooth spot
   Of glassy quiet mid those battling tides
   Is left, the boat paused shuddering.--Shall it sink
   Down the abyss? Shall the reverting stress                           _395
   Of that resistless gulf embosom it?
   Now shall it fall?--A wandering stream of wind,
   Breathed from the west, has caught the expanded sail,
   And, lo! with gentle motion, between banks
   Of mossy slope, and on a placid stream,                              _400
   Beneath a woven grove it sails, and, hark!
   The ghastly torrent mingles its far roar,
   With the breeze murmuring in the musical woods.
   Where the embowering trees recede, and leave
   A little space of green expanse, the cove                            _405
   Is closed by meeting banks, whose yellow flowers
   For ever gaze on their own drooping eyes,
   Reflected in the crystal calm. The wave
   Of the boat's motion marred their pensive task,
   Which naught but vagrant bird, or wanton wind,                       _410
   Or falling spear-grass, or their own decay
   Had e'er disturbed before. The Poet longed
   To deck with their bright hues his withered hair,
   But on his heart its solitude returned,
   And he forbore. Not the strong impulse hid                           _415
   In those flushed cheeks, bent eyes, and shadowy frame
   Had yet performed its ministry: it hung
   Upon his life, as lightning in a cloud
   Gleams, hovering ere it vanish, ere the floods
   Of night close over it.
   The noonday sun                                                      _420
   Now shone upon the forest, one vast mass
   Of mingling shade, whose brown magnificence
   A narrow vale embosoms. There, huge caves,
   Scooped in the dark base of their aery rocks,
   Mocking its moans, respond and roar for ever.                        _425
   The meeting boughs and implicated leaves
   Wove twilight o'er the Poet's path, as led
   By love, or dream, or god, or mightier Death,
   He sought in Nature's dearest haunt some bank,
   Her cradle, and his sepulchre. More dark                             _430
   And dark the shades accumulate. The oak,
   Expanding its immense and knotty arms,
   Embraces the light beech. The pyramids
   Of the tall cedar overarching frame
   Most solemn domes within, and far below,                             _435
   Like clouds suspended in an emerald sky,
   The ash and the acacia floating hang
   Tremulous and pale. Like restless serpents, clothed
   In rainbow and in fire, the parasites,
   Starred with ten thousand blossoms, flow around                      _440
   The grey trunks, and, as gamesome infants' eyes,
   With gentle meanings, and most innocent wiles,
   Fold their beams round the hearts of those that love,
   These twine their tendrils with the wedded boughs
   Uniting their close union; the woven leaves                          _445
   Make net-work of the dark blue light of day,
   And the night's noontide clearness, mutable
   As shapes in the weird clouds. Soft mossy lawns
   Beneath these canopies extend their swells,
   Fragrant with perfumed herbs, and eyed with blooms                   _450
   Minute yet beautiful. One darkest glen
   Sends from its woods of musk-rose, twined with jasmine,
   A soul-dissolving odour to invite
   To some more lovely mystery. Through the dell,
   Silence and Twilight here, twin-sisters, keep                        _455
   Their noonday watch, and sail among the shades,
   Like vaporous shapes half-seen; beyond, a well,
   Dark, gleaming, and of most translucent wave,
   Images all the woven boughs above,
   And each depending leaf, and every speck                             _460
   Of azure sky, darting between their chasms;
   Nor aught else in the liquid mirror laves
   Its portraiture, but some inconstant star
   Between one foliaged lattice twinkling fair,
   Or painted bird, sleeping beneath the moon,                          _465
   Or gorgeous insect floating motionless,
   Unconscious of the day, ere yet his wings
   Have spread their glories to the gaze of noon.
   
   Hither the Poet came. His eyes beheld
   Their own wan light through the reflected lines                      _470
   Of his thin hair, distinct in the dark depth
   Of that still fountain; as the human heart,
   Gazing in dreams over the gloomy grave,
   Sees its own treacherous likeness there. He heard
   The motion of the leaves, the grass that sprung                      _475
   Startled and glanced and trembled even to feel
   An unaccustomed presence, and the sound
   Of the sweet brook that from the secret springs
   Of that dark fountain rose. A Spirit seemed
   To stand beside him--clothed in no bright robes                      _480
   Of shadowy silver or enshrining light,
   Borrowed from aught the visible world affords
   Of grace, or majesty, or mystery;--
   But, undulating woods, and silent well,
   And leaping rivulet, and evening gloom                               _485
   Now deepening the dark shades, for speech assuming,
   Held commune with him, as if he and it
   Were all that was,--only...when his regard
   Was raised by intense pensiveness,...two eyes,
   Two starry eyes, hung in the gloom of thought,                       _490
   And seemed with their serene and azure smiles
   To beckon him.
   
   Obedient to the light
   That shone within his soul, he went, pursuing
   The windings of the dell.--The rivulet,
   Wanton and wild, through many a green ravine                         _495
   Beneath the forest flowed. Sometimes it fell
   Among the moss with hollow harmony
   Dark and profound. Now on the polished stones
   It danced; like childhood laughing as it went:
   Then, through the plain in tranquil wanderings crept,                _500
   Reflecting every herb and drooping bud
   That overhung its quietness.--'O stream!
   Whose source is inaccessibly profound,
   Whither do thy mysterious waters tend?
   Thou imagest my life. Thy darksome stillness,                        _505
   Thy dazzling waves, thy loud and hollow gulfs,
   Thy searchless fountain, and invisible course
   Have each their type in me; and the wide sky.
   And measureless ocean may declare as soon
   What oozy cavern or what wandering cloud                             _510
   Contains thy waters, as the universe
   Tell where these living thoughts reside, when stretched
   Upon thy flowers my bloodless limbs shall waste
   I' the passing wind!'
   
   Beside the grassy shore
   Of the small stream he went; he did impress                          _515
   On the green moss his tremulous step, that caught
   Strong shuddering from his burning limbs. As one
   Roused by some joyous madness from the couch
   Of fever, he did move; yet, not like him,
   Forgetful of the grave, where, when the flame                        _520
   Of his frail exultation shall be spent,
   He must descend. With rapid steps he went
   Beneath the shade of trees, beside the flow
   Of the wild babbling rivulet; and now
   The forest's solemn canopies were changed                            _525
   For the uniform and lightsome evening sky.
   Grey rocks did peep from the spare moss, and stemmed
   The struggling brook; tall spires of windlestrae
   Threw their thin shadows down the rugged slope,
   And nought but gnarled roots of ancient pines                        _530
   Branchless and blasted, clenched with grasping roots
   The unwilling soil. A gradual change was here,
   Yet ghastly. For, as fast years flow away,
   The smooth brow gathers, and the hair grows thin
   And white, and where irradiate dewy eyes                             _535
   Had shone, gleam stony orbs:--so from his steps
   Bright flowers departed, and the beautiful shade
   Of the green groves, with all their odorous winds
   And musical motions. Calm, he still pursued
   The stream, that with a larger volume now                            _540
   Rolled through the labyrinthine dell; and there
   Fretted a path through its descending curves
   With its wintry speed. On every side now rose
   Rocks, which, in unimaginable forms,
   Lifted their black and barren pinnacles                              _545
   In the light of evening, and its precipice
   Obscuring the ravine, disclosed above,
   Mid toppling stones, black gulfs and yawning caves,
   Whose windings gave ten thousand various tongues
   To the loud stream. Lo! where the pass expands                       _550
   Its stony jaws, the abrupt mountain breaks,
   And seems, with its accumulated crags,
   To overhang the world: for wide expand
   Beneath the wan stars and descending moon
   Islanded seas, blue mountains, mighty streams,                       _555
   Dim tracts and vast, robed in the lustrous gloom
   Of leaden-coloured even, and fiery hills
   Mingling their flames with twilight, on the verge
   Of the remote horizon. The near scene,
   In naked and severe simplicity,                                      _560
   Made contrast with the universe. A pine,
   Rock-rooted, stretched athwart the vacancy
   Its swinging boughs, to each inconstant blast
   Yielding one only response, at each pause
   In most familiar cadence, with the howl                              _565
   The thunder and the hiss of homeless streams
   Mingling its solemn song, whilst the broad river
   Foaming and hurrying o'er its rugged path,
   Fell into that immeasurable void
   Scattering its waters to the passing winds.                          _570
   
   Yet the grey precipice and solemn pine
   And torrent were not all;--one silent nook
   Was there. Even on the edge of that vast mountain,
   Upheld by knotty roots and fallen rocks,
   It overlooked in its serenity                                        _575
   The dark earth, and the bending vault of stars.
   It was a tranquil spot, that seemed to smile
   Even in the lap of horror. Ivy clasped
   The fissured stones with its entwining arms,
   And did embower with leaves for ever green,                          _580
   And berries dark, the smooth and even space
   Of its inviolated floor, and here
   The children of the autumnal whirlwind bore,
   In wanton sport, those bright leaves, whose decay,
   Red, yellow, or ethereally pale,                                     _585
   Rivals the pride of summer. 'Tis the haunt
   Of every gentle wind, whose breath can teach
   The wilds to love tranquillity. One step,
   One human step alone, has ever broken
   The stillness of its solitude:--one voice                            _590
   Alone inspired its echoes;--even that voice
   Which hither came, floating among the winds,
   And led the loveliest among human forms
   To make their wild haunts the depository
   Of all the grace and beauty that endued                              _595
   Its motions, render up its majesty,
   Scatter its music on the unfeeling storm,
   And to the damp leaves and blue cavern mould,
   Nurses of rainbow flowers and branching moss,
   Commit the colours of that varying cheek,                            _600
   That snowy breast, those dark and drooping eyes.
   
   The dim and horned moon hung low, and poured
   A sea of lustre on the horizon's verge
   That overflowed its mountains. Yellow mist
   Filled the unbounded atmosphere, and drank                           _605
   Wan moonlight even to fulness; not a star
   Shone, not a sound was heard; the very winds,
   Danger's grim playmates, on that precipice
   Slept, clasped in his embrace.--O, storm of death!
   Whose sightless speed divides this sullen night: 610
   And thou, colossal Skeleton, that, still
   Guiding its irresistible career
   In thy devastating omnipotence,
   Art king of this frail world, from the red field
   Of slaughter, from the reeking hospital,                             _615
   The patriot's sacred couch, the snowy bed
   Of innocence, the scaffold and the throne,
   A mighty voice invokes thee. Ruin calls
   His brother Death. A rare and regal prey
   He hath prepared, prowling around the world;                         _620
   Glutted with which thou mayst repose, and men
   Go to their graves like flowers or creeping worms,
   Nor ever more offer at thy dark shrine
   The unheeded tribute of a broken heart.
   
   When on the threshold of the green recess                            _625
   The wanderer's footsteps fell, he knew that death
   Was on him. Yet a little, ere it fled,
   Did he resign his high and holy soul
   To images of the majestic past,
   That paused within his passive being now,                            _630
   Like winds that bear sweet music, when they breathe
   Through some dim latticed chamber. He did place
   His pale lean hand upon the rugged trunk
   Of the old pine. Upon an ivied stone
   Reclined his languid head, his limbs did rest,                       _635
   Diffused and motionless, on the smooth brink
   Of that obscurest chasm;--and thus he lay,
   Surrendering to their final impulses
   The hovering powers of life. Hope and despair,
   The torturers, slept; no mortal pain or fear                         _640
   Marred his repose; the influxes of sense,
   And his own being unalloyed by pain,
   Yet feebler and more feeble, calmly fed
   The stream of thought, till he lay breathing there
   At peace, and faintly smiling:--his last sight                       _645
   Was the great moon, which o'er the western line
   Of the wide world her mighty horn suspended,
   With whose dun beams inwoven darkness seemed
   To mingle. Now upon the jagged hills
   It rests; and still as the divided frame                             _650
   Of the vast meteor sunk, the Poet's blood,
   That ever beat in mystic sympathy
   With nature's ebb and flow, grew feebler still:
   And when two lessening points of light alone
   Gleamed through the darkness, the alternate gasp                     _655
   Of his faint respiration scarce did stir
   The stagnate night:--till the minutest ray
   Was quenched, the pulse yet lingered in his heart.
   It paused--it fluttered. But when heaven remained
   Utterly black, the murky shades involved                             _660
   An image, silent, cold, and motionless,
   As their own voiceless earth and vacant air.
   Even as a vapour fed with golden beams
   That ministered on sunlight, ere the west
   Eclipses it, was now that wondrous frame--                           _665
   No sense, no motion, no divinity--
   A fragile lute, on whose harmonious strings
   The breath of heaven did wander--a bright stream
   Once fed with many-voiced waves--a dream
   Of youth, which night and time have quenched for ever,               _670
   Still, dark, and dry, and unremembered now.
   
   Oh, for Medea's wondrous alchemy,
   Which wheresoe'er it fell made the earth gleam
   With bright flowers, and the wintry boughs exhale
   From vernal blooms fresh fragrance! O, that God,                     _675
   Profuse of poisons, would concede the chalice
   Which but one living man has drained, who now,
   Vessel of deathless wrath, a slave that feels
   No proud exemption in the blighting curse
   He bears, over the world wanders for ever,                           _680
   Lone as incarnate death! O, that the dream
   Of dark magician in his visioned cave,
   Raking the cinders of a crucible
   For life and power, even when his feeble hand
   Shakes in its last decay, were the true law                          _685
   Of this so lovely world! But thou art fled,
   Like some frail exhalation; which the dawn
   Robes in its golden beams,--ah! thou hast fled!
   The brave, the gentle and the beautiful,
   The child of grace and genius. Heartless things                      _690
   Are done and said i' the world, and many worms
   And beasts and men live on, and mighty Earth
   From sea and mountain, city and wilderness,
   In vesper low or joyous orison,
   Lifts still its solemn voice:--but thou art fled--                   _695
   Thou canst no longer know or love the shapes
   Of this phantasmal scene, who have to thee
   Been purest ministers, who are, alas!
   Now thou art not. Upon those pallid lips
   So sweet even in their silence, on those eyes                        _700
   That image sleep in death, upon that form
   Yet safe from the worm's outrage, let no tear
   Be shed--not even in thought. Nor, when those hues
   Are gone, and those divinest lineaments,
   Worn by the senseless wind, shall live alone                         _705
   In the frail pauses of this simple strain,
   Let not high verse, mourning the memory
   Of that which is no more, or painting's woe
   Or sculpture, speak in feeble imagery
   Their own cold powers. Art and eloquence,                            _710
   And all the shows o' the world are frail and vain
   To weep a loss that turns their lights to shade.
   It is a woe "too deep for tears," when all
   Is reft at once, when some surpassing Spirit,
   Whose light adorned the world around it, leaves                      _715
   Those who remain behind, not sobs or groans,
   The passionate tumult of a clinging hope;
   But pale despair and cold tranquillity,
   Nature's vast frame, the web of human things,
   Birth and the grave, that are not as they were.                      _720
   
   
   Notes:
   _219 Conduct edition 1816. See "Editor's Notes".
   _530 roots edition 1816: query stumps or trunks. See "Editor's Notes".
   
   
   NOTE ON ALASTOR, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   "Alastor" is written in a very different tone from "Queen Mab". In the
   latter, Shelley poured out all the cherished speculations of his
   youth--all the irrepressible emotions of sympathy, censure, and hope,
   to which the present suffering, and what he considers the proper
   destiny of his fellow-creatures, gave birth. "Alastor", on the
   contrary, contains an individual interest only. A very few years, with
   their attendant events, had checked the ardour of Shelley's hopes,
   though he still thought them well-grounded, and that to advance their
   fulfilment was the noblest task man could achieve.
   
   This is neither the time nor place to speak of the misfortunes that
   chequered his life. It will be sufficient to say that, in all he did,
   he at the time of doing it believed himself justified to his own
   conscience; while the various ills of poverty and loss of friends
   brought home to him the sad realities of life. Physical suffering had
   also considerable influence in causing him to turn his eyes inward;
   inclining him rather to brood over the thoughts and emotions of his
   own soul than to glance abroad, and to make, as in "Queen Mab", the
   whole universe the object and subject of his song. In the Spring of
   1815, an eminent physician pronounced that he was dying rapidly of a
   consumption; abscesses were formed on his lungs, and he suffered acute
   spasms. Suddenly a complete change took place; and though through life
   he was a martyr to pain and debility, every symptom of pulmonary
   disease vanished. His nerves, which nature had formed sensitive to an
   unexampled degree, were rendered still more susceptible by the state
   of his health.
   
   As soon as the peace of 1814 had opened the Continent, he went abroad.
   He visited some of the more magnificent scenes of Switzerland, and
   returned to England from Lucerne, by the Reuss and the Rhine. This
   river-navigation enchanted him. In his favourite poem of "Thalaba",
   his imagination had been excited by a description of such a voyage. In
   the summer of 1815, after a tour along the southern coast of
   Devonshire and a visit to Clifton, he rented a house on Bishopgate
   Heath, on the borders of Windsor Forest, where he enjoyed several
   months of comparative health and tranquil happiness. The later summer
   months were warm and dry. Accompanied by a few friends, he visited the
   source of the Thames, making a voyage in a wherry from Windsor to
   Crichlade. His beautiful stanzas in the churchyard of Lechlade were
   written on that occasion. "Alastor" was composed on his return. He
   spent his days under the oak-shades of Windsor Great Park; and the
   magnificent woodland was a fitting study to inspire the various
   descriptions of forest scenery we find in the poem.
   
   None of Shelley's poems is more characteristic than this. The solemn
   spirit that reigns throughout, the worship of the majesty of nature,
   the broodings of a poet's heart in solitude--the mingling of the
   exulting joy which the various aspects of the visible universe
   inspires with the sad and struggling pangs which human passion
   imparts--give a touching interest to the whole. The death which he had
   often contemplated during the last months as certain and near he here
   represented in such colours as had, in his lonely musings, soothed his
   soul to peace. The versification sustains the solemn spirit which
   breathes throughout: it is peculiarly melodious. The poem ought rather
   to be considered didactic than narrative: it was the outpouring of his
   own emotions, embodied in the purest form he could conceive, painted
   in the ideal hues which his brilliant imagination inspired, and
   softened by the recent anticipation of death.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE REVOLT OF ISLAM.
   
   A POEM IN TWELVE CANTOS.
   
   Osais de Broton ethnos aglaiais aptomestha
   perainei pros eschaton
   ploon nausi d oute pezos ion an eurois
   es Uperboreon agona thaumatan odon.
   
   Pind. Pyth. x.
   
   [Composed in the neighbourhood of Bisham Wood, near Great Marlow,
   Bucks, 1817 (April-September 23); printed, with title (dated 1818),
   "Laon and Cythna; or, The Revolution of the Golden City: A Vision of
   the Nineteenth Century", October, November, 1817, but suppressed,
   pending revision, by the publishers, C & J. Ollier. (A few copies had
   got out, but these were recalled, and some recovered.) Published, with
   a fresh title-page and twenty-seven cancel-leaves, as "The Revolt of
   Islam", January 10, 1818. Sources of the text are (1) "Laon and
   Cythna", 1818; (2) "The Revolt of Islam", 1818; (3) "Poetical Works",
   1839, editions 1st and 2nd--both edited by Mrs. Shelley. A copy, with
   several pages missing, of the "Preface", the Dedication", and "Canto
   1" of "Laon and Cythna" is amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the
   Bodleian. For a full collation of this manuscript see Mr. C.D.
   Locock's "Examination of the Shelley Manuscripts at the Bodleian
   Library". Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1903. Two manuscript fragments from
   the Hunt papers are also extant: one (twenty-four lines) in the
   possession of Mr. W.M. Rossetti, another (9 23 9 to 29 6) in that of
   Mr. H. Buxton Forman, C.B. See "The Shelley Library", pages 83-86, for
   an account of the copy of "Laon" upon which Shelley worked in revising
   for publication.]
   
   AUTHOR'S PREFACE.
   
   The Poem which I now present to the world is an attempt from which I
   scarcely dare to expect success, and in which a writer of established
   fame might fail without disgrace. It is an experiment on the temper of
   the public mind, as to how far a thirst for a happier condition of
   moral and political society survives, among the enlightened and
   refined, the tempests which have shaken the age in which we live. I
   have sought to enlist the harmony of metrical language, the ethereal
   combinations of the fancy, the rapid and subtle transitions of human
   passion, all those elements which essentially compose a Poem, in the
   cause of a liberal and comprehensive morality; and in the view of
   kindling within the bosoms of my readers a virtuous enthusiasm for
   those doctrines of liberty and justice, that faith and hope in
   something good, which neither violence nor misrepresentation nor
   prejudice can ever totally extinguish among mankind.
   
   For this purpose I have chosen a story of human passion in its most
   universal character, diversified with moving and romantic adventures,
   and appealing, in contempt of all artificial opinions or institutions,
   to the common sympathies of every human breast. I have made no attempt
   to recommend the motives which I would substitute for those at present
   governing mankind, by methodical and systematic argument. I would only
   awaken the feelings, so that the reader should see the beauty of true
   virtue, and be incited to those inquiries which have led to my moral
   and political creed, and that of some of the sublimest intellects in
   the world. The Poem therefore (with the exception of the first canto,
   which is purely introductory) is narrative, not didactic. It is a
   succession of pictures illustrating the growth and progress of
   individual mind aspiring after excellence, and devoted to the love of
   mankind; its influence in refining and making pure the most daring and
   uncommon impulses of the imagination, the understanding, and the
   senses; its impatience at 'all the oppressions which are done under
   the sun;' its tendency to awaken public hope, and to enlighten and
   improve mankind; the rapid effects of the application of that
   tendency; the awakening of an immense nation from their slavery and
   degradation to a true sense of moral dignity and freedom; the
   bloodless dethronement of their oppressors, and the unveiling of the
   religious frauds by which they had been deluded into submission; the
   tranquillity of successful patriotism, and the universal toleration
   and benevolence of true philanthropy; the treachery and barbarity of
   hired soldiers; vice not the object of punishment and hatred, but
   kindness and pity; the faithlessness of tyrants; the confederacy of
   the Rulers of the World and the restoration of the expelled Dynasty by
   foreign arms; the massacre and extermination of the Patriots, and the
   victory of established power; the consequences of legitimate
   despotism,--civil war, famine, plague, superstition, and an utter
   extinction of the domestic affections; the judicial murder of the
   advocates of Liberty; the temporary triumph of oppression, that secure
   earnest of its final and inevitable fall; the transient nature of
   ignorance and error and the eternity of genius and virtue. Such is the
   series of delineations of which the Poem consists. And, if the lofty
   passions with which it has been my scope to distinguish this story
   shall not excite in the reader a generous impulse, an ardent thirst
   for excellence, an interest profound and strong such as belongs to no
   meaner desires, let not the failure be imputed to a natural unfitness
   for human sympathy in these sublime and animating themes. It is the
   business of the Poet to communicate to others the pleasure and the
   enthusiasm arising out of those images and feelings in the vivid
   presence of which within his own mind consists at once his inspiration
   and his reward.
   
   The panic which, like an epidemic transport, seized upon all classes
   of men during the excesses consequent upon the French Revolution, is
   gradually giving place to sanity. It has ceased to be believed that
   whole generations of mankind ought to consign themselves to a hopeless
   inheritance of ignorance and misery, because a nation of men who had
   been dupes and slaves for centuries were incapable of conducting
   themselves with the wisdom and tranquillity of freemen so soon as some
   of their fetters were partially loosened. That their conduct could not
   have been marked by any other characters than ferocity and
   thoughtlessness is the historical fact from which liberty derives all
   its recommendations, and falsehood the worst features of its
   deformity. There is a reflux in the tide of human things which bears
   the shipwrecked hopes of men into a secure haven after the storms are
   past. Methinks, those who now live have survived an age of despair.
   
   The French Revolution may be considered as one of those manifestations
   of a general state of feeling among civilised mankind produced by a
   defect of correspondence between the knowledge existing in society and
   the improvement or gradual abolition of political institutions. The
   year 1788 may be assumed as the epoch of one of the most important
   crises produced by this feeling. The sympathies connected with that
   event extended to every bosom. The most generous and amiable natures
   were those which participated the most extensively in these
   sympathies. But such a degree of unmingled good was expected as it was
   impossible to realise. If the Revolution had been in every respect
   prosperous, then misrule and superstition would lose half their claims
   to our abhorrence, as fetters which the captive can unlock with the
   slightest motion of his fingers, and which do not eat with poisonous
   rust into the soul. The revulsion occasioned by the atrocities of the
   demagogues, and the re-establishment of successive tyrannies in
   France, was terrible, and felt in the remotest corner of the civilised
   world. Could they listen to the plea of reason who had groaned under
   the calamities of a social state according to the provisions of which
   one man riots in luxury whilst another famishes for want of bread? Can
   he who the day before was a trampled slave suddenly become
   liberal-minded, forbearing, and independent? This is the consequence
   of the habits of a state of society to be produced by resolute
   perseverance and indefatigable hope, and long-suffering and
   long-believing courage, and the systematic efforts of generations of
   men of intellect and virtue. Such is the lesson which experience
   teaches now. But, on the first reverses of hope in the progress of
   French liberty, the sanguine eagerness for good overleaped the
   solution of these questions, and for a time extinguished itself in the
   unexpectedness of their result. Thus, many of the most ardent and
   tender-hearted of the worshippers of public good have been morally
   ruined by what a partial glimpse of the events they deplored appeared
   to show as the melancholy desolation of all their cherished hopes.
   Hence gloom and misanthropy have become the characteristics of the age
   in which we live, the solace of a disappointment that unconsciously
   finds relief only in the wilful exaggeration of its own despair. This
   influence has tainted the literature of the age with the hopelessness
   of the minds from which it flows. Metaphysics (I ought to except sir
   W. Drummond's "Academical Questions"; a volume of very acute and
   powerful metaphysical criticism.), and inquiries into moral and
   political science, have become little else than vain attempts to
   revive exploded superstitions, or sophisms like those of Mr. Malthus
   (It is remarkable, as a symptom of the revival of public hope, that
   Mr. Malthus has assigned, in the later editions of his work, an
   indefinite dominion to moral restraint over the principle of
   population. This concession answers all the inferences from his
   doctrine unfavourable to human improvement, and reduces the "Essay on
   Population" to a commentary illustrative of the unanswerableness of
   "Political Justice".), calculated to lull the oppressors of mankind
   into a security of everlasting triumph. Our works of fiction and
   poetry have been overshadowed by the same infectious gloom. But
   mankind appear to me to be emerging from their trance. I am aware,
   methinks, of a slow, gradual, silent change. In that belief I have
   composed the following Poem.
   
   I do not presume to enter into competition with our greatest
   contemporary Poets. Yet I am unwilling to tread in the footsteps of
   any who have preceded me. I have sought to avoid the imitation of any
   style of language or versification peculiar to the original minds of
   which it is the character; designing that, even if what I have
   produced be worthless, it should still be properly my own. Nor have I
   permitted any system relating to mere words to divert the attention of
   the reader, from whatever interest I may have succeeded in creating,
   to my own ingenuity in contriving to disgust them according to the
   rules of criticism. I have simply clothed my thoughts in what appeared
   to me the most obvious and appropriate language. A person familiar
   with nature, and with the most celebrated productions of the human
   mind, can scarcely err in following the instinct, with respect to
   __select__ion of language, produced by that familiarity.
   
   There is an education peculiarly fitted for a Poet, without which
   genius and sensibility can hardly fill the circle of their capacities.
   No education, indeed, can entitle to this appellation a dull and
   unobservant mind, or one, though neither dull nor unobservant, in
   which the channels of communication between thought and expression
   have been obstructed or closed. How far it is my fortune to belong to
   either of the latter classes I cannot know. I aspire to be something
   better. The circumstances of my accidental education have been
   favourable to this ambition. I have been familiar from boyhood with
   mountains and lakes and the sea, and the solitude of forests: Danger,
   which sports upon the brink of precipices, has been my playmate. I
   have trodden the glaciers of the Alps, and lived under the eye of Mont
   Blanc. I have been a wanderer among distant fields. I have sailed down
   mighty rivers, and seen the sun rise and set, and the stars come
   forth, whilst I have sailed night and day down a rapid stream among
   mountains. I have seen populous cities, and have watched the passions
   which rise and spread, and sink and change, amongst assembled
   multitudes of men. I have seen the theatre of the more visible ravages
   of tyranny and war, cities and villages reduced to scattered groups of
   black and roofless houses, and the naked inhabitants sitting famished
   upon their desolated thresholds. I have conversed with living men of
   genius. The poetry of ancient Greece and Rome, and modern Italy, and
   our own country, has been to me, like external nature, a passion and
   an enjoyment. Such are the sources from which the materials for the
   imagery of my Poem have been drawn. I have considered Poetry in its
   most comprehensive sense; and have read the Poets and the Historians
   and the Metaphysicians (In this sense there may be such a thing as
   perfectibility in works of fiction, notwithstanding the concession
   often made by the advocates of human improvement, that perfectibility
   is a term applicable only to science.) whose writings have been
   accessible to me, and have looked upon the beautiful and majestic
   scenery of the earth, as common sources of those elements which it is
   the province of the Poet to embody and combine. Yet the experience and
   the feelings to which I refer do not in themselves constitute men
   Poets, but only prepares them to be the auditors of those who are. How
   far I shall be found to possess that more essential attribute of
   Poetry, the power of awakening in others sensations like those which
   animate my own bosom, is that which, to speak sincerely, I know not;
   and which, with an acquiescent and contented spirit, I expect to be
   taught by the effect which I shall produce upon those whom I now
   address.
   
   I have avoided, as I have said before, the imitation of any
   contemporary style. But there must be a resemblance, which does not
   depend upon their own will, between all the writers of any particular
   age. They cannot escape from subjection to a common influence which
   arises out of an infinite combination of circumstances belonging to
   the times in which they live; though each is in a degree the author of
   the very influence by which his being is thus pervaded. Thus, the
   tragic poets of the age of Pericles; the Italian revivers of ancient
   learning; those mighty intellects of our own country that succeeded
   the Reformation, the translators of the Bible, Shakespeare, Spenser,
   the Dramatists of the reign of Elizabeth, and Lord Bacon (Milton
   stands alone in the age which he illumined.); the colder spirits of
   the interval that succeeded;--all resemble each other, and differ from
   every other in their several classes. In this view of things, Ford can
   no more be called the imitator of Shakespeare than Shakespeare the
   imitator of Ford. There were perhaps few other points of resemblance
   between these two men than that which the universal and inevitable
   influence of their age produced. And this is an influence which
   neither the meanest scribbler nor the sublimest genius of any era can
   escape; and which I have not attempted to escape.
   
   I have adopted the stanza of Spenser (a measure inexpressibly
   beautiful), not because I consider it a finer model of poetical
   harmony than the blank verse of Shakespeare and Milton, but because in
   the latter there is no shelter for mediocrity; you must either succeed
   or fail. This perhaps an aspiring spirit should desire. But I was
   enticed also by the brilliancy and magnificence of sound which a mind
   that has been nourished upon musical thoughts can produce by a just
   and harmonious arrangement of the pauses of this measure. Yet there
   will be found some instances where I have completely failed in this
   attempt, and one, which I here request the reader to consider as an
   erratum, where there is left, most inadvertently, an alexandrine in
   the middle of a stanza.
   
   But in this, as in every other respect, I have written fearlessly. It
   is the misfortune of this age that its Writers, too thoughtless of
   immortality, are exquisitely sensible to temporary praise or blame.
   They write with the fear of Reviews before their eyes. This system of
   criticism sprang up in that torpid interval when Poetry was not.
   Poetry, and the art which professes to regulate and limit its powers,
   cannot subsist together. Longinus could not have been the contemporary
   of Homer, nor Boileau of Horace. Yet this species of criticism never
   presumed to assert an understanding of its own; it has always, unlike
   true science, followed, not preceded, the opinion of mankind, and
   would even now bribe with worthless adulation some of our greatest
   Poets to impose gratuitous fetters on their own imaginations, and
   become unconscious accomplices in the daily murder of all genius
   either not so aspiring or not so fortunate as their own. I have sought
   therefore to write, as I believe that Homer, Shakespeare, and Milton
   wrote, with an utter disregard of anonymous censure. I am certain that
   calumny and misrepresentation, though it may move me to compassion,
   cannot disturb my peace. I shall understand the expressive silence of
   those sagacious enemies who dare not trust themselves to speak. I
   shall endeavour to extract, from the midst of insult and contempt and
   maledictions, those admonitions which may tend to correct whatever
   imperfections such censurers may discover in this my first serious
   appeal to the Public. If certain Critics were as clear-sighted as they
   are malignant, how great would be the benefit to be derived from their
   virulent writings! As it is, I fear I shall be malicious enough to be
   amused with their paltry tricks and lame invectives. Should the Public
   judge that my composition is worthless, I shall indeed bow before the
   tribunal from which Milton received his crown of immortality, and
   shall seek to gather, if I live, strength from that defeat, which may
   nerve me to some new enterprise of thought which may not be worthless.
   I cannot conceive that Lucretius, when he meditated that poem whose
   doctrines are yet the basis of our metaphysical knowledge, and whose
   eloquence has been the wonder of mankind, wrote in awe of such censure
   as the hired sophists of the impure and superstitious noblemen of Rome
   might affix to what he should produce. It was at the period when
   Greece was led captive and Asia made tributary to the Republic, fast
   verging itself to slavery and ruin, that a multitude of Syrian
   captives, bigoted to the worship of their obscene Ashtaroth, and the
   unworthy successors of Socrates and Zeno, found there a precarious
   subsistence by administering, under the name of freedmen, to the vices
   and vanities of the great. These wretched men were skilled to plead,
   with a superficial but plausible set of sophisms, in favour of that
   contempt for virtue which is the portion of slaves, and that faith in
   portents, the most fatal substitute for benevolence in the
   imaginations of men, which, arising from the enslaved communities of
   the East, then first began to overwhelm the western nations in its
   stream. Were these the kind of men whose disapprobation the wise and
   lofty-minded Lucretius should have regarded with a salutary awe? The
   latest and perhaps the meanest of those who follow in his footsteps
   would disdain to hold life on such conditions.
   
   The Poem now presented to the Public occupied little more than six
   months in the composition. That period has been devoted to the task
   with unremitting ardour and enthusiasm. I have exercised a watchful
   and earnest criticism on my work as it grew under my hands. I would
   willingly have sent it forth to the world with that perfection which
   long labour and revision is said to bestow. But I found that, if I
   should gain something in exactness by this method, I might lose much
   of the newness and energy of imagery and language as it flowed fresh
   from my mind. And, although the mere composition occupied no more than
   six months, the thoughts thus arranged were slowly gathered in as many
   years.
   
   I trust that the reader will carefully distinguish between those
   opinions which have a dramatic propriety in reference to the
   characters which they are designed to elucidate, and such as are
   properly my own. The erroneous and degrading idea which men have
   conceived of a Supreme Being, for instance, is spoken against, but not
   the Supreme Being itself. The belief which some superstitious persons
   whom I have brought upon the stage entertain of the Deity, as
   injurious to the character of his benevolence, is widely different
   from my own. In recommending also a great and important change in the
   spirit which animates the social institutions of mankind, I have
   avoided all flattery to those violent and malignant passions of our
   nature which are ever on the watch to mingle with and to alloy the
   most beneficial innovations. There is no quarter given to Revenge, or
   Envy, or Prejudice. Love is celebrated everywhere as the sole law
   which should govern the moral world.
   
   
   DEDICATION.
   
   There is no danger to a man that knows
   What life and death is: there's not any law
   Exceeds his knowledge; neither is it lawful
   That he should stoop to any other law.--CHAPMAN.
   
   TO MARY -- --.
   
   1.
   So now my summer-task is ended, Mary,
   And I return to thee, mine own heart's home;
   As to his Queen some victor Knight of Faery,
   Earning bright spoils for her enchanted dome;
   Nor thou disdain, that ere my fame become                            _5
   A star among the stars of mortal night,
   If it indeed may cleave its natal gloom,
   Its doubtful promise thus I would unite
   With thy beloved name, thou Child of love and light.
   
   2.
   The toil which stole from thee so many an hour,                      _10
   Is ended,--and the fruit is at thy feet!
   No longer where the woods to frame a bower
   With interlaced branches mix and meet,
   Or where with sound like many voices sweet,
   Waterfalls leap among wild islands green,                            _15
   Which framed for my lone boat a lone retreat
   Of moss-grown trees and weeds, shall I be seen;
   But beside thee, where still my heart has ever been.
   
   3.
   Thoughts of great deeds were mine, dear Friend, when first
   The clouds which wrap this world from youth did pass.                _20
   I do remember well the hour which burst
   My spirit's sleep. A fresh May-dawn it was,
   When I walked forth upon the glittering grass,
   And wept, I knew not why; until there rose
   From the near schoolroom, voices that, alas!                         _25
   Were but one echo from a world of woes--
   The harsh and grating strife of tyrants and of foes.
   
   4.
   And then I clasped my hands and looked around--
   --But none was near to mock my streaming eyes,
   Which poured their warm drops on the sunny ground--                  _30
   So without shame I spake:--'I will be wise,
   And just, and free, and mild, if in me lies
   Such power, for I grow weary to behold
   The selfish and the strong still tyrannise
   Without reproach or check.' I then controlled                        _35
   My tears, my heart grew calm, and I was meek and bold.
   
   5.
   And from that hour did I with earnest thought
   Heap knowledge from forbidden mines of lore;
   Yet nothing that my tyrants knew or taught
   I cared to learn, but from that secret store                         _40
   Wrought linked armour for my soul, before
   It might walk forth to war among mankind;
   Thus power and hope were strengthened more and more
   Within me, till there came upon my mind
   A sense of loneliness, a thirst with which I pined.                  _45
   
   6.
   Alas, that love should be a blight and snare
   To those who seek all sympathies in one!--
   Such once I sought in vain; then black despair,
   The shadow of a starless night, was thrown
   Over the world in which I moved alone:--                             _50
   Yet never found I one not false to me,
   Hard hearts, and cold, like weights of icy stone
   Which crushed and withered mine, that could not be
   Aught but a lifeless clod, until revived by thee.
   
   7.
   Thou Friend, whose presence on my wintry heart                       _55
   Fell, like bright Spring upon some herbless plain;
   How beautiful and calm and free thou wert
   In thy young wisdom, when the mortal chain
   Of Custom thou didst burst and rend in twain,
   And walked as free as light the clouds among,                        _60
   Which many an envious slave then breathed in vain
   From his dim dungeon, and my spirit sprung
   To meet thee from the woes which had begirt it long!
   
   8.
   No more alone through the world's wilderness,
   Although I trod the paths of high intent,                            _65
   I journeyed now: no more companionless,
   Where solitude is like despair, I went.--
   There is the wisdom of a stern content
   When Poverty can blight the just and good,
   When Infamy dares mock the innocent,                                 _70
   And cherished friends turn with the multitude
   To trample: this was ours, and we unshaken stood!
   
   9.
   Now has descended a serener hour,
   And with inconstant fortune, friends return;
   Though suffering leaves the knowledge and the power                  _75
   Which says:--Let scorn be not repaid with scorn.
   And from thy side two gentle babes are born
   To fill our home with smiles, and thus are we
   Most fortunate beneath life's beaming morn;
   And these delights, and thou, have been to me                        _80
   The parents of the Song I consecrate to thee.
   
   10.
   Is it that now my inexperienced fingers
   But strike the prelude of a loftier strain?
   Or, must the lyre on which my spirit lingers
   Soon pause in silence, ne'er to sound again,                         _85
   Though it might shake the Anarch Custom's reign,
   And charm the minds of men to Truth's own sway
   Holier than was Amphion's? I would fain
   Reply in hope--but I am worn away,
   And Death and Love are yet contending for their prey.                _90
   
   11.
   And what art thou? I know, but dare not speak:
   Time may interpret to his silent years.
   Yet in the paleness of thy thoughtful cheek,
   And in the light thine ample forehead wears,
   And in thy sweetest smiles, and in thy tears,                        _95
   And in thy gentle speech, a prophecy
   Is whispered, to subdue my fondest fears:
   And through thine eyes, even in thy soul I see
   A lamp of vestal fire burning internally.
   
   12.
   They say that thou wert lovely from thy birth,                       _100
   Of glorious parents thou aspiring Child.
   I wonder not--for One then left this earth
   Whose life was like a setting planet mild,
   Which clothed thee in the radiance undefiled
   Of its departing glory; still her fame                               _105
   Shines on thee, through the tempests dark and wild
   Which shake these latter days; and thou canst claim
   The shelter, from thy Sire, of an immortal name.
   
   13.
   One voice came forth from many a mighty spirit,
   Which was the echo of three thousand years;                          _110
   And the tumultuous world stood mute to hear it,
   As some lone man who in a desert hears
   The music of his home:--unwonted fears
   Fell on the pale oppressors of our race,
   And Faith, and Custom, and low-thoughted cares,                      _115
   Like thunder-stricken dragons, for a space
   Left the torn human heart, their food and dwelling-place.
   
   14.
   Truth's deathless voice pauses among mankind!
   If there must be no response to my cry--
   If men must rise and stamp with fury blind                           _120
   On his pure name who loves them,--thou and I,
   Sweet friend! can look from our tranquillity
   Like lamps into the world's tempestuous night,--
   Two tranquil stars, while clouds are passing by
   Which wrap them from the foundering seaman's sight,                  _125
   That burn from year to year with unextinguished light.
   
   
   NOTES.
   _54 cloaking edition 1818. See notes at end.
   
   
   CANTO 1.
   
   1.
   When the last hope of trampled France had failed
   Like a brief dream of unremaining glory,
   From visions of despair I rose, and scaled
   The peak of an aerial promontory,                                    _130
   Whose caverned base with the vexed surge was hoary;
   And saw the golden dawn break forth, and waken
   Each cloud, and every wave:--but transitory
   The calm; for sudden, the firm earth was shaken,
   As if by the last wreck its frame were overtaken.                    _135
   
   2.
   So as I stood, one blast of muttering thunder
   Burst in far peals along the waveless deep,
   When, gathering fast, around, above, and under,
   Long trains of tremulous mist began to creep,
   Until their complicating lines did steep                             _140
   The orient sun in shadow:--not a sound
   Was heard; one horrible repose did keep
   The forests and the floods, and all around
   Darkness more dread than night was poured upon the ground.
   
   3.
   Hark! 'tis the rushing of a wind that sweeps                         _145
   Earth and the ocean. See! the lightnings yawn
   Deluging Heaven with fire, and the lashed deeps
   Glitter and boil beneath: it rages on,
   One mighty stream, whirlwind and waves upthrown,
   Lightning, and hail, and darkness eddying by.                        _150
   There is a pause--the sea-birds, that were gone
   Into their caves to shriek, come forth, to spy
   What calm has fall'n on earth, what light is in the sky.
   
   4.
   For, where the irresistible storm had cloven
   That fearful darkness, the blue sky was seen                         _155
   Fretted with many a fair cloud interwoven
   Most delicately, and the ocean green,
   Beneath that opening spot of blue serene,
   Quivered like burning emerald; calm was spread
   On all below; but far on high, between                               _160
   Earth and the upper air, the vast clouds fled,
   Countless and swift as leaves on autumn's tempest shed.
   
   5.
   For ever, as the war became more fierce
   Between the whirlwinds and the rack on high,
   That spot grew more serene; blue light did pierce                    _165
   The woof of those white clouds, which seem to lie
   Far, deep, and motionless; while through the sky
   The pallid semicircle of the moon
   Passed on, in slow and moving majesty;
   Its upper horn arrayed in mists, which soon                          _170
   But slowly fled, like dew beneath the beams of noon.
   
   6.
   I could not choose but gaze; a fascination
   Dwelt in that moon, and sky, and clouds, which drew
   My fancy thither, and in expectation
   Of what I knew not, I remained:--the hue                             _175
   Of the white moon, amid that heaven so blue,
   Suddenly stained with shadow did appear;
   A speck, a cloud, a shape, approaching grew,
   Like a great ship in the sun's sinking sphere
   Beheld afar at sea, and swift it came anear.                         _180
   
   7.
   Even like a bark, which from a chasm of mountains,
   Dark, vast and overhanging, on a river
   Which there collects the strength of all its fountains,
   Comes forth, whilst with the speed its frame doth quiver,
   Sails, oars and stream, tending to one endeavour;                    _185
   So, from that chasm of light a winged Form
   On all the winds of heaven approaching ever
   Floated, dilating as it came; the storm
   Pursued it with fierce blasts, and lightnings swift and warm.
   
   8.
   A course precipitous, of dizzy speed,                                _190
   Suspending thought and breath; a monstrous sight!
   For in the air do I behold indeed
   An Eagle and a Serpent wreathed in fight:--
   And now, relaxing its impetuous flight,
   Before the aerial rock on which I stood,                             _195
   The Eagle, hovering, wheeled to left and right,
   And hung with lingering wings over the flood,
   And startled with its yells the wide air's solitude.
   
   9.
   A shaft of light upon its wings descended,
   And every golden feather gleamed therein--                           _200
   Feather and scale, inextricably blended.
   The Serpent's mailed and many-coloured skin
   Shone through the plumes its coils were twined within
   By many a swoln and knotted fold, and high
   And far, the neck, receding lithe and thin,                          _205
   Sustained a crested head, which warily
   Shifted and glanced before the Eagle's steadfast eye.
   
   10.
   Around, around, in ceaseless circles wheeling
   With clang of wings and scream, the Eagle sailed
   Incessantly--sometimes on high concealing                            _210
   Its lessening orbs, sometimes as if it failed,
   Drooped through the air; and still it shrieked and wailed,
   And casting back its eager head, with beak
   And talon unremittingly assailed
   The wreathed Serpent, who did ever seek                              _215
   Upon his enemy's heart a mortal wound to wreak.
   
   11.
   What life, what power, was kindled and arose
   Within the sphere of that appalling fray!
   For, from the encounter of those wondrous foes,
   A vapour like the sea's suspended spray                              _220
   Hung gathered; in the void air, far away,
   Floated the shattered plumes; bright scales did leap,
   Where'er the Eagle's talons made their way,
   Like sparks into the darkness;--as they sweep,
   Blood stains the snowy foam of the tumultuous deep.                  _225
   
   12.
   Swift chances in that combat--many a check,
   And many a change, a dark and wild turmoil;
   Sometimes the Snake around his enemy's neck
   Locked in stiff rings his adamantine coil,
   Until the Eagle, faint with pain and toil,                           _230
   Remitted his strong flight, and near the sea
   Languidly fluttered, hopeless so to foil
   His adversary, who then reared on high
   His red and burning crest, radiant with victory.
   
   13.
   Then on the white edge of the bursting surge,                        _235
   Where they had sunk together, would the Snake
   Relax his suffocating grasp, and scourge
   The wind with his wild writhings; for to break
   That chain of torment, the vast bird would shake
   The strength of his unconquerable wings                              _240
   As in despair, and with his sinewy neck,
   Dissolve in sudden shock those linked rings--
   Then soar, as swift as smoke from a volcano springs.
   
   14.
   Wile baffled wile, and strength encountered strength,
   Thus long, but unprevailing:--the event                              _245
   Of that portentous fight appeared at length:
   Until the lamp of day was almost spent
   It had endured, when lifeless, stark, and rent,
   Hung high that mighty Serpent, and at last
   Fell to the sea, while o'er the continent                            _250
   With clang of wings and scream the Eagle passed,
   Heavily borne away on the exhausted blast.
   
   15.
   And with it fled the tempest, so that ocean
   And earth and sky shone through the atmosphere--
   Only, 'twas strange to see the red commotion                         _255
   Of waves like mountains o'er the sinking sphere
   Of sunset sweep, and their fierce roar to hear
   Amid the calm: down the steep path I wound
   To the sea-shore--the evening was most clear
   And beautiful, and there the sea I found                             _260
   Calm as a cradled child in dreamless slumber bound.
   
   16.
   There was a Woman, beautiful as morning,
   Sitting beneath the rocks, upon the sand
   Of the waste sea--fair as one flower adorning
   An icy wilderness; each delicate hand                                _265
   Lay crossed upon her bosom, and the band
   Of her dark hair had fall'n, and so she sate
   Looking upon the waves; on the bare strand
   Upon the sea-mark a small boat did wait,
   Fair as herself, like Love by Hope left desolate.                    _270
   
   17.
   It seemed that this fair Shape had looked upon
   That unimaginable fight, and now
   That her sweet eyes were weary of the sun,
   As brightly it illustrated her woe;
   For in the tears which silently to flow                              _275
   Paused not, its lustre hung: she watching aye
   The foam-wreaths which the faint tide wove below
   Upon the spangled sands, groaned heavily,
   And after every groan looked up over the sea.
   
   18.
   And when she saw the wounded Serpent make                            _280
   His path between the waves, her lips grew pale,
   Parted, and quivered; the tears ceased to break
   From her immovable eyes; no voice of wail
   Escaped her; but she rose, and on the gale
   Loosening her star-bright robe and shadowy hair                      _285
   Poured forth her voice; the caverns of the vale
   That opened to the ocean, caught it there,
   And filled with silver sounds the overflowing air.
   
   19.
   She spake in language whose strange melody
   Might not belong to earth. I heard alone,                            _290
   What made its music more melodious be,
   The pity and the love of every tone;
   But to the Snake those accents sweet were known
   His native tongue and hers; nor did he beat
   The hoar spray idly then, but winding on                             _295
   Through the green shadows of the waves that meet
   Near to the shore, did pause beside her snowy feet.
   
   20.
   Then on the sands the Woman sate again,
   And wept and clasped her hands, and all between,
   Renewed the unintelligible strain                                    _300
   Of her melodious voice and eloquent mien;
   And she unveiled her bosom, and the green
   And glancing shadows of the sea did play
   O'er its marmoreal depth:--one moment seen,
   For ere the next, the Serpent did obey                               _305
   Her voice, and, coiled in rest in her embrace it lay.
   
   21.
   Then she arose, and smiled on me with eyes
   Serene yet sorrowing, like that planet fair,
   While yet the daylight lingereth in the skies
   Which cleaves with arrowy beams the dark-red air,                    _310
   And said: 'To grieve is wise, but the despair
   Was weak and vain which led thee here from sleep:
   This shalt thou know, and more, if thou dost dare
   With me and with this Serpent, o'er the deep,
   A voyage divine and strange, companionship to keep.'                 _315
   
   22.
   Her voice was like the wildest, saddest tone,
   Yet sweet, of some loved voice heard long ago.
   I wept. 'Shall this fair woman all alone,
   Over the sea with that fierce Serpent go?
   His head is on her heart, and who can know                           _320
   How soon he may devour his feeble prey?'--
   Such were my thoughts, when the tide gan to flow;
   And that strange boat like the moon's shade did sway
   Amid reflected stars that in the waters lay:--
   
   23.
   A boat of rare device, which had no sail                             _325
   But its own curved prow of thin moonstone,
   Wrought like a web of texture fine and frail,
   To catch those gentlest winds which are not known
   To breathe, but by the steady speed alone
   With which it cleaves the sparkling sea; and now                     _330
   We are embarked--the mountains hang and frown
   Over the starry deep that gleams below,
   A vast and dim expanse, as o'er the waves we go.
   
   24.
   And as we sailed, a strange and awful tale
   That Woman told, like such mysterious dream                          _335
   As makes the slumberer's cheek with wonder pale!
   'Twas midnight, and around, a shoreless stream,
   Wide ocean rolled, when that majestic theme
   Shrined in her heart found utterance, and she bent
   Her looks on mine; those eyes a kindling beam                        _340
   Of love divine into my spirit sent,
   And ere her lips could move, made the air eloquent.
   
   25.
   'Speak not to me, but hear! Much shalt thou learn,
   Much must remain unthought, and more untold,
   In the dark Future's ever-flowing urn:                               _345
   Know then, that from the depth of ages old
   Two Powers o'er mortal things dominion hold,
   Ruling the world with a divided lot,
   Immortal, all-pervading, manifold,
   Twin Genii, equal Gods--when life and thought                        _350
   Sprang forth, they burst the womb of inessential Nought.
   
   26.
   'The earliest dweller of the world, alone,
   Stood on the verge of chaos. Lo! afar
   O'er the wide wild abyss two meteors shone,
   Sprung from the depth of its tempestuous jar:                        _355
   A blood-red Comet and the Morning Star
   Mingling their beams in combat--as he stood,
   All thoughts within his mind waged mutual war,
   In dreadful sympathy--when to the flood
   That fair Star fell, he turned and shed his brother's blood.         _360
   
   27.
   'Thus evil triumphed, and the Spirit of evil,
   One Power of many shapes which none may know,
   One Shape of many names; the Fiend did revel
   In victory, reigning o'er a world of woe,
   For the new race of man went to and fro,                             _365
   Famished and homeless, loathed and loathing, wild,
   And hating good--for his immortal foe,
   He changed from starry shape, beauteous and mild,
   To a dire Snake, with man and beast unreconciled.
   
   28.
   'The darkness lingering o'er the dawn of things,                     _370
   Was Evil's breath and life; this made him strong
   To soar aloft with overshadowing wings;
   And the great Spirit of Good did creep among
   The nations of mankind, and every tongue
   Cursed and blasphemed him as he passed; for none                     _375
   Knew good from evil, though their names were hung
   In mockery o'er the fane where many a groan,
   As King, and Lord, and God, the conquering Fiend did own,--
   
   29.
   'The Fiend, whose name was Legion: Death, Decay,
   Earthquake and Blight, and Want, and Madness pale,                   _380
   Winged and wan diseases, an array
   Numerous as leaves that strew the autumnal gale;
   Poison, a snake in flowers, beneath the veil
   Of food and mirth, hiding his mortal head;
   And, without whom all these might nought avail,                      _385
   Fear, Hatred, Faith, and Tyranny, who spread
   Those subtle nets which snare the living and the dead.
   
   30.
   'His spirit is their power, and they his slaves
   In air, and light, and thought, and language, dwell;
   And keep their state from palaces to graves,                         _390
   In all resorts of men--invisible,
   But when, in ebon mirror, Nightmare fell
   To tyrant or impostor bids them rise,
   Black winged demon forms--whom, from the hell,
   His reign and dwelling beneath nether skies,                         _395
   He loosens to their dark and blasting ministries.
   
   31.
   'In the world's youth his empire was as firm
   As its foundations...Soon the Spirit of Good,
   Though in the likeness of a loathsome worm,
   Sprang from the billows of the formless flood,                       _400
   Which shrank and fled; and with that Fiend of blood
   Renewed the doubtful war...Thrones then first shook,
   And earth's immense and trampled multitude
   In hope on their own powers began to look,
   And Fear, the demon pale, his sanguine shrine forsook.               _405
   
   32.
   'Then Greece arose, and to its bards and sages,
   In dream, the golden-pinioned Genii came,
   Even where they slept amid the night of ages,
   Steeping their hearts in the divinest flame
   Which thy breath kindled, Power of holiest name!                     _410
   And oft in cycles since, when darkness gave
   New weapons to thy foe, their sunlike fame
   Upon the combat shone--a light to save,
   Like Paradise spread forth beyond the shadowy grave.
   
   33.
   'Such is this conflict--when mankind doth strive                     _415
   With its oppressors in a strife of blood,
   Or when free thoughts, like lightnings, are alive,
   And in each bosom of the multitude
   Justice and truth with Custom's hydra brood
   Wage silent war; when Priests and Kings dissemble                    _420
   In smiles or frowns their fierce disquietude,
   When round pure hearts a host of hopes assemble,
   The Snake and Eagle meet--the world's foundations tremble!
   
   34.
   'Thou hast beheld that fight--when to thy home
   Thou dost return, steep not its hearth in tears;                     _425
   Though thou may'st hear that earth is now become
   The tyrant's garbage, which to his compeers,
   The vile reward of their dishonoured years,
   He will dividing give.--The victor Fiend,
   Omnipotent of yore, now quails, and fears                            _430
   His triumph dearly won, which soon will lend
   An impulse swift and sure to his approaching end.
   
   35.
   'List, stranger, list, mine is an human form,
   Like that thou wearest--touch me--shrink not now!
   My hand thou feel'st is not a ghost's, but warm                      _435
   With human blood.--'Twas many years ago,
   Since first my thirsting soul aspired to know
   The secrets of this wondrous world, when deep
   My heart was pierced with sympathy, for woe
   Which could not be mine own, and thought did keep,                   _440
   In dream, unnatural watch beside an infant's sleep.
   
   36.
   'Woe could not be mine own, since far from men
   I dwelt, a free and happy orphan child,
   By the sea-shore, in a deep mountain glen;
   And near the waves, and through the forests wild,                    _445
   I roamed, to storm and darkness reconciled:
   For I was calm while tempest shook the sky:
   But when the breathless heavens in beauty smiled,
   I wept, sweet tears, yet too tumultuously
   For peace, and clasped my hands aloft in ecstasy.                    _450
   
   37.
   'These were forebodings of my fate--before
   A woman's heart beat in my virgin breast,
   It had been nurtured in divinest lore:
   A dying poet gave me books, and blessed
   With wild but holy talk the sweet unrest                             _455
   In which I watched him as he died away--
   A youth with hoary hair--a fleeting guest
   Of our lone mountains: and this lore did sway
   My spirit like a storm, contending there alway.
   
   38.
   'Thus the dark tale which history doth unfold                        _460
   I knew, but not, methinks, as others know,
   For they weep not; and Wisdom had unrolled
   The clouds which hide the gulf of mortal woe,--
   To few can she that warning vision show--
   For I loved all things with intense devotion;                        _465
   So that when Hope's deep source in fullest flow,
   Like earthquake did uplift the stagnant ocean
   Of human thoughts--mine shook beneath the wide emotion.
   
   39.
   'When first the living blood through all these veins
   Kindled a thought in sense, great France sprang forth,               _470
   And seized, as if to break, the ponderous chains
   Which bind in woe the nations of the earth.
   I saw, and started from my cottage-hearth;
   And to the clouds and waves in tameless gladness
   Shrieked, till they caught immeasurable mirth--                      _475
   And laughed in light and music: soon, sweet madness
   Was poured upon my heart, a soft and thrilling sadness.
   
   40.
   'Deep slumber fell on me:--my dreams were fire--
   Soft and delightful thoughts did rest and hover
   Like shadows o'er my brain; and strange desire,                      _480
   The tempest of a passion, raging over
   My tranquil soul, its depths with light did cover,
   Which passed; and calm, and darkness, sweeter far,
   Came--then I loved; but not a human lover!
   For when I rose from sleep, the Morning Star                         _485
   Shone through the woodbine-wreaths which round my casement were.
   
   41.
   ''Twas like an eye which seemed to smile on me.
   I watched, till by the sun made pale, it sank
   Under the billows of the heaving sea;
   But from its beams deep love my spirit drank,                        _490
   And to my brain the boundless world now shrank
   Into one thought--one image--yes, for ever!
   Even like the dayspring, poured on vapours dank,
   The beams of that one Star did shoot and quiver
   Through my benighted mind--and were extinguished never.              _495
   
   42.
   'The day passed thus: at night, methought, in dream
   A shape of speechless beauty did appear:
   It stood like light on a careering stream
   Of golden clouds which shook the atmosphere;
   A winged youth, his radiant brow did wear                            _500
   The Morning Star: a wild dissolving bliss
   Over my frame he breathed, approaching near,
   And bent his eyes of kindling tenderness
   Near mine, and on my lips impressed a lingering kiss,--
   
   43.
   'And said: "A Spirit loves thee, mortal maiden,                      _505
   How wilt thou prove thy worth?" Then joy and sleep
   Together fled; my soul was deeply laden,
   And to the shore I went to muse and weep;
   But as I moved, over my heart did creep
   A joy less soft, but more profound and strong                        _510
   Than my sweet dream; and it forbade to keep
   The path of the sea-shore: that Spirit's tongue
   Seemed whispering in my heart, and bore my steps along.
   
   44.
   'How, to that vast and peopled city led,
   Which was a field of holy warfare then,                              _515
   I walked among the dying and the dead,
   And shared in fearless deeds with evil men,
   Calm as an angel in the dragon's den--
   How I braved death for liberty and truth,
   And spurned at peace, and power, and fame--and when                  _520
   Those hopes had lost the glory of their youth,
   How sadly I returned--might move the hearer's ruth:
   
   45.
   'Warm tears throng fast! the tale may not be said--
   Know then, that when this grief had been subdued,
   I was not left, like others, cold and dead;                          _525
   The Spirit whom I loved, in solitude
   Sustained his child: the tempest-shaken wood,
   The waves, the fountains, and the hush of night--
   These were his voice, and well I understood
   His smile divine, when the calm sea was bright                       _530
   With silent stars, and Heaven was breathless with delight.
   
   46.
   'In lonely glens, amid the roar of rivers,
   When the dim nights were moonless, have I known
   Joys which no tongue can tell; my pale lip quivers
   When thought revisits them:--know thou alone,                        _535
   That after many wondrous years were flown,
   I was awakened by a shriek of woe;
   And over me a mystic robe was thrown,
   By viewless hands, and a bright Star did glow
   Before my steps--the Snake then met his mortal foe.'                 _540
   
   47.
   'Thou fearest not then the Serpent on thy heart?'
   'Fear it!' she said, with brief and passionate cry,
   And spake no more: that silence made me start--
   I looked, and we were sailing pleasantly,
   Swift as a cloud between the sea and sky;                            _545
   Beneath the rising moon seen far away,
   Mountains of ice, like sapphire, piled on high,
   Hemming the horizon round, in silence lay
   On the still waters--these we did approach alway.
   
   48.
   And swift and swifter grew the vessel's motion,                      _550
   So that a dizzy trance fell on my brain--
   Wild music woke me; we had passed the ocean
   Which girds the pole, Nature's remotest reign--
   And we glode fast o'er a pellucid plain
   Of waters, azure with the noontide day.                              _555
   Ethereal mountains shone around--a Fane
   Stood in the midst, girt by green isles which lay
   On the blue sunny deep, resplendent far away.
   
   49.
   It was a Temple, such as mortal hand
   Has never built, nor ecstasy, nor dream                              _560
   Reared in the cities of enchanted land:
   'Twas likest Heaven, ere yet day's purple stream
   Ebbs o'er the western forest, while the gleam
   Of the unrisen moon among the clouds
   Is gathering--when with many a golden beam                           _565
   The thronging constellations rush in crowds,
   Paving with fire the sky and the marmoreal floods.
   
   50.
   Like what may be conceived of this vast dome,
   When from the depths which thought can seldom pierce
   Genius beholds it rise, his native home,                             _570
   Girt by the deserts of the Universe;
   Yet, nor in painting's light, or mightier verse,
   Or sculpture's marble language, can invest
   That shape to mortal sense--such glooms immerse
   That incommunicable sight, and rest                                  _575
   Upon the labouring brain and overburdened breast.
   
   51.
   Winding among the lawny islands fair,
   Whose blosmy forests starred the shadowy deep,
   The wingless boat paused where an ivory stair
   Its fretwork in the crystal sea did steep,                           _580
   Encircling that vast Fane's aerial heap:
   We disembarked, and through a portal wide
   We passed--whose roof of moonstone carved, did keep
   A glimmering o'er the forms on every side,
   Sculptures like life and thought, immovable, deep-eyed.              _585
   
   52.
   We came to a vast hall, whose glorious roof
   Was diamond, which had drunk the lightning's sheen
   In darkness, and now poured it through the woof
   Of spell-inwoven clouds hung there to screen
   Its blinding splendour--through such veil was seen                   _590
   That work of subtlest power, divine and rare;
   Orb above orb, with starry shapes between,
   And horned moons, and meteors strange and fair,
   On night-black columns poised--one hollow hemisphere!
   
   53.
   Ten thousand columns in that quivering light                         _595
   Distinct--between whose shafts wound far away
   The long and labyrinthine aisles--more bright
   With their own radiance than the Heaven of Day;
   And on the jasper walls around, there lay
   Paintings, the poesy of mightiest thought,                           _600
   Which did the Spirit's history display;
   A tale of passionate change, divinely taught,
   Which, in their winged dance, unconscious Genii wrought.
   
   54.
   Beneath, there sate on many a sapphire throne,
   The Great, who had departed from mankind,                            _605
   A mighty Senate;--some, whose white hair shone
   Like mountain snow, mild, beautiful, and blind;
   Some, female forms, whose gestures beamed with mind;
   And ardent youths, and children bright and fair;
   And some had lyres whose strings were intertwined                    _610
   With pale and clinging flames, which ever there
   Waked faint yet thrilling sounds that pierced the crystal air.
   
   55.
   One seat was vacant in the midst, a throne,
   Reared on a pyramid like sculptured flame,
   Distinct with circling steps which rested on                         _615
   Their own deep fire--soon as the Woman came
   Into that hall, she shrieked the Spirit's name
   And fell; and vanished slowly from the sight.
   Darkness arose from her dissolving frame,
   Which gathering, filled that dome of woven light,                    _620
   Blotting its sphered stars with supernatural night.
   
   56.
   Then first, two glittering lights were seen to glide
   In circles on the amethystine floor,
   Small serpent eyes trailing from side to side,
   Like meteors on a river's grassy shore,                              _625
   They round each other rolled, dilating more
   And more--then rose, commingling into one,
   One clear and mighty planet hanging o'er
   A cloud of deepest shadow, which was thrown
   Athwart the glowing steps and the crystalline throne.                _630
   
   57.
   The cloud which rested on that cone of flame
   Was cloven; beneath the planet sate a Form,
   Fairer than tongue can speak or thought may frame,
   The radiance of whose limbs rose-like and warm
   Flowed forth, and did with softest light inform                      _635
   The shadowy dome, the sculptures, and the state
   Of those assembled shapes--with clinging charm
   Sinking upon their hearts and mine. He sate
   Majestic, yet most mild--calm, yet compassionate.
   
   58.
   Wonder and joy a passing faintness threw                             _640
   Over my brow--a hand supported me,
   Whose touch was magic strength; an eye of blue
   Looked into mine, like moonlight, soothingly;
   And a voice said:--'Thou must a listener be
   This day--two mighty Spirits now return,                             _645
   Like birds of calm, from the world's raging sea,
   They pour fresh light from Hope's immortal urn;
   A tale of human power--despair not--list and learn!
   
   59.
   I looked, and lo! one stood forth eloquently.
   His eyes were dark and deep, and the clear brow                      _650
   Which shadowed them was like the morning sky,
   The cloudless Heaven of Spring, when in their flow
   Through the bright air, the soft winds as they blow
   Wake the green world--his gestures did obey
   The oracular mind that made his features glow,                       _655
   And where his curved lips half-open lay,
   Passion's divinest stream had made impetuous way.
   
   60.
   Beneath the darkness of his outspread hair
   He stood thus beautiful; but there was One
   Who sate beside him like his shadow there,                           _660
   And held his hand--far lovelier; she was known
   To be thus fair, by the few lines alone
   Which through her floating locks and gathered cloak,
   Glances of soul-dissolving glory, shone:--
   None else beheld her eyes--in him they woke                          _665
   Memories which found a tongue as thus he silence broke.
   
   
   CANTO 2.
   
   1.
   The starlight smile of children, the sweet looks
   Of women, the fair breast from which I fed,
   The murmur of the unreposing brooks,
   And the green light which, shifting overhead,                        _670
   Some tangled bower of vines around me shed,
   The shells on the sea-sand, and the wild flowers,
   The lamp-light through the rafters cheerly spread,
   And on the twining flax--in life's young hours
   These sights and sounds did nurse my spirit's folded powers.         _675
   
   2.
   In Argolis, beside the echoing sea,
   Such impulses within my mortal frame
   Arose, and they were dear to memory,
   Like tokens of the dead:--but others came
   Soon, in another shape: the wondrous fame                            _680
   Of the past world, the vital words and deeds
   Of minds whom neither time nor change can tame,
   Traditions dark and old, whence evil creeds
   Start forth, and whose dim shade a stream of poison feeds.
   
   3.
   I heard, as all have heard, the various story                        _685
   Of human life, and wept unwilling tears.
   Feeble historians of its shame and glory,
   False disputants on all its hopes and fears,
   Victims who worshipped ruin, chroniclers
   Of daily scorn, and slaves who loathed their state                   _690
   Yet, flattering power, had given its ministers
   A throne of judgement in the grave:--'twas fate,
   That among such as these my youth should seek its mate.
   
   4.
   The land in which I lived, by a fell bane
   Was withered up. Tyrants dwelt side by side,                         _695
   And stabled in our homes,--until the chain
   Stifled the captive's cry, and to abide
   That blasting curse men had no shame--all vied
   In evil, slave and despot; fear with lust
   Strange fellowship through mutual hate had tied,                     _700
   Like two dark serpents tangled in the dust,
   Which on the paths of men their mingling poison thrust.
   
   5.
   Earth, our bright home, its mountains and its waters,
   And the ethereal shapes which are suspended
   Over its green expanse, and those fair daughters,                    _705
   The clouds, of Sun and Ocean, who have blended
   The colours of the air since first extended
   It cradled the young world, none wandered forth
   To see or feel; a darkness had descended
   On every heart; the light which shows its worth,                     _710
   Must among gentle thoughts and fearless take its birth.
   
   6.
   This vital world, this home of happy spirits,
   Was as a dungeon to my blasted kind;
   All that despair from murdered hope inherits
   They sought, and in their helpless misery blind,                     _715
   A deeper prison and heavier chains did find,
   And stronger tyrants:--a dark gulf before,
   The realm of a stern Ruler, yawned; behind,
   Terror and Time conflicting drove, and bore
   On their tempestuous flood the shrieking wretch from shore.          _720
   
   7.
   Out of that Ocean's wrecks had Guilt and Woe
   Framed a dark dwelling for their homeless thought,
   And, starting at the ghosts which to and fro
   Glide o'er its dim and gloomy strand, had brought
   The worship thence which they each other taught.                     _725
   Well might men loathe their life, well might they turn
   Even to the ills again from which they sought
   Such refuge after death!--well might they learn
   To gaze on this fair world with hopeless unconcern!
   
   8.
   For they all pined in bondage; body and soul,                        _730
   Tyrant and slave, victim and torturer, bent
   Before one Power, to which supreme control
   Over their will by their own weakness lent,
   Made all its many names omnipotent;
   All symbols of things evil, all divine;                              _735
   And hymns of blood or mockery, which rent
   The air from all its fanes, did intertwine
   Imposture's impious toils round each discordant shrine.
   
   9.
   I heard, as all have heard, life's various story,
   And in no careless heart transcribed the tale;                       _740
   But, from the sneers of men who had grown hoary
   In shame and scorn, from groans of crowds made pale
   By famine, from a mother's desolate wail
   O'er her polluted child, from innocent blood
   Poured on the earth, and brows anxious and pale                      _745
   With the heart's warfare, did I gather food
   To feed my many thoughts--a tameless multitude!
   
   10.
   I wandered through the wrecks of days departed
   Far by the desolated shore, when even
   O'er the still sea and jagged islets darted                          _750
   The light of moonrise; in the northern Heaven,
   Among the clouds near the horizon driven,
   The mountains lay beneath one planet pale;
   Around me, broken tombs and columns riven
   Looked vast in twilight, and the sorrowing gale                      _755
   Waked in those ruins gray its everlasting wail!
   
   11.
   I knew not who had framed these wonders then,
   Nor had I heard the story of their deeds;
   But dwellings of a race of mightier men,
   And monuments of less ungentle creeds                                _760
   Tell their own tale to him who wisely heeds
   The language which they speak; and now, to me
   The moonlight making pale the blooming weeds,
   The bright stars shining in the breathless sea,
   Interpreted those scrolls of mortal mystery.                         _765
   
   12.
   Such man has been, and such may yet become!
   Ay, wiser, greater, gentler even than they
   Who on the fragments of yon shattered dome
   Have stamped the sign of power--I felt the sway
   Of the vast stream of ages bear away                                 _770
   My floating thoughts--my heart beat loud and fast--
   Even as a storm let loose beneath the ray
   Of the still moon, my spirit onward passed
   Beneath truth's steady beams upon its tumult cast.
   
   13.
   It shall be thus no more! too long, too long,                        _775
   Sons of the glorious dead, have ye lain bound
   In darkness and in ruin!--Hope is strong,
   Justice and Truth their winged child have found--
   Awake! arise! until the mighty sound
   Of your career shall scatter in its gust                             _780
   The thrones of the oppressor, and the ground
   Hide the last altar's unregarded dust,
   Whose Idol has so long betrayed your impious trust!
   
   14.
   It must be so--I will arise and waken
   The multitude, and like a sulphurous hill,                           _785
   Which on a sudden from its snows has shaken
   The swoon of ages, it shall burst and fill
   The world with cleansing fire; it must, it will--
   It may not be restrained!--and who shall stand
   Amid the rocking earthquake steadfast still,                         _790
   But Laon? on high Freedom's desert land
   A tower whose marble walls the leagued storms withstand!
   
   15.
   One summer night, in commune with the hope
   Thus deeply fed, amid those ruins gray
   I watched, beneath the dark sky's starry cope;                       _795
   And ever from that hour upon me lay
   The burden of this hope, and night or day,
   In vision or in dream, clove to my breast:
   Among mankind, or when gone far away
   To the lone shores and mountains, 'twas a guest                      _800
   Which followed where I fled, and watched when I did rest.
   
   16.
   These hopes found words through which my spirit sought
   To weave a bondage of such sympathy,
   As might create some response to the thought
   Which ruled me now--and as the vapours lie                           _805
   Bright in the outspread morning's radiancy,
   So were these thoughts invested with the light
   Of language: and all bosoms made reply
   On which its lustre streamed, whene'er it might
   Through darkness wide and deep those tranced spirits smite.          _810
   
   17.
   Yes, many an eye with dizzy tears was dim,
   And oft I thought to clasp my own heart's brother,
   When I could feel the listener's senses swim,
   And hear his breath its own swift gaspings smother
   Even as my words evoked them--and another,                           _815
   And yet another, I did fondly deem,
   Felt that we all were sons of one great mother;
   And the cold truth such sad reverse did seem
   As to awake in grief from some delightful dream.
   
   18.
   Yes, oft beside the ruined labyrinth                                 _820
   Which skirts the hoary caves of the green deep,
   Did Laon and his friend, on one gray plinth,
   Round whose worn base the wild waves hiss and leap,
   Resting at eve, a lofty converse keep:
   And that this friend was false, may now be said                      _825
   Calmly--that he like other men could weep
   Tears which are lies, and could betray and spread
   Snares for that guileless heart which for his own had bled.
   
   19.
   Then, had no great aim recompensed my sorrow,
   I must have sought dark respite from its stress                      _830
   In dreamless rest, in sleep that sees no morrow--
   For to tread life's dismaying wilderness
   Without one smile to cheer, one voice to bless,
   Amid the snares and scoffs of human kind,
   Is hard--but I betrayed it not, nor less                             _835
   With love that scorned return sought to unbind
   The interwoven clouds which make its wisdom blind.
   
   20.
   With deathless minds which leave where they have passed
   A path of light, my soul communion knew;
   Till from that glorious intercourse, at last,                        _840
   As from a mine of magic store, I drew
   Words which were weapons;--round my heart there grew
   The adamantine armour of their power;
   And from my fancy wings of golden hue
   Sprang forth--yet not alone from wisdom's tower,                     _845
   A minister of truth, these plumes young Laon bore.
   
   21.
   An orphan with my parents lived, whose eyes
   Were lodestars of delight, which drew me home
   When I might wander forth; nor did I prize
   Aught human thing beneath Heaven's mighty dome                       _850
   Beyond this child; so when sad hours were come,
   And baffled hope like ice still clung to me,
   Since kin were cold, and friends had now become
   Heartless and false, I turned from all, to be,
   Cythna, the only source of tears and smiles to thee.                 _855
   
   22.
   What wert thou then? A child most infantine,
   Yet wandering far beyond that innocent age
   In all but its sweet looks and mien divine;
   Even then, methought, with the world's tyrant rage
   A patient warfare thy young heart did wage,                          _860
   When those soft eyes of scarcely conscious thought
   Some tale, or thine own fancies, would engage
   To overflow with tears, or converse fraught
   With passion, o'er their depths its fleeting light had wrought.
   
   23.
   She moved upon this earth a shape of brightness,                     _865
   A power, that from its objects scarcely drew
   One impulse of her being--in her lightness
   Most like some radiant cloud of morning dew,
   Which wanders through the waste air's pathless blue,
   To nourish some far desert; she did seem                             _870
   Beside me, gathering beauty as she grew,
   Like the bright shade of some immortal dream
   Which walks, when tempest sleeps, the wave of life's dark stream.
   
   24.
   As mine own shadow was this child to me,
   A second self, far dearer and more fair;                             _875
   Which clothed in undissolving radiancy
   All those steep paths which languor and despair
   Of human things, had made so dark and bare,
   But which I trod alone--nor, till bereft
   Of friends, and overcome by lonely care,                             _880
   Knew I what solace for that loss was left,
   Though by a bitter wound my trusting heart was cleft.
   
   25.
   Once she was dear, now she was all I had
   To love in human life--this playmate sweet,
   This child of twelve years old--so she was made                      _885
   My sole associate, and her willing feet
   Wandered with mine where earth and ocean meet,
   Beyond the aereal mountains whose vast cells
   The unreposing billows ever beat,
   Through forests wild and old, and lawny dells                        _890
   Where boughs of incense droop over the emerald wells.
   
   26.
   And warm and light I felt her clasping hand
   When twined in mine; she followed where I went,
   Through the lone paths of our immortal land.
   It had no waste but some memorial lent                               _895
   Which strung me to my toil--some monument
   Vital with mind; then Cythna by my side,
   Until the bright and beaming day were spent,
   Would rest, with looks entreating to abide,
   Too earnest and too sweet ever to be denied.                         _900
   
   27.
   And soon I could not have refused her--thus
   For ever, day and night, we two were ne'er
   Parted, but when brief sleep divided us:
   And when the pauses of the lulling air
   Of noon beside the sea had made a lair                               _905
   For her soothed senses, in my arms she slept,
   And I kept watch over her slumbers there,
   While, as the shifting visions over her swept,
   Amid her innocent rest by turns she smiled and wept.
   
   28.
   And, in the murmur of her dreams was heard                           _910
   Sometimes the name of Laon:--suddenly
   She would arise, and, like the secret bird
   Whom sunset wakens, fill the shore and sky
   With her sweet accents, a wild melody!
   Hymns which my soul had woven to Freedom, strong                     _915
   The source of passion, whence they rose, to be;
   Triumphant strains, which, like a spirit's tongue,
   To the enchanted waves that child of glory sung--
   
   29.
   Her white arms lifted through the shadowy stream
   Of her loose hair. Oh, excellently great                             _920
   Seemed to me then my purpose, the vast theme
   Of those impassioned songs, when Cythna sate
   Amid the calm which rapture doth create
   After its tumult, her heart vibrating,
   Her spirit o'er the Ocean's floating state                           _925
   From her deep eyes far wandering, on the wing
   Of visions that were mine, beyond its utmost spring!
   
   30.
   For, before Cythna loved it, had my song
   Peopled with thoughts the boundless universe,
   A mighty congregation, which were strong                             _930
   Where'er they trod the darkness to disperse
   The cloud of that unutterable curse
   Which clings upon mankind:--all things became
   Slaves to my holy and heroic verse,
   Earth, sea and sky, the planets, life and fame                       _935
   And fate, or whate'er else binds the world's wondrous frame.
   
   31.
   And this beloved child thus felt the sway
   Of my conceptions, gathering like a cloud
   The very wind on which it rolls away:
   Hers too were all my thoughts, ere yet, endowed                      _940
   With music and with light, their fountains flowed
   In poesy; and her still and earnest face,
   Pallid with feelings which intensely glowed
   Within, was turned on mine with speechless grace,
   Watching the hopes which there her heart had learned to trace.       _945
   
   32.
   In me, communion with this purest being
   Kindled intenser zeal, and made me wise
   In knowledge, which, in hers mine own mind seeing,
   Left in the human world few mysteries:
   How without fear of evil or disguise                                 _950
   Was Cythna!--what a spirit strong and mild,
   Which death, or pain or peril could despise,
   Yet melt in tenderness! what genius wild
   Yet mighty, was enclosed within one simple child!
   
   33.
   New lore was this--old age with its gray hair,                       _955
   And wrinkled legends of unworthy things,
   And icy sneers, is nought: it cannot dare
   To burst the chains which life for ever flings
   On the entangled soul's aspiring wings,
   So is it cold and cruel, and is made                                 _960
   The careless slave of that dark power which brings
   Evil, like blight, on man, who, still betrayed,
   Laughs o'er the grave in which his living hopes are laid.
   
   34.
   Nor are the strong and the severe to keep
   The empire of the world: thus Cythna taught                          _965
   Even in the visions of her eloquent sleep,
   Unconscious of the power through which she wrought
   The woof of such intelligible thought,
   As from the tranquil strength which cradled lay
   In her smile-peopled rest, my spirit sought                          _970
   Why the deceiver and the slave has sway
   O'er heralds so divine of truth's arising day.
   
   35.
   Within that fairest form, the female mind,
   Untainted by the poison clouds which rest
   On the dark world, a sacred home did find:                           _975
   But else, from the wide earth's maternal breast,
   Victorious Evil, which had dispossessed
   All native power, had those fair children torn,
   And made them slaves to soothe his vile unrest,
   And minister to lust its joys forlorn,                               _980
   Till they had learned to breathe the atmosphere of scorn.
   
   36.
   This misery was but coldly felt, till she
   Became my only friend, who had endued
   My purpose with a wider sympathy;
   Thus, Cythna mourned with me the servitude                           _985
   In which the half of humankind were mewed
   Victims of lust and hate, the slaves of slaves,
   She mourned that grace and power were thrown as food
   To the hyena lust, who, among graves,
   Over his loathed meal, laughing in agony, raves.                     _990
   
   37.
   And I, still gazing on that glorious child,
   Even as these thoughts flushed o'er her:--'Cythna sweet,
   Well with the world art thou unreconciled;
   Never will peace and human nature meet
   Till free and equal man and woman greet                              _995
   Domestic peace; and ere this power can make
   In human hearts its calm and holy seat,
   This slavery must be broken'--as I spake,
   From Cythna's eyes a light of exultation brake.
   
   38.
   She replied earnestly:--'It shall be mine,                           _1000
   This task,--mine, Laon!--thou hast much to gain;
   Nor wilt thou at poor Cythna's pride repine,
   If she should lead a happy female train
   To meet thee over the rejoicing plain,
   When myriads at thy call shall throng around                         _1005
   The Golden City.'--Then the child did strain
   My arm upon her tremulous heart, and wound
   Her own about my neck, till some reply she found.
   
   39.
   I smiled, and spake not.--'Wherefore dost thou smile
   At what I say? Laon, I am not weak,                                  _1010
   And, though my cheek might become pale the while,
   With thee, if thou desirest, will I seek
   Through their array of banded slaves to wreak
   Ruin upon the tyrants. I had thought
   It was more hard to turn my unpractised cheek                        _1015
   To scorn and shame, and this beloved spot
   And thee, O dearest friend, to leave and murmur not.
   
   40.
   'Whence came I what I am? Thou, Laon, knowest
   How a young child should thus undaunted be;
   Methinks, it is a power which thou bestowest,                        _1020
   Through which I seek, by most resembling thee,
   So to become most good and great and free;
   Yet far beyond this Ocean's utmost roar,
   In towers and huts are many like to me,
   Who, could they see thine eyes, or feel such lore                    _1025
   As I have learnt from them, like me would fear no more.
   
   41.
   'Think'st thou that I shall speak unskilfully,
   And none will heed me? I remember now,
   How once, a slave in tortures doomed to die,
   Was saved, because in accents sweet and low                          _1030
   He sung a song his Judge loved long ago,
   As he was led to death.--All shall relent
   Who hear me--tears, as mine have flowed, shall flow,
   Hearts beat as mine now beats, with such intent
   As renovates the world; a will omnipotent!                           _1035
   
   42.
   'Yes, I will tread Pride's golden palaces,
   Through Penury's roofless huts and squalid cells
   Will I descend, where'er in abjectness
   Woman with some vile slave her tyrant dwells,
   There with the music of thine own sweet spells                       _1040
   Will disenchant the captives, and will pour
   For the despairing, from the crystal wells
   Of thy deep spirit, reason's mighty lore,
   And power shall then abound, and hope arise once more.
   
   43.
   'Can man be free if woman be a slave?                                _1045
   Chain one who lives, and breathes this boundless air,
   To the corruption of a closed grave!
   Can they whose mates are beasts, condemned to bear
   Scorn, heavier far than toil or anguish, dare
   To trample their oppressors? in their home                           _1050
   Among their babes, thou knowest a curse would wear
   The shape of woman--hoary Crime would come
   Behind, and Fraud rebuild religion's tottering dome.
   
   44.
   'I am a child:--I would not yet depart.
   When I go forth alone, bearing the lamp                              _1055
   Aloft which thou hast kindled in my heart,
   Millions of slaves from many a dungeon damp
   Shall leap in joy, as the benumbing cramp
   Of ages leaves their limbs--no ill may harm
   Thy Cythna ever--truth its radiant stamp                             _1060
   Has fixed, as an invulnerable charm,
   Upon her children's brow, dark Falsehood to disarm.
   
   45.
   'Wait yet awhile for the appointed day--
   Thou wilt depart, and I with tears shall stand
   Watching thy dim sail skirt the ocean gray;                          _1065
   Amid the dwellers of this lonely land
   I shall remain alone--and thy command
   Shall then dissolve the world's unquiet trance,
   And, multitudinous as the desert sand
   Borne on the storm, its millions shall advance,                      _1070
   Thronging round thee, the light of their deliverance.
   
   46.
   'Then, like the forests of some pathless mountain,
   Which from remotest glens two warring winds
   Involve in fire which not the loosened fountain
   Of broadest floods might quench, shall all the kinds                 _1075
   Of evil, catch from our uniting minds
   The spark which must consume them;--Cythna then
   Will have cast off the impotence that binds
   Her childhood now, and through the paths of men
   Will pass, as the charmed bird that haunts the serpent's den.        _1080
   
   47.
   'We part!--O Laon, I must dare nor tremble,
   To meet those looks no more!--Oh, heavy stroke!
   Sweet brother of my soul! can I dissemble
   The agony of this thought?'--As thus she spoke
   The gathered sobs her quivering accents broke,                       _1085
   And in my arms she hid her beating breast.
   I remained still for tears--sudden she woke
   As one awakes from sleep, and wildly pressed
   My bosom, her whole frame impetuously possessed.
   
   48.
   'We part to meet again--but yon blue waste,                          _1090
   Yon desert wide and deep, holds no recess,
   Within whose happy silence, thus embraced
   We might survive all ills in one caress:
   Nor doth the grave--I fear 'tis passionless--
   Nor yon cold vacant Heaven:--we meet again                           _1095
   Within the minds of men, whose lips shall bless
   Our memory, and whose hopes its light retain
   When these dissevered bones are trodden in the plain.'
   
   49.
   I could not speak, though she had ceased, for now
   The fountains of her feeling, swift and deep,                        _1100
   Seemed to suspend the tumult of their flow;
   So we arose, and by the starlight steep
   Went homeward--neither did we speak nor weep,
   But, pale, were calm with passion--thus subdued
   Like evening shades that o'er the mountains creep,                   _1105
   We moved towards our home; where, in this mood,
   Each from the other sought refuge in solitude.
   
   
   CANTO 3.
   
   1.
   What thoughts had sway o'er Cythna's lonely slumber
   That night, I know not; but my own did seem
   As if they might ten thousand years outnumber                        _1110
   Of waking life, the visions of a dream
   Which hid in one dim gulf the troubled stream
   Of mind; a boundless chaos wild and vast,
   Whose limits yet were never memory's theme:
   And I lay struggling as its whirlwinds passed,                       _1115
   Sometimes for rapture sick, sometimes for pain aghast.
   
   2.
   Two hours, whose mighty circle did embrace
   More time than might make gray the infant world,
   Rolled thus, a weary and tumultuous space:
   When the third came, like mist on breezes curled,                    _1120
   From my dim sleep a shadow was unfurled:
   Methought, upon the threshold of a cave
   I sate with Cythna; drooping briony, pearled
   With dew from the wild streamlet's shattered wave,
   Hung, where we sate to taste the joys which Nature gave.             _1125
   
   3.
   We lived a day as we were wont to live,
   But Nature had a robe of glory on,
   And the bright air o'er every shape did weave
   Intenser hues, so that the herbless stone,
   The leafless bough among the leaves alone,                           _1130
   Had being clearer than its own could be,
   And Cythna's pure and radiant self was shown,
   In this strange vision, so divine to me,
   That if I loved before, now love was agony.
   
   4.
   Morn fled, noon came, evening, then night descended,                 _1135
   And we prolonged calm talk beneath the sphere
   Of the calm moon--when suddenly was blended
   With our repose a nameless sense of fear;
   And from the cave behind I seemed to hear
   Sounds gathering upwards!--accents incomplete,                       _1140
   And stifled shrieks,--and now, more near and near,
   A tumult and a rush of thronging feet
   The cavern's secret depths beneath the earth did beat.
   
   5.
   The scene was changed, and away, away, away!
   Through the air and over the sea we sped,                            _1145
   And Cythna in my sheltering bosom lay,
   And the winds bore me--through the darkness spread
   Around, the gaping earth then vomited
   Legions of foul and ghastly shapes, which hung
   Upon my flight; and ever, as we fled,                                _1150
   They plucked at Cythna--soon to me then clung
   A sense of actual things those monstrous dreams among.
   
   6.
   And I lay struggling in the impotence
   Of sleep, while outward life had burst its bound,
   Though, still deluded, strove the tortured sense                     _1155
   To its dire wanderings to adapt the sound
   Which in the light of morn was poured around
   Our dwelling; breathless, pale and unaware
   I rose, and all the cottage crowded found
   With armed men, whose glittering swords were bare,                   _1160
   And whose degraded limbs the tyrant's garb did wear.
   
   7.
   And, ere with rapid lips and gathered brow
   I could demand the cause--a feeble shriek--
   It was a feeble shriek, faint, far and low,
   Arrested me--my mien grew calm and meek,                             _1165
   And grasping a small knife, I went to seek
   That voice among the crowd--'twas Cythna's cry!
   Beneath most calm resolve did agony wreak
   Its whirlwind rage:--so I passed quietly
   Till I beheld, where bound, that dearest child did lie.              _1170
   
   8.
   I started to behold her, for delight
   And exultation, and a joyance free,
   Solemn, serene and lofty, filled the light
   Of the calm smile with which she looked on me:
   So that I feared some brainless ecstasy,                             _1175
   Wrought from that bitter woe, had wildered her--
   'Farewell! farewell!' she said, as I drew nigh;
   'At first my peace was marred by this strange stir,
   Now I am calm as truth--its chosen minister.
   
   9.
   'Look not so, Laon--say farewell in hope,                            _1180
   These bloody men are but the slaves who bear
   Their mistress to her task--it was my scope
   The slavery where they drag me now, to share,
   And among captives willing chains to wear
   Awhile--the rest thou knowest--return, dear friend!                  _1185
   Let our first triumph trample the despair
   Which would ensnare us now, for in the end,
   In victory or in death our hopes and fears must blend.'
   
   10.
   These words had fallen on my unheeding ear,
   Whilst I had watched the motions of the crew                         _1190
   With seeming-careless glance; not many were
   Around her, for their comrades just withdrew
   To guard some other victim--so I drew
   My knife, and with one impulse, suddenly
   All unaware three of their number slew,                              _1195
   And grasped a fourth by the throat, and with loud cry
   My countrymen invoked to death or liberty!
   
   11.
   What followed then, I know not--for a stroke
   On my raised arm and naked head, came down,
   Filling my eyes with blood.--When I awoke,                           _1200
   I felt that they had bound me in my swoon,
   And up a rock which overhangs the town,
   By the steep path were bearing me; below,
   The plain was filled with slaughter,--overthrown
   The vineyards and the harvests, and the glow                         _1205
   Of blazing roofs shone far o'er the white Ocean's flow.
   
   12.
   Upon that rock a mighty column stood,
   Whose capital seemed sculptured in the sky,
   Which to the wanderers o'er the solitude
   Of distant seas, from ages long gone by,                             _1210
   Had made a landmark; o'er its height to fly
   Scarcely the cloud, the vulture, or the blast,
   Has power--and when the shades of evening lie
   On Earth and Ocean, its carved summits cast
   The sunken daylight far through the aerial waste.                    _1215
   
   13.
   They bore me to a cavern in the hill
   Beneath that column, and unbound me there;
   And one did strip me stark; and one did fill
   A vessel from the putrid pool; one bare
   A lighted torch, and four with friendless care                       _1220
   Guided my steps the cavern-paths along,
   Then up a steep and dark and narrow stair
   We wound, until the torch's fiery tongue
   Amid the gushing day beamless and pallid hung.
   
   14.
   They raised me to the platform of the pile,                          _1225
   That column's dizzy height:--the grate of brass
   Through which they thrust me, open stood the while,
   As to its ponderous and suspended mass,
   With chains which eat into the flesh, alas!
   With brazen links, my naked limbs they bound:                        _1230
   The grate, as they departed to repass,
   With horrid clangour fell, and the far sound
   Of their retiring steps in the dense gloom was drowned.
   
   15.
   The noon was calm and bright:--around that column
   The overhanging sky and circling sea                                 _1235
   Spread forth in silentness profound and solemn
   The darkness of brief frenzy cast on me,
   So that I knew not my own misery:
   The islands and the mountains in the day
   Like clouds reposed afar; and I could see                            _1240
   The town among the woods below that lay,
   And the dark rocks which bound the bright and glassy bay.
   
   16.
   It was so calm, that scarce the feathery weed
   Sown by some eagle on the topmost stone
   Swayed in the air:--so bright, that noon did breed                   _1245
   No shadow in the sky beside mine own--
   Mine, and the shadow of my chain alone.
   Below, the smoke of roofs involved in flame
   Rested like night, all else was clearly shown
   In that broad glare; yet sound to me none came,                      _1250
   But of the living blood that ran within my frame.
   
   17.
   The peace of madness fled, and ah, too soon!
   A ship was lying on the sunny main,
   Its sails were flagging in the breathless noon--
   Its shadow lay beyond--that sight again                              _1255
   Waked, with its presence, in my tranced brain
   The stings of a known sorrow, keen and cold:
   I knew that ship bore Cythna o'er the plain
   Of waters, to her blighting slavery sold,
   And watched it with such thoughts as must remain untold.             _1260
   
   18.
   I watched until the shades of evening wrapped
   Earth like an exhalation--then the bark
   Moved, for that calm was by the sunset snapped.
   It moved a speck upon the Ocean dark:
   Soon the wan stars came forth, and I could mark                      _1265
   Its path no more!--I sought to close mine eyes,
   But like the balls, their lids were stiff and stark;
   I would have risen, but ere that I could rise,
   My parched skin was split with piercing agonies.
   
   19.
   I gnawed my brazen chain, and sought to sever                        _1270
   Its adamantine links, that I might die:
   O Liberty! forgive the base endeavour,
   Forgive me, if, reserved for victory,
   The Champion of thy faith e'er sought to fly.--
   That starry night, with its clear silence, sent                      _1275
   Tameless resolve which laughed at misery
   Into my soul--linked remembrance lent
   To that such power, to me such a severe content.
   
   20.
   To breathe, to be, to hope, or to despair
   And die, I questioned not; nor, though the Sun                       _1280
   Its shafts of agony kindling through the air
   Moved over me, nor though in evening dun,
   Or when the stars their visible courses run,
   Or morning, the wide universe was spread
   In dreary calmness round me, did I shun                              _1285
   Its presence, nor seek refuge with the dead
   From one faint hope whose flower a dropping poison shed.
   
   21.
   Two days thus passed--I neither raved nor died--
   Thirst raged within me, like a scorpion's nest
   Built in mine entrails; I had spurned aside                          _1290
   The water-vessel, while despair possessed
   My thoughts, and now no drop remained! The uprest
   Of the third sun brought hunger--but the crust
   Which had been left, was to my craving breast
   Fuel, not food. I chewed the bitter dust,                            _1295
   And bit my bloodless arm, and licked the brazen rust.
   
   22.
   My brain began to fail when the fourth morn
   Burst o'er the golden isles--a fearful sleep,
   Which through the caverns dreary and forlorn
   Of the riven soul, sent its foul dreams to sweep                     _1300
   With whirlwind swiftness--a fall far and deep,--
   A gulf, a void, a sense of senselessness--
   These things dwelt in me, even as shadows keep
   Their watch in some dim charnel's loneliness,
   A shoreless sea, a sky sunless and planetless!                       _1305
   
   23.
   The forms which peopled this terrific trance
   I well remember--like a choir of devils,
   Around me they involved a giddy dance;
   Legions seemed gathering from the misty levels
   Of Ocean, to supply those ceaseless revels,                          _1310
   Foul, ceaseless shadows:--thought could not divide
   The actual world from these entangling evils,
   Which so bemocked themselves, that I descried
   All shapes like mine own self, hideously multiplied.
   
   24.
   The sense of day and night, of false and true,                       _1315
   Was dead within me. Yet two visions burst
   That darkness--one, as since that hour I knew,
   Was not a phantom of the realms accursed,
   Where then my spirit dwelt--but of the first
   I know not yet, was it a dream or no.                                _1320
   But both, though not distincter, were immersed
   In hues which, when through memory's waste they flow,
   Make their divided streams more bright and rapid now.
   
   25.
   Methought that grate was lifted, and the seven
   Who brought me thither four stiff corpses bare,                      _1325
   And from the frieze to the four winds of Heaven
   Hung them on high by the entangled hair;
   Swarthy were three--the fourth was very fair;
   As they retired, the golden moon upsprung,
   And eagerly, out in the giddy air,                                   _1330
   Leaning that I might eat, I stretched and clung
   Over the shapeless depth in which those corpses hung.
   
   26.
   A woman's shape, now lank and cold and blue,
   The dwelling of the many-coloured worm,
   Hung there; the white and hollow cheek I drew                        _1335
   To my dry lips--what radiance did inform
   Those horny eyes? whose was that withered form?
   Alas, alas! it seemed that Cythna's ghost
   Laughed in those looks, and that the flesh was warm
   Within my teeth!--a whirlwind keen as frost                          _1340
   Then in its sinking gulfs my sickening spirit tossed.
   
   27.
   Then seemed it that a tameless hurricane
   Arose, and bore me in its dark career
   Beyond the sun, beyond the stars that wane
   On the verge of formless space--it languished there,                 _1345
   And dying, left a silence lone and drear,
   More horrible than famine:--in the deep
   The shape of an old man did then appear,
   Stately and beautiful; that dreadful sleep
   His heavenly smiles dispersed, and I could wake and weep.            _1350
   
   28.
   And, when the blinding tears had fallen, I saw
   That column, and those corpses, and the moon,
   And felt the poisonous tooth of hunger gnaw
   My vitals, I rejoiced, as if the boon
   Of senseless death would be accorded soon;--                         _1355
   When from that stony gloom a voice arose,
   Solemn and sweet as when low winds attune
   The midnight pines; the grate did then unclose,
   And on that reverend form the moonlight did repose.
   
   29.
   He struck my chains, and gently spake and smiled;                    _1360
   As they were loosened by that Hermit old,
   Mine eyes were of their madness half beguiled,
   To answer those kind looks; he did enfold
   His giant arms around me, to uphold
   My wretched frame; my scorched limbs he wound                        _1365
   In linen moist and balmy, and as cold
   As dew to drooping leaves;--the chain, with sound
   Like earthquake, through the chasm of that steep stair did bound,
   
   30.
   As, lifting me, it fell!--What next I heard,
   Were billows leaping on the harbour-bar,                             _1370
   And the shrill sea-wind, whose breath idly stirred
   My hair;--I looked abroad, and saw a star
   Shining beside a sail, and distant far
   That mountain and its column, the known mark
   Of those who in the wide deep wandering are,                         _1375
   So that I feared some Spirit, fell and dark,
   In trance had lain me thus within a fiendish bark.
   
   31.
   For now indeed, over the salt sea-billow
   I sailed: yet dared not look upon the shape
   Of him who ruled the helm, although the pillow                       _1380
   For my light head was hollowed in his lap,
   And my bare limbs his mantle did enwrap,
   Fearing it was a fiend: at last, he bent
   O'er me his aged face; as if to snap
   Those dreadful thoughts the gentle grandsire bent,                   _1385
   And to my inmost soul his soothing looks he sent.
   
   32.
   A soft and healing potion to my lips
   At intervals he raised--now looked on high,
   To mark if yet the starry giant dips
   His zone in the dim sea--now cheeringly,                             _1390
   Though he said little, did he speak to me.
   'It is a friend beside thee--take good cheer,
   Poor victim, thou art now at liberty!'
   I joyed as those a human tone to hear,
   Who in cells deep and lone have languished many a year.              _1395
   
   33.
   A dim and feeble joy, whose glimpses oft
   Were quenched in a relapse of wildering dreams;
   Yet still methought we sailed, until aloft
   The stars of night grew pallid, and the beams
   Of morn descended on the ocean-streams,                              _1400
   And still that aged man, so grand and mild,
   Tended me, even as some sick mother seems
   To hang in hope over a dying child,
   Till in the azure East darkness again was piled.
   
   34.
   And then the night-wind steaming from the shore,                     _1405
   Sent odours dying sweet across the sea,
   And the swift boat the little waves which bore,
   Were cut by its keen keel, though slantingly;
   Soon I could hear the leaves sigh, and could see
   The myrtle-blossoms starring the dim grove,                          _1410
   As past the pebbly beach the boat did flee
   On sidelong wing, into a silent cove,
   Where ebon pines a shade under the starlight wove.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _1223 torches' editions 1818, 1839.
   _1385 bent]meant cj. J. Nettleship.
   
   
   CANTO 4.
   
   1.
   The old man took the oars, and soon the bark
   Smote on the beach beside a tower of stone;                          _1415
   It was a crumbling heap, whose portal dark
   With blooming ivy-trails was overgrown;
   Upon whose floor the spangling sands were strown,
   And rarest sea-shells, which the eternal flood,
   Slave to the mother of the months, had thrown                        _1420
   Within the walls of that gray tower, which stood
   A changeling of man's art nursed amid Nature's brood.
   
   2.
   When the old man his boat had anchored,
   He wound me in his arms with tender care,
   And very few, but kindly words he said,                              _1425
   And bore me through the tower adown a stair,
   Whose smooth descent some ceaseless step to wear
   For many a year had fallen.--We came at last
   To a small chamber, which with mosses rare
   Was tapestried, where me his soft hands placed                       _1430
   Upon a couch of grass and oak-leaves interlaced.
   
   3.
   The moon was darting through the lattices
   Its yellow light, warm as the beams of day--
   So warm, that to admit the dewy breeze,
   The old man opened them; the moonlight lay                           _1435
   Upon a lake whose waters wove their play
   Even to the threshold of that lonely home:
   Within was seen in the dim wavering ray
   The antique sculptured roof, and many a tome
   Whose lore had made that sage all that he had become.                _1440
   
   4.
   The rock-built barrier of the sea was past,--
   And I was on the margin of a lake,
   A lonely lake, amid the forests vast
   And snowy mountains:--did my spirit wake
   From sleep as many-coloured as the snake                             _1445
   That girds eternity? in life and truth,
   Might not my heart its cravings ever slake?
   Was Cythna then a dream, and all my youth,
   And all its hopes and fears, and all its joy and ruth?
   
   5.
   Thus madness came again,--a milder madness,                          _1450
   Which darkened nought but time's unquiet flow
   With supernatural shades of clinging sadness;
   That gentle Hermit, in my helpless woe,
   By my sick couch was busy to and fro,
   Like a strong spirit ministrant of good:                             _1455
   When I was healed, he led me forth to show
   The wonders of his sylvan solitude,
   And we together sate by that isle-fretted flood.
   
   6.
   He knew his soothing words to weave with skill
   From all my madness told; like mine own heart,                       _1460
   Of Cythna would he question me, until
   That thrilling name had ceased to make me start,
   From his familiar lips--it was not art,
   Of wisdom and of justice when he spoke--
   When mid soft looks of pity, there would dart                        _1465
   A glance as keen as is the lightning's stroke
   When it doth rive the knots of some ancestral oak.
   
   7.
   Thus slowly from my brain the darkness rolled,
   My thoughts their due array did re-assume
   Through the enchantments of that Hermit old;                         _1470
   Then I bethought me of the glorious doom
   Of those who sternly struggle to relume
   The lamp of Hope o'er man's bewildered lot,
   And, sitting by the waters, in the gloom
   Of eve, to that friend's heart I told my thought--                   _1475
   That heart which had grown old, but had corrupted not.
   
   8.
   That hoary man had spent his livelong age
   In converse with the dead, who leave the stamp
   Of ever-burning thoughts on many a page,
   When they are gone into the senseless damp                           _1480
   Of graves;--his spirit thus became a lamp
   Of splendour, like to those on which it fed;
   Through peopled haunts, the City and the Camp,
   Deep thirst for knowledge had his footsteps led,
   And all the ways of men among mankind he read.                       _1485
   
   9.
   But custom maketh blind and obdurate
   The loftiest hearts;--he had beheld the woe
   In which mankind was bound, but deemed that fate
   Which made them abject, would preserve them so;
   And in such faith, some steadfast joy to know,                       _1490
   He sought this cell: but when fame went abroad
   That one in Argolis did undergo
   Torture for liberty, and that the crowd
   High truths from gifted lips had heard and understood;
   
   10.
   And that the multitude was gathering wide,--                         _1495
   His spirit leaped within his aged frame;
   In lonely peace he could no more abide,
   But to the land on which the victor's flame
   Had fed, my native land, the Hermit came:
   Each heart was there a shield, and every tongue                      _1500
   Was as a sword of truth--young Laon's name
   Rallied their secret hopes, though tyrants sung
   Hymns of triumphant joy our scattered tribes among.
   
   11.
   He came to the lone column on the rock,
   And with his sweet and mighty eloquence                              _1505
   The hearts of those who watched it did unlock,
   And made them melt in tears of penitence.
   They gave him entrance free to bear me thence.
   'Since this,' the old man said, 'seven years are spent,
   While slowly truth on thy benighted sense                            _1510
   Has crept; the hope which wildered it has lent
   Meanwhile, to me the power of a sublime intent.
   
   12.
   'Yes, from the records of my youthful state,
   And from the lore of bards and sages old,
   From whatsoe'er my wakened thoughts create                           _1515
   Out of the hopes of thine aspirings bold,
   Have I collected language to unfold
   Truth to my countrymen; from shore to shore
   Doctrines of human power my words have told,
   They have been heard, and men aspire to more                         _1520
   Than they have ever gained or ever lost of yore.
   
   13.
   'In secret chambers parents read, and weep,
   My writings to their babes, no longer blind;
   And young men gather when their tyrants sleep,
   And vows of faith each to the other bind;                            _1525
   And marriageable maidens, who have pined
   With love, till life seemed melting through their look,
   A warmer zeal, a nobler hope, now find;
   And every bosom thus is rapt and shook,
   Like autumn's myriad leaves in one swoln mountain-brook.             _1530
   
   14.
   'The tyrants of the Golden City tremble
   At voices which are heard about the streets;
   The ministers of fraud can scarce dissemble
   The lies of their own heart, but when one meets
   Another at the shrine, he inly weets,                                _1535
   Though he says nothing, that the truth is known;
   Murderers are pale upon the judgement-seats,
   And gold grows vile even to the wealthy crone,
   And laughter fills the Fane, and curses shake the Throne.
   
   15.
   'Kind thoughts, and mighty hopes, and gentle deeds                   _1540
   Abound, for fearless love, and the pure law
   Of mild equality and peace, succeeds
   To faiths which long have held the world in awe,
   Bloody and false, and cold:--as whirlpools draw
   All wrecks of Ocean to their chasm, the sway                         _1545
   Of thy strong genius, Laon, which foresaw
   This hope, compels all spirits to obey,
   Which round thy secret strength now throng in wide array.
   
   16.
   'For I have been thy passive instrument'--
   (As thus the old man spake, his countenance                          _1550
   Gleamed on me like a spirit's)--'thou hast lent
   To me, to all, the power to advance
   Towards this unforeseen deliverance
   From our ancestral chains--ay, thou didst rear
   That lamp of hope on high, which time nor chance                     _1555
   Nor change may not extinguish, and my share
   Of good, was o'er the world its gathered beams to bear.
   
   17.
   'But I, alas! am both unknown and old,
   And though the woof of wisdom I know well
   To dye in hues of language, I am cold                                _1560
   In seeming, and the hopes which inly dwell,
   My manners note that I did long repel;
   But Laon's name to the tumultuous throng
   Were like the star whose beams the waves compel
   And tempests, and his soul-subduing tongue                           _1565
   Were as a lance to quell the mailed crest of wrong.
   
   18.
   'Perchance blood need not flow, if thou at length
   Wouldst rise, perchance the very slaves would spare
   Their brethren and themselves; great is the strength
   Of words--for lately did a maiden fair,                              _1570
   Who from her childhood has been taught to bear
   The Tyrant's heaviest yoke, arise, and make
   Her sex the law of truth and freedom hear,
   And with these quiet words--"for thine own sake
   I prithee spare me;"--did with ruth so take                          _1575
   
   19.
   'All hearts, that even the torturer who had bound
   Her meek calm frame, ere it was yet impaled,
   Loosened her, weeping then; nor could be found
   One human hand to harm her--unassailed
   Therefore she walks through the great City, veiled                   _1580
   In virtue's adamantine eloquence,
   'Gainst scorn, and death and pain thus trebly mailed,
   And blending, in the smiles of that defence,
   The Serpent and the Dove, Wisdom and Innocence.
   
   20.
   'The wild-eyed women throng around her path:                         _1585
   From their luxurious dungeons, from the dust
   Of meaner thralls, from the oppressor's wrath,
   Or the caresses of his sated lust
   They congregate:--in her they put their trust;
   The tyrants send their armed slaves to quell                         _1590
   Her power;--they, even like a thunder-gust
   Caught by some forest, bend beneath the spell
   Of that young maiden's speech, and to their chiefs rebel.
   
   21.
   'Thus she doth equal laws and justice teach
   To woman, outraged and polluted long;                                _1595
   Gathering the sweetest fruit in human reach
   For those fair hands now free, while armed wrong
   Trembles before her look, though it be strong;
   Thousands thus dwell beside her, virgins bright,
   And matrons with their babes, a stately throng!                      _1600
   Lovers renew the vows which they did plight
   In early faith, and hearts long parted now unite,
   
   22.
   'And homeless orphans find a home near her,
   And those poor victims of the proud, no less,
   Fair wrecks, on whom the smiling world with stir,                    _1605
   Thrusts the redemption of its wickedness:--
   In squalid huts, and in its palaces
   Sits Lust alone, while o'er the land is borne
   Her voice, whose awful sweetness doth repress
   All evil, and her foes relenting turn,                               _1610
   And cast the vote of love in hope's abandoned urn.
   
   23.
   'So in the populous City, a young maiden
   Has baffled Havoc of the prey which he
   Marks as his own, whene'er with chains o'erladen
   Men make them arms to hurl down tyranny,--                           _1615
   False arbiter between the bound and free;
   And o'er the land, in hamlets and in towns
   The multitudes collect tumultuously,
   And throng in arms; but tyranny disowns
   Their claim, and gathers strength around its trembling thrones.      _1620
   
   24.
   'Blood soon, although unwillingly, to shed
   The free cannot forbear--the Queen of Slaves,
   The hoodwinked Angel of the blind and dead,
   Custom, with iron mace points to the graves
   Where her own standard desolately waves                              _1625
   Over the dust of Prophets and of Kings.
   Many yet stand in her array--"she paves
   Her path with human hearts," and o'er it flings
   The wildering gloom of her immeasurable wings.
   
   25.
   'There is a plain beneath the City's wall,                           _1630
   Bounded by misty mountains, wide and vast,
   Millions there lift at Freedom's thrilling call
   Ten thousand standards wide, they load the blast
   Which bears one sound of many voices past,
   And startles on his throne their sceptred foe:                       _1635
   He sits amid his idle pomp aghast,
   And that his power hath passed away, doth know--
   Why pause the victor swords to seal his overthrow?
   
   26.
   'The tyrant's guards resistance yet maintain:
   Fearless, and fierce, and hard as beasts of blood,                   _1640
   They stand a speck amid the peopled plain;
   Carnage and ruin have been made their food
   From infancy--ill has become their good,
   And for its hateful sake their will has wove
   The chains which eat their hearts. The multitude                     _1645
   Surrounding them, with words of human love,
   Seek from their own decay their stubborn minds to move.
   
   27.
   'Over the land is felt a sudden pause,
   As night and day those ruthless bands around,
   The watch of love is kept:--a trance which awes                      _1650
   The thoughts of men with hope; as when the sound
   Of whirlwind, whose fierce blasts the waves and clouds confound,
   Dies suddenly, the mariner in fear
   Feels silence sink upon his heart--thus bound,
   The conquerors pause, and oh! may freemen ne'er                      _1655
   Clasp the relentless knees of Dread, the murderer!
   
   28.
   'If blood be shed, 'tis but a change and choice
   Of bonds,--from slavery to cowardice
   A wretched fall!--Uplift thy charmed voice!
   Pour on those evil men the love that lies                            _1660
   Hovering within those spirit-soothing eyes--
   Arise, my friend, farewell!'--As thus he spake,
   From the green earth lightly I did arise,
   As one out of dim dreams that doth awake,
   And looked upon the depth of that reposing lake.                     _1665
   
   29.
   I saw my countenance reflected there;--
   And then my youth fell on me like a wind
   Descending on still waters--my thin hair
   Was prematurely gray, my face was lined
   With channels, such as suffering leaves behind,                      _1670
   Not age; my brow was pale, but in my cheek
   And lips a flush of gnawing fire did find
   Their food and dwelling; though mine eyes might speak
   A subtle mind and strong within a frame thus weak.
   
   30.
   And though their lustre now was spent and faded,                     _1675
   Yet in my hollow looks and withered mien
   The likeness of a shape for which was braided
   The brightest woof of genius, still was seen--
   One who, methought, had gone from the world's scene,
   And left it vacant--'twas her lover's face--                         _1680
   It might resemble her--it once had been
   The mirror of her thoughts, and still the grace
   Which her mind's shadow cast, left there a lingering trace.
   
   31.
   What then was I? She slumbered with the dead.
   Glory and joy and peace, had come and gone.                          _1685
   Doth the cloud perish, when the beams are fled
   Which steeped its skirts in gold? or, dark and lone,
   Doth it not through the paths of night unknown,
   On outspread wings of its own wind upborne
   Pour rain upon the earth? The stars are shown,                       _1690
   When the cold moon sharpens her silver horn
   Under the sea, and make the wide night not forlorn.
   
   32.
   Strengthened in heart, yet sad, that aged man
   I left, with interchange of looks and tears,
   And lingering speech, and to the Camp began                          _1695
   My war. O'er many a mountain-chain which rears
   Its hundred crests aloft, my spirit bears
   My frame; o'er many a dale and many a moor,
   And gaily now meseems serene earth wears
   The blosmy spring's star-bright investiture,                         _1700
   A vision which aught sad from sadness might allure.
   
   33.
   My powers revived within me, and I went,
   As one whom winds waft o'er the bending grass,
   Through many a vale of that broad continent.
   At night when I reposed, fair dreams did pass                        _1705
   Before my pillow;--my own Cythna was,
   Not like a child of death, among them ever;
   When I arose from rest, a woful mass
   That gentlest sleep seemed from my life to sever,
   As if the light of youth were not withdrawn for ever.                _1710
   
   34.
   Aye as I went, that maiden who had reared
   The torch of Truth afar, of whose high deeds
   The Hermit in his pilgrimage had heard,
   Haunted my thoughts.--Ah, Hope its sickness feeds
   With whatsoe'er it finds, or flowers or weeds!                       _1715
   Could she be Cythna?--Was that corpse a shade
   Such as self-torturing thought from madness breeds?
   Why was this hope not torture? Yet it made
   A light around my steps which would not ever fade.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _1625 Where]When edition 1818.
   
   
   CANTO 5.
   
   1.
   Over the utmost hill at length I sped,                               _1720
   A snowy steep:--the moon was hanging low
   Over the Asian mountains, and outspread
   The plain, the City, and the Camp below,
   Skirted the midnight Ocean's glimmering flow;
   The City's moonlit spires and myriad lamps,                          _1725
   Like stars in a sublunar sky did glow,
   And fires blazed far amid the scattered camps,
   Like springs of flame, which burst where'er swift Earthquake stamps.
   
   2.
   All slept but those in watchful arms who stood,
   And those who sate tending the beacon's light,                       _1730
   And the few sounds from that vast multitude
   Made silence more profound.--Oh, what a might
   Of human thought was cradled in that night!
   How many hearts impenetrably veiled
   Beat underneath its shade, what secret fight                         _1735
   Evil and good, in woven passions mailed,
   Waged through that silent throng--a war that never failed!
   
   3.
   And now the Power of Good held victory.
   So, through the labyrinth of many a tent,
   Among the silent millions who did lie                                _1740
   In innocent sleep, exultingly I went;
   The moon had left Heaven desert now, but lent
   From eastern morn the first faint lustre showed
   An armed youth--over his spear he bent
   His downward face.--'A friend!' I cried aloud,                       _1745
   And quickly common hopes made freemen understood.
   
   4.
   I sate beside him while the morning beam
   Crept slowly over Heaven, and talked with him
   Of those immortal hopes, a glorious theme!
   Which led us forth, until the stars grew dim:                        _1750
   And all the while, methought, his voice did swim
   As if it drowned in remembrance were
   Of thoughts which make the moist eyes overbrim:
   At last, when daylight 'gan to fill the air,
   He looked on me, and cried in wonder--'Thou art here!'               _1755
   
   5.
   Then, suddenly, I knew it was the youth
   In whom its earliest hopes my spirit found;
   But envious tongues had stained his spotless truth,
   And thoughtless pride his love in silence bound,
   And shame and sorrow mine in toils had wound,                        _1760
   Whilst he was innocent, and I deluded;
   The truth now came upon me, on the ground
   Tears of repenting joy, which fast intruded,
   Fell fast, and o'er its peace our mingling spirits brooded.
   
   6.
   Thus, while with rapid lips and earnest eyes                         _1765
   We talked, a sound of sweeping conflict spread
   As from the earth did suddenly arise;
   From every tent roused by that clamour dread,
   Our bands outsprung and seized their arms--we sped
   Towards the sound: our tribes were gathering far.                    _1770
   Those sanguine slaves amid ten thousand dead
   Stabbed in their sleep, trampled in treacherous war
   The gentle hearts whose power their lives had sought to spare.
   
   7.
   Like rabid snakes, that sting some gentle child
   Who brings them food, when winter false and fair                     _1775
   Allures them forth with its cold smiles, so wild
   They rage among the camp;--they overbear
   The patriot hosts--confusion, then despair,
   Descends like night--when 'Laon!' one did cry;
   Like a bright ghost from Heaven that shout did scare                 _1780
   The slaves, and widening through the vaulted sky,
   Seemed sent from Earth to Heaven in sign of victory.
   
   8.
   In sudden panic those false murderers fled,
   Like insect tribes before the northern gale:
   But swifter still, our hosts encompassed                             _1785
   Their shattered ranks, and in a craggy vale,
   Where even their fierce despair might nought avail,
   Hemmed them around!--and then revenge and fear
   Made the high virtue of the patriots fail:
   One pointed on his foe the mortal spear--                            _1790
   I rushed before its point, and cried 'Forbear, forbear!'
   
   9.
   The spear transfixed my arm that was uplifted
   In swift expostulation, and the blood
   Gushed round its point: I smiled, and--'Oh! thou gifted
   With eloquence which shall not be withstood,                         _1795
   Flow thus!' I cried in joy, 'thou vital flood,
   Until my heart be dry, ere thus the cause
   For which thou wert aught worthy be subdued--
   Ah, ye are pale,--ye weep,--your passions pause,--
   'Tis well! ye feel the truth of love's benignant laws.               _1800
   
   10.
   'Soldiers, our brethren and our friends are slain.
   Ye murdered them, I think, as they did sleep!
   Alas, what have ye done? the slightest pain
   Which ye might suffer, there were eyes to weep,
   But ye have quenched them--there were smiles to steep                _1805
   Your hearts in balm, but they are lost in woe;
   And those whom love did set his watch to keep
   Around your tents, truth's freedom to bestow,
   Ye stabbed as they did sleep--but they forgive ye now.
   
   11.
   'Oh wherefore should ill ever flow from ill,                         _1810
   And pain still keener pain for ever breed?
   We all are brethren--even the slaves who kill
   For hire, are men; and to avenge misdeed
   On the misdoer, doth but Misery feed
   With her own broken heart! O Earth, O Heaven!                        _1815
   And thou, dread Nature, which to every deed
   And all that lives, or is, to be hath given,
   Even as to thee have these done ill, and are forgiven!
   
   12.
   'Join then your hands and hearts, and let the past
   Be as a grave which gives not up its dead                            _1820
   To evil thoughts.'--A film then overcast
   My sense with dimness, for the wound, which bled
   Freshly, swift shadows o'er mine eyes had shed.
   When I awoke, I lay mid friends and foes,
   And earnest countenances on me shed                                  _1825
   The light of questioning looks, whilst one did close
   My wound with balmiest herbs, and soothed me to repose;
   
   13.
   And one whose spear had pierced me, leaned beside
   With quivering lips and humid eyes;--and all
   Seemed like some brothers on a journey wide                          _1830
   Gone forth, whom now strange meeting did befall
   In a strange land, round one whom they might call
   Their friend, their chief, their father, for assay
   Of peril, which had saved them from the thrall
   Of death, now suffering. Thus the vast array                         _1835
   Of those fraternal bands were reconciled that day.
   
   14.
   Lifting the thunder of their acclamation,
   Towards the City then the multitude,
   And I among them, went in joy--a nation
   Made free by love;--a mighty brotherhood                             _1840
   Linked by a jealous interchange of good;
   A glorious pageant, more magnificent
   Than kingly slaves arrayed in gold and blood,
   When they return from carnage, and are sent
   In triumph bright beneath the populous battlement.                   _1845
   
   15.
   Afar, the city-walls were thronged on high,
   And myriads on each giddy turret clung,
   And to each spire far lessening in the sky
   Bright pennons on the idle winds were hung;
   As we approached, a shout of joyance sprung                          _1850
   At once from all the crowd, as if the vast
   And peopled Earth its boundless skies among
   The sudden clamour of delight had cast,
   When from before its face some general wreck had passed.
   
   16.
   Our armies through the City's hundred gates                          _1855
   Were poured, like brooks which to the rocky lair
   Of some deep lake, whose silence them awaits,
   Throng from the mountains when the storms are there
   And, as we passed through the calm sunny air
   A thousand flower-inwoven crowns were shed,                          _1860
   The token flowers of truth and freedom fair,
   And fairest hands bound them on many a head,
   Those angels of love's heaven that over all was spread.
   
   17.
   I trod as one tranced in some rapturous vision:
   Those bloody bands so lately reconciled,                             _1865
   Were, ever as they went, by the contrition
   Of anger turned to love, from ill beguiled,
   And every one on them more gently smiled,
   Because they had done evil:--the sweet awe
   Of such mild looks made their own hearts grow mild,                  _1870
   And did with soft attraction ever draw
   Their spirits to the love of freedom's equal law.
   
   18.
   And they, and all, in one loud symphony
   My name with Liberty commingling, lifted,
   'The friend and the preserver of the free!                           _1875
   The parent of this joy!' and fair eyes gifted
   With feelings, caught from one who had uplifted
   The light of a great spirit, round me shone;
   And all the shapes of this grand scenery shifted
   Like restless clouds before the steadfast sun,--                     _1880
   Where was that Maid? I asked, but it was known of none.
   
   19.
   Laone was the name her love had chosen,
   For she was nameless, and her birth none knew:
   Where was Laone now?--The words were frozen
   Within my lips with fear; but to subdue                              _1885
   Such dreadful hope, to my great task was due,
   And when at length one brought reply, that she
   To-morrow would appear, I then withdrew
   To judge what need for that great throng might be,
   For now the stars came thick over the twilight sea.                  _1890
   
   20.
   Yet need was none for rest or food to care,
   Even though that multitude was passing great,
   Since each one for the other did prepare
   All kindly succour--Therefore to the gate
   Of the Imperial House, now desolate,                                 _1895
   I passed, and there was found aghast, alone,
   The fallen Tyrant!--Silently he sate
   Upon the footstool of his golden throne,
   Which, starred with sunny gems, in its own lustre shone.
   
   21.
   Alone, but for one child, who led before him                         _1900
   A graceful dance: the only living thing
   Of all the crowd, which thither to adore him
   Flocked yesterday, who solace sought to bring
   In his abandonment!--She knew the King
   Had praised her dance of yore, and now she wove                      _1905
   Its circles, aye weeping and murmuring
   Mid her sad task of unregarded love,
   That to no smiles it might his speechless sadness move.
   
   22.
   She fled to him, and wildly clasped his feet
   When human steps were heard:--he moved nor spoke,                    _1910
   Nor changed his hue, nor raised his looks to meet
   The gaze of strangers--our loud entrance woke
   The echoes of the hall, which circling broke
   The calm of its recesses,--like a tomb
   Its sculptured walls vacantly to the stroke                          _1915
   Of footfalls answered, and the twilight's gloom
   Lay like a charnel's mist within the radiant dome.
   
   23.
   The little child stood up when we came nigh;
   Her lips and cheeks seemed very pale and wan,
   But on her forehead, and within her eye                              _1920
   Lay beauty, which makes hearts that feed thereon
   Sick with excess of sweetness; on the throne
   She leaned;--the King, with gathered brow, and lips
   Wreathed by long scorn, did inly sneer and frown
   With hue like that when some great painter dips                      _1925
   His pencil in the gloom of earthquake and eclipse.
   
   24.
   She stood beside him like a rainbow braided
   Within some storm, when scarce its shadows vast
   From the blue paths of the swift sun have faded;
   A sweet and solemn smile, like Cythna's, cast                        _1930
   One moment's light, which made my heart beat fast,
   O'er that child's parted lips--a gleam of bliss,
   A shade of vanished days,--as the tears passed
   Which wrapped it, even as with a father's kiss
   I pressed those softest eyes in trembling tenderness.                _1935
   
   25.
   The sceptred wretch then from that solitude
   I drew, and, of his change compassionate,
   With words of sadness soothed his rugged mood.
   But he, while pride and fear held deep debate,
   With sullen guile of ill-dissembled hate                             _1940
   Glared on me as a toothless snake might glare:
   Pity, not scorn I felt, though desolate
   The desolator now, and unaware
   The curses which he mocked had caught him by the hair.
   
   26.
   I led him forth from that which now might seem                       _1945
   A gorgeous grave: through portals sculptured deep
   With imagery beautiful as dream
   We went, and left the shades which tend on sleep
   Over its unregarded gold to keep
   Their silent watch.--The child trod faintingly,                      _1950
   And as she went, the tears which she did weep
   Glanced in the starlight; wildered seemed she,
   And, when I spake, for sobs she could not answer me.
   
   27.
   At last the tyrant cried, 'She hungers, slave!
   Stab her, or give her bread!'--It was a tone                         _1955
   Such as sick fancies in a new-made grave
   Might hear. I trembled, for the truth was known;
   He with this child had thus been left alone,
   And neither had gone forth for food,--but he
   In mingled pride and awe cowered near his throne,                    _1960
   And she a nursling of captivity
   Knew nought beyond those walls, nor what such change might be.
   
   28.
   And he was troubled at a charm withdrawn
   Thus suddenly; that sceptres ruled no more--
   That even from gold the dreadful strength was gone,                  _1965
   Which once made all things subject to its power--
   Such wonder seized him, as if hour by hour
   The past had come again; and the swift fall
   Of one so great and terrible of yore,
   To desolateness, in the hearts of all                                _1970
   Like wonder stirred, who saw such awful change befall.
   
   29.
   A mighty crowd, such as the wide land pours
   Once in a thousand years, now gathered round
   The fallen tyrant;--like the rush of showers
   Of hail in spring, pattering along the ground,                       _1975
   Their many footsteps fell, else came no sound
   From the wide multitude: that lonely man
   Then knew the burden of his change, and found,
   Concealing in the dust his visage wan,
   Refuge from the keen looks which through his bosom ran.              _1980
   
   30.
   And he was faint withal: I sate beside him
   Upon the earth, and took that child so fair
   From his weak arms, that ill might none betide him
   Or her;--when food was brought to them, her share
   To his averted lips the child did bear,                              _1985
   But, when she saw he had enough, she ate
   And wept the while;--the lonely man's despair
   Hunger then overcame, and of his state
   Forgetful, on the dust as in a trance he sate.
   
   31.
   Slowly the silence of the multitudes                                 _1990
   Passed, as when far is heard in some lone dell
   The gathering of a wind among the woods--
   'And he is fallen!' they cry, 'he who did dwell
   Like famine or the plague, or aught more fell
   Among our homes, is fallen! the murderer                             _1995
   Who slaked his thirsting soul as from a well
   Of blood and tears with ruin! he is here!
   Sunk in a gulf of scorn from which none may him rear!'
   
   32.
   Then was heard--'He who judged let him be brought
   To judgement! blood for blood cries from the soil                    _2000
   On which his crimes have deep pollution wrought!
   Shall Othman only unavenged despoil?
   Shall they who by the stress of grinding toil
   Wrest from the unwilling earth his luxuries,
   Perish for crime, while his foul blood may boil,                     _2005
   Or creep within his veins at will?--Arise!
   And to high justice make her chosen sacrifice!'
   
   33.
   'What do ye seek? what fear ye,' then I cried,
   Suddenly starting forth, 'that ye should shed
   The blood of Othman?--if your hearts are tried                       _2010
   In the true love of freedom, cease to dread
   This one poor lonely man--beneath Heaven spread
   In purest light above us all, through earth--
   Maternal earth, who doth her sweet smiles shed
   For all, let him go free; until the worth                            _2015
   Of human nature win from these a second birth.
   
   34.
   'What call ye "justice"? Is there one who ne'er
   In secret thought has wished another's ill?--
   Are ye all pure? Let those stand forth who hear
   And tremble not. Shall they insult and kill,                         _2020
   If such they be? their mild eyes can they fill
   With the false anger of the hypocrite?
   Alas, such were not pure!--the chastened will
   Of virtue sees that justice is the light
   Of love, and not revenge, and terror and despite.'                   _2025
   
   35.
   The murmur of the people, slowly dying,
   Paused as I spake, then those who near me were,
   Cast gentle looks where the lone man was lying
   Shrouding his head, which now that infant fair
   Clasped on her lap in silence;--through the air                      _2030
   Sobs were then heard, and many kissed my feet
   In pity's madness, and to the despair
   Of him whom late they cursed, a solace sweet
   His very victims brought--soft looks and speeches meet.
   
   36.
   Then to a home for his repose assigned,                              _2035
   Accompanied by the still throng, he went
   In silence, where, to soothe his rankling mind,
   Some likeness of his ancient state was lent;
   And if his heart could have been innocent
   As those who pardoned him, he might have ended                       _2040
   His days in peace; but his straight lips were bent,
   Men said, into a smile which guile portended,
   A sight with which that child like hope with fear was blended.
   
   37.
   'Twas midnight now, the eve of that great day
   Whereon the many nations at whose call                               _2045
   The chains of earth like mist melted away,
   Decreed to hold a sacred Festival,
   A rite to attest the equality of all
   Who live. So to their homes, to dream or wake
   All went. The sleepless silence did recall                           _2050
   Laone to my thoughts, with hopes that make
   The flood recede from which their thirst they seek to slake.
   
   38.
   The dawn flowed forth, and from its purple fountains
   I drank those hopes which make the spirit quail,
   As to the plain between the misty mountains                          _2055
   And the great City, with a countenance pale,
   I went:--it was a sight which might avail
   To make men weep exulting tears, for whom
   Now first from human power the reverend veil
   Was torn, to see Earth from her general womb                         _2060
   Pour forth her swarming sons to a fraternal doom:
   
   39.
   To see, far glancing in the misty morning,
   The signs of that innumerable host;
   To hear one sound of many made, the warning
   Of Earth to Heaven from its free children tossed,                    _2065
   While the eternal hills, and the sea lost
   In wavering light, and, starring the blue sky
   The city's myriad spires of gold, almost
   With human joy made mute society--
   Its witnesses with men who must hereafter be.                        _2070
   
   40.
   To see, like some vast island from the Ocean,
   The Altar of the Federation rear
   Its pile i' the midst; a work, which the devotion
   Of millions in one night created there,
   Sudden as when the moonrise makes appear                             _2075
   Strange clouds in the east; a marble pyramid
   Distinct with steps: that mighty shape did wear
   The light of genius; its still shadow hid
   Far ships: to know its height the morning mists forbid!
   
   41.
   To hear the restless multitudes for ever                             _2080
   Around the base of that great Altar flow,
   As on some mountain-islet burst and shiver
   Atlantic waves; and solemnly and slow
   As the wind bore that tumult to and fro,
   To feel the dreamlike music, which did swim                          _2085
   Like beams through floating clouds on waves below
   Falling in pauses, from that Altar dim,
   As silver-sounding tongues breathed an aerial hymn.
   
   42.
   To hear, to see, to live, was on that morn
   Lethean joy! so that all those assembled                             _2090
   Cast off their memories of the past outworn;
   Two only bosoms with their own life trembled,
   And mine was one,--and we had both dissembled;
   So with a beating heart I went, and one,
   Who having much, covets yet more, resembled;                         _2095
   A lost and dear possession, which not won,
   He walks in lonely gloom beneath the noonday sun.
   
   43.
   To the great Pyramid I came: its stair
   With female choirs was thronged: the loveliest
   Among the free, grouped with its sculptures rare;                    _2100
   As I approached, the morning's golden mist,
   Which now the wonder-stricken breezes kissed
   With their cold lips, fled, and the summit shone
   Like Athos seen from Samothracia, dressed
   In earliest light, by vintagers, and one                             _2105
   Sate there, a female Shape upon an ivory throne:
   
   44.
   A Form most like the imagined habitant
   Of silver exhalations sprung from dawn,
   By winds which feed on sunrise woven, to enchant
   The faiths of men: all mortal eyes were drawn,                       _2110
   As famished mariners through strange seas gone
   Gaze on a burning watch-tower, by the light
   Of those divinest lineaments--alone
   With thoughts which none could share, from that fair sight
   I turned in sickness, for a veil shrouded her countenance bright.    _2115
   
   45.
   And neither did I hear the acclamations,
   Which from brief silence bursting, filled the air
   With her strange name and mine, from all the nations
   Which we, they said, in strength had gathered there
   From the sleep of bondage; nor the vision fair                       _2120
   Of that bright pageantry beheld,--but blind
   And silent, as a breathing corpse did fare,
   Leaning upon my friend, till like a wind
   To fevered cheeks, a voice flowed o'er my troubled mind.
   
   46.
   Like music of some minstrel heavenly gifted,                         _2125
   To one whom fiends enthral, this voice to me;
   Scarce did I wish her veil to be uplifted,
   I was so calm and joyous.--I could see
   The platform where we stood, the statues three
   Which kept their marble watch on that high shrine,                   _2130
   The multitudes, the mountains, and the sea;
   As when eclipse hath passed, things sudden shine
   To men's astonished eyes most clear and crystalline.
   
   47.
   At first Laone spoke most tremulously:
   But soon her voice the calmness which it shed                        _2135
   Gathered, and--'Thou art whom I sought to see,
   And thou art our first votary here,' she said:
   'I had a dear friend once, but he is dead!--
   And of all those on the wide earth who breathe,
   Thou dost resemble him alone--I spread                               _2140
   This veil between us two that thou beneath
   Shouldst image one who may have been long lost in death.
   
   48.
   'For this wilt thou not henceforth pardon me?
   Yes, but those joys which silence well requite
   Forbid reply;--why men have chosen me                                _2145
   To be the Priestess of this holiest rite
   I scarcely know, but that the floods of light
   Which flow over the world, have borne me hither
   To meet thee, long most dear; and now unite
   Thine hand with mine, and may all comfort wither                     _2150
   From both the hearts whose pulse in joy now beat together,
   
   49.
   'If our own will as others' law we bind,
   If the foul worship trampled here we fear;
   If as ourselves we cease to love our kind!'--
   She paused, and pointed upwards--sculptured there                    _2155
   Three shapes around her ivory throne appear;
   One was a Giant, like a child asleep
   On a loose rock, whose grasp crushed, as it were
   In dream, sceptres and crowns; and one did keep
   Its watchful eyes in doubt whether to smile or weep;                 _2160
   
   50.
   A Woman sitting on the sculptured disk
   Of the broad earth, and feeding from one breast
   A human babe and a young basilisk;
   Her looks were sweet as Heaven's when loveliest
   In Autumn eves. The third Image was dressed                          _2165
   In white wings swift as clouds in winter skies;
   Beneath his feet, 'mongst ghastliest forms, repressed
   Lay Faith, an obscene worm, who sought to rise,
   While calmly on the Sun he turned his diamond eyes.
   
   51.
   Beside that Image then I sate, while she                             _2170
   Stood, mid the throngs which ever ebbed and flowed,
   Like light amid the shadows of the sea
   Cast from one cloudless star, and on the crowd
   That touch which none who feels forgets, bestowed;
   And whilst the sun returned the steadfast gaze                       _2175
   Of the great Image, as o'er Heaven it glode,
   That rite had place; it ceased when sunset's blaze
   Burned o'er the isles. All stood in joy and deep amaze--
   --When in the silence of all spirits there
   Laone's voice was felt, and through the air                          _2180
   Her thrilling gestures spoke, most eloquently fair:--
   
   51.1.
   'Calm art thou as yon sunset! swift and strong
   As new-fledged Eagles, beautiful and young,
   That float among the blinding beams of morning;
   And underneath thy feet writhe Faith, and Folly,                     _2185
   Custom, and Hell, and mortal Melancholy--
   Hark! the Earth starts to hear the mighty warning
   Of thy voice sublime and holy;
   Its free spirits here assembled
   See thee, feel thee, know thee now,--                                _2190
   To thy voice their hearts have trembled
   Like ten thousand clouds which flow
   With one wide wind as it flies!--
   Wisdom! thy irresistible children rise
   To hail thee, and the elements they chain                            _2195
   And their own will, to swell the glory of thy train.
   
   51.2.
   'O Spirit vast and deep as Night and Heaven!
   Mother and soul of all to which is given
   The light of life, the loveliness of being,
   Lo! thou dost re-ascend the human heart,                             _2200
   Thy throne of power, almighty as thou wert
   In dreams of Poets old grown pale by seeing
   The shade of thee;--now, millions start
   To feel thy lightnings through them burning:
   Nature, or God, or Love, or Pleasure,                                _2205
   Or Sympathy the sad tears turning
   To mutual smiles, a drainless treasure,
   Descends amidst us;--Scorn and Hate,
   Revenge and Selfishness are desolate--
   A hundred nations swear that there shall be                          _2210
   Pity and Peace and Love, among the good and free!
   
   51.3.
   'Eldest of things, divine Equality!
   Wisdom and Love are but the slaves of thee,
   The Angels of thy sway, who pour around thee
   Treasures from all the cells of human thought,                       _2215
   And from the Stars, and from the Ocean brought,
   And the last living heart whose beatings bound thee:
   The powerful and the wise had sought
   Thy coming, thou in light descending
   O'er the wide land which is thine own                                _2220
   Like the Spring whose breath is blending
   All blasts of fragrance into one,
   Comest upon the paths of men!--
   Earth bares her general bosom to thy ken,
   And all her children here in glory meet                              _2225
   To feed upon thy smiles, and clasp thy sacred feet.
   
   51.4
   'My brethren, we are free! the plains and mountains,
   The gray sea-shore, the forests and the fountains,
   Are haunts of happiest dwellers;--man and woman,
   Their common bondage burst, may freely borrow                        _2230
   From lawless love a solace for their sorrow;
   For oft we still must weep, since we are human.
   A stormy night's serenest morrow,
   Whose showers are pity's gentle tears,
   Whose clouds are smiles of those that die                            _2235
   Like infants without hopes or fears,
   And whose beams are joys that lie
   In blended hearts, now holds dominion;
   The dawn of mind, which upwards on a pinion
   Borne, swift as sunrise, far illumines space,                        _2240
   And clasps this barren world in its own bright embrace!
   
   51.5
   'My brethren, we are free! The fruits are glowing
   Beneath the stars, and the night-winds are flowing
   O'er the ripe corn, the birds and beasts are dreaming--
   Never again may blood of bird or beast                               _2245
   Stain with its venomous stream a human feast,
   To the pure skies in accusation steaming;
   Avenging poisons shall have ceased
   To feed disease and fear and madness,
   The dwellers of the earth and air                                    _2250
   Shall throng around our steps in gladness,
   Seeking their food or refuge there.
   Our toil from thought all glorious forms shall cull,
   To make this Earth, our home, more beautiful,
   And Science, and her sister Poesy,                                   _2255
   Shall clothe in light the fields and cities of the free!
   
   51.6
   'Victory, Victory to the prostrate nations!
   Bear witness Night, and ye mute Constellations
   Who gaze on us from your crystalline cars!
   Thoughts have gone forth whose powers can sleep no more!             _2260
   Victory! Victory! Earth's remotest shore,
   Regions which groan beneath the Antarctic stars,
   The green lands cradled in the roar
   Of western waves, and wildernesses
   Peopled and vast, which skirt the oceans                             _2265
   Where morning dyes her golden tresses,
   Shall soon partake our high emotions:
   Kings shall turn pale! Almighty Fear,
   The Fiend-God, when our charmed name he hear,
   Shall fade like shadow from his thousand fanes,                      _2270
   While Truth with Joy enthroned o'er his lost empire reigns!'
   
   51.52.
   Ere she had ceased, the mists of night entwining
   Their dim woof, floated o'er the infinite throng;
   She, like a spirit through the darkness shining,
   In tones whose sweetness silence did prolong,                        _2275
   As if to lingering winds they did belong,
   Poured forth her inmost soul: a passionate speech
   With wild and thrilling pauses woven among,
   Which whoso heard was mute, for it could teach
   To rapture like her own all listening hearts to reach.               _2280
   
   53.
   Her voice was as a mountain stream which sweeps
   The withered leaves of Autumn to the lake,
   And in some deep and narrow bay then sleeps
   In the shadow of the shores; as dead leaves wake,
   Under the wave, in flowers and herbs which make                      _2285
   Those green depths beautiful when skies are blue,
   The multitude so moveless did partake
   Such living change, and kindling murmurs flew
   As o'er that speechless calm delight and wonder grew.
   
   54.
   Over the plain the throngs were scattered then                       _2290
   In groups around the fires, which from the sea
   Even to the gorge of the first mountain-glen
   Blazed wide and far: the banquet of the free
   Was spread beneath many a dark cypress-tree,
   Beneath whose spires, which swayed in the red flame,                 _2295
   Reclining, as they ate, of Liberty,
   And Hope, and Justice, and Laone's name,
   Earth's children did a woof of happy converse frame.
   
   55.
   Their feast was such as Earth, the general mother,
   Pours from her fairest bosom, when she smiles                        _2300
   In the embrace of Autumn;--to each other
   As when some parent fondly reconciles
   Her warring children, she their wrath beguiles
   With her own sustenance, they relenting weep:
   Such was this Festival, which from their isles                       _2305
   And continents, and winds, and oceans deep,
   All shapes might throng to share, that fly, or walk or creep,--
   
   56.
   Might share in peace and innocence, for gore
   Or poison none this festal did pollute,
   But, piled on high, an overflowing store                             _2310
   Of pomegranates and citrons, fairest fruit,
   Melons, and dates, and figs, and many a root
   Sweet and sustaining, and bright grapes ere yet
   Accursed fire their mild juice could transmute
   Into a mortal bane, and brown corn set                               _2315
   In baskets; with pure streams their thirsting lips they wet.
   
   57.
   Laone had descended from the shrine,
   And every deepest look and holiest mind
   Fed on her form, though now those tones divine
   Were silent as she passed; she did unwind                            _2320
   Her veil, as with the crowds of her own kind
   She mixed; some impulse made my heart refrain
   From seeking her that night, so I reclined
   Amidst a group, where on the utmost plain
   A festal watchfire burned beside the dusky main.                     _2325
   
   58.
   And joyous was our feast; pathetic talk,
   And wit, and harmony of choral strains,
   While far Orion o'er the waves did walk
   That flow among the isles, held us in chains
   Of sweet captivity which none disdains                               _2330
   Who feels; but when his zone grew dim in mist
   Which clothes the Ocean's bosom, o'er the plains
   The multitudes went homeward, to their rest,
   Which that delightful day with its own shadow blessed.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _2295 flame]light edition 1818.
   
   
   CANTO 6.
   
   1.
   Beside the dimness of the glimmering sea,                            _2335
   Weaving swift language from impassioned themes,
   With that dear friend I lingered, who to me
   So late had been restored, beneath the gleams
   Of the silver stars; and ever in soft dreams
   Of future love and peace sweet converse lapped                       _2340
   Our willing fancies, till the pallid beams
   Of the last watchfire fell, and darkness wrapped
   The waves, and each bright chain of floating fire was snapped;
   
   2.
   And till we came even to the City's wall
   And the great gate; then, none knew whence or why,                   _2345
   Disquiet on the multitudes did fall:
   And first, one pale and breathless passed us by,
   And stared and spoke not;--then with piercing cry
   A troop of wild-eyed women, by the shrieks
   Of their own terror driven,--tumultuously                            _2350
   Hither and thither hurrying with pale cheeks,
   Each one from fear unknown a sudden refuge seeks--
   
   3.
   Then, rallying cries of treason and of danger
   Resounded: and--'They come! to arms! to arms!
   The Tyrant is amongst us, and the stranger                           _2355
   Comes to enslave us in his name! to arms!'
   In vain: for Panic, the pale fiend who charms
   Strength to forswear her right, those millions swept
   Like waves before the tempest--these alarms
   Came to me, as to know their cause I lept                            _2360
   On the gate's turret, and in rage and grief and scorn I wept!
   
   4.
   For to the North I saw the town on fire,
   And its red light made morning pallid now,
   Which burst over wide Asia;--louder, higher,
   The yells of victory and the screams of woe                          _2365
   I heard approach, and saw the throng below
   Stream through the gates like foam-wrought waterfalls
   Fed from a thousand storms--the fearful glow
   Of bombs flares overhead--at intervals
   The red artillery's bolt mangling among them falls.                  _2370
   
   5.
   And now the horsemen come--and all was done
   Swifter than I have spoken--I beheld
   Their red swords flash in the unrisen sun.
   I rushed among the rout, to have repelled
   That miserable flight--one moment quelled                            _2375
   By voice and looks and eloquent despair,
   As if reproach from their own hearts withheld
   Their steps, they stood; but soon came pouring there
   New multitudes, and did those rallied bands o'erbear.
   
   6.
   I strove, as, drifted on some cataract                               _2380
   By irresistible streams, some wretch might strive
   Who hears its fatal roar:--the files compact
   Whelmed me, and from the gate availed to drive
   With quickening impulse, as each bolt did rive
   Their ranks with bloodier chasm:--into the plain                     _2385
   Disgorged at length the dead and the alive
   In one dread mass, were parted, and the stain
   Of blood, from mortal steel fell o'er the fields like rain.
   
   7.
   For now the despot's bloodhounds with their prey
   Unarmed and unaware, were gorging deep                               _2390
   Their gluttony of death; the loose array
   Of horsemen o'er the wide fields murdering sweep,
   And with loud laughter for their tyrant reap
   A harvest sown with other hopes; the while,
   Far overhead, ships from Propontis keep                              _2395
   A killing rain of fire:--when the waves smile
   As sudden earthquakes light many a volcano-isle,
   
   8.
   Thus sudden, unexpected feast was spread
   For the carrion-fowls of Heaven.--I saw the sight--
   I moved--I lived--as o'er the heaps of dead,                         _2400
   Whose stony eyes glared in the morning light
   I trod;--to me there came no thought of flight,
   But with loud cries of scorn, which whoso heard
   That dreaded death, felt in his veins the might
   Of virtuous shame return, the crowd I stirred,                       _2405
   And desperation's hope in many hearts recurred.
   
   9.
   A band of brothers gathering round me, made,
   Although unarmed, a steadfast front, and still
   Retreating, with stern looks beneath the shade
   Of gathered eyebrows, did the victors fill                           _2410
   With doubt even in success; deliberate will
   Inspired our growing troop; not overthrown
   It gained the shelter of a grassy hill,
   And ever still our comrades were hewn down,
   And their defenceless limbs beneath our footsteps strown.            _2415
   
   10.
   Immovably we stood--in joy I found,
   Beside me then, firm as a giant pine
   Among the mountain-vapours driven around,
   The old man whom I loved--his eyes divine
   With a mild look of courage answered mine,                           _2420
   And my young friend was near, and ardently
   His hand grasped mine a moment--now the line
   Of war extended, to our rallying cry
   As myriads flocked in love and brotherhood to die.
   
   11.
   For ever while the sun was climbing Heaven                           _2425
   The horseman hewed our unarmed myriads down
   Safely, though when by thirst of carnage driven
   Too near, those slaves were swiftly overthrown
   By hundreds leaping on them:--flesh and bone
   Soon made our ghastly ramparts; then the shaft                       _2430
   Of the artillery from the sea was thrown
   More fast and fiery, and the conquerors laughed
   In pride to hear the wind our screams of torment waft.
   
   12.
   For on one side alone the hill gave shelter,
   So vast that phalanx of unconquered men,                             _2435
   And there the living in the blood did welter
   Of the dead and dying, which in that green glen,
   Like stifled torrents, made a plashy fen
   Under the feet--thus was the butchery waged
   While the sun clomb Heaven's eastern steep--but when                 _2440
   It 'gan to sink--a fiercer combat raged,
   For in more doubtful strife the armies were engaged.
   
   13.
   Within a cave upon the hill were found
   A bundle of rude pikes, the instrument
   Of those who war but on their native ground                          _2445
   For natural rights: a shout of joyance sent
   Even from our hearts the wide air pierced and rent,
   As those few arms the bravest and the best
   Seized, and each sixth, thus armed, did now present
   A line which covered and sustained the rest,                         _2450
   A confident phalanx, which the foes on every side invest.
   
   14.
   That onset turned the foes to flight almost;
   But soon they saw their present strength, and knew
   That coming night would to our resolute host
   Bring victory; so dismounting, close they drew                       _2455
   Their glittering files, and then the combat grew
   Unequal but most horrible;--and ever
   Our myriads, whom the swift bolt overthrew,
   Or the red sword, failed like a mountain river
   Which rushes forth in foam to sink in sands for ever.                _2460
   
   15.
   Sorrow and shame, to see with their own kind
   Our human brethren mix, like beasts of blood,
   To mutual ruin armed by one behind
   Who sits and scoffs!--That friend so mild and good,
   Who like its shadow near my youth had stood,                         _2465
   Was stabbed!--my old preserver's hoary hair
   With the flesh clinging to its roots, was strewed
   Under my feet!--I lost all sense or care,
   And like the rest I grew desperate and unaware.
   
   16.
   The battle became ghastlier--in the midst                            _2470
   I paused, and saw, how ugly and how fell
   O Hate! thou art, even when thy life thou shedd'st
   For love. The ground in many a little dell
   Was broken, up and down whose steeps befell
   Alternate victory and defeat, and there                              _2475
   The combatants with rage most horrible
   Strove, and their eyes started with cracking stare,
   And impotent their tongues they lolled into the air,
   
   17.
   Flaccid and foamy, like a mad dog's hanging;
   Want, and Moon-madness, and the pest's swift Bane                    _2480
   When its shafts smite--while yet its bow is twanging--
   Have each their mark and sign--some ghastly stain;
   And this was thine, O War! of hate and pain
   Thou loathed slave! I saw all shapes of death
   And ministered to many, o'er the plain                               _2485
   While carnage in the sunbeam's warmth did seethe,
   Till twilight o'er the east wove her serenest wreath.
   
   18.
   The few who yet survived, resolute and firm
   Around me fought. At the decline of day
   Winding above the mountain's snowy term                              _2490
   New banners shone; they quivered in the ray
   Of the sun's unseen orb--ere night the array
   Of fresh troops hemmed us in--of those brave bands
   I soon survived alone--and now I lay
   Vanquished and faint, the grasp of bloody hands                      _2495
   I felt, and saw on high the glare of falling brands,
   
   19.
   When on my foes a sudden terror came,
   And they fled, scattering--lo! with reinless speed
   A black Tartarian horse of giant frame
   Comes trampling over the dead, the living bleed                      _2500
   Beneath the hoofs of that tremendous steed,
   On which, like to an Angel, robed in white,
   Sate one waving a sword;--the hosts recede
   And fly, as through their ranks with awful might,
   Sweeps in the shadow of eve that Phantom swift and bright;           _2505
   
   20.
   And its path made a solitude.--I rose
   And marked its coming: it relaxed its course
   As it approached me, and the wind that flows
   Through night, bore accents to mine ear whose force
   Might create smiles in death--the Tartar horse                       _2510
   Paused, and I saw the shape its might which swayed,
   And heard her musical pants, like the sweet source
   Of waters in the desert, as she said,
   'Mount with me, Laon, now'--I rapidly obeyed.
   
   21.
   Then: 'Away! away!' she cried, and stretched her sword               _2515
   As 'twere a scourge over the courser's head,
   And lightly shook the reins.--We spake no word,
   But like the vapour of the tempest fled
   Over the plain; her dark hair was dispread
   Like the pine's locks upon the lingering blast;                      _2520
   Over mine eyes its shadowy strings it spread
   Fitfully, and the hills and streams fled fast,
   As o'er their glimmering forms the steed's broad shadow passed.
   
   22.
   And his hoofs ground the rocks to fire and dust,
   His strong sides made the torrents rise in spray,                    _2525
   And turbulence, as of a whirlwind's gust
   Surrounded us;--and still away! away!
   Through the desert night we sped, while she alway
   Gazed on a mountain which we neared, whose crest,
   Crowned with a marble ruin, in the ray                               _2530
   Of the obscure stars gleamed;--its rugged breast
   The steed strained up, and then his impulse did arrest.
   
   23.
   A rocky hill which overhung the Ocean:--
   From that lone ruin, when the steed that panted
   Paused, might be heard the murmur of the motion                      _2535
   Of waters, as in spots for ever haunted
   By the choicest winds of Heaven, which are enchanted
   To music, by the wand of Solitude,
   That wizard wild, and the far tents implanted
   Upon the plain, be seen by those who stood                           _2540
   Thence marking the dark shore of Ocean's curved flood.
   
   24.
   One moment these were heard and seen--another
   Passed; and the two who stood beneath that night,
   Each only heard, or saw, or felt the other;
   As from the lofty steed she did alight,                              _2545
   Cythna, (for, from the eyes whose deepest light
   Of love and sadness made my lips feel pale
   With influence strange of mournfullest delight,
   My own sweet Cythna looked), with joy did quail,
   And felt her strength in tears of human weakness fail.               _2550
   
   25.
   And for a space in my embrace she rested,
   Her head on my unquiet heart reposing,
   While my faint arms her languid frame invested;
   At length she looked on me, and half unclosing
   Her tremulous lips, said, 'Friend, thy bands were losing             _2555
   The battle, as I stood before the King
   In bonds.--I burst them then, and swiftly choosing
   The time, did seize a Tartar's sword, and spring
   Upon his horse, and swift, as on the whirlwind's wing,
   
   26.
   'Have thou and I been borne beyond pursuer,                          _2560
   And we are here.'--Then, turning to the steed,
   She pressed the white moon on his front with pure
   And rose-like lips, and many a fragrant weed
   From the green ruin plucked, that he might feed;--
   But I to a stone seat that Maiden led,                               _2565
   And, kissing her fair eyes, said, 'Thou hast need
   Of rest,' and I heaped up the courser's bed
   In a green mossy nook, with mountain flowers dispread.
   
   27.
   Within that ruin, where a shattered portal
   Looks to the eastern stars, abandoned now                            _2570
   By man, to be the home of things immortal,
   Memories, like awful ghosts which come and go,
   And must inherit all he builds below,
   When he is gone, a hall stood; o'er whose roof
   Fair clinging weeds with ivy pale did grow,                          _2575
   Clasping its gray rents with a verdurous woof,
   A hanging dome of leaves, a canopy moon-proof.
   
   28.
   The autumnal winds, as if spell-bound, had made
   A natural couch of leaves in that recess,
   Which seasons none disturbed, but, in the shade                      _2580
   Of flowering parasites, did Spring love to dress
   With their sweet blooms the wintry loneliness
   Of those dead leaves, shedding their stars, whene'er
   The wandering wind her nurslings might caress;
   Whose intertwining fingers ever there                                _2585
   Made music wild and soft that filled the listening air.
   
   29.
   We know not where we go, or what sweet dream
   May pilot us through caverns strange and fair
   Of far and pathless passion, while the stream
   Of life, our bark doth on its whirlpools bear,                       _2590
   Spreading swift wings as sails to the dim air;
   Nor should we seek to know, so the devotion
   Of love and gentle thoughts be heard still there
   Louder and louder from the utmost Ocean
   Of universal life, attuning its commotion.                           _2595
   
   30.
   To the pure all things are pure! Oblivion wrapped
   Our spirits, and the fearful overthrow
   Of public hope was from our being snapped,
   Though linked years had bound it there; for now
   A power, a thirst, a knowledge, which below                          _2600
   All thoughts, like light beyond the atmosphere,
   Clothing its clouds with grace, doth ever flow,
   Came on us, as we sate in silence there,
   Beneath the golden stars of the clear azure air;--
   
   31.
   In silence which doth follow talk that causes                        _2605
   The baffled heart to speak with sighs and tears,
   When wildering passion swalloweth up the pauses
   Of inexpressive speech:--the youthful years
   Which we together passed, their hopes and fears,
   The blood itself which ran within our frames,                        _2610
   That likeness of the features which endears
   The thoughts expressed by them, our very names,
   And all the winged hours which speechless memory claims,
   
   32.
   Had found a voice--and ere that voice did pass,
   The night grew damp and dim, and, through a rent                     _2615
   Of the ruin where we sate, from the morass
   A wandering Meteor by some wild wind sent,
   Hung high in the green dome, to which it lent
   A faint and pallid lustre; while the song
   Of blasts, in which its blue hair quivering bent,                    _2620
   Strewed strangest sounds the moving leaves among;
   A wondrous light, the sound as of a spirit's tongue.
   
   33.
   The Meteor showed the leaves on which we sate,
   And Cythna's glowing arms, and the thick ties
   Of her soft hair, which bent with gathered weight                    _2625
   My neck near hers; her dark and deepening eyes,
   Which, as twin phantoms of one star that lies
   O'er a dim well, move, though the star reposes,
   Swam in our mute and liquid ecstasies,
   Her marble brow, and eager lips, like roses,                         _2630
   With their own fragrance pale, which Spring but half uncloses.
   
   34.
   The Meteor to its far morass returned:
   The beating of our veins one interval
   Made still; and then I felt the blood that burned
   Within her frame, mingle with mine, and fall                         _2635
   Around my heart like fire; and over all
   A mist was spread, the sickness of a deep
   And speechless swoon of joy, as might befall
   Two disunited spirits when they leap
   In union from this earth's obscure and fading sleep.                 _2640
   
   35.
   Was it one moment that confounded thus
   All thought, all sense, all feeling, into one
   Unutterable power, which shielded us
   Even from our own cold looks, when we had gone
   Into a wide and wild oblivion                                        _2645
   Of tumult and of tenderness? or now
   Had ages, such as make the moon and sun,
   The seasons, and mankind their changes know,
   Left fear and time unfelt by us alone below?
   
   36.
   I know not. What are kisses whose fire clasps                        _2650
   The failing heart in languishment, or limb
   Twined within limb? or the quick dying gasps
   Of the life meeting, when the faint eyes swim
   Through tears of a wide mist boundless and dim,
   In one caress? What is the strong control                            _2655
   Which leads the heart that dizzy steep to climb,
   Where far over the world those vapours roll
   Which blend two restless frames in one reposing soul?
   37.
   It is the shadow which doth float unseen,
   But not unfelt, o'er blind mortality,                                _2660
   Whose divine darkness fled not from that green
   And lone recess, where lapped in peace did lie
   Our linked frames, till, from the changing sky
   That night and still another day had fled;
   And then I saw and felt. The moon was high,                          _2665
   And clouds, as of a coming storm, were spread
   Under its orb,--loud winds were gathering overhead.
   
   38.
   Cythna's sweet lips seemed lurid in the moon,
   Her fairest limbs with the night wind were chill,
   And her dark tresses were all loosely strewn                         _2670
   O'er her pale bosom:--all within was still,
   And the sweet peace of joy did almost fill
   The depth of her unfathomable look;--
   And we sate calmly, though that rocky hill,
   The waves contending in its caverns strook,                          _2675
   For they foreknew the storm, and the gray ruin shook.
   
   39.
   There we unheeding sate, in the communion
   Of interchanged vows, which, with a rite
   Of faith most sweet and sacred, stamped our union.--
   Few were the living hearts which could unite                         _2680
   Like ours, or celebrate a bridal night
   With such close sympathies, for they had sprung
   From linked youth, and from the gentle might
   Of earliest love, delayed and cherished long,
   Which common hopes and fears made, like a tempest, strong.           _2685
   
   40.
   And such is Nature's law divine, that those
   Who grow together cannot choose but love,
   If faith or custom do not interpose,
   Or common slavery mar what else might move
   All gentlest thoughts; as in the sacred grove                        _2690
   Which shades the springs of Ethiopian Nile,
   That living tree which, if the arrowy dove
   Strike with her shadow, shrinks in fear awhile,
   But its own kindred leaves clasps while the sunbeams smile;
   
   41.
   And clings to them, when darkness may dissever                       _2695
   The close caresses of all duller plants
   Which bloom on the wide earth--thus we for ever
   Were linked, for love had nursed us in the haunts
   Where knowledge, from its secret source enchants
   Young hearts with the fresh music of its springing,                  _2700
   Ere yet its gathered flood feeds human wants,
   As the great Nile feeds Egypt; ever flinging
   Light on the woven boughs which o'er its waves are swinging.
   
   42.
   The tones of Cythna's voice like echoes were
   Of those far murmuring streams; they rose and fell,                  _2705
   Mixed with mine own in the tempestuous air,--
   And so we sate, until our talk befell
   Of the late ruin, swift and horrible,
   And how those seeds of hope might yet be sown,
   Whose fruit is evil's mortal poison: well,                           _2710
   For us, this ruin made a watch-tower lone,
   But Cythna's eyes looked faint, and now two days were gone
   
   43.
   Since she had food:--therefore I did awaken
   The Tartar steed, who, from his ebon mane
   Soon as the clinging slumbers he had shaken,                         _2715
   Bent his thin head to seek the brazen rein,
   Following me obediently; with pain
   Of heart, so deep and dread, that one caress,
   When lips and heart refuse to part again
   Till they have told their fill, could scarce express                 _2720
   The anguish of her mute and fearful tenderness,
   
   44.
   Cythna beheld me part, as I bestrode
   That willing steed--the tempest and the night,
   Which gave my path its safety as I rode
   Down the ravine of rocks, did soon unite                             _2725
   The darkness and the tumult of their might
   Borne on all winds.--Far through the streaming rain
   Floating at intervals the garments white
   Of Cythna gleamed, and her voice once again
   Came to me on the gust, and soon I reached the plain.                _2730
   
   45.
   I dreaded not the tempest, nor did he
   Who bore me, but his eyeballs wide and red
   Turned on the lightning's cleft exultingly;
   And when the earth beneath his tameless tread,
   Shook with the sullen thunder, he would spread                       _2735
   His nostrils to the blast, and joyously
   Mock the fierce peal with neighings;--thus we sped
   O'er the lit plain, and soon I could descry
   Where Death and Fire had gorged the spoil of victory.
   
   46.
   There was a desolate village in a wood                               _2740
   Whose bloom-inwoven leaves now scattering fed
   The hungry storm; it was a place of blood,
   A heap of hearthless walls;--the flames were dead
   Within those dwellings now,--the life had fled
   From all those corpses now,--but the wide sky                        _2745
   Flooded with lightning was ribbed overhead
   By the black rafters, and around did lie
   Women, and babes, and men, slaughtered confusedly.
   
   47.
   Beside the fountain in the market-place
   Dismounting, I beheld those corpses stare                            _2750
   With horny eyes upon each other's face,
   And on the earth and on the vacant air,
   And upon me, close to the waters where
   I stooped to slake my thirst;--I shrank to taste,
   For the salt bitterness of blood was there;                          _2755
   But tied the steed beside, and sought in haste
   If any yet survived amid that ghastly waste.
   
   48.
   No living thing was there beside one woman,
   Whom I found wandering in the streets, and she
   Was withered from a likeness of aught human                          _2760
   Into a fiend, by some strange misery:
   Soon as she heard my steps she leaped on me,
   And glued her burning lips to mine, and laughed
   With a loud, long, and frantic laugh of glee,
   And cried, 'Now, Mortal, thou hast deeply quaffed                    _2765
   The Plague's blue kisses--soon millions shall pledge the draught!
   
   49.
   'My name is Pestilence--this bosom dry,
   Once fed two babes--a sister and a brother--
   When I came home, one in the blood did lie
   Of three death-wounds--the flames had ate the other!                 _2770
   Since then I have no longer been a mother,
   But I am Pestilence;--hither and thither
   I flit about, that I may slay and smother:--
   All lips which I have kissed must surely wither,
   But Death's--if thou art he, we'll go to work together!              _2775
   
   50.
   'What seek'st thou here? The moonlight comes in flashes,--
   The dew is rising dankly from the dell--
   'Twill moisten her! and thou shalt see the gashes
   In my sweet boy, now full of worms--but tell
   First what thou seek'st.'--'I seek for food.'--''Tis well,           _2780
   Thou shalt have food. Famine, my paramour,
   Waits for us at the feast--cruel and fell
   Is Famine, but he drives not from his door
   Those whom these lips have kissed, alone. No more, no more!'
   
   51.
   As thus she spake, she grasped me with the strength                  _2785
   Of madness, and by many a ruined hearth
   She led, and over many a corpse:--at length
   We came to a lone hut where on the earth
   Which made its floor, she in her ghastly mirth,
   Gathering from all those homes now desolate,                         _2790
   Had piled three heaps of loaves, making a dearth
   Among the dead--round which she set in state
   A ring of cold, stiff babes; silent and stark they sate.
   
   52.
   She leaped upon a pile, and lifted high
   Her mad looks to the lightning, and cried: 'Eat!                     _2795
   Share the great feast--to-morrow we must die!'
   And then she spurned the loaves with her pale feet,
   Towards her bloodless guests;--that sight to meet,
   Mine eyes and my heart ached, and but that she
   Who loved me, did with absent looks defeat                           _2800
   Despair, I might have raved in sympathy;
   But now I took the food that woman offered me;
   
   53.
   And vainly having with her madness striven
   If I might win her to return with me,
   Departed. In the eastern beams of Heaven                             _2805
   The lightning now grew pallid--rapidly,
   As by the shore of the tempestuous sea
   The dark steed bore me; and the mountain gray
   Soon echoed to his hoofs, and I could see
   Cythna among the rocks, where she alway                              _2810
   Had sate with anxious eyes fixed on the lingering day.
   
   54.
   And joy was ours to meet: she was most pale,
   Famished, and wet and weary, so I cast
   My arms around her, lest her steps should fail
   As to our home we went, and thus embraced,                           _2815
   Her full heart seemed a deeper joy to taste
   Than e'er the prosperous know; the steed behind
   Trod peacefully along the mountain waste;
   We reached our home ere morning could unbind
   Night's latest veil, and on our bridal-couch reclined.               _2820
   
   55.
   Her chilled heart having cherished in my bosom,
   And sweetest kisses past, we two did share
   Our peaceful meal:--as an autumnal blossom
   Which spreads its shrunk leaves in the sunny air,
   After cold showers, like rainbows woven there,                       _2825
   Thus in her lips and cheeks the vital spirit
   Mantled, and in her eyes, an atmosphere
   Of health, and hope; and sorrow languished near it,
   And fear, and all that dark despondence doth inherit.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _2397 -isle. Bradley, who cps. Marianne's Dream, St. 12. See note at end.
   
   
   CANTO 7.
   
   1.
   So we sate joyous as the morning ray                                 _2830
   Which fed upon the wrecks of night and storm
   Now lingering on the winds; light airs did play
   Among the dewy weeds, the sun was warm,
   And we sate linked in the inwoven charm
   Of converse and caresses sweet and deep,                             _2835
   Speechless caresses, talk that might disarm
   Time, though he wield the darts of death and sleep,
   And those thrice mortal barbs in his own poison steep.
   
   2.
   I told her of my sufferings and my madness,
   And how, awakened from that dreamy mood                              _2840
   By Liberty's uprise, the strength of gladness
   Came to my spirit in my solitude;
   And all that now I was--while tears pursued
   Each other down her fair and listening cheek
   Fast as the thoughts which fed them, like a flood                    _2845
   From sunbright dales; and when I ceased to speak,
   Her accents soft and sweet the pausing air did wake.
   
   3.
   She told me a strange tale of strange endurance,
   Like broken memories of many a heart
   Woven into one; to which no firm assurance,                          _2850
   So wild were they, could her own faith impart.
   She said that not a tear did dare to start
   From the swoln brain, and that her thoughts were firm
   When from all mortal hope she did depart,
   Borne by those slaves across the Ocean's term,                       _2855
   And that she reached the port without one fear infirm.
   
   4.
   One was she among many there, the thralls
   Of the cold Tyrant's cruel lust; and they
   Laughed mournfully in those polluted halls;
   But she was calm and sad, musing alway                               _2860
   On loftiest enterprise, till on a day
   The Tyrant heard her singing to her lute
   A wild, and sad, and spirit-thrilling lay,
   Like winds that die in wastes--one moment mute
   The evil thoughts it made, which did his breast pollute.             _2865
   
   5.
   Even when he saw her wondrous loveliness,
   One moment to great Nature's sacred power
   He bent, and was no longer passionless;
   But when he bade her to his secret bower
   Be borne, a loveless victim, and she tore                            _2870
   Her locks in agony, and her words of flame
   And mightier looks availed not; then he bore
   Again his load of slavery, and became
   A king, a heartless beast, a pageant and a name.
   
   6.
   She told me what a loathsome agony                                   _2875
   Is that when selfishness mocks love's delight,
   Foul as in dream's most fearful imagery,
   To dally with the mowing dead--that night
   All torture, fear, or horror made seem light
   Which the soul dreams or knows, and when the day                     _2880
   Shone on her awful frenzy, from the sight
   Where like a Spirit in fleshly chains she lay
   Struggling, aghast and pale the Tyrant fled away.
   
   7.
   Her madness was a beam of light, a power
   Which dawned through the rent soul; and words it gave,               _2885
   Gestures and looks, such as in whirlwinds bore
   Which might not be withstood--whence none could save--
   All who approached their sphere,--like some calm wave
   Vexed into whirlpools by the chasms beneath;
   And sympathy made each attendant slave                               _2890
   Fearless and free, and they began to breathe
   Deep curses, like the voice of flames far underneath.
   
   8.
   The King felt pale upon his noonday throne:
   At night two slaves he to her chamber sent,--
   One was a green and wrinkled eunuch, grown                           _2895
   From human shape into an instrument
   Of all things ill--distorted, bowed and bent.
   The other was a wretch from infancy
   Made dumb by poison; who nought knew or meant
   But to obey: from the fire isles came he,                            _2900
   A diver lean and strong, of Oman's coral sea.
   
   9.
   They bore her to a bark, and the swift stroke
   Of silent rowers clove the blue moonlight seas,
   Until upon their path the morning broke;
   They anchored then, where, be there calm or breeze,                  _2905
   The gloomiest of the drear Symplegades
   Shakes with the sleepless surge;--the Ethiop there
   Wound his long arms around her, and with knees
   Like iron clasped her feet, and plunged with her
   Among the closing waves out of the boundless air.                    _2910
   
   10.
   'Swift as an eagle stooping from the plain
   Of morning light, into some shadowy wood,
   He plunged through the green silence of the main,
   Through many a cavern which the eternal flood
   Had scooped, as dark lairs for its monster brood;                    _2915
   And among mighty shapes which fled in wonder,
   And among mightier shadows which pursued
   His heels, he wound: until the dark rocks under
   He touched a golden chain--a sound arose like thunder.
   
   11.
   'A stunning clang of massive bolts redoubling                        _2920
   Beneath the deep--a burst of waters driven
   As from the roots of the sea, raging and bubbling:
   And in that roof of crags a space was riven
   Through which there shone the emerald beams of heaven,
   Shot through the lines of many waves inwoven,                        _2925
   Like sunlight through acacia woods at even,
   Through which, his way the diver having cloven,
   Passed like a spark sent up out of a burning oven.
   
   12.
   'And then,' she said, 'he laid me in a cave
   Above the waters, by that chasm of sea,                              _2930
   A fountain round and vast, in which the wave
   Imprisoned, boiled and leaped perpetually,
   Down which, one moment resting, he did flee,
   Winning the adverse depth; that spacious cell
   Like an hupaithric temple wide and high,                             _2935
   Whose aery dome is inaccessible,
   Was pierced with one round cleft through which the sunbeams fell.
   
   13.
   'Below, the fountain's brink was richly paven
   With the deep's wealth, coral, and pearl, and sand
   Like spangling gold, and purple shells engraven                      _2940
   With mystic legends by no mortal hand,
   Left there, when thronging to the moon's command,
   The gathering waves rent the Hesperian gate
   Of mountains, and on such bright floor did stand
   Columns, and shapes like statues, and the state                      _2945
   Of kingless thrones, which Earth did in her heart create.
   
   14.
   'The fiend of madness which had made its prey
   Of my poor heart, was lulled to sleep awhile:
   There was an interval of many a day,
   And a sea-eagle brought me food the while,                           _2950
   Whose nest was built in that untrodden isle,
   And who, to be the gaoler had been taught
   Of that strange dungeon; as a friend whose smile
   Like light and rest at morn and even is sought
   That wild bird was to me, till madness misery brought.               _2955
   
   15.
   'The misery of a madness slow and creeping,
   Which made the earth seem fire, the sea seem air,
   And the white clouds of noon which oft were sleeping,
   In the blue heaven so beautiful and fair,
   Like hosts of ghastly shadows hovering there;                        _2960
   And the sea-eagle looked a fiend, who bore
   Thy mangled limbs for food!--Thus all things were
   Transformed into the agony which I wore
   Even as a poisoned robe around my bosom's core.
   
   16.
   'Again I knew the day and night fast fleeing,                        _2965
   The eagle, and the fountain, and the air;
   Another frenzy came--there seemed a being
   Within me--a strange load my heart did bear,
   As if some living thing had made its lair
   Even in the fountains of my life:--a long                            _2970
   And wondrous vision wrought from my despair,
   Then grew, like sweet reality among
   Dim visionary woes, an unreposing throng.
   
   17.
   'Methought I was about to be a mother--
   Month after month went by, and still I dreamed                       _2975
   That we should soon be all to one another,
   I and my child; and still new pulses seemed
   To beat beside my heart, and still I deemed
   There was a babe within--and, when the rain
   Of winter through the rifted cavern streamed,                        _2980
   Methought, after a lapse of lingering pain,
   I saw that lovely shape, which near my heart had lain.
   
   18.
   'It was a babe, beautiful from its birth,--
   It was like thee, dear love, its eyes were thine,
   Its brow, its lips, and so upon the earth                            _2985
   It laid its fingers, as now rest on mine
   Thine own, beloved!--'twas a dream divine;
   Even to remember how it fled, how swift,
   How utterly, might make the heart repine,--
   Though 'twas a dream.'--Then Cythna did uplift                       _2990
   Her looks on mine, as if some doubt she sought to shift:
   
   19.
   A doubt which would not flee, a tenderness
   Of questioning grief, a source of thronging tears;
   Which having passed, as one whom sobs oppress
   She spoke: 'Yes, in the wilderness of years                          _2995
   Her memory, aye, like a green home appears;
   She sucked her fill even at this breast, sweet love,
   For many months. I had no mortal fears;
   Methought I felt her lips and breath approve,--
   It was a human thing which to my bosom clove.                        _3000
   
   20.
   'I watched the dawn of her first smiles; and soon
   When zenith stars were trembling on the wave,
   Or when the beams of the invisible moon,
   Or sun, from many a prism within the cave
   Their gem-born shadows to the water gave,                            _3005
   Her looks would hunt them, and with outspread hand,
   From the swift lights which might that fountain pave,
   She would mark one, and laugh, when that command
   Slighting, it lingered there, and could not understand.
   
   21.
   'Methought her looks began to talk with me;                          _3010
   And no articulate sounds, but something sweet
   Her lips would frame,--so sweet it could not be,
   That it was meaningless; her touch would meet
   Mine, and our pulses calmly flow and beat
   In response while we slept; and on a day                             _3015
   When I was happiest in that strange retreat,
   With heaps of golden shells we two did play,--
   Both infants, weaving wings for time's perpetual way.
   
   22.
   'Ere night, methought, her waning eyes were grown
   Weary with joy, and tired with our delight,                          _3020
   We, on the earth, like sister twins lay down
   On one fair mother's bosom:--from that night
   She fled,--like those illusions clear and bright,
   Which dwell in lakes, when the red moon on high
   Pause ere it wakens tempest;--and her flight,                        _3025
   Though 'twas the death of brainless fantasy,
   Yet smote my lonesome heart more than all misery.
   
   23.
   'It seemed that in the dreary night the diver
   Who brought me thither, came again, and bore
   My child away. I saw the waters quiver,                              _3030
   When he so swiftly sunk, as once before:
   Then morning came--it shone even as of yore,
   But I was changed--the very life was gone
   Out of my heart--I wasted more and more,
   Day after day, and sitting there alone,                              _3035
   Vexed the inconstant waves with my perpetual moan.
   
   24.
   'I was no longer mad, and yet methought
   My breasts were swoln and changed:--in every vein
   The blood stood still one moment, while that thought
   Was passing--with a gush of sickening pain                           _3040
   It ebbed even to its withered springs again:
   When my wan eyes in stern resolve I turned
   From that most strange delusion, which would fain
   Have waked the dream for which my spirit yearned
   With more than human love,--then left it unreturned.                 _3045
   
   25.
   'So now my reason was restored to me
   I struggled with that dream, which, like a beast
   Most fierce and beauteous, in my memory
   Had made its lair, and on my heart did feast;
   But all that cave and all its shapes, possessed                      _3050
   By thoughts which could not fade, renewed each one
   Some smile, some look, some gesture which had blessed
   Me heretofore: I, sitting there alone,
   Vexed the inconstant waves with my perpetual moan.
   
   26.
   'Time passed, I know not whether months or years;                    _3055
   For day, nor night, nor change of seasons made
   Its note, but thoughts and unavailing tears:
   And I became at last even as a shade,
   A smoke, a cloud on which the winds have preyed,
   Till it be thin as air; until, one even,                             _3060
   A Nautilus upon the fountain played,
   Spreading his azure sail where breath of Heaven
   Descended not, among the waves and whirlpools driven.
   
   27.
   'And, when the Eagle came, that lovely thing,
   Oaring with rosy feet its silver boat,                               _3065
   Fled near me as for shelter; on slow wing,
   The Eagle, hovering o'er his prey did float;
   But when he saw that I with fear did note
   His purpose, proffering my own food to him,
   The eager plumes subsided on his throat--                            _3070
   He came where that bright child of sea did swim,
   And o'er it cast in peace his shadow broad and dim.
   
   28.
   'This wakened me, it gave me human strength;
   And hope, I know not whence or wherefore, rose,
   But I resumed my ancient powers at length;                           _3075
   My spirit felt again like one of those
   Like thine, whose fate it is to make the woes
   Of humankind their prey--what was this cave?
   Its deep foundation no firm purpose knows
   Immutable, resistless, strong to save,                               _3080
   Like mind while yet it mocks the all-devouring grave.
   
   29.
   'And where was Laon? might my heart be dead,
   While that far dearer heart could move and be?
   Or whilst over the earth the pall was spread,
   Which I had sworn to rend? I might be free,                          _3085
   Could I but win that friendly bird to me,
   To bring me ropes; and long in vain I sought
   By intercourse of mutual imagery
   Of objects, if such aid he could be taught;
   But fruit, and flowers, and boughs, yet never ropes he brought.      _3090
   
   30.
   'We live in our own world, and mine was made
   From glorious fantasies of hope departed:
   Aye we are darkened with their floating shade,
   Or cast a lustre on them--time imparted
   Such power to me--I became fearless-hearted,                         _3095
   My eye and voice grew firm, calm was my mind,
   And piercing, like the morn, now it has darted
   Its lustre on all hidden things, behind
   Yon dim and fading clouds which load the weary wind.
   
   31.
   'My mind became the book through which I grew                        _3100
   Wise in all human wisdom, and its cave,
   Which like a mine I rifled through and through,
   To me the keeping of its secrets gave--
   One mind, the type of all, the moveless wave
   Whose calm reflects all moving things that are,                      _3105
   Necessity, and love, and life, the grave,
   And sympathy, fountains of hope and fear,
   Justice, and truth, and time, and the world's natural sphere.
   
   32.
   'And on the sand would I make signs to range
   These woofs, as they were woven, of my thought;                      _3110
   Clear, elemental shapes, whose smallest change
   A subtler language within language wrought:
   The key of truths which once were dimly taught
   In old Crotona;--and sweet melodies
   Of love, in that lorn solitude I caught                              _3115
   From mine own voice in dream, when thy dear eyes
   Shone through my sleep, and did that utterance harmonize.
   
   33.
   'Thy songs were winds whereon I fled at will,
   As in a winged chariot, o'er the plain
   Of crystal youth; and thou wert there to fill                        _3120
   My heart with joy, and there we sate again
   On the gray margin of the glimmering main,
   Happy as then but wiser far, for we
   Smiled on the flowery grave in which were lain
   Fear, Faith and Slavery; and mankind was free,                       _3125
   Equal, and pure, and wise, in Wisdom's prophecy.
   
   34.
   'For to my will my fancies were as slaves
   To do their sweet and subtile ministries;
   And oft from that bright fountain's shadowy waves
   They would make human throngs gather and rise                        _3130
   To combat with my overflowing eyes,
   And voice made deep with passion--thus I grew
   Familiar with the shock and the surprise
   And war of earthly minds, from which I drew
   The power which has been mine to frame their thoughts anew.          _3135
   
   35.
   'And thus my prison was the populous earth--
   Where I saw--even as misery dreams of morn
   Before the east has given its glory birth--
   Religion's pomp made desolate by the scorn
   Of Wisdom's faintest smile, and thrones uptorn,                      _3140
   And dwellings of mild people interspersed
   With undivided fields of ripening corn,
   And love made free,--a hope which we have nursed
   Even with our blood and tears,--until its glory burst.
   
   36.
   'All is not lost! There is some recompense                           _3145
   For hope whose fountain can be thus profound,
   Even throned Evil's splendid impotence,
   Girt by its hell of power, the secret sound
   Of hymns to truth and freedom--the dread bound
   Of life and death passed fearlessly and well,                        _3150
   Dungeons wherein the high resolve is found,
   Racks which degraded woman's greatness tell,
   And what may else be good and irresistible.
   
   37.
   'Such are the thoughts which, like the fires that flare
   In storm-encompassed isles, we cherish yet                           _3155
   In this dark ruin--such were mine even there;
   As in its sleep some odorous violet,
   While yet its leaves with nightly dews are wet,
   Breathes in prophetic dreams of day's uprise,
   Or as, ere Scythian frost in fear has met                            _3160
   Spring's messengers descending from the skies,
   The buds foreknow their life--this hope must ever rise.
   
   38.
   'So years had passed, when sudden earthquake rent
   The depth of ocean, and the cavern cracked
   With sound, as if the world's wide continent                         _3165
   Had fallen in universal ruin wracked:
   And through the cleft streamed in one cataract
   The stifling waters--when I woke, the flood
   Whose banded waves that crystal cave had sacked
   Was ebbing round me, and my bright abode                             _3170
   Before me yawned--a chasm desert, and bare, and broad.
   
   39.
   'Above me was the sky, beneath the sea:
   I stood upon a point of shattered stone,
   And heard loose rocks rushing tumultuously
   With splash and shock into the deep--anon                            _3175
   All ceased, and there was silence wide and lone.
   I felt that I was free! The Ocean-spray
   Quivered beneath my feet, the broad Heaven shone
   Around, and in my hair the winds did play
   Lingering as they pursued their unimpeded way.                       _3180
   
   40.
   'My spirit moved upon the sea like wind
   Which round some thymy cape will lag and hover,
   Though it can wake the still cloud, and unbind
   The strength of tempest: day was almost over,
   When through the fading light I could discover                       _3185
   A ship approaching--its white sails were fed
   With the north wind--its moving shade did cover
   The twilight deep; the mariners in dread
   Cast anchor when they saw new rocks around them spread.
   
   41.
   'And when they saw one sitting on a crag,                            _3190
   They sent a boat to me;--the Sailors rowed
   In awe through many a new and fearful jag
   Of overhanging rock, through which there flowed
   The foam of streams that cannot make abode.
   They came and questioned me, but when they heard                     _3195
   My voice, they became silent, and they stood
   And moved as men in whom new love had stirred
   Deep thoughts: so to the ship we passed without a word.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _2877 dreams edition 1818.
   _2994 opprest edition 1818.
   _3115 lone solitude edition 1818.
   
   
   CANTO 8.
   
   1.
   'I sate beside the Steersman then, and gazing
   Upon the west, cried, "Spread the sails! Behold!                     _3200
   The sinking moon is like a watch-tower blazing
   Over the mountains yet;--the City of Gold
   Yon Cape alone does from the sight withhold;
   The stream is fleet--the north breathes steadily
   Beneath the stars; they tremble with the cold!                       _3205
   Ye cannot rest upon the dreary sea!--
   Haste, haste to the warm home of happier destiny!"
   
   2.
   'The Mariners obeyed--the Captain stood
   Aloof, and, whispering to the Pilot, said,
   "Alas, alas! I fear we are pursued                                   _3210
   By wicked ghosts; a Phantom of the Dead,
   The night before we sailed, came to my bed
   In dream, like that!" The Pilot then replied,
   "It cannot be--she is a human Maid--
   Her low voice makes you weep--she is some bride,                     _3215
   Or daughter of high birth--she can be nought beside."
   
   3.
   'We passed the islets, borne by wind and stream,
   And as we sailed, the Mariners came near
   And thronged around to listen;--in the gleam
   Of the pale moon I stood, as one whom fear                           _3220
   May not attaint, and my calm voice did rear;
   "Ye are all human--yon broad moon gives light
   To millions who the selfsame likeness wear,
   Even while I speak--beneath this very night,
   Their thoughts flow on like ours, in sadness or delight.             _3225
   
   4.
   '"What dream ye? Your own hands have built an home,
   Even for yourselves on a beloved shore:
   For some, fond eyes are pining till they come,
   How they will greet him when his toils are o'er,
   And laughing babes rush from the well-known door!                    _3230
   Is this your care? ye toil for your own good--
   Ye feel and think--has some immortal power
   Such purposes? or in a human mood,
   Dream ye some Power thus builds for man in solitude?
   
   5.
   '"What is that Power? Ye mock yourselves, and give                   _3235
   A human heart to what ye cannot know:
   As if the cause of life could think and live!
   'Twere as if man's own works should feel, and show
   The hopes, and fears, and thoughts from which they flow,
   And he be like to them! Lo! Plague is free                           _3240
   To waste, Blight, Poison, Earthquake, Hail, and Snow,
   Disease, and Want, and worse Necessity
   Of hate and ill, and Pride, and Fear, and Tyranny!
   
   6.
   '"What is that Power? Some moon-struck sophist stood
   Watching the shade from his own soul upthrown                        _3245
   Fill Heaven and darken Earth, and in such mood
   The Form he saw and worshipped was his own,
   His likeness in the world's vast mirror shown;
   And 'twere an innocent dream, but that a faith
   Nursed by fear's dew of poison, grows thereon,                       _3250
   And that men say, that Power has chosen Death
   On all who scorn its laws, to wreak immortal wrath.
   
   7.
   '"Men say that they themselves have heard and seen,
   Or known from others who have known such things,
   A Shade, a Form, which Earth and Heaven between                      _3255
   Wields an invisible rod--that Priests and Kings,
   Custom, domestic sway, ay, all that brings
   Man's freeborn soul beneath the oppressor's heel,
   Are his strong ministers, and that the stings
   Of death will make the wise his vengeance feel,                      _3260
   Though truth and virtue arm their hearts with tenfold steel.
   
   8.
   '"And it is said, this Power will punish wrong;
   Yes, add despair to crime, and pain to pain!
   And deepest hell, and deathless snakes among,
   Will bind the wretch on whom is fixed a stain,                       _3265
   Which, like a plague, a burden, and a bane,
   Clung to him while he lived; for love and hate,
   Virtue and vice, they say are difference vain--
   The will of strength is right--this human state
   Tyrants, that they may rule, with lies thus desolate.                _3270
   
   9.
   '"Alas, what strength? Opinion is more frail
   Than yon dim cloud now fading on the moon
   Even while we gaze, though it awhile avail
   To hide the orb of truth--and every throne
   Of Earth or Heaven, though shadow, rests thereon,                    _3275
   One shape of many names:--for this ye plough
   The barren waves of ocean, hence each one
   Is slave or tyrant; all betray and bow,
   Command, or kill, or fear, or wreak, or suffer woe.
   
   10.
   '"Its names are each a sign which maketh holy                        _3280
   All power--ay, the ghost, the dream, the shade
   Of power--lust, falsehood, hate, and pride, and folly;
   The pattern whence all fraud and wrong is made,
   A law to which mankind has been betrayed;
   And human love, is as the name well known                            _3285
   Of a dear mother, whom the murderer laid
   In bloody grave, and into darkness thrown,
   Gathered her wildered babes around him as his own.
   
   11.
   '"O Love, who to the hearts of wandering men
   Art as the calm to Ocean's weary waves!                              _3290
   Justice, or Truth, or Joy! those only can
   From slavery and religion's labyrinth caves
   Guide us, as one clear star the seaman saves.
   To give to all an equal share of good,
   To track the steps of Freedom, though through graves                 _3295
   She pass, to suffer all in patient mood,
   To weep for crime, though stained with thy friend's dearest blood,--
   
   12.
   '"To feel the peace of self-contentment's lot,
   To own all sympathies, and outrage none,
   And in the inmost bowers of sense and thought,                       _3300
   Until life's sunny day is quite gone down,
   To sit and smile with Joy, or, not alone,
   To kiss salt tears from the worn cheek of Woe;
   To live, as if to love and live were one,--
   This is not faith or law, nor those who bow                          _3305
   To thrones on Heaven or Earth, such destiny may know.
   
   13.
   '"But children near their parents tremble now,
   Because they must obey--one rules another,
   And as one Power rules both high and low,
   So man is made the captive of his brother,                           _3310
   And Hate is throned on high with Fear her mother,
   Above the Highest--and those fountain-cells,
   Whence love yet flowed when faith had choked all other,
   Are darkened--Woman as the bond-slave dwells
   Of man, a slave; and life is poisoned in its wells.                  _3315
   
   14.
   '"Man seeks for gold in mines, that he may weave
   A lasting chain for his own slavery;--
   In fear and restless care that he may live
   He toils for others, who must ever be
   The joyless thralls of like captivity;                               _3320
   He murders, for his chiefs delight in ruin;
   He builds the altar, that its idol's fee
   May be his very blood; he is pursuing--
   O, blind and willing wretch!--his own obscure undoing.
   
   15.
   '"Woman!--she is his slave, she has become                           _3325
   A thing I weep to speak--the child of scorn,
   The outcast of a desolated home;
   Falsehood, and fear, and toil, like waves have worn
   Channels upon her cheek, which smiles adorn,
   As calm decks the false Ocean:--well ye know                         _3330
   What Woman is, for none of Woman born
   Can choose but drain the bitter dregs of woe,
   Which ever from the oppressed to the oppressors flow.
   
   16.
   '"This need not be; ye might arise, and will
   That gold should lose its power, and thrones their glory;            _3335
   That love, which none may bind, be free to fill
   The world, like light; and evil faith, grown hoary
   With crime, be quenched and die.--Yon promontory
   Even now eclipses the descending moon!--
   Dungeons and palaces are transitory--                                _3340
   High temples fade like vapour--Man alone
   Remains, whose will has power when all beside is gone.
   
   17.
   '"Let all be free and equal!--From your hearts
   I feel an echo; through my inmost frame
   Like sweetest sound, seeking its mate, it darts--                    _3345
   Whence come ye, friends? Alas, I cannot name
   All that I read of sorrow, toil, and shame,
   On your worn faces; as in legends old
   Which make immortal the disastrous fame
   Of conquerors and impostors false and bold,                          _3350
   The discord of your hearts, I in your looks behold.
   
   18.
   '"Whence come ye, friends? from pouring human blood
   Forth on the earth? Or bring ye steel and gold,
   That Kings may dupe and slay the multitude?
   Or from the famished poor, pale, weak and cold,                      _3355
   Bear ye the earnings of their toil? Unfold!
   Speak! Are your hands in slaughter's sanguine hue
   Stained freshly? have your hearts in guile grown old?
   Know yourselves thus! ye shall be pure as dew,
   And I will be a friend and sister unto you.                          _3360
   
   19.
   '"Disguise it not--we have one human heart--
   All mortal thoughts confess a common home:
   Blush not for what may to thyself impart
   Stains of inevitable crime: the doom
   Is this, which has, or may, or must become                           _3365
   Thine, and all humankind's. Ye are the spoil
   Which Time thus marks for the devouring tomb--
   Thou and thy thoughts and they, and all the toil
   Wherewith ye twine the rings of life's perpetual coil.
   
   20.
   '"Disguise it not--ye blush for what ye hate,                        _3370
   And Enmity is sister unto Shame;
   Look on your mind--it is the book of fate--
   Ah! it is dark with many a blazoned name
   Of misery--all are mirrors of the same;
   But the dark fiend who with his iron pen                             _3375
   Dipped in scorn's fiery poison, makes his fame
   Enduring there, would o'er the heads of men
   Pass harmless, if they scorned to make their hearts his den.
   
   21.
   '"Yes, it is Hate, that shapeless fiendly thing
   Of many names, all evil, some divine,                                _3380
   Whom self-contempt arms with a mortal sting;
   Which, when the heart its snaky folds entwine
   Is wasted quite, and when it doth repine
   To gorge such bitter prey, on all beside
   It turns with ninefold rage, as with its twine                       _3385
   When Amphisbaena some fair bird has tied,
   Soon o'er the putrid mass he threats on every side.
   
   22.
   '"Reproach not thine own soul, but know thyself,
   Nor hate another's crime, nor loathe thine own.
   It is the dark idolatry of self,                                     _3390
   Which, when our thoughts and actions once are gone,
   Demands that man should weep, and bleed, and groan;
   Oh, vacant expiation! Be at rest.--
   The past is Death's, the future is thine own;
   And love and joy can make the foulest breast                         _3395
   A paradise of flowers, where peace might build her nest.
   
   23.
   '"Speak thou! whence come ye?"--A Youth made reply:
   "Wearily, wearily o'er the boundless deep
   We sail;--thou readest well the misery
   Told in these faded eyes, but much doth sleep                        _3400
   Within, which there the poor heart loves to keep,
   Or dare not write on the dishonoured brow;
   Even from our childhood have we learned to steep
   The bread of slavery in the tears of woe,
   And never dreamed of hope or refuge until now.                       _3405
   
   24.
   '"Yes--I must speak--my secret should have perished
   Even with the heart it wasted, as a brand
   Fades in the dying flame whose life it cherished,
   But that no human bosom can withstand
   Thee, wondrous Lady, and the mild command                            _3410
   Of thy keen eyes:--yes, we are wretched slaves,
   Who from their wonted loves and native land
   Are reft, and bear o'er the dividing waves
   The unregarded prey of calm and happy graves.
   
   25.
   '"We drag afar from pastoral vales the fairest                       _3415
   Among the daughters of those mountains lone,
   We drag them there, where all things best and rarest
   Are stained and trampled:--years have come and gone
   Since, like the ship which bears me, I have known
   No thought;--but now the eyes of one dear Maid                       _3420
   On mine with light of mutual love have shone--
   She is my life,--I am but as the shade
   Of her,--a smoke sent up from ashes, soon to fade.
   
   26.
   '"For she must perish in the Tyrant's hall--
   Alas, alas!"--He ceased, and by the sail                             _3425
   Sate cowering--but his sobs were heard by all,
   And still before the ocean and the gale
   The ship fled fast till the stars 'gan to fail;
   And, round me gathered with mute countenance,
   The Seamen gazed, the Pilot, worn and pale                           _3430
   With toil, the Captain with gray locks, whose glance
   Met mine in restless awe--they stood as in a trance.
   
   27.
   '"Recede not! pause not now! Thou art grown old,
   But Hope will make thee young, for Hope and Youth
   Are children of one mother, even Love--behold!                       _3435
   The eternal stars gaze on us!--is the truth
   Within your soul? care for your own, or ruth
   For others' sufferings? do ye thirst to bear
   A heart which not the serpent Custom's tooth
   May violate?--Be free! and even here,                                _3440
   Swear to be firm till death!" They cried, "We swear! We swear!"
   
   28.
   'The very darkness shook, as with a blast
   Of subterranean thunder, at the cry;
   The hollow shore its thousand echoes cast
   Into the night, as if the sea and sky,                               _3445
   And earth, rejoiced with new-born liberty,
   For in that name they swore! Bolts were undrawn,
   And on the deck, with unaccustomed eye
   The captives gazing stood, and every one
   Shrank as the inconstant torch upon her countenance shone.           _3450
   
   29.
   'They were earth's purest children, young and fair,
   With eyes the shrines of unawakened thought,
   And brows as bright as Spring or Morning, ere
   Dark time had there its evil legend wrought
   In characters of cloud which wither not.--                           _3455
   The change was like a dream to them; but soon
   They knew the glory of their altered lot,
   In the bright wisdom of youth's breathless noon,
   Sweet talk, and smiles, and sighs, all bosoms did attune.
   
   30.
   'But one was mute; her cheeks and lips most fair,                    _3460
   Changing their hue like lilies newly blown,
   Beneath a bright acacia's shadowy hair,
   Waved by the wind amid the sunny noon,
   Showed that her soul was quivering; and full soon
   That Youth arose, and breathlessly did look                          _3465
   On her and me, as for some speechless boon:
   I smiled, and both their hands in mine I took,
   And felt a soft delight from what their spirits shook.
   
   
   CANTO 9.
   
   1.
   'That night we anchored in a woody bay,
   And sleep no more around us dared to hover                           _3470
   Than, when all doubt and fear has passed away,
   It shades the couch of some unresting lover,
   Whose heart is now at rest: thus night passed over
   In mutual joy:--around, a forest grew
   Of poplars and dark oaks, whose shade did cover                      _3475
   The waning stars pranked in the waters blue,
   And trembled in the wind which from the morning flew.
   
   2.
   'The joyous Mariners, and each free Maiden
   Now brought from the deep forest many a bough,
   With woodland spoil most innocently laden;                           _3480
   Soon wreaths of budding foliage seemed to flow
   Over the mast and sails, the stern and prow
   Were canopied with blooming boughs,--the while
   On the slant sun's path o'er the waves we go
   Rejoicing, like the dwellers of an isle                              _3485
   Doomed to pursue those waves that cannot cease to smile.
   
   3.
   'The many ships spotting the dark blue deep
   With snowy sails, fled fast as ours came nigh,
   In fear and wonder; and on every steep
   Thousands did gaze, they heard the startling cry,                    _3490
   Like Earth's own voice lifted unconquerably
   To all her children, the unbounded mirth,
   The glorious joy of thy name--Liberty!
   They heard!--As o'er the mountains of the earth
   From peak to peak leap on the beams of Morning's birth:              _3495
   
   4.
   'So from that cry over the boundless hills
   Sudden was caught one universal sound,
   Like a volcano's voice, whose thunder fills
   Remotest skies,--such glorious madness found
   A path through human hearts with stream which drowned                _3500
   Its struggling fears and cares, dark Custom's brood;
   They knew not whence it came, but felt around
   A wide contagion poured--they called aloud
   On Liberty--that name lived on the sunny flood.
   
   5.
   'We reached the port.--Alas! from many spirits                       _3505
   The wisdom which had waked that cry, was fled,
   Like the brief glory which dark Heaven inherits
   From the false dawn, which fades ere it is spread,
   Upon the night's devouring darkness shed:
   Yet soon bright day will burst--even like a chasm                    _3510
   Of fire, to burn the shrouds outworn and dead,
   Which wrap the world; a wide enthusiasm,
   To cleanse the fevered world as with an earthquake's spasm!
   
   6.
   'I walked through the great City then, but free
   From shame or fear; those toil-worn Mariners                         _3515
   And happy Maidens did encompass me;
   And like a subterranean wind that stirs
   Some forest among caves, the hopes and fears
   From every human soul, a murmur strange
   Made as I passed; and many wept, with tears                          _3520
   Of joy and awe, and winged thoughts did range,
   And half-extinguished words, which prophesied of change.
   
   7.
   'For, with strong speech I tore the veil that hid
   Nature, and Truth, and Liberty, and Love,--
   As one who from some mountain's pyramid                              _3525
   Points to the unrisen sun!--the shades approve
   His truth, and flee from every stream and grove.
   Thus, gentle thoughts did many a bosom fill,--
   Wisdom, the mail of tried affections wove
   For many a heart, and tameless scorn of ill,                         _3530
   Thrice steeped in molten steel the unconquerable will.
   
   8.
   'Some said I was a maniac wild and lost;
   Some, that I scarce had risen from the grave,
   The Prophet's virgin bride, a heavenly ghost:--
   Some said, I was a fiend from my weird cave,                         _3535
   Who had stolen human shape, and o'er the wave,
   The forest, and the mountain, came;--some said
   I was the child of God, sent down to save
   Woman from bonds and death, and on my head
   The burden of their sins would frightfully be laid.                  _3540
   
   9.
   'But soon my human words found sympathy
   In human hearts: the purest and the best,
   As friend with friend, made common cause with me,
   And they were few, but resolute;--the rest,
   Ere yet success the enterprise had blessed,                          _3545
   Leagued with me in their hearts;--their meals, their slumber,
   Their hourly occupations, were possessed
   By hopes which I had armed to overnumber
   Those hosts of meaner cares, which life's strong wings encumber.
   
   10.
   'But chiefly women, whom my voice did waken                          _3550
   From their cold, careless, willing slavery,
   Sought me: one truth their dreary prison has shaken,--
   They looked around, and lo! they became free!
   Their many tyrants sitting desolately
   In slave-deserted halls, could none restrain;                        _3555
   For wrath's red fire had withered in the eye,
   Whose lightning once was death,--nor fear, nor gain
   Could tempt one captive now to lock another's chain.
   
   11.
   'Those who were sent to bind me, wept, and felt
   Their minds outsoar the bonds which clasped them round,              _3560
   Even as a waxen shape may waste and melt
   In the white furnace; and a visioned swound,
   A pause of hope and awe the City bound,
   Which, like the silence of a tempest's birth,
   When in its awful shadow it has wound                                _3565
   The sun, the wind, the ocean, and the earth,
   Hung terrible, ere yet the lightnings have leaped forth.
   
   12.
   'Like clouds inwoven in the silent sky,
   By winds from distant regions meeting there,
   In the high name of truth and liberty,                               _3570
   Around the City millions gathered were,
   By hopes which sprang from many a hidden lair,--
   Words which the lore of truth in hues of flame
   Arrayed, thine own wild songs which in the air
   Like homeless odours floated, and the name                           _3575
   Of thee, and many a tongue which thou hadst dipped in flame.
   
   13.
   'The Tyrant knew his power was gone, but Fear,
   The nurse of Vengeance, bade him wait the event--
   That perfidy and custom, gold and prayer,
   And whatsoe'er, when force is impotent,                              _3580
   To fraud the sceptre of the world has lent,
   Might, as he judged, confirm his failing sway.
   Therefore throughout the streets, the Priests he sent
   To curse the rebels.--To their gods did they
   For Earthquake, Plague, and Want, kneel in the public way.           _3585
   
   14.
   'And grave and hoary men were bribed to tell
   From seats where law is made the slave of wrong,
   How glorious Athens in her splendour fell,
   Because her sons were free,--and that among
   Mankind, the many to the few belong,                                 _3590
   By Heaven, and Nature, and Necessity.
   They said, that age was truth, and that the young
   Marred with wild hopes the peace of slavery,
   With which old times and men had quelled the vain and free.
   
   15.
   'And with the falsehood of their poisonous lips                      _3595
   They breathed on the enduring memory
   Of sages and of bards a brief eclipse;
   There was one teacher, who necessity
   Had armed with strength and wrong against mankind,
   His slave and his avenger aye to be;                                 _3600
   That we were weak and sinful, frail and blind,
   And that the will of one was peace, and we
   Should seek for nought on earth but toil and misery--
   
   16.
   '"For thus we might avoid the hell hereafter."
   So spake the hypocrites, who cursed and lied;                        _3605
   Alas, their sway was past, and tears and laughter
   Clung to their hoary hair, withering the pride
   Which in their hollow hearts dared still abide;
   And yet obscener slaves with smoother brow,
   And sneers on their strait lips, thin, blue and wide,                _3610
   Said that the rule of men was over now,
   And hence, the subject world to woman's will must bow;
   
   17.
   'And gold was scattered through the streets, and wine
   Flowed at a hundred feasts within the wall.
   In vain! the steady towers in Heaven did shine                       _3615
   As they were wont, nor at the priestly call
   Left Plague her banquet in the Ethiop's hall,
   Nor Famine from the rich man's portal came,
   Where at her ease she ever preys on all
   Who throng to kneel for food: nor fear nor shame,                    _3620
   Nor faith, nor discord, dimmed hope's newly kindled flame.
   
   18.
   'For gold was as a god whose faith began
   To fade, so that its worshippers were few,
   And Faith itself, which in the heart of man
   Gives shape, voice, name, to spectral Terror, knew                   _3625
   Its downfall, as the altars lonelier grew,
   Till the Priests stood alone within the fane;
   The shafts of falsehood unpolluting flew,
   And the cold sneers of calumny were vain,
   The union of the free with discord's brand to stain.                 _3630
   
   19.
   'The rest thou knowest.--Lo! we two are here--
   We have survived a ruin wide and deep--
   Strange thoughts are mine.--I cannot grieve or fear,
   Sitting with thee upon this lonely steep
   I smile, though human love should make me weep.                      _3635
   We have survived a joy that knows no sorrow,
   And I do feel a mighty calmness creep
   Over my heart, which can no longer borrow
   Its hues from chance or change, dark children of to-morrow.
   
   20.
   'We know not what will come--yet, Laon, dearest,                     _3640
   Cythna shall be the prophetess of Love,
   Her lips shall rob thee of the grace thou wearest,
   To hide thy heart, and clothe the shapes which rove
   Within the homeless Future's wintry grove;
   For I now, sitting thus beside thee, seem                            _3645
   Even with thy breath and blood to live and move,
   And violence and wrong are as a dream
   Which rolls from steadfast truth, an unreturning stream.
   
   21.
   'The blasts of Autumn drive the winged seeds
   Over the earth,--next come the snows, and rain,                      _3650
   And frosts, and storms, which dreary Winter leads
   Out of his Scythian cave, a savage train;
   Behold! Spring sweeps over the world again,
   Shedding soft dews from her ethereal wings;
   Flowers on the mountains, fruits over the plain,                     _3655
   And music on the waves and woods she flings,
   And love on all that lives, and calm on lifeless things.
   
   22.
   'O Spring, of hope, and love, and youth, and gladness
   Wind-winged emblem! brightest, best and fairest!
   Whence comest thou, when, with dark Winter's sadness                 _3660
   The tears that fade in sunny smiles thou sharest?
   Sister of joy, thou art the child who wearest
   Thy mother's dying smile, tender and sweet;
   Thy mother Autumn, for whose grave thou bearest
   Fresh flowers, and beams like flowers, with gentle feet,             _3665
   Disturbing not the leaves which are her winding-sheet.
   
   23.
   'Virtue, and Hope, and Love, like light and Heaven,
   Surround the world.--We are their chosen slaves.
   Has not the whirlwind of our spirit driven
   Truth's deathless germs to thought's remotest caves?                 _3670
   Lo, Winter comes!--the grief of many graves,
   The frost of death, the tempest of the sword,
   The flood of tyranny, whose sanguine waves
   Stagnate like ice at Faith the enchanter's word,
   And bind all human hearts in its repose abhorred.                    _3675
   
   24.
   'The seeds are sleeping in the soil: meanwhile
   The Tyrant peoples dungeons with his prey,
   Pale victims on the guarded scaffold smile
   Because they cannot speak; and, day by day,
   The moon of wasting Science wanes away                               _3680
   Among her stars, and in that darkness vast
   The sons of earth to their foul idols pray,
   And gray Priests triumph, and like blight or blast
   A shade of selfish care o'er human looks is cast.
   
   25.
   'This is the winter of the world;--and here                          _3685
   We die, even as the winds of Autumn fade,
   Expiring in the frore and foggy air.
   Behold! Spring comes, though we must pass, who made
   The promise of its birth,--even as the shade
   Which from our death, as from a mountain, flings                     _3690
   The future, a broad sunrise; thus arrayed
   As with the plumes of overshadowing wings,
   From its dark gulf of chains, Earth like an eagle springs.
   
   26.
   'O dearest love! we shall be dead and cold
   Before this morn may on the world arise;                             _3695
   Wouldst thou the glory of its dawn behold?
   Alas! gaze not on me, but turn thine eyes
   On thine own heart--it is a paradise
   Which everlasting Spring has made its own,
   And while drear Winter fills the naked skies,                        _3700
   Sweet streams of sunny thought, and flowers fresh-blown,
   Are there, and weave their sounds and odours into one.
   
   27.
   'In their own hearts the earnest of the hope
   Which made them great, the good will ever find;
   And though some envious shade may interlope                          _3705
   Between the effect and it, One comes behind,
   Who aye the future to the past will bind--
   Necessity, whose sightless strength for ever
   Evil with evil, good with good must wind
   In bands of union, which no power may sever:                         _3710
   They must bring forth their kind, and be divided never!
   
   28.
   'The good and mighty of departed ages
   Are in their graves, the innocent and free,
   Heroes, and Poets, and prevailing Sages,
   Who leave the vesture of their majesty                               _3715
   To adorn and clothe this naked world;--and we
   Are like to them--such perish, but they leave
   All hope, or love, or truth, or liberty,
   Whose forms their mighty spirits could conceive,
   To be a rule and law to ages that survive.                           _3720
   
   29.
   'So be the turf heaped over our remains
   Even in our happy youth, and that strange lot,
   Whate'er it be, when in these mingling veins
   The blood is still, be ours; let sense and thought
   Pass from our being, or be numbered not                              _3725
   Among the things that are; let those who come
   Behind, for whom our steadfast will has bought
   A calm inheritance, a glorious doom,
   Insult with careless tread, our undivided tomb.
   
   30.
   'Our many thoughts and deeds, our life and love,                     _3730
   Our happiness, and all that we have been,
   Immortally must live, and burn and move,
   When we shall be no more;--the world has seen
   A type of peace; and--as some most serene
   And lovely spot to a poor maniac's eye,                              _3735
   After long years, some sweet and moving scene
   Of youthful hope, returning suddenly,
   Quells his long madness--thus man shall remember thee.
   
   31.
   'And Calumny meanwhile shall feed on us,
   As worms devour the dead, and near the throne                        _3740
   And at the altar, most accepted thus
   Shall sneers and curses be;--what we have done
   None shall dare vouch, though it be truly known;
   That record shall remain, when they must pass
   Who built their pride on its oblivion;                               _3745
   And fame, in human hope which sculptured was,
   Survive the perished scrolls of unenduring brass.
   
   32.
   'The while we two, beloved, must depart,
   And Sense and Reason, those enchanters fair,
   Whose wand of power is hope, would bid the heart                     _3750
   That gazed beyond the wormy grave despair:
   These eyes, these lips, this blood, seems darkly there
   To fade in hideous ruin; no calm sleep
   Peopling with golden dreams the stagnant air,
   Seems our obscure and rotting eyes to steep                          _3755
   In joy;--but senseless death--a ruin dark and deep!
   
   33.
   'These are blind fancies--reason cannot know
   What sense can neither feel, nor thought conceive;
   There is delusion in the world--and woe,
   And fear, and pain--we know not whence we live,                      _3760
   Or why, or how, or what mute Power may give
   Their being to each plant, and star, and beast,
   Or even these thoughts.--Come near me! I do weave
   A chain I cannot break--I am possessed
   With thoughts too swift and strong for one lone human breast.        _3765
   
   34.
   'Yes, yes--thy kiss is sweet, thy lips are warm--
   O! willingly, beloved, would these eyes,
   Might they no more drink being from thy form,
   Even as to sleep whence we again arise,
   Close their faint orbs in death: I fear nor prize                    _3770
   Aught that can now betide, unshared by thee--
   Yes, Love when Wisdom fails makes Cythna wise:
   Darkness and death, if death be true, must be
   Dearer than life and hope, if unenjoyed with thee.
   
   35.
   'Alas, our thoughts flow on with stream, whose waters                _3775
   Return not to their fountain--Earth and Heaven,
   The Ocean and the Sun, the Clouds their daughters,
   Winter, and Spring, and Morn, and Noon, and Even,
   All that we are or know, is darkly driven
   Towards one gulf.--Lo! what a change is come                         _3780
   Since I first spake--but time shall be forgiven,
   Though it change all but thee!'--She ceased--night's gloom
   Meanwhile had fallen on earth from the sky's sunless dome.
   
   36.
   Though she had ceased, her countenance uplifted
   To Heaven, still spake, with solemn glory bright;                    _3785
   Her dark deep eyes, her lips, whose motions gifted
   The air they breathed with love, her locks undight.
   'Fair star of life and love,' I cried, 'my soul's delight,
   Why lookest thou on the crystalline skies?
   O, that my spirit were yon Heaven of night,                          _3790
   Which gazes on thee with its thousand eyes!'
   She turned to me and smiled--that smile was Paradise!
   
   
   NOTES:
   _3573 hues of grace edition 1818.
   
   
   CANTO 10.
   
   1.
   Was there a human spirit in the steed,
   That thus with his proud voice, ere night was gone,
   He broke our linked rest? or do indeed                               _3795
   All living things a common nature own,
   And thought erect an universal throne,
   Where many shapes one tribute ever bear?
   And Earth, their mutual mother, does she groan
   To see her sons contend? and makes she bare                          _3800
   Her breast, that all in peace its drainless stores may share?
   
   2.
   I have heard friendly sounds from many a tongue
   Which was not human--the lone nightingale
   Has answered me with her most soothing song,
   Out of her ivy bower, when I sate pale                               _3805
   With grief, and sighed beneath; from many a dale
   The antelopes who flocked for food have spoken
   With happy sounds, and motions, that avail
   Like man's own speech; and such was now the token
   Of waning night, whose calm by that proud neigh was broken.          _3810
   
   3.
   Each night, that mighty steed bore me abroad,
   And I returned with food to our retreat,
   And dark intelligence; the blood which flowed
   Over the fields, had stained the courser's feet;
   Soon the dust drinks that bitter dew,--then meet                     _3815
   The vulture, and the wild dog, and the snake,
   The wolf, and the hyaena gray, and eat
   The dead in horrid truce: their throngs did make
   Behind the steed, a chasm like waves in a ship's wake.
   
   4.
   For, from the utmost realms of earth came pouring                    _3820
   The banded slaves whom every despot sent
   At that throned traitor's summons; like the roaring
   Of fire, whose floods the wild deer circumvent
   In the scorched pastures of the South; so bent
   The armies of the leagued Kings around                               _3825
   Their files of steel and flame;--the continent
   Trembled, as with a zone of ruin bound,
   Beneath their feet, the sea shook with their Navies' sound.
   
   5.
   From every nation of the earth they came,
   The multitude of moving heartless things,                            _3830
   Whom slaves call men: obediently they came,
   Like sheep whom from the fold the shepherd brings
   To the stall, red with blood; their many kings
   Led them, thus erring, from their native land;
   Tartar and Frank, and millions whom the wings                        _3835
   Of Indian breezes lull, and many a band
   The Arctic Anarch sent, and Idumea's sand,
   
   6.
   Fertile in prodigies and lies;--so there
   Strange natures made a brotherhood of ill.
   The desert savage ceased to grasp in fear                            _3840
   His Asian shield and bow, when, at the will
   Of Europe's subtler son, the bolt would kill
   Some shepherd sitting on a rock secure;
   But smiles of wondering joy his face would fill,
   And savage sympathy: those slaves impure,                            _3845
   Each one the other thus from ill to ill did lure.
   
   7.
   For traitorously did that foul Tyrant robe
   His countenance in lies,--even at the hour
   When he was snatched from death, then o'er the globe,
   With secret signs from many a mountain-tower,                        _3850
   With smoke by day, and fire by night, the power
   Of Kings and Priests, those dark conspirators,
   He called:--they knew his cause their own, and swore
   Like wolves and serpents to their mutual wars
   Strange truce, with many a rite which Earth and Heaven abhors.       _3855
   
   8.
   Myriads had come--millions were on their way;
   The Tyrant passed, surrounded by the steel
   Of hired assassins, through the public way,
   Choked with his country's dead:--his footsteps reel
   On the fresh blood--he smiles. 'Ay, now I feel                       _3860
   I am a King in truth!' he said, and took
   His royal seat, and bade the torturing wheel
   Be brought, and fire, and pincers, and the hook,
   And scorpions, that his soul on its revenge might look.
   
   9.
   'But first, go slay the rebels--why return                           _3865
   The victor bands?' he said, 'millions yet live,
   Of whom the weakest with one word might turn
   The scales of victory yet;--let none survive
   But those within the walls--each fifth shall give
   The expiation for his brethren here.--                               _3870
   Go forth, and waste and kill!'--'O king, forgive
   My speech,' a soldier answered--'but we fear
   The spirits of the night, and morn is drawing near;
   
   10.
   'For we were slaying still without remorse,
   And now that dreadful chief beneath my hand                          _3875
   Defenceless lay, when on a hell-black horse,
   An Angel bright as day, waving a brand
   Which flashed among the stars, passed.'--'Dost thou stand
   Parleying with me, thou wretch?' the king replied;
   'Slaves, bind him to the wheel; and of this band,                    _3880
   Whoso will drag that woman to his side
   That scared him thus, may burn his dearest foe beside;
   
   11.
   'And gold and glory shall be his.--Go forth!'
   They rushed into the plain.--Loud was the roar
   Of their career: the horsemen shook the earth;                       _3885
   The wheeled artillery's speed the pavement tore;
   The infantry, file after file, did pour
   Their clouds on the utmost hills. Five days they slew
   Among the wasted fields; the sixth saw gore
   Stream through the city; on the seventh, the dew                     _3890
   Of slaughter became stiff, and there was peace anew:
   
   12.
   Peace in the desert fields and villages,
   Between the glutted beasts and mangled dead!
   Peace in the silent streets! save when the cries
   Of victims to their fiery judgement led,                             _3895
   Made pale their voiceless lips who seemed to dread
   Even in their dearest kindred, lest some tongue
   Be faithless to the fear yet unbetrayed;
   Peace in the Tyrant's palace, where the throng
   Waste the triumphal hours in festival and song!                      _3900
   
   13.
   Day after day the burning sun rolled on
   Over the death-polluted land--it came
   Out of the east like fire, and fiercely shone
   A lamp of Autumn, ripening with its flame
   The few lone ears of corn;--the sky became                           _3905
   Stagnate with heat, so that each cloud and blast
   Languished and died,--the thirsting air did claim
   All moisture, and a rotting vapour passed
   From the unburied dead, invisible and fast.
   
   14.
   First Want, then Plague came on the beasts; their food               _3910
   Failed, and they drew the breath of its decay.
   Millions on millions, whom the scent of blood
   Had lured, or who, from regions far away,
   Had tracked the hosts in festival array,
   From their dark deserts; gaunt and wasting now,                      _3915
   Stalked like fell shades among their perished prey;
   In their green eyes a strange disease did glow,
   They sank in hideous spasm, or pains severe and slow.
   
   15.
   The fish were poisoned in the streams; the birds
   In the green woods perished; the insect race                         _3920
   Was withered up; the scattered flocks and herds
   Who had survived the wild beasts' hungry chase
   Died moaning, each upon the other's face
   In helpless agony gazing; round the City
   All night, the lean hyaenas their sad case                           _3925
   Like starving infants wailed; a woeful ditty!
   And many a mother wept, pierced with unnatural pity.
   
   16.
   Amid the aereal minarets on high,
   The Ethiopian vultures fluttering fell
   From their long line of brethren in the sky,                         _3930
   Startling the concourse of mankind.--Too well
   These signs the coming mischief did foretell:--
   Strange panic first, a deep and sickening dread
   Within each heart, like ice, did sink and dwell,
   A voiceless thought of evil, which did spread                        _3935
   With the quick glance of eyes, like withering lightnings shed.
   
   17.
   Day after day, when the year wanes, the frosts
   Strip its green crown of leaves, till all is bare;
   So on those strange and congregated hosts
   Came Famine, a swift shadow, and the air                             _3940
   Groaned with the burden of a new despair;
   Famine, than whom Misrule no deadlier daughter
   Feeds from her thousand breasts, though sleeping there
   With lidless eyes, lie Faith, and Plague, and Slaughter,
   A ghastly brood; conceived of Lethe's sullen water.                  _3945
   
   18.
   There was no food, the corn was trampled down,
   The flocks and herds had perished; on the shore
   The dead and putrid fish were ever thrown;
   The deeps were foodless, and the winds no more
   Creaked with the weight of birds, but, as before                     _3950
   Those winged things sprang forth, were void of shade;
   The vines and orchards, Autumn's golden store,
   Were burned;--so that the meanest food was weighed
   With gold, and Avarice died before the god it made.
   
   19.
   There was no corn--in the wide market-place                          _3955
   All loathliest things, even human flesh, was sold;
   They weighed it in small scales--and many a face
   Was fixed in eager horror then: his gold
   The miser brought; the tender maid, grown bold
   Through hunger, bared her scorned charms in vain;                    _3960
   The mother brought her eldest born, controlled
   By instinct blind as love, but turned again
   And bade her infant suck, and died in silent pain.
   
   20.
   Then fell blue Plague upon the race of man.
   'O, for the sheathed steel, so late which gave                       _3965
   Oblivion to the dead, when the streets ran
   With brothers' blood! O, that the earthquake's grave
   Would gape, or Ocean lift its stifling wave!'
   Vain cries--throughout the streets thousands pursued
   Each by his fiery torture howl and rave,                             _3970
   Or sit in frenzy's unimagined mood,
   Upon fresh heaps of dead; a ghastly multitude.
   
   21.
   It was not hunger now, but thirst. Each well
   Was choked with rotting corpses, and became
   A cauldron of green mist made visible                                _3975
   At sunrise. Thither still the myriads came,
   Seeking to quench the agony of the flame,
   Which raged like poison through their bursting veins;
   Naked they were from torture, without shame,
   Spotted with nameless scars and lurid blains,                        _3980
   Childhood, and youth, and age, writhing in savage pains.
   
   22.
   It was not thirst, but madness! Many saw
   Their own lean image everywhere, it went
   A ghastlier self beside them, till the awe
   Of that dread sight to self-destruction sent                         _3985
   Those shrieking victims; some, ere life was spent,
   Sought, with a horrid sympathy, to shed
   Contagion on the sound; and others rent
   Their matted hair, and cried aloud, 'We tread
   On fire! the avenging Power his hell on earth has spread!'           _3990
   
   23.
   Sometimes the living by the dead were hid.
   Near the great fountain in the public square,
   Where corpses made a crumbling pyramid
   Under the sun, was heard one stifled prayer
   For life, in the hot silence of the air;                             _3995
   And strange 'twas, amid that hideous heap to see
   Some shrouded in their long and golden hair,
   As if not dead, but slumbering quietly
   Like forms which sculptors carve, then love to agony.
   
   24.
   Famine had spared the palace of the king:--                          _4000
   He rioted in festival the while,
   He and his guards and priests; but Plague did fling
   One shadow upon all. Famine can smile
   On him who brings it food, and pass, with guile
   Of thankful falsehood, like a courtier gray,                         _4005
   The house-dog of the throne; but many a mile
   Comes Plague, a winged wolf, who loathes alway
   The garbage and the scum that strangers make her prey.
   
   25.
   So, near the throne, amid the gorgeous feast,
   Sheathed in resplendent arms, or loosely dight                       _4010
   To luxury, ere the mockery yet had ceased
   That lingered on his lips, the warrior's might
   Was loosened, and a new and ghastlier night
   In dreams of frenzy lapped his eyes; he fell
   Headlong, or with stiff eyeballs sate upright                        _4015
   Among the guests, or raving mad did tell
   Strange truths; a dying seer of dark oppression's hell.
   
   26.
   The Princes and the Priests were pale with terror;
   That monstrous faith wherewith they ruled mankind,
   Fell, like a shaft loosed by the bowman's error,                     _4020
   On their own hearts: they sought and they could find
   No refuge--'twas the blind who led the blind!
   So, through the desolate streets to the high fane,
   The many-tongued and endless armies wind
   In sad procession: each among the train                              _4025
   To his own Idol lifts his supplications vain.
   
   27.
   'O God!' they cried, 'we know our secret pride
   Has scorned thee, and thy worship, and thy name;
   Secure in human power we have defied
   Thy fearful might; we bend in fear and shame                         _4030
   Before thy presence; with the dust we claim
   Kindred; be merciful, O King of Heaven!
   Most justly have we suffered for thy fame
   Made dim, but be at length our sins forgiven,
   Ere to despair and death thy worshippers be driven.                  _4035
   
   28.
   'O King of Glory! thou alone hast power!
   Who can resist thy will? who can restrain
   Thy wrath, when on the guilty thou dost shower
   The shafts of thy revenge, a blistering rain?
   Greatest and best, be merciful again!                                _4040
   Have we not stabbed thine enemies, and made
   The Earth an altar, and the Heavens a fane,
   Where thou wert worshipped with their blood, and laid
   Those hearts in dust which would thy searchless works have weighed?
   
   29.
   'Well didst thou loosen on this impious City                         _4045
   Thine angels of revenge: recall them now;
   Thy worshippers, abased, here kneel for pity,
   And bind their souls by an immortal vow:
   We swear by thee! and to our oath do thou
   Give sanction, from thine hell of fiends and flame,                  _4050
   That we will kill with fire and torments slow,
   The last of those who mocked thy holy name,
   And scorned the sacred laws thy prophets did proclaim.'
   
   30.
   Thus they with trembling limbs and pallid lips
   Worshipped their own hearts' image, dim and vast,                    _4055
   Scared by the shade wherewith they would eclipse
   The light of other minds;--troubled they passed
   From the great Temple;--fiercely still and fast
   The arrows of the plague among them fell,
   And they on one another gazed aghast,                                _4060
   And through the hosts contention wild befell,
   As each of his own god the wondrous works did tell.
   
   31.
   And Oromaze, Joshua, and Mahomet,
   Moses, and Buddh, Zerdusht, and Brahm, and Foh,
   A tumult of strange names, which never met                           _4065
   Before, as watchwords of a single woe,
   Arose; each raging votary 'gan to throw
   Aloft his armed hands, and each did howl
   'Our God alone is God!'--and slaughter now
   Would have gone forth, when from beneath a cowl                      _4070
   A voice came forth, which pierced like ice through every soul.
   
   32.
   'Twas an Iberian Priest from whom it came,
   A zealous man, who led the legioned West,
   With words which faith and pride had steeped in flame,
   To quell the unbelievers; a dire guest                               _4075
   Even to his friends was he, for in his breast
   Did hate and guile lie watchful, intertwined,
   Twin serpents in one deep and winding nest;
   He loathed all faith beside his own, and pined
   To wreak his fear of Heaven in vengeance on mankind.                 _4080
   
   33.
   But more he loathed and hated the clear light
   Of wisdom and free thought, and more did fear,
   Lest, kindled once, its beams might pierce the night,
   Even where his Idol stood; for, far and near
   Did many a heart in Europe leap to hear                              _4085
   That faith and tyranny were trampled down;
   Many a pale victim, doomed for truth to share
   The murderer's cell, or see, with helpless groan,
   The priests his children drag for slaves to serve their own.
   
   34.
   He dared not kill the infidels with fire                             _4090
   Or steel, in Europe; the slow agonies
   Of legal torture mocked his keen desire:
   So he made truce with those who did despise
   The expiation, and the sacrifice,
   That, though detested, Islam's kindred creed                         _4095
   Might crush for him those deadlier enemies;
   For fear of God did in his bosom breed
   A jealous hate of man, an unreposing need.
   
   35.
   'Peace! Peace!' he cried, 'when we are dead, the Day
   Of Judgement comes, and all shall surely know                        _4100
   Whose God is God, each fearfully shall pay
   The errors of his faith in endless woe!
   But there is sent a mortal vengeance now
   On earth, because an impious race had spurned
   Him whom we all adore,--a subtle foe,                                _4105
   By whom for ye this dread reward was earned,
   And kingly thrones, which rest on faith, nigh overturned.
   
   36.
   'Think ye, because ye weep, and kneel, and pray,
   That God will lull the pestilence? It rose
   Even from beneath his throne, where, many a day,                     _4110
   His mercy soothed it to a dark repose:
   It walks upon the earth to judge his foes;
   And what are thou and I, that he should deign
   To curb his ghastly minister, or close
   The gates of death, ere they receive the twain                       _4115
   Who shook with mortal spells his undefended reign?
   
   37.
   'Ay, there is famine in the gulf of hell,
   Its giant worms of fire for ever yawn.--
   Their lurid eyes are on us! those who fell
   By the swift shafts of pestilence ere dawn,                          _4120
   Are in their jaws! they hunger for the spawn
   Of Satan, their own brethren, who were sent
   To make our souls their spoil. See! see! they fawn
   Like dogs, and they will sleep with luxury spent,
   When those detested hearts their iron fangs have rent!               _4125
   
   38.
   'Our God may then lull Pestilence to sleep:--
   Pile high the pyre of expiation now,
   A forest's spoil of boughs, and on the heap
   Pour venomous gums, which sullenly and slow,
   When touched by flame, shall burn, and melt, and flow,               _4130
   A stream of clinging fire,--and fix on high
   A net of iron, and spread forth below
   A couch of snakes, and scorpions, and the fry
   Of centipedes and worms, earth's hellish progeny!
   
   39.
   'Let Laon and Laone on that pyre,                                    _4135
   Linked tight with burning brass, perish!--then pray
   That, with this sacrifice, the withering ire
   Of Heaven may be appeased.' He ceased, and they
   A space stood silent, as far, far away
   The echoes of his voice among them died;                             _4140
   And he knelt down upon the dust, alway
   Muttering the curses of his speechless pride,
   Whilst shame, and fear, and awe, the armies did divide.
   
   40.
   His voice was like a blast that burst the portal
   Of fabled hell; and as he spake, each one                            _4145
   Saw gape beneath the chasms of fire immortal,
   And Heaven above seemed cloven, where, on a throne
   Girt round with storms and shadows, sate alone
   Their King and Judge--fear killed in every breast
   All natural pity then, a fear unknown                                _4150
   Before, and with an inward fire possessed,
   They raged like homeless beasts whom burning woods invest.
   
   41.
   'Twas morn.--At noon the public crier went forth,
   Proclaiming through the living and the dead,
   'The Monarch saith, that his great Empire's worth                    _4155
   Is set on Laon and Laone's head:
   He who but one yet living here can lead,
   Or who the life from both their hearts can wring,
   Shall be the kingdom's heir--a glorious meed!
   But he who both alive can hither bring,                              _4160
   The Princess shall espouse, and reign an equal King.'
   
   42.
   Ere night the pyre was piled, the net of iron
   Was spread above, the fearful couch below;
   It overtopped the towers that did environ
   That spacious square; for Fear is never slow                         _4165
   To build the thrones of Hate, her mate and foe;
   So, she scourged forth the maniac multitude
   To rear this pyramid--tottering and slow,
   Plague-stricken, foodless, like lean herds pursued
   By gadflies, they have piled the heath, and gums, and wood.          _4170
   
   43.
   Night came, a starless and a moonless gloom.
   Until the dawn, those hosts of many a nation
   Stood round that pile, as near one lover's tomb
   Two gentle sisters mourn their desolation;
   And in the silence of that expectation,                              _4175
   Was heard on high the reptiles' hiss and crawl--
   It was so deep--save when the devastation
   Of the swift pest, with fearful interval,
   Marking its path with shrieks, among the crowd would fall.
   
   44.
   Morn came,--among those sleepless multitudes,                        _4180
   Madness, and Fear, and Plague, and Famine still
   Heaped corpse on corpse, as in autumnal woods
   The frosts of many a wind with dead leaves fill
   Earth's cold and sullen brooks; in silence, still
   The pale survivors stood; ere noon, the fear                         _4185
   Of Hell became a panic, which did kill
   Like hunger or disease, with whispers drear,
   As 'Hush! hark! Come they yet?--Just Heaven! thine hour is near!'
   
   45.
   And Priests rushed through their ranks, some counterfeiting
   The rage they did inspire, some mad indeed                           _4190
   With their own lies; they said their god was waiting
   To see his enemies writhe, and burn, and bleed,--
   And that, till then, the snakes of Hell had need
   Of human souls:--three hundred furnaces
   Soon blazed through the wide City, where, with speed,                _4195
   Men brought their infidel kindred to appease
   God's wrath, and, while they burned, knelt round on quivering knees.
   
   46.
   The noontide sun was darkened with that smoke,
   The winds of eve dispersed those ashes gray.
   The madness which these rites had lulled, awoke                      _4200
   Again at sunset.--Who shall dare to say
   The deeds which night and fear brought forth, or weigh
   In balance just the good and evil there?
   He might man's deep and searchless heart display,
   And cast a light on those dim labyrinths, where                      _4205
   Hope, near imagined chasms, is struggling with despair.
   
   47.
   'Tis said, a mother dragged three children then,
   To those fierce flames which roast the eyes in the head,
   And laughed, and died; and that unholy men,
   Feasting like fiends upon the infidel dead,                          _4210
   Looked from their meal, and saw an Angel tread
   The visible floor of Heaven, and it was she!
   And, on that night, one without doubt or dread
   Came to the fire, and said, 'Stop, I am he!
   Kill me!'--They burned them both with hellish mockery.               _4215
   
   48.
   And, one by one, that night, young maidens came,
   Beauteous and calm, like shapes of living stone
   Clothed in the light of dreams, and by the flame
   Which shrank as overgorged, they laid them down,
   And sung a low sweet song, of which alone                            _4220
   One word was heard, and that was Liberty;
   And that some kissed their marble feet, with moan
   Like love, and died; and then that they did die
   With happy smiles, which sunk in white tranquillity.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _3834 native home edition 1818.
   _3967 earthquakes edition 1818.
   _4176 reptiles']reptiles edition 1818.
   
   
   CANTO 11.
   
   1.
   She saw me not--she heard me not--alone                              _4225
   Upon the mountain's dizzy brink she stood;
   She spake not, breathed not, moved not--there was thrown
   Over her look, the shadow of a mood
   Which only clothes the heart in solitude,
   A thought of voiceless depth;--she stood alone,                      _4230
   Above, the Heavens were spread;--below, the flood
   Was murmuring in its caves;--the wind had blown
   Her hair apart, through which her eyes and forehead shone.
   
   2.
   A cloud was hanging o'er the western mountains;
   Before its blue and moveless depth were flying                       _4235
   Gray mists poured forth from the unresting fountains
   Of darkness in the North:--the day was dying:--
   Sudden, the sun shone forth, its beams were lying
   Like boiling gold on Ocean, strange to see,
   And on the shattered vapours, which defying                          _4240
   The power of light in vain, tossed restlessly
   In the red Heaven, like wrecks in a tempestuous sea.
   
   3.
   It was a stream of living beams, whose bank
   On either side by the cloud's cleft was made;
   And where its chasms that flood of glory drank,                      _4245
   Its waves gushed forth like fire, and as if swayed
   By some mute tempest, rolled on HER; the shade
   Of her bright image floated on the river
   Of liquid light, which then did end and fade--
   Her radiant shape upon its verge did shiver;                         _4250
   Aloft, her flowing hair like strings of flame did quiver.
   
   4.
   I stood beside her, but she saw me not--
   She looked upon the sea, and skies, and earth;
   Rapture, and love, and admiration wrought
   A passion deeper far than tears, or mirth,                           _4255
   Or speech, or gesture, or whate'er has birth
   From common joy; which with the speechless feeling
   That led her there united, and shot forth
   From her far eyes a light of deep revealing,
   All but her dearest self from my regard concealing.                  _4260
   
   5.
   Her lips were parted, and the measured breath
   Was now heard there;--her dark and intricate eyes
   Orb within orb, deeper than sleep or death,
   Absorbed the glories of the burning skies,
   Which, mingling with her heart's deep ecstasies,                     _4265
   Burst from her looks and gestures;--and a light
   Of liquid tenderness, like love, did rise
   From her whole frame, an atmosphere which quite
   Arrayed her in its beams, tremulous and soft and bright.
   
   6.
   She would have clasped me to her glowing frame;                      _4270
   Those warm and odorous lips might soon have shed
   On mine the fragrance and the invisible flame
   Which now the cold winds stole;--she would have laid
   Upon my languid heart her dearest head;
   I might have heard her voice, tender and sweet;                      _4275
   Her eyes, mingling with mine, might soon have fed
   My soul with their own joy.--One moment yet
   I gazed--we parted then, never again to meet!
   
   7.
   Never but once to meet on Earth again!
   She heard me as I fled--her eager tone                               _4280
   Sunk on my heart, and almost wove a chain
   Around my will to link it with her own,
   So that my stern resolve was almost gone.
   'I cannot reach thee! whither dost thou fly?
   My steps are faint--Come back, thou dearest one--                    _4285
   Return, ah me! return!'--The wind passed by
   On which those accents died, faint, far, and lingeringly.
   
   8.
   Woe! Woe! that moonless midnight!--Want and Pest
   Were horrible, but one more fell doth rear,
   As in a hydra's swarming lair, its crest                             _4290
   Eminent among those victims--even the Fear
   Of Hell: each girt by the hot atmosphere
   Of his blind agony, like a scorpion stung
   By his own rage upon his burning bier
   Of circling coals of fire; but still there clung                     _4295
   One hope, like a keen sword on starting threads uphung:
   
   9.
   Not death--death was no more refuge or rest;
   Not life--it was despair to be!--not sleep,
   For fiends and chasms of fire had dispossessed
   All natural dreams: to wake was not to weep,                         _4300
   But to gaze mad and pallid, at the leap
   To which the Future, like a snaky scourge,
   Or like some tyrant's eye, which aye doth keep
   Its withering beam upon his slaves, did urge
   Their steps; they heard the roar of Hell's sulphureous surge.        _4305
   
   10.
   Each of that multitude, alone, and lost
   To sense of outward things, one hope yet knew;
   As on a foam-girt crag some seaman tossed
   Stares at the rising tide, or like the crew
   Whilst now the ship is splitting through and through;                _4310
   Each, if the tramp of a far steed was heard,
   Started from sick despair, or if there flew
   One murmur on the wind, or if some word
   Which none can gather yet, the distant crowd has stirred.
   
   11.
   Why became cheeks, wan with the kiss of death,                       _4315
   Paler from hope? they had sustained despair.
   Why watched those myriads with suspended breath
   Sleepless a second night? they are not here,
   The victims, and hour by hour, a vision drear,
   Warm corpses fall upon the clay-cold dead;                           _4320
   And even in death their lips are wreathed with fear.--
   The crowd is mute and moveless--overhead
   Silent Arcturus shines--'Ha! hear'st thou not the tread
   
   12.
   'Of rushing feet? laughter? the shout, the scream,
   Of triumph not to be contained? See! hark!                           _4325
   They come, they come! give way!' Alas, ye deem
   Falsely--'tis but a crowd of maniacs stark
   Driven, like a troop of spectres, through the dark,
   From the choked well, whence a bright death-fire sprung,
   A lurid earth-star, which dropped many a spark                       _4330
   From its blue train, and spreading widely, clung
   To their wild hair, like mist the topmost pines among.
   
   13.
   And many, from the crowd collected there,
   Joined that strange dance in fearful sympathies;
   There was the silence of a long despair,                             _4335
   When the last echo of those terrible cries
   Came from a distant street, like agonies
   Stifled afar.--Before the Tyrant's throne
   All night his aged Senate sate, their eyes
   In stony expectation fixed; when one                                 _4340
   Sudden before them stood, a Stranger and alone.
   
   14.
   Dark Priests and haughty Warriors gazed on him
   With baffled wonder, for a hermit's vest
   Concealed his face; but when he spake, his tone,
   Ere yet the matter did their thoughts arrest,--                      _4345
   Earnest, benignant, calm, as from a breast
   Void of all hate or terror--made them start;
   For as with gentle accents he addressed
   His speech to them, on each unwilling heart
   Unusual awe did fall--a spirit-quelling dart.                        _4350
   
   15.
   'Ye Princes of the Earth, ye sit aghast
   Amid the ruin which yourselves have made,
   Yes, Desolation heard your trumpet's blast,
   And sprang from sleep!--dark Terror has obeyed
   Your bidding--O, that I whom ye have made                            _4355
   Your foe, could set my dearest enemy free
   From pain and fear! but evil casts a shade,
   Which cannot pass so soon, and Hate must be
   The nurse and parent still of an ill progeny.
   
   16.
   'Ye turn to Heaven for aid in your distress;                         _4360
   Alas, that ye, the mighty and the wise,
   Who, if ye dared, might not aspire to less
   Than ye conceive of power, should fear the lies
   Which thou, and thou, didst frame for mysteries
   To blind your slaves:--consider your own thought,                    _4365
   An empty and a cruel sacrifice
   Ye now prepare, for a vain idol wrought
   Out of the fears and hate which vain desires have brought.
   
   17.
   'Ye seek for happiness--alas, the day!
   Ye find it not in luxury nor in gold,                                _4370
   Nor in the fame, nor in the envied sway
   For which, O willing slaves to Custom old,
   Severe taskmistress! ye your hearts have sold.
   Ye seek for peace, and when ye die, to dream
   No evil dreams: all mortal things are cold                           _4375
   And senseless then; if aught survive, I deem
   It must be love and joy, for they immortal seem.
   
   18.
   'Fear not the future, weep not for the past.
   Oh, could I win your ears to dare be now
   Glorious, and great, and calm! that ye would cast                    _4380
   Into the dust those symbols of your woe,
   Purple, and gold, and steel! that ye would go
   Proclaiming to the nations whence ye came,
   That Want, and Plague, and Fear, from slavery flow;
   And that mankind is free, and that the shame                         _4385
   Of royalty and faith is lost in freedom's fame!
   
   19.
   'If thus, 'tis well--if not, I come to say
   That Laon--' while the Stranger spoke, among
   The Council sudden tumult and affray
   Arose, for many of those warriors young,                             _4390
   Had on his eloquent accents fed and hung
   Like bees on mountain-flowers; they knew the truth,
   And from their thrones in vindication sprung;
   The men of faith and law then without ruth
   Drew forth their secret steel, and stabbed each ardent youth.        _4395
   
   20.
   They stabbed them in the back and sneered--a slave
   Who stood behind the throne, those corpses drew
   Each to its bloody, dark, and secret grave;
   And one more daring raised his steel anew
   To pierce the Stranger. 'What hast thou to do                        _4400
   With me, poor wretch?'--Calm, solemn and severe,
   That voice unstrung his sinews, and he threw
   His dagger on the ground, and pale with fear,
   Sate silently--his voice then did the Stranger rear.
   
   21.
   'It doth avail not that I weep for ye--                              _4405
   Ye cannot change, since ye are old and gray,
   And ye have chosen your lot--your fame must be
   A book of blood, whence in a milder day
   Men shall learn truth, when ye are wrapped in clay:
   Now ye shall triumph. I am Laon's friend,                            _4410
   And him to your revenge will I betray,
   So ye concede one easy boon. Attend!
   For now I speak of things which ye can apprehend.
   
   22.
   'There is a People mighty in its youth,
   A land beyond the Oceans of the West,                                _4415
   Where, though with rudest rites, Freedom and Truth
   Are worshipped; from a glorious Mother's breast,
   Who, since high Athens fell, among the rest
   Sate like the Queen of Nations, but in woe,
   By inbred monsters outraged and oppressed,                           _4420
   Turns to her chainless child for succour now,
   It draws the milk of Power in Wisdom's fullest flow.
   
   23.
   'That land is like an Eagle, whose young gaze
   Feeds on the noontide beam, whose golden plume
   Floats moveless on the storm, and in the blaze                       _4425
   Of sunrise gleams when Earth is wrapped in gloom;
   An epitaph of glory for the tomb
   Of murdered Europe may thy fame be made,
   Great People! as the sands shalt thou become;
   Thy growth is swift as morn, when night must fade;                   _4430
   The multitudinous Earth shall sleep beneath thy shade.
   
   24.
   'Yes, in the desert there is built a home
   For Freedom. Genius is made strong to rear
   The monuments of man beneath the dome
   Of a new Heaven; myriads assemble there,                             _4435
   Whom the proud lords of man, in rage or fear,
   Drive from their wasted homes: the boon I pray
   Is this--that Cythna shall be convoyed there--
   Nay, start not at the name--America!
   And then to you this night Laon will I betray.                       _4440
   
   25.
   'With me do what ye will. I am your foe!'
   The light of such a joy as makes the stare
   Of hungry snakes like living emeralds glow,
   Shone in a hundred human eyes--'Where, where
   Is Laon? Haste! fly! drag him swiftly here!                          _4445
   We grant thy boon.'--'I put no trust in ye,
   Swear by the Power ye dread.'--'We swear, we swear!'
   The Stranger threw his vest back suddenly,
   And smiled in gentle pride, and said, 'Lo! I am he!'
   
   
   NOTES:
   _4321 wreathed]writhed. "Poetical Works" 1839. 1st edition.
   _4361 the mighty]tho' mighty edition 1818.
   _4362 ye]he edition 1818.
   _4432 there]then edition 1818.
   
   
   CANTO 12.
   
   1.
   The transport of a fierce and monstrous gladness                     _4450
   Spread through the multitudinous streets, fast flying
   Upon the winds of fear; from his dull madness
   The starveling waked, and died in joy; the dying,
   Among the corpses in stark agony lying,
   Just heard the happy tidings, and in hope                            _4455
   Closed their faint eyes; from house to house replying
   With loud acclaim, the living shook Heaven's cope,
   And filled the startled Earth with echoes: morn did ope
   
   2.
   Its pale eyes then; and lo! the long array
   Of guards in golden arms, and Priests beside,                        _4460
   Singing their bloody hymns, whose garbs betray
   The blackness of the faith it seems to hide;
   And see, the Tyrant's gem-wrought chariot glide
   Among the gloomy cowls and glittering spears--
   A Shape of light is sitting by his side,                             _4465
   A child most beautiful. I' the midst appears
   Laon,--exempt alone from mortal hopes and fears.
   
   3.
   His head and feet are bare, his hands are bound
   Behind with heavy chains, yet none do wreak
   Their scoffs on him, though myriads throng around;                   _4470
   There are no sneers upon his lip which speak
   That scorn or hate has made him bold; his cheek
   Resolve has not turned pale,--his eyes are mild
   And calm, and, like the morn about to break,
   Smile on mankind--his heart seems reconciled                         _4475
   To all things and itself, like a reposing child.
   
   4.
   Tumult was in the soul of all beside,
   Ill joy, or doubt, or fear; but those who saw
   Their tranquil victim pass, felt wonder glide
   Into their brain, and became calm with awe.--                        _4480
   See, the slow pageant near the pile doth draw.
   A thousand torches in the spacious square,
   Borne by the ready slaves of ruthless law,
   Await the signal round: the morning fair
   Is changed to a dim night by that unnatural glare.                   _4485
   
   5.
   And see! beneath a sun-bright canopy,
   Upon a platform level with the pile,
   The anxious Tyrant sit, enthroned on high,
   Girt by the chieftains of the host; all smile
   In expectation, but one child: the while                             _4490
   I, Laon, led by mutes, ascend my bier
   Of fire, and look around: each distant isle
   Is dark in the bright dawn; towers far and near,
   Pierce like reposing flames the tremulous atmosphere.
   
   6.
   There was such silence through the host, as when                     _4495
   An earthquake trampling on some populous town,
   Has crushed ten thousand with one tread, and men
   Expect the second; all were mute but one,
   That fairest child, who, bold with love, alone
   Stood up before the King, without avail,                             _4500
   Pleading for Laon's life--her stifled groan
   Was heard--she trembled like one aspen pale
   Among the gloomy pines of a Norwegian vale.
   
   7.
   What were his thoughts linked in the morning sun,
   Among those reptiles, stingless with delay,                          _4505
   Even like a tyrant's wrath?--The signal-gun
   Roared--hark, again! In that dread pause he lay
   As in a quiet dream--the slaves obey--
   A thousand torches drop,--and hark, the last
   Bursts on that awful silence; far away,                              _4510
   Millions, with hearts that beat both loud and fast,
   Watch for the springing flame expectant and aghast.
   
   8.
   They fly--the torches fall--a cry of fear
   Has startled the triumphant!--they recede!
   For, ere the cannon's roar has died, they hear                       _4515
   The tramp of hoofs like earthquake, and a steed
   Dark and gigantic, with the tempest's speed,
   Bursts through their ranks: a woman sits thereon,
   Fairer, it seems, than aught that earth can breed,
   Calm, radiant, like the phantom of the dawn,                         _4520
   A spirit from the caves of daylight wandering gone.
   
   9.
   All thought it was God's Angel come to sweep
   The lingering guilty to their fiery grave;
   The Tyrant from his throne in dread did leap,--
   Her innocence his child from fear did save;                          _4525
   Scared by the faith they feigned, each priestly slave
   Knelt for his mercy whom they served with blood,
   And, like the refluence of a mighty wave
   Sucked into the loud sea, the multitude
   With crushing panic, fled in terror's altered mood.                  _4530
   
   10.
   They pause, they blush, they gaze,--a gathering shout
   Bursts like one sound from the ten thousand streams
   Of a tempestuous sea:--that sudden rout
   One checked, who, never in his mildest dreams
   Felt awe from grace or loveliness, the seams                         _4535
   Of his rent heart so hard and cold a creed
   Had seared with blistering ice--but he misdeems
   That he is wise, whose wounds do only bleed
   Inly for self,--thus thought the Iberian Priest indeed,
   
   11.
   And others, too, thought he was wise to see,                         _4540
   In pain, and fear, and hate, something divine;
   In love and beauty, no divinity.--
   Now with a bitter smile, whose light did shine
   Like a fiend's hope upon his lips and eyne,
   He said, and the persuasion of that sneer                            _4545
   Rallied his trembling comrades--'Is it mine
   To stand alone, when kings and soldiers fear
   A woman? Heaven has sent its other victim here.'
   
   12.
   'Were it not impious,' said the King, 'to break
   Our holy oath?'--'Impious to keep it, say!'                          _4550
   Shrieked the exulting Priest:--'Slaves, to the stake
   Bind her, and on my head the burden lay
   Of her just torments:--at the Judgement Day
   Will I stand up before the golden throne
   Of Heaven, and cry, "To Thee did I betray                            _4555
   An infidel; but for me she would have known
   Another moment's joy! the glory be thine own."'
   
   13.
   They trembled, but replied not, nor obeyed,
   Pausing in breathless silence. Cythna sprung
   From her gigantic steed, who, like a shade                           _4560
   Chased by the winds, those vacant streets among
   Fled tameless, as the brazen rein she flung
   Upon his neck, and kissed his mooned brow.
   A piteous sight, that one so fair and young,
   The clasp of such a fearful death should woo                         _4565
   With smiles of tender joy as beamed from Cythna now.
   
   14.
   The warm tears burst in spite of faith and fear
   From many a tremulous eye, but like soft dews
   Which feed Spring's earliest buds, hung gathered there,
   Frozen by doubt,--alas! they could not choose                        _4570
   But weep; for when her faint limbs did refuse
   To climb the pyre, upon the mutes she smiled;
   And with her eloquent gestures, and the hues
   Of her quick lips, even as a weary child
   Wins sleep from some fond nurse with its caresses mild,              _4575
   
   15.
   She won them, though unwilling, her to bind
   Near me, among the snakes. When there had fled
   One soft reproach that was most thrilling kind,
   She smiled on me, and nothing then we said,
   But each upon the other's countenance fed                            _4580
   Looks of insatiate love; the mighty veil
   Which doth divide the living and the dead
   Was almost rent, the world grew dim and pale,--
   All light in Heaven or Earth beside our love did fail.--
   
   16.
   Yet--yet--one brief relapse, like the last beam                      _4585
   Of dying flames, the stainless air around
   Hung silent and serene--a blood-red gleam
   Burst upwards, hurling fiercely from the ground
   The globed smoke,--I heard the mighty sound
   Of its uprise, like a tempestuous ocean;                             _4590
   And through its chasms I saw, as in a swound,
   The tyrant's child fall without life or motion
   Before his throne, subdued by some unseen emotion.--
   
   17.
   And is this death?--The pyre has disappeared,
   The Pestilence, the Tyrant, and the throng;                          _4595
   The flames grow silent--slowly there is heard
   The music of a breath-suspending song,
   Which, like the kiss of love when life is young,
   Steeps the faint eyes in darkness sweet and deep;
   With ever-changing notes it floats along,                            _4600
   Till on my passive soul there seemed to creep
   A melody, like waves on wrinkled sands that leap.
   
   18.
   The warm touch of a soft and tremulous hand
   Wakened me then; lo! Cythna sate reclined
   Beside me, on the waved and golden sand                              _4605
   Of a clear pool, upon a bank o'ertwined
   With strange and star-bright flowers, which to the wind
   Breathed divine odour; high above, was spread
   The emerald heaven of trees of unknown kind,
   Whose moonlike blooms and bright fruit overhead                      _4610
   A shadow, which was light, upon the waters shed.
   
   19.
   And round about sloped many a lawny mountain
   With incense-bearing forests and vast caves
   Of marble radiance, to that mighty fountain;
   And where the flood its own bright margin laves,                     _4615
   Their echoes talk with its eternal waves,
   Which, from the depths whose jagged caverns breed
   Their unreposing strife, it lifts and heaves,--
   Till through a chasm of hills they roll, and feed
   A river deep, which flies with smooth but arrowy speed.              _4620
   
   20.
   As we sate gazing in a trance of wonder,
   A boat approached, borne by the musical air
   Along the waves which sung and sparkled under
   Its rapid keel--a winged shape sate there,
   A child with silver-shining wings, so fair,                          _4625
   That as her bark did through the waters glide,
   The shadow of the lingering waves did wear
   Light, as from starry beams; from side to side,
   While veering to the wind her plumes the bark did guide.
   
   21.
   The boat was one curved shell of hollow pearl,                       _4630
   Almost translucent with the light divine
   Of her within; the prow and stern did curl
   Horned on high, like the young moon supine,
   When o'er dim twilight mountains dark with pine,
   It floats upon the sunset's sea of beams,                            _4635
   Whose golden waves in many a purple line
   Fade fast, till borne on sunlight's ebbing streams,
   Dilating, on earth's verge the sunken meteor gleams.
   
   22.
   Its keel has struck the sands beside our feet;--
   Then Cythna turned to me, and from her eyes                          _4640
   Which swam with unshed tears, a look more sweet
   Than happy love, a wild and glad surprise,
   Glanced as she spake: 'Ay, this is Paradise
   And not a dream, and we are all united!
   Lo, that is mine own child, who in the guise                         _4645
   Of madness came, like day to one benighted
   In lonesome woods: my heart is now too well requited!'
   
   23.
   And then she wept aloud, and in her arms
   Clasped that bright Shape, less marvellously fair
   Than her own human hues and living charms;                           _4650
   Which, as she leaned in passion's silence there,
   Breathed warmth on the cold bosom of the air,
   Which seemed to blush and tremble with delight;
   The glossy darkness of her streaming hair
   Fell o'er that snowy child, and wrapped from sight                   _4655
   The fond and long embrace which did their hearts unite.
   
   24.
   Then the bright child, the plumed Seraph came,
   And fixed its blue and beaming eyes on mine,
   And said, 'I was disturbed by tremulous shame
   When once we met, yet knew that I was thine                          _4660
   From the same hour in which thy lips divine
   Kindled a clinging dream within my brain,
   Which ever waked when I might sleep, to twine
   Thine image with HER memory dear--again
   We meet; exempted now from mortal fear or pain.                      _4665
   
   25.
   'When the consuming flames had wrapped ye round,
   The hope which I had cherished went away;
   I fell in agony on the senseless ground,
   And hid mine eyes in dust, and far astray
   My mind was gone, when bright, like dawning day,                     _4670
   The Spectre of the Plague before me flew,
   And breathed upon my lips, and seemed to say,
   "They wait for thee, beloved!"--then I knew
   The death-mark on my breast, and became calm anew.
   
   26.
   'It was the calm of love--for I was dying.                           _4675
   I saw the black and half-extinguished pyre
   In its own gray and shrunken ashes lying;
   The pitchy smoke of the departed fire
   Still hung in many a hollow dome and spire
   Above the towers, like night,--beneath whose shade                   _4680
   Awed by the ending of their own desire
   The armies stood; a vacancy was made
   In expectation's depth, and so they stood dismayed.
   
   27.
   'The frightful silence of that altered mood,
   The tortures of the dying clove alone,                               _4685
   Till one uprose among the multitude,
   And said--"The flood of time is rolling on;
   We stand upon its brink, whilst THEY are gone
   To glide in peace down death's mysterious stream.
   Have ye done well? They moulder, flesh and bone,                     _4690
   Who might have made this life's envenomed dream
   A sweeter draught than ye will ever taste, I deem.
   
   28.
   '"These perish as the good and great of yore
   Have perished, and their murderers will repent,--
   Yes, vain and barren tears shall flow before                         _4695
   Yon smoke has faded from the firmament
   Even for this cause, that ye who must lament
   The death of those that made this world so fair,
   Cannot recall them now; but there is lent
   To man the wisdom of a high despair,                                 _4700
   When such can die, and he live on and linger here.
   
   29.
   '"Ay, ye may fear not now the Pestilence,
   From fabled hell as by a charm withdrawn;
   All power and faith must pass, since calmly hence
   In pain and fire have unbelievers gone;                              _4705
   And ye must sadly turn away, and moan
   In secret, to his home each one returning;
   And to long ages shall this hour be known;
   And slowly shall its memory, ever burning,
   Fill this dark night of things with an eternal morning.              _4710
   
   30.
   '"For me that world is grown too void and cold,
   Since Hope pursues immortal Destiny
   With steps thus slow--therefore shall ye behold
   How those who love, yet fear not, dare to die;
   Tell to your children this!" Then suddenly                           _4715
   He sheathed a dagger in his heart and fell;
   My brain grew dark in death, and yet to me
   There came a murmur from the crowd, to tell
   Of deep and mighty change which suddenly befell.
   
   31.
   'Then suddenly I stood, a winged Thought,                            _4720
   Before the immortal Senate, and the seat
   Of that star-shining spirit, whence is wrought
   The strength of its dominion, good and great,
   The better Genius of this world's estate.
   His realm around one mighty Fane is spread,                          _4725
   Elysian islands bright and fortunate,
   Calm dwellings of the free and happy dead,
   Where I am sent to lead!' These winged words she said,
   
   32.
   And with the silence of her eloquent smile,
   Bade us embark in her divine canoe;                                  _4730
   Then at the helm we took our seat, the while
   Above her head those plumes of dazzling hue
   Into the winds' invisible stream she threw,
   Sitting beside the prow: like gossamer
   On the swift breath of morn, the vessel flew                         _4735
   O'er the bright whirlpools of that fountain fair,
   Whose shores receded fast, while we seemed lingering there;
   
   33.
   Till down that mighty stream, dark, calm, and fleet,
   Between a chasm of cedarn mountains riven,
   Chased by the thronging winds whose viewless feet                    _4740
   As swift as twinkling beams, had, under Heaven,
   From woods and waves wild sounds and odours driven,
   The boat fled visibly--three nights and days,
   Borne like a cloud through morn, and noon, and even,
   We sailed along the winding watery ways                              _4745
   Of the vast stream, a long and labyrinthine maze.
   
   34.
   A scene of joy and wonder to behold
   That river's shapes and shadows changing ever,
   Where the broad sunrise filled with deepening gold
   Its whirlpools, where all hues did spread and quiver;                _4750
   And where melodious falls did burst and shiver
   Among rocks clad with flowers, the foam and spray
   Sparkled like stars upon the sunny river,
   Or when the moonlight poured a holier day,
   One vast and glittering lake around green islands lay.               _4755
   
   35.
   Morn, noon, and even, that boat of pearl outran
   The streams which bore it, like the arrowy cloud
   Of tempest, or the speedier thought of man,
   Which flieth forth and cannot make abode;
   Sometimes through forests, deep like night, we glode,                _4760
   Between the walls of mighty mountains crowned
   With Cyclopean piles, whose turrets proud,
   The homes of the departed, dimly frowned
   O'er the bright waves which girt their dark foundations round.
   
   36.
   Sometimes between the wide and flowering meadows,                    _4765
   Mile after mile we sailed, and 'twas delight
   To see far off the sunbeams chase the shadows
   Over the grass; sometimes beneath the night
   Of wide and vaulted caves, whose roofs were bright
   With starry gems, we fled, whilst from their deep                    _4770
   And dark-green chasms, shades beautiful and white,
   Amid sweet sounds across our path would sweep,
   Like swift and lovely dreams that walk the waves of sleep.
   
   37.
   And ever as we sailed, our minds were full
   Of love and wisdom, which would overflow                             _4775
   In converse wild, and sweet, and wonderful,
   And in quick smiles whose light would come and go
   Like music o'er wide waves, and in the flow
   Of sudden tears, and in the mute caress--
   For a deep shade was cleft, and we did know,                         _4780
   That virtue, though obscured on Earth, not less
   Survives all mortal change in lasting loveliness.
   
   38.
   Three days and nights we sailed, as thought and feeling
   Number delightful hours--for through the sky
   The sphered lamps of day and night, revealing                        _4785
   New changes and new glories, rolled on high,
   Sun, Moon and moonlike lamps, the progeny
   Of a diviner Heaven, serene and fair:
   On the fourth day, wild as a windwrought sea
   The stream became, and fast and faster bare                          _4790
   The spirit-winged boat, steadily speeding there.
   
   39.
   Steady and swift, where the waves rolled like mountains
   Within the vast ravine, whose rifts did pour
   Tumultuous floods from their ten thousand fountains,
   The thunder of whose earth-uplifting roar                            _4795
   Made the air sweep in whirlwinds from the shore,
   Calm as a shade, the boat of that fair child
   Securely fled, that rapid stress before,
   Amid the topmost spray, and sunbows wild,
   Wreathed in the silver mist: in joy and pride we smiled.             _4800
   
   40.
   The torrent of that wide and raging river
   Is passed, and our aereal speed suspended.
   We look behind; a golden mist did quiver
   When its wild surges with the lake were blended,--
   Our bark hung there, as on a line suspended                          _4805
   Between two heavens,--that windless waveless lake
   Which four great cataracts from four vales, attended
   By mists, aye feed; from rocks and clouds they break,
   And of that azure sea a silent refuge make.
   
   41.
   Motionless resting on the lake awhile,                               _4810
   I saw its marge of snow-bright mountains rear
   Their peaks aloft, I saw each radiant isle,
   And in the midst, afar, even like a sphere
   Hung in one hollow sky, did there appear
   The Temple of the Spirit; on the sound                               _4815
   Which issued thence, drawn nearer and more near,
   Like the swift moon this glorious earth around,
   The charmed boat approached, and there its haven found.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _4577 there]then edition 1818.
   _4699 there]then edition 1818.
   _4749 When]Where edition 1818.
   _4804 Where]When edition 1818.
   _4805 on a line]one line edition 1818.
   
   
   NOTE ON THE "REVOLT OF ISLAM", BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   Shelley possessed two remarkable qualities of intellect--a brilliant
   imagination, and a logical exactness of reason. His inclinations led
   him (he fancied) almost alike to poetry and metaphysical discussions.
   I say 'he fancied,' because I believe the former to have been
   paramount, and that it would have gained the mastery even had he
   struggled against it. However, he said that he deliberated at one time
   whether he should dedicate himself to poetry or metaphysics; and,
   resolving on the former, he educated himself for it, discarding in a
   great measure his philosophical pursuits, and engaging himself in the
   study of the poets of Greece, Italy, and England. To these may be
   added a constant perusal of portions of the old Testament--the Psalms,
   the Book of Job, the Prophet Isaiah, and others, the sublime poetry of
   which filled him with delight.
   
   As a poet, his intellect and compositions were powerfully influenced
   by exterior circumstances, and especially by his place of abode. He
   was very fond of travelling, and ill-health increased this
   restlessness. The sufferings occasioned by a cold English winter made
   him pine, especially when our colder spring arrived, for a more genial
   climate. In 1816 he again visited Switzerland, and rented a house on
   the banks of the Lake of Geneva; and many a day, in cloud or sunshine,
   was passed alone in his boat--sailing as the wind listed, or weltering
   on the calm waters. The majestic aspect of Nature ministered such
   thoughts as he afterwards enwove in verse. His lines on the Bridge of
   the Arve, and his "Hymn to Intellectual Beauty", were written at this
   time. Perhaps during this summer his genius was checked by association
   with another poet whose nature was utterly dissimilar to his own, yet
   who, in the poem he wrote at that time, gave tokens that he shared for
   a period the more abstract and etherealised inspiration of Shelley.
   The saddest events awaited his return to England; but such was his
   fear to wound the feelings of others that he never expressed the
   anguish he felt, and seldom gave vent to the indignation roused by the
   persecutions he underwent; while the course of deep unexpressed
   passion, and the sense of injury, engendered the desire to embody
   themselves in forms defecated of all the weakness and evil which cling
   to real life.
   
   He chose therefore for his hero a youth nourished in dreams of
   liberty, some of whose actions are in direct opposition to the
   opinions of the world; but who is animated throughout by an ardent
   love of virtue, and a resolution to confer the boons of political and
   intellectual freedom on his fellow-creatures. He created for this
   youth a woman such as he delighted to imagine--full of enthusiasm for
   the same objects; and they both, with will unvanquished, and the
   deepest sense of the justice of their cause, met adversity and death.
   There exists in this poem a memorial of a friend of his youth. The
   character of the old man who liberates Laon from his tower prison, and
   tends on him in sickness, is founded on that of Doctor Lind, who, when
   Shelley was at Eton, had often stood by to befriend and support him,
   and whose name he never mentioned without love and veneration.
   
   During the year 1817 we were established at Marlow in Buckinghamshire.
   Shelley's choice of abode was fixed chiefly by this town being at no
   great distance from London, and its neighbourhood to the Thames. The
   poem was written in his boat, as it floated under the beech groves of
   Bisham, or during wanderings in the neighbouring country, which is
   distinguished for peculiar beauty. The chalk hills break into cliffs
   that overhang the Thames, or form valleys clothed with beech; the
   wilder portion of the country is rendered beautiful by exuberant
   vegetation; and the cultivated part is peculiarly fertile. With all
   this wealth of Nature which, either in the form of gentlemen's parks
   or soil dedicated to agriculture, flourishes around, Marlow was
   inhabited (I hope it is altered now) by a very poor population. The
   women are lacemakers, and lose their health by sedentary labour, for
   which they were very ill paid. The Poor-laws ground to the dust not
   only the paupers, but those who had risen just above that state, and
   were obliged to pay poor-rates. The changes produced by peace
   following a long war, and a bad harvest, brought with them the most
   heart-rending evils to the poor. Shelley afforded what alleviation he
   could. In the winter, while bringing out his poem, he had a severe
   attack of ophthalmia, caught while visiting the poor cottages. I
   mention these things,--for this minute and active sympathy with his
   fellow-creatures gives a thousandfold interest to his speculations,
   and stamps with reality his pleadings for the human race.
   
   The poem, bold in its opinions and uncompromising in their expression,
   met with many censurers, not only among those who allow of no virtue
   but such as supports the cause they espouse, but even among those
   whose opinions were similar to his own. I extract a portion of a
   letter written in answer to one of these friends. It best details the
   impulses of Shelley's mind, and his motives: it was written with
   entire unreserve; and is therefore a precious monument of his own
   opinion of his powers, of the purity of his designs, and the ardour
   with which he clung, in adversity and through the valley of the shadow
   of death, to views from which he believed the permanent happiness of
   mankind must eventually spring.
   
   'Marlowe, December 11, 1817.
   
   'I have read and considered all that you say about my general powers,
   and the particular instance of the poem in which I have attempted to
   develop them. Nothing can be more satisfactory to me than the interest
   which your admonitions express. But I think you are mistaken in some
   points with regard to the peculiar nature of my powers, whatever be
   their amount. I listened with deference and self-suspicion to your
   censures of "The Revolt of Islam"; but the productions of mine which
   you commend hold a very low place in my own esteem; and this reassures
   me, in some degree at least. The poem was produced by a series of
   thoughts which filled my mind with unbounded and sustained enthusiasm.
   I felt the precariousness of my life, and I engaged in this task,
   resolved to leave some record of myself. Much of what the volume
   contains was written with the same feeling--as real, though not so
   prophetic--as the communications of a dying man. I never presumed
   indeed to consider it anything approaching to faultless; but, when I
   consider contemporary productions of the same apparent pretensions, I
   own I was filled with confidence. I felt that it was in many respects
   a genuine picture of my own mind. I felt that the sentiments were
   true, not assumed. And in this have I long believed that my power
   consists; in sympathy, and that part of the imagination which relates
   to sentiment and contemplation. I am formed, if for anything not in
   common with the herd of mankind, to apprehend minute and remote
   distinctions of feeling, whether relative to external nature or the
   living beings which surround us, and to communicate the conceptions
   which result from considering either the moral or the material
   universe as a whole. Of course, I believe these faculties, which
   perhaps comprehend all that is sublime in man, to exist very
   imperfectly in my own mind. But, when you advert to my Chancery-paper,
   a cold, forced, unimpassioned, insignificant piece of cramped and
   cautious argument, and to the little scrap about "Mandeville", which
   expressed my feelings indeed, but cost scarcely two minutes' thought
   to express, as specimens of my powers more favourable than that which
   grew as it were from "the agony and bloody sweat" of intellectual
   travail; surely I must feel that, in some manner, either I am mistaken
   in believing that I have any talent at all, or you in the __select__ion of
   the specimens of it. Yet, after all, I cannot but be conscious, in
   much of what I write, of an absence of that tranquillity which is the
   attribute and accompaniment of power. This feeling alone would make
   your most kind and wise admonitions, on the subject of the economy of
   intellectual force, valuable to me. And, if I live, or if I see any
   trust in coming years, doubt not but that I shall do something,
   whatever it may be, which a serious and earnest estimate of my powers
   will suggest to me, and which will be in every respect accommodated to
   their utmost limits.
   
   [Shelley to Godwin.]
   
   ***
   
   
   PRINCE ATHANASE.
   
   A FRAGMENT.
   
   (The idea Shelley had formed of Prince Athanase was a good deal
   modelled on "Alastor". In the first sketch of the poem, he named it
   "Pandemos and Urania". Athanase seeks through the world the One whom
   he may love. He meets, in the ship in which he is embarked, a lady who
   appears to him to embody his ideal of love and beauty. But she proves
   to be Pandemos, or the earthly and unworthy Venus; who, after
   disappointing his cherished dreams and hopes, deserts him. Athanase,
   crushed by sorrow, pines and dies. 'On his deathbed, the lady who can
   really reply to his soul comes and kisses his lips' ("The Deathbed of
   Athanase"). The poet describes her [in the words of the final
   fragment, page 164]. This slender note is all we have to aid our
   imagination in shaping out the form of the poem, such as its author
   imagined. [Mrs. Shelley's Note.])
   
   [Written at Marlow in 1817, towards the close of the year; first
   published in "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Part 1 is dated by Mrs.
   Shelley, 'December, 1817,' the remainder, 'Marlow, 1817.' The verses
   were probably rehandled in Italy during the following year. Sources of
   the text are (1) "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (2) "Poetical Works" 1839,
   editions 1st and 2nd; (3) a much-tortured draft amongst the Bodleian
   manuscripts, collated by Mr. C.D. Locock. For (1) and (2) Mrs. Shelley
   is responsible. Our text (enlarged by about thirty lines fro the
   Bodleian manuscript) follows for the most part the "Poetical Works",
   1839; verbal exceptions are pointed out in the footnotes. See also the
   Editor's Notes at the end of this volume, and Mr. Locock's
   "Examination of Shelley Manuscripts in the Bodleian Library", Oxford:
   Clarendon Press, 1903.]
   
   PART 1.
   
   There was a youth, who, as with toil and travel,
   Had grown quite weak and gray before his time;
   Nor any could the restless griefs unravel
   
   Which burned within him, withering up his prime
   And goading him, like fiends, from land to land.                     _5
   Not his the load of any secret crime,
   
   For nought of ill his heart could understand,
   But pity and wild sorrow for the same;--
   Not his the thirst for glory or command,
   
   Baffled with blast of hope-consuming shame;                          _10
   Nor evil joys which fire the vulgar breast,
   And quench in speedy smoke its feeble flame,
   
   Had left within his soul their dark unrest:
   Nor what religion fables of the grave
   Feared he,--Philosophy's accepted guest.                             _15
   
   For none than he a purer heart could have,
   Or that loved good more for itself alone;
   Of nought in heaven or earth was he the slave.
   
   What sorrow, strange, and shadowy, and unknown,
   Sent him, a hopeless wanderer, through mankind?--                    _20
   If with a human sadness he did groan,
   
   He had a gentle yet aspiring mind;
   Just, innocent, with varied learning fed;
   And such a glorious consolation find
   
   In others' joy, when all their own is dead:                          _25
   He loved, and laboured for his kind in grief,
   And yet, unlike all others, it is said
   
   That from such toil he never found relief.
   Although a child of fortune and of power,
   Of an ancestral name the orphan chief,                               _30
   
   His soul had wedded Wisdom, and her dower
   Is love and justice, clothed in which he sate
   Apart from men, as in a lonely tower,
   
   Pitying the tumult of their dark estate.--
   Yet even in youth did he not e'er abuse                              _35
   The strength of wealth or thought, to consecrate
   
   Those false opinions which the harsh rich use
   To blind the world they famish for their pride;
   Nor did he hold from any man his dues,
   
   But, like a steward in honest dealings tried,                        _40
   With those who toiled and wept, the poor and wise,
   His riches and his cares he did divide.
   
   Fearless he was, and scorning all disguise,
   What he dared do or think, though men might start,
   He spoke with mild yet unaverted eyes;                               _45
   
   Liberal he was of soul, and frank of heart,
   And to his many friends--all loved him well--
   Whate'er he knew or felt he would impart,
   
   If words he found those inmost thoughts to tell;
   If not, he smiled or wept; and his weak foes                         _50
   He neither spurned nor hated--though with fell
   
   And mortal hate their thousand voices rose,
   They passed like aimless arrows from his ear--
   Nor did his heart or mind its portal close
   
   To those, or them, or any, whom life's sphere                        _55
   May comprehend within its wide array.
   What sadness made that vernal spirit sere?--
   
   He knew not. Though his life, day after day,
   Was failing like an unreplenished stream,
   Though in his eyes a cloud and burthen lay,                          _60
   
   Through which his soul, like Vesper's serene beam
   Piercing the chasms of ever rising clouds,
   Shone, softly burning; though his lips did seem
   
   Like reeds which quiver in impetuous floods;
   And through his sleep, and o'er each waking hour,                    _65
   Thoughts after thoughts, unresting multitudes,
   
   Were driven within him by some secret power,
   Which bade them blaze, and live, and roll afar,
   Like lights and sounds, from haunted tower to tower
   
   O'er castled mountains borne, when tempest's war                     _70
   Is levied by the night-contending winds,
   And the pale dalesmen watch with eager ear;--
   
   Though such were in his spirit, as the fiends
   Which wake and feed an everliving woe,--
   What was this grief, which ne'er in other minds                      _75
   
   A mirror found,--he knew not--none could know;
   But on whoe'er might question him he turned
   The light of his frank eyes, as if to show
   
   He knew not of the grief within that burned,
   But asked forbearance with a mournful look;                          _80
   Or spoke in words from which none ever learned
   
   The cause of his disquietude; or shook
   With spasms of silent passion; or turned pale:
   So that his friends soon rarely undertook
   
   To stir his secret pain without avail;--                             _85
   For all who knew and loved him then perceived
   That there was drawn an adamantine veil
   
   Between his heart and mind,--both unrelieved
   Wrought in his brain and bosom separate strife.
   Some said that he was mad, others believed                           _90
   
   That memories of an antenatal life
   Made this, where now he dwelt, a penal hell;
   And others said that such mysterious grief
   
   From God's displeasure, like a darkness, fell
   On souls like his, which owned no higher law                         _95
   Than love; love calm, steadfast, invincible
   
   By mortal fear or supernatural awe;
   And others,--''Tis the shadow of a dream
   Which the veiled eye of Memory never saw,
   
   'But through the soul's abyss, like some dark stream                 _100
   Through shattered mines and caverns underground,
   Rolls, shaking its foundations; and no beam
   
   'Of joy may rise, but it is quenched and drowned
   In the dim whirlpools of this dream obscure;
   Soon its exhausted waters will have found                            _105
   
   'A lair of rest beneath thy spirit pure,
   O Athanase!--in one so good and great,
   Evil or tumult cannot long endure.
   
   So spake they: idly of another's state
   Babbling vain words and fond philosophy;                             _110
   This was their consolation; such debate
   
   Men held with one another; nor did he,
   Like one who labours with a human woe,
   Decline this talk: as if its theme might be
   
   Another, not himself, he to and fro                                  _115
   Questioned and canvassed it with subtlest wit;
   And none but those who loved him best could know
   
   That which he knew not, how it galled and bit
   His weary mind, this converse vain and cold;
   For like an eyeless nightmare grief did sit                          _120
   
   Upon his being; a snake which fold by fold
   Pressed out the life of life, a clinging fiend
   Which clenched him if he stirred with deadlier hold;--
   And so his grief remained--let it remain--untold. [1]   PART 2.
   
   FRAGMENT 1.
   
   Prince Athanase had one beloved friend,                              _125
   An old, old man, with hair of silver white,
   And lips where heavenly smiles would hang and blend
   
   With his wise words; and eyes whose arrowy light
   Shone like the reflex of a thousand minds.
   He was the last whom superstition's blight                           _130
   
   Had spared in Greece--the blight that cramps and blinds,--
   And in his olive bower at Oenoe
   Had sate from earliest youth. Like one who finds
   
   A fertile island in the barren sea,
   One mariner who has survived his mates                               _135
   Many a drear month in a great ship--so he
   
   With soul-sustaining songs, and sweet debates
   Of ancient lore, there fed his lonely being:--
   'The mind becomes that which it contemplates,'--
   
   And thus Zonoras, by for ever seeing                                 _140
   Their bright creations, grew like wisest men;
   And when he heard the crash of nations fleeing
   
   A bloodier power than ruled thy ruins then,
   O sacred Hellas! many weary years
   He wandered, till the path of Laian's glen                           _145
   
   Was grass-grown--and the unremembered tears
   Were dry in Laian for their honoured chief,
   Who fell in Byzant, pierced by Moslem spears:--
   
   And as the lady looked with faithful grief
   From her high lattice o'er the rugged path,                          _150
   Where she once saw that horseman toil, with brief
   
   And blighting hope, who with the news of death
   Struck body and soul as with a mortal blight,
   She saw between the chestnuts, far beneath,
   
   An old man toiling up, a weary wight;                                _155
   And soon within her hospitable hall
   She saw his white hairs glittering in the light
   
   Of the wood fire, and round his shoulders fall;
   And his wan visage and his withered mien,
   Yet calm and gentle and majestical.                                  _160
   
   And Athanase, her child, who must have been
   Then three years old, sate opposite and gazed
   In patient silence.
   
   
   FRAGMENT 2.
   
   Such was Zonoras; and as daylight finds
   One amaranth glittering on the path of frost,                        _165
   When autumn nights have nipped all weaker kinds,
   
   Thus through his age, dark, cold, and tempest-tossed,
   Shone truth upon Zonoras; and he filled
   From fountains pure, nigh overgrown and lost,
   
   The spirit of Prince Athanase, a child,                              _170
   With soul-sustaining songs of ancient lore
   And philosophic wisdom, clear and mild.
   
   And sweet and subtle talk they evermore,
   The pupil and the master, shared; until,
   Sharing that undiminishable store,                                   _175
   
   The youth, as shadows on a grassy hill
   Outrun the winds that chase them, soon outran
   His teacher, and did teach with native skill
   
   Strange truths and new to that experienced man;
   Still they were friends, as few have ever been                       _180
   Who mark the extremes of life's discordant span.
   
   So in the caverns of the forest green,
   Or on the rocks of echoing ocean hoar,
   Zonoras and Prince Athanase were seen
   
   By summer woodmen; and when winter's roar                            _185
   Sounded o'er earth and sea its blast of war,
   The Balearic fisher, driven from shore,
   
   Hanging upon the peaked wave afar,
   Then saw their lamp from Laian's turret gleam,
   Piercing the stormy darkness, like a star                            _190
   
   Which pours beyond the sea one steadfast beam,
   Whilst all the constellations of the sky
   Seemed reeling through the storm...They did but seem--
   
   For, lo! the wintry clouds are all gone by,
   And bright Arcturus through yon pines is glowing,                    _195
   And far o'er southern waves, immovably
   
   Belted Orion hangs--warm light is flowing
   From the young moon into the sunset's chasm.--
   'O, summer eve! with power divine, bestowing
   
   'On thine own bird the sweet enthusiasm                              _200
   Which overflows in notes of liquid gladness,
   Filling the sky like light! How many a spasm
   
   'Of fevered brains, oppressed with grief and madness,
   Were lulled by thee, delightful nightingale,--
   And these soft waves, murmuring a gentle sadness,--                  _205
   
   'And the far sighings of yon piny dale
   Made vocal by some wind we feel not here.--
   I bear alone what nothing may avail
   
   'To lighten--a strange load!'--No human ear
   Heard this lament; but o'er the visage wan                           _210
   Of Athanase, a ruffling atmosphere
   
   Of dark emotion, a swift shadow, ran,
   Like wind upon some forest-bosomed lake,
   Glassy and dark.--And that divine old man
   
   Beheld his mystic friend's whole being shake,                        _215
   Even where its inmost depths were gloomiest--
   And with a calm and measured voice he spake,
   
   And, with a soft and equal pressure, pressed
   That cold lean hand:--'Dost thou remember yet
   When the curved moon then lingering in the west                      _220
   
   'Paused, in yon waves her mighty horns to wet,
   How in those beams we walked, half resting on the sea?
   'Tis just one year--sure thou dost not forget--
   
   'Then Plato's words of light in thee and me
   Lingered like moonlight in the moonless east,                        _225
   For we had just then read--thy memory
   
   'Is faithful now--the story of the feast;
   And Agathon and Diotima seemed
   From death and dark forgetfulness released...'
   
   
   FRAGMENT 3.
   
   And when the old man saw that on the green
   Leaves of his opening ... a blight had lighted                       _230
   He said: 'My friend, one grief alone can wean
   
   A gentle mind from all that once delighted:--
   Thou lovest, and thy secret heart is laden
   With feelings which should not be unrequited.'                       _235
   
   And Athanase ... then smiled, as one o'erladen
   With iron chains might smile to talk (?) of bands
   Twined round her lover's neck by some blithe maiden,
   And said...
   
   
   FRAGMENT 4.
   
   'Twas at the season when the Earth upsprings                         _240
   From slumber, as a sphered angel's child,
   Shadowing its eyes with green and golden wings,
   
   Stands up before its mother bright and mild,
   Of whose soft voice the air expectant seems--
   So stood before the sun, which shone and smiled                      _245
   
   To see it rise thus joyous from its dreams,
   The fresh and radiant Earth. The hoary grove
   Waxed green--and flowers burst forth like starry beams;--
   
   The grass in the warm sun did start and move,
   And sea-buds burst under the waves serene:--                         _250
   How many a one, though none be near to love,
   
   Loves then the shade of his own soul, half seen
   In any mirror--or the spring's young minions,
   The winged leaves amid the copses green;--
   
   How many a spirit then puts on the pinions                           _255
   Of fancy, and outstrips the lagging blast,
   And his own steps--and over wide dominions
   
   Sweeps in his dream-drawn chariot, far and fast,
   More fleet than storms--the wide world shrinks below,
   When winter and despondency are past.                                _260
   
   
   FRAGMENT 5.
   
   'Twas at this season that Prince Athanase
   Passed the white Alps--those eagle-baffling mountains
   Slept in their shrouds of snow;--beside the ways
   
   The waterfalls were voiceless--for their fountains
   Were changed to mines of sunless crystal now,                        _265
   Or by the curdling winds--like brazen wings
   
   Which clanged along the mountain's marble brow--
   Warped into adamantine fretwork, hung
   And filled with frozen light the chasms below.
   
   Vexed by the blast, the great pines groaned and swung                _270
   Under their load of [snow]--
   ...
   ...
   Such as the eagle sees, when he dives down
   From the gray deserts of wide air, [beheld]                          _275
   [Prince] Athanase; and o'er his mien (?) was thrown
   
   The shadow of that scene, field after field,
   Purple and dim and wide...
   
   
   FRAGMENT 6.
   
   Thou art the wine whose drunkenness is all
   We can desire, O Love! and happy souls,                              _280
   Ere from thy vine the leaves of autumn fall,
   
   Catch thee, and feed from their o'erflowing bowls
   Thousands who thirst for thine ambrosial dew;--
   Thou art the radiance which where ocean rolls
   
   Investeth it; and when the heavens are blue                          _285
   Thou fillest them; and when the earth is fair
   The shadow of thy moving wings imbue
   
   Its deserts and its mountains, till they wear
   Beauty like some light robe;--thou ever soarest
   Among the towers of men, and as soft air                             _290
   
   In spring, which moves the unawakened forest,
   Clothing with leaves its branches bare and bleak,
   Thou floatest among men; and aye implorest
   
   That which from thee they should implore:--the weak
   Alone kneel to thee, offering up the hearts                          _295
   The strong have broken--yet where shall any seek
   
   A garment whom thou clothest not? the darts
   Of the keen winter storm, barbed with frost,
   Which, from the everlasting snow that parts
   
   The Alps from Heaven, pierce some traveller lost                     _300
   In the wide waved interminable snow
   Ungarmented,...
   
   
   ANOTHER FRAGMENT (A)
   
   Yes, often when the eyes are cold and dry,
   And the lips calm, the Spirit weeps within
   Tears bitterer than the blood of agony                               _305
   
   Trembling in drops on the discoloured skin
   Of those who love their kind and therefore perish
   In ghastly torture--a sweet medicine
   
   Of peace and sleep are tears, and quietly
   Them soothe from whose uplifted eyes they fall                       _310
   But...
   
   
   ANOTHER FRAGMENT (B)
   
   Her hair was brown, her sphered eyes were brown,
   And in their dark and liquid moisture swam,
   Like the dim orb of the eclipsed moon;
   
   Yet when the spirit flashed beneath, there came                      _315
   The light from them, as when tears of delight
   Double the western planet's serene flame.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _19 strange edition 1839; deep edition 1824.
   _74 feed an Bodleian manuscript; feed on editions 1824, 1839.
   
   _124 [1. The Author was pursuing a fuller development of the ideal
   character of Athanase, when it struck him that in an attempt at
   extreme refinement and analysis, his conceptions might be betrayed
   into the assuming a morbid character. The reader will judge whether he
   is a loser or gainer by this diffidence. [Shelley's Note.]
   Footnote diffidence cj. Rossetti (1878); difference editions 1824,
   1839.]
   
   _154 beneath editions 1824, 1839; between Bodleian manuscript.
   _165 One Bodleian manuscript edition 1839; An edition 1824.
   _167 Thus thro' Bodleian manuscript (?) edition 1839; Thus had edition 1824.
   _173 talk they edition 1824, Bodleian manuscript; talk now edition 1839.
   _175 that edition 1839; the edition 1824.
   _182 So edition 1839; And edition 1824.
   _183 Or on Bodleian manuscript; Or by editions 1824, 1839.
   _199 eve Bodleian manuscript edition 1839; night edition 1824.
   _212 emotion, a swift editions 1824, 1839;
        emotion with swift Bodleian manuscript.
   _250 under edition 1824, Bodleian manuscript; beneath edition 1839.
   _256 outstrips editions 1824, 1839; outrides Bodleian manuscript.
   _259 Exulting, while the wide Bodleian manuscript.
   _262 mountains editions 1824, 1839; crags Bodleian manuscript.
   _264 fountains editions 1824, 1839; springs Bodleian manuscript.
   _269 chasms Bodleian manuscript; chasm editions 1824, 1839.
   _283 thine Bodleian manuscript; thy editions 1824, 1839.
   _285 Investeth Bodleian manuscript; Investest editions 1824, 1839.
   _289 light Bodleian manuscript; bright editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   ROSALIND AND HELEN.
   
   A MODERN ECLOGUE.
   
   [Begun at Marlow, 1817 (summer); already in the press, March, 1818;
   finished at the Baths of Lucca, August, 1818; published with other
   poems, as the title-piece of a slender volume, by C. & J. Ollier,
   London, 1819 (spring). See "Biographical List". Sources of the text
   are (1) editio princeps, 1819; (2) "Poetical Works", edition Mrs.
   Shelley, 1839, editions 1st and 2nd. A fragment of the text is amongst
   the Boscombe manuscripts. The poem is reprinted here from the editio
   princeps; verbal alterations are recorded in the footnotes, punctual
   in the Editor's Notes at the end of Volume 3.]
   
   ADVERTISEMENT.
   
   The story of "Rosalind and Helen" is, undoubtedly, not an attempt in
   the highest style of poetry. It is in no degree calculated to excite
   profound meditation; and if, by interesting the affections and amusing
   the imagination, it awakens a certain ideal melancholy favourable to
   the reception of more important impressions, it will produce in the
   reader all that the writer experienced in the composition. I resigned
   myself, as I wrote, to the impulses of the feelings which moulded the
   conception of the story; and this impulse determined the pauses of a
   measure, which only pretends to be regular inasmuch as it corresponds
   with, and expresses, the irregularity of the imaginations which
   inspired it.
   
   I do not know which of the few scattered poems I left in England will
   be __select__ed by my bookseller to add to this collection. One ("Lines
   written among the Euganean Hills".--Editor.), which I sent from Italy,
   was written after a day's excursion among those lovely mountains which
   surround what was once the retreat, and where is now the sepulchre, of
   Petrarch. If any one is inclined to condemn the __insert__ion of the
   introductory lines, which image forth the sudden relief of a state of
   deep despondency by the radiant visions disclosed by the sudden burst
   of an Italian sunrise in autumn on the highest peak of those
   delightful mountains, I can only offer as my excuse, that they were
   not erased at the request of a dear friend, with whom added years of
   intercourse only add to my apprehension of its value, and who would
   have had more right than any one to complain, that she has not been
   able to extinguish in me the very power of delineating sadness.
   
   Naples, December 20, 1818.
   
   
   ROSALIND, HELEN, AND HER CHILD.
   
   SCENE. THE SHORE OF THE LAKE OF COMO.
   
   HELEN:
   Come hither, my sweet Rosalind.
   'Tis long since thou and I have met;
   And yet methinks it were unkind
   Those moments to forget.
   Come, sit by me. I see thee stand                                    _5
   By this lone lake, in this far land,
   Thy loose hair in the light wind flying,
   Thy sweet voice to each tone of even
   United, and thine eyes replying
   To the hues of yon fair heaven.                                      _10
   Come, gentle friend: wilt sit by me?
   And be as thou wert wont to be
   Ere we were disunited?
   None doth behold us now; the power
   That led us forth at this lone hour                                  _15
   Will be but ill requited
   If thou depart in scorn: oh! come,
   And talk of our abandoned home.
   Remember, this is Italy,
   And we are exiles. Talk with me                                      _20
   Of that our land, whose wilds and floods,
   Barren and dark although they be,
   Were dearer than these chestnut woods:
   Those heathy paths, that inland stream,
   And the blue mountains, shapes which seem                            _25
   Like wrecks of childhood's sunny dream:
   Which that we have abandoned now,
   Weighs on the heart like that remorse
   Which altered friendship leaves. I seek
   No more our youthful intercourse.                                    _30
   That cannot be! Rosalind, speak.
   Speak to me. Leave me not.--When morn did come,
   When evening fell upon our common home,
   When for one hour we parted,--do not frown:
   I would not chide thee, though thy faith is broken:                  _35
   But turn to me. Oh! by this cherished token,
   Of woven hair, which thou wilt not disown,
   Turn, as 'twere but the memory of me,
   And not my scorned self who prayed to thee.
   
   ROSALIND:
   Is it a dream, or do I see                                           _40
   And hear frail Helen? I would flee
   Thy tainting touch; but former years
   Arise, and bring forbidden tears;
   And my o'erburthened memory
   Seeks yet its lost repose in thee.                                   _45
   I share thy crime. I cannot choose
   But weep for thee: mine own strange grief
   But seldom stoops to such relief:
   Nor ever did I love thee less,
   Though mourning o'er thy wickedness                                  _50
   Even with a sister's woe. I knew
   What to the evil world is due,
   And therefore sternly did refuse
   To link me with the infamy
   Of one so lost as Helen. Now                                         _55
   Bewildered by my dire despair,
   Wondering I blush, and weep that thou
   Should'st love me still,--thou only!--There,
   Let us sit on that gray stone
   Till our mournful talk be done.                                      _60
   
   HELEN:
   Alas! not there; I cannot bear
   The murmur of this lake to hear.
   A sound from there, Rosalind dear,
   Which never yet I heard elsewhere
   But in our native land, recurs,                                      _65
   Even here where now we meet. It stirs
   Too much of suffocating sorrow!
   In the dell of yon dark chestnutwood
   Is a stone seat, a solitude
   Less like our own. The ghost of Peace                                _70
   Will not desert this spot. To-morrow,
   If thy kind feelings should not cease,
   We may sit here.
   
   ROSALIND:
   Thou lead, my sweet,
   And I will follow.
   
   HENRY:
   'Tis Fenici's seat
   Where you are going? This is not the way,                            _75
   Mamma; it leads behind those trees that grow
   Close to the little river.
   
   HELEN:
   Yes: I know;
   I was bewildered. Kiss me and be gay,
   Dear boy: why do you sob?
   
   HENRY:
   I do not know:
   But it might break any one's heart to see                            _80
   You and the lady cry so bitterly.
   
   HELEN:
   It is a gentle child, my friend. Go home,
   Henry, and play with Lilla till I come.
   We only cried with joy to see each other;
   We are quite merry now: Good-night.
   
   The boy                                                              _85
   Lifted a sudden look upon his mother,
   And in the gleam of forced and hollow joy
   Which lightened o'er her face, laughed with the glee
   Of light and unsuspecting infancy,
   And whispered in her ear, 'Bring home with you                       _90
   That sweet strange lady-friend.' Then off he flew,
   But stopped, and beckoned with a meaning smile,
   Where the road turned. Pale Rosalind the while,
   Hiding her face, stood weeping silently.
   
   In silence then they took the way                                    _95
   Beneath the forest's solitude.
   It was a vast and antique wood,
   Thro' which they took their way;
   And the gray shades of evening
   O'er that green wilderness did fling                                 _100
   Still deeper solitude.
   Pursuing still the path that wound
   The vast and knotted trees around
   Through which slow shades were wandering,
   To a deep lawny dell they came,                                      _105
   To a stone seat beside a spring,
   O'er which the columned wood did frame
   A roofless temple, like the fane
   Where, ere new creeds could faith obtain,
   Man's early race once knelt beneath                                  _110
   The overhanging deity.
   O'er this fair fountain hung the sky,
   Now spangled with rare stars. The snake,
   The pale snake, that with eager breath
   Creeps here his noontide thirst to slake,                            _115
   Is beaming with many a mingled hue,
   Shed from yon dome's eternal blue,
   When he floats on that dark and lucid flood
   In the light of his own loveliness;
   And the birds that in the fountain dip                               _120
   Their plumes, with fearless fellowship
   Above and round him wheel and hover.
   The fitful wind is heard to stir
   One solitary leaf on high;
   The chirping of the grasshopper                                      _125
   Fills every pause. There is emotion
   In all that dwells at noontide here;
   Then, through the intricate wild wood,
   A maze of life and light and motion
   Is woven. But there is stillness now:                                _130
   Gloom, and the trance of Nature now:
   The snake is in his cave asleep;
   The birds are on the branches dreaming:
   Only the shadows creep:
   Only the glow-worm is gleaming:                                      _135
   Only the owls and the nightingales
   Wake in this dell when daylight fails,
   And gray shades gather in the woods:
   And the owls have all fled far away
   In a merrier glen to hoot and play,                                  _140
   For the moon is veiled and sleeping now.
   The accustomed nightingale still broods
   On her accustomed bough,
   But she is mute; for her false mate
   Has fled and left her desolate.                                      _145
   
   This silent spot tradition old
   Had peopled with the spectral dead.
   For the roots of the speaker's hair felt cold
   And stiff, as with tremulous lips he told
   That a hellish shape at midnight led                                 _150
   The ghost of a youth with hoary hair,
   And sate on the seat beside him there,
   Till a naked child came wandering by,
   When the fiend would change to a lady fair!
   A fearful tale! The truth was worse:                                 _155
   For here a sister and a brother
   Had solemnized a monstrous curse,
   Meeting in this fair solitude:
   For beneath yon very sky,
   Had they resigned to one another                                     _160
   Body and soul. The multitude:
   Tracking them to the secret wood,
   Tore limb from limb their innocent child,
   And stabbed and trampled on its mother;
   But the youth, for God's most holy grace,                            _165
   A priest saved to burn in the market-place.
   
   Duly at evening Helen came
   To this lone silent spot,
   From the wrecks of a tale of wilder sorrow
   So much of sympathy to borrow                                        _170
   As soothed her own dark lot.
   Duly each evening from her home,
   With her fair child would Helen come
   To sit upon that antique seat,
   While the hues of day were pale;                                     _175
   And the bright boy beside her feet
   Now lay, lifting at intervals
   His broad blue eyes on her;
   Now, where some sudden impulse calls
   Following. He was a gentle boy                                       _180
   And in all gentle sorts took joy;
   Oft in a dry leaf for a boat,
   With a small feather for a sail,
   His fancy on that spring would float,
   If some invisible breeze might stir                                  _185
   Its marble calm: and Helen smiled
   Through tears of awe on the gay child,
   To think that a boy as fair as he,
   In years which never more may be,
   By that same fount, in that same wood,                               _190
   The like sweet fancies had pursued;
   And that a mother, lost like her,
   Had mournfully sate watching him.
   Then all the scene was wont to swim
   Through the mist of a burning tear.                                  _195
   
   For many months had Helen known
   This scene; and now she thither turned
   Her footsteps, not alone.
   The friend whose falsehood she had mourned,
   Sate with her on that seat of stone.                                 _200
   Silent they sate; for evening,
   And the power its glimpses bring
   Had, with one awful shadow, quelled
   The passion of their grief. They sate
   With linked hands, for unrepelled                                    _205
   Had Helen taken Rosalind's.
   Like the autumn wind, when it unbinds
   The tangled locks of the nightshade's hair,
   Which is twined in the sultry summer air
   Round the walls of an outworn sepulchre,                             _210
   Did the voice of Helen, sad and sweet,
   And the sound of her heart that ever beat,
   As with sighs and words she breathed on her,
   Unbind the knots of her friend's despair,
   Till her thoughts were free to float and flow;                       _215
   And from her labouring bosom now,
   Like the bursting of a prisoned flame,
   The voice of a long pent sorrow came.
   
   ROSALIND:
   I saw the dark earth fall upon
   The coffin; and I saw the stone                                      _220
   Laid over him whom this cold breast
   Had pillowed to his nightly rest!
   Thou knowest not, thou canst not know
   My agony. Oh! I could not weep:
   The sources whence such blessings flow                               _225
   Were not to be approached by me!
   But I could smile, and I could sleep,
   Though with a self-accusing heart.
   In morning's light, in evening's gloom,
   I watched,--and would not thence depart--                            _230
   My husband's unlamented tomb.
   My children knew their sire was gone,
   But when I told them,--'He is dead,'--
   They laughed aloud in frantic glee,
   They clapped their hands and leaped about,                           _235
   Answering each other's ecstasy
   With many a prank and merry shout.
   But I sate silent and alone,
   Wrapped in the mock of mourning weed.
   
   They laughed, for he was dead: but I                                 _240
   Sate with a hard and tearless eye,
   And with a heart which would deny
   The secret joy it could not quell,
   Low muttering o'er his loathed name;
   Till from that self-contention came                                  _245
   Remorse where sin was none; a hell
   Which in pure spirits should not dwell.
   
   I'll tell thee truth. He was a man
   Hard, selfish, loving only gold,
   Yet full of guile; his pale eyes ran                                 _250
   With tears, which each some falsehood told,
   And oft his smooth and bridled tongue
   Would give the lie to his flushing cheek;
   He was a coward to the strong:
   He was a tyrant to the weak,                                         _255
   On whom his vengeance he would wreak:
   For scorn, whose arrows search the heart,
   From many a stranger's eye would dart,
   And on his memory cling, and follow
   His soul to its home so cold and hollow.                             _260
   He was a tyrant to the weak,
   And we were such, alas the day!
   Oft, when my little ones at play,
   Were in youth's natural lightness gay,
   Or if they listened to some tale                                     _265
   Of travellers, or of fairy land,--
   When the light from the wood-fire's dying brand
   Flashed on their faces,--if they heard
   Or thought they heard upon the stair
   His footstep, the suspended word                                     _270
   Died on my lips: we all grew pale:
   The babe at my bosom was hushed with fear
   If it thought it heard its father near;
   And my two wild boys would near my knee
   Cling, cowed and cowering fearfully.                                 _275
   
   I'll tell thee truth: I loved another.
   His name in my ear was ever ringing,
   His form to my brain was ever clinging:
   Yet if some stranger breathed that name,
   My lips turned white, and my heart beat fast:                        _280
   My nights were once haunted by dreams of flame,
   My days were dim in the shadow cast
   By the memory of the same!
   Day and night, day and night,
   He was my breath and life and light,                                 _285
   For three short years, which soon were passed.
   On the fourth, my gentle mother
   Led me to the shrine, to be
   His sworn bride eternally.
   And now we stood on the altar stair,                                 _290
   When my father came from a distant land,
   And with a loud and fearful cry
   Rushed between us suddenly.
   I saw the stream of his thin gray hair,
   I saw his lean and lifted hand,                                      _295
   And heard his words,--and live! Oh God!
   Wherefore do I live?--'Hold, hold!'
   He cried, 'I tell thee 'tis her brother!
   Thy mother, boy, beneath the sod
   Of yon churchyard rests in her shroud so cold:                       _300
   I am now weak, and pale, and old:
   We were once dear to one another,
   I and that corpse! Thou art our child!'
   Then with a laugh both long and wild
   The youth upon the pavement fell:                                    _305
   They found him dead! All looked on me,
   The spasms of my despair to see:
   But I was calm. I went away:
   I was clammy-cold like clay!
   I did not weep: I did not speak:                                     _310
   But day by day, week after week,
   I walked about like a corpse alive!
   Alas! sweet friend, you must believe
   This heart is stone: it did not break.
   My father lived a little while,                                      _315
   But all might see that he was dying,
   He smiled with such a woeful smile!
   When he was in the churchyard lying
   Among the worms, we grew quite poor,
   So that no one would give us bread:                                  _320
   My mother looked at me, and said
   Faint words of cheer, which only meant
   That she could die and be content;
   So I went forth from the same church door
   To another husband's bed.                                            _325
   And this was he who died at last,
   When weeks and months and years had passed,
   Through which I firmly did fulfil
   My duties, a devoted wife,
   With the stern step of vanquished will,                              _330
   Walking beneath the night of life,
   Whose hours extinguished, like slow rain
   Falling for ever, pain by pain,
   The very hope of death's dear rest;
   Which, since the heart within my breast                              _335
   Of natural life was dispossessed,
   Its strange sustainer there had been.
   
   When flowers were dead, and grass was green
   Upon my mother's grave,--that mother
   Whom to outlive, and cheer, and make                                 _340
   My wan eyes glitter for her sake,
   Was my vowed task, the single care
   Which once gave life to my despair,--
   When she was a thing that did not stir
   And the crawling worms were cradling her                             _345
   To a sleep more deep and so more sweet
   Than a baby's rocked on its nurse's knee,
   I lived: a living pulse then beat
   Beneath my heart that awakened me.
   What was this pulse so warm and free?                                _350
   Alas! I knew it could not be
   My own dull blood: 'twas like a thought
   Of liquid love, that spread and wrought
   Under my bosom and in my brain,
   And crept with the blood through every vein;                         _355
   And hour by hour, day after day,
   The wonder could not charm away,
   But laid in sleep, my wakeful pain,
   Until I knew it was a child,
   And then I wept. For long, long years                                _360
   These frozen eyes had shed no tears:
   But now--'twas the season fair and mild
   When April has wept itself to May:
   I sate through the sweet sunny day
   By my window bowered round with leaves,                              _365
   And down my cheeks the quick tears fell
   Like twinkling rain-drops from the eaves,
   When warm spring showers are passing o'er.
   O Helen, none can ever tell
   The joy it was to weep once more!                                    _370
   
   I wept to think how hard it were
   To kill my babe, and take from it
   The sense of light, and the warm air,
   And my own fond and tender care,
   And love and smiles; ere I knew yet                                  _375
   That these for it might, as for me,
   Be the masks of a grinning mockery.
   And haply, I would dream, 'twere sweet
   To feed it from my faded breast,
   Or mark my own heart's restless beat                                 _380
   Rock it to its untroubled rest,
   And watch the growing soul beneath
   Dawn in faint smiles; and hear its breath,
   Half interrupted by calm sighs,
   And search the depth of its fair eyes                                _385
   For long departed memories!
   And so I lived till that sweet load
   Was lightened. Darkly forward flowed
   The stream of years, and on it bore
   Two shapes of gladness to my sight;                                  _390
   Two other babes, delightful more
   In my lost soul's abandoned night,
   Than their own country ships may be
   Sailing towards wrecked mariners,
   Who cling to the rock of a wintry sea.                               _395
   For each, as it came, brought soothing tears;
   And a loosening warmth, as each one lay
   Sucking the sullen milk away
   About my frozen heart, did play,
   And weaned it, oh how painfully--                                    _400
   As they themselves were weaned each one
   From that sweet food,--even from the thirst
   Of death, and nothingness, and rest,
   Strange inmate of a living breast!
   Which all that I had undergone                                       _405
   Of grief and shame, since she, who first
   The gates of that dark refuge closed,
   Came to my sight, and almost burst
   The seal of that Lethean spring;
   But these fair shadows interposed:                                   _410
   For all delights are shadows now!
   And from my brain to my dull brow
   The heavy tears gather and flow:
   I cannot speak: Oh, let me weep!
   
   The tears which fell from her wan eyes                               _415
   Glimmered among the moonlight dew:
   Her deep hard sobs and heavy sighs
   Their echoes in the darkness threw.
   When she grew calm, she thus did keep
   The tenor of her tale:
   He died:                                                             _420
   I know not how: he was not old,
   If age be numbered by its years:
   But he was bowed and bent with fears,
   Pale with the quenchless thirst of gold,
   Which, like fierce fever, left him weak;                             _425
   And his strait lip and bloated cheek
   Were warped in spasms by hollow sneers;
   And selfish cares with barren plough,
   Not age, had lined his narrow brow,
   And foul and cruel thoughts, which feed                              _430
   Upon the withering life within,
   Like vipers on some poisonous weed.
   Whether his ill were death or sin
   None knew, until he died indeed,
   And then men owned they were the same.                               _435
   
   Seven days within my chamber lay
   That corse, and my babes made holiday:
   At last, I told them what is death:
   The eldest, with a kind of shame,
   Came to my knees with silent breath,                                 _440
   And sate awe-stricken at my feet;
   And soon the others left their play,
   And sate there too. It is unmeet
   To shed on the brief flower of youth
   The withering knowledge of the grave;                                _445
   From me remorse then wrung that truth.
   I could not bear the joy which gave
   Too just a response to mine own.
   In vain. I dared not feign a groan,
   And in their artless looks I saw,                                    _450
   Between the mists of fear and awe,
   That my own thought was theirs, and they
   Expressed it not in words, but said,
   Each in its heart, how every day
   Will pass in happy work and play,                                    _455
   Now he is dead and gone away.
   
   After the funeral all our kin
   Assembled, and the will was read.
   My friend, I tell thee, even the dead
   Have strength, their putrid shrouds within,                          _460
   To blast and torture. Those who live
   Still fear the living, but a corse
   Is merciless, and power doth give
   To such pale tyrants half the spoil
   He rends from those who groan and toil,                              _465
   Because they blush not with remorse
   Among their crawling worms. Behold,
   I have no child! my tale grows old
   With grief, and staggers: let it reach
   The limits of my feeble speech,                                      _470
   And languidly at length recline
   On the brink of its own grave and mine.
   
   Thou knowest what a thing is Poverty
   Among the fallen on evil days:
   'Tis Crime, and Fear, and Infamy,                                    _475
   And houseless Want in frozen ways
   Wandering ungarmented, and Pain,
   And, worse than all, that inward stain
   Foul Self-contempt, which drowns in sneers
   Youth's starlight smile, and makes its tears                         _480
   First like hot gall, then dry for ever!
   And well thou knowest a mother never
   Could doom her children to this ill,
   And well he knew the same. The will
   Imported, that if e'er again                                         _485
   I sought my children to behold,
   Or in my birthplace did remain
   Beyond three days, whose hours were told,
   They should inherit nought: and he,
   To whom next came their patrimony,                                   _490
   A sallow lawyer, cruel and cold,
   Aye watched me, as the will was read,
   With eyes askance, which sought to see
   The secrets of my agony;
   And with close lips and anxious brow                                 _495
   Stood canvassing still to and fro
   The chance of my resolve, and all
   The dead man's caution just did call;
   For in that killing lie 'twas said--
   'She is adulterous, and doth hold                                    _500
   In secret that the Christian creed
   Is false, and therefore is much need
   That I should have a care to save
   My children from eternal fire.'
   Friend, he was sheltered by the grave,                               _505
   And therefore dared to be a liar!
   In truth, the Indian on the pyre
   Of her dead husband, half consumed,
   As well might there be false, as I
   To those abhorred embraces doomed,                                   _510
   Far worse than fire's brief agony
   As to the Christian creed, if true
   Or false, I never questioned it:
   I took it as the vulgar do:
   Nor my vexed soul had leisure yet                                    _515
   To doubt the things men say, or deem
   That they are other than they seem.
   
   All present who those crimes did hear,
   In feigned or actual scorn and fear,
   Men, women, children, slunk away,                                    _520
   Whispering with self-contented pride,
   Which half suspects its own base lie.
   I spoke to none, nor did abide,
   But silently I went my way,
   Nor noticed I where joyously                                         _525
   Sate my two younger babes at play,
   In the court-yard through which I passed;
   But went with footsteps firm and fast
   Till I came to the brink of the ocean green,
   And there, a woman with gray hairs,                                  _530
   Who had my mother's servant been,
   Kneeling, with many tears and prayers,
   Made me accept a purse of gold,
   Half of the earnings she had kept
   To refuge her when weak and old.                                     _535
   
   With woe, which never sleeps or slept,
   I wander now. 'Tis a vain thought--
   But on yon alp, whose snowy head
   'Mid the azure air is islanded,
   (We see it o'er the flood of cloud,                                  _540
   Which sunrise from its eastern caves
   Drives, wrinkling into golden waves,
   Hung with its precipices proud,
   From that gray stone where first we met)
   There now--who knows the dead feel nought?--                         _545
   Should be my grave; for he who yet
   Is my soul's soul, once said: ''Twere sweet
   'Mid stars and lightnings to abide,
   And winds and lulling snows, that beat
   With their soft flakes the mountain wide,                            _550
   Where weary meteor lamps repose,
   And languid storms their pinions close:
   And all things strong and bright and pure,
   And ever during, aye endure:
   Who knows, if one were buried there,                                 _555
   But these things might our spirits make,
   Amid the all-surrounding air,
   Their own eternity partake?'
   Then 'twas a wild and playful saying
   At which I laughed, or seemed to laugh:                              _560
   They were his words: now heed my praying,
   And let them be my epitaph.
   Thy memory for a term may be
   My monument. Wilt remember me?
   I know thou wilt, and canst forgive                                  _565
   Whilst in this erring world to live
   My soul disdained not, that I thought
   Its lying forms were worthy aught
   And much less thee.
   
   HELEN:
   O speak not so,
   But come to me and pour thy woe                                      _570
   Into this heart, full though it be,
   Ay, overflowing with its own:
   I thought that grief had severed me
   From all beside who weep and groan;
   Its likeness upon earth to be,                                       _575
   Its express image; but thou art
   More wretched. Sweet! we will not part
   Henceforth, if death be not division;
   If so, the dead feel no contrition.
   But wilt thou hear since last we parted                              _580
   All that has left me broken hearted?
   
   ROSALIND:
   Yes, speak. The faintest stars are scarcely shorn
   Of their thin beams by that delusive morn
   Which sinks again in darkness, like the light
   Of early love, soon lost in total night.                             _585
   
   HELEN:
   Alas! Italian winds are mild,
   But my bosom is cold--wintry cold--
   When the warm air weaves, among the fresh leaves,
   Soft music, my poor brain is wild,
   And I am weak like a nursling child,                                 _590
   Though my soul with grief is gray and old.
   
   ROSALIND:
   Weep not at thine own words, though they must make
   Me weep. What is thy tale?
   
   HELEN:
   I fear 'twill shake
   Thy gentle heart with tears. Thou well
   Rememberest when we met no more,                                     _595
   And, though I dwelt with Lionel,
   That friendless caution pierced me sore
   With grief; a wound my spirit bore
   Indignantly, but when he died,
   With him lay dead both hope and pride.                               _600
   Alas! all hope is buried now.
   But then men dreamed the aged earth
   Was labouring in that mighty birth,
   Which many a poet and a sage
   Has aye foreseen--the happy age                                      _605
   When truth and love shall dwell below
   Among the works and ways of men;
   Which on this world not power but will
   Even now is wanting to fulfil.
   
   Among mankind what thence befell                                     _610
   Of strife, how vain, is known too well;
   When Liberty's dear paean fell
   'Mid murderous howls. To Lionel,
   Though of great wealth and lineage high,
   Yet through those dungeon walls there came                           _615
   Thy thrilling light, O Liberty!
   And as the meteor's midnight flame
   Startles the dreamer, sun-like truth
   Flashed on his visionary youth,
   And filled him, not with love, but faith,                            _620
   And hope, and courage mute in death;
   For love and life in him were twins,
   Born at one birth: in every other
   First life then love its course begins,
   Though they be children of one mother;                               _625
   And so through this dark world they fleet
   Divided, till in death they meet;
   But he loved all things ever. Then
   He passed amid the strife of men,
   And stood at the throne of armed power                               _630
   Pleading for a world of woe:
   Secure as one on a rock-built tower
   O'er the wrecks which the surge trails to and fro,
   'Mid the passions wild of human kind
   He stood, like a spirit calming them;                                _635
   For, it was said, his words could bind
   Like music the lulled crowd, and stem
   That torrent of unquiet dream
   Which mortals truth and reason deem,
   But is revenge and fear and pride.                                   _640
   Joyous he was; and hope and peace
   On all who heard him did abide,
   Raining like dew from his sweet talk,
   As where the evening star may walk
   Along the brink of the gloomy seas,                                  _645
   Liquid mists of splendour quiver.
   His very gestures touched to tears
   The unpersuaded tyrant, never
   So moved before: his presence stung
   The torturers with their victim's pain,                              _650
   And none knew how; and through their ears
   The subtle witchcraft of his tongue
   Unlocked the hearts of those who keep
   Gold, the world's bond of slavery.
   Men wondered, and some sneered to see                                _655
   One sow what he could never reap:
   For he is rich, they said, and young,
   And might drink from the depths of luxury.
   If he seeks Fame, Fame never crowned
   The champion of a trampled creed:                                    _660
   If he seeks Power, Power is enthroned
   'Mid ancient rights and wrongs, to feed
   Which hungry wolves with praise and spoil,
   Those who would sit near Power must toil;
   And such, there sitting, all may see.                                _665
   What seeks he? All that others seek
   He casts away, like a vile weed
   Which the sea casts unreturningly.
   That poor and hungry men should break
   The laws which wreak them toil and scorn,                            _670
   We understand; but Lionel
   We know, is rich and nobly born.
   So wondered they: yet all men loved
   Young Lionel, though few approved;
   All but the priests, whose hatred fell                               _675
   Like the unseen blight of a smiling day,
   The withering honey dew, which clings
   Under the bright green buds of May,
   Whilst they unfold their emerald wings:
   For he made verses wild and queer                                    _680
   On the strange creeds priests hold so dear,
   Because they bring them land and gold.
   Of devils and saints and all such gear,
   He made tales which whoso heard or read
   Would laugh till he were almost dead.                                _685
   So this grew a proverb: 'Don't get old
   Till Lionel's "Banquet in Hell" you hear,
   And then you will laugh yourself young again.'
   So the priests hated him, and he
   Repaid their hate with cheerful glee.                                _690
   
   Ah, smiles and joyance quickly died,
   For public hope grew pale and dim
   In an altered time and tide,
   And in its wasting withered him,
   As a summer flower that blows too soon                               _695
   Droops in the smile of the waning moon,
   When it scatters through an April night
   The frozen dews of wrinkling blight.
   None now hoped more. Gray Power was seated
   Safely on her ancestral throne;                                      _700
   And Faith, the Python, undefeated,
   Even to its blood-stained steps dragged on
   Her foul and wounded train, and men
   Were trampled and deceived again,
   And words and shows again could bind                                 _705
   The wailing tribes of human kind
   In scorn and famine. Fire and blood
   Raged round the raging multitude,
   To fields remote by tyrants sent
   To be the scorned instrument                                         _710
   With which they drag from mines of gore
   The chains their slaves yet ever wore:
   And in the streets men met each other,
   And by old altars and in halls,
   And smiled again at festivals.                                       _715
   But each man found in his heart's brother
   Cold cheer; for all, though half deceived,
   The outworn creeds again believed,
   And the same round anew began,
   Which the weary world yet ever ran.                                  _720
   
   Many then wept, not tears, but gall
   Within their hearts, like drops which fall
   Wasting the fountain-stone away.
   And in that dark and evil day
   Did all desires and thoughts, that claim                             _725
   Men's care--ambition, friendship, fame,
   Love, hope, though hope was now despair--
   Indue the colours of this change,
   As from the all-surrounding air
   The earth takes hues obscure and strange,                            _730
   When storm and earthquake linger there.
   
   And so, my friend, it then befell
   To many, most to Lionel,
   Whose hope was like the life of youth
   Within him, and when dead, became                                    _735
   A spirit of unresting flame,
   Which goaded him in his distress
   Over the world's vast wilderness.
   Three years he left his native land,
   And on the fourth, when he returned,                                 _740
   None knew him: he was stricken deep
   With some disease of mind, and turned
   Into aught unlike Lionel.
   On him, on whom, did he pause in sleep,
   Serenest smiles were wont to keep,                                   _745
   And, did he wake, a winged band
   Of bright persuasions, which had fed
   On his sweet lips and liquid eyes,
   Kept their swift pinions half outspread
   To do on men his least command;                                      _750
   On him, whom once 'twas paradise
   Even to behold, now misery lay:
   In his own heart 'twas merciless,
   To all things else none may express
   Its innocence and tenderness.                                        _755
   
   'Twas said that he had refuge sought
   In love from his unquiet thought
   In distant lands, and been deceived
   By some strange show; for there were found,
   Blotted with tears as those relieved                                 _760
   By their own words are wont to do,
   These mournful verses on the ground,
   By all who read them blotted too.
   
   'How am I changed! my hopes were once like fire:
   I loved, and I believed that life was love.                          _765
   How am I lost! on wings of swift desire
   Among Heaven's winds my spirit once did move.
   I slept, and silver dreams did aye inspire
   My liquid sleep: I woke, and did approve
   All nature to my heart, and thought to make                          _770
   A paradise of earth for one sweet sake.
   
   'I love, but I believe in love no more.
   I feel desire, but hope not. O, from sleep
   Most vainly must my weary brain implore
   Its long lost flattery now: I wake to weep,                          _775
   And sit through the long day gnawing the core
   Of my bitter heart, and, like a miser, keep,
   Since none in what I feel take pain or pleasure,
   To my own soul its self-consuming treasure.'
   
   He dwelt beside me near the sea;                                     _780
   And oft in evening did we meet,
   When the waves, beneath the starlight, flee
   O'er the yellow sands with silver feet,
   And talked: our talk was sad and sweet,
   Till slowly from his mien there passed                               _785
   The desolation which it spoke;
   And smiles,--as when the lightning's blast
   Has parched some heaven-delighting oak,
   The next spring shows leaves pale and rare,
   But like flowers delicate and fair,                                  _790
   On its rent boughs,--again arrayed
   His countenance in tender light:
   His words grew subtile fire, which made
   The air his hearers breathed delight:
   His motions, like the winds, were free,                              _795
   Which bend the bright grass gracefully,
   Then fade away in circlets faint:
   And winged Hope, on which upborne
   His soul seemed hovering in his eyes,
   Like some bright spirit newly born                                   _800
   Floating amid the sunny skies,
   Sprang forth from his rent heart anew.
   Yet o'er his talk, and looks, and mien,
   Tempering their loveliness too keen,
   Past woe its shadow backward threw,                                  _805
   Till like an exhalation, spread
   From flowers half drunk with evening dew,
   They did become infectious: sweet
   And subtle mists of sense and thought:
   Which wrapped us soon, when we might meet,                           _810
   Almost from our own looks and aught
   The wild world holds. And so, his mind
   Was healed, while mine grew sick with fear:
   For ever now his health declined,
   Like some frail bark which cannot bear                               _815
   The impulse of an altered wind,
   Though prosperous: and my heart grew full
   'Mid its new joy of a new care:
   For his cheek became, not pale, but fair,
   As rose-o'ershadowed lilies are;                                     _820
   And soon his deep and sunny hair,
   In this alone less beautiful,
   Like grass in tombs grew wild and rare.
   The blood in his translucent veins
   Beat, not like animal life, but love                                 _825
   Seemed now its sullen springs to move,
   When life had failed, and all its pains:
   And sudden sleep would seize him oft
   Like death, so calm, but that a tear,
   His pointed eyelashes between,                                       _830
   Would gather in the light serene
   Of smiles, whose lustre bright and soft
   Beneath lay undulating there.
   His breath was like inconstant flame,
   As eagerly it went and came;                                         _835
   And I hung o'er him in his sleep,
   Till, like an image in the lake
   Which rains disturb, my tears would break
   The shadow of that slumber deep:
   Then he would bid me not to weep,                                    _840
   And say, with flattery false, yet sweet,
   That death and he could never meet,
   If I would never part with him.
   And so we loved, and did unite
   All that in us was yet divided:                                      _845
   For when he said, that many a rite,
   By men to bind but once provided,
   Could not be shared by him and me,
   Or they would kill him in their glee,
   I shuddered, and then laughing said--                                _850
   'We will have rites our faith to bind,
   But our church shall be the starry night,
   Our altar the grassy earth outspread,
   And our priest the muttering wind.'
   
   'Twas sunset as I spoke: one star                                    _855
   Had scarce burst forth, when from afar
   The ministers of misrule sent,
   Seized upon Lionel, and bore
   His chained limbs to a dreary tower,
   In the midst of a city vast and wide.                                _860
   For he, they said, from his mind had bent
   Against their gods keen blasphemy,
   For which, though his soul must roasted be
   In hell's red lakes immortally,
   Yet even on earth must he abide                                      _865
   The vengeance of their slaves: a trial,
   I think, men call it. What avail
   Are prayers and tears, which chase denial
   From the fierce savage, nursed in hate?
   What the knit soul that pleading and pale                            _870
   Makes wan the quivering cheek, which late
   It painted with its own delight?
   We were divided. As I could,
   I stilled the tingling of my blood,
   And followed him in their despite,                                   _875
   As a widow follows, pale and wild,
   The murderers and corse of her only child;
   And when we came to the prison door
   And I prayed to share his dungeon floor
   With prayers which rarely have been spurned,                         _880
   And when men drove me forth and I
   Stared with blank frenzy on the sky,
   A farewell look of love he turned,
   Half calming me; then gazed awhile,
   As if thro' that black and massy pile,                               _885
   And thro' the crowd around him there,
   And thro' the dense and murky air,
   And the thronged streets, he did espy
   What poets know and prophesy;
   And said, with voice that made them shiver                           _890
   And clung like music in my brain,
   And which the mute walls spoke again
   Prolonging it with deepened strain:
   'Fear not the tyrants shall rule for ever,
   Or the priests of the bloody faith;                                  _895
   They stand on the brink of that mighty river,
   Whose waves they have tainted with death:
   It is fed from the depths of a thousand dells,
   Around them it foams, and rages, and swells,
   And their swords and their sceptres I floating see,                  _900
   Like wrecks in the surge of eternity.'
   
   I dwelt beside the prison gate;
   And the strange crowd that out and in
   Passed, some, no doubt, with mine own fate,
   Might have fretted me with its ceaseless din,                        _905
   But the fever of care was louder within.
   Soon, but too late, in penitence
   Or fear, his foes released him thence:
   I saw his thin and languid form,
   As leaning on the jailor's arm,                                      _910
   Whose hardened eyes grew moist the while,
   To meet his mute and faded smile,
   And hear his words of kind farewell,
   He tottered forth from his damp cell.
   Many had never wept before,                                          _915
   From whom fast tears then gushed and fell:
   Many will relent no more,
   Who sobbed like infants then; aye, all
   Who thronged the prison's stony hall,
   The rulers or the slaves of law,                                     _920
   Felt with a new surprise and awe
   That they were human, till strong shame
   Made them again become the same.
   The prison blood-hounds, huge and grim,
   From human looks the infection caught,                               _925
   And fondly crouched and fawned on him;
   And men have heard the prisoners say,
   Who in their rotting dungeons lay,
   That from that hour, throughout one day,
   The fierce despair and hate which kept                               _930
   Their trampled bosoms almost slept:
   Where, like twin vultures, they hung feeding
   On each heart's wound, wide torn and bleeding,--
   Because their jailors' rule, they thought,
   Grew merciful, like a parent's sway.                                 _935
   
   I know not how, but we were free:
   And Lionel sate alone with me,
   As the carriage drove thro' the streets apace;
   And we looked upon each other's face;
   And the blood in our fingers intertwined                             _940
   Ran like the thoughts of a single mind,
   As the swift emotions went and came
   Thro' the veins of each united frame.
   So thro' the long long streets we passed
   Of the million-peopled City vast;                                    _945
   Which is that desert, where each one
   Seeks his mate yet is alone,
   Beloved and sought and mourned of none;
   Until the clear blue sky was seen,
   And the grassy meadows bright and green,                             _950
   And then I sunk in his embrace,
   Enclosing there a mighty space
   Of love: and so we travelled on
   By woods, and fields of yellow flowers,
   And towns, and villages, and towers,                                 _955
   Day after day of happy hours.
   It was the azure time of June,
   When the skies are deep in the stainless noon,
   And the warm and fitful breezes shake
   The fresh green leaves of the hedgerow briar,                        _960
   And there were odours then to make
   The very breath we did respire
   A liquid element, whereon
   Our spirits, like delighted things
   That walk the air on subtle wings,                                   _965
   Floated and mingled far away,
   'Mid the warm winds of the sunny day.
   And when the evening star came forth
   Above the curve of the new bent moon,
   And light and sound ebbed from the earth,                            _970
   Like the tide of the full and the weary sea
   To the depths of its own tranquillity,
   Our natures to its own repose
   Did the earth's breathless sleep attune:
   Like flowers, which on each other close                              _975
   Their languid leaves when daylight's gone,
   We lay, till new emotions came,
   Which seemed to make each mortal frame
   One soul of interwoven flame,
   A life in life, a second birth                                       _980
   In worlds diviner far than earth,
   Which, like two strains of harmony
   That mingle in the silent sky
   Then slowly disunite, passed by
   And left the tenderness of tears,                                    _985
   A soft oblivion of all fears,
   A sweet sleep: so we travelled on
   Till we came to the home of Lionel,
   Among the mountains wild and lone,
   Beside the hoary western sea,                                        _990
   Which near the verge of the echoing shore
   The massy forest shadowed o'er.
   
   The ancient steward, with hair all hoar,
   As we alighted, wept to see
   His master changed so fearfully;                                     _995
   And the old man's sobs did waken me
   From my dream of unremaining gladness;
   The truth flashed o'er me like quick madness
   When I looked, and saw that there was death
   On Lionel: yet day by day                                            _1000
   He lived, till fear grew hope and faith,
   And in my soul I dared to say,
   Nothing so bright can pass away:
   Death is dark, and foul, and dull,
   But he is--O how beautiful!                                          _1005
   Yet day by day he grew more weak,
   And his sweet voice, when he might speak,
   Which ne'er was loud, became more low;
   And the light which flashed through his waxen cheek
   Grew faint, as the rose-like hues which flow                         _1010
   From sunset o'er the Alpine snow:
   And death seemed not like death in him,
   For the spirit of life o'er every limb
   Lingered, a mist of sense and thought.
   When the summer wind faint odours brought                            _1015
   From mountain flowers, even as it passed
   His cheek would change, as the noonday sea
   Which the dying breeze sweeps fitfully.
   If but a cloud the sky o'ercast,
   You might see his colour come and go,                                _1020
   And the softest strain of music made
   Sweet smiles, yet sad, arise and fade
   Amid the dew of his tender eyes;
   And the breath, with intermitting flow,
   Made his pale lips quiver and part.                                  _1025
   You might hear the beatings of his heart,
   Quick, but not strong; and with my tresses
   When oft he playfully would bind
   In the bowers of mossy lonelinesses
   His neck, and win me so to mingle                                    _1030
   In the sweet depth of woven caresses,
   And our faint limbs were intertwined,
   Alas! the unquiet life did tingle
   From mine own heart through every vein,
   Like a captive in dreams of liberty,                                 _1035
   Who beats the walls of his stony cell.
   But his, it seemed already free,
   Like the shadow of fire surrounding me!
   On my faint eyes and limbs did dwell
   That spirit as it passed, till soon,                                 _1040
   As a frail cloud wandering o'er the moon,
   Beneath its light invisible,
   Is seen when it folds its gray wings again
   To alight on midnight's dusky plain,
   I lived and saw, and the gathering soul                              _1045
   Passed from beneath that strong control,
   And I fell on a life which was sick with fear
   Of all the woe that now I bear.
   
   Amid a bloomless myrtle wood,
   On a green and sea-girt promontory,                                  _1050
   Not far from where we dwelt, there stood
   In record of a sweet sad story,
   An altar and a temple bright
   Circled by steps, and o'er the gate
   Was sculptured, 'To Fidelity;'                                       _1055
   And in the shrine an image sate,
   All veiled: but there was seen the light
   Of smiles which faintly could express
   A mingled pain and tenderness
   Through that ethereal drapery.                                       _1060
   The left hand held the head, the right--
   Beyond the veil, beneath the skin,
   You might see the nerves quivering within--
   Was forcing the point of a barbed dart
   Into its side-convulsing heart.                                      _1065
   An unskilled hand, yet one informed
   With genius, had the marble warmed
   With that pathetic life. This tale
   It told: A dog had from the sea,
   When the tide was raging fearfully,                                  _1070
   Dragged Lionel's mother, weak and pale,
   Then died beside her on the sand,
   And she that temple thence had planned;
   But it was Lionel's own hand
   Had wrought the image. Each new moon                                 _1075
   That lady did, in this lone fane,
   The rites of a religion sweet,
   Whose god was in her heart and brain:
   The seasons' loveliest flowers were strewn
   On the marble floor beneath her feet,                                _1080
   And she brought crowns of sea-buds white
   Whose odour is so sweet and faint,
   And weeds, like branching chrysolite,
   Woven in devices fine and quaint.
   And tears from her brown eyes did stain                              _1085
   The altar: need but look upon
   That dying statue fair and wan,
   If tears should cease, to weep again:
   And rare Arabian odours came,
   Through the myrtle copses steaming thence                            _1090
   From the hissing frankincense,
   Whose smoke, wool-white as ocean foam,
   Hung in dense flocks beneath the dome--
   That ivory dome, whose azure night
   With golden stars, like heaven, was bright--                         _1095
   O'er the split cedar's pointed flame;
   And the lady's harp would kindle there
   The melody of an old air,
   Softer than sleep; the villagers
   Mixed their religion up with hers,                                   _1100
   And, as they listened round, shed tears.
   
   One eve he led me to this fane:
   Daylight on its last purple cloud
   Was lingering gray, and soon her strain
   The nightingale began; now loud,                                     _1105
   Climbing in circles the windless sky,
   Now dying music; suddenly
   'Tis scattered in a thousand notes,
   And now to the hushed ear it floats
   Like field smells known in infancy,                                  _1110
   Then failing, soothes the air again.
   We sate within that temple lone,
   Pavilioned round with Parian stone:
   His mother's harp stood near, and oft
   I had awakened music soft                                            _1115
   Amid its wires: the nightingale
   Was pausing in her heaven-taught tale:
   'Now drain the cup,' said Lionel,
   'Which the poet-bird has crowned so well
   With the wine of her bright and liquid song!                         _1120
   Heardst thou not sweet words among
   That heaven-resounding minstrelsy?
   Heard'st thou not that those who die
   Awake in a world of ecstasy?
   That love, when limbs are interwoven,                                _1125
   And sleep, when the night of life is cloven,
   And thought, to the world's dim boundaries clinging,
   And music, when one beloved is singing,
   Is death? Let us drain right joyously
   The cup which the sweet bird fills for me.'                          _1130
   He paused, and to my lips he bent
   His own: like spirit his words went
   Through all my limbs with the speed of fire;
   And his keen eyes, glittering through mine,
   Filled me with the flame divine,                                     _1135
   Which in their orbs was burning far,
   Like the light of an unmeasured star,
   In the sky of midnight dark and deep:
   Yes, 'twas his soul that did inspire
   Sounds, which my skill could ne'er awaken;                           _1140
   And first, I felt my fingers sweep
   The harp, and a long quivering cry
   Burst from my lips in symphony:
   The dusk and solid air was shaken,
   As swift and swifter the notes came                                  _1145
   From my touch, that wandered like quick flame,
   And from my bosom, labouring
   With some unutterable thing:
   The awful sound of my own voice made
   My faint lips tremble; in some mood                                  _1150
   Of wordless thought Lionel stood
   So pale, that even beside his cheek
   The snowy column from its shade
   Caught whiteness: yet his countenance,
   Raised upward, burned with radiance                                  _1155
   Of spirit-piercing joy, whose light,
   Like the moon struggling through the night
   Of whirlwind-rifted clouds, did break
   With beams that might not be confined.
   I paused, but soon his gestures kindled                              _1160
   New power, as by the moving wind
   The waves are lifted, and my song
   To low soft notes now changed and dwindled,
   And from the twinkling wires among,
   My languid fingers drew and flung                                    _1165
   Circles of life-dissolving sound,
   Yet faint; in aery rings they bound
   My Lionel, who, as every strain
   Grew fainter but more sweet, his mien
   Sunk with the sound relaxedly;                                       _1170
   And slowly now he turned to me,
   As slowly faded from his face
   That awful joy: with looks serene
   He was soon drawn to my embrace,
   And my wild song then died away                                      _1175
   In murmurs: words I dare not say
   We mixed, and on his lips mine fed
   Till they methought felt still and cold:
   'What is it with thee, love?' I said:
   No word, no look, no motion! yes,                                    _1180
   There was a change, but spare to guess,
   Nor let that moment's hope be told.
   I looked, and knew that he was dead,
   And fell, as the eagle on the plain
   Falls when life deserts her brain,                                   _1185
   And the mortal lightning is veiled again.
   
   O that I were now dead! but such
   (Did they not, love, demand too much,
   Those dying murmurs?) he forbade.
   O that I once again were mad!                                        _1190
   And yet, dear Rosalind, not so,
   For I would live to share thy woe.
   Sweet boy! did I forget thee too?
   Alas, we know not what we do
   When we speak words.
   No memory more                                                       _1195
   Is in my mind of that sea shore.
   Madness came on me, and a troop
   Of misty shapes did seem to sit
   Beside me, on a vessel's poop,
   And the clear north wind was driving it.                             _1200
   Then I heard strange tongues, and saw strange flowers,
   And the stars methought grew unlike ours,
   And the azure sky and the stormless sea
   Made me believe that I had died,
   And waked in a world, which was to me                                _1205
   Drear hell, though heaven to all beside:
   Then a dead sleep fell on my mind,
   Whilst animal life many long years
   Had rescued from a chasm of tears;
   And when I woke, I wept to find                                      _1210
   That the same lady, bright and wise,
   With silver locks and quick brown eyes,
   The mother of my Lionel,
   Had tended me in my distress,
   And died some months before. Nor less                                _1215
   Wonder, but far more peace and joy,
   Brought in that hour my lovely boy;
   For through that trance my soul had well
   The impress of thy being kept;
   And if I waked, or if I slept,                                       _1220
   No doubt, though memory faithless be,
   Thy image ever dwelt on me;
   And thus, O Lionel, like thee
   Is our sweet child. 'Tis sure most strange
   I knew not of so great a change,                                     _1225
   As that which gave him birth, who now
   Is all the solace of my woe.
   
   That Lionel great wealth had left
   By will to me, and that of all
   The ready lies of law bereft                                         _1230
   My child and me, might well befall.
   But let me think not of the scorn,
   Which from the meanest I have borne,
   When, for my child's beloved sake,
   I mixed with slaves, to vindicate                                    _1235
   The very laws themselves do make:
   Let me not say scorn is my fate,
   Lest I be proud, suffering the same
   With those who live in deathless fame.
   
   She ceased.--'Lo, where red morning thro' the woods                  _1240
   Is burning o'er the dew;' said Rosalind.
   And with these words they rose, and towards the flood
   Of the blue lake, beneath the leaves now wind
   With equal steps and fingers intertwined:
   Thence to a lonely dwelling, where the shore                         _1245
   Is shadowed with steep rocks, and cypresses
   Cleave with their dark green cones the silent skies,
   And with their shadows the clear depths below,
   And where a little terrace from its bowers,
   Of blooming myrtle and faint lemon-flowers,                          _1250
   Scatters its sense-dissolving fragrance o'er
   The liquid marble of the windless lake;
   And where the aged forest's limbs look hoar,
   Under the leaves which their green garments make,
   They come: 'Tis Helen's home, and clean and white,                   _1255
   Like one which tyrants spare on our own land
   In some such solitude, its casements bright
   Shone through their vine-leaves in the morning sun,
   And even within 'twas scarce like Italy.
   And when she saw how all things there were planned,                  _1260
   As in an English home, dim memory
   Disturbed poor Rosalind: she stood as one
   Whose mind is where his body cannot be,
   Till Helen led her where her child yet slept,
   And said, 'Observe, that brow was Lionel's,                          _1265
   Those lips were his, and so he ever kept
   One arm in sleep, pillowing his head with it.
   You cannot see his eyes--they are two wells
   Of liquid love: let us not wake him yet.'
   But Rosalind could bear no more, and wept                            _1270
   A shower of burning tears, which fell upon
   His face, and so his opening lashes shone
   With tears unlike his own, as he did leap
   In sudden wonder from his innocent sleep.
   
   So Rosalind and Helen lived together                                 _1275
   Thenceforth, changed in all else, yet friends again,
   Such as they were, when o'er the mountain heather
   They wandered in their youth, through sun and rain.
   And after many years, for human things
   Change even like the ocean and the wind,                             _1280
   Her daughter was restored to Rosalind,
   And in their circle thence some visitings
   Of joy 'mid their new calm would intervene:
   A lovely child she was, of looks serene,
   And motions which o'er things indifferent shed                       _1285
   The grace and gentleness from whence they came.
   And Helen's boy grew with her, and they fed
   From the same flowers of thought, until each mind
   Like springs which mingle in one flood became,
   And in their union soon their parents saw                            _1290
   The shadow of the peace denied to them.
   And Rosalind, for when the living stem
   Is cankered in its heart, the tree must fall,
   Died ere her time; and with deep grief and awe
   The pale survivors followed her remains                              _1295
   Beyond the region of dissolving rains,
   Up the cold mountain she was wont to call
   Her tomb; and on Chiavenna's precipice
   They raised a pyramid of lasting ice,
   Whose polished sides, ere day had yet begun,                         _1300
   Caught the first glow of the unrisen sun,
   The last, when it had sunk; and thro' the night
   The charioteers of Arctos wheeled round
   Its glittering point, as seen from Helen's home,
   Whose sad inhabitants each year would come,                          _1305
   With willing steps climbing that rugged height,
   And hang long locks of hair, and garlands bound
   With amaranth flowers, which, in the clime's despite,
   Filled the frore air with unaccustomed light:
   Such flowers, as in the wintry memory bloom                          _1310
   Of one friend left, adorned that frozen tomb.
   
   Helen, whose spirit was of softer mould,
   Whose sufferings too were less, Death slowlier led
   Into the peace of his dominion cold:
   She died among her kindred, being old.                               _1315
   And know, that if love die not in the dead
   As in the living, none of mortal kind
   Are blest, as now Helen and Rosalind.
   
   
   NOTES:
   _63 from there]from thee edition 1819.
   _366 fell]ran edition 1819.
   _405-_408 See Editor's Note on this passage.
   _551 Where]When edition 1819.
   _572 Ay, overflowing]Aye overflowing edition 1819.
   _612 dear]clear cj. Bradley.
   _711 gore editions 1819, 1839. See Editor's Note.
   _932 Where]When edition 1819.
   _1093-_1096 See Editor's Note.
   _1168-_1171] See Editor's Note.
   _1209 rescue]rescued edition 1819. See Editor's Note.
   
   
   NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   "Rosalind and Helen" was begun at Marlow, and thrown aside--till I
   found it; and, at my request, it was completed. Shelley had no care
   for any of his poems that did not emanate from the depths of his mind,
   and develop some high or abstruse truth. When he does touch on human
   life and the human heart, no pictures can be more faithful, more
   delicate, more subtle, or more pathetic. He never mentioned Love but
   he shed a grace borrowed from his own nature, that scarcely any other
   poet has bestowed on that passion. When he spoke of it as the law of
   life, which inasmuch as we rebel against we err and injure ourselves
   and others, he promulgated that which he considered an irrefragable
   truth. In his eyes it was the essence of our being, and all woe and
   pain arose from the war made against it by selfishness, or
   insensibility, or mistake. By reverting in his mind to this first
   principle, he discovered the source of many emotions, and could
   disclose the secrets of all hearts, and his delineations of passion
   and emotion touch the finest chords of our nature.
   
   "Rosalind and Helen" was finished during the summer of 1818, while we
   were at the Baths of Lucca.
   
   ***
   
   
   JULIAN AND MADDALO.
   
   A CONVERSATION.
   
   [Composed at Este after Shelley's first visit to Venice, 1818
   (Autumn); first published in the "Posthumous Poems", London, 1824
   (edition Mrs. Shelley). Shelley's original intention had been to print
   the poem in Leigh Hunt's "Examiner"; but he changed his mind and, on
   August 15, 1819, sent the manuscript to Hunt to be published
   anonymously by Ollier. This manuscript, found by Mr. Townshend Mayer,
   and by him placed in the hands of Mr. H. Buxton Forman, C.B., is
   described at length in Mr. Forman's Library Edition of the poems
   (volume 3 page 107). The date, 'May, 1819,' affixed to "Julian and
   Maddalo" in the "Posthumous Poems", 1824, indicates the time when the
   text was finally revised by Shelley. Sources of the text are (1)
   "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (2) the Hunt manuscript; (3) a fair draft of
   the poem amongst the Boscombe manuscripts; (4) "Poetical Works", 1839,
   1st and 2nd editions (Mrs. Shelley). Our text is that of the Hunt
   manuscript, as printed in Forman's Library Edition of the Poems, 1876,
   volume 3, pages 103-30; variants of 1824 are indicated in the
   footnotes; questions of punctuation are dealt with in the notes at the
   end of the volume.]
   
   PREFACE.
   
   The meadows with fresh streams, the bees with thyme,
   The goats with the green leaves of budding Spring,
   Are saturated not--nor Love with tears.--VIRGIL'S "Gallus".
   
   Count Maddalo is a Venetian nobleman of ancient family and of great
   fortune, who, without mixing much in the society of his countrymen,
   resides chiefly at his magnificent palace in that city. He is a person
   of the most consummate genius, and capable, if he would direct his
   energies to such an end, of becoming the redeemer of his degraded
   country. But it is his weakness to be proud: he derives, from a
   comparison of his own extraordinary mind with the dwarfish intellects
   that surround him, an intense apprehension of the nothingness of human
   life. His passions and his powers are incomparably greater than those
   of other men; and, instead of the latter having been employed in
   curbing the former, they have mutually lent each other strength. His
   ambition preys upon itself, for want of objects which it can consider
   worthy of exertion. I say that Maddalo is proud, because I can find no
   other word to express the concentred and impatient feelings which
   consume him; but it is on his own hopes and affections only that he
   seems to trample, for in social life no human being can be more
   gentle, patient and unassuming than Maddalo. He is cheerful, frank and
   witty. His more serious conversation is a sort of intoxication; men
   are held by it as by a spell. He has travelled much; and there is an
   inexpressible charm in his relation of his adventures in different
   countries.
   
   Julian is an Englishman of good family, passionately attached to those
   philosophical notions which assert the power of man over his own mind,
   and the immense improvements of which, by the extinction of certain
   moral superstitions, human society may be yet susceptible. Without
   concealing the evil in the world he is for ever speculating how good
   may be made superior. He is a complete infidel, and a scoffer at all
   things reputed holy; and Maddalo takes a wicked pleasure in drawing
   out his taunts against religion. What Maddalo thinks on these matters
   is not exactly known. Julian, in spite of his heterodox opinions, is
   conjectured by his friends to possess some good qualities. How far
   this is possible the pious reader will determine. Julian is rather
   serious.
   
   Of the Maniac I can give no information. He seems, by his own account,
   to have been disappointed in love. He was evidently a very cultivated
   and amiable person when in his right senses. His story, told at
   length, might be like many other stories of the same kind: the
   unconnected exclamations of his agony will perhaps be found a
   sufficient comment for the text of every heart.
   
   
   I rode one evening with Count Maddalo
   Upon the bank of land which breaks the flow
   Of Adria towards Venice: a bare strand
   Of hillocks, heaped from ever-shifting sand,
   Matted with thistles and amphibious weeds,                           _5
   Such as from earth's embrace the salt ooze breeds,
   Is this; an uninhabited sea-side,
   Which the lone fisher, when his nets are dried,
   Abandons; and no other object breaks
   The waste, but one dwarf tree and some few stakes                    _10
   Broken and unrepaired, and the tide makes
   A narrow space of level sand thereon,
   Where 'twas our wont to ride while day went down.
   This ride was my delight. I love all waste
   And solitary places; where we taste                                  _15
   The pleasure of believing what we see
   Is boundless, as we wish our souls to be:
   And such was this wide ocean, and this shore
   More barren than its billows; and yet more
   Than all, with a remembered friend I love                            _20
   To ride as then I rode;--for the winds drove
   The living spray along the sunny air
   Into our faces; the blue heavens were bare,
   Stripped to their depths by the awakening north;
   And, from the waves, sound like delight broke forth                  _25
   Harmonising with solitude, and sent
   Into our hearts aereal merriment.
   So, as we rode, we talked; and the swift thought,
   Winging itself with laughter, lingered not,
   But flew from brain to brain,--such glee was ours,                   _30
   Charged with light memories of remembered hours,
   None slow enough for sadness: till we came
   Homeward, which always makes the spirit tame.
   This day had been cheerful but cold, and now
   The sun was sinking, and the wind also.                              _35
   Our talk grew somewhat serious, as may be
   Talk interrupted with such raillery
   As mocks itself, because it cannot scorn
   The thoughts it would extinguish: --'twas forlorn,
   Yet pleasing, such as once, so poets tell,                           _40
   The devils held within the dales of Hell
   Concerning God, freewill and destiny:
   Of all that earth has been or yet may be,
   All that vain men imagine or believe,
   Or hope can paint or suffering may achieve,                          _45
   We descanted; and I (for ever still
   Is it not wise to make the best of ill?)
   Argued against despondency, but pride
   Made my companion take the darker side.
   The sense that he was greater than his kind                          _50
   Had struck, methinks, his eagle spirit blind
   By gazing on its own exceeding light.
   Meanwhile the sun paused ere it should alight,
   Over the horizon of the mountains;--Oh,
   How beautiful is sunset, when the glow                               _55
   Of Heaven descends upon a land like thee,
   Thou Paradise of exiles, Italy!
   Thy mountains, seas and vineyards, and the towers
   Of cities they encircle!--it was ours
   To stand on thee, beholding it: and then,                            _60
   Just where we had dismounted, the Count's men
   Were waiting for us with the gondola.--
   As those who pause on some delightful way
   Though bent on pleasant pilgrimage, we stood
   Looking upon the evening, and the flood                              _65
   Which lay between the city and the shore,
   Paved with the image of the sky...the hoar
   And aery Alps towards the North appeared
   Through mist, an heaven-sustaining bulwark reared
   Between the East and West; and half the sky                          _70
   Was roofed with clouds of rich emblazonry
   Dark purple at the zenith, which still grew
   Down the steep West into a wondrous hue
   Brighter than burning gold, even to the rent
   Where the swift sun yet paused in his descent                        _75
   Among the many-folded hills: they were
   Those famous Euganean hills, which bear,
   As seen from Lido thro' the harbour piles,
   The likeness of a clump of peaked isles--
   And then--as if the Earth and Sea had been                           _80
   Dissolved into one lake of fire, were seen
   Those mountains towering as from waves of flame
   Around the vaporous sun, from which there came
   The inmost purple spirit of light, and made
   Their very peaks transparent. 'Ere it fade,'                         _85
   Said my companion, 'I will show you soon
   A better station'--so, o'er the lagune
   We glided; and from that funereal bark
   I leaned, and saw the city, and could mark
   How from their many isles, in evening's gleam,                       _90
   Its temples and its palaces did seem
   Like fabrics of enchantment piled to Heaven.
   I was about to speak, when--'We are even
   Now at the point I meant,' said Maddalo,
   And bade the gondolieri cease to row.                                _95
   'Look, Julian, on the west, and listen well
   If you hear not a deep and heavy bell.'
   I looked, and saw between us and the sun
   A building on an island; such a one
   As age to age might add, for uses vile,                              _100
   A windowless, deformed and dreary pile;
   And on the top an open tower, where hung
   A bell, which in the radiance swayed and swung;
   We could just hear its hoarse and iron tongue:
   The broad sun sunk behind it, and it tolled                          _105
   In strong and black relief.--'What we behold
   Shall be the madhouse and its belfry tower,'
   Said Maddalo, 'and ever at this hour
   Those who may cross the water, hear that bell
   Which calls the maniacs, each one from his cell,                     _110
   To vespers.'--'As much skill as need to pray
   In thanks or hope for their dark lot have they
   To their stern maker,' I replied. 'O ho!
   You talk as in years past,' said Maddalo.
   ''Tis strange men change not. You were ever still                    _115
   Among Christ's flock a perilous infidel,
   A wolf for the meek lambs--if you can't swim
   Beware of Providence.' I looked on him,
   But the gay smile had faded in his eye.
   'And such,'--he cried, 'is our mortality,                            _120
   And this must be the emblem and the sign
   Of what should be eternal and divine!--
   And like that black and dreary bell, the soul,
   Hung in a heaven-illumined tower, must toll
   Our thoughts and our desires to meet below                           _125
   Round the rent heart and pray--as madmen do
   For what? they know not,--till the night of death
   As sunset that strange vision, severeth
   Our memory from itself, and us from all
   We sought and yet were baffled.' I recall                            _130
   The sense of what he said, although I mar
   The force of his expressions. The broad star
   Of day meanwhile had sunk behind the hill,
   And the black bell became invisible,
   And the red tower looked gray, and all between                       _135
   The churches, ships and palaces were seen
   Huddled in gloom;--into the purple sea
   The orange hues of heaven sunk silently.
   We hardly spoke, and soon the gondola
   Conveyed me to my lodging by the way.                                _140
   The following morn was rainy, cold, and dim:
   Ere Maddalo arose, I called on him,
   And whilst I waited with his child I played;
   A lovelier toy sweet Nature never made;
   A serious, subtle, wild, yet gentle being,                           _145
   Graceful without design and unforeseeing,
   With eyes--Oh speak not of her eyes!--which seem
   Twin mirrors of Italian Heaven, yet gleam
   With such deep meaning, as we never see
   But in the human countenance: with me                                _150
   She was a special favourite: I had nursed
   Her fine and feeble limbs when she came first
   To this bleak world; and she yet seemed to know
   On second sight her ancient playfellow,
   Less changed than she was by six months or so;                       _155
   For after her first shyness was worn out
   We sate there, rolling billiard balls about,
   When the Count entered. Salutations past--
   'The word you spoke last night might well have cast
   A darkness on my spirit--if man be                                   _160
   The passive thing you say, I should not see
   Much harm in the religions and old saws
   (Tho' I may never own such leaden laws)
   Which break a teachless nature to the yoke:
   Mine is another faith.'--thus much I spoke                           _165
   And noting he replied not, added: 'See
   This lovely child, blithe, innocent and free;
   She spends a happy time with little care,
   While we to such sick thoughts subjected are
   As came on you last night. It is our will                            _170
   That thus enchains us to permitted ill--
   We might be otherwise--we might be all
   We dream of happy, high, majestical.
   Where is the love, beauty, and truth we seek,
   But in our mind? and if we were not weak                             _175
   Should we be less in deed than in desire?'
   'Ay, if we were not weak--and we aspire
   How vainly to be strong!' said Maddalo:
   'You talk Utopia.' 'It remains to know,'
   I then rejoined, 'and those who try may find                         _180
   How strong the chains are which our spirit bind;
   Brittle perchance as straw...We are assured
   Much may be conquered, much may be endured,
   Of what degrades and crushes us. We know
   That we have power over ourselves to do                              _185
   And suffer--what, we know not till we try;
   But something nobler than to live and die--
   So taught those kings of old philosophy
   Who reigned, before Religion made men blind;
   And those who suffer with their suffering kind                       _190
   Yet feel their faith, religion.' 'My dear friend,'
   Said Maddalo, 'my judgement will not bend
   To your opinion, though I think you might
   Make such a system refutation-tight
   As far as words go. I knew one like you                              _195
   Who to this city came some months ago,
   With whom I argued in this sort, and he
   Is now gone mad,--and so he answered me,--
   Poor fellow! but if you would like to go,
   We'll visit him, and his wild talk will show                         _200
   How vain are such aspiring theories.'
   'I hope to prove the induction otherwise,
   And that a want of that true theory, still,
   Which seeks a "soul of goodness" in things ill
   Or in himself or others, has thus bowed                              _205
   His being--there are some by nature proud,
   Who patient in all else demand but this--
   To love and be beloved with gentleness;
   And being scorned, what wonder if they die
   Some living death? this is not destiny                               _210
   But man's own wilful ill.'
   As thus I spoke
   Servants announced the gondola, and we
   Through the fast-falling rain and high-wrought sea
   Sailed to the island where the madhouse stands.
   We disembarked. The clap of tortured hands,                          _215
   Fierce yells and howlings and lamentings keen,
   And laughter where complaint had merrier been,
   Moans, shrieks, and curses, and blaspheming prayers
   Accosted us. We climbed the oozy stairs
   Into an old courtyard. I heard on high,                              _220
   Then, fragments of most touching melody,
   But looking up saw not the singer there--
   Through the black bars in the tempestuous air
   I saw, like weeds on a wrecked palace growing,
   Long tangled locks flung wildly forth, and flowing,                  _225
   Of those who on a sudden were beguiled
   Into strange silence, and looked forth and smiled
   Hearing sweet sounds. Then I: 'Methinks there were
   A cure of these with patience and kind care,
   If music can thus move...but what is he                              _230
   Whom we seek here?' 'Of his sad history
   I know but this,' said Maddalo: 'he came
   To Venice a dejected man, and fame
   Said he was wealthy, or he had been so;
   Some thought the loss of fortune wrought him woe;                    _235
   But he was ever talking in such sort
   As you do--far more sadly--he seemed hurt,
   Even as a man with his peculiar wrong,
   To hear but of the oppression of the strong,
   Or those absurd deceits (I think with you                            _240
   In some respects, you know) which carry through
   The excellent impostors of this earth
   When they outface detection--he had worth,
   Poor fellow! but a humorist in his way'--
   'Alas, what drove him mad?' 'I cannot say:                           _245
   A lady came with him from France, and when
   She left him and returned, he wandered then
   About yon lonely isles of desert sand
   Till he grew wild--he had no cash or land
   Remaining,--the police had brought him here--                        _250
   Some fancy took him and he would not bear
   Removal; so I fitted up for him
   Those rooms beside the sea, to please his whim,
   And sent him busts and books and urns for flowers,
   Which had adorned his life in happier hours,                         _255
   And instruments of music--you may guess
   A stranger could do little more or less
   For one so gentle and unfortunate:
   And those are his sweet strains which charm the weight
   From madmen's chains, and make this Hell appear                      _260
   A heaven of sacred silence, hushed to hear.'--
   'Nay, this was kind of you--he had no claim,
   As the world says'--'None--but the very same
   Which I on all mankind were I as he
   Fallen to such deep reverse;--his melody                             _265
   Is interrupted--now we hear the din
   Of madmen, shriek on shriek, again begin;
   Let us now visit him; after this strain
   He ever communes with himself again,
   And sees nor hears not any.' Having said                             _270
   These words, we called the keeper, and he led
   To an apartment opening on the sea--
   There the poor wretch was sitting mournfully
   Near a piano, his pale fingers twined
   One with the other, and the ooze and wind                            _275
   Rushed through an open casement, and did sway
   His hair, and starred it with the brackish spray;
   His head was leaning on a music book,
   And he was muttering, and his lean limbs shook;
   His lips were pressed against a folded leaf                          _280
   In hue too beautiful for health, and grief
   Smiled in their motions as they lay apart--
   As one who wrought from his own fervid heart
   The eloquence of passion, soon he raised
   His sad meek face and eyes lustrous and glazed                       _285
   And spoke--sometimes as one who wrote, and thought
   His words might move some heart that heeded not,
   If sent to distant lands: and then as one
   Reproaching deeds never to be undone
   With wondering self-compassion; then his speech                      _290
   Was lost in grief, and then his words came each
   Unmodulated, cold, expressionless,--
   But that from one jarred accent you might guess
   It was despair made them so uniform:
   And all the while the loud and gusty storm                           _295
   Hissed through the window, and we stood behind
   Stealing his accents from the envious wind
   Unseen. I yet remember what he said
   Distinctly: such impression his words made.
   
   'Month after month,' he cried, 'to bear this load                    _300
   And as a jade urged by the whip and goad
   To drag life on, which like a heavy chain
   Lengthens behind with many a link of pain!--
   And not to speak my grief--O, not to dare
   To give a human voice to my despair,                                 _305
   But live, and move, and, wretched thing! smile on
   As if I never went aside to groan,
   And wear this mask of falsehood even to those
   Who are most dear--not for my own repose--
   Alas! no scorn or pain or hate could be                              _310
   So heavy as that falsehood is to me--
   But that I cannot bear more altered faces
   Than needs must be, more changed and cold embraces,
   More misery, disappointment, and mistrust
   To own me for their father...Would the dust                          _315
   Were covered in upon my body now!
   That the life ceased to toil within my brow!
   And then these thoughts would at the least be fled;
   Let us not fear such pain can vex the dead.
   
   'What Power delights to torture us? I know                           _320
   That to myself I do not wholly owe
   What now I suffer, though in part I may.
   Alas! none strewed sweet flowers upon the way
   Where wandering heedlessly, I met pale Pain
   My shadow, which will leave me not again--                           _325
   If I have erred, there was no joy in error,
   But pain and insult and unrest and terror;
   I have not as some do, bought penitence
   With pleasure, and a dark yet sweet offence,
   For then,--if love and tenderness and truth                          _330
   Had overlived hope's momentary youth,
   My creed should have redeemed me from repenting;
   But loathed scorn and outrage unrelenting
   Met love excited by far other seeming
   Until the end was gained...as one from dreaming                      _335
   Of sweetest peace, I woke, and found my state
   Such as it is.--
   'O Thou, my spirit's mate
   Who, for thou art compassionate and wise,
   Wouldst pity me from thy most gentle eyes
   If this sad writing thou shouldst ever see--                         _340
   My secret groans must be unheard by thee,
   Thou wouldst weep tears bitter as blood to know
   Thy lost friend's incommunicable woe.
   
   'Ye few by whom my nature has been weighed
   In friendship, let me not that name degrade                          _345
   By placing on your hearts the secret load
   Which crushes mine to dust. There is one road
   To peace and that is truth, which follow ye!
   Love sometimes leads astray to misery.
   Yet think not though subdued--and I may well                         _350
   Say that I am subdued--that the full Hell
   Within me would infect the untainted breast
   Of sacred nature with its own unrest;
   As some perverted beings think to find
   In scorn or hate a medicine for the mind                             _355
   Which scorn or hate have wounded--O how vain!
   The dagger heals not but may rend again...
   Believe that I am ever still the same
   In creed as in resolve, and what may tame
   My heart, must leave the understanding free,                         _360
   Or all would sink in this keen agony--
   Nor dream that I will join the vulgar cry;
   Or with my silence sanction tyranny;
   Or seek a moment's shelter from my pain
   In any madness which the world calls gain,                           _365
   Ambition or revenge or thoughts as stern
   As those which make me what I am; or turn
   To avarice or misanthropy or lust...
   Heap on me soon, O grave, thy welcome dust!
   Till then the dungeon may demand its prey,                           _370
   And Poverty and Shame may meet and say--
   Halting beside me on the public way--
   "That love-devoted youth is ours--let's sit
   Beside him--he may live some six months yet."
   Or the red scaffold, as our country bends,                           _375
   May ask some willing victim; or ye friends
   May fall under some sorrow which this heart
   Or hand may share or vanquish or avert;
   I am prepared--in truth, with no proud joy--
   To do or suffer aught, as when a boy                                 _380
   I did devote to justice and to love
   My nature, worthless now!...
   'I must remove
   A veil from my pent mind. 'Tis torn aside!
   O, pallid as Death's dedicated bride,
   Thou mockery which art sitting by my side,                           _385
   Am I not wan like thee? at the grave's call
   I haste, invited to thy wedding-ball
   To greet the ghastly paramour, for whom
   Thou hast deserted me...and made the tomb
   Thy bridal bed...But I beside your feet                              _390
   Will lie and watch ye from my winding-sheet--
   Thus...wide awake tho' dead...yet stay, O stay!
   Go not so soon--I know not what I say--
   Hear but my reasons...I am mad, I fear,
   My fancy is o'erwrought...thou art not here...                       _395
   Pale art thou, 'tis most true...but thou art gone,
   Thy work is finished...I am left alone!--
   ...
   'Nay, was it I who wooed thee to this breast
   Which, like a serpent, thou envenomest
   As in repayment of the warmth it lent?                               _400
   Didst thou not seek me for thine own content?
   Did not thy love awaken mine? I thought
   That thou wert she who said, "You kiss me not
   Ever, I fear you do not love me now"--
   In truth I loved even to my overthrow                                _405
   Her, who would fain forget these words: but they
   Cling to her mind, and cannot pass away.
   ...
   'You say that I am proud--that when I speak
   My lip is tortured with the wrongs which break
   The spirit it expresses...Never one                                  _410
   Humbled himself before, as I have done!
   Even the instinctive worm on which we tread
   Turns, though it wound not--then with prostrate head
   Sinks in the dusk and writhes like me--and dies?
   No: wears a living death of agonies!                                 _415
   As the slow shadows of the pointed grass
   Mark the eternal periods, his pangs pass,
   Slow, ever-moving,--making moments be
   As mine seem--each an immortality!
   ...
   'That you had never seen me--never heard                             _420
   My voice, and more than all had ne'er endured
   The deep pollution of my loathed embrace--
   That your eyes ne'er had lied love in my face--
   That, like some maniac monk, I had torn out
   The nerves of manhood by their bleeding root                         _425
   With mine own quivering fingers, so that ne'er
   Our hearts had for a moment mingled there
   To disunite in horror--these were not
   With thee, like some suppressed and hideous thought
   Which flits athwart our musings, but can find                        _430
   No rest within a pure and gentle mind...
   Thou sealedst them with many a bare broad word,
   And searedst my memory o'er them,--for I heard
   And can forget not...they were ministered
   One after one, those curses. Mix them up                             _435
   Like self-destroying poisons in one cup,
   And they will make one blessing which thou ne'er
   Didst imprecate for, on me,--death.
   ...
   'It were
   A cruel punishment for one most cruel,
   If such can love, to make that love the fuel                         _440
   Of the mind's hell; hate, scorn, remorse, despair:
   But ME--whose heart a stranger's tear might wear
   As water-drops the sandy fountain-stone,
   Who loved and pitied all things, and could moan
   For woes which others hear not, and could see                        _445
   The absent with the glance of phantasy,
   And with the poor and trampled sit and weep,
   Following the captive to his dungeon deep;
   ME--who am as a nerve o'er which do creep
   The else unfelt oppressions of this earth,                           _450
   And was to thee the flame upon thy hearth,
   When all beside was cold--that thou on me
   Shouldst rain these plagues of blistering agony--
   Such curses are from lips once eloquent
   With love's too partial praise--let none relent                      _455
   Who intend deeds too dreadful for a name
   Henceforth, if an example for the same
   They seek...for thou on me lookedst so, and so--
   And didst speak thus...and thus...I live to show
   How much men bear and die not!
   ...
   'Thou wilt tell                                                      _460
   With the grimace of hate, how horrible
   It was to meet my love when thine grew less;
   Thou wilt admire how I could e'er address
   Such features to love's work...this taunt, though true,
   (For indeed Nature nor in form nor hue                               _465
   Bestowed on me her choicest workmanship)
   Shall not be thy defence...for since thy lip
   Met mine first, years long past, since thine eye kindled
   With soft fire under mine, I have not dwindled
   Nor changed in mind or body, or in aught                             _470
   But as love changes what it loveth not
   After long years and many trials.
   
   'How vain
   Are words! I thought never to speak again,
   Not even in secret,--not to mine own heart--
   But from my lips the unwilling accents start,                        _475
   And from my pen the words flow as I write,
   Dazzling my eyes with scalding tears...my sight
   Is dim to see that charactered in vain
   On this unfeeling leaf which burns the brain
   And eats into it...blotting all things fair                          _480
   And wise and good which time had written there.
   
   'Those who inflict must suffer, for they see
   The work of their own hearts, and this must be
   Our chastisement or recompense--O child!
   I would that thine were like to be more mild                         _485
   For both our wretched sakes...for thine the most
   Who feelest already all that thou hast lost
   Without the power to wish it thine again;
   And as slow years pass, a funereal train
   Each with the ghost of some lost hope or friend                      _490
   Following it like its shadow, wilt thou bend
   No thought on my dead memory?
   ...
   'Alas, love!
   Fear me not...against thee I would not move
   A finger in despite. Do I not live
   That thou mayst have less bitter cause to grieve?                    _495
   I give thee tears for scorn and love for hate;
   And that thy lot may be less desolate
   Than his on whom thou tramplest, I refrain
   From that sweet sleep which medicines all pain.
   Then, when thou speakest of me, never say                            _500
   "He could forgive not." Here I cast away
   All human passions, all revenge, all pride;
   I think, speak, act no ill; I do but hide
   Under these words, like embers, every spark
   Of that which has consumed me--quick and dark                        _505
   The grave is yawning...as its roof shall cover
   My limbs with dust and worms under and over
   So let Oblivion hide this grief...the air
   Closes upon my accents, as despair
   Upon my heart--let death upon despair!'                              _510
   
   He ceased, and overcome leant back awhile,
   Then rising, with a melancholy smile
   Went to a sofa, and lay down, and slept
   A heavy sleep, and in his dreams he wept
   And muttered some familiar name, and we                              _515
   Wept without shame in his society.
   I think I never was impressed so much;
   The man who were not, must have lacked a touch
   Of human nature...then we lingered not,
   Although our argument was quite forgot,                              _520
   But calling the attendants, went to dine
   At Maddalo's; yet neither cheer nor wine
   Could give us spirits, for we talked of him
   And nothing else, till daylight made stars dim;
   And we agreed his was some dreadful ill                              _525
   Wrought on him boldly, yet unspeakable,
   By a dear friend; some deadly change in love
   Of one vowed deeply which he dreamed not of;
   For whose sake he, it seemed, had fixed a blot
   Of falsehood on his mind which flourished not                        _530
   But in the light of all-beholding truth;
   And having stamped this canker on his youth
   She had abandoned him--and how much more
   Might be his woe, we guessed not--he had store
   Of friends and fortune once, as we could guess                       _535
   From his nice habits and his gentleness;
   These were now lost...it were a grief indeed
   If he had changed one unsustaining reed
   For all that such a man might else adorn.
   The colours of his mind seemed yet unworn;                           _540
   For the wild language of his grief was high,
   Such as in measure were called poetry;
   And I remember one remark which then
   Maddalo made. He said: 'Most wretched men
   Are cradled into poetry by wrong,                                    _545
   They learn in suffering what they teach in song.'
   
   If I had been an unconnected man,
   I, from this moment, should have formed some plan
   Never to leave sweet Venice,--for to me
   It was delight to ride by the lone sea;                              _550
   And then, the town is silent--one may write
   Or read in gondolas by day or night,
   Having the little brazen lamp alight,
   Unseen, uninterrupted; books are there,
   Pictures, and casts from all those statues fair                      _555
   Which were twin-born with poetry, and all
   We seek in towns, with little to recall
   Regrets for the green country. I might sit
   In Maddalo's great palace, and his wit
   And subtle talk would cheer the winter night                         _560
   And make me know myself, and the firelight
   Would flash upon our faces, till the day
   Might dawn and make me wonder at my stay:
   But I had friends in London too: the chief
   Attraction here, was that I sought relief                            _565
   From the deep tenderness that maniac wrought
   Within me--'twas perhaps an idle thought--
   But I imagined that if day by day
   I watched him, and but seldom went away,
   And studied all the beatings of his heart                            _570
   With zeal, as men study some stubborn art
   For their own good, and could by patience find
   An entrance to the caverns of his mind,
   I might reclaim him from this dark estate:
   In friendships I had been most fortunate--                           _575
   Yet never saw I one whom I would call
   More willingly my friend; and this was all
   Accomplished not; such dreams of baseless good
   Oft come and go in crowds or solitude
   And leave no trace--but what I now designed                          _580
   Made for long years impression on my mind.
   The following morning, urged by my affairs,
   I left bright Venice.
   After many years
   And many changes I returned; the name
   Of Venice, and its aspect, was the same;                             _585
   But Maddalo was travelling far away
   Among the mountains of Armenia.
   His dog was dead. His child had now become
   A woman; such as it has been my doom
   To meet with few,--a wonder of this earth,                           _590
   Where there is little of transcendent worth,
   Like one of Shakespeare's women: kindly she,
   And, with a manner beyond courtesy,
   Received her father's friend; and when I asked
   Of the lorn maniac, she her memory tasked,                           _595
   And told as she had heard the mournful tale:
   'That the poor sufferer's health began to fail
   Two years from my departure, but that then
   The lady who had left him, came again.
   Her mien had been imperious, but she now                             _600
   Looked meek--perhaps remorse had brought her low.
   Her coming made him better, and they stayed
   Together at my father's--for I played,
   As I remember, with the lady's shawl--
   I might be six years old--but after all                              _605
   She left him.'...'Why, her heart must have been tough:
   How did it end?' 'And was not this enough?
   They met--they parted.'--'Child, is there no more?'
   'Something within that interval which bore
   The stamp of WHY they parted, HOW they met:                          _610
   Yet if thine aged eyes disdain to wet
   Those wrinkled cheeks with youth's remembered tears,
   Ask me no more, but let the silent years
   Be closed and cered over their memory
   As yon mute marble where their corpses lie.'                         _615
   I urged and questioned still, she told me how
   All happened--but the cold world shall not know.
   
   
   CANCELLED FRAGMENTS OF JULIAN AND MADDALO.
   
   'What think you the dead are?' 'Why, dust and clay,
   What should they be?' ''Tis the last hour of day.
   Look on the west, how beautiful it is                                _620
   Vaulted with radiant vapours! The deep bliss
   Of that unutterable light has made
   The edges of that cloud ... fade
   Into a hue, like some harmonious thought,
   Wasting itself on that which it had wrought,                         _625
   Till it dies ... and ... between
   The light hues of the tender, pure, serene,
   And infinite tranquillity of heaven.
   Ay, beautiful! but when not...'
   ...
   'Perhaps the only comfort which remains                              _630
   Is the unheeded clanking of my chains,
   The which I make, and call it melody.'
   
   
   NOTES:
   _45 may Hunt manuscript; can 1824.
   _99 a one Hunt manuscript; an one 1824.
   _105 sunk  Hunt manuscript; sank 1824.
   _108 ever Hunt manuscript; even 1824.
   _119 in Hunt manuscript; from 1824.
   _124 a Hunt manuscript; an 1824.
   _171 That Hunt manuscript; Which 1824.
   _175 mind Hunt manuscript; minds 1824.
   _179 know 1824; see Hunt manuscript.
   _188 those Hunt manuscript; the 1824.
   _191 their Hunt manuscript; this 1824.
   _218 Moons, etc., Hunt manuscript;
        The line is wanting in editions 1824 and 1839.
   _237 far Hunt manuscript; but 1824.
   _270 nor Hunt manuscript; and 1824.
   _292 cold Hunt manuscript; and 1824.
   _318 least Hunt manuscript; last 1824.
   _323 sweet Hunt manuscript; fresh 1824.
   _356 have Hunt manuscript; hath 1824.
   _361 in this keen Hunt manuscript; under this 1824.
   _362 cry Hunt manuscript; eye 1824.
   _372 on Hunt manuscript; in 1824.
   _388 greet Hunt manuscript; meet 1824.
   _390 your Hunt manuscript; thy 1824.
   _417 his Hunt manuscript; its 1824.
   _446 glance Hunt manuscript; glass 1824.
   _447 with Hunt manuscript; near 1824.
   _467 lip Hunt manuscript; life 1824.
   _483 this Hunt manuscript; that 1824.
   _493 I would Hunt manuscript; I'd 1824.
   _510 despair Hunt manuscript; my care 1839.
   _511 leant] See Editor's Note.
   _518 were Hunt manuscript; was 1839.
   _525 his Hunt manuscript; it 1824.
   _530 on Hunt manuscript; in 1824.
   _537 were now Hunt manuscript; now were 1824.
   _588 regrets Hunt manuscript; regret 1824.
   _569 but Hunt manuscript;
        wanting in editions 1824 and 1839.
   _574 his 1824; this [?] Hunt manuscript.
   
   
   NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   From the Baths of Lucca, in 1818, Shelley visited Venice; and,
   circumstances rendering it eligible that we should remain a few weeks
   in the neighbourhood of that city, he accepted the offer of Lord
   Byron, who lent him the use of a villa he rented near Este; and he
   sent for his family from Lucca to join him.
   
   I Capuccini was a villa built on the site of a Capuchin convent,
   demolished when the French suppressed religious houses; it was
   situated on the very overhanging brow of a low hill at the foot of a
   range of higher ones. The house was cheerful and pleasant; a
   vine-trellised walk, a pergola, as it is called in Italian, led from
   the hall-door to a summer-house at the end of the garden, which
   Shelley made his study, and in which he began the "Prometheus"; and
   here also, as he mentions in a letter, he wrote "Julian and Maddalo".
   A slight ravine, with a road in its depth, divided the garden from the
   hill, on which stood the ruins of the ancient castle of Este, whose
   dark massive wall gave forth an echo, and from whose ruined crevices
   owls and bats flitted forth at night, as the crescent moon sunk behind
   the black and heavy battlements. We looked from the garden over the
   wide plain of Lombardy, bounded to the west by the far Apennines,
   while to the east the horizon was lost in misty distance. After the
   picturesque but limited view of mountain, ravine, and chestnut-wood,
   at the Baths of Lucca, there was something infinitely gratifying to
   the eye in the wide range of prospect commanded by our new abode.
   
   Our first misfortune, of the kind from which we soon suffered even
   more severely, happened here. Our little girl, an infant in whose
   small features I fancied that I traced great resemblance to her
   father, showed symptoms of suffering from the heat of the climate.
   Teething increased her illness and danger. We were at Este, and when
   we became alarmed, hastened to Venice for the best advice. When we
   arrived at Fusina, we found that we had forgotten our passport, and
   the soldiers on duty attempted to prevent our crossing the laguna; but
   they could not resist Shelley's impetuosity at such a moment. We had
   scarcely arrived at Venice before life fled from the little sufferer,
   and we returned to Este to weep her loss.
   
   After a few weeks spent in this retreat, which was interspersed by
   visits to Venice, we proceeded southward.
   
   ***
   
   
   PROMETHEUS UNBOUND.
   
   A LYRICAL DRAMA IN FOUR ACTS.
   
   AUDISNE HAEC AMPHIARAE, SUB TERRAM ABDITE?
   
   [Composed at Este, September, October, 1818 (Act 1); at Rome,
   March-April 6, 1819 (Acts 2, 3); at Florence, close of 1819 (Act 4).
   Published by C. and J. Ollier, London, summer of 1820. Sources of the
   text are (1) edition of 1820; (2) text in "Poetical Works", 1839,
   prepared with the aid of a list of errata in (1) written out by
   Shelley; (3) a fair draft in Shelley's autograph, now in the Bodleian.
   This has been carefully collated by Mr. C.D. Locock, who prints the
   result in his "Examination of the Shelley Manuscripts in the Bodleian
   Library", Oxford (Clarendon Press), 1903. Our text is that of 1820,
   modified by edition 1839, and by the Bodleian fair copy. In the
   following notes B = the Bodleian manuscript; 1820 = the editio
   princeps, printed by Marchant for C. and J. Ollier, London; and 1839 =
   the text as edited by Mrs. Shelley in the "Poetical Works", 1st and
   2nd editions, 1839. The reader should consult the notes on the Play at
   the end of the volume.]
   
   
   PREFACE.
   
   The Greek tragic writers, in __select__ing as their subject any portion of
   their national history or mythology, employed in their treatment of it
   a certain arbitrary discretion. They by no means conceived themselves
   bound to adhere to the common interpretation or to imitate in story as
   in title their rivals and predecessors. Such a system would have
   amounted to a resignation of those claims to preference over their
   competitors which incited the composition. The Agamemnonian story was
   exhibited on the Athenian theatre with as many variations as dramas.
   
   I have presumed to employ a similar license. The "Prometheus Unbound"
   of Aeschylus supposed the reconciliation of Jupiter with his victim as
   the price of the disclosure of the danger threatened to his empire by
   the consummation of his marriage with Thetis. Thetis, according to
   this view of the subject, was given in marriage to Peleus, and
   Prometheus, by the permission of Jupiter, delivered from his captivity
   by Hercules. Had I framed my story on this model, I should have done
   no more than have attempted to restore the lost drama of Aeschylus; an
   ambition which, if my preference to this mode of treating the subject
   had incited me to cherish, the recollection of the high comparison
   such an attempt would challenge might well abate. But, in truth, I was
   averse from a catastrophe so feeble as that of reconciling the
   Champion with the Oppressor of mankind. The moral interest of the
   fable, which is so powerfully sustained by the sufferings and
   endurance of Prometheus, would be annihilated if we could conceive of
   him as unsaying his high language and quailing before his successful
   and perfidious adversary. The only imaginary being resembling in any
   degree Prometheus, is Satan; and Prometheus is, in my judgement, a
   more poetical character than Satan, because, in addition to courage,
   and majesty, and firm and patient opposition to omnipotent force, he
   is susceptible of being described as exempt from the taints of
   ambition, envy, revenge, and a desire for personal aggrandisement,
   which, in the Hero of "Paradise Lost", interfere with the interest.
   The character of Satan engenders in the mind a pernicious casuistry
   which leads us to weigh his faults with his wrongs, and to excuse the
   former because the latter exceed all measure. In the minds of those
   who consider that magnificent fiction with a religious feeling it
   engenders something worse. But Prometheus is, as it were, the type of
   the highest perfection of moral and intellectual nature, impelled by
   the purest and the truest motives to the best and noblest ends.
   
   This Poem was chiefly written upon the mountainous ruins of the Baths
   of Caracalla, among the flowery glades, and thickets of odoriferous
   blossoming trees, which are extended in ever winding labyrinths upon
   its immense platforms and dizzy arches suspended in the air. The
   bright blue sky of Rome, and the effect of the vigorous awakening
   spring in that divinest climate, and the new life with which it
   drenches the spirits even to intoxication, were the inspiration of
   this drama.
   
   The imagery which I have employed will be found, in many instances, to
   have been drawn from the operations of the human mind, or from those
   external actions by which they are expressed. This is unusual in
   modern poetry, although Dante and Shakespeare are full of instances of
   the same kind: Dante indeed more than any other poet, and with greater
   success. But the Greek poets, as writers to whom no resource of
   awakening the sympathy of their contemporaries was unknown, were in
   the habitual use of this power; and it is the study of their works
   (since a higher merit would probably be denied me) to which I am
   willing that my readers should impute this singularity.
   
   One word is due in candour to the degree in which the study of
   contemporary writings may have tinged my composition, for such has
   been a topic of censure with regard to poems far more popular, and
   indeed more deservedly popular, than mine. It is impossible that any
   one who inhabits the same age with such writers as those who stand in
   the foremost ranks of our own, can conscientiously assure himself that
   his language and tone of thought may not have been modified by the
   study of the productions of those extraordinary intellects. It is
   true, that, not the spirit of their genius, but the forms in which it
   has manifested itself, are due less to the peculiarities of their own
   minds than to the peculiarity of the moral and intellectual condition
   of the minds among which they have been produced. Thus a number of
   writers possess the form, whilst they want the spirit of those whom,
   it is alleged, they imitate; because the former is the endowment of
   the age in which they live, and the latter must be the uncommunicated
   lightning of their own mind.
   
   The peculiar style of intense and comprehensive imagery which
   distinguishes the modern literature of England has not been, as a
   general power, the product of the imitation of any particular writer.
   The mass of capabilities remains at every period materially the same;
   the circumstances which awaken it to action perpetually change. If
   England were divided into forty republics, each equal in population
   and extent to Athens, there is no reason to suppose but that, under
   institutions not more perfect than those of Athens, each would produce
   philosophers and poets equal to those who (if we except Shakespeare)
   have never been surpassed. We owe the great writers of the golden age
   of our literature to that fervid awakening of the public mind which
   shook to dust the oldest and most oppressive form of the Christian
   religion. We owe Milton to the progress and development of the same
   spirit: the sacred Milton was, let it ever be remembered, a
   republican, and a bold inquirer into morals and religion. The great
   writers of our own age are, we have reason to suppose, the companions
   and forerunners of some unimagined change in our social condition or
   the opinions which cement it. The cloud of mind is discharging its
   collected lightning, and the equilibrium between institutions and
   opinions is now restoring, or is about to be restored.
   
   As to imitation, poetry is a mimetic art. It creates, but it creates
   by combination and representation. Poetical abstractions are beautiful
   and new, not because the portions of which they are composed had no
   previous existence in the mind of man or in nature, but because the
   whole produced by their combination has some intelligible and
   beautiful analogy with those sources of emotion and thought, and with
   the contemporary condition of them: one great poet is a masterpiece of
   nature which another not only ought to study but must study. He might
   as wisely and as easily determine that his mind should no longer be
   the mirror of all that is lovely in the visible universe as exclude
   from his contemplation the beautiful which exists in the writings of a
   great contemporary. The pretence of doing it would be a presumption in
   any but the greatest; the effect, even in him, would be strained,
   unnatural and ineffectual. A poet is the combined product of such
   internal powers as modify the nature of others; and of such external
   influences as excite and sustain these powers; he is not one, but
   both. Every man's mind is, in this respect, modified by all the
   objects of nature and art; by every word and every suggestion which he
   ever admitted to act upon his consciousness; it is the mirror upon
   which all forms are reflected, and in which they compose one form.
   Poets, not otherwise than philosophers, painters, sculptors and
   musicians, are, in one sense, the creators, and, in another, the
   creations, of their age. From this subjection the loftiest do not
   escape. There is a similarity between Homer and Hesiod, between
   Aeschylus and Euripides, between Virgil and Horace, between Dante and
   Petrarch, between Shakespeare and Fletcher, between Dryden and Pope;
   each has a generic resemblance under which their specific distinctions
   are arranged. If this similarity be the result of imitation, I am
   willing to confess that I have imitated.
   
   Let this opportunity be conceded to me of acknowledging that I have,
   what a Scotch philosopher characteristically terms, 'a passion for
   reforming the world:' what passion incited him to write and publish
   his book, he omits to explain. For my part I had rather be damned with
   Plato and Lord Bacon, than go to Heaven with Paley and Malthus. But it
   is a mistake to suppose that I dedicate my poetical compositions
   solely to the direct enforcement of reform, or that I consider them in
   any degree as containing a reasoned system on the theory of human
   life. Didactic poetry is my abhorrence; nothing can be equally well
   expressed in prose that is not tedious and supererogatory in verse. My
   purpose has hitherto been simply to familiarise the highly refined
   imagination of the more __select__ classes of poetical readers with
   beautiful idealisms of moral excellence; aware that until the mind can
   love, and admire, and trust, and hope, and endure, reasoned principles
   of moral conduct are seeds cast upon the highway of life which the
   unconscious passenger tramples into dust, although they would bear the
   harvest of his happiness. Should I live to accomplish what I purpose,
   that is, produce a systematical history of what appear to me to be the
   genuine elements of human society, let not the advocates of injustice
   and superstition flatter themselves that I should take Aeschylus
   rather than Plato as my model.
   
   The having spoken of myself with unaffected freedom will need little
   apology with the candid; and let the uncandid consider that they
   injure me less than their own hearts and minds by misrepresentation.
   Whatever talents a person may possess to amuse and instruct others, be
   they ever so inconsiderable, he is yet bound to exert them: if his
   attempt be ineffectual, let the punishment of an unaccomplished
   purpose have been sufficient; let none trouble themselves to heap the
   dust of oblivion upon his efforts; the pile they raise will betray his
   grave which might otherwise have been unknown.
   
   
   DRAMATIS PERSONAE.
   
   PROMETHEUS.
   DEMOGORGON.
   JUPITER.
   THE EARTH.
   OCEAN.
   APOLLO.
   MERCURY.
   OCEANIDES: ASIA, PANTHEA, IONE.
   HERCULES.
   THE PHANTASM OF JUPITER.
   THE SPIRIT OF THE EARTH.
   THE SPIRIT OF THE MOON.
   SPIRITS OF THE HOURS.
   SPIRITS. ECHOES. FAUNS. FURIES.
   
   
   ACT 1.
   
   SCENE:
   A RAVINE OF ICY ROCKS IN THE INDIAN CAUCASUS.
   PROMETHEUS IS DISCOVERED BOUND TO THE PRECIPICE.
   PANTEA AND IONE ARE SEATED AT HIS FEET.
   TIME, NIGHT.
   DURING, THE SCENE MORNING SLOWLY BREAKS.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Monarch of Gods and DAEmons, and all Spirits
   But One, who throng those bright and rolling worlds
   Which Thou and I alone of living things
   Behold with sleepless eyes! regard this Earth
   Made multitudinous with thy slaves, whom thou                        _5
   Requitest for knee-worship, prayer, and praise,
   And toil, and hecatombs of broken hearts,
   With fear and self-contempt and barren hope.
   Whilst me, who am thy foe, eyeless in hate,
   Hast thou made reign and triumph, to thy scorn,                      _10
   O'er mine own misery and thy vain revenge.
   Three thousand years of sleep-unsheltered hours,
   And moments aye divided by keen pangs
   Till they seemed years, torture and solitude,
   Scorn and despair,--these are mine empire:--                         _15
   More glorious far than that which thou surveyest
   From thine unenvied throne, O Mighty God!
   Almighty, had I deigned to share the shame
   Of thine ill tyranny, and hung not here
   Nailed to this wall of eagle-baffling mountain,                      _20
   Black, wintry, dead, unmeasured; without herb,
   Insect, or beast, or shape or sound of life.
   Ah me! alas, pain, pain ever, for ever!
   
   No change, no pause, no hope! Yet I endure.
   I ask the Earth, have not the mountains felt?                        _25
   I ask yon Heaven, the all-beholding Sun,
   Has it not seen? The Sea, in storm or calm,
   Heaven's ever-changing Shadow, spread below,
   Have its deaf waves not heard my agony?
   Ah me! alas, pain, pain ever, for ever!                              _30
   
   The crawling glaciers pierce me with the spears
   Of their moon-freezing crystals; the bright chains
   Eat with their burning cold into my bones.
   Heaven's winged hound, polluting from thy lips
   His beak in poison not his own, tears up                             _35
   My heart; and shapeless sights come wandering by,
   The ghastly people of the realm of dream,
   Mocking me: and the Earthquake-fiends are charged
   To wrench the rivets from my quivering wounds
   When the rocks split and close again behind:                         _40
   While from their loud abysses howling throng
   The genii of the storm, urging the rage
   Of whirlwind, and afflict me with keen hail.
   And yet to me welcome is day and night,
   Whether one breaks the hoar-frost of the morn,                       _45
   Or starry, dim, and slow, the other climbs
   The leaden-coloured east; for then they lead
   The wingless, crawling hours, one among whom
   --As some dark Priest hales the reluctant victim--
   Shall drag thee, cruel King, to kiss the blood                       _50
   From these pale feet, which then might trample thee
   If they disdained not such a prostrate slave.
   Disdain! Ah, no! I pity thee. What ruin
   Will hunt thee undefended through wide Heaven!
   How will thy soul, cloven to its depth with terror,                  _55
   Gape like a hell within! I speak in grief,
   Not exultation, for I hate no more,
   As then ere misery made me wise. The curse
   Once breathed on thee I would recall. Ye Mountains,
   Whose many-voiced Echoes, through the mist                           _60
   Of cataracts, flung the thunder of that spell!
   Ye icy Springs, stagnant with wrinkling frost,
   Which vibrated to hear me, and then crept
   Shuddering through India! Thou serenest Air,
   Through which the Sun walks burning without beams!                   _65
   And ye swift Whirlwinds, who on poised wings
   Hung mute and moveless o'er yon hushed abyss,
   As thunder, louder than your own, made rock
   The orbed world! If then my words had power,
   Though I am changed so that aught evil wish                          _70
   Is dead within; although no memory be
   Of what is hate, let them not lose it now!
   What was that curse? for ye all heard me speak.
   
   NOTE:
   _54 thro' wide B; thro' the wide 1820.
   
   FIRST VOICE (FROM THE MOUNTAINS):
   Thrice three hundred thousand years
   O'er the Earthquake's couch we stood:                                _75
   Oft, as men convulsed with fears,
   We trembled in our multitude.
   
   SECOND VOICE (FROM THE SPRINGS):
   Thunderbolts had parched our water,
   We had been stained with bitter blood,
   And had run mute, 'mid shrieks of slaughter,                         _80
   Thro' a city and a solitude.
   
   THIRD VOICE (FROM THE AIR):
   I had clothed, since Earth uprose,
   Its wastes in colours not their own,
   And oft had my serene repose
   Been cloven by many a rending groan.                                 _85
   
   FOURTH VOICE (FROM THE WHIRLWINDS):
   We had soared beneath these mountains
   Unresting ages; nor had thunder,
   Nor yon volcano's flaming fountains,
   Nor any power above or under
   Ever made us mute with wonder.                                       _90
   
   FIRST VOICE:
   But never bowed our snowy crest
   As at the voice of thine unrest.
   
   SECOND VOICE:
   Never such a sound before
   To the Indian waves we bore.
   A pilot asleep on the howling sea                                    _95
   Leaped up from the deck in agony,
   And heard, and cried, 'Ah, woe is me!'
   And died as mad as the wild waves be.
   
   THIRD VOICE:
   By such dread words from Earth to Heaven
   My still realm was never riven:                                      _100
   When its wound was closed, there stood
   Darkness o'er the day like blood.
   
   FOURTH VOICE:
   And we shrank back: for dreams of ruin
   To frozen caves our flight pursuing
   Made us keep silence--thus--and thus--                               _105
   Though silence is a hell to us.
   
   THE EARTH:
   The tongueless caverns of the craggy hills
   Cried, 'Misery!' then; the hollow Heaven replied,
   'Misery!' And the Ocean's purple waves,
   Climbing the land, howled to the lashing winds,                      _110
   And the pale nations heard it, 'Misery!'
   
   NOTE:
   _106 as hell 1839, B; a hell 1820.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   I hear a sound of voices: not the voice
   Which I gave forth. Mother, thy sons and thou
   Scorn him, without whose all-enduring will
   Beneath the fierce omnipotence of Jove,                              _115
   Both they and thou had vanished, like thin mist
   Unrolled on the morning wind. Know ye not me,
   The Titan? He who made his agony
   The barrier to your else all-conquering foe?
   Oh, rock-embosomed lawns, and snow-fed streams,                      _120
   Now seen athwart frore vapours, deep below,
   Through whose o'ershadowing woods I wandered once
   With Asia, drinking life from her loved eyes;
   Why scorns the spirit which informs ye, now
   To commune with me? me alone, who checked,                           _125
   As one who checks a fiend-drawn charioteer,
   The falsehood and the force of him who reigns
   Supreme, and with the groans of pining slaves
   Fills your dim glens and liquid wildernesses:
   Why answer ye not, still? Brethren!
   
   THE EARTH:
   They dare not.                                                       _130
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Who dares? for I would hear that curse again.
   Ha, what an awful whisper rises up!
   'Tis scarce like sound: it tingles through the frame
   As lightning tingles, hovering ere it strike.
   Speak, Spirit! from thine inorganic voice                            _135
   I only know that thou art moving near
   And love. How cursed I him?
   
   THE EARTH:
   How canst thou hear
   Who knowest not the language of the dead?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Thou art a living spirit; speak as they.
   
   THE EARTH:
   I dare not speak like life, lest Heaven's fell King                  _140
   Should hear, and link me to some wheel of pain
   More torturing than the one whereon I roll.
   Subtle thou art and good; and though the Gods
   Hear not this voice, yet thou art more than God,
   Being wise and kind: earnestly hearken now.                          _145
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Obscurely through my brain, like shadows dim,
   Sweep awful thoughts, rapid and thick. I feel
   Faint, like one mingled in entwining love;
   Yet 'tis not pleasure.
   
   THE EARTH:
   No, thou canst not hear:
   Thou art immortal, and this tongue is known                          _150
   Only to those who die.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   And what art thou,
   O, melancholy Voice?
   
   THE EARTH:
   I am the Earth,
   Thy mother; she within whose stony veins,
   To the last fibre of the loftiest tree
   Whose thin leaves trembled in the frozen air,                        _155
   Joy ran, as blood within a living frame,
   When thou didst from her bosom, like a cloud
   Of glory, arise, a spirit of keen joy!
   And at thy voice her pining sons uplifted
   Their prostrate brows from the polluting dust,                       _160
   And our almighty Tyrant with fierce dread
   Grew pale, until his thunder chained thee here.
   Then, see those million worlds which burn and roll
   Around us: their inhabitants beheld
   My sphered light wane in wide Heaven; the sea                        _165
   Was lifted by strange tempest, and new fire
   From earthquake-rifted mountains of bright snow
   Shook its portentous hair beneath Heaven's frown;
   Lightning and Inundation vexed the plains;
   Blue thistles bloomed in cities; foodless toads                      _170
   Within voluptuous chambers panting crawled:
   When Plague had fallen on man, and beast, and worm,
   And Famine; and black blight on herb and tree;
   And in the corn, and vines, and meadow-grass,
   Teemed ineradicable poisonous weeds                                  _175
   Draining their growth, for my wan breast was dry
   With grief; and the thin air, my breath, was stained
   With the contagion of a mother's hate
   Breathed on her child's destroyer; ay, I heard
   Thy curse, the which, if thou rememberest not,                       _180
   Yet my innumerable seas and streams,
   Mountains, and caves, and winds, and yon wide air,
   And the inarticulate people of the dead,
   Preserve, a treasured spell. We meditate
   In secret joy and hope those dreadful words,                         _185
   But dare not speak them.
   
   NOTE:
   _137 And love 1820; And lovest cj. Swinburne.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Venerable mother!
   All else who live and suffer take from thee
   Some comfort; flowers, and fruits, and happy sounds,
   And love, though fleeting; these may not be mine.
   But mine own words, I pray, deny me not.                             _190
   
   THE EARTH:
   They shall be told. Ere Babylon was dust,
   The Magus Zoroaster, my dead child,
   Met his own image walking in the garden.
   That apparition, sole of men, he saw.
   For know there are two worlds of life and death:                     _195
   One that which thou beholdest; but the other
   Is underneath the grave, where do inhabit
   The shadows of all forms that think and live
   Till death unite them and they part no more;
   Dreams and the light imaginings of men,                              _200
   And all that faith creates or love desires,
   Terrible, strange, sublime and beauteous shapes.
   There thou art, and dost hang, a writhing shade,
   'Mid whirlwind-peopled mountains; all the gods
   Are there, and all the powers of nameless worlds,                    _205
   Vast, sceptred phantoms; heroes, men, and beasts;
   And Demogorgon, a tremendous gloom;
   And he, the supreme Tyrant, on his throne
   Of burning gold. Son, one of these shall utter
   The curse which all remember. Call at will                           _210
   Thine own ghost, or the ghost of Jupiter,
   Hades or Typhon, or what mightier Gods
   From all-prolific Evil, since thy ruin,
   Have sprung, and trampled on my prostrate sons.
   Ask, and they must reply: so the revenge                             _215
   Of the Supreme may sweep through vacant shades,
   As rainy wind through the abandoned gate
   Of a fallen palace.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Mother, let not aught
   Of that which may be evil, pass again
   My lips, or those of aught resembling me.                            _220
   Phantasm of Jupiter, arise, appear!
   
   IONE:
   My wings are folded o'er mine ears:
   My wings are crossed o'er mine eyes:
   Yet through their silver shade appears,
   And through their lulling plumes arise,                              _225
   A Shape, a throng of sounds;
   May it be no ill to thee
   O thou of many wounds!
   Near whom, for our sweet sister's sake,
   Ever thus we watch and wake.                                         _230
   
   PANTHEA:
   The sound is of whirlwind underground,
   Earthquake, and fire, and mountains cloven;
   The shape is awful like the sound,
   Clothed in dark purple, star-inwoven.
   A sceptre of pale gold                                               _235
   To stay steps proud, o'er the slow cloud
   His veined hand doth hold.
   Cruel he looks, but calm and strong,
   Like one who does, not suffers wrong.
   
   PHANTASM OF JUPITER:
   Why have the secret powers of this strange world                     _240
   Driven me, a frail and empty phantom, hither
   On direst storms? What unaccustomed sounds
   Are hovering on my lips, unlike the voice
   With which our pallid race hold ghastly talk
   In darkness? And, proud sufferer, who art thou?                      _245
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Tremendous Image, as thou art must be
   He whom thou shadowest forth. I am his foe,
   The Titan. Speak the words which I would hear,
   Although no thought inform thine empty voice.
   
   THE EARTH:
   Listen! And though your echoes must be mute,                         _250
   Grey mountains, and old woods, and haunted springs,
   Prophetic caves, and isle-surrounding streams,
   Rejoice to hear what yet ye cannot speak.
   
   PHANTASM:
   A spirit seizes me and speaks within:
   It tears me as fire tears a thunder-cloud.                           _255
   
   PANTHEA:
   See, how he lifts his mighty looks, the Heaven
   Darkens above.
   
   IONE:
   He speaks! O shelter me!
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   I see the curse on gestures proud and cold,
   And looks of firm defiance, and calm hate,
   And such despair as mocks itself with smiles,                        _260
   Written as on a scroll: yet speak! Oh, speak!
   
   PHANTASM:
   Fiend, I defy thee! with a calm, fixed mind,
   All that thou canst inflict I bid thee do;
   Foul Tyrant both of Gods and Humankind,
   One only being shalt thou not subdue.                                _265
   Rain then thy plagues upon me here,
   Ghastly disease, and frenzying fear;
   And let alternate frost and fire
   Eat into me, and be thine ire
   Lightning, and cutting hail, and legioned forms                      _270
   Of furies, driving by upon the wounding storms.
   
   Ay, do thy worst. Thou art omnipotent.
   O'er all things but thyself I gave thee power,
   And my own will. Be thy swift mischiefs sent
   To blast mankind, from yon ethereal tower.                           _275
   Let thy malignant spirit move
   In darkness over those I love:
   On me and mine I imprecate
   The utmost torture of thy hate;
   And thus devote to sleepless agony,                                  _280
   This undeclining head while thou must reign on high.
   
   But thou, who art the God and Lord: O, thou,
   Who fillest with thy soul this world of woe,
   To whom all things of Earth and Heaven do bow
   In fear and worship: all-prevailing foe!                             _285
   I curse thee! let a sufferer's curse
   Clasp thee, his torturer, like remorse;
   Till thine Infinity shall be
   A robe of envenomed agony;
   And thine Omnipotence a crown of pain,                               _290
   To cling like burning gold round thy dissolving brain.
   
   Heap on thy soul, by virtue of this Curse,
   Ill deeds, then be thou damned, beholding good;
   Both infinite as is the universe,
   And thou, and thy self-torturing solitude.                           _295
   An awful image of calm power
   Though now thou sittest, let the hour
   Come, when thou must appear to be
   That which thou art internally;
   And after many a false and fruitless crime                           _300
   Scorn track thy lagging fall through boundless space and time.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Were these my words, O Parent?
   
   THE EARTH:
   They were thine.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   It doth repent me: words are quick and vain;
   Grief for awhile is blind, and so was mine.
   I wish no living thing to suffer pain.                               _305
   
   THE EARTH:
   Misery, Oh misery to me,
   That Jove at length should vanquish thee.
   Wail, howl aloud, Land and Sea,
   The Earth's rent heart shall answer ye.
   Howl, Spirits of the living and the dead,                            _310
   Your refuge, your defence, lies fallen and vanquished.
   
   FIRST ECHO:
   Lies fallen and vanquished!
   
   SECOND ECHO:
   Fallen and vanquished!
   
   IONE:
   Fear not: 'tis but some passing spasm,
   The Titan is unvanquished still.                                     _315
   But see, where through the azure chasm
   Of yon forked and snowy hill
   Trampling the slant winds on high
   With golden-sandalled feet, that glow
   Under plumes of purple dye,                                          _320
   Like rose-ensanguined ivory,
   A Shape comes now,
   Stretching on high from his right hand
   A serpent-cinctured wand.
   
   PANTHEA:
   'Tis Jove's world-wandering herald, Mercury.                         _325
   
   IONE:
   And who are those with hydra tresses
   And iron wings that climb the wind,
   Whom the frowning God represses
   Like vapours steaming up behind,
   Clanging loud, an endless crowd--                                    _330
   
   PANTHEA:
   These are Jove's tempest-walking hounds,
   Whom he gluts with groans and blood,
   When charioted on sulphurous cloud
   He bursts Heaven's bounds.
   
   IONE:
   Are they now led, from the thin dead                                 _335
   On new pangs to be fed?
   
   PANTHEA:
   The Titan looks as ever, firm, not proud.
   
   FIRST FURY:
   Ha! I scent life!
   
   SECOND FURY:
   Let me but look into his eyes!
   
   THIRD FURY:
   The hope of torturing him smells like a heap
   Of corpses, to a death-bird after battle.                            _340
   
   FIRST FURY:
   Darest thou delay, O Herald! take cheer, Hounds
   Of Hell: what if the Son of Maia soon
   Should make us food and sport--who can please long
   The Omnipotent?
   
   MERCURY:
   Back to your towers of iron,
   And gnash, beside the streams of fire and wail,                      _345
   Your foodless teeth. Geryon, arise! and Gorgon,
   Chimaera, and thou Sphinx, subtlest of fiends
   Who ministered to Thebes Heaven's poisoned wine,
   Unnatural love, and more unnatural hate:
   These shall perform your task.
   
   FIRST FURY:
   Oh, mercy! mercy!                                                    _350
   We die with our desire: drive us not back!
   
   MERCURY:
   Crouch then in silence.
   Awful Sufferer!
   To thee unwilling, most unwillingly
   I come, by the great Father's will driven down,
   To execute a doom of new revenge.                                    _355
   Alas! I pity thee, and hate myself
   That I can do no more: aye from thy sight
   Returning, for a season, Heaven seems Hell,
   So thy worn form pursues me night and day,
   Smiling reproach. Wise art thou, firm and good,                      _360
   But vainly wouldst stand forth alone in strife
   Against the Omnipotent; as yon clear lamps
   That measure and divide the weary years
   From which there is no refuge, long have taught
   And long must teach. Even now thy Torturer arms                      _365
   With the strange might of unimagined pains
   The powers who scheme slow agonies in Hell,
   And my commission is to lead them here,
   Or what more subtle, foul, or savage fiends
   People the abyss, and leave them to their task.                      _370
   Be it not so! there is a secret known
   To thee, and to none else of living things,
   Which may transfer the sceptre of wide Heaven,
   The fear of which perplexes the Supreme:
   Clothe it in words, and bid it clasp his throne                      _375
   In intercession; bend thy soul in prayer,
   And like a suppliant in some gorgeous fane,
   Let the will kneel within thy haughty heart:
   For benefits and meek submission tame
   The fiercest and the mightiest.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Evil minds                                                           _380
   Change good to their own nature. I gave all
   He has; and in return he chains me here
   Years, ages, night and day: whether the Sun
   Split my parched skin, or in the moony night
   The crystal-winged snow cling round my hair:                         _385
   Whilst my beloved race is trampled down
   By his thought-executing ministers.
   Such is the tyrant's recompense: 'tis just:
   He who is evil can receive no good;
   And for a world bestowed, or a friend lost,                          _390
   He can feel hate, fear, shame; not gratitude:
   He but requites me for his own misdeed.
   Kindness to such is keen reproach, which breaks
   With bitter stings the light sleep of Revenge.
   Submission, thou dost know I cannot try:                             _395
   For what submission but that fatal word,
   The death-seal of mankind's captivity,
   Like the Sicilian's hair-suspended sword,
   Which trembles o'er his crown, would he accept,
   Or could I yield? Which yet I will not yield.                        _400
   Let others flatter Crime, where it sits throned
   In brief Omnipotence: secure are they:
   For Justice, when triumphant, will weep down
   Pity, not punishment, on her own wrongs,
   Too much avenged by those who err. I wait,                           _405
   Enduring thus, the retributive hour
   Which since we spake is even nearer now.
   But hark, the hell-hounds clamour: fear delay:
   Behold! Heaven lowers under thy Father's frown.
   
   MERCURY:
   Oh, that we might be spared; I to inflict                            _410
   And thou to suffer! Once more answer me:
   Thou knowest not the period of Jove's power?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   I know but this, that it must come.
   
   MERCURY:
   Alas!
   Thou canst not count thy years to come of pain?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   They last while Jove must reign: nor more, nor less                  _415
   Do I desire or fear.
   
   MERCURY:
   Yet pause, and plunge
   Into Eternity, where recorded time,
   Even all that we imagine, age on age,
   Seems but a point, and the reluctant mind
   Flags wearily in its unending flight,                                _420
   Till it sink, dizzy, blind, lost, shelterless;
   Perchance it has not numbered the slow years
   Which thou must spend in torture, unreprieved?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Perchance no thought can count them, yet they pass.
   
   MERCURY:
   If thou might'st dwell among the Gods the while
   Lapped in voluptuous joy?                                            _425
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   I would not quit
   This bleak ravine, these unrepentant pains.
   
   MERCURY:
   Alas! I wonder at, yet pity thee.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Pity the self-despising slaves of Heaven,
   Not me, within whose mind sits peace serene.                         _430
   As light in the sun, throned: how vain is talk!
   Call up the fiends.
   
   IONE:
   O, sister, look! White fire
   Has cloven to the roots yon huge snow-loaded cedar;
   How fearfully God's thunder howls behind!
   
   MERCURY:
   I must obey his words and thine: alas!                               _435
   Most heavily remorse hangs at my heart!
   
   PANTHEA:
   See where the child of Heaven, with winged feet,
   Runs down the slanted sunlight of the dawn.
   
   IONE:
   Dear sister, close thy plumes over thine eyes
   Lest thou behold and die: they come: they come                       _440
   Blackening the birth of day with countless wings,
   And hollow underneath, like death.
   
   FIRST FURY:
   Prometheus!
   
   SECOND FURY:
   Immortal Titan!
   
   THIRD FURY:
   Champion of Heaven's slaves!
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   He whom some dreadful voice invokes is here,
   Prometheus, the chained Titan. Horrible forms,                       _445
   What and who are ye? Never yet there came
   Phantasms so foul through monster-teeming Hell
   From the all-miscreative brain of Jove;
   Whilst I behold such execrable shapes,
   Methinks I grow like what I contemplate,                             _450
   And laugh and stare in loathsome sympathy.
   
   FIRST FURY:
   We are the ministers of pain, and fear,
   And disappointment, and mistrust, and hate,
   And clinging crime; and as lean dogs pursue
   Through wood and lake some struck and sobbing fawn,                  _455
   We track all things that weep, and bleed, and live,
   When the great King betrays them to our will.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Oh! many fearful natures in one name,
   I know ye; and these lakes and echoes know
   The darkness and the clangour of your wings.                         _460
   But why more hideous than your loathed selves
   Gather ye up in legions from the deep?
   
   SECOND FURY:
   We knew not that: Sisters, rejoice, rejoice!
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Can aught exult in its deformity?
   
   SECOND FURY:
   The beauty of delight makes lovers glad,                             _465
   Gazing on one another: so are we.
   As from the rose which the pale priestess kneels
   To gather for her festal crown of flowers
   The aereal crimson falls, flushing her cheek,
   So from our victim's destined agony                                  _470
   The shade which is our form invests us round,
   Else we are shapeless as our mother Night.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   I laugh your power, and his who sent you here,
   To lowest scorn. Pour forth the cup of pain.
   
   FIRST FURY:
   Thou thinkest we will rend thee bone from bone,                      _475
   And nerve from nerve, working like fire within?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Pain is my element, as hate is thine;
   Ye rend me now; I care not.
   
   SECOND FURY:
   Dost imagine
   We will but laugh into thy lidless eyes?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   I weigh not what ye do, but what ye suffer,                          _480
   Being evil. Cruel was the power which called
   You, or aught else so wretched, into light.
   
   THIRD FURY:
   Thou think'st we will live through thee, one by one,
   Like animal life, and though we can obscure not
   The soul which burns within, that we will dwell                      _485
   Beside it, like a vain loud multitude
   Vexing the self-content of wisest men:
   That we will be dread thought beneath thy brain,
   And foul desire round thine astonished heart,
   And blood within thy labyrinthine veins                              _490
   Crawling like agony?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Why, ye are thus now;
   Yet am I king over myself, and rule
   The torturing and conflicting throngs within,
   As Jove rules you when Hell grows mutinous.
   
   CHORUS OF FURIES:
   From the ends of the earth, from the ends of the earth,              _495
   Where the night has its grave and the morning its birth,
   Come, come, come!
   Oh, ye who shake hills with the scream of your mirth,
   When cities sink howling in ruin; and ye
   Who with wingless footsteps trample the sea,                         _500
   And close upon Shipwreck and Famine's track,
   Sit chattering with joy on the foodless wreck;
   Come, come, come!
   Leave the bed, low, cold, and red,
   Strewed beneath a nation dead;                                       _505
   Leave the hatred, as in ashes
   Fire is left for future burning:
   It will burst in bloodier flashes
   When ye stir it, soon returning:
   Leave the self-contempt implanted                                    _510
   In young spirits, sense-enchanted,
   Misery's yet unkindled fuel:
   Leave Hell's secrets half unchanted
   To the maniac dreamer; cruel
   More than ye can be with hate                                        _515
   Is he with fear.
   Come, come, come!
   We are steaming up from Hell's wide gate
   And we burthen the blast of the atmosphere,
   But vainly we toil till ye come here.                                _520
   
   IONE:
   Sister, I hear the thunder of new wings.
   
   PANTHEA:
   These solid mountains quiver with the sound
   Even as the tremulous air: their shadows make
   The space within my plumes more black than night.
   
   FIRST FURY:
   Your call was as a winged car,                                       _525
   Driven on whirlwinds fast and far;
   It rapped us from red gulfs of war.
   
   SECOND FURY:
   From wide cities, famine-wasted;
   
   THIRD FURY:
   Groans half heard, and blood untasted;
   
   FOURTH FURY:
   Kingly conclaves stern and cold,                                     _530
   Where blood with gold is bought and sold;
   
   FIFTH FURY:
   From the furnace, white and hot,
   In which--
   
   A FURY:
   Speak not: whisper not:
   I know all that ye would tell,
   But to speak might break the spell                                   _535
   Which must bend the Invincible,
   The stern of thought;
   He yet defies the deepest power of Hell.
   
   FURY:
   Tear the veil!
   
   ANOTHER FURY:
   It is torn.
   
   CHORUS:
   The pale stars of the morn
   Shine on a misery, dire to be borne.                                 _540
   Dost thou faint, mighty Titan? We laugh thee to scorn.
   Dost thou boast the clear knowledge thou waken'dst for man?
   Then was kindled within him a thirst which outran
   Those perishing waters; a thirst of fierce fever,
   Hope, love, doubt, desire, which consume him for ever.               _545
   One came forth of gentle worth
   Smiling on the sanguine earth;
   His words outlived him, like swift poison
   Withering up truth, peace, and pity.
   Look! where round the wide horizon                                   _550
   Many a million-peopled city
   Vomits smoke in the bright air.
   Mark that outcry of despair!
   'Tis his mild and gentle ghost
   Wailing for the faith he kindled:                                    _555
   Look again, the flames almost
   To a glow-worm's lamp have dwindled:
   The survivors round the embers
   Gather in dread.
   Joy, joy, joy!                                                       _560
   Past ages crowd on thee, but each one remembers,
   And the future is dark, and the present is spread
   Like a pillow of thorns for thy slumberless head.
   
   NOTE:
   _553 Hark B; Mark 1820.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Drops of bloody agony flow
   From his white and quivering brow.                                   _565
   Grant a little respite now:
   See a disenchanted nation
   Springs like day from desolation;
   To Truth its state is dedicate,
   And Freedom leads it forth, her mate;                                _570
   A legioned band of linked brothers
   Whom Love calls children--
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   'Tis another's:
   See how kindred murder kin:
   'Tis the vintage-time for death and sin:
   Blood, like new wine, bubbles within:                                _575
   Till Despair smothers
   The struggling world, which slaves and tyrants win.
   
   [ALL THE FURIES VANISH, EXCEPT ONE.]
   
   IONE:
   Hark, sister! what a low yet dreadful groan
   Quite unsuppressed is tearing up the heart
   Of the good Titan, as storms tear the deep,                          _580
   And beasts hear the sea moan in inland caves.
   Darest thou observe how the fiends torture him?
   
   PANTHEA:
   Alas! I looked forth twice, but will no more.
   
   IONE:
   What didst thou see?
   
   PANTHEA:
   A woful sight: a youth
   With patient looks nailed to a crucifix.                             _585
   
   IONE:
   What next?
   
   PANTHEA:
   The heaven around, the earth below
   Was peopled with thick shapes of human death,
   All horrible, and wrought by human hands,
   And some appeared the work of human hearts,
   For men were slowly killed by frowns and smiles:                     _590
   And other sights too foul to speak and live
   Were wandering by. Let us not tempt worse fear
   By looking forth: those groans are grief enough.
   
   NOTE:
   _589 And 1820; Tho' B.
   
   FURY:
   Behold an emblem: those who do endure
   Deep wrongs for man, and scorn, and chains, but heap                 _595
   Thousand-fold torment on themselves and him.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Remit the anguish of that lighted stare;
   Close those wan lips; let that thorn-wounded brow
   Stream not with blood; it mingles with thy tears!
   Fix, fix those tortured orbs in peace and death,                     _600
   So thy sick throes shake not that crucifix,
   So those pale fingers play not with thy gore.
   O, horrible! Thy name I will not speak,
   It hath become a curse. I see, I see
   The wise, the mild, the lofty, and the just,                         _605
   Whom thy slaves hate for being like to thee,
   Some hunted by foul lies from their heart's home,
   An early-chosen, late-lamented home;
   As hooded ounces cling to the driven hind;
   Some linked to corpses in unwholesome cells:                         _610
   Some--Hear I not the multitude laugh loud?--
   Impaled in lingering fire: and mighty realms
   Float by my feet, like sea-uprooted isles,
   Whose sons are kneaded down in common blood
   By the red light of their own burning homes.                         _615
   
   FURY:
   Blood thou canst see, and fire; and canst hear groans;
   Worse things unheard, unseen, remain behind.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Worse?
   
   FURY:
   In each human heart terror survives
   The ravin it has gorged: the loftiest fear
   All that they would disdain to think were true:                      _620
   Hypocrisy and custom make their minds
   The fanes of many a worship, now outworn.
   They dare not devise good for man's estate,
   And yet they know not that they do not dare.
   The good want power, but to weep barren tears.                       _625
   The powerful goodness want: worse need for them.
   The wise want love; and those who love want wisdom;
   And all best things are thus confused to ill.
   Many are strong and rich, and would be just,
   But live among their suffering fellow-men                            _630
   As if none felt: they know not what they do.
   
   NOTE:
   _619 ravin B, edition 1839; ruin 1820.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Thy words are like a cloud of winged snakes;
   And yet I pity those they torture not.
   
   FURY:
   Thou pitiest them? I speak no more!
   [VANISHES.]
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Ah woe!
   Ah woe! Alas! pain, pain ever, for ever!                             _635
   I close my tearless eyes, but see more clear
   Thy works within my woe-illumed mind,
   Thou subtle tyrant! Peace is in the grave.
   The grave hides all things beautiful and good:
   I am a God and cannot find it there,                                 _640
   Nor would I seek it: for, though dread revenge,
   This is defeat, fierce king, not victory.
   The sights with which thou torturest gird my soul
   With new endurance, till the hour arrives
   When they shall be no types of things which are.                     _645
   
   PANTHEA:
   Alas! what sawest thou more?
   
   NOTE:
   _646 thou more? B; thou? 1820.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   There are two woes:
   To speak, and to behold; thou spare me one.
   Names are there, Nature's sacred watchwords, they
   Were borne aloft in bright emblazonry;
   The nations thronged around, and cried aloud,                        _650
   As with one voice, Truth, liberty, and love!
   Suddenly fierce confusion fell from heaven
   Among them: there was strife, deceit, and fear:
   Tyrants rushed in, and did divide the spoil.
   This was the shadow of the truth I saw.                              _655
   
   THE EARTH:
   I felt thy torture, son; with such mixed joy
   As pain and virtue give. To cheer thy state
   I bid ascend those subtle and fair spirits,
   Whose homes are the dim caves of human thought,
   And who inhabit, as birds wing the wind,                             _660
   Its world-surrounding aether: they behold
   Beyond that twilight realm, as in a glass,
   The future: may they speak comfort to thee!
   
   PANTHEA:
   Look, sister, where a troop of spirits gather,
   Like flocks of clouds in spring's delightful weather,                _665
   Thronging in the blue air!
   
   IONE:
   And see! more come,
   Like fountain-vapours when the winds are dumb,
   That climb up the ravine in scattered lines.
   And, hark! is it the music of the pines?
   Is it the lake? Is it the waterfall?                                 _670
   
   PANTHEA:
   'Tis something sadder, sweeter far than all.
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
   From unremembered ages we
   Gentle guides and guardians be
   Of heaven-oppressed mortality;
   And we breathe, and sicken not,                                      _675
   The atmosphere of human thought:
   Be it dim, and dank, and gray,
   Like a storm-extinguished day,
   Travelled o'er by dying gleams;
   Be it bright as all between                                          _680
   Cloudless skies and windless streams,
   Silent, liquid, and serene;
   As the birds within the wind,
   As the fish within the wave,
   As the thoughts of man's own mind                                    _685
   Float through all above the grave;
   We make there our liquid lair,
   Voyaging cloudlike and unpent
   Through the boundless element:
   Thence we bear the prophecy                                          _690
   Which begins and ends in thee!
   
   NOTE:
   _687 there B, edition 1839; these 1820.
   
   IONE:
   More yet come, one by one: the air around them
   Looks radiant as the air around a star.
   
   FIRST SPIRIT:
   On a battle-trumpet's blast
   I fled hither, fast, fast, fast,                                     _695
   'Mid the darkness upward cast.
   From the dust of creeds outworn,
   From the tyrant's banner torn,
   Gathering 'round me, onward borne,
   There was mingled many a cry--                                       _700
   Freedom! Hope! Death! Victory!
   Till they faded through the sky;
   And one sound, above, around,
   One sound beneath, around, above,
   Was moving; 'twas the soul of Love;                                  _705
   'Twas the hope, the prophecy,
   Which begins and ends in thee.
   
   SECOND SPIRIT:
   A rainbow's arch stood on the sea,
   Which rocked beneath, immovably;
   And the triumphant storm did flee,                                   _710
   Like a conqueror, swift and proud,
   Between, with many a captive cloud,
   A shapeless, dark and rapid crowd,
   Each by lightning riven in half:
   I heard the thunder hoarsely laugh:                                  _715
   Mighty fleets were strewn like chaff
   And spread beneath a hell of death
   O'er the white waters. I alit
   On a great ship lightning-split,
   And speeded hither on the sigh                                       _720
   Of one who gave an enemy
   His plank, then plunged aside to die.
   
   THIRD SPIRIT:
   I sate beside a sage's bed,
   And the lamp was burning red
   Near the book where he had fed,                                      _725
   When a Dream with plumes of flame,
   To his pillow hovering came,
   And I knew it was the same
   Which had kindled long ago
   Pity, eloquence, and woe;                                            _730
   And the world awhile below
   Wore the shade, its lustre made.
   It has borne me here as fleet
   As Desire's lightning feet:
   I must ride it back ere morrow,                                      _735
   Or the sage will wake in sorrow.
   
   FOURTH SPIRIT:
   On a poet's lips I slept
   Dreaming like a love-adept
   In the sound his breathing kept;
   Nor seeks nor finds he mortal blisses,                               _740
   But feeds on the aereal kisses
   Of shapes that haunt thought's wildernesses.
   He will watch from dawn to gloom
   The lake-reflected sun illume
   The yellow bees in the ivy-bloom,                                    _745
   Nor heed nor see, what things they be;
   But from these create he can
   Forms more real than living man,
   Nurslings of immortality!
   One of these awakened me,                                            _750
   And I sped to succour thee.
   
   IONE:
   Behold'st thou not two shapes from the east and west
   Come, as two doves to one beloved nest,
   Twin nurslings of the all-sustaining air
   On swift still wings glide down the atmosphere?                      _755
   And, hark! their sweet sad voices! 'tis despair
   Mingled with love and then dissolved in sound.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Canst thou speak, sister? all my words are drowned.
   
   IONE:
   Their beauty gives me voice. See how they float
   On their sustaining wings of skiey grain,                            _760
   Orange and azure deepening into gold:
   Their soft smiles light the air like a star's fire.
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
   Hast thou beheld the form of Love?
   
   FIFTH SPIRIT:
   As over wide dominions
   I sped, like some swift cloud that wings the wide air's wildernesses,
   That planet-crested shape swept by on lightning-braided pinions,     _765
   Scattering the liquid joy of life from his ambrosial tresses:
   His footsteps paved the world with light; but as I passed 'twas fading,
   And hollow Ruin yawned behind: great sages bound in madness,
   And headless patriots, and pale youths who perished, unupbraiding,
   Gleamed in the night. I wandered o'er, till thou, O King of sadness, _770
   Turned by thy smile the worst I saw to recollected gladness.
   
   SIXTH SPIRIT:
   Ah, sister! Desolation is a delicate thing:
   It walks not on the earth, it floats not on the air,
   But treads with lulling footstep, and fans with silent wing
   The tender hopes which in their hearts the best and gentlest bear;   _775
   Who, soothed to false repose by the fanning plumes above
   And the music-stirring motion of its soft and busy feet,
   Dream visions of aereal joy, and call the monster, Love,
   And wake, and find the shadow Pain, as he whom now we greet.
   
   NOTE:
   _774 lulling B; silent 1820.
   
   CHORUS:
   Though Ruin now Love's shadow be,                                    _780
   Following him, destroyingly,
   On Death's white and winged steed,
   Which the fleetest cannot flee,
   Trampling down both flower and weed,
   Man and beast, and foul and fair,                                    _785
   Like a tempest through the air;
   Thou shalt quell this horseman grim,
   Woundless though in heart or limb.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Spirits! how know ye this shall be?
   
   CHORUS:
   In the atmosphere we breathe,                                        _790
   As buds grow red when the snow-storms flee,
   From Spring gathering up beneath,
   Whose mild winds shake the elder-brake,
   And the wandering herdsmen know
   That the white-thorn soon will blow:                                 _795
   Wisdom, Justice, Love, and Peace,
   When they struggle to increase,
   Are to us as soft winds be
   To shepherd boys, the prophecy
   Which begins and ends in thee.                                       _800
   
   IONE:
   Where are the Spirits fled?
   
   PANTHEA:
   Only a sense
   Remains of them, like the omnipotence
   Of music, when the inspired voice and lute
   Languish, ere yet the responses are mute,
   Which through the deep and labyrinthine soul,                        _805
   Like echoes through long caverns, wind and roll.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   How fair these airborn shapes! and yet I feel
   Most vain all hope but love; and thou art far,
   Asia! who, when my being overflowed,
   Wert like a golden chalice to bright wine                            _810
   Which else had sunk into the thirsty dust.
   All things are still: alas! how heavily
   This quiet morning weighs upon my heart;
   Though I should dream I could even sleep with grief
   If slumber were denied not. I would fain                             _815
   Be what it is my destiny to be,
   The saviour and the strength of suffering man,
   Or sink into the original gulf of things:
   There is no agony, and no solace left;
   Earth can console, Heaven can torment no more.                       _820
   
   PANTHEA:
   Hast thou forgotten one who watches thee
   The cold dark night, and never sleeps but when
   The shadow of thy spirit falls on her?
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   I said all hope was vain but love: thou lovest.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Deeply in truth; but the eastern star looks white,                   _825
   And Asia waits in that far Indian vale,
   The scene of her sad exile; rugged once
   And desolate and frozen, like this ravine;
   But now invested with fair flowers and herbs,
   And haunted by sweet airs and sounds, which flow                     _830
   Among the woods and waters, from the aether
   Of her transforming presence, which would fade
   If it were mingled not with thine. Farewell!
   
   END OF ACT 1.
   
   
   ACT 2.
   
   SCENE 2.1:
   MORNING.
   A LOVELY VALE IN THE INDIAN CAUCASUS.
   ASIA, ALONE.
   
   ASIA:
   From all the blasts of heaven thou hast descended:
   Yes, like a spirit, like a thought, which makes
   Unwonted tears throng to the horny eyes,
   And beatings haunt the desolated heart,
   Which should have learnt repose: thou hast descended                 _5
   Cradled in tempests; thou dost wake, O Spring!
   O child of many winds! As suddenly
   Thou comest as the memory of a dream,
   Which now is sad because it hath been sweet;
   Like genius, or like joy which riseth up                             _10
   As from the earth, clothing with golden clouds
   The desert of our life.
   This is the season, this the day, the hour;
   At sunrise thou shouldst come, sweet sister mine,
   Too long desired, too long delaying, come!                           _15
   How like death-worms the wingless moments crawl!
   The point of one white star is quivering still
   Deep in the orange light of widening morn
   Beyond the purple mountains: through a chasm
   Of wind-divided mist the darker lake                                 _20
   Reflects it: now it wanes: it gleams again
   As the waves fade, and as the burning threads
   Of woven cloud unravel in pale air:
   'Tis lost! and through yon peaks of cloud-like snow
   The roseate sunlight quivers: hear I not                             _25
   The Aeolian music of her sea-green plumes
   Winnowing the crimson dawn?
   
   PANTHEA [ENTERS]:
   I feel, I see
   Those eyes which burn through smiles that fade in tears,
   Like stars half quenched in mists of silver dew.
   Beloved and most beautiful, who wearest                              _30
   The shadow of that soul by which I live,
   How late thou art! the sphered sun had climbed
   The sea; my heart was sick with hope, before
   The printless air felt thy belated plumes.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Pardon, great Sister! but my wings were faint                        _35
   With the delight of a remembered dream,
   As are the noontide plumes of summer winds
   Satiate with sweet flowers. I was wont to sleep
   Peacefully, and awake refreshed and calm
   Before the sacred Titan's fall, and thy                              _40
   Unhappy love, had made, through use and pity,
   Both love and woe familiar to my heart
   As they had grown to thine: erewhile I slept
   Under the glaucous caverns of old Ocean
   Within dim bowers of green and purple moss,                          _45
   Our young Ione's soft and milky arms
   Locked then, as now, behind my dark, moist hair,
   While my shut eyes and cheek were pressed within
   The folded depth of her life-breathing bosom:
   But not as now, since I am made the wind                             _50
   Which fails beneath the music that I bear
   Of thy most wordless converse; since dissolved
   Into the sense with which love talks, my rest
   Was troubled and yet sweet; my waking hours
   Too full of care and pain.
   
   ASIA:
   Lift up thine eyes,                                                  _55
   And let me read thy dream.
   
   PANTHEA:
   As I have said
   With our sea-sister at his feet I slept.
   The mountain mists, condensing at our voice
   Under the moon, had spread their snowy flakes,
   From the keen ice shielding our linked sleep.                        _60
   Then two dreams came. One, I remember not.
   But in the other his pale wound-worn limbs
   Fell from Prometheus, and the azure night
   Grew radiant with the glory of that form
   Which lives unchanged within, and his voice fell                     _65
   Like music which makes giddy the dim brain,
   Faint with intoxication of keen joy:
   'Sister of her whose footsteps pave the world
   With loveliness--more fair than aught but her,
   Whose shadow thou art--lift thine eyes on me.'                       _70
   I lifted them: the overpowering light
   Of that immortal shape was shadowed o'er
   By love; which, from his soft and flowing limbs,
   And passion-parted lips, and keen, faint eyes,
   Steamed forth like vaporous fire; an atmosphere                      _75
   Which wrapped me in its all-dissolving power,
   As the warm ether of the morning sun
   Wraps ere it drinks some cloud of wandering dew.
   I saw not, heard not, moved not, only felt
   His presence flow and mingle through my blood                        _80
   Till it became his life, and his grew mine,
   And I was thus absorbed, until it passed,
   And like the vapours when the sun sinks down,
   Gathering again in drops upon the pines,
   And tremulous as they, in the deep night                             _85
   My being was condensed; and as the rays
   Of thought were slowly gathered, I could hear
   His voice, whose accents lingered ere they died
   Like footsteps of weak melody: thy name
   Among the many sounds alone I heard                                  _90
   Of what might be articulate; though still
   I listened through the night when sound was none.
   Ione wakened then, and said to me:
   'Canst thou divine what troubles me to-night?
   I always knew, what I desired before,                                _95
   Nor ever found delight to wish in vain.
   But now I cannot tell thee what I seek;
   I know not; something sweet, since it is sweet
   Even to desire; it is thy sport, false sister;
   Thou hast discovered some enchantment old,                           _100
   Whose spells have stolen my spirit as I slept
   And mingled it with thine: for when just now
   We kissed, I felt within thy parted lips
   The sweet air that sustained me, and the warmth
   Of the life-blood, for loss of which I faint,                        _105
   Quivered between our intertwining arms.'
   I answered not, for the Eastern star grew pale,
   But fled to thee.
   
   ASIA:
   Thou speakest, but thy words
   Are as the air: I feel them not: Oh, lift
   Thine eyes, that I may read his written soul!                        _110
   
   PANTHEA:
   I lift them though they droop beneath the load
   Of that they would express: what canst thou see
   But thine own fairest shadow imaged there?
   
   ASIA:
   Thine eyes are like the deep, blue, boundless heaven
   Contracted to two circles underneath                                 _115
   Their long, fine lashes; dark, far, measureless,
   Orb within orb, and line through line inwoven.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Why lookest thou as if a spirit passed?
   
   ASIA:
   There is a change: beyond their inmost depth
   I see a shade, a shape: 'tis He, arrayed                             _120
   In the soft light of his own smiles, which spread
   Like radiance from the cloud-surrounded moon.
   Prometheus, it is thine! depart not yet!
   Say not those smiles that we shall meet again
   Within that bright pavilion which their beams                        _125
   Shall build o'er the waste world? The dream is told.
   What shape is that between us? Its rude hair
   Roughens the wind that lifts it, its regard
   Is wild and quick, yet 'tis a thing of air,
   For through its gray robe gleams the golden dew                      _130
   Whose stars the noon has quenched not.
   
   NOTE:
   _122 moon B; morn 1820.
   _126 o'er B; on 1820.
   
   DREAM
   Follow! Follow!
   
   PANTHEA:
   It is mine other dream.
   
   ASIA:
   It disappears.
   
   PANTHEA:
   It passes now into my mind. Methought
   As we sate here, the flower-infolding buds
   Burst on yon lightning-blasted almond tree,                          _135
   When swift from the white Scythian wilderness
   A wind swept forth wrinkling the Earth with frost:
   I looked, and all the blossoms were blown down;
   But on each leaf was stamped, as the blue bells
   Of Hyacinth tell Apollo's written grief,                             _140
   O, FOLLOW, FOLLOW!
   
   ASIA:
   As you speak, your words
   Fill, pause by pause, my own forgotten sleep
   With shapes. Methought among these lawns together
   We wandered, underneath the young gray dawn,
   And multitudes of dense white fleecy clouds                          _145
   Were wandering in thick flocks along the mountains
   Shepherded by the slow, unwilling wind;
   And the white dew on the new-bladed grass,
   Just piercing the dark earth, hung silently;
   And there was more which I remember not:                             _150
   But on the shadows of the morning clouds,
   Athwart the purple mountain slope, was written
   FOLLOW, O, FOLLOW! as they vanished by;
   And on each herb, from which Heaven's dew had fallen,
   The like was stamped, as with a withering fire;                      _155
   A wind arose among the pines; it shook
   The clinging music from their boughs, and then
   Low, sweet, faint sounds, like the farewell of ghosts,
   Were heard: O, FOLLOW, FOLLOW, FOLLOW ME!
   And then I said, 'Panthea, look on me.'                              _160
   But in the depth of those beloved eyes
   Still I saw, FOLLOW, FOLLOW!
   
   NOTE:
   _143 these B; the 1820.
   
   ECHO:
   Follow, follow!
   
   PANTHEA:
   The crags, this clear spring morning, mock our voices
   As they were spirit-tongued.
   
   ASIA:
   It is some being
   Around the crags. What fine clear sounds! O, list!                   _165
   
   ECHOES, UNSEEN:
   Echoes we: listen!
   We cannot stay:
   As dew-stars glisten
   Then fade away--
   Child of Ocean!                                                      _170
   
   ASIA:
   Hark! Spirits speak. The liquid responses
   Of their aereal tongues yet sound.
   
   PANTHEA:
   I hear.
   
   ECHOES:
   Oh, follow, follow,
   As our voice recedeth
   Through the caverns hollow,                                          _175
   Where the forest spreadeth;
   [MORE DISTANT.]
   Oh, follow, follow!
   Through the caverns hollow,
   As the song floats thou pursue,
   Where the wild bee never flew,                                       _180
   Through the noontide darkness deep,
   By the odour-breathing sleep
   Of faint night-flowers, and the waves
   At the fountain-lighted caves,
   While our music, wild and sweet,                                     _185
   Mocks thy gently falling feet,
   Child of Ocean!
   
   ASIA:
   Shall we pursue the sound? It grows more faint
   And distant.
   
   PANTHEA:
   List! the strain floats nearer now.
   
   ECHOES:
   In the world unknown                                                 _190
   Sleeps a voice unspoken;
   By thy step alone
   Can its rest be broken;
   Child of Ocean!
   
   ASIA:
   How the notes sink upon the ebbing wind!                             _195
   
   ECHOES:
   Oh, follow, follow!
   Through the caverns hollow,
   As the song floats thou pursue,
   By the woodland noontide dew;
   By the forests, lakes, and fountains,                                _200
   Through the many-folded mountains;
   To the rents, and gulfs, and chasms,
   Where the Earth reposed from spasms,
   On the day when He and thou
   Parted, to commingle now;                                            _205
   Child of Ocean!
   
   ASIA:
   Come, sweet Panthea, link thy hand in mine,
   And follow, ere the voices fade away.
   
   SCENE 2.2:
   A FOREST, INTERMINGLED WITH ROCKS AND CAVERNS.
   ASIA AND PANTHEA PASS INTO IT.
   TWO YOUNG FAUNS ARE SITTING ON A ROCK LISTENING.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1 OF SPIRITS:
   The path through which that lovely twain
   Have passed, by cedar, pine, and yew,
   And each dark tree that ever grew,
   Is curtained out from Heaven's wide blue;
   Nor sun, nor moon, nor wind, nor rain,                               _5
   Can pierce its interwoven bowers,
   Nor aught, save where some cloud of dew,
   Drifted along the earth-creeping breeze,
   Between the trunks of the hoar trees,
   Hangs each a pearl in the pale flowers                               _10
   Of the green laurel, blown anew,
   And bends, and then fades silently,
   One frail and fair anemone:
   Or when some star of many a one
   That climbs and wanders through steep night,                         _15
   Has found the cleft through which alone
   Beams fall from high those depths upon
   Ere it is borne away, away,
   By the swift Heavens that cannot stay,
   It scatters drops of golden light,                                   _20
   Like lines of rain that ne'er unite:
   And the gloom divine is all around,
   And underneath is the mossy ground.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   There the voluptuous nightingales,
   Are awake through all the broad noonday.                             _25
   When one with bliss or sadness fails,
   And through the windless ivy-boughs,
   Sick with sweet love, droops dying away
   On its mate's music-panting bosom;
   Another from the swinging blossom,                                   _30
   Watching to catch the languid close
   Of the last strain, then lifts on high
   The wings of the weak melody,
   Till some new strain of feeling bear
   The song, and all the woods are mute;                                _35
   When there is heard through the dim air
   The rush of wings, and rising there
   Like many a lake-surrounded flute,
   Sounds overflow the listener's brain
   So sweet, that joy is almost pain.                                   _40
   
   NOTE:
   _38 surrounded B, edition 1839; surrounding 1820.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   There those enchanted eddies play
   Of echoes, music-tongued, which draw,
   By Demogorgon's mighty law,
   With melting rapture, or sweet awe,
   All spirits on that secret way;                                      _45
   As inland boats are driven to Ocean
   Down streams made strong with mountain-thaw:
   And first there comes a gentle sound
   To those in talk or slumber bound,
   And wakes the destined soft emotion,--                               _50
   Attracts, impels them; those who saw
   Say from the breathing earth behind
   There steams a plume-uplifting wind
   Which drives them on their path, while they
   Believe their own swift wings and feet                               _55
   The sweet desires within obey:
   And so they float upon their way,
   Until, still sweet, but loud and strong,
   The storm of sound is driven along,
   Sucked up and hurrying: as they fleet                                _60
   Behind, its gathering billows meet
   And to the fatal mountain bear
   Like clouds amid the yielding air.
   
   NOTE:
   _50 destined]destinied 1820.
   
   FIRST FAUN:
   Canst thou imagine where those spirits live
   Which make such delicate music in the woods?                         _65
   We haunt within the least frequented caves
   And closest coverts, and we know these wilds,
   Yet never meet them, though we hear them oft:
   Where may they hide themselves?
   
   SECOND FAUN:
   'Tis hard to tell;
   I have heard those more skilled in spirits say,                      _70
   The bubbles, which the enchantment of the sun
   Sucks from the pale faint water-flowers that pave
   The oozy bottom of clear lakes and pools,
   Are the pavilions where such dwell and float
   Under the green and golden atmosphere                                _75
   Which noontide kindles through the woven leaves;
   And when these burst, and the thin fiery air,
   The which they breathed within those lucent domes,
   Ascends to flow like meteors through the night,
   They ride on them, and rein their headlong speed,                    _80
   And bow their burning crests, and glide in fire
   Under the waters of the earth again.
   
   FIRST FAUN:
   If such live thus, have others other lives,
   Under pink blossoms or within the bells
   Of meadow flowers, or folded violets deep,                           _85
   Or on their dying odours, when they die,
   Or in the sunlight of the sphered dew?
   
   NOTE:
   _86 on 1820; in B.
   
   SECOND FAUN:
   Ay, many more which we may well divine.
   But should we stay to speak, noontide would come,
   And thwart Silenus find his goats undrawn,                           _90
   And grudge to sing those wise and lovely songs
   Of Fate, and Chance, and God, and Chaos old,
   And Love, and the chained Titan's woful doom,
   And how he shall be loosed, and make the earth
   One brotherhood: delightful strains which cheer                      _95
   Our solitary twilights, and which charm
   To silence the unenvying nightingales.
   
   NOTE:
   _93 doom B, edition 1839; dooms 1820.
   
   SCENE 2.3:
   A PINNACLE OF ROCK AMONG MOUNTAINS.
   ASIA AND PANTHEA.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Hither the sound has borne us--to the realm
   Of Demogorgon, and the mighty portal,
   Like a volcano's meteor-breathing chasm,
   Whence the oracular vapour is hurled up
   Which lonely men drink wandering in their youth,                     _5
   And call truth, virtue, love, genius, or joy,
   That maddening wine of life, whose dregs they drain
   To deep intoxication; and uplift,
   Like Maenads who cry loud, Evoe! Evoe!
   The voice which is contagion to the world.                           _10
   
   ASIA:
   Fit throne for such a Power! Magnificent!
   How glorious art thou, Earth! And if thou be
   The shadow of some spirit lovelier still,
   Though evil stain its work, and it should be
   Like its creation, weak yet beautiful,                               _15
   I could fall down and worship that and thee.
   Even now my heart adoreth: Wonderful!
   Look, sister, ere the vapour dim thy brain:
   Beneath is a wide plain of billowy mist,
   As a lake, paving in the morning sky,                                _20
   With azure waves which burst in silver light,
   Some Indian vale. Behold it, rolling on
   Under the curdling winds, and islanding
   The peak whereon we stand, midway, around,
   Encinctured by the dark and blooming forests,                        _25
   Dim twilight-lawns, and stream-illumined caves,
   And wind-enchanted shapes of wandering mist;
   And far on high the keen sky-cleaving mountains
   From icy spires of sun-like radiance fling
   The dawn, as lifted Ocean's dazzling spray,                          _30
   From some Atlantic islet scattered up,
   Spangles the wind with lamp-like water-drops.
   The vale is girdled with their walls, a howl
   Of cataracts from their thaw-cloven ravines,
   Satiates the listening wind, continuous, vast,                       _35
   Awful as silence. Hark! the rushing snow!
   The sun-awakened avalanche! whose mass,
   Thrice sifted by the storm, had gathered there
   Flake after flake, in heaven-defying minds
   As thought by thought is piled, till some great truth                _40
   Is loosened, and the nations echo round,
   Shaken to their roots, as do the mountains now.
   
   NOTE:
   _26 illumed B; illumined 1820.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Look how the gusty sea of mist is breaking
   In crimson foam, even at our feet! it rises
   As Ocean at the enchantment of the moon                              _45
   Round foodless men wrecked on some oozy isle.
   
   ASIA:
   The fragments of the cloud are scattered up;
   The wind that lifts them disentwines my hair;
   Its billows now sweep o'er mine eyes; my brain
   Grows dizzy; see'st thou shapes within the mist?                     _50
   
   NOTE:
   see'st thou B; I see thin 1820; I see 1839.
   
   PANTHEA:
   A countenance with beckoning smiles: there burns
   An azure fire within its golden locks!
   Another and another: hark! they speak!
   
   SONG OF SPIRITS:
   To the deep, to the deep,
   Down, down!                                                          _55
   Through the shade of sleep,
   Through the cloudy strife
   Of Death and of Life;
   Through the veil and the bar
   Of things which seem and are                                         _60
   Even to the steps of the remotest throne,
   Down, down!
   
   While the sound whirls around,
   Down, down!
   As the fawn draws the hound,                                         _65
   As the lightning the vapour,
   As a weak moth the taper;
   Death, despair; love, sorrow;
   Time both; to-day, to-morrow;
   As steel obeys the spirit of the stone,                              _70
   Down, down!
   
   Through the gray, void abysm,
   Down, down!
   Where the air is no prism,
   And the moon and stars are not,                                      _75
   And the cavern-crags wear not
   The radiance of Heaven,
   Nor the gloom to Earth given,
   Where there is One pervading, One alone,
   Down, down!                                                          _80
   
   In the depth of the deep,
   Down, down!
   Like veiled lightning asleep,
   Like the spark nursed in embers,
   The last look Love remembers,                                        _85
   Like a diamond, which shines
   On the dark wealth of mines,
   A spell is treasured but for thee alone.
   Down, down!
   
   We have bound thee, we guide thee;                                   _90
   Down, down!
   With the bright form beside thee;
   Resist not the weakness,
   Such strength is in meekness
   That the Eternal, the Immortal,                                      _95
   Must unloose through life's portal
   The snake-like Doom coiled underneath his throne
   By that alone.
   
   SCENE 2.4:
   THE CAVE OF DEMOGORGON.
   ASIA AND PANTHEA.
   
   PANTHEA:
   What veiled form sits on that ebon throne?
   
   ASIA:
   The veil has fallen.
   
   PANTHEA:
   I see a mighty darkness
   Filling the seat of power, and rays of gloom
   Dart round, as light from the meridian sun.
   --Ungazed upon and shapeless; neither limb,                          _5
   Nor form, nor outline; yet we feel it is
   A living Spirit.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Ask what thou wouldst know.
   
   ASIA:
   What canst thou tell?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   All things thou dar'st demand.
   
   ASIA:
   Who made the living world?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   God.
   
   ASIA:
   Who made all
   That it contains? thought, passion, reason, will,                    _10
   Imagination?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   God: Almighty God.
   
   ASIA:
   Who made that sense which, when the winds of Spring
   In rarest visitation, or the voice
   Of one beloved heard in youth alone,
   Fills the faint eyes with falling tears which dim                    _15
   The radiant looks of unbewailing flowers,
   And leaves this peopled earth a solitude
   When it returns no more?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Merciful God.
   
   ASIA:
   And who made terror, madness, crime, remorse,
   Which from the links of the great chain of things,                   _20
   To every thought within the mind of man
   Sway and drag heavily, and each one reels
   Under the load towards the pit of death;
   Abandoned hope, and love that turns to hate;
   And self-contempt, bitterer to drink than blood;                     _25
   Pain, whose unheeded and familiar speech
   Is howling, and keen shrieks, day after day;
   And Hell, or the sharp fear of Hell?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   He reigns.
   
   ASIA:
   Utter his name: a world pining in pain
   Asks but his name: curses shall drag him down.                       _30
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   He reigns.
   
   ASIA:
   I feel, I know it: who?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   He reigns.
   
   ASIA:
   Who reigns? There was the Heaven and Earth at first,
   And Light and Love; then Saturn, from whose throne
   Time fell, an envious shadow: such the state
   Of the earth's primal spirits beneath his sway,                      _35
   As the calm joy of flowers and living leaves
   Before the wind or sun has withered them
   And semivital worms; but he refused
   The birthright of their being, knowledge, power,
   The skill which wields the elements, the thought                     _40
   Which pierces this dim universe like light,
   Self-empire, and the majesty of love;
   For thirst of which they fainted. Then Prometheus
   Gave wisdom, which is strength, to Jupiter,
   And with this law alone, 'Let man be free,'                          _45
   Clothed him with the dominion of wide Heaven.
   To know nor faith, nor love, nor law; to be
   Omnipotent but friendless is to reign;
   And Jove now reigned; for on the race of man
   First famine, and then toil, and then disease,                       _50
   Strife, wounds, and ghastly death unseen before,
   Fell; and the unseasonable seasons drove
   With alternating shafts of frost and fire,
   Their shelterless, pale tribes to mountain caves:
   And in their desert hearts fierce wants he sent,                     _55
   And mad disquietudes, and shadows idle
   Of unreal good, which levied mutual war,
   So ruining the lair wherein they raged.
   Prometheus saw, and waked the legioned hopes
   Which sleep within folded Elysian flowers,                           _60
   Nepenthe, Moly, Amaranth, fadeless blooms,
   That they might hide with thin and rainbow wings
   The shape of Death; and Love he sent to bind
   The disunited tendrils of that vine
   Which bears the wine of life, the human heart;                       _65
   And he tamed fire which, like some beast of prey,
   Most terrible, but lovely, played beneath
   The frown of man; and tortured to his will
   Iron and gold, the slaves and signs of power,
   And gems and poisons, and all subtlest forms                         _70
   Hidden beneath the mountains and the waves.
   He gave man speech, and speech created thought,
   Which is the measure of the universe;
   And Science struck the thrones of earth and heaven,
   Which shook, but fell not; and the harmonious mind                   _75
   Poured itself forth in all-prophetic song;
   And music lifted up the listening spirit
   Until it walked, exempt from mortal care,
   Godlike, o'er the clear billows of sweet sound;
   And human hands first mimicked and then mocked,                      _80
   With moulded limbs more lovely than its own,
   The human form, till marble grew divine;
   And mothers, gazing, drank the love men see
   Reflected in their race, behold, and perish.
   He told the hidden power of herbs and springs,                       _85
   And Disease drank and slept. Death grew like sleep.
   He taught the implicated orbits woven
   Of the wide-wandering stars; and how the sun
   Changes his lair, and by what secret spell
   The pale moon is transformed, when her broad eye                     _90
   Gazes not on the interlunar sea:
   He taught to rule, as life directs the limbs,
   The tempest-winged chariots of the Ocean,
   And the Celt knew the Indian. Cities then
   Were built, and through their snow-like columns flowed               _95
   The warm winds, and the azure ether shone,
   And the blue sea and shadowy hills were seen.
   Such, the alleviations of his state,
   Prometheus gave to man, for which he hangs
   Withering in destined pain: but who rains down                       _100
   Evil, the immedicable plague, which, while
   Man looks on his creation like a God
   And sees that it is glorious, drives him on,
   The wreck of his own will, the scorn of earth,
   The outcast, the abandoned, the alone?                               _105
   Not Jove: while yet his frown shook Heaven ay, when
   His adversary from adamantine chains
   Cursed him, he trembled like a slave. Declare
   Who is his master? Is he too a slave?
   
   NOTE:
   _100 rains B,  edition 1839; reigns 1820.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   All spirits are enslaved which serve things evil:                    _110
   Thou knowest if Jupiter be such or no.
   
   ASIA:
   Whom calledst thou God?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   I spoke but as ye speak,
   For Jove is the supreme of living things.
   
   ASIA:
   Who is the master of the slave?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   If the abysm
   Could vomit forth its secrets...But a voice                          _115
   Is wanting, the deep truth is imageless;
   For what would it avail to bid thee gaze
   On the revolving world? What to bid speak
   Fate, Time, Occasion, Chance and Change? To these
   All things are subject but eternal Love.                             _120
   
   ASIA:
   So much I asked before, and my heart gave
   The response thou hast given; and of such truths
   Each to itself must be the oracle.
   One more demand; and do thou answer me
   As my own soul would answer, did it know                             _125
   That which I ask. Prometheus shall arise
   Henceforth the sun of this rejoicing world:
   When shall the destined hour arrive?
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Behold!
   
   ASIA:
   The rocks are cloven, and through the purple night
   I see cars drawn by rainbow-winged steeds                            _130
   Which trample the dim winds: in each there stands
   A wild-eyed charioteer urging their flight.
   Some look behind, as fiends pursued them there,
   And yet I see no shapes but the keen stars:
   Others, with burning eyes, lean forth, and drink                     _135
   With eager lips the wind of their own speed,
   As if the thing they loved fled on before,
   And now, even now, they clasped it. Their bright locks
   Stream like a comet's flashing hair; they all
   Sweep onward.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   These are the immortal Hours,                                        _140
   Of whom thou didst demand. One waits for thee.
   
   ASIA:
   A Spirit with a dreadful countenance
   Checks its dark chariot by the craggy gulf.
   Unlike thy brethren, ghastly charioteer,
   Who art thou? Whither wouldst thou bear me? Speak!                   _145
   
   SPIRIT:
   I am the shadow of a destiny
   More dread than is my aspect: ere yon planet
   Has set, the darkness which ascends with me
   Shall wrap in lasting night heaven's kingless throne.
   
   ASIA:
   What meanest thou?
   
   PANTHEA:
   That terrible shadow floats                                          _150
   Up from its throne, as may the lurid smoke
   Of earthquake-ruined cities o'er the sea.
   Lo! it ascends the car; the coursers fly
   Terrified: watch its path among the stars
   Blackening the night!
   
   ASIA:
   Thus I am answered: strange!                                         _155
   
   PANTHEA:
   See, near the verge, another chariot stays;
   An ivory shell inlaid with crimson fire,
   Which comes and goes within its sculptured rim
   Of delicate strange tracery; the young spirit
   That guides it has the dove-like eyes of hope;                       _160
   How its soft smiles attract the soul! as light
   Lures winged insects through the lampless air.
   
   SPIRIT:
   My coursers are fed with the lightning,
   They drink of the whirlwind's stream,
   And when the red morning is bright'ning                              _165
   They bathe in the fresh sunbeam;
   They have strength for their swiftness I deem;
   Then ascend with me, daughter of Ocean.
   I desire: and their speed makes night kindle;
   I fear: they outstrip the Typhoon;                                   _170
   Ere the cloud piled on Atlas can dwindle
   We encircle the earth and the moon:
   We shall rest from long labours at noon:
   Then ascend with me, daughter of Ocean.
   
   SCENE 2.5:
   THE CAR PAUSES WITHIN A CLOUD ON THE TOP OF A SNOWY MOUNTAIN.
   ASIA, PANTHEA, AND THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR.
   
   SPIRIT:
   On the brink of the night and the morning
   My coursers are wont to respire;
   But the Earth has just whispered a warning
   That their flight must be swifter than fire:
   They shall drink the hot speed of desire!                            _5
   
   ASIA:
   Thou breathest on their nostrils, but my breath
   Would give them swifter speed.
   
   SPIRIT:
   Alas! it could not.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Oh Spirit! pause, and tell whence is the light
   Which fills this cloud? the sun is yet unrisen.
   
   NOTE:
   _9 this B; the 1820.
   
   SPIRIT:
   The sun will rise not until noon. Apollo                             _10
   Is held in heaven by wonder; and the light
   Which fills this vapour, as the aereal hue
   Of fountain-gazing roses fills the water,
   Flows from thy mighty sister.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Yes, I feel--
   
   ASIA:
   What is it with thee, sister? Thou art pale.                         _15
   
   PANTHEA:
   How thou art changed! I dare not look on thee;
   I feel but see thee not. I scarce endure
   The radiance of thy beauty. Some good change
   Is working in the elements, which suffer
   Thy presence thus unveiled. The Nereids tell                         _20
   That on the day when the clear hyaline
   Was cloven at thine uprise, and thou didst stand
   Within a veined shell, which floated on
   Over the calm floor of the crystal sea,
   Among the Aegean isles, and by the shores                            _25
   Which bear thy name; love, like the atmosphere
   Of the sun's fire filling the living world,
   Burst from thee, and illumined earth and heaven
   And the deep ocean and the sunless caves
   And all that dwells within them; till grief cast                     _30
   Eclipse upon the soul from which it came:
   Such art thou now; nor is it I alone,
   Thy sister, thy companion, thine own chosen one,
   But the whole world which seeks thy sympathy.
   Hearest thou not sounds i' the air which speak the love              _35
   Of all articulate beings? Feelest thou not
   The inanimate winds enamoured of thee? List!
   
   NOTE:
   _22 thine B; thy 1820.
   
   [MUSIC.]
   
   ASIA:
   Thy words are sweeter than aught else but his
   Whose echoes they are; yet all love is sweet,
   Given or returned. Common as light is love,                          _40
   And its familiar voice wearies not ever.
   Like the wide heaven, the all-sustaining air,
   It makes the reptile equal to the God:
   They who inspire it most are fortunate,
   As I am now; but those who feel it most                              _45
   Are happier still, after long sufferings,
   As I shall soon become.
   
   PANTHEA:
   List! Spirits speak.
   
   VOICE IN THE AIR, SINGING:
   Life of Life! thy lips enkindle
   With their love the breath between them;
   And thy smiles before they dwindle                                   _50
   Make the cold air fire; then screen them
   In those looks, where whoso gazes
   Faints, entangled in their mazes.
   
   Child of Light! thy limbs are burning
   Through the vest which seems to hide them;                           _55
   As the radiant lines of morning
   Through the clouds ere they divide them;
   And this atmosphere divinest
   Shrouds thee wheresoe'er thou shinest.
   
   Fair are others; none beholds thee,                                  _60
   But thy voice sounds low and tender
   Like the fairest, for it folds thee
   From the sight, that liquid splendour,
   And all feel, yet see thee never,
   As I feel now, lost for ever!                                        _65
   
   Lamp of Earth! where'er thou movest
   Its dim shapes are clad with brightness,
   And the souls of whom thou lovest
   Walk upon the winds with lightness,
   Till they fail, as I am failing,                                     _70
   Dizzy, lost, yet unbewailing!
   
   NOTE:
   _54 limbs B, edition 1839; lips 1820.
   
   ASIA:
   My soul is an enchanted boat,
   Which, like a sleeping swan, doth float
   Upon the silver waves of thy sweet singing;
   And thine doth like an angel sit                                     _75
   Beside a helm conducting it,
   Whilst all the winds with melody are ringing.
   It seems to float ever, for ever,
   Upon that many-winding river,
   Between mountains, woods, abysses,                                   _80
   A paradise of wildernesses!
   Till, like one in slumber bound,
   Borne to the ocean, I float down, around,
   Into a sea profound, of ever-spreading sound:
   
   Meanwhile thy spirit lifts its pinions                               _85
   In music's most serene dominions;
   Catching the winds that fan that happy heaven.
   And we sail on, away, afar,
   Without a course, without a star,
   But, by the instinct of sweet music driven;                          _90
   Till through Elysian garden islets
   By thee most beautiful of pilots,
   Where never mortal pinnace glided,
   The boat of my desire is guided:
   Realms where the air we breathe is love,                             _95
   Which in the winds on the waves doth move,
   Harmonizing this earth with what we feel above.
   
   We have passed Age's icy caves,
   And Manhood's dark and tossing waves,
   And Youth's smooth ocean, smiling to betray:                         _100
   Beyond the glassy gulfs we flee
   Of shadow-peopled Infancy,
   Through Death and Birth, to a diviner day;
   A paradise of vaulted bowers,
   Lit by downward-gazing flowers,                                      _105
   And watery paths that wind between
   Wildernesses calm and green,
   Peopled by shapes too bright to see,
   And rest, having beheld; somewhat like thee;
   Which walk upon the sea, and chant melodiously!                      _110
   
   NOTE:
   _96 winds and on B; winds on 1820.
   
   END OF ACT 2.
   
   
   ACT 3.
   
   SCENE 3.1:
   HEAVEN.
   JUPITER ON HIS THRONE; THETIS AND THE OTHER DEITIES ASSEMBLED.
   
   JUPITER:
   Ye congregated powers of heaven, who share
   The glory and the strength of him ye serve,
   Rejoice! henceforth I am omnipotent.
   All else had been subdued to me; alone
   The soul of man, like unextinguished fire,                           _5
   Yet burns towards heaven with fierce reproach, and doubt,
   And lamentation, and reluctant prayer,
   Hurling up insurrection, which might make
   Our antique empire insecure, though built
   On eldest faith, and hell's coeval, fear;                            _10
   And though my curses through the pendulous air,
   Like snow on herbless peaks, fall flake by flake,
   And cling to it; though under my wrath's night
   It climbs the crags of life, step after step,
   Which wound it, as ice wounds unsandalled feet,                      _15
   It yet remains supreme o'er misery,
   Aspiring, unrepressed, yet soon to fall:
   Even now have I begotten a strange wonder,
   That fatal child, the terror of the earth,
   Who waits but till the destined hour arrive,                         _20
   Bearing from Demogorgon's vacant throne
   The dreadful might of ever-living limbs
   Which clothed that awful spirit unbeheld,
   To redescend, and trample out the spark.
   Pour forth heaven's wine, Idaean Ganymede,                           _25
   And let it fill the Daedal cups like fire,
   And from the flower-inwoven soil divine
   Ye all-triumphant harmonies arise,
   As dew from earth under the twilight stars:
   Drink! be the nectar circling through your veins                     _30
   The soul of joy, ye ever-living Gods,
   Till exultation burst in one wide voice
   Like music from Elysian winds.
   And thou
   Ascend beside me, veiled in the light
   Of the desire which makes thee one with me,                          _35
   Thetis, bright image of eternity!
   When thou didst cry, 'Insufferable might!
   God! Spare me! I sustain not the quick flames,
   The penetrating presence; all my being,
   Like him whom the Numidian seps did thaw                             _40
   Into a dew with poison, is dissolved,
   Sinking through its foundations:' even then
   Two mighty spirits, mingling, made a third
   Mightier than either, which, unbodied now,
   Between us floats, felt, although unbeheld,                          _45
   Waiting the incarnation, which ascends,
   (Hear ye the thunder of the fiery wheels
   Griding the winds?) from Demogorgon's throne.
   Victory! victory! Feel'st thou not, O world,
   The earthquake of his chariot thundering up                          _50
   Olympus?
   [THE CAR OF THE HOUR ARRIVES.
   DEMOGORGON DESCENDS, AND MOVES TOWARDS THE THRONE OF JUPITER.]
   Awful shape, what art thou? Speak!
   
   NOTES:
   _5 like unextinguished B, edition 1839; like an unextinguished 1820.
   _13 night B, edition 1839; might 1820.
   _20 destined B, edition 1839; distant 1820.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Eternity. Demand no direr name.
   Descend, and follow me down the abyss.
   I am thy child, as thou wert Saturn's child;
   Mightier than thee: and we must dwell together                       _55
   Henceforth in darkness. Lift thy lightnings not.
   The tyranny of heaven none may retain,
   Or reassume, or hold, succeeding thee:
   Yet if thou wilt, as 'tis the destiny
   Of trodden worms to writhe till they are dead,                       _60
   Put forth thy might.
   
   JUPITER:
   Detested prodigy!
   Even thus beneath the deep Titanian prisons
   I trample thee! thou lingerest?
   Mercy! mercy!
   No pity, no release, no respite! Oh,
   That thou wouldst make mine enemy my judge,                          _65
   Even where he hangs, seared by my long revenge,
   On Caucasus! he would not doom me thus.
   Gentle, and just, and dreadless, is he not
   The monarch of the world? What then art thou?
   No refuge! no appeal!
   Sink with me then,                                                   _70
   We two will sink on the wide waves of ruin,
   Even as a vulture and a snake outspent
   Drop, twisted in inextricable fight,
   Into a shoreless sea. Let hell unlock
   Its mounded oceans of tempestuous fire,                              _75
   And whelm on them into the bottomless void
   This desolated world, and thee, and me,
   The conqueror and the conquered, and the wreck
   Of that for which they combated.
   Ai, Ai!
   The elements obey me not. I sink                                     _80
   Dizzily down, ever, for ever, down.
   And, like a cloud, mine enemy above
   Darkens my fall with victory! Ai, Ai!
   
   NOTE:
   _69 then B, edition 1839; omitted 1820.
   
   SCENE 3.2:
   THE MOUTH OF A GREAT RIVER IN THE ISLAND ATLANTIS.
   OCEAN IS DISCOVERED RECLINING NEAR THE SHORE;
   APOLLO STANDS BESIDE HIM.
   
   OCEAN:
   He fell, thou sayest, beneath his conqueror's frown?
   
   APOLLO:
   Ay, when the strife was ended which made dim
   The orb I rule, and shook the solid stars,
   The terrors of his eye illumined heaven
   With sanguine light, through the thick ragged skirts                 _5
   Of the victorious darkness, as he fell:
   Like the last glare of day's red agony,
   Which, from a rent among the fiery clouds,
   Burns far along the tempest-wrinkled deep.
   
   OCEAN:
   He sunk to the abyss? To the dark void?                              _10
   
   APOLLO:
   An eagle so caught in some bursting cloud
   On Caucasus, his thunder-baffled wings
   Entangled in the whirlwind, and his eyes
   Which gazed on the undazzling sun, now blinded
   By the white lightning, while the ponderous hail                     _15
   Beats on his struggling form, which sinks at length
   Prone, and the aereal ice clings over it.
   
   OCEAN:
   Henceforth the fields of heaven-reflecting sea
   Which are my realm, will heave, unstained with blood,
   Beneath the uplifting winds, like plains of corn                     _20
   Swayed by the summer air; my streams will flow
   Round many-peopled continents, and round
   Fortunate isles; and from their glassy thrones
   Blue Proteus and his humid nymphs shall mark
   The shadow of fair ships, as mortals see                             _25
   The floating bark of the light-laden moon
   With that white star, its sightless pilot's crest,
   Borne down the rapid sunset's ebbing sea;
   Tracking their path no more by blood and groans,
   And desolation, and the mingled voice                                _30
   Of slavery and command; but by the light
   Of wave-reflected flowers, and floating odours,
   And music soft, and mild, free, gentle voices,
   And sweetest music, such as spirits love.
   
   NOTES:
   _22 many-peopled B; many peopled 1820.
   _26 light-laden B; light laden 1820.
   
   APOLLO:
   And I shall gaze not on the deeds which make                         _35
   My mind obscure with sorrow, as eclipse
   Darkens the sphere I guide; but list, I hear
   The small, clear, silver lute of the young Spirit
   That sits i' the morning star.
   
   NOTE:
   _39 i' the B, edition 1839; on the 1820.
   
   OCEAN:
   Thou must away;
   Thy steeds will pause at even, till when farewell:                   _40
   The loud deep calls me home even now to feed it
   With azure calm out of the emerald urns
   Which stand for ever full beside my throne.
   Behold the Nereids under the green sea,
   Their wavering limbs borne on the wind-like stream,                  _45
   Their white arms lifted o'er their streaming hair
   With garlands pied and starry sea-flower crowns,
   Hastening to grace their mighty sister's joy.
   [A SOUND OF WAVES IS HEARD.]
   It is the unpastured sea hungering for calm.
   Peace, monster; I come now. Farewell.
   
   APOLLO:
   Farewell.                                                            _50
   
   SCENE 3.3:
   CAUCASUS.
   PROMETHEUS, HERCULES, IONE, THE EARTH, SPIRITS, ASIA,
   AND PANTHEA, BORNE IN THE CAR WITH THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR.
   HERCULES UNBINDS PROMETHEUS, WHO DESCENDS.
   
   HERCULES:
   Most glorious among Spirits, thus doth strength
   To wisdom, courage, and long-suffering love,
   And thee, who art the form they animate,
   Minister like a slave.
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Thy gentle words
   Are sweeter even than freedom long desired                           _5
   And long delayed.
   Asia, thou light of life,
   Shadow of beauty unbeheld: and ye,
   Fair sister nymphs, who made long years of pain
   Sweet to remember, through your love and care:
   Henceforth we will not part. There is a cave,                        _10
   All overgrown with trailing odorous plants,
   Which curtain out the day with leaves and flowers,
   And paved with veined emerald, and a fountain
   Leaps in the midst with an awakening sound.
   From its curved roof the mountain's frozen tears                     _15
   Like snow, or silver, or long diamond spires,
   Hang downward, raining forth a doubtful light:
   And there is heard the ever-moving air,
   Whispering without from tree to tree, and birds,
   And bees; and all around are mossy seats,                            _20
   And the rough walls are clothed with long soft grass;
   A simple dwelling, which shall be our own;
   Where we will sit and talk of time and change,
   As the world ebbs and flows, ourselves unchanged.
   What can hide man from mutability?                                   _25
   And if ye sigh, then I will smile; and thou,
   Ione, shalt chant fragments of sea-music,
   Until I weep, when ye shall smile away
   The tears she brought, which yet were sweet to shed.
   We will entangle buds and flowers and beams                          _30
   Which twinkle on the fountain's brim, and make
   Strange combinations out of common things,
   Like human babes in their brief innocence;
   And we will search, with looks and words of love,
   For hidden thoughts, each lovelier than the last,                    _35
   Our unexhausted spirits; and like lutes
   Touched by the skill of the enamoured wind,
   Weave harmonies divine, yet ever new,
   From difference sweet where discord cannot be;
   And hither come, sped on the charmed winds,                          _40
   Which meet from all the points of heaven, as bees
   From every flower aereal Enna feeds,
   At their known island-homes in Himera,
   The echoes of the human world, which tell
   Of the low voice of love, almost unheard,                            _45
   And dove-eyed pity's murmured pain, and music,
   Itself the echo of the heart, and all
   That tempers or improves man's life, now free;
   And lovely apparitions,--dim at first,
   Then radiant, as the mind, arising bright                            _50
   From the embrace of beauty (whence the forms
   Of which these are the phantoms) casts on them
   The gathered rays which are reality--
   Shall visit us, the progeny immortal
   Of Painting, Sculpture, and rapt Poesy,                              _55
   And arts, though unimagined, yet to be.
   The wandering voices and the shadows these
   Of all that man becomes, the mediators
   Of that best worship love, by him and us
   Given and returned; swift shapes and sounds, which grow              _60
   More fair and soft as man grows wise and kind,
   And, veil by veil, evil and error fall:
   Such virtue has the cave and place around.
   [TURNING TO THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR.]
   For thee, fair Spirit, one toil remains. Ione,
   Give her that curved shell, which Proteus old                        _65
   Made Asia's nuptial boon, breathing within it
   A voice to be accomplished, and which thou
   Didst hide in grass under the hollow rock.
   
   IONE:
   Thou most desired Hour, more loved and lovely
   Than all thy sisters, this is the mystic shell;                      _70
   See the pale azure fading into silver
   Lining it with a soft yet glowing light:
   Looks it not like lulled music sleeping there?
   
   SPIRIT:
   It seems in truth the fairest shell of Ocean:
   Its sound must be at once both sweet and strange.                    _75
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   Go, borne over the cities of mankind
   On whirlwind-footed coursers: once again
   Outspeed the sun around the orbed world;
   And as thy chariot cleaves the kindling air,
   Thou breathe into the many-folded shell,                             _80
   Loosening its mighty music; it shall be
   As thunder mingled with clear echoes: then
   Return; and thou shalt dwell beside our cave.
   And thou, O Mother Earth!--
   
   THE EARTH:
   I hear, I feel;
   Thy lips are on me, and thy touch runs down                          _85
   Even to the adamantine central gloom
   Along these marble nerves; 'tis life, 'tis joy,
   And, through my withered, old, and icy frame
   The warmth of an immortal youth shoots down
   Circling. Henceforth the many children fair                          _90
   Folded in my sustaining arms; all plants,
   And creeping forms, and insects rainbow-winged,
   And birds, and beasts, and fish, and human shapes,
   Which drew disease and pain from my wan bosom,
   Draining the poison of despair, shall take                           _95
   And interchange sweet nutriment; to me
   Shall they become like sister-antelopes
   By one fair dam, snow-white and swift as wind,
   Nursed among lilies near a brimming stream.
   The dew-mists of my sunless sleep shall float                        _100
   Under the stars like balm: night-folded flowers
   Shall suck unwithering hues in their repose:
   And men and beasts in happy dreams shall gather
   Strength for the coming day, and all its joy:
   And death shall be the last embrace of her                           _105
   Who takes the life she gave, even as a mother,
   Folding her child, says, 'Leave me not again.'
   
   NOTES:
   _85 their B; thy 1820.
   _102 unwithering B, edition 1839; unwitting 1820.
   
   ASIA:
   Oh, mother! wherefore speak the name of death?
   Cease they to love, and move, and breathe, and speak,
   Who die?
   
   THE EARTH:
   It would avail not to reply:                                         _110
   Thou art immortal, and this tongue is known
   But to the uncommunicating dead.
   Death is the veil which those who live call life:
   They sleep, and it is lifted: and meanwhile
   In mild variety the seasons mild                                     _115
   With rainbow-skirted showers, and odorous winds,
   And long blue meteors cleansing the dull night,
   And the life-kindling shafts of the keen sun's
   All-piercing bow, and the dew-mingled rain
   Of the calm moonbeams, a soft influence mild,                        _120
   Shall clothe the forests and the fields, ay, even
   The crag-built deserts of the barren deep,
   With ever-living leaves, and fruits, and flowers.
   And thou! There is a cavern where my spirit
   Was panted forth in anguish whilst thy pain                          _125
   Made my heart mad, and those who did inhale it
   Became mad too, and built a temple there,
   And spoke, and were oracular, and lured
   The erring nations round to mutual war,
   And faithless faith, such as Jove kept with thee;                    _130
   Which breath now rises, as amongst tall weeds
   A violet's exhalation, and it fills
   With a serener light and crimson air
   Intense, yet soft, the rocks and woods around;
   It feeds the quick growth of the serpent vine,                       _135
   And the dark linked ivy tangling wild,
   And budding, blown, or odour-faded blooms
   Which star the winds with points of coloured light,
   As they rain through them, and bright golden globes
   Of fruit, suspended in their own green heaven,                       _140
   And through their veined leaves and amber stems
   The flowers whose purple and translucid bowls
   Stand ever mantling with aereal dew,
   The drink of spirits: and it circles round,
   Like the soft waving wings of noonday dreams,                        _145
   Inspiring calm and happy thoughts, like mine,
   Now thou art thus restored. This cave is thine.
   Arise! Appear!
   [A SPIRIT RISES IN THE LIKENESS OF A WINGED CHILD.]
   This is my torch-bearer;
   Who let his lamp out in old time with gazing
   On eyes from which he kindled it anew                                _150
   With love, which is as fire, sweet daughter mine,
   For such is that within thine own. Run, wayward,
   And guide this company beyond the peak
   Of Bacchic Nysa, Maenad-haunted mountain,
   And beyond Indus and its tribute rivers,                             _155
   Trampling the torrent streams and glassy lakes
   With feet unwet, unwearied, undelaying,
   And up the green ravine, across the vale,
   Beside the windless and crystalline pool,
   Where ever lies, on unerasing waves,                                 _160
   The image of a temple, built above,
   Distinct with column, arch, and architrave,
   And palm-like capital, and over-wrought,
   And populous with most living imagery,
   Praxitelean shapes, whose marble smiles                              _165
   Fill the hushed air with everlasting love.
   It is deserted now, but once it bore
   Thy name, Prometheus; there the emulous youths
   Bore to thy honour through the divine gloom
   The lamp which was thine emblem; even as those                       _170
   Who bear the untransmitted torch of hope
   Into the grave, across the night of life,
   As thou hast borne it most triumphantly
   To this far goal of Time. Depart, farewell.
   Beside that temple is the destined cave.                             _175
   
   NOTE:
   _164 with most B; most with 1820.
   
   SCENE 3.4:
   A FOREST. IN THE BACKGROUND A CAVE.
   PROMETHEUS, ASIA, PANTHEA, IONE, AND THE SPIRIT OF THE EARTH.
   
   IONE:
   Sister, it is not earthly: how it glides
   Under the leaves! how on its head there burns
   A light, like a green star, whose emerald beams
   Are twined with its fair hair! how, as it moves,
   The splendour drops in flakes upon the grass!                        _5
   Knowest thou it?
   
   PANTHEA:
   It is the delicate spirit
   That guides the earth through heaven. From afar
   The populous constellations call that light
   The loveliest of the planets; and sometimes
   It floats along the spray of the salt sea,                           _10
   Or makes its chariot of a foggy cloud,
   Or walks through fields or cities while men sleep,
   Or o'er the mountain tops, or down the rivers,
   Or through the green waste wilderness, as now,
   Wondering at all it sees. Before Jove reigned                        _15
   It loved our sister Asia, and it came
   Each leisure hour to drink the liquid light
   Out of her eyes, for which it said it thirsted
   As one bit by a dipsas, and with her
   It made its childish confidence, and told her                        _20
   All it had known or seen, for it saw much,
   Yet idly reasoned what it saw; and called her--
   For whence it sprung it knew not, nor do I--
   Mother, dear mother.
   
   THE SPIRIT OF THE EARTH [RUNNING TO ASIA]:
   Mother, dearest mother;
   May I then talk with thee as I was wont?                             _25
   May I then hide my eyes in thy soft arms,
   After thy looks have made them tired of joy?
   May I then play beside thee the long noons,
   When work is none in the bright silent air?
   
   ASIA:
   I love thee, gentlest being, and henceforth                          _30
   Can cherish thee unenvied: speak, I pray:
   Thy simple talk once solaced, now delights.
   
   SPIRIT OF THE EARTH:
   Mother, I am grown wiser, though a child
   Cannot be wise like thee, within this day;
   And happier too; happier and wiser both.                             _35
   Thou knowest that toads, and snakes, and loathly worms,
   And venomous and malicious beasts, and boughs
   That bore ill berries in the woods, were ever
   An hindrance to my walks o'er the green world:
   And that, among the haunts of humankind,                             _40
   Hard-featured men, or with proud, angry looks,
   Or cold, staid gait, or false and hollow smiles,
   Or the dull sneer of self-loved ignorance,
   Or other such foul masks, with which ill thoughts
   Hide that fair being whom we spirits call man;                       _45
   And women too, ugliest of all things evil,
   (Though fair, even in a world where thou art fair,
   When good and kind, free and sincere like thee)
   When false or frowning made me sick at heart
   To pass them, though they slept, and I unseen.                       _50
   Well, my path lately lay through a great city
   Into the woody hills surrounding it:
   A sentinel was sleeping at the gate:
   When there was heard a sound, so loud, it shook
   The towers amid the moonlight, yet more sweet                        _55
   Than any voice but thine, sweetest of all;
   A long, long sound, as it would never end:
   And all the inhabitants leaped suddenly
   Out of their rest, and gathered in the streets,
   Looking in wonder up to Heaven, while yet                            _60
   The music pealed along. I hid myself
   Within a fountain in the public square,
   Where I lay like the reflex of the moon
   Seen in a wave under green leaves; and soon
   Those ugly human shapes and visages                                  _65
   Of which I spoke as having wrought me pain,
   Passed floating through the air, and fading still
   Into the winds that scattered them; and those
   From whom they passed seemed mild and lovely forms
   After some foul disguise had fallen, and all                         _70
   Were somewhat changed, and after brief surprise
   And greetings of delighted wonder, all
   Went to their sleep again: and when the dawn
   Came, wouldst thou think that toads, and snakes, and efts,
   Could e'er be beautiful? yet so they were,                           _75
   And that with little change of shape or hue:
   All things had put their evil nature off:
   I cannot tell my joy, when o'er a lake,
   Upon a drooping bough with nightshade twined,
   I saw two azure halcyons clinging downward                           _80
   And thinning one bright bunch of amber berries,
   With quick long beaks, and in the deep there lay
   Those lovely forms imaged as in a sky;
   So, with my thoughts full of these happy changes,
   We meet again, the happiest change of all.                           _85
   
   ASIA:
   And never will we part, till thy chaste sister
   Who guides the frozen and inconstant moon
   Will look on thy more warm and equal light
   Till her heart thaw like flakes of April snow
   And love thee.
   
   SPIRIT OF THE EARTH:
   What! as Asia loves Prometheus?                                      _90
   
   ASIA:
   Peace, wanton, thou art yet not old enough.
   Think ye by gazing on each other's eyes
   To multiply your lovely selves, and fill
   With sphered fires the interlunar air?
   
   SPIRIT OF THE EARTH:
   Nay, mother, while my sister trims her lamp
   'Tis hard I should go darkling.                                      _95
   
   ASIA:
   Listen; look!
   
   [THE SPIRIT OF THE HOUR ENTERS.]
   
   PROMETHEUS:
   We feel what thou hast heard and seen: yet speak.
   
   SPIRIT OF THE HOUR:
   Soon as the sound had ceased whose thunder filled
   The abysses of the sky and the wide earth,
   There was a change: the impalpable thin air                          _100
   And the all-circling sunlight were transformed,
   As if the sense of love dissolved in them
   Had folded itself round the sphered world.
   My vision then grew clear, and I could see
   Into the mysteries of the universe:                                  _105
   Dizzy as with delight I floated down,
   Winnowing the lightsome air with languid plumes,
   My coursers sought their birthplace in the sun,
   Where they henceforth will live exempt from toil,
   Pasturing flowers of vegetable fire;                                 _110
   And where my moonlike car will stand within
   A temple, gazed upon by Phidian forms
   Of thee, and Asia, and the Earth, and me,
   And you fair nymphs looking the love we feel,--
   In memory of the tidings it has borne,--                             _115
   Beneath a dome fretted with graven flowers,
   Poised on twelve columns of resplendent stone,
   And open to the bright and liquid sky.
   Yoked to it by an amphisbaenic snake
   The likeness of those winged steeds will mock                        _120
   The flight from which they find repose. Alas,
   Whither has wandered now my partial tongue
   When all remains untold which ye would hear?
   As I have said, I floated to the earth:
   It was, as it is still, the pain of bliss                            _125
   To move, to breathe, to be. I wandering went
   Among the haunts and dwellings of mankind,
   And first was disappointed not to see
   Such mighty change as I had felt within
   Expressed in outward things; but soon I looked,                      _130
   And behold, thrones were kingless, and men walked
   One with the other even as spirits do,
   None fawned, none trampled; hate, disdain, or fear,
   Self-love or self-contempt, on human brows
   No more inscribed, as o'er the gate of hell,                         _135
   'All hope abandon ye who enter here;'
   None frowned, none trembled, none with eager fear
   Gazed on another's eye of cold command,
   Until the subject of a tyrant's will
   Became, worse fate, the abject of his own,                           _140
   Which spurred him, like an outspent horse, to death.
   None wrought his lips in truth-entangling lines
   Which smiled the lie his tongue disdained to speak;
   None, with firm sneer, trod out in his own heart
   The sparks of love and hope till there remained                      _145
   Those bitter ashes, a soul self-consumed,
   And the wretch crept a vampire among men,
   Infecting all with his own hideous ill;
   None talked that common, false, cold, hollow talk
   Which makes the heart deny the "yes" it breathes,                    _150
   Yet question that unmeant hypocrisy
   With such a self-mistrust as has no name.
   And women, too, frank, beautiful, and kind
   As the free heaven which rains fresh light and dew
   On the wide earth, past; gentle radiant forms,                       _155
   From custom's evil taint exempt and pure;
   Speaking the wisdom once they could not think,
   Looking emotions once they feared to feel,
   And changed to all which once they dared not be,
   Yet being now, made earth like heaven; nor pride,                    _160
   Nor jealousy, nor envy, nor ill shame,
   The bitterest of those drops of treasured gall,
   Spoiled the sweet taste of the nepenthe, love.
   
   Thrones, altars, judgement-seats, and prisons; wherein,
   And beside which, by wretched men were borne                         _165
   Sceptres, tiaras, swords, and chains, and tomes
   Of reasoned wrong, glozed on by ignorance,
   Were like those monstrous and barbaric shapes,
   The ghosts of a no-more-remembered fame,
   Which, from their unworn obelisks, look forth                        _170
   In triumph o'er the palaces and tombs
   Of those who were their conquerors: mouldering round,
   These imaged to the pride of kings and priests
   A dark yet mighty faith, a power as wide
   As is the world it wasted, and are now                               _175
   But an astonishment; even so the tools
   And emblems of its last captivity,
   Amid the dwellings of the peopled earth,
   Stand, not o'erthrown, but unregarded now.
   And those foul shapes, abhorred by god and man,--                    _180
   Which, under many a name and many a form
   Strange, savage, ghastly, dark and execrable,
   Were Jupiter, the tyrant of the world;
   And which the nations, panic-stricken, served
   With blood, and hearts broken by long hope, and love                 _185
   Dragged to his altars soiled and garlandless,
   And slain among men's unreclaiming tears,
   Flattering the thing they feared, which fear was hate,--
   Frown, mouldering fast, o'er their abandoned shrines:
   The painted veil, by those who were, called life,                    _190
   Which mimicked, as with colours idly spread,
   All men believed and hoped, is torn aside;
   The loathsome mask has fallen, the man remains
   Sceptreless, free, uncircumscribed, but man
   Equal, unclassed, tribeless, and nationless,                         _195
   Exempt from awe, worship, degree, the king
   Over himself; just, gentle, wise; but man
   Passionless?--no, yet free from guilt or pain,
   Which were, for his will made or suffered them,
   Nor yet exempt, though ruling them like slaves,                      _200
   From chance, and death, and mutability,
   The clogs of that which else might oversoar
   The loftiest star of unascended heaven,
   Pinnacled dim in the intense inane.
   
   NOTES:
   _121 flight B, edition 1839; light 1820.
   _173 These B; Those 1820.
   _187 amid B; among 1820.
   _192 or B; and 1820.
   
   END OF ACT 3.
   
   
   ACT 4.
   
   SCENE 4.1:
   A PART OF THE FOREST NEAR THE CAVE OF PROMETHEUS.
   PANTHEA AND IONE ARE SLEEPING: THEY AWAKEN GRADUALLY DURING THE FIRST SONG.
   
   VOICE OF UNSEEN SPIRITS:
   The pale stars are gone!
   For the sun, their swift shepherd,
   To their folds them compelling,
   In the depths of the dawn,
   Hastes, in meteor-eclipsing array, and the flee                      _5
   Beyond his blue dwelling,
   As fawns flee the leopard.
   But where are ye?
   
   [A TRAIN OF DARK FORMS AND SHADOWS PASSES BY CONFUSEDLY, SINGING.]
   
   Here, oh, here:
   We bear the bier                                                     _10
   Of the father of many a cancelled year!
   Spectres we
   Of the dead Hours be,
   We bear Time to his tomb in eternity.
   
   Strew, oh, strew                                                     _15
   Hair, not yew!
   Wet the dusty pall with tears, not dew!
   Be the faded flowers
   Of Death's bare bowers
   Spread on the corpse of the King of Hours!                           _20
   
   Haste, oh, haste!
   As shades are chased,
   Trembling, by day, from heaven's blue waste.
   We melt away,
   Like dissolving spray,                                               _25
   From the children of a diviner day,
   With the lullaby
   Of winds that die
   On the bosom of their own harmony!
   
   IONE:
   What dark forms were they?                                           _30
   
   PANTHEA:
   The past Hours weak and gray,
   With the spoil which their toil
   Raked together
   From the conquest but One could foil.
   
   IONE:
   Have they passed?
   
   PANTHEA:
   They have passed;                                                    _35
   They outspeeded the blast,
   While 'tis said, they are fled:
   
   IONE:
   Whither, oh, whither?
   
   PANTHEA:
   To the dark, to the past, to the dead.
   
   VOICE OF UNSEEN SPIRITS:
   Bright clouds float in heaven,                                       _40
   Dew-stars gleam on earth,
   Waves assemble on ocean,
   They are gathered and driven
   By the storm of delight, by the panic of glee!
   They shake with emotion,                                             _45
   They dance in their mirth.
   But where are ye?
   
   The pine boughs are singing
   Old songs with new gladness,
   The billows and fountains                                            _50
   Fresh music are flinging,
   Like the notes of a spirit from land and from sea;
   The storms mock the mountains
   With the thunder of gladness.
   But where are ye?                                                    _55
   
   IONE:
   What charioteers are these?
   
   PANTHEA:
   Where are their chariots?
   
   SEMICHORUS OF HOURS:
   The voice of the Spirits of Air and of Earth
   Has drawn back the figured curtain of sleep
   Which covered our being and darkened our birth
   In the deep.
   
   A VOICE:
   In the deep?
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Oh, below the deep.                                                  _60
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   An hundred ages we had been kept
   Cradled in visions of hate and care,
   And each one who waked as his brother slept,
   Found the truth--
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Worse than his visions were!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   We have heard the lute of Hope in sleep;                             _65
   We have known the voice of Love in dreams;
   We have felt the wand of Power, and leap--
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   As the billows leap in the morning beams!
   
   CHORUS:
   Weave the dance on the floor of the breeze,
   Pierce with song heaven's silent light,                              _70
   Enchant the day that too swiftly flees,
   To check its flight ere the cave of Night.
   
   Once the hungry Hours were hounds
   Which chased the day like a bleeding deer,
   And it limped and stumbled with many wounds                          _75
   Through the nightly dells of the desert year.
   
   But now, oh weave the mystic measure
   Of music, and dance, and shapes of light,
   Let the Hours, and the spirits of might and pleasure,
   Like the clouds and sunbeams, unite--
   
   A VOICE:
   Unite!                                                               _80
   
   PANTHEA:
   See, where the Spirits of the human mind
   Wrapped in sweet sounds, as in bright veils, approach.
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
   We join the throng
   Of the dance and the song,
   By the whirlwind of gladness borne along;                            _85
   As the flying-fish leap
   From the Indian deep,
   And mix with the sea-birds, half-asleep.
   
   CHORUS OF HOURS:
   Whence come ye, so wild and so fleet,
   For sandals of lightning are on your feet,                           _90
   And your wings are soft and swift as thought,
   And your eyes are as love which is veiled not?
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
   We come from the mind
   Of human kind
   Which was late so dusk, and obscene, and blind,                      _95
   Now 'tis an ocean
   Of clear emotion,
   A heaven of serene and mighty motion.
   
   From that deep abyss
   Of wonder and bliss,                                                 _100
   Whose caverns are crystal palaces;
   From those skiey towers
   Where Thought's crowned powers
   Sit watching your dance, ye happy Hours!
   
   From the dim recesses                                                _105
   Of woven caresses,
   Where lovers catch ye by your loose tresses;
   From the azure isles,
   Where sweet Wisdom smiles,
   Delaying your ships with her siren wiles.                            _110
   
   From the temples high
   Of Man's ear and eye,
   Roofed over Sculpture and Poesy;
   From the murmurings
   Of the unsealed springs                                              _115
   Where Science bedews her Daedal wings.
   
   Years after years,
   Through blood, and tears,
   And a thick hell of hatreds, and hopes, and fears;
   We waded and flew,                                                   _120
   And the islets were few
   Where the bud-blighted flowers of happiness grew.
   
   Our feet now, every palm,
   Are sandalled with calm,
   And the dew of our wings is a rain of balm;                          _125
   And, beyond our eyes,
   The human love lies
   Which makes all it gazes on Paradise.
   
   NOTE:
   _116 her B; his 1820.
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS AND HOURS:
   Then weave the web of the mystic measure;
   From the depths of the sky and the ends of the earth,                _130
   Come, swift Spirits of might and of pleasure,
   Fill the dance and the music of mirth,
   As the waves of a thousand streams rush by
   To an ocean of splendour and harmony!
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
   Our spoil is won,                                                    _135
   Our task is done,
   We are free to dive, or soar, or run;
   Beyond and around,
   Or within the bound
   Which clips the world with darkness round.                           _140
   
   We'll pass the eyes
   Of the starry skies
   Into the hoar deep to colonize;
   Death, Chaos, and Night,
   From the sound of our flight,                                        _145
   Shall flee, like mist from a tempest's might.
   
   And Earth, Air, and Light,
   And the Spirit of Might,
   Which drives round the stars in their fiery flight;
   And Love, Thought, and Breath,                                       _150
   The powers that quell Death,
   Wherever we soar shall assemble beneath.
   
   And our singing shall build
   In the void's loose field
   A world for the Spirit of Wisdom to wield;                           _155
   We will take our plan
   From the new world of man,
   And our work shall be called the Promethean.
   
   CHORUS OF HOURS:
   Break the dance, and scatter the song;
   Let some depart, and some remain;                                    _160
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   We, beyond heaven, are driven along:
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Us the enchantments of earth retain:
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Ceaseless, and rapid, and fierce, and free,
   With the Spirits which build a new earth and sea,
   And a heaven where yet heaven could never be;                        _165
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Solemn, and slow, and serene, and bright,
   Leading the Day and outspeeding the Night,
   With the powers of a world of perfect light;
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   We whirl, singing loud, round the gathering sphere,
   Till the trees, and the beasts, and the clouds appear                _170
   From its chaos made calm by love, not fear.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   We encircle the ocean and mountains of earth,
   And the happy forms of its death and birth
   Change to the music of our sweet mirth.
   
   CHORUS OF HOURS AND SPIRITS:
   Break the dance, and scatter the song;                               _175
   Let some depart, and some remain,
   Wherever we fly we lead along
   In leashes, like starbeams, soft yet strong,
   The clouds that are heavy with love's sweet rain.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Ha! they are gone!
   
   IONE:
   Yet feel you no delight                                              _180
   From the past sweetness?
   
   PANTHEA:
   As the bare green hill
   When some soft cloud vanishes into rain,
   Laughs with a thousand drops of sunny water
   To the unpavilioned sky!
   
   IONE:
   Even whilst we speak
   New notes arise. What is that awful sound?                           _185
   
   PANTHEA:
   'Tis the deep music of the rolling world
   Kindling within the strings of the waved air
   Aeolian modulations.
   
   IONE:
   Listen too,
   How every pause is filled with under-notes,
   Clear, silver, icy, keen awakening tones,                            _190
   Which pierce the sense, and live within the soul,
   As the sharp stars pierce winter's crystal air
   And gaze upon themselves within the sea.
   
   PANTHEA:
   But see where through two openings in the forest
   Which hanging branches overcanopy,                                   _195
   And where two runnels of a rivulet,
   Between the close moss violet-inwoven,
   Have made their path of melody, like sisters
   Who part with sighs that they may meet in smiles,
   Turning their dear disunion to an isle                               _200
   Of lovely grief, a wood of sweet sad thoughts;
   Two visions of strange radiance float upon
   The ocean-like enchantment of strong sound,
   Which flows intenser, keener, deeper yet
   Under the ground and through the windless air.                       _205
   
   IONE:
   I see a chariot like that thinnest boat,
   In which the Mother of the Months is borne
   By ebbing light into her western cave,
   When she upsprings from interlunar dreams;
   O'er which is curved an orblike canopy                               _210
   Of gentle darkness, and the hills and woods,
   Distinctly seen through that dusk aery veil,
   Regard like shapes in an enchanter's glass;
   Its wheels are solid clouds, azure and gold,
   Such as the genii of the thunderstorm                                _215
   Pile on the floor of the illumined sea
   When the sun rushes under it; they roll
   And move and grow as with an inward wind;
   Within it sits a winged infant, white
   Its countenance, like the whiteness of bright snow,                  _220
   Its plumes are as feathers of sunny frost,
   Its limbs gleam white, through the wind-flowing folds
   Of its white robe, woof of ethereal pearl.
   Its hair is white, the brightness of white light
   Scattered in strings; yet its two eyes are heavens                   _225
   Of liquid darkness, which the Deity
   Within seems pouring, as a storm is poured
   From jagged clouds, out of their arrowy lashes,
   Tempering the cold and radiant air around,
   With fire that is not brightness; in its hand                        _230
   It sways a quivering moonbeam, from whose point
   A guiding power directs the chariot's prow
   Over its wheeled clouds, which as they roll
   Over the grass, and flowers, and waves, wake sounds,
   Sweet as a singing rain of silver dew.                               _235
   
   NOTES:
   _208 light B; night 1820.
   _212 aery B; airy 1820.
   _225 strings B, edition 1839; string 1820.
   
   PANTHEA:
   And from the other opening in the wood
   Rushes, with loud and whirlwind harmony,
   A sphere, which is as many thousand spheres,
   Solid as crystal, yet through all its mass
   Flow, as through empty space, music and light:                       _240
   Ten thousand orbs involving and involved,
   Purple and azure, white, and green, and golden,
   Sphere within sphere; and every space between
   Peopled with unimaginable shapes,
   Such as ghosts dream dwell in the lampless deep,                     _245
   Yet each inter-transpicuous, and they whirl
   Over each other with a thousand motions,
   Upon a thousand sightless axles spinning,
   And with the force of self-destroying swiftness,
   Intensely, slowly, solemnly, roll on,                                _250
   Kindling with mingled sounds, and many tones,
   Intelligible words and music wild.
   With mighty whirl the multitudinous orb
   Grinds the bright brook into an azure mist
   Of elemental subtlety, like light;                                   _255
   And the wild odour of the forest flowers,
   The music of the living grass and air,
   The emerald light of leaf-entangled beams
   Round its intense yet self-conflicting speed,
   Seem kneaded into one aereal mass                                    _260
   Which drowns the sense. Within the orb itself,
   Pillowed upon its alabaster arms,
   Like to a child o'erwearied with sweet toil,
   On its own folded wings, and wavy hair,
   The Spirit of the Earth is laid asleep,                              _265
   And you can see its little lips are moving,
   Amid the changing light of their own smiles,
   Like one who talks of what he loves in dream.
   
   NOTE:
   _242 white and green B; white, green 1820.
   
   IONE:
   'Tis only mocking the orb's harmony.
   
   PANTHEA:
   And from a star upon its forehead, shoot,                            _270
   Like swords of azure fire, or golden spears
   With tyrant-quelling myrtle overtwined,
   Embleming heaven and earth united now,
   Vast beams like spokes of some invisible wheel
   Which whirl as the orb whirls, swifter than thought,                 _275
   Filling the abyss with sun-like lightenings,
   And perpendicular now, and now transverse,
   Pierce the dark soil, and as they pierce and pass,
   Make bare the secrets of the earth's deep heart;
   Infinite mine of adamant and gold,                                   _280
   Valueless stones, and unimagined gems,
   And caverns on crystalline columns poised
   With vegetable silver overspread;
   Wells of unfathomed fire, and water springs
   Whence the great sea, even as a child is fed,                        _285
   Whose vapours clothe earth's monarch mountain-tops
   With kingly, ermine snow. The beams flash on
   And make appear the melancholy ruins
   Of cancelled cycles; anchors, beaks of ships;
   Planks turned to marble; quivers, helms, and spears,                 _290
   And gorgon-headed targes, and the wheels
   Of scythed chariots, and the emblazonry
   Of trophies, standards, and armorial beasts,
   Round which death laughed, sepulchred emblems
   Of dead destruction, ruin within ruin!                               _295
   The wrecks beside of many a city vast,
   Whose population which the earth grew over
   Was mortal, but not human; see, they lie,
   Their monstrous works, and uncouth skeletons,
   Their statues, homes and fanes; prodigious shapes                    _300
   Huddled in gray annihilation, split,
   Jammed in the hard, black deep; and over these,
   The anatomies of unknown winged things,
   And fishes which were isles of living scale,
   And serpents, bony chains, twisted around                            _305
   The iron crags, or within heaps of dust
   To which the tortuous strength of their last pangs
   Had crushed the iron crags; and over these
   The jagged alligator, and the might
   Of earth-convulsing behemoth, which once                             _310
   Were monarch beasts, and on the slimy shores,
   And weed-overgrown continents of earth,
   Increased and multiplied like summer worms
   On an abandoned corpse, till the blue globe
   Wrapped deluge round it like a cloak, and they                       _315
   Yelled, gasped, and were abolished; or some God
   Whose throne was in a comet, passed, and cried,
   'Be not!' And like my words they were no more.
   
   NOTES:
   _274 spokes B, edition 1839; spoke 1820.
   _276 lightenings B; lightnings 1820.
   _280 mines B; mine 1820.
   _282 poised B; poized edition 1839; poured 1820.
   
   THE EARTH:
   The joy, the triumph, the delight, the madness!
   The boundless, overflowing, bursting gladness,                       _320
   The vaporous exultation not to be confined!
   Ha! ha! the animation of delight
   Which wraps me, like an atmosphere of light,
   And bears me as a cloud is borne by its own wind.
   
   THE MOON:
   Brother mine, calm wanderer,                                         _325
   Happy globe of land and air,
   Some Spirit is darted like a beam from thee,
   Which penetrates my frozen frame,
   And passes with the warmth of flame,
   With love, and odour, and deep melody                                _330
   Through me, through me!
   
   THE EARTH:
   Ha! ha! the caverns of my hollow mountains,
   My cloven fire-crags, sound-exulting fountains
   Laugh with a vast and inextinguishable laughter.
   The oceans, and the deserts, and the abysses,                        _335
   And the deep air's unmeasured wildernesses,
   Answer from all their clouds and billows, echoing after.
   
   They cry aloud as I do. Sceptred curse,
   Who all our green and azure universe
   Threatenedst to muffle round with black destruction, sending         _340
   A solid cloud to rain hot thunderstones,
   And splinter and knead down my children's bones,
   All I bring forth, to one void mass battering and blending,--
   
   Until each crag-like tower, and storied column,
   Palace, and obelisk, and temple solemn,                              _345
   My imperial mountains crowned with cloud, and snow, and fire,
   My sea-like forests, every blade and blossom
   Which finds a grave or cradle in my bosom,
   Were stamped by thy strong hate into a lifeless mire:
   
   How art thou sunk, withdrawn, covered, drunk up                      _350
   By thirsty nothing, as the brackish cup
   Drained by a desert-troop, a little drop for all;
   And from beneath, around, within, above,
   Filling thy void annihilation, love
   Bursts in like light on caves cloven by the thunder-ball.            _355
   
   NOTES:
   _335-_336 the abysses, And 1820, 1839; the abysses Of B.
   _355 the omitted 1820.
   
   THE MOON:
   The snow upon my lifeless mountains
   Is loosened into living fountains,
   My solid oceans flow, and sing and shine:
   A spirit from my heart bursts forth,
   It clothes with unexpected birth                                     _360
   My cold bare bosom: Oh! it must be thine
   On mine, on mine!
   
   Gazing on thee I feel, I know
   Green stalks burst forth, and bright flowers grow,
   And living shapes upon my bosom move:                                _365
   Music is in the sea and air,
   Winged clouds soar here and there,
   Dark with the rain new buds are dreaming of:
   'Tis love, all love!
   
   THE EARTH:
   It interpenetrates my granite mass,                                  _370
   Through tangled roots and trodden clay doth pass
   Into the utmost leaves and delicatest flowers;
   Upon the winds, among the clouds 'tis spread,
   It wakes a life in the forgotten dead,
   They breathe a spirit up from their obscurest bowers.                _375
   
   And like a storm bursting its cloudy prison
   With thunder, and with whirlwind, has arisen
   Out of the lampless caves of unimagined being:
   With earthquake shock and swiftness making shiver
   Thought's stagnant chaos, unremoved for ever,                        _380
   Till hate, and fear, and pain, light-vanquished shadows, fleeing,
   
   Leave Man, who was a many-sided mirror,
   Which could distort to many a shape of error,
   This true fair world of things, a sea reflecting love;
   Which over all his kind, as the sun's heaven                         _385
   Gliding o'er ocean, smooth, serene, and even,
   Darting from starry depths radiance and life, doth move:
   
   Leave Man, even as a leprous child is left,
   Who follows a sick beast to some warm cleft
   Of rocks, through which the might of healing springs is poured;      _390
   Then when it wanders home with rosy smile,
   Unconscious, and its mother fears awhile
   It is a spirit, then, weeps on her child restored.
   
   Man, oh, not men! a chain of linked thought,
   Of love and might to be divided not,                                 _395
   Compelling the elements with adamantine stress;
   As the sun rules, even with a tyrant's gaze,
   The unquiet republic of the maze
   Of planets, struggling fierce towards heaven's free wilderness.
   
   Man, one harmonious soul of many a soul,                             _400
   Whose nature is its own divine control,
   Where all things flow to all, as rivers to the sea;
   Familiar acts are beautiful through love;
   Labour, and pain, and grief, in life's green grove
   Sport like tame beasts, none knew how gentle they could be!          _405
   
   His will, with all mean passions, bad delights,
   And selfish cares, its trembling satellites,
   A spirit ill to guide, but mighty to obey,
   Is as a tempest-winged ship, whose helm
   Love rules, through waves which dare not overwhelm,                  _410
   Forcing life's wildest shores to own its sovereign sway.
   
   All things confess his strength. Through the cold mass
   Of marble and of colour his dreams pass;
   Bright threads whence mothers weave the robes their children wear;
   Language is a perpetual Orphic song,                                 _415
   Which rules with Daedal harmony a throng
   Of thoughts and forms, which else senseless and shapeless were.
   
   The lightning is his slave; heaven's utmost deep
   Gives up her stars, and like a flock of sheep
   They pass before his eye, are numbered, and roll on!                 _420
   The tempest is his steed, he strides the air;
   And the abyss shouts from her depth laid bare,
   Heaven, hast thou secrets? Man unveils me; I have none.
   
   NOTE:
   _387 life B; light 1820.
   
   THE MOON:
   The shadow of white death has passed
   From my path in heaven at last,                                      _425
   A clinging shroud of solid frost and sleep;
   And through my newly-woven bowers,
   Wander happy paramours,
   Less mighty, but as mild as those who keep
   Thy vales more deep.                                                 _430
   
   THE EARTH:
   As the dissolving warmth of dawn may fold
   A half unfrozen dew-globe, green, and gold,
   And crystalline, till it becomes a winged mist,
   And wanders up the vault of the blue day,
   Outlives the noon, and on the sun's last ray                         _435
   Hangs o'er the sea, a fleece of fire and amethyst.
   
   NOTE:
   _432 unfrozen B, edition 1839; infrozen 1820.
   
   THE MOON:
   Thou art folded, thou art lying
   In the light which is undying
   Of thine own joy, and heaven's smile divine;
   All suns and constellations shower                                   _440
   On thee a light, a life, a power
   Which doth array thy sphere; thou pourest thine
   On mine, on mine!
   
   THE EARTH:
   I spin beneath my pyramid of night,
   Which points into the heavens dreaming delight,                      _445
   Murmuring victorious joy in my enchanted sleep;
   As a youth lulled in love-dreams faintly sighing,
   Under the shadow of his beauty lying,
   Which round his rest a watch of light and warmth doth keep.
   
   THE MOON:
   As in the soft and sweet eclipse,                                    _450
   When soul meets soul on lovers' lips,
   High hearts are calm, and brightest eyes are dull;
   So when thy shadow falls on me,
   Then am I mute and still, by thee
   Covered; of thy love, Orb most beautiful,                            _455
   Full, oh, too full!
   
   Thou art speeding round the sun
   Brightest world of many a one;
   Green and azure sphere which shinest
   With a light which is divinest                                       _460
   Among all the lamps of Heaven
   To whom life and light is given;
   I, thy crystal paramour
   Borne beside thee by a power
   Like the polar Paradise,                                             _465
   Magnet-like of lovers' eyes;
   I, a most enamoured maiden
   Whose weak brain is overladen
   With the pleasure of her love,
   Maniac-like around thee move
   Gazing, an insatiate bride,                                          _470
   On thy form from every side
   Like a Maenad, round the cup
   Which Agave lifted up
   In the weird Cadmaean forest.                                        _475
   Brother, wheresoe'er thou soarest
   I must hurry, whirl and follow
   Through the heavens wide and hollow,
   Sheltered by the warm embrace
   Of thy soul from hungry space,                                       _480
   Drinking from thy sense and sight
   Beauty, majesty, and might,
   As a lover or a chameleon
   Grows like what it looks upon,
   As a violet's gentle eye                                             _485
   Gazes on the azure sky
   Until its hue grows like what it beholds,
   As a gray and watery mist
   Glows like solid amethyst
   Athwart the western mountain it enfolds,                             _490
   When the sunset sleeps
   Upon its snow--
   
   THE EARTH:
   And the weak day weeps
   That it should be so.
   Oh, gentle Moon, the voice of thy delight                            _495
   Falls on me like thy clear and tender light
   Soothing the seaman, borne the summer night,
   Through isles for ever calm;
   Oh, gentle Moon, thy crystal accents pierce
   The caverns of my pride's deep universe,                             _500
   Charming the tiger joy, whose tramplings fierce
   Made wounds which need thy balm.
   
   PANTHEA:
   I rise as from a bath of sparkling water,
   A bath of azure light, among dark rocks,
   Out of the stream of sound.
   
   IONE:
   Ah me! sweet sister,                                                 _505
   The stream of sound has ebbed away from us,
   And you pretend to rise out of its wave,
   Because your words fall like the clear, soft dew
   Shaken from a bathing wood-nymph's limbs and hair.
   
   PANTHEA:
   Peace! peace! a mighty Power, which is as darkness,                  _510
   Is rising out of Earth, and from the sky
   Is showered like night, and from within the air
   Bursts, like eclipse which had been gathered up
   Into the pores of sunlight: the bright visions,
   Wherein the singing spirits rode and shone,                          _515
   Gleam like pale meteors through a watery night.
   
   IONE:
   There is a sense of words upon mine ear.
   
   PANTHEA:
   An universal sound like words: Oh, list!
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Thou, Earth, calm empire of a happy soul,
   Sphere of divinest shapes and harmonies,                             _520
   Beautiful orb! gathering as thou dost roll
   The love which paves thy path along the skies:
   
   THE EARTH:
   I hear: I am as a drop of dew that dies.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Thou, Moon, which gazest on the nightly Earth
   With wonder, as it gazes upon thee;                                  _525
   Whilst each to men, and beasts, and the swift birth
   Of birds, is beauty, love, calm, harmony:
   
   THE MOON:
   I hear: I am a leaf shaken by thee!
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Ye Kings of suns and stars, Daemons and Gods,
   Ethereal Dominations, who possess                                    _530
   Elysian, windless, fortunate abodes
   Beyond Heaven's constellated wilderness:
   
   A VOICE FROM ABOVE:
   Our great Republic hears: we are blest, and bless.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Ye happy Dead, whom beams of brightest verse
   Are clouds to hide, not colours to portray,                          _535
   Whether your nature is that universe
   Which once ye saw and suffered--
   
   A VOICE: FROM BENEATH:
   Or as they
   Whom we have left, we change and pass away.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Ye elemental Genii, who have homes
   From man's high mind even to the central stone                       _540
   Of sullen lead; from heaven's star-fretted domes
   To the dull weed some sea-worm battens on:
   
   A CONFUSED VOICE:
   We hear: thy words waken Oblivion.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Spirits, whose homes are flesh; ye beasts and birds,
   Ye worms and fish; ye living leaves and buds;                        _545
   Lightning and wind; and ye untameable herds,
   Meteors and mists, which throng air's solitudes:--
   
   NOTE:
   _547 throng 1820, 1839; cancelled for feed B.
   
   A VOICE:
   Thy voice to us is wind among still woods.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   Man, who wert once a despot and a slave;
   A dupe and a deceiver; a decay;                                      _550
   A traveller from the cradle to the grave
   Through the dim night of this immortal day:
   
   ALL:
   Speak: thy strong words may never pass away.
   
   DEMOGORGON:
   This is the day, which down the void abysm
   At the Earth-born's spell yawns for Heaven's despotism,              _555
   And Conquest is dragged captive through the deep:
   Love, from its awful throne of patient power
   In the wise heart, from the last giddy hour
   Of dread endurance, from the slippery, steep,
   And narrow verge of crag-like agony, springs                         _560
   And folds over the world its healing wings.
   
   Gentleness, Virtue, Wisdom, and Endurance,
   These are the seals of that most firm assurance
   Which bars the pit over Destruction's strength;
   And if, with infirm hand, Eternity,                                  _565
   Mother of many acts and hours, should free
   The serpent that would clasp her with his length;
   These are the spells by which to reassume
   An empire o'er the disentangled doom.
   
   To suffer woes which Hope thinks infinite;                           _570
   To forgive wrongs darker than death or night;
   To defy Power, which seems omnipotent;
   To love, and bear; to hope till Hope creates
   From its own wreck the thing it contemplates;
   Neither to change, nor falter, nor repent;                           _575
   This, like thy glory, Titan, is to be
   Good, great and joyous, beautiful and free;
   This is alone Life, Joy, Empire, and Victory!
   
   NOTES:
   _559 dread B, edition 1839; dead 1820.
   _575 falter B, edition 1839; flatter 1820.
   
   
   CANCELLED FRAGMENTS OF "PROMETHEUS UNBOUND".
   
   [First printed by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination of the Shelley
   Manuscripts at the Bodleian Library", 1903, pages 33-7.]
   
   (following 1._37.)
   When thou descendst each night with open eyes
   In torture, for a tyrant seldom sleeps,
   Thou never; ...
   ...
   
   (following 1._195.)
   Which thou henceforth art doomed to interweave
   ...
   
   (following the first two words of 1._342.)
   [Of Hell:] I placed it in his choice to be
   The crown, or trampled refuse of the world
   With but one law itself a glorious boon--
   I gave--
   ...
   
   (following 1._707.)
   SECOND SPIRIT:
   I leaped on the wings of the Earth-star damp
   As it rose on the steam of a slaughtered camp--
   The sleeping newt heard not our tramp
   As swift as the wings of fire may pass--
   We threaded the points of long thick grass
   Which hide the green pools of the morass
   But shook a water-serpent's couch
   In a cleft skull, of many such
   The widest; at the meteor's touch
   The snake did seem to see in dream
   Thrones and dungeons overthrown
   Visions how unlike his own...
   'Twas the hope the prophecy
   Which begins and ends in thee
   ...
   
   (following 2.1._110.)
   Lift up thine eyes Panthea--they pierce they burn
   
   PANTHEA:
   Alas! I am consumed--I melt away
   The fire is in my heart--
   
   ASIA:
   Thine eyes burn burn!--
   Hide them within thine hair--
   
   PANTHEA:
   O quench thy lips
   I sink I perish
   
   ASIA:
   Shelter me now--they burn
   It is his spirit in their orbs...my life
   Is ebbing fast--I cannot speak--
   
   PANTHEA:
   Rest, rest!
   Sleep death annihilation pain! aught else
   ...
   
   (following 2.4._27.)
   Or looks which tell that while the lips are calm
   And the eyes cold, the spirit weeps within
   Tears like the sanguine sweat of agony;
   ...
   
   UNCANCELLED PASSAGE.
   (following 2.5._71.)
   
   ASIA:
   You said that spirits spoke, but it was thee
   Sweet sister, for even now thy curved lips
   Tremble as if the sound were dying there
   Not dead
   
   PANTHEA:
   Alas it was Prometheus spoke
   Within me, and I know it must be so
   I mixed my own weak nature with his love
   ...And my thoughts
   Are like the many forests of a vale
   Through which the might of whirlwind and of rain
   Had passed--they rest rest through the evening light
   As mine do now in thy beloved smile.
   
   CANCELLED STAGE DIRECTIONS.
   (following 1._221.)
   [THE SOUND BENEATH AS OF EARTHQUAKE AND THE DRIVING OF WHIRLWINDS--THE
   RAVINE IS SPLIT, AND THE PHANTASM OF JUPITER RISES, SURROUNDED BY
   HEAVY CLOUDS WHICH DART FORTH LIGHTNING.]
   
   (following 1._520.)
   [ENTER RUSHING BY GROUPS OF HORRIBLE FORMS; THEY SPEAK AS THEY PASS IN
   CHORUS.]
   
   (following 1._552.)
   [A SHADOW PASSES OVER THE SCENE, AND A PIERCING SHRIEK IS HEARD.]
   
   
   NOTE ON "PROMETHEUS UNBOUND", BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   On the 12th of March, 1818, Shelley quitted England, never to return.
   His principal motive was the hope that his health would be improved by
   a milder climate; he suffered very much during the winter previous to
   his emigration, and this decided his vacillating purpose. In December,
   1817, he had written from Marlow to a friend, saying:
   
   'My health has been materially worse. My feelings at intervals are of
   a deadly and torpid kind, or awakened to such a state of unnatural and
   keen excitement that, only to instance the organ of sight, I find the
   very blades of grass and the boughs of distant trees present
   themselves to me with microscopic distinctness. Towards evening I sink
   into a state of lethargy and inanimation, and often remain for hours
   on the sofa between sleep and waking, a prey to the most painful
   irritability of thought. Such, with little intermission, is my
   condition. The hours devoted to study are __select__ed with vigilant
   caution from among these periods of endurance. It is not for this that
   I think of travelling to Italy, even if I knew that Italy would
   relieve me. But I have experienced a decisive pulmonary attack; and
   although at present it has passed away without any considerable
   vestige of its existence, yet this symptom sufficiently shows the true
   nature of my disease to be consumptive. It is to my advantage that
   this malady is in its nature slow, and, if one is sufficiently alive
   to its advances, is susceptible of cure from a warm climate. In the
   event of its assuming any decided shape, IT WOULD BE MY DUTY to go to
   Italy without delay. It is not mere health, but life, that I should
   seek, and that not for my own sake--I feel I am capable of trampling
   on all such weakness; but for the sake of those to whom my life may be
   a source of happiness, utility, security, and honour, and to some of
   whom my death might be all that is the reverse.'
   
   In almost every respect his journey to Italy was advantageous. He left
   behind friends to whom he was attached; but cares of a thousand kinds,
   many springing from his lavish generosity, crowded round him in his
   native country, and, except the society of one or two friends, he had
   no compensation. The climate caused him to consume half his existence
   in helpless suffering. His dearest pleasure, the free enjoyment of the
   scenes of Nature, was marred by the same circumstance.
   
   He went direct to Italy, avoiding even Paris, and did not make any
   pause till he arrived at Milan. The first aspect of Italy enchanted
   Shelley; it seemed a garden of delight placed beneath a clearer and
   brighter heaven than any he had lived under before. He wrote long
   descriptive letters during the first year of his residence in Italy,
   which, as compositions, are the most beautiful in the world, and show
   how truly he appreciated and studied the wonders of Nature and Art in
   that divine land.
   
   The poetical spirit within him speedily revived with all the power and
   with more than all the beauty of his first attempts. He meditated
   three subjects as the groundwork for lyrical dramas. One was the story
   of Tasso; of this a slight fragment of a song of Tasso remains. The
   other was one founded on the Book of Job, which he never abandoned in
   idea, but of which no trace remains among his papers. The third was
   the "Prometheus Unbound". The Greek tragedians were now his most
   familiar companions in his wanderings, and the sublime majesty of
   Aeschylus filled him with wonder and delight. The father of Greek
   tragedy does not possess the pathos of Sophocles, nor the variety and
   tenderness of Euripides; the interest on which he founds his dramas is
   often elevated above human vicissitudes into the mighty passions and
   throes of gods and demi-gods: such fascinated the abstract imagination
   of Shelley.
   
   We spent a month at Milan, visiting the Lake of Como during that
   interval. Thence we passed in succession to Pisa, Leghorn, the Baths
   of Lucca, Venice, Este, Rome, Naples, and back again to Rome, whither
   we returned early in March, 1819. During all this time Shelley
   meditated the subject of his drama, and wrote portions of it. Other
   poems were composed during this interval, and while at the Bagni di
   Lucca he translated Plato's "Symposium". But, though he diversified
   his studies, his thoughts centred in the Prometheus. At last, when at
   Rome, during a bright and beautiful Spring, he gave up his whole time
   to the composition. The spot __select__ed for his study was, as he
   mentions in his preface, the mountainous ruins of the Baths of
   Caracalla. These are little known to the ordinary visitor at Rome. He
   describes them in a letter, with that poetry and delicacy and truth of
   description which render his narrated impressions of scenery of
   unequalled beauty and interest.
   
   At first he completed the drama in three acts. It was not till several
   months after, when at Florence, that he conceived that a fourth act, a
   sort of hymn of rejoicing in the fulfilment of the prophecies with
   regard to Prometheus, ought to be added to complete the composition.
   
   The prominent feature of Shelley's theory of the destiny of the human
   species was that evil is not inherent in the system of the creation,
   but an accident that might be expelled. This also forms a portion of
   Christianity: God made earth and man perfect, till he, by his fall,
   
   'Brought death into the world and all our woe.'
   
   Shelley believed that mankind had only to will that there should be no
   evil, and there would be none. It is not my part in these Notes to
   notice the arguments that have been urged against this opinion, but to
   mention the fact that he entertained it, and was indeed attached to it
   with fervent enthusiasm. That man could be so perfectionized as to be
   able to expel evil from his own nature, and from the greater part of
   the creation, was the cardinal point of his system. And the subject he
   loved best to dwell on was the image of One warring with the Evil
   Principle, oppressed not only by it, but by all--even the good, who
   were deluded into considering evil a necessary portion of humanity; a
   victim full of fortitude and hope and the spirit of triumph emanating
   from a reliance in the ultimate omnipotence of Good. Such he had
   depicted in his last poem, when he made Laon the enemy and the victim
   of tyrants. He now took a more idealized image of the same subject. He
   followed certain classical authorities in figuring Saturn as the good
   principle, Jupiter the usurping evil one, and Prometheus as the
   regenerator, who, unable to bring mankind back to primitive innocence,
   used knowledge as a weapon to defeat evil, by leading mankind, beyond
   the state wherein they are sinless through ignorance, to that in which
   they are virtuous through wisdom. Jupiter punished the temerity of the
   Titan by chaining him to a rock of Caucasus, and causing a vulture to
   devour his still-renewed heart. There was a prophecy afloat in heaven
   portending the fall of Jove, the secret of averting which was known
   only to Prometheus; and the god offered freedom from torture on
   condition of its being communicated to him. According to the
   mythological story, this referred to the offspring of Thetis, who was
   destined to be greater than his father. Prometheus at last bought
   pardon for his crime of enriching mankind with his gifts, by revealing
   the prophecy. Hercules killed the vulture, and set him free; and
   Thetis was married to Peleus, the father of Achilles.
   
   Shelley adapted the catastrophe of this story to his peculiar views.
   The son greater than his father, born of the nuptials of Jupiter and
   Thetis, was to dethrone Evil, and bring back a happier reign than that
   of Saturn. Prometheus defies the power of his enemy, and endures
   centuries of torture; till the hour arrives when Jove, blind to the
   real event, but darkly guessing that some great good to himself will
   flow, espouses Thetis. At the moment, the Primal Power of the world
   drives him from his usurped throne, and Strength, in the person of
   Hercules, liberates Humanity, typified in Prometheus, from the
   tortures generated by evil done or suffered. Asia, one of the
   Oceanides, is the wife of Prometheus--she was, according to other
   mythological interpretations, the same as Venus and Nature. When the
   benefactor of mankind is liberated, Nature resumes the beauty of her
   prime, and is united to her husband, the emblem of the human race, in
   perfect and happy union. In the Fourth Act, the Poet gives further
   scope to his imagination, and idealizes the forms of creation--such as
   we know them, instead of such as they appeared to the Greeks. Maternal
   Earth, the mighty parent, is superseded by the Spirit of the Earth,
   the guide of our planet through the realms of sky; while his fair and
   weaker companion and attendant, the Spirit of the Moon, receives bliss
   from the annihilation of Evil in the superior sphere.
   
   Shelley develops, more particularly in the lyrics of this drama, his
   abstruse and imaginative theories with regard to the Creation. It
   requires a mind as subtle and penetrating as his own to understand the
   mystic meanings scattered throughout the poem. They elude the ordinary
   reader by their abstraction and delicacy of distinction, but they are
   far from vague. It was his design to write prose metaphysical essays
   on the nature of Man, which would have served to explain much of what
   is obscure in his poetry; a few scattered fragments of observations
   and remarks alone remain. He considered these philosophical views of
   Mind and Nature to be instinct with the intensest spirit of poetry.
   
   More popular poets clothe the ideal with familiar and sensible
   imagery. Shelley loved to idealize the real--to gift the mechanism of
   the material universe with a soul and a voice, and to bestow such also
   on the most delicate and abstract emotions and thoughts of the mind.
   Sophocles was his great master in this species of imagery.
   
   I find in one of his manuscript books some remarks on a line in the
   "Oedipus Tyrannus", which show at once the critical subtlety of
   Shelley's mind, and explain his apprehension of those 'minute and
   remote distinctions of feeling, whether relative to external nature or
   the living beings which surround us,' which he pronounces, in the
   letter quoted in the note to the "Revolt of Islam", to comprehend all
   that is sublime in man.
   
   'In the Greek Shakespeare, Sophocles, we find the image,
   
   Pollas d' odous elthonta phrontidos planois:
   
   a line of almost unfathomable depth of poetry; yet how simple are the
   images in which it is arrayed!
   
   "Coming to many ways in the wanderings of careful thought."
   
   If the words odous and planois had not been used, the line might have
   been explained in a metaphorical instead of an absolute sense, as we
   say "WAYS and means," and "wanderings" for error and confusion. But
   they meant literally paths or roads, such as we tread with our feet;
   and wanderings, such as a man makes when he loses himself in a desert,
   or roams from city to city--as Oedipus, the speaker of this verse, was
   destined to wander, blind and asking charity. What a picture does this
   line suggest of the mind as a wilderness of intricate paths, wide as
   the universe, which is here made its symbol; a world within a world
   which he who seeks some knowledge with respect to what he ought to do
   searches throughout, as he would search the external universe for some
   valued thing which was hidden from him upon its surface.'
   
   In reading Shelley's poetry, we often find similar verses, resembling,
   but not imitating the Greek in this species of imagery; for, though he
   adopted the style, he gifted it with that originality of form and
   colouring which sprung from his own genius.
   
   In the "Prometheus Unbound", Shelley fulfils the promise quoted from a
   letter in the Note on the "Revolt of Islam". (While correcting the
   proof-sheets of that poem, it struck me that the poet had indulged in
   an exaggerated view of the evils of restored despotism; which, however
   injurious and degrading, were less openly sanguinary than the triumph
   of anarchy, such as it appeared in France at the close of the last
   century. But at this time a book, "Scenes of Spanish Life", translated
   by Lieutenant Crawford from the German of Dr. Huber, of Rostock, fell
   into my hands. The account of the triumph of the priests and the
   serviles, after the French invasion of Spain in 1823, bears a strong
   and frightful resemblance to some of the descriptions of the massacre
   of the patriots in the "Revolt of Islam".) The tone of the composition
   is calmer and more majestic, the poetry more perfect as a whole, and
   the imagination displayed at once more pleasingly beautiful and more
   varied and daring. The description of the Hours, as they are seen in
   the cave of Demogorgon, is an instance of this--it fills the mind as
   the most charming picture--we long to see an artist at work to bring
   to our view the
   
   'cars drawn by rainbow-winged steeds
   Which trample the dim winds: in each there stands
   A wild-eyed charioteer urging their flight.
   Some look behind, as fiends pursued them there,
   And yet I see no shapes but the keen stars:
   Others, with burning eyes, lean forth, and drink
   With eager lips the wind of their own speed,
   As if the thing they loved fled on before,
   And now, even now, they clasped it. Their bright locks
   Stream like a comet's flashing hair: they all
   Sweep onward.'
   
   Through the whole poem there reigns a sort of calm and holy spirit of
   love; it soothes the tortured, and is hope to the expectant, till the
   prophecy is fulfilled, and Love, untainted by any evil, becomes the
   law of the world.
   
   England had been rendered a painful residence to Shelley, as much by
   the sort of persecution with which in those days all men of liberal
   opinions were visited, and by the injustice he had lately endured in
   the Court of Chancery, as by the symptoms of disease which made him
   regard a visit to Italy as necessary to prolong his life. An exile,
   and strongly impressed with the feeling that the majority of his
   countrymen regarded him with sentiments of aversion such as his own
   heart could experience towards none, he sheltered himself from such
   disgusting and painful thoughts in the calm retreats of poetry, and
   built up a world of his own--with the more pleasure, since he hoped to
   induce some one or two to believe that the earth might become such,
   did mankind themselves consent. The charm of the Roman climate helped
   to clothe his thoughts in greater beauty than they had ever worn
   before. And, as he wandered among the ruins made one with Nature in
   their decay, or gazed on the Praxitelean shapes that throng the
   Vatican, the Capitol, and the palaces of Rome, his soul imbibed forms
   of loveliness which became a portion of itself. There are many
   passages in the "Prometheus" which show the intense delight he
   received from such studies, and give back the impression with a beauty
   of poetical description peculiarly his own. He felt this, as a poet
   must feel when he satisfies himself by the result of his labours; and
   he wrote from Rome, 'My "Prometheus Unbound" is just finished, and in
   a month or two I shall send it. It is a drama, with characters and
   mechanism of a kind yet unattempted; and I think the execution is
   better than any of my former attempts.'
   
   I may mention, for the information of the more critical reader, that
   the verbal alterations in this edition of "Prometheus" are made from a
   list of errata written by Shelley himself.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE CENCI.
   
   A TRAGEDY IN FIVE ACTS.
   
   [Composed at Rome and near Leghorn (Villa Valsovano), May-August 5,
   1819; published 1820 (spring) by C. & J. Ollier, London. This edition
   of two hundred and fifty copies was printed in Italy 'because,' writes
   Shelley to Peacock, September 21, 1819, 'it costs, with all duties and
   freightage, about half what it would cost in London.' A Table of
   Errata in Mrs. Shelley's handwriting is printed by Forman in "The
   Shelley Library", page 91. A second edition, published by Ollier in
   1821 (C.H. Reynell, printer), embodies the corrections indicated in
   this Table. No manuscript of "The Cenci" is known to exist. Our text
   follows that of the second edition (1821); variations of the first
   (Italian) edition, the title-page of which bears date 1819, are given
   in the footnotes. The text of the "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st and 2nd
   editions (Mrs. Shelley), follows for the most part that of the editio
   princeps of 1819.]
   
   
   DEDICATION, TO LEIGH HUNT, ESQ.
   
   Mv dear friend--
   
   I inscribe with your name, from a distant country, and after an
   absence whose months have seemed years, this the latest of my literary
   efforts.
   
   Those writings which I have hitherto published, have been little else
   than visions which impersonate my own apprehensions of the beautiful
   and the just. I can also perceive in them the literary defects
   incidental to youth and impatience; they are dreams of what ought to
   be, or may be. The drama which I now present to you is a sad reality.
   I lay aside the presumptuous attitude of an instructor, and am content
   to paint, with such colours as my own heart furnishes, that which has
   been.
   
   Had I known a person more highly endowed than yourself with all that
   it becomes a man to possess, I had solicited for this work the
   ornament of his name. One more gentle, honourable, innocent and brave;
   one of more exalted toleration for all who do and think evil, and yet
   himself more free from evil; one who knows better how to receive, and
   how to confer a benefit, though he must ever confer far more than he
   can receive; one of simpler, and, in the highest sense of the word, of
   purer life and manners I never knew: and I had already been fortunate
   in friendships when your name was added to the list.
   
   In that patient and irreconcilable enmity with domestic and political
   tyranny and imposture which the tenor of your life has illustrated,
   and which, had I health and talents, should illustrate mine, let us,
   comforting each other in our task, live and die.
   
   All happiness attend you! Your affectionate friend,
   
   PERCY B. SHELLEY.
   
   Rome, May 29, 1819.
   
   
   THE CENCI.
   
   PREFACE.
   
   A manuscript was communicated to me during my travels in Italy, which
   was copied from the archives of the Cenci Palace at Rome, and contains
   a detailed account of the horrors which ended in the extinction of one
   of the noblest and richest families of that city during the
   Pontificate of Clement VIII, in the year 1599. The story is, that an
   old man having spent his life in debauchery and wickedness, conceived
   at length an implacable hatred towards his children; which showed
   itself towards one daughter under the form of an incestuous passion,
   aggravated by every circumstance of cruelty and violence. This
   daughter, after long and vain attempts to escape from what she
   considered a perpetual contamination both of body and mind, at length
   plotted with her mother-in-law and brother to murder their common
   tyrant. The young maiden, who was urged to this tremendous deed by an
   impulse which overpowered its horror, was evidently a most gentle and
   amiable being, a creature formed to adorn and be admired, and thus
   violently thwarted from her nature by the necessity of circumstance
   and opinion. The deed was quickly discovered, and, in spite of the
   most earnest prayers made to the Pope by the highest persons in Rome,
   the criminals were put to death. The old man had during his life
   repeatedly bought his pardon from the Pope for capital crimes of the
   most enormous and unspeakable kind, at the price of a hundred thousand
   crowns; the death therefore of his victims can scarcely be accounted
   for by the love of justice. The Pope, among other motives for
   severity, probably felt that whoever killed the Count Cenci deprived
   his treasury of a certain and copious source of revenue. (The Papal
   Government formerly took the most extraordinary precautions against
   the publicity of facts which offer so tragical a demonstration of its
   own wickedness and weakness; so that the communication of the
   manuscript had become, until very lately, a matter of some
   difficulty.) Such a story, if told so as to present to the reader all
   the feelings of those who once acted it, their hopes and fears, their
   confidences and misgivings, their various interests, passions, and
   opinions, acting upon and with each other, yet all conspiring to one
   tremendous end, would be as a light to make apparent some of the most
   dark and secret caverns of the human heart.
   
   On my arrival at Rome I found that the story of the Cenci was a
   subject not to be mentioned in Italian society without awakening a
   deep and breathless interest; and that the feelings of the company
   never failed to incline to a romantic pity for the wrongs, and a
   passionate exculpation of the horrible deed to which they urged her,
   who has been mingled two centuries with the common dust. All ranks of
   people knew the outlines of this history, and participated in the
   overwhelming interest which it seems to have the magic of exciting in
   the human heart. I had a copy of Guido's picture of Beatrice which is
   preserved in the Colonna Palace, and my servant instantly recognized
   it as the portrait of La Cenci.
   
   This national and universal interest which the story produces and has
   produced for two centuries and among all ranks of people in a great
   City, where the imagination is kept for ever active and awake, first
   suggested to me the conception of its fitness for a dramatic purpose.
   In fact it is a tragedy which has already received, from its capacity
   of awakening and sustaining the sympathy of men, approbation and
   success. Nothing remained as I imagined, but to clothe it to the
   apprehensions of my countrymen in such language and action as would
   bring it home to their hearts. The deepest and the sublimest tragic
   compositions, King Lear and the two plays in which the tale of Oedipus
   is told, were stories which already existed in tradition, as matters
   of popular belief and interest, before Shakspeare and Sophocles made
   them familiar to the sympathy of all succeeding generations of
   mankind.
   
   This story of the Cenci is indeed eminently fearful and monstrous:
   anything like a dry exhibition of it on the stage would be
   insupportable. The person who would treat such a subject must increase
   the ideal, and diminish the actual horror of the events, so that the
   pleasure which arises from the poetry which exists in these
   tempestuous sufferings and crimes may mitigate the pain of the
   contemplation of the moral deformity from which they spring. There
   must also be nothing attempted to make the exhibition subservient to
   what is vulgarly termed a moral purpose. The highest moral purpose
   aimed at in the highest species of the drama, is the teaching the
   human heart, through its sympathies and antipathies, the knowledge of
   itself; in proportion to the possession of which knowledge, every
   human being is wise, just, sincere, tolerant and kind. If dogmas can
   do more, it is well: but a drama is no fit place for the enforcement
   of them. Undoubtedly, no person can be truly dishonoured by the act of
   another; and the fit return to make to the most enormous injuries is
   kindness and forbearance, and a resolution to convert the injurer from
   his dark passions by peace and love. Revenge, retaliation, atonement,
   are pernicious mistakes. If Beatrice had thought in this manner she
   would have been wiser and better; but she would never have been a
   tragic character: the few whom such an exhibition would have
   interested, could never have been sufficiently interested for a
   dramatic purpose, from the want of finding sympathy in their interest
   among the mass who surround them. It is in the restless and
   anatomizing casuistry with which men seek the justification of
   Beatrice, yet feel that she has done what needs justification; it is
   in the superstitious horror with which they contemplate alike her
   wrongs and their revenge, that the dramatic character of what she did
   and suffered, consists.
   
   I have endeavoured as nearly as possible to represent the characters
   as they probably were, and have sought to avoid the error of making
   them actuated by my own conceptions of right or wrong, false or true:
   thus under a thin veil converting names and actions of the sixteenth
   century into cold impersonations of my own mind. They are represented
   as Catholics, and as Catholics deeply tinged with religion. To a
   Protestant apprehension there will appear something unnatural in the
   earnest and perpetual sentiment of the relations between God and men
   which pervade the tragedy of the Cenci. It will especially be startled
   at the combination of an undoubting persuasion of the truth of the
   popular religion with a cool and determined perseverance in enormous
   guilt. But religion in Italy is not, as in Protestant countries, a
   cloak to be worn on particular days; or a passport which those who do
   not wish to be railed at carry with them to exhibit; or a gloomy
   passion for penetrating the impenetrable mysteries of our being, which
   terrifies its possessor at the darkness of the abyss to the brink of
   which it has conducted him. Religion coexists, as it were, in the mind
   of an Italian Catholic, with a faith in that of which all men have the
   most certain knowledge. It is interwoven with the whole fabric of
   life. It is adoration, faith, submission, penitence, blind admiration;
   not a rule for moral conduct. It has no necessary connection with any
   one virtue. The most atrocious villain may be rigidly devout, and
   without any shock to established faith, confess himself to be so.
   Religion pervades intensely the whole frame of society, and is
   according to the temper of the mind which it inhabits, a passion, a
   persuasion, an excuse, a refuge; never a check. Cenci himself built a
   chapel in the court of his Palace, and dedicated it to St. Thomas the
   Apostle, and established masses for the peace of his soul. Thus in the
   first scene of the fourth act Lucretia's design in exposing herself to
   the consequences of an expostulation with Cenci after having
   administered the opiate, was to induce him by a feigned tale to
   confess himself before death; this being esteemed by Catholics as
   essential to salvation; and she only relinquishes her purpose when she
   perceives that her perseverance would expose Beatrice to new outrages.
   
   I have avoided with great care in writing this play the introduction
   of what is commonly called mere poetry, and I imagine there will
   scarcely be found a detached simile or a single isolated description,
   unless Beatrice's description of the chasm appointed for her father's
   murder should be judged to be of that nature. (An idea in this speech
   was suggested by a most sublime passage in "El Purgaterio de San
   Patricio" of Calderon; the only plagiarism which I have intentionally
   committed in the whole piece.)
   
   In a dramatic composition the imagery and the passion should
   interpenetrate one another, the former being reserved simply for the
   full development and illustration of the latter. Imagination is as the
   immortal God which should assume flesh for the redemption of mortal
   passion. It is thus that the most remote and the most familiar imagery
   may alike be fit for dramatic purposes when employed in the
   illustration of strong feeling, which raises what is low, and levels
   to the apprehension that which is lofty, casting over all the shadow
   of its own greatness. In other respects, I have written more
   carelessly; that is, without an over-fastidious and learned choice of
   words. In this respect I entirely agree with those modern critics who
   assert that in order to move men to true sympathy we must use the
   familiar language of men, and that our great ancestors the ancient
   English poets are the writers, a study of whom might incite us to do
   that for our own age which they have done for theirs. But it must be
   the real language of men in general and not that of any particular
   class to whose society the writer happens to belong. So much for what
   I have attempted; I need not be assured that success is a very
   different matter; particularly for one whose attention has but newly
   been awakened to the study of dramatic literature.
   
   I endeavoured whilst at Rome to observe such monuments of this story
   as might be accessible to a stranger. The portrait of Beatrice at the
   Colonna Palace is admirable as a work of art: it was taken by Guido
   during her confinement in prison. But it is most interesting as a just
   representation of one of the loveliest specimens of the workmanship of
   Nature. There is a fixed and pale composure upon the features: she
   seems sad and stricken down in spirit, yet the despair thus expressed
   is lightened by the patience of gentleness. Her head is bound with
   folds of white drapery from which the yellow strings of her golden
   hair escape, and fall about her neck. The moulding of her face is
   exquisitely delicate; the eyebrows are distinct and arched: the lips
   have that permanent meaning of imagination and sensibility which
   suffering has not repressed and which it seems as if death scarcely
   could extinguish. Her forehead is large and clear; her eyes, which we
   are told were remarkable for their vivacity, are swollen with weeping
   and lustreless, but beautifully tender and serene. In the whole mien
   there is a simplicity and dignity which, united with her exquisite
   loveliness and deep sorrow, are inexpressibly pathetic. Beatrice Cenci
   appears to have been one of those rare persons in whom energy and
   gentleness dwell together without destroying one another: her nature
   was simple and profound. The crimes and miseries in which she was an
   actor and a sufferer are as the mask and the mantle in which
   circumstances clothed her for her impersonation on the scene of the
   world.
   
   The Cenci Palace is of great extent; and though in part modernized,
   there yet remains a vast and gloomy pile of feudal architecture in the
   same state as during the dreadful scenes which are the subject of this
   tragedy. The Palace is situated in an obscure corner of Rome, near the
   quarter of the Jews, and from the upper windows you see the immense
   ruins of Mount Palatine half hidden under their profuse overgrowth of
   trees. There is a court in one part of the Palace (perhaps that in
   which Cenci built the Chapel to St. Thomas), supported by granite
   columns and adorned with antique friezes of fine workmanship, and
   built up, according to the ancient Italian fashion, with balcony over
   balcony of open-work. One of the gates of the Palace formed of immense
   stones and leading through a passage, dark and lofty and opening into
   gloomy subterranean chambers, struck me particularly.
   
   Of the Castle of Petrella, I could obtain no further information than
   that which is to be found in the manuscript.
   
   
   THE CENCI: A TRAGEDY IN FIVE ACTS.
   
   
   DRAMATIS PERSONAE:
   
   COUNT FRANCESCO CENCI.
   GIACOMO, BERNARDO, HIS SONS.
   CARDINAL CAMILLO.
   PRINCE COLONNA.
   ORSINO, A PRELATE.
   SAVELLA, THE POPE'S LEGATE.
   OLIMPIO, MARZIO, ASSASSINS.
   ANDREA, SERVANT TO CENCI.
   NOBLES. JUDGES. GUARDS, SERVANTS.
   LUCRETIA, WIFE OF CENCI AND STEP-MOTHER OF HIS CHILDREN.
   BEATRICE, HIS DAUGHTER.
   
   THE SCENE LIES PRINCIPALLY IN ROME, BUT CHANGES DURING THE FOURTH
   ACT TO PETRELLA, A CASTLE AMONG THE APULIAN APENNINES.
   
   TIME. DURING THE PONTIFICATE OF CLEMENT VIII.
   
   
   ACT 1.
   
   SCENE 1.1:
   AN APARTMENT IN THE CENCI PALACE.
   ENTER COUNT CENCI AND CARDINAL CAMILLO.
   
   CAMILLO:
   That matter of the murder is hushed up
   If you consent to yield his Holiness
   Your fief that lies beyond the Pincian gate.--
   It needed all my interest in the conclave
   To bend him to this point; he said that you                          _5
   Bought perilous impunity with your gold;
   That crimes like yours if once or twice compounded
   Enriched the Church, and respited from hell
   An erring soul which might repent and live: --
   But that the glory and the interest                                  _10
   Of the high throne he fills, little consist
   With making it a daily mart of guilt
   As manifold and hideous as the deeds
   Which you scarce hide from men's revolted eyes.
   
   CENCI:
   The third of my possessions--let it go!                              _15
   Ay, I once heard the nephew of the Pope
   Had sent his architect to view the ground,
   Meaning to build a villa on my vines
   The next time I compounded with his uncle:
   I little thought he should outwit me so!                             _20
   Henceforth no witness--not the lamp--shall see
   That which the vassal threatened to divulge
   Whose throat is choked with dust for his reward.
   The deed he saw could not have rated higher
   Than his most worthless life:--it angers me!                         _25
   Respited me from Hell! So may the Devil
   Respite their souls from Heaven! No doubt Pope Clement,
   And his most charitable nephews, pray
   That the Apostle Peter and the Saints
   Will grant for their sake that I long enjoy                          _30
   Strength, wealth, and pride, and lust, and length of days
   Wherein to act the deeds which are the stewards
   Of their revenue.--But much yet remains
   To which they show no title.
   
   CAMILLO:
   Oh, Count Cenci!
   So much that thou mightst honourably live                            _35
   And reconcile thyself with thine own heart
   And with thy God, and with the offended world.
   How hideously look deeds of lust and blood
   Through those snow white and venerable hairs!--
   Your children should be sitting round you now,                       _40
   But that you fear to read upon their looks
   The shame and misery you have written there.
   Where is your wife? Where is your gentle daughter?
   Methinks her sweet looks, which make all things else
   Beauteous and glad, might kill the fiend within you.                 _45
   Why is she barred from all society
   But her own strange and uncomplaining wrongs?
   Talk with me, Count,--you know I mean you well.
   I stood beside your dark and fiery youth
   Watching its bold and bad career, as men                             _50
   Watch meteors, but it vanished not--I marked
   Your desperate and remorseless manhood; now
   Do I behold you in dishonoured age
   Charged with a thousand unrepented crimes.
   Yet I have ever hoped you would amend,                               _55
   And in that hope have saved your life three times.
   
   CENCI:
   For which Aldobrandino owes you now
   My fief beyond the Pincian.--Cardinal,
   One thing, I pray you, recollect henceforth,
   And so we shall converse with less restraint.                        _60
   A man you knew spoke of my wife and daughter--
   He was accustomed to frequent my house;
   So the next day HIS wife and daughter came
   And asked if I had seen him; and I smiled:
   I think they never saw him any more.                                 _65
   
   CAMILLO:
   Thou execrable man, beware!--
   
   CENCI:
   Of thee?
   Nay, this is idle: --We should know each other.
   As to my character for what men call crime
   Seeing I please my senses as I list,
   And vindicate that right with force or guile,                        _70
   It is a public matter, and I care not
   If I discuss it with you. I may speak
   Alike to you and my own conscious heart--
   For you give out that you have half reformed me,
   Therefore strong vanity will keep you silent                         _75
   If fear should not; both will, I do not doubt.
   All men delight in sensual luxury,
   All men enjoy revenge; and most exult
   Over the tortures they can never feel--
   Flattering their secret peace with others' pain.                     _80
   But I delight in nothing else. I love
   The sight of agony, and the sense of joy,
   When this shall be another's, and that mine.
   And I have no remorse and little fear,
   Which are, I think, the checks of other men.                         _85
   This mood has grown upon me, until now
   Any design my captious fancy makes
   The picture of its wish, and it forms none
   But such as men like you would start to know,
   Is as my natural food and rest debarred                              _90
   Until it be accomplished.
   
   CAMILLO:
   Art thou not
   Most miserable?
   
   CENCI:
   Why miserable?--
   No.--I am what your theologians call
   Hardened;--which they must be in impudence,
   So to revile a man's peculiar taste.                                 _95
   True, I was happier than I am, while yet
   Manhood remained to act the thing I thought;
   While lust was sweeter than revenge; and now
   Invention palls:--Ay, we must all grow old--
   And but that there remains a deed to act                             _100
   Whose horror might make sharp an appetite
   Duller than mine--I'd do,--I know not what.
   When I was young I thought of nothing else
   But pleasure; and I fed on honey sweets:
   Men, by St. Thomas! cannot live like bees,                           _105
   And I grew tired:--yet, till I killed a foe,
   And heard his groans, and heard his children's groans,
   Knew I not what delight was else on earth,
   Which now delights me little. I the rather
   Look on such pangs as terror ill conceals,                           _110
   The dry fixed eyeball; the pale, quivering lip,
   Which tell me that the spirit weeps within
   Tears bitterer than the bloody sweat of Christ.
   I rarely kill the body, which preserves,
   Like a strong prison, the soul within my power,                      _115
   Wherein I feed it with the breath of fear
   For hourly pain.
   
   NOTE:
   _100 And but that edition 1821; But that editions 1819, 1839.
   
   CAMILLO:
   Hell's most abandoned fiend
   Did never, in the drunkenness of guilt,
   Speak to his heart as now you speak to me;
   I thank my God that I believe you not.                               _120
   
   [ENTER ANDREA.]
   
   ANDREA:
   My Lord, a gentleman from Salamanca
   Would speak with you.
   
   CENCI:
   Bid him attend me
   In the grand saloon.
   
   [EXIT ANDREA.]
   
   CAMILLO:
   Farewell; and I will pray
   Almighty God that thy false, impious words
   Tempt not his spirit to abandon thee.                                _125
   
   [EXIT CAMILLO.]
   
   CENCI:
   The third of my possessions! I must use
   Close husbandry, or gold, the old man's sword,
   Falls from my withered hand. But yesterday
   There came an order from the Pope to make
   Fourfold provision for my cursed sons;                               _130
   Whom I had sent from Rome to Salamanca,
   Hoping some accident might cut them off;
   And meaning if I could to starve them there.
   I pray thee, God, send some quick death upon them!
   Bernardo and my wife could not be worse                              _135
   If dead and damned:--then, as to Beatrice--
   [LOOKING AROUND HIM SUSPICIOUSLY.]
   I think they cannot hear me at that door;
   What if they should? And yet I need not speak
   Though the heart triumphs with itself in words.
   O, thou most silent air, that shalt not hear                         _140
   What now I think! Thou, pavement, which I tread
   Towards her chamber,--let your echoes talk
   Of my imperious step scorning surprise,
   But not of my intent!--Andrea!
   
   NOTES:
   _131 Whom I had edition 1821; Whom I have editions 1819, 1839.
   _140 that shalt edition 1821; that shall editions 1819, 1839.
   
   [ENTER ANDREA.]
   
   ANDREA:
   My lord?
   
   CENCI:
   Bid Beatrice attend me in her chamber                                _145
   This evening:--no, at midnight and alone.
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   SCENE 1.2:
   A GARDEN OF THE CENCI PALACE.
   ENTER BEATRICE AND ORSINO, AS IN CONVERSATION.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Pervert not truth,
   Orsino. You remember where we held
   That conversation;--nay, we see the spot
   Even from this cypress;--two long years are past
   Since, on an April midnight, underneath                              _5
   The moonlight ruins of Mount Palatine,
   I did confess to you my secret mind.
   
   ORSINO:
   You said you loved me then.
   
   BEATRICE:
   You are a Priest.
   Speak to me not of love.
   
   ORSINO:
   I may obtain
   The dispensation of the Pope to marry.                               _10
   Because I am a Priest do you believe
   Your image, as the hunter some struck deer,
   Follows me not whether I wake or sleep?
   
   BEATRICE:
   As I have said, speak to me not of love;
   Had you a dispensation I have not;                                   _15
   Nor will I leave this home of misery
   Whilst my poor Bernard, and that gentle lady
   To whom I owe life, and these virtuous thoughts,
   Must suffer what I still have strength to share.
   Alas, Orsino! All the love that once                                 _20
   I felt for you, is turned to bitter pain.
   Ours was a youthful contract, which you first
   Broke, by assuming vows no Pope will loose.
   And thus I love you still, but holily,
   Even as a sister or a spirit might;                                  _25
   And so I swear a cold fidelity.
   And it is well perhaps we shall not marry.
   You have a sly, equivocating vein
   That suits me not.--Ah, wretched that I am!
   Where shall I turn? Even now you look on me                          _30
   As you were not my friend, and as if you
   Discovered that I thought so, with false smiles
   Making my true suspicion seem your wrong.
   Ah, no! forgive me; sorrow makes me seem
   Sterner than else my nature might have been;                         _35
   I have a weight of melancholy thoughts,
   And they forebode,--but what can they forebode
   Worse than I now endure?
   
   NOTE:
   _24 And thus editions 1821, 1839; And yet edition 1819.
   
   ORSINO:
   All will be well.
   Is the petition yet prepared? You know
   My zeal for all you wish, sweet Beatrice;                            _40
   Doubt not but I will use my utmost skill
   So that the Pope attend to your complaint.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Your zeal for all I wish;--Ah me, you are cold!
   Your utmost skill...speak but one word...
   [ASIDE.]
   Alas!
   Weak and deserted creature that I am,                                _45
   Here I stand bickering with my only friend!
   [TO ORSINO.]
   This night my father gives a sumptuous feast,
   Orsino; he has heard some happy news
   From Salamanca, from my brothers there,
   And with this outward show of love he mocks                          _50
   His inward hate. 'Tis bold hypocrisy,
   For he would gladlier celebrate their deaths,
   Which I have heard him pray for on his knees:
   Great God! that such a father should be mine!
   But there is mighty preparation made,                                _55
   And all our kin, the Cenci, will be there,
   And all the chief nobility of Rome.
   And he has bidden me and my pale Mother
   Attire ourselves in festival array.
   Poor lady! She expects some happy change                             _60
   In his dark spirit from this act; I none.
   At supper I will give you the petition:
   Till when--farewell.
   
   ORSINO:
   Farewell.
   [EXIT BEATRICE.]
   I know the Pope
   Will ne'er absolve me from my priestly vow
   But by absolving me from the revenue                                 _65
   Of many a wealthy see; and, Beatrice,
   I think to win thee at an easier rate.
   Nor shall he read her eloquent petition:
   He might bestow her on some poor relation
   Of his sixth cousin, as he did her sister,                           _70
   And I should be debarred from all access.
   Then as to what she suffers from her father,
   In all this there is much exaggeration:--
   Old men are testy and will have their way;
   A man may stab his enemy, or his vassal,                             _75
   And live a free life as to wine or women,
   And with a peevish temper may return
   To a dull home, and rate his wife and children;
   Daughters and wives call this foul tyranny.
   I shall be well content if on my conscience                          _80
   There rest no heavier sin than what they suffer
   From the devices of my love--a net
   From which he shall escape not. Yet I fear
   Her subtle mind, her awe-inspiring gaze,
   Whose beams anatomize me nerve by nerve                              _85
   And lay me bare, and make me blush to see
   My hidden thoughts.--Ah, no! A friendless girl
   Who clings to me, as to her only hope:--
   I were a fool, not less than if a panther
   Were panic-stricken by the antelope's eye,                           _90
   If she escape me.
   
   NOTE:
   _75 vassal edition 1821; slave edition 1819.
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   SCENE 1.3:
   A MAGNIFICENT HALL IN THE CENCI PALACE.
   A BANQUET.
   ENTER CENCI, LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, ORSINO, CAMILLO, NOBLES.
   
   CENCI:
   Welcome, my friends and kinsmen; welcome ye,
   Princes and Cardinals, pillars of the church,
   Whose presence honours our festivity.
   I have too long lived like an anchorite,
   And in my absence from your merry meetings                           _5
   An evil word is gone abroad of me;
   But I do hope that you, my noble friends,
   When you have shared the entertainment here,
   And heard the pious cause for which 'tis given,
   And we have pledged a health or two together,                        _10
   Will think me flesh and blood as well as you;
   Sinful indeed, for Adam made all so,
   But tender-hearted, meek and pitiful.
   
   FIRST GUEST:
   In truth, my Lord, you seem too light of heart,
   Too sprightly and companionable a man,                               _15
   To act the deeds that rumour pins on you.
   [TO HIS COMPANION.]
   I never saw such blithe and open cheer
   In any eye!
   
   SECOND GUEST:
   Some most desired event,
   In which we all demand a common joy,
   Has brought us hither; let us hear it, Count.                        _20
   
   CENCI:
   It is indeed a most desired event.
   If when a parent from a parent's heart
   Lifts from this earth to the great Father of all
   A prayer, both when he lays him down to sleep,
   And when he rises up from dreaming it;                               _25
   One supplication, one desire, one hope,
   That he would grant a wish for his two sons,
   Even all that he demands in their regard--
   And suddenly beyond his dearest hope
   It is accomplished, he should then rejoice,                          _30
   And call his friends and kinsmen to a feast,
   And task their love to grace his merriment,--
   Then honour me thus far--for I am he.
   
   BEATRICE [TO LUCRETIA]:
   Great God! How horrible! some dreadful ill
   Must have befallen my brothers.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Fear not, child,                                                     _35
   He speaks too frankly.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Ah! My blood runs cold.
   I fear that wicked laughter round his eye,
   Which wrinkles up the skin even to the hair.
   
   CENCI:
   Here are the letters brought from Salamanca;
   Beatrice, read them to your mother. God!                             _40
   I thank thee! In one night didst thou perform,
   By ways inscrutable, the thing I sought.
   My disobedient and rebellious sons
   Are dead!--Why, dead!--What means this change of cheer?
   You hear me not, I tell you they are dead;                           _45
   And they will need no food or raiment more:
   The tapers that did light them the dark way
   Are their last cost. The Pope, I think, will not
   Expect I should maintain them in their coffins.
   Rejoice with me--my heart is wondrous glad.                          _50
   
   [LUCRETIA SINKS, HALF FAINTING; BEATRICE SUPPORTS HER.]
   
   BEATRICE :
   It is not true!--Dear Lady, pray look up.
   Had it been true, there is a God in Heaven,
   He would not live to boast of such a boon.
   Unnatural man, thou knowest that it is false.
   
   CENCI:
   Ay, as the word of God; whom here I call                             _55
   To witness that I speak the sober truth;--
   And whose most favouring Providence was shown
   Even in the manner of their deaths. For Rocco
   Was kneeling at the mass, with sixteen others,
   When the church fell and crushed him to a mummy,                     _60
   The rest escaped unhurt. Cristofano
   Was stabbed in error by a jealous man,
   Whilst she he loved was sleeping with his rival;
   All in the self-same hour of the same night;
   Which shows that Heaven has special care of me.                      _65
   I beg those friends who love me, that they mark
   The day a feast upon their calendars.
   It was the twenty-seventh of December:
   Ay, read the letters if you doubt my oath.
   
   [THE ASSEMBLY APPEARS CONFUSED; SEVERAL OF THE GUESTS RISE.]
   
   FIRST GUEST:
   Oh, horrible! I will depart--
   
   SECOND GUEST:
   And I.--
   
   THIRD GUEST:
   No, stay!                                                            _70
   I do believe it is some jest; though faith!
   'Tis mocking us somewhat too solemnly.
   I think his son has married the Infanta,
   Or found a mine of gold in El Dorado.
   'Tis but to season some such news; stay, stay!                       _75
   I see 'tis only raillery by his smile.
   
   CENCI [FILLING A BOWL OF WINE, AND LIFTING IT UP]:
   Oh, thou bright wine whose purple splendour leaps
   And bubbles gaily in this golden bowl
   Under the lamplight, as my spirits do,
   To hear the death of my accursed sons!                               _80
   Could I believe thou wert their mingled blood,
   Then would I taste thee like a sacrament,
   And pledge with thee the mighty Devil in Hell,
   Who, if a father's curses, as men say,
   Climb with swift wings after their children's souls,                 _85
   And drag them from the very throne of Heaven,
   Now triumphs in my triumph!--But thou art
   Superfluous; I have drunken deep of joy,
   And I will taste no other wine to-night.
   Here, Andrea! Bear the bowl around.
   
   A GUEST [RISING]:
   Thou wretch!                                                         _90
   Will none among this noble company
   Check the abandoned villain?
   
   CAMILLO:
   For God's sake,
   Let me dismiss the guests! You are insane,
   Some ill will come of this.
   
   SECOND GUEST:
   Seize, silence him!
   
   FIRST GUEST:
   I will!
   
   THIRD GUEST:
   And I!
   
   CENCI [ADDRESSING THOSE WHO RISE WITH A THREATENING GESTURE]:
   Who moves? Who speaks?
   [TURNING TO THE COMPANY.]
   'tis nothing,                                                        _95
   Enjoy yourselves.--Beware! For my revenge
   Is as the sealed commission of a king
   That kills, and none dare name the murderer.
   
   [THE BANQUET IS BROKEN UP; SEVERAL OF THE GUESTS ARE DEPARTING.]
   
   BEATRICE:
   I do entreat you, go not, noble guests;
   What, although tyranny and impious hate                              _100
   Stand sheltered by a father's hoary hair?
   What if 'tis he who clothed us in these limbs
   Who tortures them, and triumphs? What, if we,
   The desolate and the dead, were his own flesh,
   His children and his wife, whom he is bound                          _105
   To love and shelter? Shall we therefore find
   No refuge in this merciless wide world?
   O think what deep wrongs must have blotted out
   First love, then reverence in a child's prone mind,
   Till it thus vanquish shame and fear! O think!                       _110
   I have borne much, and kissed the sacred hand
   Which crushed us to the earth, and thought its stroke
   Was perhaps some paternal chastisement!
   Have excused much, doubted; and when no doubt
   Remained, have sought by patience, love, and tears                   _115
   To soften him, and when this could not be
   I have knelt down through the long sleepless nights
   And lifted up to God, the Father of all,
   Passionate prayers: and when these were not heard
   I have still borne,--until I meet you here,                          _120
   Princes and kinsmen, at this hideous feast
   Given at my brothers' deaths. Two yet remain,
   His wife remains and I, whom if ye save not,
   Ye may soon share such merriment again
   As fathers make over their children's graves.                        _125
   O Prince Colonna, thou art our near kinsman,
   Cardinal, thou art the Pope's chamberlain,
   Camillo, thou art chief justiciary,
   Take us away!
   
   CENCI [HE HAS BEEN CONVERSING WITH CAMILLO DURING THE FIRST PART OF
   BEATRICE'S SPEECH; HE HEARS THE CONCLUSION, AND NOW ADVANCES]:
   I hope my good friends here
   Will think of their own daughters--or perhaps                        _130
   Of their own throats--before they lend an ear
   To this wild girl.
   
   BEATRICE [NOT NOTICING THE WORDS OF CENCI]:
   Dare no one look on me?
   None answer? Can one tyrant overbear
   The sense of many best and wisest men?
   Or is it that I sue not in some form                                 _135
   Of scrupulous law, that ye deny my suit?
   O God! That I were buried with my brothers!
   And that the flowers of this departed spring
   Were fading on my grave! And that my father
   Were celebrating now one feast for all!                              _140
   
   NOTE:
   _132 no edition 1821; not edition 1819.
   
   CAMILLO:
   A bitter wish for one so young and gentle.
   Can we do nothing?
   
   COLONNA:
   Nothing that I see.
   Count Cenci were a dangerous enemy:
   Yet I would second any one.
   
   A CARDINAL:
   And I.
   
   CENCI:
   Retire to your chamber, insolent girl!                               _145
   
   BEATRICE:
   Retire thou, impious man! Ay, hide thyself
   Where never eye can look upon thee more!
   Wouldst thou have honour and obedience
   Who art a torturer? Father, never dream,
   Though thou mayst overbear this company,                             _150
   But ill must come of ill.--Frown not on me!
   Haste, hide thyself, lest with avenging looks
   My brothers' ghosts should hunt thee from thy seat!
   Cover thy face from every living eye,
   And start if thou but hear a human step:                             _155
   Seek out some dark and silent corner, there,
   Bow thy white head before offended God,
   And we will kneel around, and fervently
   Pray that he pity both ourselves and thee.
   
   CENCI:
   My friends, I do lament this insane girl                             _160
   Has spoilt the mirth of our festivity.
   Good night, farewell; I will not make you longer
   Spectators of our dull domestic quarrels.
   Another time.--
   [EXEUNT ALL BUT CENCI AND BEATRICE.]
   My brain is swimming round;
   Give me a bowl of wine!
   [TO BEATRICE.]
   Thou painted viper!                                                  _165
   Beast that thou art! Fair and yet terrible!
   I know a charm shall make thee meek and tame,
   Now get thee from my sight!
   [EXIT BEATRICE.]
   Here, Andrea,
   Fill up this goblet with Greek wine. I said
   I would not drink this evening; but I must;                          _170
   For, strange to say, I feel my spirits fail
   With thinking what I have decreed to do.--
   [DRINKING THE WINE.]
   Be thou the resolution of quick youth
   Within my veins, and manhood's purpose stern,
   And age's firm, cold, subtle villainy;                               _175
   As if thou wert indeed my children's blood
   Which I did thirst to drink! The charm works well;
   It must be done; it shall be done, I swear!
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   END OF ACT 1.
   
   
   ACT 2.
   
   SCENE 2.1:
   AN APARTMENT IN THE CENCI PALACE.
   ENTER LUCRETIA AND BERNARDO.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Weep not, my gentle boy; he struck but me
   Who have borne deeper wrongs. In truth, if he
   Had killed me, he had done a kinder deed.
   O God Almighty, do Thou look upon us,
   We have no other friend but only Thee!                               _5
   Yet weep not; though I love you as my own,
   I am not your true mother.
   
   BERNARDO:
   Oh, more, more,
   Than ever mother was to any child,
   That have you been to me! Had he not been
   My father, do you think that I should weep!                          _10
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Alas! Poor boy, what else couldst thou have done?
   
   [ENTER BEATRICE.]
   
   BEATRICE [IN A HURRIED VOICE]:
   Did he pass this way? Have you seen him, brother?
   Ah, no! that is his step upon the stairs;
   'Tis nearer now; his hand is on the door;
   Mother, if I to thee have ever been                                  _15
   A duteous child, now save me! Thou, great God,
   Whose image upon earth a father is,
   Dost thou indeed abandon me? He comes;
   The door is opening now; I see his face;
   He frowns on others, but he smiles on me,                            _20
   Even as he did after the feast last night.
   [ENTER A SERVANT.]
   Almighty God, how merciful Thou art!
   'Tis but Orsino's servant.--Well, what news?
   
   SERVANT:
   My master bids me say, the Holy Father
   Has sent back your petition thus unopened.                           _25
   [GIVING A PAPER.]
   And he demands at what hour 'twere secure
   To visit you again?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   At the Ave Mary.
   [EXIT SERVANT.]
   So, daughter, our last hope has failed. Ah me!
   How pale you look; you tremble, and you stand
   Wrapped in some fixed and fearful meditation,                        _30
   As if one thought were over strong for you:
   Your eyes have a chill glare; O, dearest child!
   Are you gone mad? If not, pray speak to me.
   
   BEATRICE:
   You see I am not mad: I speak to you.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   You talked of something that your father did                         _35
   After that dreadful feast? Could it be worse
   Than when he smiled, and cried, 'My sons are dead!'
   And every one looked in his neighbour's face
   To see if others were as white as he?
   At the first word he spoke I felt the blood                          _40
   Rush to my heart, and fell into a trance;
   And when it passed I sat all weak and wild;
   Whilst you alone stood up, and with strong words
   Checked his unnatural pride; and I could see
   The devil was rebuked that lives in him.                             _45
   Until this hour thus you have ever stood
   Between us and your father's moody wrath
   Like a protecting presence; your firm mind
   Has been our only refuge and defence:
   What can have thus subdued it? What can now                          _50
   Have given you that cold melancholy look,
   Succeeding to your unaccustomed fear?
   
   BEATRICE:
   What is it that you say? I was just thinking
   'Twere better not to struggle any more.
   Men, like my father, have been dark and bloody,                      _55
   Yet never--Oh! Before worse comes of it
   'Twere wise to die: it ends in that at last.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Oh, talk not so, dear child! Tell me at once
   What did your father do or say to you?
   He stayed not after that accursed feast                              _60
   One moment in your chamber.--Speak to me.
   
   BERNARDO:
   Oh, sister, sister, prithee, speak to us!
   
   BEATRICE [SPEAKING VERY SLOWLY, WITH A FORCED CALMNESS]:
   It was one word, Mother, one little word;
   One look, one smile.
   [WILDLY.]
   Oh! He has trampled me
   Under his feet, and made the blood stream down                       _65
   My pallid cheeks. And he has given us all
   Ditch-water, and the fever-stricken flesh
   Of buffaloes, and bade us eat or starve,
   And we have eaten.--He has made me look
   On my beloved Bernardo, when the rust                                _70
   Of heavy chains has gangrened his sweet limbs,
   And I have never yet despaired--but now!
   What could I say?
   [RECOVERING HERSELF.]
   Ah, no! 'tis nothing new.
   The sufferings we all share have made me wild:
   He only struck and cursed me as he passed;                           _75
   He said, he looked, he did;--nothing at all
   Beyond his wont, yet it disordered me.
   Alas! I am forgetful of my duty,
   I should preserve my senses for your sake.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Nay, Beatrice; have courage, my sweet girl.                          _80
   If any one despairs it should be I
   Who loved him once, and now must live with him
   Till God in pity call for him or me.
   For you may, like your sister, find some husband,
   And smile, years hence, with children round your knees;              _85
   Whilst I, then dead, and all this hideous coil
   Shall be remembered only as a dream.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Talk not to me, dear lady, of a husband.
   Did you not nurse me when my mother died?
   Did you not shield me and that dearest boy?                          _90
   And had we any other friend but you
   In infancy, with gentle words and looks,
   To win our father not to murder us?
   And shall I now desert you? May the ghost
   Of my dead Mother plead against my soul                              _95
   If I abandon her who filled the place
   She left, with more, even, than a mother's love!
   
   BERNARDO:
   And I am of my sister's mind. Indeed
   I would not leave you in this wretchedness,
   Even though the Pope should make me free to live                     _100
   In some blithe place, like others of my age,
   With sports, and delicate food, and the fresh air.
   Oh, never think that I will leave you, Mother!
   
   LUCRETIA:
   My dear, dear children!
   
   [ENTER CENCI, SUDDENLY.]
   
   CENCI:
   What! Beatrice here!
   Come hither!
   [SHE SHRINKS BACK, AND COVERS HER FACE.]
   Nay, hide not your face, 'tis fair;                                  _105
   Look up! Why, yesternight you dared to look
   With disobedient insolence upon me,
   Bending a stern and an inquiring brow
   On what I meant; whilst I then sought to hide
   That which I came to tell you--but in vain.                          _110
   
   BEATRICE [WILDLY STAGGERING TOWARDS THE DOOR]:
   Oh, that the earth would gape! Hide me, O God!
   
   CENCI:
   Then it was I whose inarticulate words
   Fell from my lips, and who with tottering steps
   Fled from your presence, as you now from mine.
   Stay, I command you--from this day and hour                          _115
   Never again, I think, with fearless eye,
   And brow superior, and unaltered cheek,
   And that lip made for tenderness or scorn,
   Shalt thou strike dumb the meanest of mankind;
   Me least of all. Now get thee to thy chamber!                        _120
   Thou too, loathed image of thy cursed mother,
   [TO BERNARDO.]
   Thy milky, meek face makes me sick with hate!
   [EXEUNT BEATRICE AND BERNARDO.]
   [ASIDE.]
   So much has passed between us as must make
   Me bold, her fearful.--'Tis an awful thing
   To touch such mischief as I now conceive:                            _125
   So men sit shivering on the dewy bank,
   And try the chill stream with their feet; once in...
   How the delighted spirit pants for joy!
   
   LUCRETIA [ADVANCING TIMIDLY TOWARDS HIM]:
   O husband! Pray forgive poor Beatrice.
   She meant not any ill.
   
   CENCI:
   Nor you perhaps?                                                     _130
   Nor that young imp, whom you have taught by rote
   Parricide with his alphabet? Nor Giacomo?
   Nor those two most unnatural sons, who stirred
   Enmity up against me with the Pope?
   Whom in one night merciful God cut off:                              _135
   Innocent lambs! They thought not any ill.
   You were not here conspiring? You said nothing
   Of how I might be dungeoned as a madman;
   Or be condemned to death for some offence,
   And you would be the witnesses?--This failing,                       _140
   How just it were to hire assassins, or
   Put sudden poison in my evening drink?
   Or smother me when overcome by wine?
   Seeing we had no other judge but God,
   And He had sentenced me, and there were none                         _145
   But you to be the executioners
   Of His decree enregistered in heaven?
   Oh, no! You said not this?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   So help me God,
   I never thought the things you charge me with!
   
   CENCI:
   If you dare to speak that wicked lie again                           _150
   I'll kill you. What! It was not by your counsel
   That Beatrice disturbed the feast last night?
   You did not hope to stir some enemies
   Against me, and escape, and laugh to scorn
   What every nerve of you now trembles at?                             _155
   You judged that men were bolder than they are;
   Few dare to stand between their grave and me.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Look not so dreadfully! By my salvation
   I knew not aught that Beatrice designed;
   Nor do I think she designed any thing                                _160
   Until she heard you talk of her dead brothers.
   
   CENCI:
   Blaspheming liar! You are damned for this!
   But I will take you where you may persuade
   The stones you tread on to deliver you:
   For men shall there be none but those who dare                       _165
   All things--not question that which I command.
   On Wednesday next I shall set out: you know
   That savage rock, the Castle of Petrella:
   'Tis safely walled, and moated round about:
   Its dungeons underground, and its thick towers                       _170
   Never told tales; though they have heard and seen
   What might make dumb things speak.--Why do you linger?
   Make speediest preparation for the journey!
   [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
   The all-beholding sun yet shines; I hear
   A busy stir of men about the streets;                                _175
   I see the bright sky through the window panes:
   It is a garish, broad, and peering day;
   Loud, light, suspicious, full of eyes and ears,
   And every little corner, nook, and hole
   Is penetrated with the insolent light.                               _180
   Come darkness! Yet, what is the day to me?
   And wherefore should I wish for night, who do
   A deed which shall confound both night and day?
   'Tis she shall grope through a bewildering mist
   Of horror: if there be a sun in heaven                               _185
   She shall not dare to look upon its beams;
   Nor feel its warmth. Let her then wish for night;
   The act I think shall soon extinguish all
   For me: I bear a darker deadlier gloom
   Than the earth's shade, or interlunar air,                           _190
   Or constellations quenched in murkiest cloud,
   In which I walk secure and unbeheld
   Towards my purpose.--Would that it were done!
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   SCENE 2.2:
   A CHAMBER IN THE VATICAN.
   ENTER CAMILLO AND GIACOMO, IN CONVERSATION.
   
   CAMILLO:
   There is an obsolete and doubtful law
   By which you might obtain a bare provision
   Of food and clothing--
   
   GIACOMO:
   Nothing more? Alas!
   Bare must be the provision which strict law
   Awards, and aged, sullen avarice pays.                               _5
   Why did my father not apprentice me
   To some mechanic trade? I should have then
   Been trained in no highborn necessities
   Which I could meet not by my daily toil.
   The eldest son of a rich nobleman                                    _10
   Is heir to all his incapacities;
   He has wide wants, and narrow powers. If you,
   Cardinal Camillo, were reduced at once
   From thrice-driven beds of down, and delicate food,
   An hundred servants, and six palaces,                                _15
   To that which nature doth indeed require?--
   
   CAMILLO:
   Nay, there is reason in your plea; 'twere hard.
   
   GIACOMO:
   'Tis hard for a firm man to bear: but I
   Have a dear wife, a lady of high birth,
   Whose dowry in ill hour I lent my father                             _20
   Without a bond or witness to the deed:
   And children, who inherit her fine senses,
   The fairest creatures in this breathing world;
   And she and they reproach me not. Cardinal,
   Do you not think the Pope would interpose                            _25
   And stretch authority beyond the law?
   
   CAMILLO:
   Though your peculiar case is hard, I know
   The Pope will not divert the course of law.
   After that impious feast the other night
   I spoke with him, and urged him then to check                        _30
   Your father's cruel hand; he frowned and said,
   'Children are disobedient, and they sting
   Their fathers' hearts to madness and despair,
   Requiting years of care with contumely.
   I pity the Count Cenci from my heart;                                _35
   His outraged love perhaps awakened hate,
   And thus he is exasperated to ill.
   In the great war between the old and young
   I, who have white hairs and a tottering body,
   Will keep at least blameless neutrality.'                            _40
   [ENTER ORSINO.]
   You, my good Lord Orsino, heard those words.
   
   ORSINO:
   What words?
   
   GIACOMO:
   Alas, repeat them not again!
   There then is no redress for me, at least
   None but that which I may achieve myself,
   Since I am driven to the brink.--But, say,                           _45
   My innocent sister and my only brother
   Are dying underneath my father's eye.
   The memorable torturers of this land,
   Galeaz Visconti, Borgia, Ezzelin,
   Never inflicted on their meanest slave                               _50
   What these endure; shall they have no protection?
   
   CAMILLO:
   Why, if they would petition to the Pope
   I see not how he could refuse it--yet
   He holds it of most dangerous example
   In aught to weaken the paternal power,                               _55
   Being, as 'twere, the shadow of his own.
   I pray you now excuse me. I have business
   That will not bear delay.
   
   [EXIT CAMILLO.]
   
   GIACOMO:
   But you, Orsino,
   Have the petition: wherefore not present it?
   
   ORSINO:
   I have presented it, and backed it with                              _60
   My earnest prayers, and urgent interest;
   It was returned unanswered. I doubt not
   But that the strange and execrable deeds
   Alleged in it--in truth they might well baffle
   Any belief--have turned the Pope's displeasure                       _65
   Upon the accusers from the criminal:
   So I should guess from what Camillo said.
   
   GIACOMO:
   My friend, that palace-walking devil Gold
   Has whispered silence to his Holiness:
   And we are left, as scorpions ringed with fire.                      _70
   What should we do but strike ourselves to death?
   For he who is our murderous persecutor
   Is shielded by a father's holy name,
   Or I would--
   
   [STOPS ABRUPTLY.]
   
   ORSINO:
   What? Fear not to speak your thought.
   Words are but holy as the deeds they cover:                          _75
   A priest who has forsworn the God he serves;
   A judge who makes Truth weep at his decree;
   A friend who should weave counsel, as I now,
   But as the mantle of some selfish guile;
   A father who is all a tyrant seems,                                  _80
   Were the profaner for his sacred name.
   
   NOTE:
   _77 makes Truth edition 1821; makes the truth editions 1819, 1839.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Ask me not what I think; the unwilling brain
   Feigns often what it would not; and we trust
   Imagination with such fantasies
   As the tongue dares not fashion into words,                          _85
   Which have no words, their horror makes them dim
   To the mind's eye.--My heart denies itself
   To think what you demand.
   
   ORSINO:
   But a friend's bosom
   Is as the inmost cave of our own mind
   Where we sit shut from the wide gaze of day,                         _90
   And from the all-communicating air.
   You look what I suspected--
   
   GIACOMO:
   Spare me now!
   I am as one lost in a midnight wood,
   Who dares not ask some harmless passenger
   The path across the wilderness, lest he,                             _95
   As my thoughts are, should be--a murderer.
   I know you are my friend, and all I dare
   Speak to my soul that will I trust with thee.
   But now my heart is heavy, and would take
   Lone counsel from a night of sleepless care.                         _100
   Pardon me, that I say farewell--farewell!
   I would that to my own suspected self
   I could address a word so full of peace.
   
   ORSINO:
   Farewell!--Be your thoughts better or more bold.
   [EXIT GIACOMO.]
   I had disposed the Cardinal Camillo                                  _105
   To feed his hope with cold encouragement:
   It fortunately serves my close designs
   That 'tis a trick of this same family
   To analyse their own and other minds.
   Such self-anatomy shall teach the will                               _110
   Dangerous secrets: for it tempts our powers,
   Knowing what must be thought, and may be done.
   Into the depth of darkest purposes:
   So Cenci fell into the pit; even I,
   Since Beatrice unveiled me to myself,                                _115
   And made me shrink from what I cannot shun,
   Show a poor figure to my own esteem,
   To which I grow half reconciled. I'll do
   As little mischief as I can; that thought
   Shall fee the accuser conscience.
   [AFTER A PAUSE.]
   Now what harm                                                        _120
   If Cenci should be murdered?--Yet, if murdered,
   Wherefore by me? And what if I could take
   The profit, yet omit the sin and peril
   In such an action? Of all earthly things
   I fear a man whose blows outspeed his words                          _125
   And such is Cenci: and while Cenci lives
   His daughter's dowry were a secret grave
   If a priest wins her.--Oh, fair Beatrice!
   Would that I loved thee not, or loving thee,
   Could but despise danger and gold and all                            _130
   That frowns between my wish and its effect.
   Or smiles beyond it! There is no escape...
   Her bright form kneels beside me at the altar,
   And follows me to the resort of men,
   And fills my slumber with tumultuous dreams,                         _135
   So when I wake my blood seems liquid fire;
   And if I strike my damp and dizzy head
   My hot palm scorches it: her very name,
   But spoken by a stranger, makes my heart
   Sicken and pant; and thus unprofitably                               _140
   I clasp the phantom of unfelt delights
   Till weak imagination half possesses
   The self-created shadow. Yet much longer
   Will I not nurse this life of feverous hours:
   From the unravelled hopes of Giacomo                                 _145
   I must work out my own dear purposes.
   I see, as from a tower, the end of all:
   Her father dead; her brother bound to me
   By a dark secret, surer than the grave;
   Her mother scared and unexpostulating                                _150
   From the dread manner of her wish achieved;
   And she!--Once more take courage, my faint heart;
   What dares a friendless maiden matched with thee?
   I have such foresight as assures success:
   Some unbeheld divinity doth ever,                                    _155
   When dread events are near, stir up men's minds
   To black suggestions; and he prospers best,
   Not who becomes the instrument of ill,
   But who can flatter the dark spirit, that makes
   Its empire and its prey of other hearts                              _160
   Till it become his slave...as I will do.
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   END OF ACT 2.
   
   
   ACT 3.
   
   SCENE 3.1:
   AN APARTMENT IN THE CENCI PALACE.
   LUCRETIA, TO HER ENTER BEATRICE.
   
   BEATRICE [SHE ENTERS STAGGERING AND SPEAKS WILDLY]:
   Reach me that handkerchief!--My brain is hurt;
   My eyes are full of blood; just wipe them for me...
   I see but indistinctly...
   
   LUCRETIA:
   My sweet child,
   You have no wound; 'tis only a cold dew
   That starts from your dear brow.--Alas! Alas!                        _5
   What has befallen?
   
   BEATRICE:
   How comes this hair undone?
   Its wandering strings must be what blind me so,
   And yet I tied it fast.--Oh, horrible!
   The pavement sinks under my feet! The walls
   Spin round! I see a woman weeping there,                             _10
   And standing calm and motionless, whilst I
   Slide giddily as the world reels...My God!
   The beautiful blue heaven is flecked with blood!
   The sunshine on the floor is black! The air
   Is changed to vapours such as the dead breathe                       _15
   In charnel pits! Pah! I am choked! There creeps
   A clinging, black, contaminating mist
   About me...'tis substantial, heavy, thick,
   I cannot pluck it from me, for it glues
   My fingers and my limbs to one another,                              _20
   And eats into my sinews, and dissolves
   My flesh to a pollution, poisoning
   The subtle, pure, and inmost spirit of life!
   My God! I never knew what the mad felt
   Before; for I am mad beyond all doubt!                               _25
   [MORE WILDLY.]
   No, I am dead! These putrefying limbs
   Shut round and sepulchre the panting soul
   Which would burst forth into the wandering air!
   [A PAUSE.]
   What hideous thought was that I had even now?
   'Tis gone; and yet its burthen remains here                          _30
   O'er these dull eyes...upon this weary heart!
   O, world! O, life! O, day! O, misery!
   
   LUCRETIA:
   What ails thee, my poor child? She answers not:
   Her spirit apprehends the sense of pain,
   But not its cause; suffering has dried away                          _35
   The source from which it sprung...
   
   BEATRICE [FRANTICLY]:
   Like Parricide...
   Misery has killed its father: yet its father
   Never like mine...O, God! What thing am I?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   My dearest child, what has your father done?
   
   BEATRICE [DOUBTFULLY]:
   Who art thou, questioner? I have no father.                          _40
   [ASIDE.]
   She is the madhouse nurse who tends on me,
   It is a piteous office.
   [TO LUCRETIA, IN A SLOW, SUBDUED VOICE.]
   Do you know
   I thought I was that wretched Beatrice
   Men speak of, whom her father sometimes hales
   From hall to hall by the entangled hair;                             _45
   At others, pens up naked in damp cells
   Where scaly reptiles crawl, and starves her there,
   Till she will eat strange flesh. This woful story
   So did I overact in my sick dreams,
   That I imagined...no, it cannot be!                                  _50
   Horrible things have been in this wide world,
   Prodigious mixtures, and confusions strange
   Of good and ill; and worse have been conceived
   Than ever there was found a heart to do.
   But never fancy imaged such a deed                                   _55
   As...
   [PAUSES, SUDDENLY RECOLLECTING HERSELF.]
   Who art thou? Swear to me, ere I die
   With fearful expectation, that indeed
   Thou art not what thou seemest...Mother!
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Oh!
   My sweet child, know you...
   
   BEATRICE:
   Yet speak it not:
   For then if this be truth, that other too                            _60
   Must be a truth, a firm enduring truth,
   Linked with each lasting circumstance of life,
   Never to change, never to pass away.
   Why so it is. This is the Cenci Palace;
   Thou art Lucretia; I am Beatrice.                                    _65
   I have talked some wild words, but will no more.
   Mother, come near me: from this point of time,
   I am...
   [HER VOICE DIES AWAY FAINTLY.]
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Alas! What has befallen thee, child?
   What has thy father done?
   
   BEATRICE:
   What have I done?
   Am I not innocent? Is it my crime                                    _70
   That one with white hair, and imperious brow,
   Who tortured me from my forgotten years,
   As parents only dare, should call himself
   My father, yet should be!--Oh, what am I?
   What name, what place, what memory shall be mine?                    _75
   What retrospects, outliving even despair?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   He is a violent tyrant, surely, child:
   We know that death alone can make us free;
   His death or ours. But what can he have done
   Of deadlier outrage or worse injury?                                 _80
   Thou art unlike thyself; thine eyes shoot forth
   A wandering and strange spirit. Speak to me,
   Unlock those pallid hands whose fingers twine
   With one another.
   
   BEATRICE:
   'Tis the restless life
   Tortured within them. If I try to speak,                             _85
   I shall go mad. Ay, something must be done;
   What, yet I know not...something which shall make
   The thing that I have suffered but a shadow
   In the dread lightning which avenges it;
   Brief, rapid, irreversible, destroying                               _90
   The consequence of what it cannot cure.
   Some such thing is to be endured or done:
   When I know what, I shall be still and calm,
   And never anything will move me more.
   But now!--O blood, which art my father's blood,                      _95
   Circling through these contaminated veins,
   If thou, poured forth on the polluted earth,
   Could wash away the crime, and punishment
   By which I suffer...no, that cannot be!
   Many might doubt there were a God above                              _100
   Who sees and permits evil, and so die:
   That faith no agony shall obscure in me.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   It must indeed have been some bitter wrong;
   Yet what, I dare not guess. Oh, my lost child,
   Hide not in proud impenetrable grief                                 _105
   Thy sufferings from my fear.
   
   BEATRICE:
   I hide them not.
   What are the words which yon would have me speak?
   I, who can feign no image in my mind
   Of that which has transformed me: I, whose thought
   Is like a ghost shrouded and folded up                               _110
   In its own formless horror: of all words,
   That minister to mortal intercourse,
   Which wouldst thou hear? For there is none to tell
   My misery: if another ever knew
   Aught like to it, she died as I will die,                            _115
   And left it, as I must, without a name.
   Death, Death! Our law and our religion call thee
   A punishment and a reward...Oh, which
   Have I deserved?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   The peace of innocence;
   Till in your season you be called to heaven.                         _120
   Whate'er you may have suffered, you have done
   No evil. Death must be the punishment
   Of crime, or the reward of trampling down
   The thorns which God has strewed upon the path
   Which leads to immortality.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Ay, death...                                                         _125
   The punishment of crime. I pray thee, God,
   Let me not be bewildered while I judge.
   If I must live day after day, and keep
   These limbs, the unworthy temple of Thy spirit,
   As a foul den from which what Thou abhorrest                         _130
   May mock Thee, unavenged...it shall not be!
   Self-murder...no, that might be no escape,
   For Thy decree yawns like a Hell between
   Our will and it:--O! In this mortal world
   There is no vindication and no law                                   _135
   Which can adjudge and execute the doom
   Of that through which I suffer.
   [ENTER ORSINO.]
   [SHE APPROACHES HIM SOLEMNLY.]
   Welcome, Friend!
   I have to tell you that, since last we met,
   I have endured a wrong so great and strange,
   That neither life nor death can give me rest.                        _140
   Ask me not what it is, for there are deeds
   Which have no form, sufferings which have no tongue.
   
   NOTE:
   _140 nor edition 1821; or editions 1819, 1839 (1st).
   
   ORSINO:
   And what is he who has thus injured you?
   
   BEATRICE:
   The man they call my father: a dread name.
   
   ORSINO:
   It cannot be...
   
   BEATRICE:
   What it can be, or not,                                              _145
   Forbear to think. It is, and it has been;
   Advise me how it shall not be again.
   I thought to die; but a religious awe
   Restrains me, and the dread lest death itself
   Might be no refuge from the consciousness                            _150
   Of what is yet unexpiated. Oh, speak!
   
   ORSINO:
   Accuse him of the deed, and let the law
   Avenge thee.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Oh, ice-hearted counsellor!
   If I could find a word that might make known
   The crime of my destroyer; and that done,                            _155
   My tongue should like a knife tear out the secret
   Which cankers my heart's core; ay, lay all bare,
   So that my unpolluted fame should be
   With vilest gossips a stale mouthed story;
   A mock, a byword, an astonishment:--                                 _160
   If this were done, which never shall be done,
   Think of the offender's gold, his dreaded hate,
   And the strange horror of the accuser's tale,
   Baffling belief, and overpowering speech;
   Scarce whispered, unimaginable, wrapped                              _165
   In hideous hints...Oh, most assured redress!
   
   ORSINO:
   You will endure it then?
   
   BEATRICE:
   Endure!--Orsino,
   It seems your counsel is small profit.
   [TURNS FROM HIM, AND SPEAKS HALF TO HERSELF.]
   Ay,
   All must be suddenly resolved and done.
   What is this undistinguishable mist                                  _170
   Of thoughts, which rise, like shadow after shadow,
   Darkening each other?
   
   ORSINO:
   Should the offender live?
   Triumph in his misdeed? and make, by use,
   His crime, whate'er it is, dreadful no doubt,
   Thine element; until thou mayest become                              _175
   Utterly lost; subdued even to the hue
   Of that which thou permittest?
   
   BEATRICE [TO HERSELF]:
   Mighty death!
   Thou double-visaged shadow! Only judge!
   Rightfullest arbiter!
   
   [SHE RETIRES, ABSORBED IN THOUGHT.]
   
   LUCRETIA:
   If the lightning
   Of God has e'er descended to avenge...                               _180
   
   ORSINO:
   Blaspheme not! His high Providence commits
   Its glory on this earth, and their own wrongs
   Into the hands of men; if they neglect
   To punish crime...
   
   LUCRETIA:
   But if one, like this wretch,
   Should mock, with gold, opinion, law, and power?                     _185
   If there be no appeal to that which makes
   The guiltiest tremble? If because our wrongs,
   For that they are unnatural, strange and monstrous,
   Exceed all measure of belief? O God!
   If, for the very reasons which should make                           _190
   Redress most swift and sure, our injurer triumphs?
   And we, the victims, bear worse punishment
   Than that appointed for their torturer?
   
   ORSINO:
   Think not
   But that there is redress where there is wrong,
   So we be bold enough to seize it.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   How?                                                                 _195
   If there were any way to make all sure,
   I know not...but I think it might be good
   To...
   
   ORSINO:
   Why, his late outrage to Beatrice;
   For it is such, as I but faintly guess,
   As makes remorse dishonour, and leaves her                           _200
   Only one duty, how she may avenge:
   You, but one refuge from ills ill endured;
   Me, but one counsel...
   
   LUCRETIA:
   For we cannot hope
   That aid, or retribution, or resource
   Will arise thence, where every other one                             _205
   Might find them with less need.
   
   [BEATRICE ADVANCES.]
   
   ORSINO:
   Then...
   
   BEATRICE:
   Peace, Orsino!
   And, honoured Lady, while I speak, I pray,
   That you put off, as garments overworn,
   Forbearance and respect, remorse and fear,
   And all the fit restraints of daily life,                            _210
   Which have been borne from childhood, but which now
   Would be a mockery to my holier plea.
   As I have said, I have endured a wrong,
   Which, though it be expressionless, is such
   As asks atonement; both for what is past,                            _215
   And lest I be reserved, day after day,
   To load with crimes an overburthened soul,
   And be...what ye can dream not. I have prayed
   To God, and I have talked with my own heart,
   And have unravelled my entangled will,                               _220
   And have at length determined what is right.
   Art thou my friend, Orsino? False or true?
   Pledge thy salvation ere I speak.
   
   ORSINO:
   I swear
   To dedicate my cunning, and my strength,
   My silence, and whatever else is mine,                               _225
   To thy commands.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   You think we should devise
   His death?
   
   BEATRICE:
   And execute what is devised,
   And suddenly. We must be brief and bold.
   
   ORSINO:
   And yet most cautious.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   For the jealous laws
   Would punish us with death and infamy                                _230
   For that which it became themselves to do.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Be cautious as ye may, but prompt. Orsino,
   What are the means?
   
   ORSINO:
   I know two dull, fierce outlaws,
   Who think man's spirit as a worm's, and they
   Would trample out, for any slight caprice,                           _235
   The meanest or the noblest life. This mood
   Is marketable here in Rome. They sell
   What we now want.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   To-morrow before dawn,
   Cenci will take us to that lonely rock,
   Petrella, in the Apulian Apennines.                                  _240
   If he arrive there...
   
   BEATRICE:
   He must not arrive.
   
   ORSINO:
   Will it be dark before you reach the tower?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   The sun will scarce be set.
   
   BEATRICE:
   But I remember
   Two miles on this side of the fort, the road
   Crosses a deep ravine; 'tis rough and narrow,                        _245
   And winds with short turns down the precipice;
   And in its depth there is a mighty rock,
   Which has, from unimaginable years,
   Sustained itself with terror and with toil
   Over a gulf, and with the agony                                      _250
   With which it clings seems slowly coming down;
   Even as a wretched soul hour after hour,
   Clings to the mass of life; yet, clinging, leans;
   And leaning, makes more dark the dread abyss
   In which it fears to fall: beneath this crag                         _255
   Huge as despair, as if in weariness,
   The melancholy mountain yawns...below,
   You hear but see not an impetuous torrent
   Raging among the caverns, and a bridge
   Crosses the chasm; and high above there grow,                        _260
   With intersecting trunks, from crag to crag,
   Cedars, and yews, and pines; whose tangled hair
   Is matted in one solid roof of shade
   By the dark ivy's twine. At noonday here
   'Tis twilight, and at sunset blackest night.                         _265
   
   ORSINO:
   Before you reach that bridge make some excuse
   For spurring on your mules, or loitering
   Until...
   
   BEATRICE:
   What sound is that?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Hark! No, it cannot be a servant's step
   It must be Cenci, unexpectedly                                       _270
   Returned...Make some excuse for being here.
   
   BEATRICE [TO ORSINO AS SHE GOES OUT]:
   That step we hear approach must never pass
   The bridge of which we spoke.
   
   [EXEUNT LUCRETIA AND BEATRICE.]
   
   ORSINO:
   What shall I do?
   Cenci must find me here, and I must bear
   The imperious inquisition of his looks                               _275
   As to what brought me hither: let me mask
   Mine own in some inane and vacant smile.
   [ENTER GIACOMO, IN A HURRIED MANNER.]
   How! Have you ventured hither? Know you then
   That Cenci is from home?
   
   NOTE:
   _278 hither edition 1821; thither edition 1819.
   
   GIACOMO:
   I sought him here;
   And now must wait till he returns.
   
   ORSINO:
   Great God!                                                           _280
   Weigh you the danger of this rashness?
   
   GIACOMO:
   Ay!
   Does my destroyer know his danger? We
   Are now no more, as once, parent and child,
   But man to man; the oppressor to the oppressed;
   The slanderer to the slandered; foe to foe:                          _285
   He has cast Nature off, which was his shield,
   And Nature casts him off, who is her shame;
   And I spurn both. Is it a father's throat
   Which I will shake, and say, I ask not gold;
   I ask not happy years; nor memories                                  _290
   Of tranquil childhood; nor home-sheltered love;
   Though all these hast thou torn from me, and more;
   But only my fair fame; only one hoard
   Of peace, which I thought hidden from thy hate,
   Under the penury heaped on me by thee,                               _295
   Or I will...God can understand and pardon,
   Why should I speak with man?
   
   ORSINO:
   Be calm, dear friend.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Well, I will calmly tell you what he did.
   This old Francesco Cenci, as you know,
   Borrowed the dowry of my wife from me,                               _300
   And then denied the loan; and left me so
   In poverty, the which I sought to mend
   By holding a poor office in the state.
   It had been promised to me, and already
   I bought new clothing for my ragged babes,                           _305
   And my wife smiled; and my heart knew repose.
   When Cenci's intercession, as I found,
   Conferred this office on a wretch, whom thus
   He paid for vilest service. I returned
   With this ill news, and we sate sad together                         _310
   Solacing our despondency with tears
   Of such affection and unbroken faith
   As temper life's worst bitterness; when he,
   As he is wont, came to upbraid and curse,
   Mocking our poverty, and telling us                                  _315
   Such was God's scourge for disobedient sons.
   And then, that I might strike him dumb with shame,
   I spoke of my wife's dowry; but he coined
   A brief yet specious tale, how I had wasted
   The sum in secret riot; and he saw                                   _320
   My wife was touched, and he went smiling forth.
   And when I knew the impression he had made,
   And felt my wife insult with silent scorn
   My ardent truth, and look averse and cold,
   I went forth too: but soon returned again;                           _325
   Yet not so soon but that my wife had taught
   My children her harsh thoughts, and they all cried,
   'Give us clothes, father! Give us better food!
   What you in one night squander were enough
   For months!' I looked, and saw that home was hell.                   _330
   And to that hell will I return no more
   Until mine enemy has rendered up
   Atonement, or, as he gave life to me
   I will, reversing Nature's law...
   
   ORSINO:
   Trust me,
   The compensation which thou seekest here                             _335
   Will be denied.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Then...Are you not my friend?
   Did you not hint at the alternative,
   Upon the brink of which you see I stand,
   The other day when we conversed together?
   My wrongs were then less. That word parricide,                       _340
   Although I am resolved, haunts me like fear.
   
   ORSINO:
   It must be fear itself, for the bare word
   Is hollow mockery. Mark, how wisest God
   Draws to one point the threads of a just doom,
   So sanctifying it: what you devise                                   _345
   Is, as it were, accomplished.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Is he dead?
   
   ORSINO:
   His grave is ready. Know that since we met
   Cenci has done an outrage to his daughter.
   
   GIACOMO:
   What outrage?
   
   ORSINO:
   That she speaks not, but you may
   Conceive such half conjectures as I do,                              _350
   From her fixed paleness, and the lofty grief
   Of her stern brow bent on the idle air,
   And her severe unmodulated voice,
   Drowning both tenderness and dread; and last
   From this; that whilst her step-mother and I,                        _355
   Bewildered in our horror, talked together
   With obscure hints; both self-misunderstood
   And darkly guessing, stumbling, in our talk,
   Over the truth, and yet to its revenge,
   She interrupted us, and with a look                                  _360
   Which told, before she spoke it, he must die:...
   
   GIACOMO:
   It is enough. My doubts are well appeased;
   There is a higher reason for the act
   Than mine; there is a holier judge than me,
   A more unblamed avenger. Beatrice,                                   _365
   Who in the gentleness of thy sweet youth
   Hast never trodden on a worm, or bruised
   A living flower, but thou hast pitied it
   With needless tears! Fair sister, thou in whom
   Men wondered how such loveliness and wisdom                          _370
   Did not destroy each other! Is there made
   Ravage of thee? O, heart, I ask no more
   Justification! Shall I wait, Orsino,
   Till he return, and stab him at the door?
   
   ORSINO:
   Not so; some accident might interpose                                _375
   To rescue him from what is now most sure;
   And you are unprovided where to fly,
   How to excuse or to conceal. Nay, listen:
   All is contrived; success is so assured
   That...
   
   [ENTER BEATRICE.]
   
   BEATRICE:
   'Tis my brother's voice! You know me not?
   
   GIACOMO:
   My sister, my lost sister!                                           _380
   
   BEATRICE:
   Lost indeed!
   I see Orsino has talked with you, and
   That you conjecture things too horrible
   To speak, yet far less than the truth. Now, stay not,
   He might return: yet kiss me; I shall know                           _385
   That then thou hast consented to his death.
   Farewell, farewell! Let piety to God,
   Brotherly love, justice and clemency,
   And all things that make tender hardest hearts
   Make thine hard, brother. Answer not...farewell.                     _390
   
   [EXEUNT SEVERALLY.]
   
   SCENE 3.2:
   A MEAN APARTMENT IN GIACOMO'S HOUSE.
   GIACOMO ALONE.
   
   GIACOMO:
   'Tis midnight, and Orsino comes not yet.
   [THUNDER, AND THE SOUND OF A STORM.]
   What! can the everlasting elements
   Feel with a worm like man? If so, the shaft
   Of mercy-winged lightning would not fall
   On stones and trees. My wife and children sleep:                     _5
   They are now living in unmeaning dreams:
   But I must wake, still doubting if that deed
   Be just which is most necessary. O,
   Thou unreplenished lamp! whose narrow fire
   Is shaken by the wind, and on whose edge                             _10
   Devouring darkness hovers! Thou small flame,
   Which, as a dying pulse rises and falls,
   Still flickerest up and down, how very soon,
   Did I not feed thee, wouldst thou fail and be
   As thou hadst never been! So wastes and sinks                        _15
   Even now, perhaps, the life that kindled mine:
   But that no power can fill with vital oil
   That broken lamp of flesh. Ha! 'tis the blood
   Which fed these veins that ebbs till all is cold:
   It is the form that moulded mine that sinks                          _20
   Into the white and yellow spasms of death:
   It is the soul by which mine was arrayed
   In God's immortal likeness which now stands
   Naked before Heaven's judgement seat!
   [A BELL STRIKES.]
   One! Two!
   The hours crawl on; and, when my hairs are white,                    _25
   My son will then perhaps be waiting thus,
   Tortured between just hate and vain remorse;
   Chiding the tardy messenger of news
   Like those which I expect. I almost wish
   He be not dead, although my wrongs are great;                        _30
   Yet...'tis Orsino's step...
   [ENTER ORSINO.]
   Speak!
   
   ORSINO:
   I am come
   To say he has escaped.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Escaped!
   
   ORSINO:
   And safe
   Within Petrella. He passed by the spot
   Appointed for the deed an hour too soon.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Are we the fools of such contingencies?                              _35
   And do we waste in blind misgivings thus
   The hours when we should act? Then wind and thunder,
   Which seemed to howl his knell, is the loud laughter
   With which Heaven mocks our weakness! I henceforth
   Will ne'er repent of aught designed or done                          _40
   But my repentance.
   
   ORSINO:
   See, the lamp is out.
   
   GIACOMO:
   If no remorse is ours when the dim air
   Has drank this innocent flame, why should we quail
   When Cenci's life, that light by which ill spirits
   See the worst deeds they prompt, shall sink for ever?                _45
   No, I am hardened.
   
   ORSINO:
   Why, what need of this?
   Who feared the pale intrusion of remorse
   In a just deed? Although our first plan failed,
   Doubt not but he will soon be laid to rest.
   But light the lamp; let us not talk i' the dark.                     _50
   
   GIACOMO [LIGHTING THE LAMP]:
   And yet once quenched I cannot thus relume
   My father's life: do you not think his ghost
   Might plead that argument with God?
   
   ORSINO:
   Once gone
   You cannot now recall your sister's peace;
   Your own extinguished years of youth and hope;                       _55
   Nor your wife's bitter words; nor all the taunts
   Which, from the prosperous, weak misfortune takes;
   Nor your dead mother; nor...
   
   GIACOMO:
   O, speak no more!
   I am resolved, although this very hand
   Must quench the life that animated it.                               _60
   
   ORSINO:
   There is no need of that. Listen: you know
   Olimpio, the castellan of Petrella
   In old Colonna's time; him whom your father
   Degraded from his post? And Marzio,
   That desperate wretch, whom he deprived last year                    _65
   Of a reward of blood, well earned and due?
   
   GIACOMO:
   I knew Olimpio; and they say he hated
   Old Cenci so, that in his silent rage
   His lips grew white only to see him pass.
   Of Marzio I know nothing.
   
   ORSINO:
   Marzio's hate                                                        _70
   Matches Olimpio's. I have sent these men,
   But in your name, and as at your request,
   To talk with Beatrice and Lucretia.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Only to talk?
   
   ORSINO:
   The moments which even now
   Pass onward to to-morrow's midnight hour                             _75
   May memorize their flight with death: ere then
   They must have talked, and may perhaps have done,
   And made an end...
   
   GIACOMO:
   Listen! What sound is that?
   
   ORSINO:
   The house-dog moans, and the beams crack: nought else.
   
   GIACOMO:
   It is my wife complaining in her sleep:                              _80
   I doubt not she is saying bitter things
   Of me; and all my children round her dreaming
   That I deny them sustenance.
   
   ORSINO:
   Whilst he
   Who truly took it from them, and who fills
   Their hungry rest with bitterness, now sleeps                        _85
   Lapped in bad pleasures, and triumphantly
   Mocks thee in visions of successful hate
   Too like the truth of day.
   
   GIACOMO:
   If e'er he wakes
   Again, I will not trust to hireling hands...
   
   ORSINO:
   Why, that were well. I must be gone; good-night.                     _90
   When next we meet--may all be done!
   
   NOTE:
   _91 may all be done!
   Giacomo: And all edition 1821;
   Giacomo: May all be done, and all edition 1819.
   
   GIACOMO:
   And all
   Forgotten: Oh, that I had never been!
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   END OF ACT 3.
   
   
   ACT 4.
   
   SCENE 4.1:
   AN APARTMENT IN THE CASTLE OF PETRELLA.
   ENTER CENCI.
   
   CENCI:
   She comes not; yet I left her even now
   Vanquished and faint. She knows the penalty
   Of her delay: yet what if threats are vain?
   Am I not now within Petrella's moat?
   Or fear I still the eyes and ears of Rome?                           _5
   Might I not drag her by the golden hair?
   Stamp on her? keep her sleepless till her brain
   Be overworn? Tame her with chains and famine?
   Less would suffice. Yet so to leave undone
   What I most seek! No, 'tis her stubborn will                         _10
   Which by its own consent shall stoop as low
   As that which drags it down.
   [ENTER LUCRETIA.]
   Thou loathed wretch!
   Hide thee from my abhorrence: fly, begone!
   Yet stay! Bid Beatrice come hither.
   
   NOTE:
   _4 not now edition 1821; now not edition 1819.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Oh,
   Husband! I pray, for thine own wretched sake                         _15
   Heed what thou dost. A man who walks like thee
   Through crimes, and through the danger of his crimes,
   Each hour may stumble o'er a sudden grave.
   And thou art old; thy hairs are hoary gray;
   As thou wouldst save thyself from death and hell,                    _20
   Pity thy daughter; give her to some friend
   In marriage: so that she may tempt thee not
   To hatred, or worse thoughts, if worse there be.
   
   CENCI:
   What! like her sister who has found a home
   To mock my hate from with prosperity?                                _25
   Strange ruin shall destroy both her and thee
   And all that yet remain. My death may be
   Rapid, her destiny outspeeds it. Go,
   Bid her come hither, and before my mood
   Be changed, lest I should drag her by the hair.                      _30
   
   LUCRETIA:
   She sent me to thee, husband. At thy presence
   She fell, as thou dost know, into a trance;
   And in that trance she heard a voice which said,
   'Cenci must die! Let him confess himself!
   Even now the accusing Angel waits to hear                            _35
   If God, to punish his enormous crimes,
   Harden his dying heart!'
   
   CENCI:
   Why--such things are...
   No doubt divine revealings may be made.
   'Tis plain I have been favoured from above,
   For when I cursed my sons they died.--Ay...so...                     _40
   As to the right or wrong, that's talk...repentance...
   Repentance is an easy moment's work
   And more depends on God than me. Well...well...
   I must give up the greater point, which was
   To poison and corrupt her soul.
   [A PAUSE, LUCRETIA APPROACHES ANXIOUSLY,
   AND THEN SHRINKS BACK AS HE SPEAKS.]
   One, two;                                                            _45
   Ay...Rocco and Cristofano my curse
   Strangled: and Giacomo, I think, will find
   Life a worse Hell than that beyond the grave:
   Beatrice shall, if there be skill in hate,
   Die in despair, blaspheming: to Bernardo,                            _50
   He is so innocent, I will bequeath
   The memory of these deeds, and make his youth
   The sepulchre of hope, where evil thoughts
   Shall grow like weeds on a neglected tomb.
   When all is done, out in the wide Campagna,                          _55
   I will pile up my silver and my gold;
   My costly robes, paintings, and tapestries;
   My parchments and all records of my wealth,
   And make a bonfire in my joy, and leave
   Of my possessions nothing but my name;                               _60
   Which shall be an inheritance to strip
   Its wearer bare as infamy. That done,
   My soul, which is a scourge, will I resign
   Into the hands of him who wielded it;
   Be it for its own punishment or theirs,                              _65
   He will not ask it of me till the lash
   Be broken in its last and deepest wound;
   Until its hate be all inflicted. Yet,
   Lest death outspeed my purpose, let me make
   Short work and sure...
   
   [GOING.]
   
   LUCRETIA [STOPS HIM]:
   Oh, stay! It was a feint:                                            _70
   She had no vision, and she heard no voice.
   I said it but to awe thee.
   
   CENCI:
   That is well.
   Vile palterer with the sacred truth of God,
   Be thy soul choked with that blaspheming lie!
   For Beatrice worse terrors are in store                              _75
   To bend her to my will.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Oh! to what will?
   What cruel sufferings more than she has known
   Canst thou inflict?
   
   CENCI:
   Andrea! Go call my daughter,
   And if she comes not tell her that I come.
   What sufferings? I will drag her, step by step,                      _80
   Through infamies unheard of among men:
   She shall stand shelterless in the broad noon
   Of public scorn, for acts blazoned abroad,
   One among which shall be...What? Canst thou guess?
   She shall become (for what she most abhors                           _85
   Shall have a fascination to entrap
   Her loathing will) to her own conscious self
   All she appears to others; and when dead,
   As she shall die unshrived and unforgiven,
   A rebel to her father and her God,                                   _90
   Her corpse shall be abandoned to the hounds;
   Her name shall be the terror of the earth;
   Her spirit shall approach the throne of God
   Plague-spotted with my curses. I will make
   Body and soul a monstrous lump of ruin.                              _95
   
   [ENTER ANDREA.]
   
   ANDREA:
   The Lady Beatrice...
   
   CENCI:
   Speak, pale slave! What
   Said she?
   
   ANDREA:
   My Lord, 'twas what she looked; she said:
   'Go tell my father that I see the gulf
   Of Hell between us two, which he may pass,
   I will not.'
   
   [EXIT ANDREA.]
   
   CENCI:
   Go thou quick, Lucretia,                                             _100
   Tell her to come; yet let her understand
   Her coming is consent: and say, moreover,
   That if she come not I will curse her.
   [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
   Ha!
   With what but with a father's curse doth God
   Panic-strike armed victory, and make pale                            _105
   Cities in their prosperity? The world's Father
   Must grant a parent's prayer against his child,
   Be he who asks even what men call me.
   Will not the deaths of her rebellious brothers
   Awe her before I speak? For I on them                                _110
   Did imprecate quick ruin, and it came.
   [ENTER LUCRETIA.]
   Well; what? Speak, wretch!
   
   LUCRETIA:
   She said, 'I cannot come;
   Go tell my father that I see a torrent
   Of his own blood raging between us.'
   
   CENCI [KNEELING]:
   God,
   Hear me! If this most specious mass of flesh,                        _115
   Which Thou hast made my daughter; this my blood,
   This particle of my divided being;
   Or rather, this my bane and my disease,
   Whose sight infects and poisons me; this devil
   Which sprung from me as from a hell, was meant                       _120
   To aught good use; if her bright loveliness
   Was kindled to illumine this dark world;
   If nursed by Thy __select__est dew of love
   Such virtues blossom in her as should make
   The peace of life, I pray Thee for my sake,                          _125
   As Thou the common God and Father art
   Of her, and me, and all; reverse that doom!
   Earth, in the name of God, let her food be
   Poison, until she be encrusted round
   With leprous stains! Heaven, rain upon her head                      _130
   The blistering drops of the Maremma's dew,
   Till she be speckled like a toad; parch up
   Those love-enkindled lips, warp those fine limbs
   To loathed lameness! All-beholding sun,
   Strike in thine envy those life-darting eyes                         _135
   With thine own blinding beams!
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Peace! Peace!
   For thine own sake unsay those dreadful words.
   When high God grants He punishes such prayers.
   
   CENCI [LEAPING UP, AND THROWING HIS RIGHT HAND TOWARDS HEAVEN]:
   He does his will, I mine! This in addition,
   That if she have a child...
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Horrible thought!                                                    _140
   
   CENCI:
   That if she ever have a child; and thou,
   Quick Nature! I adjure thee by thy God,
   That thou be fruitful in her, and increase
   And multiply, fulfilling his command,
   And my deep imprecation! May it be                                   _145
   A hideous likeness of herself, that as
   From a distorting mirror, she may see
   Her image mixed with what she most abhors,
   Smiling upon her from her nursing breast.
   And that the child may from its infancy                              _150
   Grow, day by day, more wicked and deformed,
   Turning her mother's love to misery:
   And that both she and it may live until
   It shall repay her care and pain with hate,
   Or what may else be more unnatural.                                  _155
   So he may hunt her through the clamorous scoffs
   Of the loud world to a dishonoured grave.
   Shall I revoke this curse? Go, bid her come,
   Before my words are chronicled in Heaven.
   [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
   I do not feel as if I were a man,                                    _160
   But like a fiend appointed to chastise
   The offences of some unremembered world.
   My blood is running up and down my veins;
   A fearful pleasure makes it prick and tingle:
   I feel a giddy sickness of strange awe;                              _165
   My heart is beating with an expectation
   Of horrid joy.
   [ENTER LUCRETIA.]
   What? Speak!
   
   LUCRETIA:
   She bids thee curse;
   And if thy curses, as they cannot do,
   Could kill her soul...
   
   CENCI:
   She would not come. 'Tis well,
   I can do both; first take what I demand,                             _170
   And then extort concession. To thy chamber!
   Fly ere I spurn thee; and beware this night
   That thou cross not my footsteps. It were safer
   To come between the tiger and his prey.
   [EXIT LUCRETIA.]
   It must be late; mine eyes grow weary dim                            _175
   With unaccustomed heaviness of sleep.
   Conscience! Oh, thou most insolent of lies!
   They say that sleep, that healing dew of Heaven,
   Steeps not in balm the foldings of the brain
   Which thinks thee an impostor. I will go                             _180
   First to belie thee with an hour of rest,
   Which will be deep and calm, I feel: and then...
   O, multitudinous Hell, the fiends will shake
   Thine arches with the laughter of their joy!
   There shall be lamentation heard in Heaven                           _185
   As o'er an angel fallen; and upon Earth
   All good shall droop and sicken, and ill things
   Shall with a spirit of unnatural life,
   Stir and be quickened...even as I am now.
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   SCENE 4.2:
   BEFORE THE CASTLE OF PETRELLA.
   ENTER BEATRICE AND LUCRETIA ABOVE ON THE RAMPARTS.
   
   BEATRICE:
   They come not yet.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   'Tis scarce midnight.
   
   BEATRICE:
   How slow
   Behind the course of thought, even sick with speed,
   Lags leaden-footed time!
   
   LUCRETIA:
   The minutes pass...
   If he should wake before the deed is done?
   
   BEATRICE:
   O, mother! He must never wake again.                                 _5
   What thou hast said persuades me that our act
   Will but dislodge a spirit of deep hell
   Out of a human form.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   'Tis true he spoke
   Of death and judgement with strange confidence
   For one so wicked; as a man believing                                _10
   In God, yet recking not of good or ill.
   And yet to die without confession!...
   
   BEATRICE:
   Oh!
   Believe that Heaven is merciful and just,
   And will not add our dread necessity
   To the amount of his offences.
   
   [ENTER OLIMPIO AND MARZIO BELOW.]
   
   LUCRETIA:
   See,                                                                 _15
   They come.
   
   BEATRICE:
   All mortal things must hasten thus
   To their dark end. Let us go down.
   
   [EXEUNT LUCRETIA AND BEATRICE FROM ABOVE.]
   
   OLIMPIO:
   How feel you to this work?
   
   MARZIO:
   As one who thinks
   A thousand crowns excellent market price
   For an old murderer's life. Your cheeks are pale.                    _20
   
   OLIMPIO:
   It is the white reflection of your own,
   Which you call pale.
   
   MARZIO:
   Is that their natural hue?
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Or 'tis my hate and the deferred desire
   To wreak it, which extinguishes their blood.
   
   MARZIO:
   You are inclined then to this business?
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Ay,                                                                  _25
   If one should bribe me with a thousand crowns
   To kill a serpent which had stung my child,
   I could not be more willing.
   [ENTER BEATRICE AND LUCRETIA BELOW.]
   Noble ladies!
   
   BEATRICE:
   Are ye resolved?
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Is he asleep?
   
   MARZIO:
   Is all
   Quiet?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   I mixed an opiate with his drink:                                    _30
   He sleeps so soundly...
   
   BEATRICE:
   That his death will be
   But as a change of sin-chastising dreams,
   A dark continuance of the Hell within him,
   Which God extinguish! But ye are resolved?
   Ye know it is a high and holy deed?                                  _35
   
   OLIMPIO:
   We are resolved.
   
   MARZIO:
   As to the how this act
   Be warranted, it rests with you.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Well, follow!
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Hush! Hark! What noise is that?
   
   MARZIO:
   Ha! some one comes!
   
   BEATRICE:
   Ye conscience-stricken cravens, rock to rest
   Your baby hearts. It is the iron gate,                               _40
   Which ye left open, swinging to the wind,
   That enters whistling as in scorn. Come, follow!
   And be your steps like mine, light, quick and bold.
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   SCENE 4.3:
   AN APARTMENT IN THE CASTLE.
   ENTER BEATRICE AND LUCRETIA.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   They are about it now.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Nay, it is done.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   I have not heard him groan.
   
   BEATRICE:
   He will not groan.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   What sound is that?
   
   BEATRICE:
   List! 'tis the tread of feet
   About his bed.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   My God!
   If he be now a cold, stiff corpse...
   
   BEATRICE:
   O, fear not                                                          _5
   What may be done, but what is left undone:
   The act seals all.
   [ENTER OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
   Is it accomplished?
   
   MARZIO:
   What?
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Did you not call?
   
   BEATRICE:
   When?
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Now.
   
   BEATRICE:
   I ask if all is over?
   
   OLIMPIO:
   We dare not kill an old and sleeping man;
   His thin gray hair, his stern and reverend brow,                     _10
   His veined hands crossed on his heaving breast,
   And the calm innocent sleep in which he lay,
   Quelled me. Indeed, indeed, I cannot do it.
   
   NOTE:
   _10 reverend]reverent all editions.
   
   MARZIO:
   But I was bolder; for I chid Olimpio,
   And bade him bear his wrongs to his own grave                        _15
   And leave me the reward. And now my knife
   Touched the loose wrinkled throat, when the old man
   Stirred in his sleep, and said, 'God! hear, O, hear,
   A father's curse! What, art Thou not our Father?'
   And then he laughed. I knew it was the ghost                         _20
   Of my dead father speaking through his lips,
   And could not kill him.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Miserable slaves!
   Where, if ye dare not kill a sleeping man,
   Found ye the boldness to return to me
   With such a deed undone? Base palterers!                             _25
   Cowards and traitors! Why, the very conscience
   Which ye would sell for gold and for revenge
   Is an equivocation: it sleeps over
   A thousand daily acts disgracing men;
   And when a deed where mercy insults Heaven...                        _30
   Why do I talk?
   [SNATCHING A DAGGER FROM ONE OF THEM, AND RAISING IT.]
   Hadst thou a tongue to say,
   'She murdered her own father!'--I must do it!
   But never dream ye shall outlive him long!
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Stop, for God's sake!
   
   MARZIO:
   I will go back and kill him.
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Give me the weapon, we must do thy will.                             _35
   
   BEATRICE:
   Take it! Depart! Return!
   [EXEUNT OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
   How pale thou art!
   We do but that which 'twere a deadly crime
   To leave undone.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Would it were done!
   
   BEATRICE:
   Even whilst
   That doubt is passing through your mind, the world
   Is conscious of a change. Darkness and Hell                          _40
   Have swallowed up the vapour they sent forth
   To blacken the sweet light of life. My breath
   Comes, methinks, lighter, and the jellied blood
   Runs freely through my veins. Hark!
   [ENTER OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
   He is...
   
   OLIMPIO:
   Dead!
   
   MARZIO:
   We strangled him that there might be no blood;                       _45
   And then we threw his heavy corpse i' the garden
   Under the balcony; 'twill seem it fell.
   
   BEATRICE [GIVING THEM A BAG OF COIN]:
   Here, take this gold, and hasten to your homes.
   And, Marzio, because thou wast only awed
   By that which made me tremble, wear thou this!                       _50
   [CLOTHES HIM IN A RICH MANTLE.]
   It was the mantle which my grandfather
   Wore in his high prosperity, and men
   Envied his state: so may they envy thine.
   Thou wert a weapon in the hand of God
   To a just use. Live long and thrive! And, mark,                      _55
   If thou hast crimes, repent: this deed is none.
   
   [A HORN IS SOUNDED.]
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Hark, 'tis the castle horn: my God! it sounds
   Like the last trump.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Some tedious guest is coming.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   The drawbridge is let down; there is a tramp
   Of horses in the court; fly, hide yourselves!                        _60
   
   [EXEUNT OLIMPIO AND MARZIO.]
   
   BEATRICE:
   Let us retire to counterfeit deep rest;
   I scarcely need to counterfeit it now:
   The spirit which doth reign within these limbs
   Seems strangely undisturbed. I could even sleep
   Fearless and calm: all ill is surely past.                           _65
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   SCENE 4.4:
   ANOTHER APARTMENT IN THE CASTLE.
   ENTER ON ONE SIDE THE LEGATE SAVELLA,
   INTRODUCED BY A SERVANT,
   AND ON THE OTHER LUCRETIA AND BERNARDO.
   
   SAVELLA:
   Lady, my duty to his Holiness
   Be my excuse that thus unseasonably
   I break upon your rest. I must speak with
   Count Cenci; doth he sleep?
   
   LUCRETIA [IN A HURRIED AND CONFUSED MANNER]:
   I think he sleeps;
   Yet, wake him not, I pray, spare me awhile,                          _5
   He is a wicked and a wrathful man;
   Should he be roused out of his sleep to-night,
   Which is, I know, a hell of angry dreams,
   It were not well; indeed it were not well.
   Wait till day break...
   [ASIDE.]
   Oh, I am deadly sick!                                                _10
   
   NOTE:
   _6 a wrathful edition 1821; wrathful editions 1819, 1839.
   
   SAVELLA:
   I grieve thus to distress you, but the Count
   Must answer charges of the gravest import,
   And suddenly; such my commission is.
   
   LUCRETIA [WITH INCREASED AGITATION]:
   I dare not rouse him: I know none who dare...
   'Twere perilous;...you might as safely waken                         _15
   A serpent; or a corpse in which some fiend
   Were laid to sleep.
   
   SAVELLA:
   Lady, my moments here
   Are counted. I must rouse him from his sleep,
   Since none else dare.
   
   LUCRETIA [ASIDE]:
   O, terror! O, despair!
   [TO BERNARDO.]
   Bernardo, conduct you the Lord Legate to                             _20
   Your father's chamber.
   
   [EXEUNT SAVELLA AND BERNARDO.]
   
   [ENTER BEATRICE.]
   
   BEATRICE:
   'Tis a messenger
   Come to arrest the culprit who now stands
   Before the throne of unappealable God.
   Both Earth and Heaven, consenting arbiters,
   Acquit our deed.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Oh, agony of fear!                                                   _25
   Would that he yet might live! Even now I heard
   The Legate's followers whisper as they passed
   They had a warrant for his instant death.
   All was prepared by unforbidden means
   Which we must pay so dearly, having done.                            _30
   Even now they search the tower, and find the body;
   Now they suspect the truth; now they consult
   Before they come to tax us with the fact;
   O, horrible, 'tis all discovered!
   
   BEATRICE:
   Mother,
   What is done wisely, is done well. Be bold                           _35
   As thou art just. 'Tis like a truant child
   To fear that others know what thou hast done,
   Even from thine own strong consciousness, and thus
   Write on unsteady eyes and altered cheeks
   All thou wouldst hide. Be faithful to thyself,                       _40
   And fear no other witness but thy fear.
   For if, as cannot be, some circumstance
   Should rise in accusation, we can blind
   Suspicion with such cheap astonishment,
   Or overbear it with such guiltless pride,                            _45
   As murderers cannot feign. The deed is done,
   And what may follow now regards not me.
   I am as universal as the light;
   Free as the earth-surrounding air; as firm
   As the world's centre. Consequence, to me,                           _50
   Is as the wind which strikes the solid rock,
   But shakes it not.
   
   [A CRY WITHIN AND TUMULT.]
   
   VOICES:
   Murder! Murder! Murder!
   
   [ENTER BERNARDO AND SAVELLA.]
   
   SAVELLA [TO HIS FOLLOWERS]:
   Go search the castle round; sound the alarm;
   Look to the gates, that none escape!
   
   BEATRICE:
   What now?
   
   BERNARDO:
   I know not what to say...my father's dead.                           _55
   
   BEATRICE:
   How; dead! he only sleeps; you mistake, brother.
   His sleep is very calm, very like death;
   'Tis wonderful how well a tyrant sleeps.
   He is not dead?
   
   BERNARDO:
   Dead; murdered.
   
   LUCRETIA [WITH EXTREME AGITATION]:
   Oh no, no!
   He is not murdered though he may be dead;                            _60
   I have alone the keys of those apartments.
   
   SAVELLA:
   Ha! Is it so?
   
   BEATRICE:
   My Lord, I pray excuse us;
   We will retire; my mother is not well:
   She seems quite overcome with this strange horror.
   
   [EXEUNT LUCRETIA AND BEATRICE.]
   
   SAVELLA:
   Can you suspect who may have murdered him?                           _65
   
   BERNARDO:
   I know not what to think.
   
   SAVELLA:
   Can you name any
   Who had an interest in his death?
   
   BERNARDO:
   Alas!
   I can name none who had not, and those most
   Who most lament that such a deed is done;
   My mother, and my sister, and myself.                                _70
   
   SAVELLA:
   'Tis strange! There were clear marks of violence.
   I found the old man's body in the moonlight
   Hanging beneath the window of his chamber,
   Among the branches of a pine: he could not
   Have fallen there, for all his limbs lay heaped                      _75
   And effortless; 'tis true there was no blood...
   Favour me, Sir; it much imports your house
   That all should be made clear; to tell the ladies
   That I request their presence.
   
   [EXIT BERNARDO.]
   
   [ENTER GUARDS, BRINGING IN MARZIO.]
   
   GUARD:
   We have one.
   
   OFFICER:
   My Lord, we found this ruffian and another                           _80
   Lurking among the rocks; there is no doubt
   But that they are the murderers of Count Cenci:
   Each had a bag of coin; this fellow wore
   A gold-inwoven robe, which, shining bright
   Under the dark rocks to the glimmering moon                          _85
   Betrayed them to our notice: the other fell
   Desperately fighting.
   
   SAVELLA:
   What does he confess?
   
   OFFICER:
   He keeps firm silence; but these lines found on him
   May speak.
   
   SAVELLA:
   Their language is at least sincere.
   [READS.]
   'To the Lady Beatrice.                                               _90
   That the atonement of what my nature sickens to conjecture may soon
   arrive, I send thee, at thy brother's desire, those who will speak and
   do more than I dare write...
   'Thy devoted servant, Orsino.'
   [ENTER LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, AND BERNARDO.]
   Knowest thou this writing, Lady?
   
   BEATRICE:
   No.
   
   SAVELLA:
   Nor thou?                                                            _95
   
   LUCRETIA [HER CONDUCT THROUGHOUT THE SCENE IS MARKED BY EXTREME AGITATION]:
   Where was it found? What is it? It should be
   Orsino's hand! It speaks of that strange horror
   Which never yet found utterance, but which made
   Between that hapless child and her dead father
   A gulf of obscure hatred.
   
   SAVELLA:
   Is it so?                                                            _100
   Is it true, Lady, that thy father did
   Such outrages as to awaken in thee
   Unfilial hate?
   
   BEATRICE:
   Not hate, 'twas more than hate:
   This is most true, yet wherefore question me?
   
   SAVELLA:
   There is a deed demanding question done;                             _105
   Thou hast a secret which will answer not.
   
   BEATRICE:
   What sayest? My Lord, your words are bold and rash.
   
   SAVELLA:
   I do arrest all present in the name
   Of the Pope's Holiness. You must to Rome.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   O, not to Rome! Indeed we are not guilty.                            _110
   
   BEATRICE:
   Guilty! Who dares talk of guilt? My Lord,
   I am more innocent of parricide
   Than is a child born fatherless...Dear mother,
   Your gentleness and patience are no shield
   For this keen-judging world, this two-edged lie,                     _115
   Which seems, but is not. What! will human laws,
   Rather will ye who are their ministers,
   Bar all access to retribution first,
   And then, when Heaven doth interpose to do
   What ye neglect, arming familiar things                              _120
   To the redress of an unwonted crime,
   Make ye the victims who demanded it
   Culprits? 'Tis ye are culprits! That poor wretch
   Who stands so pale, and trembling, and amazed,
   If it be true he murdered Cenci, was                                 _125
   A sword in the right hand of justest God.
   Wherefore should I have wielded it? Unless
   The crimes which mortal tongue dare never name
   God therefore scruples to avenge.
   
   SAVELLA:
   You own
   That you desired his death?
   
   BEATRICE:
   It would have been                                                   _130
   A crime no less than his, if for one moment
   That fierce desire had faded in my heart.
   'Tis true I did believe, and hope, and pray,
   Ay, I even knew...for God is wise and just,
   That some strange sudden death hung over him.                        _135
   'Tis true that this did happen, and most true
   There was no other rest for me on earth,
   No other hope in Heaven...now what of this?
   
   SAVELLA:
   Strange thoughts beget strange deeds; and here are both:
   I judge thee not.
   
   BEATRICE:
   And yet, if you arrest me,                                           _140
   You are the judge and executioner
   Of that which is the life of life: the breath
   Of accusation kills an innocent name,
   And leaves for lame acquittal the poor life
   Which is a mask without it. 'Tis most false                          _145
   That I am guilty of foul parricide;
   Although I must rejoice, for justest cause,
   That other hands have sent my father's soul
   To ask the mercy he denied to me.
   Now leave us free; stain not a noble house                           _150
   With vague surmises of rejected crime;
   Add to our sufferings and your own neglect
   No heavier sum: let them have been enough:
   Leave us the wreck we have.
   
   SAVELLA:
   I dare not, Lady.
   I pray that you prepare yourselves for Rome:                         _155
   There the Pope's further pleasure will be known.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   O, not to Rome! O, take us not to Rome!
   
   BEATRICE:
   Why not to Rome, dear mother? There as here
   Our innocence is as an armed heel
   To trample accusation. God is there                                  _160
   As here, and with His shadow ever clothes
   The innocent, the injured and the weak;
   And such are we. Cheer up, dear Lady, lean
   On me; collect your wandering thoughts. My Lord,
   As soon as you have taken some refreshment,                          _165
   And had all such examinations made
   Upon the spot, as may be necessary
   To the full understanding of this matter,
   We shall be ready. Mother; will you come?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Ha! they will bind us to the rack, and wrest                         _170
   Self-accusation from our agony!
   Will Giacomo be there? Orsino? Marzio?
   All present; all confronted; all demanding
   Each from the other's countenance the thing
   Which is in every heart! O, misery!                                  _175
   
   [SHE FAINTS, AND IS BORNE OUT.]
   
   SAVELLA:
   She faints: an ill appearance this.
   
   BEATRICE:
   My Lord,
   She knows not yet the uses of the world.
   She fears that power is as a beast which grasps
   And loosens not: a snake whose look transmutes
   All things to guilt which is its nutriment.                          _180
   She cannot know how well the supine slaves
   Of blind authority read the truth of things
   When written on a brow of guilelessness:
   She sees not yet triumphant Innocence
   Stand at the judgement-seat of mortal man,                           _185
   A judge and an accuser of the wrong
   Which drags it there. Prepare yourself, my Lord;
   Our suite will join yours in the court below.
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   END OF ACT 4.
   
   
   ACT 5.
   
   SCENE 5.1:
   AN APARTMENT IN ORSINO'S PALACE.
   ENTER ORSINO AND GIACOMO.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Do evil deeds thus quickly come to end?
   O, that the vain remorse which must chastise
   Crimes done, had but as loud a voice to warn
   As its keen sting is mortal to avenge!
   O, that the hour when present had cast off                           _5
   The mantle of its mystery, and shown
   The ghastly form with which it now returns
   When its scared game is roused, cheering the hounds
   Of conscience to their prey! Alas! Alas!
   It was a wicked thought, a piteous deed,                             _10
   To kill an old and hoary-headed father.
   
   ORSINO:
   It has turned out unluckily, in truth.
   
   GIACOMO:
   To violate the sacred doors of sleep;
   To cheat kind Nature of the placid death
   Which she prepares for overwearied age;                              _15
   To drag from Heaven an unrepentant soul
   Which might have quenched in reconciling prayers
   A life of burning crimes...
   
   ORSINO:
   You cannot say
   I urged you to the deed.
   
   GIACOMO:
   O, had I never
   Found in thy smooth and ready countenance                            _20
   The mirror of my darkest thoughts; hadst thou
   Never with hints and questions made me look
   Upon the monster of my thought, until
   It grew familiar to desire...
   
   ORSINO:
   'Tis thus
   Men cast the blame of their unprosperous acts                        _25
   Upon the abettors of their own resolve;
   Or anything but their weak, guilty selves.
   And yet, confess the truth, it is the peril
   In which you stand that gives you this pale sickness
   Of penitence; confess 'tis fear disguised                            _30
   From its own shame that takes the mantle now
   Of thin remorse. What if we yet were safe?
   
   GIACOMO:
   How can that be? Already Beatrice,
   Lucretia and the murderer are in prison.
   I doubt not officers are, whilst we speak,                           _35
   Sent to arrest us.
   
   ORSINO:
   I have all prepared
   For instant flight. We can escape even now,
   So we take fleet occasion by the hair.
   
   GIACOMO:
   Rather expire in tortures, as I may.
   What! will you cast by self-accusing flight                          _40
   Assured conviction upon Beatrice?
   She, who alone in this unnatural work,
   Stands like God's angel ministered upon
   By fiends; avenging such a nameless wrong
   As turns black parricide to piety;                                   _45
   Whilst we for basest ends...I fear, Orsino,
   While I consider all your words and looks,
   Comparing them with your proposal now,
   That you must be a villain. For what end
   Could you engage in such a perilous crime,                           _50
   Training me on with hints, and signs, and smiles,
   Even to this gulf? Thou art no liar? No,
   Thou art a lie! Traitor and murderer!
   Coward and slave! But no, defend thyself;
   [DRAWING.]
   Let the sword speak what the indignant tongue                        _55
   Disdains to brand thee with.
   
   ORSINO:
   Put up your weapon.
   Is it the desperation of your fear
   Makes you thus rash and sudden with a friend,
   Now ruined for your sake? If honest anger
   Have moved you, know, that what I just proposed                      _60
   Was but to try you. As for me, I think,
   Thankless affection led me to this point,
   From which, if my firm temper could repent,
   I cannot now recede. Even whilst we speak
   The ministers of justice wait below:                                 _65
   They grant me these brief moments. Now if you
   Have any word of melancholy comfort
   To speak to your pale wife, 'twere best to pass
   Out at the postern, and avoid them so.
   
   NOTE:
   _58 a friend edition 1821; your friend edition 1839.
   
   GIACOMO:
   O, generous friend! How canst thou pardon me?                        _70
   Would that my life could purchase thine!
   
   ORSINO:
   That wish
   Now comes a day too late. Haste; fare thee well!
   Hear'st thou not steps along the corridor?
   [EXIT GIACOMO.]
   I'm sorry for it; but the guards are waiting
   At his own gate, and such was my contrivance                         _75
   That I might rid me both of him and them.
   I thought to act a solemn comedy
   Upon the painted scene of this new world,
   And to attain my own peculiar ends
   By some such plot of mingled good and ill                            _80
   As others weave; but there arose a Power
   Which grasped and snapped the threads of my device
   And turned it to a net of ruin...Ha!
   [A SHOUT IS HEARD.]
   Is that my name I hear proclaimed abroad?
   But I will pass, wrapped in a vile disguise;                         _85
   Rags on my back, and a false innocence
   Upon my face, through the misdeeming crowd
   Which judges by what seems. 'Tis easy then
   For a new name and for a country new,
   And a new life, fashioned on old desires,                            _90
   To change the honours of abandoned Rome.
   And these must be the masks of that within,
   Which must remain unaltered...Oh, I fear
   That what is past will never let me rest!
   Why, when none else is conscious, but myself,                        _95
   Of my misdeeds, should my own heart's contempt
   Trouble me? Have I not the power to fly
   My own reproaches? Shall I be the slave
   Of...what? A word? which those of this false world
   Employ against each other, not themselves;                           _100
   As men wear daggers not for self-offence.
   But if I am mistaken, where shall I
   Find the disguise to hide me from myself,
   As now I skulk from every other eye?
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   SCENE 5.2:
   A HALL OF JUSTICE.
   CAMILLO, JUDGES, ETC., ARE DISCOVERED SEATED;
   MARZIO IS LED IN.
   
   FIRST JUDGE:
   Accused, do you persist in your denial?
   I ask you, are you innocent, or guilty?
   I demand who were the participators
   In your offence? Speak truth, and the whole truth.
   
   MARZIO:
   My God! I did not kill him; I know nothing;                          _5
   Olimpio sold the robe to me from which
   You would infer my guilt.
   
   SECOND JUDGE:
   Away with him!
   
   FIRST JUDGE:
   Dare you, with lips yet white from the rack's kiss
   Speak false? Is it so soft a questioner,
   That you would bandy lover's talk with it                            _10
   Till it wind out your life and soul? Away!
   
   MARZIO:
   Spare me! O, spare! I will confess.
   
   FIRST JUDGE:
   Then speak.
   
   MARZIO:
   I strangled him in his sleep.
   
   FIRST JUDGE:
   Who urged you to it?
   
   MARZIO:
   His own son Giacomo, and the young prelate
   Orsino sent me to Petrella; there                                    _15
   The ladies Beatrice and Lucretia
   Tempted me with a thousand crowns, and I
   And my companion forthwith murdered him.
   Now let me die.
   
   FIRST JUDGE:
   This sounds as bad as truth. Guards, there,
   Lead forth the prisoner!
   [ENTER LUCRETIA, BEATRICE AND GIACOMO, GUARDED.]
   Look upon this man;                                                  _20
   When did you see him last?
   
   BEATRICE:
   We never saw him.
   
   MARZIO:
   You know me too well, Lady Beatrice.
   
   BEATRICE:
   I know thee! How? where? when?
   
   MARZIO:
   You know 'twas I
   Whom you did urge with menaces and bribes
   To kill your father. When the thing was done                         _25
   You clothed me in a robe of woven gold
   And bade me thrive: how I have thriven, you see.
   You, my Lord Giacomo, Lady Lucretia,
   You know that what I speak is true.
   [BEATRICE ADVANCES TOWARDS HIM;
   HE COVERS HIS FACE, AND SHRINKS BACK.]
   Oh, dart
   The terrible resentment of those eyes                                _30
   On the dead earth! Turn them away from me!
   They wound: 'twas torture forced the truth. My Lords,
   Having said this let me be led to death.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Poor wretch, I pity thee: yet stay awhile.
   
   CAMILLO:
   Guards, lead him not away.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Cardinal Camillo,                                                    _35
   You have a good repute for gentleness
   And wisdom: can it be that you sit here
   To countenance a wicked farce like this?
   When some obscure and trembling slave is dragged
   From sufferings which might shake the sternest heart                 _40
   And bade to answer, not as he believes,
   But as those may suspect or do desire
   Whose questions thence suggest their own reply:
   And that in peril of such hideous torments
   As merciful God spares even the damned. Speak now                    _45
   The thing you surely know, which is that you,
   If your fine frame were stretched upon that wheel,
   And you were told: 'Confess that you did poison
   Your little nephew; that fair blue-eyed child
   Who was the lodestar of your life:'--and though                      _50
   All see, since his most swift and piteous death,
   That day and night, and heaven and earth, and time,
   And all the things hoped for or done therein
   Are changed to you, through your exceeding grief,
   Yet you would say, 'I confess anything:'                             _55
   And beg from your tormentors, like that slave,
   The refuge of dishonourable death.
   I pray thee, Cardinal, that thou assert
   My innocence.
   
   CAMILLO [MUCH MOVED]:
   What shall we think, my Lords?
   Shame on these tears! I thought the heart was frozen                 _60
   Which is their fountain. I would pledge my soul
   That she is guiltless.
   
   JUDGE:
   Yet she must be tortured.
   
   CAMILLO:
   I would as soon have tortured mine own nephew
   (If he now lived he would be just her age;
   His hair, too, was her colour, and his eyes                          _65
   Like hers in shape, but blue and not so deep)
   As that most perfect image of God's love
   That ever came sorrowing upon the earth.
   She is as pure as speechless infancy!
   
   JUDGE:
   Well, be her purity on your head, my Lord,                           _70
   If you forbid the rack. His Holiness
   Enjoined us to pursue this monstrous crime
   By the severest forms of law; nay even
   To stretch a point against the criminals.
   The prisoners stand accused of parricide                             _75
   Upon such evidence as justifies
   Torture.
   
   BEATRICE:
   What evidence? This man's?
   
   JUDGE:
   Even so.
   
   BEATRICE [TO MARZIO]:
   Come near. And who art thou thus chosen forth
   Out of the multitude of living men
   To kill the innocent?
   
   MARZIO:
   I am Marzio,                                                         _80
   Thy father's vassal.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Fix thine eyes on mine;
   Answer to what I ask.
   [TURNING TO THE JUDGES.]
   I prithee mark
   His countenance: unlike bold calumny
   Which sometimes dares not speak the thing it looks,
   He dares not look the thing he speaks, but bends                     _85
   His gaze on the blind earth.
   [TO MARZIO.]
   What! wilt thou say
   That I did murder my own father?
   
   MARZIO:
   Oh!
   Spare me! My brain swims round...I cannot speak...
   It was that horrid torture forced the truth.
   Take me away! Let her not look on me!                                _90
   I am a guilty miserable wretch;
   I have said all I know; now, let me die!
   
   BEATRICE:
   My Lords, if by my nature I had been
   So stern, as to have planned the crime alleged,
   Which your suspicions dictate to this slave,                         _95
   And the rack makes him utter, do you think
   I should have left this two-edged instrument
   Of my misdeed; this man, this bloody knife
   With my own name engraven on the heft,
   Lying unsheathed amid a world of foes,                               _100
   For my own death? That with such horrible need
   For deepest silence, I should have neglected
   So trivial a precaution, as the making
   His tomb the keeper of a secret written
   On a thief's memory? What is his poor life?                          _105
   What are a thousand lives? A parricide
   Had trampled them like dust; and, see, he lives!
   [TURNING TO MARZIO.]
   And thou...
   
   MARZIO:
   Oh, spare me! Speak to me no more!
   That stern yet piteous look, those solemn tones,
   Wound worse than torture.
   [TO THE JUDGES.]
   I have told it all;                                                  _110
   For pity's sake lead me away to death.
   
   CAMILLO:
   Guards, lead him nearer the Lady Beatrice;
   He shrinks from her regard like autumn's leaf
   From the keen breath of the serenest north.
   
   BEATRICE:
   O thou who tremblest on the giddy verge                              _115
   Of life and death, pause ere thou answerest me;
   So mayst thou answer God with less dismay:
   What evil have we done thee? I, alas!
   Have lived but on this earth a few sad years,
   And so my lot was ordered, that a father                             _120
   First turned the moments of awakening life
   To drops, each poisoning youth's sweet hope; and then
   Stabbed with one blow my everlasting soul;
   And my untainted fame; and even that peace
   Which sleeps within the core of the heart's heart;                   _125
   But the wound was not mortal; so my hate
   Became the only worship I could lift
   To our great father, who in pity and love,
   Armed thee, as thou dost say, to cut him off;
   And thus his wrong becomes my accusation;                            _130
   And art thou the accuser? If thou hopest
   Mercy in heaven, show justice upon earth:
   Worse than a bloody hand is a hard heart.
   If thou hast done murders, made thy life's path
   Over the trampled laws of God and man,                               _135
   Rush not before thy Judge, and say: 'My maker,
   I have done this and more; for there was one
   Who was most pure and innocent on earth;
   And because she endured what never any
   Guilty or innocent endured before:                                   _140
   Because her wrongs could not be told, not thought;
   Because thy hand at length did rescue her;
   I with my words killed her and all her kin.'
   Think, I adjure you, what it is to slay
   The reverence living in the minds of men                             _145
   Towards our ancient house, and stainless fame!
   Think what it is to strangle infant pity,
   Cradled in the belief of guileless looks,
   Till it become a crime to suffer. Think
   What 'tis to blot with infamy and blood                              _150
   All that which shows like innocence, and is,
   Hear me, great God! I swear, most innocent,
   So that the world lose all discrimination
   Between the sly, fierce, wild regard of guilt,
   And that which now compels thee to reply                             _155
   To what I ask: Am I, or am I not
   A parricide?
   
   MARZIO:
   Thou art not!
   
   JUDGE:
   What is this?
   
   MARZIO:
   I here declare those whom I did accuse
   Are innocent. 'Tis I alone am guilty.
   
   JUDGE:
   Drag him away to torments; let them be                               _160
   Subtle and long drawn out, to tear the folds
   Of the heart's inmost cell. Unbind him not
   Till he confess.
   
   MARZIO:
   Torture me as ye will:
   A keener pang has wrung a higher truth
   From my last breath. She is most innocent!                           _165
   Bloodhounds, not men, glut yourselves well with me;
   I will not give you that fine piece of nature
   To rend and ruin.
   
   NOTE:
   _164 pang edition 1821; pain editions 1819, 1839.
   
   [EXIT MARZIO, GUARDED.]
   
   CAMILLO:
   What say ye now, my Lords?
   
   JUDGE:
   Let tortures strain the truth till it be white
   As snow thrice sifted by the frozen wind.                            _170
   
   CAMILLO:
   Yet stained with blood.
   
   JUDGE [TO BEATRICE]:
   Know you this paper, Lady?
   
   BEATRICE:
   Entrap me not with questions. Who stands here
   As my accuser? Ha! wilt thou be he,
   Who art my judge? Accuser, witness, judge,
   What, all in one? Here is Orsino's name;                             _175
   Where is Orsino? Let his eye meet mine.
   What means this scrawl? Alas! ye know not what,
   And therefore on the chance that it may be
   Some evil, will ye kill us?
   
   [ENTER AN OFFICER.]
   
   OFFICER:
   Marzio's dead.
   
   JUDGE:
   What did he say?
   
   OFFICER:
   Nothing. As soon as we                                               _180
   Had bound him on the wheel, he smiled on us,
   As one who baffles a deep adversary;
   And holding his breath, died.
   
   JUDGE:
   There remains nothing
   But to apply the question to those prisoners,
   Who yet remain stubborn.
   
   CAMILLO:
   I overrule                                                           _185
   Further proceedings, and in the behalf
   Of these most innocent and noble persons
   Will use my interest with the Holy Father.
   
   JUDGE:
   Let the Pope's pleasure then be done. Meanwhile
   Conduct these culprits each to separate cells;                       _190
   And be the engines ready; for this night
   If the Pope's resolution be as grave,
   Pious, and just as once, I'll wring the truth
   Out of those nerves and sinews, groan by groan.
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   SCENE 5.3:
   THE CELL OF A PRISON.
   BEATRICE IS DISCOVERED ASLEEP ON A COUCH.
   ENTER BERNARDO.
   
   BERNARDO:
   How gently slumber rests upon her face,
   Like the last thoughts of some day sweetly spent
   Closing in night and dreams, and so prolonged.
   After such torments as she bore last night,
   How light and soft her breathing comes. Ay me!                       _5
   Methinks that I shall never sleep again.
   But I must shake the heavenly dew of rest
   From this sweet folded flower, thus...wake, awake!
   What, sister, canst thou sleep?
   
   BEATRICE [AWAKING]:
   I was just dreaming
   That we were all in Paradise. Thou knowest                           _10
   This cell seems like a kind of Paradise
   After our father's presence.
   
   BERNARDO:
   Dear, dear sister,
   Would that thy dream were not a dream! O God!
   How shall I tell?
   
   BEATRICE:
   What wouldst thou tell, sweet brother?
   
   BERNARDO:
   Look not so calm and happy, or even whilst                           _15
   I stand considering what I have to say
   My heart will break.
   
   BEATRICE:
   See now, thou mak'st me weep:
   How very friendless thou wouldst be, dear child,
   If I were dead. Say what thou hast to say.
   
   BERNARDO:
   They have confessed; they could endure no more                       _20
   The tortures...
   
   BEATRICE:
   Ha! What was there to confess?
   They must have told some weak and wicked lie
   To flatter their tormentors. Have they said
   That they were guilty? O white innocence,
   That thou shouldst wear the mask of guilt to hide                    _25
   Thine awful and serenest countenance
   From those who know thee not!
   [ENTER JUDGE WITH LUCRETIA AND GIACOMO, GUARDED.]
   Ignoble hearts!
   For some brief spasms of pain, which are at least
   As mortal as the limbs through which they pass,
   Are centuries of high splendour laid in dust?                        _30
   And that eternal honour which should live
   Sunlike, above the reek of mortal fame,
   Changed to a mockery and a byword? What!
   Will you give up these bodies to be dragged
   At horses' heels, so that our hair should sweep                      _35
   The footsteps of the vain and senseless crowd,
   Who, that they may make our calamity
   Their worship and their spectacle, will leave
   The churches and the theatres as void
   As their own hearts? Shall the light multitude                       _40
   Fling, at their choice, curses or faded pity,
   Sad funeral flowers to deck a living corpse,
   Upon us as we pass to pass away,
   And leave...what memory of our having been?
   Infamy, blood, terror, despair? O thou,                              _45
   Who wert a mother to the parentless,
   Kill not thy child! Let not her wrongs kill thee!
   Brother, lie down with me upon the rack,
   And let us each be silent as a corpse;
   It soon will be as soft as any grave.                                _50
   'Tis but the falsehood it can wring from fear
   Makes the rack cruel.
   
   GIACOMO:
   They will tear the truth
   Even from thee at last, those cruel pains:
   For pity's sake say thou art guilty now.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Oh, speak the truth! Let us all quickly die;                         _55
   And after death, God is our judge, not they;
   He will have mercy on us.
   
   BERNARDO:
   If indeed
   It can be true, say so, dear sister mine;
   And then the Pope will surely pardon you,
   And all be well.
   
   JUDGE:
   Confess, or I will warp                                              _60
   Your limbs with such keen tortures...
   
   BEATRICE:
   Tortures! Turn
   The rack henceforth into a spinning-wheel!
   Torture your dog, that he may tell when last
   He lapped the blood his master shed...not me!
   My pangs are of the mind, and of the heart,                          _65
   And of the soul; ay, of the inmost soul,
   Which weeps within tears as of burning gall
   To see, in this ill world where none are true,
   My kindred false to their deserted selves.
   And with considering all the wretched life                           _70
   Which I have lived, and its now wretched end,
   And the small justice shown by Heaven and Earth
   To me or mine; and what a tyrant thou art,
   And what slaves these; and what a world we make,
   The oppressor and the oppressed...such pangs compel                  _75
   My answer. What is it thou wouldst with me?
   
   JUDGE:
   Art thou not guilty of thy father's death?
   
   BEATRICE:
   Or wilt thou rather tax high-judging God
   That He permitted such an act as that
   Which I have suffered, and which He beheld;                          _80
   Made it unutterable, and took from it
   All refuge, all revenge, all consequence,
   But that which thou hast called my father's death?
   Which is or is not what men call a crime,
   Which either I have done, or have not done;                          _85
   Say what ye will. I shall deny no more.
   If ye desire it thus, thus let it be,
   And so an end of all. Now do your will;
   No other pains shall force another word.
   
   JUDGE:
   She is convicted, but has not confessed.                             _90
   Be it enough. Until their final sentence
   Let none have converse with them. You, young Lord,
   Linger not here!
   
   BEATRICE:
   Oh, tear him not away!
   
   JUDGE:
   Guards! do your duty.
   
   BERNARDO [EMBRACING BEATRICE]:
   Oh! would ye divide
   Body from soul?
   
   OFFICER:
   That is the headsman's business.                                     _95
   
   [EXEUNT ALL BUT LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, AND GIACOMO.]
   
   GIACOMO:
   Have I confessed? Is it all over now?
   No hope! No refuge! O weak, wicked tongue
   Which hast destroyed me, would that thou hadst been
   Cut out and thrown to dogs first! To have killed
   My father first, and then betrayed my sister;                        _100
   Ay, thee! the one thing innocent and pure
   In this black, guilty world, to that which I
   So well deserve! My wife! my little ones!
   Destitute, helpless, and I...Father! God!
   Canst Thou forgive even the unforgiving,                             _105
   When their full hearts break thus, thus!...
   
   [COVERS HIS FACE AND WEEPS.]
   
   LUCRETIA:
   O my child!
   To what a dreadful end are we all come!
   Why did I yield? Why did I not sustain
   Those torments? Oh, that I were all dissolved
   Into these fast and unavailing tears,                                _110
   Which flow and feel not!
   
   BEATRICE:
   What 'twas weak to do,
   'Tis weaker to lament, once being done;
   Take cheer! The God who knew my wrong, and made
   Our speedy act the angel of His wrath,
   Seems, and but seems, to have abandoned us.                          _115
   Let us not think that we shall die for this.
   Brother, sit near me; give me your firm hand,
   You had a manly heart. Bear up! Bear up!
   O dearest Lady, put your gentle head
   Upon my lap, and try to sleep awhile:                                _120
   Your eyes look pale, hollow, and overworn,
   With heaviness of watching and slow grief.
   Come, I will sing you some low, sleepy tune,
   Not cheerful, nor yet sad; some dull old thing,
   Some outworn and unused monotony,                                    _125
   Such as our country gossips sing and spin,
   Till they almost forget they live: lie down!
   So, that will do. Have I forgot the words?
   Faith! They are sadder than I thought they were.
   
   SONG:
   False friend, wilt thou smile or weep                                _130
   When my life is laid asleep?
   Little cares for a smile or a tear,
   The clay-cold corpse upon the bier!
   Farewell! Heighho!
   What is this whispers low?                                           _135
   There is a snake in thy smile, my dear;
   And bitter poison within thy tear.
   
   Sweet sleep, were death like to thee,
   Or if thou couldst mortal be,
   I would close these eyes of pain;                                    _140
   When to wake? Never again.
   O World! Farewell!
   Listen to the passing bell!
   It says, thou and I must part,
   With a light and a heavy heart.                                      _145
   
   [THE SCENE CLOSES.]
   
   SCENE 5.4:
   A HALL OF THE PRISON.
   ENTER CAMILLO AND BERNARDO.
   
   CAMILLO:
   The Pope is stern; not to be moved or bent.
   He looked as calm and keen as is the engine
   Which tortures and which kills, exempt itself
   From aught that it inflicts; a marble form,
   A rite, a law, a custom: not a man.                                  _5
   He frowned, as if to frown had been the trick
   Of his machinery, on the advocates
   Presenting the defences, which he tore
   And threw behind, muttering with hoarse, harsh voice:
   'Which among ye defended their old father                            _10
   Killed in his sleep?' Then to another: 'Thou
   Dost this in virtue of thy place; 'tis well.'
   He turned to me then, looking deprecation,
   And said these three words, coldly: 'They must die.'
   
   BERNARDO:
   And yet you left him not?
   
   CAMILLO:
   I urged him still;                                                   _15
   Pleading, as I could guess, the devilish wrong
   Which prompted your unnatural parent's death.
   And he replied: 'Paolo Santa Croce
   Murdered his mother yester evening,
   And he is fled. Parricide grows so rife                              _20
   That soon, for some just cause no doubt, the young
   Will strangle us all, dozing in our chairs.
   Authority, and power, and hoary hair
   Are grown crimes capital. You are my nephew,
   You come to ask their pardon; stay a moment;                         _25
   Here is their sentence; never see me more
   Till, to the letter, it be all fulfilled.'
   
   BERNARDO:
   O God, not so! I did believe indeed
   That all you said was but sad preparation
   For happy news. Oh, there are words and looks                        _30
   To bend the sternest purpose! Once I knew them,
   Now I forget them at my dearest need.
   What think you if I seek him out, and bathe
   His feet and robe with hot and bitter tears?
   Importune him with prayers, vexing his brain                         _35
   With my perpetual cries, until in rage
   He strike me with his pastoral cross, and trample
   Upon my prostrate head, so that my blood
   May stain the senseless dust on which he treads,
   And remorse waken mercy? I will do it!                               _40
   Oh, wait till I return!
   
   [RUSHES OUT.]
   
   CAMILLO:
   Alas, poor boy!
   A wreck-devoted seaman thus might pray
   To the deaf sea.
   
   [ENTER LUCRETIA, BEATRICE, AND GIACOMO, GUARDED.]
   
   BEATRICE:
   I hardly dare to fear
   That thou bring'st other news than a just pardon.
   
   CAMILLO:
   May God in heaven be less inexorable                                 _45
   To the Pope's prayers than he has been to mine.
   Here is the sentence and the warrant.
   
   BEATRICE [WILDLY]:
   O
   My God! Can it be possible I have
   To die so suddenly? So young to go
   Under the obscure, cold, rotting, wormy ground!                      _50
   To be nailed down into a narrow place;
   To see no more sweet sunshine; hear no more
   Blithe voice of living thing; muse not again
   Upon familiar thoughts, sad, yet thus lost--
   How fearful! to be nothing! Or to be...                              _55
   What? Oh, where am I? Let me not go mad!
   Sweet Heaven, forgive weak thoughts! If there should be
   No God, no Heaven, no Earth in the void world;
   The wide, gray, lampless, deep, unpeopled world!
   If all things then should be...my father's spirit,                   _60
   His eye, his voice, his touch surrounding me;
   The atmosphere and breath of my dead life!
   If sometimes, as a shape more like himself,
   Even the form which tortured me on earth,
   Masked in gray hairs and wrinkles, he should come                    _65
   And wind me in his hellish arms, and fix
   His eyes on mine, and drag me down, down, down!
   For was he not alone omnipotent
   On Earth, and ever present? Even though dead,
   Does not his spirit live in all that breathe,                        _70
   And work for me and mine still the same ruin,
   Scorn, pain, despair? Who ever yet returned
   To teach the laws of Death's untrodden realm?
   Unjust perhaps as those which drive us now,
   Oh, whither, whither?
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Trust in God's sweet love,                                           _75
   The tender promises of Christ: ere night,
   Think, we shall be in Paradise.
   
   BEATRICE:
   'Tis past!
   Whatever comes, my heart shall sink no more.
   And yet, I know not why, your words strike chill:
   How tedious, false, and cold seem all things. I                      _80
   Have met with much injustice in this world;
   No difference has been made by God or man,
   Or any power moulding my wretched lot,
   'Twixt good or evil, as regarded me.
   I am cut off from the only world I know,                             _85
   From light, and life, and love, in youth's sweet prime.
   You do well telling me to trust in God;
   I hope I do trust in him. In whom else
   Can any trust? And yet my heart is cold.
   
   [DURING THE LATTER SPEECHES GIACOMO HAS RETIRED CONVERSING WITH
   CAMILLO, WHO NOW GOES OUT;
   GIACOMO ADVANCES.]
   
   GIACOMO:
   Know you not, Mother...Sister, know you not?                         _90
   Bernardo even now is gone to implore
   The Pope to grant our pardon.
   
   LUCRETIA:
   Child, perhaps
   It will be granted. We may all then live
   To make these woes a tale for distant years:
   Oh, what a thought! It gushes to my heart                            _95
   Like the warm blood.
   
   BEATRICE:
   Yet both will soon be cold.
   Oh, trample out that thought! Worse than despair,
   Worse than the bitterness of death, is hope:
   It is the only ill which can find place
   Upon the giddy, sharp, and narrow hour                               _100
   Tottering beneath us. Plead with the swift frost
   That it should spare the eldest flower of spring:
   Plead with awakening earthquake, o'er whose couch
   Even now a city stands, strong, fair, and free;
   Now stench and blackness yawn, like death. Oh, plead                 _105
   With famine, or wind-walking Pestilence,
   Blind lightning, or the deaf sea, not with man!
   Cruel, cold, formal man; righteous in words,
   In deeds a Cain. No, Mother, we must die:
   Since such is the reward of innocent lives;                          _110
   Such the alleviation of worst wrongs.
   And whilst our murderers live, and hard, cold men,
   Smiling and slow, walk through a world of tears
   To death as to life's sleep; 'twere just the grave
   Were some strange joy for us. Come, obscure Death,                   _115
   And wind me in thine all-embracing arms!
   Like a fond mother hide me in thy bosom,
   And rock me to the sleep from which none wake.
   Live ye, who live, subject to one another
   As we were once, who now...
   
   NOTE:
   _105 yawn edition 1821; yawns editions 1819, 1839.
   
   [BERNARDO RUSHES IN.]
   
   BERNARDO:
   Oh, horrible!                                                        _120
   That tears, that looks, that hope poured forth in prayer,
   Even till the heart is vacant and despairs,
   Should all be vain! The ministers of death
   Are waiting round the doors. I thought I saw
   Blood on the face of one...What if 'twere fancy?                     _125
   Soon the heart's blood of all I love on earth
   Will sprinkle him, and he will wipe it off
   As if 'twere only rain. O life! O world!
   Cover me! let me be no more! To see
   That perfect mirror of pure innocence                                _130
   Wherein I gazed, and grew happy and good,
   Shivered to dust! To see thee, Beatrice,
   Who made all lovely thou didst look upon...
   Thee, light of life ... dead, dark! while I say, sister,
   To hear I have no sister; and thou, Mother,                          _135
   Whose love was as a bond to all our loves...
   Dead! The sweet bond broken!
   [ENTER CAMILLO AND GUARDS.]
   They come! Let me
   Kiss those warm lips before their crimson leaves
   Are blighted...white...cold. Say farewell, before
   Death chokes that gentle voice! Oh, let me hear                      _140
   You speak!
   
   NOTE:
   _136 was as a Rossetti cj.; was a editions 1819, 1821, 1839.
   
   
   BEATRICE:
   Farewell, my tender brother. Think
   Of our sad fate with gentleness, as now:
   And let mild, pitying thoughts lighten for thee
   Thy sorrow's load. Err not in harsh despair,
   But tears and patience. One thing more, my child:                    _145
   For thine own sake be constant to the love
   Thou bearest us; and to the faith that I,
   Though wrapped in a strange cloud of crime and shame,
   Lived ever holy and unstained. And though
   Ill tongues shall wound me, and our common name                      _150
   Be as a mark stamped on thine innocent brow
   For men to point at as they pass, do thou
   Forbear, and never think a thought unkind
   Of those, who perhaps love thee in their graves.
   So mayest thou die as I do; fear and pain                            _155
   Being subdued. Farewell! Farewell! Farewell!
   
   BERNARDO:
   I cannot say, farewell!
   
   CAMILLO:
   Oh, Lady Beatrice!
   
   BEATRICE:
   Give yourself no unnecessary pain,
   My dear Lord Cardinal. Here, Mother, tie
   My girdle for me, and bind up this hair                              _160
   In any simple knot; ay, that does well.
   And yours I see is coming down. How often
   Have we done this for one another; now
   We shall not do it any more. My Lord,
   We are quite ready. Well, 'tis very well.                            _165
   
   THE END.
   
   
   NOTE ON THE CENCI, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   The sort of mistake that Shelley made as to the extent of his own
   genius and powers, which led him deviously at first, but lastly into
   the direct track that enabled him fully to develop them, is a curious
   instance of his modesty of feeling, and of the methods which the human
   mind uses at once to deceive itself, and yet, in its very delusion, to
   make its way out of error into the path which Nature has marked out as
   its right one. He often incited me to attempt the writing a tragedy:
   he conceived that I possessed some dramatic talent, and he was always
   most earnest and energetic in his exhortations that I should cultivate
   any talent I possessed, to the utmost. I entertained a truer estimate
   of my powers; and above all (though at that time not exactly aware of
   the fact) I was far too young to have any chance of succeeding, even
   moderately, in a species of composition that requires a greater scope
   of experience in, and sympathy with, human passion than could then
   have fallen to my lot,--or than any perhaps, except Shelley, ever
   possessed, even at the age of twenty-six, at which he wrote The Cenci.
   
   On the other hand, Shelley most erroneously conceived himself to be
   destitute of this talent. He believed that one of the first requisites
   was the capacity of forming and following-up a story or plot. He
   fancied himself to he defective in this portion of imagination: it was
   that which gave him least pleasure in the writings of others, though
   he laid great store by it as the proper framework to support the
   sublimest efforts of poetry. He asserted that he was too metaphysical
   and abstract, too fond of the theoretical and the ideal, to succeed as
   a tragedian. It perhaps is not strange that I shared this opinion with
   himself; for he had hitherto shown no inclination for, nor given any
   specimen of his powers in framing and supporting the interest of a
   story, either in prose or verse. Once or twice, when he attempted
   such, he had speedily thrown it aside, as being even disagreeable to
   him as an occupation.
   
   The subject he had suggested for a tragedy was Charles I: and he had
   written to me: 'Remember, remember Charles I. I have been already
   imagining how you would conduct some scenes. The second volume of "St.
   Leon" begins with this proud and true sentiment: "There is nothing
   which the human mind can conceive which it may not execute."
   Shakespeare was only a human being.' These words were written in 1818,
   while we were in Lombardy, when he little thought how soon a work of
   his own would prove a proud comment on the passage he quoted. When in
   Rome, in 1819, a friend put into our hands the old manuscript account
   of the story of the Cenci. We visited the Colonna and Doria palaces,
   where the portraits of Beatrice were to be found; and her beauty cast
   the reflection of its own grace over her appalling story. Shelley's
   imagination became strongly excited, and he urged the subject to me as
   one fitted for a tragedy. More than ever I felt my incompetence; but I
   entreated him to write it instead; and he began, and proceeded
   swiftly, urged on by intense sympathy with the sufferings of the human
   beings whose passions, so long cold in the tomb, he revived, and
   gifted with poetic language. This tragedy is the only one of his works
   that he communicated to me during its progress. We talked over the
   arrangement of the scenes together. I speedily saw the great mistake
   we had made, and triumphed in the discovery of the new talent brought
   to light from that mine of wealth (never, alas, through his untimely
   death, worked to its depths)--his richly gifted mind.
   
   We suffered a severe affliction in Rome by the loss of our eldest
   child, who was of such beauty and promise as to cause him deservedly
   to be the idol of our hearts. We left the capital of the world,
   anxious for a time to escape a spot associated too intimately with his
   presence and loss. (Such feelings haunted him when, in "The Cenci", he
   makes Beatrice speak to Cardinal Camillo of
   
   'that fair blue-eyed child
   Who was the lodestar of your life:'--and say--
   All see, since his most swift and piteous death,
   That day and night, and heaven and earth, and time,
   And all the things hoped for or done therein
   Are changed to you, through your exceeding grief.')
   
   Some friends of ours were residing in the neighbourhood of Leghorn,
   and we took a small house, Villa Valsovano, about half-way between the
   town and Monte Nero, where we remained during the summer. Our villa
   was situated in the midst of a podere; the peasants sang as they
   worked beneath our windows, during the heats of a very hot season, and
   in the evening the water-wheel creaked as the process of irrigation
   went on, and the fireflies flashed from among the myrtle hedges:
   Nature was bright, sunshiny, and cheerful, or diversified by storms of
   a majestic terror, such as we had never before witnessed.
   
   At the top of the house there was a sort of terrace. There is often
   such in Italy, generally roofed: this one was very small, yet not only
   roofed but glazed. This Shelley made his study; it looked out on a
   wide prospect of fertile country, and commanded a view of the near
   sea. The storms that sometimes varied our day showed themselves most
   picturesquely as they were driven across the ocean; sometimes the dark
   lurid clouds dipped towards the waves, and became water-spouts that
   churned up the waters beneath, as they were chased onward and
   scattered by the tempest. At other times the dazzling sunlight and
   heat made it almost intolerable to every other; but Shelley basked in
   both, and his health and spirits revived under their influence. In
   this airy cell he wrote the principal part of "The Cenci". He was
   making a study of Calderon at the time, reading his best tragedies
   with an accomplished lady living near us, to whom his letter from
   Leghorn was addressed during the following year. He admired Calderon,
   both for his poetry and his dramatic genius; but it shows his
   judgement and originality that, though greatly struck by his first
   acquaintance with the Spanish poet, none of his peculiarities crept
   into the composition of "The Cenci"; and there is no trace of his new
   studies, except in that passage to which he himself alludes as
   suggested by one in "El Purgatorio de San Patricio".
   
   Shelley wished "The Cenci" to be acted. He was not a playgoer, being
   of such fastidious taste that he was easily disgusted by the bad
   filling-up of the inferior parts. While preparing for our departure
   from England, however, he saw Miss O'Neil several times. She was then
   in the zenith of her glory; and Shelley was deeply moved by her
   impersonation of several parts, and by the graceful sweetness, the
   intense pathos, the sublime vehemence of passion she displayed. She
   was often in his thoughts as he wrote: and, when he had finished, he
   became anxious that his tragedy should be acted, and receive the
   advantage of having this accomplished actress to fill the part of the
   heroine. With this view he wrote the following letter to a friend in
   London:
   
   'The object of the present letter us to ask a favour of you. I have
   written a tragedy on a story well known in Italy, and, in my
   conception, eminently dramatic. I have taken some pains to make my
   play fit for representation, and those who have already seen it judge
   favourably. It is written without any of the peculiar feelings and
   opinions which characterize my other compositions; I have attended
   simply to the impartial development of such characters as it is
   probable the persons represented really were, together with the
   greatest degree of popular effect to be produced by such a
   development. I send you a translation of the Italian manuscript on
   which my play is founded; the chief circumstance of which I have
   touched very delicately; for my principal doubt as to whether it would
   succeed as an acting play hangs entirely on the question as to whether
   any such a thing as incest in this shape, however treated, would be
   admitted on the stage. I think, however, it will form no objection;
   considering, first, that the facts are matter of history, and,
   secondly, the peculiar delicacy with which I have treated it. (In
   speaking of his mode of treating this main incident, Shelley said that
   it might be remarked that, in the course of the play, he had never
   mentioned expressly Cenci's worst crime. Every one knew what it must
   be, but it was never imaged in words--the nearest allusion to it being
   that portion of Cenci's curse beginning--
   
   "That, if she have a child," etc.)
   
   'I am exceedingly interested in the question of whether this attempt
   of mine will succeed or not. I am strongly inclined to the affirmative
   at present; founding my hopes on this--that, as a composition, it is
   certainly not inferior to any of the modern plays that have been
   acted, with the exception of "Remorse"; that the interest of the plot
   is incredibly greater and more real; and that there is nothing beyond
   what the multitude are contented to believe that they can understand,
   either in imagery, opinion, or sentiment. I wish to preserve a
   complete incognito, and can trust to you that, whatever else you do,
   you will at least favour me on this point. Indeed, this is essential,
   deeply essential, to its success. After it had been acted, and
   successfully (could I hope for such a thing), I would own it if I
   pleased, and use the celebrity it might acquire to my own purposes.
   
   'What I want you to do is to procure for me its presentation at Covent
   Garden. The principal character, Beatrice, is precisely fitted for
   Miss O'Neil, and it might even seem to have been written for her (God
   forbid that I should see her play it--it would tear my nerves to
   pieces); and in all respects it is fitted only for Covent Garden. The
   chief male character I confess I should be very unwilling that any one
   but Kean should play. That is impossible, and I must be contented with
   an inferior actor.'
   
   The play was accordingly sent to Mr. Harris. He pronounced the subject
   to be so objectionable that he could not even submit the part to Miss
   O'Neil for perusal, but expressed his desire that the author would
   write a tragedy on some other subject, which he would gladly accept.
   Shelley printed a small edition at Leghorn, to ensure its correctness;
   as he was much annoyed by the many mistakes that crept into his text
   when distance prevented him from correcting the press.
   
   Universal approbation soon stamped "The Cenci" as the best tragedy of
   modern times. Writing concerning it, Shelley said: 'I have been
   cautious to avoid the introducing faults of youthful composition;
   diffuseness, a profusion of inapplicable imagery, vagueness,
   generality, and, as Hamlet says, "words, words".' There is nothing
   that is not purely dramatic throughout; and the character of Beatrice,
   proceeding, from vehement struggle, to horror, to deadly resolution,
   and lastly to the elevated dignity of calm suffering, joined to
   passionate tenderness and pathos, is touched with hues so vivid and so
   beautiful that the poet seems to have read intimately the secrets of
   the noble heart imaged in the lovely countenance of the unfortunate
   girl. The Fifth Act is a masterpiece. It is the finest thing he ever
   wrote, and may claim proud comparison not only with any contemporary,
   but preceding, poet. The varying feelings of Beatrice are expressed
   with passionate, heart-reaching eloquence. Every character has a voice
   that echoes truth in its tones. It is curious, to one acquainted with
   the written story, to mark the success with which the poet has inwoven
   the real incidents of the tragedy into his scenes, and yet, through
   the power of poetry, has obliterated all that would otherwise have
   shown too harsh or too hideous in the picture. His success was a
   double triumph; and often after he was earnestly entreated to write
   again in a style that commanded popular favour, while it was not less
   instinct with truth and genius. But the bent of his mind went the
   other way; and, even when employed on subjects whose interest depended
   on character and incident, he would start off in another direction,
   and leave the delineations of human passion, which he could depict in
   so able a manner, for fantastic creations of his fancy, or the
   expression of those opinions and sentiments, with regard to human
   nature and its destiny, a desire to diffuse which was the master
   passion of his soul.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE MASK OF ANARCHY.
   
   WRITTEN ON THE OCCASION OF THE MASSACRE AT MANCHESTER.
   
   [Composed at the Villa Valsovano near Leghorn--or possibly later,
   during Shelley's sojourn at Florence--in the autumn of 1819, shortly
   after the Peterloo riot at Manchester, August 16; edited with Preface
   by Leigh Hunt, and published under the poet's name by Edward Moxon,
   1832 (Bradbury & Evans, printers). Two manuscripts are extant: a
   transcript by Mrs. Shelley with Shelley's autograph corrections, known
   as the 'Hunt manuscript'; and an earlier draft, not quite complete, in
   the poet's handwriting, presented by Mrs. Shelley to (Sir) John
   Bowring in 1826, and now in the possession of Mr. Thomas J. Wise (the
   'Wise manuscript'). Mrs. Shelley's copy was sent to Leigh Hunt in 1819
   with view to its publication in "The Examiner"; hence the name 'Hunt
   manuscript.' A facsimile of the Wise manuscript was published by the
   Shelley Society in 1887. Sources of the text are (1) the Hunt
   manuscript; (2) the Wise manuscript; (3) the editio princeps, editor
   Leigh Hunt, 1832; (4) Mrs. Shelley's two editions ("Poetical Works")
   of 1839. Of the two manuscripts Mrs. Shelley's transcript is the later
   and more authoritative.]
   
   1.
   As I lay asleep in Italy
   There came a voice from over the Sea,
   And with great power it forth led me
   To walk in the visions of Poesy.
   
   2.
   I met Murder on the way--                                            _5
   He had a mask like Castlereagh--
   Very smooth he looked, yet grim;
   Seven blood-hounds followed him:
   
   3.
   All were fat; and well they might
   Be in admirable plight,                                              _10
   For one by one, and two by two,
   He tossed them human hearts to chew
   Which from his wide cloak he drew.
   
   4.
   Next came Fraud, and he had on,
   Like Eldon, an ermined gown;                                         _15
   His big tears, for he wept well,
   Turned to mill-stones as they fell.
   
   5.
   And the little children, who
   Round his feet played to and fro,
   Thinking every tear a gem,                                           _20
   Had their brains knocked out by them.
   
   6.
   Clothed with the Bible, as with light,
   And the shadows of the night,
   Like Sidmouth, next, Hypocrisy
   On a crocodile rode by.                                              _25
   
   7.
   And many more Destructions played
   In this ghastly masquerade,
   All disguised, even to the eyes,
   Like Bishops, lawyers, peers, or spies.
   
   8.
   Last came Anarchy: he rode                                           _30
   On a white horse, splashed with blood;
   He was pale even to the lips,
   Like Death in the Apocalypse.
   
   9.
   And he wore a kingly crown;
   And in his grasp a sceptre shone;                                    _35
   On his brow this mark I saw--
   'I AM GOD, AND KING, AND LAW!'
   
   10.
   With a pace stately and fast,
   Over English land he passed,
   Trampling to a mire of blood                                         _40
   The adoring multitude.
   
   11.
   And a mighty troop around,
   With their trampling shook the ground,
   Waving each a bloody sword,
   For the service of their Lord.                                       _45
   
   12.
   And with glorious triumph, they
   Rode through England proud and gay,
   Drunk as with intoxication
   Of the wine of desolation.
   
   13.
   O'er fields and towns, from sea to sea,                              _50
   Passed the Pageant swift and free,
   Tearing up, and trampling down;
   Till they came to London town.
   
   14.
   And each dweller, panic-stricken,
   Felt his heart with terror sicken                                    _55
   Hearing the tempestuous cry
   Of the triumph of Anarchy.
   
   15.
   For with pomp to meet him came,
   Clothed in arms like blood and flame,
   The hired murderers, who did sing                                    _60
   'Thou art God, and Law, and King.
   
   16.
   'We have waited, weak and lone
   For thy coming, Mighty One!
   Our purses are empty, our swords are cold,
   Give us glory, and blood, and gold.'                                 _65
   
   17.
   Lawyers and priests, a motley crowd,
   To the earth their pale brows bowed;
   Like a bad prayer not over loud,
   Whispering--'Thou art Law and God.'--
   
   18.
   Then all cried with one accord,                                      _70
   'Thou art King, and God, and Lord;
   Anarchy, to thee we bow,
   Be thy name made holy now!'
   
   19.
   And Anarchy, the Skeleton,
   Bowed and grinned to every one,                                      _75
   As well as if his education
   Had cost ten millions to the nation.
   
   20.
   For he knew the Palaces
   Of our Kings were rightly his;
   His the sceptre, crown, and globe,                                   _80
   And the gold-inwoven robe.
   
   21.
   So he sent his slaves before
   To seize upon the Bank and Tower,
   And was proceeding with intent
   To meet his pensioned Parliament                                     _85
   
   22.
   When one fled past, a maniac maid,
   And her name was Hope, she said:
   But she looked more like Despair,
   And she cried out in the air:
   
   23.
   'My father Time is weak and gray                                     _90
   With waiting for a better day;
   See how idiot-like he stands,
   Fumbling with his palsied hands!
   
   24.
   'He has had child after child,
   And the dust of death is piled                                       _95
   Over every one but me--
   Misery, oh, Misery!'
   
   25.
   Then she lay down in the street,
   Right before the horses' feet,
   Expecting, with a patient eye,                                       _100
   Murder, Fraud, and Anarchy.
   
   26.
   When between her and her foes
   A mist, a light, an image rose,
   Small at first, and weak, and frail
   Like the vapour of a vale:                                           _105
   
   27.
   Till as clouds grow on the blast,
   Like tower-crowned giants striding fast,
   And glare with lightnings as they fly,
   And speak in thunder to the sky,
   
   28.
   It grew--a Shape arrayed in mail                                     _110
   Brighter than the viper's scale,
   And upborne on wings whose grain
   Was as the light of sunny rain.
   
   29.
   On its helm, seen far away,
   A planet, like the Morning's, lay;                                   _115
   And those plumes its light rained through
   Like a shower of crimson dew.
   
   30.
   With step as soft as wind it passed
   O'er the heads of men--so fast
   That they knew the presence there,                                   _120
   And looked,--but all was empty air.
   
   31.
   As flowers beneath May's footstep waken,
   As stars from Night's loose hair are shaken,
   As waves arise when loud winds call,
   Thoughts sprung where'er that step did fall.                         _125
   
   32.
   And the prostrate multitude
   Looked--and ankle-deep in blood,
   Hope, that maiden most serene,
   Was walking with a quiet mien:
   
   33.
   And Anarchy, the ghastly birth,                                      _130
   Lay dead earth upon the earth;
   The Horse of Death tameless as wind
   Fled, and with his hoofs did grind
   To dust the murderers thronged behind.
   
   34.
   A rushing light of clouds and splendour,                             _135
   A sense awakening and yet tender
   Was heard and felt--and at its close
   These words of joy and fear arose
   
   35.
   As if their own indignant Earth
   Which gave the sons of England birth                                 _140
   Had felt their blood upon her brow,
   And shuddering with a mother's throe
   
   36.
   Had turned every drop of blood
   By which her face had been bedewed
   To an accent unwithstood,--                                          _145
   As if her heart had cried aloud:
   
   37.
   'Men of England, heirs of Glory,
   Heroes of unwritten story,
   Nurslings of one mighty Mother,
   Hopes of her, and one another;                                       _150
   
   38.
   'Rise like Lions after slumber
   In unvanquishable number,
   Shake your chains to earth like dew
   Which in sleep had fallen on you--
   Ye are many--they are few.                                           _155
   
   39.
   'What is Freedom?--ye can tell
   That which slavery is, too well--
   For its very name has grown
   To an echo of your own.
   
   40.
   ''Tis to work and have such pay                                      _160
   As just keeps life from day to day
   In your limbs, as in a cell
   For the tyrants' use to dwell,
   
   41.
   'So that ye for them are made
   Loom, and plough, and sword, and spade,                              _165
   With or without your own will bent
   To their defence and nourishment.
   
   42.
   ''Tis to see your children weak
   With their mothers pine and peak,
   When the winter winds are bleak,--                                   _170
   They are dying whilst I speak.
   
   43.
   ''Tis to hunger for such diet
   As the rich man in his riot
   Casts to the fat dogs that lie
   Surfeiting beneath his eye;                                          _175
   
   44.
   ''Tis to let the Ghost of Gold
   Take from Toil a thousandfold
   More than e'er its substance could
   In the tyrannies of old.
   
   45.
   'Paper coin--that forgery                                            _180
   Of the title-deeds, which ye
   Hold to something of the worth
   Of the inheritance of Earth.
   
   46.
   ''Tis to be a slave in soul
   And to hold no strong control                                        _185
   Over your own wills, but be
   All that others make of ye.
   
   47.
   'And at length when ye complain
   With a murmur weak and vain
   'Tis to see the Tyrant's crew                                        _190
   Ride over your wives and you
   Blood is on the grass like dew.
   
   48.
   'Then it is to feel revenge
   Fiercely thirsting to exchange
   Blood for blood--and wrong for wrong--                               _195
   Do not thus when ye are strong.
   
   49.
   'Birds find rest, in narrow nest
   When weary of their winged quest;
   Beasts find fare, in woody lair
   When storm and snow are in the air.                                  _200
   
   50.
   'Asses, swine, have litter spread
   And with fitting food are fed;
   All things have a home but one--
   Thou, Oh, Englishman, hast none!
   
   51.
   'This is Slavery--savage men,                                        _205
   Or wild beasts within a den
   Would endure not as ye do--
   But such ills they never knew.
   
   52.
   'What art thou Freedom? O! could slaves
   Answer from their living graves                                      _210
   This demand--tyrants would flee
   Like a dream's dim imagery:
   
   53.
   'Thou art not, as impostors say,
   A shadow soon to pass away,
   A superstition, and a name                                           _215
   Echoing from the cave of Fame.
   
   54.
   'For the labourer thou art bread,
   And a comely table spread
   From his daily labour come
   In a neat and happy home.                                            _220
   
   55.
   Thou art clothes, and fire, and food
   For the trampled multitude--
   No--in countries that are free
   Such starvation cannot be
   As in England now we see.                                            _225
   
   56.
   'To the rich thou art a check,
   When his foot is on the neck
   Of his victim, thou dost make
   That he treads upon a snake.
   
   57.
   Thou art Justice--ne'er for gold                                     _230
   May thy righteous laws be sold
   As laws are in England--thou
   Shield'st alike the high and low.
   
   58.
   'Thou art Wisdom--Freemen never
   Dream that God will damn for ever                                    _235
   All who think those things untrue
   Of which Priests make such ado.
   
   59.
   'Thou art Peace--never by thee
   Would blood and treasure wasted be
   As tyrants wasted them, when all                                     _240
   Leagued to quench thy flame in Gaul.
   
   60.
   'What if English toil and blood
   Was poured forth, even as a flood?
   It availed, Oh, Liberty,
   To dim, but not extinguish thee.                                     _245
   
   61.
   'Thou art Love--the rich have kissed
   Thy feet, and like him following Christ,
   Give their substance to the free
   And through the rough world follow thee,
   
   62.
   'Or turn their wealth to arms, and make                              _250
   War for thy beloved sake
   On wealth, and war, and fraud--whence they
   Drew the power which is their prey.
   
   63.
   'Science, Poetry, and Thought
   Are thy lamps; they make the lot                                     _255
   Of the dwellers in a cot
   So serene, they curse it not.
   
   64.
   'Spirit, Patience, Gentleness,
   All that can adorn and bless
   Art thou--let deeds, not words, express                              _260
   Thine exceeding loveliness.
   
   65.
   'Let a great Assembly be
   Of the fearless and the free
   On some spot of English ground
   Where the plains stretch wide around.                                _265
   
   66.
   'Let the blue sky overhead,
   The green earth on which ye tread,
   All that must eternal be
   Witness the solemnity.
   
   67.
   'From the corners uttermost                                          _270
   Of the bounds of English coast;
   From every hut, village, and town
   Where those who live and suffer moan
   For others' misery or their own,
   
   68.
   'From the workhouse and the prison
   Where pale as corpses newly risen,
   Women, children, young and old                                       _277
   Groan for pain, and weep for cold--
   
   69.
   'From the haunts of daily life
   Where is waged the daily strife                                      _280
   With common wants and common cares
   Which sows the human heart with tares--
   
   70.
   'Lastly from the palaces
   Where the murmur of distress
   Echoes, like the distant sound                                       _285
   Of a wind alive around
   
   71.
   'Those prison halls of wealth and fashion,
   Where some few feel such compassion
   For those who groan, and toil, and wail
   As must make their brethren pale--
   
   72.
   'Ye who suffer woes untold,                                          _291
   Or to feel, or to behold
   Your lost country bought and sold
   With a price of blood and gold--
   
   73.
   'Let a vast assembly be,                                             _295
   And with great solemnity
   Declare with measured words that ye
   Are, as God has made ye, free--
   
   74.
   'Be your strong and simple words
   Keen to wound as sharpened swords,                                   _300
   And wide as targes let them be,
   With their shade to cover ye.
   
   75.
   'Let the tyrants pour around
   With a quick and startling sound,
   Like the loosening of a sea,                                         _305
   Troops of armed emblazonry.
   
   76.
   'Let the charged artillery drive
   Till the dead air seems alive
   With the clash of clanging wheels,
   And the tramp of horses' heels.                                      _310
   
   77.
   'Let the fixed bayonet
   Gleam with sharp desire to wet
   Its bright point in English blood
   Looking keen as one for food.
   
   78.
   Let the horsemen's scimitars                                         _315
   Wheel and flash, like sphereless stars
   Thirsting to eclipse their burning
   In a sea of death and mourning.
   
   79.
   'Stand ye calm and resolute,
   Like a forest close and mute,                                        _320
   With folded arms and looks which are
   Weapons of unvanquished war,
   
   80.
   'And let Panic, who outspeeds
   The career of armed steeds
   Pass, a disregarded shade                                            _325
   Through your phalanx undismayed.
   
   81.
   'Let the laws of your own land,
   Good or ill, between ye stand
   Hand to hand, and foot to foot,
   Arbiters of the dispute,                                             _330
   
   82.
   'The old laws of England--they
   Whose reverend heads with age are gray,
   Children of a wiser day;
   And whose solemn voice must be
   Thine own echo--Liberty!                                             _335
   
   83.
   'On those who first should violate
   Such sacred heralds in their state
   Rest the blood that must ensue,
   And it will not rest on you.
   
   84.
   'And if then the tyrants dare                                        _340
   Let them ride among you there,
   Slash, and stab, and maim, and hew,--
   What they like, that let them do.
   
   85.
   'With folded arms and steady eyes,
   And little fear, and less surprise,                                  _345
   Look upon them as they slay
   Till their rage has died away.
   
   86.
   Then they will return with shame
   To the place from which they came,
   And the blood thus shed will speak                                   _350
   In hot blushes on their cheek.
   
   87.
   'Every woman in the land
   Will point at them as they stand--
   They will hardly dare to greet
   Their acquaintance in the street.                                    _355
   
   88.
   'And the bold, true warriors
   Who have hugged Danger in wars
   Will turn to those who would be free,
   Ashamed of such base company.
   
   89.
   'And that slaughter to the Nation                                    _360
   Shall steam up like inspiration,
   Eloquent, oracular;
   A volcano heard afar.
   
   90.
   'And these words shall then become
   Like Oppression's thundered doom                                     _365
   Ringing through each heart and brain,
   Heard again--again--again--
   
   91.
   'Rise like Lions after slumber
   In unvanquishable number--
   Shake your chains to earth like dew                                  _370
   Which in sleep had fallen on you--
   Ye are many--they are few.'
   
   NOTES:
   _15. Like Eldon Hunt manuscript; Like Lord Eldon Wise manuscript.
   _15. ermined Hunt manuscript, Wise manuscript edition 1832;
        ermine editions 1839.
   _23 shadows]shadow editions 1839 only.
   _29 or]and Wise manuscript only.
   _35 And in his grasp Hunt manuscript, edition 1882;
       In his hand Wise manuscript,
       Hunt manuscript cancelled, edition 1839.
   _36 On his]And on his edition 1832 only.
   _51 the Hunt manuscript, edition 1832; that Wise manuscript.
   _56 tempestuous]tremendous editions 1839 only.
   _58 For with pomp]For from... Hunt manuscript, Wise manuscript.
   _71 God]Law editions 1839 only.
   _79 rightly Wise manuscript; nightly Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839.
   _93 Fumbling] Trembling editions 1839 only.
   _105 a vale Hunt manuscript, Wise manuscript; the vale editions 1832, 1839.
   _113 as]like editions 1839 only.
   _116 its Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript; it editions 1832, 1839.
   _121 but Wise MS; and Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839.
   _122 May's footstep Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript;
        the footstep edition 1832; May's footsteps editions 1839.
   _132-4 omit Wise manuscript.
   _146 had cried Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839;
        cried out Wise manuscript.
   _155 omit edition 1832 only.
   _182 of]from Wise manuscript only.
   _186 wills Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839; will Wise manuscript.
   _198 their Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
        the edition 1832.
   _216 cave Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
        caves edition 1832, Hunt manuscript cancelled.
   _220 In Wise manuscript, editions 1832, 1839; To Hunt manuscript.
   
   (Note at stanza 49: The following stanza is found in the Wise
   manuscript and in editions 1839, but is wanting in the Hunt manuscript
   and in edition 1832:--
   
   'Horses, oxen, have a home,
   When from daily toil they come;
   Household dogs, when the wind roars,
   Find a home within warm doors.')
   
   _233 the Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839; both Wise manuscript.
   _234 Freemen Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
        Freedom edition 1832.
   _235 Dream Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
        Dreams edition 1832. damn]doom editions 1839 only.
   _248 Give Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
        Given Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript cancelled, editions 1839.
   _249 follow]followed editions 1839 only.
   _250 Or Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript; Oh editions 1832, 1839.
   _254 Science, Poetry, Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript;
        Science, and Poetry editions 1832, 1839.
   _257 So Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
        Such they curse their Maker not Wise manuscript, editions 1839.
   _263 and]of edition 1832 only.
   _274 or]and edition 1832 only.
   
   (Note to end of stanza 67: The following stanza is found (cancelled)
   at this place in the Wise manuscript:--
   
   'From the cities where from caves,
   Like the dead from putrid graves,
   Troops of starvelings gliding come,
   Living Tenants of a tomb.'
   
   _282 sows Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript;
        sow editions 1832, 1839.
   _297 measured Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
        ne'er-said editions 1839.
   _322 of unvanquished Wise manuscript;
        of an unvanquished Hunt manuscript, editions 1832, 1839.
   _346 slay Wise manuscript; Hunt manuscript, editions 1839;
        stay edition 1832.
   _357 in wars Wise manuscript, Hunt manuscript, edition 1832;
        in the wars editions 1839.
   
   
   NOTE ON THE MASK OF ANARCHY, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   Though Shelley's first eager desire to excite his countrymen to resist
   openly the oppressions existent during 'the good old times' had faded
   with early youth, still his warmest sympathies were for the people. He
   was a republican, and loved a democracy. He looked on all human beings
   as inheriting an equal right to possess the dearest privileges of our
   nature; the necessaries of life when fairly earned by labour, and
   intellectual instruction. His hatred of any despotism that looked upon
   the people as not to be consulted, or protected from want and
   ignorance, was intense. He was residing near Leghorn, at Villa
   Valsovano, writing "The Cenci", when the news of the Manchester
   Massacre reached us; it roused in him violent emotions of indignation
   and compassion. The great truth that the many, if accordant and
   resolute, could control the few, as was shown some years after, made
   him long to teach his injured countrymen how to resist. Inspired by
   these feelings, he wrote the "Mask of Anarchy", which he sent to his
   friend Leigh Hunt, to be __insert__ed in the Examiner, of which he was
   then the Editor.
   
   'I did not __insert__ it,' Leigh Hunt writes in his valuable and
   interesting preface to this poem, when he printed it in 1832, 'because
   I thought that the public at large had not become sufficiently
   discerning to do justice to the sincerity and kind-heartedness of the
   spirit that walked in this flaming robe of verse.' Days of outrage
   have passed away, and with them the exasperation that would cause such
   an appeal to the many to be injurious. Without being aware of them,
   they at one time acted on his suggestions, and gained the day. But
   they rose when human life was respected by the Minister in power; such
   was not the case during the Administration which excited Shelley's
   abhorrence.
   
   The poem was written for the people, and is therefore in a more
   popular tone than usual: portions strike as abrupt and unpolished, but
   many stanzas are all his own. I heard him repeat, and admired, those
   beginning
   
   'My Father Time is old and gray,'
   
   before I knew to what poem they were to belong. But the most touching
   passage is that which describes the blessed effects of liberty; it
   might make a patriot of any man whose heart was not wholly closed
   against his humbler fellow-creatures.
   
   ***
   
   
   PETER BELL THE THIRD.
   
   BY MICHING MALLECHO, ESQ.
   
   Is it a party in a parlour,
   Crammed just as they on earth were crammed,
   Some sipping punch--some sipping tea;
   But, as you by their faces see,
   All silent, and all--damned!
   "Peter Bell", by W. WORDSWORTH.
   
   OPHELIA.--What means this, my lord?
   HAMLET.--Marry, this is Miching Mallecho; it means mischief.
   SHAKESPEARE.
   
   [Composed at Florence, October, 1819, and forwarded to Hunt (November
   2) to be published by C. & J. Ollier without the author's name;
   ultimately printed by Mrs. Shelley in the second edition of the
   "Poetical Works", 1839. A skit by John Hamilton Reynolds, "Peter Bell,
   a Lyrical Ballad", had already appeared (April, 1819), a few days
   before the publication of Wordsworth's "Peter Bell, a Tale". These
   productions were reviewed in Leigh Hunt's "Examiner" (April 26, May 3,
   1819); and to the entertainment derived from his perusal of Hunt's
   criticisms the composition of Shelley's "Peter Bell the Third" is
   chiefly owing.]
   
   DEDICATION.
   
   TO THOMAS BROWN, ESQ., THE YOUNGER, H.F.
   
   Dear Tom,
   
   Allow me to request you to introduce Mr. Peter Bell to the respectable
   family of the Fudges. Although he may fall short of those very
   considerable personages in the more active properties which
   characterize the Rat and the Apostate, I suspect that even you, their
   historian, will confess that he surpasses them in the more peculiarly
   legitimate qualification of intolerable dulness.
   
   You know Mr. Examiner Hunt; well--it was he who presented me to two of
   the Mr. Bells. My intimacy with the younger Mr. Bell naturally sprung
   from this introduction to his brothers. And in presenting him to you,
   I have the satisfaction of being able to assure you that he is
   considerably the dullest of the three.
   
   There is this particular advantage in an acquaintance with any one of
   the Peter Bells, that if you know one Peter Bell, you know three Peter
   Bells; they are not one, but three; not three, but one. An awful
   mystery, which, after having caused torrents of blood, and having been
   hymned by groans enough to deafen the music of the spheres, is at
   length illustrated to the satisfaction of all parties in the
   theological world, by the nature of Mr. Peter Bell.
   
   Peter is a polyhedric Peter, or a Peter with many sides. He changes
   colours like a chameleon, and his coat like a snake. He is a Proteus
   of a Peter. He was at first sublime, pathetic, impressive, profound;
   then dull; then prosy and dull; and now dull--oh so very dull! it is
   an ultra-legitimate dulness.
   
   You will perceive that it is not necessary to consider Hell and the
   Devil as supernatural machinery. The whole scene of my epic is in
   'this world which is'--so Peter informed us before his conversion to
   "White Obi"--
   
   'The world of all of us, AND WHERE
   WE FIND OUR HAPPINESS, OR NOT AT ALL.'
   
   Let me observe that I have spent six or seven days in composing this
   sublime piece; the orb of my moonlike genius has made the fourth part
   of its revolution round the dull earth which you inhabit, driving you
   mad, while it has retained its calmness and its splendour, and I have
   been fitting this its last phase 'to occupy a permanent station in the
   literature of my country.'
   
   Your works, indeed, dear Tom, sell better; but mine are far superior.
   The public is no judge; posterity sets all to rights.
   
   Allow me to observe that so much has been written of Peter Bell, that
   the present history can be considered only, like the Iliad, as a
   continuation of that series of cyclic poems, which have already been
   candidates for bestowing immortality upon, at the same time that they
   receive it from, his character and adventures. In this point of view I
   have violated no rule of syntax in beginning my composition with a
   conjunction; the full stop which closes the poem continued by me
   being, like the full stops at the end of the Iliad and Odyssey, a full
   stop of a very qualified import.
   
   Hoping that the immortality which you have given to the Fudges, you
   will receive from them; and in the firm expectation, that when London
   shall be an habitation of bitterns; when St. Paul's and Westminster
   Abbey shall stand, shapeless and nameless ruins, in the midst of an
   unpeopled marsh; when the piers of Waterloo Bridge shall become the
   nuclei of islets of reeds and osiers, and cast the jagged shadows of
   their broken arches on the solitary stream, some transatlantic
   commentator will be weighing in the scales of some new and now
   unimagined system of criticism, the respective merits of the Bells and
   the Fudges, and their historians. I remain, dear Tom, yours sincerely,
   
   MICHING MALLECHO.
   
   December 1, 1819.
   
   P.S.--Pray excuse the date of place; so soon as the profits of the
   publication come in, I mean to hire lodgings in a more respectable
   street.
   
   
   PROLOGUE.
   
   Peter Bells, one, two and three,
   O'er the wide world wandering be.--
   First, the antenatal Peter,
   Wrapped in weeds of the same metre,
   The so-long-predestined raiment                                      _5
   Clothed in which to walk his way meant
   The second Peter; whose ambition
   Is to link the proposition,
   As the mean of two extremes--
   (This was learned from Aldric's themes)                              _10
   Shielding from the guilt of schism
   The orthodoxal syllogism;
   The First Peter--he who was
   Like the shadow in the glass
   Of the second, yet unripe,                                           _15
   His substantial antitype.--
   
   Then came Peter Bell the Second,
   Who henceforward must be reckoned
   The body of a double soul,
   And that portion of the whole                                        _20
   Without which the rest would seem
   Ends of a disjointed dream.--
   And the Third is he who has
   O'er the grave been forced to pass
   To the other side, which is,--                                       _25
   Go and try else,--just like this.
   
   Peter Bell the First was Peter
   Smugger, milder, softer, neater,
   Like the soul before it is
   Born from THAT world into THIS.                                      _30
   The next Peter Bell was he,
   Predevote, like you and me,
   To good or evil as may come;
   His was the severer doom,--
   For he was an evil Cotter,                                           _35
   And a polygamic Potter.
   And the last is Peter Bell,
   Damned since our first parents fell,
   Damned eternally to Hell--
   Surely he deserves it well!                                          _40
   
   NOTES:
   _10 Aldric's] i.e. Aldrich's--a spelling adopted here by Woodberry.
   
   (_36 The oldest scholiasts read--
   A dodecagamic Potter.
   This is at once more descriptive and more megalophonous,--but the
   alliteration of the text had captivated the vulgar ear of the herd of
   later commentators.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   
   PART 1.
   
   DEATH.
   
   1.
   And Peter Bell, when he had been
   With fresh-imported Hell-fire warmed,
   Grew serious--from his dress and mien
   'Twas very plainly to be seen
   Peter was quite reformed.                                            _5
   
   2.
   His eyes turned up, his mouth turned down;
   His accent caught a nasal twang;
   He oiled his hair; there might be heard
   The grace of God in every word
   Which Peter said or sang.                                            _10
   
   3.
   But Peter now grew old, and had
   An ill no doctor could unravel:
   His torments almost drove him mad;--
   Some said it was a fever bad--
   Some swore it was the gravel.                                        _15
   
   4.
   His holy friends then came about,
   And with long preaching and persuasion
   Convinced the patient that, without
   The smallest shadow of a doubt,
   He was predestined to damnation.                                     _20
   
   5.
   They said--'Thy name is Peter Bell;
   Thy skin is of a brimstone hue;
   Alive or dead--ay, sick or well--
   The one God made to rhyme with hell;
   The other, I think, rhymes with you.                                 _25
   
   6.
   Then Peter set up such a yell!--
   The nurse, who with some water gruel
   Was climbing up the stairs, as well
   As her old legs could climb them--fell,
   And broke them both--the fall was cruel.                             _30
   
   7.
   The Parson from the casement lept
   Into the lake of Windermere--
   And many an eel--though no adept
   In God's right reason for it--kept
   Gnawing his kidneys half a year.                                     _35
   
   8.
   And all the rest rushed through the door
   And tumbled over one another,
   And broke their skulls.--Upon the floor
   Meanwhile sat Peter Bell, and swore,
   And cursed his father and his mother;                                _40
   
   9.
   And raved of God, and sin, and death,
   Blaspheming like an infidel;
   And said, that with his clenched teeth
   He'd seize the earth from underneath,
   And drag it with him down to hell.                                   _45
   
   10.
   As he was speaking came a spasm,
   And wrenched his gnashing teeth asunder;
   Like one who sees a strange phantasm
   He lay,--there was a silent chasm
   Between his upper jaw and under.                                     _50
   
   11.
   And yellow death lay on his face;
   And a fixed smile that was not human
   Told, as I understand the case,
   That he was gone to the wrong place:--
   I heard all this from the old woman.                                 _55
   
   12.
   Then there came down from Langdale Pike
   A cloud, with lightning, wind and hail;
   It swept over the mountains like
   An ocean,--and I heard it strike
   The woods and crags of Grasmere vale.                                _60
   
   13.
   And I saw the black storm come
   Nearer, minute after minute;
   Its thunder made the cataracts dumb;
   With hiss, and clash, and hollow hum,
   It neared as if the Devil was in it.                                 _65
   
   14.
   The Devil WAS in it:--he had bought
   Peter for half-a-crown; and when
   The storm which bore him vanished, nought
   That in the house that storm had caught
   Was ever seen again.                                                 _70
   
   15.
   The gaping neighbours came next day--
   They found all vanished from the shore:
   The Bible, whence he used to pray,
   Half scorched under a hen-coop lay;
   Smashed glass--and nothing more!                                     _75
   
   
   PART 2.
   
   THE DEVIL.
   
   1.
   The Devil, I safely can aver,
   Has neither hoof, nor tail, nor sting;
   Nor is he, as some sages swear,
   A spirit, neither here nor there,
   In nothing--yet in everything.                                       _80
   
   2.
   He is--what we are; for sometimes
   The Devil is a gentleman;
   At others a bard bartering rhymes
   For sack; a statesman spinning crimes;
   A swindler, living as he can;                                        _85
   
   3.
   A thief, who cometh in the night,
   With whole boots and net pantaloons,
   Like some one whom it were not right
   To mention;--or the luckless wight
   From whom he steals nine silver spoons.                              _90
   
   4.
   But in this case he did appear
   Like a slop-merchant from Wapping,
   And with smug face, and eye severe,
   On every side did perk and peer
   Till he saw Peter dead or napping.                                   _95
   
   5.
   He had on an upper Benjamin
   (For he was of the driving schism)
   In the which he wrapped his skin
   From the storm he travelled in,
   For fear of rheumatism.                                              _100
   
   6.
   He called the ghost out of the corse;--
   It was exceedingly like Peter,--
   Only its voice was hollow and hoarse--
   It had a queerish look of course--
   Its dress too was a little neater.                                   _105
   
   7.
   The Devil knew not his name and lot;
   Peter knew not that he was Bell:
   Each had an upper stream of thought,
   Which made all seem as it was not;
   Fitting itself to all things well.                                   _110
   
   8.
   Peter thought he had parents dear,
   Brothers, sisters, cousins, cronies,
   In the fens of Lincolnshire;
   He perhaps had found them there
   Had he gone and boldly shown his                                     _115
   
   9.
   Solemn phiz in his own village;
   Where he thought oft when a boy
   He'd clomb the orchard walls to pillage
   The produce of his neighbour's tillage,
   With marvellous pride and joy.                                       _120
   
   10.
   And the Devil thought he had,
   'Mid the misery and confusion
   Of an unjust war, just made
   A fortune by the gainful trade
   Of giving soldiers rations bad--                                     _125
   The world is full of strange delusion--
   
   11.
   That he had a mansion planned
   In a square like Grosvenor Square,
   That he was aping fashion, and
   That he now came to Westmoreland                                     _130
   To see what was romantic there.
   
   12.
   And all this, though quite ideal,--
   Ready at a breath to vanish,--
   Was a state not more unreal
   Than the peace he could not feel,                                    _135
   Or the care he could not banish.
   
   13.
   After a little conversation,
   The Devil told Peter, if he chose,
   He'd bring him to the world of fashion
   By giving him a situation                                            _140
   In his own service--and new clothes.
   
   14.
   And Peter bowed, quite pleased and proud,
   And after waiting some few days
   For a new livery--dirty yellow
   Turned up with black--the wretched fellow                            _145
   Was bowled to Hell in the Devil's chaise.   PART 3.
   
   HELL.
   
   1.
   Hell is a city much like London--
   A populous and a smoky city;
   There are all sorts of people undone,
   And there is little or no fun done;                                  _150
   Small justice shown, and still less pity.
   
   2.
   There is a Castles, and a Canning,
   A Cobbett, and a Castlereagh;
   All sorts of caitiff corpses planning
   All sorts of cozening for trepanning                                 _155
   Corpses less corrupt than they.
   
   3.
   There is a ***, who has lost
   His wits, or sold them, none knows which;
   He walks about a double ghost,
   And though as thin as Fraud almost--                                 _160
   Ever grows more grim and rich.
   
   4.
   There is a Chancery Court; a King;
   A manufacturing mob; a set
   Of thieves who by themselves are sent
   Similar thieves to represent;                                        _165
   An army; and a public debt.
   
   5.
   Which last is a scheme of paper money,
   And means--being interpreted--
   'Bees, keep your wax--give us the honey,
   And we will plant, while skies are sunny,                            _170
   Flowers, which in winter serve instead.'
   
   6.
   There is a great talk of revolution--
   And a great chance of despotism--
   German soldiers--camps--confusion--
   Tumults--lotteries--rage--delusion--                                 _175
   Gin--suicide--and methodism;
   
   7.
   Taxes too, on wine and bread,
   And meat, and beer, and tea, and cheese,
   From which those patriots pure are fed,
   Who gorge before they reel to bed                                    _180
   The tenfold essence of all these.
   
   8.
   There are mincing women, mewing,
   (Like cats, who amant misere,)
   Of their own virtue, and pursuing
   Their gentler sisters to that ruin,                                  _185
   Without which--what were chastity?(2)
   
   9.
   Lawyers--judges--old hobnobbers
   Are there--bailiffs--chancellors--
   Bishops--great and little robbers--
   Rhymesters--pamphleteers--stock-jobbers--                            _190
   Men of glory in the wars,--
   
   10.
   Things whose trade is, over ladies
   To lean, and flirt, and stare, and simper,
   Till all that is divine in woman
   Grows cruel, courteous, smooth, inhuman,                             _195
   Crucified 'twixt a smile and whimper.
   
   11.
   Thrusting, toiling, wailing, moiling,
   Frowning, preaching--such a riot!
   Each with never-ceasing labour,
   Whilst he thinks he cheats his neighbour,                            _200
   Cheating his own heart of quiet.
   
   12.
   And all these meet at levees;--
   Dinners convivial and political;--
   Suppers of epic poets;--teas,
   Where small talk dies in agonies;--                                  _205
   Breakfasts professional and critical;
   
   13.
   Lunches and snacks so aldermanic
   That one would furnish forth ten dinners,
   Where reigns a Cretan-tongued panic,
   Lest news Russ, Dutch, or Alemannic                                  _210
   Should make some losers, and some winners--
   
   45.
   At conversazioni--balls--
   Conventicles--and drawing-rooms--
   Courts of law--committees--calls
   Of a morning--clubs--book-stalls--                                   _215
   Churches--masquerades--and tombs.
   
   15.
   And this is Hell--and in this smother
   All are damnable and damned;
   Each one damning, damns the other;
   They are damned by one another,                                      _220
   By none other are they damned.
   
   16.
   'Tis a lie to say, 'God damns'! (1)
   Where was Heaven's Attorney General
   When they first gave out such flams?
   Let there be an end of shams,                                        _225
   They are mines of poisonous mineral.
   
   17.
   Statesmen damn themselves to be
   Cursed; and lawyers damn their souls
   To the auction of a fee;
   Churchmen damn themselves to see                                     _230
   God's sweet love in burning coals.
   
   18.
   The rich are damned, beyond all cure,
   To taunt, and starve, and trample on
   The weak and wretched; and the poor
   Damn their broken hearts to endure                                   _235
   Stripe on stripe, with groan on groan.
   
   19.
   Sometimes the poor are damned indeed
   To take,--not means for being blessed,--
   But Cobbett's snuff, revenge; that weed
   From which the worms that it doth feed                               _240
   Squeeze less than they before possessed.
   
   20.
   And some few, like we know who,
   Damned--but God alone knows why--
   To believe their minds are given
   To make this ugly Hell a Heaven;                                     _245
   In which faith they live and die.
   
   21.
   Thus, as in a town, plague-stricken,
   Each man be he sound or no
   Must indifferently sicken;
   As when day begins to thicken,                                       _250
   None knows a pigeon from a crow,--
   
   22.
   So good and bad, sane and mad,
   The oppressor and the oppressed;
   Those who weep to see what others
   Smile to inflict upon their brothers;                                _255
   Lovers, haters, worst and best;
   
   23.
   All are damned--they breathe an air,
   Thick, infected, joy-dispelling:
   Each pursues what seems most fair,
   Mining like moles, through mind, and there                           _260
   Scoop palace-caverns vast, where Care
   In throned state is ever dwelling.
   
   
   PART 4.
   
   SIN.
   
   1.
   Lo. Peter in Hell's Grosvenor Square,
   A footman in the Devil's service!
   And the misjudging world would swear                                 _265
   That every man in service there
   To virtue would prefer vice.
   
   2.
   But Peter, though now damned, was not
   What Peter was before damnation.
   Men oftentimes prepare a lot                                         _270
   Which ere it finds them, is not what
   Suits with their genuine station.
   
   3.
   All things that Peter saw and felt
   Had a peculiar aspect to him;
   And when they came within the belt                                   _275
   Of his own nature, seemed to melt,
   Like cloud to cloud, into him.
   
   4.
   And so the outward world uniting
   To that within him, he became
   Considerably uninviting                                              _280
   To those who, meditation slighting,
   Were moulded in a different frame.
   
   5.
   And he scorned them, and they scorned him;
   And he scorned all they did; and they
   Did all that men of their own trim                                   _285
   Are wont to do to please their whim,
   Drinking, lying, swearing, play.
   
   6.
   Such were his fellow-servants; thus
   His virtue, like our own, was built
   Too much on that indignant fuss                                      _290
   Hypocrite Pride stirs up in us
   To bully one another's guilt.
   
   7.
   He had a mind which was somehow
   At once circumference and centre
   Of all he might or feel or know;                                     _295
   Nothing went ever out, although
   Something did ever enter.
   
   8.
   He had as much imagination
   As a pint-pot;--he never could
   Fancy another situation,                                             _300
   From which to dart his contemplation,
   Than that wherein he stood.
   
   9.
   Yet his was individual mind,
   And new created all he saw
   In a new manner, and refined                                         _305
   Those new creations, and combined
   Them, by a master-spirit's law.
   
   10.
   Thus--though unimaginative--
   An apprehension clear, intense,
   Of his mind's work, had made alive                                   _310
   The things it wrought on; I believe
   Wakening a sort of thought in sense.
   
   11.
   But from the first 'twas Peter's drift
   To be a kind of moral eunuch,
   He touched the hem of Nature's shift,                                _315
   Felt faint--and never dared uplift
   The closest, all-concealing tunic.
   
   12.
   She laughed the while, with an arch smile,
   And kissed him with a sister's kiss,
   And said--My best Diogenes,                                          _320
   I love you well--but, if you please,
   Tempt not again my deepest bliss.
   
   13.
   ''Tis you are cold--for I, not coy,
   Yield love for love, frank, warm, and true;
   And Burns, a Scottish peasant boy--                                  _325
   His errors prove it--knew my joy
   More, learned friend, than you.
   
   14.
   'Boeca bacciata non perde ventura,
   Anzi rinnuova come fa la luna:--
   So thought Boccaccio, whose sweet words might cure a                 _330
   Male prude, like you, from what you now endure, a
   Low-tide in soul, like a stagnant laguna.
   
   15.
   Then Peter rubbed his eyes severe.
   And smoothed his spacious forehead down
   With his broad palm;--'twixt love and fear,                          _335
   He looked, as he no doubt felt, queer,
   And in his dream sate down.
   
   16.
   The Devil was no uncommon creature;
   A leaden-witted thief--just huddled
   Out of the dross and scum of nature;                                 _340
   A toad-like lump of limb and feature,
   With mind, and heart, and fancy muddled.
   
   17.
   He was that heavy, dull, cold thing,
   The spirit of evil well may be:
   A drone too base to have a sting;                                    _345
   Who gluts, and grimes his lazy wing,
   And calls lust, luxury.
   
   18.
   Now he was quite the kind of wight
   Round whom collect, at a fixed aera,
   Venison, turtle, hock, and claret,--                                 _350
   Good cheer--and those who come to share it--
   And best East Indian madeira!
   
   19.
   It was his fancy to invite
   Men of science, wit, and learning,
   Who came to lend each other light;                                   _355
   He proudly thought that his gold's might
   Had set those spirits burning.
   
   20.
   And men of learning, science, wit,
   Considered him as you and I
   Think of some rotten tree, and sit                                   _360
   Lounging and dining under it,
   Exposed to the wide sky.
   
   21.
   And all the while with loose fat smile,
   The willing wretch sat winking there,
   Believing 'twas his power that made                                  _365
   That jovial scene--and that all paid
   Homage to his unnoticed chair.
   
   22.
   Though to be sure this place was Hell;
   He was the Devil--and all they--
   What though the claret circled well,                                 _370
   And wit, like ocean, rose and fell?--
   Were damned eternally.
   
   
   PART 5.
   
   GRACE.
   
   1.
   Among the guests who often stayed
   Till the Devil's petits-soupers,
   A man there came, fair as a maid,                                    _375
   And Peter noted what he said,
   Standing behind his master's chair.
   
   2.
   He was a mighty poet--and
   A subtle-souled psychologist;
   All things he seemed to understand,                                  _380
   Of old or new--of sea or land--
   But his own mind--which was a mist.
   
   3.
   This was a man who might have turned
   Hell into Heaven--and so in gladness
   A Heaven unto himself have earned;                                   _385
   But he in shadows undiscerned
   Trusted.--and damned himself to madness.
   
   4.
   He spoke of poetry, and how
   'Divine it was--a light--a love--
   A spirit which like wind doth blow                                   _390
   As it listeth, to and fro;
   A dew rained down from God above;
   
   5.
   'A power which comes and goes like dream,
   And which none can ever trace--
   Heaven's light on earth--Truth's brightest beam.'                    _395
   And when he ceased there lay the gleam
   Of those words upon his face.
   
   6.
   Now Peter, when he heard such talk,
   Would, heedless of a broken pate,
   Stand like a man asleep, or balk                                     _400
   Some wishing guest of knife or fork,
   Or drop and break his master's plate.
   
   7.
   At night he oft would start and wake
   Like a lover, and began
   In a wild measure songs to make                                      _405
   On moor, and glen, and rocky lake,
   And on the heart of man--
   
   8.
   And on the universal sky--
   And the wide earth's bosom green,--
   And the sweet, strange mystery                                       _410
   Of what beyond these things may lie,
   And yet remain unseen.
   
   9.
   For in his thought he visited
   The spots in which, ere dead and damned,
   He his wayward life had led;                                         _415
   Yet knew not whence the thoughts were fed
   Which thus his fancy crammed.
   
   10.
   And these obscure remembrances
   Stirred such harmony in Peter,
   That, whensoever he should please,                                   _420
   He could speak of rocks and trees
   In poetic metre.
   
   11.
   For though it was without a sense
   Of memory, yet he remembered well
   Many a ditch and quick-set fence;                                    _425
   Of lakes he had intelligence,
   He knew something of heath and fell.
   
   12.
   He had also dim recollections
   Of pedlars tramping on their rounds;
   Milk-pans and pails; and odd collections                             _430
   Of saws, and proverbs; and reflections
   Old parsons make in burying-grounds.
   
   13.
   But Peter's verse was clear, and came
   Announcing from the frozen hearth
   Of a cold age, that none might tame                                  _435
   The soul of that diviner flame
   It augured to the Earth:
   
   14.
   Like gentle rains, on the dry plains,
   Making that green which late was gray,
   Or like the sudden moon, that stains                                 _440
   Some gloomy chamber's window-panes
   With a broad light like day.
   
   15.
   For language was in Peter's hand
   Like clay while he was yet a potter;
   And he made songs for all the land,                                  _445
   Sweet both to feel and understand,
   As pipkins late to mountain Cotter.
   
   16.
   And Mr. --, the bookseller,
   Gave twenty pounds for some;--then scorning
   A footman's yellow coat to wear,                                     _450
   Peter, too proud of heart, I fear,
   Instantly gave the Devil warning.
   
   17.
   Whereat the Devil took offence,
   And swore in his soul a great oath then,
   'That for his damned impertinence                                    _455
   He'd bring him to a proper sense
   Of what was due to gentlemen!'
   
   
   PART 6.
   
   DAMNATION.
   
   1.
   'O that mine enemy had written
   A book!'--cried Job:--a fearful curse,
   If to the Arab, as the Briton,                                       _460
   'Twas galling to be critic-bitten:--
   The Devil to Peter wished no worse.
   
   2.
   When Peter's next new book found vent,
   The Devil to all the first Reviews
   A copy of it slyly sent,                                             _465
   With five-pound note as compliment,
   And this short notice--'Pray abuse.'
   
   3.
   Then seriatim, month and quarter,
   Appeared such mad tirades.--One said--
   'Peter seduced Mrs. Foy's daughter,                                  _470
   Then drowned the mother in Ullswater,
   The last thing as he went to bed.'
   
   4.
   Another--'Let him shave his head!
   Where's Dr. Willis?--Or is he joking?
   What does the rascal mean or hope,                                   _475
   No longer imitating Pope,
   In that barbarian Shakespeare poking?'
   
   5.
   One more, 'Is incest not enough?
   And must there be adultery too?
   Grace after meat? Miscreant and Liar!                                _480
   Thief! Blackguard! Scoundrel! Fool! hell-fire
   Is twenty times too good for you.
   
   6.
   'By that last book of yours WE think
   You've double damned yourself to scorn;
   We warned you whilst yet on the brink                                _485
   You stood. From your black name will shrink
   The babe that is unborn.'
   
   7.
   All these Reviews the Devil made
   Up in a parcel, which he had
   Safely to Peter's house conveyed.                                    _490
   For carriage, tenpence Peter paid--
   Untied them--read them--went half mad.
   
   8.
   'What!' cried he, 'this is my reward
   For nights of thought, and days, of toil?
   Do poets, but to be abhorred                                         _495
   By men of whom they never heard,
   Consume their spirits' oil?
   
   9.
   'What have I done to them?--and who
   IS Mrs. Foy? 'Tis very cruel
   To speak of me and Betty so!                                         _500
   Adultery! God defend me! Oh!
   I've half a mind to fight a duel.
   
   10.
   'Or,' cried he, a grave look collecting,
   'Is it my genius, like the moon,
   Sets those who stand her face inspecting,                            _505
   That face within their brain reflecting,
   Like a crazed bell-chime, out of tune?'
   
   11.
   For Peter did not know the town,
   But thought, as country readers do,
   For half a guinea or a crown,                                        _510
   He bought oblivion or renown
   From God's own voice (1) in a review.
   
   12.
   All Peter did on this occasion
   Was, writing some sad stuff in prose.
   It is a dangerous invasion                                           _515
   When poets criticize; their station
   Is to delight, not pose.
   
   13.
   The Devil then sent to Leipsic fair
   For Born's translation of Kant's book;
   A world of words, tail foremost, where                               _520
   Right--wrong--false--true--and foul--and fair
   As in a lottery-wheel are shook.
   
   14.
   Five thousand crammed octavo pages
   Of German psychologics,--he
   Who his furor verborum assuages                                      _525
   Thereon, deserves just seven months' wages
   More than will e'er be due to me.
   
   15.
   I looked on them nine several days,
   And then I saw that they were bad;
   A friend, too, spoke in their dispraise,--                           _530
   He never read them;--with amaze
   I found Sir William Drummond had.
   
   16.
   When the book came, the Devil sent
   It to P. Verbovale (2), Esquire,
   With a brief note of compliment,                                     _535
   By that night's Carlisle mail. It went,
   And set his soul on fire.
   
   17.
   Fire, which ex luce praebens fumum,
   Made him beyond the bottom see
   Of truth's clear well--when I and you, Ma'am,                        _540
   Go, as we shall do, subter humum,
   We may know more than he.
   
   18.
   Now Peter ran to seed in soul
   Into a walking paradox;
   For he was neither part nor whole,                                   _545
   Nor good, nor bad--nor knave nor fool;
   --Among the woods and rocks
   
   19.
   Furious he rode, where late he ran,
   Lashing and spurring his tame hobby;
   Turned to a formal puritan,                                          _550
   A solemn and unsexual man,--
   He half believed "White Obi".
   
   20.
   This steed in vision he would ride,
   High trotting over nine-inch bridges,
   With Flibbertigibbet, imp of pride,                                  _555
   Mocking and mowing by his side--
   A mad-brained goblin for a guide--
   Over corn-fields, gates, and hedges.
   
   21.
   After these ghastly rides, he came
   Home to his heart, and found from thence                             _560
   Much stolen of its accustomed flame;
   His thoughts grew weak, drowsy, and lame
   Of their intelligence.
   
   22.
   To Peter's view, all seemed one hue;
   He was no Whig, he was no Tory;                                      _565
   No Deist and no Christian he;--
   He got so subtle, that to be
   Nothing, was all his glory.
   
   23.
   One single point in his belief
   From his organization sprung,                                        _570
   The heart-enrooted faith, the chief
   Ear in his doctrines' blighted sheaf,
   That 'Happiness is wrong';
   
   24.
   So thought Calvin and Dominic;
   So think their fierce successors, who                                _575
   Even now would neither stint nor stick
   Our flesh from off our bones to pick,
   If they might 'do their do.'
   
   25.
   His morals thus were undermined:--
   The old Peter--the hard, old Potter--                                _580
   Was born anew within his mind;
   He grew dull, harsh, sly, unrefined,
   As when he tramped beside the Otter. (1)
   
   26.
   In the death hues of agony
   Lambently flashing from a fish,                                      _585
   Now Peter felt amused to see
   Shades like a rainbow's rise and flee,
   Mixed with a certain hungry wish(2).
   
   27.
   So in his Country's dying face
   He looked--and, lovely as she lay,                                   _590
   Seeking in vain his last embrace,
   Wailing her own abandoned case,
   With hardened sneer he turned away:
   
   28.
   And coolly to his own soul said;--
   'Do you not think that we might make                                 _595
   A poem on her when she's dead:--
   Or, no--a thought is in my head--
   Her shroud for a new sheet I'll take:
   
   29.
   'My wife wants one.--Let who will bury
   This mangled corpse! And I and you,                                  _600
   My dearest Soul, will then make merry,
   As the Prince Regent did with Sherry,--'
   'Ay--and at last desert me too.'
   
   30.
   And so his Soul would not be gay,
   But moaned within him; like a fawn                                   _605
   Moaning within a cave, it lay
   Wounded and wasting, day by day,
   Till all its life of life was gone.
   
   31.
   As troubled skies stain waters clear,
   The storm in Peter's heart and mind                                  _610
   Now made his verses dark and queer:
   They were the ghosts of what they were,
   Shaking dim grave-clothes in the wind.
   
   32.
   For he now raved enormous folly,
   Of Baptisms, Sunday-schools, and Graves,                             _615
   'Twould make George Colman melancholy
   To have heard him, like a male Molly,
   Chanting those stupid staves.
   
   33.
   Yet the Reviews, who heaped abuse
   On Peter while he wrote for freedom,                                 _620
   So soon as in his song they spy
   The folly which soothes tyranny,
   Praise him, for those who feed 'em.
   
   34.
   'He was a man, too great to scan;--
   A planet lost in truth's keen rays:--                                _625
   His virtue, awful and prodigious;--
   He was the most sublime, religious,
   Pure-minded Poet of these days.'
   
   35.
   As soon as he read that, cried Peter,
   'Eureka! I have found the way                                        _630
   To make a better thing of metre
   Than e'er was made by living creature
   Up to this blessed day.'
   
   36.
   Then Peter wrote odes to the Devil;--
   In one of which he meekly said:                                      _635
   'May Carnage and Slaughter,
   Thy niece and thy daughter,
   May Rapine and Famine,
   Thy gorge ever cramming,
   Glut thee with living and dead!                                      _640
   
   37.
   'May Death and Damnation,
   And Consternation,
   Flit up from Hell with pure intent!
   Slash them at Manchester,
   Glasgow, Leeds, and Chester;                                         _645
   Drench all with blood from Avon to Trent.
   
   38.
   'Let thy body-guard yeomen
   Hew down babes and women,
   And laugh with bold triumph till Heaven be rent!
   When Moloch in Jewry                                                 _650
   Munched children with fury,
   It was thou, Devil, dining with pure intent. (1)
   
   
   PART 7.
   
   DOUBLE DAMNATION.
   
   1.
   The Devil now knew his proper cue.--
   Soon as he read the ode, he drove
   To his friend Lord MacMurderchouse's,                                _655
   A man of interest in both houses,
   And said:--'For money or for love,
   
   2.
   'Pray find some cure or sinecure;
   To feed from the superfluous taxes
   A friend of ours--a poet--fewer                                      _660
   Have fluttered tamer to the lure
   Than he.' His lordship stands and racks his
   
   3.
   Stupid brains, while one might count
   As many beads as he had boroughs,--
   At length replies; from his mean front,                              _665
   Like one who rubs out an account,
   Smoothing away the unmeaning furrows:
   
   4.
   'It happens fortunately, dear Sir,
   I can. I hope I need require
   No pledge from you, that he will stir                                _670
   In our affairs;--like Oliver.
   That he'll be worthy of his hire.'
   
   5.
   These words exchanged, the news sent off
   To Peter, home the Devil hied,--
   Took to his bed; he had no cough,                                    _675
   No doctor,--meat and drink enough.--
   Yet that same night he died.
   
   6.
   The Devil's corpse was leaded down;
   His decent heirs enjoyed his pelf,
   Mourning-coaches, many a one,                                        _680
   Followed his hearse along the town:--
   Where was the Devil himself?
   
   7.
   When Peter heard of his promotion,
   His eyes grew like two stars for bliss:
   There was a bow of sleek devotion                                    _685
   Engendering in his back; each motion
   Seemed a Lord's shoe to kiss.
   
   8.
   He hired a house, bought plate, and made
   A genteel drive up to his door,
   With sifted gravel neatly laid,--                                    _690
   As if defying all who said,
   Peter was ever poor.
   
   9.
   But a disease soon struck into
   The very life and soul of Peter--
   He walked about--slept--had the hue                                  _695
   Of health upon his cheeks--and few
   Dug better--none a heartier eater.
   
   10.
   And yet a strange and horrid curse
   Clung upon Peter, night and day;
   Month after month the thing grew worse,                              _700
   And deadlier than in this my verse
   I can find strength to say.
   
   11.
   Peter was dull--he was at first
   Dull--oh, so dull--so very dull!
   Whether he talked, wrote, or rehearsed--                             _705
   Still with this dulness was he cursed--
   Dull--beyond all conception--dull.
   
   12.
   No one could read his books--no mortal,
   But a few natural friends, would hear him;
   The parson came not near his portal;                                 _710
   His state was like that of the immortal
   Described by Swift--no man could bear him.
   
   13.
   His sister, wife, and children yawned,
   With a long, slow, and drear ennui,
   All human patience far beyond;                                       _715
   Their hopes of Heaven each would have pawned,
   Anywhere else to be.
   
   14.
   But in his verse, and in his prose,
   The essence of his dulness was
   Concentred and compressed so close,                                  _720
   'Twould have made Guatimozin doze
   On his red gridiron of brass.
   
   15.
   A printer's boy, folding those pages,
   Fell slumbrously upon one side;
   Like those famed Seven who slept three ages.                         _725
   To wakeful frenzy's vigil--rages,
   As opiates, were the same applied.
   
   16.
   Even the Reviewers who were hired
   To do the work of his reviewing,
   With adamantine nerves, grew tired;--                                _730
   Gaping and torpid they retired,
   To dream of what they should be doing.
   
   17.
   And worse and worse, the drowsy curse
   Yawned in him, till it grew a pest--
   A wide contagious atmosphere,                                        _735
   Creeping like cold through all things near;
   A power to infect and to infest.
   
   18.
   His servant-maids and dogs grew dull;
   His kitten, late a sportive elf;
   The woods and lakes, so beautiful,                                   _740
   Of dim stupidity were full.
   All grew dull as Peter's self.
   
   19.
   The earth under his feet--the springs,
   Which lived within it a quick life,
   The air, the winds of many wings,                                    _745
   That fan it with new murmurings,
   Were dead to their harmonious strife.
   
   20.
   The birds and beasts within the wood,
   The insects, and each creeping thing,
   Were now a silent multitude;                                         _750
   Love's work was left unwrought--no brood
   Near Peter's house took wing.
   
   21.
   And every neighbouring cottager
   Stupidly yawned upon the other:
   No jackass brayed; no little cur                                     _755
   Cocked up his ears;--no man would stir
   To save a dying mother.
   
   22.
   Yet all from that charmed district went
   But some half-idiot and half-knave,
   Who rather than pay any rent,                                        _760
   Would live with marvellous content,
   Over his father's grave.
   
   23.
   No bailiff dared within that space,
   For fear of the dull charm, to enter;
   A man would bear upon his face,                                      _765
   For fifteen months in any case,
   The yawn of such a venture.
   
   24.
   Seven miles above--below--around--
   This pest of dulness holds its sway;
   A ghastly life without a sound;                                      _770
   To Peter's soul the spell is bound--
   How should it ever pass away?
   
   NOTES:
   (_8 To those who have not duly appreciated the distinction between
   Whale and Russia oil, this attribute might rather seem to belong to
   the Dandy than the Evangelic. The effect, when to the windward, is
   indeed so similar, that it requires a subtle naturalist to
   discriminate the animals. They belong, however, to distinct
   genera.--[SHELLEY's NOTE.)
   
   (_183 One of the attributes in Linnaeus's description of the Cat. To a
   similar cause the caterwauling of more than one species of this genus
   is to be referred;--except, indeed, that the poor quadruped is
   compelled to quarrel with its own pleasures, whilst the biped is
   supposed only to quarrel with those of others.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   (_186 What would this husk and excuse for a virtue be without its
   kernel prostitution, or the kernel prostitution without this husk of a
   virtue? I wonder the women of the town do not form an association,
   like the Society for the Suppression of Vice, for the support of what
   may be called the 'King, Church, and Constitution' of their order. But
   this subject is almost too horrible for a joke.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   (_222 This libel on our national oath, and this accusation of all our
   countrymen of being in the daily practice of solemnly asseverating the
   most enormous falsehood, I fear deserves the notice of a more active
   Attorney General than that here alluded to.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   _292 one Fleay cj., Rossetti, Forman, Dowden, Woodberry;
        out 1839, 2nd edition.
   _500 Betty]Emma 1839, 2nd edition. See letter from Shelley to Ollier,
        May 14, 1820 (Shelley Memorials, page 139).
   
   (_512 Vox populi, vox dei. As Mr. Godwin truly observes of a more
   famous saying, of some merit as a popular maxim, but totally destitute
   of philosophical accuracy.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   (_534 Quasi, Qui valet verba:--i.e. all the words which have been,
   are, or may be expended by, for, against, with, or on him. A
   sufficient proof of the utility of this history. Peter's progenitor
   who __select__ed this name seems to have possessed A PURE ANTICIPATED
   COGNITION of the nature and modesty of this ornament of his
   posterity.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   _602-3 See Editor's Note.
   
   (_583 A famous river in the new Atlantis of the Dynastophylic
   Pantisocratists.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   (_588 See the description of the beautiful colours produced during the
   agonizing death of a number of trout, in the fourth part of a long
   poem in blank verse, published within a few years. ["The Excursion", 8
   2 568-71.--Ed.] That poem contains curious evidence of the gradual
   hardening of a strong but circumscribed sensibility, of the perversion
   of a penetrating but panic-stricken understanding. The author might
   have derived a lesson which he had probably forgotten from these sweet
   and sublime verses:--
   
   'This lesson, Shepherd, let us two divide,
   Taught both by what she (Nature) shows and what conceals,
   Never to blend our pleasure or our pride
   With sorrow of the meanest thing that feels.'--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   (_652 It is curious to observe how often extremes meet. Cobbett and
   Peter use the same language for a different purpose: Peter is indeed a
   sort of metrical Cobbett. Cobbett is, however, more mischievous than
   Peter, because he pollutes a holy and how unconquerable cause with the
   principles of legitimate murder; whilst the other only makes a bad one
   ridiculous and odious.
   
   If either Peter or Cobbett should see this note, each will feel more
   indignation at being compared to the other than at any censure implied
   in the moral perversion laid to their charge.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   
   NOTE ON PETER BELL THE THIRD, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   In this new edition I have added "Peter Bell the Third". A critique on
   Wordsworth's "Peter Bell" reached us at Leghorn, which amused Shelley
   exceedingly, and suggested this poem.
   
   I need scarcely observe that nothing personal to the author of "Peter
   Bell" is intended in this poem. No man ever admired Wordsworth's
   poetry more;--he read it perpetually, and taught others to appreciate
   its beauties. This poem is, like all others written by Shelley, ideal.
   He conceived the idealism of a poet--a man of lofty and creative
   genius--quitting the glorious calling of discovering and announcing
   the beautiful and good, to support and propagate ignorant prejudices
   and pernicious errors; imparting to the unenlightened, not that ardour
   for truth and spirit of toleration which Shelley looked on as the
   sources of the moral improvement and happiness of mankind, but false
   and injurious opinions, that evil was good, and that ignorance and
   force were the best allies of purity and virtue. His idea was that a
   man gifted, even as transcendently as the author of "Peter Bell", with
   the highest qualities of genius, must, if he fostered such errors, be
   infected with dulness. This poem was written as a warning--not as a
   narration of the reality. He was unacquainted personally with
   Wordsworth, or with Coleridge (to whom he alludes in the fifth part of
   the poem), and therefore, I repeat, his poem is purely ideal;--it
   contains something of criticism on the compositions of those great
   poets, but nothing injurious to the men themselves.
   
   No poem contains more of Shelley's peculiar views with regard to the
   errors into which many of the wisest have fallen, and the pernicious
   effects of certain opinions on society. Much of it is beautifully
   written: and, though, like the burlesque drama of "Swellfoot", it must
   be looked on as a plaything, it has so much merit and poetry--so much
   of HIMSELF in it--that it cannot fail to interest greatly, and by
   right belongs to the world for whose instruction and benefit it was
   written.
   
   ***
   
   
   LETTER TO MARIA GISBORNE.
   
   [Composed during Shelley's occupation of the Gisbornes' house at
   Leghorn, July, 1820; published in "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Sources of
   the text are (1) a draft in Shelley's hand, 'partly illegible'
   (Forman), amongst the Boscombe manuscripts; (2) a transcript by Mrs.
   Shelley; (3) the editio princeps, 1824; the text in "Poetical Works",
   1839, let and 2nd editions. Our text is that of Mrs. Shelley's
   transcript, modified by the Boscombe manuscript. Here, as elsewhere in
   this edition, the readings of the editio princeps are preserved in the
   footnotes.]
   
   LEGHORN, July 1, 1820.]
   
   The spider spreads her webs, whether she be
   In poet's tower, cellar, or barn, or tree;
   The silk-worm in the dark green mulberry leaves
   His winding sheet and cradle ever weaves;
   So I, a thing whom moralists call worm,                              _5
   Sit spinning still round this decaying form,
   From the fine threads of rare and subtle thought--
   No net of words in garish colours wrought
   To catch the idle buzzers of the day--
   But a soft cell, where when that fades away,                         _10
   Memory may clothe in wings my living name
   And feed it with the asphodels of fame,
   Which in those hearts which must remember me
   Grow, making love an immortality.
   
   Whoever should behold me now, I wist,                                _15
   Would think I were a mighty mechanist,
   Bent with sublime Archimedean art
   To breathe a soul into the iron heart
   Of some machine portentous, or strange gin,
   Which by the force of figured spells might win                       _20
   Its way over the sea, and sport therein;
   For round the walls are hung dread engines, such
   As Vulcan never wrought for Jove to clutch
   Ixion or the Titan:--or the quick
   Wit of that man of God, St. Dominic,                                 _25
   To convince Atheist, Turk, or Heretic,
   Or those in philanthropic council met,
   Who thought to pay some interest for the debt
   They owed to Jesus Christ for their salvation,
   By giving a faint foretaste of damnation                             _30
   To Shakespeare, Sidney, Spenser, and the rest
   Who made our land an island of the blest,
   When lamp-like Spain, who now relumes her fire
   On Freedom's hearth, grew dim with Empire:--
   With thumbscrews, wheels, with tooth and spike and jag,              _35
   Which fishers found under the utmost crag
   Of Cornwall and the storm-encompassed isles,
   Where to the sky the rude sea rarely smiles
   Unless in treacherous wrath, as on the morn
   When the exulting elements in scorn,                                 _40
   Satiated with destroyed destruction, lay
   Sleeping in beauty on their mangled prey,
   As panthers sleep;--and other strange and dread
   Magical forms the brick floor overspread,--
   Proteus transformed to metal did not make                            _45
   More figures, or more strange; nor did he take
   Such shapes of unintelligible brass,
   Or heap himself in such a horrid mass
   Of tin and iron not to be understood;
   And forms of unimaginable wood,                                      _50
   To puzzle Tubal Cain and all his brood:
   Great screws, and cones, and wheels, and grooved blocks,
   The elements of what will stand the shocks
   Of wave and wind and time.--Upon the table
   More knacks and quips there be than I am able                        _55
   To catalogize in this verse of mine:--
   A pretty bowl of wood--not full of wine,
   But quicksilver; that dew which the gnomes drink
   When at their subterranean toil they swink,
   Pledging the demons of the earthquake, who                           _60
   Reply to them in lava--cry halloo!
   And call out to the cities o'er their head,--
   Roofs, towers, and shrines, the dying and the dead,
   Crash through the chinks of earth--and then all quaff
   Another rouse, and hold their sides and laugh.                       _65
   This quicksilver no gnome has drunk--within
   The walnut bowl it lies, veined and thin,
   In colour like the wake of light that stains
   The Tuscan deep, when from the moist moon rains
   The inmost shower of its white fire--the breeze                      _70
   Is still--blue Heaven smiles over the pale seas.
   And in this bowl of quicksilver--for I
   Yield to the impulse of an infancy
   Outlasting manhood--I have made to float
   A rude idealism of a paper boat:--                                   _75
   A hollow screw with cogs--Henry will know
   The thing I mean and laugh at me,--if so
   He fears not I should do more mischief.--Next
   Lie bills and calculations much perplexed,
   With steam-boats, frigates, and machinery quaint                     _80
   Traced over them in blue and yellow paint.
   Then comes a range of mathematical
   Instruments, for plans nautical and statical,
   A heap of rosin, a queer broken glass
   With ink in it;--a china cup that was                                _85
   What it will never be again, I think,--
   A thing from which sweet lips were wont to drink
   The liquor doctors rail at--and which I
   Will quaff in spite of them--and when we die
   We'll toss up who died first of drinking tea,                        _90
   And cry out,--'Heads or tails?' where'er we be.
   Near that a dusty paint-box, some odd hooks,
   A half-burnt match, an ivory block, three books,
   Where conic sections, spherics, logarithms,
   To great Laplace, from Saunderson and Sims,                          _95
   Lie heaped in their harmonious disarray
   Of figures,--disentangle them who may.
   Baron de Tott's Memoirs beside them lie,
   And some odd volumes of old chemistry.
   Near those a most inexplicable thing,                                _100
   With lead in the middle--I'm conjecturing
   How to make Henry understand; but no--
   I'll leave, as Spenser says, with many mo,
   This secret in the pregnant womb of time,
   Too vast a matter for so weak a rhyme.                               _105
   
   And here like some weird Archimage sit I,
   Plotting dark spells, and devilish enginery,
   The self-impelling steam-wheels of the mind
   Which pump up oaths from clergymen, and grind
   The gentle spirit of our meek reviews                                _110
   Into a powdery foam of salt abuse,
   Ruffling the ocean of their self-content;--
   I sit--and smile or sigh as is my bent,
   But not for them--Libeccio rushes round
   With an inconstant and an idle sound,                                _115
   I heed him more than them--the thunder-smoke
   Is gathering on the mountains, like a cloak
   Folded athwart their shoulders broad and bare;
   The ripe corn under the undulating air
   Undulates like an ocean;--and the vines                              _120
   Are trembling wide in all their trellised lines--
   The murmur of the awakening sea doth fill
   The empty pauses of the blast;--the hill
   Looks hoary through the white electric rain,
   And from the glens beyond, in sullen strain,                         _125
   The interrupted thunder howls; above
   One chasm of Heaven smiles, like the eye of Love
   On the unquiet world;--while such things are,
   How could one worth your friendship heed the war
   Of worms? the shriek of the world's carrion jays,                    _130
   Their censure, or their wonder, or their praise?
   
   You are not here! the quaint witch Memory sees,
   In vacant chairs, your absent images,
   And points where once you sat, and now should be
   But are not.--I demand if ever we                                    _135
   Shall meet as then we met;--and she replies.
   Veiling in awe her second-sighted eyes;
   'I know the past alone--but summon home
   My sister Hope,--she speaks of all to come.'
   But I, an old diviner, who knew well                                 _140
   Every false verse of that sweet oracle,
   Turned to the sad enchantress once again,
   And sought a respite from my gentle pain,
   In citing every passage o'er and o'er
   Of our communion--how on the sea-shore                               _145
   We watched the ocean and the sky together,
   Under the roof of blue Italian weather;
   How I ran home through last year's thunder-storm,
   And felt the transverse lightning linger warm
   Upon my cheek--and how we often made                                 _150
   Feasts for each other, where good will outweighed
   The frugal luxury of our country cheer,
   As well it might, were it less firm and clear
   Than ours must ever be;--and how we spun
   A shroud of talk to hide us from the sun                             _155
   Of this familiar life, which seems to be
   But is not:--or is but quaint mockery
   Of all we would believe, and sadly blame
   The jarring and inexplicable frame
   Of this wrong world:--and then anatomize                             _160
   The purposes and thoughts of men whose eyes
   Were closed in distant years;--or widely guess
   The issue of the earth's great business,
   When we shall be as we no longer are--
   Like babbling gossips safe, who hear the war                         _165
   Of winds, and sigh, but tremble not;--or how
   You listened to some interrupted flow
   Of visionary rhyme,--in joy and pain
   Struck from the inmost fountains of my brain,
   With little skill perhaps;--or how we sought                         _170
   Those deepest wells of passion or of thought
   Wrought by wise poets in the waste of years,
   Staining their sacred waters with our tears;
   Quenching a thirst ever to be renewed!
   Or how I, wisest lady! then endued                                   _175
   The language of a land which now is free,
   And, winged with thoughts of truth and majesty,
   Flits round the tyrant's sceptre like a cloud,
   And bursts the peopled prisons, and cries aloud,
   'My name is Legion!'--that majestic tongue                           _180
   Which Calderon over the desert flung
   Of ages and of nations; and which found
   An echo in our hearts, and with the sound
   Startled oblivion;--thou wert then to me
   As is a nurse--when inarticulately                                   _185
   A child would talk as its grown parents do.
   If living winds the rapid clouds pursue,
   If hawks chase doves through the aethereal way,
   Huntsmen the innocent deer, and beasts their prey,
   Why should not we rouse with the spirit's blast                      _190
   Out of the forest of the pathless past
   These recollected pleasures?
   You are now
   In London, that great sea, whose ebb and flow
   At once is deaf and loud, and on the shore
   Vomits its wrecks, and still howls on for more.                      _195
   Yet in its depth what treasures! You will see
   That which was Godwin,--greater none than he
   Though fallen--and fallen on evil times--to stand
   Among the spirits of our age and land,
   Before the dread tribunal of "to come"                               _200
   The foremost,--while Rebuke cowers pale and dumb.
   You will see Coleridge--he who sits obscure
   In the exceeding lustre and the pure
   Intense irradiation of a mind,
   Which, with its own internal lightning blind,                        _200
   Flags wearily through darkness and despair--
   A cloud-encircled meteor of the air,
   A hooded eagle among blinking owls.--
   You will see Hunt--one of those happy souls
   Which are the salt of the earth, and without whom                    _210
   This world would smell like what it is--a tomb;
   Who is, what others seem; his room no doubt
   Is still adorned with many a cast from Shout,
   With graceful flowers tastefully placed about;
   And coronals of bay from ribbons hung,                               _215
   And brighter wreaths in neat disorder flung;
   The gifts of the most learned among some dozens
   Of female friends, sisters-in-law, and cousins.
   And there is he with his eternal puns,
   Which beat the dullest brain for smiles, like duns                   _220
   Thundering for money at a poet's door;
   Alas! it is no use to say, 'I'm poor!'
   Or oft in graver mood, when he will look
   Things wiser than were ever read in book,
   Except in Shakespeare's wisest tenderness.--                         _225
   You will see Hogg,--and I cannot express
   His virtues,--though I know that they are great,
   Because he locks, then barricades the gate
   Within which they inhabit;--of his wit
   And wisdom, you'll cry out when you are bit.                         _230
   He is a pearl within an oyster shell.
   One of the richest of the deep;--and there
   Is English Peacock, with his mountain Fair,
   Turned into a Flamingo;--that shy bird
   That gleams i' the Indian air--have you not heard                    _235
   When a man marries, dies, or turns Hindoo,
   His best friends hear no more of him?--but you
   Will see him, and will like him too, I hope,
   With the milk-white Snowdonian Antelope
   Matched with this cameleopard--his fine wit                          _240
   Makes such a wound, the knife is lost in it;
   A strain too learned for a shallow age,
   Too wise for selfish bigots; let his page,
   Which charms the chosen spirits of the time,
   Fold itself up for the serener clime                                 _245
   Of years to come, and find its recompense
   In that just expectation.--Wit and sense,
   Virtue and human knowledge; all that might
   Make this dull world a business of delight,
   Are all combined in Horace Smith.--And these.                        _250
   With some exceptions, which I need not tease
   Your patience by descanting on,--are all
   You and I know in London.
   I recall
   My thoughts, and bid you look upon the night.
   As water does a sponge, so the moonlight                             _255
   Fills the void, hollow, universal air--
   What see you?--unpavilioned Heaven is fair,
   Whether the moon, into her chamber gone,
   Leaves midnight to the golden stars, or wan
   Climbs with diminished beams the azure steep;                        _260
   Or whether clouds sail o'er the inverse deep,
   Piloted by the many-wandering blast,
   And the rare stars rush through them dim and fast:--
   All this is beautiful in every land.--
   But what see you beside?--a shabby stand                             _265
   Of Hackney coaches--a brick house or wall
   Fencing some lonely court, white with the scrawl
   Of our unhappy politics;--or worse--
   A wretched woman reeling by, whose curse
   Mixed with the watchman's, partner of her trade,                     _270
   You must accept in place of serenade--
   Or yellow-haired Pollonia murmuring
   To Henry, some unutterable thing.
   I see a chaos of green leaves and fruit
   Built round dark caverns, even to the root                           _275
   Of the living stems that feed them--in whose bowers
   There sleep in their dark dew the folded flowers;
   Beyond, the surface of the unsickled corn
   Trembles not in the slumbering air, and borne
   In circles quaint, and ever-changing dance,                          _280
   Like winged stars the fire-flies flash and glance,
   Pale in the open moonshine, but each one
   Under the dark trees seems a little sun,
   A meteor tamed; a fixed star gone astray
   From the silver regions of the milky way;--                          _285
   Afar the Contadino's song is heard,
   Rude, but made sweet by distance--and a bird
   Which cannot be the Nightingale, and yet
   I know none else that sings so sweet as it
   At this late hour;--and then all is still--                          _290
   Now--Italy or London, which you will!
   
   Next winter you must pass with me; I'll have
   My house by that time turned into a grave
   Of dead despondence and low-thoughted care,
   And all the dreams which our tormentors are;                         _295
   Oh! that Hunt, Hogg, Peacock, and Smith were there,
   With everything belonging to them fair!--
   We will have books, Spanish, Italian, Greek;
   And ask one week to make another week
   As like his father, as I'm unlike mine,                              _300
   Which is not his fault, as you may divine.
   Though we eat little flesh and drink no wine,
   Yet let's be merry: we'll have tea and toast;
   Custards for supper, and an endless host
   Of syllabubs and jellies and mince-pies,                             _305
   And other such lady-like luxuries,--
   Feasting on which we will philosophize!
   And we'll have fires out of the Grand Duke's wood,
   To thaw the six weeks' winter in our blood.
   And then we'll talk;--what shall we talk about?                      _310
   Oh! there are themes enough for many a bout
   Of thought-entangled descant;--as to nerves--
   With cones and parallelograms and curves
   I've sworn to strangle them if once they dare
   To bother me--when you are with me there.                            _315
   And they shall never more sip laudanum,
   From Helicon or Himeros (1);--well, come,
   And in despite of God and of the devil,
   We'll make our friendly philosophic revel
   Outlast the leafless time; till buds and flowers                     _320
   Warn the obscure inevitable hours,
   Sweet meeting by sad parting to renew;--
   'To-morrow to fresh woods and pastures new.'
   
   NOTES:
   _13 must Bos. manuscript; most edition 1824.
   _27 philanthropic Bos. manuscript; philosophic edition 1824.
   _29 so 1839, 2nd edition; They owed... edition 1824.
   _36 Which fishers Bos. manuscript; Which fishes edition 1824;
       With fishes editions 1839.
   _38 rarely transcript; seldom editions 1824, 1839.
   _61 lava--cry]lava-cry editions 1824, 1839.
   _63 towers transcript; towns editions 1824, 1839.
   _84 queer Bos. manuscript; green transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
   _92 odd hooks transcript; old books editions 1839 (an evident misprint);
       old hooks edition 1824.
   _93 A]An edition 1824.
   _100 those transcript; them editions 1824, 1839.
   _101 lead Bos. manuscript; least transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
   _127 eye Bos. manuscript, transcript, editions 1839; age edition 1824.
   _140 knew Bos. manuscript; know transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
   _144 citing Bos. manuscript; acting transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
   _151 Feasts transcript; Treats editions 1824, 1839.
   _153 As well it]As it well editions 1824, 1839.
   _158 believe, and]believe; or editions 1824, 1839.
   _173 their transcript; the editions 1824, 1839.
   _188 aethereal transcript; aereal editions 1824, 1839.
   _197-201 See notes Volume 3.
   _202 Coleridge]C-- edition 1824. So too H--t l. 209; H-- l. 226;
        P-- l. 233; H.S. l. 250; H-- -- and -- l. 296.
   _205 lightning Bos. manuscript, transcript; lustre editions 1824, 1839.
   _224 read Bos. manuscript; said transcript, editions 1824, 1839.
   _244 time Bos. manuscript, transcript; age editions 1824, 1839.
   _245 the transcript: a editions 1824, 1839.
   _272, _273 found in the 2nd edition of P. W., 1839;
        wanting in transcript, edition 1824 and 1839, 1st. edition.
   _276 that transcript; who editions 1824, 1839.
   _288 the transcript; a editions 1824, 1839.
   _296 See notes Volume 3.
   _299, _300 So 1839, 2nd edition; wanting in editions 1824, 1839, 1st.
   _301 So transcript; wanting in editions 1824, 1839.
   _317 well, come 1839, 2nd edition; we'll come editions 1824, 1839. 1st.
   _318 despite of God] transcript; despite of... edition 1824;
        spite of... editions 1839.
   
   (_317 Imeros, from which the river Himera was named, is, with some
   slight shade of difference, a synonym of Love.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   
   ***
   
   
   THE WITCH OF ATLAS.
   
   [Composed at the Baths of San Giuliano, near Pisa, August 14-16, 1820;
   published in Posthumous Poems, edition Mrs. Shelley, 1824. The
   dedication To Mas-y first appeared in the Poetical Works, 1839, 1st
   edition Sources of the text are (1) the editio princeps, 1824; (2)
   editions 1839 (which agree, and, save in two instances, follow edition
   1824); (3) an early and incomplete manuscript in Shelley's handwriting
   (now at the Bodleian, here, as throughout, cited as B.), carefully
   collated by Mr. C.D. Locock, who printed the results in his
   Examination of the Shelley manuscripts, etc., Oxford, Clarendon Press,
   1903; (4) a later, yet intermediate, transcript by Mrs. Shelley, the
   variations of which are noted by Mr. H. Buxton Forman. The original
   text is modified in many places by variants from the manuscripts, but
   the readings of edition 1824 are, in every instance, given in the
   footnotes.]
   
   
   TO MARY
   (ON HER OBJECTING TO THE FOLLOWING POEM, UPON THE
   SCORE OF ITS CONTAINING NO HUMAN INTEREST).
   
   1.
   How, my dear Mary,--are you critic-bitten
   (For vipers kill, though dead) by some review,
   That you condemn these verses I have written,
   Because they tell no story, false or true?
   What, though no mice are caught by a young kitten,                   _5
   May it not leap and play as grown cats do,
   Till its claws come? Prithee, for this one time,
   Content thee with a visionary rhyme.
   
   2.
   What hand would crush the silken-winged fly,
   The youngest of inconstant April's minions,                          _10
   Because it cannot climb the purest sky,
   Where the swan sings, amid the sun's dominions?
   Not thine. Thou knowest 'tis its doom to die,
   When Day shall hide within her twilight pinions
   The lucent eyes, and the eternal smile,                              _15
   Serene as thine, which lent it life awhile.
   
   3.
   To thy fair feet a winged Vision came,
   Whose date should have been longer than a day,
   And o'er thy head did beat its wings for fame,
   And in thy sight its fading plumes display;                          _20
   The watery bow burned in the evening flame.
   But the shower fell, the swift Sun went his way--
   And that is dead.--O, let me not believe
   That anything of mine is fit to live!
   
   4.
   Wordsworth informs us he was nineteen years                          _25
   Considering and retouching Peter Bell;
   Watering his laurels with the killing tears
   Of slow, dull care, so that their roots to Hell
   Might pierce, and their wide branches blot the spheres
   Of Heaven, with dewy leaves and flowers; this well                   _30
   May be, for Heaven and Earth conspire to foil
   The over-busy gardener's blundering toil.
   
   5.
   My Witch indeed is not so sweet a creature
   As Ruth or Lucy, whom his graceful praise
   Clothes for our grandsons--but she matches Peter,                    _35
   Though he took nineteen years, and she three days
   In dressing. Light the vest of flowing metre
   She wears; he, proud as dandy with his stays,
   Has hung upon his wiry limbs a dress
   Like King Lear's 'looped and windowed raggedness.'                   _40
   
   6.
   If you strip Peter, you will see a fellow
   Scorched by Hell's hyperequatorial climate
   Into a kind of a sulphureous yellow:
   A lean mark, hardly fit to fling a rhyme at;
   In shape a Scaramouch, in hue Othello.                               _45
   If you unveil my Witch, no priest nor primate
   Can shrive you of that sin,--if sin there be
   In love, when it becomes idolatry.
   
   
   THE WITCH OF ATLAS.
   
   1.
   Before those cruel Twins, whom at one birth
   Incestuous Change bore to her father Time,                           _50
   Error and Truth, had hunted from the Earth
   All those bright natures which adorned its prime,
   And left us nothing to believe in, worth
   The pains of putting into learned rhyme,
   A lady-witch there lived on Atlas' mountain                          _55
   Within a cavern, by a secret fountain.
   
   2.
   Her mother was one of the Atlantides:
   The all-beholding Sun had ne'er beholden
   In his wide voyage o'er continents and seas
   So fair a creature, as she lay enfolden                              _60
   In the warm shadow of her loveliness;--
   He kissed her with his beams, and made all golden
   The chamber of gray rock in which she lay--
   She, in that dream of joy, dissolved away.
   
   3.
   'Tis said, she first was changed into a vapour,                      _65
   And then into a cloud, such clouds as flit,
   Like splendour-winged moths about a taper,
   Round the red west when the sun dies in it:
   And then into a meteor, such as caper
   On hill-tops when the moon is in a fit:                              _70
   Then, into one of those mysterious stars
   Which hide themselves between the Earth and Mars.
   
   4.
   Ten times the Mother of the Months had bent
   Her bow beside the folding-star, and bidden
   With that bright sign the billows to indent                          _75
   The sea-deserted sand--like children chidden,
   At her command they ever came and went--
   Since in that cave a dewy splendour hidden
   Took shape and motion: with the living form
   Of this embodied Power, the cave grew warm.                          _80
   
   5.
   A lovely lady garmented in light
   From her own beauty--deep her eyes, as are
   Two openings of unfathomable night
   Seen through a Temple's cloven roof--her hair
   Dark--the dim brain whirls dizzy with delight.                       _85
   Picturing her form; her soft smiles shone afar,
   And her low voice was heard like love, and drew
   All living things towards this wonder new.
   
   6.
   And first the spotted cameleopard came,
   And then the wise and fearless elephant;                             _90
   Then the sly serpent, in the golden flame
   Of his own volumes intervolved;--all gaunt
   And sanguine beasts her gentle looks made tame.
   They drank before her at her sacred fount;
   And every beast of beating heart grew bold,                          _95
   Such gentleness and power even to behold.
   
   7.
   The brinded lioness led forth her young,
   That she might teach them how they should forego
   Their inborn thirst of death; the pard unstrung
   His sinews at her feet, and sought to know                           _100
   With looks whose motions spoke without a tongue
   How he might be as gentle as the doe.
   The magic circle of her voice and eyes
   All savage natures did imparadise.
   
   8.
   And old Silenus, shaking a green stick                               _105
   Of lilies, and the wood-gods in a crew
   Came, blithe, as in the olive copses thick
   Cicadae are, drunk with the noonday dew:
   And Dryope and Faunus followed quick,
   Teasing the God to sing them something new;                          _110
   Till in this cave they found the lady lone,
   Sitting upon a seat of emerald stone.
   
   9.
   And universal Pan, 'tis said, was there,
   And though none saw him,--through the adamant
   Of the deep mountains, through the trackless air,                    _115
   And through those living spirits, like a want,
   He passed out of his everlasting lair
   Where the quick heart of the great world doth pant,
   And felt that wondrous lady all alone,--
   And she felt him, upon her emerald throne.                           _120
   
   10.
   And every nymph of stream and spreading tree,
   And every shepherdess of Ocean's flocks,
   Who drives her white waves over the green sea,
   And Ocean with the brine on his gray locks,
   And quaint Priapus with his company,                                 _125
   All came, much wondering how the enwombed rocks
   Could have brought forth so beautiful a birth;--
   Her love subdued their wonder and their mirth.
   
   11.
   The herdsmen and the mountain maidens came,
   And the rude kings of pastoral Garamant--                            _130
   Their spirits shook within them, as a flame
   Stirred by the air under a cavern gaunt:
   Pigmies, and Polyphemes, by many a name,
   Centaurs, and Satyrs, and such shapes as haunt
   Wet clefts,--and lumps neither alive nor dead,                       _135
   Dog-headed, bosom-eyed, and bird-footed.
   
   12.
   For she was beautiful--her beauty made
   The bright world dim, and everything beside
   Seemed like the fleeting image of a shade:
   No thought of living spirit could abide,                             _140
   Which to her looks had ever been betrayed,
   On any object in the world so wide,
   On any hope within the circling skies,
   But on her form, and in her inmost eyes.
   
   13.
   Which when the lady knew, she took her spindle                       _145
   And twined three threads of fleecy mist, and three
   Long lines of light, such as the dawn may kindle
   The clouds and waves and mountains with; and she
   As many star-beams, ere their lamps could dwindle
   In the belated moon, wound skilfully;                                _150
   And with these threads a subtle veil she wove--
   A shadow for the splendour of her love.
   
   14.
   The deep recesses of her odorous dwelling
   Were stored with magic treasures--sounds of air,
   Which had the power all spirits of compelling,                       _155
   Folded in cells of crystal silence there;
   Such as we hear in youth, and think the feeling
   Will never die--yet ere we are aware,
   The feeling and the sound are fled and gone,
   And the regret they leave remains alone.                             _160
   
   15.
   And there lay Visions swift, and sweet, and quaint,
   Each in its thin sheath, like a chrysalis,
   Some eager to burst forth, some weak and faint
   With the soft burthen of intensest bliss.
   It was its work to bear to many a saint                              _165
   Whose heart adores the shrine which holiest is,
   Even Love's:--and others white, green, gray, and black,
   And of all shapes--and each was at her beck.
   
   16.
   And odours in a kind of aviary
   Of ever-blooming Eden-trees she kept,                                _170
   Clipped in a floating net, a love-sick Fairy
   Had woven from dew-beams while the moon yet slept;
   As bats at the wired window of a dairy,
   They beat their vans; and each was an adept,
   When loosed and missioned, making wings of winds,                    _175
   To stir sweet thoughts or sad, in destined minds.
   
   17.
   And liquors clear and sweet, whose healthful might
   Could medicine the sick soul to happy sleep,
   And change eternal death into a night
   Of glorious dreams--or if eyes needs must weep,                      _180
   Could make their tears all wonder and delight,
   She in her crystal vials did closely keep:
   If men could drink of those clear vials, 'tis said
   The living were not envied of the dead.
   
   18.
   Her cave was stored with scrolls of strange device,                  _185
   The works of some Saturnian Archimage,
   Which taught the expiations at whose price
   Men from the Gods might win that happy age
   Too lightly lost, redeeming native vice;
   And which might quench the Earth-consuming rage                      _190
   Of gold and blood--till men should live and move
   Harmonious as the sacred stars above;
   
   19.
   And how all things that seem untameable,
   Not to be checked and not to be confined,
   Obey the spells of Wisdom's wizard skill;                            _195
   Time, earth, and fire--the ocean and the wind,
   And all their shapes--and man's imperial will;
   And other scrolls whose writings did unbind
   The inmost lore of Love--let the profane
   Tremble to ask what secrets they contain.                            _200
   
   20.
   And wondrous works of substances unknown,
   To which the enchantment of her father's power
   Had changed those ragged blocks of savage stone,
   Were heaped in the recesses of her bower;
   Carved lamps and chalices, and vials which shone                     _205
   In their own golden beams--each like a flower,
   Out of whose depth a fire-fly shakes his light
   Under a cypress in a starless night.
   
   21.
   At first she lived alone in this wild home,
   And her own thoughts were each a minister,                           _210
   Clothing themselves, or with the ocean foam,
   Or with the wind, or with the speed of fire,
   To work whatever purposes might come
   Into her mind; such power her mighty Sire
   Had girt them with, whether to fly or run,                           _215
   Through all the regions which he shines upon.
   
   22.
   The Ocean-nymphs and Hamadryades,
   Oreads and Naiads, with long weedy locks,
   Offered to do her bidding through the seas,
   Under the earth, and in the hollow rocks,                            _220
   And far beneath the matted roots of trees,
   And in the gnarled heart of stubborn oaks,
   So they might live for ever in the light
   Of her sweet presence--each a satellite.
   
   23.
   'This may not be,' the wizard maid replied;                          _225
   'The fountains where the Naiades bedew
   Their shining hair, at length are drained and dried;
   The solid oaks forget their strength, and strew
   Their latest leaf upon the mountains wide;
   The boundless ocean like a drop of dew                               _230
   Will be consumed--the stubborn centre must
   Be scattered, like a cloud of summer dust.
   
   24.
   'And ye with them will perish, one by one;--
   If I must sigh to think that this shall be,
   If I must weep when the surviving Sun                                _235
   Shall smile on your decay--oh, ask not me
   To love you till your little race is run;
   I cannot die as ye must--over me
   Your leaves shall glance--the streams in which ye dwell
   Shall be my paths henceforth, and so--farewell!'--                   _240
   
   25.
   She spoke and wept:--the dark and azure well
   Sparkled beneath the shower of her bright tears,
   And every little circlet where they fell
   Flung to the cavern-roof inconstant spheres
   And intertangled lines of light:--a knell                            _245
   Of sobbing voices came upon her ears
   From those departing Forms, o'er the serene
   Of the white streams and of the forest green.
   
   26.
   All day the wizard lady sate aloof,
   Spelling out scrolls of dread antiquity,                             _250
   Under the cavern's fountain-lighted roof;
   Or broidering the pictured poesy
   Of some high tale upon her growing woof,
   Which the sweet splendour of her smiles could dye
   In hues outshining heaven--and ever she                              _255
   Added some grace to the wrought poesy.
   
   27.
   While on her hearth lay blazing many a piece
   Of sandal wood, rare gums, and cinnamon;
   Men scarcely know how beautiful fire is--
   Each flame of it is as a precious stone                              _260
   Dissolved in ever-moving light, and this
   Belongs to each and all who gaze upon.
   The Witch beheld it not, for in her hand
   She held a woof that dimmed the burning brand.
   
   28.
   This lady never slept, but lay in trance                             _265
   All night within the fountain--as in sleep.
   Its emerald crags glowed in her beauty's glance;
   Through the green splendour of the water deep
   She saw the constellations reel and dance
   Like fire-flies--and withal did ever keep                            _270
   The tenour of her contemplations calm,
   With open eyes, closed feet, and folded palm.
   
   29.
   And when the whirlwinds and the clouds descended
   From the white pinnacles of that cold hill,
   She passed at dewfall to a space extended,                           _275
   Where in a lawn of flowering asphodel
   Amid a wood of pines and cedars blended,
   There yawned an inextinguishable well
   Of crimson fire--full even to the brim,
   And overflowing all the margin trim.                                 _280
   
   30.
   Within the which she lay when the fierce war
   Of wintry winds shook that innocuous liquor
   In many a mimic moon and bearded star
   O'er woods and lawns;--the serpent heard it flicker
   In sleep, and dreaming still, he crept afar--                        _285
   And when the windless snow descended thicker
   Than autumn leaves, she watched it as it came
   Melt on the surface of the level flame.
   
   31.
   She had a boat, which some say Vulcan wrought
   For Venus, as the chariot of her star;                               _290
   But it was found too feeble to be fraught
   With all the ardours in that sphere which are,
   And so she sold it, and Apollo bought
   And gave it to this daughter: from a car
   Changed to the fairest and the lightest boat                         _295
   Which ever upon mortal stream did float.
   
   32.
   And others say, that, when but three hours old,
   The first-born Love out of his cradle lept,
   And clove dun Chaos with his wings of gold,
   And like a horticultural adept,                                      _300
   Stole a strange seed, and wrapped it up in mould,
   And sowed it in his mother's star, and kept
   Watering it all the summer with sweet dew,
   And with his wings fanning it as it grew.
   
   33.
   The plant grew strong and green, the snowy flower                    _305
   Fell, and the long and gourd-like fruit began
   To turn the light and dew by inward power
   To its own substance; woven tracery ran
   Of light firm texture, ribbed and branching, o'er
   The solid rind, like a leaf's veined fan--                           _310
   Of which Love scooped this boat--and with soft motion
   Piloted it round the circumfluous ocean.
   
   34.
   This boat she moored upon her fount, and lit
   A living spirit within all its frame,
   Breathing the soul of swiftness into it.                             _315
   Couched on the fountain like a panther tame,
   One of the twain at Evan's feet that sit--
   Or as on Vesta's sceptre a swift flame--
   Or on blind Homer's heart a winged thought,--
   In joyous expectation lay the boat.                                  _320
   
   35.
   Then by strange art she kneaded fire and snow
   Together, tempering the repugnant mass
   With liquid love--all things together grow
   Through which the harmony of love can pass;
   And a fair Shape out of her hands did flow--                         _325
   A living Image, which did far surpass
   In beauty that bright shape of vital stone
   Which drew the heart out of Pygmalion.
   
   36.
   A sexless thing it was, and in its growth
   It seemed to have developed no defect                                _330
   Of either sex, yet all the grace of both,--
   In gentleness and strength its limbs were decked;
   The bosom swelled lightly with its full youth,
   The countenance was such as might __select__
   Some artist that his skill should never die,                         _335
   Imaging forth such perfect purity.
   
   37.
   From its smooth shoulders hung two rapid wings,
   Fit to have borne it to the seventh sphere,
   Tipped with the speed of liquid lightenings,
   Dyed in the ardours of the atmosphere:                               _340
   She led her creature to the boiling springs
   Where the light boat was moored, and said: 'Sit here!'
   And pointed to the prow, and took her seat
   Beside the rudder, with opposing feet.
   
   38.
   And down the streams which clove those mountains vast,               _345
   Around their inland islets, and amid
   The panther-peopled forests whose shade cast
   Darkness and odours, and a pleasure hid
   In melancholy gloom, the pinnace passed;
   By many a star-surrounded pyramid                                    _350
   Of icy crag cleaving the purple sky,
   And caverns yawning round unfathomably.
   
   39.
   The silver noon into that winding dell,
   With slanted gleam athwart the forest tops,
   Tempered like golden evening, feebly fell;                           _355
   A green and glowing light, like that which drops
   From folded lilies in which glow-worms dwell,
   When Earth over her face Night's mantle wraps;
   Between the severed mountains lay on high,
   Over the stream, a narrow rift of sky.                               _360
   
   40.
   And ever as she went, the Image lay
   With folded wings and unawakened eyes;
   And o'er its gentle countenance did play
   The busy dreams, as thick as summer flies,
   Chasing the rapid smiles that would not stay,                        _365
   And drinking the warm tears, and the sweet sighs
   Inhaling, which, with busy murmur vain,
   They had aroused from that full heart and brain.
   
   41.
   And ever down the prone vale, like a cloud
   Upon a stream of wind, the pinnace went:                             _370
   Now lingering on the pools, in which abode
   The calm and darkness of the deep content
   In which they paused; now o'er the shallow road
   Of white and dancing waters, all besprent
   With sand and polished pebbles:--mortal boat                         _375
   In such a shallow rapid could not float.
   
   42.
   And down the earthquaking cataracts which shiver
   Their snow-like waters into golden air,
   Or under chasms unfathomable ever
   Sepulchre them, till in their rage they tear                         _380
   A subterranean portal for the river,
   It fled--the circling sunbows did upbear
   Its fall down the hoar precipice of spray,
   Lighting it far upon its lampless way.
   
   43.
   And when the wizard lady would ascend                                _385
   The labyrinths of some many-winding vale,
   Which to the inmost mountain upward tend--
   She called 'Hermaphroditus!'--and the pale
   And heavy hue which slumber could extend
   Over its lips and eyes, as on the gale                               _390
   A rapid shadow from a slope of grass,
   Into the darkness of the stream did pass.
   
   44.
   And it unfurled its heaven-coloured pinions,
   With stars of fire spotting the stream below;
   And from above into the Sun's dominions                              _395
   Flinging a glory, like the golden glow
   In which Spring clothes her emerald-winged minions,
   All interwoven with fine feathery snow
   And moonlight splendour of intensest rime,
   With which frost paints the pines in winter time.                    _400
   
   45.
   And then it winnowed the Elysian air
   Which ever hung about that lady bright,
   With its aethereal vans--and speeding there,
   Like a star up the torrent of the night,
   Or a swift eagle in the morning glare                                _405
   Breasting the whirlwind with impetuous flight,
   The pinnace, oared by those enchanted wings,
   Clove the fierce streams towards their upper springs.
   
   46.
   The water flashed, like sunlight by the prow
   Of a noon-wandering meteor flung to Heaven;                          _410
   The still air seemed as if its waves did flow
   In tempest down the mountains; loosely driven
   The lady's radiant hair streamed to and fro:
   Beneath, the billows having vainly striven
   Indignant and impetuous, roared to feel                              _415
   The swift and steady motion of the keel.
   
   47.
   Or, when the weary moon was in the wane,
   Or in the noon of interlunar night,
   The lady-witch in visions could not chain
   Her spirit; but sailed forth under the light                         _420
   Of shooting stars, and bade extend amain
   Its storm-outspeeding wings, the Hermaphrodite;
   She to the Austral waters took her way,
   Beyond the fabulous Thamondocana,--
   
   48.
   Where, like a meadow which no scythe has shaven,                     _425
   Which rain could never bend, or whirl-blast shake,
   With the Antarctic constellations paven,
   Canopus and his crew, lay the Austral lake--
   There she would build herself a windless haven
   Out of the clouds whose moving turrets make                          _430
   The bastions of the storm, when through the sky
   The spirits of the tempest thundered by:
   
   49.
   A haven beneath whose translucent floor
   The tremulous stars sparkled unfathomably,
   And around which the solid vapours hoar,                             _435
   Based on the level waters, to the sky
   Lifted their dreadful crags, and like a shore
   Of wintry mountains, inaccessibly
   Hemmed in with rifts and precipices gray,
   And hanging crags, many a cove and bay.                              _440
   
   50.
   And whilst the outer lake beneath the lash
   Of the wind's scourge, foamed like a wounded thing,
   And the incessant hail with stony clash
   Ploughed up the waters, and the flagging wing
   Of the roused cormorant in the lightning flash                       _445
   Looked like the wreck of some wind-wandering
   Fragment of inky thunder-smoke--this haven
   Was as a gem to copy Heaven engraven,--
   
   51.
   On which that lady played her many pranks,
   Circling the image of a shooting star,                               _450
   Even as a tiger on Hydaspes' banks
   Outspeeds the antelopes which speediest are,
   In her light boat; and many quips and cranks
   She played upon the water, till the car
   Of the late moon, like a sick matron wan,                            _455
   To journey from the misty east began.
   
   52.
   And then she called out of the hollow turrets
   Of those high clouds, white, golden and vermilion,
   The armies of her ministering spirits--
   In mighty legions, million after million,                            _460
   They came, each troop emblazoning its merits
   On meteor flags; and many a proud pavilion
   Of the intertexture of the atmosphere
   They pitched upon the plain of the calm mere.
   
   53.
   They framed the imperial tent of their great Queen                   _465
   Of woven exhalations, underlaid
   With lambent lightning-fire, as may be seen
   A dome of thin and open ivory inlaid
   With crimson silk--cressets from the serene
   Hung there, and on the water for her tread                           _470
   A tapestry of fleece-like mist was strewn,
   Dyed in the beams of the ascending moon.
   
   54.
   And on a throne o'erlaid with starlight, caught
   Upon those wandering isles of aery dew,
   Which highest shoals of mountain shipwreck not,                      _475
   She sate, and heard all that had happened new
   Between the earth and moon, since they had brought
   The last intelligence--and now she grew
   Pale as that moon, lost in the watery night--
   And now she wept, and now she laughed outright.                      _480
   
   55.
   These were tame pleasures; she would often climb
   The steepest ladder of the crudded rack
   Up to some beaked cape of cloud sublime,
   And like Arion on the dolphin's back
   Ride singing through the shoreless air;--oft-time                    _485
   Following the serpent lightning's winding track,
   She ran upon the platforms of the wind,
   And laughed to bear the fire-balls roar behind.
   
   56.
   And sometimes to those streams of upper air
   Which whirl the earth in its diurnal round,                          _490
   She would ascend, and win the spirits there
   To let her join their chorus. Mortals found
   That on those days the sky was calm and fair,
   And mystic snatches of harmonious sound
   Wandered upon the earth where'er she passed,                         _495
   And happy thoughts of hope, too sweet to last.
   
   57.
   But her choice sport was, in the hours of sleep,
   To glide adown old Nilus, where he threads
   Egypt and Aethiopia, from the steep
   Of utmost Axume, until he spreads,                                   _500
   Like a calm flock of silver-fleeced sheep,
   His waters on the plain: and crested heads
   Of cities and proud temples gleam amid,
   And many a vapour-belted pyramid.
   
   58.
   By Moeris and the Mareotid lakes,                                    _505
   Strewn with faint blooms like bridal chamber floors,
   Where naked boys bridling tame water-snakes,
   Or charioteering ghastly alligators,
   Had left on the sweet waters mighty wakes
   Of those huge forms--within the brazen doors                         _510
   Of the great Labyrinth slept both boy and beast,
   Tired with the pomp of their Osirian feast.
   
   59.
   And where within the surface of the river
   The shadows of the massy temples lie,
   And never are erased--but tremble ever                               _515
   Like things which every cloud can doom to die,
   Through lotus-paven canals, and wheresoever
   The works of man pierced that serenest sky
   With tombs, and towers, and fanes, 'twas her delight
   To wander in the shadow of the night.                                _520
   
   60.
   With motion like the spirit of that wind
   Whose soft step deepens slumber, her light feet
   Passed through the peopled haunts of humankind.
   Scattering sweet visions from her presence sweet,
   Through fane, and palace-court, and labyrinth mined                  _525
   With many a dark and subterranean street
   Under the Nile, through chambers high and deep
   She passed, observing mortals in their sleep.
   
   61.
   A pleasure sweet doubtless it was to see
   Mortals subdued in all the shapes of sleep.                          _530
   Here lay two sister twins in infancy;
   There, a lone youth who in his dreams did weep;
   Within, two lovers linked innocently
   In their loose locks which over both did creep
   Like ivy from one stem;--and there lay calm                          _535
   Old age with snow-bright hair and folded palm.
   
   62.
   But other troubled forms of sleep she saw,
   Not to be mirrored in a holy song--
   Distortions foul of supernatural awe,
   And pale imaginings of visioned wrong;                               _540
   And all the code of Custom's lawless law
   Written upon the brows of old and young:
   'This,' said the wizard maiden, 'is the strife
   Which stirs the liquid surface of man's life.'
   
   63.
   And little did the sight disturb her soul.--                         _545
   We, the weak mariners of that wide lake
   Where'er its shores extend or billows roll,
   Our course unpiloted and starless make
   O'er its wild surface to an unknown goal:--
   But she in the calm depths her way could take,                       _550
   Where in bright bowers immortal forms abide
   Beneath the weltering of the restless tide.
   
   64.
   And she saw princes couched under the glow
   Of sunlike gems; and round each temple-court
   In dormitories ranged, row after row,                                _555
   She saw the priests asleep--all of one sort--
   For all were educated to be so.--
   The peasants in their huts, and in the port
   The sailors she saw cradled on the waves,
   And the dead lulled within their dreamless graves.                   _560
   
   65.
   And all the forms in which those spirits lay
   Were to her sight like the diaphanous
   Veils, in which those sweet ladies oft array
   Their delicate limbs, who would conceal from us
   Only their scorn of all concealment: they                            _565
   Move in the light of their own beauty thus.
   But these and all now lay with sleep upon them,
   And little thought a Witch was looking on them.
   
   66.
   She, all those human figures breathing there,
   Beheld as living spirits--to her eyes                                _570
   The naked beauty of the soul lay bare,
   And often through a rude and worn disguise
   She saw the inner form most bright and fair--
   And then she had a charm of strange device,
   Which, murmured on mute lips with tender tone,                       _575
   Could make that spirit mingle with her own.
   
   67.
   Alas! Aurora, what wouldst thou have given
   For such a charm when Tithon became gray?
   Or how much, Venus, of thy silver heaven
   Wouldst thou have yielded, ere Proserpina                            _580
   Had half (oh! why not all?) the debt forgiven
   Which dear Adonis had been doomed to pay,
   To any witch who would have taught you it?
   The Heliad doth not know its value yet.
   
   68.
   'Tis said in after times her spirit free                             _585
   Knew what love was, and felt itself alone--
   But holy Dian could not chaster be
   Before she stooped to kiss Endymion,
   Than now this lady--like a sexless bee
   Tasting all blossoms, and confined to none,                          _590
   Among those mortal forms, the wizard-maiden
   Passed with an eye serene and heart unladen.
   
   69.
   To those she saw most beautiful, she gave
   Strange panacea in a crystal bowl:--
   They drank in their deep sleep of that sweet wave,                   _595
   And lived thenceforward as if some control,
   Mightier than life, were in them; and the grave
   Of such, when death oppressed the weary soul,
   Was as a green and overarching bower
   Lit by the gems of many a starry flower.                             _600
   
   70.
   For on the night when they were buried, she
   Restored the embalmers' ruining, and shook
   The light out of the funeral lamps, to be
   A mimic day within that deathy nook;
   And she unwound the woven imagery                                    _605
   Of second childhood's swaddling bands, and took
   The coffin, its last cradle, from its niche,
   And threw it with contempt into a ditch.
   
   71.
   And there the body lay, age after age.
   Mute, breathing, beating, warm, and undecaying,                      _610
   Like one asleep in a green hermitage,
   With gentle smiles about its eyelids playing,
   And living in its dreams beyond the rage
   Of death or life; while they were still arraying
   In liveries ever new, the rapid, blind                               _615
   And fleeting generations of mankind.
   
   72.
   And she would write strange dreams upon the brain
   Of those who were less beautiful, and make
   All harsh and crooked purposes more vain
   Than in the desert is the serpent's wake                             _620
   Which the sand covers--all his evil gain
   The miser in such dreams would rise and shake
   Into a beggar's lap;--the lying scribe
   Would his own lies betray without a bribe.
   
   73.
   The priests would write an explanation full,                         _625
   Translating hieroglyphics into Greek,
   How the God Apis really was a bull,
   And nothing more; and bid the herald stick
   The same against the temple doors, and pull
   The old cant down; they licensed all to speak                        _630
   Whate'er they thought of hawks, and cats, and geese,
   By pastoral letters to each diocese.
   
   74.
   The king would dress an ape up in his crown
   And robes, and seat him on his glorious seat,
   And on the right hand of the sunlike throne                          _635
   Would place a gaudy mock-bird to repeat
   The chatterings of the monkey.--Every one
   Of the prone courtiers crawled to kiss the feet
   Of their great Emperor, when the morning came,
   And kissed--alas, how many kiss the same!                            _640
   
   75.
   The soldiers dreamed that they were blacksmiths, and
   Walked out of quarters in somnambulism;
   Round the red anvils you might see them stand
   Like Cyclopses in Vulcan's sooty abysm,
   Beating their swords to ploughshares;--in a band                     _645
   The gaolers sent those of the liberal schism
   Free through the streets of Memphis, much, I wis,
   To the annoyance of king Amasis.
   
   76.
   And timid lovers who had been so coy,
   They hardly knew whether they loved or not,                          _650
   Would rise out of their rest, and take sweet joy,
   To the fulfilment of their inmost thought;
   And when next day the maiden and the boy
   Met one another, both, like sinners caught,
   Blushed at the thing which each believed was done                    _655
   Only in fancy--till the tenth moon shone;
   
   77.
   And then the Witch would let them take no ill:
   Of many thousand schemes which lovers find,
   The Witch found one,--and so they took their fill
   Of happiness in marriage warm and kind.                              _660
   Friends who, by practice of some envious skill,
   Were torn apart--a wide wound, mind from mind!--
   She did unite again with visions clear
   Of deep affection and of truth sincere.
   
   80.
   These were the pranks she played among the cities                    _665
   Of mortal men, and what she did to Sprites
   And Gods, entangling them in her sweet ditties
   To do her will, and show their subtle sleights,
   I will declare another time; for it is
   A tale more fit for the weird winter nights                          _670
   Than for these garish summer days, when we
   Scarcely believe much more than we can see.
   
   NOTES:
   _2 dead]deaf cj. A.C. Bradley, who cps. "Adonais" 317.
   _65 first was transcript, B.; was first edition 1824.
   _84 Temple's transcript, B.; tempest's edition 1824.
   _165 was its transcript, B.; is its edition 1824.
   _184 envied so all manuscripts and editions;
        envious cj. James Thomson ('B. V.').
   _262 upon so all manuscripts and editions: thereon cj. Rossetti.
   _333 swelled lightly edition 1824, B.;
        lightly swelled editions 1839;
        swelling lightly with its full growth transcript.
   _339 lightenings B., editions 1839; lightnings edition 1824, transcript.
   _422 Its transcript; His edition 1824, B.
   _424 Thamondocana transcript, B.; Thamondocona edition 1824.
   _442 wind's transcript, B.; winds' edition 1834.
   _493 where transcript, B.; when edition 1824.
   _596 thenceforward B.;
        thence forth edition 1824; henceforward transcript.
   _599 Was as a B.; Was a edition 1824.
   _601 night when transcript; night that edition 1824, B.
   _612 smiles transcript, B.; sleep edition 1824.
   
   
   NOTE ON THE WITCH OF ATLAS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   We spent the summer of 1820 at the Baths of San Giuliano, four miles
   from Pisa. These baths were of great use to Shelley in soothing his
   nervous irritability. We made several excursions in the neighbourhood.
   The country around is fertile, and diversified and rendered
   picturesque by ranges of near hills and more distant mountains. The
   peasantry are a handsome intelligent race; and there was a gladsome
   sunny heaven spread over us, that rendered home and every scene we
   visited cheerful and bright. During some of the hottest days of
   August, Shelley made a solitary journey on foot to the summit of Monte
   San Pellegrino--a mountain of some height, on the top of which there
   is a chapel, the object, during certain days of the year, of many
   pilgrimages. The excursion delighted him while it lasted; though he
   exerted himself too much, and the effect was considerable lassitude
   and weakness on his return. During the expedition he conceived the
   idea, and wrote, in the three days immediately succeeding to his
   return, the "Witch of Atlas". This poem is peculiarly characteristic
   of his tastes--wildly fanciful, full of brilliant imagery, and
   discarding human interest and passion, to revel in the fantastic ideas
   that his imagination suggested.
   
   The surpassing excellence of "The Cenci" had made me greatly desire
   that Shelley should increase his popularity by adopting subjects that
   would more suit the popular taste than a poem conceived in the
   abstract and dreamy spirit of the "Witch of Atlas". It was not only
   that I wished him to acquire popularity as redounding to his fame; but
   I believed that he would obtain a greater mastery over his own powers,
   and greater happiness in his mind, if public applause crowned his
   endeavours. The few stanzas that precede the poem were addressed to me
   on my representing these ideas to him. Even now I believe that I was
   in the right. Shelley did not expect sympathy and approbation from the
   public; but the want of it took away a portion of the ardour that
   ought to have sustained him while writing. He was thrown on his own
   resources, and on the inspiration of his own soul; and wrote because
   his mind overflowed, without the hope of being appreciated. I had not
   the most distant wish that he should truckle in opinion, or submit his
   lofty aspirations for the human race to the low ambition and pride of
   the many; but I felt sure that, if his poems were more addressed to
   the common feelings of men, his proper rank among the writers of the
   day would be acknowledged, and that popularity as a poet would enable
   his countrymen to do justice to his character and virtues, which in
   those days it was the mode to attack with the most flagitious
   calumnies and insulting abuse. That he felt these things deeply cannot
   be doubted, though he armed himself with the consciousness of acting
   from a lofty and heroic sense of right. The truth burst from his heart
   sometimes in solitude, and he would writes few unfinished verses that
   showed that he felt the sting; among such I find the following:--
   
   'Alas! this is not what I thought Life was.
   I knew that there were crimes and evil men,
   Misery and hate; nor did I hope to pass
   Untouched by suffering through the rugged glen.
   In mine own heart I saw as in a glass
   The hearts of others...And, when
   I went among my kind, with triple brass
   Of calm endurance my weak breast I armed,
   To bear scorn, fear, and hate--a woful mass!'
   
   I believed that all this morbid feeling would vanish if the chord of
   sympathy between him and his countrymen were touched. But my
   persuasions were vain, the mind could not be bent from its natural
   inclination. Shelley shrunk instinctively from portraying human
   passion, with its mixture of good and evil, of disappointment and
   disquiet. Such opened again the wounds of his own heart; and he loved
   to shelter himself rather in the airiest flights of fancy, forgetting
   love and hate, and regret and lost hope, in such imaginations as
   borrowed their hues from sunrise or sunset, from the yellow moonshine
   or paly twilight, from the aspect of the far ocean or the shadows of
   the woods,--which celebrated the singing of the winds among the pines,
   the flow of a murmuring stream, and the thousand harmonious sounds
   which Nature creates in her solitudes. These are the materials which
   form the "Witch of Atlas": it is a brilliant congregation of ideas
   such as his senses gathered, and his fancy coloured, during his
   rambles in the sunny land he so much loved.
   
   ***
   
   
   OEDIPUS TYRANNUS
   
   OR
   
   SWELLFOOT THE TYRANT.
   
   A TRAGEDY IN TWO ACTS
   
   TRANSLATED FROM THE ORIGINAL DORIC.
   
   'Choose Reform or Civil War,
   When through thy streets, instead of hare with dogs,
   A CONSORT-QUEEN shall hunt a king with hogs,
   Riding on the IONIAN MINOTAUR.'
   
   [Begun at the Baths of San Giuliano, near Pisa, August 24, 1819;
   published anonymously by J. Johnston, Cheapside (imprint C.F.
   Seyfang), 1820. On a threat of prosecution the publisher surrendered
   the whole impression, seven copies--the total number sold--excepted.
   "Oedipus" does not appear in the first edition of the "Poetical
   Works", 1839, but it was included by Mrs. Shelley in the second
   edition of that year. Our text is that of the editio princeps, 1820,
   save in three places, where the reading of edition 1820 will be found
   in the notes.]
   
   ADVERTISEMENT.
   
   This Tragedy is one of a triad, or system of three Plays (an
   arrangement according to which the Greeks were accustomed to connect
   their dramatic representations), elucidating the wonderful and
   appalling fortunes of the SWELLFOOT dynasty. It was evidently written
   by some LEARNED THEBAN, and, from its characteristic dulness,
   apparently before the duties on the importation of ATTIC SALT had been
   repealed by the Boeotarchs. The tenderness with which he treats the
   PIGS proves him to have been a sus Boeotiae; possibly Epicuri de grege
   porcus; for, as the poet observes,
   
   'A fellow feeling makes us wondrous kind.'
   
   No liberty has been taken with the translation of this remarkable
   piece of antiquity, except the suppressing a seditious and blasphemous
   Chorus of the Pigs and Bulls at the last Act. The work Hoydipouse (or
   more properly Oedipus) has been rendered literally SWELLFOOT, without
   its having been conceived necessary to determine whether a swelling of
   the hind or the fore feet of the Swinish Monarch is particularly
   indicated.
   
   Should the remaining portions of this Tragedy be found, entitled,
   "Swellfoot in Angaria", and "Charite", the Translator might be tempted
   to give them to the reading Public.
   
   DRAMATIS PERSONAE.
   
   TYRANT SWELLFOOT, KING OF THEBES.
   IONA TAURINA, HIS QUEEN.
   MAMMON, ARCH-PRIEST OF FAMINE.
   PURGANAX, DAKRY, LAOCTONOS--WIZARDS, MINISTERS OF SWELLFOOT.
   THE GADFLY.
   THE LEECH.
   THE RAT.
   MOSES, THE SOW-GELDER.
   SOLOMON, THE PORKMAN.
   ZEPHANIAH, PIG-BUTCHER.
   THE MINOTAUR.
   CHORUS OF THE SWINISH MULTITUDE.
   GUARDS, ATTENDANTS, PRIESTS, ETC., ETC.
   
   SCENE.--THEBES.
   
   ACT 1.
   
   SCENE 1.1.--A MAGNIFICENT TEMPLE, BUILT OF THIGH-BONES AND
   DEATH'S-HEADS, AND TILED WITH SCALPS. OVER THE ALTAR THE STATUE OF
   FAMINE, VEILED; A NUMBER OF BOARS, SOWS, AND SUCKING-PIGS, CROWNED
   WITH THISTLE, SHAMROCK, AND OAK, SITTING ON THE STEPS, AND CLINGING
   ROUND THE ALTAR OF THE TEMPLE.
   
   ENTER SWELLFOOT, IN HIS ROYAL ROBES, WITHOUT PERCEIVING THE PIGS.
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Thou supreme Goddess! by whose power divine
   These graceful limbs are clothed in proud array
   [HE CONTEMPLATES HIMSELF WITH SATISFACTION.]
   Of gold and purple, and this kingly paunch
   Swells like a sail before a favouring breeze,
   And these most sacred nether promontories                            _5
   Lie satisfied with layers of fat; and these
   Boeotian cheeks, like Egypt's pyramid,
   (Nor with less toil were their foundations laid),
   Sustain the cone of my untroubled brain,
   That point, the emblem of a pointless nothing!                       _10
   Thou to whom Kings and laurelled Emperors,
   Radical-butchers, Paper-money-millers,
   Bishops and Deacons, and the entire army
   Of those fat martyrs to the persecution
   Of stifling turtle-soup, and brandy-devils,                          _15
   Offer their secret vows! Thou plenteous Ceres
   Of their Eleusis, hail!
   
   NOTE:
   (_8 See Universal History for an account of the number of people who
   died, and the immense consumption of garlic by the wretched Egyptians,
   who made a sepulchre for the name as well as the bodies of their
   tyrants.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   SWINE:
   Eigh! eigh! eigh! eigh!
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Ha! what are ye,
   Who, crowned with leaves devoted to the Furies,
   Cling round this sacred shrine?
   
   SWINE:
   Aigh! aigh! aigh!
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   What! ye that are
   The very beasts that, offered at her altar                           _20
   With blood and groans, salt-cake, and fat, and inwards,
   Ever propitiate her reluctant will
   When taxes are withheld?
   
   SWINE:
   Ugh! ugh! ugh!
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   What! ye who grub
   With filthy snouts my red potatoes up
   In Allan's rushy bog? Who eat the oats                               _25
   Up, from my cavalry in the Hebrides?
   Who swill the hog-wash soup my cooks digest
   From bones, and rags, and scraps of shoe-leather,
   Which should be given to cleaner Pigs than you?
   
   SWINE--SEMICHORUS 1:
   The same, alas! the same;                                            _30
   Though only now the name
   Of Pig remains to me.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   If 'twere your kingly will
   Us wretched Swine to kill,
   What should we yield to thee?                                        _35
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Why, skin and bones, and some few hairs for mortar.
   
   CHORUS OF SWINE:
   I have heard your Laureate sing,
   That pity was a royal thing;
   Under your mighty ancestors, we Pigs
   Were bless'd as nightingales on myrtle sprigs,                       _40
   Or grasshoppers that live on noonday dew,
   And sung, old annals tell, as sweetly too;
   But now our sties are fallen in, we catch
   The murrain and the mange, the scab and itch;
   Sometimes your royal dogs tear down our thatch,                      _45
   And then we seek the shelter of a ditch;
   Hog-wash or grains, or ruta-baga, none
   Has yet been ours since your reign begun.
   
   FIRST SOW:
   My Pigs, 'tis in vain to tug.
   
   SECOND SOW:
   I could almost eat my litter.                                        _50
   
   FIRST PIG:
   I suck, but no milk will come from the dug.
   
   SECOND PIG:
   Our skin and our bones would be bitter.
   
   THE BOARS:
   We fight for this rag of greasy rug,
   Though a trough of wash would be fitter.
   
   SEMICHORUS:
   Happier Swine were they than we,                                     _55
   Drowned in the Gadarean sea--
   I wish that pity would drive out the devils,
   Which in your royal bosom hold their revels,
   And sink us in the waves of thy compassion!
   Alas! the Pigs are an unhappy nation!                                _60
   Now if your Majesty would have our bristles
   To bind your mortar with, or fill our colons
   With rich blood, or make brawn out of our gristles,
   In policy--ask else your royal Solons--
   You ought to give us hog-wash and clean straw,                       _65
   And sties well thatched; besides it is the law!
   
   NOTE:
   _59 thy edition 1820; your edition 1839.
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   This is sedition, and rank blasphemy!
   Ho! there, my guards!
   
   [ENTER A GUARD.]
   
   GUARD:
   Your sacred Majesty.
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Call in the Jews, Solomon the court porkman,
   Moses the sow-gelder, and Zephaniah                                  _70
   The hog-butcher.
   
   GUARD:
   They are in waiting, Sire.
   
   [ENTER SOLOMON, MOSES, AND ZEPHANIAH.]
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Out with your knife, old Moses, and spay those Sows
   [THE PIGS RUN ABOUT IN CONSTERNATION.]
   That load the earth with Pigs; cut close and deep.
   Moral restraint I see has no effect,
   Nor prostitution, nor our own example,                               _75
   Starvation, typhus-fever, war, nor prison--
   This was the art which the arch-priest of Famine
   Hinted at in his charge to the Theban clergy--
   Cut close and deep, good Moses.
   
   MOSES:
   Let your Majesty
   Keep the Boars quiet, else--
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Zephaniah, cut                                                       _80
   That fat Hog's throat, the brute seems overfed;
   Seditious hunks! to whine for want of grains.
   
   ZEPHANIAH:
   Your sacred Majesty, he has the dropsy;--
   We shall find pints of hydatids in 's liver,
   He has not half an inch of wholesome fat                             _85
   Upon his carious ribs--
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   'Tis all the same,
   He'll serve instead of riot money, when
   Our murmuring troops bivouac in Thebes' streets
   And January winds, after a day
   Of butchering, will make them relish carrion.                        _90
   Now, Solomon, I'll sell you in a lump
   The whole kit of them.
   
   SOLOMON:
   Why, your Majesty,
   I could not give--
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Kill them out of the way,
   That shall be price enough, and let me hear
   Their everlasting grunts and whines no more!                         _95
   
   [EXEUNT, DRIVING IN THE SWINE.
   ENTER MAMM0N, THE ARCH-PRIEST,
   AND PURGANAX, CHIEF OF THE COUNCIL OF WIZARDS.]
   
   PURGANAX:
   The future looks as black as death, a cloud,
   Dark as the frown of Hell, hangs over it--
   The troops grow mutinous--the revenue fails--
   There's something rotten in us--for the level                        _100
   Of the State slopes, its very bases topple,
   The boldest turn their backs upon themselves!
   
   MAMMON:
   Why what's the matter, my dear fellow, now?
   Do the troops mutiny?--decimate some regiments;
   Does money fail?--come to my mint--coin paper,
   Till gold be at a discount, and ashamed                              _105
   To show his bilious face, go purge himself,
   In emulation of her vestal whiteness.
   
   PURGANAX:
   Oh, would that this were all! The oracle!!
   
   MAMMON:
   Why it was I who spoke that oracle,
   And whether I was dead drunk or inspired,                            _110
   I cannot well remember; nor, in truth,
   The oracle itself!
   
   PURGANAX:
   The words went thus:--
   'Boeotia, choose reform or civil war!
   When through the streets, instead of hare with dogs,
   A Consort Queen shall hunt a King with Hogs,                         _115
   Riding on the Ionian Minotaur.'
   
   MAMMON:
   Now if the oracle had ne'er foretold
   This sad alternative, it must arrive,
   Or not, and so it must now that it has;
   And whether I was urged by grace divine                              _120
   Or Lesbian liquor to declare these words,
   Which must, as all words must, he false or true,
   It matters not: for the same Power made all,
   Oracle, wine, and me and you--or none--
   'Tis the same thing. If you knew as much                             _125
   Of oracles as I do--
   
   PURGANAX:
   You arch-priests
   Believe in nothing; if you were to dream
   Of a particular number in the Lottery,
   You would not buy the ticket?
   
   MAMMON:
   Yet our tickets
   Are seldom blanks. But what steps have you taken?                    _130
   For prophecies, when once they get abroad,
   Like liars who tell the truth to serve their ends,
   Or hypocrites who, from assuming virtue,
   Do the same actions that the virtuous do,
   Contrive their own fulfilment. This Iona--                           _135
   Well--you know what the chaste Pasiphae did,
   Wife to that most religious King of Crete,
   And still how popular the tale is here;
   And these dull Swine of Thebes boast their descent
   From the free Minotaur. You know they still                          _140
   Call themselves Bulls, though thus degenerate,
   And everything relating to a Bull
   Is popular and respectable in Thebes.
   Their arms are seven Bulls in a field gules;
   They think their strength consists in eating beef,--                 _145
   Now there were danger in the precedent
   If Queen Iona--
   
   NOTES:
   _114 the edition 1820; thy cj. Forman;
        cf. Motto below Title, and II. i, 153-6. ticket? edition 1820;
        ticket! edition 1839.
   _135 their own Mrs. Shelley, later editions;
        their editions 1820 and 1839.
   
   PURGANAX:
   I have taken good care
   That shall not be. I struck the crust o' the earth
   With this enchanted rod, and Hell lay bare!
   And from a cavern full of ugly shapes                                _150
   I chose a LEECH, a GADFLY, and a RAT.
   The Gadfly was the same which Juno sent
   To agitate Io, and which Ezekiel mentions
   That the Lord whistled for out of the mountains
   Of utmost Aethiopia, to torment                                      _155
   Mesopotamian Babylon. The beast
   Has a loud trumpet like the scarabee,
   His crooked tail is barbed with many stings,
   Each able to make a thousand wounds, and each
   Immedicable; from his convex eyes                                    _160
   He sees fair things in many hideous shapes,
   And trumpets all his falsehood to the world.
   Like other beetles he is fed on dung--
   He has eleven feet with which he crawls,
   Trailing a blistering slime, and this foul beast                     _165
   Has tracked Iona from the Theban limits,
   From isle to isle, from city unto city,
   Urging her flight from the far Chersonese
   To fabulous Solyma, and the Aetnean Isle,
   Ortygia, Melite, and Calypso's Rock,                                 _170
   And the swart tribes of Garamant and Fez,
   Aeolia and Elysium, and thy shores,
   Parthenope, which now, alas! are free!
   And through the fortunate Saturnian land,
   Into the darkness of the West.
   
   NOTES:
   (_153 (Io) The Promethetes Bound of Aeschylus.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   (_153 (Ezekiel) And the Lord whistled for the gadfly out of Aethiopia,
   and for the bee of Egypt, etc.--EZEKIEL.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   MAMMON:
   But if                                                               _175
   This Gadfly should drive Iona hither?
   
   PURGANAX:
   Gods! what an IF! but there is my gray RAT:
   So thin with want, he can crawl in and out
   Of any narrow chink and filthy hole,
   And he shall creep into her dressing-room,                           _180
   And--
   
   MAMMON:
   My dear friend, where are your wits? as if
   She does not always toast a piece of cheese
   And bait the trap? and rats, when lean enough
   To crawl through SUCH chinks--
   
   PURGANAX:
   But my LEECH--a leech
   Fit to suck blood, with lubricous round rings,                       _185
   Capaciously expatiative, which make
   His little body like a red balloon,
   As full of blood as that of hydrogen,
   Sucked from men's hearts; insatiably he sucks
   And clings and pulls--a horse-leech, whose deep maw                  _190
   The plethoric King Swellfoot could not fill,
   And who, till full, will cling for ever.
   
   MAMMON:
   This
   For Queen Jona would suffice, and less;
   But 'tis the Swinish multitude I fear,
   And in that fear I have--
   
   PURGANAX:
   Done what?
   
   MAMMON:
   Disinherited                                                         _195
   My eldest son Chrysaor, because he
   Attended public meetings, and would always
   Stand prating there of commerce, public faith,
   Economy, and unadulterate coin,
   And other topics, ultra-radical;                                     _200
   And have entailed my estate, called the Fool's Paradise,
   And funds in fairy-money, bonds, and bills,
   Upon my accomplished daughter Banknotina,
   And married her to the gallows. [1]
   
   NOTE:
   (_204 'If one should marry a gallows, and beget young gibbets, I never
   saw one so prone.--CYMBELINE.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   
   PURGANAX:
   A good match!
   
   MAMMON:
   A high connexion, Purganax. The bridegroom                           _205
   Is of a very ancient family,
   Of Hounslow Heath, Tyburn, and the New Drop,
   And has great influence in both Houses;--oh!
   He makes the fondest husband; nay, TOO fond,--
   New-married people should not kiss in public;                        _210
   But the poor souls love one another so!
   And then my little grandchildren, the gibbets,
   Promising children as you ever saw,--
   The young playing at hanging, the elder learning
   How to hold radicals. They are well taught too,                      _215
   For every gibbet says its catechism
   And reads a __select__ chapter in the Bible
   Before it goes to play.
   
   [A MOST TREMENDOUS HUMMING IS HEARD.]
   
   PURGANAX:
   Ha! what do I hear?
   
   [ENTER THE GADFLY.]
   
   MAMMON:
   Your Gadfly, as it seems, is tired of gadding.
   
   GADFLY:
   Hum! hum! hum!                                                       _220
   From the lakes of the Alps, and the cold gray scalps
   Of the mountains, I come!
   Hum! hum! hum!
   From Morocco and Fez, and the high palaces
   Of golden Byzantium;                                                 _225
   From the temples divine of old Palestine,
   From Athens and Rome,
   With a ha! and a hum!
   I come! I come!
   
   All inn-doors and windows                                            _230
   Were open to me:
   I saw all that sin does,
   Which lamps hardly see
   That burn in the night by the curtained bed,--
   The impudent lamps! for they blushed not red,                        _235
   Dinging and singing,
   From slumber I rung her,
   Loud as the clank of an ironmonger;
   Hum! hum! hum!
   
   Far, far, far!                                                       _240
   With the trump of my lips, and the sting at my hips,
   I drove her--afar!
   Far, far, far!
   From city to city, abandoned of pity,
   A ship without needle or star;--                                     _245
   Homeless she passed, like a cloud on the blast,
   Seeking peace, finding war;--
   She is here in her car,
   From afar, and afar;--
   Hum! hum!                                                            _250
   
   I have stung her and wrung her,
   The venom is working;--
   And if you had hung her
   With canting and quirking,
   She could not be deader than she will be soon;--                     _255
   I have driven her close to you, under the moon,
   Night and day, hum! hum! ha!
   I have hummed her and drummed her
   From place to place, till at last I have dumbed her,
   Hum! hum! hum!                                                       _260
   
   NOTE:
   _260 Edd. 1820, 1839 have no stage direction after this line.
   
   [ENTER THE LEECH AND THE RAT.]
   
   LEECH:
   I will suck
   Blood or muck!
   The disease of the state is a plethory,
   Who so fit to reduce it as I?
   
   RAT:
   I'll slily seize and                                                 _265
   Let blood from her weasand,--
   Creeping through crevice, and chink, and cranny,
   With my snaky tail, and my sides so scranny.
   
   PURGANAX:
   Aroint ye! thou unprofitable worm!
   [TO THE LEECH.]
   And thou, dull beetle, get thee back to hell!                        _270
   [TO THE GADFLY.]
   To sting the ghosts of Babylonian kings,
   And the ox-headed Io--
   
   SWINE (WITHIN):
   Ugh, ugh, ugh!
   Hail! Iona the divine,
   We will be no longer Swine,
   But Bulls with horns and dewlaps.
   
   RAT:
   For,                                                                 _275
   You know, my lord, the Minotaur--
   
   PURGANAX (FIERCELY):
   Be silent! get to hell! or I will call
   The cat out of the kitchen. Well, Lord Mammon,
   This is a pretty business.
   
   [EXIT THE RAT.]
   
   MAMMON:
   I will go
   And spell some scheme to make it ugly then.--                        _280
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   [ENTER SWELLFOOT.]
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   She is returned! Taurina is in Thebes,
   When Swellfoot wishes that she were in hell!
   Oh, Hymen, clothed in yellow jealousy,
   And waving o'er the couch of wedded kings
   The torch of Discord with its fiery hair;                            _285
   This is thy work, thou patron saint of queens!
   Swellfoot is wived! though parted by the sea,
   The very name of wife had conjugal rights;
   Her cursed image ate, drank, slept with me,
   And in the arms of Adiposa oft 290
   Her memory has received a husband's--
   [A LOUD TUMULT, AND CRIES OF 'IONA FOR EVER --NO SWELLFOOT!']
   Hark!
   How the Swine cry Iona Taurina;
   I suffer the real presence; Purganax,
   Off with her head!
   
   PURGANAX:
   But I must first impanel
   A jury of the Pigs.
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Pack them then.                                                      _295
   
   PURGANAX:
   Or fattening some few in two separate sties.
   And giving them clean straw, tying some bits
   Of ribbon round their legs--giving their Sows
   Some tawdry lace, and bits of lustre glass,
   And their young Boars white and red rags, and tails                  _300
   Of cows, and jay feathers, and sticking cauliflowers
   Between the ears of the old ones; and when
   They are persuaded, that by the inherent virtue
   Of these things, they are all imperial Pigs,
   Good Lord! they'd rip each other's bellies up,                       _305
   Not to say, help us in destroying her.
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   This plan might be tried too;--where's General Laoctonos?
   [ENTER LAOCTONOS AND DAKRY.]
   It is my royal pleasure
   That you, Lord General, bring the head and body,
   If separate it would please me better, hither                        _310
   Of Queen Iona.
   
   LAOCTONOS:
   That pleasure I well knew,
   And made a charge with those battalions bold,
   Called, from their dress and grin, the royal apes,
   Upon the Swine, who in a hollow square
   Enclosed her, and received the first attack                          _315
   Like so many rhinoceroses, and then
   Retreating in good order, with bare tusks
   And wrinkled snouts presented to the foe,
   Bore her in triumph to the public sty.
   What is still worse, some Sows upon the ground                       _320
   Have given the ape-guards apples, nuts, and gin,
   And they all whisk their tails aloft, and cry,
   'Long live Iona! down with Swellfoot!'
   
   PURGANAX:
   Hark!
   
   THE SWINE (WITHOUT):
   Long live Iona! down with Swellfoot!
   
   DAKRY:
   I
   Went to the garret of the swineherd's tower,                         _325
   Which overlooks the sty, and made a long
   Harangue (all words) to the assembled Swine,
   Of delicacy mercy, judgement, law,
   Morals, and precedents, and purity,
   Adultery, destitution, and divorce,                                  _330
   Piety, faith, and state necessity,
   And how I loved the Queen!--and then I wept
   With the pathos of my own eloquence,
   And every tear turned to a mill-stone, which
   Brained many a gaping Pig, and there was made                        _335
   A slough of blood and brains upon the place,
   Greased with the pounded bacon; round and round
   The mill-stones rolled, ploughing the pavement up,
   And hurling Sucking-Pigs into the air,
   With dust and stones.--
   
   [ENTER MAMMON.]
   
   MAMMON:
   I wonder that gray wizards                                           _340
   Like you should be so beardless in their schemes;
   It had been but a point of policy
   To keep Iona and the Swine apart.
   Divide and rule! but ye have made a junction
   Between two parties who will govern you                              _345
   But for my art.--Behold this BAG! it is
   The poison BAG of that Green Spider huge,
   On which our spies skulked in ovation through
   The streets of Thebes, when they were paved with dead:
   A bane so much the deadlier fills it now                             _350
   As calumny is worse than death,--for here
   The Gadfly's venom, fifty times distilled,
   Is mingled with the vomit of the Leech,
   In due proportion, and black ratsbane, which
   That very Rat, who, like the Pontic tyrant,                          _355
   Nurtures himself on poison, dare not touch;--
   All is sealed up with the broad seal of Fraud,
   Who is the Devil's Lord High Chancellor,
   And over it the Primate of all Hell
   Murmured this pious baptism:--'Be thou called                        _360
   The GREEN BAG; and this power and grace be thine:
   That thy contents, on whomsoever poured,
   Turn innocence to guilt, and gentlest looks
   To savage, foul, and fierce deformity.
   Let all baptized by thy infernal dew                                 _365
   Be called adulterer, drunkard, liar, wretch!
   No name left out which orthodoxy loves,
   Court Journal or legitimate Review!--
   Be they called tyrant, beast, fool, glutton, lover
   Of other wives and husbands than their own--                         _370
   The heaviest sin on this side of the Alps!
   Wither they to a ghastly caricature
   Of what was human!--let not man or beast
   Behold their face with unaverted eyes!
   Or hear their names with ears that tingle not                        _375
   With blood of indignation, rage, and shame!'--
   This is a perilous liquor;--good my Lords.--
   [SWELLFOOT APPROACHES TO TOUCH THE GREEN BAG.]
   Beware! for God's sake, beware!-if you should break
   The seal, and touch the fatal liquor--
   
   NOTE:
   _373 or edition 1820; nor edition 1839.
   
   PURGANAX:
   There,
   Give it to me. I have been used to handle                            _380
   All sorts of poisons. His dread Majesty
   Only desires to see the colour of it.
   
   MAMMON:
   Now, with a little common sense, my Lords,
   Only undoing all that has been done
   (Yet so as it may seem we but confirm it),                           _385
   Our victory is assured. We must entice
   Her Majesty from the sty, and make the Pigs
   Believe that the contents of the GREEN BAG
   Are the true test of guilt or innocence.
   And that, if she be guilty, 'twill transform her                     _390
   To manifest deformity like guilt.
   If innocent, she will become transfigured
   Into an angel, such as they say she is;
   And they will see her flying through the air,
   So bright that she will dim the noonday sun;                         _395
   Showering down blessings in the shape of comfits.
   This, trust a priest, is just the sort of thing
   Swine will believe. I'll wager you will see them
   Climbing upon the thatch of their low sties,
   With pieces of smoked glass, to watch her sail                       _400
   Among the clouds, and some will hold the flaps
   Of one another's ears between their teeth,
   To catch the coming hail of comfits in.
   You, Purganax, who have the gift o' the gab,
   Make them a solemn speech to this effect:                            _405
   I go to put in readiness the feast
   Kept to the honour of our goddess Famine,
   Where, for more glory, let the ceremony
   Take place of the uglification of the Queen.
   
   DAKRY (TO SWELLFOOT):
   I, as the keeper of your sacred conscience,                          _410
   Humbly remind your Majesty that the care
   Of your high office, as Man-milliner
   To red Bellona, should not be deferred.
   
   PURGANAX:
   All part, in happier plight to meet again.
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   END OF THE ACT 1.
   
   
   ACT 2.
   
   SCENE 1.2:
   THE PUBLIC STY.
   THE B0ARS IN FULL ASSEMBLY.
   ENTER PUEGANAX.
   
   PURGANAX:
   Grant me your patience, Gentlemen and Boars,
   Ye, by whose patience under public burthens
   The glorious constitution of these sties
   Subsists, and shall subsist. The Lean-Pig rates
   Grow with the growing populace of Swine,                             _5
   The taxes, that true source of Piggishness
   (How can I find a more appropriate term
   To include religion, morals, peace, and plenty,
   And all that fit Boeotia as a nation
   To teach the other nations how to live?),                            _10
   Increase with Piggishness itself; and still
   Does the revenue, that great spring of all
   The patronage, and pensions, and by-payments,
   Which free-born Pigs regard with jealous eyes,
   Diminish, till at length, by glorious steps,                         _15
   All the land's produce will be merged in taxes,
   And the revenue will amount to--nothing!
   The failure of a foreign market for
   Sausages, bristles, and blood-puddings,
   And such home manufactures, is but partial;                          _20
   And, that the population of the Pigs,
   Instead of hog-wash, has been fed on straw
   And water, is a fact which is--you know--
   That is--it is a state-necessity--
   Temporary, of course. Those impious Pigs,                            _25
   Who, by frequent squeaks, have dared impugn
   The settled Swellfoot system, or to make
   Irreverent mockery of the genuflexions
   Inculcated by the arch-priest, have been whipped
   Into a loyal and an orthodox whine.                                  _30
   Things being in this happy state, the Queen
   Iona--
   
   NOTE:
   _16 land's]lands edition 1820.
   
   A LOUD CRY FROM THE PIGS:
   She is innocent! most innocent!
   
   PURGANAX:
   That is the very thing that I was saying,
   Gentlemen Swine; the Queen Iona being
   Most innocent, no doubt, returns to Thebes,                          _35
   And the lean Sows and Bears collect about her,
   Wishing to make her think that WE believe
   (I mean those more substantial Pigs, who swill
   Rich hog-wash, while the others mouth damp straw)
   That she is guilty; thus, the Lean-Pig faction                       _40
   Seeks to obtain that hog-wash, which has been
   Your immemorial right, and which I will
   Maintain you in to the last drop of--
   
   A BOAR (INTERRUPTING HIM):
   What
   Does any one accuse her of?
   
   PURGANAX:
   Why, no one
   Makes ANY positive accusation;--but                                  _45
   There were hints dropped, and so the privy wizards
   Conceived that it became them to advise
   His Majesty to investigate their truth;--
   Not for his own sake; he could be content
   To let his wife play any pranks she pleased,                         _50
   If, by that sufferance, HE could please the Pigs;
   But then he fears the morals of the Swine,
   The Sows especially, and what effect
   It might produce upon the purity and
   Religion of the rising generation                                    _55
   Of Sucking-Pigs, if it could be suspected
   That Queen Iona--
   
   [A PAUSE.]
   
   FIRST BOAR:
   Well, go on; we long
   To hear what she can possibly have done.
   
   PURGANAX:
   Why, it is hinted, that a certain Bull--
   Thus much is KNOWN:--the milk-white Bulls that feed                  _60
   Beside Clitumnus and the crystal lakes
   Of the Cisalpine mountains, in fresh dews
   Of lotus-grass and blossoming asphodel
   Sleeking their silken hair, and with sweet breath
   Loading the morning winds until they faint                           _65
   With living fragrance, are so beautiful!--
   Well, _I_ say nothing;--but Europa rode
   On such a one from Asia into Crete,
   And the enamoured sea grew calm beneath
   His gliding beauty. And Pasiphae,                                    _70
   Iona's grandmother,--but SHE is innocent!
   And that both you and I, and all assert.
   
   FIRST BOAR:
   Most innocent!
   
   PURGANAX:
   Behold this BAG; a bag--
   
   SECOND BOAR:
   Oh! no GREEN BAGS!! Jealousy's eyes are green,
   Scorpions are green, and water-snakes, and efts,                     _75
   And verdigris, and--
   
   PURGANAX:
   Honourable Swine,
   In Piggish souls can prepossessions reign?
   Allow me to remind you, grass is green--
   All flesh is grass;--no bacon but is flesh--
   Ye are but bacon. This divining BAG                                  _80
   (Which is not green, but only bacon colour)
   Is filled with liquor, which if sprinkled o'er
   A woman guilty of--we all know what--
   Makes her so hideous, till she finds one blind
   She never can commit the like again.                                 _85
   If innocent, she will turn into an angel,
   And rain down blessings in the shape of comfits
   As she flies up to heaven. Now, my proposal
   Is to convert her sacred Majesty
   Into an angel (as I am sure we shall do),                            _90
   By pouring on her head this mystic water.
   [SHOWING THE BAG.]
   I know that she is innocent; I wish
   Only to prove her so to all the world.
   
   FIRST BOAR:
   Excellent, just, and noble Purganax.
   
   SECOND BOAR:
   How glorious it will be to see her Majesty                           _95
   Flying above our heads, her petticoats
   Streaming like--like--like--
   
   THIRD BOAR:
   Anything.
   
   PURGANAX:
   Oh no!
   But like a standard of an admiral's ship,
   Or like the banner of a conquering host,
   Or like a cloud dyed in the dying day,                               _100
   Unravelled on the blast from a white mountain;
   Or like a meteor, or a war-steed's mane,
   Or waterfall from a dizzy precipice
   Scattered upon the wind.
   
   FIRST BOAR:
   Or a cow's tail.
   
   SECOND BOAR:
   Or ANYTHING, as the learned Boar observed.                           _105
   
   PURGANAX:
   Gentlemen Boars, I move a resolution,
   That her most sacred Majesty should be
   Invited to attend the feast of Famine,
   And to receive upon her chaste white body
   Dews of Apotheosis from this BAG.                                    _110
   
   [A GREAT CONFUSION IS HEARD OF THE PIGS OUT OF DOORS, WHICH
   COMMUNICATES ITSELF TO THOSE WITHIN. DURING THE FIRST STROPHE, THE
   DOORS OF THE STY ARE STAVED IN, AND A NUMBER OF EXCEEDINGLY LEAN PIGS
   AND SOWS AND BOARS RUSH IN.]
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   No! Yes!
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Yes! No!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   A law!
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   A flaw!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Porkers, we shall lose our wash,                                     _115
   Or must share it with the Lean-Pigs!
   
   FIRST BOAR:
   Order! order! be not rash!
   Was there ever such a scene, Pigs!
   
   AN OLD SOW (RUSHING IN):
   I never saw so fine a dash
   Since I first began to wean Pigs.                                    _120
   
   SECOND BOAR (SOLEMNLY):
   The Queen will be an angel time enough.
   I vote, in form of an amendment, that
   Purganax rub a little of that stuff
   Upon his face.
   
   PURGANAX [HIS HEART IS SEEN TO BEAT THROUGH HIS WAISTCOAT]:
   Gods! What would ye be at?
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Purganax has plainly shown a                                         _125
   Cloven foot and jackdaw feather.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   I vote Swellfoot and Iona
   Try the magic test together;
   Whenever royal spouses bicker,
   Both should try the magic liquor.                                    _130
   
   AN OLD BOAR [ASIDE]:
   A miserable state is that of Pigs,
   For if their drivers would tear caps and wigs,
   The Swine must bite each other's ear therefore.
   
   AN OLD SOW [ASIDE]:
   A wretched lot Jove has assigned to Swine,
   Squabbling makes Pig-herds hungry, and they dine                     _135
   On bacon, and whip Sucking-Pigs the more.
   
   CHORUS:
   Hog-wash has been ta'en away:
   If the Bull-Queen is divested,
   We shall be in every way
   Hunted, stripped, exposed, molested;                                 _140
   Let us do whate'er we may,
   That she shall not be arrested.
   QUEEN, we entrench you with walls of brawn,
   And palisades of tusks, sharp as a bayonet:
   Place your most sacred person here. We pawn                          _145
   Our lives that none a finger dare to lay on it.
   Those who wrong you, wrong us;
   Those who hate you, hate us;
   Those who sting you, sting us;
   Those who bait you, bait us;                                         _150
   The ORACLE is now about to be
   Fulfilled by circumvolving destiny;
   Which says: 'Thebes, choose REFORM or CIVIL WAR,
   When through your streets, instead of hare with dogs,
   A CONSORT QUEEN shall hunt a KING with Hogs,                         _155
   Riding upon the IONIAN MINOTAUR.'
   
   NOTE:
   _154 streets instead edition 1820.
   
   [ENTER IONA TAURINA.]
   
   IONA TAURINA (COMING FORWARD):
   Gentlemen Swine, and gentle Lady-Pigs,
   The tender heart of every Boar acquits
   Their QUEEN, of any act incongruous
   With native Piggishness, and she, reposing                           _160
   With confidence upon the grunting nation,
   Has thrown herself, her cause, her life, her all,
   Her innocence, into their Hoggish arms;
   Nor has the expectation been deceived
   Of finding shelter there. Yet know, great Boars,                     _165
   (For such whoever lives among you finds you,
   And so do I), the innocent are proud!
   I have accepted your protection only
   In compliment of your kind love and care,
   Not for necessity. The innocent                                      _170
   Are safest there where trials and dangers wait;
   Innocent Queens o'er white-hot ploughshares tread
   Unsinged, and ladies, Erin's laureate sings it,
   Decked with rare gems, and beauty rarer still,
   Walked from Killarney to the Giant's Causeway,                       _175
   Through rebels, smugglers, troops of yeomanry,
   White-boys and Orange-boys, and constables,
   Tithe-proctors, and excise people, uninjured!
   Thus I!--
   Lord Purganax, I do commit myself                                    _180
   Into your custody, and am prepared
   To stand the test, whatever it may be!
   
   NOTE:
   (_173 'Rich and rare were the gems she wore.' See Moore's "Irish
   Melodies".-- [SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   PURGANAX:
   This magnanimity in your sacred Majesty
   Must please the Pigs. You cannot fail of being
   A heavenly angel. Smoke your bits of glass,                          _185
   Ye loyal Swine, or her transfiguration
   Will blind your wondering eyes.
   
   AN OLD BOAR [ASIDE]:
   Take care, my Lord,
   They do not smoke you first.
   
   PURGANAX:
   At the approaching feast
   Of Famine, let the expiation be.
   
   SWINE:
   Content! content!
   
   IONA TAURINA [ASIDE]:
   I, most content of all,                                              _190
   Know that my foes even thus prepare their fall!
   
   [EXEUNT OMNES.]
   
   SCENE 2.2:
   THE INTERIOR OF THE TEMPLE OF FAMINE.
   THE STATUE OF THE GODDESS, A SKELETON CLOTHED IN PARTI-COLOURED RAGS,
   SEATED UPON A HEAP OF SKULLS AND LOAVES INTERMINGLED.
   A NUMBER OF EXCEEDINGLY FAT PRIESTS IN BLACK GARMENTS ARRAYED ON EACH
   SIDE, WITH MARROW-BONES AND CLEAVERS IN THEIR HANDS.
   [SOLOMON, THE COURT PORKMAN.]
   A FLOURISH OF TRUMPETS.
   
   ENTER MAMMON AS ARCH-PRIEST, SWELLFOOT, DAKRY, PURGANAX, LAOCTONOS,
   FOLLOWED BY IONA TAURINA GUARDED.
   ON THE OTHER SIDE ENTER THE SWINE.
   
   CHORUS OF PRIESTS, ACCOMPANIED BY THE COURT PORKMAN ON MARROW-BONES
   AND CLEAVERS:
   GODDESS bare, and gaunt, and pale,
   Empress of the world, all hail!
   What though Cretans old called thee
   City-crested Cybele?
   We call thee FAMINE!                                                 _5
   Goddess of fasts and feasts, starving and cramming!
   Through thee, for emperors, kings, and priests and lords,
   Who rule by viziers, sceptres, bank-notes, words,
   The earth pours forth its plenteous fruits,
   Corn, wool, linen, flesh, and roots--                                _10
   Those who consume these fruits through thee grow fat,
   Those who produce these fruits through thee grow lean,
   Whatever change takes place, oh, stick to that!
   And let things be as they have ever been;
   At least while we remain thy priests,                                _15
   And proclaim thy fasts and feasts.
   Through thee the sacred SWELLF00T dynasty
   Is based upon a rock amid that sea
   Whose waves are Swine--so let it ever be!
   
   [SWELLFOOT, ETC., SEAT THEMSELVES AT A TABLE MAGNIFICENTLY COVERED AT
   THE UPPER END OF THE TEMPLE.
   ATTENDANTS PASS OVER THE STAGE WITH HOG-WASH IN PAILS.
   A NUMBER OF PIGS, EXCEEDINGLY LEAN, FOLLOW THEM LICKING UP THE WASH.]
   
   MAMMON:
   I fear your sacred Majesty has lost                                  _20
   The appetite which you were used to have.
   Allow me now to recommend this dish--
   A simple kickshaw by your Persian cook,
   Such as is served at the great King's second table.
   The price and pains which its ingredients cost                       _25
   Might have maintained some dozen families
   A winter or two--not more--so plain a dish
   Could scarcely disagree.--
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   After the trial,
   And these fastidious Pigs are gone, perhaps
   I may recover my lost appetite,--                                    _30
   I feel the gout flying about my stomach--
   Give me a glass of Maraschino punch.
   
   PURGANAX (FILLING HIS GLASS, AND STANDING UP):
   The glorious Constitution of the Pigs!
   
   ALL:
   A toast! a toast! stand up, and three times three!
   
   DAKRY:
   No heel-taps--darken daylights! --
   
   LAOCTONOS:
   Claret, somehow,                                                     _35
   Puts me in mind of blood, and blood of claret!
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   Laoctonos is fishing for a compliment,
   But 'tis his due. Yes, you have drunk more wine,
   And shed more blood, than any man in Thebes.
   [TO PURGANAX.]
   For God's sake stop the grunting of those Pigs!                      _40
   
   PURGANAX:
   We dare not, Sire, 'tis Famine's privilege.
   
   CHORUS OF SWINE:
   Hail to thee, hail to thee, Famine!
   Thy throne is on blood, and thy robe is of rags;
   Thou devil which livest on damning;
   Saint of new churches, and cant, and GREEN BAGS,                     _45
   Till in pity and terror thou risest,
   Confounding the schemes of the wisest;
   When thou liftest thy skeleton form,
   When the loaves and the skulls roll about,
   We will greet thee-the voice of a storm                              _50
   Would be lost in our terrible shout!
   
   Then hail to thee, hail to thee, Famine!
   Hail to thee, Empress of Earth!
   When thou risest, dividing possessions;
   When thou risest, uprooting oppressions,                             _55
   In the pride of thy ghastly mirth;
   Over palaces, temples, and graves,
   We will rush as thy minister-slaves,
   Trampling behind in thy train,
   Till all be made level again!                                        _60
   
   MAMMON:
   I hear a crackling of the giant bones
   Of the dread image, and in the black pits
   Which once were eyes, I see two livid flames.
   These prodigies are oracular, and show
   The presence of the unseen Deity.                                    _65
   Mighty events are hastening to their doom!
   
   SWELLFOOT:
   I only hear the lean and mutinous Swine
   Grunting about the temple.
   
   DAKRY:
   In a crisis
   Of such exceeding delicacy, I think
   We ought to put her Majesty, the QUEEN,                              _70
   Upon her trial without delay.
   
   MAMMON:
   THE BAG
   Is here.
   
   PURGANAX:
   I have rehearsed the entire scene
   With an ox-bladder and some ditchwater,
   On Lady P--; it cannot fail.
   [TAKING UP THE BAG.]
   Your Majesty
   [TO SWELLFOOT.]
   In such a filthy business had better                                 _75
   Stand on one side, lest it should sprinkle you.
   A spot or two on me would do no harm,
   Nay, it might hide the blood, which the sad Genius
   Of the Green Isle has fixed, as by a spell,
   Upon my brow--which would stain all its seas,                        _80
   But which those seas could never wash away!
   
   IONA TAURINA:
   My Lord, I am ready--nay, I am impatient
   To undergo the test.
   [A GRACEFUL FIGURE IN A SEMI-TRANSPARENT VEIL PASSES UNNOTICED THROUGH
   THE TEMPLE; THE WORD "LIBERTY" IS SEEN THROUGH THE VEIL, AS IF IT WERE
   WRITTEN IN FIRE UPON ITS FOREHEAD. ITS WORDS ARE ALMOST DROWNED IN THE
   FURIOUS GRUNTING OF THE PIGS, AND THE BUSINESS OF THE TRIAL. SHE
   KNEELS ON THE STEPS OF THE ALTAR, AND SPEAKS IN TONES AT FIRST FAINT
   AND LOW, BUT WHICH EVER BECOME LOUDER AND LOUDER.]
   Mighty Empress! Death's white wife!
   Ghastly mother-in-law of Life!                                       _85
   By the God who made thee such,
   By the magic of thy touch,
   By the starving and the cramming
   Of fasts and feasts! by thy dread self, O Famine!
   I charge thee! when thou wake the multitude,                         _90
   Thou lead them not upon the paths of blood.
   The earth did never mean her foison
   For those who crown life's cup with poison
   Of fanatic rage and meaningless revenge--
   But for those radiant spirits, who are still                         _95
   The standard-bearers in the van of Change.
   Be they th' appointed stewards, to fill
   The lap of Pain, and Toil, and Age!--
   Remit, O Queen! thy accustomed rage!
   Be what thou art not! In voice faint and low                         _100
   FREEDOM calls "Famine",--her eternal foe,
   To brief alliance, hollow truce.--Rise now!
   
   [WHILST THE VEILED FIGURE HAS BEEN CHANTING THIS STROPHE, MAMMON,
   DAKRY, LAOCTONOS, AND SWELLFOOT, HAVE SURROUNDED IONA TAURINA, WHO,
   WITH HER HANDS FOLDED ON HER BREAST, AND HER EYES LIFTED TO HEAVEN,
   STANDS, AS WITH SAINT-LIKE RESIGNATION, TO WAIT THE ISSUE OF THE
   BUSINESS, IN PERFECT CONFIDENCE OF HER INNOCENCE.]
   
   [PURGANAX, AFTER UNSEALING THE GREEN BAG, IS GRAVELY ABOUT TO POUR THE
   LIQUOR UPON HER HEAD, WHEN SUDDENLY THE WHOLE EXPRESSION OF HER FIGURE
   AND COUNTENANCE CHANGES; SHE SNATCHES IT FROM HIS HAND WITH A LOUD
   LAUGH OF TRIUMPH, AND EMPTIES IT OVER SWELLFOOT AND HIS WHOLE COURT,
   WHO ARE INSTANTLY CHANGED INTO A NUMBER OF FILTHY AND UGLY ANIMALS,
   AND RUSH OUT OF THE TEMPLE. THE IMAGE OF FAMINE THEN ARISES WITH A
   TREMENDOUS SOUND, THE PIGS BEGIN SCRAMBLING FOR THE LOAVES, AND ARE
   TRJPPED UP BY THE SKULLS; ALL THOSE WHO EAT THE LOAVES ARE TURNED INTO
   BULLS, AND ARRANGE THEMSELVES QUIETLY BEHIND THE ALTAR. THE IMAGE OF
   FAMINE SINKS THROUGH A CHASM IN THE EARTH, AND A MINOTAUR RISES.]
   
   MINOTAUR:
   I am the Ionian Minotaur, the mightiest
   Of all Europa's taurine progeny--
   I am the old traditional Man-Bull;                                   _105
   And from my ancestors having been Ionian,
   I am called Ion, which, by interpretation,
   Is JOHN; in plain Theban, that is to say,
   My name's JOHN BULL; I am a famous hunter,
   And can leaf any gate in all Boeotia,                                _110
   Even the palings of the royal park,
   Or double ditch about the new enclosures;
   And if your Majesty will deign to mount me,
   At least till you have hunted down your game,
   I will not throw you.                                                _115
   
   IONA TAURINA [DURING THIS SPEECH SHE HAS BEEN PUTTING ON BOOTS AND
   SPURS, AND A HUNTING-CAP, BUCKISHLY COCKED ON ONE SIDE, AND TUCKING UP
   HER HAIR, SHE LEAPS NIMBLY ON HIS BACK]:
   Hoa! hoa! tallyho! tallyho! ho! ho!
   Come, let us hunt these ugly badgers down,
   These stinking foxes, these devouring otters,
   These hares, these wolves, these anything but men.
   Hey, for a whipper-in! my loyal Pigs
   Now let your noses be as keen as beagles',                           _120
   Your steps as swift as greyhounds', and your cries
   More dulcet and symphonious than the bells
   Of village-towers, on sunshine holiday;
   Wake all the dewy woods with jangling music.
   Give them no law (are they not beasts of blood?)                     _125
   But such as they gave you. Tallyho! ho!
   Through forest, furze, and bog, and den, and desert,
   Pursue the ugly beasts! tallyho! ho!
   
   FULL CHORUS OF I0NA AND THE SWINE:
   Tallyho! tallyho!
   Through rain, hail, and snow,                                        _130
   Through brake, gorse, and briar,
   Through fen, flood, and mire,
   We go! we go!
   
   Tallyho! tallyho!
   Through pond, ditch, and slough,                                     _135
   Wind them, and find them,
   Like the Devil behind them,
   Tallyho! tallyho!
   
   [EXEUNT, IN FULL CRY;
   IONA DRIVING ON THE SWINE, WITH THE EMPTY GEEEN BAG.]
   
   THE END.
   
   
   NOTE ON OEDIPUS TYRANNUS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   In the brief journal I kept in those days, I find recorded, in August,
   1820, Shelley 'begins "Swellfoot the Tyrant", suggested by the pigs at
   the fair of San Giuliano.' This was the period of Queen Caroline's
   landing in England, and the struggles made by George IV to get rid of
   her claims; which failing, Lord Castlereagh placed the "Green Bag" on
   the table of the House of Commons, demanding in the King's name that
   an enquiry should be instituted into his wife's conduct. These
   circumstances were the theme of all conversation among the English. We
   were then at the Baths of San Giuliano. A friend came to visit us on
   the day when a fair was held in the square, beneath our windows:
   Shelley read to us his "Ode to Liberty"; and was riotously accompanied
   by the grunting of a quantity of pigs brought for sale to the fair. He
   compared it to the 'chorus of frogs' in the satiric drama of
   Aristophanes; and, it being an hour of merriment, and one ludicrous
   association suggesting another, he imagined a political-satirical
   drama on the circumstances of the day, to which the pigs would serve
   as chorus--and "Swellfoot" was begun. When finished, it was
   transmitted to England, printed, and published anonymously; but
   stifled at the very dawn of its existence by the Society for the
   Suppression of Vice, who threatened to prosecute it, if not
   immediately withdrawn. The friend who had taken the trouble of
   bringing it out, of course did not think it worth the annoyance and
   expense of a contest, and it was laid aside.
   
   Hesitation of whether it would do honour to Shelley prevented my
   publishing it at first. But I cannot bring myself to keep back
   anything he ever wrote; for each word is fraught with the peculiar
   views and sentiments which he believed to be beneficial to the human
   race, and the bright light of poetry irradiates every thought. The
   world has a right to the entire compositions of such a man; for it
   does not live and thrive by the outworn lesson of the dullard or the
   hypocrite, but by the original free thoughts of men of genius, who
   aspire to pluck bright truth
   
   'from the pale-faced moon;
   Or dive into the bottom of the deep
   Where fathom-line would never touch the ground,
   And pluck up drowned'
   
   truth. Even those who may dissent from his opinions will consider that
   he was a man of genius, and that the world will take more interest in
   his slightest word than in the waters of Lethe which are so eagerly
   prescribed as medicinal for all its wrongs and woe. This drama,
   however, must not be judged for more than was meant. It is a mere
   plaything of the imagination; which even may not excite smiles among
   many, who will not see wit in those combinations of thought which were
   full of the ridiculous to the author. But, like everything he wrote,
   it breathes that deep sympathy for the sorrows of humanity, and
   indignation against its oppressors, which make it worthy of his name.
   
   ***
   
   
   EPIPSYCHIDION.
   
   VERSES ADDRESSED TO THE NOBLE AND UNFORTUNATE LADY, EMILIA V--,
   
   NOW IMPRISONED IN THE CONVENT OF --.
   
   L'anima amante si slancia fuori del creato, e si crea nell' infinito un
   Mondo tutto per essa, diverso assai da questo oscuro e pauroso baratro.
   HER OWN WORDS.
   
   ["Epipsychidion" was composed at Pisa, January, February, 1821, and
   published without the author's name, in the following summer, by C. &
   J. Ollier, London. The poem was included by Mrs. Shelley in the
   "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions. Amongst the Shelley manuscripts
   in the Bodleian is a first draft of "Epipsychidion", 'consisting of
   three versions, more or less complete, of the "Preface
   [Advertisement]", a version in ink and pencil, much cancelled, of the
   last eighty lines of the poem, and some additional lines which did not
   appear in print' ("Examination of the Shelley manuscripts in the
   Bodleian Library, by C.D. Locock". Oxford, Clarendon Press, 1903, page
   3). This draft, the writing of which is 'extraordinarily confused and
   illegible,' has been carefully deciphered and printed by Mr. Locock in
   the volume named above. Our text follows that of the editio princeps,
   1821.]
   
   ADVERTISEMENT.
   
   The Writer of the following lines died at Florence, as he was
   preparing for a voyage to one of the wildest of the Sporades, which he
   had bought, and where he had fitted up the ruins of an old building,
   and where it was his hope to have realised a scheme of life, suited
   perhaps to that happier and better world of which he is now an
   inhabitant, but hardly practicable in this. His life was singular;
   less on account of the romantic vicissitudes which diversified it,
   than the ideal tinge which it received from his own character and
   feelings. The present Poem, like the "Vita Nuova" of Dante, is
   sufficiently intelligible to a certain class of readers without a
   matter-of-fact history of the circumstances to which it relates and to
   a certain other class it must ever remain incomprehensible, from a
   defect of a common organ of perception for the ideas of which it
   treats. Not but that gran vergogna sarebbe a colui, che rimasse cosa
   sotto veste di figura, o di colore rettorico: e domandato non sapesse
   denudare le sue parole da cotal veste, in guisa che avessero verace
   intendimento.
   
   The present poem appears to have been intended by the Writer as the
   dedication to some longer one. The stanza on the opposite page [1] is
   almost a literal translation from Dante's famous Canzone
   
   Voi, ch' intendendo, il terzo ciel movete, etc.
   
   The presumptuous application of the concluding lines to his own
   composition will raise a smile at the expense of my unfortunate
   friend: be it a smile not of contempt, but pity. S.
   
   [1] i.e. the nine lines which follow, beginning, 'My Song, I fear,'
   etc.--ED.
   
   My Song, I fear that thou wilt find but few
   Who fitly shalt conceive thy reasoning,
   Of such hard matter dost thou entertain;
   Whence, if by misadventure, chance should bring
   Thee to base company (as chance may do),                             _5
   Quite unaware of what thou dost contain,
   I prithee, comfort thy sweet self again,
   My last delight! tell them that they are dull,
   And bid them own that thou art beautiful.
   
   
   EPIPSYCHIDION.
   
   Sweet Spirit! Sister of that orphan one,
   Whose empire is the name thou weepest on,
   In my heart's temple I suspend to thee
   These votive wreaths of withered memory.
   
   Poor captive bird! who, from thy narrow cage,                        _5
   Pourest such music, that it might assuage
   The rugged hearts of those who prisoned thee,
   Were they not deaf to all sweet melody;
   This song shall be thy rose: its petals pale
   Are dead, indeed, my adored Nightingale!                             _10
   But soft and fragrant is the faded blossom,
   And it has no thorn left to wound thy bosom.
   
   High, spirit-winged Heart! who dost for ever
   Beat thine unfeeling bars with vain endeavour,
   Till those bright plumes of thought, in which arrayed                _15
   It over-soared this low and worldly shade,
   Lie shattered; and thy panting, wounded breast
   Stains with dear blood its unmaternal nest!
   I weep vain tears: blood would less bitter be,
   Yet poured forth gladlier, could it profit thee.                     _20
   
   Seraph of Heaven! too gentle to be human,
   Veiling beneath that radiant form of Woman
   All that is insupportable in thee
   Of light, and love, and immortality!
   Sweet Benediction in the eternal Curse!                              _25
   Veiled Glory of this lampless Universe!
   Thou Moon beyond the clouds! Thou living Form
   Among the Dead! Thou Star above the Storm!
   Thou Wonder, and thou Beauty, and thou Terror!
   Thou Harmony of Nature's art! Thou Mirror                            _30
   In whom, as in the splendour of the Sun,
   All shapes look glorious which thou gazest on!
   Ay, even the dim words which obscure thee now
   Flash, lightning-like, with unaccustomed glow;
   I pray thee that thou blot from this sad song                        _35
   All of its much mortality and wrong,
   With those clear drops, which start like sacred dew
   From the twin lights thy sweet soul darkens through,
   Weeping, till sorrow becomes ecstasy:
   Then smile on it, so that it may not die.                            _40
   
   I never thought before my death to see
   Youth's vision thus made perfect. Emily,
   I love thee; though the world by no thin name
   Will hide that love from its unvalued shame.
   Would we two had been twins of the same mother!                      _45
   Or, that the name my heart lent to another
   Could be a sister's bond for her and thee,
   Blending two beams of one eternity!
   Yet were one lawful and the other true,
   These names, though dear, could paint not, as is due.                _50
   How beyond refuge I am thine. Ah me!
   I am not thine: I am a part of THEE.
   
   Sweet Lamp! my moth-like Muse has burned its wings
   Or, like a dying swan who soars and sings,
   Young Love should teach Time, in his own gray style,                 _55
   All that thou art. Art thou not void of guile,
   A lovely soul formed to be blessed and bless?
   A well of sealed and secret happiness,
   Whose waters like blithe light and music are,
   Vanquishing dissonance and gloom? A Star                             _60
   Which moves not in the moving heavens, alone?
   A Smile amid dark frowns? a gentle tone
   Amid rude voices? a beloved light?
   A Solitude, a Refuge, a Delight?
   A Lute, which those whom Love has taught to play                     _65
   Make music on, to soothe the roughest day
   And lull fond Grief asleep? a buried treasure?
   A cradle of young thoughts of wingless pleasure?
   A violet-shrouded grave of Woe?--I measure
   The world of fancies, seeking one like thee,                         _70
   And find--alas! mine own infirmity.
   
   She met me, Stranger, upon life's rough way,
   And lured me towards sweet Death; as Night by Day,
   Winter by Spring, or Sorrow by swift Hope,
   Led into light, life, peace. An antelope,                            _75
   In the suspended impulse of its lightness,
   Were less aethereally light: the brightness
   Of her divinest presence trembles through
   Her limbs, as underneath a cloud of dew
   Embodied in the windless heaven of June                              _80
   Amid the splendour-winged stars, the Moon
   Burns, inextinguishably beautiful:
   And from her lips, as from a hyacinth full
   Of honey-dew, a liquid murmur drops,
   Killing the sense with passion; sweet as stops                       _85
   Of planetary music heard in trance.
   In her mild lights the starry spirits dance,
   The sunbeams of those wells which ever leap
   Under the lightnings of the soul--too deep
   For the brief fathom-line of thought or sense.                       _90
   The glory of her being, issuing thence,
   Stains the dead, blank, cold air with a warm shade
   Of unentangled intermixture, made
   By Love, of light and motion: one intense
   Diffusion, one serene Omnipresence,                                  _95
   Whose flowing outlines mingle in their flowing,
   Around her cheeks and utmost fingers glowing
   With the unintermitted blood, which there
   Quivers, (as in a fleece of snow-like air
   The crimson pulse of living morning quiver,)                         _100
   Continuously prolonged, and ending never,
   Till they are lost, and in that Beauty furled
   Which penetrates and clasps and fills the world;
   Scarce visible from extreme loveliness.
   Warm fragrance seems to fall from her light dress                    _105
   And her loose hair; and where some heavy tress
   The air of her own speed has disentwined,
   The sweetness seems to satiate the faint wind;
   And in the soul a wild odour is felt
   Beyond the sense, like fiery dews that melt                          _110
   Into the bosom of a frozen bud.--
   See where she stands! a mortal shape indued
   With love and life and light and deity,
   And motion which may change but cannot die;
   An image of some bright Eternity;                                    _115
   A shadow of some golden dream; a Splendour
   Leaving the third sphere pilotless; a tender
   Reflection of the eternal Moon of Love
   Under whose motions life's dull billows move;
   A Metaphor of Spring and Youth and Morning;                          _120
   A Vision like incarnate April, warning,
   With smiles and tears, Frost the Anatomy
   Into his summer grave.
   Ah, woe is me!
   What have I dared? where am I lifted? how
   Shall I descend, and perish not? I know                              _125
   That Love makes all things equal: I have heard
   By mine own heart this joyous truth averred:
   The spirit of the worm beneath the sod
   In love and worship, blends itself with God.
   
   Spouse! Sister! Angel! Pilot of the Fate                             _130
   Whose course has been so starless! O too late
   Beloved! O too soon adored, by me!
   For in the fields of Immortality
   My spirit should at first have worshipped thine,
   A divine presence in a place divine;                                 _135
   Or should have moved beside it on this earth,
   A shadow of that substance, from its birth;
   But not as now:--I love thee; yes, I feel
   That on the fountain of my heart a seal
   Is set, to keep its waters pure and bright                           _140
   For thee, since in those TEARS thou hast delight.
   We--are we not formed, as notes of music are,
   For one another, though dissimilar;
   Such difference without discord, as can make
   Those sweetest sounds, in which all spirits shake                    _145
   As trembling leaves in a continuous air?
   
   Thy wisdom speaks in me, and bids me dare
   Beacon the rocks on which high hearts are wrecked.
   I never was attached to that great sect,
   Whose doctrine is, that each one should __select__                       _150
   Out of the crowd a mistress or a friend,
   And all the rest, though fair and wise, commend
   To cold oblivion, though it is in the code
   Of modern morals, and the beaten road
   Which those poor slaves with weary footsteps tread,                  _155
   Who travel to their home among the dead
   By the broad highway of the world, and so
   With one chained friend, perhaps a jealous foe,
   The dreariest and the longest journey go.
   
   True Love in this differs from gold and clay,                        _160
   That to divide is not to take away.
   Love is like understanding, that grows bright,
   Gazing on many truths; 'tis like thy light,
   Imagination! which from earth and sky,
   And from the depths of human fantasy,                                _165
   As from a thousand prisms and mirrors, fills
   The Universe with glorious beams, and kills
   Error, the worm, with many a sun-like arrow
   Of its reverberated lightning. Narrow
   The heart that loves, the brain that contemplates,                   _170
   The life that wears, the spirit that creates
   One object, and one form, and builds thereby
   A sepulchre for its eternity.
   
   Mind from its object differs most in this:
   Evil from good; misery from happiness;                               _175
   The baser from the nobler; the impure
   And frail, from what is clear and must endure.
   If you divide suffering and dross, you may
   Diminish till it is consumed away;
   If you divide pleasure and love and thought,                         _180
   Each part exceeds the whole; and we know not
   How much, while any yet remains unshared,
   Of pleasure may be gained, of sorrow spared:
   This truth is that deep well, whence sages draw
   The unenvied light of hope; the eternal law                          _185
   By which those live, to whom this world of life
   Is as a garden ravaged, and whose strife
   Tills for the promise of a later birth
   The wilderness of this Elysian earth.
   
   There was a Being whom my spirit oft                                 _190
   Met on its visioned wanderings, far aloft,
   In the clear golden prime of my youth's dawn,
   Upon the fairy isles of sunny lawn,
   Amid the enchanted mountains, and the caves
   Of divine sleep, and on the air-like waves                           _195
   Of wonder-level dream, whose tremulous floor
   Paved her light steps;--on an imagined shore,
   Under the gray beak of some promontory
   She met me, robed in such exceeding glory,
   That I beheld her not. In solitudes                                  _200
   Her voice came to me through the whispering woods,
   And from the fountains, and the odours deep
   Of flowers, which, like lips murmuring in their sleep
   Of the sweet kisses which had lulled them there,
   Breathed but of HER to the enamoured air;                            _205
   And from the breezes whether low or loud,
   And from the rain of every passing cloud,
   And from the singing of the summer-birds,
   And from all sounds, all silence. In the words
   Of antique verse and high romance,--in form,                         _210
   Sound, colour--in whatever checks that Storm
   Which with the shattered present chokes the past;
   And in that best philosophy, whose taste
   Makes this cold common hell, our life, a doom
   As glorious as a fiery martyrdom;                                    _215
   Her Spirit was the harmony of truth.--
   
   Then, from the caverns of my dreamy youth
   I sprang, as one sandalled with plumes of fire,
   And towards the lodestar of my one desire,
   I flitted, like a dizzy moth, whose flight                           _220
   Is as a dead leaf's in the owlet light,
   When it would seek in Hesper's setting sphere
   A radiant death, a fiery sepulchre,
   As if it were a lamp of earthly flame.--
   But She, whom prayers or tears then could not tame,                  _225
   Passed, like a God throned on a winged planet,
   Whose burning plumes to tenfold swiftness fan it,
   Into the dreary cone of our life's shade;
   And as a man with mighty loss dismayed,
   I would have followed, though the grave between                      _230
   Yawned like a gulf whose spectres are unseen:
   When a voice said:--'O thou of hearts the weakest,
   The phantom is beside thee whom thou seekest.'
   Then I--'Where?'--the world's echo answered 'where?'
   And in that silence, and in my despair,                              _235
   I questioned every tongueless wind that flew
   Over my tower of mourning, if it knew
   Whither 'twas fled, this soul out of my soul;
   And murmured names and spells which have control
   Over the sightless tyrants of our fate;                              _240
   But neither prayer nor verse could dissipate
   The night which closed on her; nor uncreate
   That world within this Chaos, mine and me,
   Of which she was the veiled Divinity,
   The world I say of thoughts that worshipped her:                     _245
   And therefore I went forth, with hope and fear
   And every gentle passion sick to death,
   Feeding my course with expectation's breath,
   Into the wintry forest of our life;
   And struggling through its error with vain strife,                   _250
   And stumbling in my weakness and my haste,
   And half bewildered by new forms, I passed,
   Seeking among those untaught foresters
   If I could find one form resembling hers,
   In which she might have masked herself from me.                      _255
   There,--One, whose voice was venomed melody
   Sate by a well, under blue nightshade bowers:
   The breath of her false mouth was like faint flowers,
   Her touch was as electric poison,--flame
   Out of her looks into my vitals came,                                _260
   And from her living cheeks and bosom flew
   A killing air, which pierced like honey-dew
   Into the core of my green heart, and lay
   Upon its leaves; until, as hair grown gray
   O'er a young brow, they hid its unblown prime                        _265
   With ruins of unseasonable time.
   
   In many mortal forms I rashly sought
   The shadow of that idol of my thought.
   And some were fair--but beauty dies away:
   Others were wise--but honeyed words betray:                          _270
   And One was true--oh! why not true to me?
   Then, as a hunted deer that could not flee,
   I turned upon my thoughts, and stood at bay,
   Wounded and weak and panting; the cold day
   Trembled, for pity of my strife and pain.                            _275
   When, like a noonday dawn, there shone again
   Deliverance. One stood on my path who seemed
   As like the glorious shape which I had d reamed
   As is the Moon, whose changes ever run
   Into themselves, to the eternal Sun;                                 _280
   The cold chaste Moon, the Queen of Heaven's bright isles,
   Who makes all beautiful on which she smiles,
   That wandering shrine of soft yet icy flame
   Which ever is transformed, yet still the same,
   And warms not but illumines. Young and fair                          _285
   As the descended Spirit of that sphere,
   She hid me, as the Moon may hide the night
   From its own darkness, until all was bright
   Between the Heaven and Earth of my calm mind,
   And, as a cloud charioted by the wind,                               _290
   She led me to a cave in that wild place,
   And sate beside me, with her downward face
   Illumining my slumbers, like the Moon
   Waxing and waning o'er Endymion.
   And I was laid asleep, spirit and limb,                              _295
   And all my being became bright or dim
   As the Moon's image in a summer sea,
   According as she smiled or frowned on me;
   And there I lay, within a chaste cold bed:
   Alas, I then was nor alive nor dead:--                               _300
   For at her silver voice came Death and Life,
   Unmindful each of their accustomed strife,
   Masked like twin babes, a sister and a brother,
   The wandering hopes of one abandoned mother,
   And through the cavern without wings they flew,                      _305
   And cried 'Away, he is not of our crew.'
   I wept, and though it be a dream, I weep.
   
   What storms then shook the ocean of my sleep,
   Blotting that Moon, whose pale and waning lips
   Then shrank as in the sickness of eclipse;--                         _310
   And how my soul was as a lampless sea,
   And who was then its Tempest; and when She,
   The Planet of that hour, was quenched, what frost
   Crept o'er those waters, till from coast to coast
   The moving billows of my being fell                                  _315
   Into a death of ice, immovable;--
   And then--what earthquakes made it gape and split,
   The white Moon smiling all the while on it,
   These words conceal:--If not, each word would be
   The key of staunchless tears. Weep not for me!                       _320
   
   At length, into the obscure Forest came
   The Vision I had sought through grief and shame.
   Athwart that wintry wilderness of thorns
   Flashed from her motion splendour like the Morn's,
   And from her presence life was radiated                              _325
   Through the gray earth and branches bare and dead;
   So that her way was paved, and roofed above
   With flowers as soft as thoughts of budding love;
   And music from her respiration spread
   Like light,--all other sounds were penetrated                        _330
   By the small, still, sweet spirit of that sound,
   So that the savage winds hung mute around;
   And odours warm and fresh fell from her hair
   Dissolving the dull cold in the frore air:
   Soft as an Incarnation of the Sun,                                   _335
   When light is changed to love, this glorious One
   Floated into the cavern where I lay,
   And called my Spirit, and the dreaming clay
   Was lifted by the thing that dreamed below
   As smoke by fire, and in her beauty's glow                           _340
   I stood, and felt the dawn of my long night
   Was penetrating me with living light:
   I knew it was the Vision veiled from me
   So many years--that it was Emily.
   
   Twin Spheres of light who rule this passive Earth,                   _345
   This world of loves, this ME; and into birth
   Awaken all its fruits and flowers, and dart
   Magnetic might into its central heart;
   And lift its billows and its mists, and guide
   By everlasting laws, each wind and tide                              _350
   To its fit cloud, and its appointed cave;
   And lull its storms, each in the craggy grave
   Which was its cradle, luring to faint bowers
   The armies of the rainbow-winged showers;
   And, as those married lights, which from the towers                  _355
   Of Heaven look forth and fold the wandering globe
   In liquid sleep and splendour, as a robe;
   And all their many-mingled influence blend,
   If equal, yet unlike, to one sweet end;--
   So ye, bright regents, with alternate sway                           _360
   Govern my sphere of being, night and day!
   Thou, not disdaining even a borrowed might;
   Thou, not eclipsing a remoter light;
   And, through the shadow of the seasons three,
   From Spring to Autumn's sere maturity,                               _365
   Light it into the Winter of the tomb,
   Where it may ripen to a brighter bloom.
   Thou too, O Comet beautiful and fierce,
   Who drew the heart of this frail Universe
   Towards thine own; till, wrecked in that convulsion,                 _370
   Alternating attraction and repulsion,
   Thine went astray and that was rent in twain;
   Oh, float into our azure heaven again!
   Be there Love's folding-star at thy return;
   The living Sun will feed thee from its urn                           _375
   Of golden fire; the Moon will veil her horn
   In thy last smiles; adoring Even and Morn
   Will worship thee with incense of calm breath
   And lights and shadows; as the star of Death
   And Birth is worshipped by those sisters wild                        _380
   Called Hope and Fear--upon the heart are piled
   Their offerings,--of this sacrifice divine
   A World shall be the altar.
   Lady mine,
   Scorn not these flowers of thought, the fading birth
   Which from its heart of hearts that plant puts forth                 _385
   Whose fruit, made perfect by thy sunny eyes,
   Will be as of the trees of Paradise.
   
   The day is come, and thou wilt fly with me.
   To whatsoe'er of dull mortality
   Is mine, remain a vestal sister still;                               _390
   To the intense, the deep, the imperishable,
   Not mine but me, henceforth be thou united
   Even as a bride, delighting and delighted.
   The hour is come:--the destined Star has risen
   Which shall descend upon a vacant prison.                            _395
   The walls are high, the gates are strong, thick set
   The sentinels--but true Love never yet
   Was thus constrained: it overleaps all fence:
   Like lightning, with invisible violence
   Piercing its continents; like Heaven's free breath,                  _400
   Which he who grasps can hold not; liker Death,
   Who rides upon a thought, and makes his way
   Through temple, tower, and palace, and the array
   Of arms: more strength has Love than he or they;
   For it can burst his charnel, and make free                          _405
   The limbs in chains, the heart in agony,
   The soul in dust and chaos.
   Emily,
   A ship is floating in the harbour now,
   A wind is hovering o'er the mountain's brow;
   There is a path on the sea's azure floor,                            _410
   No keel has ever ploughed that path before;
   The halcyons brood around the foamless isles;
   The treacherous Ocean has forsworn its wiles;
   The merry mariners are bold and free:
   Say, my heart's sister, wilt thou sail with me?                      _415
   Our bark is as an albatross, whose nest
   Is a far Eden of the purple East;
   And we between her wings will sit, while Night,
   And Day, and Storm, and Calm, pursue their flight,
   Our ministers, along the boundless Sea,                              _420
   Treading each other's heels, unheededly.
   It is an isle under Ionian skies,
   Beautiful as a wreck of Paradise,
   And, for the harbours are not safe and good,
   This land would have remained a solitude                             _425
   But for some pastoral people native there,
   Who from the Elysian, clear, and golden air
   Draw the last spirit of the age of gold,
   Simple and spirited; innocent and bold.
   The blue Aegean girds this chosen home,                              _430
   With ever-changing sound and light and foam,
   Kissing the sifted sands, and caverns hoar;
   And all the winds wandering along the shore
   Undulate with the undulating tide:
   There are thick woods where sylvan forms abide;                      _435
   And many a fountain, rivulet, and pond,
   As clear as elemental diamond,
   Or serene morning air; and far beyond,
   The mossy tracks made by the goats and deer
   (Which the rough shepherd treads but once a year)                    _440
   Pierce into glades, caverns, and bowers, and halls
   Built round with ivy, which the waterfalls
   Illumining, with sound that never fails
   Accompany the noonday nightingales;
   And all the place is peopled with sweet airs;                        _445
   The light clear element which the isle wears
   Is heavy with the scent of lemon-flowers,
   Which floats like mist laden with unseen showers.
   And falls upon the eyelids like faint sleep;
   And from the moss violets and jonquils peep,                         _450
   And dart their arrowy odour through the brain
   Till you might faint with that delicious pain.
   And every motion, odour, beam and tone,
   With that deep music is in unison:
   Which is a soul within the soul--they seem                           _455
   Like echoes of an antenatal dream.--
   It is an isle 'twixt Heaven, Air, Earth, and Sea,
   Cradled, and hung in clear tranquillity;
   Bright as that wandering Eden Lucifer,
   Washed by the soft blue Oceans of young air.                         _460
   It is a favoured place. Famine or Blight,
   Pestilence, War and Earthquake, never light
   Upon its mountain-peaks; blind vultures, they
   Sail onward far upon their fatal way:
   The winged storms, chanting their thunder-psalm                      _465
   To other lands, leave azure chasms of calm
   Over this isle, or weep themselves in dew,
   From which its fields and woods ever renew
   Their green and golden immortality.
   And from the sea there rise, and from the sky                        _470
   There fall, clear exhalations, soft and bright.
   Veil after veil, each hiding some delight,
   Which Sun or Moon or zephyr draw aside,
   Till the isle's beauty, like a naked bride
   Glowing at once with love and loveliness,                            _475
   Blushes and trembles at its own excess:
   Yet, like a buried lamp, a Soul no less
   Burns in the heart of this delicious isle,
   An atom of th' Eternal, whose own smile
   Unfolds itself, and may be felt, not seen                            _480
   O'er the gray rocks, blue waves, and forests green,
   Filling their bare and void interstices.--
   But the chief marvel of the wilderness
   Is a lone dwelling, built by whom or how
   None of the rustic island-people know:                               _485
   'Tis not a tower of strength, though with its height
   It overtops the woods; but, for delight,
   Some wise and tender Ocean-King, ere crime
   Had been invented, in the world's young prime,
   Reared it, a wonder of that simple time,                             _490
   An envy of the isles, a pleasure-house
   Made sacred to his sister and his spouse.
   It scarce seems now a wreck of human art,
   But, as it were Titanic; in the heart
   Of Earth having assumed its form, then grown                         _495
   Out of the mountains, from the living stone,
   Lifting itself in caverns light and high:
   For all the antique and learned imagery
   Has been erased, and in the place of it
   The ivy and the wild-vine interknit                                  _500
   The volumes of their many-twining stems;
   Parasite flowers illume with dewy gems
   The lampless halls, and when they fade, the sky
   Peeps through their winter-woof of tracery
   With moonlight patches, or star atoms keen,                          _505
   Or fragments of the day's intense serene;--
   Working mosaic on their Parian floors.
   And, day and night, aloof, from the high towers
   And terraces, the Earth and Ocean seem
   To sleep in one another's arms, and dream                            _510
   Of waves, flowers, clouds, woods, rocks, and all that we
   Read in their smiles, and call reality.
   
   This isle and house are mine, and I have vowed
   Thee to be lady of the solitude.--
   And I have fitted up some chambers there                             _515
   Looking towards the golden Eastern air,
   And level with the living winds, which flow
   Like waves above the living waves below.--
   I have sent books and music there, and all
   Those instruments with which high Spirits call                       _520
   The future from its cradle, and the past
   Out of its grave, and make the present last
   In thoughts and joys which sleep, but cannot die,
   Folded within their own eternity.
   Our simple life wants little, and true taste                         _525
   Hires not the pale drudge Luxury, to waste
   The scene it would adorn, and therefore still,
   Nature with all her children haunts the hill.
   The ring-dove, in the embowering ivy, yet
   Keeps up her love-lament, and the owls flit                          _530
   Round the evening tower, and the young stars glance
   Between the quick bats in their twilight dance;
   The spotted deer bask in the fresh moonlight
   Before our gate, and the slow, silent night
   Is measured by the pants of their calm sleep.                        _535
   Be this our home in life, and when years heap
   Their withered hours, like leaves, on our decay,
   Let us become the overhanging day,
   The living soul of this Elysian isle,
   Conscious, inseparable, one. Meanwhile                               _540
   We two will rise, and sit, and walk together,
   Under the roof of blue Ionian weather,
   And wander in the meadows, or ascend
   The mossy mountains, where the blue heavens bend
   With lightest winds, to touch their paramour;                        _545
   Or linger, where the pebble-paven shore,
   Under the quick, faint kisses of the sea
   Trembles and sparkles as with ecstasy,--
   Possessing and possessed by all that is
   Within that calm circumference of bliss,                             _550
   And by each other, till to love and live
   Be one:--or, at the noontide hour, arrive
   Where some old cavern hoar seems yet to keep
   The moonlight of the expired night asleep,
   Through which the awakened day can never peep;                       _555
   A veil for our seclusion, close as night's,
   Where secure sleep may kill thine innocent lights:
   Sleep, the fresh dew of languid love, the rain
   Whose drops quench kisses till they burn again.
   And we will talk, until thought's melody                             _560
   Become too sweet for utterance, and it die
   In words, to live again in looks, which dart
   With thrilling tone into the voiceless heart,
   Harmonizing silence without a sound.
   Our breath shall intermix, our bosoms bound,                         _565
   And our veins beat together; and our lips
   With other eloquence than words, eclipse
   The soul that burns between them, and the wells
   Which boil under our being's inmost cells,
   The fountains of our deepest life, shall be                          _570
   Confused in Passion's golden purity,
   As mountain-springs under the morning sun.
   We shall become the same, we shall be one
   Spirit within two frames, oh! wherefore two?
   One passion in twin-hearts, which grows and grew,                    _575
   Till like two meteors of expanding flame,
   Those spheres instinct with it become the same,
   Touch, mingle, are transfigured; ever still
   Burning, yet ever inconsumable:
   In one another's substance finding food,                             _580
   Like flames too pure and light and unimbued
   To nourish their bright lives with baser prey,
   Which point to Heaven and cannot pass away:
   One hope within two wills, one will beneath
   Two overshadowing minds, one life, one death,                        _585
   One Heaven, one Hell, one immortality,
   And one annihilation. Woe is me!
   The winged words on which my soul would pierce
   Into the height of Love's rare Universe,
   Are chains of lead around its flight of fire--                       _590
   I pant, I sink, I tremble, I expire!
   
   ...
   
   Weak Verses, go, kneel at your Sovereign's feet,
   And say:--'We are the masters of thy slave;
   What wouldest thou with us and ours and thine?'
   Then call your sisters from Oblivion's cave,                         _595
   All singing loud: 'Love's very pain is sweet,
   But its reward is in the world divine
   Which, if not here, it builds beyond the grave.'
   So shall ye live when I am there. Then haste
   Over the hearts of men, until ye meet                                _600
   Marina, Vanna, Primus, and the rest,
   And bid them love each other and be blessed:
   And leave the troop which errs, and which reproves,
   And come and be my guest,--for I am Love's.
   
   NOTES:
   _100 morning]morn may Rossetti cj.
   _118 of]on edition 1839.
   _405 it]he edition 1839.
   _501 many-twining]many twining editio prin. 1821.
   _504 winter-woof]inter-woof Rossetti cj.
   
   
   FRAGMENTS CONNECTED WITH EPIPSYCHIDION.
   
   [Of the fragments of verse that follow, lines 1-37, 62-92 were printed
   by Mrs. Shelley in "Posthumous Works", 1839, 2nd edition; lines 1-174
   were printed or reprinted by Dr. Garnett in "Relics of Shelley", 1862;
   and lines 175-186 were printed by Mr. C.D. Locock from the first draft
   of "Epipsychidion" amongst the Shelley manuscripts in the Bodleian
   Library. See "Examination, etc.", 1903, pages 12, 13. The three early
   drafts of the "Preface (Advertisement)" were printed by Mr. Locock in
   the same volume, pages 4, 5.]
   
   
   THREE EARLY DRAFTS OF THE PREFACE.
   
   (ADVERTISEMENT.)
   
   PREFACE 1.
   
   The following Poem was found amongst other papers in the Portfolio of
   a young Englishman with whom the Editor had contracted an intimacy at
   Florence, brief indeed, but sufficiently long to render the
   Catastrophe by which it terminated one of the most painful events of
   his life.--
   
   The literary merit of the Poem in question may not be considerable;
   but worse verses are printed every day, &
   
   He was an accomplished & amiable person but his error was, thuntos on
   un thunta phronein,--his fate is an additional proof that 'The tree of
   Knowledge is not that of Life.'--He had framed to himself certain
   opinions, founded no doubt upon the truth of things, but built up to a
   Babel height; they fell by their own weight, & the thoughts that were
   his architects, became unintelligible one to the other, as men upon
   whom confusion of tongues has fallen.
   
   [These] verses seem to have been written as a sort of dedication of
   some work to have been presented to the person whom they address: but
   his papers afford no trace of such a work--The circumstances to which
   [they] the poem allude, may easily be understood by those to whom
   [the] spirit of the poem itself is [un]intelligible: a detail of
   facts, sufficiently romantic in [themselves but] their combinations
   
   The melancholy [task] charge of consigning the body of my poor friend
   to the grave, was committed to me by his desolated family. I caused
   him to be buried in a spot __select__ed by himself, & on the h
   
   
   PREFACE 2.
   
   [Epips] T. E. V. Epipsych
   Lines addressed to
   the Noble Lady
   [Emilia] [E. V.]
   Emilia
   
   [The following Poem was found in the PF. of a young Englishman, who
   died on his passage from Leghorn to the Levant. He had bought one of
   the Sporades] He was accompanied by a lady [who might have been]
   supposed to be his wife, & an effeminate looking youth, to whom he
   shewed an [attachment] so [singular] excessive an attachment as to
   give rise to the suspicion, that she was a woman--At his death this
   suspicion was confirmed;...object speedily found a refuge both from
   the taunts of the brute multitude, and from the...of her grief in the
   same grave that contained her lover.--He had bought one of the
   Sporades, & fitted up a Saracenic castle which accident had preserved
   in some repair with simple elegance, & it was his intention to
   dedicate the remainder of his life to undisturbed intercourse with his
   companions
   
   These verses apparently were intended as a dedication of a longer poem
   or series of poems
   
   
   PREFACE 3.
   
   The writer of these lines died at Florence in [January 1820] while he
   was preparing * * for one wildest of the of the Sporades, where he
   bought & fitted up the ruins of some old building--His life was
   singular, less on account of the romantic vicissitudes which
   diversified it, than the ideal tinge which they received from his own
   character & feelings--
   
   The verses were apparently intended by the writer to accompany some
   longer poem or collection of poems, of which there* [are no remnants
   in his] * * * remains [in his] portfolio.--
   
   The editor is induced to
   
   The present poem, like the vita Nova of Dante, is sufficiently
   intelligible to a certain class of readers without a matter of fact
   history of the circumstances to which it relate, & to a certain other
   class, it must & ought ever to remain incomprehensible--It was
   evidently intended to be prefixed to a longer poem or series of
   poems--but among his papers there are no traces of such a collection.
   
   
   PASSAGES OF THE POEM, OR CONNECTED THEREWITH.
   
   Here, my dear friend, is a new book for you;
   I have already dedicated two
   To other friends, one female and one male,--
   What you are, is a thing that I must veil;
   What can this be to those who praise or rail?                        _5
   I never was attached to that great sect
   Whose doctrine is that each one should __select__
   Out of the world a mistress or a friend,
   And all the rest, though fair and wise, commend
   To cold oblivion--though 'tis in the code                            _10
   Of modern morals, and the beaten road
   Which those poor slaves with weary footsteps tread
   Who travel to their home among the dead
   By the broad highway of the world--and so
   With one sad friend, and many a jealous foe,                         _15
   The dreariest and the longest journey go.
   
   Free love has this, different from gold and clay,
   That to divide is not to take away.
   Like ocean, which the general north wind breaks
   Into ten thousand waves, and each one makes                          _20
   A mirror of the moon--like some great glass,
   Which did distort whatever form might pass,
   Dashed into fragments by a playful child,
   Which then reflects its eyes and forehead mild;
   Giving for one, which it could ne'er express,                        _25
   A thousand images of loveliness.
   
   If I were one whom the loud world held wise,
   I should disdain to quote authorities
   In commendation of this kind of love:--
   Why there is first the God in heaven above,                          _30
   Who wrote a book called Nature, 'tis to be
   Reviewed, I hear, in the next Quarterly;
   And Socrates, the Jesus Christ of Greece,
   And Jesus Christ Himself, did never cease
   To urge all living things to love each other,                        _35
   And to forgive their mutual faults, and smother
   The Devil of disunion in their souls.
   
   ...
   
   I love you!--Listen, O embodied Ray
   Of the great Brightness; I must pass away
   While you remain, and these light words must be                      _40
   Tokens by which you may remember me.
   Start not--the thing you are is unbetrayed,
   If you are human, and if but the shade
   Of some sublimer spirit...
   
   ...
   
   And as to friend or mistress, 'tis a form;                           _45
   Perhaps I wish you were one. Some declare
   You a familiar spirit, as you are;
   Others with a ... more inhuman
   Hint that, though not my wife, you are a woman;
   What is the colour of your eyes and hair?                            _50
   Why, if you were a lady, it were fair
   The world should know--but, as I am afraid,
   The Quarterly would bait you if betrayed;
   And if, as it will be sport to see them stumble
   Over all sorts of scandals. hear them mumble                         _55
   Their litany of curses--some guess right,
   And others swear you're a Hermaphrodite;
   Like that sweet marble monster of both sexes,
   Which looks so sweet and gentle that it vexes
   The very soul that the soul is gone                                  _60
   Which lifted from her limbs the veil of stone.
   
   ...
   
   It is a sweet thing, friendship, a dear balm,
   A happy and auspicious bird of calm,
   Which rides o'er life's ever tumultuous Ocean;
   A God that broods o'er chaos in commotion;                           _65
   A flower which fresh as Lapland roses are,
   Lifts its bold head into the world's frore air,
   And blooms most radiantly when others die,
   Health, hope, and youth, and brief prosperity;
   And with the light and odour of its bloom,                           _70
   Shining within the dun eon and the tomb;
   Whose coming is as light and music are
   'Mid dissonance and gloom--a star
   Which moves not 'mid the moving heavens alone--
   A smile among dark frowns--a gentle tone                             _75
   Among rude voices, a beloved light,
   A solitude, a refuge, a delight.
   If I had but a friend! Why, I have three
   Even by my own confession; there may be
   Some more, for what I know, for 'tis my mind                         _80
   To call my friends all who are wise and kind,-
   And these, Heaven knows, at best are very few;
   But none can ever be more dear than you.
   Why should they be? My muse has lost her wings,
   Or like a dying swan who soars and sings,                            _85
   I should describe you in heroic style,
   But as it is, are you not void of guile?
   A lovely soul, formed to be blessed and bless:
   A well of sealed and secret happiness;
   A lute which those whom Love has taught to play                      _90
   Make music on to cheer the roughest day,
   And enchant sadness till it sleeps?...
   
   ...
   
   To the oblivion whither I and thou,
   All loving and all lovely, hasten now
   With steps, ah, too unequal! may we meet                             _95
   In one Elysium or one winding-sheet!
   
   If any should be curious to discover
   Whether to you I am a friend or lover,
   Let them read Shakespeare's sonnets, taking thence
   A whetstone for their dull intelligence                              _100
   That tears and will not cut, or let them guess
   How Diotima, the wise prophetess,
   Instructed the instructor, and why he
   Rebuked the infant spirit of melody
   On Agathon's sweet lips, which as he spoke                           _105
   Was as the lovely star when morn has broke
   The roof of darkness, in the golden dawn,
   Half-hidden, and yet beautiful.
   I'll pawn
   My hopes of Heaven-you know what they are worth --
   That the presumptuous pedagogues of Earth,                           _110
   If they could tell the riddle offered here
   Would scorn to be, or being to appear
   What now they seem and are--but let them chide,
   They have few pleasures in the world beside;
   Perhaps we should be dull were we not chidden,                       _115
   Paradise fruits are sweetest when forbidden.
   Folly can season Wisdom, Hatred Love.
   
   ...
   
   Farewell, if it can be to say farewell
   To those who
   
   ...
   
   I will not, as most dedicators do,                                   _120
   Assure myself and all the world and you,
   That you are faultless--would to God they were
   Who taunt me with your love! I then should wear
   These heavy chains of life with a light spirit,
   And would to God I were, or even as near it                          _125
   As you, dear heart. Alas! what are we? Clouds
   Driven by the wind in warring multitudes,
   Which rain into the bosom of the earth,
   And rise again, and in our death and birth,
   And through our restless life, take as from heaven                   _130
   Hues which are not our own, but which are given,
   And then withdrawn, and with inconstant glance
   Flash from the spirit to the countenance.
   There is a Power, a Love, a Joy, a God
   Which makes in mortal hearts its brief abode,                        _135
   A Pythian exhalation, which inspires
   Love, only love--a wind which o'er the wires
   Of the soul's giant harp
   There is a mood which language faints beneath;
   You feel it striding, as Almighty Death                              _140
   His bloodless steed...
   
   ...
   
   And what is that most brief and bright delight
   Which rushes through the touch and through the sight,
   And stands before the spirit's inmost throne,
   A naked Seraph? None hath ever known.                                _145
   Its birth is darkness, and its growth desire;
   Untameable and fleet and fierce as fire,
   Not to be touched but to be felt alone,
   It fills the world with glory-and is gone.
   
   ...
   
   It floats with rainbow pinions o'er the stream                       _150
   Of life, which flows, like a ... dream
   Into the light of morning, to the grave
   As to an ocean...
   
   ...
   
   What is that joy which serene infancy
   Perceives not, as the hours content them by,                         _155
   Each in a chain of blossoms, yet enjoys
   The shapes of this new world, in giant toys
   Wrought by the busy ... ever new?
   Remembrance borrows Fancy's glass, to show
   These forms more ... sincere                                         _160
   Than now they are, than then, perhaps, they were.
   When everything familiar seemed to be
   Wonderful, and the immortality
   Of this great world, which all things must inherit,
   Was felt as one with the awakening spirit,                           _165
   Unconscious of itself, and of the strange
   Distinctions which in its proceeding change
   It feels and knows, and mourns as if each were
   A desolation...
   
   ...
   
   Were it not a sweet refuge, Emily,                                   _170
   For all those exiles from the dull insane
   Who vex this pleasant world with pride and pain,
   For all that band of sister-spirits known
   To one another by a voiceless tone?
   
   ...
   
   If day should part us night will mend division                       _175
   And if sleep parts us--we will meet in vision
   And if life parts us--we will mix in death
   Yielding our mite [?] of unreluctant breath
   Death cannot part us--we must meet again
   In all in nothing in delight in pain:                                _180
   How, why or when or where--it matters not
   So that we share an undivided lot...
   
   ...
   
   And we will move possessing and possessed
   Wherever beauty on the earth's bare [?] breast
   Lies like the shadow of thy soul--till we                            _185
   Become one being with the world we see...
   
   NOTES:
   _52-_53 afraid The cj. A.C. Bradley.
   _54 And as cj. Rossetti, A.C. Bradley.
   _61 stone... cj. A.C. Bradley.
   _155 them]trip or troop cj. A.C. Bradley.
   _157 in]as cj. A.C. Bradley.
   
   ***
   
   
   ADONAIS.
   
   AN ELEGY ON THE DEATH OF JOHN KEATS,
   AUTHOR OF ENDYMION, HYPERION, ETC.
   
   Aster prin men elampes eni zooisin Eoos
   nun de thanon lampeis Esperos en phthimenois.--PLATO.
   
   ["Adonais" was composed at Pisa during the early days of June, 1821,
   and printed, with the author's name, at Pisa, 'with the types of
   Didot,' by July 13, 1821. Part of the impression was sent to the
   brothers Ollier for sale in London. An exact reprint of this Pisa
   edition (a few typographical errors only being corrected) was issued
   in 1829 by Gee & Bridges, Cambridge, at the instance of Arthur Hallam
   and Richard Monckton Milnes (Lord Houghton). The poem was included in
   Galignani's edition of "Coleridge, Shelley and Keats", Paris, 1829,
   and by Mrs. Shelley in the "Poetical Works" of 1839. Mrs. Shelley's
   text presents three important variations from that of the editio
   princeps. In 1876 an edition of the "Adonais", with Introduction and
   Notes, was printed for private circulation by Mr. H. Buxton Forman,
   C.B. Ten years later a reprint 'in exact facsimile' of the Pisa
   edition was edited with a Bibliographical Introduction by Mr. T.J.
   Wise ("Shelley Society Publications", 2nd Series, No. 1, Reeves &
   Turner, London, 1886). Our text is that of the editio princeps, Pisa,
   1821, modified by Mrs. Shelley's text of 1839. The readings of the
   editio princeps, wherever superseded, are recorded in the footnotes.
   The Editor's Notes at the end of the Volume 3 should be consulted.]
   
   PREFACE.
   
   Pharmakon elthe, Bion, poti son stoma, pharmakon eides.
   pos ten tois cheilessi potesrame, kouk eglukanthe;
   tis de Brotos tossouton anameros, e kerasai toi,
   e dounai laleonti to pharmakon; ekphugen odan.
   --MOSCHUS, EPITAPH. BION.
   
   It is my intention to subjoin to the London edition of this poem a
   criticism upon the claims of its lamented object to be classed among
   the writers of the highest genius who have adorned our age. My known
   repugnance to the narrow principles of taste on which several of his
   earlier compositions were modelled prove at least that I am an
   impartial judge. I consider the fragment of "Hyperion" as second to
   nothing that was ever produced by a writer of the same years.
   
   John Keats died at Rome of a consumption, in his twenty-fourth year,
   on the -- of -- 1821; and was buried in the romantic and lonely
   cemetery of the Protestants in that city, under the pyramid which is
   the tomb of Cestius, and the massy walls and towers, now mouldering
   and desolate, which formed the circuit of ancient Rome. The cemetery
   is an open space among the ruins, covered in winter with violets and
   daisies. It might make one in love with death, to think that one
   should be buried in so sweet a place.
   
   The genius of the lamented person to whose memory I have dedicated
   these unworthy verses was not less delicate and fragile than it was
   beautiful; and where cankerworms abound, what wonder if its young
   flower was blighted in the bud? The savage criticism on his
   "Endymion", which appeared in the "Quarterly Review", produced the
   most violent effect on his susceptible mind; the agitation thus
   originated ended in the rupture of a blood-vessel in the lungs; a
   rapid consumption ensued, and the succeeding acknowledgements from
   more candid critics of the true greatness of his powers were
   ineffectual to heal the wound thus wantonly inflicted.
   
   It may be well said that these wretched men know not what they do.
   They scatter their insults and their slanders without heed as to
   whether the poisoned shaft lights on a heart made callous by many
   blows or one like Keats's composed of more penetrable stuff. One of
   their associates is, to my knowledge, a most base and unprincipled
   calumniator. As to "Endymion", was it a poem, whatever might be its
   defects, to be treated contemptuously by those who had celebrated,
   with various degrees of complacency and panegyric, "Paris", and
   "Woman", and a "Syrian Tale", and Mrs. Lefanu, and Mr. Barrett, and
   Mr. Howard Payne, and a long list of the illustrious obscure? Are
   these the men who in their venal good nature presumed to draw a
   parallel between the Reverend Mr. Milman and Lord Byron? What gnat did
   they strain at here, after having swallowed all those camels? Against
   what woman taken in adultery dares the foremost of these literary
   prostitutes to cast his opprobrious stone? Miserable man! you, one of
   the meanest, have wantonly defaced one of the noblest specimens of the
   workmanship of God. Nor shall it be your excuse, that, murderer as you
   are, you have spoken daggers, but used none.
   
   The circumstances of the closing scene of poor Keats's life were not
   made known to me until the "Elegy" was ready for the press. I am given
   to understand that the wound which his sensitive spirit had received
   from the criticism of "Endymion" was exasperated by the bitter sense
   of unrequited benefits; the poor fellow seems to have been hooted from
   the stage of life, no less by those on whom he had wasted the promise
   of his genius, than those on whom he had lavished his fortune and his
   care. He was accompanied to Rome, and attended in his last illness by
   Mr. Severn, a young artist of the highest promise, who, I have been
   informed, 'almost risked his own life, and sacrificed every prospect
   to unwearied attendance upon his dying friend.' Had I known these
   circumstances before the completion of my poem, I should have been
   tempted to add my feeble tribute of applause to the more solid
   recompense which the virtuous man finds in the recollection of his own
   motives. Mr. Severn can dispense with a reward from 'such stuff as
   dreams are made of.' His conduct is a golden augury of the success of
   his future career--may the unextinguished Spirit of his illustrious
   friend animate the creations of his pencil, and plead against Oblivion
   for his name!
   
   ***
   
   
   ADONAIS.
   
   I weep for Adonais--he is dead!
   O, weep for Adonais! though our tears
   Thaw not the frost which binds so dear a head!
   And thou, sad Hour, __select__ed from all years
   To mourn our loss, rouse thy obscure compeers,                       _5
   And teach them thine own sorrow, say: "With me
   Died Adonais; till the Future dares
   Forget the Past, his fate and fame shall be
   An echo and a light unto eternity!"
   
   2.
   Where wert thou, mighty Mother, when he lay,                         _10
   When thy Son lay, pierced by the shaft which flies
   In darkness? where was lorn Urania
   When Adonais died? With veiled eyes,
   'Mid listening Echoes, in her Paradise
   She sate, while one, with soft enamoured breath,                     _15
   Rekindled all the fading melodies,
   With which, like flowers that mock the corse beneath,
   He had adorned and hid the coming bulk of Death.
   
   3.
   Oh, weep for Adonais--he is dead!
   Wake, melancholy Mother, wake and weep!                              _20
   Yet wherefore? Quench within their burning bed
   Thy fiery tears, and let thy loud heart keep
   Like his, a mute and uncomplaining sleep;
   For he is gone, where all things wise and fair
   Descend;--oh, dream not that the amorous Deep                        _25
   Will yet restore him to the vital air;
   Death feeds on his mute voice, and laughs at our despair.
   
   4.
   Most musical of mourners, weep again!
   Lament anew, Urania!--He died,
   Who was the Sire of an immortal strain,                              _30
   Blind, old and lonely, when his country's pride,
   The priest, the slave, and the liberticide,
   Trampled and mocked with many a loathed rite
   Of lust and blood; he went, unterrified,
   Into the gulf of death; but his clear Sprite                         _35
   Yet reigns o'er earth; the third among the sons of light.
   
   5.
   Most musical of mourners, weep anew!
   Not all to that bright station dared to climb;
   And happier they their happiness who knew,
   Whose tapers yet burn through that night of time                     _40
   In which suns perished; others more sublime,
   Struck by the envious wrath of man or god,
   Have sunk, extinct in their refulgent prime;
   And some yet live, treading the thorny road,
   Which leads, through toil and hate, to Fame's serene abode.          _45
   
   6.
   But now, thy youngest, dearest one, has perished--
   The nursling of thy widowhood, who grew,
   Like a pale flower by some sad maiden cherished,
   And fed with true-love tears, instead of dew;
   Most musical of mourners, weep anew!                                 _50
   Thy extreme hope, the loveliest and the last,
   The bloom, whose petals nipped before they blew
   Died on the promise of the fruit, is waste;
   The broken lily lies--the storm is overpast.
   
   7.
   To that high Capital, where kingly Death                             _55
   Keeps his pale court in beauty and decay,
   He came; and bought, with price of purest breath,
   A grave among the eternal.--Come away!
   Haste, while the vault of blue Italian day
   Is yet his fitting charnel-roof! while still                         _60
   He lies, as if in dewy sleep he lay;
   Awake him not! surely he takes his fill
   Of deep and liquid rest, forgetful of all ill.
   
   8.
   He will awake no more, oh, never more!--
   Within the twilight chamber spreads apace                            _65
   The shadow of white Death, and at the door
   Invisible Corruption waits to trace
   His extreme way to her dim dwelling-place;
   The eternal Hunger sits, but pity and awe
   Soothe her pale rage, nor dares she to deface                        _70
   So fair a prey, till darkness and the law
   Of change, shall o'er his sleep the mortal curtain draw.
   
   9.
   Oh, weep for Adonais!--The quick Dreams,
   The passion-winged Ministers of thought,
   Who were his flocks, whom near the living streams                    _75
   Of his young spirit he fed, and whom he taught
   The love which was its music, wander not,--
   Wander no more, from kindling brain to brain,
   But droop there, whence they sprung; and mourn their lot
   Round the cold heart, where, after their sweet pain,                 _80
   They ne'er will gather strength, or find a home again.
   
   10.
   And one with trembling hands clasps his cold head,
   And fans him with her moonlight wings, and cries;
   'Our love, our hope, our sorrow, is not dead;
   See, on the silken fringe of his faint eyes,                         _85
   Like dew upon a sleeping flower, there lies
   A tear some Dream has loosened from his brain.'
   Lost Angel of a ruined Paradise!
   She knew not 'twas her own; as with no stain
   She faded, like a cloud which had outwept its rain.                  _90
   
   11.
   One from a lucid urn of starry dew
   Washed his light limbs as if embalming them;
   Another clipped her profuse locks, and threw
   The wreath upon him, like an anadem,
   Which frozen tears instead of pearls begem;                          _95
   Another in her wilful grief would break
   Her bow and winged reeds, as if to stem
   A greater loss with one which was more weak;
   And dull the barbed fire against his frozen cheek.
   
   12.
   Another Splendour on his mouth alit,                                 _100
   That mouth, whence it was wont to draw the breath
   Which gave it strength to pierce the guarded wit,
   And pass into the panting heart beneath
   With lightning and with music: the damp death
   Quenched its caress upon his icy lips;                               _105
   And, as a dying meteor stains a wreath
   Of moonlight vapour, which the cold night clips,
   It flushed through his pale limbs, and passed to its eclipse.
   
   13.
   And others came...Desires and Adorations,
   Winged Persuasions and veiled Destinies,                             _110
   Splendours, and Glooms, and glimmering Incarnations
   Of hopes and fears, and twilight Phantasies;
   And Sorrow, with her family of Sighs,
   And Pleasure, blind with tears, led by the gleam
   Of her own dying smile instead of eyes,                              _115
   Came in slow pomp;--the moving pomp might seem
   Like pageantry of mist on an autumnal stream.
   
   14.
   All he had loved, and moulded into thought,
   From shape, and hue, and odour, and sweet sound,
   Lamented Adonais. Morning sought                                     _120
   Her eastern watch-tower, and her hair unbound,
   Wet with the tears which should adorn the ground,
   Dimmed the aereal eyes that kindle day;
   Afar the melancholy thunder moaned,
   Pale Ocean in unquiet slumber lay,                                   _125
   And the wild Winds flew round, sobbing in their dismay.
   
   15.
   Lost Echo sits amid the voiceless mountains,
   And feeds her grief with his remembered lay,
   And will no more reply to winds or fountains,
   Or amorous birds perched on the young green spray,                   _130
   Or herdsman's horn, or bell at closing day;
   Since she can mimic not his lips, more dear
   Than those for whose disdain she pined away
   Into a shadow of all sounds:--a drear
   Murmur, between their songs, is all the woodmen hear.                _135
   
   16.
   Grief made the young Spring wild, and she threw down
   Her kindling buds, as if she Autumn were,
   Or they dead leaves; since her delight is flown,
   For whom should she have waked the sullen year?
   To Phoebus was not Hyacinth so dear                                  _140
   Nor to himself Narcissus, as to both
   Thou, Adonais: wan they stand and sere
   Amid the faint companions of their youth,
   With dew all turned to tears; odour, to sighing ruth.
   
   17.
   Thy spirit's sister, the lorn nightingale                            _145
   Mourns not her mate with such melodious pain;
   Not so the eagle, who like thee could scale
   Heaven, and could nourish in the sun's domain
   Her mighty youth with morning, doth complain,
   Soaring and screaming round her empty nest,                          _150
   As Albion wails for thee: the curse of Cain
   Light on his head who pierced thy innocent breast,
   And scared the angel soul that was its earthly guest!
   
   18.
   Ah, woe is me! Winter is come and gone,
   But grief returns with the revolving year;                           _155
   The airs and streams renew their joyous tone;
   The ants, the bees, the swallows reappear;
   Fresh leaves and flowers deck the dead Seasons' bier;
   The amorous birds now pair in every brake,
   And build their mossy homes in field and brere;                      _160
   And the green lizard, and the golden snake,
   Like unimprisoned flames, out of their trance awake.
   
   19.
   Through wood and stream and field and hill and Ocean
   A quickening life from the Earth's heart has burst
   As it has ever done, with change and motion,                         _165
   From the great morning of the world when first
   God dawned on Chaos; in its stream immersed,
   The lamps of Heaven flash with a softer light;
   All baser things pant with life's sacred thirst;
   Diffuse themselves; and spend in love's delight,                     _170
   The beauty and the joy of their renewed might.
   
   20.
   The leprous corpse, touched by this spirit tender,
   Exhales itself in flowers of gentle breath;
   Like incarnations of the stars, when splendour
   Is changed to fragrance, they illumine death                         _175
   And mock the merry worm that wakes beneath;
   Nought we know, dies. Shall that alone which knows
   Be as a sword consumed before the sheath
   By sightless lightning?--the intense atom glows
   A moment, then is quenched in a most cold repose.                    _180
   
   21.
   Alas! that all we loved of him should be,
   But for our grief, as if it had not been,
   And grief itself be mortal! Woe is me!
   Whence are we, and why are we? of what scene
   The actors or spectators? Great and mean                             _185
   Meet massed in death, who lends what life must borrow.
   As long as skies are blue, and fields are green,
   Evening must usher night, night urge the morrow,
   Month follow month with woe, and year wake year to sorrow.
   
   22.
   HE will awake no more, oh, never more!                               _190
   'Wake thou,' cried Misery, 'childless Mother, rise
   Out of thy sleep, and slake, in thy heart's core,
   A wound more fierce than his, with tears and sighs.'
   And all the Dreams that watched Urania's eyes,
   And all the Echoes whom their sister's song                          _195
   Had held in holy silence, cried: 'Arise!'
   Swift as a Thought by the snake Memory stung,
   From her ambrosial rest the fading Splendour sprung.
   
   23.
   She rose like an autumnal Night, that springs
   Out of the East, and follows wild and drear                          _200
   The golden Day, which, on eternal wings,
   Even as a ghost abandoning a bier,
   Had left the Earth a corpse. Sorrow and fear
   So struck, so roused, so rapped Urania;
   So saddened round her like an atmosphere                             _205
   Of stormy mist; so swept her on her way
   Even to the mournful place where Adonais lay.
   
   24.
   Out of her secret Paradise she sped,
   Through camps and cities rough with stone, and steel,
   And human hearts, which to her aery tread                            _210
   Yielding not, wounded the invisible
   Palms of her tender feet where'er they fell:
   And barbed tongues, and thoughts more sharp than they,
   Rent the soft Form they never could repel,
   Whose sacred blood, like the young tears of May,                     _215
   Paved with eternal flowers that undeserving way.
   
   25.
   In the death-chamber for a moment Death,
   Shamed by the presence of that living Might,
   Blushed to annihilation, and the breath
   Revisited those lips, and Life's pale light                          _220
   Flashed through those limbs, so late her dear delight.
   'Leave me not wild and drear and comfortless,
   As silent lightning leaves the starless night!
   Leave me not!' cried Urania: her distress
   Roused Death: Death rose and smiled, and met her vain caress.        _225
   
   26.
   'Stay yet awhile! speak to me once again;
   Kiss me, so long but as a kiss may live;
   And in my heartless breast and burning brain
   That word, that kiss, shall all thoughts else survive,
   With food of saddest memory kept alive,                              _230
   Now thou art dead, as if it were a part
   Of thee, my Adonais! I would give
   All that I am to be as thou now art!
   But I am chained to Time, and cannot thence depart!
   
   27.
   'O gentle child, beautiful as thou wert,                             _235
   Why didst thou leave the trodden paths of men
   Too soon, and with weak hands though mighty heart
   Dare the unpastured dragon in his den?
   Defenceless as thou wert, oh, where was then
   Wisdom the mirrored shield, or scorn the spear?                      _240
   Or hadst thou waited the full cycle, when
   Thy spirit should have filled its crescent sphere,
   The monsters of life's waste had fled from thee like deer.
   
   28.
   'The herded wolves, bold only to pursue;
   The obscene ravens, clamorous o'er the dead;                         _245
   The vultures to the conqueror's banner true
   Who feed where Desolation first has fed,
   And whose wings rain contagion;--how they fled,
   When, like Apollo, from his golden bow
   The Pythian of the age one arrow sped                                _250
   And smiled!--The spoilers tempt no second blow,
   They fawn on the proud feet that spurn them lying low.
   
   29.
   'The sun comes forth, and many reptiles spawn;
   He sets, and each ephemeral insect then
   Is gathered into death without a dawn,                               _255
   And the immortal stars awake again;
   So is it in the world of living men:
   A godlike mind soars forth, in its delight
   Making earth bare and veiling heaven, and when
   It sinks, the swarms that dimmed or shared its light                 _260
   Leave to its kindred lamps the spirit's awful night.'
   
   30.
   Thus ceased she: and the mountain shepherds came,
   Their garlands sere, their magic mantles rent;
   The Pilgrim of Eternity, whose fame
   Over his living head like Heaven is bent,                            _265
   An early but enduring monument,
   Came, veiling all the lightnings of his song
   In sorrow; from her wilds Ierne sent
   The sweetest lyrist of her saddest wrong,
   And Love taught Grief to fall like music from his tongue.            _270
   
   31.
   Midst others of less note, came one frail Form,
   A phantom among men; companionless
   As the last cloud of an expiring storm
   Whose thunder is its knell; he, as I guess,
   Had gazed on Nature's naked loveliness,                              _275
   Actaeon-like, and now he fled astray
   With feeble steps o'er the world's wilderness,
   And his own thoughts, along that rugged way,
   Pursued, like raging hounds, their father and their prey.
   
   32.
   A pardlike Spirit beautiful and swift--                              _280
   A Love in desolation masked;--a Power
   Girt round with weakness;--it can scarce uplift
   The weight of the superincumbent hour;
   It is a dying lamp, a falling shower,
   A breaking billow;--even whilst we speak                             _285
   Is it not broken? On the withering flower
   The killing sun smiles brightly: on a cheek
   The life can burn in blood, even while the heart may break.
   
   33.
   His head was bound with pansies overblown,
   And faded violets, white, and pied, and blue;                        _290
   And a light spear topped with a cypress cone,
   Round whose rude shaft dark ivy-tresses grew
   Yet dripping with the forest's noonday dew,
   Vibrated, as the ever-beating heart
   Shook the weak hand that grasped it; of that crew                    _295
   He came the last, neglected and apart;
   A herd-abandoned deer struck by the hunter's dart.
   
   34.
   All stood aloof, and at his partial moan
   Smiled through their tears; well knew that gentle band
   Who in another's fate now wept his own,                              _300
   As in the accents of an unknown land
   He sung new sorrow; sad Urania scanned
   The Stranger's mien, and murmured: 'Who art thou?'
   He answered not, but with a sudden hand
   Made bare his branded and ensanguined brow,                          _305
   Which was like Cain's or Christ's--oh! that it should be so!
   
   35.
   What softer voice is hushed over the dead?
   Athwart what brow is that dark mantle thrown?
   What form leans sadly o'er the white death-bed,
   In mockery of monumental stone,                                      _310
   The heavy heart heaving without a moan?
   If it be He, who, gentlest of the wise,
   Taught, soothed, loved, honoured the departed one,
   Let me not vex, with inharmonious sighs,
   The silence of that heart's accepted sacrifice.                      _315
   
   36.
   Our Adonais has drunk poison--oh!
   What deaf and viperous murderer could crown
   Life's early cup with such a draught of woe?
   The nameless worm would now itself disown:
   It felt, yet could escape, the magic tone                            _320
   Whose prelude held all envy, hate and wrong,
   But what was howling in one breast alone,
   Silent with expectation of the song,
   Whose master's hand is cold, whose silver lyre unstrung.
   
   37.
   Live thou, whose infamy is not thy fame!                             _325
   Live! fear no heavier chastisement from me,
   Thou noteless blot on a remembered name!
   But be thyself, and know thyself to be!
   And ever at thy season be thou free
   To spill the venom when thy fangs o'erflow;                          _330
   Remorse and Self-contempt shall cling to thee;
   Hot Shame shall burn upon thy secret brow,
   And like a beaten hound tremble thou shalt--as now.
   
   38.
   Nor let us weep that our delight is fled
   Far from these carrion kites that scream below;                      _335
   He wakes or sleeps with the enduring dead;
   Thou canst not soar where he is sitting now--
   Dust to the dust! but the pure spirit shall flow
   Back to the burning fountain whence it came,
   A portion of the Eternal, which must glow                            _340
   Through time and change, unquenchably the same,
   Whilst thy cold embers choke the sordid hearth of shame.
   
   39.
   Peace, peace! he is not dead, he doth not sleep--
   He hath awakened from the dream of life--
   'Tis we, who lost in stormy visions, keep                            _345
   With phantoms an unprofitable strife,
   And in mad trance, strike with our spirit's knife
   Invulnerable nothings.--WE decay
   Like corpses in a charnel; fear and grief
   Convulse us and consume us day by day,                               _350
   And cold hopes swarm like worms within our living clay.
   
   40.
   He has outsoared the shadow of our night;
   Envy and calumny and hate and pain,
   And that unrest which men miscall delight,
   Can touch him not and torture not again;                             _355
   From the contagion of the world's slow stain
   He is secure, and now can never mourn
   A heart grown cold, a head grown gray in vain;
   Nor, when the spirit's self has ceased to burn,
   With sparkless ashes load an unlamented urn.                         _360
   
   41.
   He lives, he wakes--'tis Death is dead, not he;
   Mourn not for Adonais.--Thou young Dawn,
   Turn all thy dew to splendour, for from thee
   The spirit thou lamentest is not gone;
   Ye caverns and ye forests, cease to moan!                            _365
   Cease, ye faint flowers and fountains, and thou Air,
   Which like a mourning veil thy scarf hadst thrown
   O'er the abandoned Earth, now leave it bare
   Even to the joyous stars which smile on its despair!
   
   42.
   He is made one with Nature: there is heard                           _370
   His voice in all her music, from the moan
   Of thunder, to the song of night's sweet bird;
   He is a presence to be felt and known
   In darkness and in light, from herb and stone,
   Spreading itself where'er that Power may move                        _375
   Which has withdrawn his being to its own;
   Which wields the world with never-wearied love,
   Sustains it from beneath, and kindles it above.
   
   43.
   He is a portion of the loveliness
   Which once he made more lovely: he doth bear                         _380
   His part, while the one Spirit's plastic stress
   Sweeps through the dull dense world, compelling there
   All new successions to the forms they wear;
   Torturing th' unwilling dross that checks its flight
   To its own likeness, as each mass may bear;                          _385
   And bursting in its beauty and its might
   From trees and beasts and men into the Heaven's light.
   
   44.
   The splendours of the firmament of time
   May be eclipsed, but are extinguished not;
   Like stars to their appointed height they climb,                     _390
   And death is a low mist which cannot blot
   The brightness it may veil. When lofty thought
   Lifts a young heart above its mortal lair,
   And love and life contend in it, for what
   Shall be its earthly doom, the dead live there                       _395
   And move like winds of light on dark and stormy air.
   
   45.
   The inheritors of unfulfilled renown
   Rose from their thrones, built beyond mortal thought,
   Far in the Unapparent. Chatterton
   Rose pale,--his solemn agony had not                                 _400
   Yet faded from him; Sidney, as he fought
   And as he fell and as he lived and loved
   Sublimely mild, a Spirit without spot,
   Arose; and Lucan, by his death approved:
   Oblivion as they rose shrank like a thing reproved.                  _405
   
   46.
   And many more, whose names on Earth are dark,
   But whose transmitted effluence cannot die
   So long as fire outlives the parent spark,
   Rose, robed in dazzling immortality.
   'Thou art become as one of us,' they cry,                            _410
   'It was for thee yon kingless sphere has long
   Swung blind in unascended majesty,
   Silent alone amid a Heaven of Song.
   Assume thy winged throne, thou Vesper of our throng!'
   
   47.
   Who mourns for Adonais? Oh, come forth,                              _415
   Fond wretch! and know thyself and him aright.
   Clasp with thy panting soul the pendulous Earth;
   As from a centre, dart thy spirit's light
   Beyond all worlds, until its spacious might
   Satiate the void circumference: then shrink                          _420
   Even to a point within our day and night;
   And keep thy heart light lest it make thee sink
   When hope has kindled hope, and lured thee to the brink.
   
   48.
   Or go to Rome, which is the sepulchre,
   Oh, not of him, but of our joy: 'tis nought                          _425
   That ages, empires and religions there
   Lie buried in the ravage they have wrought;
   For such as he can lend,--they borrow not
   Glory from those who made the world their prey;
   And he is gathered to the kings of thought                           _430
   Who waged contention with their time's decay,
   And of the past are all that cannot pass away.
   
   49.
   Go thou to Rome,--at once the Paradise,
   The grave, the city, and the wilderness;
   And where its wrecks like shattered mountains rise,                  _435
   And flowering weeds, and fragrant copses dress
   The bones of Desolation's nakedness
   Pass, till the spirit of the spot shall lead
   Thy footsteps to a slope of green access
   Where, like an infant's smile, over the dead                         _440
   A light of laughing flowers along the grass is spread;
   
   50.
   And gray walls moulder round, on which dull Time
   Feeds, like slow fire upon a hoary brand;
   And one keen pyramid with wedge sublime,
   Pavilioning the dust of him who planned                              _445
   This refuge for his memory, doth stand
   Like flame transformed to marble; and beneath,
   A field is spread, on which a newer band
   Have pitched in Heaven's smile their camp of death,
   Welcoming him we lose with scarce extinguished breath.               _450
   
   51.
   Here pause: these graves are all too young as yet
   To have outgrown the sorrow which consigned
   Its charge to each; and if the seal is set,
   Here, on one fountain of a mourning mind,
   Break it not thou! too surely shalt thou find
   Thine own well full, if thou returnest home,
   Of tears and gall. From the world's bitter wind
   Seek shelter in the shadow of the tomb.
   What Adonais is, why fear we to become?
   
   52.
   The One remains, the many change and pass;
   Heaven's light forever shines, Earth's shadows fly;
   Life, like a dome of many-coloured glass,
   Stains the white radiance of Eternity,
   Until Death tramples it to fragments.--Die,
   If thou wouldst be with that which thou dost seek!
   Follow where all is fled!--Rome's azure sky,
   Flowers, ruins, statues, music, words, are weak
   The glory they transfuse with fitting truth to speak.
   
   53.
   Why linger, why turn back, why shrink, my Heart?
   Thy hopes are gone before: from all things here
   They have departed; thou shouldst now depart!
   A light is passed from the revolving year,
   And man, and woman; and what still is dear
   Attracts to crush, repels to make thee wither.
   The soft sky smiles,--the low wind whispers near:
   'Tis Adonais calls! oh, hasten thither,
   No more let Life divide what Death can join together.
   
   54.
   That Light whose smile kindles the Universe,
   That Beauty in which all things work and move,
   That Benediction which the eclipsing Curse
   Of birth can quench not, that sustaining Love
   Which through the web of being blindly wove
   By man and beast and earth and air and sea,
   Burns bright or dim, as each are mirrors of
   The fire for which all thirst; now beams on me,
   Consuming the last clouds of cold mortality.
   
   55.
   The breath whose might I have invoked in song
   Descends on me; my spirit's bark is driven,
   Far from the shore, far from the trembling throng
   Whose sails were never to the tempest given;
   The massy earth and sphered skies are riven!
   I am borne darkly, fearfully, afar;
   Whilst, burning through the inmost veil of Heaven,
   The soul of Adonais, like a star,
   Beacons from the abode where the Eternal are.                        _495
   
   NOTES:
   _49 true-love]true love editions 1821, 1839.
   _72 Of change, etc. so editions 1829 (Galignani), 1839;
       Of mortal change, shall fill the grave which is her maw edition 1821.
   _81 or edition 1821; nor edition 1839.
   _105 his edition 1821; its edition 1839.
   _126 round edition 1821; around edition 1839.
   _143 faint companions edition 1839; drooping comrades edition 1821.
   _204 See Editor's Note.
   _252 lying low edition 1839; as they go edition 1821.
   
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGES OF ADONAIS.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   PASSAGES OF THE PREFACE.
   
   ...the expression of my indignation and sympathy. I will allow myself
   a first and last word on the subject of calumny as it relates to me.
   As an author I have dared and invited censure. If I understand myself,
   I have written neither for profit nor for fame. I have employed my
   poetical compositions and publications simply as the instruments of
   that sympathy between myself and others which the ardent and unbounded
   love I cherished for my kind incited me to acquire. I expected all
   sorts of stupidity and insolent contempt from those...
   
   ...These compositions (excepting the tragedy of "The Cenci", which was
   written rather to try my powers than to unburthen my full heart) are
   insufficiently...commendation than perhaps they deserve, even from
   their bitterest enemies; but they have not attained any corresponding
   popularity. As a man, I shrink from notice and regard; the ebb and
   flow of the world vexes me; I desire to be left in peace. Persecution,
   contumely, and calumny have been heaped upon me in profuse measure;
   and domestic conspiracy and legal oppression have violated in my
   person the most sacred rights of nature and humanity. The bigot will
   say it was the recompense of my errors; the man of the world will call
   it the result of my imprudence; but never upon one head...
   
   ...Reviewers, with some rare exceptions, are a most stupid and
   malignant race. As a bankrupt thief turns thieftaker in despair, so an
   unsuccessful author turns critic. But a young spirit panting for fame,
   doubtful of its powers, and certain only of its aspirations, is ill
   qualified to assign its true value to the sneer of this world. He
   knows not that such stuff as this is of the abortive and monstrous
   births which time consumes as fast as it produces. He sees the truth
   and falsehood, the merits and demerits, of his case inextricably
   entangled...No personal offence should have drawn from me this public
   comment upon such stuff...
   
   ...The offence of this poor victim seems to have consisted solely in
   his intimacy with Leigh Hunt, Mr. Hazlitt, and some other enemies of
   despotism and superstition. My friend Hunt has a very hard skull to
   crack, and will take a deal of killing. I do not know much of Mr.
   Hazlitt, but...
   
   ...I knew personally but little of Keats; but on the news of his
   situation I wrote to him, suggesting the propriety of trying the
   Italian climate, and inviting him to join me. Unfortunately he did not
   allow me...
   
   
   PASSAGES OF THE POEM.
   
   And ever as he went he swept a lyre
   Of unaccustomed shape, and ... strings
   Now like the ... of impetuous fire,
   Which shakes the forest with its murmurings,
   Now like the rush of the aereal wings                                _5
   Of the enamoured wind among the treen,
   Whispering unimaginable things,
   And dying on the streams of dew serene,
   Which feed the unmown meads with ever-during green.
   
   ...
   
   And the green Paradise which western waves                           _10
   Embosom in their ever-wailing sweep,
   Talking of freedom to their tongueless caves,
   Or to the spirits which within them keep
   A record of the wrongs which, though they sleep,
   Die not, but dream of retribution, heard                             _15
   His hymns, and echoing them from steep to steep,
   Kept--
   
   ...
   
   And then came one of sweet and earnest looks,
   Whose soft smiles to his dark and night-like eyes
   Were as the clear and ever-living brooks                             _20
   Are to the obscure fountains whence they rise,
   Showing how pure they are: a Paradise
   Of happy truth upon his forehead low
   Lay, making wisdom lovely, in the guise
   Of earth-awakening morn upon the brow                                _25
   Of star-deserted heaven, while ocean gleams below.
   
   His song, though very sweet, was low and faint,
   A simple strain--
   
   ...
   
   A mighty Phantasm, half concealed
   In darkness of his own exceeding light,                              _30
   Which clothed his awful presence unrevealed,
   Charioted on the ... night
   Of thunder-smoke, whose skirts were chrysolite.
   
   And like a sudden meteor, which outstrips
   The splendour-winged chariot of the sun,                             _35
   ... eclipse
   The armies of the golden stars, each one
   Pavilioned in its tent of light--all strewn
   Over the chasms of blue night--
   
   ***
   
   
   HELLAS
   
   A LYRICAL DRAMA.
   
   MANTIS EIM EZTHLON AGONUN.--OEDIP. COLON.
   
   ["Hellas" was composed at Pisa in the autumn of 1821, and dispatched
   to London, November 11. It was published, with the author's name, by
   C. & J. Ollier in the spring of 1822. A transcript of the poem by
   Edward Williams is in the Rowfant Library. Ollier availed himself of
   Shelley's permission to cancel certain passages in the notes; he also
   struck out certain lines of the text. These omissions were, some of
   them, restored in Galignani's one-volume edition of "Coleridge,
   Shelley and Keats", Paris, 1829, and also by Mrs. Shelley in the
   "Poetical Works", 1839. A passage in the "Preface", suppressed by
   Ollier, was restored by Mr. Buxton Forman (1892) from a proof copy of
   "Hellas" in his possession. The "Prologue to Hellas" was edited by Dr.
   Garnett in 1862 ("Relics of Shelley") from the manuscripts at Boscombe
   Manor.
   
   Our text is that of the editio princeps, 1822, corrected by a list of
   "Errata" sent by Shelley to Ollier, April 11, 1822. The Editor's Notes
   at the end of Volume 3 should be consulted.]
   
   
   TO HIS EXCELLENCY
   
   PRINCE ALEXANDER MAVROCORDATO
   
   LATE SECRETARY FOR FOREIGN AFFAIRS TO THE HOSPODAR OF WALLACHIA
   
   THE DRAMA OF HELLAS IS INSCRIBED AS AN
   
   IMPERFECT TOKEN OF THE ADMIRATION,
   
   SYMPATHY, AND FRIENDSHIP OF
   
   THE AUTHOR.
   
   Pisa, November 1, 1821.
   
   
   PREFACE.
   
   The poem of "Hellas", written at the suggestion of the events of the
   moment, is a mere improvise, and derives its interest (should it be
   found to possess any) solely from the intense sympathy which the
   Author feels with the cause he would celebrate.
   
   The subject, in its present state, is insusceptible of being treated
   otherwise than lyrically, and if I have called this poem a drama from
   the circumstance of its being composed in dialogue, the licence is not
   greater than that which has been assumed by other poets who have
   called their productions epics, only because they have been divided
   into twelve or twenty-four books.
   
   The "Persae" of Aeschylus afforded me the first model of my
   conception, although the decision of the glorious contest now waging
   in Greece being yet suspended forbids a catastrophe parallel to the
   return of Xerxes and the desolation of the Persians. I have,
   therefore, contented myself with exhibiting a series of lyric
   pictures, and with having wrought upon the curtain of futurity, which
   falls upon the unfinished scene, such figures of indistinct and
   visionary delineation as suggest the final triumph of the Greek cause
   as a portion of the cause of civilisation and social improvement.
   
   The drama (if drama it must be called) is, however, so inartificial
   that I doubt whether, if recited on the Thespian waggon to an Athenian
   village at the Dionysiaca, it would have obtained the prize of the
   goat. I shall bear with equanimity any punishment, greater than the
   loss of such a reward, which the Aristarchi of the hour may think fit
   to inflict.
   
   The only "goat-song" which I have yet attempted has, I confess, in
   spite of the unfavourable nature of the subject, received a greater
   and a more valuable portion of applause than I expected or than it
   deserved.
   
   Common fame is the only authority which I can allege for the details
   which form the basis of the poem, and I must trespass upon the
   forgiveness of my readers for the display of newspaper erudition to
   which I have been reduced. Undoubtedly, until the conclusion of the
   war, it will be impossible to obtain an account of it sufficiently
   authentic for historical materials; but poets have their privilege,
   and it is unquestionable that actions of the most exalted courage have
   been performed by the Greeks--that they have gained more than one
   naval victory, and that their defeat in Wallachia was signalized by
   circumstances of heroism more glorious even than victory.
   
   The apathy of the rulers of the civilised world to the astonishing
   circumstance of the descendants of that nation to which they owe their
   civilisation, rising as it were from the ashes of their ruin, is
   something perfectly inexplicable to a mere spectator of the shows of
   this mortal scene. We are all Greeks. Our laws, our literature, our
   religion, our arts have their root in Greece. But for Greece--Rome,
   the instructor, the conqueror, or the metropolis of our ancestors,
   would have spread no illumination with her arms, and we might still
   have been savages and idolaters; or, what is worse, might have arrived
   at such a stagnant and miserable state of social institution as China
   and Japan possess.
   
   The human form and the human mind attained to a perfection in Greece
   which has impressed its image on those faultless productions, whose
   very fragments are the despair of modern art, and has propagated
   impulses which cannot cease, through a thousand channels of manifest
   or imperceptible operation, to ennoble and delight mankind until the
   extinction of the race.
   
   The modern Greek is the descendant of those glorious beings whom the
   imagination almost refuses to figure to itself as belonging to our
   kind, and he inherits much of their sensibility, their rapidity of
   conception, their enthusiasm, and their courage. If in many instances
   he is degraded by moral and political slavery to the practice of the
   basest vices it engenders--and that below the level of ordinary
   degradation--let us reflect that the corruption of the best produces
   the worst, and that habits which subsist only in relation to a
   peculiar state of social institution may be expected to cease as soon
   as that relation is dissolved. In fact, the Greeks, since the
   admirable novel of Anastasius could have been a faithful picture of
   their manners, have undergone most important changes; the flower of
   their youth, returning to their country from the universities of
   Italy, Germany, and France, have communicated to their fellow-citizens
   the latest results of that social perfection of which their ancestors
   were the original source. The University of Chios contained before the
   breaking out of the revolution eight hundred students, and among them
   several Germans and Americans. The munificence and energy of many of
   the Greek princes and merchants, directed to the renovation of their
   country with a spirit and a wisdom which has few examples, is above
   all praise.
   
   The English permit their own oppressors to act according to their
   natural sympathy with the Turkish tyrant, and to brand upon their name
   the indelible blot of an alliance with the enemies of domestic
   happiness, of Christianity and civilisation.
   
   Russia desires to possess, not to liberate Greece; and is contented to
   see the Turks, its natural enemies, and the Greeks, its intended
   slaves, enfeeble each other until one or both fall into its net. The
   wise and generous policy of England would have consisted in
   establishing the independence of Greece, and in maintaining it both
   against Russia and the Turk;--but when was the oppressor generous or
   just?
   
   [Should the English people ever become free, they will reflect upon
   the part which those who presume to represent their will have played
   in the great drama of the revival of liberty, with feelings which it
   would become them to anticipate. This is the age of the war of the
   oppressed against the oppressors, and every one of those ringleaders
   of the privileged gangs of murderers and swindlers, called Sovereigns,
   look to each other for aid against the common enemy, and suspend their
   mutual jealousies in the presence of a mightier fear. Of this holy
   alliance all the despots of the earth are virtual members. But a new
   race has arisen throughout Europe, nursed in the abhorrence of the
   opinions which are its chains, and she will continue to produce fresh
   generations to accomplish that destiny which tyrants foresee and
   dread. (This paragraph, suppressed in 1822 by Charles Ollier, was
   first restored in 1892 by Mr. Buxton Forman ["Poetical Works of P. B.
   S.", volume 4 pages 40-41] from a proof copy of Hellas in his
   possession.]
   
   The Spanish Peninsula is already free. France is tranquil in the
   enjoyment of a partial exemption from the abuses which its unnatural
   and feeble government are vainly attempting to revive. The seed of
   blood and misery has been sown in Italy, and a more vigorous race is
   arising to go forth to the harvest. The world waits only the news of a
   revolution of Germany to see the tyrants who have pinnacled themselves
   on its supineness precipitated into the ruin from which they shall
   never arise. Well do these destroyers of mankind know their enemy,
   when they impute the insurrection in Greece to the same spirit before
   which they tremble throughout the rest of Europe, and that enemy well
   knows the power and the cunning of its opponents, and watches the
   moment of their approaching weakness and inevitable division to wrest
   the bloody sceptres from their grasp.
   
   
   PROLOGUE TO HELLAS.
   
   HERALD OF ETERNITY:
   It is the day when all the sons of God
   Wait in the roofless senate-house, whose floor
   Is Chaos, and the immovable abyss
   Frozen by His steadfast word to hyaline
   
   ...
   
   The shadow of God, and delegate                                      _5
   Of that before whose breath the universe
   Is as a print of dew.
   Hierarchs and kings
   Who from your thrones pinnacled on the past
   Sway the reluctant present, ye who sit
   Pavilioned on the radiance or the gloom                              _10
   Of mortal thought, which like an exhalation
   Steaming from earth, conceals the ... of heaven
   Which gave it birth. ... assemble here
   Before your Father's throne; the swift decree
   Yet hovers, and the fiery incarnation                                _15
   Is yet withheld, clothed in which it shall
   annul
   The fairest of those wandering isles that gem
   The sapphire space of interstellar air,
   That green and azure sphere, that earth enwrapped                    _20
   Less in the beauty of its tender light
   Than in an atmosphere of living spirit
   Which interpenetrating all the ...
   it rolls from realm to realm
   And age to age, and in its ebb and flow                              _25
   Impels the generations
   To their appointed place,
   Whilst the high Arbiter
   Beholds the strife, and at the appointed time
   Sends His decrees veiled in eternal...                               _30
   
   Within the circuit of this pendent orb
   There lies an antique region, on which fell
   The dews of thought in the world's golden dawn
   Earliest and most benign, and from it sprung
   Temples and cities and immortal forms                                _35
   And harmonies of wisdom and of song,
   And thoughts, and deeds worthy of thoughts so fair.
   And when the sun of its dominion failed,
   And when the winter of its glory came,
   The winds that stripped it bare blew on and swept                    _40
   That dew into the utmost wildernesses
   In wandering clouds of sunny rain that thawed
   The unmaternal bosom of the North.
   Haste, sons of God, ... for ye beheld,
   Reluctant, or consenting, or astonished,                             _45
   The stern decrees go forth, which heaped on Greece
   Ruin and degradation and despair.
   A fourth now waits: assemble, sons of God,
   To speed or to prevent or to suspend,
   If, as ye dream, such power be not withheld,                         _50
   The unaccomplished destiny.
   
   NOTE:
   _8 your Garnett; yon Forman, Dowden.
   
   ...
   
   CHORUS:
   The curtain of the Universe
   Is rent and shattered,
   The splendour-winged worlds disperse
   Like wild doves scattered.                                           _55
   
   Space is roofless and bare,
   And in the midst a cloudy shrine,
   Dark amid thrones of light.
   In the blue glow of hyaline
   Golden worlds revolve and shine.                                     _60
   In ... flight
   From every point of the Infinite,
   Like a thousand dawns on a single night
   The splendours rise and spread;
   And through thunder and darkness dread                               _65
   Light and music are radiated,
   And in their pavilioned chariots led
   By living wings high overhead
   The giant Powers move,
   Gloomy or bright as the thrones they fill.                           _70
   
   ...
   
   A chaos of light and motion
   Upon that glassy ocean.
   
   ...
   
   The senate of the Gods is met,
   Each in his rank and station set;
   There is silence in the spaces--                                     _75
   Lo! Satan, Christ, and Mahomet
   Start from their places!
   
   CHRIST:
   Almighty Father!
   Low-kneeling at the feet of Destiny
   
   ...
   
   There are two fountains in which spirits weep                        _80
   When mortals err, Discord and Slavery named,
   And with their bitter dew two Destinies
   Filled each their irrevocable urns; the third
   Fiercest and mightiest, mingled both, and added
   Chaos and Death, and slow Oblivion's lymph,                          _85
   And hate and terror, and the poisoned rain
   
   ...
   
   The Aurora of the nations. By this brow
   Whose pores wept tears of blood, by these wide wounds,
   By this imperial crown of agony,
   By infamy and solitude and death,                                    _90
   For this I underwent, and by the pain
   Of pity for those who would ... for me
   The unremembered joy of a revenge,
   For this I felt--by Plato's sacred light,
   Of which my spirit was a burning morrow--                            _95
   By Greece and all she cannot cease to be.
   Her quenchless words, sparks of immortal truth,
   Stars of all night--her harmonies and forms,
   Echoes and shadows of what Love adores
   In thee, I do compel thee, send forth Fate,                          _100
   Thy irrevocable child: let her descend,
   A seraph-winged Victory [arrayed]
   In tempest of the omnipotence of God
   Which sweeps through all things.
   
   From hollow leagues, from Tyranny which arms                         _105
   Adverse miscreeds and emulous anarchies
   To stamp, as on a winged serpent's seed,
   Upon the name of Freedom; from the storm
   Of faction, which like earthquake shakes and sickens
   The solid heart of enterprise; from all                              _110
   By which the holiest dreams of highest spirits
   Are stars beneath the dawn...
   She shall arise
   Victorious as the world arose from Chaos!
   And as the Heavens and the Earth arrayed
   Their presence in the beauty and the light                           _115
   Of Thy first smile, O Father,--as they gather
   The spirit of Thy love which paves for them
   Their path o'er the abyss, till every sphere
   Shall be one living Spirit,--so shall Greece--
   
   SATAN:
   Be as all things beneath the empyrean,                               _120
   Mine! Art thou eyeless like old Destiny,
   Thou mockery-king, crowned with a wreath of thorns?
   Whose sceptre is a reed, the broken reed
   Which pierces thee! whose throne a chair of scorn;
   For seest thou not beneath this crystal floor                        _125
   The innumerable worlds of golden light
   Which are my empire, and the least of them
   which thou wouldst redeem from me?
   Know'st thou not them my portion?
   Or wouldst rekindle the ... strife                                   _130
   Which our great Father then did arbitrate
   Which he assigned to his competing sons
   Each his apportioned realm?
   Thou Destiny,
   Thou who art mailed in the omnipotence
   Of Him who tends thee forth, whate'er thy task,                      _135
   Speed, spare not to accomplish, and be mine
   Thy trophies, whether Greece again become
   The fountain in the desert whence the earth
   Shall drink of freedom, which shall give it strength
   To suffer, or a gulf of hollow death                                 _140
   To swallow all delight, all life, all hope.
   Go, thou Vicegerent of my will, no less
   Than of the Father's; but lest thou shouldst faint,
   The winged hounds, Famine and Pestilence,
   Shall wait on thee, the hundred-forked snake                         _145
   Insatiate Superstition still shall...
   The earth behind thy steps, and War shall hover
   Above, and Fraud shall gape below, and Change
   Shall flit before thee on her dragon wings,
   Convulsing and consuming, and I add                                  _150
   Three vials of the tears which daemons weep
   When virtuous spirits through the gate of Death
   Pass triumphing over the thorns of life,
   Sceptres and crowns, mitres and swords and snares,
   Trampling in scorn, like Him and Socrates.                           _155
   The first is Anarchy; when Power and Pleasure,
   Glory and science and security,
   On Freedom hang like fruit on the green tree,
   Then pour it forth, and men shall gather ashes.
   The second Tyranny--
   
   CHRIST:
   Obdurate spirit!                                                     _160
   Thou seest but the Past in the To-come.
   Pride is thy error and thy punishment.
   Boast not thine empire, dream not that thy worlds
   Are more than furnace-sparks or rainbow-drops
   Before the Power that wields and kindles them.                       _165
   True greatness asks not space, true excellence
   Lives in the Spirit of all things that live,
   Which lends it to the worlds thou callest thine.
   
   ...
   
   MAHOMET:
   ...Haste thou and fill the waning crescent
   With beams as keen as those which pierced the shadow                 _170
   Of Christian night rolled back upon the West,
   When the orient moon of Islam rode in triumph
   From Tmolus to the Acroceraunian snow.
   
   ...
   
   Wake, thou Word
   Of God, and from the throne of Destiny                               _175
   Even to the utmost limit of thy way
   May Triumph
   
   ...
   
   Be thou a curse on them whose creed
   Divides and multiplies the most high God.
   
   
   HELLAS.
   
   DRAMATIS PERSONAE:
   
   MAHMUD.
   HASSAN.
   DAOOD.
   AHASUERUS, A JEW.
   CHORUS OF GREEK CAPTIVE WOMEN.
   [THE PHANTOM OF MAHOMET II. (OMITTED, EDITION 1822.)]
   MESSENGERS, SLAVES, AND ATTENDANTS.
   
   SCENE:
   CONSTANTINOPLE.
   
   TIME: SUNSET.
   
   SCENE:
   A TERRACE ON THE SERAGLIO.
   MAHMUD SLEEPING,
   AN INDIAN SLAVE SITTING BESIDE HIS COUCH.
   
   CHORUS OF GREEK CAPTIVE WOMEN:
   We strew these opiate flowers
   On thy restless pillow,--
   They were stripped from Orient bowers,
   By the Indian billow.
   Be thy sleep                                                         _5
   Calm and deep,
   Like theirs who fell--not ours who weep!
   
   INDIAN:
   Away, unlovely dreams!
   Away, false shapes of sleep
   Be his, as Heaven seems,                                             _10
   Clear, and bright, and deep!
   Soft as love, and calm as death,
   Sweet as a summer night without a breath.
   
   CHORUS:
   Sleep, sleep! our song is laden
   With the soul of slumber;                                            _15
   It was sung by a Samian maiden,
   Whose lover was of the number
   Who now keep
   That calm sleep
   Whence none may wake, where none shall weep.                         _20
   
   INDIAN:
   I touch thy temples pale!
   I breathe my soul on thee!
   And could my prayers avail,
   All my joy should be
   Dead, and I would live to weep,                                      _25
   So thou mightst win one hour of quiet sleep.
   
   CHORUS:
   Breathe low, low
   The spell of the mighty mistress now!
   When Conscience lulls her sated snake,
   And Tyrants sleep, let Freedom wake.                                 _30
   Breathe low--low
   The words which, like secret fire, shall flow
   Through the veins of the frozen earth--low, low!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Life may change, but it may fly not;
   Hope may vanish, but can die not;                                    _35
   Truth be veiled, but still it burneth;
   Love repulsed,--but it returneth!
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Yet were life a charnel where
   Hope lay coffined with Despair;
   Yet were truth a sacred lie,                                         _40
   Love were lust--
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   If Liberty
   Lent not life its soul of light,
   Hope its iris of delight,
   Truth its prophet's robe to wear,
   Love its power to give and bear.                                     _45
   
   CHORUS:
   In the great morning of the world,
   The Spirit of God with might unfurled
   The flag of Freedom over Chaos,
   And all its banded anarchs fled,
   Like vultures frighted from Imaus,                                   _50
   Before an earthquake's tread.--
   So from Time's tempestuous dawn
   Freedom's splendour burst and shone:--
   Thermopylae and Marathon
   Caught like mountains beacon-lighted,                                _55
   The springing Fire.--The winged glory
   On Philippi half-alighted,
   Like an eagle on a promontory.
   Its unwearied wings could fan
   The quenchless ashes of Milan.                                       _60
   From age to age, from man to man,
   It lived; and lit from land to land
   Florence, Albion, Switzerland.
   
   Then night fell; and, as from night,
   Reassuming fiery flight,                                             _65
   From the West swift Freedom came,
   Against the course of Heaven and doom.
   A second sun arrayed in flame,
   To burn, to kindle, to illume.
   From far Atlantis its young beams                                    _70
   Chased the shadows and the dreams.
   France, with all her sanguine steams,
   Hid, but quenched it not; again
   Through clouds its shafts of glory rain
   From utmost Germany to Spain.                                        _75
   As an eagle fed with morning
   Scorns the embattled tempest's warning,
   When she seeks her aerie hanging
   In the mountain-cedar's hair,
   And her brood expect the clanging                                    _80
   Of her wings through the wild air,
   Sick with famine:--Freedom, so
   To what of Greece remaineth now
   Returns; her hoary ruins glow
   Like Orient mountains lost in day;                                   _85
   Beneath the safety of her wings
   Her renovated nurslings prey,
   And in the naked lightenings
   Of truth they purge their dazzled eyes.
   Let Freedom leave--where'er she flies,                               _90
   A Desert, or a Paradise:
   Let the beautiful and the brave
   Share her glory, or a grave.
   
   NOTES:
   _77 tempest's]tempests edition 1822.
   _87 prey edition 1822; play editions 1839.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   With the gifts of gladness
   Greece did thy cradle strew;                                         _95
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   With the tears of sadness
   Greece did thy shroud bedew!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   With an orphan's affection
   She followed thy bier through Time;
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   And at thy resurrection                                              _100
   Reappeareth, like thou, sublime!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   If Heaven should resume thee,
   To Heaven shall her spirit ascend;
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   If Hell should entomb thee,
   To Hell shall her high hearts bend.                                  _105
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   If Annihilation--
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Dust let her glories be!
   And a name and a nation
   Be forgotten, Freedom, with thee!
   
   INDIAN:
   His brow grows darker--breathe not--move not!                        _110
   He starts--he shudders--ye that love not,
   With your panting loud and fast,
   Have awakened him at last.
   
   MAHMUD [STARTING FROM HIS SLEEP]:
   Man the Seraglio-guard! make fast the gate!
   What! from a cannonade of three short hours?                         _115
   'Tis false! that breach towards the Bosphorus
   Cannot be practicable yet--who stirs?
   Stand to the match; that when the foe prevails
   One spark may mix in reconciling ruin
   The conqueror and the conquered! Heave the tower                     _120
   Into the gap--wrench off the roof!
   [ENTER HASSAN.]
   Ha! what!
   The truth of day lightens upon my dream
   And I am Mahmud still.
   
   HASSAN:
   Your Sublime Highness
   Is strangely moved.
   
   MAHMUD:
   The times do cast strange shadows
   On those who watch and who must rule their course,                   _125
   Lest they, being first in peril as in glory,
   Be whelmed in the fierce ebb:--and these are of them.
   Thrice has a gloomy vision hunted me
   As thus from sleep into the troubled day;
   It shakes me as the tempest shakes the sea,                          _130
   Leaving no figure upon memory's glass.
   Would that--no matter. Thou didst say thou knewest
   A Jew, whose spirit is a chronicle
   Of strange and secret and forgotten things.
   I bade thee summon him:--'tis said his tribe                         _135
   Dream, and are wise interpreters of dreams.
   
   HASSAN:
   The Jew of whom I spake is old,--so old
   He seems to have outlived a world's decay;
   The hoary mountains and the wrinkled ocean
   Seem younger still than he;--his hair and beard                      _140
   Are whiter than the tempest-sifted snow;
   His cold pale limbs and pulseless arteries
   Are like the fibres of a cloud instinct
   With light, and to the soul that quickens them
   Are as the atoms of the mountain-drift                               _145
   To the winter wind:--but from his eye looks forth
   A life of unconsumed thought which pierces
   The Present, and the Past, and the To-come.
   Some say that this is he whom the great prophet
   Jesus, the son of Joseph, for his mockery,                           _150
   Mocked with the curse of immortality.
   Some feign that he is Enoch: others dream
   He was pre-adamite and has survived
   Cycles of generation and of ruin.
   The sage, in truth, by dreadful abstinence                           _155
   And conquering penance of the mutinous flesh,
   Deep contemplation, and unwearied study,
   In years outstretched beyond the date of man,
   May have attained to sovereignty and science
   Over those strong and secret things and thoughts                     _160
   Which others fear and know not.
   
   MAHMUD:
   I would talk
   With this old Jew.
   
   HASSAN:
   Thy will is even now
   Made known to him, where he dwells in a sea-cavern
   'Mid the Demonesi, less accessible
   Than thou or God! He who would question him                          _165
   Must sail alone at sunset, where the stream
   Of Ocean sleeps around those foamless isles,
   When the young moon is westering as now,
   And evening airs wander upon the wave;
   And when the pines of that bee-pasturing isle,                       _170
   Green Erebinthus, quench the fiery shadow
   Of his gilt prow within the sapphire water,
   Then must the lonely helmsman cry aloud
   'Ahasuerus!' and the caverns round
   Will answer 'Ahasuerus!' If his prayer                               _175
   Be granted, a faint meteor will arise
   Lighting him over Marmora, and a wind
   Will rush out of the sighing pine-forest,
   And with the wind a storm of harmony
   Unutterably sweet, and pilot him                                     _180
   Through the soft twilight to the Bosphorus:
   Thence at the hour and place and circumstance
   Fit for the matter of their conference
   The Jew appears. Few dare, and few who dare
   Win the desired communion--but that shout                            _185
   Bodes--
   
   [A SHOUT WITHIN.]
   
   MAHMUD:
   Evil, doubtless; Like all human sounds.
   Let me converse with spirits.
   
   HASSAN:
   That shout again.
   
   MAHMUD:
   This Jew whom thou hast summoned--
   
   HASSAN:
   Will be here--
   
   MAHMUD:
   When the omnipotent hour to which are yoked
   He, I, and all things shall compel--enough!                          _190
   Silence those mutineers--that drunken crew,
   That crowd about the pilot in the storm.
   Ay! strike the foremost shorter by a head!
   They weary me, and I have need of rest.
   Kinks are like stars--they rise and set, they have                   _195
   The worship of the world, but no repose.
   
   [EXEUNT SEVERALLY.]
   
   CHORUS:
   Worlds on worlds are rolling ever
   From creation to decay,
   Like the bubbles on a river
   Sparkling, bursting, borne away.                                     _200
   But they are still immortal
   Who, through birth's orient portal
   And death's dark chasm hurrying to and fro,
   Clothe their unceasing flight
   In the brief dust and light                                          _205
   Gathered around their chariots as they go;
   New shapes they still may weave,
   New gods, new laws receive,
   Bright or dim are they as the robes they last
   On Death's bare ribs had cast.                                       _210
   
   A power from the unknown God,
   A Promethean conqueror, came;
   Like a triumphal path he trod
   The thorns of death and shame.
   A mortal shape to him                                                _215
   Was like the vapour dim
   Which the orient planet animates with light;
   Hell, Sin, and Slavery came,
   Like bloodhounds mild and tame,
   Nor preyed, until their Lord had taken flight;                       _220
   The moon of Mahomet
   Arose, and it shall set:
   While blazoned as on Heaven's immortal noon
   The cross leads generations on.
   
   Swift as the radiant shapes of sleep                                 _225
   From one whose dreams are Paradise
   Fly, when the fond wretch wakes to weep,
   And Day peers forth with her blank eyes;
   So fleet, so faint, so fair,
   The Powers of earth and air                                          _230
   Fled from the folding-star of Bethlehem:
   Apollo, Pan, and Love,
   And even Olympian Jove
   Grew weak, for killing Truth had glared on them;
   Our hills and seas and streams,                                      _235
   Dispeopled of their dreams,
   Their waters turned to blood, their dew to tears,
   Wailed for the golden years.
   
   [ENTER MAHMUD, HASSAN, DAOOD, AND OTHERS.]
   
   MAHMUD:
   More gold? our ancestors bought gold with victory,
   And shall I sell it for defeat?
   
   DAOOD:
   The Janizars                                                         _240
   Clamour for pay.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Go! bid them pay themselves
   With Christian blood! Are there no Grecian virgins
   Whose shrieks and spasms and tears they may enjoy?
   No infidel children to impale on spears?
   No hoary priests after that Patriarch                                _245
   Who bent the curse against his country's heart,
   Which clove his own at last? Go! bid them kill,
   Blood is the seed of gold.
   
   DAOOD:
   It has been sown,
   And yet the harvest to the sicklemen
   Is as a grain to each.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Then, take this signet,                                              _250
   Unlock the seventh chamber in which lie
   The treasures of victorious Solyman,--
   An empire's spoil stored for a day of ruin.
   O spirit of my sires! is it not come?
   The prey-birds and the wolves are gorged and sleep;                  _255
   But these, who spread their feast on the red earth,
   Hunger for gold, which fills not.--See them fed;
   Then, lead them to the rivers of fresh death.
   [EXIT DAOOD.]
   O miserable dawn, after a night
   More glorious than the day which it usurped!                         _260
   O faith in God! O power on earth! O word
   Of the great prophet, whose o'ershadowing wings
   Darkened the thrones and idols of the West,
   Now bright!--For thy sake cursed be the hour,
   Even as a father by an evil child,                                   _265
   When the orient moon of Islam rolled in triumph
   From Caucasus to White Ceraunia!
   Ruin above, and anarchy below;
   Terror without, and treachery within;
   The Chalice of destruction full, and all                             _270
   Thirsting to drink; and who among us dares
   To dash it from his lips? and where is Hope?
   
   HASSAN:
   The lamp of our dominion still rides high;
   One God is God--Mahomet is His prophet.
   Four hundred thousand Moslems, from the limits                       _275
   Of utmost Asia, irresistibly
   Throng, like full clouds at the Sirocco's cry;
   But not like them to weep their strength in tears:
   They bear destroying lightning, and their step
   Wakes earthquake to consume and overwhelm,                           _280
   And reign in ruin. Phrygian Olympus,
   Tmolus, and Latmos, and Mycale, roughen
   With horrent arms; and lofty ships even now,
   Like vapours anchored to a mountain's edge,
   Freighted with fire and whirlwind, wait at Scala                     _285
   The convoy of the ever-veering wind.
   Samos is drunk with blood;--the Greek has paid
   Brief victory with swift loss and long despair.
   The false Moldavian serfs fled fast and far
   When the fierce shout of 'Allah-illa-Allah!'                         _290
   Rose like the war-cry of the northern wind
   Which kills the sluggish clouds, and leaves a flock
   Of wild swans struggling with the naked storm.
   So were the lost Greeks on the Danube's day!
   If night is mute, yet the returning sun                              _295
   Kindles the voices of the morning birds;
   Nor at thy bidding less exultingly
   Than birds rejoicing in the golden day,
   The Anarchies of Africa unleash
   Their tempest-winged cities of the sea,                              _300
   To speak in thunder to the rebel world.
   Like sulphurous clouds, half-shattered by the storm,
   They sweep the pale Aegean, while the Queen
   Of Ocean, bound upon her island-throne,
   Far in the West, sits mourning that her sons                         _305
   Who frown on Freedom spare a smile for thee:
   Russia still hovers, as an eagle might
   Within a cloud, near which a kite and crane
   Hang tangled in inextricable fight,
   To stoop upon the victor;--for she fears                             _310
   The name of Freedom, even as she hates thine.
   But recreant Austria loves thee as the Grave
   Loves Pestilence, and her slow dogs of war
   Fleshed with the chase, come up from Italy,
   And howl upon their limits; for they see                             _315
   The panther, Freedom, fled to her old cover,
   Amid seas and mountains, and a mightier brood
   Crouch round. What Anarch wears a crown or mitre,
   Or bears the sword, or grasps the key of gold,
   Whose friends are not thy friends, whose foes thy foes?              _320
   Our arsenals and our armouries are full;
   Our forts defy assault; ten thousand cannon
   Lie ranged upon the beach, and hour by hour
   Their earth-convulsing wheels affright the city;
   The galloping of fiery steeds makes pale                             _325
   The Christian merchant; and the yellow Jew
   Hides his hoard deeper in the faithless earth.
   Like clouds, and like the shadows of the clouds,
   Over the hills of Anatolia,
   Swift in wide troops the Tartar chivalry                             _330
   Sweep;--the far flashing of their starry lances
   Reverberates the dying light of day.
   We have one God, one King, one Hope, one Law;
   But many-headed Insurrection stands
   Divided in itself, and soon must fall.                               _335
   
   NOTES:
   _253 spoil edition 1822; spoils editions 1839.
   _279 bear edition 1822; have editions 1839.
   _322 assault edition 1822; assaults editions 1839.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Proud words, when deeds come short, are seasonable:
   Look, Hassan, on yon crescent moon, emblazoned
   Upon that shattered flag of fiery cloud
   Which leads the rear of the departing day;
   Wan emblem of an empire fading now!                                  _340
   See how it trembles in the blood-red air,
   And like a mighty lamp whose oil is spent
   Shrinks on the horizon's edge, while, from above,
   One star with insolent and victorious light
   Hovers above its fall, and with keen beams,                          _345
   Like arrows through a fainting antelope,
   Strikes its weak form to death.
   
   HASSAN:
   Even as that moon
   Renews itself--
   
   MAHMUD:
   Shall we be not renewed!
   Far other bark than ours were needed now
   To stem the torrent of descending time:                              _350
   The Spirit that lifts the slave before his lord
   Stalks through the capitals of armed kings,
   And spreads his ensign in the wilderness:
   Exults in chains; and, when the rebel falls,
   Cries like the blood of Abel from the dust;                          _355
   And the inheritors of the earth, like beasts
   When earthquake is unleashed, with idiot fear
   Cower in their kingly dens--as I do now.
   What were Defeat when Victory must appal?
   Or Danger, when Security looks pale?--                               _360
   How said the messenger--who, from the fort
   Islanded in the Danube, saw the battle
   Of Bucharest?--that--
   
   NOTES:
   _351 his edition 1822; its editions 1839.
   _356 of the earth edition 1822; of earth editions 1839.
   
   HASSAN:
   Ibrahim's scimitar
   Drew with its gleam swift victory from Heaven,
   To burn before him in the night of battle--                          _365
   A light and a destruction.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Ay! the day
   Was ours: but how?--
   
   HASSAN:
   The light Wallachians,
   The Arnaut, Servian, and Albanian allies
   Fled from the glance of our artillery
   Almost before the thunderstone alit.                                 _370
   One half the Grecian army made a bridge
   Of safe and slow retreat, with Moslem dead;
   The other--
   
   MAHMUD:
   Speak--tremble not.--
   
   HASSAN:
   Islanded
   By victor myriads, formed in hollow square
   With rough and steadfast front, and thrice flung back                _375
   The deluge of our foaming cavalry;
   Thrice their keen wedge of battle pierced our lines.
   Our baffled army trembled like one man
   Before a host, and gave them space; but soon,
   From the surrounding hills, the batteries blazed,                    _380
   Kneading them down with fire and iron rain:
   Yet none approached; till, like a field of corn
   Under the hook of the swart sickleman,
   The band, intrenched in mounds of Turkish dead,
   Grew weak and few.--Then said the Pacha, 'Slaves,                    _385
   Render yourselves--they have abandoned you--
   What hope of refuge, or retreat, or aid?
   We grant your lives.' 'Grant that which is thine own!'
   Cried one, and fell upon his sword and died!
   Another--'God, and man, and hope abandon me;                         _390
   But I to them, and to myself, remain
   Constant:'--he bowed his head, and his heart burst.
   A third exclaimed, 'There is a refuge, tyrant,
   Where thou darest not pursue, and canst not harm
   Shouldst thou pursue; there we shall meet again.'                    _395
   Then held his breath, and, after a brief spasm,
   The indignant spirit cast its mortal garment
   Among the slain--dead earth upon the earth!
   So these survivors, each by different ways,
   Some strange, all sudden, none dishonourable,                        _400
   Met in triumphant death; and when our army
   Closed in, while yet wonder, and awe, and shame
   Held back the base hyaenas of the battle
   That feed upon the dead and fly the living,
   One rose out of the chaos of the slain:                              _405
   And if it were a corpse which some dread spirit
   Of the old saviours of the land we rule
   Had lifted in its anger, wandering by;--
   Or if there burned within the dying man
   Unquenchable disdain of death, and faith                             _410
   Creating what it feigned;--I cannot tell--
   But he cried, 'Phantoms of the free, we come!
   Armies of the Eternal, ye who strike
   To dust the citadels of sanguine kings,
   And shake the souls throned on their stony hearts,                   _415
   And thaw their frostwork diadems like dew;--
   O ye who float around this clime, and weave
   The garment of the glory which it wears,
   Whose fame, though earth betray the dust it clasped,
   Lies sepulchred in monumental thought;--                             _420
   Progenitors of all that yet is great,
   Ascribe to your bright senate, O accept
   In your high ministrations, us, your sons--
   Us first, and the more glorious yet to come!
   And ye, weak conquerors! giants who look pale                        _425
   When the crushed worm rebels beneath your tread,
   The vultures and the dogs, your pensioners tame,
   Are overgorged; but, like oppressors, still
   They crave the relic of Destruction's feast.
   The exhalations and the thirsty winds                                _430
   Are sick with blood; the dew is foul with death;
   Heaven's light is quenched in slaughter: thus, where'er
   Upon your camps, cities, or towers, or fleets,
   The obscene birds the reeking remnants cast
   Of these dead limbs,--upon your streams and mountains,               _435
   Upon your fields, your gardens, and your housetops,
   Where'er the winds shall creep, or the clouds fly,
   Or the dews fall, or the angry sun look down
   With poisoned light--Famine, and Pestilence,
   And Panic, shall wage war upon our side!                             _440
   Nature from all her boundaries is moved
   Against ye: Time has found ye light as foam.
   The Earth rebels; and Good and Evil stake
   Their empire o'er the unborn world of men
   On this one cast;--but ere the die be thrown,                        _445
   The renovated genius of our race,
   Proud umpire of the impious game, descends,
   A seraph-winged Victory, bestriding
   The tempest of the Omnipotence of God,
   Which sweeps all things to their appointed doom,                     _450
   And you to oblivion!'--More he would have said,
   But--
   
   NOTE:
   _384 band edition 1822; bands editions 1839.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Died--as thou shouldst ore thy lips had painted
   Their ruin in the hues of our success.
   A rebel's crime, gilt with a rebel's tongue!
   Your heart is Greek, Hassan.
   
   HASSAN:
   It may be so:                                                        _455
   A spirit not my own wrenched me within,
   And I have spoken words I fear and hate;
   Yet would I die for--
   
   MAHMUD:
   Live! oh live! outlive
   Me and this sinking empire. But the fleet--
   
   HASSAN:
   Alas!--
   
   MAHMUD:
   The fleet which, like a flock of clouds                              _460
   Chased by the wind, flies the insurgent banner!
   Our winged castles from their merchant ships!
   Our myriads before their weak pirate bands!
   Our arms before their chains! our years of empire
   Before their centuries of servile fear!                              _465
   Death is awake! Repulse is on the waters!
   They own no more the thunder-bearing banner
   Of Mahmud; but, like hounds of a base breed,
   Gorge from a stranger's hand, and rend their master.
   
   NOTE:
   _466 Repulse is "Shelley, Errata", edition 1822; Repulsed edition 1822.
   
   HASSAN:
   Latmos, and Ampelos, and Phanae saw                                  _470
   The wreck--
   
   MAHMUD:
   The caves of the Icarian isles
   Told each to the other in loud mockery,
   And with the tongue as of a thousand echoes,
   First of the sea-convulsing fight--and, then,--
   Thou darest to speak--senseless are the mountains:                   _475
   Interpret thou their voice!
   
   NOTE:
   _472 Told Errata, Wms. transcript; Hold edition 1822.
   
   HASSAN:
   My presence bore
   A part in that day's shame. The Grecian fleet
   Bore down at daybreak from the North, and hung
   As multitudinous on the ocean line,
   As cranes upon the cloudless Thracian wind.                          _480
   Our squadron, convoying ten thousand men,
   Was stretching towards Nauplia when the battle
   Was kindled.--
   First through the hail of our artillery
   The agile Hydriote barks with press of sail                          _485
   Dashed:--ship to ship, cannon to cannon, man
   To man were grappled in the embrace of war,
   Inextricable but by death or victory.
   The tempest of the raging fight convulsed
   To its crystalline depths that stainless sea,                        _490
   And shook Heaven's roof of golden morning clouds,
   Poised on an hundred azure mountain-isles.
   In the brief trances of the artillery
   One cry from the destroyed and the destroyer
   Rose, and a cloud of desolation wrapped                              _495
   The unforeseen event, till the north wind
   Sprung from the sea, lifting the heavy veil
   Of battle-smoke--then victory--victory!
   For, as we thought, three frigates from Algiers
   Bore down from Naxos to our aid, but soon                            _500
   The abhorred cross glimmered behind, before,
   Among, around us; and that fatal sign
   Dried with its beams the strength in Moslem hearts,
   As the sun drinks the dew.--What more? We fled!--
   Our noonday path over the sanguine foam                              _505
   Was beaconed,--and the glare struck the sun pale,--
   By our consuming transports: the fierce light
   Made all the shadows of our sails blood-red,
   And every countenance blank. Some ships lay feeding
   The ravening fire, even to the water's level;                        _510
   Some were blown up; some, settling heavily,
   Sunk; and the shrieks of our companions died
   Upon the wind, that bore us fast and far,
   Even after they were dead. Nine thousand perished!
   We met the vultures legioned in the air                              _515
   Stemming the torrent of the tainted wind;
   They, screaming from their cloudy mountain-peaks,
   Stooped through the sulphurous battle-smoke and perched
   Each on the weltering carcase that we loved,
   Like its ill angel or its damned soul,                               _520
   Riding upon the bosom of the sea.
   We saw the dog-fish hastening to their feast.
   Joy waked the voiceless people of the sea,
   And ravening Famine left his ocean cave
   To dwell with War, with us, and with Despair.                        _525
   We met night three hours to the west of Patmos,
   And with night, tempest--
   
   NOTES:
   _503 in edition 1822; of editions 1839.
   _527 And edition 1822; As editions 1839.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Cease!
   
   [ENTER A MESSENGER.]
   
   MESSENGER:
   Your Sublime Highness,
   That Christian hound, the Muscovite Ambassador,
   Has left the city.--If the rebel fleet
   Had anchored in the port, had victory                                _530
   Crowned the Greek legions in the Hippodrome,
   Panic were tamer.--Obedience and Mutiny,
   Like giants in contention planet-struck,
   Stand gazing on each other.--There is peace
   In Stamboul.--
   
   MAHMUD:
   Is the grave not calmer still?                                       _535
   Its ruins shall be mine.
   
   HASSAN:
   Fear not the Russian:
   The tiger leagues not with the stag at bay
   Against the hunter.--Cunning, base, and cruel,
   He crouches, watching till the spoil be won,
   And must be paid for his reserve in blood.                           _540
   After the war is fought, yield the sleek Russian
   That which thou canst not keep, his deserved portion
   Of blood, which shall not flow through streets and fields,
   Rivers and seas, like that which we may win,
   But stagnate in the veins of Christian slaves!                       _545
   
   [ENTER SECOND MESSENGER.]
   
   SECOND MESSENGER:
   Nauplia, Tripolizza, Mothon, Athens,
   Navarin, Artas, Monembasia,
   Corinth, and Thebes are carried by assault,
   And every Islamite who made his dogs
   Fat with the flesh of Galilean slaves                                _550
   Passed at the edge of the sword: the lust of blood,
   Which made our warriors drunk, is quenched in death;
   But like a fiery plague breaks out anew
   In deeds which make the Christian cause look pale
   In its own light. The garrison of Patras                             _555
   Has store but for ten days, nor is there hope
   But from the Briton: at once slave and tyrant,
   His wishes still are weaker than his fears,
   Or he would sell what faith may yet remain
   From the oaths broke in Genoa and in Norway;                         _560
   And if you buy him not, your treasury
   Is empty even of promises--his own coin.
   The freedman of a western poet-chief
   Holds Attica with seven thousand rebels,
   And has beat back the Pacha of Negropont:                            _565
   The aged Ali sits in Yanina
   A crownless metaphor of empire:
   His name, that shadow of his withered might,
   Holds our besieging army like a spell
   In prey to famine, pest, and mutiny;                                 _570
   He, bastioned in his citadel, looks forth
   Joyless upon the sapphire lake that mirrors
   The ruins of the city where he reigned
   Childless and sceptreless. The Greek has reaped
   The costly harvest his own blood matured,                            _575
   Not the sower, Ali--who has bought a truce
   From Ypsilanti with ten camel-loads
   Of Indian gold.
   
   NOTE:
   _563 freedman edition 1822; freeman editions 1839.
   
   [ENTER A THIRD MESSENGER.]
   
   MAHMUD:
   What more?
   
   THIRD MESSENGER:
   The Christian tribes
   Of Lebanon and the Syrian wilderness
   Are in revolt;--Damascus, Hems, Aleppo                               _580
   Tremble;--the Arab menaces Medina,
   The Aethiop has intrenched himself in Sennaar,
   And keeps the Egyptian rebel well employed,
   Who denies homage, claims investiture
   As price of tardy aid. Persia demands                                _585
   The cities on the Tigris, and the Georgians
   Refuse their living tribute. Crete and Cyprus,
   Like mountain-twins that from each other's veins
   Catch the volcano-fire and earthquake-spasm,
   Shake in the general fever. Through the city,                        _590
   Like birds before a storm, the Santons shriek,
   And prophesyings horrible and new
   Are heard among the crowd: that sea of men
   Sleeps on the wrecks it made, breathless and still.
   A Dervise, learned in the Koran, preaches                            _595
   That it is written how the sins of Islam
   Must raise up a destroyer even now.
   The Greeks expect a Saviour from the West,
   Who shall not come, men say, in clouds and glory,
   But in the omnipresence of that Spirit                               _600
   In which all live and are. Ominous signs
   Are blazoned broadly on the noonday sky:
   One saw a red cross stamped upon the sun;
   It has rained blood; and monstrous births declare
   The secret wrath of Nature and her Lord.                             _605
   The army encamped upon the Cydaris
   Was roused last night by the alarm of battle,
   And saw two hosts conflicting in the air,
   The shadows doubtless of the unborn time
   Cast on the mirror of the night. While yet                           _610
   The fight hung balanced, there arose a storm
   Which swept the phantoms from among the stars.
   At the third watch the Spirit of the Plague
   Was heard abroad flapping among the tents;
   Those who relieved watch found the sentinels dead.                   _615
   The last news from the camp is, that a thousand
   Have sickened, and--
   
   [ENTER A FOURTH MESSENGER.]
   
   MAHMUD:
   And thou, pale ghost, dim shadow
   Of some untimely rumour, speak!
   
   FOURTH MESSENGER:
   One comes
   Fainting with toil, covered with foam and blood:
   He stood, he says, on Chelonites'                                    _620
   Promontory, which o'erlooks the isles that groan
   Under the Briton's frown, and all their waters
   Then trembling in the splendour of the moon,
   When as the wandering clouds unveiled or hid
   Her boundless light, he saw two adverse fleets                       _625
   Stalk through the night in the horizon's glimmer,
   Mingling fierce thunders and sulphureous gleams,
   And smoke which strangled every infant wind
   That soothed the silver clouds through the deep air.
   At length the battle slept, but the Sirocco                          _630
   Awoke, and drove his flock of thunder-clouds
   Over the sea-horizon, blotting out
   All objects--save that in the faint moon-glimpse
   He saw, or dreamed he saw, the Turkish admiral
   And two the loftiest of our ships of war,                            _635
   With the bright image of that Queen of Heaven,
   Who hid, perhaps, her face for grief, reversed;
   And the abhorred cross--
   
   NOTE:
   _620 on Chelonites']on Chelonites "Errata";
        upon Clelonite's edition 1822;
        upon Clelonit's editions 1839.
   
   [ENTER AN ATTENDANT.]
   
   ATTENDANT:
   Your Sublime Highness,
   The Jew, who--
   
   MAHMUD:
   Could not come more seasonably:
   Bid him attend. I'll hear no more! too long                          _640
   We gaze on danger through the mist of fear,
   And multiply upon our shattered hopes
   The images of ruin. Come what will!
   To-morrow and to-morrow are as lamps
   Set in our path to light us to the edge                              _645
   Through rough and smooth, nor can we suffer aught
   Which He inflicts not in whose hand we are.
   
   [EXEUNT.]
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Would I were the winged cloud
   Of a tempest swift and loud!
   I would scorn                                                        _650
   The smile of morn
   And the wave where the moonrise is born!
   I would leave
   The spirits of eve
   A shroud for the corpse of the day to weave                          _655
   From other threads than mine!
   Bask in the deep blue noon divine.
   Who would? Not I.
   
   NOTE:
   _657 the deep blue "Errata", Wms. transcript; the blue edition 1822.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Whither to fly?
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Where the rocks that gird th' Aegean                                 _660
   Echo to the battle paean
   Of the free--
   I would flee
   A tempestuous herald of victory!
   My golden rain
   For the Grecian slain                                                _665
   Should mingle in tears with the bloody main,
   And my solemn thunder-knell
   Should ring to the world the passing-bell
   Of Tyranny!                                                          _670
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Ah king! wilt thou chain
   The rack and the rain?
   Wilt thou fetter the lightning and hurricane?
   The storms are free,
   But we--                                                             _675
   
   CHORUS:
   O Slavery! thou frost of the world's prime,
   Killing its flowers and leaving its thorns bare!
   Thy touch has stamped these limbs with crime,
   These brows thy branding garland bear,
   But the free heart, the impassive soul                               _680
   Scorn thy control!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Let there be light! said Liberty,
   And like sunrise from the sea,
   Athens arose!--Around her born,
   Shone like mountains in the morn                                     _685
   Glorious states;--and are they now
   Ashes, wrecks, oblivion?
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Go,
   Where Thermae and Asopus swallowed
   Persia, as the sand does foam:
   Deluge upon deluge followed,                                         _690
   Discord, Macedon, and Rome:
   And lastly thou!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Temples and towers,
   Citadels and marts, and they
   Who live and die there, have been ours,
   And may be thine, and must decay;                                    _695
   But Greece and her foundations are
   Built below the tide of war,
   Based on the crystalline sea
   Of thought and its eternity;
   Her citizens, imperial spirits,                                      _700
   Rule the present from the past,
   On all this world of men inherits
   Their seal is set.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Hear ye the blast,
   Whose Orphic thunder thrilling calls
   From ruin her Titanian walls?                                        _705
   Whose spirit shakes the sapless bones
   Of Slavery? Argos, Corinth, Crete
   Hear, and from their mountain thrones
   The daemons and the nymphs repeat
   The harmony.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   I hear! I hear!                                                      _710
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   The world's eyeless charioteer,
   Destiny, is hurrying by!
   What faith is crushed, what empire bleeds
   Beneath her earthquake-footed steeds?
   What eagle-winged victory sits                                       _715
   At her right hand? what shadow flits
   Before? what splendour rolls behind?
   Ruin and renovation cry
   'Who but We?'
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   I hear! I hear!
   The hiss as of a rushing wind,                                       _720
   The roar as of an ocean foaming,
   The thunder as of earthquake coming.
   I hear! I hear!
   The crash as of an empire falling,
   The shrieks as of a people calling                                   _725
   'Mercy! mercy!'--How they thrill!
   Then a shout of 'kill! kill! kill!'
   And then a small still voice, thus--
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   For
   Revenge and Wrong bring forth their kind,
   The foul cubs like their parents are,                                _730
   Their den is in the guilty mind,
   And Conscience feeds them with despair.
   
   NOTE:
   _728 For edition 1822, Wms. transcript;
        Fear cj. Fleay, Forman, Dowden. See Editor's Note.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   In sacred Athens, near the fane
   Of Wisdom, Pity's altar stood:
   Serve not the unknown God in vain.                                   _735
   But pay that broken shrine again,
   Love for hate and tears for blood.
   
   [ENTER MAHMUD AND AHASUERUS.]
   
   MAHMUD:
   Thou art a man, thou sayest, even as we.
   
   AHASUERUS:
   No more!
   
   MAHMUD:
   But raised above thy fellow-men
   By thought, as I by power.
   
   AHASUERUS:
   Thou sayest so.                                                      _740
   
   MAHMUD:
   Thou art an adept in the difficult lore
   Of Greek and Frank philosophy; thou numberest
   The flowers, and thou measurest the stars;
   Thou severest element from element;
   Thy spirit is present in the Past, and sees                          _745
   The birth of this old world through all its cycles
   Of desolation and of loveliness,
   And when man was not, and how man became
   The monarch and the slave of this low sphere,
   And all its narrow circles--it is much--                             _750
   I honour thee, and would be what thou art
   Were I not what I am; but the unborn hour,
   Cradled in fear and hope, conflicting storms,
   Who shall unveil? Nor thou, nor I, nor any
   Mighty or wise. I apprehended not                                    _755
   What thou hast taught me, but I now perceive
   That thou art no interpreter of dreams;
   Thou dost not own that art, device, or God,
   Can make the Future present--let it come!
   Moreover thou disdainest us and ours;                                _760
   Thou art as God, whom thou contemplatest.
   
   AHASUERUS:
   Disdain thee?--not the worm beneath thy feet!
   The Fathomless has care for meaner things
   Than thou canst dream, and has made pride for those
   Who would be what they may not, or would seem                        _765
   That which they are not. Sultan! talk no more
   Of thee and me, the Future and the Past;
   But look on that which cannot change--the One,
   The unborn and the undying. Earth and ocean,
   Space, and the isles of life or light that gem                       _770
   The sapphire floods of interstellar air,
   This firmament pavilioned upon chaos,
   With all its cressets of immortal fire,
   Whose outwall, bastioned impregnably
   Against the escape of boldest thoughts, repels them                  _775
   As Calpe the Atlantic clouds--this Whole
   Of suns, and worlds, and men, and beasts, and flowers,
   With all the silent or tempestuous workings
   By which they have been, are, or cease to be,
   Is but a vision;--all that it inherits                               _780
   Are motes of a sick eye, bubbles and dreams;
   Thought is its cradle and its grave, nor less
   The Future and the Past are idle shadows
   Of thought's eternal flight--they have no being:
   Nought is but that which feels itself to be.                         _785
   
   NOTE:
   _762 thy edition 1822; my editions 1839.
   
   MAHMUD:
   What meanest thou? Thy words stream like a tempest
   Of dazzling mist within my brain--they shake
   The earth on which I stand, and hang like night
   On Heaven above me. What can they avail?
   They cast on all things surest, brightest, best,                     _790
   Doubt, insecurity, astonishment.
   
   AHASUERUS:
   Mistake me not! All is contained in each.
   Dodona's forest to an acorn's cup
   Is that which has been, or will be, to that
   Which is--the absent to the present. Thought                         _795
   Alone, and its quick elements, Will, Passion,
   Reason, Imagination, cannot die;
   They are, what that which they regard appears,
   The stuff whence mutability can weave
   All that it hath dominion o'er, worlds, worms,                       _800
   Empires, and superstitions. What has thought
   To do with time, or place, or circumstance?
   Wouldst thou behold the Future?--ask and have!
   Knock and it shall be opened--look, and lo!
   The coming age is shadowed on the Past                               _805
   As on a glass.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Wild, wilder thoughts convulse
   My spirit--Did not Mahomet the Second
   Win Stamboul?
   
   AHASUERUS:
   Thou wouldst ask that giant spirit
   The written fortunes of thy house and faith.
   Thou wouldst cite one out of the grave to tell                       _810
   How what was born in blood must die.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Thy words
   Have power on me! I see--
   
   AHASUERUS:
   What hearest thou?
   
   MAHMUD:
   A far whisper--
   Terrible silence.
   
   AHASUERUS:
   What succeeds?
   
   MAHMUD:
   The sound
   As of the assault of an imperial city,                               _815
   The hiss of inextinguishable fire,
   The roar of giant cannon; the earthquaking
   Fall of vast bastions and precipitous towers,
   The shock of crags shot from strange enginery,
   The clash of wheels, and clang of armed hoofs,                       _820
   And crash of brazen mail as of the wreck
   Of adamantine mountains--the mad blast
   Of trumpets, and the neigh of raging steeds,
   The shrieks of women whose thrill jars the blood,
   And one sweet laugh, most horrible to hear,                          _825
   As of a joyous infant waked and playing
   With its dead mother's breast, and now more loud
   The mingled battle-cry,--ha! hear I not
   'En touto nike!' 'Allah-illa-Allah!'?
   
   AHASUERUS:
   The sulphurous mist is raised--thou seest--
   
   MAHMUD:
   A chasm,                                                             _830
   As of two mountains in the wall of Stamboul;
   And in that ghastly breach the Islamites,
   Like giants on the ruins of a world,
   Stand in the light of sunrise. In the dust
   Glimmers a kingless diadem, and one                                  _835
   Of regal port has cast himself beneath
   The stream of war. Another proudly clad
   In golden arms spurs a Tartarian barb
   Into the gap, and with his iron mace
   Directs the torrent of that tide of men,                             _840
   And seems--he is--Mahomet!
   
   AHASUERUS:
   What thou seest
   Is but the ghost of thy forgotten dream.
   A dream itself, yet less, perhaps, than that
   Thou call'st reality. Thou mayst behold
   How cities, on which Empire sleeps enthroned,                        _845
   Bow their towered crests to mutability.
   Poised by the flood, e'en on the height thou holdest,
   Thou mayst now learn how the full tide of power
   Ebbs to its depths.--Inheritor of glory,
   Conceived in darkness, born in blood, and nourished                  _850
   With tears and toil, thou seest the mortal throes
   Of that whose birth was but the same. The Past
   Now stands before thee like an Incarnation
   Of the To-come; yet wouldst thou commune with
   That portion of thyself which was ere thou                           _855
   Didst start for this brief race whose crown is death,
   Dissolve with that strong faith and fervent passion
   Which called it from the uncreated deep,
   Yon cloud of war, with its tempestuous phantoms
   Of raging death; and draw with mighty will                           _860
   The imperial shade hither.
   
   [EXIT AHASUERUS.]
   
   [THE PHANTOM OF MAHOMET THE SECOND APPEARS.]
   
   MAHMUD:
   Approach!
   
   PHANTOM:
   I come
   Thence whither thou must go! The grave is fitter
   To take the living than give up the dead;
   Yet has thy faith prevailed, and I am here.
   The heavy fragments of the power which fell                          _865
   When I arose, like shapeless crags and clouds,
   Hang round my throne on the abyss, and voices
   Of strange lament soothe my supreme repose,
   Wailing for glory never to return.--
   A later Empire nods in its decay:                                    _870
   The autumn of a greener faith is come,
   And wolfish change, like winter, howls to strip
   The foliage in which Fame, the eagle, built
   Her aerie, while Dominion whelped below.
   The storm is in its branches, and the frost                          _875
   Is on its leaves, and the blank deep expects
   Oblivion on oblivion, spoil on spoil,
   Ruin on ruin:--Thou art slow, my son;
   The Anarchs of the world of darkness keep
   A throne for thee, round which thine empire lies                     _880
   Boundless and mute; and for thy subjects thou,
   Like us, shalt rule the ghosts of murdered life,
   The phantoms of the powers who rule thee now--
   Mutinous passions, and conflicting fears,
   And hopes that sate themselves on dust, and die!--                   _885
   Stripped of their mortal strength, as thou of thine.
   Islam must fall, but we will reign together
   Over its ruins in the world of death:--
   And if the trunk be dry, yet shall the seed
   Unfold itself even in the shape of that                              _890
   Which gathers birth in its decay. Woe! woe!
   To the weak people tangled in the grasp
   Of its last spasms.
   
   MAHMUD:
   Spirit, woe to all!
   Woe to the wronged and the avenger! Woe
   To the destroyer, woe to the destroyed!                              _895
   Woe to the dupe, and woe to the deceiver!
   Woe to the oppressed, and woe to the oppressor!
   Woe both to those that suffer and inflict;
   Those who are born and those who die! but say,
   Imperial shadow of the thing I am,                                   _900
   When, how, by whom, Destruction must accomplish
   Her consummation!
   
   PHANTOM:
   Ask the cold pale Hour,
   Rich in reversion of impending death,
   When HE shall fall upon whose ripe gray hairs
   Sit Care, and Sorrow, and Infirmity--                                _905
   The weight which Crime, whose wings are plumed with years,
   Leaves in his flight from ravaged heart to heart
   Over the heads of men, under which burthen
   They bow themselves unto the grave: fond wretch!
   He leans upon his crutch, and talks of years                         _910
   To come, and how in hours of youth renewed
   He will renew lost joys, and--
   
   VOICE WITHOUT:
   Victory! Victory!
   
   [THE PHANTOM VANISHES.]
   
   MAHMUD:
   What sound of the importunate earth has broken
   My mighty trance?
   
   VOICE WITHOUT:
   Victory! Victory!
   
   MAHMUD:
   Weak lightning before darkness! poor faint smile                     _915
   Of dying Islam! Voice which art the response
   Of hollow weakness! Do I wake and live?
   Were there such things, or may the unquiet brain,
   Vexed by the wise mad talk of the old Jew,
   Have shaped itself these shadows of its fear?                        _920
   It matters not!--for nought we see or dream,
   Possess, or lose, or grasp at, can be worth
   More than it gives or teaches. Come what may,
   The Future must become the Past, and I
   As they were to whom once this present hour,                         _925
   This gloomy crag of time to which I cling,
   Seemed an Elysian isle of peace and joy
   Never to be attained.--I must rebuke
   This drunkenness of triumph ere it die,
   And dying, bring despair. Victory! poor slaves!                      _930
   
   [EXIT MAHMUD.]
   
   VOICE WITHOUT:
   Shout in the jubilee of death! The Greeks
   Are as a brood of lions in the net
   Round which the kingly hunters of the earth
   Stand smiling. Anarchs, ye whose daily food
   Are curses, groans, and gold, the fruit of death,                    _935
   From Thule to the girdle of the world,
   Come, feast! the board groans with the flesh of men;
   The cup is foaming with a nation's blood,
   Famine and Thirst await! eat, drink, and die!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Victorious Wrong, with vulture scream,                               _940
   Salutes the rising sun, pursues the flying day!
   I saw her, ghastly as a tyrant's dream,
   Perch on the trembling pyramid of night,
   Beneath which earth and all her realms pavilioned lay
   In visions of the dawning undelight.                                 _945
   Who shall impede her flight?
   Who rob her of her prey?
   
   VOICE WITHOUT:
   Victory! Victory! Russia's famished eagles
   Dare not to prey beneath the crescent's light.
   Impale the remnant of the Greeks! despoil!                           _950
   Violate! make their flesh cheaper than dust!
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Thou voice which art
   The herald of the ill in splendour hid!
   Thou echo of the hollow heart
   Of monarchy, bear me to thine abode                                  _955
   When desolation flashes o'er a world destroyed:
   Oh, bear me to those isles of jagged cloud
   Which float like mountains on the earthquake, mid
   The momentary oceans of the lightning,
   Or to some toppling promontory proud                                 _960
   Of solid tempest whose black pyramid,
   Riven, overhangs the founts intensely bright'ning
   Of those dawn-tinted deluges of fire
   Before their waves expire,
   When heaven and earth are light, and only light                      _965
   In the thunder-night!
   
   NOTE:
   _958 earthquake edition 1822; earthquakes editions 1839.
   
   VOICE WITHOUT:
   Victory! Victory! Austria, Russia, England,
   And that tame serpent, that poor shadow, France,
   Cry peace, and that means death when monarchs speak.
   Ho, there! bring torches, sharpen those red stakes,                  _970
   These chains are light, fitter for slaves and poisoners
   Than Greeks. Kill! plunder! burn! let none remain.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Alas! for Liberty!
   If numbers, wealth, or unfulfilling years,
   Or fate, can quell the free!                                         _975
   Alas! for Virtue, when
   Torments, or contumely, or the sneers
   Of erring judging men
   Can break the heart where it abides.
   Alas! if Love, whose smile makes this obscure world splendid,        _980
   Can change with its false times and tides,
   Like hope and terror,--
   Alas for Love!
   And Truth, who wanderest lone and unbefriended,
   If thou canst veil thy lie-consuming mirror                          _985
   Before the dazzled eyes of Error,
   Alas for thee! Image of the Above.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Repulse, with plumes from conquest torn,
   Led the ten thousand from the limits of the morn
   Through many an hostile Anarchy!                                     _990
   At length they wept aloud, and cried, 'The Sea! the Sea!'
   Through exile, persecution, and despair,
   Rome was, and young Atlantis shall become
   The wonder, or the terror, or the tomb
   Of all whose step wakes Power lulled in her savage lair:             _995
   But Greece was as a hermit-child,
   Whose fairest thoughts and limbs were built
   To woman's growth, by dreams so mild,
   She knew not pain or guilt;
   And now, O Victory, blush! and Empire, tremble                       _1000
   When ye desert the free--
   If Greece must be
   A wreck, yet shall its fragments reassemble,
   And build themselves again impregnably
   In a diviner clime,                                                  _1005
   To Amphionic music on some Cape sublime,
   Which frowns above the idle foam of Time.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Let the tyrants rule the desert they have made;
   Let the free possess the Paradise they claim;
   Be the fortune of our fierce oppressors weighed                      _1010
   With our ruin, our resistance, and our name!
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Our dead shall be the seed of their decay,
   Our survivors be the shadow of their pride,
   Our adversity a dream to pass away--
   Their dishonour a remembrance to abide!                              _1015
   
   VOICE WITHOUT:
   Victory! Victory! The bought Briton sends
   The keys of ocean to the Islamite.--
   Now shall the blazon of the cross be veiled,
   And British skill directing Othman might,
   Thunder-strike rebel victory. Oh, keep holy                          _1020
   This jubilee of unrevenged blood!
   Kill! crush! despoil! Let not a Greek escape!
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Darkness has dawned in the East
   On the noon of time:
   The death-birds descend to their feast                               _1025
   From the hungry clime.
   Let Freedom and Peace flee far
   To a sunnier strand,
   And follow Love's folding-star
   To the Evening land!                                                 _1030
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   The young moon has fed
   Her exhausted horn
   With the sunset's fire:
   The weak day is dead,
   But the night is not born;                                           _1035
   And, like loveliness panting with wild desire
   While it trembles with fear and delight,
   Hesperus flies from awakening night,
   And pants in its beauty and speed with light
   Fast-flashing, soft, and bright.                                     _1040
   Thou beacon of love! thou lamp of the free!
   Guide us far, far away,
   To climes where now veiled by the ardour of day
   Thou art hidden
   From waves on which weary Noon                                       _1045
   Faints in her summer swoon,
   Between kingless continents sinless as Eden,
   Around mountains and islands inviolably
   Pranked on the sapphire sea.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   Through the sunset of hope,                                          _1050
   Like the shapes of a dream.
   What Paradise islands of glory gleam!
   Beneath Heaven's cope,
   Their shadows more clear float by--
   The sound of their oceans, the light of their sky,                   _1055
   The music and fragrance their solitudes breathe
   Burst, like morning on dream, or like Heaven on death,
   Through the walls of our prison;
   And Greece, which was dead, is arisen!
   
   NOTE:
   _1057 dream edition 1822; dreams editions 1839.
   
   CHORUS:
   The world's great age begins anew,                                   _1060
   The golden years return,
   The earth doth like a snake renew
   Her winter weeds outworn:
   Heaven smiles, and faiths and empires gleam,
   Like wrecks of a dissolving dream.                                   _1065
   
   A brighter Hellas rears its mountains
   From waves serener far;
   A new Peneus rolls his fountains
   Against the morning star.
   Where fairer Tempes bloom, there sleep                               _1070
   Young Cyclads on a sunnier deep.
   
   A loftier Argo cleaves the main,
   Fraught with a later prize;
   Another Orpheus sings again,
   And loves, and weeps, and dies.                                      _1075
   A new Ulysses leaves once more
   Calypso for his native shore.
   
   Oh, write no more the tale of Troy,
   If earth Death's scroll must be!
   Nor mix with Laian rage the joy                                      _1080
   Which dawns upon the free:
   Although a subtler Sphinx renew
   Riddles of death Thebes never knew.
   
   Another Athens shall arise,
   And to remoter time                                                  _1085
   Bequeath, like sunset to the skies,
   The splendour of its prime;
   And leave, if nought so bright may live,
   All earth can take or Heaven can give.
   
   Saturn and Love their long repose                                    _1090
   Shall burst, more bright and good
   Than all who fell, than One who rose,
   Than many unsubdued:
   Not gold, not blood, their altar dowers,
   But votive tears and symbol flowers.                                 _1095
   
   Oh, cease! must hate and death return?
   Cease! must men kill and die?
   Cease! drain not to its dregs the urn
   Of bitter prophecy.
   The world is weary of the past,                                      _1100
   Oh, might it die or rest at last!
   
   NOTES:
   _1068 his edition 1822; its editions 1839.
   _1072 Argo]Argos edition 1822.
   _1091-_1093 See Editor's note.
   _1091 bright editions 1839; wise edition 1829  (ed. Galignani).
   _1093 unsubdued editions 1839; unwithstood edition 1829 (ed. Galignani).
   
   
   NOTES.
   
   (1) THE QUENCHLESS ASHES OF MILAN [L. 60].
   
   Milan was the centre of the resistance of the Lombard league against
   the Austrian tyrant. Frederic Barbarossa burnt the city to the ground,
   but liberty lived in its ashes, and it rose like an exhalation from
   its ruin. See Sismondi's "Histoire des Republiques Italiennes", a book
   which has done much towards awakening the Italians to an imitation of
   their great ancestors.
   
   (2) THE CHORUS [L. 197].
   
   The popular notions of Christianity are represented in this chorus as
   true in their relation to the worship they superseded, and that which
   in all probability they will supersede, without considering their
   merits in a relation more universal. The first stanza contrasts the
   immortality of the living and thinking beings which inhabit the
   planets, and to use a common and inadequate phrase, "clothe themselves
   in matter", with the transience of the noblest manifestations of the
   external world.
   
   The concluding verses indicate a progressive state of more or loss
   exalted existence, according to the degree of perfection which every
   distinct intelligence may have attained. Let it not be supposed that I
   mean to dogmatise upon a subject, concerning which all men are equally
   ignorant, or that I think the Gordian knot of the origin of evil can
   be disentangled by that or any similar assertions. The received
   hypothesis of a Being resembling men in the moral attributes of His
   nature, having called us out of non-existence, and after inflicting on
   us the misery of the commission of error, should superadd that of the
   punishment and the privations consequent upon it, still would remain
   inexplicable and incredible. That there is a true solution of the
   riddle, and that in our present state that solution is unattainable by
   us, are propositions which may be regarded as equally certain:
   meanwhile, as it is the province of the poet to attach himself to
   those ideas which exalt and ennoble humanity, let him be permitted to
   have conjectured the condition of that futurity towards which we are
   all impelled by an inextinguishable thirst for immortality. Until
   better arguments can be produced than sophisms which disgrace the
   cause, this desire itself must remain the strongest and the only
   presumption that eternity is the inheritance of every thinking being.
   
   (3) NO HOARY PRIESTS AFTER THAT PATRIARCH [L. 245].
   
   The Greek Patriarch, after haying been compelled to fulminate an
   anathema against the insurgents, was put to death by the Turks.
   
   Fortunately the Greeks have been taught that they cannot buy security
   by degradation, and the Turks, though equally cruel, are less cunning
   than the smooth-faced tyrants of Europe. As to the anathema, his
   Holiness might as well have thrown his mitre at Mount Athos for any
   effect that it produced. The chiefs of the Greeks are almost all men
   of comprehension and enlightened views on religion and politics.
   
   (4) THE FREEDMAN OF A WESTERN POET-CHIEF [L. 563].
   
   A Greek who had been Lord Byron's servant commands the insurgents in
   Attica. This Greek, Lord Byron informs me, though a poet and an
   enthusiastic patriot, gave him rather the idea of a timid and
   unenterprising person. It appears that circumstances make men what
   they are, and that we all contain the germ of a degree of degradation
   or of greatness whose connection with our character is determined by
   events.
   
   (5) THE GREEKS EXPECT A SAVIOUR FROM THE WEST [L. 598].
   
   It is reported that this Messiah had arrived at a seaport near
   Lacedaemon in an American brig. The association of names and ideas is
   irresistibly ludicrous, but the prevalence of such a rumour strongly
   marks the state of popular enthusiasm in Greece.
   
   (6) THE SOUND AS OF THE ASSAULT OF AN IMPERIAL CITY [LL. 814-15].
   
   For the vision of Mahmud of the taking of Constantinople in 1453, see
   Gibbon's "Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire", volume 12 page 223.
   
   The manner of the invocation of the spirit of Mahomet the Second will
   be censured as over subtle. I could easily have made the Jew a regular
   conjuror, and the Phantom an ordinary ghost. I have preferred to
   represent the Jew as disclaiming all pretension, or even belief, in
   supernatural agency, and as tempting Mahmud to that state of mind in
   which ideas may be supposed to assume the force of sensations through
   the confusion of thought with the objects of thought, and the excess
   of passion animating the creations of imagination.
   
   It is a sort of natural magic, susceptible of being exercised in a
   degree by any one who should have made himself master of the secret
   associations of another's thoughts.
   
   (7) THE CHORUS [L. 1060].
   
   The final chorus is indistinct and obscure, as the event of the living
   drama whose arrival it foretells. Prophecies of wars, and rumours of
   wars, etc., may safely be made by poet or prophet in any age, but to
   anticipate however darkly a period of regeneration and happiness is a
   more hazardous exercise of the faculty which bards possess or feign.
   It will remind the reader 'magno NEC proximus intervallo' of Isaiah
   and Virgil, whose ardent spirits overleaping the actual reign of evil
   which we endure and bewail, already saw the possible and perhaps
   approaching state of society in which the 'lion shall lie down with
   the lamb,' and 'omnis feret omnia tellus.' Let these great names be my
   authority and my excuse.
   
   (8) SATURN AND LOVE THEIR LONG REPOSE SHALL BURST [L. 1090].
   
   Saturn and Love were among the deities of a real or imaginary state of
   innocence and happiness. ALL those WHO FELL, or the Gods of Greece,
   Asia, and Egypt; the ONE WHO ROSE, or Jesus Christ, at whose
   appearance the idols of the Pagan World wore amerced of their worship;
   and the MANY UNSUBDUED, or the monstrous objects of the idolatry of
   China, India, the Antarctic islands, and the native tribes of America,
   certainly have reigned over the understandings of men in conjunction
   or in succession, during periods in which all we know of evil has been
   in a state of portentous, and, until the revival of learning and the
   arts, perpetually increasing, activity. The Grecian gods seem indeed
   to have been personally more innocent, although it cannot be said,
   that as far as temperance and chastity are concerned, they gave so
   edifying an example as their successor. The sublime human character of
   Jesus Christ was deformed by an imputed identification with a Power,
   who tempted, betrayed, and punished the innocent beings who were
   called into existence by His sole will; and for the period of a
   thousand years, the spirit of this most just, wise, and benevolent of
   men has been propitiated with myriads of hecatombs of those who
   approached the nearest to His innocence and wisdom, sacrificed under
   every aggravation of atrocity and variety of torture. The horrors of
   the Mexican, the Peruvian, and the Indian superstitions are well
   known.
   
   NOTE ON HELLAS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   The South of Europe was in a state of great political excitement at
   the beginning of the year 1821. The Spanish Revolution had been a
   signal to Italy; secrete societies were formed; and, when Naples rose
   to declare the Constitution, the call was responded to from Brundusium
   to the foot of the Alps. To crush these attempts to obtain liberty,
   early in 1821 the Austrians poured their armies into the Peninsula: at
   first their coming rather seemed to add energy and resolution to a
   people long enslaved. The Piedmontese asserted their freedom; Genoa
   threw off the yoke of the King of Sardinia; and, as if in playful
   imitation, the people of the little state of Massa and Carrara gave
   the conge to their sovereign, and set up a republic.
   
   Tuscany alone was perfectly tranquil. It was said that the Austrian
   minister presented a list of sixty Carbonari to the Grand Duke, urging
   their imprisonment; and the Grand Duke replied, 'I do not know whether
   these sixty men are Carbonari, but I know, if I imprison them, I shall
   directly have sixty thousand start up.' But, though the Tuscans had no
   desire to disturb the paternal government beneath whose shelter they
   slumbered, they regarded the progress of the various Italian
   revolutions with intense interest, and hatred for the Austrian was
   warm in every bosom. But they had slender hopes; they knew that the
   Neapolitans would offer no fit resistance to the regular German
   troops, and that the overthrow of the constitution in Naples would act
   as a decisive blow against all struggles for liberty in Italy.
   
   We have seen the rise and progress of reform. But the Holy Alliance
   was alive and active in those days, and few could dream of the
   peaceful triumph of liberty. It seemed then that the armed assertion
   of freedom in the South of Europe was the only hope of the liberals,
   as, if it prevailed, the nations of the north would imitate the
   example. Happily the reverse has proved the fact. The countries
   accustomed to the exercise of the privileges of freemen, to a limited
   extent, have extended, and are extending, these limits. Freedom and
   knowledge have now a chance of proceeding hand in hand; and, if it
   continue thus, we may hope for the durability of both. Then, as I have
   said--in 1821--Shelley, as well as every other lover of liberty,
   looked upon the struggles in Spain and Italy as decisive of the
   destinies of the world, probably for centuries to come. The interest
   he took in the progress of affairs was intense. When Genoa declared
   itself free, his hopes were at their highest. Day after day he read
   the bulletins of the Austrian army, and sought eagerly to gather
   tokens of its defeat. He heard of the revolt of Genoa with emotions of
   transport. His whole heart and soul were in the triumph of the cause.
   We were living at Pisa at that time; and several well-informed
   Italians, at the head of whom we may place the celebrated Vacca, were
   accustomed to seek for sympathy in their hopes from Shelley: they did
   not find such for the despair they too generally experienced, founded
   on contempt for their southern countrymen.
   
   While the fate of the progress of the Austrian armies then invading
   Naples was yet in suspense, the news of another revolution filled him
   with exultation. We had formed the acquaintance at Pisa of several
   Constantinopolitan Greeks, of the family of Prince Caradja, formerly
   Hospodar of Wallachia; who, hearing that the bowstring, the accustomed
   finale of his viceroyalty, was on the road to him, escaped with his
   treasures, and took up his abode in Tuscany. Among these was the
   gentleman to whom the drama of "Hellas" is dedicated. Prince
   Mavrocordato was warmed by those aspirations for the independence of
   his country which filled the hearts of many of his countrymen. He
   often intimated the possibility of an insurrection in Greece; but we
   had no idea of its being so near at hand, when, on the 1st of April
   1821, he called on Shelley, bringing the proclamation of his cousin,
   Prince Ypsilanti, and, radiant with exultation and delight, declared
   that henceforth Greece would be free.
   
   Shelley had hymned the dawn of liberty in Spain and Naples, in two
   odes dictated by the warmest enthusiasm; he felt himself naturally
   impelled to decorate with poetry the uprise of the descendants of that
   people whose works he regarded with deep admiration, and to adopt the
   vaticinatory character in prophesying their success. "Hellas" was
   written in a moment of enthusiasm. It is curious to remark how well he
   overcomes the difficulty of forming a drama out of such scant
   materials. His prophecies, indeed, came true in their general, not
   their particular, purport. He did not foresee the death of Lord
   Londonderry, which was to be the epoch of a change in English
   politics, particularly as regarded foreign affairs; nor that the navy
   of his country would fight for instead of against the Greeks, and by
   the battle of Navarino secure their enfranchisement from the Turks.
   Almost against reason, as it appeared to him, he resolved to believe
   that Greece would prove triumphant; and in this spirit, auguring
   ultimate good, yet grieving over the vicissitudes to be endured in the
   interval, he composed his drama.
   
   "Hellas" was among the last of his compositions, and is among the most
   beautiful. The choruses are singularly imaginative, and melodious in
   their versification. There are some stanzas that beautifully exemplify
   Shelley's peculiar style; as, for instance, the assertion of the
   intellectual empire which must be for ever the inheritance of the
   country of Homer, Sophocles, and Plato:--
   
   'But Greece and her foundations are
   Built below the tide of war,
   Based on the crystalline sea
   Of thought and its eternity.'
   
   And again, that philosophical truth felicitously imaged forth--
   
   'Revenge and Wrong bring forth their kind,
   The foul cubs like their parents are,
   Their den is in the guilty mind,
   And Conscience feeds them with despair.'
   
   The conclusion of the last chorus is among the most beautiful of his
   lyrics. The imagery is distinct and majestic; the prophecy, such as
   poets love to dwell upon, the Regeneration of Mankind--and that
   regeneration reflecting back splendour on the foregone time, from
   which it inherits so much of intellectual wealth, and memory of past
   virtuous deeds, as must render the possession of happiness and peace
   of tenfold value.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENTS OF AN UNFINISHED DRAMA.
   
   [Published in part (lines 1-69, 100-120) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous
   Poems", 1824; and again, with the notes, in "Poetical Works", 1839.
   Lines 127-238 were printed by Dr. Garnett under the title of "The
   Magic Plant" in his "Relics of Shelley", 1862. The whole was edited in
   its present form from the Boscombe manuscript by Mr. W.M. Rossetti in
   1870 ("Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", Moxon, 2 volumes.).
   'Written at Pisa during the late winter or early spring of 1822'
   (Garnett).]
   
   The following fragments are part of a Drama undertaken for the
   amusement of the individuals who composed our intimate society, but
   left unfinished. I have preserved a sketch of the story as far as it
   had been shadowed in the poet's mind.
   
   An Enchantress, living in one of the islands of the Indian
   Archipelago, saves the life of a Pirate, a man of savage but noble
   nature. She becomes enamoured of him; and he, inconstant to his mortal
   love, for a while returns her passion; but at length, recalling the
   memory of her whom he left, and who laments his loss, he escapes from
   the Enchanted Island, and returns to his lady. His mode of life makes
   him again go to sea, and the Enchantress seizes the opportunity to
   bring him, by a spirit-brewed tempest, back to her Island. --[MRS.
   SHELLEY'S NOTE, 1839.]
   
   
   SCENE.--BEFORE THE CAVERN OF THE INDIAN ENCHANTRESS.
   
   THE ENCHANTRESS COMES FORTH.
   
   ENCHANTRESS:
   He came like a dream in the dawn of life,
   He fled like a shadow before its noon;
   He is gone, and my peace is turned to strife,
   And I wander and wane like the weary moon.
   O, sweet Echo, wake,                                                 _5
   And for my sake
   Make answer the while my heart shall break!
   
   But my heart has a music which Echo's lips,
   Though tender and true, yet can answer not,
   And the shadow that moves in the soul's eclipse                      _10
   Can return not the kiss by his now forgot;
   Sweet lips! he who hath
   On my desolate path
   Cast the darkness of absence, worse than death!
   
   NOTE:
   _8 my omitted 1824.
   
   [THE ENCHANTRESS MAKES HER SPELL: SHE IS ANSWERED BY A SPIRIT.]
   
   SPIRIT:
   Within the silent centre of the earth                                _15
   My mansion is; where I have lived insphered
   From the beginning, and around my sleep
   Have woven all the wondrous imagery
   Of this dim spot, which mortals call the world;
   Infinite depths of unknown elements                                  _20
   Massed into one impenetrable mask;
   Sheets of immeasurable fire, and veins
   Of gold and stone, and adamantine iron.
   And as a veil in which I walk through Heaven
   I have wrought mountains, seas, and waves, and clouds,               _25
   And lastly light, whose interfusion dawns
   In the dark space of interstellar air.
   
   NOTES:
   _15-_27 Within...air. 1839; omitted 1824.
       See these lines in "Posthumous Poems", 1824, page 209: "Song of a Spirit".
   _16 have 1839; omitted 1824, page 209.
   _25 seas, and waves 1824, page 209; seas, waves 1839.
   
   [A good Spirit, who watches over the Pirate's fate, leads, in a
   mysterious manner, the lady of his love to the Enchanted Isle. She is
   accompanied by a Youth, who loves the lady, but whose passion she
   returns only with a sisterly affection. The ensuing scene takes place
   between them on their arrival at the Isle. [MRS. SHELLEY'S NOTE,
   1839.]]
   
   ANOTHER SCENE.
   
   INDIAN YOUTH AND LADY.
   
   INDIAN:
   And, if my grief should still be dearer to me
   Than all the pleasures in the world beside,
   Why would you lighten it?--
   
   NOTE:
   _29 pleasures]pleasure 1824.
   
   LADY:
   I offer only                                                         _30
   That which I seek, some human sympathy
   In this mysterious island.
   
   INDIAN:
   Oh! my friend,
   My sister, my beloved!--What do I say?
   My brain is dizzy, and I scarce know whether
   I speak to thee or her.
   
   LADY:
   Peace, perturbed heart!                                              _35
   I am to thee only as thou to mine,
   The passing wind which heals the brow at noon,
   And may strike cold into the breast at night,
   Yet cannot linger where it soothes the most,
   Or long soothe could it linger.
   
   INDIAN:
   But you said                                                         _40
   You also loved?
   
   NOTE:
   _32-_41 Assigned to INDIAN, 1824.
   
   LADY:
   Loved! Oh, I love. Methinks
   This word of love is fit for all the world,
   And that for gentle hearts another name
   Would speak of gentler thoughts than the world owns.
   I have loved.
   
   INDIAN:
   And thou lovest not? if so,                                          _45
   Young as thou art thou canst afford to weep.
   
   LADY:
   Oh! would that I could claim exemption
   From all the bitterness of that sweet name.
   I loved, I love, and when I love no more
   Let joys and grief perish, and leave despair                         _50
   To ring the knell of youth. He stood beside me,
   The embodied vision of the brightest dream,
   Which like a dawn heralds the day of life;
   The shadow of his presence made my world
   A Paradise. All familiar things he touched,                          _55
   All common words he spoke, became to me
   Like forms and sounds of a diviner world.
   He was as is the sun in his fierce youth,
   As terrible and lovely as a tempest;
   He came, and went, and left me what I am.                            _60
   Alas! Why must I think how oft we two
   Have sate together near the river springs,
   Under the green pavilion which the willow
   Spreads on the floor of the unbroken fountain,
   Strewn, by the nurslings that linger there,                          _65
   Over that islet paved with flowers and moss,
   While the musk-rose leaves, like flakes of crimson snow,
   Showered on us, and the dove mourned in the pine,
   Sad prophetess of sorrows not her own?
   The crane returned to her unfrozen haunt,                            _70
   And the false cuckoo bade the spray good morn;
   And on a wintry bough the widowed bird,
   Hid in the deepest night of ivy-leaves,
   Renewed the vigils of a sleepless sorrow.
   I, left like her, and leaving one like her,                          _75
   Alike abandoned and abandoning
   (Oh! unlike her in this!) the gentlest youth,
   Whose love had made my sorrows dear to him,
   Even as my sorrow made his love to me!
   
   NOTE:
   _71 spray Rossetti 1870, Woodberry; Spring Forman, Dowden.
   
   INDIAN:
   One curse of Nature stamps in the same mould                         _80
   The features of the wretched; and they are
   As like as violet to violet,
   When memory, the ghost, their odours keeps
   Mid the cold relics of abandoned joy.--
   Proceed.
   
   LADY:
   He was a simple innocent boy.                                        _85
   I loved him well, but not as he desired;
   Yet even thus he was content to be:--
   A short content, for I was--
   
   INDIAN [ASIDE]:
   God of Heaven!
   From such an islet, such a river-spring--!
   I dare not ask her if there stood upon it                            _90
   A pleasure-dome surmounted by a crescent,
   With steps to the blue water.
   [ALOUD.]
   It may be
   That Nature masks in life several copies
   Of the same lot, so that the sufferers
   May feel another's sorrow as their own,                              _95
   And find in friendship what they lost in love.
   That cannot be: yet it is strange that we,
   From the same scene, by the same path to this
   Realm of abandonment-- But speak! your breath--
   Your breath is like soft music, your words are                       _100
   The echoes of a voice which on my heart
   Sleeps like a melody of early days.
   But as you said--
   
   LADY:
   He was so awful, yet
   So beautiful in mystery and terror,
   Calming me as the loveliness of heaven                               _105
   Soothes the unquiet sea:--and yet not so,
   For he seemed stormy, and would often seem
   A quenchless sun masked in portentous clouds;
   For such his thoughts, and even his actions were;
   But he was not of them, nor they of him,                             _110
   But as they hid his splendour from the earth.
   Some said he was a man of blood and peril,
   And steeped in bitter infamy to the lips.
   More need was there I should be innocent,
   More need that I should be most true and kind,                       _115
   And much more need that there should be found one
   To share remorse and scorn and solitude,
   And all the ills that wait on those who do
   The tasks of ruin in the world of life.
   He fled, and I have followed him.
   
   INDIAN:
   Such a one                                                           _120
   Is he who was the winter of my peace.
   But, fairest stranger, when didst thou depart
   From the far hills where rise the springs of India?
   How didst thou pass the intervening sea?
   
   LADY:
   If I be sure I am not dreaming now,                                  _125
   I should not doubt to say it was a dream.
   Methought a star came down from heaven,
   And rested mid the plants of India,
   Which I had given a shelter from the frost
   Within my chamber. There the meteor lay,                             _130
   Panting forth light among the leaves and flowers,
   As if it lived, and was outworn with speed;
   Or that it loved, and passion made the pulse
   Of its bright life throb like an anxious heart,
   Till it diffused itself; and all the chamber                         _135
   And walls seemed melted into emerald fire
   That burned not; in the midst of which appeared
   A spirit like a child, and laughed aloud
   A thrilling peal of such sweet merriment
   As made the blood tingle in my warm feet:                            _140
   Then bent over a vase, and murmuring
   Low, unintelligible melodies,
   Placed something in the mould like melon-seeds,
   And slowly faded, and in place of it
   A soft hand issued from the veil of fire,                            _145
   Holding a cup like a magnolia flower,
   And poured upon the earth within the vase
   The element with which it overflowed,
   Brighter than morning light, and purer than
   The water of the springs of Himalah.                                 _150
   
   NOTE:
   _120-_126 Such...dream 1839; omitted 1824.
   
   INDIAN:
   You waked not?
   
   LADY:
   Not until my dream became
   Like a child's legend on the tideless sand.
   Which the first foam erases half, and half
   Leaves legible. At length I rose, and went,
   Visiting my flowers from pot to pot, and thought                     _155
   To set new cuttings in the empty urns,
   And when I came to that beside the lattice,
   I saw two little dark-green leaves
   Lifting the light mould at their birth, and then
   I half-remembered my forgotten dream.                                _160
   And day by day, green as a gourd in June,
   The plant grew fresh and thick, yet no one knew
   What plant it was; its stem and tendrils seemed
   Like emerald snakes, mottled and diamonded
   With azure mail and streaks of woven silver;                         _165
   And all the sheaths that folded the dark buds
   Rose like the crest of cobra-di-capel,
   Until the golden eye of the bright flower,
   Through the dark lashes of those veined lids,
   ...disencumbered of their silent sleep,                              _170
   Gazed like a star into the morning light.
   Its leaves were delicate, you almost saw
   The pulses
   With which the purple velvet flower was fed
   To overflow, and like a poet's heart                                 _175
   Changing bright fancy to sweet sentiment,
   Changed half the light to fragrance. It soon fell,
   And to a green and dewy embryo-fruit
   Left all its treasured beauty. Day by day
   I nursed the plant, and on the double flute                          _180
   Played to it on the sunny winter days
   Soft melodies, as sweet as April rain
   On silent leaves, and sang those words in which
   Passion makes Echo taunt the sleeping strings;
   And I would send tales of forgotten love                             _185
   Late into the lone night, and sing wild songs
   Of maids deserted in the olden time,
   And weep like a soft cloud in April's bosom
   Upon the sleeping eyelids of the plant,
   So that perhaps it dreamed that Spring was come,                     _190
   And crept abroad into the moonlight air,
   And loosened all its limbs, as, noon by noon,
   The sun averted less his oblique beam.
   
   INDIAN:
   And the plant died not in the frost?
   
   LADY:
   It grew;
   And went out of the lattice which I left                             _195
   Half open for it, trailing its quaint spires
   Along the garden and across the lawn,
   And down the slope of moss and through the tufts
   Of wild-flower roots, and stumps of trees o'ergrown
   With simple lichens, and old hoary stones,                           _200
   On to the margin of the glassy pool,
   Even to a nook of unblown violets
   And lilies-of-the-valley yet unborn,
   Under a pine with ivy overgrown.
   And theme its fruit lay like a sleeping lizard                       _205
   Under the shadows; but when Spring indeed
   Came to unswathe her infants, and the lilies
   Peeped from their bright green masks to wonder at
   This shape of autumn couched in their recess,
   Then it dilated, and it grew until                                   _210
   One half lay floating on the fountain wave,
   Whose pulse, elapsed in unlike sympathies,
   Kept time
   Among the snowy water-lily buds.
   Its shape was such as summer melody                                  _215
   Of the south wind in spicy vales might give
   To some light cloud bound from the golden dawn
   To fairy isles of evening, and it seemed
   In hue and form that it had been a mirror
   Of all the hues and forms around it and                              _220
   Upon it pictured by the sunny beams
   Which, from the bright vibrations of the pool,
   Were thrown upon the rafters and the roof
   Of boughs and leaves, and on the pillared stems
   Of the dark sylvan temple, and reflections                           _225
   Of every infant flower and star of moss
   And veined leaf in the azure odorous air.
   And thus it lay in the Elysian calm
   Of its own beauty, floating on the line
   Which, like a film in purest space, divided                          _230
   The heaven beneath the water from the heaven
   Above the clouds; and every day I went
   Watching its growth and wondering;
   And as the day grew hot, methought I saw
   A glassy vapour dancing on the pool,                                 _235
   And on it little quaint and filmy shapes.
   With dizzy motion, wheel and rise and fall,
   Like clouds of gnats with perfect lineaments.
   
   ...
   
   O friend, sleep was a veil uplift from Heaven--
   As if Heaven dawned upon the world of dream--                        _240
   When darkness rose on the extinguished day
   Out of the eastern wilderness.
   
   INDIAN:
   I too
   Have found a moment's paradise in sleep
   Half compensate a hell of waking sorrow.
   
   ***
   
   
   CHARLES THE FIRST.
   
   ["Charles the First" was designed in 1818, begun towards the close of
   1819 [Medwin, "Life", 2 page 62], resumed in January, and finally laid
   aside by June, 1822. It was published in part in the "Posthumous
   Poems", 1824, and printed, in its present form (with the addition of
   some 530 lines), by Mr. W.M. Rossetti, 1870. Further particulars are
   given in the Editor's Notes at the end of Volume 3.]
   
   DRAMATIS PERSONAE:
   
   KING CHARLES I.
   QUEEN HENRIETTA.
   LAUD, ARCHBISHOP OF CANTERBURY.
   WENTWORTH, EARL OF STRAFFORD.
   LORD COTTINGTON.
   LORD WESTON.
   LORD COVENTRY.
   WILLIAMS, BISHOP OF LINCOLN.
   SECRETARY LYTTELTON.
   JUXON.
   ST. JOHN.
   ARCHY, THE COURT FOOL.
   HAMPDEN.
   PYM.
   CROMWELL.
   CROMWELL'S DAUGHTER.
   SIR HARRY VANE THE YOUNGER.
   LEIGHTON.
   BASTWICK.
   PRYNNE.
   GENTLEMEN OF THE INNS OF COURT, CITIZENS, PURSUIVANTS,
   MARSHALSMEN, LAW STUDENTS, JUDGES, CLERK.
   
   SCENE 1:
   THE MASQUE OF THE INNS OF COURT.
   
   A PURSUIVANT:
   Place, for the Marshal of the Masque!
   
   FIRST CITIZEN:
   What thinkest thou of this quaint masque which turns,
   Like morning from the shadow of the night,
   The night to day, and London to a place
   Of peace and joy?
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   And Hell to Heaven.                                                  _5
   Eight years are gone,
   And they seem hours, since in this populous street
   I trod on grass made green by summer's rain,
   For the red plague kept state within that palace
   Where now that vanity reigns. In nine years more                     _10
   The roots will be refreshed with civil blood;
   And thank the mercy of insulted Heaven
   That sin and wrongs wound, as an orphan's cry,
   The patience of the great Avenger's ear.
   
   NOTE:
   _10 now that vanity reigns 1870; now reigns vanity 1824.
   
   A YOUTH:
   Yet, father, 'tis a happy sight to see,                              _15
   Beautiful, innocent, and unforbidden
   By God or man;--'tis like the bright procession
   Of skiey visions in a solemn dream
   From which men wake as from a Paradise,
   And draw new strength to tread the thorns of life.                   _20
   If God be good, wherefore should this be evil?
   And if this be not evil, dost thou not draw
   Unseasonable poison from the flowers
   Which bloom so rarely in this barren world?
   Oh, kill these bitter thoughts which make the present                _25
   Dark as the future!--
   
   ...
   
   When Avarice and Tyranny, vigilant Fear,
   And open-eyed Conspiracy lie sleeping
   As on Hell's threshold; and all gentle thoughts
   Waken to worship Him who giveth joys                                 _30
   With His own gift.
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   How young art thou in this old age of time!
   How green in this gray world? Canst thou discern
   The signs of seasons, yet perceive no hint
   Of change in that stage-scene in which thou art                      _35
   Not a spectator but an actor? or
   Art thou a puppet moved by [enginery]?
   The day that dawns in fire will die in storms,
   Even though the noon be calm. My travel's done,--
   Before the whirlwind wakes I shall have found                        _40
   My inn of lasting rest; but thou must still
   Be journeying on in this inclement air.
   Wrap thy old cloak about thy back;
   Nor leave the broad and plain and beaten road,
   Although no flowers smile on the trodden dust,                       _45
   For the violet paths of pleasure. This Charles the First
   Rose like the equinoctial sun,...
   By vapours, through whose threatening ominous veil
   Darting his altered influence he has gained
   This height of noon--from which he must decline                      _50
   Amid the darkness of conflicting storms,
   To dank extinction and to latest night...
   There goes
   The apostate Strafford; he whose titles
   whispered aphorisms                                                  _55
   From Machiavel and Bacon: and, if Judas
   Had been as brazen and as bold as he--
   
   NOTES:
   _33-_37 Canst...enginery 1870;
       Canst thou not think
       Of change in that low scene, in which thou art
       Not a spectator but an actor?... 1824.
   _43-_57 Wrap...bold as he 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   FIRST CITIZEN:
   That
   Is the Archbishop.
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   Rather say the Pope:
   London will be soon his Rome: he walks
   As if he trod upon the heads of men:                                 _60
   He looks elate, drunken with blood and gold;--
   Beside him moves the Babylonian woman
   Invisibly, and with her as with his shadow,
   Mitred adulterer! he is joined in sin,
   Which turns Heaven's milk of mercy to revenge.                       _65
   
   THIRD CITIZEN [LIFTING UP HIS EYES]:
   Good Lord! rain it down upon him!...
   Amid her ladies walks the papist queen,
   As if her nice feet scorned our English earth.
   The Canaanitish Jezebel! I would be
   A dog if I might tear her with my teeth!                             _70
   There's old Sir Henry Vane, the Earl of Pembroke,
   Lord Essex, and Lord Keeper Coventry,
   And others who make base their English breed
   By vile participation of their honours
   With papists, atheists, tyrants, and apostates.                      _75
   When lawyers masque 'tis time for honest men
   To strip the vizor from their purposes.
   A seasonable time for masquers this!
   When Englishmen and Protestants should sit
   dust on their dishonoured heads                                      _80
   To avert the wrath of Him whose scourge is felt
   For the great sins which have drawn down from Heaven
   and foreign overthrow.
   The remnant of the martyred saints in Rochefort
   Have been abandoned by their faithless allies                        _85
   To that idolatrous and adulterous torturer
   Lewis of France,--the Palatinate is lost--
   [ENTER LEIGHTON (WHO HAS BEEN BRANDED IN THE FACE) AND BASTWICK.]
   Canst thou be--art thou?
   
   NOTE:
   _73 make 1824; made 1839.
   
   LEIGHTON:
   I WAS Leighton: what
   I AM thou seest. And yet turn thine eyes,
   And with thy memory look on thy friend's mind,                       _90
   Which is unchanged, and where is written deep
   The sentence of my judge.
   
   THIRD CITIZEN:
   Are these the marks with which
   Laud thinks to improve the image of his Maker
   Stamped on the face of man? Curses upon him,
   The impious tyrant!
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   It is said besides                                                   _95
   That lewd and papist drunkards may profane
   The Sabbath with their
   And has permitted that most heathenish custom
   Of dancing round a pole dressed up with wreaths
   On May-day.                                                          _100
   A man who thus twice crucifies his God
   May well ... his brother.--In my mind, friend,
   The root of all this ill is prelacy.
   I would cut up the root.
   
   THIRD CITIZEN:
   And by what means?
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   Smiting each Bishop under the fifth rib.                             _105
   
   THIRD CITIZEN:
   You seem to know the vulnerable place
   Of these same crocodiles.
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   I learnt it in
   Egyptian bondage, sir. Your worm of Nile
   Betrays not with its flattering tears like they;
   For, when they cannot kill, they whine and weep.                     _110
   Nor is it half so greedy of men's bodies
   As they of soul and all; nor does it wallow
   In slime as they in simony and lies
   And close lusts of the flesh.
   
   NOTE:
   _78-_114 A seasonable...of the flesh 1870; omitted 1824.
   _108 bondage cj. Forman; bondages 1870.
   
   A MARSHALSMAN:
   Give place, give place!
   You torch-bearers, advance to the great gate,                        _115
   And then attend the Marshal of the Masque
   Into the Royal presence.
   
   A LAW STUDENT:
   What thinkest thou
   Of this quaint show of ours, my aged friend?
   Even now we see the redness of the torches
   Inflame the night to the eastward, and the clarions                  _120
   [Gasp?] to us on the wind's wave. It comes!
   And their sounds, floating hither round the pageant,
   Rouse up the astonished air.
   
   NOTE:
   _119-_123 Even now...air 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   FIRST CITIZEN:
   I will not think but that our country's wounds
   May yet be healed. The king is just and gracious,                    _125
   Though wicked counsels now pervert his will:
   These once cast off--
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   As adders cast their skins
   And keep their venom, so kings often change;
   Councils and counsellors hang on one another,
   Hiding the loathsome                                                 _130
   Like the base patchwork of a leper's rags.
   
   THE YOUTH:
   Oh, still those dissonant thoughts!--List how the music
   Grows on the enchanted air! And see, the torches
   Restlessly flashing, and the crowd divided
   Like waves before an admiral's prow!
   
   NOTE:
   _132 how the 1870; loud 1824.
   
   A MARSHALSMAN:
   Give place                                                           _135
   To the Marshal of the Masque!
   
   A PURSUIVANT:
   Room for the King!
   
   NOTE:
   _136 A Pursuivant: Room for the King! 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   THE YOUTH:
   How glorious! See those thronging chariots
   Rolling, like painted clouds before the wind,
   Behind their solemn steeds: how some are shaped
   Like curved sea-shells dyed by the azure depths                      _140
   Of Indian seas; some like the new-born moon;
   And some like cars in which the Romans climbed
   (Canopied by Victory's eagle-wings outspread)
   The Capitolian--See how gloriously
   The mettled horses in the torchlight stir                            _145
   Their gallant riders, while they check their pride,
   Like shapes of some diviner element
   Than English air, and beings nobler than
   The envious and admiring multitude.
   
   NOTE:
   _138-40 Rolling...depths 1870;
   Rolling like painted clouds before the wind
   Some are
   Like curved shells, dyed by the azure depths 1824.
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   Ay, there they are--                                                 _150
   Nobles, and sons of nobles, patentees,
   Monopolists, and stewards of this poor farm,
   On whose lean sheep sit the prophetic crows,
   Here is the pomp that strips the houseless orphan,
   Here is the pride that breaks the desolate heart.                    _155
   These are the lilies glorious as Solomon,
   Who toil not, neither do they spin,--unless
   It be the webs they catch poor rogues withal.
   Here is the surfeit which to them who earn
   The niggard wages of the earth, scarce leaves                        _160
   The tithe that will support them till they crawl
   Back to her cold hard bosom. Here is health
   Followed by grim disease, glory by shame,
   Waste by lame famine, wealth by squalid want,
   And England's sin by England's punishment.                           _165
   And, as the effect pursues the cause foregone,
   Lo, giving substance to my words, behold
   At once the sign and the thing signified--
   A troop of cripples, beggars, and lean outcasts,
   Horsed upon stumbling jades, carted with dung,                       _170
   Dragged for a day from cellars and low cabins
   And rotten hiding-holes, to point the moral
   Of this presentment, and bring up the rear
   Of painted pomp with misery!
   
   NOTES:
   _162 her 1870; its 1824.
   _170 jades 1870; shapes 1824.
   _173 presentment 1870; presentiment 1824.
   
   THE YOUTH:
   'Tis but
   The anti-masque, and serves as discords do                           _175
   In sweetest music. Who would love May flowers
   If they succeeded not to Winter's flaw;
   Or day unchanged by night; or joy itself
   Without the touch of sorrow?
   
   SECOND CITIZEN:
   I and thou-
   
   A MARSHALSMAN:
   Place, give place!                                                   _180
   
   NOTE:
   _179, _180 I...place! 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   
   SCENE 2:
   A CHAMBER IN WHITEHALL.
   ENTER THE KING, QUEEN, LAUD, LORD STRAFTORD,
   LORD COTTINGTON, AND OTHER LORDS; ARCHY;
   ALSO ST. JOHN, WITH SOME GENTLEMEN OF THE INNS OF COURT.
   
   KING:
   Thanks, gentlemen. I heartily accept
   This token of your service: your gay masque
   Was performed gallantly. And it shows well
   When subjects twine such flowers of [observance?]
   With the sharp thorns that deck the English crown.                   _5
   A gentle heart enjoys what it confers,
   Even as it suffers that which it inflicts,
   Though Justice guides the stroke.
   Accept my hearty thanks.
   
   NOTE:
   _3-9 And...thanks 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   QUEEN:
   And gentlemen,
   Call your poor Queen your debtor. Your quaint pageant                _10
   Rose on me like the figures of past years,
   Treading their still path back to infancy,
   More beautiful and mild as they draw nearer
   The quiet cradle. I could have almost wept
   To think I was in Paris, where these shows                           _15
   Are well devised--such as I was ere yet
   My young heart shared a portion of the burthen,
   The careful weight, of this great monarchy.
   There, gentlemen, between the sovereign's pleasure
   And that which it regards, no clamour lifts                          _20
   Its proud interposition.
   In Paris ribald censurers dare not move
   Their poisonous tongues against these sinless sports;
   And HIS smile
   Warms those who bask in it, as ours would do                         _25
   If ... Take my heart's thanks: add them, gentlemen,
   To those good words which, were he King of France,
   My royal lord would turn to golden deeds.
   
   ST. JOHN:
   Madam, the love of Englishmen can make
   The lightest favour of their lawful king                             _30
   Outweigh a despot's.--We humbly take our leaves,
   Enriched by smiles which France can never buy.
   
   [EXEUNT ST. JOHN AND THE GENTLEMEN OF THE INNS OF COURT.]
   
   KING:
   My Lord Archbishop,
   Mark you what spirit sits in St. John's eyes?
   Methinks it is too saucy for this presence.                          _35
   
   ARCHY:
   Yes, pray your Grace look: for, like an unsophisticated [eye] sees
   everything upside down, you who are wise will discern the shadow of an
   idiot in lawn sleeves and a rochet setting springes to catch woodcocks
   in haymaking time. Poor Archy, whose owl-eyes are tempered to the
   error of his age, and because he is a fool, and by special ordinance
   of God forbidden ever to see himself as he is, sees now in that deep
   eye a blindfold devil sitting on the ball, and weighing words out
   between king and subjects. One scale is full of promises, and the
   other full of protestations: and then another devil creeps behind the
   first out of the dark windings [of a] pregnant lawyer's brain, and
   takes the bandage from the other's eyes, and throws a sword into the
   left-hand scale, for all the world like my Lord Essex's there.       _48
   
   STRAFFORD:
   A rod in pickle for the Fool's back!
   
   ARCHY:
   Ay, and some are now smiling whose tears will make the brine; for the
   Fool sees--
   
   STRAFFORD:
   Insolent! You shall have your coat turned and be whipped out of the
   palace for this.                                                     _53
   
   ARCHY:
   When all the fools are whipped, and all the Protestant writers, while
   the knaves are whipping the fools ever since a thief was set to catch
   a thief. If all turncoats were whipped out of palaces, poor Archy
   would be disgraced in good company. Let the knaves whip the fools, and
   all the fools laugh at it. [Let the] wise and godly slit each other's
   noses and ears (having no need of any sense of discernment in their
   craft); and the knaves, to marshal them, join in a procession to
   Bedlam, to entreat the madmen to omit their sublime Platonic
   contemplations, and manage the state of England. Let all the honest
   men who lie [pinched?] up at the prisons or the pillories, in custody
   of the pursuivants of the High-Commission Court, marshal them.       _65
   
   NOTE:
   _64 pinched marked as doubtful by Rossetti.
       1870; Forman, Dowden; penned Woodberry.
   
   [ENTER SECRETARY LYTTELTON, WITH PAPERS.]
   
   KING [LOOKING OVER THE PAPERS]:
   These stiff Scots
   His Grace of Canterbury must take order
   To force under the Church's yoke.--You, Wentworth,
   Shall be myself in Ireland, and shall add
   Your wisdom, gentleness, and energy,                                 _70
   To what in me were wanting.--My Lord Weston,
   Look that those merchants draw not without loss
   Their bullion from the Tower; and, on the payment
   Of shipmoney, take fullest compensation
   For violation of our royal forests,                                  _75
   Whose limits, from neglect, have been o'ergrown
   With cottages and cornfields. The uttermost
   Farthing exact from those who claim exemption
   From knighthood: that which once was a reward
   Shall thus be made a punishment, that subjects                       _80
   May know how majesty can wear at will
   The rugged mood.--My Lord of Coventry,
   Lay my command upon the Courts below
   That bail be not accepted for the prisoners
   Under the warrant of the Star Chamber.                               _85
   The people shall not find the stubbornness
   Of Parliament a cheap or easy method
   Of dealing with their rightful sovereign:
   And doubt not this, my Lord of Coventry,
   We will find time and place for fit rebuke.--                        _90
   My Lord of Canterbury.
   
   NOTE:
   _22-90 In Paris...rebuke 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   ARCHY:
   The fool is here.
   
   LAUD:
   I crave permission of your Majesty
   To order that this insolent fellow be
   Chastised: he mocks the sacred character,
   Scoffs at the state, and--
   
   NOTE:
   _95 state 1870; stake 1824.
   
   KING:
   What, my Archy?                                                      _95
   He mocks and mimics all he sees and hears,
   Yet with a quaint and graceful licence--Prithee
   For this once do not as Prynne would, were he
   Primate of England. With your Grace's leave,
   He lives in his own world; and, like a parrot                        _100
   Hung in his gilded prison from the window
   Of a queen's bower over the public way,
   Blasphemes with a bird's mind:--his words, like arrows
   Which know no aim beyond the archer's wit,
   Strike sometimes what eludes philosophy.--                           _105
   [TO ARCHY.]
   Go, sirrah, and repent of your offence
   Ten minutes in the rain; be it your penance
   To bring news how the world goes there.
   [EXIT ARCHY.]
   Poor Archy!
   He weaves about himself a world of mirth
   Out of the wreck of ours.                                            _110
   
   NOTES:
   _99 With your Grace's leave 1870; omitted 1824.
   _106-_110 Go...ours spoken by THE QUEEN, 1824.
   
   LAUD:
   I take with patience, as my Master did,
   All scoffs permitted from above.
   
   KING:
   My lord,
   Pray overlook these papers. Archy's words
   Had wings, but these have talons.
   
   QUEEN:
   And the lion
   That wears them must be tamed. My dearest lord,                      _115
   I see the new-born courage in your eye
   Armed to strike dead the Spirit of the Time,
   Which spurs to rage the many-headed beast.
   Do thou persist: for, faint but in resolve,
   And it were better thou hadst still remained                         _120
   The slave of thine own slaves, who tear like curs
   The fugitive, and flee from the pursuer;
   And Opportunity, that empty wolf,
   Flies at his throat who falls. Subdue thy actions
   Even to the disposition of thy purpose,                              _125
   And be that tempered as the Ebro's steel;
   And banish weak-eyed Mercy to the weak,
   Whence she will greet thee with a gift of peace
   And not betray thee with a traitor's kiss,
   As when she keeps the company of rebels,                             _130
   Who think that she is Fear. This do, lest we
   Should fall as from a glorious pinnacle
   In a bright dream, and wake as from a dream
   Out of our worshipped state.
   
   NOTES:
   _116 your 1824; thine 1870.
   _118 Which...beast 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   KING:
   Beloved friend,
   God is my witness that this weight of power,                         _135
   Which He sets me my earthly task to wield
   Under His law, is my delight and pride
   Only because thou lovest that and me.
   For a king bears the office of a God
   To all the under world; and to his God                               _140
   Alone he must deliver up his trust,
   Unshorn of its permitted attributes.
   [It seems] now as the baser elements
   Had mutinied against the golden sun
   That kindles them to harmony, and quells                             _145
   Their self-destroying rapine. The wild million
   Strike at the eye that guides them; like as humours
   Of the distempered body that conspire
   Against the spirit of life throned in the heart,--
   And thus become the prey of one another,                             _150
   And last of death--
   
   STRAFFORD:
   That which would be ambition in a subject
   Is duty in a sovereign; for on him,
   As on a keystone, hangs the arch of life,
   Whose safety is its strength. Degree and form,                       _155
   And all that makes the age of reasoning man
   More memorable than a beast's, depend on this--
   That Right should fence itself inviolably
   With Power; in which respect the state of England
   From usurpation by the insolent commons                              _160
   Cries for reform.
   Get treason, and spare treasure. Fee with coin
   The loudest murmurers; feed with jealousies
   Opposing factions,--be thyself of none;
   And borrow gold of many, for those who lend                          _165
   Will serve thee till thou payest them; and thus
   Keep the fierce spirit of the hour at bay,
   Till time, and its coming generations
   Of nights and days unborn, bring some one chance,
   
   ...
   
   Or war or pestilence or Nature's self,--                             _170
   By some distemperature or terrible sign,
   Be as an arbiter betwixt themselves.
   Nor let your Majesty
   Doubt here the peril of the unseen event.
   How did your brother Kings, coheritors                               _175
   In your high interest in the subject earth,
   Rise past such troubles to that height of power
   Where now they sit, and awfully serene
   Smile on the trembling world? Such popular storms
   Philip the Second of Spain, this Lewis of France,                    _180
   And late the German head of many bodies,
   And every petty lord of Italy,
   Quelled or by arts or arms. Is England poorer
   Or feebler? or art thou who wield'st her power
   Tamer than they? or shall this island be--                           _185
   [Girdled] by its inviolable waters--
   To the world present and the world to come
   Sole pattern of extinguished monarchy?
   Not if thou dost as I would have thee do.
   
   KING:
   Your words shall be my deeds:                                        _190
   You speak the image of my thought. My friend
   (If Kings can have a friend, I call thee so),
   Beyond the large commission which [belongs]
   Under the great seal of the realm, take this:
   And, for some obvious reasons, let there be                          _195
   No seal on it, except my kingly word
   And honour as I am a gentleman.
   Be--as thou art within my heart and mind--
   Another self, here and in Ireland:
   Do what thou judgest well, take amplest licence,                     _200
   And stick not even at questionable means.
   Hear me, Wentworth. My word is as a wall
   Between thee and this world thine enemy--
   That hates thee, for thou lovest me.
   
   STRAFFORD:
   I own
   No friend but thee, no enemies but thine:                            _205
   Thy lightest thought is my eternal law.
   How weak, how short, is life to pay--
   
   KING:
   Peace, peace.
   Thou ow'st me nothing yet.
   [TO LAUD.]
   My lord, what say
   Those papers?
   
   LAUD:
   Your Majesty has ever interposed,                                    _210
   In lenity towards your native soil,
   Between the heavy vengeance of the Church
   And Scotland. Mark the consequence of warming
   This brood of northern vipers in your bosom.
   The rabble, instructed no doubt                                      _215
   By London, Lindsay, Hume, and false Argyll
   (For the waves never menace heaven until
   Scourged by the wind's invisible tyranny),
   Have in the very temple of the Lord
   Done outrage to His chosen ministers.                                _220
   They scorn the liturgy of the Holy Church,
   Refuse to obey her canons, and deny
   The apostolic power with which the Spirit
   Has filled its elect vessels, even from him
   Who held the keys with power to loose and bind,                      _225
   To him who now pleads in this royal presence.--
   Let ample powers and new instructions be
   Sent to the High Commissioners in Scotland.
   To death, imprisonment, and confiscation,
   Add torture, add the ruin of the kindred                             _230
   Of the offender, add the brand of infamy,
   Add mutilation: and if this suffice not,
   Unleash the sword and fire, that in their thirst
   They may lick up that scum of schismatics.
   I laugh at those weak rebels who, desiring                           _235
   What we possess, still prate of Christian peace,
   As if those dreadful arbitrating messengers
   Which play the part of God 'twixt right and wrong,
   Should be let loose against the innocent sleep
   Of templed cities and the smiling fields,                            _240
   For some poor argument of policy
   Which touches our own profit or our pride
   (Where it indeed were Christian charity
   To turn the cheek even to the smiter's hand):
   And, when our great Redeemer, when our God,                          _245
   When He who gave, accepted, and retained
   Himself in propitiation of our sins,
   Is scorned in His immediate ministry,
   With hazard of the inestimable loss
   Of all the truth and discipline which is                             _250
   Salvation to the extremest generation
   Of men innumerable, they talk of peace!
   Such peace as Canaan found, let Scotland now:
   For, by that Christ who came to bring a sword,
   Not peace, upon the earth, and gave command                          _255
   To His disciples at the Passover
   That each should sell his robe and buy a sword,-
   Once strip that minister of naked wrath,
   And it shall never sleep in peace again
   Till Scotland bend or break.
   
   NOTES:
   _134-_232 Beloved...mutilation 1870; omitted 1824.
   _237 arbitrating messengers 1870; messengers of wrath 1824.
   _239 the 1870; omitted 1524.
   _243-_244 Parentheses __insert__ed 1870.
   _246, _247 When He...sins 1870; omitted 1824.
   _248 ministry 1870; ministers 1824.
   _249-52 With...innumerable 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   KING:
   My Lord Archbishop,                                                  _260
   Do what thou wilt and what thou canst in this.
   Thy earthly even as thy heavenly King
   Gives thee large power in his unquiet realm.
   But we want money, and my mind misgives me
   That for so great an enterprise, as yet,                             _265
   We are unfurnished.
   
   STRAFFORD:
   Yet it may not long
   Rest on our wills.
   
   COTTINGTON:
   The expenses
   Of gathering shipmoney, and of distraining
   For every petty rate (for we encounter
   A desperate opposition inch by inch                                  _270
   In every warehouse and on every farm),
   Have swallowed up the gross sum of the imposts;
   So that, though felt as a most grievous scourge
   Upon the land, they stand us in small stead
   As touches the receipt.
   
   STRAFFORD:
   'Tis a conclusion                                                    _275
   Most arithmetical: and thence you infer
   Perhaps the assembling of a parliament.
   Now, if a man should call his dearest enemies
   T0 sit in licensed judgement on his life,
   His Majesty might wisely take that course.                           _280
   [ASIDE TO COTTINGTON.]
   It is enough to expect from these lean imposts
   That they perform the office of a scourge,
   Without more profit.
   [ALOUD.]
   Fines and confiscations,
   And a forced loan from the refractory city,
   Will fill our coffers: and the golden love                           _285
   Of loyal gentlemen and noble friends
   For the worshipped father of our common country,
   With contributions from the catholics,
   Will make Rebellion pale in our excess.
   Be these the expedients until time and wisdom                        _290
   Shall frame a settled state of government.
   
   LAUD:
   And weak expedients they! Have we not drained
   All, till the ... which seemed
   A mine exhaustless?
   
   STRAFFORD:
   And the love which IS,
   If loyal hearts could turn their blood to gold.                      _295
   
   LAUD:
   Both now grow barren: and I speak it not
   As loving parliaments, which, as they have been
   In the right hand of bold bad mighty kings
   The scourges of the bleeding Church, I hate.
   Methinks they scarcely can deserve our fear.                         _300
   
   STRAFFORD:
   Oh! my dear liege, take back the wealth thou gavest:
   With that, take all I held, but as in trust
   For thee, of mine inheritance: leave me but
   This unprovided body for thy service,
   And a mind dedicated to no care                                      _305
   Except thy safety:--but assemble not
   A parliament. Hundreds will bring, like me,
   Their fortunes, as they would their blood, before--
   
   KING:
   No! thou who judgest them art but one. Alas!
   We should be too much out of love with Heaven,                       _310
   Did this vile world show many such as thee,
   Thou perfect, just, and honourable man!
   Never shall it be said that Charles of England
   Stripped those he loved for fear of those he scorns;
   Nor will he so much misbecome his throne                             _315
   As to impoverish those who most adorn
   And best defend it. That you urge, dear Strafford,
   Inclines me rather--
   
   QUEEN:
   To a parliament?
   Is this thy firmness? and thou wilt preside
   Over a knot of ... censurers,                                        _320
   To the unswearing of thy best resolves,
   And choose the worst, when the worst comes too soon?
   Plight not the worst before the worst must come.
   Oh, wilt thou smile whilst our ribald foes,
   Dressed in their own usurped authority,                              _325
   Sharpen their tongues on Henrietta's fame?
   It is enough! Thou lovest me no more!
   [WEEPS.]
   
   KING:
   Oh, Henrietta!
   
   [THEY TALK APART.]
   
   COTTINGTON [TO LAUD]:
   Money we have none:
   And all the expedients of my Lord of Strafford
   Will scarcely meet the arrears.
   
   LAUD:
   Without delay                                                        _330
   An army must be sent into the north;
   Followed by a Commission of the Church,
   With amplest power to quench in fire and blood,
   And tears and terror, and the pity of hell,
   The intenser wrath of Heresy. God will give                          _335
   Victory; and victory over Scotland give
   The lion England tamed into our hands.
   That will lend power, and power bring gold.
   
   COTTINGTON:
   Meanwhile
   We must begin first where your Grace leaves off.
   Gold must give power, or--
   
   LAUD:
   I am not averse                                                      _340
   From the assembling of a parliament.
   Strong actions and smooth words might teach them soon
   The lesson to obey. And are they not
   A bubble fashioned by the monarch's mouth,
   The birth of one light breath? If they serve no purpose,             _345
   A word dissolves them.
   
   STRAFFORD:
   The engine of parliaments
   Might be deferred until I can bring over
   The Irish regiments: they will serve to assure
   The issue of the war against the Scots.
   And, this game won--which if lost, all is lost--                     _350
   Gather these chosen leaders of the rebels,
   And call them, if you will, a parliament.
   
   KING:
   Oh, be our feet still tardy to shed blood.
   Guilty though it may be! I would still spare
   The stubborn country of my birth, and ward                           _355
   From countenances which I loved in youth
   The wrathful Church's lacerating hand.
   [TO LAUD.]
   Have you o'erlooked the other articles?
   
   [ENTER ARCHY.]
   
   LAUD:
   Hazlerig, Hampden, Pym, young Harry Vane,
   Cromwell, and other rebels of less note,                             _360
   Intend to sail with the next favouring wind
   For the Plantations.
   
   ARCHY:
   Where they think to found
   A commonwealth like Gonzalo's in the play,
   Gynaecocoenic and pantisocratic.
   
   NOTE:
   _363 Gonzalo's 1870; Gonzaga Boscombe manuscript.
   
   KING:
   What's that, sirrah?
   
   ARCHY:
   New devil's politics.                                                _365
   Hell is the pattern of all commonwealths:
   Lucifer was the first republican.
   Will you hear Merlin's prophecy, how three [posts?]
   'In one brainless skull, when the whitethorn is full,
   Shall sail round the world, and come back again:                     _370
   Shall sail round the world in a brainless skull,
   And come back again when the moon is at full:'--
   When, in spite of the Church,
   They will hear homilies of whatever length
   Or form they please.                                                 _375
   
   [COTTINGTON?]:
   So please your Majesty to sign this order
   For their detention.
   
   ARCHY:
   If your Majesty were tormented night and day by fever, gout,
   rheumatism, and stone, and asthma, etc., and you found these diseases
   had secretly entered into a conspiracy to abandon you, should you
   think it necessary to lay an embargo on the port by which they meant
   to dispeople your unquiet kingdom of man?                            _383
   
   KING:
   If fear were made for kings, the Fool mocks wisely;
   But in this case--[WRITING]. Here, my lord, take the warrant,
   And see it duly executed forthwith.--
   That imp of malice and mockery shall be punished.                    _387
   
   [EXEUNT ALL BUT KING, QUEEN, AND ARCHY.]
   
   ARCHY:
   Ay, I am the physician of whom Plato prophesied, who was to be accused
   by the confectioner before a jury of children, who found him guilty
   without waiting for the summing-up, and hanged him without benefit of
   clergy. Thus Baby Charles, and the Twelfth-night Queen of Hearts, and
   the overgrown schoolboy Cottington, and that little urchin Laud--who
   would reduce a verdict of 'guilty, death,' by famine, if it were
   impregnable by composition--all impannelled against poor Archy for
   presenting them bitter physic the last day of the holidays.          _397
   
   QUEEN:
   Is the rain over, sirrah?
   
   KING:
   When it rains
   And the sun shines, 'twill rain again to-morrow:
   And therefore never smile till you've done crying.                   _400
   
   ARCHY:
   But 'tis all over now: like the April anger of woman, the gentle sky
   has wept itself serene.
   
   QUEEN:
   What news abroad? how looks the world this morning?
   
   ARCHY:
   Gloriously as a grave covered with virgin flowers. There's a rainbow
   in the sky. Let your Majesty look at it, for
   
   'A rainbow in the morning                                          _407
   Is the shepherd's warning;'
   
   and the flocks of which you are the pastor are scattered among the
   mountain-tops, where every drop of water is a flake of snow, and the
   breath of May pierces like a January blast.                          _411
   
   KING:
   The sheep have mistaken the wolf for their shepherd, my poor boy; and
   the shepherd, the wolves for their watchdogs.
   
   QUEEN:
   But the rainbow was a good sign, Archy: it says that the waters of the
   deluge are gone, and can return no more.
   
   ARCHY:
   Ay, the salt-water one: but that of tears and blood must yet come
   down, and that of fire follow, if there be any truth in lies.--The
   rainbow hung over the city with all its shops,...and churches, from
   north to south, like a bridge of congregated lightning pieced by the
   masonry of heaven--like a balance in which the angel that distributes
   the coming hour was weighing that heavy one whose poise is now felt in
   the lightest hearts, before it bows the proudest heads under the
   meanest feet.                                                        _424
   
   QUEEN:
   Who taught you this trash, sirrah?
   
   ARCHY:
   A torn leaf out of an old book trampled in the dirt.--But for the
   rainbow. It moved as the sun moved, and...until the top of the
   Tower...of a cloud through its left-hand tip, and Lambeth Palace look
   as dark as a rock before the other. Methought I saw a crown figured
   upon one tip, and a mitre on the other. So, as I had heard treasures
   were found where the rainbow quenches its points upon the earth, I set
   off, and at the Tower-- But I shall not tell your Majesty what I found
   close to the closet-window on which the rainbow had glimmered.
   
   KING:
   Speak: I will make my Fool my conscience.                            _435
   
   ARCHY:
   Then conscience is a fool.--I saw there a cat caught in a rat-trap. I
   heard the rats squeak behind the wainscots: it seemed to me that the
   very mice were consulting on the manner of her death.
   
   QUEEN:
   Archy is shrewd and bitter.
   
   ARCHY:
   Like the season,                                                     _440
   So blow the winds.--But at the other end of the rainbow, where the
   gray rain was tempered along the grass and leaves by a tender
   interfusion of violet and gold in the meadows beyond Lambeth, what
   think you that I found instead of a mitre?
   
   KING:
   Vane's wits perhaps.                                                 _445
   
   ARCHY:
   Something as vain. I saw a gross vapour hovering in a stinking ditch
   over the carcass of a dead ass, some rotten rags, and broken
   dishes--the wrecks of what once administered to the stuffing-out and
   the ornament of a worm of worms. His Grace of Canterbury expects to
   enter the New Jerusalem some Palm Sunday in triumph on the ghost of
   this ass.                                                            _451
   
   QUEEN:
   Enough, enough! Go desire Lady Jane
   She place my lute, together with the music
   Mari received last week from Italy,
   In my boudoir, and--
   
   [EXIT ARCHY.]
   
   KING:
   I'll go in.
   
   NOTE:
   _254-_455 For by...I'll go in 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   QUEEN:
   MY beloved lord,                                                     _455
   Have you not noted that the Fool of late
   Has lost his careless mirth, and that his words
   Sound like the echoes of our saddest fears?
   What can it mean? I should be loth to think
   Some factious slave had tutored him.
   
   KING:
   Oh, no!                                                              _460
   He is but Occasion's pupil. Partly 'tis
   That our minds piece the vacant intervals
   Of his wild words with their own fashioning,--
   As in the imagery of summer clouds,
   Or coals of the winter fire, idlers find                             _465
   The perfect shadows of their teeming thoughts:
   And partly, that the terrors of the time
   Are sown by wandering Rumour in all spirits;
   And in the lightest and the least, may best
   Be seen the current of the coming wind.                              _470
   
   NOTES:
   _460, _461 Oh...pupil 1870; omitted 1824.
   _461 Partly 'tis 1870; It partly is 1824.
   _465 of 1870; in 1824.
   
   QUEEN:
   Your brain is overwrought with these deep thoughts.
   Come, I will sing to you; let us go try
   These airs from Italy; and, as we pass
   The gallery, we'll decide where that Correggio
   Shall hang--the Virgin Mother                                        _475
   With her child, born the King of heaven and earth,
   Whose reign is men's salvation. And you shall see
   A cradled miniature of yourself asleep,
   Stamped on the heart by never-erring love;
   Liker than any Vandyke ever made,                                    _480
   A pattern to the unborn age of thee,
   Over whose sweet beauty I have wept for joy
   A thousand times, and now should weep for sorrow,
   Did I not think that after we were dead
   Our fortunes would spring high in him, and that                      _485
   The cares we waste upon our heavy crown
   Would make it light and glorious as a wreath
   Of Heaven's beams for his dear innocent brow.
   
   NOTE:
   _473-_477 and, as...salvation 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   KING:
   Dear Henrietta!
   
   
   SCENE 3:
   THE STAR CHAMBER.
   LAUD, JUXON, STRAFFORD, AND OTHERS, AS JUDGES.
   PRYNNE AS A PRISONER, AND THEN BASTWICK.
   
   LAUD:
   Bring forth the prisoner Bastwick: let the clerk
   Recite his sentence.
   
   CLERK:
   'That he pay five thousand
   Pounds to the king, lose both his ears, be branded
   With red-hot iron on the cheek and forehead,
   And be imprisoned within Lancaster Castle                            _5
   During the pleasure of the Court.'
   
   LAUD:
   Prisoner,
   If you have aught to say wherefore this sentence
   Should not be put into effect, now speak.
   
   JUXON:
   If you have aught to plead in mitigation,
   Speak.
   
   BASTWICK:
   Thus, my lords. If, like the prelates, I                             _10
   Were an invader of the royal power
   A public scorner of the word of God,
   Profane, idolatrous, popish, superstitious,
   Impious in heart and in tyrannic act,
   Void of wit, honesty, and temperance;                                _15
   If Satan were my lord, as theirs,--our God
   Pattern of all I should avoid to do;
   Were I an enemy of my God and King
   And of good men, as ye are;--I should merit
   Your fearful state and gilt prosperity,                              _20
   Which, when ye wake from the last sleep, shall turn
   To cowls and robes of everlasting fire.
   But, as I am, I bid ye grudge me not
   The only earthly favour ye can yield,
   Or I think worth acceptance at your hands,--                         _25
   Scorn, mutilation, and imprisonment.
   even as my Master did,
   Until Heaven's kingdom shall descend on earth,
   Or earth be like a shadow in the light
   Of Heaven absorbed--some few tumultuous years                        _30
   Will pass, and leave no wreck of what opposes
   His will whose will is power.
   
   NOTE:
   _27-_32 even...power printed as a fragment, Garnett, 1862; __insert__ed
           here conjecturally, Rossetti, 1870.
   
   LAUD:
   Officer, take the prisoner from the bar,
   And be his tongue slit for his insolence.
   
   BASTWICK:
   While this hand holds a pen--
   
   LAUD:
   Be his hands--
   
   JUXON:
   Stop!                                                                _35
   Forbear, my lord! The tongue, which now can speak
   No terror, would interpret, being dumb,
   Heaven's thunder to our harm;...
   And hands, which now write only their own shame,
   With bleeding stumps might sign our blood away.                      _40
   
   LAUD:
   Much more such 'mercy' among men would be,
   Did all the ministers of Heaven's revenge
   Flinch thus from earthly retribution. I
   Could suffer what I would inflict.
   [EXIT BASTWICK GUARDED.]
   Bring up
   The Lord Bishop of Lincoln.--
   [TO STRATFORD.]
   Know you not                                                         _45
   That, in distraining for ten thousand pounds
   Upon his books and furniture at Lincoln,
   Were found these scandalous and seditious letters
   Sent from one Osbaldistone, who is fled?
   I speak it not as touching this poor person;                         _50
   But of the office which should make it holy,
   Were it as vile as it was ever spotless.
   Mark too, my lord, that this expression strikes
   His Majesty, if I misinterpret not.
   
   [ENTER BISHOP WILLIAMS GUARDED.]
   
   STRAFFORD:
   'Twere politic and just that Williams taste                          _55
   The bitter fruit of his connection with
   The schismatics. But you, my Lord Archbishop,
   Who owed your first promotion to his favour,
   Who grew beneath his smile--
   
   LAUD:
   Would therefore beg
   The office of his judge from this High Court,--                      _60
   That it shall seem, even as it is, that I,
   In my assumption of this sacred robe,
   Have put aside all worldly preference,
   All sense of all distinction of all persons,
   All thoughts but of the service of the Church.--                     _65
   Bishop of Lincoln!
   
   WILLIAMS:
   Peace, proud hierarch!
   I know my sentence, and I own it just.
   Thou wilt repay me less than I deserve,
   In stretching to the utmost
   
   ...
   
   NOTE:
   Scene 3. _1-_69 Bring...utmost 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   
   SCENE 4:
   HAMPDEN, PYM, CROMWELL, HIS DAUGHTER, AND YOUNG SIR HARRY VANE.
   
   HAMPDEN:
   England, farewell! thou, who hast been my cradle,
   Shalt never be my dungeon or my grave!
   I held what I inherited in thee
   As pawn for that inheritance of freedom
   Which thou hast sold for thy despoiler's smile:                      _5
   How can I call thee England, or my country?--
   Does the wind hold?
   
   VANE:
   The vanes sit steady
   Upon the Abbey towers. The silver lightnings
   Of the evening star, spite of the city's smoke,
   Tell that the north wind reigns in the upper air.                    _10
   Mark too that flock of fleecy-winged clouds
   Sailing athwart St. Margaret's.
   
   NOTE:
   _11 flock 1824; fleet 1870.
   
   HAMPDEN:
   Hail, fleet herald
   Of tempest! that rude pilot who shall guide
   Hearts free as his, to realms as pure as thee,
   Beyond the shot of tyranny,                                          _15
   Beyond the webs of that swoln spider...
   Beyond the curses, calumnies, and [lies?]
   Of atheist priests! ... And thou
   Fair star, whose beam lies on the wide Atlantic,
   Athwart its zones of tempest and of calm,                            _20
   Bright as the path to a beloved home
   Oh, light us to the isles of the evening land!
   Like floating Edens cradled in the glimmer
   Of sunset, through the distant mist of years
   Touched by departing hope, they gleam! lone regions,                 _25
   Where Power's poor dupes and victims yet have never
   Propitiated the savage fear of kings
   With purest blood of noblest hearts; whose dew
   Is yet unstained with tears of those who wake
   To weep each day the wrongs on which it dawns;                       _30
   Whose sacred silent air owns yet no echo
   Of formal blasphemies; nor impious rites
   Wrest man's free worship, from the God who loves,
   To the poor worm who envies us His love!
   Receive, thou young ... of Paradise.                                 _35
   These exiles from the old and sinful world!
   
   ...
   
   This glorious clime, this firmament, whose lights
   Dart mitigated influence through their veil
   Of pale blue atmosphere; whose tears keep green
   The pavement of this moist all-feeding earth;                        _40
   This vaporous horizon, whose dim round
   Is bastioned by the circumfluous sea,
   Repelling invasion from the sacred towers,
   Presses upon me like a dungeon's grate,
   A low dark roof, a damp and narrow wall.                             _45
   The boundless universe
   Becomes a cell too narrow for the soul
   That owns no master; while the loathliest ward
   Of this wide prison, England, is a nest
   Of cradling peace built on the mountain tops,--                      _50
   To which the eagle spirits of the free,
   Which range through heaven and earth, and scorn the storm
   Of time, and gaze upon the light of truth,
   Return to brood on thoughts that cannot die
   And cannot be repelled.                                              _55
   Like eaglets floating in the heaven of time,
   They soar above their quarry, and shall stoop
   Through palaces and temples thunderproof.
   
   NOTES:
   _13 rude 1870; wild 1824.
   _16-_18 Beyond...priests 1870; omitted 1824.
   _25 Touched 1870; Tinged 1824.
   _34 To the poor 1870; Towards the 1824.
   _38 their 1870; the 1824.
   _46 boundless 1870; mighty 1824.
   _48 owns no 1824; owns a 1870. ward 1870; spot 1824.
   _50 cradling 1870; cradled 1824.
   _54, _55 Return...repelled 1870;
            Return to brood over the [ ] thoughts
            That cannot die, and may not he repelled 1824.
   _56-_58 Like...thunderproof 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   
   SCENE 5:
   
   ARCHY:
   I'll go live under the ivy that overgrows the terrace, and count the
   tears shed on its old [roots?] as the [wind?] plays the song of
   
   'A widow bird sate mourning
   Upon a wintry bough.'                                                _5
   [SINGS]
   Heigho! the lark and the owl!
   One flies the morning, and one lulls the night:--
   Only the nightingale, poor fond soul,
   Sings like the fool through darkness and light.
   
   'A widow bird sate mourning for her love                             _10
   Upon a wintry bough;
   The frozen wind crept on above,
   The freezing stream below.
   
   There was no leaf upon the forest bare.
   No flower upon the ground,                                           _15
   And little motion in the air
   Except the mill-wheel's sound.'
   
   NOTE:
   Scene 5. _1-_9 I'll...light 1870; omitted 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE TRIUMPH OF LIFE.
   
   [Composed at Lerici on the Gulf of Spezzia in the spring and early
   summer of 1822--the poem on which Shelley was engaged at the time of
   his death. Published by Mrs. Shelley in the "Posthumous Poems" of
   1824, pages 73-95. Several emendations, the result of Dr. Garnett's
   examination of the Boscombe manuscript, were given to the world by
   Miss Mathilde Blind, "Westminster Review", July, 1870. The poem was,
   of course, included in the "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions. See
   Editor's Notes.]
   
   Swift as a spirit hastening to his task
   Of glory and of good, the Sun sprang forth
   Rejoicing in his splendour, and the mask
   
   Of darkness fell from the awakened Earth--
   The smokeless altars of the mountain snows                           _5
   Flamed above crimson clouds, and at the birth
   
   Of light, the Ocean's orison arose,
   To which the birds tempered their matin lay.
   All flowers in field or forest which unclose
   
   Their trembling eyelids to the kiss of day,                          _10
   Swinging their censers in the element,
   With orient incense lit by the new ray
   
   Burned slow and inconsumably, and sent
   Their odorous sighs up to the smiling air;
   And, in succession due, did continent,                               _15
   
   Isle, ocean, and all things that in them wear
   The form and character of mortal mould,
   Rise as the Sun their father rose, to bear
   
   Their portion of the toil, which he of old
   Took as his own, and then imposed on them:                           _20
   But I, whom thoughts which must remain untold
   
   Had kept as wakeful as the stars that gem
   The cone of night, now they were laid asleep
   Stretched my faint limbs beneath the hoary stem
   
   Which an old chestnut flung athwart the steep                        _25
   Of a green Apennine: before me fled
   The night; behind me rose the day; the deep
   
   Was at my feet, and Heaven above my head,--
   When a strange trance over my fancy grew
   Which was not slumber, for the shade it spread                       _30
   
   Was so transparent, that the scene came through
   As clear as when a veil of light is drawn
   O'er evening hills they glimmer; and I knew
   
   That I had felt the freshness of that dawn
   Bathe in the same cold dew my brow and hair,                         _35
   And sate as thus upon that slope of lawn
   
   Under the self-same bough, and heard as there
   The birds, the fountains and the ocean hold
   Sweet talk in music through the enamoured air,
   And then a vision on my train was rolled.                            _40
   
   ...
   
   As in that trance of wondrous thought I lay,
   This was the tenour of my waking dream:--
   Methought I sate beside a public way
   
   Thick strewn with summer dust, and a great stream
   Of people there was hurrying to and fro,                             _45
   Numerous as gnats upon the evening gleam,
   
   All hastening onward, yet none seemed to know
   Whither he went, or whence he came, or why
   He made one of the multitude, and so
   
   Was borne amid the crowd, as through the sky                         _50
   One of the million leaves of summer's bier;
   Old age and youth, manhood and infancy,
   
   Mixed in one mighty torrent did appear,
   Some flying from the thing they feared, and some
   Seeking the object of another's fear;                                _55
   
   And others, as with steps towards the tomb,
   Pored on the trodden worms that crawled beneath,
   And others mournfully within the gloom
   
   Of their own shadow walked, and called it death;
   And some fled from it as it were a ghost,                            _60
   Half fainting in the affliction of vain breath:
   
   But more, with motions which each other crossed,
   Pursued or shunned the shadows the clouds threw,
   Or birds within the noonday aether lost,
   
   Upon that path where flowers never grew,--
   And, weary with vain toil and faint for thirst,
   Heard not the fountains, whose melodious dew
   
   Out of their mossy cells forever burst;
   Nor felt the breeze which from the forest told
   Of grassy paths and wood-lawns interspersed                          _70
   
   With overarching elms and caverns cold,
   And violet banks where sweet dreams brood, but they
   Pursued their serious folly as of old.
   
   And as I gazed, methought that in the way
   The throng grew wilder, as the woods of June                         _75
   When the south wind shakes the extinguished day,
   
   And a cold glare, intenser than the noon,
   But icy cold, obscured with blinding light
   The sun, as he the stars. Like the young moon--
   
   When on the sunlit limits of the night                               _80
   Her white shell trembles amid crimson air,
   And whilst the sleeping tempest gathers might--
   
   Doth, as the herald of its coming, bear
   The ghost of its dead mother, whose dim form
   Bends in dark aether from her infant's chair,--                      _85
   
   So came a chariot on the silent storm
   Of its own rushing splendour, and a Shape
   So sate within, as one whom years deform,
   
   Beneath a dusky hood and double cape,
   Crouching within the shadow of a tomb;                               _90
   And o'er what seemed the head a cloud-like crape
   
   Was bent, a dun and faint aethereal gloom
   Tempering the light. Upon the chariot-beam
   A Janus-visaged Shadow did assume
   
   The guidance of that wonder-winged team;                             _95
   The shapes which drew it in thick lightenings
   Were lost:--I heard alone on the air's soft stream
   
   The music of their ever-moving wings.
   All the four faces of that Charioteer
   Had their eyes banded; little profit brings                          _100
   
   Speed in the van and blindness in the rear,
   Nor then avail the beams that quench the sun,--
   Or that with banded eyes could pierce the sphere
   
   Of all that is, has been or will be done;
   So ill was the car guided--but it passed                             _105
   With solemn speed majestically on.
   
   The crowd gave way, and I arose aghast,
   Or seemed to rise, so mighty was the trance,
   And saw, like clouds upon the thunder-blast,
   
   The million with fierce song and maniac dance                        _110
   Raging around--such seemed the jubilee
   As when to greet some conqueror's advance
   
   Imperial Rome poured forth her living sea
   From senate-house, and forum, and theatre,
   When ... upon the free                                               _115
   
   Had bound a yoke, which soon they stooped to bear.
   Nor wanted here the just similitude
   Of a triumphal pageant, for where'er
   
   The chariot rolled, a captive multitude
   Was driven;--all those who had grown old in power                    _120
   Or misery,--all who had their age subdued
   
   By action or by suffering, and whose hour
   Was drained to its last sand in weal or woe,
   So that the trunk survived both fruit and flower;--
   
   All those whose fame or infamy must grow                             _125
   Till the great winter lay the form and name
   Of this green earth with them for ever low;--
   
   All but the sacred few who could not tame
   Their spirits to the conquerors--but as soon
   As they had touched the world with living flame,                     _130
   
   Fled back like eagles to their native noon,
   Or those who put aside the diadem
   Of earthly thrones or gems...
   
   Were there, of Athens or Jerusalem.
   Were neither mid the mighty captives seen,                           _135
   Nor mid the ribald crowd that followed them,
   
   Nor those who went before fierce and obscene.
   The wild dance maddens in the van, and those
   Who lead it--fleet as shadows on the green,
   
   Outspeed the chariot, and without repose                             _140
   Mix with each other in tempestuous measure
   To savage music, wilder as it grows,
   
   They, tortured by their agonizing pleasure,
   Convulsed and on the rapid whirlwinds spun
   Of that fierce Spirit, whose unholy leisure                          _145
   
   Was soothed by mischief since the world begun,
   Throw back their heads and loose their streaming hair;
   And in their dance round her who dims the sun,
   
   Maidens and youths fling their wild arms in air
   As their feet twinkle; they recede, and now                          _150
   Bending within each other's atmosphere,
   
   Kindle invisibly--and as they glow,
   Like moths by light attracted and repelled,
   Oft to their bright destruction come and go,
   
   Till like two clouds into one vale impelled,                         _155
   That shake the mountains when their lightnings mingle
   And die in rain--the fiery band which held
   
   Their natures, snaps--while the shock still may tingle
   One falls and then another in the path
   Senseless--nor is the desolation single,                             _160
   
   Yet ere I can say WHERE--the chariot hath
   Passed over them--nor other trace I find
   But as of foam after the ocean's wrath
   
   Is spent upon the desert shore;--behind,
   Old men and women foully disarrayed,                                 _165
   Shake their gray hairs in the insulting wind,
   
   And follow in the dance, with limbs decayed,
   Seeking to reach the light which leaves them still
   Farther behind and deeper in the shade.
   
   But not the less with impotence of will                              _170
   They wheel, though ghastly shadows interpose
   Round them and round each other, and fulfil
   
   Their work, and in the dust from whence they rose
   Sink, and corruption veils them as they lie,
   And past in these performs what ... in those.                        _175
   
   Struck to the heart by this sad pageantry,
   Half to myself I said--'And what is this?
   Whose shape is that within the car? And why--'
   
   I would have added--'is all here amiss?--'
   But a voice answered--'Life!'--I turned, and knew                    _180
   (O Heaven, have mercy on such wretchedness!)
   
   That what I thought was an old root which grew
   To strange distortion out of the hill side,
   Was indeed one of those deluded crew,
   
   And that the grass, which methought hung so wide                     _185
   And white, was but his thin discoloured hair,
   And that the holes he vainly sought to hide,
   
   Were or had been eyes:--'If thou canst forbear
   To join the dance, which I had well forborne,'
   Said the grim Feature, of my thought aware,                          _190
   
   'I will unfold that which to this deep scorn
   Led me and my companions, and relate
   The progress of the pageant since the morn;
   
   'If thirst of knowledge shall not then abate,
   Follow it thou even to the night, but I                              _195
   Am weary.'--Then like one who with the weight
   
   Of his own words is staggered, wearily
   He paused; and ere he could resume, I cried:
   'First, who art thou?'--'Before thy memory,
   
   'I feared, loved, hated, suffered, did and died,                     _200
   And if the spark with which Heaven lit my spirit
   Had been with purer nutriment supplied,
   
   'Corruption would not now thus much inherit
   Of what was once Rousseau,--nor this disguise
   Stain that which ought to have disdained to wear it;                 _205
   
   'If I have been extinguished, yet there rise
   A thousand beacons from the spark I bore'--
   'And who are those chained to the car?'--'The wise,
   
   'The great, the unforgotten,--they who wore
   Mitres and helms and crowns, or wreaths of light,                    _210
   Signs of thought's empire over thought--their lore
   
   'Taught them not this, to know themselves; their might
   Could not repress the mystery within,
   And for the morn of truth they feigned, deep night
   
   'Caught them ere evening.'--'Who is he with chin                     _215
   Upon his breast, and hands crossed on his chain?'--
   'The child of a fierce hour; he sought to win
   
   'The world, and lost all that it did contain
   Of greatness, in its hope destroyed; and more
   Of fame and peace than virtue's self can gain                        _220
   
   'Without the opportunity which bore
   Him on its eagle pinions to the peak
   From which a thousand climbers have before
   
   'Fallen, as Napoleon fell.'--I felt my cheek
   Alter, to see the shadow pass away,                                  _225
   Whose grasp had left the giant world so weak
   
   That every pigmy kicked it as it lay;
   And much I grieved to think how power and will
   In opposition rule our mortal day,
   
   And why God made irreconcilable                                      _230
   Good and the means of good; and for despair
   I half disdained mine eyes' desire to fill
   
   With the spent vision of the times that were
   And scarce have ceased to be.--'Dost thou behold,'
   Said my guide, 'those spoilers spoiled, Voltaire,                    _235
   
   'Frederick, and Paul, Catherine, and Leopold,
   And hoary anarchs, demagogues, and sage--
   names which the world thinks always old,
   
   'For in the battle Life and they did wage,
   She remained conqueror. I was overcome                               _240
   By my own heart alone, which neither age,
   
   'Nor tears, nor infamy, nor now the tomb
   Could temper to its object.'--'Let them pass,'
   I cried, 'the world and its mysterious doom
   
   'Is not so much more glorious than it was,                           _245
   That I desire to worship those who drew
   New figures on its false and fragile glass
   
   'As the old faded.'--'Figures ever new
   Rise on the bubble, paint them as you may;
   We have but thrown, as those before us threw,                        _250
   
   'Our shadows on it as it passed away.
   But mark how chained to the triumphal chair
   The mighty phantoms of an elder day;
   
   'All that is mortal of great Plato there
   Expiates the joy and woe his master knew not;                        _255
   The star that ruled his doom was far too fair.
   
   'And life, where long that flower of Heaven grew not,
   Conquered that heart by love, which gold, or pain,
   Or age, or sloth, or slavery could subdue not.
   
   'And near him walk the ... twain,                                    _260
   The tutor and his pupil, whom Dominion
   Followed as tame as vulture in a chain.
   
   'The world was darkened beneath either pinion
   Of him whom from the flock of conquerors
   Fame singled out for her thunder-bearing minion;                     _265
   
   'The other long outlived both woes and wars,
   Throned in the thoughts of men, and still had kept
   The jealous key of Truth's eternal doors,
   
   'If Bacon's eagle spirit had not lept
   Like lightning out of darkness--he compelled                         _270
   The Proteus shape of Nature, as it slept
   
   'To wake, and lead him to the caves that held
   The treasure of the secrets of its reign.
   See the great bards of elder time, who quelled
   
   'The passions which they sung, as by their strain                    _275
   May well be known: their living melody
   Tempers its own contagion to the vein
   
   'Of those who are infected with it--I
   Have suffered what I wrote, or viler pain!
   And so my words have seeds of misery--                               _180
   
   'Even as the deeds of others, not as theirs.'
   And then he pointed to a company,
   
   'Midst whom I quickly recognized the heirs
   Of Caesar's crime, from him to Constantine;
   The anarch chiefs, whose force and murderous snares                  _285
   
   Had founded many a sceptre-bearing line,
   And spread the plague of gold and blood abroad:
   And Gregory and John, and men divine,
   
   Who rose like shadows between man and God;
   Till that eclipse, still hanging over heaven,                        _290
   Was worshipped by the world o'er which they strode,
   
   For the true sun it quenched--'Their power was given
   But to destroy,' replied the leader:--'I
   Am one of those who have created, even
   
   'If it be but a world of agony.'--                                   _295
   'Whence camest thou? and whither goest thou?
   How did thy course begin?' I said, 'and why?
   
   'Mine eyes are sick of this perpetual flow
   Of people, and my heart sick of one sad thought--
   Speak!'--'Whence I am, I partly seem to know,                        _300
   
   'And how and by what paths I have been brought
   To this dread pass, methinks even thou mayst guess;--
   Why this should be, my mind can compass not;
   
   'Whither the conqueror hurries me, still less;--
   But follow thou, and from spectator turn                             _305
   Actor or victim in this wretchedness,
   
   'And what thou wouldst be taught I then may learn
   From thee. Now listen:--In the April prime,
   When all the forest-tips began to burn
   
   'With kindling green, touched by the azure clime                     _310
   Of the young season, I was laid asleep
   Under a mountain, which from unknown time
   
   'Had yawned into a cavern, high and deep;
   And from it came a gentle rivulet,
   Whose water, like clear air, in its calm sweep                       _315
   
   'Bent the soft grass, and kept for ever wet
   The stems of the sweet flowers, and filled the grove
   With sounds, which whoso hears must needs forget
   
   'All pleasure and all pain, all hate and love,
   Which they had known before that hour of rest;                       _320
   A sleeping mother then would dream not of
   
   'Her only child who died upon the breast
   At eventide--a king would mourn no more
   The crown of which his brows were dispossessed
   
   'When the sun lingered o'er his ocean floor                          _325
   To gild his rival's new prosperity.
   'Thou wouldst forget thus vainly to deplore
   
   'Ills, which if ills can find no cure from thee,
   The thought of which no other sleep will quell,
   Nor other music blot from memory,                                    _330
   
   'So sweet and deep is the oblivious spell;
   And whether life had been before that sleep
   The Heaven which I imagine, or a Hell
   
   'Like this harsh world in which I woke to weep,
   I know not. I arose, and for a space                                 _335
   The scene of woods and waters seemed to keep,
   
   Though it was now broad day, a gentle trace
   Of light diviner than the common sun
   Sheds on the common earth, and all the place
   
   'Was filled with magic sounds woven into one                         _340
   Oblivious melody, confusing sense
   Amid the gliding waves and shadows dun;
   
   'And, as I looked, the bright omnipresence
   Of morning through the orient cavern flowed,
   And the sun's image radiantly intense                                _345
   
   'Burned on the waters of the well that glowed
   Like gold, and threaded all the forest's maze
   With winding paths of emerald fire; there stood
   
   'Amid the sun, as he amid the blaze                                  _350
   Of his own glory, on the vibrating
   Floor of the fountain, paved with flashing rays,
   
   'A Shape all light, which with one hand did fling
   Dew on the earth, as if she were the dawn,
   And the invisible rain did ever sing
   
   'A silver music on the mossy lawn;                                   _355
   And still before me on the dusky grass,
   Iris her many-coloured scarf had drawn:
   
   'In her right hand she bore a crystal glass,
   Mantling with bright Nepenthe; the fierce splendour
   Fell from her as she moved under the mass                            _360
   
   'Of the deep cavern, and with palms so tender,
   Their tread broke not the mirror of its billow,
   Glided along the river, and did bend her
   
   'Head under the dark boughs, till like a willow
   Her fair hair swept the bosom of the stream                          _365
   That whispered with delight to be its pillow.
   
   'As one enamoured is upborne in dream
   O'er lily-paven lakes, mid silver mist
   To wondrous music, so this shape might seem
   
   'Partly to tread the waves with feet which kissed                    _370
   The dancing foam; partly to glide along
   The air which roughened the moist amethyst,
   
   'Or the faint morning beams that fell among
   The trees, or the soft shadows of the trees;
   And her feet, ever to the ceaseless song                             _375
   
   'Of leaves, and winds, and waves, and birds, and bees,
   And falling drops, moved in a measure new
   Yet sweet, as on the summer evening breeze,
   
   'Up from the lake a shape of golden dew
   Between two rocks, athwart the rising moon,                          _380
   Dances i' the wind, where never eagle flew;
   
   'And still her feet, no less than the sweet tune
   To which they moved, seemed as they moved to blot
   The thoughts of him who gazed on them; and soon
   
   'All that was, seemed as if it had been not;                         _385
   And all the gazer's mind was strewn beneath
   Her feet like embers; and she, thought by thought,
   
   'Trampled its sparks into the dust of death
   As day upon the threshold of the east
   Treads out the lamps of night, until the breath                      _390
   
   'Of darkness re-illumine even the least
   Of heaven's living eyes--like day she came,
   Making the night a dream; and ere she ceased
   
   'To move, as one between desire and shame
   Suspended, I said--If, as it doth seem,                              _395
   Thou comest from the realm without a name
   
   'Into this valley of perpetual dream,
   Show whence I came, and where I am, and why--
   Pass not away upon the passing stream.
   
   'Arise and quench thy thirst, was her reply.                         _400
   And as a shut lily stricken by the wand
   Of dewy morning's vital alchemy,
   
   'I rose; and, bending at her sweet command,
   Touched with faint lips the cup she raised,
   And suddenly my brain became as sand                                 _405
   
   'Where the first wave had more than half erased
   The track of deer on desert Labrador;
   Whilst the wolf, from which they fled amazed,
   
   'Leaves his stamp visibly upon the shore,
   Until the second bursts;--so on my sight                             _410
   Burst a new vision, never seen before,
   
   'And the fair shape waned in the coming light,
   As veil by veil the silent splendour drops
   From Lucifer, amid the chrysolite
   
   'Of sunrise, ere it tinge the mountain-tops;                         _415
   And as the presence of that fairest planet,
   Although unseen, is felt by one who hopes
   
   'That his day's path may end as he began it,
   In that star's smile, whose light is like the scent
   Of a jonquil when evening breezes fan it,                            _420
   
   'Or the soft note in which his dear lament
   The Brescian shepherd breathes, or the caress
   That turned his weary slumber to content;
   
   'So knew I in that light's severe excess
   The presence of that Shape which on the stream                       _425
   Moved, as I moved along the wilderness,
   
   'More dimly than a day-appearing dream,
   The host of a forgotten form of sleep;
   A light of heaven, whose half-extinguished beam
   
   'Through the sick day in which we wake to weep                       _430
   Glimmers, for ever sought, for ever lost;
   So did that shape its obscure tenour keep
   
   'Beside my path, as silent as a ghost;
   But the new Vision, and the cold bright car,
   With solemn speed and stunning music, crossed                        _435
   
   'The forest, and as if from some dread war
   Triumphantly returning, the loud million
   Fiercely extolled the fortune of her star.
   
   'A moving arch of victory, the vermilion
   And green and azure plumes of Iris had                               _440
   Built high over her wind-winged pavilion,
   
   'And underneath aethereal glory clad
   The wilderness, and far before her flew
   The tempest of the splendour, which forbade
   
   'Shadow to fall from leaf and stone; the crew                        _445
   Seemed in that light, like atomies to dance
   Within a sunbeam;--some upon the new
   
   'Embroidery of flowers, that did enhance
   The grassy vesture of the desert, played,
   Forgetful of the chariot's swift advance;                            _450
   
   'Others stood gazing, till within the shade
   Of the great mountain its light left them dim;
   Others outspeeded it; and others made
   
   'Circles around it, like the clouds that swim
   Round the high moon in a bright sea of air;                          _455
   And more did follow, with exulting hymn,
   
   'The chariot and the captives fettered there:--
   But all like bubbles on an eddying flood
   Fell into the same track at last, and were
   
   'Borne onward.--I among the multitude                                _460
   Was swept--me, sweetest flowers delayed not long;
   Me, not the shadow nor the solitude;
   
   'Me, not that falling stream's Lethean song;
   Me, not the phantom of that early Form
   Which moved upon its motion--but among                               _465
   
   'The thickest billows of that living storm
   I plunged, and bared my bosom to the clime
   Of that cold light, whose airs too soon deform.
   
   'Before the chariot had begun to climb
   The opposing steep of that mysterious dell,                          _470
   Behold a wonder worthy of the rhyme
   
   'Of him who from the lowest depths of hell,
   Through every paradise and through all glory,
   Love led serene, and who returned to tell
   
   'The words of hate and awe; the wondrous story                       _475
   How all things are transfigured except Love;
   For deaf as is a sea, which wrath makes hoary,
   
   'The world can hear not the sweet notes that move
   The sphere whose light is melody to lovers--
   A wonder worthy of his rhyme.--The grove                             _480
   
   'Grew dense with shadows to its inmost covers,
   The earth was gray with phantoms, and the air
   Was peopled with dim forms, as when there hovers
   
   'A flock of vampire-bats before the glare
   Of the tropic sun, bringing, ere evening,                            _485
   Strange night upon some Indian isle;--thus were
   
   'Phantoms diffused around; and some did fling
   Shadows of shadows, yet unlike themselves,
   Behind them; some like eaglets on the wing
   
   'Were lost in the white day; others like elves                       _490
   Danced in a thousand unimagined shapes
   Upon the sunny streams and grassy shelves;
   
   'And others sate chattering like restless apes
   On vulgar hands,...
   Some made a cradle of the ermined capes                              _495
   
   'Of kingly mantles; some across the tiar
   Of pontiffs sate like vultures; others played
   Under the crown which girt with empire
   
   'A baby's or an idiot's brow, and made
   Their nests in it. The old anatomies                                 _500
   Sate hatching their bare broods under the shade
   
   'Of daemon wings, and laughed from their dead eyes
   To reassume the delegated power,
   Arrayed in which those worms did monarchize,
   
   'Who made this earth their charnel. Others more                      _505
   Humble, like falcons, sate upon the fist
   Of common men, and round their heads did soar;
   
   Or like small gnats and flies, as thick as mist
   On evening marshes, thronged about the brow
   Of lawyers, statesmen, priest and theorist;--                        _510
   
   'And others, like discoloured flakes of snow
   On fairest bosoms and the sunniest hair,
   Fell, and were melted by the youthful glow
   
   'Which they extinguished; and, like tears, they were
   A veil to those from whose faint lids they rained                    _515
   In drops of sorrow. I became aware
   
   'Of whence those forms proceeded which thus stained
   The track in which we moved. After brief space,
   From every form the beauty slowly waned;
   
   'From every firmest limb and fairest face                            _520
   The strength and freshness fell like dust, and left
   The action and the shape without the grace
   
   'Of life. The marble brow of youth was cleft
   With care; and in those eyes where once hope shone,
   Desire, like a lioness bereft                                        _525
   
   'Of her last cub, glared ere it died; each one
   Of that great crowd sent forth incessantly
   These shadows, numerous as the dead leaves blown
   
   'In autumn evening from a poplar tree.                               _530
   Each like himself and like each other were
   At first; but some distorted seemed to be
   
   'Obscure clouds, moulded by the casual air;
   And of this stuff the car's creative ray
   Wrought all the busy phantoms that were there,
   
   'As the sun shapes the clouds; thus on the way                       _535
   Mask after mask fell from the countenance
   And form of all; and long before the day
   
   'Was old, the joy which waked like heaven's glance
   The sleepers in the oblivious valley, died;
   And some grew weary of the ghastly dance,                            _540
   
   'And fell, as I have fallen, by the wayside;--
   Those soonest from whose forms most shadows passed,
   And least of strength and beauty did abide.
   
   'Then, what is life? I cried.'--
   
   
   CANCELLED OPENING OF THE TRIUMPH OF LIFE.
   
   [Published by Miss M. Blind, "Westminster Review", July, 1870.]
   
   Out of the eastern shadow of the Earth,
   Amid the clouds upon its margin gray
   Scattered by Night to swathe in its bright birth
   
   In gold and fleecy snow the infant Day,
   The glorious Sun arose: beneath his light,                           _5
   The earth and all...
   
   
   _10-_17 A widow...sound 1870; omitted here 1824;
           printed as 'A Song,' 1824, page 217.
   _34, _35 dawn Bathe Mrs. Shelley (later editions); dawn, Bathed 1824, 1839.
   _63 shunned Boscombe manuscript; spurned 1824, 1839.
   _70 Of...interspersed Boscombe manuscript;
       Of grassy paths and wood, lawn-interspersed 1824;
       wood-lawn-interspersed 1839.
   _84 form]frown 1824.
   _93 light...beam]light upon the chariot beam; 1824.
   _96 it omitted 1824.
   _109 thunder Boscombe manuscript; thunders 1824; thunder's 1839.
   _112 greet Boscombe manuscript; meet 1824, 1839.
   _129 conqueror or conqueror's cj. A.C. Bradley.
   _131-_134 See Editor's Note.
   _158 while Boscombe manuscript; omitted 1824, 1839.
   _167 And...dance 1839 To seek, to [ ], to strain 1824.
   _168 Seeking 1839; Limping 1824.
   _188 canst, Mrs. Shelley 1824, 1839, 1847.
   _189 forborne!' 1824, 1839, 1847.
   _190 Feature, (of my thought aware); Mrs. Shelley 1847.
   _188-_190 The punctuation is A.C. Bradley's.
   _202 nutriment Boscombe manuscript; sentiment 1824, 1839.
   _205 Stain]Stained 1824, 1839.
   _235 Said my 1824, 1839; Said then my cj. Forman.
   _238 names which the 1839: name the 1824.
   _252 how]now cj. Forman.
   _260 him 1839; omitted 1824.
   _265 singled for cj. Forman.
   _280 See Editor's Note.
   _281, _282 Even...then Boscombe manuscript; omitted 1824, 1839.
   _296 camest Boscombe manuscript; comest 1824, 1839.
   _311 season Boscombe manuscript; year's dawn 1824, 1839.
   _322 the Boscombe manuscript; her 1824, 1839.
   _334 woke cj. A.C. Bradley; wake 1824, 1839. Cf. _296, footnote.
   _361 Of...and Boscombe manuscript; Out of the deep cavern with 1824, 1839.
   _363 Glided Boscombe manuscript; She glided 1824, 1839.
   _377 in Boscombe manuscript; to 1824.
   _422 The favourite song, Stanco di pascolar le pecorelle,
        is a Brescian national air.--[MRS. SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   _464 early]aery cj. Forman.
   _475 awe Boscombe manuscript; care 1824.
   _486 isle Boscombe manuscript; vale 1824.
   _497 sate like vultures Boscombe manuscript; rode like demons 1824.
   _515 those]eyes cj. Rossetti.
   _534 Wrought Boscombe manuscript; Wrapt 1824.   EARLY POEMS [1814, 1815]:
   
   STANZA, WRITTEN AT BRACKNELL.
   
   STANZAS.--APRIL, 1814.
   
   TO HARRIET.
   
   TO MARY WOLLSTONECRAFT GODWIN.
   
   TO --. 'YET LOOK ON ME'.
   
   MUTABILITY.
   
   ON DEATH.
   
   A SUMMER EVENING CHURCHYARD.
   
   TO --. 'OH! THERE ARE SPIRITS OF THE AIR'.
   
   TO WORDSWORTH.
   
   FEELINGS OF A REPUBLICAN ON THE FALL OF BONAPARTE
   
   LINES: 'THE COLD EARTH SLEPT BELOW'
   
   NOTE ON THE EARLY POEMS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1816:
   
   THE SUNSET.
   
   HYMN TO INTELLECTUAL BEAUTY.
   
   MONT BLANC.
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE OF MONT BLANC.
   
   FRAGMENT: HOME.
   
   FRAGMENT OF A GHOST STORY.
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1816, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1817:
   
   MARIANNE'S DREAM.
   
   TO CONSTANTIA, SINGING.
   
   THE SAME: STANZAS 1 AND 2.
   
   TO CONSTANTIA.
   
   FRAGMENT: TO ONE SINGING.
   
   A FRAGMENT: TO MUSIC.
   
   ANOTHER FRAGMENT TO MUSIC.
   
   'MIGHTY EAGLE'.
   
   TO THE LORD CHANCELLOR.
   
   TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.
   
   FROM THE ORIGINAL DRAFT OF THE POEM TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.
   
   ON FANNY GODWIN.
   
   LINES: 'THAT TIME IS DEAD FOR EVER'.
   
   DEATH.
   
   OTHO.
   
   FRAGMENTS SUPPOSED TO BE PARTS OF OTHO.
   
   'O THAT A CHARIOT OF CLOUD WERE MINE'.
   
   FRAGMENTS:
       TO A FRIEND RELEASED FROM PRISON.
       SATAN BROKEN LOOSE.
       IGNICULUS DESIDERII.
       AMOR AETERNUS.
       THOUGHTS COME AND GO IN SOLITUDE.
   
   A HATE-SONG.
   
   LINES TO A CRITIC.
   
   OZYMANDIAS.
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1817, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1818.
   
   TO THE NILE.
   
   PASSAGE OF THE APENNINES.
   
   THE PAST.
   
   TO MARY --.
   
   ON A FADED VIOLET.
   
   LINES WRITTEN AMONG THE EUGANEAN HILLS.
   
   SCENE FROM "TASSO".
   
   SONG FOR "TASSO".
   
   INVOCATION TO MISERY.
   
   STANZAS WRITTEN IN DEJECTION, NEAR NAPLES.
   
   THE WOODMAN AND THE NIGHTINGALE.
   
   MARENGHI.
   
   SONNET: 'LIFT NOT THE PAINTED VEIL'.
   
   FRAGMENTS:
       TO BYRON.
       APOSTROPHE TO SILENCE.
       THE LAKE'S MARGIN.
       'MY HEAD IS WILD WITH WEEPING'.
       THE VINE-SHROUD.
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1818, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1819:
   
   LINES WRITTEN DURING THE CASTLEREAGH ADMINISTRATION.
   
   SONG TO THE MEN OF ENGLAND.
   
   SIMILES FOR TWO POLITICAL CHARACTERS OF 1819.
   
   FRAGMENT: TO THE PEOPLE OF ENGLAND.
   
   FRAGMENT: 'WHAT MEN GAIN FAIRLY'.
   
   A NEW NATIONAL ANTHEM.
   
   SONNET: ENGLAND IN 1819.
   
   AN ODE WRITTEN OCTOBER, 1819.
   
   CANCELLED STANZA.
   
   ODE TO HEAVEN.
   
   ODE TO THE WEST WIND.
   
   AN EXHORTATION.
   
   THE INDIAN SERENADE.
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE.
   
   TO SOPHIA [MISS STACEY].
   
   TO WILLIAM SHELLEY, 1.
   
   TO WILLIAM SHELLEY, 2.
   
   TO MARY SHELLEY, 1.
   
   TO MARY SHELLEY, 2.
   
   ON THE MEDUSA OF LEONARDO DA VINCI.
   
   LOVE'S PHILOSOPHY.
   
   FRAGMENT: 'FOLLOW TO THE DEEP WOOD'S WEEDS'.
   
   THE BIRTH OF PLEASURE.
   
   FRAGMENTS:
       LOVE THE UNIVERSE TO-DAY.
       'A GENTLE STORY OF TWO LOVERS YOUNG'.
       LOVE'S TENDER ATMOSPHERE.
       WEDDED SOULS.
       'IS IT THAT IN SOME BRIGHTER SPHERE'.
       SUFFICIENT UNTO THE DAY.
       'YE GENTLE VISITATIONS OF CALM THOUGHT'.
       MUSIC AND SWEET POETRY.
       THE SEPULCHRE OF MEMORY.
       'WHEN A LOVER CLASPS HIS FAIREST'.
       'WAKE THE SERPENT NOT'.
       RAIN.
       A TALE UNTOLD.
       TO ITALY.
       WINE OF THE FAIRIES.
       A ROMAN'S CHAMBER.
       ROME AND NATURE.
   
   VARIATION OF THE SONG OF THE MOON.
   
   CANCELLED STANZA OF THE MASK OF ANARCHY.
   
   NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1820:
   
   THE SENSITIVE PLANT.
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE.
   
   A VISION OF THE SEA.
   
   THE CLOUD.
   
   TO A SKYLARK.
   
   ODE TO LIBERTY.
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE.
   
   TO --. 'I FEAR THY KISSES, GENTLE MAIDEN'.
   
   ARETHUSA.
   
   SONG OF PROSERPINE.
   
   HYMN OF APOLLO.
   
   HYMN OF PAN.
   
   THE QUESTION.
   
   THE TWO SPIRITS. AN ALLEGORY.
   
   ODE TO NAPLES.
   
   AUTUMN: A DIRGE.
   
   THE WANING MOON.
   
   TO THE MOON.
   
   DEATH.
   
   LIBERTY.
   
   SUMMER AND WINTER.
   
   THE TOWER OF FAMINE.
   
   AN ALLEGORY.
   
   THE WORLD'S WANDERERS.
   
   SONNET: 'YE HASTEN TO THE GRAVE!'.
   
   LINES TO A REVIEWER.
   
   FRAGMENT OF A SATIRE ON SATIRE.
   
   GOOD-NIGHT.
   
   BUONA NOTTE.
   
   ORPHEUS.
   
   FIORDISPINA.
   
   TIME LONG PAST.
   
   FRAGMENTS:
       THE DESERTS OF DIM SLEEP.
       'THE VIEWLESS AND INVISIBLE CONSEQUENCE'.
       A SERPENT-FACE.
       DEATH IN LIFE.
       'SUCH HOPE, AS IS THE SICK DESPAIR OF GOOD'.
       'ALAS THIS IS NOT WHAT I THOUGHT LIFE WAS'.
       MILTON'S SPIRIT.
       'UNRISEN SPLENDOUR OF THE BRIGHTEST SUN'.
       PATER OMNIPOTENS.
       TO THE MIND OF MAN.
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1820, BY MRS SHELLEY.
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1821:
   
   DIRGE FOR THE YEAR.
   
   TO NIGHT.
   
   TIME.
   
   LINES: 'FAR, FAR AWAY'.
   
   FROM THE ARABIC: AN IMITATION.
   
   TO EMILIA VIVIANI.
   
   THE FUGITIVES.
   
   TO --. 'MUSIC, WHEN SOFT VOICES DIE'.
   
   SONG: 'RARELY, RARELY, COMEST THOU'.
   
   MUTABILITY.
   
   LINES WRITTEN ON HEARING THE NEWS OF THE DEATH OF NAPOLEON.
   
   SONNET: POLITICAL GREATNESS.
   
   THE AZIOLA.
   
   A LAMENT.
   
   REMEMBRANCE.
   
   TO EDWARD WILLIAMS.
   
   TO --. 'ONE WORD IS TOO OFTEN PROFANED'.
   
   TO --. 'WHEN PASSION'S TRANCE IS OVERPAST'.
   
   A BRIDAL SONG.
   
   EPITHALAMIUM.
   
   ANOTHER VERSION OF THE SAME.
   
   LOVE, HOPE, DESIRE, AND FEAR.
   
   FRAGMENTS WRITTEN FOR "HELLAS".
   
   FRAGMENT: 'I WOULD NOT BE A KING'.
   
   GINEVRA.
   
   EVENING: PONTE AL MARE, PISA.
   
   THE BOAT ON THE SERCHIO.
   
   MUSIC.
   
   SONNET TO BYRON.
   
   FRAGMENT ON KEATS.
   
   FRAGMENT: 'METHOUGHT I WAS A BILLOW IN THE CROWD'.
   
   TO-MORROW.
   
   STANZA: 'IF I WALK IN AUTUMN'S EVEN'.
   
   FRAGMENTS:
       A WANDERER.
       LIFE ROUNDED WITH SLEEP.
       'I FAINT, I PERISH WITH MY LOVE'.
       THE LADY OF THE SOUTH.
       ZEPHYRUS THE AWAKENER.
       RAIN.
       'WHEN SOFT WINDS AND SUNNY SKIES'.
       'AND THAT I WALK THUS PROUDLY CROWNED'.
       'THE RUDE WIND IS SINGING'.
       'GREAT SPIRIT'.
       'O THOU IMMORTAL DEITY'.
       THE FALSE LAUREL AND THE TRUE.
       MAY THE LIMNER.
       BEAUTY'S HALO.
       'THE DEATH KNELL IS RINGING'.
       'I STOOD UPON A HEAVEN-CLEAVING TURRET'.
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1821, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1822:
   
   THE ZUCCA.
   
   THE MAGNETIC LADY TO HER PATIENT.
   
   LINES: 'WHEN THE LAMP IS SHATTERED'.
   
   TO JANE: THE INVITATION.
   
   TO JANE: THE RECOLLECTION.
   
   THE PINE FOREST OF THE CASCINE NEAR PISA.
   
   WITH A GUITAR, TO JANE.
   
   TO JANE: 'THE KEEN STARS WERE TWINKLING'.
   
   A DIRGE.
   
   LINES WRITTEN IN THE BAY OF LERICI.
   
   LINES: 'WE MEET NOT AS WE PARTED'.
   
   THE ISLE.
   
   FRAGMENT: TO THE MOON.
   
   EPITAPH.
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1822, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   
   ***
   
   
   EARLY POEMS [1814, 1815].
   
   [The poems which follow appeared, with a few exceptions, either in the
   volumes published from time to time by Shelley himself, or in the
   "Posthumous Poems" of 1824, or in the "Poetical Works" of 1839, of
   which a second and enlarged edition was published by Mrs. Shelley in
   the same year. A few made their first appearance in some fugitive
   publication--such as Leigh Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book"--and were
   subsequently incorporated in the collective editions. In every case the
   editio princeps and (where this is possible) the exact date of
   composition are indicated below the title.]
   
   ***
   
   
   STANZA, WRITTEN AT BRACKNELL.
   
   [Composed March, 1814. Published in Hogg's "Life of Shelley", 1858.]
   
   Thy dewy looks sink in my breast;
   Thy gentle words stir poison there;
   Thou hast disturbed the only rest
   That was the portion of despair!
   Subdued to Duty's hard control,                                      _5
   I could have borne my wayward lot:
   The chains that bind this ruined soul
   Had cankered then--but crushed it not.
   
   ***
   
   
   STANZAS.--APRIL, 1814.
   
   [Composed at Bracknell, April, 1814. Published with "Alastor", 1816.]
   
   Away! the moor is dark beneath the moon,
   Rapid clouds have drank the last pale beam of even:
   Away! the gathering winds will call the darkness soon,
   And profoundest midnight shroud the serene lights of heaven.
   
   Pause not! The time is past! Every voice cries, Away!                _5
   Tempt not with one last tear thy friend's ungentle mood:
   Thy lover's eye, so glazed and cold, dares not entreat thy stay:
   Duty and dereliction guide thee back to solitude.
   
   Away, away! to thy sad and silent home;
   Pour bitter tears on its desolated hearth;                           _10
   Watch the dim shades as like ghosts they go and come,
   And complicate strange webs of melancholy mirth.
   
   The leaves of wasted autumn woods shall float around thine head:
   The blooms of dewy spring shall gleam beneath thy feet:
   But thy soul or this world must fade in the frost that binds the dead, _15
   Ere midnight's frown and morning's smile, ere thou and peace may meet.
   
   The cloud shadows of midnight possess their own repose,
   For the weary winds are silent, or the moon is in the deep:
   Some respite to its turbulence unresting ocean knows;
   Whatever moves, or toils, or grieves, hath its appointed sleep.      _20
   
   Thou in the grave shalt rest--yet till the phantoms flee
   Which that house and heath and garden made dear to thee erewhile,
   Thy remembrance, and repentance, and deep musings are not free
   From the music of two voices and the light of one sweet smile.
   
   NOTE:
   _6 tear 1816; glance 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO HARRIET.
   
   [Composed May, 1814. Published (from the Esdaile manuscript) by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887.]
   
   Thy look of love has power to calm
   The stormiest passion of my soul;
   Thy gentle words are drops of balm
   In life's too bitter bowl;
   No grief is mine, but that alone                                     _5
   These choicest blessings I have known.
   
   Harriet! if all who long to live
   In the warm sunshine of thine eye,
   That price beyond all pain must give,--
   Beneath thy scorn to die;                                            _10
   Then hear thy chosen own too late
   His heart most worthy of thy hate.
   
   Be thou, then, one among mankind
   Whose heart is harder not for state,
   Thou only virtuous, gentle, kind,                                    _15
   Amid a world of hate;
   And by a slight endurance seal
   A fellow-being's lasting weal.
   
   For pale with anguish is his cheek,
   His breath comes fast, his eyes are dim,                             _20
   Thy name is struggling ere he speak,
   Weak is each trembling limb;
   In mercy let him not endure
   The misery of a fatal cure.
   
   Oh, trust for once no erring guide!                                  _25
   Bid the remorseless feeling flee;
   'Tis malice, 'tis revenge, 'tis pride,
   'Tis anything but thee;
   Oh, deign a nobler pride to prove,
   And pity if thou canst not love.                                     _30
   
   ***
   
   
   TO MARY WOLLSTONECRAFT GODWIN.
   
   [Composed June, 1814. Published in "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   Mine eyes were dim with tears unshed;
   Yes, I was firm--thus wert not thou;--
   My baffled looks did fear yet dread
   To meet thy looks--I could not know
   How anxiously they sought to shine                                   _5
   With soothing pity upon mine.
   
   2.
   To sit and curb the soul's mute rage
   Which preys upon itself alone;
   To curse the life which is the cage
   Of fettered grief that dares not groan,                              _10
   Hiding from many a careless eye
   The scorned load of agony.
   
   3.
   Whilst thou alone, then not regarded,
   The ... thou alone should be,
   To spend years thus, and be rewarded,                                _15
   As thou, sweet love, requited me
   When none were near--Oh! I did wake
   From torture for that moment's sake.
   
   4.
   Upon my heart thy accents sweet
   Of peace and pity fell like dew                                      _20
   On flowers half dead;--thy lips did meet
   Mine tremblingly; thy dark eyes threw
   Their soft persuasion on my brain,
   Charming away its dream of pain.
   
   5.
   We are not happy, sweet! our state                                   _25
   Is strange and full of doubt and fear;
   More need of words that ills abate;--
   Reserve or censure come not near
   Our sacred friendship, lest there be
   No solace left for thee and me.                                      _30
   
   6.
   Gentle and good and mild thou art,
   Nor can I live if thou appear
   Aught but thyself, or turn thine heart
   Away from me, or stoop to wear
   The mask of scorn, although it be                                    _35
   To hide the love thou feel'st for me.
   
   NOTES:
   _2 wert 1839; did 1824.
   _3 fear 1824, 1839; yearn cj. Rossetti.
   _23 Their 1839; thy 1824.
   _30 thee]thou 1824, 1839.
   _32 can I 1839; I can 1824.
   _36 feel'st 1839; feel 1824.
   
   ***
   
   TO --.
   
   [Published in "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. See Editor's Note.]
   
   Yet look on me--take not thine eyes away,
   Which feed upon the love within mine own,
   Which is indeed but the reflected ray
   Of thine own beauty from my spirit thrown.
   Yet speak to me--thy voice is as the tone                            _5
   Of my heart's echo, and I think I hear
   That thou yet lovest me; yet thou alone
   Like one before a mirror, without care
   Of aught but thine own features, imaged there;
   
   And yet I wear out life in watching thee;                            _10
   A toil so sweet at times, and thou indeed
   Art kind when I am sick, and pity me...
   
   ***
   
   
   MUTABILITY.
   
   [Published with "Alastor", 1816.]
   
   We are as clouds that veil the midnight moon;
   How restlessly they speed, and gleam, and quiver,
   Streaking the darkness radiantly!--yet soon
   Night closes round, and they are lost for ever:
   
   Or like forgotten lyres, whose dissonant strings                     _5
   Give various response to each varying blast,
   To whose frail frame no second motion brings
   One mood or modulation like the last.
   
   We rest.--A dream has power to poison sleep;
   We rise.--One wandering thought pollutes the day;                    _10
   We feel, conceive or reason, laugh or weep;
   Embrace fond woe, or cast our cares away:
   
   It is the same!--For, be it joy or sorrow,
   The path of its departure still is free:
   Man's yesterday may ne'er be like his morrow;                        _15
   Nought may endure but Mutability.
   
   NOTES:
   _15 may 1816; can Lodore, chapter 49, 1835 (Mrs. Shelley).
   _16 Nought may endure but 1816;
       Nor aught endure save Lodore, chapter 49, 1835 (Mrs. Shelley).
   
   ***
   
   
   ON DEATH.
   
   [For the date of composition see Editor's Note.
   Published with "Alastor", 1816.]
   
   THERE IS NO WORK, NOR DEVICE, NOR KNOWLEDGE, NOR WISDOM,
   IN THE GRAVE, WHITHER THOU GOEST.--Ecclesiastes.
   
   The pale, the cold, and the moony smile
   Which the meteor beam of a starless night
   Sheds on a lonely and sea-girt isle,
   Ere the dawning of morn's undoubted light,
   Is the flame of life so fickle and wan
   That flits round our steps till their strength is gone.              _5
   
   O man! hold thee on in courage of soul
   Through the stormy shades of thy worldly way,
   And the billows of cloud that around thee roll
   Shall sleep in the light of a wondrous day,                          _10
   Where Hell and Heaven shall leave thee free
   To the universe of destiny.
   
   This world is the nurse of all we know,
   This world is the mother of all we feel,
   And the coming of death is a fearful blow                            _15
   To a brain unencompassed with nerves of steel;
   When all that we know, or feel, or see,
   Shall pass like an unreal mystery.
   
   The secret things of the grave are there,
   Where all but this frame must surely be,                             _20
   Though the fine-wrought eye and the wondrous ear
   No longer will live to hear or to see
   All that is great and all that is strange
   In the boundless realm of unending change.
   
   Who telleth a tale of unspeaking death?                              _25
   Who lifteth the veil of what is to come?
   Who painteth the shadows that are beneath
   The wide-winding caves of the peopled tomb?
   Or uniteth the hopes of what shall be
   With the fears and the love for that which we see?                   _30
   
   ***
   
   
   A SUMMER EVENING CHURCHYARD.
   
   LECHLADE, GLOUCESTERSHIRE.
   
   [Composed September, 1815. Published with "Alastor", 1816.]
   
   The wind has swept from the wide atmosphere
   Each vapour that obscured the sunset's ray;
   And pallid Evening twines its beaming hair
   In duskier braids around the languid eyes of Day:
   Silence and Twilight, unbeloved of men,                              _5
   Creep hand in hand from yon obscurest glen.
   
   They breathe their spells towards the departing day,
   Encompassing the earth, air, stars, and sea;
   Light, sound, and motion own the potent sway,
   Responding to the charm with its own mystery.                        _10
   The winds are still, or the dry church-tower grass
   Knows not their gentle motions as they pass.
   
   Thou too, aereal Pile! whose pinnacles
   Point from one shrine like pyramids of fire,
   Obeyest in silence their sweet solemn spells,                        _15
   Clothing in hues of heaven thy dim and distant spire,
   Around whose lessening and invisible height
   Gather among the stars the clouds of night.
   
   The dead are sleeping in their sepulchres:
   And, mouldering as they sleep, a thrilling sound,                    _20
   Half sense, half thought, among the darkness stirs,
   Breathed from their wormy beds all living things around,
   And mingling with the still night and mute sky
   Its awful hush is felt inaudibly.
   
   Thus solemnized and softened, death is mild                          _25
   And terrorless as this serenest night:
   Here could I hope, like some inquiring child
   Sporting on graves, that death did hide from human sight
   Sweet secrets, or beside its breathless sleep
   That loveliest dreams perpetual watch did keep.                      _30
   
   ***
   
   
   TO --.
   
   [Published with "Alastor", 1816. See Editor's Note.]
   
   DAKRTSI DIOISO POTMON 'APOTMON.
   
   Oh! there are spirits of the air,
   And genii of the evening breeze,
   And gentle ghosts, with eyes as fair
   As star-beams among twilight trees:--
   Such lovely ministers to meet                                        _5
   Oft hast thou turned from men thy lonely feet.
   
   With mountain winds, and babbling springs,
   And moonlight seas, that are the voice
   Of these inexplicable things,
   Thou didst hold commune, and rejoice                                 _10
   When they did answer thee; but they
   Cast, like a worthless boon, thy love away.
   
   And thou hast sought in starry eyes
   Beams that were never meant for thine,
   Another's wealth:--tame sacrifice
   To a fond faith! still dost thou pine?                               _15
   Still dost thou hope that greeting hands,
   Voice, looks, or lips, may answer thy demands?
   
   Ah! wherefore didst thou build thine hope
   On the false earth's inconstancy?                                    _20
   Did thine own mind afford no scope
   Of love, or moving thoughts to thee?
   That natural scenes or human smiles
   Could steal the power to wind thee in their wiles?
   
   Yes, all the faithless smiles are fled                               _25
   Whose falsehood left thee broken-hearted;
   The glory of the moon is dead;
   Night's ghosts and dreams have now departed;
   Thine own soul still is true to thee,
   But changed to a foul fiend through misery.                          _30
   
   This fiend, whose ghastly presence ever
   Beside thee like thy shadow hangs,
   Dream not to chase;--the mad endeavour
   Would scourge thee to severer pangs.
   Be as thou art. Thy settled fate,
   Dark as it is, all change would aggravate.                           _35
   
   NOTES:
   _1 of 1816; in 1839.
   _8 moonlight 1816; mountain 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO WORDSWORTH.
   
   [Published with "Alastor", 1816.]
   
   Poet of Nature, thou hast wept to know
   That things depart which never may return:
   Childhood and youth, friendship and love's first glow,
   Have fled like sweet dreams, leaving thee to mourn.
   These common woes I feel. One loss is mine                           _5
   Which thou too feel'st, yet I alone deplore.
   Thou wert as a lone star, whose light did shine
   On some frail bark in winter's midnight roar:
   Thou hast like to a rock-built refuge stood
   Above the blind and battling multitude:                              _10
   In honoured poverty thy voice did weave
   Songs consecrate to truth and liberty,--
   Deserting these, thou leavest me to grieve,
   Thus having been, that thou shouldst cease to be.
   
   ***
   
   
   FEELINGS OF A REPUBLICAN ON THE FALL OF BONAPARTE.
   
   [Published with "Alastor", 1816.]
   
   I hated thee, fallen tyrant! I did groan
   To think that a most unambitious slave,
   Like thou, shouldst dance and revel on the grave
   Of Liberty. Thou mightst have built thy throne
   Where it had stood even now: thou didst prefer                       _5
   A frail and bloody pomp which Time has swept
   In fragments towards Oblivion. Massacre,
   For this I prayed, would on thy sleep have crept,
   Treason and Slavery, Rapine, Fear, and Lust,
   And stifled thee, their minister. I know                             _10
   Too late, since thou and France are in the dust,
   That Virtue owns a more eternal foe
   Than Force or Fraud: old Custom, legal Crime,
   And bloody Faith the foulest birth of Time.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES.
   
   [Published in Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book", 1823, where it is headed
   "November, 1815". Reprinted in the "Posthumous Poems", 1824. See
   Editor's Note.]
   
   1.
   The cold earth slept below,
   Above the cold sky shone;
   And all around, with a chilling sound,
   From caves of ice and fields of snow,
   The breath of night like death did flow                              _5
   Beneath the sinking moon.
   
   2.
   The wintry hedge was black,
   The green grass was not seen,
   The birds did rest on the bare thorn's breast,
   Whose roots, beside the pathway track,                               _10
   Had bound their folds o'er many a crack
   Which the frost had made between.
   
   3.
   Thine eyes glowed in the glare
   Of the moon's dying light;
   As a fen-fire's beam on a sluggish stream                            _15
   Gleams dimly, so the moon shone there,
   And it yellowed the strings of thy raven hair,
   That shook in the wind of night.
   
   4.
   The moon made thy lips pale, beloved--
   The wind made thy bosom chill--                                      _20
   The night did shed on thy dear head
   Its frozen dew, and thou didst lie
   Where the bitter breath of the naked sky
   Might visit thee at will.
   
   NOTE:
   _17 raven 1823; tangled 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON THE EARLY POEMS, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   The remainder of Shelley's Poems will be arranged in the order in which
   they were written. Of course, mistakes will occur in placing some of
   the shorter ones; for, as I have said, many of these were thrown aside,
   and I never saw them till I had the misery of looking over his writings
   after the hand that traced them was dust; and some were in the hands of
   others, and I never saw them till now. The subjects of the poems are
   often to me an unerring guide; but on other occasions I can only guess,
   by finding them in the pages of the same manuscript book that contains
   poems with the date of whose composition I am fully conversant. In the
   present arrangement all his poetical translations will be placed
   together at the end.
   
   The loss of his early papers prevents my being able to give any of the
   poetry of his boyhood. Of the few I give as "Early Poems", the greater
   part were published with "Alastor"; some of them were written
   previously, some at the same period. The poem beginning 'Oh, there are
   spirits in the air' was addressed in idea to Coleridge, whom he never
   knew; and at whose character he could only guess imperfectly, through
   his writings, and accounts he heard of him from some who knew him well.
   He regarded his change of opinions as rather an act of will than
   conviction, and believed that in his inner heart he would be haunted by
   what Shelley considered the better and holier aspirations of his youth.
   The summer evening that suggested to him the poem written in the
   churchyard of Lechlade occurred during his voyage up the Thames in
   1815. He had been advised by a physician to live as much as possible in
   the open air; and a fortnight of a bright warm July was spent in
   tracing the Thames to its source. He never spent a season more
   tranquilly than the summer of 1815. He had just recovered from a severe
   pulmonary attack; the weather was warm and pleasant. He lived near
   Windsor Forest; and his life was spent under its shades or on the
   water, meditating subjects for verse. Hitherto, he had chiefly aimed at
   extending his political doctrines, and attempted so to do by appeals in
   prose essays to the people, exhorting them to claim their rights; but
   he had now begun to feel that the time for action was not ripe in
   England, and that the pen was the only instrument wherewith to prepare
   the way for better things.
   
   In the scanty journals kept during those years I find a record of the
   books that Shelley read during several years. During the years of 1814
   and 1815 the list is extensive. It includes, in Greek, Homer, Hesiod,
   Theocritus, the histories of Thucydides and Herodotus, and Diogenes
   Laertius. In Latin, Petronius, Suetonius, some of the works of Cicero,
   a large proportion of those of Seneca and Livy. In English, Milton's
   poems, Wordsworth's "Excursion", Southey's "Madoc" and "Thalaba", Locke
   "On the Human Understanding", Bacon's "Novum Organum". In Italian,
   Ariosto, Tasso, and Alfieri. In French, the "Reveries d'un Solitaire"
   of Rousseau. To these may be added several modern books of travel. He
   read few novels.
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1816.
   
   
   THE SUNSET.
   
   [Written at Bishopsgate, 1816 (spring). Published in full in the
   "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Lines 9-20, and 28-42, appeared in Hunt's
   "Literary Pocket-Book", 1823, under the titles, respectively, of
   "Sunset. From an Unpublished Poem", And "Grief. A Fragment".]
   
   There late was One within whose subtle being,
   As light and wind within some delicate cloud
   That fades amid the blue noon's burning sky,
   Genius and death contended. None may know
   The sweetness of the joy which made his breath                       _5
   Fail, like the trances of the summer air,
   When, with the Lady of his love, who then
   First knew the unreserve of mingled being,
   He walked along the pathway of a field
   Which to the east a hoar wood shadowed o'er,                         _10
   But to the west was open to the sky.
   There now the sun had sunk, but lines of gold
   Hung on the ashen clouds, and on the points
   Of the far level grass and nodding flowers
   And the old dandelion's hoary beard,                                 _15
   And, mingled with the shades of twilight, lay
   On the brown massy woods--and in the east
   The broad and burning moon lingeringly rose
   Between the black trunks of the crowded trees,
   While the faint stars were gathering overhead.--                     _20
   'Is it not strange, Isabel,' said the youth,
   'I never saw the sun? We will walk here
   To-morrow; thou shalt look on it with me.'
   
   That night the youth and lady mingled lay
   In love and sleep--but when the morning came                         _25
   The lady found her lover dead and cold.
   Let none believe that God in mercy gave
   That stroke. The lady died not, nor grew wild,
   But year by year lived on--in truth I think
   Her gentleness and patience and sad smiles,                          _30
   And that she did not die, but lived to tend
   Her aged father, were a kind of madness,
   If madness 'tis to be unlike the world.
   For but to see her were to read the tale
   Woven by some subtlest bard, to make hard hearts                     _35
   Dissolve away in wisdom-working grief;--
   Her eyes were black and lustreless and wan:
   Her eyelashes were worn away with tears,
   Her lips and cheeks were like things dead--so pale;
   Her hands were thin, and through their wandering veins               _40
   And weak articulations might be seen
   Day's ruddy light. The tomb of thy dead self
   Which one vexed ghost inhabits, night and day,
   Is all, lost child, that now remains of thee!
   
   'Inheritor of more than earth can give,                              _45
   Passionless calm and silence unreproved,
   Whether the dead find, oh, not sleep! but rest,
   And are the uncomplaining things they seem,
   Or live, or drop in the deep sea of Love;
   Oh, that like thine, mine epitaph were--Peace!'                      _50
   This was the only moan she ever made.
   
   NOTES:
   _4 death 1839; youth 1824.
   _22 sun? We will walk 1824; sunrise? We will wake cj. Forman.
   _37 Her eyes...wan Hunt, 1823; omitted 1824, 1839.
   _38 worn 1824; torn 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   HYMN TO INTELLECTUAL BEAUTY.
   
   [Composed, probably, in Switzerland, in the summer of 1816. Published
   in Hunt's "Examiner", January 19, 1817, and with "Rosalind and Helen",
   1819.]
   
   1.
   The awful shadow of some unseen Power
   Floats though unseen among us,--visiting
   This various world with as inconstant wing
   As summer winds that creep from flower to flower,--
   Like moonbeams that behind some piny mountain shower,                _5
   It visits with inconstant glance
   Each human heart and countenance;
   Like hues and harmonies of evening,--
   Like clouds in starlight widely spread,--
   Like memory of music fled,--                                         _10
   Like aught that for its grace may be
   Dear, and yet dearer for its mystery.
   
   2.
   Spirit of BEAUTY, that dost consecrate
   With thine own hues all thou dost shine upon
   Of human thought or form,--where art thou gone?                      _15
   Why dost thou pass away and leave our state,
   This dim vast vale of tears, vacant and desolate?
   Ask why the sunlight not for ever
   Weaves rainbows o'er yon mountain-river,
   Why aught should fail and fade that once is shown,                   _20
   Why fear and dream and death and birth
   Cast on the daylight of this earth
   Such gloom,--why man has such a scope
   For love and hate, despondency and hope?
   
   3.
   No voice from some sublimer world hath ever                          _25
   To sage or poet these responses given--
   Therefore the names of Demon, Ghost, and Heaven.
   Remain the records of their vain endeavour,
   Frail spells--whose uttered charm might not avail to sever,
   From all we hear and all we see,                                     _30
   Doubt, chance, and mutability.
   Thy light alone--like mist o'er mountains driven,
   Or music by the night-wind sent
   Through strings of some still instrument,
   Or moonlight on a midnight stream,                                   _35
   Gives grace and truth to life's unquiet dream.
   
   4.
   Love, Hope, and Self-esteem, like clouds depart
   And come, for some uncertain moments lent.
   Man were immortal, and omnipotent,
   Didst thou, unknown and awful as thou art,                           _40
   Keep with thy glorious train firm state within his heart.
   Thou messenger of sympathies,
   That wax and wane in lovers' eyes--
   Thou--that to human thought art nourishment,
   Like darkness to a dying flame!                                      _45
   Depart not as thy shadow came
   Depart not--lest the grave should be,
   Like life and fear, a dark reality.
   
   5.
   While yet a boy I sought for ghosts, and sped
   Through many a listening chamber, cave and ruin,                     _50
   And starlight wood, with fearful steps pursuing
   Hopes of high talk with the departed dead.
   I called on poisonous names with which our youth is fed;
   I was not heard--I saw them not--
   When musing deeply on the lot                                        _55
   Of life, at that sweet time when winds are wooing
   All vital things that wake to bring
   News of birds and blossoming,--
   Sudden, thy shadow fell on me;
   I shrieked, and clasped my hands in ecstasy!                         _60
   
   6.
   I vowed that I would dedicate my powers
   To thee and thine--have I not kept the vow?
   With beating heart and streaming eyes, even now
   I call the phantoms of a thousand hours
   Each from his voiceless grave: they have in visioned bowers          _65
   Of studious zeal or love's delight
   Outwatched with me the envious night--
   They know that never joy illumed my brow
   Unlinked with hope that thou wouldst free
   This world from its dark slavery,                                    _70
   That thou--O awful LOVELINESS,
   Wouldst give whate'er these words cannot express.
   
   7.
   The day becomes more solemn and serene
   When noon is past--there is a harmony
   In autumn, and a lustre in its sky,                                  _75
   Which through the summer is not heard or seen,
   As if it could not be, as if it had not been!
   Thus let thy power, which like the truth
   Of nature on my passive youth
   Descended, to my onward life supply                                  _80
   Its calm--to one who worships thee,
   And every form containing thee,
   Whom, SPIRIT fair, thy spells did bind
   To fear himself, and love all human kind.
   
   NOTES:
   _2 among 1819; amongst 1817.
   _14 dost 1819; doth 1817.
   _21 fear and dream 1819; care and pain Boscombe manuscript.
   _37-_48 omitted Boscombe manuscript.
   _44 art 1817; are 1819.
   _76 or 1819; nor 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   MONT BLANC.
   
   LINES WRITTEN IN THE VALE OF CHAMOUNI.
   
   [Composed in Switzerland, July, 1816 (see date below). Printed at the
   end of the "History of a Six Weeks' Tour" published by Shelley in 1817,
   and reprinted with "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Amongst the Boscombe
   manuscripts is a draft of this Ode, mainly in pencil, which has been
   collated by Dr. Garnett.]
   
   1.
   The everlasting universe of things
   Flows through the mind, and rolls its rapid waves,
   Now dark--now glittering--now reflecting gloom--
   Now lending splendour, where from secret springs
   The source of human thought its tribute brings                       _5
   Of waters,--with a sound but half its own,
   Such as a feeble brook will oft assume
   In the wild woods, among the mountains lone,
   Where waterfalls around it leap for ever,
   Where woods and winds contend, and a vast river                      _10
   Over its rocks ceaselessly bursts and raves.
   
   2.
   Thus thou, Ravine of Arve--dark, deep Ravine--
   Thou many-coloured, many-voiced vale,
   Over whose pines, and crags, and caverns sail
   Fast cloud-shadows and sunbeams: awful scene,                        _15
   Where Power in likeness of the Arve comes down
   From the ice-gulfs that gird his secret throne,
   Bursting through these dark mountains like the flame
   Of lightning through the tempest;--thou dost lie,
   Thy giant brood of pines around thee clinging,                       _20
   Children of elder time, in whose devotion
   The chainless winds still come and ever came
   To drink their odours, and their mighty swinging
   To hear--an old and solemn harmony;
   Thine earthly rainbows stretched across the sweep                    _25
   Of the ethereal waterfall, whose veil
   Robes some unsculptured image; the strange sleep
   Which when the voices of the desert fail
   Wraps all in its own deep eternity;--
   Thy caverns echoing to the Arve's commotion,                         _30
   A loud, lone sound no other sound can tame;
   Thou art pervaded with that ceaseless motion,
   Thou art the path of that unresting sound--
   Dizzy Ravine! and when I gaze on thee
   I seem as in a trance sublime and strange                            _35
   To muse on my own separate fantasy,
   My own, my human mind, which passively
   Now renders and receives fast influencings,
   Holding an unremitting interchange
   With the clear universe of things around;                            _40
   One legion of wild thoughts, whose wandering wings
   Now float above thy darkness, and now rest
   Where that or thou art no unbidden guest,
   In the still cave of the witch Poesy,
   Seeking among the shadows that pass by                               _45
   Ghosts of all things that are, some shade of thee,
   Some phantom, some faint image; till the breast
   From which they fled recalls them, thou art there!
   
   3.
   Some say that gleams of a remoter world
   Visit the soul in sleep,--that death is slumber,                     _50
   And that its shapes the busy thoughts outnumber
   Of those who wake and live.--I look on high;
   Has some unknown omnipotence unfurled
   The veil of life and death? or do I lie
   In dream, and does the mightier world of sleep                       _55
   Spread far around and inaccessibly
   Its circles? For the very spirit fails,
   Driven like a homeless cloud from steep to steep
   That vanishes among the viewless gales!
   Far, far above, piercing the infinite sky,                           _60
   Mont Blanc appears,--still, snowy, and serene--
   Its subject mountains their unearthly forms
   Pile around it, ice and rock; broad vales between
   Of frozen floods, unfathomable deeps,
   Blue as the overhanging heaven, that spread                          _65
   And wind among the accumulated steeps;
   A desert peopled by the storms alone,
   Save when the eagle brings some hunter's bone,
   And the wolf tracts her there--how hideously
   Its shapes are heaped around! rude, bare, and high,                  _70
   Ghastly, and scarred, and riven.--Is this the scene
   Where the old Earthquake-daemon taught her young
   Ruin? Were these their toys? or did a sea
   Of fire envelope once this silent snow?
   None can reply--all seems eternal now.                               _75
   The wilderness has a mysterious tongue
   Which teaches awful doubt, or faith so mild,
   So solemn, so serene, that man may be,
   But for such faith, with nature reconciled;
   Thou hast a voice, great Mountain, to repeal                         _80
   Large codes of fraud and woe; not understood
   By all, but which the wise, and great, and good
   Interpret, or make felt, or deeply feel.
   
   4.
   The fields, the lakes, the forests, and the streams,
   Ocean, and all the living things that dwell                          _85
   Within the daedal earth; lightning, and rain,
   Earthquake, and fiery flood, and hurricane,
   The torpor of the year when feeble dreams
   Visit the hidden buds, or dreamless sleep
   Holds every future leaf and flower;--the bound                       _90
   With which from that detested trance they leap;
   The works and ways of man, their death and birth,
   And that of him and all that his may be;
   All things that move and breathe with toil and sound
   Are born and die; revolve, subside, and swell.                       _95
   Power dwells apart in its tranquillity,
   Remote, serene, and inaccessible:
   And THIS, the naked countenance of earth,
   On which I gaze, even these primaeval mountains
   Teach the adverting mind. The glaciers creep                         _100
   Like snakes that watch their prey, from their far fountains,
   Slow rolling on; there, many a precipice,
   Frost and the Sun in scorn of mortal power
   Have piled: dome, pyramid, and pinnacle,
   A city of death, distinct with many a tower                          _105
   And wall impregnable of beaming ice.
   Yet not a city, but a flood of ruin
   Is there, that from the boundaries of the sky
   Rolls its perpetual stream; vast pines are strewing
   Its destined path, or in the mangled soil                            _110
   Branchless and shattered stand; the rocks, drawn down
   From yon remotest waste, have overthrown
   The limits of the dead and living world,
   Never to be reclaimed. The dwelling-place
   Of insects, beasts, and birds, becomes its spoil;                    _115
   Their food and their retreat for ever gone,
   So much of life and joy is lost. The race
   Of man flies far in dread; his work and dwelling
   Vanish, like smoke before the tempest's stream,
   And their place is not known. Below, vast caves                      _120
   Shine in the rushing torrents' restless gleam,
   Which from those secret chasms in tumult welling
   Meet in the vale, and one majestic River,
   The breath and blood of distant lands, for ever
   Rolls its loud waters to the ocean waves,                            _125
   Breathes its swift vapours to the circling air.
   
   5.
   Mont Blanc yet gleams on high--the power is there,
   The still and solemn power of many sights,
   And many sounds, and much of life and death.
   In the calm darkness of the moonless nights,                         _130
   In the lone glare of day, the snows descend
   Upon that Mountain; none beholds them there,
   Nor when the flakes burn in the sinking sun,
   Or the star-beams dart through them:--Winds contend
   Silently there, and heap the snow with breath                        _135
   Rapid and strong, but silently! Its home
   The voiceless lightning in these solitudes
   Keeps innocently, and like vapour broods
   Over the snow. The secret strength of things
   Which governs thought, and to the infinite dome                      _140
   Of heaven is as a law, inhabits thee!
   And what were thou, and earth, and stars, and sea,
   If to the human mind's imaginings
   Silence and solitude were vacancy?
   
   July 23, 1816.
   
   NOTES:
   _15 cloud-shadows]cloud shadows 1817;
       cloud, shadows 1824; clouds, shadows 1839.
   _20 Thy 1824; The 1839.
   _53 unfurled]upfurled cj. James Thomson ('B.V.').
   _56 Spread 1824; Speed 1839.
   _69 tracks her there 1824; watches her Boscombe manuscript.
   _79 But for such 1824; In such a Boscombe manuscript.
   _108 boundaries of the sky]boundary of the skies cj. Rossetti
        (cf. lines 102, 106).
   _121 torrents']torrent's 1817, 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE OF MONT BLANC.
   
   [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   There is a voice, not understood by all,
   Sent from these desert-caves. It is the roar
   Of the rent ice-cliff which the sunbeams call,
   Plunging into the vale--it is the blast
   Descending on the pines--the torrents pour...                        _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: HOME.
   
   [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Dear home, thou scene of earliest hopes and joys,
   The least of which wronged Memory ever makes
   Bitterer than all thine unremembered tears.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT OF A GHOST STORY.
   
   [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   A shovel of his ashes took
   From the hearth's obscurest nook,
   Muttering mysteries as she went.
   Helen and Henry knew that Granny
   Was as much afraid of Ghosts as any,                                 _5
   And so they followed hard--
   But Helen clung to her brother's arm,
   And her own spasm made her shake.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1816, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   Shelley wrote little during this year. The poem entitled "The Sunset"
   was written in the spring of the year, while still residing at
   Bishopsgate. He spent the summer on the shores of the Lake of Geneva.
   The "Hymn to Intellectual Beauty" was conceived during his voyage round
   the lake with Lord Byron. He occupied himself during this voyage by
   reading the "Nouvelle Heloise" for the first time. The reading it on
   the very spot where the scenes are laid added to the interest; and he
   was at once surprised and charmed by the passionate eloquence and
   earnest enthralling interest that pervade this work. There was
   something in the character of Saint-Preux, in his abnegation of self,
   and in the worship he paid to Love, that coincided with Shelley's own
   disposition; and, though differing in many of the views and shocked by
   others, yet the effect of the whole was fascinating and delightful.
   
   "Mont Blanc" was inspired by a view of that mountain and its
   surrounding peaks and valleys, as he lingered on the Bridge of Arve on
   his way through the Valley of Chamouni. Shelley makes the following
   mention of this poem in his publication of the "History of a Six Weeks'
   Tour, and Letters from Switzerland": 'The poem entitled "Mont Blanc" is
   written by the author of the two letters from Chamouni and Vevai. It
   was composed under the immediate impression of the deep and powerful
   feelings excited by the objects which it attempts to describe; and, as
   an undisciplined overflowing of the soul, rests its claim to
   approbation on an attempt to imitate the untamable wildness and
   inaccessible solemnity from which those feelings sprang.'
   
   This was an eventful year, and less time was given to study than usual.
   In the list of his reading I find, in Greek, Theocritus, the
   "Prometheus" of Aeschylus, several of Plutarch's "Lives", and the works
   of Lucian. In Latin, Lucretius, Pliny's "Letters", the "Annals" and
   "Germany" of Tacitus. In French, the "History of the French Revolution"
   by Lacretelle. He read for the first time, this year, Montaigne's
   "Essays", and regarded them ever after as one of the most delightful
   and instructive books in the world. The list is scanty in English
   works: Locke's "Essay", "Political Justice", and Coleridge's "Lay
   Sermon", form nearly the whole. It was his frequent habit to read aloud
   to me in the evening; in this way we read, this year, the New
   Testament, "Paradise Lost", Spenser's "Faery Queen", and "Don Quixote".
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1817.
   
   
   MARIANNE'S DREAM.
   
   [Composed at Marlow, 1817. Published in Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book",
   1819, and reprinted in "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   A pale Dream came to a Lady fair,
   And said, A boon, a boon, I pray!
   I know the secrets of the air,
   And things are lost in the glare of day,
   Which I can make the sleeping see,                                   _5
   If they will put their trust in me.
   
   2.
   And thou shalt know of things unknown,
   If thou wilt let me rest between
   The veiny lids, whose fringe is thrown
   Over thine eyes so dark and sheen:                                   _10
   And half in hope, and half in fright,
   The Lady closed her eyes so bright.
   
   3.
   At first all deadly shapes were driven
   Tumultuously across her sleep,
   And o'er the vast cope of bending heaven                             _15
   All ghastly-visaged clouds did sweep;
   And the Lady ever looked to spy
   If the golden sun shone forth on high.
   
   4.
   And as towards the east she turned,
   She saw aloft in the morning air,                                    _20
   Which now with hues of sunrise burned,
   A great black Anchor rising there;
   And wherever the Lady turned her eyes,
   It hung before her in the skies.
   
   5.
   The sky was blue as the summer sea,                                  _25
   The depths were cloudless overhead,
   The air was calm as it could be,
   There was no sight or sound of dread,
   But that black Anchor floating still
   Over the piny eastern hill.                                          _30
   
   6.
   The Lady grew sick with a weight of fear
   To see that Anchor ever hanging,
   And veiled her eyes; she then did hear
   The sound as of a dim low clanging,
   And looked abroad if she might know                                  _35
   Was it aught else, or but the flow
   Of the blood in her own veins, to and fro.
   
   7.
   There was a mist in the sunless air,
   Which shook as it were with an earthquake's shock,
   But the very weeds that blossomed there                              _40
   Were moveless, and each mighty rock
   Stood on its basis steadfastly;
   The Anchor was seen no more on high.
   
   8.
   But piled around, with summits hid
   In lines of cloud at intervals,                                      _45
   Stood many a mountain pyramid
   Among whose everlasting walls
   Two mighty cities shone, and ever
   Through the red mist their domes did quiver.
   
   9.
   On two dread mountains, from whose crest,                            _50
   Might seem, the eagle, for her brood,
   Would ne'er have hung her dizzy nest,
   Those tower-encircled cities stood.
   A vision strange such towers to see,
   Sculptured and wrought so gorgeously,                                _55
   Where human art could never be.
   
   10.
   And columns framed of marble white,
   And giant fanes, dome over dome
   Piled, and triumphant gates, all bright
   With workmanship, which could not come                               _60
   From touch of mortal instrument,
   Shot o'er the vales, or lustre lent
   From its own shapes magnificent.
   
   11.
   But still the Lady heard that clang
   Filling the wide air far away;                                       _65
   And still the mist whose light did hang
   Among the mountains shook alway,
   So that the Lady's heart beat fast,
   As half in joy, and half aghast,
   On those high domes her look she cast.                               _70
   
   12.
   Sudden, from out that city sprung
   A light that made the earth grow red;
   Two flames that each with quivering tongue
   Licked its high domes, and overhead
   Among those mighty towers and fanes                                  _75
   Dropped fire, as a volcano rains
   Its sulphurous ruin on the plains.
   
   13.
   And hark! a rush as if the deep
   Had burst its bonds; she looked behind
   And saw over the western steep                                       _80
   A raging flood descend, and wind
   Through that wide vale; she felt no fear,
   But said within herself, 'Tis clear
   These towers are Nature's own, and she
   To save them has sent forth the sea.                                 _85
   
   14.
   And now those raging billows came
   Where that fair Lady sate, and she
   Was borne towards the showering flame
   By the wild waves heaped tumultuously.
   And, on a little plank, the flow                                     _90
   Of the whirlpool bore her to and fro.
   
   15.
   The flames were fiercely vomited
   From every tower and every dome,
   And dreary light did widely shed
   O'er that vast flood's suspended foam,                               _95
   Beneath the smoke which hung its night
   On the stained cope of heaven's light.
   
   16.
   The plank whereon that Lady sate
   Was driven through the chasms, about and about,
   Between the peaks so desolate                                        _100
   Of the drowning mountains, in and out,
   As the thistle-beard on a whirlwind sails--
   While the flood was filling those hollow vales.
   
   17.
   At last her plank an eddy crossed,
   And bore her to the city's wall,                                     _105
   Which now the flood had reached almost;
   It might the stoutest heart appal
   To hear the fire roar and hiss
   Through the domes of those mighty palaces.
   
   18.
   The eddy whirled her round and round                                 _110
   Before a gorgeous gate, which stood
   Piercing the clouds of smoke which bound
   Its aery arch with light like blood;
   She looked on that gate of marble clear,
   With wonder that extinguished fear.                                  _115
   
   19.
   For it was filled with sculptures rarest,
   Of forms most beautiful and strange,
   Like nothing human, but the fairest
   Of winged shapes, whose legions range
   Throughout the sleep of those that are,                              _120
   Like this same Lady, good and fair.
   
   20.
   And as she looked, still lovelier grew
   Those marble forms;--the sculptor sure
   Was a strong spirit, and the hue
   Of his own mind did there endure                                     _125
   After the touch, whose power had braided
   Such grace, was in some sad change faded.
   
   21.
   She looked, the flames were dim, the flood
   Grew tranquil as a woodland river
   Winding through hills in solitude;                                   _130
   Those marble shapes then seemed to quiver,
   And their fair limbs to float in motion,
   Like weeds unfolding in the ocean.
   
   22.
   And their lips moved; one seemed to speak,
   When suddenly the mountains cracked,                                 _135
   And through the chasm the flood did break
   With an earth-uplifting cataract:
   The statues gave a joyous scream,
   And on its wings the pale thin Dream
   Lifted the Lady from the stream.                                     _140
   
   23.
   The dizzy flight of that phantom pale
   Waked the fair Lady from her sleep,
   And she arose, while from the veil
   Of her dark eyes the Dream did creep,
   And she walked about as one who knew                                 _145
   That sleep has sights as clear and true
   As any waking eyes can view.
   
   NOTES:
   _18 golden 1819; gold 1824, 1839.
   _28 or 1824; nor 1839.
   _62 or]a cj. Rossetti.
   _63 its]their cj. Rossetti.
   _92 flames cj. Rossetti; waves 1819, 1824, 1839.
   _101 mountains 1819; mountain 1824, 1839.
   _106 flood]flames cj. James Thomson ('B.V.').
   _120 that 1819, 1824; who 1839.
   _135 mountains 1819; mountain 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO CONSTANTIA, SINGING.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Amongst the
   Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian is a chaotic first draft, from
   which Mr. Locock ["Examination", etc., 1903, pages 60-62] has, with
   patient ingenuity, disengaged a first and a second stanza consistent
   with the metrical scheme of stanzas 3 and 4. The two stanzas thus
   recovered are printed here immediately below the poem as edited by Mrs.
   Shelley. It need hardly be added that Mr. Locock's restored version
   cannot, any more than Mrs. Shelley's obviously imperfect one, be
   regarded in the light of a final recension.]
   
   1.
   Thus to be lost and thus to sink and die,
   Perchance were death indeed!--Constantia, turn!
   In thy dark eyes a power like light doth lie,
   Even though the sounds which were thy voice, which burn
   Between thy lips, are laid to sleep;                                 _5
   Within thy breath, and on thy hair, like odour, it is yet,
   And from thy touch like fire doth leap.
   Even while I write, my burning cheeks are wet.
   Alas, that the torn heart can bleed, but not forget!
   
   2.
   A breathless awe, like the swift change                              _10
   Unseen, but felt in youthful slumbers,
   Wild, sweet, but uncommunicably strange,
   Thou breathest now in fast ascending numbers.
   The cope of heaven seems rent and cloven
   By the enchantment of thy strain,                                    _15
   And on my shoulders wings are woven,
   To follow its sublime career
   Beyond the mighty moons that wane
   Upon the verge of Nature's utmost sphere,
   Till the world's shadowy walls are past and disappear.               _20
   
   3.
   Her voice is hovering o'er my soul--it lingers
   O'ershadowing it with soft and lulling wings,
   The blood and life within those snowy fingers
   Teach witchcraft to the instrumental strings.
   My brain is wild, my breath comes quick--                            _25
   The blood is listening in my frame,
   And thronging shadows, fast and thick,
   Fall on my overflowing eyes;
   My heart is quivering like a flame;
   As morning dew, that in the sunbeam dies,                            _30
   I am dissolved in these consuming ecstasies.
   
   4.
   I have no life, Constantia, now, but thee,
   Whilst, like the world-surrounding air, thy song
   Flows on, and fills all things with melody.--
   Now is thy voice a tempest swift and strong,                         _35
   On which, like one in trance upborne,
   Secure o'er rocks and waves I sweep,
   Rejoicing like a cloud of morn.
   Now 'tis the breath of summer night,
   Which when the starry waters sleep,
   Round western isles, with incense-blossoms bright,                   _40
   Lingering, suspends my soul in its voluptuous flight.
   
   
   STANZAS 1 AND 2.
   
   As restored by Mr. C.D. Locock.
   
   1.
   Cease, cease--for such wild lessons madmen learn
   Thus to be lost, and thus to sink and die
   Perchance were death indeed!--Constantia turn
   In thy dark eyes a power like light doth lie
   Even though the sounds its voice that were                           _5
   Between [thy] lips are laid to sleep:
   Within thy breath, and on thy hair
   Like odour, it is [lingering] yet
   And from thy touch like fire doth leap--
   Even while I write, my burning cheeks are wet--                      _10
   Alas, that the torn heart can bleed but not forget.
   
   2.
   [A deep and] breathless awe like the swift change
   Of dreams unseen but felt in youthful slumbers
   Wild sweet yet incommunicably strange
   Thou breathest now in fast ascending numbers...                      _15
   
   ***
   
   
   TO CONSTANTIA.
   [Dated 1817 by Mrs. Shelley, and printed by her in the "Poetical
   Works", 1839, 1st edition. A copy exists amongst the Shelley
   manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc.,
   1903, page 46.]
   
   1.
   The rose that drinks the fountain dew
   In the pleasant air of noon,
   Grows pale and blue with altered hue--
   In the gaze of the nightly moon;
   For the planet of frost, so cold and bright,                         _5
   Makes it wan with her borrowed light.
   
   2.
   Such is my heart--roses are fair,
   And that at best a withered blossom;
   But thy false care did idly wear
   Its withered leaves in a faithless bosom;                            _10
   And fed with love, like air and dew,
   Its growth--
   
   NOTES:
   _1 The rose]The red Rose B.
   _2 pleasant]fragrant B.
   _6 her omitted B.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: TO ONE SINGING.
   
   [Dated 1817 by Mrs. Shelley, and published in the "Poetical Works",
   1839, 1st edition. The manuscript original, by which Mr. Locock has
   revised and (by one line) enlarged the text, is amongst the Shelley
   manuscripts at the Bodleian. The metre, as Mr. Locock ("Examination",
   etc., 1903, page 63) points out, is terza rima.]
   
   My spirit like a charmed bark doth swim
   Upon the liquid waves of thy sweet singing,
   Far far away into the regions dim
   
   Of rapture--as a boat, with swift sails winging
   Its way adown some many-winding river,                               _5
   Speeds through dark forests o'er the waters swinging...
   
   NOTES:
   _3 Far far away B.; Far away 1839.
   _6 Speeds...swinging B.; omitted 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   A FRAGMENT: TO MUSIC.
   
   [Published in "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.
   Dated 1817 (Mrs. Shelley).]
   
   Silver key of the fountain of tears,
   Where the spirit drinks till the brain is wild;
   Softest grave of a thousand fears,
   Where their mother, Care, like a drowsy child,
   Is laid asleep in flowers.                                           _5
   
   ***
   
   
   ANOTHER FRAGMENT: TO MUSIC.
   
   [Published in "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.
   Dated 1817 (Mrs. Shelley).]
   
   No, Music, thou art not the 'food of Love.'
   Unless Love feeds upon its own sweet self,
   Till it becomes all Music murmurs of.
   
   ***
   
   
   'MIGHTY EAGLE'.
   
   SUPPOSED TO BE ADDRESSED TO WILLIAM GODWIN.
   
   [Published in 1882 ("Poetical Works of P. B. S.") by Mr. H. Buxton
   Forman, C.B., by whom it is dated 1817.]
   
   Mighty eagle! thou that soarest
   O'er the misty mountain forest,
   And amid the light of morning
   Like a cloud of glory hiest,
   And when night descends defiest                                      _5
   The embattled tempests' warning!
   
   ***
   
   
   TO THE LORD CHANCELLOR.
   
   [Published in part (5-9, 14) by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839,
   1st edition (without title); in full 2nd edition (with title). Four
   transcripts in Mrs. Shelley's hand are extant: two--Leigh Hunt's and
   Ch. Cowden Clarke's--described by Forman, and two belonging to Mr. C.W.
   Frederickson of Brooklyn, described by Woodberry ["Poetical Works",
   Centenary Edition, 3 193-6]. One of the latter (here referred to as Fa)
   is corrected in Shelley's autograph. A much-corrected draft in
   Shelley's hand is in the Harvard manuscript book.]
   
   1.
   Thy country's curse is on thee, darkest crest
   Of that foul, knotted, many-headed worm
   Which rends our Mother's bosom--Priestly Pest!
   Masked Resurrection of a buried Form!
   
   2.
   Thy country's curse is on thee! Justice sold,                        _5
   Truth trampled, Nature's landmarks overthrown,
   And heaps of fraud-accumulated gold,
   Plead, loud as thunder, at Destruction's throne.
   
   3.
   And whilst that sure slow Angel which aye stands
   Watching the beck of Mutability                                      _10
   Delays to execute her high commands,
   And, though a nation weeps, spares thine and thee,
   
   4.
   Oh, let a father's curse be on thy soul,
   And let a daughter's hope be on thy tomb;
   Be both, on thy gray head, a leaden cowl                             _15
   To weigh thee down to thine approaching doom.
   
   5.
   I curse thee by a parent's outraged love,
   By hopes long cherished and too lately lost,
   By gentle feelings thou couldst never prove,
   By griefs which thy stern nature never crossed;                      _20
   
   6.
   By those infantine smiles of happy light,
   Which were a fire within a stranger's hearth,
   Quenched even when kindled, in untimely night
   Hiding the promise of a lovely birth:
   
   7.
   By those unpractised accents of young speech,                        _25
   Which he who is a father thought to frame
   To gentlest lore, such as the wisest teach--
   THOU strike the lyre of mind!--oh, grief and shame!
   
   8.
   By all the happy see in children's growth--
   That undeveloped flower of budding years--                           _30
   Sweetness and sadness interwoven both,
   Source of the sweetest hopes and saddest fears-
   
   9.
   By all the days, under an hireling's care,
   Of dull constraint and bitter heaviness,--
   O wretched ye if ever any were,--                                    _35
   Sadder than orphans, yet not fatherless!
   
   10.
   By the false cant which on their innocent lips
   Must hang like poison on an opening bloom,
   By the dark creeds which cover with eclipse
   Their pathway from the cradle to the tomb--                          _40
   
   11.
   By thy most impious Hell, and all its terror;
   By all the grief, the madness, and the guilt
   Of thine impostures, which must be their error--
   That sand on which thy crumbling power is built--
   
   12.
   By thy complicity with lust and hate--                               _45
   Thy thirst for tears--thy hunger after gold--
   The ready frauds which ever on thee wait--
   The servile arts in which thou hast grown old--
   
   13.
   By thy most killing sneer, and by thy smile--
   By all the arts and snares of thy black den,                         _50
   And--for thou canst outweep the crocodile--
   By thy false tears--those millstones braining men--
   
   14.
   By all the hate which checks a father's love--
   By all the scorn which kills a father's care--
   By those most impious hands which dared remove                       _55
   Nature's high bounds--by thee--and by despair--
   
   15.
   Yes, the despair which bids a father groan,
   And cry, 'My children are no longer mine--
   The blood within those veins may be mine own,
   But--Tyrant--their polluted souls are thine;--                       _60
   
   16.
   I curse thee--though I hate thee not.--O slave!
   If thou couldst quench the earth-consuming Hell
   Of which thou art a daemon, on thy grave
   This curse should be a blessing. Fare thee well!
   
   NOTES:
   _9 Angel which aye cancelled by Shelley for Fate which ever Fa.
   _24 promise of a 1839, 2nd edition; promises of 1839, 1st edition.
   _27 lore]love Fa.
   _32 and saddest]the saddest Fa.
   _36 yet not fatherless! cancelled by Shelley for why not fatherless? Fa.
   _41-_44 By...built 'crossed by Shelley and marked dele by Mrs. Shelley'
           (Woodberry) Fa.
   _50 arts and snares 1839, 1st edition;
       snares and arts Harvard Coll. manuscript;
       snares and nets Fa.;
       acts and snares 1839, 2nd edition.
   _59 those]their Fa.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley (1, 5, 6), "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st
   edition; in full, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. A transcript is
   extant in Mrs. Shelley's hand.]
   
   1.
   The billows on the beach are leaping around it,
   The bark is weak and frail,
   The sea looks black, and the clouds that bound it
   Darkly strew the gale.
   Come with me, thou delightful child,
   Come with me, though the wave is wild,                               _5
   And the winds are loose, we must not stay,
   Or the slaves of the law may rend thee away.
   
   2.
   They have taken thy brother and sister dear,
   They have made them unfit for thee;                                  _10
   They have withered the smile and dried the tear
   Which should have been sacred to me.
   To a blighting faith and a cause of crime
   They have bound them slaves in youthly prime,
   And they will curse my name and thee                                 _15
   Because we fearless are and free.
   
   3.
   Come thou, beloved as thou art;
   Another sleepeth still
   Near thy sweet mother's anxious heart,
   Which thou with joy shalt fill,                                      _20
   With fairest smiles of wonder thrown
   On that which is indeed our own,
   And which in distant lands will be
   The dearest playmate unto thee.
   
   4.
   Fear not the tyrants will rule for ever,                             _25
   Or the priests of the evil faith;
   They stand on the brink of that raging river,
   Whose waves they have tainted with death.
   It is fed from the depth of a thousand dells,
   Around them it foams and rages and swells;                           _30
   And their swords and their sceptres I floating see,
   Like wrecks on the surge of eternity.
   
   5.
   Rest, rest, and shriek not, thou gentle child!
   The rocking of the boat thou fearest,
   And the cold spray and the clamour wild?--                           _35
   There, sit between us two, thou dearest--
   Me and thy mother--well we know
   The storm at which thou tremblest so,
   With all its dark and hungry graves,
   Less cruel than the savage slaves                                    _40
   Who hunt us o'er these sheltering waves.
   
   6.
   This hour will in thy memory
   Be a dream of days forgotten long.
   We soon shall dwell by the azure sea
   Of serene and golden Italy,
   Or Greece, the Mother of the free;                                   _45
   And I will teach thine infant tongue
   To call upon those heroes old
   In their own language, and will mould
   Thy growing spirit in the flame
   Of Grecian lore, that by such name                                   _50
   A patriot's birthright thou mayst claim!
   
   NOTES:
   _1 on the beach omitted 1839, 1st edition.
   _8 of the law 1839, 1st edition; of law 1839, 2nd edition.
   _14 prime transcript; time editions 1839.
   _16 fearless are editions 1839; are fearless transcript.
   _20 shalt transcript; wilt editions 1839.
   _25-_32 Fear...eternity omitted, transcript.
           See "Rosalind and Helen", lines 894-901.
   _33 and transcript; omitted editions 1839.
   _41 us transcript, 1839, 1st edition; thee 1839, 2nd edition.
   _42 will in transcript, 1839, 2nd edition;
       will sometime in 1839, 1st edition.
   _43 long transcript; omitted editions 1839.
   _48 those transcript, 1839, 1st edition; their 1839, 2nd edition.
   
   ***
   
   
   FROM THE ORIGINAL DRAFT OF THE POEM TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.
   
   [Published in Dr. Garnett's "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   1.
   The world is now our dwelling-place;
   Where'er the earth one fading trace
   Of what was great and free does keep,
   That is our home!...
   Mild thoughts of man's ungentle race                                 _5
   Shall our contented exile reap;
   For who that in some happy place
   His own free thoughts can freely chase
   By woods and waves can clothe his face
   In cynic smiles? Child! we shall weep.                               _10
   
   2.
   This lament,
   The memory of thy grievous wrong
   Will fade...
   But genius is omnipotent
   To hallow...                                                         _15
   
   ***
   
   
   ON FANNY GODWIN.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, among the poems of 1817, in "Poetical
   Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   Her voice did quiver as we parted,
   Yet knew I not that heart was broken
   From which it came, and I departed
   Heeding not the words then spoken.
   Misery--O Misery,                                                    _5
   This world is all too wide for thee.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley with the date 'November 5th, 1817,' in
   "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   That time is dead for ever, child!
   Drowned, frozen, dead for ever!
   We look on the past
   And stare aghast
   At the spectres wailing, pale and ghast,                             _5
   Of hopes which thou and I beguiled
   To death on life's dark river.
   
   2.
   The stream we gazed on then rolled by;
   Its waves are unreturning;
   But we yet stand                                                     _10
   In a lone land,
   Like tombs to mark the memory
   Of hopes and fears, which fade and flee
   In the light of life's dim morning.
   
   ***
   
   
   DEATH.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   They die--the dead return not--Misery
   Sits near an open grave and calls them over,
   A Youth with hoary hair and haggard eye--
   They are the names of kindred, friend and lover,
   Which he so feebly calls--they all are gone--                        _5
   Fond wretch, all dead! those vacant names alone,
   This most familiar scene, my pain--
   These tombs--alone remain.
   
   2.
   Misery, my sweetest friend--oh, weep no more!
   Thou wilt not be consoled--I wonder not!                             _10
   For I have seen thee from thy dwelling's door
   Watch the calm sunset with them, and this spot
   Was even as bright and calm, but transitory,
   And now thy hopes are gone, thy hair is hoary;
   This most familiar scene, my pain--                                  _15
   These tombs--alone remain.
   
   NOTE:
   _5 calls editions 1839; called 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   OTHO.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   1.
   Thou wert not, Cassius, and thou couldst not be,
   Last of the Romans, though thy memory claim
   From Brutus his own glory--and on thee
   Rests the full splendour of his sacred fame:
   Nor he who dared make the foul tyrant quail                          _5
   Amid his cowering senate with thy name,
   Though thou and he were great--it will avail
   To thine own fame that Otho's should not fail.
   
   2.
   'Twill wrong thee not--thou wouldst, if thou couldst feel,
   Abjure such envious fame--great Otho died                            _10
   Like thee--he sanctified his country's steel,
   At once the tyrant and tyrannicide,
   In his own blood--a deed it was to bring
   Tears from all men--though full of gentle pride,
   Such pride as from impetuous love may spring,                        _15
   That will not be refused its offering.
   
   NOTE:
   _13 bring cj. Garnett; buy 1839, 1st edition; wring cj. Rossetti.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENTS SUPPOSED TO BE PARTS OF OTHO.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862,--where, however,
   only the fragment numbered 2 is assigned to "Otho". Forman (1876)
   connects all three fragments with that projected poem.]
   
   1.
   Those whom nor power, nor lying faith, nor toil,
   Nor custom, queen of many slaves, makes blind,
   Have ever grieved that man should be the spoil
   Of his own weakness, and with earnest mind
   Fed hopes of its redemption; these recur                             _5
   Chastened by deathful victory now, and find
   Foundations in this foulest age, and stir
   Me whom they cheer to be their minister.
   
   2.
   Dark is the realm of grief: but human things
   Those may not know who cannot weep for them.                         _10
   
   ...
   
   3.
   Once more descend
   The shadows of my soul upon mankind,
   For to those hearts with which they never blend,
   Thoughts are but shadows which the flashing mind
   From the swift clouds which track its flight of fire,                _15
   Casts on the gloomy world it leaves behind.
   
   ...
   
   ***
   
   
   'O THAT A CHARIOT OF CLOUD WERE MINE'.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   O that a chariot of cloud were mine!
   Of cloud which the wild tempest weaves in air,
   When the moon over the ocean's line
   Is spreading the locks of her bright gray hair.
   O that a chariot of cloud were mine!                                 _5
   I would sail on the waves of the billowy wind
   To the mountain peak and the rocky lake,
   And the...
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: TO A FRIEND RELEASED FROM PRISON.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   For me, my friend, if not that tears did tremble
   In my faint eyes, and that my heart beat fast
   With feelings which make rapture pain resemble,
   Yet, from thy voice that falsehood starts aghast,
   I thank thee--let the tyrant keep                                    _5
   His chains and tears, yea, let him weep
   With rage to see thee freshly risen,
   Like strength from slumber, from the prison,
   In which he vainly hoped the soul to bind
   Which on the chains must prey that fetter humankind.                 _10
   
   NOTE:
   For the metre see Fragment: "A Gentle Story" (A.C. Bradley.)
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: SATAN BROKEN LOOSE.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   A golden-winged Angel stood
   Before the Eternal Judgement-seat:
   His looks were wild, and Devils' blood
   Stained his dainty hands and feet.
   The Father and the Son                                               _5
   Knew that strife was now begun.
   They knew that Satan had broken his chain,
   And with millions of daemons in his train,
   Was ranging over the world again.
   Before the Angel had told his tale,                                  _10
   A sweet and a creeping sound
   Like the rushing of wings was heard around;
   And suddenly the lamps grew pale--
   The lamps, before the Archangels seven,
   That burn continually in Heaven.                                     _15
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: "IGNICULUS DESIDERII".
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. This
   fragment is amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr.
   C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 63.]
   
   To thirst and find no fill--to wail and wander
   With short unsteady steps--to pause and ponder--
   To feel the blood run through the veins and tingle
   Where busy thought and blind sensation mingle;
   To nurse the image of unfelt caresses                                _5
   Till dim imagination just possesses
   The half-created shadow, then all the night
   Sick...
   
   NOTES:
   _2 unsteady B.; uneasy 1839, 1st edition.
   _7, _8 then...Sick B.; wanting, 1839, 1st edition.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: "AMOR AETERNUS".
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   Wealth and dominion fade into the mass
   Of the great sea of human right and wrong,
   When once from our possession they must pass;
   But love, though misdirected, is among
   The things which are immortal, and surpass                           _5
   All that frail stuff which will be--or which was.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: THOUGHTS COME AND GO IN SOLITUDE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   My thoughts arise and fade in solitude,
   The verse that would invest them melts away
   Like moonlight in the heaven of spreading day:
   How beautiful they were, how firm they stood,
   Flecking the starry sky like woven pearl!                            _5
   
   ***
   
   
   A HATE-SONG.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   A hater he came and sat by a ditch,
   And he took an old cracked lute;
   And he sang a song which was more of a screech
   'Gainst a woman that was a brute.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES TO A CRITIC.
   
   [Published by Hunt in "The Liberal", No. 3, 1823. Reprinted in
   "Posthumous Poems", 1824, where it is dated December, 1817.]
   
   1.
   Honey from silkworms who can gather,
   Or silk from the yellow bee?
   The grass may grow in winter weather
   As soon as hate in me.
   
   2.
   Hate men who cant, and men who pray,                                 _5
   And men who rail like thee;
   An equal passion to repay
   They are not coy like me.
   
   3.
   Or seek some slave of power and gold
   To be thy dear heart's mate;                                         _10
   Thy love will move that bigot cold
   Sooner than me, thy hate.
   
   4.
   A passion like the one I prove
   Cannot divided be;
   I hate thy want of truth and love--                                  _15
   How should I then hate thee?
   
   ***
   
   
   OZYMANDIAS.
   
   [Published by Hunt in "The Examiner", January, 1818. Reprinted with
   "Rosalind and Helen", 1819. There is a copy amongst the Shelley
   manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's
   "Examination", etc., 1903, page 46.]
   
   I met a traveller from an antique land
   Who said: Two vast and trunkless legs of stone
   Stand in the desert...Near them, on the sand,
   Half sunk, a shattered visage lies, whose frown,
   And wrinkled lip, and sneer of cold command,                         _5
   Tell that its sculptor well those passions read
   Which yet survive, stamped on these lifeless things,
   The hand that mocked them, and the heart that fed:
   And on the pedestal these words appear:
   'My name is Ozymandias, king of kings:                               _10
   Look on my works, ye Mighty, and despair!'
   Nothing beside remains. Round the decay
   Of that colossal wreck, boundless and bare
   The lone and level sands stretch far away.
   
   NOTE:
   _9 these words appear]this legend clear B.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1817, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   The very illness that oppressed, and the aspect of death which had
   approached so near Shelley, appear to have kindled to yet keener life
   the Spirit of Poetry in his heart. The restless thoughts kept awake by
   pain clothed themselves in verse. Much was composed during this year.
   The "Revolt of Islam", written and printed, was a great
   effort--"Rosalind and Helen" was begun--and the fragments and poems I
   can trace to the same period show how full of passion and reflection
   were his solitary hours.
   
   In addition to such poems as have an intelligible aim and shape, many a
   stray idea and transitory emotion found imperfect and abrupt
   expression, and then again lost themselves in silence. As he never
   wandered without a book and without implements of writing, I find many
   such, in his manuscript books, that scarcely bear record; while some of
   them, broken and vague as they are, will appear valuable to those who
   love Shelley's mind, and desire to trace its workings.
   
   He projected also translating the "Hymns" of Homer; his version of
   several of the shorter ones remains, as well as that to Mercury already
   published in the "Posthumous Poems". His readings this year were
   chiefly Greek. Besides the "Hymns" of Homer and the "Iliad", he read
   the dramas of Aeschylus and Sophocles, the "Symposium" of Plato, and
   Arrian's "Historia Indica". In Latin, Apuleius alone is named. In
   English, the Bible was his constant study; he read a great portion of
   it aloud in the evening. Among these evening readings I find also
   mentioned the "Faerie Queen"; and other modern works, the production of
   his contemporaries, Coleridge, Wordsworth, Moore and Byron.
   
   His life was now spent more in thought than action--he had lost the
   eager spirit which believed it could achieve what it projected for the
   benefit of mankind. And yet in the converse of daily life Shelley was
   far from being a melancholy man. He was eloquent when philosophy or
   politics or taste were the subjects of conversation. He was playful;
   and indulged in the wild spirit that mocked itself and others--not in
   bitterness, but in sport. The author of "Nightmare Abbey" seized on
   some points of his character and some habits of his life when he
   painted Scythrop. He was not addicted to 'port or madeira,' but in
   youth he had read of 'Illuminati and Eleutherarchs,' and believed that
   he possessed the power of operating an immediate change in the minds of
   men and the state of society. These wild dreams had faded; sorrow and
   adversity had struck home; but he struggled with despondency as he did
   with physical pain. There are few who remember him sailing paper boats,
   and watching the navigation of his tiny craft with eagerness--or
   repeating with wild energy "The Ancient Mariner", and Southey's "Old
   Woman of Berkeley"; but those who do will recollect that it was in
   such, and in the creations of his own fancy when that was most daring
   and ideal, that he sheltered himself from the storms and
   disappointments, the pain and sorrow, that beset his life.
   
   No words can express the anguish he felt when his elder children were
   torn from him. In his first resentment against the Chancellor, on the
   passing of the decree, he had written a curse, in which there breathes,
   besides haughty indignation, all the tenderness of a father's love,
   which could imagine and fondly dwell upon its loss and the
   consequences.
   
   At one time, while the question was still pending, the Chancellor had
   said some words that seemed to intimate that Shelley should not be
   permitted the care of any of his children, and for a moment he feared
   that our infant son would be torn from us. He did not hesitate to
   resolve, if such were menaced, to abandon country, fortune, everything,
   and to escape with his child; and I find some unfinished stanzas
   addressed to this son, whom afterwards we lost at Rome, written under
   the idea that we might suddenly be forced to cross the sea, so to
   preserve him. This poem, as well as the one previously quoted, were not
   written to exhibit the pangs of distress to the public; they were the
   spontaneous outbursts of a man who brooded over his wrongs and woes,
   and was impelled to shed the grace of his genius over the
   uncontrollable emotions of his heart. I ought to observe that the
   fourth verse of this effusion is introduced in "Rosalind and Helen".
   When afterwards this child died at Rome, he wrote, a propos of the
   English burying-ground in that city: 'This spot is the repository of a
   sacred loss, of which the yearnings of a parent's heart are now
   prophetic; he is rendered immortal by love, as his memory is by death.
   My beloved child lies buried here. I envy death the body far less than
   the oppressors the minds of those whom they have torn from me. The one
   can only kill the body, the other crushes the affections.'
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1818.
   
   
   TO THE NILE.
   
   ['Found by Mr. Townshend Meyer among the papers of Leigh Hunt, [and]
   published in the "St. James's Magazine" for March, 1876.' (Mr. H.
   Buxton Forman, C.B.; "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", Library Edition,
   1876, volume 3 page 410.) First included among Shelley's poetical works
   in Mr. Forman's Library Edition, where a facsimile of the manuscript is
   given. Composed February 4, 1818. See "Complete Works of John Keats",
   edition H. Buxton Forman, Glasgow, 1901, volume 4 page 76.]
   
   Month after month the gathered rains descend
   Drenching yon secret Aethiopian dells,
   And from the desert's ice-girt pinnacles
   Where Frost and Heat in strange embraces blend
   On Atlas, fields of moist snow half depend.                          _5
   Girt there with blasts and meteors Tempest dwells
   By Nile's aereal urn, with rapid spells
   Urging those waters to their mighty end.
   O'er Egypt's land of Memory floods are level
   And they are thine, O Nile--and well thou knowest                    _10
   That soul-sustaining airs and blasts of evil
   And fruits and poisons spring where'er thou flowest.
   Beware, O Man--for knowledge must to thee,
   Like the great flood to Egypt, ever be.
   
   ***
   
   
   PASSAGE OF THE APENNINES.
   
   [Composed May 4, 1818. Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
   1824. There is a copy amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian
   Library, which supplies the last word of the fragment.]
   
   Listen, listen, Mary mine,
   To the whisper of the Apennine,
   It bursts on the roof like the thunder's roar,
   Or like the sea on a northern shore,
   Heard in its raging ebb and flow                                     _5
   By the captives pent in the cave below.
   The Apennine in the light of day
   Is a mighty mountain dim and gray,
   Which between the earth and sky doth lay;
   But when night comes, a chaos dread                                  _10
   On the dim starlight then is spread,
   And the Apennine walks abroad with the storm,
   Shrouding...
   
   ***
   
   
   THE PAST.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   Wilt thou forget the happy hours
   Which we buried in Love's sweet bowers,
   Heaping over their corpses cold
   Blossoms and leaves, instead of mould?
   Blossoms which were the joys that fell,                              _5
   And leaves, the hopes that yet remain.
   
   2.
   Forget the dead, the past? Oh, yet
   There are ghosts that may take revenge for it,
   Memories that make the heart a tomb,
   Regrets which glide through the spirit's gloom,                      _10
   And with ghastly whispers tell
   That joy, once lost, is pain.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO MARY --.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   O Mary dear, that you were here
   With your brown eyes bright and clear.
   And your sweet voice, like a bird
   Singing love to its lone mate
   In the ivy bower disconsolate;                                       _5
   Voice the sweetest ever heard!
   And your brow more...
   Than the ... sky
   Of this azure Italy.
   Mary dear, come to me soon,                                          _10
   I am not well whilst thou art far;
   As sunset to the sphered moon,
   As twilight to the western star,
   Thou, beloved, art to me.
   
   O Mary dear, that you were here;                                     _15
   The Castle echo whispers 'Here!'
   
   ***
   
   
   ON A FADED VIOLET.
   
   [Published by Hunt, "Literary Pocket-Book", 1821. Reprinted by Mrs.
   Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Again reprinted, with several
   variants, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. Our text is that of the
   editio princeps, 1821. A transcript is extant in a letter from Shelley
   to Sophia Stacey, dated March 7, 1820.]
   
   1.
   The odour from the flower is gone
   Which like thy kisses breathed on me;
   The colour from the flower is flown
   Which glowed of thee and only thee!
   
   2.
   A shrivelled, lifeless, vacant form,                                 _5
   It lies on my abandoned breast,
   And mocks the heart which yet is warm,
   With cold and silent rest.
   
   3.
   I weep,--my tears revive it not!
   I sigh,--it breathes no more on me;                                  _10
   Its mute and uncomplaining lot
   Is such as mine should be.
   
   NOTES:
   _1 odour]colour 1839.
   _2 kisses breathed]sweet eyes smiled 1839.
   _3 colour]odour 1839.
   _4 glowed]breathed 1839.
   _5 shrivelled]withered 1839.
   _8 cold and silent all editions; its cold, silent Stacey manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES WRITTEN AMONG THE EUGANEAN HILLS.
   
   OCTOBER, 1818.
   
   [Composed at Este, October, 1818. Published with "Rosalind and Helen",
   1819. Amongst the late Mr. Fredk. Locker-Lampson's collections at
   Rowfant there is a manuscript of the lines (167-205) on Byron,
   interpolated after the completion of the poem.]
   
   Many a green isle needs must be
   In the deep wide sea of Misery,
   Or the mariner, worn and wan,
   Never thus could voyage on--
   Day and night, and night and day,                                    _5
   Drifting on his dreary way,
   With the solid darkness black
   Closing round his vessel's track:
   Whilst above the sunless sky,
   Big with clouds, hangs heavily,                                      _10
   And behind the tempest fleet
   Hurries on with lightning feet,
   Riving sail, and cord, and plank,
   Till the ship has almost drank
   Death from the o'er-brimming deep;                                   _15
   And sinks down, down, like that sleep
   When the dreamer seems to be
   Weltering through eternity;
   And the dim low line before
   Of a dark and distant shore                                          _20
   Still recedes, as ever still
   Longing with divided will,
   But no power to seek or shun,
   He is ever drifted on
   O'er the unreposing wave                                             _25
   To the haven of the grave.
   What, if there no friends will greet;
   What, if there no heart will meet
   His with love's impatient beat;
   Wander wheresoe'er he may,                                           _30
   Can he dream before that day
   To find refuge from distress
   In friendship's smile, in love's caress?
   Then 'twill wreak him little woe
   Whether such there be or no:                                         _35
   Senseless is the breast, and cold,
   Which relenting love would fold;
   Bloodless are the veins and chill
   Which the pulse of pain did fill;
   Every little living nerve                                            _40
   That from bitter words did swerve
   Round the tortured lips and brow,
   Are like sapless leaflets now
   Frozen upon December's bough.
   
   On the beach of a northern sea                                       _45
   Which tempests shake eternally,
   As once the wretch there lay to sleep,
   Lies a solitary heap,
   One white skull and seven dry bones,
   On the margin of the stones,                                         _50
   Where a few gray rushes stand,
   Boundaries of the sea and land:
   Nor is heard one voice of wail
   But the sea-mews, as they sail
   O'er the billows of the gale;                                        _55
   Or the whirlwind up and down
   Howling, like a slaughtered town,
   When a king in glory rides
   Through the pomp of fratricides:
   Those unburied bones around                                          _60
   There is many a mournful sound;
   There is no lament for him,
   Like a sunless vapour, dim,
   Who once clothed with life and thought
   What now moves nor murmurs not.                                      _65
   
   Ay, many flowering islands lie
   In the waters of wide Agony:
   To such a one this morn was led,
   My bark by soft winds piloted:
   'Mid the mountains Euganean                                          _70
   I stood listening to the paean
   With which the legioned rooks did hail
   The sun's uprise majestical;
   Gathering round with wings all hoar,
   Through the dewy mist they soar                                      _75
   Like gray shades, till the eastern heaven
   Bursts, and then, as clouds of even,
   Flecked with fire and azure, lie
   In the unfathomable sky,
   So their plumes of purple grain,                                     _80
   Starred with drops of golden rain,
   Gleam above the sunlight woods,
   As in silent multitudes
   On the morning's fitful gale
   Through the broken mist they sail,                                   _85
   And the vapours cloven and gleaming
   Follow, down the dark steep streaming,
   Till all is bright, and clear, and still,
   Round the solitary hill.
   
   Beneath is spread like a green sea                                   _90
   The waveless plain of Lombardy,
   Bounded by the vaporous air,
   Islanded by cities fair;
   Underneath Day's azure eyes
   Ocean's nursling, Venice lies,                                       _95
   A peopled labyrinth of walls,
   Amphitrite's destined halls,
   Which her hoary sire now paves
   With his blue and beaming waves.
   Lo! the sun upsprings behind,                                        _100
   Broad, red, radiant, half-reclined
   On the level quivering line
   Of the waters crystalline;
   And before that chasm of light,
   As within a furnace bright,                                          _105
   Column, tower, and dome, and spire,
   Shine like obelisks of fire,
   Pointing with inconstant motion
   From the altar of dark ocean
   To the sapphire-tinted skies;                                        _110
   As the flames of sacrifice
   From the marble shrines did rise,
   As to pierce the dome of gold
   Where Apollo spoke of old.
   
   Sun-girt City, thou hast been                                        _115
   Ocean's child, and then his queen;
   Now is come a darker day,
   And thou soon must be his prey,
   If the power that raised thee here
   Hallow so thy watery bier.                                           _120
   A less drear ruin then than now,
   With thy conquest-branded brow
   Stooping to the slave of slaves
   From thy throne, among the waves
   Wilt thou be, when the sea-mew                                       _125
   Flies, as once before it flew,
   O'er thine isles depopulate,
   And all is in its ancient state,
   Save where many a palace gate                                        _130
   With green sea-flowers overgrown
   Like a rock of Ocean's own,
   Topples o'er the abandoned sea
   As the tides change sullenly.
   The fisher on his watery way,
   Wandering at the close of day,                                       _135
   Will spread his sail and seize his oar
   Till he pass the gloomy shore,
   Lest thy dead should, from their sleep
   Bursting o'er the starlight deep,
   Lead a rapid masque of death                                         _140
   O'er the waters of his path.
   
   Those who alone thy towers behold
   Quivering through aereal gold,
   As I now behold them here,
   Would imagine not they were                                          _145
   Sepulchres, where human forms,
   Like pollution-nourished worms,
   To the corpse of greatness cling,
   Murdered, and now mouldering:
   But if Freedom should awake                                          _150
   In her omnipotence, and shake
   From the Celtic Anarch's hold
   All the keys of dungeons cold,
   Where a hundred cities lie
   Chained like thee, ingloriously,                                     _155
   Thou and all thy sister band
   Might adorn this sunny land,
   Twining memories of old time
   With new virtues more sublime;
   If not, perish thou and they!--                                      _160
   Clouds which stain truth's rising day
   By her sun consumed away--
   Earth can spare ye: while like flowers,
   In the waste of years and hours,
   From your dust new nations spring                                    _165
   With more kindly blossoming.
   
   Perish--let there only be
   Floating o'er thy hearthless sea
   As the garment of thy sky
   Clothes the world immortally,                                        _170
   One remembrance, more sublime
   Than the tattered pall of time,
   Which scarce hides thy visage wan;--
   That a tempest-cleaving Swan
   Of the songs of Albion,                                              _175
   Driven from his ancestral streams
   By the might of evil dreams,
   Found a nest in thee; and Ocean
   Welcomed him with such emotion
   That its joy grew his, and sprung                                    _180
   From his lips like music flung
   O'er a mighty thunder-fit,
   Chastening terror:--what though yet
   Poesy's unfailing River,
   Which through Albion winds forever                                   _185
   Lashing with melodious wave
   Many a sacred Poet's grave,
   Mourn its latest nursling fled?
   What though thou with all thy dead
   Scarce can for this fame repay                                       _190
   Aught thine own? oh, rather say
   Though thy sins and slaveries foul
   Overcloud a sunlike soul?
   As the ghost of Homer clings
   Round Scamander's wasting springs;                                   _195
   As divinest Shakespeare's might
   Fills Avon and the world with light
   Like omniscient power which he
   Imaged 'mid mortality;
   As the love from Petrarch's urn,                                     _200
   Yet amid yon hills doth burn,
   A quenchless lamp by which the heart
   Sees things unearthly;--so thou art,
   Mighty spirit--so shall be
   The City that did refuge thee.                                       _205
   
   Lo, the sun floats up the sky
   Like thought-winged Liberty,
   Till the universal light
   Seems to level plain and height;
   From the sea a mist has spread,                                      _210
   And the beams of morn lie dead
   On the towers of Venice now,
   Like its glory long ago.
   By the skirts of that gray cloud
   Many-domed Padua proud                                               _215
   Stands, a peopled solitude,
   'Mid the harvest-shining plain,
   Where the peasant heaps his grain
   In the garner of his foe,
   And the milk-white oxen slow                                         _220
   With the purple vintage strain,
   Heaped upon the creaking wain,
   That the brutal Celt may swill
   Drunken sleep with savage will;
   And the sickle to the sword                                          _225
   Lies unchanged, though many a lord,
   Like a weed whose shade is poison,
   Overgrows this region's foison,
   Sheaves of whom are ripe to come
   To destruction's harvest-home:                                       _230
   Men must reap the things they sow,
   Force from force must ever flow,
   Or worse; but 'tis a bitter woe
   That love or reason cannot change
   The despot's rage, the slave's revenge.                              _235
   
   Padua, thou within whose walls
   Those mute guests at festivals,
   Son and Mother, Death and Sin,
   Played at dice for Ezzelin,
   Till Death cried, "I win, I win!"                                    _240
   And Sin cursed to lose the wager,
   But Death promised, to assuage her,
   That he would petition for
   Her to be made Vice-Emperor,
   When the destined years were o'er,                                   _245
   Over all between the Po
   And the eastern Alpine snow,
   Under the mighty Austrian.
   Sin smiled so as Sin only can,
   And since that time, ay, long before,                                _250
   Both have ruled from shore to shore,--
   That incestuous pair, who follow
   Tyrants as the sun the swallow,
   As Repentance follows Crime,
   And as changes follow Time.                                          _255
   
   In thine halls the lamp of learning,
   Padua, now no more is burning;
   Like a meteor, whose wild way
   Is lost over the grave of day,
   It gleams betrayed and to betray:                                    _260
   Once remotest nations came
   To adore that sacred flame,
   When it lit not many a hearth
   On this cold and gloomy earth:
   Now new fires from antique light                                     _265
   Spring beneath the wide world's might;
   But their spark lies dead in thee,
   Trampled out by Tyranny.
   As the Norway woodman quells,
   In the depth of piny dells,                                          _270
   One light flame among the brakes,
   While the boundless forest shakes,
   And its mighty trunks are torn
   By the fire thus lowly born:
   The spark beneath his feet is dead,                                  _275
   He starts to see the flames it fed
   Howling through the darkened sky
   With a myriad tongues victoriously,
   And sinks down in fear: so thou,
   O Tyranny, beholdest now                                             _280
   Light around thee, and thou hearest
   The loud flames ascend, and fearest:
   Grovel on the earth; ay, hide
   In the dust thy purple pride!
   
   Noon descends around me now:                                         _285
   'Tis the noon of autumn's glow,
   When a soft and purple mist
   Like a vaporous amethyst,
   Or an air-dissolved star
   Mingling light and fragrance, far                                    _290
   From the curved horizon's bound
   To the point of Heaven's profound,
   Fills the overflowing sky;
   And the plains that silent lie
   Underneath, the leaves unsodden                                      _295
   Where the infant Frost has trodden
   With his morning-winged feet,
   Whose bright print is gleaming yet;
   And the red and golden vines,
   Piercing with their trellised lines                                  _300
   The rough, dark-skirted wilderness;
   The dun and bladed grass no less,
   Pointing from this hoary tower
   In the windless air; the flower
   Glimmering at my feet; the line                                      _305
   Of the olive-sandalled Apennine
   In the south dimly islanded;
   And the Alps, whose snows are spread
   High between the clouds and sun;
   And of living things each one;                                       _310
   And my spirit which so long
   Darkened this swift stream of song,--
   Interpenetrated lie
   By the glory of the sky:
   Be it love, light, harmony,                                          _315
   Odour, or the soul of all
   Which from Heaven like dew doth fall,
   Or the mind which feeds this verse
   Peopling the lone universe.
   
   Noon descends, and after noon                                        _320
   Autumn's evening meets me soon,
   Leading the infantine moon,
   And that one star, which to her
   Almost seems to minister
   Half the crimson light she brings                                    _325
   From the sunset's radiant springs:
   And the soft dreams of the morn
   (Which like winged winds had borne
   To that silent isle, which lies
   Mid remembered agonies,                                              _330
   The frail bark of this lone being)
   Pass, to other sufferers fleeing,
   And its ancient pilot, Pain,
   Sits beside the helm again.
   
   Other flowering isles must be                                        _335
   In the sea of Life and Agony:
   Other spirits float and flee
   O'er that gulf: even now, perhaps,
   On some rock the wild wave wraps,
   With folded wings they waiting sit                                   _340
   For my bark, to pilot it
   To some calm and blooming cove,
   Where for me, and those I love,
   May a windless bower be built,
   Far from passion, pain, and guilt,                                   _345
   In a dell mid lawny hills,
   Which the wild sea-murmur fills,
   And soft sunshine, and the sound
   Of old forests echoing round,
   And the light and smell divine                                       _350
   Of all flowers that breathe and shine:
   We may live so happy there,
   That the Spirits of the Air,
   Envying us, may even entice
   To our healing Paradise                                              _355
   The polluting multitude;
   But their rage would be subdued
   By that clime divine and calm,
   And the winds whose wings rain balm
   On the uplifted soul, and leaves                                     _360
   Under which the bright sea heaves;
   While each breathless interval
   In their whisperings musical
   The inspired soul supplies
   With its own deep melodies;                                          _365
   And the love which heals all strife
   Circling, like the breath of life,
   All things in that sweet abode
   With its own mild brotherhood,
   They, not it, would change; and soon                                 _370
   Every sprite beneath the moon
   Would repent its envy vain,
   And the earth grow young again.
   
   NOTES:
   _54 seamews 1819; seamew's Rossetti.
   _115 Sun-girt]Sea-girt cj. Palgrave.
   _165 From your dust new 1819;
        From thy dust shall Rowfant manuscript (heading of lines 167-205).
   _175 songs 1819; sons cj. Forman.
   _278 a 1819; wanting, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   SCENE FROM 'TASSO'.
   
   [Composed, 1818. Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   MADDALO, A COURTIER.
   MALPIGLIO, A POET.
   PIGNA, A MINISTER.
   ALBANO, AN USHER.
   
   MADDALO:
   No access to the Duke! You have not said
   That the Count Maddalo would speak with him?
   
   PIGNA:
   Did you inform his Grace that Signor Pigna
   Waits with state papers for his signature?
   
   MALPIGLIO:
   The Lady Leonora cannot know                                         _5
   That I have written a sonnet to her fame,
   In which I ... Venus and Adonis.
   You should not take my gold and serve me not.
   
   ALBANO:
   In truth I told her, and she smiled and said,
   'If I am Venus, thou, coy Poesy,                                     _10
   Art the Adonis whom I love, and he
   The Erymanthian boar that wounded him.'
   O trust to me, Signor Malpiglio,
   Those nods and smiles were favours worth the zechin.
   
   MALPIGLIO:
   The words are twisted in some double sense                           _15
   That I reach not: the smiles fell not on me.
   
   PIGNA:
   How are the Duke and Duchess occupied?
   
   ALBANO:
   Buried in some strange talk. The Duke was leaning,
   His finger on his brow, his lips unclosed.
   The Princess sate within the window-seat,                            _20
   And so her face was hid; but on her knee
   Her hands were clasped, veined, and pale as snow,
   And quivering--young Tasso, too, was there.
   
   MADDALO:
   Thou seest on whom from thine own worshipped heaven
   Thou drawest down smiles--they did not rain on thee.                 _25
   
   MALPIGLIO:
   Would they were parching lightnings for his sake
   On whom they fell!
   
   ***
   
   
   SONG FOR 'TASSO'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   I loved--alas! our life is love;
   But when we cease to breathe and move
   I do suppose love ceases too.
   I thought, but not as now I do,
   Keen thoughts and bright of linked lore,                             _5
   Of all that men had thought before.
   And all that Nature shows, and more.
   
   2.
   And still I love and still I think,
   But strangely, for my heart can drink
   The dregs of such despair, and live,                                 _10
   And love;...
   And if I think, my thoughts come fast,
   I mix the present with the past,
   And each seems uglier than the last.
   
   3.
   Sometimes I see before me flee                                       _15
   A silver spirit's form, like thee,
   O Leonora, and I sit
   ...still watching it,
   Till by the grated casement's ledge
   It fades, with such a sigh, as sedge                                 _20
   Breathes o'er the breezy streamlet's edge.
   
   ***
   
   
   INVOCATION TO MISERY.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", September 8, 1832. Reprinted (as
   "Misery, a Fragment") by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st
   edition. Our text is that of 1839. A pencil copy of this poem is
   amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D.
   Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 38. The readings of this copy
   are indicated by the letter B. in the footnotes.]
   
   1.
   Come, be happy!--sit near me,
   Shadow-vested Misery:
   Coy, unwilling, silent bride,
   Mourning in thy robe of pride,
   Desolation--deified!                                                 _5
   
   2.
   Come, be happy!--sit near me:
   Sad as I may seem to thee,
   I am happier far than thou,
   Lady, whose imperial brow
   Is endiademed with woe.                                              _10
   
   3.
   Misery! we have known each other,
   Like a sister and a brother
   Living in the same lone home,
   Many years--we must live some
   Hours or ages yet to come.                                           _15
   
   4.
   'Tis an evil lot, and yet
   Let us make the best of it;
   If love can live when pleasure dies,
   We two will love, till in our eyes
   This heart's Hell seem Paradise.                                     _20
   
   5.
   Come, be happy!--lie thee down
   On the fresh grass newly mown,
   Where the Grasshopper doth sing
   Merrily--one joyous thing
   In a world of sorrowing!                                             _25
   
   6.
   There our tent shall be the willow,
   And mine arm shall be thy pillow;
   Sounds and odours, sorrowful
   Because they once were sweet, shall lull
   Us to slumber, deep and dull.                                        _30
   
   7.
   Ha! thy frozen pulses flutter
   With a love thou darest not utter.
   Thou art murmuring--thou art weeping--
   Is thine icy bosom leaping
   While my burning heart lies sleeping?                                _35
   
   8.
   Kiss me;--oh! thy lips are cold:
   Round my neck thine arms enfold--
   They are soft, but chill and dead;
   And thy tears upon my head
   Burn like points of frozen lead.                                     _40
   
   9.
   Hasten to the bridal bed--
   Underneath the grave 'tis spread:
   In darkness may our love be hid,
   Oblivion be our coverlid--
   We may rest, and none forbid.                                        _45
   
   10.
   Clasp me till our hearts be grown
   Like two shadows into one;
   Till this dreadful transport may
   Like a vapour fade away,
   In the sleep that lasts alway.                                       _50
   
   11.
   We may dream, in that long sleep,
   That we are not those who weep;
   E'en as Pleasure dreams of thee,
   Life-deserting Misery,
   Thou mayst dream of her with me.                                     _55
   
   12.
   Let us laugh, and make our mirth,
   At the shadows of the earth,
   As dogs bay the moonlight clouds,
   Which, like spectres wrapped in shrouds,
   Pass o'er night in multitudes.                                       _60
   
   13.
   All the wide world, beside us,
   Show like multitudinous
   Puppets passing from a scene;
   What but mockery can they mean,
   Where I am--where thou hast been?                                    _65
   
   NOTES:
   _1 near B., 1839; by 1832.
   _8 happier far]merrier yet B.
   _15 Hours or]Years and 1832.
   _17 best]most 1832.
   _19 We two will]We will 1832.
   _27 mine arm shall be thy B., 1839; thine arm shall be my 1832.
   _33 represented by asterisks, 1832.
   _34, _35 Thou art murmuring, thou art weeping,
            Whilst my burning bosom's leaping 1832;
            Was thine icy bosom leaping
            While my burning heart was sleeping B.
   _40 frozen 1832, 1839, B.; molten cj. Forman.
   _44 be]is B.
   _47 shadows]lovers 1832, B.
   _59 which B., 1839; that 1832.
   _62 Show]Are 1832, B.
   _63 Puppets passing]Shadows shifting 1832; Shadows passing B.
   _64, _65 So B.: What but mockery may they mean?
                   Where am I?--Where thou hast been 1832.
   
   ***
   
   
   STANZAS WRITTEN IN DEJECTION, NEAR NAPLES.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, where it is dated
   'December, 1818.' A draft of stanza 1 is amongst the Boscombe
   manuscripts. (Garnett).]
   
   1.
   The sun is warm, the sky is clear,
   The waves are dancing fast and bright,
   Blue isles and snowy mountains wear
   The purple noon's transparent might,
   The breath of the moist earth is light,                              _5
   Around its unexpanded buds;
   Like many a voice of one delight,
   The winds, the birds, the ocean floods,
   The City's voice itself, is soft like Solitude's.
   
   2.
   I see the Deep's untrampled floor                                    _10
   With green and purple seaweeds strown;
   I see the waves upon the shore,
   Like light dissolved in star-showers, thrown:
   I sit upon the sands alone,--
   The lightning of the noontide ocean                                  _15
   Is flashing round me, and a tone
   Arises from its measured motion,
   How sweet! did any heart now share in my emotion.
   
   3.
   Alas! I have nor hope nor health,
   Nor peace within nor calm around,                                    _20
   Nor that content surpassing wealth
   The sage in meditation found,
   And walked with inward glory crowned--
   Nor fame, nor power, nor love, nor leisure.
   Others I see whom these surround--                                   _25
   Smiling they live, and call life pleasure;--
   To me that cup has been dealt in another measure.
   
   4.
   Yet now despair itself is mild,
   Even as the winds and waters are;
   I could lie down like a tired child,                                 _30
   And weep away the life of care
   Which I have borne and yet must bear,
   Till death like sleep might steal on me,
   And I might feel in the warm air
   My cheek grow cold, and hear the sea                                 _35
   Breathe o'er my dying brain its last monotony.
   
   5.
   Some might lament that I were cold,
   As I, when this sweet day is gone,
   Which my lost heart, too soon grown old,
   Insults with this untimely moan;                                     _40
   They might lament--for I am one
   Whom men love not,--and yet regret,
   Unlike this day, which, when the sun
   Shall on its stainless glory set,
   Will linger, though enjoyed, like joy in memory yet.                 _45
   
   NOTES:
   _4 might Boscombe manuscript, Medwin 1847; light 1824, 1839.
   _5 The...light Boscombe manuscript, 1839, Medwin 1847;
       omitted, 1824. moist earth Boscombe manuscript;
       moist air 1839; west wind Medwin 1847.
   _17 measured 1824; mingled 1847.
   _18 did any heart now 1824; if any heart could Medwin 1847.
   _31 the 1824; this Medwin 1847.
   _36 dying 1824; outworn Medwin 1847.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE WOODMAN AND THE NIGHTINGALE.
   
   [Published in part (1-67) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824;
   the remainder (68-70) by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   A woodman whose rough heart was out of tune
   (I think such hearts yet never came to good)
   Hated to hear, under the stars or moon,
   
   One nightingale in an interfluous wood
   Satiate the hungry dark with melody;--                               _5
   And as a vale is watered by a flood,
   
   Or as the moonlight fills the open sky
   Struggling with darkness--as a tuberose
   Peoples some Indian dell with scents which lie
   
   Like clouds above the flower from which they rose,                   _10
   The singing of that happy nightingale
   In this sweet forest, from the golden close
   
   Of evening till the star of dawn may fail,
   Was interfused upon the silentness;
   The folded roses and the violets pale                                _15
   
   Heard her within their slumbers, the abyss
   Of heaven with all its planets; the dull ear
   Of the night-cradled earth; the loneliness
   
   Of the circumfluous waters,--every sphere
   And every flower and beam and cloud and wave,                        _20
   And every wind of the mute atmosphere,
   
   And every beast stretched in its rugged cave,
   And every bird lulled on its mossy bough,
   And every silver moth fresh from the grave
   
   Which is its cradle--ever from below                                 _25
   Aspiring like one who loves too fair, too far,
   To be consumed within the purest glow
   
   Of one serene and unapproached star,
   As if it were a lamp of earthly light,
   Unconscious, as some human lovers are,                               _30
   
   Itself how low, how high beyond all height
   The heaven where it would perish!--and every form
   That worshipped in the temple of the night
   
   Was awed into delight, and by the charm
   Girt as with an interminable zone,                                   _35
   Whilst that sweet bird, whose music was a storm
   
   Of sound, shook forth the dull oblivion
   Out of their dreams; harmony became love
   In every soul but one.
   
   ...
   
   And so this man returned with axe and saw                            _40
   At evening close from killing the tall treen,
   The soul of whom by Nature's gentle law
   
   Was each a wood-nymph, and kept ever green
   The pavement and the roof of the wild copse,
   Chequering the sunlight of the blue serene                           _45
   
   With jagged leaves,--and from the forest tops
   Singing the winds to sleep--or weeping oft
   Fast showers of aereal water-drops
   
   Into their mother's bosom, sweet and soft,
   Nature's pure tears which have no bitterness;--                      _50
   Around the cradles of the birds aloft
   
   They spread themselves into the loveliness
   Of fan-like leaves, and over pallid flowers
   Hang like moist clouds:--or, where high branches kiss,
   
   Make a green space among the silent bowers,                          _55
   Like a vast fane in a metropolis,
   Surrounded by the columns and the towers
   
   All overwrought with branch-like traceries
   In which there is religion--and the mute
   Persuasion of unkindled melodies,                                    _60
   
   Odours and gleams and murmurs, which the lute
   Of the blind pilot-spirit of the blast
   Stirs as it sails, now grave and now acute,
   
   Wakening the leaves and waves, ere it has passed
   To such brief unison as on the brain                                 _65
   One tone, which never can recur, has cast,
   One accent never to return again.
   
   ...
   
   The world is full of Woodmen who expel
   Love's gentle Dryads from the haunts of life,
   And vex the nightingales in every dell.                              _70
   
   NOTE:
   _8 --or as a tuberose cj. A.C. Bradley.
   
   ***
   
   
   MARENGHI. (This fragment refers to an event told in Sismondi's
   "Histoire des Republiques Italiennes", which occurred during the war
   when Florence finally subdued Pisa, and reduced it to a
   province.--[MRS. SHELLEY'S NOTE, 1824.])
   
   [Published in part (stanzas 7-15.) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
   1824; stanzas 1-28 by W.M. Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B.
   S.", 1870. The Boscombe manuscript--evidently a first draft--from which
   (through Dr. Garnett) Rossetti derived the text of 1870 is now at the
   Bodleian, and has recently been collated by Mr. C.D. Locock, to whom
   the enlarged and amended text here printed is owing. The substitution,
   in title and text, of "Marenghi" for "Mazenghi" (1824) is due to
   Rossetti. Here as elsewhere in the footnotes B. = the Bodleian
   manuscript.]
   
   1.
   Let those who pine in pride or in revenge,
   Or think that ill for ill should be repaid,
   Who barter wrong for wrong, until the exchange
   Ruins the merchants of such thriftless trade,
   Visit the tower of Vado, and unlearn                                 _5
   Such bitter faith beside Marenghi's urn.
   
   2.
   A massy tower yet overhangs the town,
   A scattered group of ruined dwellings now...
   
   ...
   
   3.
   Another scene are wise Etruria knew
   Its second ruin through internal strife                              _10
   And tyrants through the breach of discord threw
   The chain which binds and kills. As death to life,
   As winter to fair flowers (though some be poison)
   So Monarchy succeeds to Freedom's foison.
   
   4.
   In Pisa's church a cup of sculptured gold                            _15
   Was brimming with the blood of feuds forsworn:
   A Sacrament more holy ne'er of old
   Etrurians mingled mid the shades forlorn
   Of moon-illumined forests, when...
   
   5.
   And reconciling factions wet their lips                              _20
   With that dread wine, and swear to keep each spirit
   Undarkened by their country's last eclipse...
   
   ...
   
   6.
   Was Florence the liberticide? that band
   Of free and glorious brothers who had planted,
   Like a green isle mid Aethiopian sand,                               _25
   A nation amid slaveries, disenchanted
   Of many impious faiths--wise, just--do they,
   Does Florence, gorge the sated tyrants' prey?
   
   7.
   O foster-nurse of man's abandoned glory,
   Since Athens, its great mother, sunk in splendour;                   _30
   Thou shadowest forth that mighty shape in story,
   As ocean its wrecked fanes, severe yet tender:--
   The light-invested angel Poesy
   Was drawn from the dim world to welcome thee.
   
   8.
   And thou in painting didst transcribe all taught                     _35
   By loftiest meditations; marble knew
   The sculptor's fearless soul--and as he wrought,
   The grace of his own power and freedom grew.
   And more than all, heroic, just, sublime,
   Thou wart among the false...was this thy crime?                      _40
   
   9.
   Yes; and on Pisa's marble walls the twine
   Of direst weeds hangs garlanded--the snake
   Inhabits its wrecked palaces;--in thine
   A beast of subtler venom now doth make
   Its lair, and sits amid their glories overthrown,                    _45
   And thus thy victim's fate is as thine own.
   
   10.
   The sweetest flowers are ever frail and rare,
   And love and freedom blossom but to wither;
   And good and ill like vines entangled are,
   So that their grapes may oft be plucked together;--                  _50
   Divide the vintage ere thou drink, then make
   Thy heart rejoice for dead Marenghi's sake.
   
   10a.
   [Albert] Marenghi was a Florentine;
   If he had wealth, or children, or a wife
   Or friends, [or farm] or cherished thoughts which twine              _55
   The sights and sounds of home with life's own life
   Of these he was despoiled and Florence sent...
   
   ...
   
   11.
   No record of his crime remains in story,
   But if the morning bright as evening shone,                          _60
   It was some high and holy deed, by glory
   Pursued into forgetfulness, which won
   From the blind crowd he made secure and free
   The patriot's meed, toil, death, and infamy.
   
   12.
   For when by sound of trumpet was declared
   A price upon his life, and there was set                             _65
   A penalty of blood on all who shared
   So much of water with him as might wet
   His lips, which speech divided not--he went
   Alone, as you may guess, to banishment.
   
   13.
   Amid the mountains, like a hunted beast,
   He hid himself, and hunger, toil, and cold,                          _70
   Month after month endured; it was a feast
   Whene'er he found those globes of deep-red gold
   Which in the woods the strawberry-tree doth bear,
   Suspended in their emerald atmosphere.                               _75
   
   14.
   And in the roofless huts of vast morasses,
   Deserted by the fever-stricken serf,
   All overgrown with reeds and long rank grasses,
   And hillocks heaped of moss-inwoven turf,
   And where the huge and speckled aloe made,                           _80
   Rooted in stones, a broad and pointed shade,--
   
   15.
   He housed himself. There is a point of strand
   Near Vado's tower and town; and on one side
   The treacherous marsh divides it from the land,
   Shadowed by pine and ilex forests wide,                              _85
   And on the other, creeps eternally,
   Through muddy weeds, the shallow sullen sea.
   
   16.
   Here the earth's breath is pestilence, and few
   But things whose nature is at war with life--
   Snakes and ill worms--endure its mortal dew.
   The trophies of the clime's victorious strife--                      _90
   And ringed horns which the buffalo did wear,
   And the wolf's dark gray scalp who tracked him there.
   
   17.
   And at the utmost point...stood there
   The relics of a reed-inwoven cot,                                    _95
   Thatched with broad flags. An outlawed murderer
   Had lived seven days there: the pursuit was hot
   When he was cold. The birds that were his grave
   Fell dead after their feast in Vado's wave.
   
   18.
   There must have burned within Marenghi's breast                      _100
   That fire, more warm and bright than life and hope,
   (Which to the martyr makes his dungeon...
   More joyous than free heaven's majestic cope
   To his oppressor), warring with decay,--
   Or he could ne'er have lived years, day by day.                      _105
   
   19.
   Nor was his state so lone as you might think.
   He had tamed every newt and snake and toad,
   And every seagull which sailed down to drink
   Those freshes ere the death-mist went abroad.
   And each one, with peculiar talk and play,                           _110
   Wiled, not untaught, his silent time away.
   
   20.
   And the marsh-meteors, like tame beasts, at night
   Came licking with blue tongues his veined feet;
   And he would watch them, as, like spirits bright,
   In many entangled figures quaint and sweet                           _115
   To some enchanted music they would dance--
   Until they vanished at the first moon-glance.
   
   21.
   He mocked the stars by grouping on each weed
   The summer dew-globes in the golden dawn;
   And, ere the hoar-frost languished, he could read                    _120
   Its pictured path, as on bare spots of lawn
   Its delicate brief touch in silver weaves
   The likeness of the wood's remembered leaves.
   
   22.
   And many a fresh Spring morn would he awaken--
   While yet the unrisen sun made glow, like iron                       _125
   Quivering in crimson fire, the peaks unshaken
   Of mountains and blue isles which did environ
   With air-clad crags that plain of land and sea,--
   And feel ... liberty.
   
   23.
   And in the moonless nights when the dun ocean                        _130
   Heaved underneath wide heaven, star-impearled,
   Starting from dreams...
   Communed with the immeasurable world;
   And felt his life beyond his limbs dilated,
   Till his mind grew like that it contemplated.                        _135
   
   24.
   His food was the wild fig and strawberry;
   The milky pine-nuts which the autumn-blast
   Shakes into the tall grass; or such small fry
   As from the sea by winter-storms are cast;
   And the coarse bulbs of iris-flowers he found                        _140
   Knotted in clumps under the spongy ground.
   
   25.
   And so were kindled powers and thoughts which made
   His solitude less dark. When memory came
   (For years gone by leave each a deepening shade),
   His spirit basked in its internal flame,--                           _145
   As, when the black storm hurries round at night,
   The fisher basks beside his red firelight.
   
   26.
   Yet human hopes and cares and faiths and errors,
   Like billows unawakened by the wind,
   Slept in Marenghi still; but that all terrors,                       _150
   Weakness, and doubt, had withered in his mind.
   His couch...
   
   ...
   
   27.
   And, when he saw beneath the sunset's planet
   A black ship walk over the crimson ocean,--
   Its pennon streaming on the blasts that fan it,                      _155
   Its sails and ropes all tense and without motion,
   Like the dark ghost of the unburied even
   Striding athwart the orange-coloured heaven,--
   
   28.
   The thought of his own kind who made the soul
   Which sped that winged shape through night and day,--                _160
   The thought of his own country...
   
   ...
   
   NOTES:
   _3 Who B.; Or 1870.
   _6 Marenghi's 1870; Mazenghi's B.
   _7 town 1870; sea B.
   _8 ruined 1870; squalid B. ('the whole line is cancelled,' Locock).
   _11 threw 1870; cancelled, B.
   _17 A Sacrament more B.; At Sacrament: more 1870.
   _18 mid B.; with 1870.
   _19 forests when... B.; forests. 1870.
   _23, _24 that band Of free and glorious brothers who had 1870; omitted, B.
   _25 a 1870; one B.
   _27 wise, just--do they 1870; omitted, B.
   _28 Does 1870; Doth B. prey 1870; spoil B.
   _33 angel 1824; Herald [?] B.
   _34 to welcome thee 1824; cancelled for... by thee B.
   _42 direst 1824; Desert B.
   _45 sits amid 1824 amid cancelled for soils (?) B.
   _53-_57 Albert...sent B.; omitted 1824, 1870. Albert cancelled B.:
        Pietro is the correct name.
   _53 Marenghi]Mazenghi B.
   _55 farm doubtful: perh. fame (Locock).
   _62 he 1824; thus B.
   _70 Amid the mountains 1824; Mid desert mountains [?] B.
   _71 toil, and cold]cold and toil editions 1824, 1839.
   _92, _93 And... there B. (see Editor's Note); White bones, and locks of
       dun and yellow hair, And ringed horns which buffaloes did wear-- 1870.
   _94 at the utmost point 1870; cancelled for when (where?) B.
   _95 reed B.; weed 1870.
   _99 after B.; upon 1870.
   _100 burned within Marenghi's breast B.;
        lived within Marenghi's heart 1870.
   _101 and B.; or 1870.
   _103 free B.; the 1870.
   _109 freshes B.; omitted, 1870.
   _118 by 1870; with B.
   _119 dew-globes B.; dewdrops 1870.
   _120 languished B.; vanished 1870.
   _121 path, as on [bare] B.; footprints, as on 1870.
   _122 silver B.; silence 1870.
   _130 And in the moonless nights 1870; cancelled, B. dun B.;
        dim 1870.
   _131 Heaved 1870; cancelled, B. wide B.;
        the 1870. star-impearled B.; omitted, 1870.
   _132 Starting from dreams 1870; cancelled for He B.
   _137 autumn B.; autumnal 1870.
   _138 or B.; and 1870.
   _155 pennon B.; pennons 1870.
   _158 athwart B.; across 1870.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   Our text is that of the "Poetical Works", 1839.]
   
   Lift not the painted veil which those who live
   Call Life: though unreal shapes be pictured there,
   And it but mimic all we would believe
   With colours idly spread,--behind, lurk Fear
   And Hope, twin Destinies; who ever weave                             _5
   Their shadows, o'er the chasm, sightless and drear.
   I knew one who had lifted it--he sought,
   For his lost heart was tender, things to love
   But found them not, alas! nor was there aught
   The world contains, the which he could approve.                      _10
   Through the unheeding many he did move,
   A splendour among shadows, a bright blot
   Upon this gloomy scene, a Spirit that strove
   For truth, and like the Preacher found it not.
   
   NOTES:
   _6 Their...drear 1839;
      The shadows, which the world calls substance, there 1824.
   _7 who had lifted 1839; who lifted 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: TO BYRON.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   O mighty mind, in whose deep stream this age
   Shakes like a reed in the unheeding storm,
   Why dost thou curb not thine own sacred rage?
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: APOSTROPHE TO SILENCE.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862. A transcript by
   Mrs. Shelley, given to Charles Cowden Clarke, presents one or two
   variants.]
   
   Silence! Oh, well are Death and Sleep and Thou
   Three brethren named, the guardians gloomy-winged
   Of one abyss, where life, and truth, and joy
   Are swallowed up--yet spare me, Spirit, pity me,
   Until the sounds I hear become my soul,                              _5
   And it has left these faint and weary limbs,
   To track along the lapses of the air
   This wandering melody until it rests
   Among lone mountains in some...
   
   NOTES:
   _4 Spirit 1862; O Spirit C.C.C. manuscript.
   _8 This wandering melody 1862;
      These wandering melodies... C.C.C. manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: THE LAKE'S MARGIN.
   
   [Published by W.M. Rossetti, 1870.]
   
   The fierce beasts of the woods and wildernesses
   Track not the steps of him who drinks of it;
   For the light breezes, which for ever fleet
   Around its margin, heap the sand thereon.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'MY HEAD IS WILD WITH WEEPING'.
   
   [Published by W.M. Rossetti, 1870.]
   
   My head is wild with weeping for a grief
   Which is the shadow of a gentle mind.
   I walk into the air (but no relief
   To seek,--or haply, if I sought, to find;
   It came unsought);--to wonder that a chief                           _5
   Among men's spirits should be cold and blind.
   
   NOTE:
   _4 find cj. A.C. Bradley.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: THE VINE-SHROUD.
   
   [Published by W.M. Rossetti, 1870.]
   
   Flourishing vine, whose kindling clusters glow
   Beneath the autumnal sun, none taste of thee;
   For thou dost shroud a ruin, and below
   The rotting bones of dead antiquity.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1818, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   We often hear of persons disappointed by a first visit to Italy. This
   was not Shelley's case. The aspect of its nature, its sunny sky, its
   majestic storms, of the luxuriant vegetation of the country, and the
   noble marble-built cities, enchanted him. The sight of the works of art
   was full enjoyment and wonder. He had not studied pictures or statues
   before; he now did so with the eye of taste, that referred not to the
   rules of schools, but to those of Nature and truth. The first entrance
   to Rome opened to him a scene of remains of antique grandeur that far
   surpassed his expectations; and the unspeakable beauty of Naples and
   its environs added to the impression he received of the transcendent
   and glorious beauty of Italy.
   
   Our winter was spent at Naples. Here he wrote the fragments of
   "Marenghi" and "The Woodman and the Nightingale", which he afterwards
   threw aside. At this time, Shelley suffered greatly in health. He put
   himself under the care of a medical man, who promised great things, and
   made him endure severe bodily pain, without any good results. Constant
   and poignant physical suffering exhausted him; and though he preserved
   the appearance of cheerfulness, and often greatly enjoyed our
   wanderings in the environs of Naples, and our excursions on its sunny
   sea, yet many hours were passed when his thoughts, shadowed by illness,
   became gloomy,--and then he escaped to solitude, and in verses, which
   he hid from fear of wounding me, poured forth morbid but too natural
   bursts of discontent and sadness. One looks back with unspeakable
   regret and gnawing remorse to such periods; fancying that, had one been
   more alive to the nature of his feelings, and more attentive to soothe
   them, such would not have existed. And yet, enjoying as he appeared to
   do every sight or influence of earth or sky, it was difficult to
   imagine that any melancholy he showed was aught but the effect of the
   constant pain to which he was a martyr.
   
   We lived in utter solitude. And such is often not the nurse of
   cheerfulness; for then, at least with those who have been exposed to
   adversity, the mind broods over its sorrows too intently; while the
   society of the enlightened, the witty, and the wise, enables us to
   forget ourselves by making us the sharers of the thoughts of others,
   which is a portion of the philosophy of happiness. Shelley never liked
   society in numbers,--it harassed and wearied him; but neither did he
   like loneliness, and usually, when alone, sheltered himself against
   memory and reflection in a book. But, with one or two whom he loved, he
   gave way to wild and joyous spirits, or in more serious conversation
   expounded his opinions with vivacity and eloquence. If an argument
   arose, no man ever argued better. He was clear, logical, and earnest,
   in supporting his own views; attentive, patient, and impartial, while
   listening to those on the adverse side. Had not a wall of prejudice
   been raised at this time between him and his countrymen, how many would
   have sought the acquaintance of one whom to know was to love and to
   revere! How many of the more enlightened of his contemporaries have
   since regretted that they did not seek him! how very few knew his worth
   while he lived! and, of those few, several were withheld by timidity or
   envy from declaring their sense of it. But no man was ever more
   enthusiastically loved--more looked up to, as one superior to his
   fellows in intellectual endowments and moral worth, by the few who knew
   him well, and had sufficient nobleness of soul to appreciate his
   superiority. His excellence is now acknowledged; but, even while
   admitted, not duly appreciated. For who, except those who were
   acquainted with him, can imagine his unwearied benevolence, his
   generosity, his systematic forbearance? And still less is his vast
   superiority in intellectual attainments sufficiently understood--his
   sagacity, his clear understanding, his learning, his prodigious memory.
   All these as displayed in conversation, were known to few while he
   lived, and are now silent in the tomb:
   
   'Ahi orbo mondo ingrato!
   Gran cagion hai di dever pianger meco;
   Che quel ben ch' era in te, perdut' hai seco.'
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1819.
   
   
   LINES WRITTEN DURING THE CASTLEREAGH ADMINISTRATION.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", December 8, 1832; reprinted,
   "Poetical Works", 1839. There is a transcript amongst the Harvard
   manuscripts, and another in the possession of Mr. C.W. Frederickson of
   Brooklyn. Variants from these two sources are given by Professor
   Woodberry, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", Centenary Edition,
   1893, volume 3 pages 225, 226. The transcripts are referred to in our
   footnotes as Harvard and Fred. respectively.]
   
   1.
   Corpses are cold in the tomb;
   Stones on the pavement are dumb;
   Abortions are dead in the womb,
   And their mothers look pale--like the death-white shore
   Of Albion, free no more.                                             _5
   
   2.
   Her sons are as stones in the way--
   They are masses of senseless clay--
   They are trodden, and move not away,--
   The abortion with which SHE travaileth
   Is Liberty, smitten to death.                                        _10
   
   3.
   Then trample and dance, thou Oppressor!
   For thy victim is no redresser;
   Thou art sole lord and possessor
   Of her corpses, and clods, and abortions--they pave
   Thy path to the grave.                                               _15
   
   4.
   Hearest thou the festival din
   Of Death, and Destruction, and Sin,
   And Wealth crying "Havoc!" within?
   'Tis the bacchanal triumph that makes Truth dumb,
   Thine Epithalamium.                                                  _20
   
   5.
   Ay, marry thy ghastly wife!
   Let Fear and Disquiet and Strife
   Spread thy couch in the chamber of Life!
   Marry Ruin, thou Tyrant! and Hell be thy guide
   To the bed of the bride!                                             _25
   
   NOTES:
   _4 death-white Harvard, Fred.; white 1832, 1839.
   _16 festival Harvard, Fred., 1839; festal 1832.
   _19 that Fred.; which Harvard 1832.
   _22 Disquiet Harvard, Fred., 1839; Disgust 1832.
   _24 Hell Fred.; God Harvard, 1832, 1839.
   _25 the bride Harvard, Fred., 1839; thy bride 1832.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONG TO THE MEN OF ENGLAND.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   1.
   Men of England, wherefore plough
   For the lords who lay ye low?
   Wherefore weave with toil and care
   The rich robes your tyrants wear?
   
   2.
   Wherefore feed, and clothe, and save,                                _5
   From the cradle to the grave,
   Those ungrateful drones who would
   Drain your sweat--nay, drink your blood?
   
   3.
   Wherefore, Bees of England, forge
   Many a weapon, chain, and scourge,                                   _10
   That these stingless drones may spoil
   The forced produce of your toil?
   
   4.
   Have ye leisure, comfort, calm,
   Shelter, food, love's gentle balm?
   Or what is it ye buy so dear                                         _15
   With your pain and with your fear?
   
   5.
   The seed ye sow, another reaps;
   The wealth ye find, another keeps;
   The robes ye weave, another wears;
   The arms ye forge; another bears.                                    _20
   
   6.
   Sow seed,--but let no tyrant reap;
   Find wealth,--let no impostor heap;
   Weave robes,--let not the idle wear;
   Forge arms,--in your defence to bear.
   
   7.
   Shrink to your cellars, holes, and cells;                            _25
   In halls ye deck another dwells.
   Why shake the chains ye wrought? Ye see
   The steel ye tempered glance on ye.
   
   8.
   With plough and spade, and hoe and loom,
   Trace your grave, and build your tomb,                               _30
   And weave your winding-sheet, till fair
   England be your sepulchre.
   
   ***
   
   
   SIMILES FOR TWO POLITICAL CHARACTERS OF 1819.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", August 25, 1832; reprinted by
   Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839. Our title is that of 1839, 2nd
   edition. The poem is found amongst the Harvard manuscripts, headed "To
   S--th and O--gh".]
   
   1.
   As from an ancestral oak
   Two empty ravens sound their clarion,
   Yell by yell, and croak by croak,
   When they scent the noonday smoke
   Of fresh human carrion:--                                            _5
   
   2.
   As two gibbering night-birds flit
   From their bowers of deadly yew
   Through the night to frighten it,
   When the moon is in a fit,
   And the stars are none, or few:--                                    _10
   
   3.
   As a shark and dog-fish wait
   Under an Atlantic isle,
   For the negro-ship, whose freight
   Is the theme of their debate,
   Wrinkling their red gills the while--                                _15
   
   4.
   Are ye, two vultures sick for battle,
   Two scorpions under one wet stone,
   Two bloodless wolves whose dry throats rattle,
   Two crows perched on the murrained cattle,
   Two vipers tangled into one.                                         _20
   
   NOTE:
   _7 yew 1832; hue 1839.
   
   **
   
   
   FRAGMENT: TO THE PEOPLE OF ENGLAND.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   People of England, ye who toil and groan,
   Who reap the harvests which are not your own,
   Who weave the clothes which your oppressors wear,
   And for your own take the inclement air;
   Who build warm houses...                                             _5
   And are like gods who give them all they have,
   And nurse them from the cradle to the grave...
   
   ...
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'WHAT MEN GAIN FAIRLY'.
   (Perhaps connected with that immediately preceding (Forman).--ED.)
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   What men gain fairly--that they should possess,
   And children may inherit idleness,
   From him who earns it--This is understood;
   Private injustice may be general good.
   But he who gains by base and armed wrong,                            _5
   Or guilty fraud, or base compliances,
   May be despoiled; even as a stolen dress
   Is stripped from a convicted thief; and he
   Left in the nakedness of infamy.
   
   ***
   
   
   A NEW NATIONAL ANTHEM.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   1.
   God prosper, speed,and save,
   God raise from England's grave
   Her murdered Queen!
   Pave with swift victory
   The steps of Liberty,                                                _5
   Whom Britons own to be
   Immortal Queen.
   
   2.
   See, she comes throned on high,
   On swift Eternity!
   God save the Queen!                                                  _10
   Millions on millions wait,
   Firm, rapid, and elate,
   On her majestic state!
   God save the Queen!
   
   3.
   She is Thine own pure soul                                           _15
   Moulding the mighty whole,--
   God save the Queen!
   She is Thine own deep love
   Rained down from Heaven above,--
   Wherever she rest or move,                                           _20
   God save our Queen!
   
   4.
   'Wilder her enemies
   In their own dark disguise,--
   God save our Queen!
   All earthly things that dare                                         _25
   Her sacred name to bear,
   Strip them, as kings are, bare;
   God save the Queen!
   
   5.
   Be her eternal throne
   Built in our hearts alone--                                          _30
   God save the Queen!
   Let the oppressor hold
   Canopied seats of gold;
   She sits enthroned of old
   O'er our hearts Queen.                                               _35
   
   6.
   Lips touched by seraphim
   Breathe out the choral hymn
   'God save the Queen!'
   Sweet as if angels sang,
   Loud as that trumpet's clang                                         _40
   Wakening the world's dead gang,--
   God save the Queen!
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET: ENGLAND IN 1819.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   An old, mad, blind, despised, and dying king,--
   Princes, the dregs of their dull race, who flow
   Through public scorn,--mud from a muddy spring,--
   Rulers who neither see, nor feel, nor know,
   But leech-like to their fainting country cling,                      _5
   Till they drop, blind in blood, without a blow,--
   A people starved and stabbed in the untilled field,--
   An army, which liberticide and prey
   Makes as a two-edged sword to all who wield,--
   Golden and sanguine laws which tempt and slay;                       _10
   Religion Christless, Godless--a book sealed;
   A Senate,--Time's worst statute, unrepealed,--
   Are graves from which a glorious Phantom may
   Burst, to illumine our tempestuous day.
   
   ***
   
   
   AN ODE, WRITTEN OCTOBER, 1819,
   BEFORE THE SPANIARDS HAD RECOVERED THEIR LIBERTY.
   
   [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820.]
   
   Arise, arise, arise!
   There is blood on the earth that denies ye bread;
   Be your wounds like eyes
   To weep for the dead, the dead, the dead.
   What other grief were it just to pay?                                _5
   Your sons, your wives, your brethren, were they;
   Who said they were slain on the battle day?
   
   Awaken, awaken, awaken!
   The slave and the tyrant are twin-born foes;
   Be the cold chains shaken                                            _10
   To the dust where your kindred repose, repose:
   Their bones in the grave will start and move,
   When they hear the voices of those they love,
   Most loud in the holy combat above.
   
   Wave, wave high the banner!                                          _15
   When Freedom is riding to conquest by:
   Though the slaves that fan her
   Be Famine and Toil, giving sigh for sigh.
   And ye who attend her imperial car,
   Lift not your hands in the banded war,                               _20
   But in her defence whose children ye are.
   
   Glory, glory, glory,
   To those who have greatly suffered and done!
   Never name in story
   Was greater than that which ye shall have won.                       _25
   Conquerors have conquered their foes alone,
   Whose revenge, pride, and power they have overthrown
   Ride ye, more victorious, over your own.
   
   Bind, bind every brow
   With crownals of violet, ivy, and pine:                              _30
   Hide the blood-stains now
   With hues which sweet Nature has made divine:
   Green strength, azure hope, and eternity:
   But let not the pansy among them be;
   Ye were injured, and that means memory.                              _35
   
   ***
   
   
   CANCELLED STANZA.
   
   [Published in "The Times" (Rossetti).]
   
   Gather, O gather,
   Foeman and friend in love and peace!
   Waves sleep together
   When the blasts that called them to battle, cease.
   For fangless Power grown tame and mild                               _5
   Is at play with Freedom's fearless child--
   The dove and the serpent reconciled!
   
   ***
   
   
   ODE TO HEAVEN.
   
   [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820. Dated 'Florence, December,
   1819' in Harvard manuscript (Woodberry). A transcript exists amongst
   the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's
   "Examination", etc., page 39.]
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
   
   FIRST SPIRIT:
   Palace-roof of cloudless nights!
   Paradise of golden lights!
   Deep, immeasurable, vast,
   Which art now, and which wert then
   Of the Present and the Past,                                         _5
   Of the eternal Where and When,
   Presence-chamber, temple, home,
   Ever-canopying dome,
   Of acts and ages yet to come!
   
   Glorious shapes have life in thee,                                   _10
   Earth, and all earth's company;
   Living globes which ever throng
   Thy deep chasms and wildernesses;
   And green worlds that glide along;
   And swift stars with flashing tresses;                               _15
   And icy moons most cold and bright,
   And mighty suns beyond the night,
   Atoms of intensest light.
   
   Even thy name is as a god,
   Heaven! for thou art the abode                                       _20
   Of that Power which is the glass
   Wherein man his nature sees.
   Generations as they pass
   Worship thee with bended knees.
   Their unremaining gods and they                                      _25
   Like a river roll away:
   Thou remainest such--alway!--
   
   SECOND SPIRIT:
   Thou art but the mind's first chamber,
   Round which its young fancies clamber,
   Like weak insects in a cave,                                         _30
   Lighted up by stalactites;
   But the portal of the grave,
   Where a world of new delights
   Will make thy best glories seem
   But a dim and noonday gleam                                          _35
   From the shadow of a dream!
   
   THIRD SPIRIT:
   Peace! the abyss is wreathed with scorn
   At your presumption, atom-born!
   What is Heaven? and what are ye
   Who its brief expanse inherit?                                       _40
   What are suns and spheres which flee
   With the instinct of that Spirit
   Of which ye are but a part?
   Drops which Nature's mighty heart
   Drives through thinnest veins! Depart!                               _45
   
   What is Heaven? a globe of dew,
   Filling in the morning new
   Some eyed flower whose young leaves waken
   On an unimagined world:
   Constellated suns unshaken,                                          _50
   Orbits measureless, are furled
   In that frail and fading sphere,
   With ten millions gathered there,
   To tremble, gleam, and disappear.
   
   ***
   
   
   CANCELLED FRAGMENTS OF THE ODE TO HEAVEN.
   
   [Published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination", etc., 1903.]
   
   The [living frame which sustains my soul]
   Is [sinking beneath the fierce control]
   Down through the lampless deep of song
   I am drawn and driven along--
   
   When a Nation screams aloud                                          _5
   Like an eagle from the cloud
   When a...
   
   ...
   
   When the night...
   
   ...
   
   Watch the look askance and old--
   See neglect, and falsehood fold...                                   _10
   
   ***
   
   
   ODE TO THE WEST WIND.
   
   (This poem was conceived and chiefly written in a wood that skirts the
   Arno, near Florence, and on a day when that tempestuous wind, whose
   temperature is at once mild and animating, was collecting the vapours
   which pour down the autumnal rains. They began, as I foresaw, at sunset
   with a violent tempest of hail and rain, attended by that magnificent
   thunder and lightning peculiar to the Cisalpine regions.
   
   The phenomenon alluded to at the conclusion of the third stanza is well
   known to naturalists. The vegetation at the bottom of the sea, of
   rivers, and of lakes, sympathizes with that of the land in the change
   of seasons, and is consequently influenced by the winds which announce
   it.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820.]
   
   1.
   O wild West Wind, thou breath of Autumn's being,
   Thou, from whose unseen presence the leaves dead
   Are driven, like ghosts from an enchanter fleeing,
   
   Yellow, and black, and pale, and hectic red,
   Pestilence-stricken multitudes: O thou,                              _5
   Who chariotest to their dark wintry bed
   
   The winged seeds, where they lie cold and low,
   Each like a corpse within its grave, until
   Thine azure sister of the Spring shall blow
   
   Her clarion o'er the dreaming earth, and fill                        _10
   (Driving sweet buds like flocks to feed in air)
   With living hues and odours plain and hill:
   
   Wild Spirit, which art moving everywhere;
   Destroyer and preserver; hear, oh, hear!
   
   2.
   Thou on whose stream, mid the steep sky's commotion,                 _15
   Loose clouds like earth's decaying leaves are shed,
   Shook from the tangled boughs of Heaven and Ocean,
   
   Angels of rain and lightning: there are spread
   On the blue surface of thine aery surge,
   Like the bright hair uplifted from the head                          _20
   
   Of some fierce Maenad, even from the dim verge
   Of the horizon to the zenith's height,
   The locks of the approaching storm. Thou dirge
   
   Of the dying year, to which this closing night
   Will be the dome of a vast sepulchre,                                _25
   Vaulted with all thy congregated might
   
   Of vapours, from whose solid atmosphere
   Black rain, and fire, and hail will burst: oh, hear!
   
   3.
   Thou who didst waken from his summer dreams
   The blue Mediterranean, where he lay,                                _30
   Lulled by the coil of his crystalline streams,
   
   Beside a pumice isle in Baiae's bay,
   And saw in sleep old palaces and towers
   Quivering within the wave's intenser day,
   
   All overgrown with azure moss and flowers                            _35
   So sweet, the sense faints picturing them! Thou
   For whose path the Atlantic's level powers
   
   Cleave themselves into chasms, while far below
   The sea-blooms and the oozy woods which wear
   The sapless foliage of the ocean, know                               _40
   
   Thy voice, and suddenly grow gray with fear,
   And tremble and despoil themselves: oh, hear!
   
   4.
   If I were a dead leaf thou mightest bear;
   If I were a swift cloud to fly with thee;
   A wave to pant beneath thy power, and share                          _45
   
   The impulse of thy strength, only less free
   Than thou, O uncontrollable! If even
   I were as in my boyhood, and could be
   
   The comrade of thy wanderings over Heaven,
   As then, when to outstrip thy skiey speed                            _50
   Scarce seemed a vision; I would ne'er have striven
   
   As thus with thee in prayer in my sore need.
   Oh, lift me as a wave, a leaf, a cloud!
   I fall upon the thorns of life! I bleed!
   
   A heavy weight of hours has chained and bowed                        _55
   One too like thee: tameless, and swift, and proud.
   
   5.
   Make me thy lyre, even as the forest is:
   What if my leaves are falling like its own!
   The tumult of thy mighty harmonies
   
   Will take from both a deep, autumnal tone,                           _60
   Sweet though in sadness. Be thou, Spirit fierce,
   My spirit! Be thou me, impetuous one!
   
   Drive my dead thoughts over the universe
   Like withered leaves to quicken a new birth!
   And, by the incantation of this verse,                               _65
   
   Scatter, as from an unextinguished hearth
   Ashes and sparks, my words among mankind!
   Be through my lips to unawakened earth
   
   The trumpet of a prophecy! O, Wind,
   If Winter comes, can Spring be far behind?                           _70
   
   ***
   
   
   AN EXHORTATION.
   
   [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820. Dated 'Pisa, April, 1820'
   in Harvard manuscript (Woodberry), but assigned by Mrs. Shelley to
   1819.]
   
   Chameleons feed on light and air:
   Poets' food is love and fame:
   If in this wide world of care
   Poets could but find the same
   With as little toil as they,                                         _5
   Would they ever change their hue
   As the light chameleons do,
   Suiting it to every ray
   Twenty times a day?
   
   Poets are on this cold earth,                                        _10
   As chameleons might be,
   Hidden from their early birth
   in a cave beneath the sea;
   Where light is, chameleons change:
   Where love is not, poets do:                                         _15
   Fame is love disguised: if few
   Find either, never think it strange
   That poets range.
   
   Yet dare not stain with wealth or power
   A poet's free and heavenly mind:                                     _20
   If bright chameleons should devour
   Any food but beams and wind,
   They would grow as earthly soon
   As their brother lizards are.
   Children of a sunnier star,                                          _25
   Spirits from beyond the moon,
   Oh, refuse the boon!
   
   ***
   
   
   THE INDIAN SERENADE.
   
   [Published, with the title, "Song written for an Indian Air", in "The
   Liberal", 2, 1822. Reprinted ("Lines to an Indian Air") by Mrs.
   Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. The poem is included in the Harvard
   manuscript book, and there is a description by Robert Browning of an
   autograph copy presenting some variations from the text of 1824. See
   Leigh Hunt's "Correspondence", 2, pages 264-8.]
   
   1.
   I arise from dreams of thee
   In the first sweet sleep of night,
   When the winds are breathing low,
   And the stars are shining bright:
   I arise from dreams of thee,                                         _5
   And a spirit in my feet
   Hath led me--who knows how?
   To thy chamber window, Sweet!
   
   2.
   The wandering airs they faint
   On the dark, the silent stream--                                     _10
   The Champak odours fail
   Like sweet thoughts in a dream;
   The nightingale's complaint,
   It dies upon her heart;--
   As I must on thine,                                                  _15
   Oh, beloved as thou art!
   
   3.
   Oh lift me from the grass!
   I die! I faint! I fail!
   Let thy love in kisses rain
   On my lips and eyelids pale.                                         _20
   My cheek is cold and white, alas!
   My heart beats loud and fast;--
   Oh! press it to thine own again,
   Where it will break at last.
   
   NOTES:
   _3 Harvard manuscript omits When.
   _4 shining]burning Harvard manuscript, 1822.
   _7 Hath led Browning manuscript, 1822;
      Has borne Harvard manuscript; Has led 1824.
   _11 The Champak Harvard manuscript, 1822, 1824;
       And the Champak's Browning manuscript.
   _15 As I must on 1822, 1824;
       As I must die on Harvard manuscript, 1839, 1st edition.
   _16 Oh, beloved Browning manuscript, Harvard manuscript, 1839, 1st edition;
       Beloved 1822, 1824.
   _23 press it to thine own Browning manuscript;
       press it close to thine Harvard manuscript, 1824, 1839, 1st edition;
       press me to thine own, 1822.
   
   ***
   
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE.
   
   [Published by W.M. Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works", 1870.]
   
   O pillow cold and wet with tears!
   Thou breathest sleep no more!
   
   ***
   
   
   TO SOPHIA [MISS STACEY].
   
   [Published by W.M. Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works", 1870.]
   
   1.
   Thou art fair, and few are fairer
   Of the Nymphs of earth or ocean;
   They are robes that fit the wearer--
   Those soft limbs of thine, whose motion
   Ever falls and shifts and glances                                    _5
   As the life within them dances.
   
   2.
   Thy deep eyes, a double Planet,
   Gaze the wisest into madness
   With soft clear fire,--the winds that fan it
   Are those thoughts of tender gladness                                _10
   Which, like zephyrs on the billow,
   Make thy gentle soul their pillow.
   
   3.
   If, whatever face thou paintest
   In those eyes, grows pale with pleasure,
   If the fainting soul is faintest                                     _15
   When it hears thy harp's wild measure,
   Wonder not that when thou speakest
   Of the weak my heart is weakest.
   
   4.
   As dew beneath the wind of morning,
   As the sea which whirlwinds waken,                                   _20
   As the birds at thunder's warning,
   As aught mute yet deeply shaken,
   As one who feels an unseen spirit
   Is my heart when thine is near it.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   The fragment included in the Harvard manuscript book.]
   
   (With what truth may I say--
   Roma! Roma! Roma!
   Non e piu come era prima!)
   
   1.
   My lost William, thou in whom
   Some bright spirit lived, and did
   That decaying robe consume
   Which its lustre faintly hid,--
   Here its ashes find a tomb,                                          _5
   But beneath this pyramid
   Thou art not--if a thing divine
   Like thee can die, thy funeral shrine
   Is thy mother's grief and mine.
   
   2.
   Where art thou, my gentle child?                                     _10
   Let me think thy spirit feeds,
   With its life intense and mild,
   The love of living leaves and weeds
   Among these tombs and ruins wild;--
   Let me think that through low seeds                                  _15
   Of sweet flowers and sunny grass
   Into their hues and scents may pass
   A portion--
   
   NOTE:
   
   Motto _1 may I Harvard manuscript; I may 1824.
   _12 With Harvard manuscript, Mrs. Shelley, 1847; Within 1824, 1839.
   _16 Of sweet Harvard manuscript; Of the sweet 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO WILLIAM SHELLEY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   Thy little footsteps on the sands
   Of a remote and lonely shore;
   The twinkling of thine infant hands,
   Where now the worm will feed no more;
   Thy mingled look of love and glee                                    _5
   When we returned to gaze on thee--
   
   ***
   
   
   TO MARY SHELLEY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   My dearest Mary, wherefore hast thou gone,
   And left me in this dreary world alone?
   Thy form is here indeed--a lovely one--
   But thou art fled, gone down the dreary road,
   That leads to Sorrow's most obscure abode;                           _5
   Thou sittest on the hearth of pale despair,
   Where
   For thine own sake I cannot follow thee.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO MARY SHELLEY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   The world is dreary,
   And I am weary
   Of wandering on without thee, Mary;
   A joy was erewhile
   In thy voice and thy smile,                                          _5
   And 'tis gone, when I should be gone too, Mary.
   
   ***
   
   
   ON THE MEDUSA OF LEONARDO DA VINCI IN THE FLORENTINE GALLERY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   It lieth, gazing on the midnight sky,
   Upon the cloudy mountain-peak supine;
   Below, far lands are seen tremblingly;
   Its horror and its beauty are divine.
   Upon its lips and eyelids seems to lie                               _5
   Loveliness like a shadow, from which shine,
   Fiery and lurid, struggling underneath,
   The agonies of anguish and of death.
   
   2.
   Yet it is less the horror than the grace
   Which turns the gazer's spirit into stone,                           _10
   Whereon the lineaments of that dead face
   Are graven, till the characters be grown
   Into itself, and thought no more can trace;
   'Tis the melodious hue of beauty thrown
   Athwart the darkness and the glare of pain,
   Which humanize and harmonize the strain.                             _15
   
   3.
   And from its head as from one body grow,
   As ... grass out of a watery rock,
   Hairs which are vipers, and they curl and flow
   And their long tangles in each other lock,                           _20
   And with unending involutions show
   Their mailed radiance, as it were to mock
   The torture and the death within, and saw
   The solid air with many a ragged jaw.
   
   4.
   And, from a stone beside, a poisonous eft                            _25
   Peeps idly into those Gorgonian eyes;
   Whilst in the air a ghastly bat, bereft
   Of sense, has flitted with a mad surprise
   Out of the cave this hideous light had cleft,
   And he comes hastening like a moth that hies                         _30
   After a taper; and the midnight sky
   Flares, a light more dread than obscurity.
   
   5.
   'Tis the tempestuous loveliness of terror;
   For from the serpents gleams a brazen glare
   Kindled by that inextricable error,                                  _35
   Which makes a thrilling vapour of the air
   Become a ... and ever-shifting mirror
   Of all the beauty and the terror there--
   A woman's countenance, with serpent-locks,
   Gazing in death on Heaven from those wet rocks.                      _40
   
   NOTES:
   _5 seems 1839; seem 1824.
   _6 shine]shrine 1824, 1839.
   _26 those 1824; these 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   LOVE'S PHILOSOPHY.
   
   [Published by Leigh Hunt, "The Indicator", December 22, 1819. Reprinted
   by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. Included in the Harvard
   manuscript book, where it is headed "An Anacreontic", and dated
   'January, 1820.' Written by Shelley in a copy of Hunt's "Literary
   Pocket-Book", 1819, and presented to Sophia Stacey, December 29, 1820.]
   
   1.
   The fountains mingle with the river
   And the rivers with the Ocean,
   The winds of Heaven mix for ever
   With a sweet emotion;
   Nothing in the world is single;                                      _5
   All things by a law divine
   In one spirit meet and mingle.
   Why not I with thine?--
   
   2.
   See the mountains kiss high Heaven
   And the waves clasp one another;                                     _10
   No sister-flower would be forgiven
   If it disdained its brother;
   And the sunlight clasps the earth
   And the moonbeams kiss the sea:
   What is all this sweet work worth                                    _15
   If thou kiss not me?
   
   NOTES:
   _3 mix for ever 1819, Stacey manuscript;
      meet together, Harvard manuscript.
   _7 In one spirit meet and Stacey manuscript;
      In one another's being 1819, Harvard manuscript.
   _11 No sister 1824, Harvard and Stacey manuscripts; No leaf or 1819.
   _12 disdained its 1824, Harvard and Stacey manuscripts;
       disdained to kiss its 1819.
   _15 is all this sweet work Stacey manuscript;
       were these examples Harvard manuscript;
       are all these kissings 1819, 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'FOLLOW TO THE DEEP WOOD'S WEEDS'.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Follow to the deep wood's weeds,
   Follow to the wild-briar dingle,
   Where we seek to intermingle,
   And the violet tells her tale
   To the odour-scented gale,                                           _5
   For they two have enough to do
   Of such work as I and you.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE BIRTH OF PLEASURE.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   At the creation of the Earth
   Pleasure, that divinest birth,
   From the soil of Heaven did rise,
   Wrapped in sweet wild melodies--
   Like an exhalation wreathing                                         _5
   To the sound of air low-breathing
   Through Aeolian pines, which make
   A shade and shelter to the lake
   Whence it rises soft and slow;
   Her life-breathing [limbs] did flow                                  _10
   In the harmony divine
   Of an ever-lengthening line
   Which enwrapped her perfect form
   With a beauty clear and warm.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: LOVE THE UNIVERSE TO-DAY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   And who feels discord now or sorrow?
   Love is the universe to-day--
   These are the slaves of dim to-morrow,
   Darkening Life's labyrinthine way.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'A GENTLE STORY OF TWO LOVERS YOUNG'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   A gentle story of two lovers young,
   Who met in innocence and died in sorrow,
   And of one selfish heart, whose rancour clung
   Like curses on them; are ye slow to borrow
   The lore of truth from such a tale?                                  _5
   Or in this world's deserted vale,
   Do ye not see a star of gladness
   Pierce the shadows of its sadness,--
   When ye are cold, that love is a light sent
   From Heaven, which none shall quench, to cheer the innocent?         _10
   
   NOTE:
   _9 cold]told cj. A.C. Bradley.
      For the metre cp. Fragment: To a Friend Released from Prison.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: LOVE'S TENDER ATMOSPHERE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   There is a warm and gentle atmosphere
   About the form of one we love, and thus
   As in a tender mist our spirits are
   Wrapped in the ... of that which is to us
   The health of life's own life--                                      _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: WEDDED SOULS.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   I am as a spirit who has dwelt
   Within his heart of hearts, and I have felt
   His feelings, and have thought his thoughts, and known
   The inmost converse of his soul, the tone
   Unheard but in the silence of his blood,                             _5
   When all the pulses in their multitude
   Image the trembling calm of summer seas.
   I have unlocked the golden melodies
   Of his deep soul, as with a master-key,
   And loosened them and bathed myself therein--                        _10
   Even as an eagle in a thunder-mist
   Clothing his wings with lightning.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'IS IT THAT IN SOME BRIGHTER SPHERE'.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Is it that in some brighter sphere
   We part from friends we meet with here?
   Or do we see the Future pass
   Over the Present's dusky glass?
   Or what is that that makes us seem                                   _5
   To patch up fragments of a dream,
   Part of which comes true, and part
   Beats and trembles in the heart?
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: SUFFICIENT UNTO THE DAY.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Is not to-day enough? Why do I peer
   Into the darkness of the day to come?
   Is not to-morrow even as yesterday?
   And will the day that follows change thy doom?
   Few flowers grow upon thy wintry way;                                _5
   And who waits for thee in that cheerless home
   Whence thou hast fled, whither thou must return
   Charged with the load that makes thee faint and mourn?
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'YE GENTLE VISITATIONS OF CALM THOUGHT'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   Ye gentle visitations of calm thought--
   Moods like the memories of happier earth,
   Which come arrayed in thoughts of little worth,
   Like stars in clouds by the weak winds enwrought,--
   But that the clouds depart and stars remain,                         _5
   While they remain, and ye, alas, depart!
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: MUSIC AND SWEET POETRY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   How sweet it is to sit and read the tales
   Of mighty poets and to hear the while
   Sweet music, which when the attention fails
   Fills the dim pause--
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: THE SEPULCHRE OF MEMORY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   And where is truth? On tombs? for such to thee
   Has been my heart--and thy dead memory
   Has lain from childhood, many a changeful year,
   Unchangingly preserved and buried there.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'WHEN A LOVER CLASPS HIS FAIREST'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   1.
   When a lover clasps his fairest,
   Then be our dread sport the rarest.
   Their caresses were like the chaff
   In the tempest, and be our laugh
   His despair--her epitaph!                                            _5
   
   2.
   When a mother clasps her child,
   Watch till dusty Death has piled
   His cold ashes on the clay;
   She has loved it many a day--
   She remains,--it fades away.                                         _10
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'WAKE THE SERPENT NOT'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   Wake the serpent not--lest he
   Should not know the way to go,--
   Let him crawl which yet lies sleeping
   Through the deep grass of the meadow!
   Not a bee shall hear him creeping,                                   _5
   Not a may-fly shall awaken
   From its cradling blue-bell shaken,
   Not the starlight as he's sliding
   Through the grass with silent gliding.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: RAIN.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   The fitful alternations of the rain,
   When the chill wind, languid as with pain
   Of its own heavy moisture, here and there
   Drives through the gray and beamless atmosphere.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: A TALE UNTOLD.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   One sung of thee who left the tale untold,
   Like the false dawns which perish in the bursting;
   Like empty cups of wrought and daedal gold,
   Which mock the lips with air, when they are thirsting.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: TO ITALY.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   As the sunrise to the night,
   As the north wind to the clouds,
   As the earthquake's fiery flight,
   Ruining mountain solitudes,
   Everlasting Italy,                                                   _5
   Be those hopes and fears on thee.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: WINE OF THE FAIRIES.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   I am drunk with the honey wine
   Of the moon-unfolded eglantine,
   Which fairies catch in hyacinth bowls.
   The bats, the dormice, and the moles
   Sleep in the walls or under the sward                                _5
   Of the desolate castle yard;
   And when 'tis spilt on the summer earth
   Or its fumes arise among the dew,
   Their jocund dreams are full of mirth,
   They gibber their joy in sleep; for few                              _10
   Of the fairies bear those bowls so new!
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: A ROMAN'S CHAMBER.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   1.
   In the cave which wild weeds cover
   Wait for thine aethereal lover;
   For the pallid moon is waning,
   O'er the spiral cypress hanging
   And the moon no cloud is staining.                                   _5
   
   2.
   It was once a Roman's chamber,
   Where he kept his darkest revels,
   And the wild weeds twine and clamber;
   It was then a chasm for devils.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: ROME AND NATURE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   Rome has fallen, ye see it lying
   Heaped in undistinguished ruin:
   Nature is alone undying.
   
   ***
   
   
   VARIATION OF THE SONG OF THE MOON.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   ("PROMETHEUS UNBOUND", ACT 4.)
   
   As a violet's gentle eye
   Gazes on the azure sky
   Until its hue grows like what it beholds;
   As a gray and empty mist
   Lies like solid amethyst                                             _5
   Over the western mountain it enfolds,
   When the sunset sleeps
   Upon its snow;
   As a strain of sweetest sound
   Wraps itself the wind around                                         _10
   Until the voiceless wind be music too;
   As aught dark, vain, and dull,
   Basking in what is beautiful,
   Is full of light and love--
   
   ***
   
   
   CANCELLED STANZA OF THE MASK OF ANARCHY.
   
   [Published by H. Buxton Forman, "The Mask of Anarchy" ("Facsimile of
   Shelley's manuscript"), 1887.]
   
   (FOR WHICH STANZAS 68, 69 HAVE BEEN SUBSTITUTED.)
   
   From the cities where from caves,
   Like the dead from putrid graves,
   Troops of starvelings gliding come,
   Living Tenants of a tomb.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1819, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   Shelley loved the People; and respected them as often more virtuous, as
   always more suffering, and therefore more deserving of sympathy, than
   the great. He believed that a clash between the two classes of society
   was inevitable, and he eagerly ranged himself on the people's side. He
   had an idea of publishing a series of poems adapted expressly to
   commemorate their circumstances and wrongs. He wrote a few; but, in
   those days of prosecution for libel, they could not be printed. They
   are not among the best of his productions, a writer being always
   shackled when he endeavours to write down to the comprehension of those
   who could not understand or feel a highly imaginative style; but they
   show his earnestness, and with what heart-felt compassion he went home
   to the direct point of injury--that oppression is detestable as being
   the parent of starvation, nakedness, and ignorance. Besides these
   outpourings of compassion and indignation, he had meant to adorn the
   cause he loved with loftier poetry of glory and triumph: such is the
   scope of the "Ode to the Assertors of Liberty". He sketched also a new
   version of our national anthem, as addressed to Liberty.
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1820.
   
   
   THE SENSITIVE PLANT.
   
   [Composed at Pisa, early in 1820 (dated 'March, 1820,' in Harvard
   manuscript), and published, with "Prometheus Unbound", the same year:
   included in the Harvard College manuscript book. Reprinted in the
   "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions.]
   
   PART 1.
   
   A Sensitive Plant in a garden grew,
   And the young winds fed it with silver dew,
   And it opened its fan-like leaves to the light.
   And closed them beneath the kisses of Night.
   
   And the Spring arose on the garden fair,                             _5
   Like the Spirit of Love felt everywhere;
   And each flower and herb on Earth's dark breast
   Rose from the dreams of its wintry rest.
   
   But none ever trembled and panted with bliss
   In the garden, the field, or the wilderness,                         _10
   Like a doe in the noontide with love's sweet want,
   As the companionless Sensitive Plant.
   
   The snowdrop, and then the violet,
   Arose from the ground with warm rain wet,
   And their breath was mixed with fresh odour, sent                    _15
   From the turf, like the voice and the instrument.
   
   Then the pied wind-flowers and the tulip tall,
   And narcissi, the fairest among them all,
   Who gaze on their eyes in the stream's recess,
   Till they die of their own dear loveliness;                          _20
   
   And the Naiad-like lily of the vale,
   Whom youth makes so fair and passion so pale
   That the light of its tremulous bells is seen
   Through their pavilions of tender green;
   
   And the hyacinth purple, and white, and blue,                        _25
   Which flung from its bells a sweet peal anew
   Of music so delicate, soft, and intense,
   It was felt like an odour within the sense;
   
   And the rose like a nymph to the bath addressed,
   Which unveiled the depth of her glowing breast,                      _30
   Till, fold after fold, to the fainting air
   The soul of her beauty and love lay bare:
   
   And the wand-like lily, which lifted up,
   As a Maenad, its moonlight-coloured cup,
   Till the fiery star, which is its eye,
   Gazed through clear dew on the tender sky;                           _35
   
   And the jessamine faint, and the sweet tuberose,
   The sweetest flower for scent that blows;
   And all rare blossoms from every clime
   Grew in that garden in perfect prime.                                _40
   
   And on the stream whose inconstant bosom
   Was pranked, under boughs of embowering blossom,
   With golden and green light, slanting through
   Their heaven of many a tangled hue,
   
   Broad water-lilies lay tremulously,                                  _45
   And starry river-buds glimmered by,
   And around them the soft stream did glide and dance
   With a motion of sweet sound and radiance.
   
   And the sinuous paths of lawn and of moss,
   Which led through the garden along and across,                       _50
   Some open at once to the sun and the breeze,
   Some lost among bowers of blossoming trees,
   
   Were all paved with daisies and delicate bells
   As fair as the fabulous asphodels,
   And flow'rets which, drooping as day drooped too,                    _55
   Fell into pavilions, white, purple, and blue,
   To roof the glow-worm from the evening dew.
   
   And from this undefiled Paradise
   The flowers (as an infant's awakening eyes
   Smile on its mother, whose singing sweet                             _60
   Can first lull, and at last must awaken it),
   
   When Heaven's blithe winds had unfolded them,
   As mine-lamps enkindle a hidden gem,
   Shone smiling to Heaven, and every one                               _65
   Shared joy in the light of the gentle sun;
   
   For each one was interpenetrated
   With the light and the odour its neighbour shed,
   Like young lovers whom youth and love make dear
   Wrapped and filled by their mutual atmosphere.
   
   But the Sensitive Plant which could give small fruit                 _70
   Of the love which it felt from the leaf to the root,
   Received more than all, it loved more than ever,
   Where none wanted but it, could belong to the giver,--
   
   For the Sensitive Plant has no bright flower;
   Radiance and odour are not its dower;                                _75
   It loves, even like Love, its deep heart is full,
   It desires what it has not, the Beautiful!
   
   The light winds which from unsustaining wings
   Shed the music of many murmurings;
   The beams which dart from many a star                                _80
   Of the flowers whose hues they bear afar;
   
   The plumed insects swift and free,
   Like golden boats on a sunny sea,
   Laden with light and odour, which pass
   Over the gleam of the living grass;                                  _85
   
   The unseen clouds of the dew, which lie
   Like fire in the flowers till the sun rides high,
   Then wander like spirits among the spheres,
   Each cloud faint with the fragrance it bears;
   
   The quivering vapours of dim noontide,                               _90
   Which like a sea o'er the warm earth glide,
   In which every sound, and odour, and beam,
   Move, as reeds in a single stream;
   
   Each and all like ministering angels were
   For the Sensitive Plant sweet joy to bear,                           _95
   Whilst the lagging hours of the day went by
   Like windless clouds o'er a tender sky.
   
   And when evening descended from Heaven above,
   And the Earth was all rest, and the air was all love,
   And delight, though less bright, was far more deep,                  _100
   And the day's veil fell from the world of sleep,
   
   And the beasts, and the birds, and the insects were drowned
   In an ocean of dreams without a sound;
   Whose waves never mark, though they ever impress
   The light sand which paves it, consciousness;                        _105
   
   (Only overhead the sweet nightingale
   Ever sang more sweet as the day might fail,
   And snatches of its Elysian chant
   Were mixed with the dreams of the Sensitive Plant);--
   
   The Sensitive Plant was the earliest                                 _110
   Upgathered into the bosom of rest;
   A sweet child weary of its delight,
   The feeblest and yet the favourite,
   Cradled within the embrace of Night.
   
   NOTES:
   _6 Like the Spirit of Love felt 1820;
      And the Spirit of Love felt 1839, 1st edition;
      And the Spirit of Love fell 1839, 2nd edition.
   _49 and of moss]and moss Harvard manuscript.
   _82 The]And the Harvard manuscript.
   
   
   PART 2.
   
   There was a Power in this sweet place,
   An Eve in this Eden; a ruling Grace
   Which to the flowers, did they waken or dream,
   Was as God is to the starry scheme.
   
   A Lady, the wonder of her kind,                                      _5
   Whose form was upborne by a lovely mind
   Which, dilating, had moulded her mien and motion
   Like a sea-flower unfolded beneath the ocean,
   
   Tended the garden from morn to even:
   And the meteors of that sublunar Heaven,                             _10
   Like the lamps of the air when Night walks forth,
   Laughed round her footsteps up from the Earth!
   
   She had no companion of mortal race,
   But her tremulous breath and her flushing face
   Told, whilst the morn kissed the sleep from her eyes,                _15
   That her dreams were less slumber than Paradise:
   
   As if some bright Spirit for her sweet sake
   Had deserted Heaven while the stars were awake,
   As if yet around her he lingering were,
   Though the veil of daylight concealed him from her.                  _20
   
   Her step seemed to pity the grass it pressed;
   You might hear by the heaving of her breast,
   That the coming and going of the wind
   Brought pleasure there and left passion behind.
   
   And wherever her aery footstep trod,                                 _25
   Her trailing hair from the grassy sod
   Erased its light vestige, with shadowy sweep,
   Like a sunny storm o'er the dark green deep.
   
   I doubt not the flowers of that garden sweet
   Rejoiced in the sound of her gentle feet;                            _30
   I doubt not they felt the spirit that came
   From her glowing fingers through all their frame.
   
   She sprinkled bright water from the stream
   On those that were faint with the sunny beam;
   And out of the cups of the heavy flowers                             _35
   She emptied the rain of the thunder-showers.
   
   She lifted their heads with her tender hands,
   And sustained them with rods and osier-bands;
   If the flowers had been her own infants, she
   Could never have nursed them more tenderly.                          _40
   
   And all killing insects and gnawing worms,
   And things of obscene and unlovely forms,
   She bore, in a basket of Indian woof,
   Into the rough woods far aloof,--
   
   In a basket, of grasses and wild-flowers full,                       _45
   The freshest her gentle hands could pull
   For the poor banished insects, whose intent,
   Although they did ill, was innocent.
   
   But the bee and the beamlike ephemeris
   Whose path is the lightning's, and soft moths that kiss              _50
   The sweet lips of the flowers, and harm not, did she
   Make her attendant angels be.
   
   And many an antenatal tomb,
   Where butterflies dream of the life to come,
   She left clinging round the smooth and dark                          _55
   Edge of the odorous cedar bark.
   
   This fairest creature from earliest Spring
   Thus moved through the garden ministering
   Mi the sweet season of Summertide,
   And ere the first leaf looked brown--she died!                       _60
   
   NOTES:
   _15 morn Harvard manuscript, 1839; moon 1820.
   _23 and going 1820; and the going Harvard manuscript, 1839.
   _59 All 1820, 1839; Through all Harvard manuscript.
   
   PART 3.
   
   Three days the flowers of the garden fair,
   Like stars when the moon is awakened, were,
   Or the waves of Baiae, ere luminous
   She floats up through the smoke of Vesuvius.
   
   And on the fourth, the Sensitive Plant                               _5
   Felt the sound of the funeral chant,
   And the steps of the bearers, heavy and slow,
   And the sobs of the mourners, deep and low;
   
   The weary sound and the heavy breath,
   And the silent motions of passing death,                             _10
   And the smell, cold, oppressive, and dank,
   Sent through the pores of the coffin-plank;
   
   The dark grass, and the flowers among the grass,
   Were bright with tears as the crowd did pass;
   From their sighs the wind caught a mournful tone,                    _15
   And sate in the pines, and gave groan for groan.
   
   The garden, once fair, became cold and foul,
   Like the corpse of her who had been its soul,
   Which at first was lovely as if in sleep,
   Then slowly changed, till it grew a heap                             _20
   To make men tremble who never weep.
   
   Swift Summer into the Autumn flowed,
   And frost in the mist of the morning rode,
   Though the noonday sun looked clear and bright,
   Mocking the spoil of the secret night.                               _25
   
   The rose-leaves, like flakes of crimson snow,
   Paved the turf and the moss below.
   The lilies were drooping, and white, and wan,
   Like the head and the skin of a dying man.
   
   And Indian plants, of scent and hue                                  _30
   The sweetest that ever were fed on dew,
   Leaf by leaf, day after day,
   Were massed into the common clay.
   
   And the leaves, brown, yellow, and gray, and red,
   And white with the whiteness of what is dead,                        _35
   Like troops of ghosts on the dry wind passed;
   Their whistling noise made the birds aghast.
   
   And the gusty winds waked the winged seeds,
   Out of their birthplace of ugly weeds,
   Till they clung round many a sweet flower's stem,                    _40
   Which rotted into the earth with them.
   
   The water-blooms under the rivulet
   Fell from the stalks on which they were set;
   And the eddies drove them here and there,
   As the winds did those of the upper air.                             _45
   
   Then the rain came down, and the broken stalks
   Were bent and tangled across the walks;
   And the leafless network of parasite bowers
   Massed into ruin; and all sweet flowers.
   
   Between the time of the wind and the snow                            _50
   All loathliest weeds began to grow,
   Whose coarse leaves were splashed with many a speck,
   Like the water-snake's belly and the toad's back.
   
   And thistles, and nettles, and darnels rank,
   And the dock, and henbane, and hemlock dank,                         _55
   Stretched out its long and hollow shank,
   And stifled the air till the dead wind stank.
   
   And plants, at whose names the verse feels loath,
   Filled the place with a monstrous undergrowth,
   Prickly, and pulpous, and blistering, and blue,                      _60
   Livid, and starred with a lurid dew.
   
   And agarics, and fungi, with mildew and mould
   Started like mist from the wet ground cold;
   Pale, fleshy, as if the decaying dead
   With a spirit of growth had been animated!                           _65
   
   Spawn, weeds, and filth, a leprous scum,
   Made the running rivulet thick and dumb,
   And at its outlet flags huge as stakes
   Dammed it up with roots knotted like water-snakes.
   
   And hour by hour, when the air was still,                            _70
   The vapours arose which have strength to kill;
   At morn they were seen, at noon they were felt,
   At night they were darkness no star could melt.
   
   And unctuous meteors from spray to spray
   Crept and flitted in broad noonday                                   _75
   Unseen; every branch on which they alit
   By a venomous blight was burned and bit.
   
   The Sensitive Plant, like one forbid,
   Wept, and the tears within each lid
   Of its folded leaves, which together grew,                           _80
   Were changed to a blight of frozen glue.
   
   For the leaves soon fell, and the branches soon
   By the heavy axe of the blast were hewn;
   The sap shrank to the root through every pore
   As blood to a heart that will beat no more.                          _85
   
   For Winter came: the wind was his whip:
   One choppy finger was on his lip:
   He had torn the cataracts from the hills
   And they clanked at his girdle like manacles;
   
   His breath was a chain which without a sound                         _90
   The earth, and the air, and the water bound;
   He came, fiercely driven, in his chariot-throne
   By the tenfold blasts of the Arctic zone.
   
   Then the weeds which were forms of living death
   Fled from the frost to the earth beneath.                            _95
   Their decay and sudden flight from frost
   Was but like the vanishing of a ghost!
   
   And under the roots of the Sensitive Plant
   The moles and the dormice died for want:
   The birds dropped stiff from the frozen air                          _100
   And were caught in the branches naked and bare.
   
   First there came down a thawing rain
   And its dull drops froze on the boughs again;
   Then there steamed up a freezing dew
   Which to the drops of the thaw-rain grew;                            _105
   
   And a northern whirlwind, wandering about
   Like a wolf that had smelt a dead child out,
   Shook the boughs thus laden, and heavy, and stiff,
   And snapped them off with his rigid griff.
   
   When Winter had gone and Spring came back                            _110
   The Sensitive Plant was a leafless wreck;
   But the mandrakes, and toadstools, and docks, and darnels,
   Rose like the dead from their ruined charnels.
   
   CONCLUSION.
   
   Whether the Sensitive Plant, or that
   Which within its boughs like a Spirit sat,                           _115
   Ere its outward form had known decay,
   Now felt this change, I cannot say.
   
   Whether that Lady's gentle mind,
   No longer with the form combined
   Which scattered love, as stars do light,                             _120
   Found sadness, where it left delight,
   
   I dare not guess; but in this life
   Of error, ignorance, and strife,
   Where nothing is, but all things seem,
   And we the shadows of the dream,                                     _125
   
   It is a modest creed, and yet
   Pleasant if one considers it,
   To own that death itself must be,
   Like all the rest, a mockery.
   
   That garden sweet, that lady fair,                                   _130
   And all sweet shapes and odours there,
   In truth have never passed away:
   'Tis we, 'tis ours, are changed; not they.
   
   For love, and beauty, and delight,
   There is no death nor change: their might                            _135
   Exceeds our organs, which endure
   No light, being themselves obscure.
   
   NOTES:
   _19 lovely Harvard manuscript, 1839; lively 1820.
   _23 of the morning 1820, 1839; of morning Harvard manuscript.
   _26 snow Harvard manuscript, 1839; now 1820.
   _28 And lilies were drooping, white and wan Harvard manuscript.
   _32 Leaf by leaf, day after day Harvard manuscript;
       Leaf after leaf, day after day 1820;
       Leaf after leaf, day by day 1839.
   _63 mist]mists Harvard manuscript.
   _96 and sudden flight]and their sudden flight the Harvard manuscript.
   _98 And under]Under Harvard manuscript.
   _114 Whether]And if Harvard manuscript.
   _118 Whether]Or if Harvard manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE.
   
   [This stanza followed 3, 62-65 in the editio princeps, 1820, but was
   omitted by Mrs. Shelley from all editions from 1839 onwards. It is
   cancelled in the Harvard manuscript.]
   
   Their moss rotted off them, flake by flake,
   Till the thick stalk stuck like a murderer's stake,
   Where rags of loose flesh yet tremble on high,
   Infecting the winds that wander by.
   
   ***
   
   
   A VISION OF THE SEA.
   
   [Composed at Pisa early in 1820, and published with "Prometheus
   Unbound" in the same year. A transcript in Mrs. Shelley's handwriting
   is included in the Harvard manuscript book, where it is dated 'April,
   1820.']
   
   'Tis the terror of tempest. The rags of the sail
   Are flickering in ribbons within the fierce gale:
   From the stark night of vapours the dim rain is driven,
   And when lightning is loosed, like a deluge from Heaven,
   She sees the black trunks of the waterspouts spin                    _5
   And bend, as if Heaven was ruining in,
   Which they seemed to sustain with their terrible mass
   As if ocean had sunk from beneath them: they pass
   To their graves in the deep with an earthquake of sound,
   And the waves and the thunders, made silent around,                  _10
   Leave the wind to its echo. The vessel, now tossed
   Through the low-trailing rack of the tempest, is lost
   In the skirts of the thunder-cloud: now down the sweep
   Of the wind-cloven wave to the chasm of the deep
   It sinks, and the walls of the watery vale                           _15
   Whose depths of dread calm are unmoved by the gale,
   Dim mirrors of ruin, hang gleaming about;
   While the surf, like a chaos of stars, like a rout
   Of death-flames, like whirlpools of fire-flowing iron,
   With splendour and terror the black ship environ,                    _20
   Or like sulphur-flakes hurled from a mine of pale fire
   In fountains spout o'er it. In many a spire
   The pyramid-billows with white points of brine
   In the cope of the lightning inconstantly shine,
   As piercing the sky from the floor of the sea.                       _25
   The great ship seems splitting! it cracks as a tree,
   While an earthquake is splintering its root, ere the blast
   Of the whirlwind that stripped it of branches has passed.
   The intense thunder-balls which are raining from Heaven
   Have shattered its mast, and it stands black and riven.              _30
   The chinks suck destruction. The heavy dead hulk
   On the living sea rolls an inanimate bulk,
   Like a corpse on the clay which is hungering to fold
   Its corruption around it. Meanwhile, from the hold,
   One deck is burst up by the waters below,                            _35
   And it splits like the ice when the thaw-breezes blow
   O'er the lakes of the desert! Who sit on the other?
   Is that all the crew that lie burying each other,
   Like the dead in a breach, round the foremast? Are those
   Twin tigers, who burst, when the waters arose,                       _40
   In the agony of terror, their chains in the hold;
   (What now makes them tame, is what then made them bold;)
   Who crouch, side by side, and have driven, like a crank,
   The deep grip of their claws through the vibrating plank
   Are these all? Nine weeks the tall vessel had lain                   _45
   On the windless expanse of the watery plain,
   Where the death-darting sun cast no shadow at noon,
   And there seemed to be fire in the beams of the moon,
   Till a lead-coloured fog gathered up from the deep,
   Whose breath was quick pestilence; then, the cold sleep              _50
   Crept, like blight through the ears of a thick field of corn,
   O'er the populous vessel. And even and morn,
   With their hammocks for coffins the seamen aghast
   Like dead men the dead limbs of their comrades cast
   Down the deep, which closed on them above and around,                _55
   And the sharks and the dogfish their grave-clothes unbound,
   And were glutted like Jews with this manna rained down
   From God on their wilderness. One after one
   The mariners died; on the eve of this day,
   When the tempest was gathering in cloudy array,                      _60
   But seven remained. Six the thunder has smitten,
   And they lie black as mummies on which Time has written
   His scorn of the embalmer; the seventh, from the deck
   An oak-splinter pierced through his breast and his back,
   And hung out to the tempest, a wreck on the wreck.                   _65
   No more? At the helm sits a woman more fair
   Than Heaven, when, unbinding its star-braided hair,
   It sinks with the sun on the earth and the sea.
   She clasps a bright child on her upgathered knee;
   It laughs at the lightning, it mocks the mixed thunder               _70
   Of the air and the sea, with desire and with wonder
   It is beckoning the tigers to rise and come near,
   It would play with those eyes where the radiance of fear
   Is outshining the meteors; its bosom beats high,
   The heart-fire of pleasure has kindled its eye,                      _75
   While its mother's is lustreless. 'Smile not, my child,
   But sleep deeply and sweetly, and so be beguiled
   Of the pang that awaits us, whatever that be,
   So dreadful since thou must divide it with me!
   Dream, sleep! This pale bosom, thy cradle and bed,                   _80
   Will it rock thee not, infant? 'Tis beating with dread!
   Alas! what is life, what is death, what are we,
   That when the ship sinks we no longer may be?
   What! to see thee no more, and to feel thee no more?
   To be after life what we have been before?                           _85
   Not to touch those sweet hands? Not to look on those eyes,
   Those lips, and that hair,--all the smiling disguise
   Thou yet wearest, sweet Spirit, which I, day by day,
   Have so long called my child, but which now fades away
   Like a rainbow, and I the fallen shower?'--Lo! the ship              _90
   Is settling, it topples, the leeward ports dip;
   The tigers leap up when they feel the slow brine
   Crawling inch by inch on them; hair, ears, limbs, and eyne,
   Stand rigid with horror; a loud, long, hoarse cry
   Bursts at once from their vitals tremendously,                       _95
   And 'tis borne down the mountainous vale of the wave,
   Rebounding, like thunder, from crag to cave,
   Mixed with the clash of the lashing rain,
   Hurried on by the might of the hurricane:
   The hurricane came from the west, and passed on                      _100
   By the path of the gate of the eastern sun,
   Transversely dividing the stream of the storm;
   As an arrowy serpent, pursuing the form
   Of an elephant, bursts through the brakes of the waste.
   Black as a cormorant the screaming blast,                            _105
   Between Ocean and Heaven, like an ocean, passed,
   Till it came to the clouds on the verge of the world
   Which, based on the sea and to Heaven upcurled,
   Like columns and walls did surround and sustain
   The dome of the tempest; it rent them in twain,                      _110
   As a flood rends its barriers of mountainous crag:
   And the dense clouds in many a ruin and rag,
   Like the stones of a temple ere earthquake has passed,
   Like the dust of its fall. on the whirlwind are cast;
   They are scattered like foam on the torrent; and where               _115
   The wind has burst out through the chasm, from the air
   Of clear morning the beams of the sunrise flow in,
   Unimpeded, keen, golden, and crystalline,
   Banded armies of light and of air; at one gate
   They encounter, but interpenetrate.                                  _120
   And that breach in the tempest is widening away,
   And the caverns of cloud are torn up by the day,
   And the fierce winds are sinking with weary wings,
   Lulled by the motion and murmurings
   And the long glassy heave of the rocking sea,                        _125
   And overhead glorious, but dreadful to see,
   The wrecks of the tempest, like vapours of gold,
   Are consuming in sunrise. The heaped waves behold
   The deep calm of blue Heaven dilating above,
   And, like passions made still by the presence of Love,               _130
   Beneath the clear surface reflecting it slide
   Tremulous with soft influence; extending its tide
   From the Andes to Atlas, round mountain and isle,
   Round sea-birds and wrecks, paved with Heaven's azure smile,
   The wide world of waters is vibrating. Where                         _135
   Is the ship? On the verge of the wave where it lay
   One tiger is mingled in ghastly affray
   With a sea-snake. The foam and the smoke of the battle
   Stain the clear air with sunbows; the jar, and the rattle
   Of solid bones crushed by the infinite stress                        _140
   Of the snake's adamantine voluminousness;
   And the hum of the hot blood that spouts and rains
   Where the gripe of the tiger has wounded the veins
   Swollen with rage, strength, and effort; the whirl and the splash
   As of some hideous engine whose brazen teeth smash                   _145
   The thin winds and soft waves into thunder; the screams
   And hissings crawl fast o'er the smooth ocean-streams,
   Each sound like a centipede. Near this commotion,
   A blue shark is hanging within the blue ocean,
   The fin-winged tomb of the victor. The other                         _150
   Is winning his way from the fate of his brother
   To his own with the speed of despair. Lo! a boat
   Advances; twelve rowers with the impulse of thought
   Urge on the keen keel,--the brine foams. At the stern
   Three marksmen stand levelling. Hot bullets burn                     _155
   In the breast of the tiger, which yet bears him on
   To his refuge and ruin. One fragment alone,--
   'Tis dwindling and sinking, 'tis now almost gone,--
   Of the wreck of the vessel peers out of the sea.
   With her left hand she grasps it impetuously.                        _160
   With her right she sustains her fair infant. Death, Fear,
   Love, Beauty, are mixed in the atmosphere,
   Which trembles and burns with the fervour of dread
   Around her wild eyes, her bright hand, and her head,
   Like a meteor of light o'er the waters! her child                    _165
   Is yet smiling, and playing, and murmuring; so smiled
   The false deep ere the storm. Like a sister and brother
   The child and the ocean still smile on each other,
   Whilst--
   
   NOTES:
   _6 ruining Harvard manuscript, 1839; raining 1820.
   _8 sunk Harvard manuscript, 1839; sank 1820.
   _35 by Harvard manuscript; from 1820, 1839.
   _61 has 1820; had 1839.
   _87 all the Harvard manuscript; all that 1820, 1839.
   _116 through Harvard manuscript; from 1820, 1839.
   _121 away]alway cj. A.C. Bradley.
   _122 cloud Harvard manuscript, 1839; clouds 1820.
   _160 impetuously 1820, 1839; convulsively Harvard manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE CLOUD.
   
   [Published with "Prometheus Unbound", 1820.]
   
   I bring fresh showers for the thirsting flowers,
   From the seas and the streams;
   I bear light shade for the leaves when laid
   In their noonday dreams.
   From my wings are shaken the dews that waken                         _5
   The sweet buds every one,
   When rocked to rest on their mother's breast,
   As she dances about the sun.
   I wield the flail of the lashing hail,
   And whiten the green plains under,                                   _10
   And then again I dissolve it in rain,
   And laugh as I pass in thunder.
   
   I sift the snow on the mountains below,
   And their great pines groan aghast;
   And all the night 'tis my pillow white,                              _15
   While I sleep in the arms of the blast.
   Sublime on the towers of my skiey bowers,
   Lightning my pilot sits;
   In a cavern under is fettered the thunder,
   It struggles and howls at fits;                                      _20
   Over earth and ocean, with gentle motion,
   This pilot is guiding me,
   Lured by the love of the genii that move
   In the depths of the purple sea;
   Over the rills, and the crags, and the hills.                        _25
   Over the lakes and the plains,
   Wherever he dream, under mountain or stream,
   The Spirit he loves remains;
   And I all the while bask in Heaven's blue smile,
   Whilst he is dissolving in rains.                                    _30
   
   The sanguine Sunrise, with his meteor eyes,
   And his burning plumes outspread,
   Leaps on the back of my sailing rack,
   When the morning star shines dead;
   As on the jag of a mountain crag,                                    _35
   Which an earthquake rocks and swings,
   An eagle alit one moment may sit
   In the light of its golden wings.
   And when Sunset may breathe, from the lit sea beneath,
   Its ardours of rest and of love,                                     _40
   And the crimson pall of eve may fall
   From the depth of Heaven above.
   With wings folded I rest, on mine aery nest,
   As still as a brooding dove.
   
   That orbed maiden with white fire laden,                             _45
   Whom mortals call the Moon,
   Glides glimmering o'er my fleece-like floor,
   By the midnight breezes strewn;
   And wherever the beat of her unseen feet,
   Which only the angels hear,                                          _50
   May have broken the woof of my tent's thin roof.
   The stars peep behind her and peer;
   And I laugh to see them whirl and flee,
   Like a swarm of golden bees.
   When I widen the rent in my wind-built tent,                         _55
   Till the calm rivers, lakes, and seas,
   Like strips of the sky fallen through me on high,
   Are each paved with the moon and these.
   
   I bind the Sun's throne with a burning zone,
   And the Moon's with a girdle of pearl;                               _60
   The volcanoes are dim, and the stars reel and swim,
   When the whirlwinds my banner unfurl.
   From cape to cape, with a bridge-like shape,
   Over a torrent sea,
   Sunbeam-proof, I hand like a roof,--                                 _65
   The mountains its columns be.
   The triumphal arch through which I march
   With hurricane, fire, and snow,
   When the Powers of the air are chained to my chair,
   Is the million-coloured bow;                                         _70
   The sphere-fire above its soft colours wove,
   While the moist Earth was laughing below.
   
   I am the daughter of Earth and Water,
   And the nursling of the Sky;
   I pass through the pores of the ocean and shores;                    _75
   I change, but I cannot die.
   For after the rain when with never a stain
   The pavilion of Heaven is bare,
   And the winds and sunbeams with their convex gleams
   Build up the blue dome of air,                                       _80
   I silently laugh at my own cenotaph,
   And out of the caverns of rain,
   Like a child from the womb, like a ghost from the tomb,
   I arise and unbuild it again.
   
   NOTES:
   _3 shade 1820; shades 1839.
   _6 buds 1839; birds 1820.
   _59 with a 1820; with the 1830.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO A SKYLARK.
   
   [Composed at Leghorn, 1820, and published with "Prometheus Unbound" in
   the same year. There is a transcript in the Harvard manuscript.]
   
   Hail to thee, blithe Spirit!
   Bird thou never wert,
   That from Heaven, or near it,
   Pourest thy full heart
   In profuse strains of unpremeditated art.                            _5
   
   Higher still and higher
   From the earth thou springest
   Like a cloud of fire;
   The blue deep thou wingest,
   And singing still dost soar, and soaring ever singest.               _10
   
   In the golden lightning
   Of the sunken sun,
   O'er which clouds are bright'ning.
   Thou dost float and run;
   Like an unbodied joy whose race is just begun.                       _15
   
   The pale purple even
   Melts around thy flight;
   Like a star of Heaven,
   In the broad daylight
   Thou art unseen, but yet I hear thy shrill delight,                  _20
   
   Keen as are the arrows
   Of that silver sphere,
   Whose intense lamp narrows
   In the white dawn clear
   Until we hardly see--we feel that it is there.                       _25
   
   All the earth and air
   With thy voice is loud,
   As, when night is bare,
   From one lonely cloud
   The moon rains out her beams, and Heaven is overflowed.              _30
   
   What thou art we know not;
   What is most like thee?
   From rainbow clouds there flow not
   Drops so bright to see
   As from thy presence showers a rain of melody.                       _35
   
   Like a Poet hidden
   In the light of thought,
   Singing hymns unbidden,
   Till the world is wrought
   To sympathy with hopes and fears it heeded not:                      _40
   
   Like a high-born maiden
   In a palace-tower,
   Soothing her love-laden
   Soul in secret hour
   With music sweet as love, which overflows her bower:                 _45
   
   Like a glow-worm golden
   In a dell of dew,
   Scattering unbeholden
   Its aereal hue
   Among the flowers and grass, which screen it from the view!          _50
   
   Like a rose embowered
   In its own green leaves,
   By warm winds deflowered,
   Till the scent it gives
   Makes faint with too much sweet those heavy-winged thieves:          _55
   
   Sound of vernal showers
   On the twinkling grass,
   Rain-awakened flowers,
   All that ever was
   Joyous, and clear, and fresh, thy music doth surpass:                _60
   
   Teach us, Sprite or Bird,
   What sweet thoughts are thine:
   I have never heard
   Praise of love or wine
   That panted forth a flood of rapture so divine.                      _65
   
   Chorus Hymeneal,
   Or triumphal chant,
   Matched with thine would be all
   But an empty vaunt,
   A thing wherein we feel there is some hidden want.                   _70
   
   What objects are the fountains
   Of thy happy strain?
   What fields, or waves, or mountains?
   What shapes of sky or plain?
   What love of thine own kind? what ignorance of pain?                 _75
   
   With thy clear keen joyance
   Languor cannot be:
   Shadow of annoyance
   Never came near thee:
   Thou lovest--but ne'er knew love's sad satiety.                      _80
   
   Waking or asleep,
   Thou of death must deem
   Things more true and deep
   Than we mortals dream,
   Or how could thy notes flow in such a crystal stream?                _85
   
   We look before and after,
   And pine for what is not:
   Our sincerest laughter
   With some pain is fraught;
   Our sweetest songs are those that tell of saddest thought.           _90
   
   Yet if we could scorn
   Hate, and pride, and fear;
   If we were things born
   Not to shed a tear,
   I know not how thy joy we ever should come near.                     _95
   
   Better than all measures
   Of delightful sound,
   Better than all treasures
   That in books are found,
   Thy skill to poet were, thou scorner of the ground!                  _100
   
   Teach me half the gladness
   That thy brain must know,
   Such harmonious madness
   From my lips would flow
   The world should listen then--as I am listening now.                 _105
   
   NOTE:
   _55 those Harvard manuscript: these 1820, 1839.
   
   
   ***
   
   
   ODE TO LIBERTY.
   
   [Composed early in 1820, and published, with "Prometheus Unbound", in
   the same year. A transcript in Shelley's hand of lines 1-21 is included
   in the Harvard manuscript book, and amongst the Boscombe manuscripts
   there is a fragment of a rough draft (Garnett). For further particulars
   concerning the text see Editor's Notes.]
   
   Yet, Freedom, yet, thy banner, torn but flying,
   Streams like a thunder-storm against the wind.--BYRON.
   
   1.
   A glorious people vibrated again
   The lightning of the nations: Liberty
   From heart to heart, from tower to tower, o'er Spain,
   Scattering contagious fire into the sky,
   Gleamed. My soul spurned the chains of its dismay,                   _5
   And in the rapid plumes of song
   Clothed itself, sublime and strong;
   As a young eagle soars the morning clouds among,
   Hovering inverse o'er its accustomed prey;
   Till from its station in the Heaven of fame                          _10
   The Spirit's whirlwind rapped it, and the ray
   Of the remotest sphere of living flame
   Which paves the void was from behind it flung,
   As foam from a ship's swiftness, when there came
   A voice out of the deep: I will record the same.                     _15
   
   2.
   The Sun and the serenest Moon sprang forth:
   The burning stars of the abyss were hurled
   Into the depths of Heaven. The daedal earth,
   That island in the ocean of the world,
   Hung in its cloud of all-sustaining air:                             _20
   But this divinest universe
   Was yet a chaos and a curse,
   For thou wert not: but, power from worst producing worse,
   The spirit of the beasts was kindled there,
   And of the birds, and of the watery forms,                           _25
   And there was war among them, and despair
   Within them, raging without truce or terms:
   The bosom of their violated nurse
   Groaned, for beasts warred on beasts, and worms on worms,
   And men on men; each heart was as a hell of storms.                  _30
   
   3.
   Man, the imperial shape, then multiplied
   His generations under the pavilion
   Of the Sun's throne: palace and pyramid,
   Temple and prison, to many a swarming million
   Were, as to mountain-wolves their ragged caves.                      _35
   This human living multitude
   Was savage, cunning, blind, and rude,
   For thou wert not; but o'er the populous solitude,
   Like one fierce cloud over a waste of waves,
   Hung Tyranny; beneath, sate deified                                  _40
   The sister-pest, congregator of slaves;
   Into the shadow of her pinions wide
   Anarchs and priests, who feed on gold and blood
   Till with the stain their inmost souls are dyed,
   Drove the astonished herds of men from every side.                   _45
   
   4.
   The nodding promontories, and blue isles,
   And cloud-like mountains, and dividuous waves
   Of Greece, basked glorious in the open smiles
   Of favouring Heaven: from their enchanted caves
   Prophetic echoes flung dim melody.                                   _50
   On the unapprehensive wild
   The vine, the corn, the olive mild,
   Grew savage yet, to human use unreconciled;
   And, like unfolded flowers beneath the sea,
   Like the man's thought dark in the infant's brain,                   _55
   Like aught that is which wraps what is to be,
   Art's deathless dreams lay veiled by many a vein
   Of Parian stone; and, yet a speechless child,
   Verse murmured, and Philosophy did strain
   Her lidless eyes for thee; when o'er the Aegean main                 _60
   
   5.
   Athens arose: a city such as vision
   Builds from the purple crags and silver towers
   Of battlemented cloud, as in derision
   Of kingliest masonry: the ocean-floors
   Pave it; the evening sky pavilions it;                               _65
   Its portals are inhabited
   By thunder-zoned winds, each head
   Within its cloudy wings with sun-fire garlanded,--
   A divine work! Athens, diviner yet,
   Gleamed with its crest of columns, on the will                       _70
   Of man, as on a mount of diamond, set;
   For thou wert, and thine all-creative skill
   Peopled, with forms that mock the eternal dead
   In marble immortality, that hill
   Which was thine earliest throne and latest oracle.                   _75
   
   6.
   Within the surface of Time's fleeting river
   Its wrinkled image lies, as then it lay
   Immovably unquiet, and for ever
   It trembles, but it cannot pass away!
   The voices of thy bards and sages thunder                            _80
   With an earth-awakening blast
   Through the caverns of the past:
   (Religion veils her eyes; Oppression shrinks aghast:)
   A winged sound of joy, and love, and wonder,
   Which soars where Expectation never flew,                            _85
   Rending the veil of space and time asunder!
   One ocean feeds the clouds, and streams, and dew;
   One Sun illumines Heaven; one Spirit vast
   With life and love makes chaos ever new,
   As Athens doth the world with thy delight renew.                     _90
   
   7.
   Then Rome was, and from thy deep bosom fairest,
   Like a wolf-cub from a Cadmaean Maenad,
   She drew the milk of greatness, though thy dearest
   From that Elysian food was yet unweaned;
   And many a deed of terrible uprightness                              _95
   By thy sweet love was sanctified;
   And in thy smile, and by thy side,
   Saintly Camillus lived, and firm Atilius died.
   But when tears stained thy robe of vestal-whiteness,
   And gold profaned thy Capitolian throne,                             _100
   Thou didst desert, with spirit-winged lightness,
   The senate of the tyrants: they sunk prone
   Slaves of one tyrant: Palatinus sighed
   Faint echoes of Ionian song; that tone
   Thou didst delay to hear, lamenting to disown                        _105
   
   8.
   From what Hyrcanian glen or frozen hill,
   Or piny promontory of the Arctic main,
   Or utmost islet inaccessible,
   Didst thou lament the ruin of thy reign,
   Teaching the woods and waves, and desert rocks,                      _110
   And every Naiad's ice-cold urn,
   To talk in echoes sad and stern
   Of that sublimest lore which man had dared unlearn?
   For neither didst thou watch the wizard flocks
   Of the Scald's dreams, nor haunt the Druid's sleep.                  _115
   What if the tears rained through thy shattered locks
   Were quickly dried? for thou didst groan, not weep,
   When from its sea of death, to kill and burn,
   The Galilean serpent forth did creep,
   And made thy world an undistinguishable heap.                        _120
   
   9.
   A thousand years the Earth cried, 'Where art thou?'
   And then the shadow of thy coming fell
   On Saxon Alfred's olive-cinctured brow:
   And many a warrior-peopled citadel.
   Like rocks which fire lifts out of the flat deep,                    _125
   Arose in sacred Italy,
   Frowning o'er the tempestuous sea
   Of kings, and priests, and slaves, in tower-crowned majesty;
   That multitudinous anarchy did sweep
   And burst around their walls, like idle foam,                        _130
   Whilst from the human spirit's deepest deep
   Strange melody with love and awe struck dumb
   Dissonant arms; and Art, which cannot die,
   With divine wand traced on our earthly home
   Fit imagery to pave Heaven's everlasting dome.                       _135
   
   10.
   Thou huntress swifter than the Moon! thou terror
   Of the world's wolves! thou bearer of the quiver,
   Whose sunlike shafts pierce tempest-winged Error,
   As light may pierce the clouds when they dissever
   In the calm regions of the orient day!                               _140
   Luther caught thy wakening glance;
   Like lightning, from his leaden lance
   Reflected, it dissolved the visions of the trance
   In which, as in a tomb, the nations lay;
   And England's prophets hailed thee as their queen,                   _145
   In songs whose music cannot pass away,
   Though it must flow forever: not unseen
   Before the spirit-sighted countenance
   Of Milton didst thou pass, from the sad scene
   Beyond whose night he saw, with a dejected mien.                     _150
   
   11.
   The eager hours and unreluctant years
   As on a dawn-illumined mountain stood.
   Trampling to silence their loud hopes and fears,
   Darkening each other with their multitude,
   And cried aloud, 'Liberty!' Indignation                              _155
   Answered Pity from her cave;
   Death grew pale within the grave,
   And Desolation howled to the destroyer, Save!
   When like Heaven's Sun girt by the exhalation
   Of its own glorious light, thou didst arise.                         _160
   Chasing thy foes from nation unto nation
   Like shadows: as if day had cloven the skies
   At dreaming midnight o'er the western wave,
   Men started, staggering with a glad surprise,
   Under the lightnings of thine unfamiliar eyes.                       _165
   
   12.
   Thou Heaven of earth! what spells could pall thee then
   In ominous eclipse? a thousand years
   Bred from the slime of deep Oppression's den.
   Dyed all thy liquid light with blood and tears.
   Till thy sweet stars could weep the stain away;                      _170
   How like Bacchanals of blood
   Round France, the ghastly vintage, stood
   Destruction's sceptred slaves, and Folly's mitred brood!
   When one, like them, but mightier far than they,
   The Anarch of thine own bewildered powers,                           _175
   Rose: armies mingled in obscure array,
   Like clouds with clouds, darkening the sacred bowers
   Of serene Heaven. He, by the past pursued,
   Rests with those dead, but unforgotten hours,
   Whose ghosts scare victor kings in their ancestral towers.           _180
   
   13.
   England yet sleeps: was she not called of old?
   Spain calls her now, as with its thrilling thunder
   Vesuvius wakens Aetna, and the cold
   Snow-crags by its reply are cloven in sunder:
   O'er the lit waves every Aeolian isle                                _185
   From Pithecusa to Pelorus
   Howls, and leaps, and glares in chorus:
   They cry, 'Be dim; ye lamps of Heaven suspended o'er us!'
   Her chains are threads of gold, she need but smile
   And they dissolve; but Spain's were links of steel,                  _190
   Till bit to dust by virtue's keenest file.
   Twins of a single destiny! appeal
   To the eternal years enthroned before us
   In the dim West; impress us from a seal,
   All ye have thought and done! Time cannot dare conceal.              _195
   
   14.
   Tomb of Arminius! render up thy dead
   Till, like a standard from a watch-tower's staff,
   His soul may stream over the tyrant's head;
   Thy victory shall be his epitaph,
   Wild Bacchanal of truth's mysterious wine,                           _200
   King-deluded Germany,
   His dead spirit lives in thee.
   Why do we fear or hope? thou art already free!
   And thou, lost Paradise of this divine
   And glorious world! thou flowery wilderness!                         _205
   Thou island of eternity! thou shrine
   Where Desolation, clothed with loveliness,
   Worships the thing thou wert! O Italy,
   Gather thy blood into thy heart; repress
   The beasts who make their dens thy sacred palaces.                   _210
   
   15.
   Oh, that the free would stamp the impious name
   Of KING into the dust! or write it there,
   So that this blot upon the page of fame
   Were as a serpent's path, which the light air
   Erases, and the flat sands close behind!                             _215
   Ye the oracle have heard:
   Lift the victory-flashing sword.
   And cut the snaky knots of this foul gordian word,
   Which, weak itself as stubble, yet can bind
   Into a mass, irrefragably firm,                                      _220
   The axes and the rods which awe mankind;
   The sound has poison in it, 'tis the sperm
   Of what makes life foul, cankerous, and abhorred;
   Disdain not thou, at thine appointed term,
   To set thine armed heel on this reluctant worm.                      _225
   
   16.
   Oh, that the wise from their bright minds would kindle
   Such lamps within the dome of this dim world,
   That the pale name of PRIEST might shrink and dwindle
   Into the hell from which it first was hurled,
   A scoff of impious pride from fiends impure;                         _230
   Till human thoughts might kneel alone,
   Each before the judgement-throne
   Of its own aweless soul, or of the Power unknown!
   Oh, that the words which make the thoughts obscure
   From which they spring, as clouds of glimmering dew                  _235
   From a white lake blot Heaven's blue portraiture,
   Were stripped of their thin masks and various hue
   And frowns and smiles and splendours not their own,
   Till in the nakedness of false and true
   They stand before their Lord, each to receive its due!               _240
   
   17.
   He who taught man to vanquish whatsoever
   Can be between the cradle and the grave
   Crowned him the King of Life. Oh, vain endeavour!
   If on his own high will, a willing slave,
   He has enthroned the oppression and the oppressor                    _245
   What if earth can clothe and feed
   Amplest millions at their need,
   And power in thought be as the tree within the seed?
   Or what if Art, an ardent intercessor,
   Driving on fiery wings to Nature's throne,                           _250
   Checks the great mother stooping to caress her,
   And cries: 'Give me, thy child, dominion
   Over all height and depth'? if Life can breed
   New wants, and wealth from those who toil and groan,
   Rend of thy gifts and hers a thousandfold for one!                   _255
   
   18.
   Come thou, but lead out of the inmost cave
   Of man's deep spirit, as the morning-star
   Beckons the Sun from the Eoan wave,
   Wisdom. I hear the pennons of her car
   Self-moving, like cloud charioted by flame;                          _260
   Comes she not, and come ye not,
   Rulers of eternal thought,
   To judge, with solemn truth, life's ill-apportioned lot?
   Blind Love, and equal Justice, and the Fame
   Of what has been, the Hope of what will be?                          _265
   O Liberty! if such could be thy name
   Wert thou disjoined from these, or they from thee:
   If thine or theirs were treasures to be bought
   By blood or tears, have not the wise and free
   Wept tears, and blood like tears?--The solemn harmony                _270
   
   19.
   Paused, and the Spirit of that mighty singing
   To its abyss was suddenly withdrawn;
   Then, as a wild swan, when sublimely winging
   Its path athwart the thunder-smoke of dawn,
   Sinks headlong through the aereal golden light                       _275
   On the heavy-sounding plain,
   When the bolt has pierced its brain;
   As summer clouds dissolve, unburthened of their rain;
   As a far taper fades with fading night,
   As a brief insect dies with dying day,--                             _280
   My song, its pinions disarrayed of might,
   Drooped; o'er it closed the echoes far away
   Of the great voice which did its flight sustain,
   As waves which lately paved his watery way
   Hiss round a drowner's head in their tempestuous play.               _285
   
   NOTES:
   _4 into]unto Harvard manuscript.
   _9 inverse cj. Rossetti; in verse 1820.
   _92 See the Bacchae of Euripides--[SHELLEY'S NOTE].
   _113 lore 1839; love 1820.
   _116 shattered]scattered cj. Rossetti.
   _134 wand 1820; want 1830.
   _194 us]as cj. Forman.
   _212 KING Boscombe manuscript; **** 1820, 1839; CHRIST cj. Swinburne.
   _249 Or 1839; O, 1820.
   _250 Driving 1820; Diving 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   CANCELLED PASSAGE OF THE ODE TO LIBERTY.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Within a cavern of man's trackless spirit
   Is throned an Image, so intensely fair
   That the adventurous thoughts that wander near it
   Worship, and as they kneel, tremble and wear
   The splendour of its presence, and the light                         _5
   Penetrates their dreamlike frame
   Till they become charged with the strength of flame.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO --.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   I fear thy kisses, gentle maiden,
   Thou needest not fear mine;
   My spirit is too deeply laden
   Ever to burthen thine.
   
   2.
   I fear thy mien, thy tones, thy motion,                              _5
   Thou needest not fear mine;
   Innocent is the heart's devotion
   With which I worship thine.
   
   ***
   
   
   ARETHUSA.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and dated by her
   'Pisa, 1820.' There is a fair draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at
   the Bodleian Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903,
   page 24.]
   
   1.
   Arethusa arose
   From her couch of snows
   In the Acroceraunian mountains,--
   From cloud and from crag,
   With many a jag,                                                     _5
   Shepherding her bright fountains.
   She leapt down the rocks,
   With her rainbow locks
   Streaming among the streams;--
   Her steps paved with green                                           _10
   The downward ravine
   Which slopes to the western gleams;
   And gliding and springing
   She went, ever singing,
   In murmurs as soft as sleep;                                         _15
   The Earth seemed to love her,
   And Heaven smiled above her,
   As she lingered towards the deep.
   
   2.
   Then Alpheus bold,
   On his glacier cold,                                                 _20
   With his trident the mountains strook;
   And opened a chasm
   In the rocks--with the spasm
   All Erymanthus shook.
   And the black south wind                                             _25
   It unsealed behind
   The urns of the silent snow,
   And earthquake and thunder
   Did rend in sunder
   The bars of the springs below.                                       _30
   And the beard and the hair
   Of the River-god were
   Seen through the torrent's sweep,
   As he followed the light
   Of the fleet nymph's flight                                          _35
   To the brink of the Dorian deep.
   
   3.
   'Oh, save me! Oh, guide me!
   And bid the deep hide me,
   For he grasps me now by the hair!'
   The loud Ocean heard,                                                _40
   To its blue depth stirred,
   And divided at her prayer;
   And under the water
   The Earth's white daughter
   Fled like a sunny beam;                                              _45
   Behind her descended
   Her billows, unblended
   With the brackish Dorian stream:--
   Like a gloomy stain
   On the emerald main                                                  _50
   Alpheus rushed behind,--
   As an eagle pursuing
   A dove to its ruin
   Down the streams of the cloudy wind.
   
   4.
   Under the bowers                                                     _55
   Where the Ocean Powers
   Sit on their pearled thrones;
   Through the coral woods
   Of the weltering floods,
   Over heaps of unvalued stones;                                       _60
   Through the dim beams
   Which amid the streams
   Weave a network of coloured light;
   And under the caves,
   Where the shadowy waves                                              _65
   Are as green as the forest's night:--
   Outspeeding the shark,
   And the sword-fish dark,
   Under the Ocean's foam,
   And up through the rifts                                             _70
   Of the mountain clifts
   They passed to their Dorian home.
   
   5.
   And now from their fountains
   In Enna's mountains,
   Down one vale where the morning basks,                               _75
   Like friends once parted
   Grown single-hearted,
   They ply their watery tasks.
   At sunrise they leap
   From their cradles steep                                             _80
   In the cave of the shelving hill;
   At noontide they flow
   Through the woods below
   And the meadows of asphodel;
   And at night they sleep                                              _85
   In the rocking deep
   Beneath the Ortygian shore;--
   Like spirits that lie
   In the azure sky
   When they love but live no more.                                     _90
   
   NOTES:
   _6 unsealed B.; concealed 1824.
   _31 And the B.; The 1824.
   _69 Ocean's B.; ocean 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONG OF PROSERPINE WHILE GATHERING FLOWERS ON THE PLAIN OF ENNA.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. There
   is a fair draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian
   Library. See Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination," etc., 1903, page 24.]
   
   1.
   Sacred Goddess, Mother Earth,
   Thou from whose immortal bosom
   Gods, and men, and beasts have birth,
   Leaf and blade, and bud and blossom,
   Breathe thine influence most divine                                  _5
   On thine own child, Proserpine.
   
   2.
   If with mists of evening dew
   Thou dost nourish these young flowers
   Till they grow, in scent and hue,
   Fairest children of the Hours,                                       _10
   Breathe thine influence most divine
   On thine own child, Proserpine.
   
   ***
   
   
   HYMN OF APOLLO.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a fair
   draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr. C.D.
   Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 25.]
   
   1.
   The sleepless Hours who watch me as I lie,
   Curtained with star-inwoven tapestries
   From the broad moonlight of the sky,
   Fanning the busy dreams from my dim eyes,--
   Waken me when their Mother, the gray Dawn,                           _5
   Tells them that dreams and that the moon is gone.
   
   2.
   Then I arise, and climbing Heaven's blue dome,
   I walk over the mountains and the waves,
   Leaving my robe upon the ocean foam;
   My footsteps pave the clouds with fire; the caves                    _10
   Are filled with my bright presence, and the air
   Leaves the green Earth to my embraces bare.
   
   3.
   The sunbeams are my shafts, with which I kill
   Deceit, that loves the night and fears the day;
   All men who do or even imagine ill                                   _15
   Fly me, and from the glory of my ray
   Good minds and open actions take new might,
   Until diminished by the reign of Night.
   
   4.
   I feed the clouds, the rainbows and the flowers
   With their aethereal colours; the moon's globe                       _20
   And the pure stars in their eternal bowers
   Are cinctured with my power as with a robe;
   Whatever lamps on Earth or Heaven may shine
   Are portions of one power, which is mine.
   
   5.
   I stand at noon upon the peak of Heaven,                             _25
   Then with unwilling steps I wander down
   Into the clouds of the Atlantic even;
   For grief that I depart they weep and frown:
   What look is more delightful than the smile
   With which I soothe them from the western isle?                      _30
   
   6.
   I am the eye with which the Universe
   Beholds itself and knows itself divine;
   All harmony of instrument or verse,
   All prophecy, all medicine is mine,
   All light of art or nature;--to my song                              _35
   Victory and praise in its own right belong.
   
   NOTES:
   _32 itself divine]it is divine B.
   _34 is B.; are 1824.
   _36 its cj. Rossetti, 1870, B.; their 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   HYMN OF PAN.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a fair
   draft amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian. See Mr. C.D.
   Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, page 25.]
   
   1.
   From the forests and highlands
   We come, we come;
   From the river-girt islands,
   Where loud waves are dumb
   Listening to my sweet pipings.                                       _5
   The wind in the reeds and the rushes,
   The bees on the bells of thyme,
   The birds on the myrtle bushes,
   The cicale above in the lime,
   And the lizards below in the grass,                                  _10
   Were as silent as ever old Tmolus was,
   Listening to my sweet pipings.
   
   2.
   Liquid Peneus was flowing,
   And all dark Tempe lay
   In Pelion's shadow, outgrowing                                       _15
   The light of the dying day,
   Speeded by my sweet pipings.
   The Sileni, and Sylvans, and Fauns,
   And the Nymphs of the woods and the waves,
   To the edge of the moist river-lawns,                                _20
   And the brink of the dewy caves,
   And all that did then attend and follow,
   Were silent with love, as you now, Apollo,
   With envy of my sweet pipings.
   
   3.
   I sang of the dancing stars,                                         _25
   I sang of the daedal Earth,
   And of Heaven--and the giant wars,
   And Love, and Death, and Birth,--
   And then I changed my pipings,--
   Singing how down the vale of Maenalus                                _30
   I pursued a maiden and clasped a reed.
   Gods and men, we are all deluded thus!
   It breaks in our bosom and then we bleed:
   All wept, as I think both ye now would,
   If envy or age had not frozen your blood,                            _35
   At the sorrow of my sweet pipings.
   
   NOTE:
   _5, _12 Listening to]Listening B.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE QUESTION.
   
   [Published by Leigh Hunt (with the signature Sigma) in "The Literary
   Pocket-Book", 1822. Reprinted by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
   1824. Copies exist in the Harvard manuscript book, amongst the Boscombe
   manuscripts, and amongst Ollier manuscripts.]
   
   1.
   I dreamed that, as I wandered by the way,
   Bare Winter suddenly was changed to Spring,
   And gentle odours led my steps astray,
   Mixed with a sound of waters murmuring
   Along a shelving bank of turf, which lay                             _5
   Under a copse, and hardly dared to fling
   Its green arms round the bosom of the stream,
   But kissed it and then fled, as thou mightest in dream.
   
   2.
   There grew pied wind-flowers and violets,
   Daisies, those pearled Arcturi of the earth,                         _10
   The constellated flower that never sets;
   Faint oxslips; tender bluebells, at whose birth
   The sod scarce heaved; and that tall flower that wets--
   Like a child, half in tenderness and mirth--
   Its mother's face with Heaven's collected tears,                     _15
   When the low wind, its playmate's voice, it hears.
   
   3.
   And in the warm hedge grew lush eglantine,
   Green cowbind and the moonlight-coloured may,
   And cherry-blossoms, and white cups, whose wine
   Was the bright dew, yet drained not by the day;                      _20
   And wild roses, and ivy serpentine,
   With its dark buds and leaves, wandering astray;
   And flowers azure, black, and streaked with gold,
   Fairer than any wakened eyes behold.
   
   4.
   And nearer to the river's trembling edge                             _25
   There grew broad flag-flowers, purple pranked with white.
   And starry river buds among the sedge,
   And floating water-lilies, broad and bright,
   Which lit the oak that overhung the hedge
   With moonlight beams of their own watery light;                      _30
   And bulrushes, and reeds of such deep green
   As soothed the dazzled eye with sober sheen.
   
   5.
   Methought that of these visionary flowers
   I made a nosegay, bound in such a way
   That the same hues, which in their natural bowers                    _35
   Were mingled or opposed, the like array
   Kept these imprisoned children of the Hours
   Within my hand,--and then, elate and gay,
   I hastened to the spot whence I had come,
   That I might there present it!--Oh! to whom?                         _40
   
   NOTES:
   _14 Like...mirth Harvard manuscript, Boscombe manuscript;
       wanting in Ollier manuscript, 1822, 1824, 1839.
   _15 Heaven's collected Harvard manuscript, Ollier manuscript, 1822;
       Heaven-collected 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE TWO SPIRITS: AN ALLEGORY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   FIRST SPIRIT:
   O thou, who plumed with strong desire
   Wouldst float above the earth, beware!
   A Shadow tracks thy flight of fire--
   Night is coming!
   Bright are the regions of the air,                                   _5
   And among the winds and beams
   It were delight to wander there--
   Night is coming!
   
   SECOND SPIRIT:
   The deathless stars are bright above;
   If I would cross the shade of night,                                 _10
   Within my heart is the lamp of love,
   And that is day!
   And the moon will smile with gentle light
   On my golden plumes where'er they move;
   The meteors will linger round my flight,                             _15
   And make night day.
   
   FIRST SPIRIT:
   But if the whirlwinds of darkness waken
   Hail, and lightning, and stormy rain;
   See, the bounds of the air are shaken--
   Night is coming!                                                     _20
   The red swift clouds of the hurricane
   Yon declining sun have overtaken,
   The clash of the hail sweeps over the plain--
   Night is coming!
   
   SECOND SPIRIT:
   I see the light, and I hear the sound;                               _25
   I'll sail on the flood of the tempest dark
   With the calm within and the light around
   Which makes night day:
   And thou, when the gloom is deep and stark,
   Look from thy dull earth, slumber-bound,                             _30
   My moon-like flight thou then mayst mark
   On high, far away.
   
   ...
   
   Some say there is a precipice
   Where one vast pine is frozen to ruin
   O'er piles of snow and chasms of ice                                 _35
   Mid Alpine mountains;
   And that the languid storm pursuing
   That winged shape, for ever flies
   Round those hoar branches, aye renewing
   Its aery fountains.                                                  _40
   
   Some say when nights are dry and clear,
   And the death-dews sleep on the morass,
   Sweet whispers are heard by the traveller,
   Which make night day:
   And a silver shape like his early love doth pass                     _45
   Upborne by her wild and glittering hair,
   And when he awakes on the fragrant grass,
   He finds night day.
   
   NOTES:
   _2 Wouldst 1839; Would 1824.
   _31 moon-like 1824; moonlight 1839.
   _44 make]makes 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   ODE TO NAPLES.
   
   (The Author has connected many recollections of his visit to Pompeii
   and Baiae with the enthusiasm excited by the intelligence of the
   proclamation of a Constitutional Government at Naples. This has given a
   tinge of picturesque and descriptive imagery to the introductory Epodes
   which depicture these scenes, and some of the majestic feelings
   permanently connected with the scene of this animating
   event.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   [Composed at San Juliano di Pisa, August 17-25, 1820; published in
   "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a copy, 'for the most part neat and
   legible,' amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian Library. See
   Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc., 1903, pages 14-18.]
   
   EPODE 1a.
   
   I stood within the City disinterred;
   And heard the autumnal leaves like light footfalls
   Of spirits passing through the streets; and heard
   The Mountain's slumberous voice at intervals
   Thrill through those roofless halls;                                 _5
   The oracular thunder penetrating shook
   The listening soul in my suspended blood;
   I felt that Earth out of her deep heart spoke--
   I felt, but heard not:--through white columns glowed
   The isle-sustaining ocean-flood,                                     _10
   A plane of light between two heavens of azure!
   Around me gleamed many a bright sepulchre
   Of whose pure beauty, Time, as if his pleasure
   Were to spare Death, had never made erasure;
   But every living lineament was clear                                 _15
   As in the sculptor's thought; and there
   The wreaths of stony myrtle, ivy, and pine,
   Like winter leaves o'ergrown by moulded snow,
   Seemed only not to move and grow
   Because the crystal silence of the air                               _20
   Weighed on their life; even as the Power divine
   Which then lulled all things, brooded upon mine.
   
   NOTE:
   _1 Pompeii.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   
   EPODE 2a.
   
   Then gentle winds arose
   With many a mingled close
   Of wild Aeolian sound, and mountain-odours keen;                     _25
   And where the Baian ocean
   Welters with airlike motion,
   Within, above, around its bowers of starry green,
   Moving the sea-flowers in those purple caves,
   Even as the ever stormless atmosphere                                _30
   Floats o'er the Elysian realm,
   It bore me, like an Angel, o'er the waves
   Of sunlight, whose swift pinnace of dewy air
   No storm can overwhelm.
   I sailed, where ever flows                                           _35
   Under the calm Serene
   A spirit of deep emotion
   From the unknown graves
   Of the dead Kings of Melody.
   Shadowy Aornos darkened o'er the helm                                _40
   The horizontal aether; Heaven stripped bare
   Its depth over Elysium, where the prow
   Made the invisible water white as snow;
   From that Typhaean mount, Inarime,
   There streamed a sunbright vapour, like the standard                 _45
   Of some aethereal host;
   Whilst from all the coast,
   Louder and louder, gathering round, there wandered
   Over the oracular woods and divine sea
   Prophesyings which grew articulate--
   They seize me--I must speak them!--be they fate!                     _50
   
   NOTES:
   _25 odours B.; odour 1824.
   _42 depth B.; depths 1824.
   _45 sun-bright B.; sunlit 1824.
   _39 Homer and Virgil.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   
   STROPHE 1.
   
   Naples! thou Heart of men which ever pantest
   Naked, beneath the lidless eye of Heaven!
   Elysian City, which to calm enchantest
   The mutinous air and sea! they round thee, even                      _55
   As sleep round Love, are driven!
   Metropolis of a ruined Paradise
   Long lost, late won, and yet but half regained!
   Bright Altar of the bloodless sacrifice
   Which armed Victory offers up unstained                              _60
   To Love, the flower-enchained!
   Thou which wert once, and then didst cease to be,
   Now art, and henceforth ever shalt be, free,
   If Hope, and Truth, and Justice can avail,--
   Hail, hail, all hail!                                                _65
   
   STROPHE 2.
   
   Thou youngest giant birth
   Which from the groaning earth
   Leap'st, clothed in armour of impenetrable scale!
   Last of the Intercessors!
   Who 'gainst the Crowned Transgressors                                _70
   Pleadest before God's love! Arrayed in Wisdom's mail,
   Wave thy lightning lance in mirth
   Nor let thy high heart fail,
   Though from their hundred gates the leagued Oppressors
   With hurried legions move!                                           _75
   Hail, hail, all hail!
   
   ANTISTROPHE 1a.
   
   What though Cimmerian Anarchs dare blaspheme
   Freedom and thee? thy shield is as a mirror
   To make their blind slaves see, and with fierce gleam
   To turn his hungry sword upon the wearer;                            _80
   A new Actaeon's error
   Shall theirs have been--devoured by their own hounds!
   Be thou like the imperial Basilisk
   Killing thy foe with unapparent wounds!
   Gaze on Oppression, till at that dread risk                          _85
   Aghast she pass from the Earth's disk:
   Fear not, but gaze--for freemen mightier grow,
   And slaves more feeble, gazing on their foe:--
   If Hope, and Truth, and Justice may avail,
   Thou shalt be great--All hail!                                       _90
   
   ANTISTROPHE 2a.
   
   From Freedom's form divine,
   From Nature's inmost shrine,
   Strip every impious gawd, rend
   Error veil by veil;
   O'er Ruin desolate,
   O'er Falsehood's fallen state,                                       _95
   Sit thou sublime, unawed; be the Destroyer pale!
   And equal laws be thine,
   And winged words let sail,
   Freighted with truth even from the throne of God:
   That wealth, surviving fate,                                         _100
   Be thine.--All hail!
   
   NOTE:
   _100 wealth-surviving cj. A.C. Bradley.
   
   ANTISTROPHE 1b.
   
   Didst thou not start to hear Spain's thrilling paean
   From land to land re-echoed solemnly,
   Till silence became music? From the Aeaean
   To the cold Alps, eternal Italy                                      _105
   Starts to hear thine! The Sea
   Which paves the desert streets of Venice laughs
   In light, and music; widowed Genoa wan
   By moonlight spells ancestral epitaphs,
   Murmuring, 'Where is Doria?' fair Milan,                             _110
   Within whose veins long ran
   The viper's palsying venom, lifts her heel
   To bruise his head. The signal and the seal
   (If Hope and Truth and Justice can avail)
   Art thou of all these hopes.--O hail!                                _115
   
   NOTES:
   _104 Aeaea, the island of Circe.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   _112 The viper was the armorial device of the Visconti,
        tyrants of Milan.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   
   ANTISTROPHE 2b.
   
   Florence! beneath the sun,
   Of cities fairest one,
   Blushes within her bower for Freedom's expectation:
   From eyes of quenchless hope
   Rome tears the priestly cope,                                        _120
   As ruling once by power, so now by admiration,--
   An athlete stripped to run
   From a remoter station
   For the high prize lost on Philippi's shore:--
   As then Hope, Truth, and Justice did avail,                          _125
   So now may Fraud and Wrong! O hail!
   
   EPODE 1b.
   
   Hear ye the march as of the Earth-born Forms
   Arrayed against the ever-living Gods?
   The crash and darkness of a thousand storms
   Bursting their inaccessible abodes                                   _130
   Of crags and thunder-clouds?
   See ye the banners blazoned to the day,
   Inwrought with emblems of barbaric pride?
   Dissonant threats kill Silence far away,
   The serene Heaven which wraps our Eden wide                          _135
   With iron light is dyed;
   The Anarchs of the North lead forth their legions
   Like Chaos o'er creation, uncreating;
   An hundred tribes nourished on strange religions
   And lawless slaveries,--down the aereal regions                      _140
   Of the white Alps, desolating,
   Famished wolves that bide no waiting,
   Blotting the glowing footsteps of old glory,
   Trampling our columned cities into dust,
   Their dull and savage lust                                           _145
   On Beauty's corse to sickness satiating--
   They come! The fields they tread look black and hoary
   With fire--from their red feet the streams run gory!
   
   EPODE 2b.
   
   Great Spirit, deepest Love!
   Which rulest and dost move                                           _150
   All things which live and are, within the Italian shore;
   Who spreadest Heaven around it,
   Whose woods, rocks, waves, surround it;
   Who sittest in thy star, o'er Ocean's western floor;
   Spirit of beauty! at whose soft command                              _155
   The sunbeams and the showers distil its foison
   From the Earth's bosom chill;
   Oh, bid those beams be each a blinding brand
   Of lightning! bid those showers be dews of poison!
   Bid the Earth's plenty kill!                                         _160
   Bid thy bright Heaven above,
   Whilst light and darkness bound it,
   Be their tomb who planned
   To make it ours and thine!
   Or, with thine harmonizing ardours fill                              _165
   And raise thy sons, as o'er the prone horizon
   Thy lamp feeds every twilight wave with fire--
   Be man's high hope and unextinct desire
   The instrument to work thy will divine!
   Then clouds from sunbeams, antelopes from leopards,                  _170
   And frowns and fears from thee,
   Would not more swiftly flee
   Than Celtic wolves from the Ausonian shepherds.--
   Whatever, Spirit, from thy starry shrine
   Thou yieldest or withholdest, oh, let be                             _175
   This city of thy worship ever free!
   
   NOTES:
   _143 old 1824; lost B.
   _147 black 1824; blue B.
   
   ***
   
   
   AUTUMN: A DIRGE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   The warm sun is failing, the bleak wind is wailing,
   The bare boughs are sighing, the pale flowers are dying,
   And the Year
   On the earth her death-bed, in a shroud of leaves dead,
   Is lying.                                                            _5
   Come, Months, come away,
   From November to May,
   In your saddest array;
   Follow the bier
   Of the dead cold Year,                                               _10
   And like dim shadows watch by her sepulchre.
   
   2.
   The chill rain is falling, the nipped worm is crawling,
   The rivers are swelling, the thunder is knelling
   For the Year;
   The blithe swallows are flown, and the lizards each gone             _15
   To his dwelling;
   Come, Months, come away;
   Put on white, black, and gray;
   Let your light sisters play--
   Ye, follow the bier                                                  _20
   Of the dead cold Year,
   And make her grave green with tear on tear.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE WANING MOON.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   And like a dying lady, lean and pale,
   Who totters forth, wrapped in a gauzy veil,
   Out of her chamber, led by the insane
   And feeble wanderings of her fading brain,
   The moon arose up in the murky East,                                 _5
   A white and shapeless mass--
   
   ***
   
   
   TO THE MOON.
   
   [Published (1) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, (2) by W.M.
   Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works", 1870.]
   
   1.
   Art thou pale for weariness
   Of climbing heaven and gazing on the earth,
   Wandering companionless
   Among the stars that have a different birth,--
   And ever changing, like a joyless eye                                _5
   That finds no object worth its constancy?
   
   2.
   Thou chosen sister of the Spirit,
   That grazes on thee till in thee it pities...
   
   ***
   
   
   DEATH.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   Death is here and death is there,
   Death is busy everywhere,
   All around, within, beneath,
   Above is death--and we are death.
   
   2.
   Death has set his mark and seal                                      _5
   On all we are and all we feel,
   On all we know and all we fear,
   
   ...
   
   3.
   First our pleasures die--and then
   Our hopes, and then our fears--and when
   These are dead, the debt is due,                                     _10
   Dust claims dust--and we die too.
   
   4.
   All things that we love and cherish,
   Like ourselves must fade and perish;
   Such is our rude mortal lot--
   Love itself would, did they not.                                     _15
   
   ***
   
   
   LIBERTY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   The fiery mountains answer each other;
   Their thunderings are echoed from zone to zone;
   The tempestuous oceans awake one another,
   And the ice-rocks are shaken round Winter's throne,
   When the clarion of the Typhoon is blown.                            _5
   
   2.
   From a single cloud the lightening flashes,
   Whilst a thousand isles are illumined around,
   Earthquake is trampling one city to ashes,
   An hundred are shuddering and tottering; the sound
   Is bellowing underground.                                            _10
   
   3.
   But keener thy gaze than the lightening's glare,
   And swifter thy step than the earthquake's tramp;
   Thou deafenest the rage of the ocean; thy stare
   Makes blind the volcanoes; the sun's bright lamp
   To thine is a fen-fire damp.                                         _15
   
   4.
   From billow and mountain and exhalation
   The sunlight is darted through vapour and blast;
   From spirit to spirit, from nation to nation,
   From city to hamlet thy dawning is cast,--
   And tyrants and slaves are like shadows of night                     _20
   In the van of the morning light.
   
   NOTE:
   _4 zone editions 1824, 1839; throne later editions.
   
   ***
   
   
   SUMMER AND WINTER.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "The Keepsake", 1829. Mr. C.W.
   Frederickson of Brooklyn possesses a transcript in Mrs. Shelley's
   handwriting.]
   
   It was a bright and cheerful afternoon,
   Towards the end of the sunny month of June,
   When the north wind congregates in crowds
   The floating mountains of the silver clouds
   From the horizon--and the stainless sky                              _5
   Opens beyond them like eternity.
   All things rejoiced beneath the sun; the weeds,
   The river, and the corn-fields, and the reeds;
   The willow leaves that glanced in the light breeze,
   And the firm foliage of the larger trees.                            _10
   
   It was a winter such as when birds die
   In the deep forests; and the fishes lie
   Stiffened in the translucent ice, which makes
   Even the mud and slime of the warm lakes
   A wrinkled clod as hard as brick; and when,                          _15
   Among their children, comfortable men
   Gather about great fires, and yet feel cold:
   Alas, then, for the homeless beggar old!
   
   NOTE:
   _11 birds die 1839; birds do die 1829.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE TOWER OF FAMINE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "The Keepsake", 1829. Mr. C.W.
   Frederickson of Brooklyn possesses a transcript in Mrs. Shelley's
   handwriting.]
   
   Amid the desolation of a city,
   Which was the cradle, and is now the grave
   Of an extinguished people,--so that Pity
   
   Weeps o'er the shipwrecks of Oblivion's wave,
   There stands the Tower of Famine. It is built                        _5
   Upon some prison-homes, whose dwellers rave
   
   For bread, and gold, and blood: Pain, linked to Guilt,
   Agitates the light flame of their hours,
   Until its vital oil is spent or spilt.
   
   There stands the pile, a tower amid the towers                       _10
   And sacred domes; each marble-ribbed roof,
   The brazen-gated temples, and the bowers
   
   Of solitary wealth,--the tempest-proof
   Pavilions of the dark Italian air,--
   Are by its presence dimmed--they stand aloof,                        _15
   
   And are withdrawn--so that the world is bare;
   As if a spectre wrapped in shapeless terror
   Amid a company of ladies fair
   
   Should glide and glow, till it became a mirror
   Of all their beauty, and their hair and hue,                         _20
   The life of their sweet eyes, with all its error,
   Should be absorbed, till they to marble grew.
   
   NOTE:
   _7 For]With 1829.
   
   ***
   
   
   AN ALLEGORY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   A portal as of shadowy adamant
   Stands yawning on the highway of the life
   Which we all tread, a cavern huge and gaunt;
   Around it rages an unceasing strife
   Of shadows, like the restless clouds that haunt                      _5
   The gap of some cleft mountain, lifted high
   Into the whirlwinds of the upper sky.
   
   2.
   And many pass it by with careless tread,
   Not knowing that a shadowy ...
   Tracks every traveller even to where the dead                        _10
   Wait peacefully for their companion new;
   But others, by more curious humour led,
   Pause to examine;--these are very few,
   And they learn little there, except to know
   That shadows follow them where'er they go.                           _15
   
   NOTE:
   _8 pass Rossetti; passed editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE WORLD'S WANDERERS.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   Tell me, thou Star, whose wings of light
   Speed thee in thy fiery flight,
   In what cavern of the night
   Will thy pinions close now?
   
   2.
   Tell me, Moon, thou pale and gray                                    _5
   Pilgrim of Heaven's homeless way,
   In what depth of night or day
   Seekest thou repose now?
   
   3.
   Weary Wind, who wanderest
   Like the world's rejected guest,                                     _10
   Hast thou still some secret nest
   On the tree or billow?
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET.
   
   [Published by Leigh Hunt, "The Literary Pocket-Book", 1823. There is a
   transcript amongst the Ollier manuscripts, and another in the Harvard
   manuscript book.]
   
   Ye hasten to the grave! What seek ye there,
   Ye restless thoughts and busy purposes
   Of the idle brain, which the world's livery wear?
   O thou quick heart, which pantest to possess
   All that pale Expectation feigneth fair!                             _5
   Thou vainly curious mind which wouldest guess
   Whence thou didst come, and whither thou must go,
   And all that never yet was known would know--
   Oh, whither hasten ye, that thus ye press,
   With such swift feet life's green and pleasant path,                 _10
   Seeking, alike from happiness and woe,
   A refuge in the cavern of gray death?
   O heart, and mind, and thoughts! what thing do you
   Hope to inherit in the grave below?
   
   NOTE:
   _1 grave Ollier manuscript;
      dead Harvard manuscript, 1823, editions 1824, 1839.
   _5 pale Expectation Ollier manuscript;
      anticipation Harvard manuscript, 1823, editions 1824, 1839.
   _7 must Harvard manuscript, 1823; mayst 1824; mayest editions 1839.
   _8 all that Harvard manuscript, 1823; that which editions 1824, 1839.
      would Harvard manuscript, 1823; wouldst editions 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES TO A REVIEWER.
   
   [Published by Leigh Hunt, "The Literary Pocket-Book", 1823. These
   lines, and the "Sonnet" immediately preceding, are signed Sigma in the
   "Literary Pocket-Book".]
   
   Alas, good friend, what profit can you see
   In hating such a hateless thing as me?
   There is no sport in hate where all the rage
   Is on one side: in vain would you assuage
   Your frowns upon an unresisting smile,                               _5
   In which not even contempt lurks to beguile
   Your heart, by some faint sympathy of hate.
   Oh, conquer what you cannot satiate!
   For to your passion I am far more coy
   Than ever yet was coldest maid or boy                                _10
   In winter noon. Of your antipathy
   If I am the Narcissus, you are free
   To pine into a sound with hating me.
   
   NOTE:
   _3 where editions 1824, 1839; when 1823.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT OF A SATIRE ON SATIRE.
   
   [Published by Edward Dowden, "Correspondence of Robert Southey and
   Caroline Bowles", 1880.]
   
   If gibbets, axes, confiscations, chains,
   And racks of subtle torture, if the pains
   Of shame, of fiery Hell's tempestuous wave,
   Seen through the caverns of the shadowy grave,
   Hurling the damned into the murky air                                _5
   While the meek blest sit smiling; if Despair
   And Hate, the rapid bloodhounds with which Terror
   Hunts through the world the homeless steps of Error,
   Are the true secrets of the commonweal
   To make men wise and just;...                                        _10
   And not the sophisms of revenge and fear,
   Bloodier than is revenge...
   Then send the priests to every hearth and home
   To preach the burning wrath which is to come,
   In words like flakes of sulphur, such as thaw                        _15
   The frozen tears...
   If Satire's scourge could wake the slumbering hounds
   Of Conscience, or erase the deeper wounds,
   The leprous scars of callous Infamy;
   If it could make the present not to be,                              _20
   Or charm the dark past never to have been,
   Or turn regret to hope; who that has seen
   What Southey is and was, would not exclaim,
   'Lash on!' ... be the keen verse dipped in flame;
   Follow his flight with winged words, and urge                        _25
   The strokes of the inexorable scourge
   Until the heart be naked, till his soul
   See the contagion's spots ... foul;
   And from the mirror of Truth's sunlike shield,
   From which his Parthian arrow...                                     _30
   Flash on his sight the spectres of the past,
   Until his mind's eye paint thereon--
   Let scorn like ... yawn below,
   And rain on him like flakes of fiery snow.
   This cannot be, it ought not, evil still--                           _35
   Suffering makes suffering, ill must follow ill.
   Rough words beget sad thoughts, ... and, beside,
   Men take a sullen and a stupid pride
   In being all they hate in others' shame,
   By a perverse antipathy of fame.                                     _40
   'Tis not worth while to prove, as I could, how
   From the sweet fountains of our Nature flow
   These bitter waters; I will only say,
   If any friend would take Southey some day,
   And tell him, in a country walk alone,                               _45
   Softening harsh words with friendship's gentle tone,
   How incorrect his public conduct is,
   And what men think of it, 'twere not amiss.
   Far better than to make innocent ink--
   
   ***
   
   
   GOOD-NIGHT.
   
   [Published by Leigh Hunt over the signature Sigma, "The Literary
   Pocket-Book", 1822. It is included in the Harvard manuscript book, and
   there is a transcript by Shelley in a copy of "The Literary
   Pocket-Book", 1819, presented by him to Miss Sophia Stacey, December
   29, 1820. (See "Love's Philosophy" and "Time Long Past".) Our text is
   that of the editio princeps, 1822, with which the Harvard manuscript
   and "Posthumous Poems", 1824, agree. The variants of the Stacey
   manuscript, 1820, are given in the footnotes.]
   
   1.
   Good-night? ah! no; the hour is ill
   Which severs those it should unite;
   Let us remain together still,
   Then it will be GOOD night.
   
   2.
   How can I call the lone night good,                                  _5
   Though thy sweet wishes wing its flight?
   Be it not said, thought, understood--
   Then it will be--GOOD night.
   
   3.
   To hearts which near each other move
   From evening close to morning light,                                 _10
   The night is good; because, my love,
   They never SAY good-night.
   
   NOTES:
   _1 Good-night? no, love! the night is ill Stacey manuscript.
   _5 How were the night without thee good Stacey manuscript.
   _9 The hearts that on each other beat Stacey manuscript.
   _11 Have nights as good as they are sweet Stacey manuscript.
   _12 But never SAY good night Stacey manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   BUONA NOTTE.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "The Angler in Wales, or Days and Nights of
   Sportsmen", 1834. The text is revised by Rossetti from the Boscombe
   manuscript.]
   
   1.
   'Buona notte, buona notte!'--Come mai
   La notte sara buona senza te?
   Non dirmi buona notte,--che tu sai,
   La notte sa star buona da per se.
   
   2.
   Solinga, scura, cupa, senza speme,                                   _5
   La notte quando Lilla m'abbandona;
   Pei cuori chi si batton insieme
   Ogni notte, senza dirla, sara buona.
   
   3.
   Come male buona notte ci suona
   Con sospiri e parole interrotte!--                                   _10
   Il modo di aver la notte buona
   E mai non di dir la buona notte.
   
   NOTES:
   _2 sara]sia 1834.
   _4 buona]bene 1834.
   _9 Come]Quanto 1834.
   
   ***
   
   
   ORPHEUS.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862; revised and
   enlarged by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   A:
   Not far from hence. From yonder pointed hill,
   Crowned with a ring of oaks, you may behold
   A dark and barren field, through which there flows,
   Sluggish and black, a deep but narrow stream,
   Which the wind ripples not, and the fair moon                        _5
   Gazes in vain, and finds no mirror there.
   Follow the herbless banks of that strange brook
   Until you pause beside a darksome pond,
   The fountain of this rivulet, whose gush
   Cannot be seen, hid by a rayless night                               _10
   That lives beneath the overhanging rock
   That shades the pool--an endless spring of gloom,
   Upon whose edge hovers the tender light,
   Trembling to mingle with its paramour,--
   But, as Syrinx fled Pan, so night flies day,                         _15
   Or, with most sullen and regardless hate,
   Refuses stern her heaven-born embrace.
   On one side of this jagged and shapeless hill
   There is a cave, from which there eddies up
   A pale mist, like aereal gossamer,                                   _20
   Whose breath destroys all life--awhile it veils
   The rock--then, scattered by the wind, it flies
   Along the stream, or lingers on the clefts,
   Killing the sleepy worms, if aught bide there.
   Upon the beetling edge of that dark rock                             _25
   There stands a group of cypresses; not such
   As, with a graceful spire and stirring life,
   Pierce the pure heaven of your native vale,
   Whose branches the air plays among, but not
   Disturbs, fearing to spoil their solemn grace;                       _30
   But blasted and all wearily they stand,
   One to another clinging; their weak boughs
   Sigh as the wind buffets them, and they shake
   Beneath its blasts--a weatherbeaten crew!
   
   CHORUS:
   What wondrous sound is that, mournful and faint,                     _35
   But more melodious than the murmuring wind
   Which through the columns of a temple glides?
   
   A:
   It is the wandering voice of Orpheus' lyre,
   Borne by the winds, who sigh that their rude king
   Hurries them fast from these air-feeding notes;                      _40
   But in their speed they bear along with them
   The waning sound, scattering it like dew
   Upon the startled sense.
   
   CHORUS:
   Does he still sing?
   Methought he rashly cast away his harp
   When he had lost Eurydice.
   
   A:
   Ah, no!                                                              _45
   Awhile he paused. As a poor hunted stag
   A moment shudders on the fearful brink
   Of a swift stream--the cruel hounds press on
   With deafening yell, the arrows glance and wound,--
   He plunges in: so Orpheus, seized and torn                           _50
   By the sharp fangs of an insatiate grief,
   Maenad-like waved his lyre in the bright air,
   And wildly shrieked 'Where she is, it is dark!'
   And then he struck from forth the strings a sound
   Of deep and fearful melody. Alas!                                    _55
   In times long past, when fair Eurydice
   With her bright eyes sat listening by his side,
   He gently sang of high and heavenly themes.
   As in a brook, fretted with little waves
   By the light airs of spring--each riplet makes                       _60
   A many-sided mirror for the sun,
   While it flows musically through green banks,
   Ceaseless and pauseless, ever clear and fresh,
   So flowed his song, reflecting the deep joy
   And tender love that fed those sweetest notes,                       _65
   The heavenly offspring of ambrosial food.
   But that is past. Returning from drear Hell,
   He chose a lonely seat of unhewn stone,
   Blackened with lichens, on a herbless plain.
   Then from the deep and overflowing spring                            _70
   Of his eternal ever-moving grief
   There rose to Heaven a sound of angry song.
   'Tis as a mighty cataract that parts
   Two sister rocks with waters swift and strong,                       _75
   And casts itself with horrid roar and din
   Adown a steep; from a perennial source
   It ever flows and falls, and breaks the air
   With loud and fierce, but most harmonious roar,
   And as it falls casts up a vaporous spray
   Which the sun clothes in hues of Iris light.                         _80
   Thus the tempestuous torrent of his grief
   Is clothed in sweetest sounds and varying words
   Of poesy. Unlike all human works,
   It never slackens, and through every change
   Wisdom and beauty and the power divine                               _85
   Of mighty poesy together dwell,
   Mingling in sweet accord. As I have seen
   A fierce south blast tear through the darkened sky,
   Driving along a rack of winged clouds,
   Which may not pause, but ever hurry on,                              _90
   As their wild shepherd wills them, while the stars,
   Twinkling and dim, peep from between the plumes.
   Anon the sky is cleared, and the high dome
   Of serene Heaven, starred with fiery flowers,
   Shuts in the shaken earth; or the still moon                         _95
   Swiftly, yet gracefully, begins her walk,
   Rising all bright behind the eastern hills.
   I talk of moon, and wind, and stars, and not
   Of song; but, would I echo his high song,
   Nature must lend me words ne'er used before,                         _100
   Or I must borrow from her perfect works,
   To picture forth his perfect attributes.
   He does no longer sit upon his throne
   Of rock upon a desert herbless plain,
   For the evergreen and knotted ilexes,                                _105
   And cypresses that seldom wave their boughs,
   And sea-green olives with their grateful fruit,
   And elms dragging along the twisted vines,
   Which drop their berries as they follow fast,
   And blackthorn bushes with their infant race                         _110
   Of blushing rose-blooms; beeches, to lovers dear,
   And weeping willow trees; all swift or slow,
   As their huge boughs or lighter dress permit,
   Have circled in his throne, and Earth herself
   Has sent from her maternal breast a growth                           _115
   Of starlike flowers and herbs of odour sweet,
   To pave the temple that his poesy
   Has framed, while near his feet grim lions couch,
   And kids, fearless from love, creep near his lair.
   Even the blind worms seem to feel the sound.                         _120
   The birds are silent, hanging down their heads,
   Perched on the lowest branches of the trees;
   Not even the nightingale intrudes a note
   In rivalry, but all entranced she listens.
   
   NOTES:
   _16, _17, _24 1870 only.
   _45-_55 Ah, no!... melody 1870 only.
   _66 1870 only.
   _112 trees 1870; too 1862.
   _113 huge 1870; long 1862.
   _116 starlike 1870; starry 1862. odour 1862; odours 1870.
   
   ***
   
   
   FIORDISPINA.
   
   [Published in part (lines 11-30) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems",
   1824; in full (from the Boscombe manuscript) by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of
   Shelley", 1862.]
   
   The season was the childhood of sweet June,
   Whose sunny hours from morning until noon
   Went creeping through the day with silent feet,
   Each with its load of pleasure; slow yet sweet;
   Like the long years of blest Eternity                                _5
   Never to be developed. Joy to thee,
   Fiordispina and thy Cosimo,
   For thou the wonders of the depth canst know
   Of this unfathomable flood of hours,
   Sparkling beneath the heaven which embowers--                        _10
   
   ...
   
   They were two cousins, almost like to twins,
   Except that from the catalogue of sins
   Nature had rased their love--which could not be
   But by dissevering their nativity.
   And so they grew together like two flowers                           _15
   Upon one stem, which the same beams and showers
   Lull or awaken in their purple prime,
   Which the same hand will gather--the same clime
   Shake with decay. This fair day smiles to see
   All those who love--and who e'er loved like thee,                    _20
   Fiordispina? Scarcely Cosimo,
   Within whose bosom and whose brain now glow
   The ardours of a vision which obscure
   The very idol of its portraiture.
   He faints, dissolved into a sea of love;                             _25
   But thou art as a planet sphered above;
   But thou art Love itself--ruling the motion
   Of his subjected spirit: such emotion
   Must end in sin and sorrow, if sweet May
   Had not brought forth this morn--your wedding-day.                   _30
   
   ...
   
   'Lie there; sleep awhile in your own dew,
   Ye faint-eyed children of the ... Hours,'
   Fiordispina said, and threw the flowers
   Which she had from the breathing--
   
   ...
   
   A table near of polished porphyry.                                   _35
   They seemed to wear a beauty from the eye
   That looked on them--a fragrance from the touch
   Whose warmth ... checked their life; a light such
   As sleepers wear, lulled by the voice they love, which did reprove   _40
   The childish pity that she felt for them,
   And a ... remorse that from their stem
   She had divided such fair shapes ... made
   A feeling in the ... which was a shade
   Of gentle beauty on the flowers: there lay                           _45
   All gems that make the earth's dark bosom gay.
   ... rods of myrtle-buds and lemon-blooms,
   And that leaf tinted lightly which assumes
   The livery of unremembered snow--
   Violets whose eyes have drunk--                                      _50
   
   ...
   
   Fiordispina and her nurse are now
   Upon the steps of the high portico,
   Under the withered arm of Media
   She flings her glowing arm
   
   ...
   
   ... step by step and stair by stair,                                 _55
   That withered woman, gray and white and brown--
   More like a trunk by lichens overgrown
   Than anything which once could have been human.
   And ever as she goes the palsied woman
   
   ...
   
   'How slow and painfully you seem to walk,                            _60
   Poor Media! you tire yourself with talk.'
   'And well it may,
   Fiordispina, dearest--well-a-day!
   You are hastening to a marriage-bed;
   I to the grave!'--'And if my love were dead,                         _65
   Unless my heart deceives me, I would lie
   Beside him in my shroud as willingly
   As now in the gay night-dress Lilla wrought.'
   'Fie, child! Let that unseasonable thought
   Not be remembered till it snows in June;                             _70
   Such fancies are a music out of tune
   With the sweet dance your heart must keep to-night.
   What! would you take all beauty and delight
   Back to the Paradise from which you sprung,
   And leave to grosser mortals?--                                      _75
   And say, sweet lamb, would you not learn the sweet
   And subtle mystery by which spirits meet?
   Who knows whether the loving game is played,
   When, once of mortal [vesture] disarrayed,
   The naked soul goes wandering here and there                         _80
   Through the wide deserts of Elysian air?
   The violet dies not till it'--
   
   NOTES:
   _11 to 1824; two editions 1839.
   _20 e'er 1862; ever editions 1824, 1839.
   _25 sea edition 1862; sense editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TIME LONG PAST.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.
   This is one of three poems (cf. "Love's Philosophy" and "Good-Night")
   transcribed by Shelley in a copy of Leigh Hunt's "Literary Pocket-Book"
   for 1819 presented by him to Miss Sophia Stacey, December 29, 1820.]
   
   1.
   Like the ghost of a dear friend dead
   Is Time long past.
   A tone which is now forever fled,
   A hope which is now forever past,
   A love so sweet it could not last,                                   _5
   Was Time long past.
   
   2.
   There were sweet dreams in the night
   Of Time long past:
   And, was it sadness or delight,
   Each day a shadow onward cast                                        _10
   Which made us wish it yet might last--
   That Time long past.
   
   3.
   There is regret, almost remorse,
   For Time long past.
   'Tis like a child's beloved corse                                    _15
   A father watches, till at last
   Beauty is like remembrance, cast
   From Time long past.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: THE DESERTS OF DIM SLEEP.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   I went into the deserts of dim sleep--
   That world which, like an unknown wilderness,
   Bounds this with its recesses wide and deep--
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'THE VIEWLESS AND INVISIBLE CONSEQUENCE'.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   The viewless and invisible Consequence
   Watches thy goings-out, and comings-in,
   And...hovers o'er thy guilty sleep,
   Unveiling every new-born deed, and thoughts
   More ghastly than those deeds--                                      _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: A SERPENT-FACE.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   His face was like a snake's--wrinkled and loose
   And withered--
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: DEATH IN LIFE.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   My head is heavy, my limbs are weary,
   And it is not life that makes me move.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'SUCH HOPE, AS IS THE SICK DESPAIR OF GOOD'.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Such hope, as is the sick despair of good,
   Such fear, as is the certainty of ill,
   Such doubt, as is pale Expectation's food
   Turned while she tastes to poison, when the will
   Is powerless, and the spirit...                                      _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'ALAS! THIS IS NOT WHAT I THOUGHT LIFE WAS'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. This
   fragment is joined by Forman with that immediately preceding.]
   
   Alas! this is not what I thought life was.
   I knew that there were crimes and evil men,
   Misery and hate; nor did I hope to pass
   Untouched by suffering, through the rugged glen.
   In mine own heart I saw as in a glass                                _5
   The hearts of others ... And when
   I went among my kind, with triple brass
   Of calm endurance my weak breast I armed,
   To bear scorn, fear, and hate, a woful mass!
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: MILTON'S SPIRIT.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   I dreamed that Milton's spirit rose, and took
   From life's green tree his Uranian lute;
   And from his touch sweet thunder flowed, and shook
   All human things built in contempt of man,--
   And sanguine thrones and impious altars quaked,                      _5
   Prisons and citadels...
   
   NOTE:
   _2 lute Uranian cj. A.C. Bradley.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'UNRISEN SPLENDOUR OF THE BRIGHTEST SUN'.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Unrisen splendour of the brightest sun,
   To rise upon our darkness, if the star
   Now beckoning thee out of thy misty throne
   Could thaw the clouds which wage an obscure war
   With thy young brightness!                                           _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: PATER OMNIPOTENS.
   
   [Edited from manuscript Shelley E 4 in the Bodleian Library, and
   published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination" etc., Oxford, Clarendon
   Press, 1903. Here placed conjecturally amongst the compositions of
   1820, but of uncertain date, and belonging possibly to 1819 or a still
   earlier year.]
   
   Serene in his unconquerable might
   Endued[,] the Almighty King, his steadfast throne
   Encompassed unapproachably with power
   And darkness and deep solitude an awe
   Stood like a black cloud on some aery cliff                          _5
   Embosoming its lightning--in his sight
   Unnumbered glorious spirits trembling stood
   Like slaves before their Lord--prostrate around
   Heaven's multitudes hymned everlasting praise.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: TO THE MIND OF MAN.
   
   [Edited, published and here placed as the preceding.]
   
   Thou living light that in thy rainbow hues
   Clothest this naked world; and over Sea
   And Earth and air, and all the shapes that be
   In peopled darkness of this wondrous world
   The Spirit of thy glory dost diffuse                                 _5
   ... truth ... thou Vital Flame
   Mysterious thought that in this mortal frame
   Of things, with unextinguished lustre burnest
   Now pale and faint now high to Heaven upcurled
   That eer as thou dost languish still returnest                       _10
   And ever
   Before the ... before the Pyramids
   
   So soon as from the Earth formless and rude
   One living step had chased drear Solitude
   Thou wert, Thought; thy brightness charmed the lids                  _15
   Of the vast snake Eternity, who kept
   The tree of good and evil.--
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1820, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   We spent the latter part of the year 1819 in Florence, where Shelley
   passed several hours daily in the Gallery, and made various notes on
   its ancient works of art. His thoughts were a good deal taken up also
   by the project of a steamboat, undertaken by a friend, an engineer, to
   ply between Leghorn and Marseilles, for which he supplied a sum of
   money. This was a sort of plan to delight Shelley, and he was greatly
   disappointed when it was thrown aside.
   
   There was something in Florence that disagreed excessively with his
   health, and he suffered far more pain than usual; so much so that we
   left it sooner than we intended, and removed to Pisa, where we had some
   friends, and, above all, where we could consult the celebrated Vacca as
   to the cause of Shelley's sufferings. He, like every other medical man,
   could only guess at that, and gave little hope of immediate relief; he
   enjoined him to abstain from all physicians and medicine, and to leave
   his complaint to Nature. As he had vainly consulted medical men of the
   highest repute in England, he was easily persuaded to adopt this
   advice. Pain and ill-health followed him to the end; but the residence
   at Pisa agreed with him better than any other, and there in consequence
   we remained.
   
   In the Spring we spent a week or two near Leghorn, borrowing the house
   of some friends who were absent on a journey to England. It was on a
   beautiful summer evening, while wandering among the lanes whose
   myrtle-hedges were the bowers of the fire-flies, that we heard the
   carolling of the skylark which inspired one of the most beautiful of
   his poems. He addressed the letter to Mrs. Gisborne from this house,
   which was hers: he had made his study of the workshop of her son, who
   was an engineer. Mrs. Gisborne had been a friend of my father in her
   younger days. She was a lady of great accomplishments, and charming
   from her frank and affectionate nature. She had the most intense love
   of knowledge, a delicate and trembling sensibility, and preserved
   freshness of mind after a life of considerable adversity. As a
   favourite friend of my father, we had sought her with eagerness; and
   the most open and cordial friendship was established between us.
   
   Our stay at the Baths of San Giuliano was shortened by an accident. At
   the foot of our garden ran the canal that communicated between the
   Serchio and the Arno. The Serchio overflowed its banks, and, breaking
   its bounds, this canal also overflowed; all this part of the country is
   below the level of its rivers, and the consequence was that it was
   speedily flooded. The rising waters filled the Square of the Baths, in
   the lower part of which our house was situated. The canal overflowed in
   the garden behind; the rising waters on either side at last burst open
   the doors, and, meeting in the house, rose to the height of six feet.
   It was a picturesque sight at night to see the peasants driving the
   cattle from the plains below to the hills above the Baths. A fire was
   kept up to guide them across the ford; and the forms of the men and the
   animals showed in dark relief against the red glare of the flame, which
   was reflected again in the waters that filled the Square.
   
   We then removed to Pisa, and took up our abode there for the winter.
   The extreme mildness of the climate suited Shelley, and his solitude
   was enlivened by an intercourse with several intimate friends. Chance
   cast us strangely enough on this quiet half-unpeopled town; but its
   very peace suited Shelley. Its river, the near mountains, and not
   distant sea, added to its attractions, and were the objects of many
   delightful excursions. We feared the south of Italy, and a hotter
   climate, on account of our child; our former bereavement inspiring us
   with terror. We seemed to take root here, and moved little afterwards;
   often, indeed, entertaining projects for visiting other parts of Italy,
   but still delaying. But for our fears on account of our child, I
   believe we should have wandered over the world, both being passionately
   fond of travelling. But human life, besides its great unalterable
   necessities, is ruled by a thousand lilliputian ties that shackle at
   the time, although it is difficult to account afterwards for their
   influence over our destiny.
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1821.
   
   
   DIRGE FOR THE YEAR.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and dated
   January 1, 1821.]
   
   1.
   Orphan Hours, the Year is dead,
   Come and sigh, come and weep!
   Merry Hours, smile instead,
   For the Year is but asleep.
   See, it smiles as it is sleeping,                                    _5
   Mocking your untimely weeping.
   
   2.
   As an earthquake rocks a corse
   In its coffin in the clay,
   So White Winter, that rough nurse,
   Rocks the death-cold Year to-day;                                    _10
   Solemn Hours! wail aloud
   For your mother in her shroud.
   
   3.
   As the wild air stirs and sways
   The tree-swung cradle of a child,
   So the breath of these rude days                                     _15
   Rocks the Year:--be calm and mild,
   Trembling Hours, she will arise
   With new love within her eyes.
   
   4.
   January gray is here,
   Like a sexton by her grave;                                          _20
   February bears the bier,
   March with grief doth howl and rave,
   And April weeps--but, O ye Hours!
   Follow with May's fairest flowers.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO NIGHT.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   There is a transcript in the Harvard manuscript book.]
   
   1.
   Swiftly walk o'er the western wave,
   Spirit of Night!
   Out of the misty eastern cave,
   Where, all the long and lone daylight,
   Thou wovest dreams of joy and fear,                                  _5
   'Which make thee terrible and dear,--
   Swift be thy flight!
   
   2.
   Wrap thy form in a mantle gray,
   Star-inwrought!
   Blind with thine hair the eyes of Day;                               _10
   Kiss her until she be wearied out,
   Then wander o'er city, and sea, and land,
   Touching all with thine opiate wand--
   Come, long-sought!
   
   3.
   When I arose and saw the dawn,                                       _15
   I sighed for thee;
   When light rode high, and the dew was gone,
   And noon lay heavy on flower and tree,
   And the weary Day turned to his rest,
   Lingering like an unloved guest, I sighed for thee.                  _20
   
   4.
   Thy brother Death came, and cried,
   Wouldst thou me?
   Thy sweet child Sleep, the filmy-eyed,
   Murmured like a noontide bee,                                        _25
   Shall I nestle near thy side?
   Wouldst thou me?--And I replied,
   No, not thee!
   
   5.
   Death will come when thou art dead,
   Soon, too soon--                                                     _30
   Sleep will come when thou art fled;
   Of neither would I ask the boon
   I ask of thee, beloved Night--
   Swift be thine approaching flight,
   Come soon, soon!                                                     _35
   
   NOTE:
   _1 o'er Harvard manuscript; over editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TIME.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   Unfathomable Sea! whose waves are years,
   Ocean of Time, whose waters of deep woe
   Are brackish with the salt of human tears!
   Thou shoreless flood, which in thy ebb and flow
   Claspest the limits of mortality,                                    _5
   And sick of prey, yet howling on for more,
   Vomitest thy wrecks on its inhospitable shore;
   Treacherous in calm, and terrible in storm,
   Who shall put forth on thee,
   Unfathomable Sea?                                                    _10
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   Far, far away, O ye
   Halcyons of Memory,
   Seek some far calmer nest
   Than this abandoned breast!
   No news of your false spring                                         _5
   To my heart's winter bring,
   Once having gone, in vain
   Ye come again.
   
   2.
   Vultures, who build your bowers
   High in the Future's towers,                                         _10
   Withered hopes on hopes are spread!
   Dying joys, choked by the dead,
   Will serve your beaks for prey
   Many a day.
   
   ***
   
   
   FROM THE ARABIC: AN IMITATION.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is an
   intermediate draft amongst the Bodleian manuscripts. See Locock,
   "Examination", etc., 1903, page 13.]
   
   1.
   My faint spirit was sitting in the light
   Of thy looks, my love;
   It panted for thee like the hind at noon
   For the brooks, my love.
   Thy barb whose hoofs outspeed the tempest's flight                   _5
   Bore thee far from me;
   My heart, for my weak feet were weary soon,
   Did companion thee.
   
   2.
   Ah! fleeter far than fleetest storm or steed
   Or the death they bear,                                              _10
   The heart which tender thought clothes like a dove
   With the wings of care;
   In the battle, in the darkness, in the need,
   Shall mine cling to thee,
   Nor claim one smile for all the comfort, love,                       _15
   It may bring to thee.
   
   NOTES:
   _3 hoofs]feet B.
   _7 were]grew B.
   _9 Ah!]O B.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO EMILIA VIVIANI.
   
   [Published, (1) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824; (2, 1) by
   Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862; (2, 2 and 3) by H. Buxton
   Forman, "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1876.]
   
   1.
   Madonna, wherefore hast thou sent to me
   Sweet-basil and mignonette?
   Embleming love and health, which never yet
   In the same wreath might be.
   Alas, and they are wet!                                              _5
   Is it with thy kisses or thy tears?
   For never rain or dew
   Such fragrance drew
   From plant or flower--the very doubt endears
   My sadness ever new,                                                 _10
   The sighs I breathe, the tears I shed for thee.
   
   2.
   Send the stars light, but send not love to me,
   In whom love ever made
   Health like a heap of embers soon to fade--
   
   ***
   
   
   THE FUGITIVES.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems". 1824.]
   
   1.
   The waters are flashing,
   The white hail is dashing,
   The lightnings are glancing,
   The hoar-spray is dancing--
   Away!                                                                _5
   
   The whirlwind is rolling,
   The thunder is tolling,
   The forest is swinging,
   The minster bells ringing--
   Come away!                                                           _10
   
   The Earth is like Ocean,
   Wreck-strewn and in motion:
   Bird, beast, man and worm
   Have crept out of the storm--
   Come away!                                                           _15
   
   2.
   'Our boat has one sail
   And the helmsman is pale;--
   A bold pilot I trow,
   Who should follow us now,'--
   Shouted he--                                                         _20
   
   And she cried: 'Ply the oar!
   Put off gaily from shore!'--
   As she spoke, bolts of death
   Mixed with hail, specked their path
   O'er the sea.                                                        _25
   
   And from isle, tower and rock,
   The blue beacon-cloud broke,
   And though dumb in the blast,
   The red cannon flashed fast
   From the lee.                                                        _30
   
   3.
   And 'Fear'st thou?' and 'Fear'st thou?'
   And Seest thou?' and 'Hear'st thou?'
   And 'Drive we not free
   O'er the terrible sea,
   I and thou?'                                                         _35
   
   One boat-cloak did cover
   The loved and the lover--
   Their blood beats one measure,
   They murmur proud pleasure
   Soft and low;--                                                      _40
   
   While around the lashed Ocean,
   Like mountains in motion,
   Is withdrawn and uplifted,
   Sunk, shattered and shifted
   To and fro.                                                          _45
   
   4.
   In the court of the fortress
   Beside the pale portress,
   Like a bloodhound well beaten
   The bridegroom stands, eaten
   By shame;                                                            _50
   
   On the topmost watch-turret,
   As a death-boding spirit
   Stands the gray tyrant father,
   To his voice the mad weather
   Seems tame;                                                          _55
   
   And with curses as wild
   As e'er clung to child,
   He devotes to the blast,
   The best, loveliest and last
   Of his name!                                                         _60
   
   NOTES:
   _28 And though]Though editions 1839.
   _57 clung]cling editions 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO --.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   Music, when soft voices die,
   Vibrates in the memory--
   Odours, when sweet violets sicken,
   Live within the sense they quicken.
   
   Rose leaves, when the rose is dead,                                  _5
   Are heaped for the beloved's bed;
   And so thy thoughts, when thou art gone,
   Love itself shall slumber on.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONG.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   There is a transcript in the Harvard manuscript book.]
   
   1.
   Rarely, rarely, comest thou,
   Spirit of Delight!
   Wherefore hast thou left me now
   Many a day and night?
   Many a weary night and day                                           _5
   'Tis since thou art fled away.
   
   2.
   How shall ever one like me
   Win thee back again?
   With the joyous and the free
   Thou wilt scoff at pain.                                             _10
   Spirit false! thou hast forgot
   All but those who need thee not.
   
   3.
   As a lizard with the shade
   Of a trembling leaf,
   Thou with sorrow art dismayed;                                       _15
   Even the sighs of grief
   Reproach thee, that thou art not near,
   And reproach thou wilt not hear.
   
   4.
   Let me set my mournful ditty
   To a merry measure;                                                  _20
   Thou wilt never come for pity,
   Thou wilt come for pleasure;
   Pity then will cut away
   Those cruel wings, and thou wilt stay.
   
   5.
   I love all that thou lovest,                                         _25
   Spirit of Delight!
   The fresh Earth in new leaves dressed,
   And the starry night;
   Autumn evening, and the morn
   When the golden mists are born.                                      _30
   
   6.
   I love snow, and all the forms
   Of the radiant frost;
   I love waves, and winds, and storms,
   Everything almost
   Which is Nature's, and may be                                        _35
   Untainted by man's misery.
   
   7.
   I love tranquil solitude,
   And such society
   As is quiet, wise, and good
   Between thee and me                                                  _40
   What difference? but thou dost possess
   The things I seek, not love them less.
   
   8.
   I love Love--though he has wings,
   And like light can flee,
   But above all other things,                                          _45
   Spirit, I love thee--
   Thou art love and life! Oh, come,
   Make once more my heart thy home.
   
   ***
   
   
   MUTABILITY.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   There is a fair draft amongst the Boscombe manuscripts.]
   
   1.
   The flower that smiles to-day
   To-morrow dies;
   All that we wish to stay
   Tempts and then flies.
   What is this world's delight?                                        _5
   Lightning that mocks the night,
   Brief even as bright.
   
   2.
   Virtue, how frail it is!
   Friendship how rare!
   Love, how it sells poor bliss                                        _10
   For proud despair!
   But we, though soon they fall,
   Survive their joy, and all
   Which ours we call.
   
   3.
   Whilst skies are blue and bright,                                    _15
   Whilst flowers are gay,
   Whilst eyes that change ere night
   Make glad the day;
   Whilst yet the calm hours creep,
   Dream thou--and from thy sleep                                       _20
   Then wake to weep.
   
   NOTES:
   _9 how Boscombe manuscript; too editions 1824, 1839.
   _12 though soon they fall]though soon we or so soon they cj. Rossetti.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES WRITTEN ON HEARING THE NEWS OF THE DEATH OF NAPOLEON.
   
   [Published with "Hellas", 1821.]
   
   What! alive and so bold, O Earth?
   Art thou not overbold?
   What! leapest thou forth as of old
   In the light of thy morning mirth,
   The last of the flock of the starry fold?                            _5
   Ha! leapest thou forth as of old?
   Are not the limbs still when the ghost is fled,
   And canst thou move, Napoleon being dead?
   
   How! is not thy quick heart cold?
   What spark is alive on thy hearth?                                   _10
   How! is not HIS death-knell knolled?
   And livest THOU still, Mother Earth?
   Thou wert warming thy fingers old
   O'er the embers covered and cold
   Of that most fiery spirit, when it fled--                            _15
   What, Mother, do you laugh now he is dead?
   
   'Who has known me of old,' replied Earth,
   'Or who has my story told?
   It is thou who art overbold.'
   And the lightning of scorn laughed forth                             _20
   As she sung, 'To my bosom I fold
   All my sons when their knell is knolled,
   And so with living motion all are fed,
   And the quick spring like weeds out of the dead.
   
   'Still alive and still bold,' shouted Earth,                         _25
   'I grow bolder and still more bold.
   The dead fill me ten thousandfold
   Fuller of speed, and splendour, and mirth.
   I was cloudy, and sullen, and cold,
   Like a frozen chaos uprolled,                                        _30
   Till by the spirit of the mighty dead
   My heart grew warm. I feed on whom I fed.
   
   'Ay, alive and still bold.' muttered Earth,
   'Napoleon's fierce spirit rolled,
   In terror and blood and gold,                                        _35
   A torrent of ruin to death from his birth.
   Leave the millions who follow to mould
   The metal before it be cold;
   And weave into his shame, which like the dead
   Shrouds me, the hopes that from his glory fled.'                     _40
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET: POLITICAL GREATNESS.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. There is a
   transcript, headed "Sonnet to the Republic of Benevento", in the
   Harvard manuscript book.]
   
   Nor happiness, nor majesty, nor fame,
   Nor peace, nor strength, nor skill in arms or arts,
   Shepherd those herds whom tyranny makes tame;
   Verse echoes not one beating of their hearts,
   History is but the shadow of their shame,                            _5
   Art veils her glass, or from the pageant starts
   As to oblivion their blind millions fleet,
   Staining that Heaven with obscene imagery
   Of their own likeness. What are numbers knit
   By force or custom? Man who man would be,                            _10
   Must rule the empire of himself; in it
   Must be supreme, establishing his throne
   On vanquished will, quelling the anarchy
   Of hopes and fears, being himself alone.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE AZIOLA.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley in "The Keepsake", 1829.]
   
   1.
   'Do you not hear the Aziola cry?
   Methinks she must be nigh,'
   Said Mary, as we sate
   In dusk, ere stars were lit, or candles brought;
   And I, who thought                                                   _5
   This Aziola was some tedious woman,
   Asked, 'Who is Aziola?' How elate
   I felt to know that it was nothing human,
   No mockery of myself to fear or hate:
   And Mary saw my soul,                                                _10
   And laughed, and said, 'Disquiet yourself not;
   'Tis nothing but a little downy owl.'
   
   2.
   Sad Aziola! many an eventide
   Thy music I had heard
   By wood and stream, meadow and mountain-side,                        _15
   And fields and marshes wide,--
   Such as nor voice, nor lute, nor wind, nor bird,
   The soul ever stirred;
   Unlike and far sweeter than them all.
   Sad Aziola! from that moment I                                       _20
   Loved thee and thy sad cry.
   
   NOTES:
   _4 ere stars]ere the stars editions 1839.
   _9 or]and editions 1839.
   _19 them]they editions 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   A LAMENT.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   O world! O life! O time!
   On whose last steps I climb,
   Trembling at that where I had stood before;
   When will return the glory of your prime?
   No more--Oh, never more!                                             _5
   
   2.
   Out of the day and night
   A joy has taken flight;
   Fresh spring, and summer, and winter hoar,
   Move my faint heart with grief, but with delight
   No more--Oh, never more!                                             _10
   
   ***
   
   
   REMEMBRANCE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, where it is
   entitled "A Lament". Three manuscript copies are extant: The Trelawny
   manuscript ("Remembrance"), the Harvard manuscript ("Song") and the
   Houghton manuscript--the last written by Shelley on a flyleaf of a copy
   of "Adonais".]
   
   1.
   Swifter far than summer's flight--
   Swifter far than youth's delight--
   Swifter far than happy night,
   Art thou come and gone--
   As the earth when leaves are dead,                                   _5
   As the night when sleep is sped,
   As the heart when joy is fled,
   I am left lone, alone.
   
   2.
   The swallow summer comes again--
   The owlet night resumes her reign--                                  _10
   But the wild-swan youth is fain
   To fly with thee, false as thou.--
   My heart each day desires the morrow;
   Sleep itself is turned to sorrow;
   Vainly would my winter borrow                                        _15
   Sunny leaves from any bough.
   
   3.
   Lilies for a bridal bed--
   Roses for a matron's head--
   Violets for a maiden dead--
   Pansies let MY flowers be:                                           _20
   On the living grave I bear
   Scatter them without a tear--
   Let no friend, however dear,
   Waste one hope, one fear for me.
   
   NOTES:
   _5-_7 So editions 1824, 1839, Trelawny manuscript, Harvard manuscript;
       As the wood when leaves are shed,
       As the night when sleep is fled,
       As the heart when joy is dead Houghton manuscript.
   _13 So editions 1824, 1839, Harvard manuscript, Houghton manuscript.
       My heart to-day desires to-morrow Trelawny manuscript.
   _20 So editions 1824, 1839, Harvard manuscript, Houghton manuscript.
       Sadder flowers find for me Trelawny manuscript.
   _24 one hope, one fear]a hope, a fear Trelawny manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO EDWARD WILLIAMS.
   
   [Published in Ascham's edition of the "Poems", 1834.
   There is a copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]
   
   1.
   The serpent is shut out from Paradise.
   The wounded deer must seek the herb no more
   In which its heart-cure lies:
   The widowed dove must cease to haunt a bower
   Like that from which its mate with feigned sighs                     _5
   Fled in the April hour.
   I too must seldom seek again
   Near happy friends a mitigated pain.
   
   2.
   Of hatred I am proud,--with scorn content;
   Indifference, that once hurt me, now is grown                        _10
   Itself indifferent;
   But, not to speak of love, pity alone
   Can break a spirit already more than bent.
   The miserable one
   Turns the mind's poison into food,--                                 _15
   Its medicine is tears,--its evil good.
   
   3.
   Therefore, if now I see you seldomer,
   Dear friends, dear FRIEND! know that I only fly
   Your looks, because they stir
   Griefs that should sleep, and hopes that cannot die:                 _20
   The very comfort that they minister
   I scarce can bear, yet I,
   So deeply is the arrow gone,
   Should quickly perish if it were withdrawn.
   
   4.
   When I return to my cold home, you ask                               _25
   Why I am not as I have ever been.
   YOU spoil me for the task
   Of acting a forced part in life's dull scene,--
   Of wearing on my brow the idle mask
   Of author, great or mean,                                            _30
   In the world's carnival. I sought
   Peace thus, and but in you I found it not.
   
   5.
   Full half an hour, to-day, I tried my lot
   With various flowers, and every one still said,
   'She loves me--loves me not.'                                        _35
   And if this meant a vision long since fled--
   If it meant fortune, fame, or peace of thought--
   If it meant,--but I dread
   To speak what you may know too well:
   Still there was truth in the sad oracle.                             _40
   
   6.
   The crane o'er seas and forests seeks her home;
   No bird so wild but has its quiet nest,
   When it no more would roam;
   The sleepless billows on the ocean's breast
   Break like a bursting heart, and die in foam,                        _45
   And thus at length find rest:
   Doubtless there is a place of peace
   Where MY weak heart and all its throbs will cease.
   
   7.
   I asked her, yesterday, if she believed
   That I had resolution. One who HAD                                   _50
   Would ne'er have thus relieved
   His heart with words,--but what his judgement bade
   Would do, and leave the scorner unrelieved.
   These verses are too sad
   To send to you, but that I know,                                     _55
   Happy yourself, you feel another's woe.
   
   NOTES:
   _10 Indifference, which once hurt me, is now grown Trelawny manuscript.
   _18 Dear friends, dear friend Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
       Dear gentle friend 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
   _26 ever]lately Trelawny manuscript.
   _28 in Trelawny manuscript; on 1834, editions 1839,
   _43 When 1839, 2nd edition; Whence 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
   _48 will 1839, 2nd edition; shall 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
   _53 unrelieved Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd. edition;
       unreprieved 1834, 1839, 1st edition.
   _54 are]were Trelawny manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO --.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   One word is too often profaned
   For me to profane it,
   One feeling too falsely disdained
   For thee to disdain it;
   One hope is too like despair                                         _5
   For prudence to smother,
   And pity from thee more dear
   Than that from another.
   
   2.
   I can give not what men call love,
   But wilt thou accept not                                             _10
   The worship the heart lifts above
   And the Heavens reject not,--
   The desire of the moth for the star,
   Of the night for the morrow,
   The devotion to something afar                                       _15
   From the sphere of our sorrow?
   
   ***
   
   
   TO --.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   There is a Boscombe manuscript.]
   
   1.
   When passion's trance is overpast,
   If tenderness and truth could last,
   Or live, whilst all wild feelings keep
   Some mortal slumber, dark and deep,
   I should not weep, I should not weep!                                _5
   
   2.
   It were enough to feel, to see,
   Thy soft eyes gazing tenderly,
   And dream the rest--and burn and be
   The secret food of fires unseen,
   Couldst thou but be as thou hast been,                               _10
   
   3.
   After the slumber of the year
   The woodland violets reappear;
   All things revive in field or grove,
   And sky and sea, but two, which move
   And form all others, life and love.                                  _15
   
   NOTE:
   _15 form Boscombe manuscript; for editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   A BRIDAL SONG.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   The golden gates of Sleep unbar
   Where Strength and Beauty, met together,
   Kindle their image like a star
   In a sea of glassy weather!
   Night, with all thy stars look down,--                               _5
   Darkness, weep thy holiest dew,--
   Never smiled the inconstant moon
   On a pair so true.
   Let eyes not see their own delight;--
   Haste, swift Hour, and thy flight                                    _10
   Oft renew.
   
   2.
   Fairies, sprites, and angels, keep her!
   Holy stars, permit no wrong!
   And return to wake the sleeper,
   Dawn,--ere it be long!                                               _15
   O joy! O fear! what will be done
   In the absence of the sun!
   Come along!
   
   ***
   
   
   EPITHALAMIUM.
   
   ANOTHER VERSION OF THE PRECEDING.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847.]
   
   Night, with all thine eyes look down!
   Darkness shed its holiest dew!
   When ever smiled the inconstant moon
   On a pair so true?
   Hence, coy hour! and quench thy light,                               _5
   Lest eyes see their own delight!
   Hence, swift hour! and thy loved flight
   Oft renew.
   
   BOYS:
   O joy! O fear! what may be done
   In the absence of the sun?                                           _10
   Come along!
   The golden gates of sleep unbar!
   When strength and beauty meet together,
   Kindles their image like a star
   In a sea of glassy weather.                                          _15
   Hence, coy hour! and quench thy light,
   Lest eyes see their own delight!
   Hence, swift hour! and thy loved flight
   Oft renew.
   
   GIRLS:
   O joy! O fear! what may be done                                      _20
   In the absence of the sun?
   Come along!
   Fairies! sprites! and angels, keep her!
   Holiest powers, permit no wrong!
   And return, to wake the sleeper,                                     _25
   Dawn, ere it be long.
   Hence, swift hour! and quench thy light,
   Lest eyes see their own delight!
   Hence, coy hour! and thy loved flight
   Oft renew.                                                           _30
   
   BOYS AND GIRLS:
   O joy! O fear! what will be done
   In the absence of the sun?
   Come along!
   
   NOTE:
   _17 Lest]Let 1847.
   
   ***
   
   
   ANOTHER VERSION OF THE SAME.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870,
   from the Trelawny manuscript of Edward Williams's play, "The Promise:
   or, A Year, a Month, and a Day".]
   
   BOYS SING:
   Night! with all thine eyes look down!
   Darkness! weep thy holiest dew!
   Never smiled the inconstant moon
   On a pair so true.
   Haste, coy hour! and quench all light,                               _5
   Lest eyes see their own delight!
   Haste, swift hour! and thy loved flight
   Oft renew!
   
   GIRLS SING:
   Fairies, sprites, and angels, keep her!
   Holy stars! permit no wrong!                                         _10
   And return, to wake the sleeper,
   Dawn, ere it be long!
   O joy! O fear! there is not one
   Of us can guess what may be done
   In the absence of the sun:--                                         _15
   Come along!
   
   BOYS:
   Oh! linger long, thou envious eastern lamp
   In the damp
   Caves of the deep!
   
   GIRLS:
   Nay, return, Vesper! urge thy lazy car!                              _20
   Swift unbar
   The gates of Sleep!
   
   CHORUS:
   The golden gate of Sleep unbar,
   When Strength and Beauty, met together,
   Kindle their image, like a star                                      _25
   In a sea of glassy weather.
   May the purple mist of love
   Round them rise, and with them move,
   Nourishing each tender gem
   Which, like flowers, will burst from them.                           _30
   As the fruit is to the tree
   May their children ever be!
   
   ***
   
   
   LOVE, HOPE, DESIRE, AND FEAR.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862. 'A very free
   translation of Brunetto Latini's "Tesoretto", lines 81-154.'--A.C.
   Bradley.]
   
   ...
   
   And many there were hurt by that strong boy,
   His name, they said, was Pleasure,
   And near him stood, glorious beyond measure
   Four Ladies who possess all empery
   In earth and air and sea,                                            _5
   Nothing that lives from their award is free.
   Their names will I declare to thee,
   Love, Hope, Desire, and Fear,
   And they the regents are
   Of the four elements that frame the heart,                           _10
   And each diversely exercised her art
   By force or circumstance or sleight
   To prove her dreadful might
   Upon that poor domain.
   Desire presented her [false] glass, and then                         _15
   The spirit dwelling there
   Was spellbound to embrace what seemed so fair
   Within that magic mirror,
   And dazed by that bright error,
   It would have scorned the [shafts] of the avenger                    _20
   And death, and penitence, and danger,
   Had not then silent Fear
   Touched with her palsying spear,
   So that as if a frozen torrent
   The blood was curdled in its current;                                _25
   It dared not speak, even in look or motion,
   But chained within itself its proud devotion.
   Between Desire and Fear thou wert
   A wretched thing, poor heart!
   Sad was his life who bore thee in his breast,                        _30
   Wild bird for that weak nest.
   Till Love even from fierce Desire it bought,
   And from the very wound of tender thought
   Drew solace, and the pity of sweet eyes
   Gave strength to bear those gentle agonies,                          _35
   Surmount the loss, the terror, and the sorrow.
   Then Hope approached, she who can borrow
   For poor to-day, from rich tomorrow,
   And Fear withdrew, as night when day
   Descends upon the orient ray,                                        _40
   And after long and vain endurance
   The poor heart woke to her assurance.
   --At one birth these four were born
   With the world's forgotten morn,
   And from Pleasure still they hold                                    _45
   All it circles, as of old.
   When, as summer lures the swallow,
   Pleasure lures the heart to follow--
   O weak heart of little wit!
   The fair hand that wounded it,                                       _50
   Seeking, like a panting hare,
   Refuge in the lynx's lair,
   Love, Desire, Hope, and Fear,
   Ever will be near.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENTS WRITTEN FOR HELLAS.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   1.
   Fairest of the Destinies,
   Disarray thy dazzling eyes:
   Keener far thy lightnings are
   Than the winged [bolts] thou bearest,
   And the smile thou wearest                                           _5
   Wraps thee as a star
   Is wrapped in light.
   
   2.
   Could Arethuse to her forsaken urn
   From Alpheus and the bitter Doris run,
   Or could the morning shafts of purest light                          _10
   Again into the quivers of the Sun
   Be gathered--could one thought from its wild flight
   Return into the temple of the brain
   Without a change, without a stain,--
   Could aught that is, ever again                                      _15
   Be what it once has ceased to be,
   Greece might again be free!
   
   3.
   A star has fallen upon the earth
   Mid the benighted nations,
   A quenchless atom of immortal light,                                 _20
   A living spark of Night,
   A cresset shaken from the constellations.
   Swifter than the thunder fell
   To the heart of Earth, the well
   Where its pulses flow and beat,                                      _25
   And unextinct in that cold source
   Burns, and on ... course
   Guides the sphere which is its prison,
   Like an angelic spirit pent
   In a form of mortal birth,                                           _30
   Till, as a spirit half-arisen
   Shatters its charnel, it has rent,
   In the rapture of its mirth,
   The thin and painted garment of the Earth,
   Ruining its chaos--a fierce breath                                   _35
   Consuming all its forms of living death.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'I WOULD NOT BE A KING'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   I would not be a king--enough
   Of woe it is to love;
   The path to power is steep and rough,
   And tempests reign above.
   I would not climb the imperial throne;                               _5
   'Tis built on ice which fortune's sun
   Thaws in the height of noon.
   Then farewell, king, yet were I one,
   Care would not come so soon.
   Would he and I were far away                                         _10
   Keeping flocks on Himalay!
   
   ***
   
   
   GINEVRA.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824,
   and dated 'Pisa, 1821.']
   
   Wild, pale, and wonder-stricken, even as one
   Who staggers forth into the air and sun
   From the dark chamber of a mortal fever,
   Bewildered, and incapable, and ever
   Fancying strange comments in her dizzy brain                         _5
   Of usual shapes, till the familiar train
   Of objects and of persons passed like things
   Strange as a dreamer's mad imaginings,
   Ginevra from the nuptial altar went;
   The vows to which her lips had sworn assent                          _10
   Rung in her brain still with a jarring din,
   Deafening the lost intelligence within.
   
   And so she moved under the bridal veil,
   Which made the paleness of her cheek more pale,
   And deepened the faint crimson of her mouth,                         _15
   And darkened her dark locks, as moonlight doth,--
   And of the gold and jewels glittering there
   She scarce felt conscious,--but the weary glare
   Lay like a chaos of unwelcome light,
   Vexing the sense with gorgeous undelight,                            _20
   A moonbeam in the shadow of a cloud
   Was less heavenly fair--her face was bowed,
   And as she passed, the diamonds in her hair
   Were mirrored in the polished marble stair
   Which led from the cathedral to the street;                          _25
   And ever as she went her light fair feet
   Erased these images.
   
   The bride-maidens who round her thronging came,
   Some with a sense of self-rebuke and shame,
   Envying the unenviable; and others
   Making the joy which should have been another's                      _30
   Their own by gentle sympathy; and some
   Sighing to think of an unhappy home:
   Some few admiring what can ever lure
   Maidens to leave the heaven serene and pure
   Of parents' smiles for life's great cheat; a thing                   _35
   Bitter to taste, sweet in imagining.
   
   But they are all dispersed--and, lo! she stands
   Looking in idle grief on her white hands,
   Alone within the garden now her own;                                 _40
   And through the sunny air, with jangling tone,
   The music of the merry marriage-bells,
   Killing the azure silence, sinks and swells;--
   Absorbed like one within a dream who dreams
   That he is dreaming, until slumber seems                             _45
   A mockery of itself--when suddenly
   Antonio stood before her, pale as she.
   With agony, with sorrow, and with pride,
   He lifted his wan eyes upon the bride,
   And said--'Is this thy faith?' and then as one                       _50
   Whose sleeping face is stricken by the sun
   With light like a harsh voice, which bids him rise
   And look upon his day of life with eyes
   Which weep in vain that they can dream no more,
   Ginevra saw her lover, and forbore                                   _55
   To shriek or faint, and checked the stifling blood
   Rushing upon her heart, and unsubdued
   Said--'Friend, if earthly violence or ill,
   Suspicion, doubt, or the tyrannic will
   Of parents, chance or custom, time or change,                        _60
   Or circumstance, or terror, or revenge,
   Or wildered looks, or words, or evil speech,
   With all their stings and venom can impeach
   Our love,--we love not:--if the grave which hides
   The victim from the tyrant, and divides                              _65
   The cheek that whitens from the eyes that dart
   Imperious inquisition to the heart
   That is another's, could dissever ours,
   We love not.'--'What! do not the silent hours
   Beckon thee to Gherardi's bridal bed?                                _70
   Is not that ring'--a pledge, he would have said,
   Of broken vows, but she with patient look
   The golden circle from her finger took,
   And said--'Accept this token of my faith,
   The pledge of vows to be absolved by death;                          _75
   And I am dead or shall be soon--my knell
   Will mix its music with that merry bell,
   Does it not sound as if they sweetly said
   "We toll a corpse out of the marriage-bed"?
   The flowers upon my bridal chamber strewn                            _80
   Will serve unfaded for my bier--so soon
   That even the dying violet will not die
   Before Ginevra.' The strong fantasy
   Had made her accents weaker and more weak,
   And quenched the crimson life upon her cheek,                        _85
   And glazed her eyes, and spread an atmosphere
   Round her, which chilled the burning noon with fear,
   Making her but an image of the thought
   Which, like a prophet or a shadow, brought
   News of the terrors of the coming time.                              _90
   Like an accuser branded with the crime
   He would have cast on a beloved friend,
   Whose dying eyes reproach not to the end
   The pale betrayer--he then with vain repentance
   Would share, he cannot now avert, the sentence--                     _95
   Antonio stood and would have spoken, when
   The compound voice of women and of men
   Was heard approaching; he retired, while she
   Was led amid the admiring company
   Back to the palace,--and her maidens soon                            _100
   Changed her attire for the afternoon,
   And left her at her own request to keep
   An hour of quiet rest:--like one asleep
   With open eyes and folded hands she lay,
   Pale in the light of the declining day.                              _105
   
   Meanwhile the day sinks fast, the sun is set,
   And in the lighted hall the guests are met;
   The beautiful looked lovelier in the light
   Of love, and admiration, and delight
   Reflected from a thousand hearts and eyes,                           _110
   Kindling a momentary Paradise.
   This crowd is safer than the silent wood,
   Where love's own doubts disturb the solitude;
   On frozen hearts the fiery rain of wine
   Falls, and the dew of music more divine                              _115
   Tempers the deep emotions of the time
   To spirits cradled in a sunny clime:--
   How many meet, who never yet have met,
   To part too soon, but never to forget.
   How many saw the beauty, power and wit                               _120
   Of looks and words which ne'er enchanted yet;
   But life's familiar veil was now withdrawn,
   As the world leaps before an earthquake's dawn,
   And unprophetic of the coming hours,
   The matin winds from the expanded flowers                            _125
   Scatter their hoarded incense, and awaken
   The earth, until the dewy sleep is shaken
   From every living heart which it possesses,
   Through seas and winds, cities and wildernesses,
   As if the future and the past were all                               _130
   Treasured i' the instant;--so Gherardi's hall
   Laughed in the mirth of its lord's festival,
   Till some one asked--'Where is the Bride?' And then
   A bridesmaid went,--and ere she came again
   A silence fell upon the guests--a pause                              _135
   Of expectation, as when beauty awes
   All hearts with its approach, though unbeheld;
   Then wonder, and then fear that wonder quelled;--
   For whispers passed from mouth to ear which drew
   The colour from the hearer's cheeks, and flew                        _140
   Louder and swifter round the company;
   And then Gherardi entered with an eye
   Of ostentatious trouble, and a crowd
   Surrounded him, and some were weeping loud.
   
   They found Ginevra dead! if it be death                              _145
   To lie without motion, or pulse, or breath,
   With waxen cheeks, and limbs cold, stiff, and white,
   And open eyes, whose fixed and glassy light
   Mocked at the speculation they had owned.
   If it be death, when there is felt around                            _150
   A smell of clay, a pale and icy glare,
   And silence, and a sense that lifts the hair
   From the scalp to the ankles, as it were
   Corruption from the spirit passing forth,
   And giving all it shrouded to the earth,                             _155
   And leaving as swift lightning in its flight
   Ashes, and smoke, and darkness: in our night
   Of thought we know thus much of death,--no more
   Than the unborn dream of our life before
   Their barks are wrecked on its inhospitable shore.                   _160
   The marriage feast and its solemnity
   Was turned to funeral pomp--the company,
   With heavy hearts and looks, broke up; nor they
   Who loved the dead went weeping on their way
   Alone, but sorrow mixed with sad surprise                            _165
   Loosened the springs of pity in all eyes,
   On which that form, whose fate they weep in vain,
   Will never, thought they, kindle smiles again.
   The lamps which, half extinguished in their haste,
   Gleamed few and faint o'er the abandoned feast,                      _170
   Showed as it were within the vaulted room
   A cloud of sorrow hanging, as if gloom
   Had passed out of men's minds into the air.
   Some few yet stood around Gherardi there,
   Friends and relations of the dead,--and he,                          _175
   A loveless man, accepted torpidly
   The consolation that he wanted not;
   Awe in the place of grief within him wrought.
   Their whispers made the solemn silence seem
   More still--some wept,...                                            _180
   Some melted into tears without a sob,
   And some with hearts that might be heard to throb
   Leaned on the table and at intervals
   Shuddered to hear through the deserted halls
   And corridors the thrilling shrieks which came                       _185
   Upon the breeze of night, that shook the flame
   Of every torch and taper as it swept
   From out the chamber where the women kept;--
   Their tears fell on the dear companion cold
   Of pleasures now departed; then was knolled                          _190
   The bell of death, and soon the priests arrived,
   And finding Death their penitent had shrived,
   Returned like ravens from a corpse whereon
   A vulture has just feasted to the bone.
   And then the mourning women came.--                                  _195
   
   ...
   
   THE DIRGE.
   
   Old winter was gone
   In his weakness back to the mountains hoar,
   And the spring came down
   From the planet that hovers upon the shore
   
   Where the sea of sunlight encroaches                                 _200
   On the limits of wintry night;--
   If the land, and the air, and the sea,
   Rejoice not when spring approaches,
   We did not rejoice in thee,
   Ginevra!                                                             _205
   
   She is still, she is cold
   On the bridal couch,
   One step to the white deathbed,
   And one to the bier,
   And one to the charnel--and one, oh where?                           _210
   The dark arrow fled
   In the noon.
   
   Ere the sun through heaven once more has rolled,
   The rats in her heart
   Will have made their nest,                                           _215
   And the worms be alive in her golden hair,
   While the Spirit that guides the sun,
   Sits throned in his flaming chair,
   She shall sleep.
   
   NOTES:
   22 Was]Were cj. Rossetti.old
   26 ever 1824; even editions 1839.
   _37 Bitter editions 1839; Better 1824.
   _63 wanting in 1824.
   _103 quiet rest cj. A.C. Bradley; quiet and rest 1824.
   _129 winds]lands cj. Forman; waves, sands or strands cj. Rossetti.
   _167 On]In cj. Rossetti.
   
   ***
   
   
   EVENING: PONTE AL MARE, PISA
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   There is a draft amongst the Boscombe manuscripts.]
   
   1.
   The sun is set; the swallows are asleep;
   The bats are flitting fast in the gray air;
   The slow soft toads out of damp corners creep,
   And evening's breath, wandering here and there
   Over the quivering surface of the stream,                            _5
   Wakes not one ripple from its summer dream.
   
   2.
   There is no dew on the dry grass to-night,
   Nor damp within the shadow of the trees;
   The wind is intermitting, dry, and light;
   And in the inconstant motion of the breeze                           _10
   The dust and straws are driven up and down,
   And whirled about the pavement of the town.
   
   3.
   Within the surface of the fleeting river
   The wrinkled image of the city lay,
   Immovably unquiet, and forever                                       _15
   It trembles, but it never fades away;
   Go to the...
   You, being changed, will find it then as now.
   
   4.
   The chasm in which the sun has sunk is shut
   By darkest barriers of cinereous cloud,                              _20
   Like mountain over mountain huddled--but
   Growing and moving upwards in a crowd,
   And over it a space of watery blue,
   Which the keen evening star is shining through..
   
   NOTES:
   _6 summer 1839, 2nd edition; silent 1824, 1839, 1st edition.
   _20 cinereous Boscombe manuscript; enormous editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE BOAT ON THE SERCHIO.
   
   [Published in part (lines 1-61, 88-118) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous
   Poems", 1824; revised and enlarged by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical
   Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   Our boat is asleep on Serchio's stream,
   Its sails are folded like thoughts in a dream,
   The helm sways idly, hither and thither;
   Dominic, the boatman, has brought the mast,
   And the oars, and the sails; but 'tis sleeping fast,                 _5
   Like a beast, unconscious of its tether.
   
   The stars burnt out in the pale blue air,
   And the thin white moon lay withering there;
   To tower, and cavern, and rift, and tree,
   The owl and the bat fled drowsily.                                   _10
   Day had kindled the dewy woods,
   And the rocks above and the stream below,
   And the vapours in their multitudes,
   And the Apennine's shroud of summer snow,
   And clothed with light of aery gold                                  _15
   The mists in their eastern caves uprolled.
   
   Day had awakened all things that be,
   The lark and the thrush and the swallow free,
   And the milkmaid's song and the mower's scythe
   And the matin-bell and the mountain bee:                             _20
   Fireflies were quenched on the dewy corn,
   Glow-worms went out on the river's brim,
   Like lamps which a student forgets to trim:
   The beetle forgot to wind his horn,
   The crickets were still in the meadow and hill:                      _25
   Like a flock of rooks at a farmer's gun
   Night's dreams and terrors, every one,
   Fled from the brains which are their prey
   From the lamp's death to the morning ray.
   
   All rose to do the task He set to each,                              _30
   Who shaped us to His ends and not our own;
   The million rose to learn, and one to teach
   What none yet ever knew or can be known.
   And many rose
   Whose woe was such that fear became desire;--                        _35
   Melchior and Lionel were not among those;
   They from the throng of men had stepped aside,
   And made their home under the green hill-side.
   It was that hill, whose intervening brow
   Screens Lucca from the Pisan's envious eye,                          _40
   Which the circumfluous plain waving below,
   Like a wide lake of green fertility,
   With streams and fields and marshes bare,
   Divides from the far Apennines--which lie
   Islanded in the immeasurable air.                                    _45
   
   'What think you, as she lies in her green cove,
   Our little sleeping boat is dreaming of?'
   'If morning dreams are true, why I should guess
   That she was dreaming of our idleness,
   And of the miles of watery way                                       _50
   We should have led her by this time of day.'-
   
   'Never mind,' said Lionel,
   'Give care to the winds, they can bear it well
   About yon poplar-tops; and see
   The white clouds are driving merrily,                                _55
   And the stars we miss this morn will light
   More willingly our return to-night.--
   How it whistles, Dominic's long black hair!
   List, my dear fellow; the breeze blows fair:
   Hear how it sings into the air--'                                    _60
   
   --'Of us and of our lazy motions,'
   Impatiently said Melchior,
   'If I can guess a boat's emotions;
   And how we ought, two hours before,
   To have been the devil knows where.'                                 _65
   And then, in such transalpine Tuscan
   As would have killed a Della-Cruscan,
   
   ...
   
   So, Lionel according to his art
   Weaving his idle words, Melchior said:
   'She dreams that we are not yet out of bed;                          _70
   We'll put a soul into her, and a heart
   Which like a dove chased by a dove shall beat.'
   
   ...
   
   'Ay, heave the ballast overboard,
   And stow the eatables in the aft locker.'
   'Would not this keg be best a little lowered?'                       _75
   'No, now all's right.' 'Those bottles of warm tea--
   (Give me some straw)--must be stowed tenderly;
   Such as we used, in summer after six,
   To cram in greatcoat pockets, and to mix
   Hard eggs and radishes and rolls at Eton,                            _80
   And, couched on stolen hay in those green harbours
   Farmers called gaps, and we schoolboys called arbours,
   Would feast till eight.'
   
   ...
   
   With a bottle in one hand,
   As if his very soul were at a stand                                  _85
   Lionel stood--when Melchior brought him steady:--
   'Sit at the helm--fasten this sheet--all ready!'
   
   The chain is loosed, the sails are spread,
   The living breath is fresh behind,
   As with dews and sunrise fed,                                        _90
   Comes the laughing morning wind;--
   The sails are full, the boat makes head
   Against the Serchio's torrent fierce,
   Then flags with intermitting course,
   And hangs upon the wave, and stems                                   _95
   The tempest of the...
   Which fervid from its mountain source
   Shallow, smooth and strong doth come,--
   Swift as fire, tempestuously
   It sweeps into the affrighted sea;                                   _100
   In morning's smile its eddies coil,
   Its billows sparkle, toss and boil,
   Torturing all its quiet light
   Into columns fierce and bright.
   
   The Serchio, twisting forth                                          _105
   Between the marble barriers which it clove
   At Ripafratta, leads through the dread chasm
   The wave that died the death which lovers love,
   Living in what it sought; as if this spasm
   Had not yet passed, the toppling mountains cling,                    _110
   But the clear stream in full enthusiasm
   Pours itself on the plain, then wandering
   Down one clear path of effluence crystalline
   Sends its superfluous waves, that they may fling
   At Arno's feet tribute of corn and wine;
   Then, through the pestilential deserts wild
   Of tangled marsh and woods of stunted pine,
   It rushes to the Ocean.
   
   NOTES:
   _58-_61 List, my dear fellow, the breeze blows fair;
   How it scatters Dominic's long black hair!
   Singing of us, and our lazy motions,
   If I can guess a boat's emotions.'--editions 1824, 1839.
   _61-_67 Rossetti places these lines conjecturally between lines 51 and 52.
   _61-_65 'are evidently an alternative version of 48-51' (A.C. Bradley).
   _95, _96 and stems The tempest of the wanting in editions 1824, 1839.
   _112 then Boscombe manuscript; until editions 1824, 1839
   _114 superfluous Boscombe manuscript; clear editions 1824, 1839.
   _117 pine Boscombe manuscript; fir editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   MUSIC.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   1.
   I pant for the music which is divine,
   My heart in its thirst is a dying flower;
   Pour forth the sound like enchanted wine,
   Loosen the notes in a silver shower;
   Like a herbless plain, for the gentle rain,                          _5
   I gasp, I faint, till they wake again.
   
   2.
   Let me drink of the spirit of that sweet sound,
   More, oh more,--I am thirsting yet;
   It loosens the serpent which care has bound
   Upon my heart to stifle it;                                          _10
   The dissolving strain, through every vein,
   Passes into my heart and brain.
   
   3.
   As the scent of a violet withered up,
   Which grew by the brink of a silver lake,
   When the hot noon has drained its dewy cup,                          _15
   And mist there was none its thirst to slake--
   And the violet lay dead while the odour flew
   On the wings of the wind o'er the waters blue--
   
   4.
   As one who drinks from a charmed cup
   Of foaming, and sparkling, and murmuring wine,                       _20
   Whom, a mighty Enchantress filling up,
   Invites to love with her kiss divine...
   
   NOTES:
   _16 mist 1824; tank 1839, 2nd edition.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET TO BYRON.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "The Shelley Papers", 1832 (lines 1-7), and "Life
   of Shelley", 1847 (lines 1-9, 12-14). Revised and completed from the
   Boscombe manuscript by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.",
   1870.]
   
   [I am afraid these verses will not please you, but]
   If I esteemed you less, Envy would kill
   Pleasure, and leave to Wonder and Despair
   The ministration of the thoughts that fill
   The mind which, like a worm whose life may share
   A portion of the unapproachable,                                     _5
   Marks your creations rise as fast and fair
   As perfect worlds at the Creator's will.
   
   But such is my regard that nor your power
   To soar above the heights where others [climb],
   Nor fame, that shadow of the unborn hour                             _10
   Cast from the envious future on the time,
   Move one regret for his unhonoured name
   Who dares these words:--the worm beneath the sod
   May lift itself in homage of the God.
   
   NOTES:
   _1 you edition 1870; him 1832; thee 1847.
   _4 So edition 1870; My soul which as a worm may haply share 1832;
      My soul which even as a worm may share 1847.
   _6 your edition 1870; his 1832; thy 1847.
   _8, _9 So edition 1870 wanting 1832 -
       But not the blessings of thy happier lot,
       Nor thy well-won prosperity, and fame 1847.
   _10, _11 So edition 1870; wanting 1832, 1847.
   _12-_14 So 1847, edition 1870; wanting 1832.
   
   
   ***
   
   FRAGMENT ON KEATS.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition--ED.]
   
   ON KEATS, WHO DESIRED THAT ON HIS TOMB SHOULD BE INSCRIBED--
   
   'Here lieth One whose name was writ on water.
   But, ere the breath that could erase it blew,
   Death, in remorse for that fell slaughter,
   Death, the immortalizing winter, flew
   Athwart the stream,--and time's printless torrent grew               _5
   A scroll of crystal, blazoning the name
   Of Adonais!
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'METHOUGHT I WAS A BILLOW IN THE CROWD'.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   Methought I was a billow in the crowd
   Of common men, that stream without a shore,
   That ocean which at once is deaf and loud;
   That I, a man, stood amid many more
   By a wayside..., which the aspect bore                               _5
   Of some imperial metropolis,
   Where mighty shapes--pyramid, dome, and tower--
   Gleamed like a pile of crags--
   
   ***
   
   
   TO-MORROW.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   Where art thou, beloved To-morrow?
   When young and old, and strong and weak,
   Rich and poor, through joy and sorrow,
   Thy sweet smiles we ever seek,--
   In thy place--ah! well-a-day!                                        _5
   We find the thing we fled--To-day.
   
   ***
   
   
   STANZA.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.
   Connected by Dowden with the preceding.]
   
   If I walk in Autumn's even
   While the dead leaves pass,
   If I look on Spring's soft heaven,--
   Something is not there which was
   Winter's wondrous frost and snow,                                    _5
   Summer's clouds, where are they now?
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: A WANDERER.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   He wanders, like a day-appearing dream,
   Through the dim wildernesses of the mind;
   Through desert woods and tracts, which seem
   Like ocean, homeless, boundless, unconfined.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: LIFE ROUNDED WITH SLEEP.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   The babe is at peace within the womb;
   The corpse is at rest within the tomb:
   We begin in what we end.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'I FAINT, I PERISH WITH MY LOVE!'.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   I faint, I perish with my love! I grow
   Frail as a cloud whose [splendours] pale
   Under the evening's ever-changing glow:
   I die like mist upon the gale,
   And like a wave under the calm I fail.                               _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: THE LADY OF THE SOUTH.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   Faint with love, the Lady of the South
   Lay in the paradise of Lebanon
   Under a heaven of cedar boughs: the drouth
   Of love was on her lips; the light was gone
   Out of her eyes--                                                    _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: ZEPHYRUS THE AWAKENER.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   Come, thou awakener of the spirit's ocean,
   Zephyr, whom to thy cloud or cave
   No thought can trace! speed with thy gentle motion!
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: RAIN.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   The gentleness of rain was in the wind.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'WHEN SOFT WINDS AND SUNNY SKIES'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   When soft winds and sunny skies
   With the green earth harmonize,
   And the young and dewy dawn,
   Bold as an unhunted fawn,
   Up the windless heaven is gone,--                                    _5
   Laugh--for ambushed in the day,--
   Clouds and whirlwinds watch their prey.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'AND THAT I WALK THUS PROUDLY CROWNED'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   And that I walk thus proudly crowned withal
   Is that 'tis my distinction; if I fall,
   I shall not weep out of the vital day,
   To-morrow dust, nor wear a dull decay.
   
   NOTE:
   _2 'Tis that is or In that is cj. A.C. Bradley.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'THE RUDE WIND IS SINGING'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   The rude wind is singing
   The dirge of the music dead;
   The cold worms are clinging
   Where kisses were lately fed.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'GREAT SPIRIT'.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870.]
   
   Great Spirit whom the sea of boundless thought
   Nurtures within its unimagined caves,
   In which thou sittest sole, as in my mind,
   Giving a voice to its mysterious waves--
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'O THOU IMMORTAL DEITY'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   O thou immortal deity
   Whose throne is in the depth of human thought,
   I do adjure thy power and thee
   By all that man may be, by all that he is not,
   By all that he has been and yet must be!                             _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: THE FALSE LAUREL AND THE TRUE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   'What art thou, Presumptuous, who profanest
   The wreath to mighty poets only due,
   Even whilst like a forgotten moon thou wanest?
   Touch not those leaves which for the eternal few
   Who wander o'er the Paradise of fame,                                _5
   In sacred dedication ever grew:
   One of the crowd thou art without a name.'
   'Ah, friend, 'tis the false laurel that I wear;
   Bright though it seem, it is not the same
   As that which bound Milton's immortal hair;                          _10
   Its dew is poison; and the hopes that quicken
   Under its chilling shade, though seeming fair,
   Are flowers which die almost before they sicken.'
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: MAY THE LIMNER.
   
   [This and the three following Fragments were edited from manuscript
   Shelley D1 at the Bodleian Library and published by Mr. C.D. Locock,
   "Examination", etc., Oxford, Clarendon Press, 1903. They are printed
   here as belonging probably to the year 1821.]
   
   When May is painting with her colours gay
   The landscape sketched by April her sweet twin...
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: BEAUTY'S HALO.
   
   [Published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination", etc, 1903.]
   
   Thy beauty hangs around thee like
   Splendour around the moon--
   Thy voice, as silver bells that strike
   Upon
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'THE DEATH KNELL IS RINGING'.
   
   ('This reads like a study for "Autumn, A Dirge"' (Locock). Might it not
   be part of a projected Fit v. of "The Fugitives"?--ED.)
   
   [Published by Mr. C.D. Locock, "Examination", etc., 1903.]
   
   The death knell is ringing
   The raven is singing
   The earth worm is creeping
   The mourners are weeping
   Ding dong, bell--                                                    _5
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: 'I STOOD UPON A HEAVEN-CLEAVING TURRET'.
   
   I stood upon a heaven-cleaving turret
   Which overlooked a wide Metropolis--
   And in the temple of my heart my Spirit
   Lay prostrate, and with parted lips did kiss
   The dust of Desolations [altar] hearth--                             _5
   And with a voice too faint to falter
   It shook that trembling fane with its weak prayer
   'Twas noon,--the sleeping skies were blue
   The city
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1821, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   My task becomes inexpressibly painful as the year draws near that which
   sealed our earthly fate, and each poem, and each event it records, has
   a real or mysterious connection with the fatal catastrophe. I feel that
   I am incapable of putting on paper the history of those times. The
   heart of the man, abhorred of the poet, who could
   
       'peep and botanize
       Upon his mother's grave,'
   
   does not appear to me more inexplicably framed than that of one who can
   dissect and probe past woes, and repeat to the public ear the groans
   drawn from them in the throes of their agony.
   
   The year 1821 was spent in Pisa, or at the Baths of San Giuliano. We
   were not, as our wont had been, alone; friends had gathered round us.
   Nearly all are dead, and, when Memory recurs to the past, she wanders
   among tombs. The genius, with all his blighting errors and mighty
   powers; the companion of Shelley's ocean-wanderings, and the sharer of
   his fate, than whom no man ever existed more gentle, generous, and
   fearless; and others, who found in Shelley's society, and in his great
   knowledge and warm sympathy, delight, instruction, and solace; have
   joined him beyond the grave. A few survive who have felt life a desert
   since he left it. What misfortune can equal death? Change can convert
   every other into a blessing, or heal its sting--death alone has no
   cure. It shakes the foundations of the earth on which we tread; it
   destroys its beauty; it casts down our shelter; it exposes us bare to
   desolation. When those we love have passed into eternity, 'life is the
   desert and the solitude' in which we are forced to linger--but never
   find comfort more.
   
   There is much in the "Adonais" which seems now more applicable to
   Shelley himself than to the young and gifted poet whom he mourned. The
   poetic view he takes of death, and the lofty scorn he displays towards
   his calumniators, are as a prophecy on his own destiny when received
   among immortal names, and the poisonous breath of critics has vanished
   into emptiness before the fame he inherits.
   
   Shelley's favourite taste was boating; when living near the Thames or
   by the Lake of Geneva, much of his life was spent on the water. On the
   shore of every lake or stream or sea near which he dwelt, he had a boat
   moored. He had latterly enjoyed this pleasure again. There are no
   pleasure-boats on the Arno; and the shallowness of its waters (except
   in winter-time, when the stream is too turbid and impetuous for
   boating) rendered it difficult to get any skiff light enough to float.
   Shelley, however, overcame the difficulty; he, together with a friend,
   contrived a boat such as the huntsmen carry about with them in the
   Maremma, to cross the sluggish but deep streams that intersect the
   forests,--a boat of laths and pitched canvas. It held three persons;
   and he was often seen on the Arno in it, to the horror of the Italians,
   who remonstrated on the danger, and could not understand how anyone
   could take pleasure in an exercise that risked life. 'Ma va per la
   vita!' they exclaimed. I little thought how true their words would
   prove. He once ventured, with a friend, on the glassy sea of a calm
   day, down the Arno and round the coast to Leghorn, which, by keeping
   close in shore, was very practicable. They returned to Pisa by the
   canal, when, missing the direct cut, they got entangled among weeds,
   and the boat upset; a wetting was all the harm done, except that the
   intense cold of his drenched clothes made Shelley faint. Once I went
   down with him to the mouth of the Arno, where the stream, then high and
   swift, met the tideless sea, and disturbed its sluggish waters. It was
   a waste and dreary scene; the desert sand stretched into a point
   surrounded by waves that broke idly though perpetually around; it was a
   scene very similar to Lido, of which he had said--
   
       'I love all waste
       And solitary places; where we taste
       The pleasure of believing what we see
       Is boundless, as we wish our souls to be:
       And such was this wide ocean, and this shore
       More barren than its billows.'
   
   Our little boat was of greater use, unaccompanied by any danger, when
   we removed to the Baths. Some friends lived at the village of Pugnano,
   four miles off, and we went to and fro to see them, in our boat, by the
   canal; which, fed by the Serchio, was, though an artificial, a full and
   picturesque stream, making its way under verdant banks, sheltered by
   trees that dipped their boughs into the murmuring waters. By day,
   multitudes of Ephemera darted to and fro on the surface; at night, the
   fireflies came out among the shrubs on the banks; the cicale at
   noon-day kept up their hum; the aziola cooed in the quiet evening. It
   was a pleasant summer, bright in all but Shelley's health and
   inconstant spirits; yet he enjoyed himself greatly, and became more and
   more attached to the part of the country were chance appeared to cast
   us. Sometimes he projected taking a farm situated on the height of one
   of the near hills, surrounded by chestnut and pine woods, and
   overlooking a wide extent of country: or settling still farther in the
   maritime Apennines, at Massa. Several of his slighter and unfinished
   poems were inspired by these scenes, and by the companions around us.
   It is the nature of that poetry, however, which overflows from the soul
   oftener to express sorrow and regret than joy; for it is when oppressed
   by the weight of life, and away from those he loves, that the poet has
   recourse to the solace of expression in verse.
   
   Still, Shelley's passion was the ocean; and he wished that our summers,
   instead of being passed among the hills near Pisa, should be spent on
   the shores of the sea. It was very difficult to find a spot. We shrank
   from Naples from a fear that the heats would disagree with Percy:
   Leghorn had lost its only attraction, since our friends who had resided
   there were returned to England; and, Monte Nero being the resort of
   many English, we did not wish to find ourselves in the midst of a
   colony of chance travellers. No one then thought it possible to reside
   at Via Reggio, which latterly has become a summer resort. The low lands
   and bad air of Maremma stretch the whole length of the western shores
   of the Mediterranean, till broken by the rocks and hills of Spezia. It
   was a vague idea, but Shelley suggested an excursion to Spezia, to see
   whether it would be feasible to spend a summer there. The beauty of the
   bay enchanted him. We saw no house to suit us; but the notion took
   root, and many circumstances, enchained as by fatality, occurred to
   urge him to execute it.
   
   He looked forward this autumn with great pleasure to the prospect of a
   visit from Leigh Hunt. When Shelley visited Lord Byron at Ravenna, the
   latter had suggested his coming out, together with the plan of a
   periodical work in which they should all join. Shelley saw a prospect
   of good for the fortunes of his friend, and pleasure in his society;
   and instantly exerted himself to have the plan executed. He did not
   intend himself joining in the work: partly from pride, not wishing to
   have the air of acquiring readers for his poetry by associating it with
   the compositions of more popular writers; and also because he might
   feel shackled in the free expression of his opinions, if any friends
   were to be compromised. By those opinions, carried even to their
   outermost extent, he wished to live and die, as being in his conviction
   not only true, but such as alone would conduce to the moral improvement
   and happiness of mankind. The sale of the work might meanwhile, either
   really or supposedly, be injured by the free expression of his
   thoughts; and this evil he resolved to avoid.
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS WRITTEN IN 1822.
   
   
   THE ZUCCA.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and dated
   'January, 1822.' There is a copy amongst the Boscombe manuscripts.]
   
   1.
   Summer was dead and Autumn was expiring,
   And infant Winter laughed upon the land
   All cloudlessly and cold;--when I, desiring
   More in this world than any understand,
   Wept o'er the beauty, which, like sea retiring,                      _5
   Had left the earth bare as the wave-worn sand
   Of my lorn heart, and o'er the grass and flowers
   Pale for the falsehood of the flattering Hours.
   
   2.
   Summer was dead, but I yet lived to weep
   The instability of all but weeping;                                  _10
   And on the Earth lulled in her winter sleep
   I woke, and envied her as she was sleeping.
   Too happy Earth! over thy face shall creep
   The wakening vernal airs, until thou, leaping
   From unremembered dreams, shalt ... see                              _15
   No death divide thy immortality.
   
   3.
   I loved--oh, no, I mean not one of ye,
   Or any earthly one, though ye are dear
   As human heart to human heart may be;--
   I loved, I know not what--but this low sphere                        _20
   And all that it contains, contains not thee,
   Thou, whom, seen nowhere, I feel everywhere.
   From Heaven and Earth, and all that in them are,
   Veiled art thou, like a ... star.
   
   4.
   By Heaven and Earth, from all whose shapes thou flowest,             _25
   Neither to be contained, delayed, nor hidden;
   Making divine the loftiest and the lowest,
   When for a moment thou art not forbidden
   To live within the life which thou bestowest;
   And leaving noblest things vacant and chidden,                       _30
   Cold as a corpse after the spirit's flight
   Blank as the sun after the birth of night.
   
   5.
   In winds, and trees, and streams, and all things common,
   In music and the sweet unconscious tone
   Of animals, and voices which are human,                              _35
   Meant to express some feelings of their own;
   In the soft motions and rare smile of woman,
   In flowers and leaves, and in the grass fresh-shown,
   Or dying in the autumn, I the most
   Adore thee present or lament thee lost.                              _40
   
   6.
   And thus I went lamenting, when I saw
   A plant upon the river's margin lie
   Like one who loved beyond his nature's law,
   And in despair had cast him down to die;
   Its leaves, which had outlived the frost, the thaw                   _45
   Had blighted; like a heart which hatred's eye
   Can blast not, but which pity kills; the dew
   Lay on its spotted leaves like tears too true.
   
   7.
   The Heavens had wept upon it, but the Earth
   Had crushed it on her maternal breast                                _50
   
   ...
   
   8.
   I bore it to my chamber, and I planted
   It in a vase full of the lightest mould;
   The winter beams which out of Heaven slanted
   Fell through the window-panes, disrobed of cold,
   Upon its leaves and flowers; the stars which panted                  _55
   In evening for the Day, whose car has rolled
   Over the horizon's wave, with looks of light
   Smiled on it from the threshold of the night.
   
   9.
   The mitigated influences of air
   And light revived the plant, and from it grew                        _60
   Strong leaves and tendrils, and its flowers fair,
   Full as a cup with the vine's burning dew,
   O'erflowed with golden colours; an atmosphere
   Of vital warmth enfolded it anew,
   And every impulse sent to every part
   The unbeheld pulsations of its heart.                                _65
   
   10.
   Well might the plant grow beautiful and strong,
   Even if the air and sun had smiled not on it;
   For one wept o'er it all the winter long
   Tears pure as Heaven's rain, which fell upon it                      _70
   Hour after hour; for sounds of softest song
   Mixed with the stringed melodies that won it
   To leave the gentle lips on which it slept,
   Had loosed the heart of him who sat and wept.
   
   11.
   Had loosed his heart, and shook the leaves and flowers               _75
   On which he wept, the while the savage storm
   Waked by the darkest of December's hours
   Was raving round the chamber hushed and warm;
   The birds were shivering in their leafless bowers,
   The fish were frozen in the pools, the form                          _80
   Of every summer plant was dead
   Whilst this....
   
   ...
   
   NOTES:
   _7 lorn Boscombe manuscript; poor edition 1824.
   _23 So Boscombe manuscript; Dim object of soul's idolatry edition 1824.
   _24 star Boscombe manuscript; wanting edition 1824.
   _38 grass fresh Boscombe manuscript; fresh grass edition 1824.
   _46 like Boscombe manuscript; as edition 1824.
   _68 air and sun Boscombe manuscript; sun and air edition 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE MAGNETIC LADY TO HER PATIENT.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", August 11, 1832.
   There is a copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]
   
   1.
   'Sleep, sleep on! forget thy pain;
   My hand is on thy brow,
   My spirit on thy brain;
   My pity on thy heart, poor friend;
   And from my fingers flow                                             _5
   The powers of life, and like a sign,
   Seal thee from thine hour of woe;
   And brood on thee, but may not blend
   With thine.
   
   2.
   'Sleep, sleep on! I love thee not;                                   _10
   But when I think that he
   Who made and makes my lot
   As full of flowers as thine of weeds,
   Might have been lost like thee;
   And that a hand which was not mine                                   _15
   Might then have charmed his agony
   As I another's--my heart bleeds
   For thine.
   
   3.
   'Sleep, sleep, and with the slumber of
   The dead and the unborn                                              _20
   Forget thy life and love;
   Forget that thou must wake forever;
   Forget the world's dull scorn;
   Forget lost health, and the divine
   Feelings which died in youth's brief morn;                           _25
   And forget me, for I can never
   Be thine.
   
   4.
   'Like a cloud big with a May shower,
   My soul weeps healing rain
   On thee, thou withered flower!                                       _30
   It breathes mute music on thy sleep
   Its odour calms thy brain!
   Its light within thy gloomy breast
   Spreads like a second youth again.
   By mine thy being is to its deep                                     _35
   Possessed.
   
   5.
   'The spell is done. How feel you now?'
   'Better--Quite well,' replied
   The sleeper.--'What would do                                         _39
   You good when suffering and awake?
   What cure your head and side?--'
   'What would cure, that would kill me, Jane:
   And as I must on earth abide
   Awhile, yet tempt me not to break
   My chain.'                                                           _45
   
   NOTES;
   _1, _10 Sleep Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
           Sleep on 1832, 1839, 1st edition.
   _16 charmed Trelawny manuscript;
       chased 1832, editions 1839.
   _21 love]woe 1832.
   _42 so Trelawny manuscript
       'Twould kill me what would cure my pain 1832, editions 1839.
   _44 Awhile yet, cj. A.C. Bradley.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES: 'WHEN THE LAMP IS SHATTERED'.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   There is a copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]
   
   1.
   When the lamp is shattered
   The light in the dust lies dead--
   When the cloud is scattered
   The rainbow's glory is shed.
   When the lute is broken,                                             _5
   Sweet tones are remembered not;
   When the lips have spoken,
   Loved accents are soon forgot.
   
   2.
   As music and splendour
   Survive not the lamp and the lute,                                   _10
   The heart's echoes render
   No song when the spirit is mute:--
   No song but sad dirges,
   Like the wind through a ruined cell,
   Or the mournful surges                                               _15
   That ring the dead seaman's knell.
   
   3.
   When hearts have once mingled
   Love first leaves the well-built nest;
   The weak one is singled
   To endure what it once possessed.                                    _20
   O Love! who bewailest
   The frailty of all things here,
   Why choose you the frailest
   For your cradle, your home, and your bier?
   
   4.
   Its passions will rock thee                                          _25
   As the storms rock the ravens on high;
   Bright reason will mock thee,
   Like the sun from a wintry sky.
   From thy nest every rafter
   Will rot, and thine eagle home                                       _30
   Leave thee naked to laughter,
   When leaves fall and cold winds come.
   
   NOTES:
   _6 tones edition 1824; notes Trelawny manuscript.
   _14 through edition 1824; in Trelawny manuscript.
   _16 dead edition 1824; lost Trelawny manuscript.
   _23 choose edition 1824; chose Trelawny manuscript.
   _25-_32 wanting Trelawny manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO JANE: THE INVITATION.
   
   [This and the following poem were published together in their original
   form as one piece under the title, "The Pine Forest of the Cascine near
   Pisa", by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824; reprinted in the same
   shape, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition; republished separately in
   their present form, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. There is a
   copy amongst the Trelawny manuscripts.]
   
   Best and brightest, come away!
   Fairer far than this fair Day,
   Which, like thee to those in sorrow,
   Comes to bid a sweet good-morrow
   To the rough Year just awake                                         _5
   In its cradle on the brake.
   The brightest hour of unborn Spring,
   Through the winter wandering,
   Found, it seems, the halcyon Morn
   To hoar February born,                                               _10
   Bending from Heaven, in azure mirth,
   It kissed the forehead of the Earth,
   And smiled upon the silent sea,
   And bade the frozen streams be free,
   And waked to music all their fountains,                              _15
   And breathed upon the frozen mountains,
   And like a prophetess of May
   Strewed flowers upon the barren way,
   Making the wintry world appear
   Like one on whom thou smilest, dear.                                 _20
   
   Away, away, from men and towns,
   To the wild wood and the downs--
   To the silent wilderness
   Where the soul need not repress
   Its music lest it should not find                                    _25
   An echo in another's mind,
   While the touch of Nature's art
   Harmonizes heart to heart.
   I leave this notice on my door
   For each accustomed visitor:--                                       _30
   'I am gone into the fields
   To take what this sweet hour yields;--
   Reflection, you may come to-morrow,
   Sit by the fireside with Sorrow.--
   You with the unpaid bill, Despair,--
   You, tiresome verse-reciter, Care,--                                 _35
   I will pay you in the grave,--
   Death will listen to your stave.
   Expectation too, be off!
   To-day is for itself enough;                                         _40
   Hope, in pity mock not Woe
   With smiles, nor follow where I go;
   Long having lived on thy sweet food,
   At length I find one moment's good
   After long pain--with all your love,                                 _45
   This you never told me of.'
   
   Radiant Sister of the Day,
   Awake! arise! and come away!
   To the wild woods and the plains,
   And the pools where winter rains                                     _50.
   Image all their roof of leaves,
   Where the pine its garland weaves
   Of sapless green and ivy dun
   Round stems that never kiss the sun;
   Where the lawns and pastures be,                                     _55
   And the sandhills of the sea;--
   Where the melting hoar-frost wets
   The daisy-star that never sets,
   And wind-flowers, and violets,
   Which yet join not scent to hue,                                     _60
   Crown the pale year weak and new;
   When the night is left behind
   In the deep east, dun and blind,
   And the blue noon is over us,
   And the multitudinous                                                _65
   Billows murmur at our feet,
   Where the earth and ocean meet,
   And all things seem only one
   In the universal sun.
   
   NOTES:
   _34 with Trelawny manuscript; of 1839, 2nd edition.
   _44 moment's Trelawny manuscript; moment 1839, 2nd edition.
   _50 And Trelawny manuscript; To 1839, 2nd edition.
   _53 dun Trelawny manuscript; dim 1839, 2nd edition.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO JANE: THE RECOLLECTION.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition.
   See the Editor's prefatory note to the preceding.]
   
   1.
   Now the last day of many days,
   All beautiful and bright as thou,
   The loveliest and the last, is dead,
   Rise, Memory, and write its praise!
   Up,--to thy wonted work! come, trace                                 _5
   The epitaph of glory fled,--
   For now the Earth has changed its face,
   A frown is on the Heaven's brow.
   
   2.
   We wandered to the Pine Forest
   That skirts the Ocean's foam,                                        _10
   The lightest wind was in its nest,
   The tempest in its home.
   The whispering waves were half asleep,
   The clouds were gone to play,
   And on the bosom of the deep                                         _15
   The smile of Heaven lay;
   It seemed as if the hour were one
   Sent from beyond the skies,
   Which scattered from above the sun
   A light of Paradise.                                                 _20
   
   3.
   We paused amid the pines that stood
   The giants of the waste,
   Tortured by storms to shapes as rude
   As serpents interlaced;
   And, soothed by every azure breath,                                  _25
   That under Heaven is blown,
   To harmonies and hues beneath,
   As tender as its own,
   Now all the tree-tops lay asleep,
   Like green waves on the sea,                                         _30
   As still as in the silent deep
   The ocean woods may be.
   
   4.
   How calm it was!--the silence there
   By such a chain was bound
   That even the busy woodpecker                                        _35
   Made stiller by her sound
   The inviolable quietness;
   The breath of peace we drew
   With its soft motion made not less
   The calm that round us grew.                                         _40
   There seemed from the remotest seat
   Of the white mountain waste,
   To the soft flower beneath our feet,
   A magic circle traced,--
   A spirit interfused around                                           _45
   A thrilling, silent life,--
   To momentary peace it bound
   Our mortal nature's strife;
   And still I felt the centre of
   The magic circle there                                               _50
   Was one fair form that filled with love
   The lifeless atmosphere.
   
   5.
   We paused beside the pools that lie
   Under the forest bough,--
   Each seemed as 'twere a little sky                                   _55
   Gulfed in a world below;
   A firmament of purple light
   Which in the dark earth lay,
   More boundless than the depth of night,
   And purer than the day--                                             _60
   In which the lovely forests grew,
   As in the upper air,
   More perfect both in shape and hue
   Than any spreading there.
   There lay the glade and neighbouring lawn,                           _65
   And through the dark green wood
   The white sun twinkling like the dawn
   Out of a speckled cloud.
   Sweet views which in our world above
   Can never well be seen,                                              _70
   Were imaged by the water's love
   Of that fair forest green.
   And all was interfused beneath
   With an Elysian glow,
   An atmosphere without a breath,                                      _75
   A softer day below.
   Like one beloved the scene had lent
   To the dark water's breast,
   Its every leaf and lineament
   With more than truth expressed;                                      _80
   Until an envious wind crept by,
   Like an unwelcome thought,
   Which from the mind's too faithful eye
   Blots one dear image out.
   Though thou art ever fair and kind,                                  _85
   The forests ever green,
   Less oft is peace in Shelley's mind,
   Than calm in waters, seen.
   
   NOTES:
   _6 fled edition. 1824; dead Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition.
   _10 Ocean's]Ocean 1839, 2nd edition.
   _24 Interlaced, 1839; interlaced; cj. A.C. Bradley.
   _28 own; 1839 own, cj. A.C. Bradley.
   _42 white Trelawny manuscript; wide 1839, 2nd edition
   _87 Shelley's Trelawny manuscript; S--'s 1839, 2nd edition.]
   
   ***
   
   
   THE PINE FOREST OF THE CASCINE NEAR PISA.
   
   [This, the first draft of "To Jane: The Invitation, The Recollection",
   was published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824, and reprinted,
   "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition. See Editor's Prefatory Note to
   "The Invitation", above.]
   
   Dearest, best and brightest,
   Come away,
   To the woods and to the fields!
   Dearer than this fairest day
   Which, like thee to those in sorrow,                                 _5
   Comes to bid a sweet good-morrow
   To the rough Year just awake
   In its cradle in the brake.
   The eldest of the Hours of Spring,
   Into the Winter wandering,                                           _10
   Looks upon the leafless wood,
   And the banks all bare and rude;
   Found, it seems, this halcyon Morn
   In February's bosom born,
   Bending from Heaven, in azure mirth,                                 _15
   Kissed the cold forehead of the Earth,
   And smiled upon the silent sea,
   And bade the frozen streams be free;
   And waked to music all the fountains,
   And breathed upon the rigid mountains,                               _20
   And made the wintry world appear
   Like one on whom thou smilest, Dear.
   
   Radiant Sister of the Day,
   Awake! arise! and come away!
   To the wild woods and the plains,                                    _25
   To the pools where winter rains
   Image all the roof of leaves,
   Where the pine its garland weaves
   Sapless, gray, and ivy dun
   Round stems that never kiss the sun--                                _30
   To the sandhills of the sea,
   Where the earliest violets be.
   
   Now the last day of many days,
   All beautiful and bright as thou,
   The loveliest and the last, is dead,                                 _35
   Rise, Memory, and write its praise!
   And do thy wonted work and trace
   The epitaph of glory fled;
   For now the Earth has changed its face,
   A frown is on the Heaven's brow.                                     _40
   
   We wandered to the Pine Forest
   That skirts the Ocean's foam,
   The lightest wind was in its nest,
   The tempest in its home.
   
   The whispering waves were half asleep,                               _45
   The clouds were gone to play,
   And on the woods, and on the deep
   The smile of Heaven lay.
   
   It seemed as if the day were one
   Sent from beyond the skies,                                          _50
   Which shed to earth above the sun
   A light of Paradise.
   
   We paused amid the pines that stood,
   The giants of the waste,
   Tortured by storms to shapes as rude                                 _55
   With stems like serpents interlaced.
   
   How calm it was--the silence there
   By such a chain was bound,
   That even the busy woodpecker
   Made stiller by her sound                                            _60
   
   The inviolable quietness;
   The breath of peace we drew
   With its soft motion made not less
   The calm that round us grew.
   
   It seemed that from the remotest seat                                _65
   Of the white mountain's waste
   To the bright flower beneath our feet,
   A magic circle traced;--
   
   A spirit interfused around,
   A thinking, silent life;                                             _70
   To momentary peace it bound
   Our mortal nature's strife;--
   
   And still, it seemed, the centre of
   The magic circle there,
   Was one whose being filled with love                                 _75
   The breathless atmosphere.
   
   Were not the crocuses that grew
   Under that ilex-tree
   As beautiful in scent and hue
   As ever fed the bee?                                                 _80
   
   We stood beneath the pools that lie
   Under the forest bough,
   And each seemed like a sky
   Gulfed in a world below;
   
   A purple firmament of light                                          _85
   Which in the dark earth lay,
   More boundless than the depth of night,
   And clearer than the day--
   
   In which the massy forests grew
   As in the upper air,                                                 _90
   More perfect both in shape and hue
   Than any waving there.
   
   Like one beloved the scene had lent
   To the dark water's breast
   Its every leaf and lineament                                         _95
   With that clear truth expressed;
   
   There lay far glades and neighbouring lawn,
   And through the dark green crowd
   The white sun twinkling like the dawn
   Under a speckled cloud.                                              _100
   
   Sweet views, which in our world above
   Can never well be seen,
   Were imaged by the water's love
   Of that fair forest green.
   
   And all was interfused beneath                                       _105
   With an Elysian air,
   An atmosphere without a breath,
   A silence sleeping there.
   
   Until a wandering wind crept by,
   Like an unwelcome thought,                                           _110
   Which from my mind's too faithful eye
   Blots thy bright image out.
   
   For thou art good and dear and kind,
   The forest ever green,
   But less of peace in S--'s mind,
   Than calm in waters, seen.                                           _116.
   
   ***
   
   
   WITH A GUITAR, TO JANE.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "The Athenaeum", October 20, 1832; "Frazer's
   Magazine", January 1833. There is a copy amongst the Trelawny
   manuscripts.]
   
   Ariel to Miranda:--Take
   This slave of Music, for the sake
   Of him who is the slave of thee,
   And teach it all the harmony
   In which thou canst, and only thou,                                  _5
   Make the delighted spirit glow,
   Till joy denies itself again,
   And, too intense, is turned to pain;
   For by permission and command
   Of thine own Prince Ferdinand,                                       _10
   Poor Ariel sends this silent token
   Of more than ever can be spoken;
   Your guardian spirit, Ariel, who,
   From life to life, must still pursue
   Your happiness;--for thus alone                                      _15
   Can Ariel ever find his own.
   From Prospero's enchanted cell,
   As the mighty verses tell,
   To the throne of Naples, he
   Lit you o'er the trackless sea,                                      _20
   Flitting on, your prow before,
   Like a living meteor.
   When you die, the silent Moon,
   In her interlunar swoon,
   Is not sadder in her cell
   Than deserted Ariel.
   When you live again on earth,
   Like an unseen star of birth,
   Ariel guides you o'er the sea
   Of life from your nativity.                                          _30
   Many changes have been run
   Since Ferdinand and you begun
   Your course of love, and Ariel still
   Has tracked your steps, and served your will;
   Now, in humbler, happier lot,                                        _35
   This is all remembered not;
   And now, alas! the poor sprite is
   Imprisoned, for some fault of his,
   In a body like a grave;--
   From you he only dares to crave,                                     _40
   For his service and his sorrow,
   A smile today, a song tomorrow.
   
   The artist who this idol wrought,
   To echo all harmonious thought,
   Felled a tree, while on the steep                                    _45
   The woods were in their winter sleep,
   Rocked in that repose divine
   On the wind-swept Apennine;
   And dreaming, some of Autumn past,
   And some of Spring approaching fast,                                 _50
   And some of April buds and showers,
   And some of songs in July bowers,
   And all of love; and so this tree,--
   O that such our death may be!--
   Died in sleep, and felt no pain,                                     _55
   To live in happier form again:
   From which, beneath Heaven's fairest star,
   The artist wrought this loved Guitar,
   And taught it justly to reply,
   To all who question skilfully,                                       _60
   In language gentle as thine own;
   Whispering in enamoured tone
   Sweet oracles of woods and dells,
   And summer winds in sylvan cells;
   For it had learned all harmonies                                     _65
   Of the plains and of the skies,
   Of the forests and the mountains,
   And the many-voiced fountains;
   The clearest echoes of the hills,
   The softest notes of falling rills,                                  _70
   The melodies of birds and bees,
   The murmuring of summer seas,
   And pattering rain, and breathing dew,
   And airs of evening; and it knew
   That seldom-heard mysterious sound,                                  _75
   Which, driven on its diurnal round,
   As it floats through boundless day,
   Our world enkindles on its way.--
   All this it knows, but will not tell
   To those who cannot question well                                    _80
   The Spirit that inhabits it;
   It talks according to the wit
   Of its companions; and no more
   Is heard than has been felt before,
   By those who tempt it to betray                                      _85
   These secrets of an elder day:
   But, sweetly as its answers will
   Flatter hands of perfect skill,
   It keeps its highest, holiest tone
   For our beloved Jane alone.                                          _90
   
   NOTES:
   _12 Of more than ever]Of love that never 1833.
   _46 woods Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
       winds 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
   _58 this Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
       that 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
   _61 thine own Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
       its own 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
   _76 on Trelawny manuscript, 1839, 2nd edition;
       in 1832, 1833, 1839, 1st edition.
   _90 Jane Trelawny manuscript; friend 1832, 1833, editions 1839.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO JANE: 'THE KEEN STARS WERE TWINKLING'.
   
   [Published in part (lines 7-24) by Medwin (under the title, "An Ariette
   for Music. To a Lady singing to her Accompaniment on the Guitar"), "The
   Athenaeum", November 17, 1832; reprinted by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical
   Works", 1839, 1st edition. Republished in full (under the title, To
   --.), "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition. The Trelawny manuscript is
   headed "To Jane". Mr. C.W. Frederickson of Brooklyn possesses a
   transcript in an unknown hand.]
   
   1.
   The keen stars were twinkling,
   And the fair moon was rising among them,
   Dear Jane!
   The guitar was tinkling,
   But the notes were not sweet till you sung them                      _5
   Again.
   
   2.
   As the moon's soft splendour
   O'er the faint cold starlight of Heaven
   Is thrown,
   So your voice most tender                                            _10
   To the strings without soul had then given
   Its own.
   
   3.
   The stars will awaken,
   Though the moon sleep a full hour later,
   To-night;                                                            _15
   No leaf will be shaken
   Whilst the dews of your melody scatter
   Delight.
   
   4.
   Though the sound overpowers,
   Sing again, with your dear voice revealing                           _20
   A tone
   Of some world far from ours,
   Where music and moonlight and feeling
   Are one.
   
   NOTES:
   _3 Dear *** 1839, 2nd edition.
   _7 soft]pale Fred. manuscript.
   _10 your 1839, 2nd edition.;
       thy 1832, 1839, 1st edition, Fred. manuscript.
   _11 had then 1839, 2nd edition; has 1832, 1839, 1st edition;
       hath Fred. manuscript.
   _12 Its]Thine Fred. manuscript.
   _17 your 1839, 2nd edition;
       thy 1832, 1839, 1st edition, Fred. manuscript.
   _19 sound]song Fred. manuscript.
   _20 your dear 1839, 2nd edition; thy sweet 1832, 1839, 1st edition;
       thy soft Fred. manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   A DIRGE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   Rough wind, that moanest loud
   Grief too sad for song;
   Wild wind, when sullen cloud
   Knells all the night long;
   Sad storm whose tears are vain,                                      _5
   Bare woods, whose branches strain,
   Deep caves and dreary main,--
   Wail, for the world's wrong!
   
   NOTE:
   _6 strain cj. Rossetti; stain edition 1824.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES WRITTEN IN THE BAY OF LERICI.
   
   [Published from the Boscombe manuscripts by Dr. Garnett, "Macmillan's
   Magazine", June, 1862; reprinted, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   She left me at the silent time
   When the moon had ceased to climb
   The azure path of Heaven's steep,
   And like an albatross asleep,
   Balanced on her wings of light,                                      _5
   Hovered in the purple night,
   Ere she sought her ocean nest
   In the chambers of the West.
   She left me, and I stayed alone
   Thinking over every tone                                             _10
   Which, though silent to the ear,
   The enchanted heart could hear,
   Like notes which die when born, but still
   Haunt the echoes of the hill;
   And feeling ever--oh, too much!--                                    _15
   The soft vibration of her touch,
   As if her gentle hand, even now,
   Lightly trembled on my brow;
   And thus, although she absent were,
   Memory gave me all of her                                            _20
   That even Fancy dares to claim:--
   Her presence had made weak and tame
   All passions, and I lived alone
   In the time which is our own;
   The past and future were forgot,                                     _25
   As they had been, and would be, not.
   But soon, the guardian angel gone,
   The daemon reassumed his throne
   In my faint heart. I dare not speak
   My thoughts, but thus disturbed and weak                             _30
   I sat and saw the vessels glide
   Over the ocean bright and wide,
   Like spirit-winged chariots sent
   O'er some serenest element
   For ministrations strange and far;                                   _35
   As if to some Elysian star
   Sailed for drink to medicine
   Such sweet and bitter pain as mine.
   And the wind that winged their flight
   From the land came fresh and light,                                  _40
   And the scent of winged flowers,
   And the coolness of the hours
   Of dew, and sweet warmth left by day,
   Were scattered o'er the twinkling bay.
   And the fisher with his lamp                                         _45
   And spear about the low rocks damp
   Crept, and struck the fish which came
   To worship the delusive flame.
   Too happy they, whose pleasure sought
   Extinguishes all sense and thought                                   _50
   Of the regret that pleasure leaves,
   Destroying life alone, not peace!
   
   NOTES:
   _11 though silent Relics 1862; though now silent Mac. Mag. 1862.
   _31 saw Relics 1862; watched Mac. Mag. 1862.
   
   ***
   
   
   LINES: 'WE MEET NOT AS WE PARTED'.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   1.
   We meet not as we parted,
   We feel more than all may see;
   My bosom is heavy-hearted,
   And thine full of doubt for me:--
   One moment has bound the free.                                       _5
   
   2.
   That moment is gone for ever,
   Like lightning that flashed and died--
   Like a snowflake upon the river--
   Like a sunbeam upon the tide,
   Which the dark shadows hide.                                         _10
   
   3.
   That moment from time was singled
   As the first of a life of pain;
   The cup of its joy was mingled
   --Delusion too sweet though vain!
   Too sweet to be mine again.                                          _15
   
   4.
   Sweet lips, could my heart have hidden
   That its life was crushed by you,
   Ye would not have then forbidden
   The death which a heart so true
   Sought in your briny dew.                                            _20
   
   5.
   ...
   ...
   ...
   Methinks too little cost
   For a moment so found, so lost!                                      _25
   
   ***
   
   
   THE ISLE.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   There was a little lawny islet
   By anemone and violet,
   Like mosaic, paven:
   And its roof was flowers and leaves
   Which the summer's breath enweaves,                                  _5
   Where nor sun nor showers nor breeze
   Pierce the pines and tallest trees,
   Each a gem engraven;--
   Girt by many an azure wave
   With which the clouds and mountains pave                             _10
   A lake's blue chasm.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: TO THE MOON.
   
   [Published by Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.]
   
   Bright wanderer, fair coquette of Heaven,
   To whom alone it has been given
   To change and be adored for ever,
   Envy not this dim world, for never
   But once within its shadow grew                                      _5
   One fair as--
   
   ***
   
   
   EPITAPH.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   These are two friends whose lives were undivided;
   So let their memory be, now they have glided
   Under the grave; let not their bones be parted,
   For their two hearts in life were single-hearted.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON POEMS OF 1822, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
       This morn thy gallant bark
       Sailed on a sunny sea:
       'Tis noon, and tempests dark
       Have wrecked it on the lee.
       Ah woe! ah woe!
       By Spirits of the deep
       Thou'rt cradled on the billow
       To thy eternal sleep.
   
       Thou sleep'st upon the shore
       Beside the knelling surge,
       And Sea-nymphs evermore
       Shall sadly chant thy dirge.
       They come, they come,
       The Spirits of the deep,--
       While near thy seaweed pillow
       My lonely watch I keep.
   
       From far across the sea
       I hear a loud lament,
       By Echo's voice for thee
       From Ocean's caverns sent.
       O list! O list!
       The Spirits of the deep!
       They raise a wail of sorrow,
       While I forever weep.
   
   With this last year of the life of Shelley these Notes end. They are
   not what I intended them to be. I began with energy, and a burning
   desire to impart to the world, in worthy language, the sense I have of
   the virtues and genius of the beloved and the lost; my strength has
   failed under the task. Recurrence to the past, full of its own deep and
   unforgotten joys and sorrows, contrasted with succeeding years of
   painful and solitary struggle, has shaken my health. Days of great
   suffering have followed my attempts to write, and these again produced
   a weakness and languor that spread their sinister influence over these
   notes. I dislike speaking of myself, but cannot help apologizing to the
   dead, and to the public, for not having executed in the manner I
   desired the history I engaged to give of Shelley's writings. (I at one
   time feared that the correction of the press might be less exact
   through my illness; but I believe that it is nearly free from error.
   Some asterisks occur in a few pages, as they did in the volume of
   "Posthumous Poems", either because they refer to private concerns, or
   because the original manuscript was left imperfect. Did any one see the
   papers from which I drew that volume, the wonder would be how any eyes
   or patience were capable of extracting it from so confused a mass,
   interlined and broken into fragments, so that the sense could only be
   deciphered and joined by guesses which might seem rather intuitive than
   founded on reasoning. Yet I believe no mistake was made.)
   
   The winter of 1822 was passed in Pisa, if we might call that season
   winter in which autumn merged into spring after the interval of but few
   days of bleaker weather. Spring sprang up early, and with extreme
   beauty. Shelley had conceived the idea of writing a tragedy on the
   subject of Charles I. It was one that he believed adapted for a drama;
   full of intense interest, contrasted character, and busy passion. He
   had recommended it long before, when he encouraged me to attempt a
   play. Whether the subject proved more difficult than he anticipated, or
   whether in fact he could not bend his mind away from the broodings and
   wanderings of thought, divested from human interest, which he best
   loved, I cannot tell; but he proceeded slowly, and threw it aside for
   one of the most mystical of his poems, the "Triumph of Life", on which
   he was employed at the last.
   
   His passion for boating was fostered at this time by having among our
   friends several sailors. His favourite companion, Edward Ellerker
   Williams, of the 8th Light Dragoons, had begun his life in the navy,
   and had afterwards entered the army; he had spent several years in
   India, and his love for adventure and manly exercises accorded with
   Shelley's taste. It was their favourite plan to build a boat such as
   they could manage themselves, and, living on the sea-coast, to enjoy at
   every hour and season the pleasure they loved best. Captain Roberts,
   R.N., undertook to build the boat at Genoa, where he was also occupied
   in building the "Bolivar" for Lord Byron. Ours was to be an open boat,
   on a model taken from one of the royal dockyards. I have since heard
   that there was a defect in this model, and that it was never seaworthy.
   In the month of February, Shelley and his friend went to Spezia to seek
   for houses for us. Only one was to be found at all suitable; however, a
   trifle such as not finding a house could not stop Shelley; the one
   found was to serve for all. It was unfurnished; we sent our furniture
   by sea, and with a good deal of precipitation, arising from his
   impatience, made our removal. We left Pisa on the 26th of April.
   
   The Bay of Spezia is of considerable extent, and divided by a rocky
   promontory into a larger and smaller one. The town of Lerici is
   situated on the eastern point, and in the depth of the smaller bay,
   which bears the name of this town, is the village of San Terenzo. Our
   house, Casa Magni, was close to this village; the sea came up to the
   door, a steep hill sheltered it behind. The proprietor of the estate on
   which it was situated was insane; he had begun to erect a large house
   at the summit of the hill behind, but his malady prevented its being
   finished, and it was falling into ruin. He had (and this to the
   Italians had seemed a glaring symptom of very decided madness) rooted
   up the olives on the hillside, and planted forest trees. These were
   mostly young, but the plantation was more in English taste than I ever
   elsewhere saw in Italy; some fine walnut and ilex trees intermingled
   their dark massy foliage, and formed groups which still haunt my
   memory, as then they satiated the eye with a sense of loveliness. The
   scene was indeed of unimaginable beauty. The blue extent of waters, the
   almost landlocked bay, the near castle of Lerici shutting it in to the
   east, and distant Porto Venere to the west; the varied forms of the
   precipitous rocks that bound in the beach, over which there was only a
   winding rugged footpath towards Lerici, and none on the other side; the
   tideless sea leaving no sands nor shingle, formed a picture such as one
   sees in Salvator Rosa's landscapes only. Sometimes the sunshine
   vanished when the sirocco raged--the 'ponente' the wind was called on
   that shore. The gales and squalls that hailed our first arrival
   surrounded the bay with foam; the howling wind swept round our exposed
   house, and the sea roared unremittingly, so that we almost fancied
   ourselves on board ship. At other times sunshine and calm invested sea
   and sky, and the rich tints of Italian heaven bathed the scene in
   bright and ever-varying tints.
   
   The natives were wilder than the place. Our near neighbours of San
   Terenzo were more like savages than any people I ever before lived
   among. Many a night they passed on the beach, singing, or rather
   howling; the women dancing about among the waves that broke at their
   feet, the men leaning against the rocks and joining in their loud wild
   chorus. We could get no provisions nearer than Sarzana, at a distance
   of three miles and a half off, with the torrent of the Magra between;
   and even there the supply was very deficient. Had we been wrecked on an
   island of the South Seas, we could scarcely have felt ourselves farther
   from civilisation and comfort; but, where the sun shines, the latter
   becomes an unnecessary luxury, and we had enough society among
   ourselves. Yet I confess housekeeping became rather a toilsome task,
   especially as I was suffering in my health, and could not exert myself
   actively.
   
   At first the fatal boat had not arrived, and was expected with great
   impatience. On Monday, 12th May, it came. Williams records the
   long-wished-for fact in his journal: 'Cloudy and threatening weather.
   M. Maglian called; and after dinner, and while walking with him on the
   terrace, we discovered a strange sail coming round the point of Porto
   Venere, which proved at length to be Shelley's boat. She had left Genoa
   on Thursday last, but had been driven back by the prevailing bad winds.
   A Mr. Heslop and two English seamen brought her round, and they speak
   most highly of her performances. She does indeed excite my surprise and
   admiration. Shelley and I walked to Lerici, and made a stretch off the
   land to try her: and I find she fetches whatever she looks at. In
   short, we have now a perfect plaything for the summer.'--It was thus
   that short-sighted mortals welcomed Death, he having disguised his grim
   form in a pleasing mask! The time of the friends was now spent on the
   sea; the weather became fine, and our whole party often passed the
   evenings on the water when the wind promised pleasant sailing. Shelley
   and Williams made longer excursions; they sailed several times to
   Massa. They had engaged one of the seamen who brought her round, a boy,
   by name Charles Vivian; and they had not the slightest apprehension of
   danger. When the weather was unfavourable, they employed themselves
   with alterations in the rigging, and by building a boat of canvas and
   reeds, as light as possible, to have on board the other for the
   convenience of landing in waters too shallow for the larger vessel.
   When Shelley was on board, he had his papers with him; and much of the
   "Triumph of Life" was written as he sailed or weltered on that sea
   which was soon to engulf him.
   
   The heats set in in the middle of June; the days became excessively
   hot. But the sea-breeze cooled the air at noon, and extreme heat always
   put Shelley in spirits. A long drought had preceded the heat; and
   prayers for rain were being put up in the churches, and processions of
   relics for the same effect took place in every town. At this time we
   received letters announcing the arrival of Leigh Hunt at Genoa. Shelley
   was very eager to see him. I was confined to my room by severe illness,
   and could not move; it was agreed that Shelley and Williams should go
   to Leghorn in the boat. Strange that no fear of danger crossed our
   minds! Living on the sea-shore, the ocean became as a plaything: as a
   child may sport with a lighted stick, till a spark inflames a forest,
   and spreads destruction over all, so did we fearlessly and blindly
   tamper with danger, and make a game of the terrors of the ocean. Our
   Italian neighbours, even, trusted themselves as far as Massa in the
   skiff; and the running down the line of coast to Leghorn gave no more
   notion of peril than a fair-weather inland navigation would have done
   to those who had never seen the sea. Once, some months before, Trelawny
   had raised a warning voice as to the difference of our calm bay and the
   open sea beyond; but Shelley and his friend, with their one sailor-boy,
   thought themselves a match for the storms of the Mediterranean, in a
   boat which they looked upon as equal to all it was put to do.
   
   On the 1st of July they left us. If ever shadow of future ill darkened
   the present hour, such was over my mind when they went. During the
   whole of our stay at Lerici, an intense presentiment of coming evil
   brooded over my mind, and covered this beautiful place and genial
   summer with the shadow of coming misery. I had vainly struggled with
   these emotions--they seemed accounted for by my illness; but at this
   hour of separation they recurred with renewed violence. I did not
   anticipate danger for them, but a vague expectation of evil shook me to
   agony, and I could scarcely bring myself to let them go. The day was
   calm and clear; and, a fine breeze rising at twelve, they weighed for
   Leghorn. They made the run of about fifty miles in seven hours and a
   half. The "Bolivar" was in port; and, the regulations of the
   Health-office not permitting them to go on shore after sunset, they
   borrowed cushions from the larger vessel, and slept on board their
   boat.
   
   They spent a week at Pisa and Leghorn. The want of rain was severely
   felt in the country. The weather continued sultry and fine. I have
   heard that Shelley all this time was in brilliant spirits. Not long
   before, talking of presentiment, he had said the only one that he ever
   found infallible was the certain advent of some evil fortune when he
   felt peculiarly joyous. Yet, if ever fate whispered of coming disaster,
   such inaudible but not unfelt prognostics hovered around us. The beauty
   of the place seemed unearthly in its excess: the distance we were at
   from all signs of civilization, the sea at our feet, its murmurs or its
   roaring for ever in our ears,--all these things led the mind to brood
   over strange thoughts, and, lifting it from everyday life, caused it to
   be familiar with the unreal. A sort of spell surrounded us; and each
   day, as the voyagers did not return, we grew restless and disquieted,
   and yet, strange to say, we were not fearful of the most apparent
   danger.
   
   The spell snapped; it was all over; an interval of agonizing doubt--of
   days passed in miserable journeys to gain tidings, of hopes that took
   firmer root even as they were more baseless--was changed to the
   certainty of the death that eclipsed all happiness for the survivors
   for evermore.
   
   There was something in our fate peculiarly harrowing. The remains of
   those we lost were cast on shore; but, by the quarantine-laws of the
   coast, we were not permitted to have possession of them--the law with
   respect to everything cast on land by the sea being that such should be
   burned, to prevent the possibility of any remnant bringing the plague
   into Italy; and no representation could alter the law. At length,
   through the kind and unwearied exertions of Mr. Dawkins, our Charge
   d'Affaires at Florence, we gained permission to receive the ashes after
   the bodies were consumed. Nothing could equal the zeal of Trelawny in
   carrying our wishes into effect. He was indefatigable in his exertions,
   and full of forethought and sagacity in his arrangements. It was a
   fearful task; he stood before us at last, his hands scorched and
   blistered by the flames of the funeral-pyre, and by touching the burnt
   relics as he placed them in the receptacles prepared for the purpose.
   And there, in compass of that small case, was gathered all that
   remained on earth of him whose genius and virtue were a crown of glory
   to the world--whose love had been the source of happiness, peace, and
   good,--to be buried with him!
   
   The concluding stanzas of the "Adonais" pointed out where the remains
   ought to be deposited; in addition to which our beloved child lay
   buried in the cemetery at Rome. Thither Shelley's ashes were conveyed;
   and they rest beneath one of the antique weed-grown towers that recur
   at intervals in the circuit of the massy ancient wall of Rome. He
   _select_ed the hallowed place himself; there is
   
       'the sepulchre,
       Oh, not of him, but of our joy!--
       ...
       And gray walls moulder round, on which dull Time
       Feeds, like slow fire upon a hoary brand;
       And one keen pyramid with wedge sublime,
       Pavilioning the dust of him who planned
       This refuge for his memory, doth stand
       Like flame transformed to marble; and beneath,
       A field is spread, on which a newer band
       Have pitched in Heaven's smile their camp of death,
       Welcoming him we lose with scarce extinguished breath.'
   
   Could sorrow for the lost, and shuddering anguish at the vacancy left
   behind, be soothed by poetic imaginations, there was something in
   Shelley's fate to mitigate pangs which yet, alas! could not be so
   mitigated; for hard reality brings too miserably home to the mourner
   all that is lost of happiness, all of lonely unsolaced struggle that
   remains. Still, though dreams and hues of poetry cannot blunt grief, it
   invests his fate with a sublime fitness, which those less nearly allied
   may regard with complacency. A year before he had poured into verse all
   such ideas about death as give it a glory of its own. He had, as it now
   seems, almost anticipated his own destiny; and, when the mind figures
   his skiff wrapped from sight by the thunder-storm, as it was last seen
   upon the purple sea, and then, as the cloud of the tempest passed away,
   no sign remained of where it had been (Captain Roberts watched the
   vessel with his glass from the top of the lighthouse of Leghorn, on its
   homeward track. They were off Via Reggio, at some distance from shore,
   when a storm was driven over the sea. It enveloped them and several
   larger vessels in darkness. When the cloud passed onwards, Roberts
   looked again, and saw every other vessel sailing on the ocean except
   their little schooner, which had vanished. From that time he could
   scarcely doubt the fatal truth; yet we fancied that they might have
   been driven towards Elba or Corsica, and so be saved. The observation
   made as to the spot where the boat disappeared caused it to be found,
   through the exertions of Trelawny for that effect. It had gone down in
   ten fathom water; it had not capsized, and, except such things as had
   floated from her, everything was found on board exactly as it had been
   placed when they sailed. The boat itself was uninjured. Roberts
   possessed himself of her, and decked her; but she proved not seaworthy,
   and her shattered planks now lie rotting on the shore of one of the
   Ionian islands, on which she was wrecked.)--who but will regard as a
   prophecy the last stanza of the "Adonais"?
   
       'The breath whose might I have invoked in song
       Descends on me; my spirit's bark is driven,
       Far from the shore, far from the trembling throng
       Whose sails were never to the tempest given;
       The massy earth and sphered skies are riven!
       I am borne darkly, fearfully, afar;
       Whilst burning through the inmost veil of Heaven,
       The soul of Adonais, like a star,
       Beacons from the abode where the Eternal are.'
   
   Putney, May 1, 1839.   TRANSLATIONS.
   
   HYMN TO MERCURY. TRANSLATED FROM THE GREEK OF HOMER.
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO CASTOR AND POLLUX.
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO THE MOON.
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO THE SUN.
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO THE EARTH: MOTHER OF ALL.
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO MINERVA.
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO VENUS.
   
   THE CYCLOPS: A SATYRIC DRAMA. TRANSLATED FROM THE GREEK OF EURIPIDES.
   
   EPIGRAMS:
   
   1. TO STELLA. FROM THE GREEK OF PLATO.
   
   2. KISSING HELENA. FROM THE GREEK OF PLATO.
   
   3. SPIRIT OF PLATO. FROM THE GREEK.
   
   4. CIRCUMSTANCE. FROM THE GREEK.
   
   FRAGMENT OF THE ELEGY ON THE DEATH OF ADONIS. FROM THE GREEK OF BION.
   
   FRAGMENT OF THE ELEGY ON THE DEATH OF BION. FROM THE GREEK OF MOSCHUS.
   
   FROM THE GREEK OF MOSCHUS.
   
   PAN, ECHO, AND THE SATYR. FROM THE GREEK OF MOSCHUS.
   
   FROM VERGIL'S TENTH ECLOGUE.
   
   THE SAME.
   
   FROM VERGIL'S FOURTH GEORGIC.
   
   SONNET. FROM THE ITALIAN OF DANTE.
   
   THE FIRST CANZONE OF THE "CONVITO". FROM THE ITALIAN OF DANTE.
   
   MATILDA GATHERING FLOWERS. FROM THE "PURGATORIO" OF DANTE.
   
   FRAGMENT. ADAPTED FROM THE "VITA NUOVA" OF DANTE.
   
   UGOLINO. "INFERNO", 33, 22-75, TRANSLATED BY MEDWIN AND CORRECTED BY SHELLEY.
   
   SONNET. FROM THE ITALIAN OF CAVALCANTI.
   
   SCENES FROM THE "MAGICO PRODIGIOSO". FROM THE SPANISH OF CALDERON.
   
   STANZAS FROM CALDERON'S "CISMA DE INGLETERRA".
   
   SCENES FROM THE "FAUST" OF GOETHE.
   
   JUVENILIA.
   
   QUEEN MAB. A PHILOSOPHICAL POEM.
   TO HARRIET ******.
   QUEEN MAB.
   SHELLEY'S NOTES.
   NOTE BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   VERSES ON A CAT.
   
   FRAGMENT: OMENS.
   
   EPITAPHIUM [LATIN VERSION OF THE EPITAPH IN GRAY'S "ELEGY"].
   
   IN HOROLOGIUM.
   
   A DIALOGUE.
   
   TO THE MOONBEAM.
   
   THE SOLITARY.
   
   TO DEATH.
   
   LOVE'S ROSE.
   
   EYES: A FRAGMENT.
   
   ORIGINAL POETRY BY VICTOR AND CAZIRE.
   
   1. 'HERE I SIT WITH MY PAPER, MY PEN AND MY INK'.
   
   2. TO MISS -- -- [HARRIET GROVE] FROM MISS -- -- [ELIZABETH SHELLEY].
   
   3. SONG: 'COLD, COLD IS THE BLAST'.
   
   4. SONG: 'COME [HARRIET]! SWEET IS THE HOUR'.
   
   5. SONG: DESPAIR.
   
   6. SONG: SORROW.
   
   7. SONG: HOPE.
   
   8. SONG: TRANSLATED FROM THE ITALIAN.
   
   9. SONG: TRANSLATED FROM THE GERMAN.
   
   10. THE IRISHMAN'S SONG.
   
   11. SONG: 'FIERCE ROARS THE MIDNIGHT STORM'.
   
   12. SONG: TO -- [HARRIET].
   
   13. SONG: TO -- [HARRIET].
   
   14. SAINT EDMOND'S EVE.
   
   15. REVENGE.
   
   16. GHASTA; OR, THE AVENGING DEMON.
   
   17. FRAGMENT; OR, THE TRIUMPH OF CONSCIENCE.
   
   POEMS FROM ST. IRVYNE; OR, THE ROSICRUCIAN.
   
   1. VICTORIA.
   
   2. 'ON THE DARK HEIGHT OF JURA'.
   
   3. SISTER ROSA. A BALLAD.
   
   4. ST. IRVYNE'S TOWER.
   
   5. BEREAVEMENT.
   
   6. THE DROWNED LOVER.
   
   POSTHUMOUS FRAGMENTS OF MARGARET NICHOLSON.
   
   ADVERTISEMENT.
   
   WAR.
   
   FRAGMENT: SUPPOSED TO BE AN EPITHALAMIUM OF
   FRANCIS RAVAILLAC AND CHARLOTTE CORDAY.
   
   DESPAIR.
   
   FRAGMENT.
   
   THE SPECTRAL HORSEMAN.
   
   MELODY TO A SCENE OF FORMER TIMES.
   
   STANZA FROM A TRANSLATION OF THE MARSEILLAISE HYMN.
   
   BIGOTRY'S VICTIM.
   
   ON AN ICICLE THAT CLUNG TO THE GRASS OF A GRAVE.
   
   LOVE.
   
   ON A FETE AT CARLTON HOUSE: FRAGMENT.
   
   TO A STAR.
   
   TO MARY, WHO DIED IN THIS OPINION.
   
   A TALE OF SOCIETY AS IT IS: FROM FACTS, 1811.
   
   TO THE REPUBLICANS OF NORTH AMERICA.
   
   TO IRELAND.
   
   ON ROBERT EMMET'S GRAVE.
   
   THE RETROSPECT: CWM ELAN, 1812.
   
   FRAGMENT OF A SONNET: TO HARRIET.
   
   TO HARRIET.
   
   SONNET: TO A BALLOON LADEN WITH KNOWLEDGE.
   
   SONNET: ON LAUNCHING SOME BOTTLES FILLED WITH KNOWLEDGE INTO THE
   BRISTOL CHANNEL.
   
   THE DEVIL'S WALK.
   
   FRAGMENT OF A SONNET: FAREWELL TO NORTH DEVON.
   
   ON LEAVING LONDON FOR WALES.
   
   THE WANDERING JEW'S SOLILOQUY.
   
   EVENING: TO HARRIET.
   
   TO IANTHE.
   
   SONG FROM THE WANDERING JEW.
   
   FRAGMENT FROM THE WANDERING JEW.
   
   TO THE QUEEN OF MY HEART.
   
   
   EDITOR'S NOTES.
   
   
   BIBLIOGRAPHICAL LIST OF EDITIONS.
   
   
   INDEX OF FIRST LINES.
   
   
   ***
   
   
   TRANSLATIONS.
   
   [Of the Translations that follow a few were published by Shelley
   himself, others by Mrs. Shelley in the "Posthumous Poems", 1824, or the
   "Poetical Works", 1839, and the remainder by Medwin (1834, 1847),
   Garnett (1862), Rossetti (1870), Forman (1876) and Locock (1903) from
   the manuscript originals. Shelley's "Translations" fall between the
   years 1818 and 1822.]
   
   
   HYMN TO MERCURY.
   
   TRANSLATED FROM THE GREEK OF HOMER.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824. This alone of the
   "Translations" is included in the Harvard manuscript book. 'Fragments of
   the drafts of this and the other Hymns of Homer exist among the Boscombe
   manuscripts' (Forman).]
   
   1.
   Sing, Muse, the son of Maia and of Jove,
   The Herald-child, king of Arcadia
   And all its pastoral hills, whom in sweet love
   Having been interwoven, modest May
   Bore Heaven's dread Supreme. An antique grove                        _5
   Shadowed the cavern where the lovers lay
   In the deep night, unseen by Gods or Men,
   And white-armed Juno slumbered sweetly then.
   
   2.
   Now, when the joy of Jove had its fulfilling,
   And Heaven's tenth moon chronicled her relief,                       _10
   She gave to light a babe all babes excelling,
   A schemer subtle beyond all belief;
   A shepherd of thin dreams, a cow-stealing,
   A night-watching, and door-waylaying thief,
   Who 'mongst the Gods was soon about to thieve,                       _15
   And other glorious actions to achieve.
   
   3.
   The babe was born at the first peep of day;
   He began playing on the lyre at noon,
   And the same evening did he steal away
   Apollo's herds;--the fourth day of the moon                          _20
   On which him bore the venerable May,
   From her immortal limbs he leaped full soon,
   Nor long could in the sacred cradle keep,
   But out to seek Apollo's herds would creep.
   
   4.
   Out of the lofty cavern wandering                                    _25
   He found a tortoise, and cried out--'A treasure!'
   (For Mercury first made the tortoise sing)
   The beast before the portal at his leisure
   The flowery herbage was depasturing,
   Moving his feet in a deliberate measure                              _30
   Over the turf. Jove's profitable son
   Eying him laughed, and laughing thus begun:--
   
   5.
   'A useful godsend are you to me now,
   King of the dance, companion of the feast,
   Lovely in all your nature! Welcome, you                              _35
   Excellent plaything! Where, sweet mountain-beast,
   Got you that speckled shell? Thus much I know,
   You must come home with me and be my guest;
   You will give joy to me, and I will do
   All that is in my power to honour you.                               _40
   
   6.
   'Better to be at home than out of door,
   So come with me; and though it has been said
   That you alive defend from magic power,
   I know you will sing sweetly when you're dead.'
   Thus having spoken, the quaint infant bore,                          _45
   Lifting it from the grass on which it fed
   And grasping it in his delighted hold,
   His treasured prize into the cavern old.
   
   7.
   Then scooping with a chisel of gray steel,
   He bored the life and soul out of the beast.--                       _50
   Not swifter a swift thought of woe or weal
   Darts through the tumult of a human breast
   Which thronging cares annoy--not swifter wheel
   The flashes of its torture and unrest
   Out of the dizzy eyes--than Maia's son                               _55
   All that he did devise hath featly done.
   
   8.
   ...
   And through the tortoise's hard stony skin
   At proper distances small holes he made,
   And fastened the cut stems of reeds within,
   And with a piece of leather overlaid                                 _60
   The open space and fixed the cubits in,
   Fitting the bridge to both, and stretched o'er all
   Symphonious cords of sheep-gut rhythmical.
   
   9.
   When he had wrought the lovely instrument,
   He tried the chords, and made division meet,                         _65
   Preluding with the plectrum, and there went
   Up from beneath his hand a tumult sweet
   Of mighty sounds, and from his lips he sent
   A strain of unpremeditated wit
   Joyous and wild and wanton--such you may                             _70
   Hear among revellers on a holiday.
   
   10.
   He sung how Jove and May of the bright sandal
   Dallied in love not quite legitimate;
   And his own birth, still scoffing at the scandal,
   And naming his own name, did celebrate;                              _75
   His mother's cave and servant maids he planned all
   In plastic verse, her household stuff and state,
   Perennial pot, trippet, and brazen pan,--
   But singing, he conceived another plan.
   
   11.
   ...
   Seized with a sudden fancy for fresh meat,                           _80
   He in his sacred crib deposited
   The hollow lyre, and from the cavern sweet
   Rushed with great leaps up to the mountain's head,
   Revolving in his mind some subtle feat
   Of thievish craft, such as a swindler might                          _85
   Devise in the lone season of dun night.
   
   12.
   Lo! the great Sun under the ocean's bed has
   Driven steeds and chariot--the child meanwhile strode
   O'er the Pierian mountains clothed in shadows,
   Where the immortal oxen of the God                                   _90
   Are pastured in the flowering unmown meadows,
   And safely stalled in a remote abode.--
   The archer Argicide, elate and proud,
   Drove fifty from the herd, lowing aloud.
   
   13.
   He drove them wandering o'er the sandy way,                          _95
   But, being ever mindful of his craft,
   Backward and forward drove he them astray,
   So that the tracks which seemed before, were aft;
   His sandals then he threw to the ocean spray,
   And for each foot he wrought a kind of raft                          _100
   Of tamarisk, and tamarisk-like sprigs,
   And bound them in a lump with withy twigs.
   
   14.
   And on his feet he tied these sandals light,
   The trail of whose wide leaves might not betray
   His track; and then, a self-sufficing wight,                         _105
   Like a man hastening on some distant way,
   He from Pieria's mountain bent his flight;
   But an old man perceived the infant pass
   Down green Onchestus heaped like beds with grass.
   
   15.
   The old man stood dressing his sunny vine:                           _110
   'Halloo! old fellow with the crooked shoulder!
   You grub those stumps? before they will bear wine
   Methinks even you must grow a little older:
   Attend, I pray, to this advice of mine,
   As you would 'scape what might appal a bolder--                      _115
   Seeing, see not--and hearing, hear not--and--
   If you have understanding--understand.'
   
   16.
   So saying, Hermes roused the oxen vast;
   O'er shadowy mountain and resounding dell,
   And flower-paven plains, great Hermes passed;                        _120
   Till the black night divine, which favouring fell
   Around his steps, grew gray, and morning fast
   Wakened the world to work, and from her cell
   Sea-strewn, the Pallantean Moon sublime
   Into her watch-tower just began to climb.                            _125
   
   17.
   Now to Alpheus he had driven all
   The broad-foreheaded oxen of the Sun;
   They came unwearied to the lofty stall
   And to the water-troughs which ever run
   Through the fresh fields--and when with rushgrass tall,              _130
   Lotus and all sweet herbage, every one
   Had pastured been, the great God made them move
   Towards the stall in a collected drove.
   
   18.
   A mighty pile of wood the God then heaped,
   And having soon conceived the mystery                                _135
   Of fire, from two smooth laurel branches stripped
   The bark, and rubbed them in his palms;--on high
   Suddenly forth the burning vapour leaped
   And the divine child saw delightedly.--
   Mercury first found out for human weal                               _140
   Tinder-box, matches, fire-irons, flint and steel.
   
   19.
   And fine dry logs and roots innumerous
   He gathered in a delve upon the ground--
   And kindled them--and instantaneous
   The strength of the fierce flame was breathed around:                _145
   And whilst the might of glorious Vulcan thus
   Wrapped the great pile with glare and roaring sound,
   Hermes dragged forth two heifers, lowing loud,
   Close to the fire--such might was in the God.
   
   20.
   And on the earth upon their backs he threw                           _150
   The panting beasts, and rolled them o'er and o'er,
   And bored their lives out. Without more ado
   He cut up fat and flesh, and down before
   The fire, on spits of wood he placed the two,
   Toasting their flesh and ribs, and all the gore                      _155
   Pursed in the bowels; and while this was done
   He stretched their hides over a craggy stone.
   
   21.
   We mortals let an ox grow old, and then
   Cut it up after long consideration,--
   But joyous-minded Hermes from the glen                               _160
   Drew the fat spoils to the more open station
   Of a flat smooth space, and portioned them; and when
   He had by lot assigned to each a ration
   Of the twelve Gods, his mind became aware
   Of all the joys which in religion are.                               _165
   
   22.
   For the sweet savour of the roasted meat
   Tempted him though immortal. Natheless
   He checked his haughty will and did not eat,
   Though what it cost him words can scarce express,
   And every wish to put such morsels sweet                             _170
   Down his most sacred throat, he did repress;
   But soon within the lofty portalled stall
   He placed the fat and flesh and bones and all.
   
   23.
   And every trace of the fresh butchery
   And cooking, the God soon made disappear,                            _175
   As if it all had vanished through the sky;
   He burned the hoofs and horns and head and hair,--
   The insatiate fire devoured them hungrily;--
   And when he saw that everything was clear,
   He quenched the coal, and trampled the black dust,                   _180
   And in the stream his bloody sandals tossed.
   
   24.
   All night he worked in the serene moonshine--
   But when the light of day was spread abroad
   He sought his natal mountain-peaks divine.
   On his long wandering, neither Man nor God                           _185
   Had met him, since he killed Apollo's kine,
   Nor house-dog had barked at him on his road;
   Now he obliquely through the keyhole passed,
   Like a thin mist, or an autumnal blast.
   
   25.
   Right through the temple of the spacious cave                        _190
   He went with soft light feet--as if his tread
   Fell not on earth; no sound their falling gave;
   Then to his cradle he crept quick, and spread
   The swaddling-clothes about him; and the knave
   Lay playing with the covering of the bed                             _195
   With his left hand about his knees--the right
   Held his beloved tortoise-lyre tight.
   
   26.
   There he lay innocent as a new-born child,
   As gossips say; but though he was a God,
   The Goddess, his fair mother, unbeguiled,                            _200
   Knew all that he had done being abroad:
   'Whence come you, and from what adventure wild,
   You cunning rogue, and where have you abode
   All the long night, clothed in your impudence?
   What have you done since you departed hence?                         _205
   
   27.
   'Apollo soon will pass within this gate
   And bind your tender body in a chain
   Inextricably tight, and fast as fate,
   Unless you can delude the God again,
   Even when within his arms--ah, runagate!                             _210
   A pretty torment both for Gods and Men
   Your father made when he made you!'--'Dear mother,'
   Replied sly Hermes, 'wherefore scold and bother?
   
   28.
   'As if I were like other babes as old,
   And understood nothing of what is what;                              _215
   And cared at all to hear my mother scold.
   I in my subtle brain a scheme have got,
   Which whilst the sacred stars round Heaven are rolled
   Will profit you and me--nor shall our lot
   Be as you counsel, without gifts or food,                            _220
   To spend our lives in this obscure abode.
   
   29
   'But we will leave this shadow-peopled cave
   And live among the Gods, and pass each day
   In high communion, sharing what they have
   Of profuse wealth and unexhausted prey;                              _225
   And from the portion which my father gave
   To Phoebus, I will snatch my share away,
   Which if my father will not--natheless I,
   Who am the king of robbers, can but try.
   
   30.
   'And, if Latona's son should find me out,                            _230
   I'll countermine him by a deeper plan;
   I'll pierce the Pythian temple-walls, though stout,
   And sack the fane of everything I can--
   Caldrons and tripods of great worth no doubt,
   Each golden cup and polished brazen pan,                             _235
   All the wrought tapestries and garments gay.'--
   So they together talked;--meanwhile the Day
   
   31.
   Aethereal born arose out of the flood
   Of flowing Ocean, bearing light to men.
   Apollo passed toward the sacred wood,                                _240
   Which from the inmost depths of its green glen
   Echoes the voice of Neptune,--and there stood
   On the same spot in green Onchestus then
   That same old animal, the vine-dresser,
   Who was employed hedging his vineyard there.                         _245
   
   32.
   Latona's glorious Son began:--'I pray
   Tell, ancient hedger of Onchestus green,
   Whether a drove of kine has passed this way,
   All heifers with crooked horns? for they have been
   Stolen from the herd in high Pieria,                                 _250
   Where a black bull was fed apart, between
   Two woody mountains in a neighbouring glen,
   And four fierce dogs watched there, unanimous as men.
   
   33.
   'And what is strange, the author of this theft
   Has stolen the fatted heifers every one,                             _255
   But the four dogs and the black bull are left:--
   Stolen they were last night at set of sun,
   Of their soft beds and their sweet food bereft.--
   Now tell me, man born ere the world begun,
   Have you seen any one pass with the cows?'--                         _260
   To whom the man of overhanging brows:
   
   34.
   'My friend, it would require no common skill
   Justly to speak of everything I see:
   On various purposes of good or ill
   Many pass by my vineyard,--and to me                                 _265
   'Tis difficult to know the invisible
   Thoughts, which in all those many minds may be:--
   Thus much alone I certainly can say,
   I tilled these vines till the decline of day,
   
   35.
   'And then I thought I saw, but dare not speak                        _270
   With certainty of such a wondrous thing,
   A child, who could not have been born a week,
   Those fair-horned cattle closely following,
   And in his hand he held a polished stick:
   And, as on purpose, he walked wavering                               _275
   From one side to the other of the road,
   And with his face opposed the steps he trod.'
   
   36.
   Apollo hearing this, passed quickly on--
   No winged omen could have shown more clear
   That the deceiver was his father's son.                              _280
   So the God wraps a purple atmosphere
   Around his shoulders, and like fire is gone
   To famous Pylos, seeking his kine there,
   And found their track and his, yet hardly cold,
   And cried--'What wonder do mine eyes behold!                         _285
   
   37.
   'Here are the footsteps of the horned herd
   Turned back towards their fields of asphodel;--
   But THESE are not the tracks of beast or bird,
   Gray wolf, or bear, or lion of the dell,
   Or maned Centaur--sand was never stirred                             _290
   By man or woman thus! Inexplicable!
   Who with unwearied feet could e'er impress
   The sand with such enormous vestiges?
   
   38.
   'That was most strange--but this is stranger still!'
   Thus having said, Phoebus impetuously                                _295
   Sought high Cyllene's forest-cinctured hill,
   And the deep cavern where dark shadows lie,
   And where the ambrosial nymph with happy will
   Bore the Saturnian's love-child, Mercury--
   And a delightful odour from the dew                                  _300
   Of the hill pastures, at his coming, flew.
   
   39.
   And Phoebus stooped under the craggy roof
   Arched over the dark cavern:--Maia's child
   Perceived that he came angry, far aloof,
   About the cows of which he had been beguiled;                        _305
   And over him the fine and fragrant woof
   Of his ambrosial swaddling-clothes he piled--
   As among fire-brands lies a burning spark
   Covered, beneath the ashes cold and dark.
   
   40.
   There, like an infant who had sucked his fill                        _310
   And now was newly washed and put to bed,
   Awake, but courting sleep with weary will,
   And gathered in a lump, hands, feet, and head,
   He lay, and his beloved tortoise still
   He grasped and held under his shoulder-blade.                        _315
   Phoebus the lovely mountain-goddess knew,
   Not less her subtle, swindling baby, who
   
   41.
   Lay swathed in his sly wiles. Round every crook
   Of the ample cavern, for his kine, Apollo
   Looked sharp; and when he saw them not, he took                      _320
   The glittering key, and opened three great hollow
   Recesses in the rock--where many a nook
   Was filled with the sweet food immortals swallow,
   And mighty heaps of silver and of gold
   Were piled within--a wonder to behold!                               _325
   
   42.
   And white and silver robes, all overwrought
   With cunning workmanship of tracery sweet--
   Except among the Gods there can be nought
   In the wide world to be compared with it.
   Latona's offspring, after having sought                              _330
   His herds in every corner, thus did greet
   Great Hermes:--'Little cradled rogue, declare
   Of my illustrious heifers, where they are!
   
   43.
   'Speak quickly! or a quarrel between us
   Must rise, and the event will be, that I                             _335
   Shall hurl you into dismal Tartarus,
   In fiery gloom to dwell eternally;
   Nor shall your father nor your mother loose
   The bars of that black dungeon--utterly
   You shall be cast out from the light of day,                         _340
   To rule the ghosts of men, unblessed as they.
   
   44.
   To whom thus Hermes slily answered:--'Son
   Of great Latona, what a speech is this!
   Why come you here to ask me what is done
   With the wild oxen which it seems you miss?                          _345
   I have not seen them, nor from any one
   Have heard a word of the whole business;
   If you should promise an immense reward,
   I could not tell more than you now have heard.
   
   45.
   'An ox-stealer should be both tall and strong,                       _350
   And I am but a little new-born thing,
   Who, yet at least, can think of nothing wrong:--
   My business is to suck, and sleep, and fling
   The cradle-clothes about me all day long,--
   Or half asleep, hear my sweet mother sing,                           _355
   And to be washed in water clean and warm,
   And hushed and kissed and kept secure from harm.
   
   46.
   'O, let not e'er this quarrel be averred!
   The astounded Gods would laugh at you, if e'er
   You should allege a story so absurd                                  _360
   As that a new-born infant forth could fare
   Out of his home after a savage herd.
   I was born yesterday--my small feet are
   Too tender for the roads so hard and rough:--
   And if you think that this is not enough,                            _365
   
   47.
   I swear a great oath, by my father's head,
   That I stole not your cows, and that I know
   Of no one else, who might, or could, or did.--
   Whatever things cows are, I do not know,
   For I have only heard the name.'--This said                          _370
   He winked as fast as could be, and his brow
   Was wrinkled, and a whistle loud gave he,
   Like one who hears some strange absurdity.
   
   48.
   Apollo gently smiled and said:--'Ay, ay,--
   You cunning little rascal, you will bore                             _375
   Many a rich man's house, and your array
   Of thieves will lay their siege before his door,
   Silent as night, in night; and many a day
   In the wild glens rough shepherds will deplore
   That you or yours, having an appetite,                               _380
   Met with their cattle, comrade of the night!
   
   49.
   'And this among the Gods shall be your gift,
   To be considered as the lord of those
   Who swindle, house-break, sheep-steal, and shop-lift;--
   But now if you would not your last sleep doze;                       _385
   Crawl out!'--Thus saying, Phoebus did uplift
   The subtle infant in his swaddling clothes,
   And in his arms, according to his wont,
   A scheme devised the illustrious Argiphont.
   
   50.
   ...
   ...
   And sneezed and shuddered--Phoebus on the grass                      _390
   Him threw, and whilst all that he had designed
   He did perform--eager although to pass,
   Apollo darted from his mighty mind
   Towards the subtle babe the following scoff:--
   'Do not imagine this will get you off,                               _395
   
   51.
   'You little swaddled child of Jove and May!
   And seized him:--'By this omen I shall trace
   My noble herds, and you shall lead the way.'--
   Cyllenian Hermes from the grassy place,
   Like one in earnest haste to get away,                               _400
   Rose, and with hands lifted towards his face
   Round both his ears up from his shoulders drew
   His swaddling clothes, and--'What mean you to do
   
   52.
   'With me, you unkind God?'--said Mercury:
   'Is it about these cows you tease me so?                             _405
   I wish the race of cows were perished!--I
   Stole not your cows--I do not even know
   What things cows are. Alas! I well may sigh
   That since I came into this world of woe,
   I should have ever heard the name of one--                           _410
   But I appeal to the Saturnian's throne.'
   
   53.
   Thus Phoebus and the vagrant Mercury
   Talked without coming to an explanation,
   With adverse purpose. As for Phoebus, he
   Sought not revenge, but only information,                            _415
   And Hermes tried with lies and roguery
   To cheat Apollo.--But when no evasion
   Served--for the cunning one his match had found--
   He paced on first over the sandy ground.
   
   54.
   ...
   He of the Silver Bow the child of Jove                               _420
   Followed behind, till to their heavenly Sire
   Came both his children, beautiful as Love,
   And from his equal balance did require
   A judgement in the cause wherein they strove.
   O'er odorous Olympus and its snows                                   _425
   A murmuring tumult as they came arose,--
   
   55.
   And from the folded depths of the great Hill,
   While Hermes and Apollo reverent stood
   Before Jove's throne, the indestructible
   Immortals rushed in mighty multitude;                                _430
   And whilst their seats in order due they fill,
   The lofty Thunderer in a careless mood
   To Phoebus said:--'Whence drive you this sweet prey,
   This herald-baby, born but yesterday?--
   
   56.
   'A most important subject, trifler, this                             _435
   To lay before the Gods!'--'Nay, Father, nay,
   When you have understood the business,
   Say not that I alone am fond of prey.
   I found this little boy in a recess
   Under Cyllene's mountains far away--                                 _440
   A manifest and most apparent thief,
   A scandalmonger beyond all belief.
   
   57.
   'I never saw his like either in Heaven
   Or upon earth for knavery or craft:--
   Out of the field my cattle yester-even,                              _445
   By the low shore on which the loud sea laughed,
   He right down to the river-ford had driven;
   And mere astonishment would make you daft
   To see the double kind of footsteps strange
   He has impressed wherever he did range.                              _450
   
   58.
   'The cattle's track on the black dust, full well
   Is evident, as if they went towards
   The place from which they came--that asphodel
   Meadow, in which I feed my many herds,--
   HIS steps were most incomprehensible--                               _455
   I know not how I can describe in words
   Those tracks--he could have gone along the sands
   Neither upon his feet nor on his hands;--
   
   59.
   'He must have had some other stranger mode
   Of moving on: those vestiges immense,                                _460
   Far as I traced them on the sandy road,
   Seemed like the trail of oak-toppings:--but thence
   No mark nor track denoting where they trod
   The hard ground gave:--but, working at his fence,
   A mortal hedger saw him as he passed                                 _465
   To Pylos, with the cows, in fiery haste.
   
   60.
   'I found that in the dark he quietly
   Had sacrificed some cows, and before light
   Had thrown the ashes all dispersedly
   About the road--then, still as gloomy night,                         _470
   Had crept into his cradle, either eye
   Rubbing, and cogitating some new sleight.
   No eagle could have seen him as he lay
   Hid in his cavern from the peering day.
   
   61.
   'I taxed him with the fact, when he averred                          _475
   Most solemnly that he did neither see
   Nor even had in any manner heard
   Of my lost cows, whatever things cows be;
   Nor could he tell, though offered a reward,
   Not even who could tell of them to me.'                              _480
   So speaking, Phoebus sate; and Hermes then
   Addressed the Supreme Lord of Gods and Men:--
   
   62.
   'Great Father, you know clearly beforehand
   That all which I shall say to you is sooth;
   I am a most veracious person, and                                    _485
   Totally unacquainted with untruth.
   At sunrise Phoebus came, but with no band
   Of Gods to bear him witness, in great wrath,
   To my abode, seeking his heifers there,
   And saying that I must show him where they are,                      _490
   
   63.
   'Or he would hurl me down the dark abyss.
   I know that every Apollonian limb
   Is clothed with speed and might and manliness,
   As a green bank with flowers--but unlike him
   I was born yesterday, and you may guess                              _495
   He well knew this when he indulged the whim
   Of bullying a poor little new-born thing
   That slept, and never thought of cow-driving.
   
   64.
   'Am I like a strong fellow who steals kine?
   Believe me, dearest Father--such you are--                           _500
   This driving of the herds is none of mine;
   Across my threshold did I wander ne'er,
   So may I thrive! I reverence the divine
   Sun and the Gods, and I love you, and care
   Even for this hard accuser--who must know                            _505
   I am as innocent as they or you.
   
   65.
   'I swear by these most gloriously-wrought portals
   (It is, you will allow, an oath of might)
   Through which the multitude of the Immortals
   Pass and repass forever, day and night,                              _510
   Devising schemes for the affairs of mortals--
   I am guiltless; and I will requite,
   Although mine enemy be great and strong,
   His cruel threat--do thou defend the young!'
   
   66.
   So speaking, the Cyllenian Argiphont                                 _515
   Winked, as if now his adversary was fitted:--
   And Jupiter, according to his wont,
   Laughed heartily to hear the subtle-witted
   Infant give such a plausible account,
   And every word a lie. But he remitted                                _520
   Judgement at present--and his exhortation
   Was, to compose the affair by arbitration.
   
   67.
   And they by mighty Jupiter were bidden
   To go forth with a single purpose both,
   Neither the other chiding nor yet chidden:                           _525
   And Mercury with innocence and truth
   To lead the way, and show where he had hidden
   The mighty heifers.--Hermes, nothing loth,
   Obeyed the Aegis-bearer's will--for he
   Is able to persuade all easily.                                      _530
   
   68.
   These lovely children of Heaven's highest Lord
   Hastened to Pylos and the pastures wide
   And lofty stalls by the Alphean ford,
   Where wealth in the mute night is multiplied
   With silent growth. Whilst Hermes drove the herd                     _535
   Out of the stony cavern, Phoebus spied
   The hides of those the little babe had slain,
   Stretched on the precipice above the plain.
   
   69.
   'How was it possible,' then Phoebus said,
   'That you, a little child, born yesterday,                           _540
   A thing on mother's milk and kisses fed,
   Could two prodigious heifers ever flay?
   Even I myself may well hereafter dread
   Your prowess, offspring of Cyllenian May,
   When you grow strong and tall.'--He spoke, and bound                 _545
   Stiff withy bands the infant's wrists around.
   
   70.
   He might as well have bound the oxen wild;
   The withy bands, though starkly interknit,
   Fell at the feet of the immortal child,
   Loosened by some device of his quick wit.                            _550
   Phoebus perceived himself again beguiled,
   And stared--while Hermes sought some hole or pit,
   Looking askance and winking fast as thought,
   Where he might hide himself and not be caught.
   
   71.
   Sudden he changed his plan, and with strange skill                   _555
   Subdued the strong Latonian, by the might
   Of winning music, to his mightier will;
   His left hand held the lyre, and in his right
   The plectrum struck the chords--unconquerable
   Up from beneath his hand in circling flight                          _560
   The gathering music rose--and sweet as Love
   The penetrating notes did live and move
   
   72.
   Within the heart of great Apollo--he
   Listened with all his soul, and laughed for pleasure.
   Close to his side stood harping fearlessly                           _565
   The unabashed boy; and to the measure
   Of the sweet lyre, there followed loud and free
   His joyous voice; for he unlocked the treasure
   Of his deep song, illustrating the birth
   Of the bright Gods, and the dark desert Earth:                       _570
   
   73.
   And how to the Immortals every one
   A portion was assigned of all that is;
   But chief Mnemosyne did Maia's son
   Clothe in the light of his loud melodies;--
   And, as each God was born or had begun,                              _575
   He in their order due and fit degrees
   Sung of his birth and being--and did move
   Apollo to unutterable love.
   
   74.
   These words were winged with his swift delight:
   'You heifer-stealing schemer, well do you                            _580
   Deserve that fifty oxen should requite
   Such minstrelsies as I have heard even now.
   Comrade of feasts, little contriving wight,
   One of your secrets I would gladly know,
   Whether the glorious power you now show forth                        _585
   Was folded up within you at your birth,
   
   75.
   'Or whether mortal taught or God inspired
   The power of unpremeditated song?
   Many divinest sounds have I admired,
   The Olympian Gods and mortal men among;                              _590
   But such a strain of wondrous, strange, untired,
   And soul-awakening music, sweet and strong,
   Yet did I never hear except from thee,
   Offspring of May, impostor Mercury!
   
   76.
   'What Muse, what skill, what unimagined use,                         _595
   What exercise of subtlest art, has given
   Thy songs such power?--for those who hear may choose
   From three, the choicest of the gifts of Heaven,
   Delight, and love, and sleep,--sweet sleep, whose dews
   Are sweeter than the balmy tears of even:--                          _600
   And I, who speak this praise, am that Apollo
   Whom the Olympian Muses ever follow:
   
   77.
   'And their delight is dance, and the blithe noise
   Of song and overflowing poesy;
   And sweet, even as desire, the liquid voice                          _605
   Of pipes, that fills the clear air thrillingly;
   But never did my inmost soul rejoice
   In this dear work of youthful revelry
   As now. I wonder at thee, son of Jove;
   Thy harpings and thy song are soft as love.                          _610
   
   78.
   'Now since thou hast, although so very small,
   Science of arts so glorious, thus I swear,--
   And let this cornel javelin, keen and tall,
   Witness between us what I promise here,--
   That I will lead thee to the Olympian Hall,                          _615
   Honoured and mighty, with thy mother dear,
   And many glorious gifts in joy will give thee,
   And even at the end will ne'er deceive thee.'
   
   79.
   To whom thus Mercury with prudent speech:--
   'Wisely hast thou inquired of my skill:                              _620
   I envy thee no thing I know to teach
   Even this day:--for both in word and will
   I would be gentle with thee; thou canst reach
   All things in thy wise spirit, and thy sill
   Is highest in Heaven among the sons of Jove,                         _625
   Who loves thee in the fulness of his love.
   
   80.
   'The Counsellor Supreme has given to thee
   Divinest gifts, out of the amplitude
   Of his profuse exhaustless treasury;
   By thee, 'tis said, the depths are understood                        _630
   Of his far voice; by thee the mystery
   Of all oracular fates,--and the dread mood
   Of the diviner is breathed up; even I--
   A child--perceive thy might and majesty.
   
   81.
   'Thou canst seek out and compass all that wit                        _635
   Can find or teach;--yet since thou wilt, come take
   The lyre--be mine the glory giving it--
   Strike the sweet chords, and sing aloud, and wake
   Thy joyous pleasure out of many a fit
   Of tranced sound--and with fleet fingers make                        _640
   Thy liquid-voiced comrade talk with thee,--
   It can talk measured music eloquently.
   
   82.
   'Then bear it boldly to the revel loud,
   Love-wakening dance, or feast of solemn state,
   A joy by night or day--for those endowed                             _645
   With art and wisdom who interrogate
   It teaches, babbling in delightful mood
   All things which make the spirit most elate,
   Soothing the mind with sweet familiar play,
   Chasing the heavy shadows of dismay.                                 _650
   
   83.
   'To those who are unskilled in its sweet tongue,
   Though they should question most impetuously
   Its hidden soul, it gossips something wrong--
   Some senseless and impertinent reply.
   But thou who art as wise as thou art strong                          _655
   Canst compass all that thou desirest. I
   Present thee with this music-flowing shell,
   Knowing thou canst interrogate it well.
   
   84.
   'And let us two henceforth together feed,
   On this green mountain-slope and pastoral plain,                     _660
   The herds in litigation--they will breed
   Quickly enough to recompense our pain,
   If to the bulls and cows we take good heed;--
   And thou, though somewhat over fond of gain,
   Grudge me not half the profit.'--Having spoke,                       _665
   The shell he proffered, and Apollo took;
   
   85.
   And gave him in return the glittering lash,
   Installing him as herdsman;--from the look
   Of Mercury then laughed a joyous flash.
   And then Apollo with the plectrum strook                             _670
   The chords, and from beneath his hands a crash
   Of mighty sounds rushed up, whose music shook
   The soul with sweetness, and like an adept
   His sweeter voice a just accordance kept.
   
   86.
   The herd went wandering o'er the divine mead,                        _675
   Whilst these most beautiful Sons of Jupiter
   Won their swift way up to the snowy head
   Of white Olympus, with the joyous lyre
   Soothing their journey; and their father dread
   Gathered them both into familiar                                     _680
   Affection sweet,--and then, and now, and ever,
   Hermes must love Him of the Golden Quiver,
   
   87.
   To whom he gave the lyre that sweetly sounded,
   Which skilfully he held and played thereon.
   He piped the while, and far and wide rebounded                       _685
   The echo of his pipings; every one
   Of the Olympians sat with joy astounded;
   While he conceived another piece of fun,
   One of his old tricks--which the God of Day
   Perceiving, said:--'I fear thee, Son of May;--                       _690
   
   88.
   'I fear thee and thy sly chameleon spirit,
   Lest thou should steal my lyre and crooked bow;
   This glory and power thou dost from Jove inherit,
   To teach all craft upon the earth below;
   Thieves love and worship thee--it is thy merit                       _695
   To make all mortal business ebb and flow
   By roguery:--now, Hermes, if you dare
   By sacred Styx a mighty oath to swear
   
   89.
   'That you will never rob me, you will do
   A thing extremely pleasing to my heart.'                             _700
   Then Mercury swore by the Stygian dew,
   That he would never steal his bow or dart,
   Or lay his hands on what to him was due,
   Or ever would employ his powerful art
   Against his Pythian fane. Then Phoebus swore                         _705
   There was no God or Man whom he loved more.
   
   90.
   'And I will give thee as a good-will token,
   The beautiful wand of wealth and happiness;
   A perfect three-leaved rod of gold unbroken,
   Whose magic will thy footsteps ever bless;                           _710
   And whatsoever by Jove's voice is spoken
   Of earthly or divine from its recess,
   It, like a loving soul, to thee will speak,
   And more than this, do thou forbear to seek.
   
   91.
   'For, dearest child, the divinations high                            _715
   Which thou requirest, 'tis unlawful ever
   That thou, or any other deity
   Should understand--and vain were the endeavour;
   For they are hidden in Jove's mind, and I,
   In trust of them, have sworn that I would never                      _720
   Betray the counsels of Jove's inmost will
   To any God--the oath was terrible.
   
   92.
   'Then, golden-wanded brother, ask me not
   To speak the fates by Jupiter designed;
   But be it mine to tell their various lot                             _725
   To the unnumbered tribes of human-kind.
   Let good to these, and ill to those be wrought
   As I dispense--but he who comes consigned
   By voice and wings of perfect augury
   To my great shrine, shall find avail in me.                          _730
   
   93.
   'Him will I not deceive, but will assist;
   But he who comes relying on such birds
   As chatter vainly, who would strain and twist
   The purpose of the Gods with idle words,
   And deems their knowledge light, he shall have missed                _735
   His road--whilst I among my other hoards
   His gifts deposit. Yet, O son of May,
   I have another wondrous thing to say.
   
   96.
   'There are three Fates, three virgin Sisters, who
   Rejoicing in their wind-outspeeding wings,                           _740
   Their heads with flour snowed over white and new,
   Sit in a vale round which Parnassus flings
   Its circling skirts--from these I have learned true
   Vaticinations of remotest things.
   My father cared not. Whilst they search out dooms,                   _745
   They sit apart and feed on honeycombs.
   
   95.
   'They, having eaten the fresh honey, grow
   Drunk with divine enthusiasm, and utter
   With earnest willingness the truth they know;
   But if deprived of that sweet food, they mutter                      _750
   All plausible delusions;--these to you
   I give;--if you inquire, they will not stutter;
   Delight your own soul with them:--any man
   You would instruct may profit if he can.
   
   96.
   'Take these and the fierce oxen, Maia's child--                      _755
   O'er many a horse and toil-enduring mule,
   O'er jagged-jawed lions, and the wild
   White-tusked boars, o'er all, by field or pool,
   Of cattle which the mighty Mother mild
   Nourishes in her bosom, thou shalt rule--                            _760
   Thou dost alone the veil from death uplift--
   Thou givest not--yet this is a great gift.'
   
   97.
   Thus King Apollo loved the child of May
   In truth, and Jove covered their love with joy.
   Hermes with Gods and Men even from that day                          _765
   Mingled, and wrought the latter much annoy,
   And little profit, going far astray
   Through the dun night. Farewell, delightful Boy,
   Of Jove and Maia sprung,--never by me,
   Nor thou, nor other songs, shall unremembered be.                    _770
   
   NOTES:
   _13 cow-stealing]qy. cattle-stealing?
   _57 stony Boscombe manuscript. Harvard manuscript; strong edition 1824.
   _252 neighbouring]neighbour Harvard manuscript.
   _336 hurl Harvard manuscript, editions 1839; haul edition 1824.
   _402 Round]Roused edition 1824 only.
   _488 wrath]ruth Harvard manuscript.
   _580 heifer-stealing]heifer-killing Harvard manuscript.
   _673 and like 1839, 1st edition; as of edition 1824, Harvard manuscript.
   _713 loving]living cj. Rossetti.
   _761 from Harvard manuscript; of editions 1824, 1839.
   _764 their love with joy Harvard manuscript; them with love and joy,
        editions 1824, 1839.
   _767 going]wandering Harvard manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO CASTOR AND POLLUX.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition; dated
   1818.]
   
   Ye wild-eyed Muses, sing the Twins of Jove,
   Whom the fair-ankled Leda, mixed in love
   With mighty Saturn's Heaven-obscuring Child,
   On Taygetus, that lofty mountain wild,
   Brought forth in joy: mild Pollux, void of blame,                    _5
   And steed-subduing Castor, heirs of fame.
   These are the Powers who earth-born mortals save
   And ships, whose flight is swift along the wave.
   When wintry tempests o'er the savage sea
   Are raging, and the sailors tremblingly                              _10
   Call on the Twins of Jove with prayer and vow,
   Gathered in fear upon the lofty prow,
   And sacrifice with snow-white lambs,--the wind
   And the huge billow bursting close behind,
   Even then beneath the weltering waters bear                          _15
   The staggering ship--they suddenly appear,
   On yellow wings rushing athwart the sky,
   And lull the blasts in mute tranquillity,
   And strew the waves on the white Ocean's bed,
   Fair omen of the voyage; from toil and dread                         _20
   The sailors rest, rejoicing in the sight,
   And plough the quiet sea in safe delight.
   
   NOTE:
   _6 steed-subduing emend. Rossetti; steel-subduing 1839, 2nd edition.
   
   ***
   
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO THE MOON.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition;
   dated 1818.]
   
   Daughters of Jove, whose voice is melody,
   Muses, who know and rule all minstrelsy
   Sing the wide-winged Moon! Around the earth,
   From her immortal head in Heaven shot forth,
   Far light is scattered--boundless glory springs;                     _5
   Where'er she spreads her many-beaming wings
   The lampless air glows round her golden crown.
   
   But when the Moon divine from Heaven is gone
   Under the sea, her beams within abide,
   Till, bathing her bright limbs in Ocean's tide,                      _10
   Clothing her form in garments glittering far,
   And having yoked to her immortal car
   The beam-invested steeds whose necks on high
   Curve back, she drives to a remoter sky
   A western Crescent, borne impetuously.                               _15
   Then is made full the circle of her light,
   And as she grows, her beams more bright and bright
   Are poured from Heaven, where she is hovering then,
   A wonder and a sign to mortal men.
   
   The Son of Saturn with this glorious Power                           _20
   Mingled in love and sleep--to whom she bore
   Pandeia, a bright maid of beauty rare
   Among the Gods, whose lives eternal are.
   
   Hail Queen, great Moon, white-armed Divinity,
   Fair-haired and favourable! thus with thee                           _25
   My song beginning, by its music sweet
   Shall make immortal many a glorious feat
   Of demigods, with lovely lips, so well
   Which minstrels, servants of the Muses, tell.
   
   ***
   
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO THE SUN.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition;
   dated 1818.]
   
   Offspring of Jove, Calliope, once more
   To the bright Sun, thy hymn of music pour;
   Whom to the child of star-clad Heaven and Earth
   Euryphaessa, large-eyed nymph, brought forth;
   Euryphaessa, the famed sister fair                                   _5
   Of great Hyperion, who to him did bear
   A race of loveliest children; the young Morn,
   Whose arms are like twin roses newly born,
   The fair-haired Moon, and the immortal Sun,
   Who borne by heavenly steeds his race doth run                       _10
   Unconquerably, illuming the abodes
   Of mortal Men and the eternal Gods.
   
   Fiercely look forth his awe-inspiring eyes,
   Beneath his golden helmet, whence arise
   And are shot forth afar, clear beams of light;                       _15
   His countenance, with radiant glory bright,
   Beneath his graceful locks far shines around,
   And the light vest with which his limbs are bound,
   Of woof aethereal delicately twined,
   Glows in the stream of the uplifting wind.                           _20
   His rapid steeds soon bear him to the West;
   Where their steep flight his hands divine arrest,
   And the fleet car with yoke of gold, which he
   Sends from bright Heaven beneath the shadowy sea.
   
   ***
   
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO THE EARTH: MOTHER OF ALL.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition;
   dated 1818.]
   
   O universal Mother, who dost keep
   From everlasting thy foundations deep,
   Eldest of things, Great Earth, I sing of thee!
   All shapes that have their dwelling in the sea,
   All things that fly, or on the ground divine                         _5
   Live, move, and there are nourished--these are thine;
   These from thy wealth thou dost sustain; from thee
   Fair babes are born, and fruits on every tree
   Hang ripe and large, revered Divinity!
   
   The life of mortal men beneath thy sway                              _10
   Is held; thy power both gives and takes away!
   Happy are they whom thy mild favours nourish;
   All things unstinted round them grow and flourish.
   For them, endures the life-sustaining field
   Its load of harvest, and their cattle yield                          _15
   Large increase, and their house with wealth is filled.
   Such honoured dwell in cities fair and free,
   The homes of lovely women, prosperously;
   Their sons exult in youth's new budding gladness,
   And their fresh daughters free from care or sadness,                 _20
   With bloom-inwoven dance and happy song,
   On the soft flowers the meadow-grass among,
   Leap round them sporting--such delights by thee
   Are given, rich Power, revered Divinity.
   
   Mother of gods, thou Wife of starry Heaven,                          _25
   Farewell! be thou propitious, and be given
   A happy life for this brief melody,
   Nor thou nor other songs shall unremembered be.
   
   ***
   
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO MINERVA.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition;
   dated 1818.]
   
   I sing the glorious Power with azure eyes,
   Athenian Pallas! tameless, chaste, and wise,
   Tritogenia, town-preserving Maid,
   Revered and mighty; from his awful head
   Whom Jove brought forth, in warlike armour dressed,                  _5
   Golden, all radiant! wonder strange possessed
   The everlasting Gods that Shape to see,
   Shaking a javelin keen, impetuously
   Rush from the crest of Aegis-bearing Jove;
   Fearfully Heaven was shaken, and did move                            _10
   Beneath the might of the Cerulean-eyed;
   Earth dreadfully resounded, far and wide;
   And, lifted from its depths, the sea swelled high
   In purple billows, the tide suddenly
   Stood still, and great Hyperion's son long time                      _15
   Checked his swift steeds, till, where she stood sublime,
   Pallas from her immortal shoulders threw
   The arms divine; wise Jove rejoiced to view.
   Child of the Aegis-bearer, hail to thee,
   Nor thine nor others' praise shall unremembered be.                  _20
   
   ***
   
   
   HOMER'S HYMN TO VENUS.
   
   [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862; dated 1818.]
   
   [VERSES 1-55, WITH SOME OMISSIONS.]
   
   Muse, sing the deeds of golden Aphrodite,
   Who wakens with her smile the lulled delight
   Of sweet desire, taming the eternal kings
   Of Heaven, and men, and all the living things
   That fleet along the air, or whom the sea,                           _5
   Or earth, with her maternal ministry,
   Nourish innumerable, thy delight
   All seek ... O crowned Aphrodite!
   Three spirits canst thou not deceive or quell:--
   Minerva, child of Jove, who loves too well                           _10
   Fierce war and mingling combat, and the fame
   Of glorious deeds, to heed thy gentle flame.
   Diana ... golden-shafted queen,
   Is tamed not by thy smiles; the shadows green
   Of the wild woods, the bow, the...                                   _15
   And piercing cries amid the swift pursuit
   Of beasts among waste mountains,--such delight
   Is hers, and men who know and do the right.
   Nor Saturn's first-born daughter, Vesta chaste,
   Whom Neptune and Apollo wooed the last,                              _20
   Such was the will of aegis-bearing Jove;
   But sternly she refused the ills of Love,
   And by her mighty Father's head she swore
   An oath not unperformed, that evermore
   A virgin she would live mid deities                                  _25
   Divine: her father, for such gentle ties
   Renounced, gave glorious gifts--thus in his hall
   She sits and feeds luxuriously. O'er all
   In every fane, her honours first arise
   From men--the eldest of Divinities.                                  _30
   
   These spirits she persuades not, nor deceives,
   But none beside escape, so well she weaves
   Her unseen toils; nor mortal men, nor gods
   Who live secure in their unseen abodes.
   She won the soul of him whose fierce delight                         _35
   Is thunder--first in glory and in might.
   And, as she willed, his mighty mind deceiving,
   With mortal limbs his deathless limbs inweaving,
   Concealed him from his spouse and sister fair,
   Whom to wise Saturn ancient Rhea bare.                               _40
   but in return,
   In Venus Jove did soft desire awaken,
   That by her own enchantments overtaken,
   She might, no more from human union free,
   Burn for a nursling of mortality.                                    _45
   For once amid the assembled Deities,
   The laughter-loving Venus from her eyes
   
   Shot forth the light of a soft starlight smile,
   And boasting said, that she, secure the while,
   Could bring at Will to the assembled Gods                            _50
   The mortal tenants of earth's dark abodes,
   And mortal offspring from a deathless stem
   She could produce in scorn and spite of them.
   Therefore he poured desire into her breast
   Of young Anchises,                                                   _55
   Feeding his herds among the mossy fountains
   Of the wide Ida's many-folded mountains,--
   Whom Venus saw, and loved, and the love clung
   Like wasting fire her senses wild among.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE CYCLOPS.
   
   A SATYRIC DRAMA TRANSLATED FROM THE GREEK OF EURIPIDES.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824; dated 1819.
   Amongst the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian there is a copy,
   'practically complete,' which has been collated by Mr. C.D. Locock. See
   "Examination", etc., 1903, pages 64-70. 'Though legible throughout, and
   comparatively free from corrections, it has the appearance of being a
   first draft' (Locock).]
   
   SILENUS.
   ULYSSES.
   CHORUS OF SATYRS.
   THE CYCLOPS.
   
   SILENUS:
   O Bacchus, what a world of toil, both now
   And ere these limbs were overworn with age,
   Have I endured for thee! First, when thou fled'st
   The mountain-nymphs who nursed thee, driven afar
   By the strange madness Juno sent upon thee;                          _5
   Then in the battle of the Sons of Earth,
   When I stood foot by foot close to thy side,
   No unpropitious fellow-combatant,
   And, driving through his shield my winged spear,
   Slew vast Enceladus. Consider now,                                   _10
   Is it a dream of which I speak to thee?
   By Jove it is not, for you have the trophies!
   And now I suffer more than all before.
   For when I heard that Juno had devised
   A tedious voyage for you, I put to sea                               _15
   With all my children quaint in search of you,
   And I myself stood on the beaked prow
   And fixed the naked mast; and all my boys
   Leaning upon their oars, with splash and strain
   Made white with foam the green and purple sea,--                     _20
   And so we sought you, king. We were sailing
   Near Malea, when an eastern wind arose,
   And drove us to this waste Aetnean rock;
   The one-eyed children of the Ocean God,
   The man-destroying Cyclopses, inhabit,                               _25
   On this wild shore, their solitary caves,
   And one of these, named Polypheme. has caught us
   To be his slaves; and so, for all delight
   Of Bacchic sports, sweet dance and melody,
   We keep this lawless giant's wandering flocks.                       _30
   My sons indeed on far declivities,
   Young things themselves, tend on the youngling sheep,
   But I remain to fill the water-casks,
   Or sweeping the hard floor, or ministering
   Some impious and abominable meal                                     _35
   To the fell Cyclops. I am wearied of it!
   And now I must scrape up the littered floor
   With this great iron rake, so to receive
   My absent master and his evening sheep
   In a cave neat and clean. Even now I see                             _40
   My children tending the flocks hitherward.
   Ha! what is this? are your Sicinnian measures
   Even now the same, as when with dance and song
   You brought young Bacchus to Althaea's halls?
   
   NOTE:
   _23 waste B.; wild 1824; 'cf. 26, where waste is cancelled for wild'
       (Locock).
   
   CHORUS OF SATYRS:
   
   STROPHE:
   Where has he of race divine                                          _45
   Wandered in the winding rocks?
   Here the air is calm and fine
   For the father of the flocks;--
   Here the grass is soft and sweet,
   And the river-eddies meet                                            _50
   In the trough beside the cave,
   Bright as in their fountain wave.--
   Neither here, nor on the dew
   Of the lawny uplands feeding?
   Oh, you come!--a stone at you                                        _55
   Will I throw to mend your breeding;--
   Get along, you horned thing,
   Wild, seditious, rambling!
   
   EPODE:
   An Iacchic melody
   To the golden Aphrodite                                              _60
   Will I lift, as erst did I
   Seeking her and her delight
   With the Maenads, whose white feet
   To the music glance and fleet.
   Bacchus, O beloved, where,                                           _65
   Shaking wide thy yellow hair,
   Wanderest thou alone, afar?
   To the one-eyed Cyclops, we,
   Who by right thy servants are,
   Minister in misery,                                                  _70
   In these wretched goat-skins clad,
   Far from thy delights and thee.
   
   SILENUS:
   Be silent, sons; command the slaves to drive
   The gathered flocks into the rock-roofed cave.
   
   CHORUS:
   Go! But what needs this serious haste, O father?                     _75
   
   SILENUS:
   I see a Grecian vessel on the coast,
   And thence the rowers with some general
   Approaching to this cave.--About their necks
   Hang empty vessels, as they wanted food,
   And water-flasks.--Oh, miserable strangers!                          _80
   Whence come they, that they know not what and who
   My master is, approaching in ill hour
   The inhospitable roof of Polypheme,
   And the Cyclopian jaw-bone, man-destroying?
   Be silent, Satyrs, while I ask and hear                              _85
   Whence coming, they arrive the Aetnean hill.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Friends, can you show me some clear water-spring,
   The remedy of our thirst? Will any one
   Furnish with food seamen in want of it?
   Ha! what is this? We seem to be arrived                              _90
   At the blithe court of Bacchus. I observe
   This sportive band of Satyrs near the caves.
   First let me greet the elder.--Hail!
   
   SILENUS:
   Hail thou,
   O Stranger! tell thy country and thy race.
   
   ULYSSES:
   The Ithacan Ulysses and the king                                     _95
   Of Cephalonia.
   
   SILENUS:
   Oh! I know the man,
   Wordy and shrewd, the son of Sisyphus.
   
   ULYSSES:
   I am the same, but do not rail upon me.--
   
   SILENUS:
   Whence sailing do you come to Sicily?
   
   ULYSSES:
   From Ilion, and from the Trojan toils.                               _100
   
   SILENUS:
   How, touched you not at your paternal shore?
   
   ULYSSES:
   The strength of tempests bore me here by force.
   
   SILENUS:
   The self-same accident occurred to me.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Were you then driven here by stress of weather?
   
   SILENUS:
   Following the Pirates who had kidnapped Bacchus.                     _105
   
   ULYSSES:
   What land is this, and who inhabit it?--
   
   SILENUS:
   Aetna, the loftiest peak in Sicily.
   
   ULYSSES:
   And are there walls, and tower-surrounded towns?
   
   SILENUS:
   There are not.--These lone rocks are bare of men.
   
   ULYSSES:
   And who possess the land? the race of beasts?                        _110
   
   SILENUS:
   Cyclops, who live in caverns, not in houses.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Obeying whom? Or is the state popular?
   
   SILENUS:
   Shepherds: no one obeys any in aught.
   
   ULYSSES:
   How live they? do they sow the corn of Ceres?
   
   SILENUS:
   On milk and cheese, and on the flesh of sheep.                       _115
   
   ULYSSES:
   Have they the Bromian drink from the vine's stream?
   
   SILENUS:
   Ah! no; they live in an ungracious land.
   
   ULYSSES:
   And are they just to strangers?--hospitable?
   
   SILENUS:
   They think the sweetest thing a stranger brings
   Is his own flesh.
   
   ULYSSES:
   What! do they eat man's flesh?                                       _120
   
   SILENUS:
   No one comes here who is not eaten up.
   
   ULYSSES:
   The Cyclops now--where is he? Not at home?
   
   SILENUS:
   Absent on Aetna, hunting with his dogs.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Know'st thou what thou must do to aid us hence?
   
   SILENUS:
   I know not: we will help you all we can.                             _125
   
   ULYSSES:
   Provide us food, of which we are in want.
   
   SILENUS:
   Here is not anything, as I said, but meat.
   
   ULYSSES:
   But meat is a sweet remedy for hunger.
   
   SILENUS:
   Cow's milk there is, and store of curdled cheese.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Bring out:--I would see all before I bargain.                        _130
   
   SILENUS:
   But how much gold will you engage to give?
   
   ULYSSES:
   I bring no gold, but Bacchic juice.
   
   SILENUS:
   Oh, joy!
   Tis long since these dry lips were wet with wine.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Maron, the son of the God, gave it me.
   
   SILENUS:
   Whom I have nursed a baby in my arms.                                _135
   
   ULYSSES:
   The son of Bacchus, for your clearer knowledge.
   
   SILENUS:
   Have you it now?--or is it in the ship?
   
   ULYSSES:
   Old man, this skin contains it, which you see.
   
   SILENUS:
   Why, this would hardly be a mouthful for me.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Nay, twice as much as you can draw from thence.                      _140
   
   SILENUS:
   You speak of a fair fountain, sweet to me.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Would you first taste of the unmingled wine?
   
   SILENUS:
   'Tis just--tasting invites the purchaser.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Here is the cup, together with the skin.
   
   SILENUS:
   Pour: that the draught may fillip my remembrance.
   
   ULYSSES:
   See!                                                                 _145
   
   SILENUS:
   Papaiapax! what a sweet smell it has!
   
   ULYSSES:
   You see it then?--
   
   SILENUS:
   By Jove, no! but I smell it.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Taste, that you may not praise it in words only.
   
   SILENUS:
   Babai! Great Bacchus calls me forth to dance!
   Joy! joy!
   
   ULYSSES:
   Did it flow sweetly down your throat?                                _150
   
   SILENUS:
   So that it tingled to my very nails.
   
   ULYSSES:
   And in addition I will give you gold.
   
   SILENUS:
   Let gold alone! only unlock the cask.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Bring out some cheeses now, or a young goat.
   
   SILENUS:
   That will I do, despising any master.                                _155
   Yes, let me drink one cup, and I will give
   All that the Cyclops feed upon their mountains.
   
   ...
   
   CHORUS:
   Ye have taken Troy and laid your hands on Helen?
   
   ULYSSES:
   And utterly destroyed the race of Priam.
   
   ...
   
   SILENUS:
   The wanton wretch! she was bewitched to see                          _160
   The many-coloured anklets and the chain
   Of woven gold which girt the neck of Paris,
   And so she left that good man Menelaus.
   There should be no more women in the world
   But such as are reserved for me alone.--                             _165
   See, here are sheep, and here are goats, Ulysses,
   Here are unsparing cheeses of pressed milk;
   Take them; depart with what good speed ye may;
   First leaving my reward, the Bacchic dew
   Of joy-inspiring grapes.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Ah me! Alas!                                                         _170
   What shall we do? the Cyclops is at hand!
   Old man, we perish! whither can we fly?
   
   SILENUS:
   Hide yourselves quick within that hollow rock.
   
   ULYSSES:
   'Twere perilous to fly into the net.
   
   SILENUS:
   The cavern has recesses numberless;                                  _175
   Hide yourselves quick.
   
   ULYSSES:
   That will I never do!
   The mighty Troy would be indeed disgraced
   If I should fly one man. How many times
   Have I withstood, with shield immovable.
   Ten thousand Phrygians!--if I needs must die,                        _180
   Yet will I die with glory;--if I live,
   The praise which I have gained will yet remain.
   
   SILENUS:
   What, ho! assistance, comrades, haste, assistance!
   
   [THE CYCLOPS, SILENUS, ULYSSES; CHORUS.]
   
   CYCLOPS:
   What is this tumult? Bacchus is not here,
   Nor tympanies nor brazen castanets.                                  _185
   How are my young lambs in the cavern? Milking
   Their dams or playing by their sides? And is
   The new cheese pressed into the bulrush baskets?
   Speak! I'll beat some of you till you rain tears--
   Look up, not downwards when I speak to you.                          _190
   
   SILENUS:
   See! I now gape at Jupiter himself;
   I stare upon Orion and the stars.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Well, is the dinner fitly cooked and laid?
   
   SILENUS:
   All ready, if your throat is ready too.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Are the bowls full of milk besides?
   
   SILENUS:
   O'er-brimming;                                                       _195
   So you may drink a tunful if you will.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Is it ewe's milk or cow's milk, or both mixed?--
   
   SILENUS:
   Both, either; only pray don't swallow me.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   By no means.--
   ...
   What is this crowd I see beside the stalls?                          _200
   Outlaws or thieves? for near my cavern-home
   I see my young lambs coupled two by two
   With willow bands; mixed with my cheeses lie
   Their implements; and this old fellow here
   Has his bald head broken with stripes.
   
   SILENUS:
   Ah me!                                                               _205
   I have been beaten till I burn with fever.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   By whom? Who laid his fist upon your head?
   
   SILENUS:
   Those men, because I would not suffer them
   To steal your goods.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Did not the rascals know
   I am a God, sprung from the race of Heaven?                          _210
   
   SILENUS:
   I told them so, but they bore off your things,
   And ate the cheese in spite of all I said,
   And carried out the lambs--and said, moreover,
   They'd pin you down with a three-cubit collar,
   And pull your vitals out through your one eye,                       _215
   Furrow your back with stripes, then, binding you,
   Throw you as ballast into the ship's hold,
   And then deliver you, a slave, to move
   Enormous rocks, or found a vestibule.
   
   NOTE:
   _216 Furrow B.; Torture (evidently misread for Furrow) 1824.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   In truth? Nay, haste, and place in order quickly
   The cooking-knives, and heap upon the hearth,                        _221
   And kindle it, a great faggot of wood.--
   As soon as they are slaughtered, they shall fill
   My belly, broiling warm from the live coals,
   Or boiled and seethed within the bubbling caldron.                   _225
   I am quite sick of the wild mountain game;
   Of stags and lions I have gorged enough,
   And I grow hungry for the flesh of men.
   
   SILENUS:
   Nay, master, something new is very pleasant
   After one thing forever, and of late                                 _230
   Very few strangers have approached our cave.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Hear, Cyclops, a plain tale on the other side.
   We, wanting to buy food, came from our ship
   Into the neighbourhood of your cave, and here
   This old Silenus gave us in exchange                                 _235
   These lambs for wine, the which he took and drank,
   And all by mutual compact, without force.
   There is no word of truth in what he says,
   For slyly he was selling all your store.
   
   SILENUS:
   I? May you perish, wretch--
   
   ULYSSES:
   If I speak false!                                                    _240
   
   SILENUS:
   Cyclops, I swear by Neptune who begot thee,
   By mighty Triton and by Nereus old,
   Calypso and the glaucous Ocean Nymphs,
   The sacred waves and all the race of fishes--
   Be these the witnesses, my dear sweet master,                        _245
   My darling little Cyclops, that I never
   Gave any of your stores to these false strangers;--
   If I speak false may those whom most I love,
   My children, perish wretchedly!
   
   CHORUS:
   There stop!
   I saw him giving these things to the strangers.                      _250
   If I speak false, then may my father perish,
   But do not thou wrong hospitality.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   You lie! I swear that he is juster far
   Than Rhadamanthus--I trust more in him.
   But let me ask, whence have ye sailed, O strangers?                  _255
   Who are you? And what city nourished ye?
   
   ULYSSES:
   Our race is Ithacan--having destroyed
   The town of Troy, the tempests of the sea
   Have driven us on thy land, O Polypheme.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   What, have ye shared in the unenvied spoil                           _260
   Of the false Helen, near Scamander's stream?
   
   ULYSSES:
   The same, having endured a woful toil.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Oh, basest expedition! sailed ye not
   From Greece to Phrygia for one woman's sake?
   
   ULYSSES:
   'Twas the Gods' work--no mortal was in fault.                        _265
   But, O great Offspring of the Ocean-King,
   We pray thee and admonish thee with freedom,
   That thou dost spare thy friends who visit thee,
   And place no impious food within thy jaws.
   For in the depths of Greece we have upreared                         _270
   Temples to thy great Father, which are all
   His homes. The sacred bay of Taenarus
   Remains inviolate, and each dim recess
   Scooped high on the Malean promontory,
   And aery Sunium's silver-veined crag,                                _275
   Which divine Pallas keeps unprofaned ever,
   The Gerastian asylums, and whate'er
   Within wide Greece our enterprise has kept
   From Phrygian contumely; and in which
   You have a common care, for you inhabit                              _280
   The skirts of Grecian land, under the roots
   Of Aetna and its crags, spotted with fire.
   Turn then to converse under human laws,
   Receive us shipwrecked suppliants, and provide
   Food, clothes, and fire, and hospitable gifts;                       _285
   Nor fixing upon oxen-piercing spits
   Our limbs, so fill your belly and your jaws.
   Priam's wide land has widowed Greece enough;
   And weapon-winged murder leaped together
   Enough of dead, and wives are husbandless,                           _290
   And ancient women and gray fathers wail
   Their childless age;--if you should roast the rest--
   And 'tis a bitter feast that you prepare--
   Where then would any turn? Yet be persuaded;
   Forgo the lust of your jaw-bone; prefer                              _295
   Pious humanity to wicked will:
   Many have bought too dear their evil joys.
   
   SILENUS:
   Let me advise you, do not spare a morsel
   Of all his flesh. If you should eat his tongue
   You would become most eloquent, O Cyclops.                           _300
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Wealth, my good fellow, is the wise man's God,
   All other things are a pretence and boast.
   What are my father's ocean promontories,
   The sacred rocks whereon he dwells, to me?
   Stranger, I laugh to scorn Jove's thunderbolt,                       _305
   I know not that his strength is more than mine.
   As to the rest I care not.--When he pours
   Rain from above, I have a close pavilion
   Under this rock, in which I lie supine,
   Feasting on a roast calf or some wild beast,                         _310
   And drinking pans of milk, and gloriously
   Emulating the thunder of high Heaven.
   And when the Thracian wind pours down the snow,
   I wrap my body in the skins of beasts,
   Kindle a fire, and bid the snow whirl on.                            _315
   The earth, by force, whether it will or no,
   Bringing forth grass, fattens my flocks and herds,
   Which, to what other God but to myself
   And this great belly, first of deities,
   Should I be bound to sacrifice? I well know                          _320
   The wise man's only Jupiter is this,
   To eat and drink during his little day,
   And give himself no care. And as for those
   Who complicate with laws the life of man,
   I freely give them tears for their reward.                           _325
   I will not cheat my soul of its delight,
   Or hesitate in dining upon you:--
   And that I may be quit of all demands,
   These are my hospitable gifts;--fierce fire
   And yon ancestral caldron, which o'er-bubbling                       _330
   Shall finely cook your miserable flesh.
   Creep in!--
   
   ...
   
   ULYSSES:
   Ai! ai! I have escaped the Trojan toils,
   I have escaped the sea, and now I fall
   Under the cruel grasp of one impious man.                            _335
   O Pallas, Mistress, Goddess, sprung from Jove,
   Now, now, assist me! Mightier toils than Troy
   Are these;--I totter on the chasms of peril;--
   And thou who inhabitest the thrones
   Of the bright stars, look, hospitable Jove,                          _340
   Upon this outrage of thy deity,
   Otherwise be considered as no God!
   
   CHORUS (ALONE):
   For your gaping gulf and your gullet wide,
   The ravin is ready on every side,
   The limbs of the strangers are cooked and done;                      _345
   There is boiled meat, and roast meat, and meat from the coal,
   You may chop it, and tear it, and gnash it for fun,
   An hairy goat's-skin contains the whole.
   Let me but escape, and ferry me o'er
   The stream of your wrath to a safer shore.                           _350
   The Cyclops Aetnean is cruel and bold,
   He murders the strangers
   That sit on his hearth,
   And dreads no avengers
   To rise from the earth.                                              _355
   He roasts the men before they are cold,
   He snatches them broiling from the coal,
   And from the caldron pulls them whole,
   And minces their flesh and gnaws their bone
   With his cursed teeth, till all be gone.                             _360
   Farewell, foul pavilion:
   Farewell, rites of dread!
   The Cyclops vermilion,
   With slaughter uncloying,
   Now feasts on the dead,                                              _365
   In the flesh of strangers joying!
   
   NOTE:
   _344 ravin Rossetti; spelt ravine in B., editions 1824, 1839.
   
   ULYSSES:
   O Jupiter! I saw within the cave
   Horrible things; deeds to be feigned in words,
   But not to be believed as being done.
   
   NOTE:
   _369 not to be believed B.; not believed 1824.
   
   CHORUS:
   What! sawest thou the impious Polypheme                              _370
   Feasting upon your loved companions now?
   
   ULYSSES:
   _Select_ing two, the plumpest of the crowd,
   He grasped them in his hands.--
   
   CHORUS:
   Unhappy man!
   
   ...
   
   ULYSSES:
   Soon as we came into this craggy place,
   Kindling a fire, he cast on the broad hearth                         _375
   The knotty limbs of an enormous oak,
   Three waggon-loads at least, and then he strewed
   Upon the ground, beside the red firelight,
   His couch of pine-leaves; and he milked the cows,
   And pouring forth the white milk, filled a bowl                      _380
   Three cubits wide and four in depth, as much
   As would contain ten amphorae, and bound it
   With ivy wreaths; then placed upon the fire
   A brazen pot to boil, and made red hot
   The points of spits, not sharpened with the sickle                   _385
   But with a fruit tree bough, and with the jaws
   Of axes for Aetnean slaughterings.
   And when this God-abandoned Cook of Hell
   Had made all ready, he seized two of us
   And killed them in a kind of measured manner;                        _390
   For he flung one against the brazen rivets
   Of the huge caldron, and seized the other
   By the foot's tendon, and knocked out his brains
   Upon the sharp edge of the craggy stone:
   Then peeled his flesh with a great cooking-knife                     _395
   And put him down to roast. The other's limbs
   He chopped into the caldron to be boiled.
   And I, with the tears raining from my eyes,
   Stood near the Cyclops, ministering to him;
   The rest, in the recesses of the cave,                               _400
   Clung to the rock like bats, bloodless with fear.
   When he was filled with my companions' flesh,
   He threw himself upon the ground and sent
   A loathsome exhalation from his maw.
   Then a divine thought came to me. I filled                           _405
   The cup of Maron, and I offered him
   To taste, and said:--'Child of the Ocean God,
   Behold what drink the vines of Greece produce,
   The exultation and the joy of Bacchus.'
   He, satiated with his unnatural food,                                _410
   Received it, and at one draught drank it off,
   And taking my hand, praised me:--'Thou hast given
   A sweet draught after a sweet meal, dear guest.'
   And I, perceiving that it pleased him, filled
   Another cup, well knowing that the wine                              _415
   Would wound him soon and take a sure revenge.
   And the charm fascinated him, and I
   Plied him cup after cup, until the drink
   Had warmed his entrails, and he sang aloud
   In concert with my wailing fellow-seamen                             _420
   A hideous discord--and the cavern rung.
   I have stolen out, so that if you will
   You may achieve my safety and your own.
   But say, do you desire, or not, to fly
   This uncompanionable man, and dwell                                  _425
   As was your wont among the Grecian Nymphs
   Within the fanes of your beloved God?
   Your father there within agrees to it,
   But he is weak and overcome with wine,
   And caught as if with bird-lime by the cup,                          _430
   He claps his wings and crows in doting joy.
   You who are young escape with me, and find
   Bacchus your ancient friend; unsuited he
   To this rude Cyclops.
   
   NOTES:
   _382 ten cj. Swinburne; four 1824; four cancelled for ten (possibly) B.
   _387 I confess I do not understand this.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.]
   _416 take]grant (as alternative) B.
   
   CHORUS:
   Oh my dearest friend,
   That I could see that day, and leave for ever                        _435
   The impious Cyclops.
   
   ...
   
   ULYSSES:
   Listen then what a punishment I have
   For this fell monster, how secure a flight
   From your hard servitude.
   
   CHORUS:
   O sweeter far
   Than is the music of an Asian lyre                                   _440
   Would be the news of Polypheme destroyed.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Delighted with the Bacchic drink he goes
   To call his brother Cyclops--who inhabit
   A village upon Aetna not far off.
   
   CHORUS:
   I understand, catching him when alone                                _445
   You think by some measure to dispatch him,
   Or thrust him from the precipice.
   
   NOTE:
   _446 by some measure 1824; with some measures B.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Oh no;
   Nothing of that kind; my device is subtle.
   
   CHORUS:
   How then? I heard of old that thou wert wise.
   
   ULYSSES:
   I will dissuade him from this plan, by saying                        _450
   It were unwise to give the Cyclopses
   This precious drink, which if enjoyed alone
   Would make life sweeter for a longer time.
   When, vanquished by the Bacchic power, he sleeps,
   There is a trunk of olive wood within,                               _455
   Whose point having made sharp with this good sword
   I will conceal in fire, and when I see
   It is alight, will fix it, burning yet,
   Within the socket of the Cyclops' eye
   And melt it out with fire--as when a man                             _460
   Turns by its handle a great auger round,
   Fitting the framework of a ship with beams,
   So will I, in the Cyclops' fiery eye
   Turn round the brand and dry the pupil up.
   
   CHORUS:
   Joy! I am mad with joy at your device.                               _465
   
   ULYSSES:
   And then with you, my friends, and the old man,
   We'll load the hollow depth of our black ship,
   And row with double strokes from this dread shore.
   
   CHORUS:
   May I, as in libations to a God,
   Share in the blinding him with the red brand?                        _470
   I would have some communion in his death.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Doubtless: the brand is a great brand to hold.
   
   CHORUS:
   Oh! I would lift an hundred waggon-loads,
   If like a wasp's nest I could scoop the eye out
   Of the detested Cyclops.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Silence now!                                                         _475
   Ye know the close device--and when I call,
   Look ye obey the masters of the craft.
   I will not save myself and leave behind
   My comrades in the cave: I might escape,
   Having got clear from that obscure recess,                           _480
   But 'twere unjust to leave in jeopardy
   The dear companions who sailed here with me.
   
   CHORUS:
   Come! who is first, that with his hand
   Will urge down the burning brand
   Through the lids, and quench and pierce                              _485
   The Cyclops' eye so fiery fierce?
   
   SEMICHORUS 1 [SONG WITHIN]:
   Listen! listen! he is coming,
   A most hideous discord humming.
   Drunken, museless, awkward, yelling,
   Far along his rocky dwelling;                                        _490
   Let us with some comic spell
   Teach the yet unteachable.
   By all means he must be blinded,
   If my counsel be but minded.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   Happy thou made odorous                                              _495
   With the dew which sweet grapes weep,
   To the village hastening thus,
   Seek the vines that soothe to sleep;
   Having first embraced thy friend,
   Thou in luxury without end,                                          _500
   With the strings of yellow hair,
   Of thy voluptuous leman fair,
   Shalt sit playing on a bed!--
   Speak! what door is opened?
   
   NOTES:
   _495 thou cj. Swinburne, Rossetti; those 1824;
       'the word is doubtful in B.' (Locock).
   _500 Thou B.; There 1824.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Ha! ha! ha! I'm full of wine,                                        _505
   Heavy with the joy divine,
   With the young feast oversated;
   Like a merchant's vessel freighted
   To the water's edge, my crop
   Is laden to the gullet's top.                                        _510
   The fresh meadow grass of spring
   Tempts me forth thus wandering
   To my brothers on the mountains,
   Who shall share the wine's sweet fountains.
   Bring the cask, O stranger, bring!                                   _515
   
   NOTE:
   _508 merchant's 1824; merchant B.
   
   CHORUS:
   One with eyes the fairest
   Cometh from his dwelling;
   Some one loves thee, rarest
   Bright beyond my telling.
   In thy grace thou shinest                                            _520
   Like some nymph divinest
   In her caverns dewy:--
   All delights pursue thee,
   Soon pied flowers, sweet-breathing,
   Shall thy head be wreathing.                                         _525
   
   ULYSSES:
   Listen, O Cyclops, for I am well skilled
   In Bacchus, whom I gave thee of to drink.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   What sort of God is Bacchus then accounted?
   
   ULYSSES:
   The greatest among men for joy of life.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   I gulped him down with very great delight.                           _530
   
   ULYSSES:
   This is a God who never injures men.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   How does the God like living in a skin?
   
   ULYSSES:
   He is content wherever he is put.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Gods should not have their body in a skin.
   
   ULYSSES:
   If he gives joy, what is his skin to you?                            _535
   
   CYCLOPS:
   I hate the skin, but love the wine within.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Stay here now: drink, and make your spirit glad.
   
   NOTE:
   _537 Stay here now, drink B.; stay here, now drink 1824.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Should I not share this liquor with my brothers?
   
   ULYSSES:
   Keep it yourself, and be more honoured so.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   I were more useful, giving to my friends.                            _540
   
   ULYSSES:
   But village mirth breeds contests, broils, and blows.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   When I am drunk none shall lay hands on me.--
   
   ULYSSES:
   A drunken man is better within doors.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   He is a fool, who drinking, loves not mirth.
   
   ULYSSES:
   But he is wise, who drunk, remains at home.                          _545
   
   CYCLOPS:
   What shall I do, Silenus? Shall I stay?
   
   SILENUS:
   Stay--for what need have you of pot companions?
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Indeed this place is closely carpeted
   With flowers and grass.
   
   SILENUS:
   And in the sun-warm noon
   'Tis sweet to drink. Lie down beside me now,                         _550
   Placing your mighty sides upon the ground.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   What do you put the cup behind me for?
   
   SILENUS:
   That no one here may touch it.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Thievish One!
   You want to drink;--here place it in the midst.
   And thou, O stranger, tell how art thou called?                      _555
   
   ULYSSES:
   My name is Nobody. What favour now
   Shall I receive to praise you at your hands?
   
   CYCLOPS:
   I'll feast on you the last of your companions.
   
   ULYSSES:
   You grant your guest a fair reward, O Cyclops.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Ha! what is this? Stealing the wine, you rogue!                      _560
   
   SILENUS:
   It was this stranger kissing me because
   I looked so beautiful.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   You shall repent
   For kissing the coy wine that loves you not.
   
   SILENUS:
   By Jupiter! you said that I am fair.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Pour out, and only give me the cup full.                             _565
   
   SILENUS:
   How is it mixed? let me observe.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Curse you!
   Give it me so.
   
   SILENUS:
   Not till I see you wear
   That coronal, and taste the cup to you.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Thou wily traitor!
   
   SILENUS:
   But the wine is sweet.
   Ay, you will roar if you are caught in drinking.                     _570
   
   CYCLOPS:
   See now, my lip is clean and all my beard.
   
   SILENUS:
   Now put your elbow right and drink again.
   As you see me drink--...
   
   CYCLOPS:
   How now?
   
   SILENUS:
   Ye Gods, what a delicious gulp!
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Guest, take it;--you pour out the wine for me.                       _575
   
   ULYSSES:
   The wine is well accustomed to my hand.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Pour out the wine!
   
   ULYSSES:
   I pour; only be silent.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Silence is a hard task to him who drinks.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Take it and drink it off; leave not a dreg.
   Oh that the drinker died with his own draught!                       _580
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Papai! the vine must be a sapient plant.
   
   ULYSSES:
   If you drink much after a mighty feast,
   Moistening your thirsty maw, you will sleep well;
   If you leave aught, Bacchus will dry you up.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Ho! ho! I can scarce rise. What pure delight!                        _585
   The heavens and earth appear to whirl about
   Confusedly. I see the throne of Jove
   And the clear congregation of the Gods.
   Now if the Graces tempted me to kiss
   I would not--for the loveliest of them all                           _590
   I would not leave this Ganymede.
   
   SILENUS:
   Polypheme,
   I am the Ganymede of Jupiter.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   By Jove, you are; I bore you off from Dardanus.
   
   ...
   
   [ULYSSES AND THE CHORUS.]
   
   ULYSSES:
   Come, boys of Bacchus, children of high race,
   This man within is folded up in sleep,                               _595
   And soon will vomit flesh from his fell maw;
   The brand under the shed thrusts out its smoke,
   No preparation needs, but to burn out
   The monster's eye;--but bear yourselves like men.
   
   CHORUS:
   We will have courage like the adamant rock,                          _600
   All things are ready for you here; go in,
   Before our father shall perceive the noise.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Vulcan, Aetnean king! burn out with fire
   The shining eye of this thy neighbouring monster!
   And thou, O Sleep, nursling of gloomy Night,                         _605
   Descend unmixed on this God-hated beast,
   And suffer not Ulysses and his comrades,
   Returning from their famous Trojan toils,
   To perish by this man, who cares not either
   For God or mortal; or I needs must think                             _610
   That Chance is a supreme divinity,
   And things divine are subject to her power.
   
   NOTE:
   _606 God-hated 1824; God-hating (as an alternative) B.
   
   CHORUS:
   Soon a crab the throat will seize
   Of him who feeds upon his guest,
   Fire will burn his lamp-like eyes                                    _615
   In revenge of such a feast!
   A great oak stump now is lying
   In the ashes yet undying.
   Come, Maron, come!
   Raging let him fix the doom,                                         _620
   Let him tear the eyelid up
   Of the Cyclops--that his cup
   May be evil!
   Oh! I long to dance and revel
   With sweet Bromian, long desired,                                    _625
   In loved ivy wreaths attired;
   Leaving this abandoned home--
   Will the moment ever come?
   
   ULYSSES:
   Be silent, ye wild things! Nay, hold your peace,
   And keep your lips quite close; dare not to breathe,                 _630
   Or spit, or e'en wink, lest ye wake the monster,
   Until his eye be tortured out with fire.
   
   CHORUS:
   Nay, we are silent, and we chaw the air.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Come now, and lend a hand to the great stake
   Within--it is delightfully red hot.                                  _635
   
   CHORUS:
   You then command who first should seize the stake
   To burn the Cyclops' eye, that all may share
   In the great enterprise.
   
   SEMICHORUS 1:
   We are too far;
   We cannot at this distance from the door
   Thrust fire into his eye.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   And we just now                                                      _640
   Have become lame! cannot move hand or foot.
   
   CHORUS:
   The same thing has occurred to us,--our ankles
   Are sprained with standing here, I know not how.
   
   ULYSSES:
   What, sprained with standing still?
   
   CHORUS:
   And there is dust
   Or ashes in our eyes, I know not whence.                             _645
   
   ULYSSES:
   Cowardly dogs! ye will not aid me then?
   
   CHORUS:
   With pitying my own back and my back-bone,
   And with not wishing all my teeth knocked out,
   This cowardice comes of itself--but stay,
   I know a famous Orphic incantation                                   _650
   To make the brand stick of its own accord
   Into the skull of this one-eyed son of Earth.
   
   ULYSSES:
   Of old I knew ye thus by nature; now
   I know ye better.--I will use the aid
   Of my own comrades. Yet though weak of hand                          _655
   Speak cheerfully, that so ye may awaken
   The courage of my friends with your blithe words.
   
   CHORUS:
   This I will do with peril of my life,
   And blind you with my exhortations, Cyclops.
   Hasten and thrust,                                                   _660
   And parch up to dust,
   The eye of the beast
   Who feeds on his guest.
   Burn and blind
   The Aetnean hind!                                                    _665
   Scoop and draw,
   But beware lest he claw
   Your limbs near his maw.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Ah me! my eyesight is parched up to cinders.
   
   CHORUS:
   What a sweet paean! sing me that again!                              _670
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Ah me! indeed, what woe has fallen upon me!
   But, wretched nothings, think ye not to flee
   Out of this rock; I, standing at the outlet,
   Will bar the way and catch you as you pass.
   
   CHORUS:
   What are you roaring out, Cyclops?
   
   CYCLOPS:
   I perish!                                                            _675
   
   CHORUS:
   For you are wicked.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   And besides miserable.
   
   CHORUS:
   What, did you fall into the fire when drunk?
   
   CYCLOPS:
   'Twas Nobody destroyed me.
   
   CHORUS:
   Why then no one
   Can be to blame.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   I say 'twas Nobody
   Who blinded me.
   
   CHORUS:
   Why then you are not blind.                                          _680
   
   CYCLOPS:
   I wish you were as blind as I am.
   
   CHORUS:
   Nay,
   It cannot be that no one made you blind.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   You jeer me; where, I ask, is Nobody?
   
   CHORUS:
   Nowhere, O Cyclops.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   It was that stranger ruined me:--the wretch                          _685
   First gave me wine and then burned out my eye,
   For wine is strong and hard to struggle with.
   Have they escaped, or are they yet within?
   
   CHORUS:
   They stand under the darkness of the rock
   And cling to it.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   At my right hand or left?                                            _690
   
   CHORUS:
   Close on your right.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Where?
   
   CHORUS:
   Near the rock itself.
   You have them.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Oh, misfortune on misfortune!
   I've cracked my skull.
   
   CHORUS:
   Now they escape you--there.
   
   NOTE:
   _693 So B.; Now they escape you there 1824.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Not there, although you say so.
   
   CHORUS:
   Not on that side.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Where then?
   
   CHORUS:
   They creep about you on your left.                                   _695
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Ah! I am mocked! They jeer me in my ills.
   
   CHORUS:
   Not there! he is a little there beyond you.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Detested wretch! where are you?
   
   ULYSSES:
   Far from you
   I keep with care this body of Ulysses.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   What do you say? You proffer a new name.                             _700
   
   ULYSSES:
   My father named me so; and I have taken
   A full revenge for your unnatural feast;
   I should have done ill to have burned down Troy
   And not revenged the murder of my comrades.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Ai! ai! the ancient oracle is accomplished;                          _705
   It said that I should have my eyesight blinded
   By your coming from Troy, yet it foretold
   That you should pay the penalty for this
   By wandering long over the homeless sea.
   
   ULYSSES:
   I bid thee weep--consider what I say;                                _710
   I go towards the shore to drive my ship
   To mine own land, o'er the Sicilian wave.
   
   CYCLOPS:
   Not so, if, whelming you with this huge stone,
   I can crush you and all your men together;
   I will descend upon the shore, though blind,                         _715
   Groping my way adown the steep ravine.
   
   CHORUS:
   And we, the shipmates of Ulysses now,
   Will serve our Bacchus all our happy lives.
   
   ***
   
   
   EPIGRAMS.
   
   [These four Epigrams were published--numbers 2 and 4 without title--by
   Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition.]
   
   
   1.--TO STELLA.
   
   FROM THE GREEK OF PLATO.
   
   Thou wert the morning star among the living,
   Ere thy fair light had fled;--
   Now, having died, thou art as Hesperus, giving
   New splendour to the dead.
   
   
   2.--KISSING HELENA.
   
   FROM THE GREEK OF PLATO.
   
   Kissing Helena, together
   With my kiss, my soul beside it
   Came to my lips, and there I kept it,--
   For the poor thing had wandered thither,
   To follow where the kiss should guide it,                            _5
   Oh, cruel I, to intercept it!
   
   
   3.--SPIRIT OF PLATO.
   
   FROM THE GREEK.
   
   Eagle! why soarest thou above that tomb?
   To what sublime and star-ypaven home
   Floatest thou?--
   I am the image of swift Plato's spirit,
   Ascending heaven; Athens doth inherit                                _5
   His corpse below.
   
   NOTE:
   _5 doth Boscombe manuscript; does edition 1839.
   
   
   4.--CIRCUMSTANCE.
   
   FROM THE GREEK.
   
   A man who was about to hang himself,
   Finding a purse, then threw away his rope;
   The owner, coming to reclaim his pelf,
   The halter found; and used it. So is Hope
   Changed for Despair--one laid upon the shelf,                        _5
   We take the other. Under Heaven's high cope
   Fortune is God--all you endure and do
   Depends on circumstance as much as you.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT OF THE ELEGY ON THE DEATH OF ADONIS.
   
   PROM THE GREEK OF BION.
   
   [Published by Forman, "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1876.]
   
   I mourn Adonis dead--loveliest Adonis--
   Dead, dead Adonis--and the Loves lament.
   Sleep no more, Venus, wrapped in purple woof--
   Wake violet-stoled queen, and weave the crown
   Of Death,--'tis Misery calls,--for he is dead.                       _5
   
   The lovely one lies wounded in the mountains,
   His white thigh struck with the white tooth; he scarce
   Yet breathes; and Venus hangs in agony there.
   The dark blood wanders o'er his snowy limbs,
   His eyes beneath their lids are lustreless,                          _10
   The rose has fled from his wan lips, and there
   That kiss is dead, which Venus gathers yet.
   
   A deep, deep wound Adonis...
   A deeper Venus bears upon her heart.
   See, his beloved dogs are gathering round--                          _15
   The Oread nymphs are weeping--Aphrodite
   With hair unbound is wandering through the woods,
   'Wildered, ungirt, unsandalled--the thorns pierce
   Her hastening feet and drink her sacred blood.
   Bitterly screaming out, she is driven on                             _20
   Through the long vales; and her Assyrian boy,
   Her love, her husband, calls--the purple blood
   From his struck thigh stains her white navel now,
   Her bosom, and her neck before like snow.
   
   Alas for Cytherea--the Loves mourn--                                 _25
   The lovely, the beloved is gone!--and now
   Her sacred beauty vanishes away.
   For Venus whilst Adonis lived was fair--
   Alas! her loveliness is dead with him.
   The oaks and mountains cry, Ai! ai! Adonis!                          _30
   The springs their waters change to tears and weep--
   The flowers are withered up with grief...
   
   Ai! ai! ... Adonis is dead
   Echo resounds ... Adonis dead.
   Who will weep not thy dreadful woe. O Venus?                         _35
   Soon as she saw and knew the mortal wound
   Of her Adonis--saw the life-blood flow
   From his fair thigh, now wasting,--wailing loud
   She clasped him, and cried ... 'Stay, Adonis!
   Stay, dearest one,...                                                _40
   and mix my lips with thine--
   Wake yet a while, Adonis--oh, but once,
   That I may kiss thee now for the last time--
   But for as long as one short kiss may live--
   Oh, let thy breath flow from thy dying soul                          _45
   Even to my mouth and heart, that I may suck
   That...'
   
   NOTE:
   _23 his Rossetti, Dowden, Woodberry; her Boscombe manuscript, Forman.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT OF THE ELEGY ON THE DEATH OF BION.
   
   FROM THE GREEK OF MOSCHUS.
   
   [Published from the Hunt manuscripts by Forman, "Poetical Works of P. B.
   S.", 1876.]
   
   Ye Dorian woods and waves, lament aloud,--
   Augment your tide, O streams, with fruitless tears,
   For the beloved Bion is no more.
   Let every tender herb and plant and flower,
   From each dejected bud and drooping bloom,                           _5
   Shed dews of liquid sorrow, and with breath
   Of melancholy sweetness on the wind
   Diffuse its languid love; let roses blush,
   Anemones grow paler for the loss
   Their dells have known; and thou, O hyacinth,                        _10
   Utter thy legend now--yet more, dumb flower,
   Than 'Ah! alas!'--thine is no common grief--
   Bion the [sweetest singer] is no more.
   
   NOTE:
   _2 tears]sorrow (as alternative) Hunt manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   FROM THE GREEK OF MOSCHUS.
   
   [Published with "Alastor", 1816.]
   
   Tan ala tan glaukan otan onemos atrema Balle--k.t.l.
   
   When winds that move not its calm surface sweep
   The azure sea, I love the land no more;
   The smiles of the serene and tranquil deep
   Tempt my unquiet mind.--But when the roar
   Of Ocean's gray abyss resounds, and foam                             _5
   Gathers upon the sea, and vast waves burst,
   I turn from the drear aspect to the home
   Of Earth and its deep woods, where, interspersed,
   When winds blow loud, pines make sweet melody.
   Whose house is some lone bark, whose toil the sea,                   _10
   Whose prey the wandering fish, an evil lot
   Has chosen.--But I my languid limbs will fling
   Beneath the plane, where the brook's murmuring
   Moves the calm spirit, but disturbs it not.
   
   ***
   
   
   PAN, ECHO, AND THE SATYR.
   
   FROM THE GREEK OF MOSCHUS.
   
   [Published (without title) by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.
   There is a draft amongst the Hunt manuscripts.]
   
   Pan loved his neighbour Echo--but that child
   Of Earth and Air pined for the Satyr leaping;
   The Satyr loved with wasting madness wild
   The bright nymph Lyda,--and so three went weeping.
   As Pan loved Echo, Echo loved the Satyr,                             _5
   The Satyr, Lyda; and so love consumed them.--
   And thus to each--which was a woful matter--
   To bear what they inflicted Justice doomed them;
   For, inasmuch as each might hate the lover,
   Each, loving, so was hated.--Ye that love not                        _10
   Be warned--in thought turn this example over,
   That when ye love, the like return ye prove not.
   
   NOTE:
   _6 so Hunt manuscript; thus 1824.
   _11 So 1824; This lesson timely in your thoughts turn over, The moral of
       this song in thought turn over (as alternatives) Hunt manuscript.
   
   ***
   
   
   FROM VERGIL'S TENTH ECLOGUE.
   
   [VERSES 1-26.]
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870,
   from the Boscombe manuscripts now in the Bodleian. Mr. Locock
   ("Examination", etc., 1903, pages 47-50), as the result of his collation
   of the same manuscripts, gives a revised and expanded version which we
   print below.]
   
   Melodious Arethusa, o'er my verse
   Shed thou once more the spirit of thy stream:
   Who denies verse to Gallus? So, when thou
   Glidest beneath the green and purple gleam
   Of Syracusan waters, mayst thou flow                                 _5
   Unmingled with the bitter Doric dew!
   Begin, and, whilst the goats are browsing now
   The soft leaves, in our way let us pursue
   The melancholy loves of Gallus. List!
   We sing not to the dead: the wild woods knew                         _10
   His sufferings, and their echoes...
   Young Naiads,...in what far woodlands wild
   Wandered ye when unworthy love possessed
   Your Gallus? Not where Pindus is up-piled,
   Nor where Parnassus' sacred mount, nor where                         _15
   Aonian Aganippe expands...
   The laurels and the myrtle-copses dim.
   The pine-encircled mountain, Maenalus,
   The cold crags of Lycaeus, weep for him;
   And Sylvan, crowned with rustic coronals,                            _20
   Came shaking in his speed the budding wands
   And heavy lilies which he bore: we knew
   Pan the Arcadian.
   
   ...
   
   'What madness is this, Gallus? Thy heart's care
   With willing steps pursues another there.'                           _25
   
   ***
   
   
   THE SAME.
   
   (As revised by Mr. C.D. Locock.)
   
   Melodious Arethusa, o'er my verse
   Shed thou once more the spirit of thy stream:
   
   (Two lines missing.)
   
   Who denies verse to Gallus? So, when thou
   Glidest beneath the green and purple gleam
   Of Syracusan waters, mayest thou flow                                _5
   Unmingled with the bitter Dorian dew!
   Begin, and whilst the goats are browsing now
   The soft leaves, in our song let us pursue
   The melancholy loves of Gallus. List!
   We sing not to the deaf: the wild woods knew                         _10
   His sufferings, and their echoes answer...
   Young Naiades, in what far woodlands wild
   Wandered ye, when unworthy love possessed
   Our Gallus? Nor where Pindus is up-piled,
   Nor where Parnassus' sacred mount, nor where                         _15
   Aonian Aganippe spreads its...
   
   (Three lines missing.)
   
   The laurels and the myrtle-copses dim,
   The pine-encircled mountain, Maenalus,
   The cold crags of Lycaeus weep for him.
   
   (Several lines missing.)
   
   'What madness is this, Gallus? thy heart's care,                     _20
   Lycoris, mid rude camps and Alpine snow,
   With willing step pursues another there.'
   
   (Some lines missing.)
   
   And Sylvan, crowned with rustic coronals,
   Came shaking in his speed the budding wands
   And heavy lilies which he bore: we knew                              _25
   Pan the Arcadian with....
   ...and said,
   'Wilt thou not ever cease? Love cares not.
   The meadows with fresh streams, the bees with thyme,
   The goats with the green leaves of budding spring                    _30
   Are saturated not--nor Love with tears.'
   
   ***
   
   
   FROM VERGIL'S FOURTH GEORGIC.
   
   [VERSES 360 ET SEQ.]
   
   [Published by Locock, "Examination", etc., 1903.]
   
   And the cloven waters like a chasm of mountains
   Stood, and received him in its mighty portal
   And led him through the deep's untrampled fountains
   
   He went in wonder through the path immortal
   Of his great Mother and her humid reign                              _5
   And groves profaned not by the step of mortal
   
   Which sounded as he passed, and lakes which rain
   Replenished not girt round by marble caves
   'Wildered by the watery motion of the main
   
   Half 'wildered he beheld the bursting waves                          _10
   Of every stream beneath the mighty earth
   Phasis and Lycus which the ... sand paves,
   
   [And] The chasm where old Enipeus has its birth
   And father Tyber and Anienas[?] glow
   And whence Caicus, Mysian stream, comes forth                        _15
   
   And rock-resounding Hypanis, and thou
   Eridanus who bearest like empire's sign
   Two golden horns upon thy taurine brow
   
   Thou than whom none of the streams divine
   Through garden-fields and meads with fiercer power,                  _20
   Burst in their tumult on the purple brine
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET.
   
   FROM THE ITALIAN OF DANTE.
   
   [Published with "Alastor", 1816; reprinted, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   DANTE ALIGHIERI TO GUIDO CAVALCANTI:
   
   Guido, I would that Lapo, thou, and I,
   Led by some strong enchantment, might ascend
   A magic ship, whose charmed sails should fly
   With winds at will where'er our thoughts might wend,
   So that no change, nor any evil chance                               _5
   Should mar our joyous voyage; but it might be,
   That even satiety should still enhance
   Between our hearts their strict community:
   And that the bounteous wizard then would place
   Vanna and Bice and my gentle love,                                   _10
   Companions of our wandering, and would grace
   With passionate talk, wherever we might rove,
   Our time, and each were as content and free
   As I believe that thou and I should be.
   
   _5 So 1824; And 1816.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE FIRST CANZONE OF THE CONVITO.
   
   FROM THE ITALIAN OF DANTE.
   
   [Published by Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862; dated 1820.]
   
   1.
   Ye who intelligent the Third Heaven move,
   Hear the discourse which is within my heart,
   Which cannot be declared, it seems so new.
   The Heaven whose course follows your power and art,
   Oh, gentle creatures that ye are! me drew,                           _5
   And therefore may I dare to speak to you,
   Even of the life which now I live--and yet
   I pray that ye will hear me when I cry,
   And tell of mine own heart this novelty;
   How the lamenting Spirit moans in it,                                _10
   And how a voice there murmurs against her
   Who came on the refulgence of your sphere.
   
   2.
   A sweet Thought, which was once the life within
   This heavy heart, man a time and oft
   Went up before our Father's feet, and there                          _15
   It saw a glorious Lady throned aloft;
   And its sweet talk of her my soul did win,
   So that I said, 'Thither I too will fare.'
   That Thought is fled, and one doth now appear
   Which tyrannizes me with such fierce stress,                         _20
   That my heart trembles--ye may see it leap--
   And on another Lady bids me keep
   Mine eyes, and says--Who would have blessedness
   Let him but look upon that Lady's eyes,
   Let him not fear the agony of sighs.                                 _25
   
   3.
   This lowly Thought, which once would talk with me
   Of a bright seraph sitting crowned on high,
   Found such a cruel foe it died, and so
   My Spirit wept, the grief is hot even now--
   And said, Alas for me! how swift could flee                          _30
   That piteous Thought which did my life console!
   And the afflicted one ... questioning
   Mine eyes, if such a Lady saw they never,
   And why they would...
   I said: 'Beneath those eyes might stand for ever                     _35
   He whom ... regards must kill with...
   To have known their power stood me in little stead,
   Those eyes have looked on me, and I am dead.'
   
   4.
   'Thou art not dead, but thou hast wandered,
   Thou Soul of ours, who thyself dost fret,'                           _40
   A Spirit of gentle Love beside me said;
   For that fair Lady, whom thou dost regret,
   Hath so transformed the life which thou hast led,
   Thou scornest it, so worthless art thou made.
   And see how meek, how pitiful, how staid,                            _45
   Yet courteous, in her majesty she is.
   And still call thou her Woman in thy thought;
   Her whom, if thou thyself deceivest not,
   Thou wilt behold decked with such loveliness,
   That thou wilt cry [Love] only Lord, lo! here                        _50
   Thy handmaiden, do what thou wilt with her.
   
   5.
   My song, I fear that thou wilt find but few
   Who fitly shall conceive thy reasoning
   Of such hard matter dost thou entertain.
   Whence, if by misadventure chance should bring                       _55
   Thee to base company, as chance may do,
   Quite unaware of what thou dost contain,
   I prithee comfort thy sweet self again,
   My last delight; tell them that they are dull,
   And bid them own that thou art beautiful.                            _60
   
   NOTE:
   C5. Published with "Epispychidion", 1821.--ED.
   
   ***
   
   
   MATILDA GATHERING FLOWERS.
   
   FROM THE PURGATORIO OF DANTE, CANTO 28, LINES 1-51.
   
   [Published in part (lines 1-8, 22-51) by Medwin, "The Angler in Wales",
   1834, "Life of Shelley", 1847; reprinted in full by Garnett, "Relics of
   Shelley", 1862.]
   
   And earnest to explore within--around--
   The divine wood, whose thick green living woof
   Tempered the young day to the sight--I wound
   
   Up the green slope, beneath the forest's roof,
   With slow, soft steps leaving the mountain's steep,                  _5
   And sought those inmost labyrinths, motion-proof
   
   Against the air, that in that stillness deep
   And solemn, struck upon my forehead bare,
   The slow, soft stroke of a continuous...
   
   In which the ... leaves tremblingly were                             _10
   All bent towards that part where earliest
   The sacred hill obscures the morning air.
   
   Yet were they not so shaken from the rest,
   But that the birds, perched on the utmost spray,
   Incessantly renewing their blithe quest,                             _15
   
   With perfect joy received the early day,
   Singing within the glancing leaves, whose sound
   Kept a low burden to their roundelay,
   
   Such as from bough to bough gathers around
   The pine forest on bleak Chiassi's shore,                            _20
   When Aeolus Sirocco has unbound.
   
   My slow steps had already borne me o'er
   Such space within the antique wood, that I
   Perceived not where I entered any more,--
   
   When, lo! a stream whose little waves went by,                       _25
   Bending towards the left through grass that grew
   Upon its bank, impeded suddenly
   
   My going on. Water of purest hue
   On earth, would appear turbid and impure
   Compared with this, whose unconcealing dew,                          _30
   
   Dark, dark, yet clear, moved under the obscure
   Eternal shades, whose interwoven looms
   The rays of moon or sunlight ne'er endure.
   
   I moved not with my feet, but mid the glooms
   Pierced with my charmed eye, contemplating                           _35
   The mighty multitude of fresh May blooms
   
   Which starred that night, when, even as a thing
   That suddenly, for blank astonishment,
   Charms every sense, and makes all thought take wing,--
   
   A solitary woman! and she went                                       _40
   Singing and gathering flower after flower,
   With which her way was painted and besprent.
   
   'Bright lady, who, if looks had ever power
   To bear true witness of the heart within,
   Dost bask under the beams of love, come lower                        _45
   
   Towards this bank. I prithee let me win
   This much of thee, to come, that I may hear
   Thy song: like Proserpine, in Enna's glen,
   
   Thou seemest to my fancy, singing here
   And gathering flowers, as that fair maiden when                      _50
   She lost the Spring, and Ceres her, more dear.
   
   NOTES:
   _2 The 1862; That 1834.
   _4, _5 So 1862;
   Up a green slope, beneath the starry roof,
   With slow, slow steps-- 1834.
   _6 inmost 1862; leafy 1834.
   _9 So 1862; The slow, soft stroke of a continuous sleep cj. Rossetti, 1870.
   _9-_28 So 1862;
          Like the sweet breathing of a child asleep:
          Already I had lost myself so far
          Amid that tangled wilderness that I
          Perceived not where I ventured, but no fear
          Of wandering from my way disturbed, when nigh
          A little stream appeared; the grass that grew
          Thick on its banks impeded suddenly
          My going on. 1834.
   _13 the 1862; their cj. Rossetti, 1870.
   _26 through]the cj. Rossetti.
   _28 hue 1862; dew 1834.
   _30 dew 1862; hue 1834.
   _32 Eternal shades 1862; Of the close boughs 1834.
   _33 So 1862; No ray of moon or sunshine would endure 1834.
   _34, _35 So 1862;
            My feet were motionless, but mid the glooms
            Darted my charmed eyes--1834.
   _37 Which 1834; That 1862.
   _39 So 1834; Dissolves all other thought...1862.
   _40 So 1862; Appeared a solitary maid--she went 1834.
   _46 Towards 1862; Unto 1834.
   _47 thee, to come 1862; thee O come 1834.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT.
   
   ADAPTED FROM THE VITA NUOVA OF DANTE.
   
   [Published by Forman, "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1876.]
   
   What Mary is when she a little smiles
   I cannot even tell or call to mind,
   It is a miracle so new, so rare.
   
   ***
   
   
   UGOLINO.
   
   (Published by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847, with Shelley's
   corrections in italics [''].--ED.)
   
   INFERNO 33, 22-75.
   
   [Translated by Medwin and corrected by Shelley.]
   
   Now had the loophole of that dungeon, still
   Which bears the name of Famine's Tower from me,
   And where 'tis fit that many another will
   
   Be doomed to linger in captivity,
   Shown through its narrow opening in my cell                          _5
   'Moon after moon slow waning', when a sleep,
   
   'That of the future burst the veil, in dream
   Visited me. It was a slumber deep
   And evil; for I saw, or I did seem'
   
   To see, 'that' tyrant Lord his revels keep                           _10
   The leader of the cruel hunt to them,
   Chasing the wolf and wolf-cubs up the steep
   
   Ascent, that from 'the Pisan is the screen'
   Of 'Lucca'; with him Gualandi came,
   Sismondi, and Lanfranchi, 'bloodhounds lean,                         _15
   
   Trained to the sport and eager for the game
   Wide ranging in his front;' but soon were seen
   Though by so short a course, with 'spirits tame,'
   
   The father and 'his whelps' to flag at once,
   And then the sharp fangs gored their bosoms deep.                    _20
   Ere morn I roused myself, and heard my sons,
   
   For they were with me, moaning in their sleep,
   And begging bread. Ah, for those darling ones!
   Right cruel art thou, if thou dost not weep
   
   In thinking of my soul's sad augury;                                 _25
   And if thou weepest not now, weep never more!
   They were already waked, as wont drew nigh
   
   The allotted hour for food, and in that hour
   Each drew a presage from his dream. When I
   'Heard locked beneath me of that horrible tower                      _30
   
   The outlet; then into their eyes alone
   I looked to read myself,' without a sign
   Or word. I wept not--turned within to stone.
   
   They wept aloud, and little Anselm mine,
   Said--'twas my youngest, dearest little one,--                       _35
   "What ails thee, father? Why look so at thine?"
   
   In all that day, and all the following night,
   I wept not, nor replied; but when to shine
   Upon the world, not us, came forth the light
   
   Of the new sun, and thwart my prison thrown                          _40
   Gleamed through its narrow chink, a doleful sight,
   'Three faces, each the reflex of my own,
   
   Were imaged by its faint and ghastly ray;'
   Then I, of either hand unto the bone,
   Gnawed, in my agony; and thinking they                               _45
   
   Twas done from sudden pangs, in their excess,
   All of a sudden raise themselves, and say,
   "Father! our woes, so great, were yet the less
   
   Would you but eat of us,--twas 'you who clad
   Our bodies in these weeds of wretchedness;                           _50
   Despoil them'." Not to make their hearts more sad,
   
   I 'hushed' myself. That day is at its close,--
   Another--still we were all mute. Oh, had
   The obdurate earth opened to end our woes!
   
   The fourth day dawned, and when the new sun shone,                   _55
   Outstretched himself before me as it rose
   My Gaddo, saying, "Help, father! hast thou none
   
   For thine own child--is there no help from thee?"
   He died--there at my feet--and one by one,
   I saw them fall, plainly as you see me.                              _60
   
   Between the fifth and sixth day, ere twas dawn,
   I found 'myself blind-groping o'er the three.'
   Three days I called them after they were gone.
   
   Famine of grief can get the mastery.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET.
   
   FROM THE ITALIAN OF CAVALCANTI.
   
   GUIDO CAVALCANTI TO DANTE ALIGHIERI:
   
   [Published by Forman (who assigns it to 1815), "Poetical Works of P. B.
   S.", 1876.]
   
   Returning from its daily quest, my Spirit
   Changed thoughts and vile in thee doth weep to find:
   It grieves me that thy mild and gentle mind
   Those ample virtues which it did inherit
   Has lost. Once thou didst loathe the multitude                       _5
   Of blind and madding men--I then loved thee--
   I loved thy lofty songs and that sweet mood
   When thou wert faithful to thyself and me
   I dare not now through thy degraded state
   Own the delight thy strains inspire--in vain                         _10
   I seek what once thou wert--we cannot meet
   And we were wont. Again and yet again
   Ponder my words: so the false Spirit shall fly
   And leave to thee thy true integrity.
   
   ***
   
   
   SCENES FROM THE MAGICO PRODIGIOSO.
   
   FROM THE SPANISH OF CALDERON.
   
   [Published by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824; dated March, 1822.
   There is a transcript of Scene 1 among the Hunt manuscripts, which has
   been collated by Mr. Buxton Forman.]
   
   SCENE 1:
   
   ENTER CYPRIAN, DRESSED AS A STUDENT;
   CLARIN AND MOSCON AS POOR SCHOLARS, WITH BOOKS.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   In the sweet solitude of this calm place,
   This intricate wild wilderness of trees
   And flowers and undergrowth of odorous plants,
   Leave me; the books you brought out of the house
   To me are ever best society.                                         _5
   And while with glorious festival and song,
   Antioch now celebrates the consecration
   Of a proud temple to great Jupiter,
   And bears his image in loud jubilee
   To its new shrine, I would consume what still                        _10
   Lives of the dying day in studious thought,
   Far from the throng and turmoil. You, my friends,
   Go, and enjoy the festival; it will
   Be worth your pains. You may return for me
   When the sun seeks its grave among the billows                       _15
   Which, among dim gray clouds on the horizon,
   Dance like white plumes upon a hearse;-- and here
   I shall expect you.
   
   NOTES:
   _14 So transcr.; Be worth the labour, and return for me 1824.
   _16, _17 So 1824;
   Hid among dim gray clouds on the horizon
   Which dance like plumes--transcr., Forman.
   
   MOSCON:
   I cannot bring my mind,
   Great as my haste to see the festival
   Certainly is, to leave you, Sir, without                             _20
   Just saying some three or four thousand words.
   How is it possible that on a day
   Of such festivity, you can be content
   To come forth to a solitary country
   With three or four old books, and turn your back                     _25
   On all this mirth?
   
   NOTES:
   _21 thousand transcr.; hundred 1824.
   _23 be content transcr.; bring your mind 1824.
   
   CLARIN:
   My master's in the right;
   There is not anything more tiresome
   Than a procession day, with troops, and priests,
   And dances, and all that.
   
   NOTE:
   _28 and priests transcr.; of men 1824.
   
   MOSCON:
   From first to last,
   Clarin, you are a temporizing flatterer;                             _30
   You praise not what you feel but what he does;--
   Toadeater!
   
   CLARIN:
   You lie--under a mistake--
   For this is the most civil sort of lie
   That can be given to a man's face. I now
   Say what I think.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Enough, you foolish fellows!                                         _35
   Puffed up with your own doting ignorance,
   You always take the two sides of one question.
   Now go; and as I said, return for me
   When night falls, veiling in its shadows wide
   This glorious fabric of the universe.                                _40
   
   NOTE:
   _36 doting ignorance transcr.; ignorance and pride 1824.
   
   MOSCON:
   How happens it, although you can maintain
   The folly of enjoying festivals,
   That yet you go there?
   
   CLARIN:
   Nay, the consequence
   Is clear:--who ever did what he advises
   Others to do?--
   
   MOSCON:
   Would that my feet were wings,                                       _45
   So would I fly to Livia.
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   CLARIN:
   To speak truth,
   Livia is she who has surprised my heart;
   But he is more than half-way there.--Soho!
   Livia, I come; good sport, Livia, soho!
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Now, since I am alone, let me examine                                _50
   The question which has long disturbed my mind
   With doubt, since first I read in Plinius
   The words of mystic import and deep sense
   In which he defines God. My intellect
   Can find no God with whom these marks and signs                      _55
   Fitly agree. It is a hidden truth
   Which I must fathom.
   
   [CYPRIAN READS;
   THE DAEMON, DRESSED IN A COURT DRESS, ENTERS.]
   
   NOTE:
   _57 Stage Direction: So transcr. Reads. Enter the Devil as a fine
       gentleman 1824.
   
   DAEMON:
   Search even as thou wilt,
   But thou shalt never find what I can hide.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   What noise is that among the boughs? Who moves?
   What art thou?--
   
   DAEMON:
   'Tis a foreign gentleman.                                            _60
   Even from this morning I have lost my way
   In this wild place; and my poor horse at last,
   Quite overcome, has stretched himself upon
   The enamelled tapestry of this mossy mountain,
   And feeds and rests at the same time. I was                          _65
   Upon my way to Antioch upon business
   Of some importance, but wrapped up in cares
   (Who is exempt from this inheritance?)
   I parted from my company, and lost
   My way, and lost my servants and my comrades.                        _70
   
   CYPRIAN:
   'Tis singular that even within the sight
   Of the high towers of Antioch you could lose
   Your way. Of all the avenues and green paths
   Of this wild wood there is not one but leads,
   As to its centre, to the walls of Antioch;                           _75
   Take which you will, you cannot miss your road.
   
   DAEMON:
   And such is ignorance! Even in the sight
   Of knowledge, it can draw no profit from it.
   But as it still is early, and as I
   Have no acquaintances in Antioch,                                    _80
   Being a stranger there, I will even wait
   The few surviving hours of the day,
   Until the night shall conquer it. I see
   Both by your dress and by the books in which
   You find delight and company, that you                               _85
   Are a great student;--for my part, I feel
   Much sympathy in such pursuits.
   
   NOTE:
   _87 in transcr.; with 1824.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Have you
   Studied much?
   
   DAEMON:
   No,--and yet I know enough
   Not to be wholly ignorant.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Pray, Sir,
   What science may you know?--
   
   DAEMON:
   Many.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Alas!                                                                _90
   Much pains must we expend on one alone,
   And even then attain it not;--but you
   Have the presumption to assert that you
   Know many without study.
   
   DAEMON:
   And with truth.
   For in the country whence I come the sciences                        _95
   Require no learning,--they are known.
   
   NOTE:
   _95 come the sciences]come sciences 1824.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Oh, would
   I were of that bright country! for in this
   The more we study, we the more discover
   Our ignorance.
   
   DAEMON:
   It is so true, that I
   Had so much arrogance as to oppose                                   _100
   The chair of the most high Professorship,
   And obtained many votes, and, though I lost,
   The attempt was still more glorious, than the failure
   Could be dishonourable. If you believe not,
   Let us refer it to dispute respecting                                _105
   That which you know the best, and although I
   Know not the opinion you maintain, and though
   It be the true one, I will take the contrary.
   
   NOTE:
   _106 the transcr.; wanting, 1824.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   The offer gives me pleasure. I am now
   Debating with myself upon a passage                                  _110
   Of Plinius, and my mind is racked with doubt
   To understand and know who is the God
   Of whom he speaks.
   
   DAEMON:
   It is a passage, if
   I recollect it right, couched in these words
   'God is one supreme goodness, one pure essence,                      _115
   One substance, and one sense, all sight, all hands.'
   
   CYPRIAN:
   'Tis true.
   
   DAEMON:
   What difficulty find you here?
   
   CYPRIAN:
   I do not recognize among the Gods
   The God defined by Plinius; if he must
   Be supreme goodness, even Jupiter                                    _120
   Is not supremely good; because we see
   His deeds are evil, and his attributes
   Tainted with mortal weakness; in what manner
   Can supreme goodness be consistent with
   The passions of humanity?
   
   DAEMON:
   The wisdom                                                           _125
   Of the old world masked with the names of Gods
   The attributes of Nature and of Man;
   A sort of popular philosophy.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   This reply will not satisfy me, for
   Such awe is due to the high name of God                              _130
   That ill should never be imputed. Then,
   Examining the question with more care,
   It follows, that the Gods would always will
   That which is best, were they supremely good.
   How then does one will one thing, one another?                       _135
   And that you may not say that I allege
   Poetical or philosophic learning:--
   Consider the ambiguous responses
   Of their oracular statues; from two shrines
   Two armies shall obtain the assurance of                             _140
   One victory. Is it not indisputable
   That two contending wills can never lead
   To the same end? And, being opposite,
   If one be good, is not the other evil?
   Evil in God is inconceivable;                                        _145
   But supreme goodness fails among the Gods
   Without their union.
   
   NOTE:
   _133 would transcr.; should 1824.
   
   DAEMON:
   I deny your major.
   These responses are means towards some end
   Unfathomed by our intellectual beam.
   They are the work of Providence, and more                            _150
   The battle's loss may profit those who lose,
   Than victory advantage those who win.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   That I admit; and yet that God should not
   (Falsehood is incompatible with deity)
   Assure the victory; it would be enough                               _155
   To have permitted the defeat. If God
   Be all sight,--God, who had beheld the truth,
   Would not have given assurance of an end
   Never to be accomplished: thus, although
   The Deity may according to his attributes                            _160
   Be well distinguished into persons, yet
   Even in the minutest circumstance
   His essence must be one.
   
   NOTE:
   _157 had transcr.; wanting, 1824.
   
   DAEMON:
   To attain the end
   The affections of the actors in the scene
   Must have been thus influenced by his voice.                         _165
   
   CYPRIAN:
   But for a purpose thus subordinate
   He might have employed Genii, good or evil,--
   A sort of spirits called so by the learned,
   Who roam about inspiring good or evil,
   And from whose influence and existence we                            _170
   May well infer our immortality.
   Thus God might easily, without descent
   To a gross falsehood in his proper person,
   Have moved the affections by this mediation
   To the just point.
   
   NOTE:
   _172 descent transcr.; descending 1824.
   
   DAEMON:
   These trifling contradictions                                        _175
   Do not suffice to impugn the unity
   Of the high Gods; in things of great importance
   They still appear unanimous; consider
   That glorious fabric, man,--his workmanship
   Is stamped with one conception.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Who made man                                                         _180
   Must have, methinks, the advantage of the others.
   If they are equal, might they not have risen
   In opposition to the work, and being
   All hands, according to our author here,
   Have still destroyed even as the other made?                         _185
   If equal in their power, unequal only
   In opportunity, which of the two
   Will remain conqueror?
   
   NOTE:
   _186 unequal only transcr.; and only unequal 1824.
   
   DAEMON:
   On impossible
   And false hypothesis there can be built
   No argument. Say, what do you infer                                  _190
   From this?
   
   CYPRIAN:
   That there must be a mighty God
   Of supreme goodness and of highest grace,
   All sight, all hands, all truth, infallible,
   Without an equal and without a rival,
   The cause of all things and the effect of nothing,                   _195
   One power, one will, one substance, and one essence.
   And, in whatever persons, one or two,
   His attributes may be distinguished, one
   Sovereign power, one solitary essence,
   One cause of all cause.
   
   NOTE:
   _197 And]query, Ay?
   
   [THEY RISE.]
   
   DAEMON:
   How can I impugn                                                     _200
   So clear a consequence?
   
   NOTE:
   _200 all cause 1824; all things transcr.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Do you regret
   My victory?
   
   DAEMON:
   Who but regrets a check
   In rivalry of wit? I could reply
   And urge new difficulties, but will now
   Depart, for I hear steps of men approaching,                         _205
   And it is time that I should now pursue
   My journey to the city.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Go in peace!
   
   DAEMON:
   Remain in peace!--Since thus it profits him
   To study, I will wrap his senses up
   In sweet oblivion of all thought but of                              _210
   A piece of excellent beauty; and, as I
   Have power given me to wage enmity
   Against Justina's soul, I will extract
   From one effect two vengeances.
   
   [ASIDE AND EXIT.]
   
   NOTE:
   _214 Stage direction So transcr.; Exit 1824.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   I never
   Met a more learned person. Let me now                                _215
   Revolve this doubt again with careful mind.
   
   [HE READS.]
   
   [FLORO AND LELIO ENTER.]
   
   LELIO:
   Here stop. These toppling rocks and tangled boughs,
   Impenetrable by the noonday beam,
   Shall be sole witnesses of what we--
   
   FLORO:
   Draw!
   If there were words, here is the place for deeds.                    _220
   
   LELIO:
   Thou needest not instruct me; well I know
   That in the field, the silent tongue of steel
   Speaks thus,--
   
   [THEY FIGHT.]
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Ha! what is this? Lelio,--Floro,
   Be it enough that Cyprian stands between you,
   Although unarmed.
   
   LELIO:
   Whence comest thou, to stand                                         _225
   Between me and my vengeance?
   
   FLORO:
   From what rocks
   And desert cells?
   
   [ENTER MOSCON AND CLARIN.]
   
   MOSCON:
   Run! run! for where we left
   My master. I now hear the clash of swords.
   
   NOTES:
   _228 I now hear transcr.; we hear 1824.
   _227-_229 lines of otherwise arranged, 1824.
   
   CLARIN:
   I never run to approach things of this sort
   But only to avoid them. Sir! Cyprian! sir!                           _230
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Be silent, fellows! What! two friends who are
   In blood and fame the eyes and hope of Antioch,
   One of the noble race of the Colalti,
   The other son o' the Governor, adventure
   And cast away, on some slight cause no doubt,                        _235
   Two lives, the honour of their country?
   
   NOTE:
   _233 race transcr.; men 1824. Colalti]Colatti 1824.
   
   LELIO:
   Cyprian!
   Although my high respect towards your person
   Holds now my sword suspended, thou canst not
   Restore it to the slumber of the scabbard:
   Thou knowest more of science than the duel;                          _240
   For when two men of honour take the field,
   No counsel nor respect can make them friends
   But one must die in the dispute.
   
   NOTE:
   _239 of the transcr.; of its 1824.
   _242 No counsel nor 1839, 1st edition;
        No [...] or 1824; No reasoning or transcr.
   _243 dispute transcr. pursuit 1824.
   
   FLORO:
   I pray
   That you depart hence with your people, and
   Leave us to finish what we have begun                                _245
   Without advantage.--
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Though you may imagine
   That I know little of the laws of duel,
   Which vanity and valour instituted,
   You are in error. By my birth I am
   Held no less than yourselves to know the limits                      _250
   Of honour and of infamy, nor has study
   Quenched the free spirit which first ordered them;
   And thus to me, as one well experienced
   In the false quicksands of the sea of honour,
   You may refer the merits of the case;                                _255
   And if I should perceive in your relation
   That either has the right to satisfaction
   From the other, I give you my word of honour
   To leave you.
   
   NOTE:
   _253 well omit, cj. Forman.
   
   LELIO:
   Under this condition then
   I will relate the cause, and you will cede                           _260
   And must confess the impossibility
   Of compromise; for the same lady is
   Beloved by Floro and myself.
   
   FLORO:
   It seems
   Much to me that the light of day should look
   Upon that idol of my heart--but he--                                 _265
   Leave us to fight, according to thy word.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Permit one question further: is the lady
   Impossible to hope or not?
   
   LELIO:
   She is
   So excellent, that if the light of day
   Should excite Floro's jealousy, it were                              _270
   Without just cause, for even the light of day
   Trembles to gaze on her.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Would you for your
   Part, marry her?
   
   FLORO:
   Such is my confidence.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   And you?
   
   LELIO:
   Oh! would that I could lift my hope
   So high, for though she is extremely poor,                           _275
   Her virtue is her dowry.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   And if you both
   Would marry her, is it not weak and vain,
   Culpable and unworthy, thus beforehand
   To slur her honour? What would the world say
   If one should slay the other, and if she                             _280
   Should afterwards espouse the murderer?
   
   [THE RIVALS AGREE TO REFER THEIR QUARREL TO CYPRIAN; WHO IN CONSEQUENCE
   VISITS JUSTINA, AND BECOMES ENAMOURED OF HER; SHE DISDAINS HIM, AND HE
   RETIRES TO A SOLITARY SEA-SHORE.]
   
   
   SCENE 2.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   O memory! permit it not
   That the tyrant of my thought
   Be another soul that still
   Holds dominion o'er the will,
   That would refuse, but can no more,                                  _5
   To bend, to tremble, and adore.
   Vain idolatry!--I saw,
   And gazing, became blind with error;
   Weak ambition, which the awe
   Of her presence bound to terror!                                     _10
   So beautiful she was--and I,
   Between my love and jealousy,
   Am so convulsed with hope and fear,
   Unworthy as it may appear;--
   So bitter is the life I live,                                        _15
   That, hear me, Hell! I now would give
   To thy most detested spirit
   My soul, for ever to inherit,
   To suffer punishment and pine,
   So this woman may be mine.                                           _20
   Hear'st thou, Hell! dost thou reject it?
   My soul is offered!
   
   DAEMON (UNSEEN):
   I accept it.
   
   [TEMPEST, WITH THUNDER AND LIGHTNING.]
   
   CYPRIAN:
   What is this? ye heavens for ever pure,
   At once intensely radiant and obscure!
   Athwart the aethereal halls                                          _25
   The lightning's arrow and the thunder-balls
   The day affright,
   As from the horizon round,
   Burst with earthquake sound,
   In mighty torrents the electric fountains;--                         _30
   Clouds quench the sun, and thunder-smoke
   Strangles the air, and fire eclipses Heaven.
   Philosophy, thou canst not even
   Compel their causes underneath thy yoke:
   From yonder clouds even to the waves below                           _35
   The fragments of a single ruin choke
   Imagination's flight;
   For, on flakes of surge, like feathers light,
   The ashes of the desolation, cast
   Upon the gloomy blast,                                               _40
   Tell of the footsteps of the storm;
   And nearer, see, the melancholy form
   Of a great ship, the outcast of the sea,
   Drives miserably!
   And it must fly the pity of the port,                                _45
   Or perish, and its last and sole resort
   Is its own raging enemy.
   The terror of the thrilling cry
   Was a fatal prophecy
   Of coming death, who hovers now                                      _50
   Upon that shattered prow,
   That they who die not may be dying still.
   And not alone the insane elements
   Are populous with wild portents,
   But that sad ship is as a miracle                                    _55
   Of sudden ruin, for it drives so fast
   It seems as if it had arrayed its form
   With the headlong storm.
   It strikes--I almost feel the shock,--
   It stumbles on a jagged rock,--                                      _60
   Sparkles of blood on the white foam are cast.
   
   [A TEMPEST.]
   
   ALL EXCLAIM [WITHIN]:
   We are all lost!
   
   DAEMON [WITHIN]:
   Now from this plank will I
   Pass to the land and thus fulfil my scheme.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   As in contempt of the elemental rage
   A man comes forth in safety, while the ship's                        _65
   Great form is in a watery eclipse
   Obliterated from the Oceans page,
   And round its wreck the huge sea-monsters sit,
   A horrid conclave, and the whistling wave
   Is heaped over its carcase, like a grave.                            _70
   
   [THE DAEMON ENTERS, AS ESCAPED FROM THE SEA.]
   
   DAEMON [ASIDE]:
   It was essential to my purposes
   To wake a tumult on the sapphire ocean,
   That in this unknown form I might at length
   Wipe out the blot of the discomfiture
   Sustained upon the mountain, and assail                              _75
   With a new war the soul of Cyprian,
   Forging the instruments of his destruction
   Even from his love and from his wisdom.--O
   Beloved earth, dear mother, in thy bosom
   I seek a refuge from the monster who                                 _80
   Precipitates itself upon me.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Friend,
   Collect thyself; and be the memory
   Of thy late suffering, and thy greatest sorrow
   But as a shadow of the past,--for nothing
   Beneath the circle of the moon, but flows                            _85
   And changes, and can never know repose.
   
   DAEMON:
   And who art thou, before whose feet my fate
   Has prostrated me?
   
   CYPRIAN:
   One who, moved with pity,
   Would soothe its stings.
   
   DAEMON:
   Oh, that can never be!
   No solace can my lasting sorrows find.                               _90
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Wherefore?
   
   DAEMON:
   Because my happiness is lost.
   Yet I lament what has long ceased to be
   The object of desire or memory,
   And my life is not life.
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Now, since the fury
   Of this earthquaking hurricane is still,                             _95
   And the crystalline Heaven has reassumed
   Its windless calm so quickly, that it seems
   As if its heavy wrath had been awakened
   Only to overwhelm that vessel,--speak,
   Who art thou, and whence comest thou?
   
   DAEMON:
   Far more                                                             _100
   My coming hither cost, than thou hast seen
   Or I can tell. Among my misadventures
   This shipwreck is the least. Wilt thou hear?
   
   CYPRIAN:
   Speak.
   
   DAEMON:
   Since thou desirest, I will then unveil
   Myself to thee;--for in myself I am                                  _105
   A world of happiness and misery;
   This I have lost, and that I must lament
   Forever. In my attributes I stood
   So high and so heroically great,
   In lineage so supreme, and with a genius                             _110
   Which penetrated with a glance the world
   Beneath my feet, that, won by my high merit,
   A king--whom I may call the King of kings,
   Because all others tremble in their pride
   Before the terrors of His countenance,                               _115
   In His high palace roofed with brightest gems
   Of living light--call them the stars of Heaven--
   Named me His counsellor. But the high praise
   Stung me with pride and envy, and I rose
   In mighty competition, to ascend                                     _120
   His seat and place my foot triumphantly
   Upon His subject thrones. Chastised, I know
   The depth to which ambition falls; too mad
   Was the attempt, and yet more mad were now
   Repentance of the irrevocable deed:--                                _125
   Therefore I chose this ruin, with the glory
   Of not to be subdued, before the shame
   Of reconciling me with Him who reigns
   By coward cession.--Nor was I alone,
   Nor am I now, nor shall I be alone;                                  _130
   And there was hope, and there may still be hope,
   For many suffrages among His vassals
   Hailed me their lord and king, and many still
   Are mine, and many more, perchance shall be.
   Thus vanquished, though in fact victorious,                          _135
   I left His seat of empire, from mine eye
   Shooting forth poisonous lightning, while my words
   With inauspicious thunderings shook Heaven,
   Proclaiming vengeance, public as my wrong,
   And imprecating on His prostrate slaves                              _140
   Rapine, and death, and outrage. Then I sailed
   Over the mighty fabric of the world,--
   A pirate ambushed in its pathless sands,
   A lynx crouched watchfully among its caves
   And craggy shores; and I have wandered over                          _145
   The expanse of these wide wildernesses
   In this great ship, whose bulk is now dissolved
   In the light breathings of the invisible wind,
   And which the sea has made a dustless ruin,
   Seeking ever a mountain, through whose forests                       _150
   I seek a man, whom I must now compel
   To keep his word with me. I came arrayed
   In tempest, and although my power could well
   Bridle the forest winds in their career,
   For other causes I forbore to soothe                                 _155
   Their fury to Favonian gentleness;
   I could and would not;
   [ASIDE.]
   (thus I wake in him
   A love of magic art). Let not this tempest,
   Nor the succeeding calm excite thy wonder;
   For by my art the sun would turn as pale                             _160
   As his weak sister with unwonted fear;
   And in my wisdom are the orbs of Heaven
   Written as in a record; I have pierced
   The flaming circles of their wondrous spheres
   And know them as thou knowest every corner                           _165
   Of this dim spot. Let it not seem to thee
   That I boast vainly; wouldst thou that I work
   A charm over this waste and savage wood,
   This Babylon of crags and aged trees,
   Filling its leafy coverts with a horror                              _170
   Thrilling and strange? I am the friendless guest
   Of these wild oaks and pines--and as from thee
   I have received the hospitality
   Of this rude place, I offer thee the fruit
   Of years of toil in recompense; whate'er                             _175
   Thy wildest dream presented to thy thought
   As object of desire, that shall be thine.
   
   ...
   
   And thenceforth shall so firm an amity
   'Twixt thee and me be, that neither Fortune,
   The monstrous phantom which pursues success,                         _180
   That careful miser, that free prodigal,
   Who ever alternates, with changeful hand,
   Evil and good, reproach and fame; nor Time,
   That lodestar of the ages, to whose beam
   The winged years speed o'er the intervals                            _185
   Of their unequal revolutions; nor
   Heaven itself, whose beautiful bright stars
   Rule and adorn the world, can ever make
   The least division between thee and me,
   Since now I find a refuge in thy favour.                             _190
   
   NOTES:
   _146 wide glassy wildernesses Rossetti.
   _150 Seeking forever cj. Forman.
   _154 forest]fiercest cj. Rossetti.
   
   
   SCENE 3.
   
   THE DAEMON TEMPTS JUSTINA, WHO IS A CHRISTIAN.
   
   DAEMON:
   Abyss of Hell! I call on thee,
   Thou wild misrule of thine own anarchy!
   From thy prison-house set free
   The spirits of voluptuous death,
   That with their mighty breath                                        _5
   They may destroy a world of virgin thoughts;
   Let her chaste mind with fancies thick as motes
   Be peopled from thy shadowy deep,
   Till her guiltless fantasy
   Full to overflowing be!                                              _10
   And with sweetest harmony,
   Let birds, and flowers, and leaves, and all things move
   To love, only to love.
   Let nothing meet her eyes
   But signs of Love's soft victories;                                  _15
   Let nothing meet her ear
   But sounds of Love's sweet sorrow,
   So that from faith no succour she may borrow,
   But, guided by my spirit blind
   And in a magic snare entwined,                                       _20
   She may now seek Cyprian.
   Begin, while I in silence bind
   My voice, when thy sweet song thou hast began.
   
   NOTE:
   _18 she may]may she 1824.
   
   A VOICE [WITHIN]:
   What is the glory far above
   All else in human life?
   
   ALL:
   Love! love!                                                          _25
   
   [WHILE THESE WORDS ARE SUNG,
   THE DAEMON GOES OUT AT ONE DOOR,
   AND JUSTINA ENTERS AT ANOTHER.]
   
   THE FIRST VOICE:
   There is no form in which the fire
   Of love its traces has impressed not.
   Man lives far more in love's desire
   Than by life's breath, soon possessed not.
   If all that lives must love or die,                                  _30
   All shapes on earth, or sea, or sky,
   With one consent to Heaven cry
   That the glory far above
   All else in life is--
   
   ALL:
   Love! oh, Love!
   
   JUSTINA:
   Thou melancholy Thought which art                                    _35
   So flattering and so sweet, to thee
   When did I give the liberty
   Thus to afflict my heart?
   What is the cause of this new Power
   Which doth my fevered being move,                                    _40
   Momently raging more and more?
   What subtle Pain is kindled now
   Which from my heart doth overflow
   Into my senses?--
   
   NOTE:
   _36 flattering Boscombe manuscript; fluttering 1824.
   
   ALL:
   Love! oh, Love!
   
   JUSTINA:
   'Tis that enamoured Nightingale                                      _45
   Who gives me the reply;
   He ever tells the same soft tale
   Of passion and of constancy
   To his mate, who rapt and fond,
   Listening sits, a bough beyond.                                      _50
   
   Be silent, Nightingale--no more
   Make me think, in hearing thee
   Thus tenderly thy love deplore,
   If a bird can feel his so,
   What a man would feel for me.                                        _55
   And, voluptuous Vine, O thou
   Who seekest most when least pursuing,--
   To the trunk thou interlacest
   Art the verdure which embracest,
   And the weight which is its ruin,--                                  _60
   No more, with green embraces, Vine,
   Make me think on what thou lovest,--
   For whilst thus thy boughs entwine
   I fear lest thou shouldst teach me, sophist,
   How arms might be entangled too.                                     _65
   
   Light-enchanted Sunflower, thou
   Who gazest ever true and tender
   On the sun's revolving splendour!
   Follow not his faithless glance
   With thy faded countenance,                                          _70
   Nor teach my beating heart to fear,
   If leaves can mourn without a tear,
   How eyes must weep! O Nightingale,
   Cease from thy enamoured tale,--
   Leafy Vine, unwreathe thy bower,                                     _75
   Restless Sunflower, cease to move,--
   Or tell me all, what poisonous Power
   Ye use against me--
   
   NOTES:
   _58 To]Who to cj. Rossetti.
   _63 whilst thus Rossetti, Forman, Dowden; whilst thou thus 1824.
   
   ALL:
   Love! Love! Love!
   
   JUSTINA:
   It cannot be!--Whom have I ever loved?
   Trophies of my oblivion and disdain,                                 _80
   Floro and Lelio did I not reject?
   And Cyprian?--
   [SHE BECOMES TROUBLED AT THE NAME OF CYPRIAN.]
   Did I not requite him
   With such severity, that he has fled
   Where none has ever heard of him again?--
   Alas! I now begin to fear that this                                  _85
   May be the occasion whence desire grows bold,
   As if there were no danger. From the moment
   That I pronounced to my own listening heart,
   'Cyprian is absent!'--O me miserable!
   I know not what I feel!
   [MORE CALMLY.]
   It must be pity                                                      _90
   To think that such a man, whom all the world
   Admired, should be forgot by all the world,
   And I the cause.
   [SHE AGAIN BECOMES TROUBLED.]
   And yet if it were pity,
   Floro and Lelio might have equal share,
   For they are both imprisoned for my sake.                            _95
   [CALMLY.]
   Alas! what reasonings are these? it is
   Enough I pity him, and that, in vain,
   Without this ceremonious subtlety.
   And, woe is me! I know not where to find him now,
   Even should I seek him through this wide world.                      _100
   
   NOTE:
   _89 me miserable]miserable me editions 1839.
   
   [ENTER DAEMON.]
   
   DAEMON:
   Follow, and I will lead thee where he is.
   
   JUSTINA:
   And who art thou, who hast found entrance hither,
   Into my chamber through the doors and locks?
   Art thou a monstrous shadow which my madness
   Has formed in the idle air?
   
   DAEMON:
   No. I am one                                                         _105
   Called by the Thought which tyrannizes thee
   From his eternal dwelling; who this day
   Is pledged to bear thee unto Cyprian.
   
   JUSTINA:
   So shall thy promise fail. This agony
   Of passion which afflicts my heart and soul                          _110
   May sweep imagination in its storm;
   The will is firm.
   
   DAEMON:
   Already half is done
   In the imagination of an act.
   The sin incurred, the pleasure then remains;
   Let not the will stop half-way on the road.                          _115
   
   JUSTINA:
   I will not be discouraged, nor despair,
   Although I thought it, and although 'tis true
   That thought is but a prelude to the deed:--
   Thought is not in my power, but action is:
   I will not move my foot to follow thee.                              _120
   
   DAEMON:
   But a far mightier wisdom than thine own
   Exerts itself within thee, with such power
   Compelling thee to that which it inclines
   That it shall force thy step; how wilt thou then
   Resist, Justina?
   
   NOTE:
   _123 inclines]inclines to cj. Rossetti.
   
   JUSTINA:
   By my free-will.
   
   DAEMON:
   I                                                                    _125
   Must force thy will.
   
   JUSTINA:
   It is invincible;
   It were not free if thou hadst power upon it.
   
   [HE DRAWS, BUT CANNOT MOVE HER.]
   
   DAEMON:
   Come, where a pleasure waits thee.
   
   JUSTINA:
   It were bought
   Too dear.
   
   DAEMON:
   'Twill soothe thy heart to softest peace.
   
   JUSTINA:
   'Tis dread captivity.
   
   DAEMON:
   'Tis joy, 'tis glory.                                                _130
   
   JUSTINA:
   'Tis shame, 'tis torment, 'tis despair.
   
   DAEMON:
   But how
   Canst thou defend thyself from that or me,
   If my power drags thee onward?
   
   JUSTINA:
   My defence
   Consists in God.
   
   [HE VAINLY ENDEAVOURS TO FORCE HER, AND AT LAST RELEASES HER.]
   
   DAEMON:
   Woman, thou hast subdued me,
   Only by not owning thyself subdued.                                  _135
   But since thou thus findest defence in God,
   I will assume a feigned form, and thus
   Make thee a victim of my baffled rage.
   For I will mask a spirit in thy form
   Who will betray thy name to infamy,                                  _140
   And doubly shall I triumph in thy loss,
   First by dishonouring thee, and then by turning
   False pleasure to true ignominy.
   
   [EXIT.]
   
   JUSTINA: I
   Appeal to Heaven against thee; so that Heaven
   May scatter thy delusions, and the blot                              _145
   Upon my fame vanish in idle thought,
   Even as flame dies in the envious air,
   And as the floweret wanes at morning frost;
   And thou shouldst never--But, alas! to whom
   Do I still speak?--Did not a man but now                             _150
   Stand here before me?--No, I am alone,
   And yet I saw him. Is he gone so quickly?
   Or can the heated mind engender shapes
   From its own fear? Some terrible and strange
   Peril is near. Lisander! father! lord!                               _155
   Livia!--
   
   [ENTER LISANDER AND LIVIA.]
   
   LISANDER:
   Oh, my daughter! What?
   
   LIVIA:
   What!
   
   JUSTINA:
   Saw you
   A man go forth from my apartment now?--
   I scarce contain myself!
   
   LISANDER:
   A man here!
   
   JUSTINA:
   Have you not seen him?
   
   LIVIA:
   No, Lady.
   
   JUSTINA: I saw him.
   
   LISANDER: 'Tis impossible; the doors                                 _160
   Which led to this apartment were all locked.
   
   LIVIA [ASIDE]:
   I daresay it was Moscon whom she saw,
   For he was locked up in my room.
   
   LISANDER:
   It must
   Have been some image of thy fantasy.
   Such melancholy as thou feedest is                                   _165
   Skilful in forming such in the vain air
   Out of the motes and atoms of the day.
   
   LIVIA:
   My master's in the right.
   
   JUSTINA:
   Oh, would it were
   Delusion; but I fear some greater ill.
   I feel as if out of my bleeding bosom                                _170
   My heart was torn in fragments; ay,
   Some mortal spell is wrought against my frame;
   So potent was the charm that, had not God
   Shielded my humble innocence from wrong,
   I should have sought my sorrow and my shame                          _175
   With willing steps.--Livia, quick, bring my cloak,
   For I must seek refuge from these extremes
   Even in the temple of the highest God
   Where secretly the faithful worship.
   
   LIVIA:
   Here.
   
   NOTE:
   _179 Where Rossetti; Which 1824.
   
   JUSTINA [PUTTING ON HER CLOAK]:
   In this, as in a shroud of snow, may I                               _180
   Quench the consuming fire in which I burn,
   Wasting away!
   
   LISANDER:
   And I will go with thee.
   
   LIVIA:
   When I once see them safe out of the house
   I shall breathe freely.
   
   JUSTINA:
   So do I confide
   In thy just favour, Heaven!
   
   LISANDER:
   Let us go.                                                           _185
   
   JUSTINA:
   Thine is the cause, great God! turn for my sake,
   And for Thine own, mercifully to me!
   
   ***
   
   
   STANZAS FROM CALDERON'S CISMA DE INGLATERRA.
   
   TRANSLATED BY MEDWIN AND CORRECTED BY SHELLEY.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847,
   with Shelley's corrections in ''.]
   
   1.
   Hast thou not seen, officious with delight,
   Move through the illumined air about the flower
   The Bee, that fears to drink its purple light,
   Lest danger lurk within that Rose's bower?
   Hast thou not marked the moth's enamoured flight                     _5
   About the Taper's flame at evening hour;
   'Till kindle in that monumental fire
   His sunflower wings their own funereal pyre?
   
   2.
   My heart, its wishes trembling to unfold.
   Thus round the Rose and Taper hovering came,                         _10
   'And Passion's slave, Distrust, in ashes cold.
   Smothered awhile, but could not quench the flame,'--
   Till Love, that grows by disappointment bold,
   And Opportunity, had conquered Shame;
   And like the Bee and Moth, in act to close,                          _15
   'I burned my wings, and settled on the Rose.'
   
   ***
   
   
   SCENES FROM THE FAUST OF GOETHE.
   
   [Published in part (Scene 2) in "The Liberal", No. 1, 1822;
   in full, by Mrs. Shelley, "Posthumous Poems", 1824.]
   
   SCENE 1.--PROLOGUE IN HEAVEN.
   
   THE LORD AND THE HOST OF HEAVEN.
   
   ENTER THREE ARCHANGELS.
   
   RAPHAEL:
   The sun makes music as of old
   Amid the rival spheres of Heaven,
   On its predestined circle rolled
   With thunder speed: the Angels even
   Draw strength from gazing on its glance,                             _5
   Though none its meaning fathom may:--
   The world's unwithered countenance
   Is bright as at Creation's day.
   
   GABRIEL:
   And swift and swift, with rapid lightness,
   The adorned Earth spins silently,                                    _10
   Alternating Elysian brightness
   With deep and dreadful night; the sea
   Foams in broad billows from the deep
   Up to the rocks, and rocks and Ocean,
   Onward, with spheres which never sleep,                              _15
   Are hurried in eternal motion.
   
   MICHAEL:
   And tempests in contention roar
   From land to sea, from sea to land;
   And, raging, weave a chain of power,
   Which girds the earth, as with a band.--                             _20
   A flashing desolation there,
   Flames before the thunder's way;
   But Thy servants, Lord, revere
   The gentle changes of Thy day.
   
   CHORUS OF THE THREE:
   The Angels draw strength from Thy glance,                            _25
   Though no one comprehend Thee may;--
   Thy world's unwithered countenance
   Is bright as on Creation's day.
   
   NOTE:
   _28 (RAPHAEL:
   The sun sounds, according to ancient custom,
   In the song of emulation of his brother-spheres.
   And its fore-written circle
   Fulfils with a step of thunder.
   Its countenance gives the Angels strength
   Though no one can fathom it.
   The incredible high works
   Are excellent as at the first day.
   
   GABRIEL:
   And swift, and inconceivably swift
   The adornment of earth winds itself round,
   And exchanges Paradise-clearness
   With deep dreadful night.
   The sea foams in broad waves
   From its deep bottom, up to the rocks,
   And rocks and sea are torn on together
   In the eternal swift course of the spheres.
   
   MICHAEL:
   And storms roar in emulation
   From sea to land, from land to sea,
   And make, raging, a chain
   Of deepest operation round about.
   There flames a flashing destruction
   Before the path of the thunderbolt.
   But Thy servants, Lord, revere
   The gentle alternations of Thy day.
   
   CHORUS:
   Thy countenance gives the Angels strength,
   Though none can comprehend Thee:
   And all Thy lofty works
   Are excellent as at the first day.
   
   Such is a literal translation of this astonishing chorus; it is
   impossible to represent in another language the melody of the
   versification; even the volatile strength and delicacy of the ideas
   escape in the crucible of translation, and the reader is surprised to
   find a caput mortuum.--[SHELLEY'S NOTE.])
   
   [ENTER MEPHISTOPHELES.]
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   As thou, O Lord, once more art kind enough
   To interest Thyself in our affairs,                                  _30
   And ask, 'How goes it with you there below?'
   And as indulgently at other times
   Thou tookest not my visits in ill part,
   Thou seest me here once more among Thy household.
   Though I should scandalize this company,                             _35
   You will excuse me if I do not talk
   In the high style which they think fashionable;
   My pathos certainly would make You laugh too,
   Had You not long since given over laughing.
   Nothing know I to say of suns and worlds;                            _40
   I observe only how men plague themselves;--
   The little god o' the world keeps the same stamp,
   As wonderful as on creation's day:--
   A little better would he live, hadst Thou
   Not given him a glimpse of Heaven's light                            _45
   Which he calls reason, and employs it only
   To live more beastlily than any beast.
   With reverence to Your Lordship be it spoken,
   He's like one of those long-legged grasshoppers,
   Who flits and jumps about, and sings for ever                        _50
   The same old song i' the grass. There let him lie,
   Burying his nose in every heap of dung.
   
   NOTES:
   _38 certainly would editions 1839; would certainly 1824.
   _47 beastlily 1824; beastily editions 1839.
   
   THE LORD:
   Have you no more to say? Do you come here
   Always to scold, and cavil, and complain?
   Seems nothing ever right to you on earth?                            _55
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   No, Lord! I find all there, as ever, bad at best.
   Even I am sorry for man's days of sorrow;
   I could myself almost give up the pleasure
   Of plaguing the poor things.
   
   THE LORD:
   Knowest thou Faust?
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   The Doctor?
   
   THE LORD:
   Ay; My servant Faust.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   In truth                                                             _60
   He serves You in a fashion quite his own;
   And the fool's meat and drink are not of earth.
   His aspirations bear him on so far
   That he is half aware of his own folly,
   For he demands from Heaven its fairest star,                         _65
   And from the earth the highest joy it bears,
   Yet all things far, and all things near, are vain
   To calm the deep emotions of his breast.
   
   THE LORD:
   Though he now serves Me in a cloud of error,
   I will soon lead him forth to the clear day.                         _70
   When trees look green, full well the gardener knows
   That fruits and blooms will deck the coming year.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   What will You bet?--now am sure of winning--
   Only, observe You give me full permission
   To lead him softly on my path.
   
   THE LORD:
   As long                                                              _75
   As he shall live upon the earth, so long
   Is nothing unto thee forbidden--Man
   Must err till he has ceased to struggle.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Thanks.
   And that is all I ask; for willingly
   I never make acquaintance with the dead.                             _80
   The full fresh cheeks of youth are food for me,
   And if a corpse knocks, I am not at home.
   For I am like a cat--I like to play
   A little with the mouse before I eat it.
   
   THE LORD:
   Well, well! it is permitted thee. Draw thou                          _85
   His spirit from its springs; as thou find'st power
   Seize him and lead him on thy downward path;
   And stand ashamed when failure teaches thee
   That a good man, even in his darkest longings,
   Is well aware of the right way.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Well and good.                                                       _90
   I am not in much doubt about my bet,
   And if I lose, then 'tis Your turn to crow;
   Enjoy Your triumph then with a full breast.
   Ay; dust shall he devour, and that with pleasure,
   Like my old paramour, the famous Snake.                              _95
   
   THE LORD:
   Pray come here when it suits you; for I never
   Had much dislike for people of your sort.
   And, among all the Spirits who rebelled,
   The knave was ever the least tedious to Me.
   The active spirit of man soon sleeps, and soon                       _100
   He seeks unbroken quiet; therefore I
   Have given him the Devil for a companion,
   Who may provoke him to some sort of work,
   And must create forever.--But ye, pure
   Children of God, enjoy eternal beauty;--                             _105
   Let that which ever operates and lives
   Clasp you within the limits of its love;
   And seize with sweet and melancholy thoughts
   The floating phantoms of its loveliness.
   
   [HEAVEN CLOSES; THE ARCHANGELS EXEUNT.]
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   From time to time I visit the old fellow,                            _110
   And I take care to keep on good terms with Him.
   Civil enough is the same God Almighty,
   To talk so freely with the Devil himself.
   
   
   SCENE 2.--MAY-DAY NIGHT.
   
   THE HARTZ MOUNTAIN, A DESOLATE COUNTRY.
   
   FAUST, MEPHISTOPHELES.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Would you not like a broomstick? As for me
   I wish I had a good stout ram to ride;
   For we are still far from the appointed place.
   
   FAUST:
   This knotted staff is help enough for me,
   Whilst I feel fresh upon my legs. What good                          _5
   Is there in making short a pleasant way?
   To creep along the labyrinths of the vales,
   And climb those rocks, where ever-babbling springs,
   Precipitate themselves in waterfalls,
   Is the true sport that seasons such a path.                          _10
   Already Spring kindles the birchen spray,
   And the hoar pines already feel her breath:
   Shall she not work also within our limbs?
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Nothing of such an influence do I feel.
   My body is all wintry, and I wish                                    _15
   The flowers upon our path were frost and snow.
   But see how melancholy rises now,
   Dimly uplifting her belated beam,
   The blank unwelcome round of the red moon,
   And gives so bad a light, that every step                            _20
   One stumbles 'gainst some crag. With your permission,
   I'll call on Ignis-fatuus to our aid:
   I see one yonder burning jollily.
   Halloo, my friend! may I request that you
   Would favour us with your bright company?                            _25
   Why should you blaze away there to no purpose?
   Pray be so good as light us up this way.
   
   IGNIS-FATUUS:
   With reverence be it spoken, I will try
   To overcome the lightness of my nature;
   Our course, you know, is generally zigzag.                           _30
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Ha, ha! your worship thinks you have to deal
   With men. Go straight on, in the Devil's name,
   Or I shall puff your flickering life out.
   
   NOTE:
   _33 shall puff 1824; will blow 1822.
   
   IGNIS-FATUUS:
   Well,
   I see you are the master of the house;
   I will accommodate myself to you.                                    _35
   Only consider that to-night this mountain
   Is all enchanted, and if Jack-a-lantern
   Shows you his way, though you should miss your own,
   You ought not to be too exact with him.
   
   FAUST, MEPHISTOPHELES, AND IGNIS-FATUUS, IN ALTERNATE CHORUS:
   The limits of the sphere of dream,                                   _40
   The bounds of true and false, are past.
   Lead us on, thou wandering Gleam,
   Lead us onward, far and fast,
   To the wide, the desert waste.
   
   But see, how swift advance and shift                                 _45
   Trees behind trees, row by row,--
   How, clift by clift, rocks bend and lift
   Their frowning foreheads as we go.
   The giant-snouted crags, ho! ho!
   How they snort, and how they blow!                                   _50
   
   Through the mossy sods and stones,
   Stream and streamlet hurry down--
   A rushing throng! A sound of song
   Beneath the vault of Heaven is blown!
   Sweet notes of love, the speaking tones                              _55
   Of this bright day, sent down to say
   That Paradise on Earth is known,
   Resound around, beneath, above.
   All we hope and all we love
   Finds a voice in this blithe strain,                                 _60
   Which wakens hill and wood and rill,
   And vibrates far o'er field and vale,
   And which Echo, like the tale
   Of old times, repeats again.
   
   To-whoo! to-whoo! near, nearer now                                   _65
   The sound of song, the rushing throng!
   Are the screech, the lapwing, and the jay,
   All awake as if 'twere day?
   See, with long legs and belly wide,
   A salamander in the brake!                                           _70
   Every root is like a snake,
   And along the loose hillside,
   With strange contortions through the night,
   Curls, to seize or to affright;
   And, animated, strong, and many,                                     _75
   They dart forth polypus-antennae,
   To blister with their poison spume
   The wanderer. Through the dazzling gloom
   The many-coloured mice, that thread
   The dewy turf beneath our tread,                                     _80
   In troops each other's motions cross,
   Through the heath and through the moss;
   And, in legions intertangled,
   The fire-flies flit, and swarm, and throng,
   Till all the mountain depths are spangled.                           _85
   
   Tell me, shall we go or stay?
   Shall we onward? Come along!
   Everything around is swept
   Forward, onward, far away!
   Trees and masses intercept                                           _90
   The sight, and wisps on every side
   Are puffed up and multiplied.
   
   NOTES:
   _48 frowning]fawning 1822.
   _70 brake 1824; lake 1822.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Now vigorously seize my skirt, and gain
   This pinnacle of isolated crag.
   One may observe with wonder from this point,                         _95
   How Mammon glows among the mountains.
   
   FAUST:
   Ay--
   And strangely through the solid depth below
   A melancholy light, like the red dawn,
   Shoots from the lowest gorge of the abyss
   Of mountains, lightning hitherward: there rise                       _100
   Pillars of smoke, here clouds float gently by;
   Here the light burns soft as the enkindled air,
   Or the illumined dust of golden flowers;
   And now it glides like tender colours spreading;
   And now bursts forth in fountains from the earth;                    _105
   And now it winds, one torrent of broad light,
   Through the far valley with a hundred veins;
   And now once more within that narrow corner
   Masses itself into intensest splendour.
   And near us, see, sparks spring out of the ground,                   _110
   Like golden sand scattered upon the darkness;
   The pinnacles of that black wall of mountains
   That hems us in are kindled.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Rare: in faith!
   Does not Sir Mammon gloriously illuminate
   His palace for this festival?--it is                                 _115
   A pleasure which you had not known before.
   I spy the boisterous guests already.
   
   FAUST:
   How
   The children of the wind rage in the air!
   With what fierce strokes they fall upon my neck!
   
   NOTE:
   _117 How 1824; Now 1822.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Cling tightly to the old ribs of the crag.                           _120
   Beware! for if with them thou warrest
   In their fierce flight towards the wilderness,
   Their breath will sweep thee into dust, and drag
   Thy body to a grave in the abyss.
   A cloud thickens the night.                                          _125
   Hark! how the tempest crashes through the forest!
   The owls fly out in strange affright;
   The columns of the evergreen palaces
   Are split and shattered;
   The roots creak, and stretch, and groan;                             _130
   And ruinously overthrown,
   The trunks are crushed and shattered
   By the fierce blast's unconquerable stress.
   Over each other crack and crash they all
   In terrible and intertangled fall;                                   _135
   And through the ruins of the shaken mountain
   The airs hiss and howl--
   It is not the voice of the fountain,
   Nor the wolf in his midnight prowl.
   Dost thou not hear?                                                  _140
   Strange accents are ringing
   Aloft, afar, anear?
   The witches are singing!
   The torrent of a raging wizard song
   Streams the whole mountain along.                                    _145
   
   NOTE:
   _132 shattered]scattered Rossetti.
   
   CHORUS OF WITCHES:
   The stubble is yellow, the corn is green,
   Now to the Brocken the witches go;
   The mighty multitude here may be seen
   Gathering, wizard and witch, below.
   Sir Urian is sitting aloft in the air;                               _150
   Hey over stock! and hey over stone!
   'Twixt witches and incubi, what shall be done?
   Tell it who dare! tell it who dare!
   
   NOTE:
   _150 Urian]Urean editions 1824, 1839.
   
   A VOICE:
   Upon a sow-swine, whose farrows were nine,
   Old Baubo rideth alone.                                              _155
   
   CHORUS:
   Honour her, to whom honour is due,
   Old mother Baubo, honour to you!
   An able sow, with old Baubo upon her,
   Is worthy of glory, and worthy of honour!
   The legion of witches is coming behind,                              _160
   Darkening the night, and outspeeding the wind--
   
   A VOICE:
   Which way comest thou?
   
   A VOICE:
   Over Ilsenstein;
   The owl was awake in the white moonshine;
   I saw her at rest in her downy nest,
   And she stared at me with her broad, bright eyne.                    _165
   
   NOTE:
   _165 eyne 1839, 2nd edition; eye 1822, 1824, 1839, 1st edition.
   
   VOICES:
   And you may now as well take your course on to Hell,
   Since you ride by so fast on the headlong blast.
   
   A VOICE:
   She dropped poison upon me as I passed.
   Here are the wounds--
   
   CHORUS OF WITCHES:
   Come away! come along!
   The way is wide, the way is long,                                    _170
   But what is that for a Bedlam throng?
   Stick with the prong, and scratch with the broom.
   The child in the cradle lies strangled at home,
   And the mother is clapping her hands.--
   
   SEMICHORUS OF WIZARDS 1:
   We glide in
   Like snails when the women are all away;                             _175
   And from a house once given over to sin
   Woman has a thousand steps to stray.
   
   SEMICHORUS 2:
   A thousand steps must a woman take,
   Where a man but a single spring will make.
   
   VOICES ABOVE:
   Come with us, come with us, from Felsensee.                          _180
   
   NOTE:
   _180 Felsensee 1862 ("Relics of Shelley", page 96);
        Felumee 1822; Felunsee editions 1824, 1839.
   
   VOICES BELOW:
   With what joy would we fly through the upper sky!
   We are washed, we are 'nointed, stark naked are we;
   But our toil and our pain are forever in vain.
   
   NOTE:
   _183 are editions 1839; is 1822, 1824.
   
   BOTH CHORUSES:
   The wind is still, the stars are fled,                               _185
   The melancholy moon is dead;
   The magic notes, like spark on spark,
   Drizzle, whistling through the dark. Come away!
   
   VOICES BELOW:
   Stay, Oh, stay!
   
   VOICES ABOVE:
   Out of the crannies of the rocks                                     _190
   Who calls?
   
   VOICES BELOW:
   Oh, let me join your flocks!
   I, three hundred years have striven
   To catch your skirt and mount to Heaven,--
   And still in vain. Oh, might I be
   With company akin to me!                                             _195
   
   BOTH CHORUSES:
   Some on a ram and some on a prong,
   On poles and on broomsticks we flutter along;
   Forlorn is the wight who can rise not to-night.
   
   A HALF-WITCH BELOW:
   I have been tripping this many an hour:
   Are the others already so far before?                                _200
   No quiet at home, and no peace abroad!
   And less methinks is found by the road.
   
   CHORUS OF WITCHES:
   Come onward, away! aroint thee, aroint!
   A witch to be strong must anoint--anoint--
   Then every trough will be boat enough;                               _205
   With a rag for a sail we can sweep through the sky,
   Who flies not to-night, when means he to fly?
   
   BOTH CHORUSES:
   We cling to the skirt, and we strike on the ground;
   Witch-legions thicken around and around;
   Wizard-swarms cover the heath all over.                              _210
   
   [THEY DESCEND.]
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   What thronging, dashing, raging, rustling;
   What whispering, babbling, hissing, bustling;
   What glimmering, spurting, stinking, burning,
   As Heaven and Earth were overturning.
   There is a true witch element about us;                              _215
   Take hold on me, or we shall be divided:--
   Where are you?
   
   NOTE:
   _217 What! wanting, 1822.
   
   FAUST [FROM A DISTANCE]:
   Here!
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   What!
   I must exert my authority in the house.
   Place for young Voland! pray make way, good people.
   Take hold on me, doctor, an with one step                            _220
   Let us escape from this unpleasant crowd:
   They are too mad for people of my sort.
   Just there shines a peculiar kind of light--
   Something attracts me in those bushes. Come
   This way: we shall slip down there in a minute.                      _225
   
   FAUST:
   Spirit of Contradiction! Well, lead on--
   'Twere a wise feat indeed to wander out
   Into the Brocken upon May-day night,
   And then to isolate oneself in scorn,
   Disgusted with the humours of the time.                              _230
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   See yonder, round a many-coloured flame
   A merry club is huddled altogether:
   Even with such little people as sit there
   One would not be alone.
   
   FAUST:
   Would that I were
   Up yonder in the glow and whirling smoke,                            _235
   Where the blind million rush impetuously
   To meet the evil ones; there might I solve
   Many a riddle that torments me.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Yet
   Many a riddle there is tied anew
   Inextricably. Let the great world rage!                              _240
   We will stay here safe in the quiet dwellings.
   'Tis an old custom. Men have ever built
   Their own small world in the great world of all.
   I see young witches naked there, and old ones
   Wisely attired with greater decency.                                 _245
   Be guided now by me, and you shall buy
   A pound of pleasure with a dram of trouble.
   I hear them tune their instruments--one must
   Get used to this damned scraping. Come, I'll lead you
   Among them; and what there you do and see,                           _250
   As a fresh compact 'twixt us two shall be.
   How say you now? this space is wide enough--
   Look forth, you cannot see the end of it--
   An hundred bonfires burn in rows, and they
   Who throng around them seem innumerable:                             _255
   Dancing and drinking, jabbering, making love,
   And cooking, are at work. Now tell me, friend,
   What is there better in the world than this?
   
   NOTE:
   _254 An 1824; A editions 1839.
   
   FAUST:
   In introducing us, do you assume
   The character of Wizard or of Devil?                                 _260
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   In truth, I generally go about
   In strict incognito; and yet one likes
   To wear one's orders upon gala days.
   I have no ribbon at my knee; but here
   At home, the cloven foot is honourable.                              _265
   See you that snail there?--she comes creeping up,
   And with her feeling eyes hath smelt out something.
   I could not, if I would, mask myself here.
   Come now, we'll go about from fire to fire:
   I'll be the Pimp, and you shall be the Lover.                        _270
   [TO SOME OLD WOMEN, WHO ARE SITTING ROUND A HEAP OF GLIMMERING COALS.]
   Old gentlewomen, what do you do out here?
   You ought to be with the young rioters
   Right in the thickest of the revelry--
   But every one is best content at home.
   
   NOTE:
   _264 my wanting, 1822.
   
   General.
   Who dare confide in right or a just claim?                           _275
   So much as I had done for them! and now--
   With women and the people 'tis the same,
   Youth will stand foremost ever,--age may go
   To the dark grave unhonoured.
   
   NOTE:
   _275 right editions 1824, 1839; night 1822.
   
   MINISTER:
   Nowadays
   People assert their rights: they go too far;                         _280
   But as for me, the good old times I praise;
   Then we were all in all--'twas something worth
   One's while to be in place and wear a star;
   That was indeed the golden age on earth.
   
   PARVENU:
   We too are active, and we did and do                                 _285
   What we ought not, perhaps; and yet we now
   Will seize, whilst all things are whirled round and round,
   A spoke of Fortune's wheel, and keep our ground.
   
   NOTE:
   _285 Parvenu: (Note) A sort of fundholder 1822, editions 1824, 1839.
   
   AUTHOR:
   Who now can taste a treatise of deep sense
   And ponderous volume? 'tis impertinence                              _290
   To write what none will read, therefore will I
   To please the young and thoughtless people try.
   
   NOTE:
   _290 ponderous 1824; wonderous 1822.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES [WHO AT ONCE APPEARS TO HAVE GROWN VERY OLD]:
   I
   find the people ripe for the last day,
   Since I last came up to the wizard mountain;
   And as my little cask runs turbid now,                               _295
   So is the world drained to the dregs.
   
   PEDLAR-WITCH:
   Look here,
   Gentlemen; do not hurry on so fast;
   And lose the chance of a good pennyworth.
   I have a pack full of the choicest wares
   Of every sort, and yet in all my bundle                              _300
   Is nothing like what may be found on earth;
   Nothing that in a moment will make rich
   Men and the world with fine malicious mischief--
   There is no dagger drunk with blood; no bowl
   From which consuming poison may be drained                           _305
   By innocent and healthy lips; no jewel,
   The price of an abandoned maiden's shame;
   No sword which cuts the bond it cannot loose,
   Or stabs the wearer's enemy in the back;
   No--
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Gossip, you know little of these times.                              _310
   What has been, has been; what is done, is past,
   They shape themselves into the innovations
   They breed, and innovation drags us with it.
   The torrent of the crowd sweeps over us:
   You think to impel, and are yourself impelled.                       _315
   
   FAUST:
   What is that yonder?
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Mark her well. It is
   Lilith.
   
   FAUST:
   Who?
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Lilith, the first wife of Adam.
   Beware of her fair hair, for she excels
   All women in the magic of her locks;
   And when she winds them round a young man's neck,                    _320
   She will not ever set him free again.
   
   FAUST:
   There sit a girl and an old woman--they
   Seem to be tired with pleasure and with play.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   There is no rest to-night for any one:
   When one dance ends another is begun;                                _325
   Come, let us to it. We shall have rare fun.
   
   [FAUST DANCES AND SINGS WITH A GIRL, AND
   MEPHISTOPHELES WITH AN OLD WOMAN.]
   
   FAUST:
   I had once a lovely dream
   In which I saw an apple-tree,
   Where two fair apples with their gleam
   To climb and taste attracted me.                                     _330
   
   NOTES:
   _327-_334 So Boscombe manuscript ("Westminster Review", July, 1870);
             wanting, 1822, 1824, 1839.
   
   THE GIRL:
   She with apples you desired
   From Paradise came long ago:
   With you I feel that if required,
   Such still within my garden grow.
   
   ...
   
   PROCTO-PHANTASMIST:
   What is this cursed multitude about?                                 _335
   Have we not long since proved to demonstration
   That ghosts move not on ordinary feet?
   But these are dancing just like men and women.
   
   NOTE:
   _335 Procto-Phantasmist]Brocto-Phantasmist editions 1824, 1839.
   
   THE GIRL:
   What does he want then at our ball?
   
   FAUST:
   Oh! he
   Is far above us all in his conceit:                                  _340
   Whilst we enjoy, he reasons of enjoyment;
   And any step which in our dance we tread,
   If it be left out of his reckoning,
   Is not to be considered as a step.
   There are few things that scandalize him not:                        _345
   And when you whirl round in the circle now,
   As he went round the wheel in his old mill,
   He says that you go wrong in all respects,
   Especially if you congratulate him
   Upon the strength of the resemblance.
   
   PROCTO-PHANTASMIST:
   Fly!                                                                 _350
   Vanish! Unheard-of impudence! What, still there!
   In this enlightened age too, since you have been
   Proved not to exist!--But this infernal brood
   Will hear no reason and endure no rule.
   Are we so wise, and is the POND still haunted?                       _355
   How long have I been sweeping out this rubbish
   Of superstition, and the world will not
   Come clean with all my pains!--it is a case
   Unheard of!
   
   NOTE:
   _355 pond wanting in Boscombe manuscript.
   
   THE GIRL:
   Then leave off teasing us so.
   
   PROCTO-PHANTASMIST:
   I tell you, spirits, to your faces now,                              _360
   That I should not regret this despotism
   Of spirits, but that mine can wield it not.
   To-night I shall make poor work of it,
   Yet I will take a round with you, and hope
   Before my last step in the living dance                              _365
   To beat the poet and the devil together.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   At last he will sit down in some foul puddle;
   That is his way of solacing himself;
   Until some leech, diverted with his gravity,
   Cures him of spirits and the spirit together.                        _370
   [TO FAUST, WHO HAS SECEDED FROM THE DANCE.]
   Why do you let that fair girl pass from you,
   Who sung so sweetly to you in the dance?
   
   FAUST:
   A red mouse in the middle of her singing
   Sprung from her mouth.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   That was all right, my friend:
   Be it enough that the mouse was not gray.                            _375
   Do not disturb your hour of happiness
   With close consideration of such trifles.
   
   FAUST:
   Then saw I--
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   What?
   
   FAUST:
   Seest thou not a pale,
   Fair girl, standing alone, far, far away?
   She drags herself now forward with slow steps,                       _380
   And seems as if she moved with shackled feet:
   I cannot overcome the thought that she
   Is like poor Margaret.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Let it be--pass on--
   No good can come of it--it is not well
   To meet it--it is an enchanted phantom,                              _385
   A lifeless idol; with its numbing look,
   It freezes up the blood of man; and they
   Who meet its ghastly stare are turned to stone,
   Like those who saw Medusa.
   
   FAUST:
   Oh, too true!
   Her eyes are like the eyes of a fresh corpse                         _390
   Which no beloved hand has closed, alas!
   That is the breast which Margaret yielded to me--
   Those are the lovely limbs which I enjoyed!
   
   NOTE:
   _392 breast editions 1839; heart 1822, 1824.
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   It is all magic, poor deluded fool!
   She looks to every one like his first love.                          _395
   
   FAUST:
   Oh, what delight! what woe! I cannot turn
   My looks from her sweet piteous countenance.
   How strangely does a single blood-red line,
   Not broader than the sharp edge of a knife,
   Adorn her lovely neck!
   
   MEPHISTOPHELES:
   Ay, she can carry                                                    _400
   Her head under her arm upon occasion;
   Perseus has cut it off for her. These pleasures
   End in delusion.--Gain this rising ground,
   It is as airy here as in a...
   And if I am not mightily deceived,                                   _405
   I see a theatre.--What may this mean?
   
   ATTENDANT:
   Quite a new piece, the last of seven, for 'tis
   The custom now to represent that number.
   'Tis written by a Dilettante, and
   The actors who perform are Dilettanti;                               _410
   Excuse me, gentlemen; but I must vanish.
   I am a Dilettante curtain-lifter.
   
   ***
   
   
   JUVENILIA.
   
   
   QUEEN MAB.
   
   A PHILOSOPHICAL POEM, WITH NOTES.
   
   [An edition (250 copies) of "Queen Mab" was printed at London in the
   summer of 1813 by Shelley himself, whose name, as author and printer,
   appears on the title-page (see "Bibliographical List"). Of this edition
   about seventy copies were privately distributed. Sections 1, 2, 8, and 9
   were afterwards rehandled, and the intermediate sections here and there
   revised and altered; and of this new text sections 1 and 2 were
   published by Shelley in the "Alastor" volume of 1816, under the title,
   "The Daemon of the World". The remainder lay unpublished till 1876, when
   sections 8 and 9 were printed by Mr. H. Buxton Forman, C.B., from a
   printed copy of "Queen Mab" with Shelley's manuscript corrections. See
   "The Shelley Library", pages 36-44, for a description of this copy,
   which is in Mr. Forman's possession. Sources of the text are (1) the
   editio princeps of 1813; (2) text (with some omissions) in the "Poetical
   Works" of 1839, edited by Mrs. Shelley; (3) text (one line only wanting)
   in the 2nd edition of the "Poetical Works", 1839 (same editor).
   
   "Queen Mab" was probably written during the year 1812--it is first heard
   of at Lynmouth, August 18, 1812 ("Shelley Memorials", page 39)--but the
   text may be assumed to include earlier material.]
   
   ECRASEZ L'INFAME!--Correspondance de Voltaire.
   
   Avia Pieridum peragro loca, nullius ante
   Trita solo; juvat integros accedere fonteis;
   Atque haurire: juvatque novos decerpere flores.
   
   ...
   
   Unde prius nulli velarint tempora musae.
   Primum quod magnis doceo de rebus; et arctis
   Religionum animos nodis exsolvere pergo.--Lucret. lib. 4.
   
   Dos pon sto, kai kosmon kineso.--Archimedes.
   
   
   TO HARRIET *****.
   
   Whose is the love that gleaming through the world,
   Wards off the poisonous arrow of its scorn?
   Whose is the warm and partial praise,
   Virtue's most sweet reward?
   
   Beneath whose looks did my reviving soul                             _5
   Riper in truth and virtuous daring grow?
   Whose eyes have I gazed fondly on,
   And loved mankind the more?
   
   HARRIET! on thine:--thou wert my purer mind;
   Thou wert the inspiration of my song;                                _10
   Thine are these early wilding flowers,
   Though garlanded by me.
   
   Then press into thy breast this pledge of love;
   And know, though time may change and years may roll,
   Each floweret gathered in my heart                                   _15
   It consecrates to thine.
   
   
   QUEEN MAB.
   
   1.
   
   How wonderful is Death,
   Death and his brother Sleep!
   One, pale as yonder waning moon
   With lips of lurid blue;
   The other, rosy as the morn                                          _5
   When throned on ocean's wave
   It blushes o'er the world:
   Yet both so passing wonderful!
   
   Hath then the gloomy Power
   Whose reign is in the tainted sepulchres                             _10
   Seized on her sinless soul?
   Must then that peerless form
   Which love and admiration cannot view
   Without a beating heart, those azure veins
   Which steal like streams along a field of snow,                      _15
   That lovely outline, which is fair
   As breathing marble, perish?
   Must putrefaction's breath
   Leave nothing of this heavenly sight
   But loathsomeness and ruin?                                          _20
   Spare nothing but a gloomy theme,
   On which the lightest heart might moralize?
   Or is it only a sweet slumber
   Stealing o'er sensation,
   Which the breath of roseate morning                                  _25
   Chaseth into darkness?
   Will Ianthe wake again,
   And give that faithful bosom joy
   Whose sleepless spirit waits to catch
   Light, life and rapture from her smile?                              _30
   
   Yes! she will wake again,
   Although her glowing limbs are motionless,
   And silent those sweet lips,
   Once breathing eloquence,
   That might have soothed a tiger's rage,                              _35
   Or thawed the cold heart of a conqueror.
   Her dewy eyes are closed,
   And on their lids, whose texture fine
   Scarce hides the dark blue orbs beneath,
   The baby Sleep is pillowed:                                          _40
   Her golden tresses shade
   The bosom's stainless pride,
   Curling like tendrils of the parasite
   Around a marble column.
   
   Hark! whence that rushing sound?                                     _45
   'Tis like the wondrous strain
   That round a lonely ruin swells,
   Which, wandering on the echoing shore,
   The enthusiast hears at evening:
   'Tis softer than the west wind's sigh;                               _50
   'Tis wilder than the unmeasured notes
   Of that strange lyre whose strings
   The genii of the breezes sweep:
   Those lines of rainbow light
   Are like the moonbeams when they fall                                _55
   Through some cathedral window, but the tints
   Are such as may not find
   Comparison on earth.
   
   Behold the chariot of the Fairy Queen!
   Celestial coursers paw the unyielding air;                           _60
   Their filmy pennons at her word they furl,
   And stop obedient to the reins of light:
   These the Queen of Spells drew in,
   She spread a charm around the spot,
   And leaning graceful from the aethereal car,                         _65
   Long did she gaze, and silently,
   Upon the slumbering maid.
   
   Oh! not the visioned poet in his dreams,
   When silvery clouds float through the 'wildered brain,
   When every sight of lovely, wild and grand                           _70
   Astonishes, enraptures, elevates,
   When fancy at a glance combines
   The wondrous and the beautiful,--
   So bright, so fair, so wild a shape
   Hath ever yet beheld,                                                _75
   As that which reined the coursers of the air,
   And poured the magic of her gaze
   Upon the maiden's sleep.
   
   The broad and yellow moon
   Shone dimly through her form--                                       _80
   That form of faultless symmetry;
   The pearly and pellucid car
   Moved not the moonlight's line:
   'Twas not an earthly pageant:
   Those who had looked upon the sight,                                 _85
   Passing all human glory,
   Saw not the yellow moon,
   Saw not the mortal scene,
   Heard not the night-wind's rush,
   Heard not an earthly sound,                                          _90
   Saw but the fairy pageant,
   Heard but the heavenly strains
   That filled the lonely dwelling.
   
   The Fairy's frame was slight, yon fibrous cloud,
   That catches but the palest tinge of even,                           _95
   And which the straining eye can hardly seize
   When melting into eastern twilight's shadow,
   Were scarce so thin, so slight; but the fair star
   That gems the glittering coronet of morn,
   Sheds not a light so mild, so powerful,                              _100
   As that which, bursting from the Fairy's form,
   Spread a purpureal halo round the scene,
   Yet with an undulating motion,
   Swayed to her outline gracefully.
   
   From her celestial car                                               _105
   The Fairy Queen descended,
   And thrice she waved her wand
   Circled with wreaths of amaranth:
   Her thin and misty form
   Moved with the moving air,                                           _110
   And the clear silver tones,
   As thus she spoke, were such
   As are unheard by all but gifted ear.
   
   FAIRY:
   'Stars! your balmiest influence shed!
   Elements! your wrath suspend!                                        _115
   Sleep, Ocean, in the rocky bounds
   That circle thy domain!
   Let not a breath be seen to stir
   Around yon grass-grown ruin's height,
   Let even the restless gossamer                                       _120
   Sleep on the moveless air!
   Soul of Ianthe! thou,
   Judged alone worthy of the envied boon,
   That waits the good and the sincere; that waits
   Those who have struggled, and with resolute will                     _125
   Vanquished earth's pride and meanness, burst the chains,
   The icy chains of custom, and have shone
   The day-stars of their age;--Soul of Ianthe!
   Awake! arise!'
   
   Sudden arose                                                         _130
   Ianthe's Soul; it stood
   All beautiful in naked purity,
   The perfect semblance of its bodily frame.
   Instinct with inexpressible beauty and grace,
   Each stain of earthliness                                            _135
   Had passed away, it reassumed
   Its native dignity, and stood
   Immortal amid ruin.
   
   Upon the couch the body lay
   Wrapped in the depth of slumber:                                     _140
   Its features were fixed and meaningless,
   Yet animal life was there,
   And every organ yet performed
   Its natural functions: 'twas a sight
   Of wonder to behold the body and soul.                               _145
   The self-same lineaments, the same
   Marks of identity were there:
   Yet, oh, how different! One aspires to Heaven,
   Pants for its sempiternal heritage,
   And ever-changing, ever-rising still,                                _150
   Wantons in endless being.
   The other, for a time the unwilling sport
   Of circumstance and passion, struggles on;
   Fleets through its sad duration rapidly:
   Then, like an useless and worn-out machine,                          _155
   Rots, perishes, and passes.
   
   FAIRY:
   'Spirit! who hast dived so deep;
   Spirit! who hast soared so high;
   Thou the fearless, thou the mild,
   Accept the boon thy worth hath earned,                               _160
   Ascend the car with me.'
   
   SPIRIT:
   'Do I dream? Is this new feeling
   But a visioned ghost of slumber?
   If indeed I am a soul,
   A free, a disembodied soul,                                          _165
   Speak again to me.'
   
   FAIRY:
   'I am the Fairy MAB: to me 'tis given
   The wonders of the human world to keep:
   The secrets of the immeasurable past,
   In the unfailing consciences of men,                                 _170
   Those stern, unflattering chroniclers, I find:
   The future, from the causes which arise
   In each event, I gather: not the sting
   Which retributive memory implants
   In the hard bosom of the selfish man;                                _175
   Nor that ecstatic and exulting throb
   Which virtue's votary feels when he sums up
   The thoughts and actions of a well-spent day,
   Are unforeseen, unregistered by me:
   And it is yet permitted me, to rend                                  _180
   The veil of mortal frailty, that the spirit,
   Clothed in its changeless purity, may know
   How soonest to accomplish the great end
   For which it hath its being, and may taste
   That peace, which in the end all life will share.                    _185
   This is the meed of virtue; happy Soul,
   Ascend the car with me!'
   
   The chains of earth's immurement
   Fell from Ianthe's spirit;
   They shrank and brake like bandages of straw                         _190
   Beneath a wakened giant's strength.
   She knew her glorious change,
   And felt in apprehension uncontrolled
   New raptures opening round:
   Each day-dream of her mortal life,                                   _195
   Each frenzied vision of the slumbers
   That closed each well-spent day,
   Seemed now to meet reality.
   
   The Fairy and the Soul proceeded;
   The silver clouds disparted;                                         _200
   And as the car of magic they ascended,
   Again the speechless music swelled,
   Again the coursers of the air
   Unfurled their azure pennons, and the Queen
   Shaking the beamy reins                                              _205
   Bade them pursue their way.
   
   The magic car moved on.
   The night was fair, and countless stars
   Studded Heaven's dark blue vault,--
   Just o'er the eastern wave                                           _210
   Peeped the first faint smile of morn:--
   The magic car moved on--
   From the celestial hoofs
   The atmosphere in flaming sparkles flew,
   And where the burning wheels                                         _215
   Eddied above the mountain's loftiest peak,
   Was traced a line of lightning.
   Now it flew far above a rock,
   The utmost verge of earth,
   The rival of the Andes, whose dark brow                              _220
   Lowered o'er the silver sea.
   
   Far, far below the chariot's path,
   Calm as a slumbering babe,
   Tremendous Ocean lay.
   The mirror of its stillness showed                                   _225
   The pale and waning stars,
   The chariot's fiery track,
   And the gray light of morn
   Tinging those fleecy clouds
   That canopied the dawn.                                              _230
   Seemed it, that the chariot's way
   Lay through the midst of an immense concave,
   Radiant with million constellations, tinged
   With shades of infinite colour,
   And semicircled with a belt                                          _235
   Flashing incessant meteors.
   
   The magic car moved on.
   As they approached their goal
   The coursers seemed to gather speed;
   The sea no longer was distinguished; earth                           _240
   Appeared a vast and shadowy sphere;
   The sun's unclouded orb
   Rolled through the black concave;
   Its rays of rapid light
   Parted around the chariot's swifter course,                          _245
   And fell, like ocean's feathery spray
   Dashed from the boiling surge
   Before a vessel's prow.
   
   The magic car moved on.
   Earth's distant orb appeared                                         _250
   The smallest light that twinkles in the heaven;
   Whilst round the chariot's way
   Innumerable systems rolled,
   And countless spheres diffused
   An ever-varying glory.                                               _255
   It was a sight of wonder: some
   Were horned like the crescent moon;
   Some shed a mild and silver beam
   Like Hesperus o'er the western sea;
   Some dashed athwart with trains of flame,                            _260
   Like worlds to death and ruin driven;
   Some shone like suns, and, as the chariot passed,
   Eclipsed all other light.
   
   Spirit of Nature! here!
   In this interminable wilderness                                      _265
   Of worlds, at whose immensity
   Even soaring fancy staggers,
   Here is thy fitting temple.
   Yet not the lightest leaf
   That quivers to the passing breeze                                   _270
   Is less instinct with thee:
   Yet not the meanest worm
   That lurks in graves and fattens on the dead
   Less shares thy eternal breath.
   Spirit of Nature! thou!                                              _275
   Imperishable as this scene,
   Here is thy fitting temple.
   
   2.
   
   If solitude hath ever led thy steps
   To the wild Ocean's echoing shore,
   And thou hast lingered there,
   Until the sun's broad orb
   Seemed resting on the burnished wave,                                _5
   Thou must have marked the lines
   Of purple gold, that motionless
   Hung o'er the sinking sphere:
   Thou must have marked the billowy clouds
   Edged with intolerable radiancy                                      _10
   Towering like rocks of jet
   Crowned with a diamond wreath.
   And yet there is a moment,
   When the sun's highest point
   Peeps like a star o'er Ocean's western edge,                         _15
   When those far clouds of feathery gold,
   Shaded with deepest purple, gleam
   Like islands on a dark blue sea;
   Then has thy fancy soared above the earth,
   And furled its wearied wing                                          _20
   Within the Fairy's fane.
   
   Yet not the golden islands
   Gleaming in yon flood of light,
   Nor the feathery curtains
   Stretching o'er the sun's bright couch,                              _25
   Nor the burnished Ocean waves
   Paving that gorgeous dome,
   So fair, so wonderful a sight
   As Mab's aethereal palace could afford.
   Yet likest evening's vault, that faery Hall!                         _30
   As Heaven, low resting on the wave,it spread
   Its floors of flashing light,
   Its vast and azure dome,
   Its fertile golden islands
   Floating on a silver sea;                                            _35
   Whilst suns their mingling beamings darted
   Through clouds of circumambient darkness,
   And pearly battlements around
   Looked o'er the immense of Heaven.
   
   The magic car no longer moved.                                       _40
   The Fairy and the Spirit
   Entered the Hall of Spells:
   Those golden clouds
   That rolled in glittering billows
   Beneath the azure canopy                                             _45
   With the aethereal footsteps trembled not:
   The light and crimson mists,
   Floating to strains of thrilling melody
   Through that unearthly dwelling,
   Yielded to every movement of the will.                               _50
   Upon their passive swell the Spirit leaned,
   And, for the varied bliss that pressed around,
   Used not the glorious privilege
   Of virtue and of wisdom.
   
   'Spirit!' the Fairy said,                                            _55
   And pointed to the gorgeous dome,
   'This is a wondrous sight
   And mocks all human grandeur;
   But, were it virtue's only meed, to dwell
   In a celestial palace, all resigned                                  _60
   To pleasurable impulses, immured
   Within the prison of itself, the will
   Of changeless Nature would be unfulfilled.
   Learn to make others happy. Spirit, come!
   This is thine high reward:--the past shall rise;                     _65
   Thou shalt behold the present; I will teach
   The secrets of the future.'
   
   The Fairy and the Spirit
   Approached the overhanging battlement.--
   Below lay stretched the universe!                                    _70
   There, far as the remotest line
   That bounds imagination's flight,
   Countless and unending orbs
   In mazy motion intermingled,
   Yet still fulfilled immutably                                        _75
   Eternal Nature's law.
   Above, below, around,
   The circling systems formed
   A wilderness of harmony;
   Each with undeviating aim,                                           _80
   In eloquent silence, through the depths of space
   Pursued its wondrous way.
   
   There was a little light
   That twinkled in the misty distance:
   None but a spirit's eye                                              _85
   Might ken that rolling orb;
   None but a spirit's eye,
   And in no other place
   But that celestial dwelling, might behold
   Each action of this earth's inhabitants.                             _90
   But matter, space and time
   In those aereal mansions cease to act;
   And all-prevailing wisdom, when it reaps
   The harvest of its excellence, o'er-bounds
   Those obstacles, of which an earthly soul                            _95
   Fears to attempt the conquest.
   
   The Fairy pointed to the earth.
   The Spirit's intellectual eye
   Its kindred beings recognized.
   The thronging thousands, to a passing view,                          _100
   Seemed like an ant-hill's citizens.
   How wonderful! that even
   The passions, prejudices, interests,
   That sway the meanest being, the weak touch
   That moves the finest nerve,                                         _105
   And in one human brain
   Causes the faintest thought, becomes a link
   In the great chain of Nature.
   
   'Behold,' the Fairy cried,
   'Palmyra's ruined palaces!--                                         _110
   Behold! where grandeur frowned;
   Behold! where pleasure smiled;
   What now remains?--the memory
   Of senselessness and shame--
   What is immortal there?                                              _115
   Nothing--it stands to tell
   A melancholy tale, to give
   An awful warning: soon
   Oblivion will steal silently
   The remnant of its fame.                                             _120
   Monarchs and conquerors there
   Proud o'er prostrate millions trod--
   The earthquakes of the human race;
   Like them, forgotten when the ruin
   That marks their shock is past.                                      _125
   
   'Beside the eternal Nile,
   The Pyramids have risen.
   Nile shall pursue his changeless way:
   Those Pyramids shall fall;
   Yea! not a stone shall stand to tell                                 _130
   The spot whereon they stood!
   Their very site shall be forgotten,
   As is their builder's name!
   
   'Behold yon sterile spot;
   Where now the wandering Arab's tent                                  _135
   Flaps in the desert-blast.
   There once old Salem's haughty fane
   Reared high to Heaven its thousand golden domes,
   And in the blushing face of day
   Exposed its shameful glory.                                          _140
   Oh! many a widow, many an orphan cursed
   The building of that fane; and many a father;
   Worn out with toil and slavery, implored
   The poor man's God to sweep it from the earth,
   And spare his children the detested task                             _145
   Of piling stone on stone, and poisoning
   The choicest days of life,
   To soothe a dotard's vanity.
   There an inhuman and uncultured race
   Howled hideous praises to their Demon-God;                           _150
   They rushed to war, tore from the mother's womb
   The unborn child,--old age and infancy
   Promiscuous perished; their victorious arms
   Left not a soul to breathe. Oh! they were fiends:
   But what was he who taught them that the God                         _155
   Of nature and benevolence hath given
   A special sanction to the trade of blood?
   His name and theirs are fading, and the tales
   Of this barbarian nation, which imposture
   Recites till terror credits, are pursuing                            _160
   Itself into forgetfulness.
   
   'Where Athens, Rome, and Sparta stood,
   There is a moral desert now:
   The mean and miserable huts,
   The yet more wretched palaces,                                       _165
   Contrasted with those ancient fanes,
   Now crumbling to oblivion;
   The long and lonely colonnades,
   Through which the ghost of Freedom stalks,
   Seem like a well-known tune,                                         _170
   Which in some dear scene we have loved to hear,
   Remembered now in sadness.
   But, oh! how much more changed,
   How gloomier is the contrast
   Of human nature there!                                               _175
   Where Socrates expired, a tyrant's slave,
   A coward and a fool, spreads death around--
   Then, shuddering, meets his own.
   Where Cicero and Antoninus lived,
   A cowled and hypocritical monk                                       _180
   Prays, curses and deceives.
   
   'Spirit, ten thousand years
   Have scarcely passed away,
   Since, in the waste where now the savage drinks
   His enemy's blood, and aping Europe's sons,                          _185
   Wakes the unholy song of war, Arose a stately city,
   Metropolis of the western continent:
   There, now, the mossy column-stone,
   Indented by Time's unrelaxing grasp,                                 _190
   Which once appeared to brave
   All, save its country's ruin;
   There the wide forest scene,
   Rude in the uncultivated loveliness
   Of gardens long run wild,                                            _195
   Seems, to the unwilling sojourner, whose steps
   Chance in that desert has delayed,
   Thus to have stood since earth was what it is.
   Yet once it was the busiest haunt,
   Whither, as to a common centre, flocked                              _200
   Strangers, and ships, and merchandise:
   Once peace and freedom blessed
   The cultivated plain:
   But wealth, that curse of man,
   Blighted the bud of its prosperity:                                  _205
   Virtue and wisdom, truth and liberty,
   Fled, to return not, until man shall know
   That they alone can give the bliss
   Worthy a soul that claims
   Its kindred with eternity.                                           _210
   
   'There's not one atom of yon earth
   But once was living man;
   Nor the minutest drop of rain,
   That hangeth in its thinnest cloud,
   But flowed in human veins:                                           _215
   And from the burning plains
   Where Libyan monsters yell,
   From the most gloomy glens
   Of Greenland's sunless clime,
   To where the golden fields                                           _220
   Of fertile England spread
   Their harvest to the day,
   Thou canst not find one spot
   Whereon no city stood.
   
   'How strange is human pride!                                         _225
   I tell thee that those living things,
   To whom the fragile blade of grass,
   That springeth in the morn
   And perisheth ere noon,
   Is an unbounded world;                                               _230
   I tell thee that those viewless beings,
   Whose mansion is the smallest particle
   Of the impassive atmosphere,
   Think, feel and live like man;
   That their affections and antipathies,                               _235
   Like his, produce the laws
   Ruling their moral state;
   And the minutest throb
   That through their frame diffuses
   The slightest, faintest motion,                                      _240
   Is fixed and indispensable
   As the majestic laws
   That rule yon rolling orbs.'
   
   The Fairy paused. The Spirit,
   In ecstasy of admiration, felt                                       _245
   All knowledge of the past revived; the events
   Of old and wondrous times,
   Which dim tradition interruptedly
   Teaches the credulous vulgar, were unfolded
   In just perspective to the view;                                     _250
   Yet dim from their infinitude.
   The Spirit seemed to stand
   High on an isolated pinnacle;
   The flood of ages combating below,
   The depth of the unbounded universe                                  _255
   Above, and all around
   Nature's unchanging harmony.
   
   3.
   
   'Fairy!' the Spirit said,
   And on the Queen of Spells
   Fixed her aethereal eyes,
   'I thank thee. Thou hast given
   A boon which I will not resign, and taught                           _5
   A lesson not to be unlearned. I know
   The past, and thence I will essay to glean
   A warning for the future, so that man
   May profit by his errors, and derive
   Experience from his folly:                                           _10
   For, when the power of imparting joy
   Is equal to the will, the human soul
   Requires no other Heaven.'
   
   MAB:
   'Turn thee, surpassing Spirit!
   Much yet remains unscanned.                                          _15
   Thou knowest how great is man,
   Thou knowest his imbecility:
   Yet learn thou what he is:
   Yet learn the lofty destiny
   Which restless time prepares                                         _20
   For every living soul.
   
   'Behold a gorgeous palace, that, amid
   Yon populous city rears its thousand towers
   And seems itself a city. Gloomy troops
   Of sentinels, in stern and silent ranks,                             _25
   Encompass it around: the dweller there
   Cannot be free and happy; hearest thou not
   The curses of the fatherless, the groans
   Of those who have no friend? He passes on:
   The King, the wearer of a gilded chain                               _30
   That binds his soul to abjectness, the fool
   Whom courtiers nickname monarch, whilst a slave
   Even to the basest appetites--that man
   Heeds not the shriek of penury; he smiles
   At the deep curses which the destitute                               _35
   Mutter in secret, and a sullen joy
   Pervades his bloodless heart when thousands groan
   But for those morsels which his wantonness
   Wastes in unjoyous revelry, to save
   All that they love from famine: when he hears                        _40
   The tale of horror, to some ready-made face
   Of hypocritical assent he turns,
   Smothering the glow of shame, that, spite of him,
   Flushes his bloated cheek.
   Now to the meal
   Of silence, grandeur, and excess, he drags                           _45
   His palled unwilling appetite. If gold,
   Gleaming around, and numerous viands culled
   From every clime, could force the loathing sense
   To overcome satiety,--if wealth
   The spring it draws from poisons not,--or vice,                      _50
   Unfeeling, stubborn vice, converteth not
   Its food to deadliest venom; then that king
   Is happy; and the peasant who fulfils
   His unforced task, when he returns at even,
   And by the blazing faggot meets again                                _55
   Her welcome for whom all his toil is sped,
   Tastes not a sweeter meal.
   Behold him now
   Stretched on the gorgeous couch; his fevered brain
   Reels dizzily awhile: but ah! too soon
   The slumber of intemperance subsides,                                _60
   And conscience, that undying serpent, calls
   Her venomous brood to their nocturnal task.
   Listen! he speaks! oh! mark that frenzied eye--
   Oh! mark that deadly visage.'
   
   KING:
   'No cessation!
   Oh! must this last for ever? Awful Death,                            _65
   I wish, yet fear to clasp thee!--Not one moment
   Of dreamless sleep! O dear and blessed peace!
   Why dost thou shroud thy vestal purity
   In penury and dungeons? wherefore lurkest
   With danger, death, and solitude; yet shunn'st                       _70
   The palace I have built thee? Sacred peace!
   Oh visit me but once, but pitying shed
   One drop of balm upon my withered soul.'
   
   THE FAIRY:
   'Vain man! that palace is the virtuous heart,
   And Peace defileth not her snowy robes                               _75
   In such a shed as thine. Hark! yet he mutters;
   His slumbers are but varied agonies,
   They prey like scorpions on the springs of life.
   There needeth not the hell that bigots frame
   To punish those who err: earth in itself                             _80
   Contains at once the evil and the cure;
   And all-sufficing Nature can chastise
   Those who transgress her law,--she only knows
   How justly to proportion to the fault
   The punishment it merits.
   Is it strange                                                        _85
   That this poor wretch should pride him in his woe?
   Take pleasure in his abjectness, and hug
   The scorpion that consumes him? Is it strange
   That, placed on a conspicuous throne of thorns,
   Grasping an iron sceptre, and immured                                _90
   Within a splendid prison, whose stern bounds
   Shut him from all that's good or dear on earth,
   His soul asserts not its humanity?
   That man's mild nature rises not in war
   Against a king's employ? No--'tis not strange.                       _95
   He, like the vulgar, thinks, feels, acts and lives
   Just as his father did; the unconquered powers
   Of precedent and custom interpose
   Between a KING and virtue. Stranger yet,
   To those who know not Nature, nor deduce                             _100
   The future from the present, it may seem,
   That not one slave, who suffers from the crimes
   Of this unnatural being; not one wretch,
   Whose children famish, and whose nuptial bed
   Is earth's unpitying bosom, rears an arm
   To dash him from his throne!                                         _105
   Those gilded flies
   That, basking in the sunshine of a court,
   Fatten on its corruption!--what are they?
   --The drones of the community; they feed
   On the mechanic's labour: the starved hind                           _110
   For them compels the stubborn glebe to yield
   Its unshared harvests; and yon squalid form,
   Leaner than fleshless misery, that wastes
   A sunless life in the unwholesome mine,
   Drags out in labour a protracted death,                              _115
   To glut their grandeur; many faint with toil,
   That few may know the cares and woe of sloth.
   
   'Whence, think'st thou, kings and parasites arose?
   Whence that unnatural line of drones, who heap
   Toil and unvanquishable penury                                       _120
   On those who build their palaces, and bring
   Their daily bread?--From vice, black loathsome vice;
   From rapine, madness, treachery, and wrong;
   From all that 'genders misery, and makes
   Of earth this thorny wilderness; from lust,                          _125
   Revenge, and murder...And when Reason's voice,
   Loud as the voice of Nature, shall have waked
   The nations; and mankind perceive that vice
   Is discord, war, and misery; that virtue
   Is peace, and happiness and harmony;                                 _130
   When man's maturer nature shall disdain
   The playthings of its childhood;--kingly glare
   Will lose its power to dazzle; its authority
   Will silently pass by; the gorgeous throne
   Shall stand unnoticed in the regal hall,                             _135
   Fast falling to decay; whilst falsehood's trade
   Shall be as hateful and unprofitable
   As that of truth is now.
   Where is the fame
   Which the vainglorious mighty of the earth
   Seek to eternize? Oh! the faintest sound                             _140
   From Time's light footfall, the minutest wave
   That swells the flood of ages, whelms in nothing
   The unsubstantial bubble. Ay! today
   Stern is the tyrant's mandate, red the gaze
   That flashes desolation, strong the arm                              _145
   That scatters multitudes. To-morrow comes!
   That mandate is a thunder-peal that died
   In ages past; that gaze, a transient flash
   On which the midnight closed, and on that arm
   The worm has made his meal.
   The virtuous man,                                                    _150
   Who, great in his humility, as kings
   Are little in their grandeur; he who leads
   Invincibly a life of resolute good,
   And stands amid the silent dungeon depths
   More free and fearless than the trembling judge,                     _155
   Who, clothed in venal power, vainly strove
   To bind the impassive spirit;--when he falls,
   His mild eye beams benevolence no more:
   Withered the hand outstretched but to relieve;
   Sunk Reason's simple eloquence, that rolled                          _160
   But to appal the guilty. Yes! the grave
   Hath quenched that eye, and Death's relentless frost
   Withered that arm: but the unfading fame
   Which Virtue hangs upon its votary's tomb;
   The deathless memory of that man, whom kings                         _165
   Call to their mind and tremble; the remembrance
   With which the happy spirit contemplates
   Its well-spent pilgrimage on earth,
   Shall never pass away.
   
   'Nature rejects the monarch, not the man;                            _170
   The subject, not the citizen: for kings
   And subjects, mutual foes, forever play
   A losing game into each other's hands,
   Whose stakes are vice and misery. The man
   Of virtuous soul commands not, nor obeys.                            _175
   Power, like a desolating pestilence,
   Pollutes whate'er it touches; and obedience,
   Bane of all genius, virtue, freedom, truth,
   Makes slaves of men, and, of the human frame,
   A mechanized automaton.
   When Nero,                                                           _180
   High over flaming Rome, with savage joy
   Lowered like a fiend, drank with enraptured ear
   The shrieks of agonizing death, beheld
   The frightful desolation spread, and felt
   A new-created sense within his soul                                  _185
   Thrill to the sight, and vibrate to the sound;
   Think'st thou his grandeur had not overcome
   The force of human kindness? and, when Rome,
   With one stern blow, hurled not the tyrant down,
   Crushed not the arm red with her dearest blood                       _190
   Had not submissive abjectness destroyed
   Nature's suggestions?
   Look on yonder earth:
   The golden harvests spring; the unfailing sun
   Sheds light and life; the fruits, the flowers, the trees,
   Arise in due succession; all things speak                            _195
   Peace, harmony, and love. The universe,
   In Nature's silent eloquence, declares
   That all fulfil the works of love and joy,--
   All but the outcast, Man. He fabricates
   The sword which stabs his peace; he cherisheth                       _200
   The snakes that gnaw his heart; he raiseth up
   The tyrant, whose delight is in his woe,
   Whose sport is in his agony. Yon sun,
   Lights it the great alone? Yon silver beams,
   Sleep they less sweetly on the cottage thatch                        _205
   Than on the dome of kings? Is mother Earth
   A step-dame to her numerous sons, who earn
   Her unshared gifts with unremitting toil;
   A mother only to those puling babes
   Who, nursed in ease and luxury, make men                             _210
   The playthings of their babyhood, and mar,
   In self-important childishness, that peace
   Which men alone appreciate?
   
   'Spirit of Nature! no.
   The pure diffusion of thy essence throbs                             _215
   Alike in every human heart.
   Thou, aye, erectest there
   Thy throne of power unappealable:
   Thou art the judge beneath whose nod
   Man's brief and frail authority                                      _220
   Is powerless as the wind
   That passeth idly by.
   Thine the tribunal which surpasseth
   The show of human justice,
   As God surpasses man.                                                _225
   
   'Spirit of Nature! thou
   Life of interminable multitudes;
   Soul of those mighty spheres
   Whose changeless paths through
   Heaven's deep silence lie;
   Soul of that smallest being,                                         _230
   The dwelling of whose life
   Is one faint April sun-gleam;--
   Man, like these passive things,
   Thy will unconsciously fulfilleth:
   Like theirs, his age of endless peace,                               _235
   Which time is fast maturing,
   Will swiftly, surely come;
   And the unbounded frame, which thou pervadest,
   Will be without a flaw
   Marring its perfect symmetry.                                        _240
   
   4.
   
   'How beautiful this night! the balmiest sigh,
   Which vernal zephyrs breathe in evening's ear,
   Were discord to the speaking quietude
   That wraps this moveless scene. Heaven's ebon vault,
   Studded with stars unutterably bright,                               _5
   Through which the moon's unclouded grandeur rolls,
   Seems like a canopy which love had spread
   To curtain her sleeping world. Yon gentle hills,
   Robed in a garment of untrodden snow;
   Yon darksome rocks, whence icicles depend,                           _10
   So stainless, that their white and glittering spires
   Tinge not the moon's pure beam; yon castled steep,
   Whose banner hangeth o'er the time-worn tower
   So idly, that rapt fancy deemeth it
   A metaphor of peace;--all form a scene                               _15
   Where musing Solitude might love to lift
   Her soul above this sphere of earthliness;
   Where Silence undisturbed might watch alone,
   So cold, so bright, so still.
   The orb of day,
   In southern climes, o'er ocean's waveless field                      _20
   Sinks sweetly smiling: not the faintest breath
   Steals o'er the unruffled deep; the clouds of eve
   Reflect unmoved the lingering beam of day;
   And vesper's image on the western main
   Is beautifully still. To-morrow comes:                               _25
   Cloud upon cloud, in dark and deepening mass,
   Roll o'er the blackened waters; the deep roar
   Of distant thunder mutters awfully;
   Tempest unfolds its pinion o'er the gloom
   That shrouds the boiling surge; the pitiless fiend,                  _30
   With all his winds and lightnings, tracks his prey;
   The torn deep yawns,--the vessel finds a grave
   Beneath its jagged gulf.
   Ah! whence yon glare
   That fires the arch of Heaven!--that dark red smoke
   Blotting the silver moon? The stars are quenched                     _35
   In darkness, and the pure and spangling snow
   Gleams faintly through the gloom that gathers round!
   Hark to that roar, whose swift and deaf'ning peals
   In countless echoes through the mountains ring,
   Startling pale Midnight on her starry throne!                        _40
   Now swells the intermingling din; the jar
   Frequent and frightful of the bursting bomb;
   The falling beam, the shriek, the groan, the shout,
   The ceaseless clangour, and the rush of men
   Inebriate with rage:--loud, and more loud                            _45
   The discord grows; till pale Death shuts the scene,
   And o'er the conqueror and the conquered draws
   His cold and bloody shroud.--Of all the men
   Whom day's departing beam saw blooming there,
   In proud and vigorous health; of all the hearts                      _50
   That beat with anxious life at sunset there;
   How few survive, how few are beating now!
   All is deep silence, like the fearful calm
   That slumbers in the storm's portentous pause;
   Save when the frantic wail of widowed love                           _55
   Comes shuddering on the blast, or the faint moan
   With which some soul bursts from the frame of clay
   Wrapped round its struggling powers.
   The gray morn
   Dawns on the mournful scene; the sulphurous smoke
   Before the icy wind slow rolls away,                                 _60
   And the bright beams of frosty morning dance
   Along the spangling snow. There tracks of blood
   Even to the forest's depth, and scattered arms,
   And lifeless warriors, whose hard lineaments                         _65
   Death's self could change not, mark the dreadful path
   Of the outsallying victors: far behind,
   Black ashes note where their proud city stood.
   Within yon forest is a gloomy glen--
   Each tree which guards its darkness from the day,
   Waves o'er a warrior's tomb.
   I see thee shrink,                                                   _70
   Surpassing Spirit!--wert thou human else?
   I see a shade of doubt and horror fleet
   Across thy stainless features: yet fear not;
   This is no unconnected misery,
   Nor stands uncaused, and irretrievable.                              _75
   Man's evil nature, that apology
   Which kings who rule, and cowards who crouch, set up
   For their unnumbered crimes, sheds not the blood
   Which desolates the discord-wasted land.
   From kings, and priests, and statesmen, war arose,                   _80
   Whose safety is man's deep unbettered woe,
   Whose grandeur his debasement. Let the axe
   Strike at the root, the poison-tree will fall;
   And where its venomed exhalations spread
   Ruin, and death, and woe, where millions lay                         _85
   Quenching the serpent's famine, and their bones
   Bleaching unburied in the putrid blast,
   A garden shall arise, in loveliness
   Surpassing fabled Eden.
   Hath Nature's soul,
   That formed this world so beautiful, that spread                     _90
   Earth's lap with plenty, and life's smallest chord
   Strung to unchanging unison, that gave
   The happy birds their dwelling in the grove,
   That yielded to the wanderers of the deep
   The lovely silence of the unfathomed main,                           _95
   And filled the meanest worm that crawls in dust
   With spirit, thought, and love; on Man alone,
   Partial in causeless malice, wantonly
   Heaped ruin, vice, and slavery; his soul
   Blasted with withering curses; placed afar                           _100
   The meteor-happiness, that shuns his grasp,
   But serving on the frightful gulf to glare,
   Rent wide beneath his footsteps?
   Nature!--no!
   Kings, priests, and statesmen, blast the human flower
   Even in its tender bud; their influence darts                        _105
   Like subtle poison through the bloodless veins
   Of desolate society. The child,
   Ere he can lisp his mother's sacred name,
   Swells with the unnatural pride of crime, and lifts
   His baby-sword even in a hero's mood.                                _110
   This infant-arm becomes the bloodiest scourge
   Of devastated earth; whilst specious names,
   Learned in soft childhood's unsuspecting hour,
   Serve as the sophisms with which manhood dims
   Bright Reason's ray, and sanctifies the sword                        _115
   Upraised to shed a brother's innocent blood.
   Let priest-led slaves cease to proclaim that man
   Inherits vice and misery, when Force
   And Falsehood hang even o'er the cradled babe
   Stifling with rudest grasp all natural good.                         _120
   'Ah! to the stranger-soul, when first it peeps
   From its new tenement, and looks abroad
   For happiness and sympathy, how stern
   And desolate a tract is this wide world!
   How withered all the buds of natural good!                           _125
   No shade, no shelter from the sweeping storms
   Of pitiless power! On its wretched frame,
   Poisoned, perchance, by the disease and woe
   Heaped on the wretched parent whence it sprung
   By morals, law, and custom, the pure winds                           _130
   Of Heaven, that renovate the insect tribes,
   May breathe not. The untainting light of day
   May visit not its longings. It is bound
   Ere it has life: yea, all the chains are forged
   Long ere its being: all liberty and love                             _135
   And peace is torn from its defencelessness;
   Cursed from its birth, even from its cradle doomed
   To abjectness and bondage!
   
   'Throughout this varied and eternal world
   Soul is the only element: the block                                  _140
   That for uncounted ages has remained
   The moveless pillar of a mountain's weight
   Is active, living spirit. Every grain
   Is sentient both in unity and part,
   And the minutest atom comprehends                                    _145
   A world of loves and hatreds; these beget
   Evil and good: hence truth and falsehood spring;
   Hence will and thought and action, all the germs
   Of pain or pleasure, sympathy or hate,
   That variegate the eternal universe.                                 _150
   Soul is not more polluted than the beams
   Of Heaven's pure orb, ere round their rapid lines
   The taint of earth-born atmospheres arise.
   
   'Man is of soul and body, formed for deeds
   Of high resolve, on fancy's boldest wing                             _155
   To soar unwearied, fearlessly to turn
   The keenest pangs to peacefulness, and taste
   The joys which mingled sense and spirit yield.
   Or he is formed for abjectness and woe,
   To grovel on the dunghill of his fears,                              _160
   To shrink at every sound, to quench the flame
   Of natural love in sensualism, to know
   That hour as blessed when on his worthless days
   The frozen hand of Death shall set its seal,
   Yet fear the cure, though hating the disease.                        _165
   The one is man that shall hereafter be;
   The other, man as vice has made him now.
   
   'War is the statesman's game, the priest's delight,
   The lawyer's jest, the hired assassin's trade,
   And, to those royal murderers, whose mean thrones                    _170
   Are bought by crimes of treachery and gore,
   The bread they eat, the staff on which they lean.
   Guards, garbed in blood-red livery, surround
   Their palaces, participate the crimes
   That force defends, and from a nation's rage                         _175
   Secure the crown, which all the curses reach
   That famine, frenzy, woe and penury breathe.
   These are the hired bravos who defend
   The tyrant's throne--the bullies of his fear:
   These are the sinks and channels of worst vice,                      _180
   The refuse of society, the dregs
   Of all that is most vile: their cold hearts blend
   Deceit with sternness, ignorance with pride,
   All that is mean and villanous, with rage
   Which hopelessness of good, and self-contempt,                       _185
   Alone might kindle; they are decked in wealth,
   Honour and power, then are sent abroad
   To do their work. The pestilence that stalks
   In gloomy triumph through some eastern land
   Is less destroying. They cajole with gold,                           _190
   And promises of fame, the thoughtless youth
   Already crushed with servitude: he knows
   His wretchedness too late, and cherishes
   Repentance for his ruin, when his doom
   Is sealed in gold and blood!                                         _195
   Those too the tyrant serve, who, skilled to snare
   The feet of Justice in the toils of law,
   Stand, ready to oppress the weaker still;
   And right or wrong will vindicate for gold,
   Sneering at public virtue, which beneath                             _200
   Their pitiless tread lies torn and trampled, where
   Honour sits smiling at the sale of truth.
   
   'Then grave and hoary-headed hypocrites,
   Without a hope, a passion, or a love,
   Who, through a life of luxury and lies,                              _205
   Have crept by flattery to the seats of power,
   Support the system whence their honours flow...
   They have three words:--well tyrants know their use,
   Well pay them for the loan, with usury
   Torn from a bleeding world!--God, Hell, and Heaven.                  _210
   A vengeful, pitiless, and almighty fiend,
   Whose mercy is a nickname for the rage
   Of tameless tigers hungering for blood.
   Hell, a red gulf of everlasting fire,
   Where poisonous and undying worms prolong                            _215
   Eternal misery to those hapless slaves
   Whose life has been a penance for its crimes.
   And Heaven, a meed for those who dare belie
   Their human nature, quake, believe, and cringe
   Before the mockeries of earthly power.                               _220
   
   'These tools the tyrant tempers to his work,
   Wields in his wrath, and as he wills destroys,
   Omnipotent in wickedness: the while
   Youth springs, age moulders, manhood tamely does
   His bidding, bribed by short-lived joys to lend                      _225
   Force to the weakness of his trembling arm.
   
   'They rise, they fall; one generation comes
   Yielding its harvest to destruction's scythe.
   It fades, another blossoms: yet behold!
   Red glows the tyrant's stamp-mark on its bloom,                      _230
   Withering and cankering deep its passive prime.
   He has invented lying words and modes,
   Empty and vain as his own coreless heart;
   Evasive meanings, nothings of much sound,
   To lure the heedless victim to the toils                             _235
   Spread round the valley of its paradise.
   
   'Look to thyself, priest, conqueror, or prince!
   Whether thy trade is falsehood, and thy lusts
   Deep wallow in the earnings of the poor,
   With whom thy Master was:--or thou delight'st                        _240
   In numbering o'er the myriads of thy slain,
   All misery weighing nothing in the scale
   Against thy short-lived fame: or thou dost load
   With cowardice and crime the groaning land,
   A pomp-fed king. Look to thy wretched self!                          _245
   Ay, art thou not the veriest slave that e'er
   Crawled on the loathing earth? Are not thy days
   Days of unsatisfying listlessness?
   Dost thou not cry, ere night's long rack is o'er,
   "When will the morning come?" Is not thy youth                       _250
   A vain and feverish dream of sensualism?
   Thy manhood blighted with unripe disease?
   Are not thy views of unregretted death
   Drear, comfortless, and horrible? Thy mind,
   Is it not morbid as thy nerveless frame,                             _255
   Incapable of judgement, hope, or love?
   And dost thou wish the errors to survive
   That bar thee from all sympathies of good,
   After the miserable interest
   Thou hold'st in their protraction? When the grave                    _260
   Has swallowed up thy memory and thyself,
   Dost thou desire the bane that poisons earth
   To twine its roots around thy coffined clay,
   Spring from thy bones, and blossom on thy tomb,
   That of its fruit thy babes may eat and die?                         _265
   
   NOTE:
   _176 Secures edition 1813.
   
   5.
   
   'Thus do the generations of the earth
   Go to the grave, and issue from the womb,
   Surviving still the imperishable change
   That renovates the world; even as the leaves
   Which the keen frost-wind of the waning year                         _5
   Has scattered on the forest soil, and heaped
   For many seasons there--though long they choke,
   Loading with loathsome rottenness the land,
   All germs of promise, yet when the tall trees
   From which they fell, shorn of their lovely shapes,                  _10
   Lie level with the earth to moulder there,
   They fertilize the land they long deformed,
   Till from the breathing lawn a forest springs
   Of youth, integrity, and loveliness,
   Like that which gave it life, to spring and die.                     _15
   Thus suicidal selfishness, that blights
   The fairest feelings of the opening heart,
   Is destined to decay, whilst from the soil
   Shall spring all virtue, all delight, all love,
   And judgement cease to wage unnatural war                            _20
   With passion's unsubduable array.
   Twin-sister of religion, selfishness!
   Rival in crime and falsehood, aping all
   The wanton horrors of her bloody play;
   Yet frozen, unimpassioned, spiritless,                               _25
   Shunning the light, and owning not its name,
   Compelled, by its deformity, to screen,
   With flimsy veil of justice and of right,
   Its unattractive lineaments, that scare
   All, save the brood of ignorance: at once                            _30
   The cause and the effect of tyranny;
   Unblushing, hardened, sensual, and vile;
   Dead to all love but of its abjectness,
   With heart impassive by more noble powers
   Than unshared pleasure, sordid gain, or fame;                        _35
   Despising its own miserable being,
   Which still it longs, yet fears to disenthrall.
   
   'Hence commerce springs, the venal interchange
   Of all that human art or nature yield;
   Which wealth should purchase not, but want demand,                   _40
   And natural kindness hasten to supply
   From the full fountain of its boundless love,
   For ever stifled, drained, and tainted now.
   Commerce! beneath whose poison-breathing shade
   No solitary virtue dares to spring,                                  _45
   But Poverty and Wealth with equal hand
   Scatter their withering curses, and unfold
   The doors of premature and violent death,
   To pining famine and full-fed disease,
   To all that shares the lot of human life,                            _50
   Which poisoned, body and soul, scarce drags the chain,
   That lengthens as it goes and clanks behind.
   
   'Commerce has set the mark of selfishness,
   The signet of its all-enslaving power
   Upon a shining ore, and called it gold:                              _55
   Before whose image bow the vulgar great,
   The vainly rich, the miserable proud,
   The mob of peasants, nobles, priests, and kings,
   And with blind feelings reverence the power
   That grinds them to the dust of misery.                              _60
   But in the temple of their hireling hearts
   Gold is a living god, and rules in scorn
   All earthly things but virtue.
   
   'Since tyrants, by the sale of human life,
   Heap luxuries to their sensualism, and fame                          _65
   To their wide-wasting and insatiate pride,
   Success has sanctioned to a credulous world
   The ruin, the disgrace, the woe of war.
   His hosts of blind and unresisting dupes
   The despot numbers; from his cabinet                                 _70
   These puppets of his schemes he moves at will,
   Even as the slaves by force or famine driven,
   Beneath a vulgar master, to perform
   A task of cold and brutal drudgery;--
   Hardened to hope, insensible to fear,                                _75
   Scarce living pulleys of a dead machine,
   Mere wheels of work and articles of trade,
   That grace the proud and noisy pomp of wealth!
   
   'The harmony and happiness of man
   Yields to the wealth of nations; that which lifts                    _80
   His nature to the heaven of its pride,
   Is bartered for the poison of his soul;
   The weight that drags to earth his towering hopes,
   Blighting all prospect but of selfish gain,
   Withering all passion but of slavish fear,                           _85
   Extinguishing all free and generous love
   Of enterprise and daring, even the pulse
   That fancy kindles in the beating heart
   To mingle with sensation, it destroys,--
   Leaves nothing but the sordid lust of self,                          _90
   The grovelling hope of interest and gold,
   Unqualified, unmingled, unredeemed
   Even by hypocrisy.
   And statesmen boast
   Of wealth! The wordy eloquence, that lives
   After the ruin of their hearts, can gild                             _95
   The bitter poison of a nation's woe,
   Can turn the worship of the servile mob
   To their corrupt and glaring idol, Fame,
   From Virtue, trampled by its iron tread,
   Although its dazzling pedestal be raised                             _100
   Amid the horrors of a limb-strewn field,
   With desolated dwellings smoking round.
   The man of ease, who, by his warm fireside,
   To deeds of charitable intercourse,
   And bare fulfilment of the common laws                               _105
   Of decency and prejudice, confines
   The struggling nature of his human heart,
   Is duped by their cold sophistry; he sheds
   A passing tear perchance upon the wreck
   Of earthly peace, when near his dwelling's door                      _110
   The frightful waves are driven,--when his son
   Is murdered by the tyrant, or religion
   Drives his wife raving mad. But the poor man,
   Whose life is misery, and fear, and care;
   Whom the morn wakens but to fruitless toil;                          _115
   Who ever hears his famished offspring's scream,
   Whom their pale mother's uncomplaining gaze
   For ever meets, and the proud rich man's eye
   Flashing command, and the heart-breaking scene
   Of thousands like himself;--he little heeds                          _120
   The rhetoric of tyranny; his hate
   Is quenchless as his wrongs; he laughs to scorn
   The vain and bitter mockery of words,
   Feeling the horror of the tyrant's deeds,
   And unrestrained but by the arm of power,                            _125
   That knows and dreads his enmity.
   
   'The iron rod of Penury still compels
   Her wretched slave to bow the knee to wealth,
   And poison, with unprofitable toil,
   A life too void of solace to confirm                                 _130
   The very chains that bind him to his doom.
   Nature, impartial in munificence,
   Has gifted man with all-subduing will.
   Matter, with all its transitory shapes,
   Lies subjected and plastic at his feet,                              _135
   That, weak from bondage, tremble as they tread.
   How many a rustic Milton has passed by,
   Stifling the speechless longings of his heart,
   In unremitting drudgery and care!
   How many a vulgar Cato has compelled                                 _140
   His energies, no longer tameless then,
   To mould a pin, or fabricate a nail!
   How many a Newton, to whose passive ken
   Those mighty spheres that gem infinity
   Were only specks of tinsel, fixed in Heaven                          _145
   To light the midnights of his native town!
   
   'Yet every heart contains perfection's germ:
   The wisest of the sages of the earth,
   That ever from the stores of reason drew
   Science and truth, and virtue's dreadless tone,                      _150
   Were but a weak and inexperienced boy,
   Proud, sensual, unimpassioned, unimbued
   With pure desire and universal love,
   Compared to that high being, of cloudless brain,
   Untainted passion, elevated will,                                    _155
   Which Death (who even would linger long in awe
   Within his noble presence, and beneath
   His changeless eyebeam) might alone subdue.
   Him, every slave now dragging through the filth
   Of some corrupted city his sad life,                                 _160
   Pining with famine, swoln with luxury,
   Blunting the keenness of his spiritual sense
   With narrow schemings and unworthy cares,
   Or madly rushing through all violent crime,
   To move the deep stagnation of his soul,--                           _165
   Might imitate and equal.
   But mean lust
   Has bound its chains so tight around the earth,
   That all within it but the virtuous man
   Is venal: gold or fame will surely reach
   The price prefixed by selfishness, to all                            _170
   But him of resolute and unchanging will;
   Whom, nor the plaudits of a servile crowd,
   Nor the vile joys of tainting luxury,
   Can bribe to yield his elevated soul
   To Tyranny or Falsehood, though they wield                           _175
   With blood-red hand the sceptre of the world.
   
   'All things are sold: the very light of Heaven
   Is venal; earth's unsparing gifts of love,
   The smallest and most despicable things
   That lurk in the abysses of the deep,                                _180
   All objects of our life, even life itself,
   And the poor pittance which the laws allow
   Of liberty, the fellowship of man,
   Those duties which his heart of human love
   Should urge him to perform instinctively,                            _185
   Are bought and sold as in a public mart
   Of undisguising selfishness, that sets
   On each its price, the stamp-mark of her reign.
   Even love is sold; the solace of all woe
   Is turned to deadliest agony, old age                                _190
   Shivers in selfish beauty's loathing arms,
   And youth's corrupted impulses prepare
   A life of horror from the blighting bane
   Of commerce; whilst the pestilence that springs
   From unenjoying sensualism, has filled                               _195
   All human life with hydra-headed woes.
   
   'Falsehood demands but gold to pay the pangs
   Of outraged conscience; for the slavish priest
   Sets no great value on his hireling faith:
   A little passing pomp, some servile souls,                           _200
   Whom cowardice itself might safely chain,
   Or the spare mite of avarice could bribe
   To deck the triumph of their languid zeal,
   Can make him minister to tyranny.
   More daring crime requires a loftier meed:                           _205
   Without a shudder, the slave-soldier lends
   His arm to murderous deeds, and steels his heart,
   When the dread eloquence of dying men,
   Low mingling on the lonely field of fame,
   Assails that nature, whose applause he sells                         _210
   For the gross blessings of a patriot mob,
   For the vile gratitude of heartless kings,
   And for a cold world's good word,--viler still!
   
   'There is a nobler glory, which survives
   Until our being fades, and, solacing                                 _215
   All human care, accompanies its change;
   Deserts not virtue in the dungeon's gloom,
   And, in the precincts of the palace, guides
   Its footsteps through that labyrinth of crime;
   Imbues his lineaments with dauntlessness,                            _220
   Even when, from Power's avenging hand, he takes
   Its sweetest, last and noblest title--death;
   --The consciousness of good, which neither gold,
   Nor sordid fame, nor hope of heavenly bliss
   Can purchase; but a life of resolute good,--                         _225
   Unalterable will, quenchless desire
   Of universal happiness, the heart
   That beats with it in unison, the brain,
   Whose ever wakeful wisdom toils to change
   Reason's rich stores for its eternal weal.                           _230
   
   'This commerce of sincerest virtue needs
   No mediative signs of selfishness,
   No jealous intercourse of wretched gain,
   No balancings of prudence, cold and long;
   In just and equal measure all is weighed,                            _235
   One scale contains the sum of human weal,
   And one, the good man's heart.
   How vainly seek
   The selfish for that happiness denied
   To aught but virtue! Blind and hardened, they,
   Who hope for peace amid the storms of care,                          _240
   Who covet power they know not how to use,
   And sigh for pleasure they refuse to give,--
   Madly they frustrate still their own designs;
   And, where they hope that quiet to enjoy
   Which virtue pictures, bitterness of soul,                           _245
   Pining regrets, and vain repentances,
   Disease, disgust, and lassitude, pervade
   Their valueless and miserable lives.
   
   'But hoary-headed Selfishness has felt
   Its death-blow, and is tottering to the grave:                       _250
   A brighter morn awaits the human day,
   When every transfer of earth's natural gifts
   Shall be a commerce of good words and works;
   When poverty and wealth, the thirst of fame,
   The fear of infamy, disease and woe,                                 _255
   War with its million horrors, and fierce hell
   Shall live but in the memory of Time,
   Who, like a penitent libertine, shall start,
   Look back, and shudder at his younger years.'
   
   6.
   
   All touch, all eye, all ear,
   The Spirit felt the Fairy's burning speech.
   O'er the thin texture of its frame,
   The varying periods painted changing glows,
   As on a summer even,                                                 _5
   When soul-enfolding music floats around,
   The stainless mirror of the lake
   Re-images the eastern gloom,
   Mingling convulsively its purple hues
   With sunset's burnished gold.                                        _10
   
   Then thus the Spirit spoke:
   'It is a wild and miserable world!
   Thorny, and full of care,
   Which every fiend can make his prey at will.
   O Fairy! in the lapse of years,                                      _15
   Is there no hope in store?
   Will yon vast suns roll on
   Interminably, still illuming
   The night of so many wretched souls,
   And see no hope for them?                                            _20
   Will not the universal Spirit e'er
   Revivify this withered limb of Heaven?'
   
   The Fairy calmly smiled
   In comfort, and a kindling gleam of hope
   Suffused the Spirit's lineaments.                                    _25
   'Oh! rest thee tranquil; chase those fearful doubts,
   Which ne'er could rack an everlasting soul,
   That sees the chains which bind it to its doom.
   Yes! crime and misery are in yonder earth,
   Falsehood, mistake, and lust;                                        _30
   But the eternal world
   Contains at once the evil and the cure.
   Some eminent in virtue shall start up,
   Even in perversest time:
   The truths of their pure lips, that never die,                       _35
   Shall bind the scorpion falsehood with a wreath
   Of ever-living flame,
   Until the monster sting itself to death.
   
   'How sweet a scene will earth become!
   Of purest spirits a pure dwelling-place,                             _40
   Symphonious with the planetary spheres;
   When man, with changeless Nature coalescing,
   Will undertake regeneration's work,
   When its ungenial poles no longer point
   To the red and baleful sun                                           _45
   That faintly twinkles there.
   
   'Spirit! on yonder earth,
   Falsehood now triumphs; deadly power
   Has fixed its seal upon the lip of truth!
   Madness and misery are there!                                        _50
   The happiest is most wretched! Yet confide,
   Until pure health-drops, from the cup of joy,
   Fall like a dew of balm upon the world.
   Now, to the scene I show, in silence turn,
   And read the blood-stained charter of all woe,                       _55
   Which Nature soon, with re-creating hand,
   Will blot in mercy from the book of earth.
   How bold the flight of Passion's wandering wing,
   How swift the step of Reason's firmer tread,
   How calm and sweet the victories of life,                            _60
   How terrorless the triumph of the grave!
   How powerless were the mightiest monarch's arm,
   Vain his loud threat, and impotent his frown!
   How ludicrous the priest's dogmatic roar!
   The weight of his exterminating curse                                _65
   How light! and his affected charity,
   To suit the pressure of the changing times,
   What palpable deceit!--but for thy aid,
   Religion! but for thee, prolific fiend,
   Who peoplest earth with demons, Hell with men,                       _70
   And Heaven with slaves!
   
   'Thou taintest all thou look'st upon!--the stars,
   Which on thy cradle beamed so brightly sweet,
   Were gods to the distempered playfulness
   Of thy untutored infancy: the trees,                                 _75
   The grass, the clouds, the mountains, and the sea,
   All living things that walk, swim, creep, or fly,
   Were gods: the sun had homage, and the moon
   Her worshipper. Then thou becam'st, a boy,
   More daring in thy frenzies: every shape,                            _80
   Monstrous or vast, or beautifully wild,
   Which, from sensation's relics, fancy culls
   The spirits of the air, the shuddering ghost,
   The genii of the elements, the powers
   That give a shape to Nature's varied works,                          _85
   Had life and place in the corrupt belief
   Of thy blind heart: yet still thy youthful hands
   Were pure of human blood. Then manhood gave
   Its strength and ardour to thy frenzied brain;
   Thine eager gaze scanned the stupendous scene,                       _90
   Whose wonders mocked the knowledge of thy pride:
   Their everlasting and unchanging laws
   Reproached thine ignorance. Awhile thou stoodst
   Baffled and gloomy; then thou didst sum up
   The elements of all that thou didst know;                            _95
   The changing seasons, winter's leafless reign,
   The budding of the Heaven-breathing trees,
   The eternal orbs that beautify the night,
   The sunrise, and the setting of the moon,
   Earthquakes and wars, and poisons and disease,                       _100
   And all their causes, to an abstract point
   Converging, thou didst bend and called it God!
   The self-sufficing, the omnipotent,
   The merciful, and the avenging God!
   Who, prototype of human misrule, sits                                _105
   High in Heaven's realm, upon a golden throne,
   Even like an earthly king; and whose dread work,
   Hell, gapes for ever for the unhappy slaves
   Of fate, whom He created, in his sport,
   To triumph in their torments when they fell!                         _110
   Earth heard the name; Earth trembled, as the smoke
   Of His revenge ascended up to Heaven,
   Blotting the constellations; and the cries
   Of millions, butchered in sweet confidence
   And unsuspecting peace, even when the bonds                          _115
   Of safety were confirmed by wordy oaths
   Sworn in His dreadful name, rung through the land;
   Whilst innocent babes writhed on thy stubborn spear,
   And thou didst laugh to hear the mother's shriek
   Of maniac gladness, as the sacred steel                              _120
   Felt cold in her torn entrails!
   
   'Religion! thou wert then in manhood's prime:
   But age crept on: one God would not suffice
   For senile puerility; thou framedst
   A tale to suit thy dotage, and to glut                               _125
   Thy misery-thirsting soul, that the mad fiend
   Thy wickedness had pictured might afford
   A plea for sating the unnatural thirst
   For murder, rapine, violence, and crime,
   That still consumed thy being, even when                             _130
   Thou heardst the step of Fate;--that flames might light
   Thy funeral scene, and the shrill horrent shrieks
   Of parents dying on the pile that burned
   To light their children to thy paths, the roar
   Of the encircling flames, the exulting cries                         _135
   Of thine apostles, loud commingling there,
   Might sate thine hungry ear
   Even on the bed of death!
   
   'But now contempt is mocking thy gray hairs;
   Thou art descending to the darksome grave,                           _140
   Unhonoured and unpitied, but by those
   Whose pride is passing by like thine, and sheds,
   Like thine, a glare that fades before the sun
   Of truth, and shines but in the dreadful night
   That long has lowered above the ruined world.                        _145
   
   'Throughout these infinite orbs of mingling light,
   Of which yon earth is one, is wide diffused
   A Spirit of activity and life,
   That knows no term, cessation, or decay;
   That fades not when the lamp of earthly life,                        _150
   Extinguished in the dampness of the grave,
   Awhile there slumbers, more than when the babe
   In the dim newness of its being feels
   The impulses of sublunary things,
   And all is wonder to unpractised sense:                              _155
   But, active, steadfast, and eternal, still
   Guides the fierce whirlwind, in the tempest roars,
   Cheers in the day, breathes in the balmy groves,
   Strengthens in health, and poisons in disease;
   And in the storm of change, that ceaselessly                         _160
   Rolls round the eternal universe, and shakes
   Its undecaying battlement, presides,
   Apportioning with irresistible law
   The place each spring of its machine shall fill;
   So that when waves on waves tumultuous heap                          _165
   Confusion to the clouds, and fiercely driven
   Heaven's lightnings scorch the uprooted ocean-fords,
   Whilst, to the eye of shipwrecked mariner,
   Lone sitting on the bare and shuddering rock,
   All seems unlinked contingency and chance:                           _170
   No atom of this turbulence fulfils
   A vague and unnecessitated task,
   Or acts but as it must and ought to act.
   Even the minutest molecule of light,
   That in an April sunbeam's fleeting glow                             _175
   Fulfils its destined, though invisible work,
   The universal Spirit guides; nor less,
   When merciless ambition, or mad zeal,
   Has led two hosts of dupes to battlefield,
   That, blind, they there may dig each other's graves,                 _180
   And call the sad work glory, does it rule
   All passions: not a thought, a will, an act,
   No working of the tyrant's moody mind,
   Nor one misgiving of the slaves who boast
   Their servitude, to hide the shame they feel,                        _185
   Nor the events enchaining every will,
   That from the depths of unrecorded time
   Have drawn all-influencing virtue, pass
   Unrecognized, or unforeseen by thee,
   Soul of the Universe! eternal spring                                 _190
   Of life and death, of happiness and woe,
   Of all that chequers the phantasmal scene
   That floats before our eyes in wavering light,
   Which gleams but on the darkness of our prison,
   Whose chains and massy walls                                         _195
   We feel, but cannot see.
   
   'Spirit of Nature! all-sufficing Power,
   Necessity! thou mother of the world!
   Unlike the God of human error, thou
   Requir'st no prayers or praises; the caprice                         _200
   Of man's weak will belongs no more to thee
   Than do the changeful passions of his breast
   To thy unvarying harmony: the slave,
   Whose horrible lusts spread misery o'er the world,
   And the good man, who lifts, with virtuous pride,                    _205
   His being, in the sight of happiness,
   That springs from his own works; the poison-tree
   Beneath whose shade all life is withered up,
   And the fair oak, whose leafy dome affords
   A temple where the vows of happy love                                _210
   Are registered, are equal in thy sight:
   No love, no hate thou cherishest; revenge
   And favouritism, and worst desire of fame
   Thou know'st not: all that the wide world contains
   Are but thy passive instruments, and thou                            _215
   Regard'st them all with an impartial eye,
   Whose joy or pain thy nature cannot feel,
   Because thou hast not human sense,
   Because thou art not human mind.
   
   'Yes! when the sweeping storm of time                                _220
   Has sung its death-dirge o'er the ruined fanes
   And broken altars of the almighty Fiend
   Whose name usurps thy honours, and the blood
   Through centuries clotted there, has floated down
   The tainted flood of ages, shalt thou live                           _225
   Unchangeable! A shrine is raised to thee,
   Which, nor the tempest-breath of time,
   Nor the interminable flood,
   Over earth's slight pageant rolling,
   Availeth to destroy,--.                                              _230
   The sensitive extension of the world.
   That wondrous and eternal fane,
   Where pain and pleasure, good and evil join,
   To do the will of strong necessity,
   And life, in multitudinous shapes,                                   _235
   Still pressing forward where no term can be,
   Like hungry and unresting flame
   Curls round the eternal columns of its strength.'
   
   7.
   
   SPIRIT:
   'I was an infant when my mother went
   To see an atheist burned. She took me there:
   The dark-robed priests were met around the pile;
   The multitude was gazing silently;
   And as the culprit passed with dauntless mien,                       _5
   Tempered disdain in his unaltering eye,
   Mixed with a quiet smile, shone calmly forth:
   The thirsty fire crept round his manly limbs;
   His resolute eyes were scorched to blindness soon;
   His death-pang rent my heart! the insensate mob                      _10
   Uttered a cry of triumph, and I wept.
   "Weep not, child!" cried my mother, "for that man
   Has said, There is no God."'
   
   FAIRY:
   'There is no God!
   Nature confirms the faith his death-groan sealed:
   Let heaven and earth, let man's revolving race,                      _15
   His ceaseless generations tell their tale;
   Let every part depending on the chain
   That links it to the whole, point to the hand
   That grasps its term! let every seed that falls
   In silent eloquence unfold its store                                 _20
   Of argument; infinity within,
   Infinity without, belie creation;
   The exterminable spirit it contains
   Is nature's only God; but human pride
   Is skilful to invent most serious names                              _25
   To hide its ignorance.
   The name of God
   Has fenced about all crime with holiness,
   Himself the creature of His worshippers,
   Whose names and attributes and passions change,
   Seeva, Buddh, Foh, Jehovah, God, or Lord,                            _30
   Even with the human dupes who build His shrines,
   Still serving o'er the war-polluted world
   For desolation's watchword; whether hosts
   Stain His death-blushing chariot-wheels, as on
   Triumphantly they roll, whilst Brahmins raise                        _35
   A sacred hymn to mingle with the groans;
   Or countless partners of His power divide
   His tyranny to weakness; or the smoke
   Of burning towns, the cries of female helplessness,
   Unarmed old age, and youth, and infancy,                             _40
   Horribly massacred, ascend to Heaven
   In honour of His name; or, last and worst,
   Earth groans beneath religion's iron age,
   And priests dare babble of a God of peace,
   Even whilst their hands are red with guiltless blood,                _45
   Murdering the while, uprooting every germ
   Of truth, exterminating, spoiling all,
   Making the earth a slaughter-house!
   
   'O Spirit! through the sense
   By which thy inner nature was apprised                               _50
   Of outward shows, vague dreams have rolled,
   And varied reminiscences have waked
   Tablets that never fade;
   All things have been imprinted there,
   The stars, the sea, the earth, the sky,                              _55
   Even the unshapeliest lineaments
   Of wild and fleeting visions
   Have left a record there
   To testify of earth.
   
   'These are my empire, for to me is given                             _60
   The wonders of the human world to keep,
   And Fancy's thin creations to endow
   With manner, being, and reality;
   Therefore a wondrous phantom, from the dreams
   Of human error's dense and purblind faith,                           _65
   I will evoke, to meet thy questioning.
   Ahasuerus, rise!'
   
   A strange and woe-worn wight
   Arose beside the battlement,
   And stood unmoving there.                                            _70
   His inessential figure cast no shade
   Upon the golden floor;
   His port and mien bore mark of many years,
   And chronicles of untold ancientness
   Were legible within his beamless eye:                                _75
   Yet his cheek bore the mark of youth;
   Freshness and vigour knit his manly frame;
   The wisdom of old age was mingled there
   With youth's primaeval dauntlessness;
   And inexpressible woe,                                               _80
   Chastened by fearless resignation, gave
   An awful grace to his all-speaking brow.
   
   SPIRIT:
   'Is there a God?'
   
   AHASUERUS:
   'Is there a God!--ay, an almighty God,
   And vengeful as almighty! Once His voice                             _85
   Was heard on earth: earth shuddered at the sound;
   The fiery-visaged firmament expressed
   Abhorrence, and the grave of Nature yawned
   To swallow all the dauntless and the good
   That dared to hurl defiance at His throne,                           _90
   Girt as it was with power. None but slaves
   Survived,--cold-blooded slaves, who did the work
   Of tyrannous omnipotence; whose souls
   No honest indignation ever urged
   To elevated daring, to one deed                                      _95
   Which gross and sensual self did not pollute.
   These slaves built temples for the omnipotent Fiend,
   Gorgeous and vast: the costly altars smoked
   With human blood, and hideous paeans rung
   Through all the long-drawn aisles. A murderer heard                  _100
   His voice in Egypt, one whose gifts and arts
   Had raised him to his eminence in power,
   Accomplice of omnipotence in crime,
   And confidant of the all-knowing one.
   These were Jehovah's words:--                                        _105
   
   'From an eternity of idleness
   I, God, awoke; in seven days' toil made earth
   From nothing; rested, and created man:
   I placed him in a Paradise, and there
   Planted the tree of evil, so that he                                 _110
   Might eat and perish, and My soul procure
   Wherewith to sate its malice, and to turn,
   Even like a heartless conqueror of the earth,
   All misery to My fame. The race of men
   Chosen to My honour, with impunity                                   _115
   May sate the lusts I planted in their heart.
   Here I command thee hence to lead them on,
   Until, with hardened feet, their conquering troops
   Wade on the promised soil through woman's blood,
   And make My name be dreaded through the land.                        _120
   Yet ever-burning flame and ceaseless woe
   Shall be the doom of their eternal souls,
   With every soul on this ungrateful earth,
   Virtuous or vicious, weak or strong,--even all
   Shall perish, to fulfil the blind revenge                            _125
   (Which you, to men, call justice) of their God.'
   
   The murderer's brow
   Quivered with horror.
   'God omnipotent,
   Is there no mercy? must our punishment
   Be endless? will long ages roll away,                                _130
   And see no term? Oh! wherefore hast Thou made
   In mockery and wrath this evil earth?
   Mercy becomes the powerful--be but just:
   O God! repent and save.'
   
   'One way remains:
   I will beget a Son, and He shall bear                                _135
   The sins of all the world; He shall arise
   In an unnoticed corner of the earth,
   And there shall die upon a cross, and purge
   The universal crime; so that the few
   On whom My grace descends, those who are marked                      _140
   As vessels to the honour of their God,
   May credit this strange sacrifice, and save
   Their souls alive: millions shall live and die,
   Who ne'er shall call upon their Saviour's name,
   But, unredeemed, go to the gaping grave.                             _145
   Thousands shall deem it an old woman's tale,
   Such as the nurses frighten babes withal:
   These in a gulf of anguish and of flame
   Shall curse their reprobation endlessly,
   Yet tenfold pangs shall force them to avow,                          _150
   Even on their beds of torment, where they howl,
   My honour, and the justice of their doom.
   What then avail their virtuous deeds, their thoughts
   Of purity, with radiant genius bright,
   Or lit with human reason's earthly ray?                              _155
   Many are called, but few will I elect.
   Do thou My bidding, Moses!'
   Even the murderer's cheek
   Was blanched with horror, and his quivering lips
   Scarce faintly uttered--'O almighty One,
   I tremble and obey!'                                                 _160
   
   'O Spirit! centuries have set their seal
   On this heart of many wounds, and loaded brain,
   Since the Incarnate came: humbly He came,
   Veiling His horrible Godhead in the shape
   Of man, scorned by the world, His name unheard,                      _165
   Save by the rabble of His native town,
   Even as a parish demagogue. He led
   The crowd; He taught them justice, truth, and peace,
   In semblance; but He lit within their souls
   The quenchless flames of zeal, and blessed the sword                 _170
   He brought on earth to satiate with the blood
   Of truth and freedom His malignant soul.
   At length His mortal frame was led to death.
   I stood beside Him: on the torturing cross
   No pain assailed His unterrestrial sense;                            _175
   And yet He groaned. Indignantly I summed
   The massacres and miseries which His name
   Had sanctioned in my country, and I cried,
   "Go! Go!" in mockery.
   A smile of godlike malice reillumed                                  _180
   His fading lineaments.--"I go," He cried,
   "But thou shalt wander o'er the unquiet earth
   Eternally."--The dampness of the grave
   Bathed my imperishable front. I fell,
   And long lay tranced upon the charmed soil.                          _185
   When I awoke Hell burned within my brain,
   Which staggered on its seat; for all around
   The mouldering relics of my kindred lay,
   Even as the Almighty's ire arrested them,
   And in their various attitudes of death                              _190
   My murdered children's mute and eyeless skulls
   Glared ghastily upon me.
   But my soul,
   From sight and sense of the polluting woe
   Of tyranny, had long learned to prefer
   Hell's freedom to the servitude of Heaven.                           _195
   Therefore I rose, and dauntlessly began
   My lonely and unending pilgrimage,
   Resolved to wage unweariable war
   With my almighty Tyrant, and to hurl
   Defiance at His impotence to harm                                    _200
   Beyond the curse I bore. The very hand
   That barred my passage to the peaceful grave
   Has crushed the earth to misery, and given
   Its empire to the chosen of His slaves.
   These have I seen, even from the earliest dawn                       _205
   Of weak, unstable and precarious power,
   Then preaching peace, as now they practise war;
   So, when they turned but from the massacre
   Of unoffending infidels, to quench
   Their thirst for ruin in the very blood                              _210
   That flowed in their own veins, and pitiless zeal
   Froze every human feeling, as the wife
   Sheathed in her husband's heart the sacred steel,
   Even whilst its hopes were dreaming of her love;
   And friends to friends, brothers to brothers stood                   _215
   Opposed in bloodiest battle-field, and war,
   Scarce satiable by fate's last death-draught, waged,
   Drunk from the winepress of the Almighty's wrath;
   Whilst the red cross, in mockery of peace,
   Pointed to victory! When the fray was done,                          _220
   No remnant of the exterminated faith
   Survived to tell its ruin, but the flesh,
   With putrid smoke poisoning the atmosphere,
   That rotted on the half-extinguished pile.
   
   'Yes! I have seen God's worshippers unsheathe                        _225
   The sword of His revenge, when grace descended,
   Confirming all unnatural impulses,
   To sanctify their desolating deeds;
   And frantic priests waved the ill-omened cross
   O'er the unhappy earth: then shone the sun                           _230
   On showers of gore from the upflashing steel
   Of safe assassination, and all crime
   Made stingless by the Spirits of the Lord,
   And blood-red rainbows canopied the land.
   'Spirit, no year of my eventful being                                _235
   Has passed unstained by crime and misery,
   Which flows from God's own faith. I've marked His slaves
   With tongues whose lies are venomous, beguile
   The insensate mob, and, whilst one hand was red
   With murder, feign to stretch the other out                          _240
   For brotherhood and peace; and that they now
   Babble of love and mercy, whilst their deeds
   Are marked with all the narrowness and crime
   That Freedom's young arm dare not yet chastise,
   Reason may claim our gratitude, who now                              _245
   Establishing the imperishable throne
   Of truth, and stubborn virtue, maketh vain
   The unprevailing malice of my Foe,
   Whose bootless rage heaps torments for the brave,
   Adds impotent eternities to pain,                                    _250
   Whilst keenest disappointment racks His breast
   To see the smiles of peace around them play,
   To frustrate or to sanctify their doom.
   
   'Thus have I stood,--through a wild waste of years
   Struggling with whirlwinds of mad agony,                             _255
   Yet peaceful, and serene, and self-enshrined,
   Mocking my powerless Tyrant's horrible curse
   With stubborn and unalterable will,
   Even as a giant oak, which Heaven's fierce flame
   Had scathed in the wilderness, to stand                              _260
   A monument of fadeless ruin there;
   Yet peacefully and movelessly it braves
   The midnight conflict of the wintry storm,
   As in the sunlight's calm it spreads
   Its worn and withered arms on high                                   _265
   To meet the quiet of a summer's noon.'
   
   The Fairy waved her wand:
   Ahasuerus fled
   Fast as the shapes of mingled shade and mist,
   That lurk in the glens of a twilight grove,                          _270
   Flee from the morning beam:
   The matter of which dreams are made
   Not more endowed with actual life
   Than this phantasmal portraiture
   Of wandering human thought.                                          _275
   
   NOTE:
   _180 reillumined edition 1813.
   
   8.
   
   THE FAIRY:
   'The Present and the Past thou hast beheld:
   It was a desolate sight. Now, Spirit, learn
   The secrets of the Future.--Time!
   Unfold the brooding pinion of thy gloom,
   Render thou up thy half-devoured babes,                              _5
   And from the cradles of eternity,
   Where millions lie lulled to their portioned sleep
   By the deep murmuring stream of passing things,
   Tear thou that gloomy shroud.--Spirit, behold
   Thy glorious destiny!'                                               _10
   
   Joy to the Spirit came.
   Through the wide rent in Time's eternal veil,
   Hope was seen beaming through the mists of fear:
   Earth was no longer Hell;
   Love, freedom, health, had given                                     _15
   Their ripeness to the manhood of its prime,
   And all its pulses beat
   Symphonious to the planetary spheres:
   Then dulcet music swelled
   Concordant with the life-strings of the soul;                        _20
   It throbbed in sweet and languid beatings there,
   Catching new life from transitory death,--
   Like the vague sighings of a wind at even,
   That wakes the wavelets of the slumbering sea
   And dies on the creation of its breath,                              _25
   And sinks and rises, fails and swells by fits:
   Was the pure stream of feeling
   That sprung from these sweet notes,
   And o'er the Spirit's human sympathies
   With mild and gentle motion calmly flowed.                           _30
   
   Joy to the Spirit came,--
   Such joy as when a lover sees
   The chosen of his soul in happiness,
   And witnesses her peace
   Whose woe to him were bitterer than death,                           _35
   Sees her unfaded cheek
   Glow mantling in first luxury of health,
   Thrills with her lovely eyes,
   Which like two stars amid the heaving main
   Sparkle through liquid bliss.                                        _40
   
   Then in her triumph spoke the Fairy Queen:
   'I will not call the ghost of ages gone
   To unfold the frightful secrets of its lore;
   The present now is past,
   And those events that desolate the earth                             _45
   Have faded from the memory of Time,
   Who dares not give reality to that
   Whose being I annul. To me is given
   The wonders of the human world to keep,
   Space, matter, time, and mind. Futurity                              _50
   Exposes now its treasure; let the sight
   Renew and strengthen all thy failing hope.
   O human Spirit! spur thee to the goal
   Where virtue fixes universal peace,
   And midst the ebb and flow of human things,                          _55
   Show somewhat stable, somewhat certain still,
   A lighthouse o'er the wild of dreary waves.
   
   'The habitable earth is full of bliss;
   Those wastes of frozen billows that were hurled
   By everlasting snowstorms round the poles,                           _60
   Where matter dared not vegetate or live,
   But ceaseless frost round the vast solitude
   Bound its broad zone of stillness, are unloosed;
   And fragrant zephyrs there from spicy isles
   Ruffle the placid ocean-deep, that rolls                             _65
   Its broad, bright surges to the sloping sand,
   Whose roar is wakened into echoings sweet
   To murmur through the Heaven-breathing groves
   And melodize with man's blest nature there.
   
   'Those deserts of immeasurable sand,                                 _70
   Whose age-collected fervours scarce allowed
   A bird to live, a blade of grass to spring,
   Where the shrill chirp of the green lizard's love
   Broke on the sultry silentness alone,
   Now teem with countless rills and shady woods,                       _75
   Cornfields and pastures and white cottages;
   And where the startled wilderness beheld
   A savage conqueror stained in kindred blood,
   A tigress sating with the flesh of lambs
   The unnatural famine of her toothless cubs,                          _80
   Whilst shouts and howlings through the desert rang,
   Sloping and smooth the daisy-spangled lawn,
   Offering sweet incense to the sunrise, smiles
   To see a babe before his mother's door,
   Sharing his morning's meal                                           _85
   With the green and golden basilisk
   That comes to lick his feet.
   
   'Those trackless deeps, where many a weary sail
   Has seen above the illimitable plain,
   Morning on night, and night on morning rise,                         _90
   Whilst still no land to greet the wanderer spread
   Its shadowy mountains on the sun-bright sea,
   Where the loud roarings of the tempest-waves
   So long have mingled with the gusty wind
   In melancholy loneliness, and swept                                  _95
   The desert of those ocean solitudes,
   But vocal to the sea-bird's harrowing shriek,
   The bellowing monster, and the rushing storm,
   Now to the sweet and many-mingling sounds
   Of kindliest human impulses respond.                                 _100
   Those lonely realms bright garden-isles begem,
   With lightsome clouds and shining seas between,
   And fertile valleys, resonant with bliss,
   Whilst green woods overcanopy the wave,
   Which like a toil-worn labourer leaps to shore,                      _105
   To meet the kisses of the flow'rets there.
   
   'All things are recreated, and the flame
   Of consentaneous love inspires all life:
   The fertile bosom of the earth gives suck
   To myriads, who still grow beneath her care,                         _110
   Rewarding her with their pure perfectness:
   The balmy breathings of the wind inhale
   Her virtues, and diffuse them all abroad:
   Health floats amid the gentle atmosphere,
   Glows in the fruits, and mantles on the stream:                      _115
   No storms deform the beaming brow of Heaven,
   Nor scatter in the freshness of its pride
   The foliage of the ever-verdant trees;
   But fruits are ever ripe, flowers ever fair,
   And Autumn proudly bears her matron grace,                           _120
   Kindling a flush on the fair cheek of Spring,
   Whose virgin bloom beneath the ruddy fruit
   Reflects its tint, and blushes into love.
   
   'The lion now forgets to thirst for blood:
   There might you see him sporting in the sun                          _125
   Beside the dreadless kid; his claws are sheathed,
   His teeth are harmless, custom's force has made
   His nature as the nature of a lamb.
   Like passion's fruit, the nightshade's tempting bane
   Poisons no more the pleasure it bestows:                             _130
   All bitterness is past; the cup of joy
   Unmingled mantles to the goblet's brim,
   And courts the thirsty lips it fled before.
   
   'But chief, ambiguous Man, he that can know
   More misery, and dream more joy than all;                            _135
   Whose keen sensations thrill within his breast
   To mingle with a loftier instinct there,
   Lending their power to pleasure and to pain,
   Yet raising, sharpening, and refining each;
   Who stands amid the ever-varying world,                              _140
   The burthen or the glory of the earth;
   He chief perceives the change, his being notes
   The gradual renovation, and defines
   Each movement of its progress on his mind.
   
   'Man, where the gloom of the long polar night                        _145
   Lowers o'er the snow-clad rocks and frozen soil,
   Where scarce the hardiest herb that braves the frost
   Basks in the moonlight's ineffectual glow,
   Shrank with the plants, and darkened with the night;
   His chilled and narrow energies, his heart,                          _150
   Insensible to courage, truth, or love,
   His stunted stature and imbecile frame,
   Marked him for some abortion of the earth,
   Fit compeer of the bears that roamed around,
   Whose habits and enjoyments were his own:                            _155
   His life a feverish dream of stagnant woe,
   Whose meagre wants, but scantily fulfilled,
   Apprised him ever of the joyless length
   Which his short being's wretchedness had reached;
   His death a pang which famine, cold and toil                         _160
   Long on the mind, whilst yet the vital spark
   Clung to the body stubbornly, had brought:
   All was inflicted here that Earth's revenge
   Could wreak on the infringers of her law;
   One curse alone was spared--the name of God.                         _165
   
   'Nor where the tropics bound the realms of day
   With a broad belt of mingling cloud and flame,
   Where blue mists through the unmoving atmosphere
   Scattered the seeds of pestilence, and fed
   Unnatural vegetation, where the land                                 _170
   Teemed with all earthquake, tempest and disease,
   Was Man a nobler being; slavery
   Had crushed him to his country's bloodstained dust;
   Or he was bartered for the fame of power,
   Which all internal impulses destroying,                              _175
   Makes human will an article of trade;
   Or he was changed with Christians for their gold,
   And dragged to distant isles, where to the sound
   Of the flesh-mangling scourge, he does the work
   Of all-polluting luxury and wealth,                                  _180
   Which doubly visits on the tyrants' heads
   The long-protracted fulness of their woe;
   Or he was led to legal butchery,
   To turn to worms beneath that burning sun,
   Where kings first leagued against the rights of men,                 _185
   And priests first traded with the name of God.
   
   'Even where the milder zone afforded Man
   A seeming shelter, yet contagion there,
   Blighting his being with unnumbered ills,
   Spread like a quenchless fire; nor truth till late                   _190
   Availed to arrest its progress, or create
   That peace which first in bloodless victory waved
   Her snowy standard o'er this favoured clime:
   There man was long the train-bearer of slaves,
   The mimic of surrounding misery,                                     _195
   The jackal of ambition's lion-rage,
   The bloodhound of religion's hungry zeal.
   'Here now the human being stands adorning
   This loveliest earth with taintless body and mind;
   Blessed from his birth with all bland impulses,                      _200
   Which gently in his noble bosom wake
   All kindly passions and all pure desires.
   Him, still from hope to hope the bliss pursuing
   Which from the exhaustless lore of human weal
   Dawns on the virtuous mind, the thoughts that rise                   _205
   In time-destroying infiniteness, gift
   With self-enshrined eternity, that mocks
   The unprevailing hoariness of age,
   And man, once fleeting o'er the transient scene
   Swift as an unremembered vision, stands                              _210
   Immortal upon earth: no longer now
   He slays the lamb that looks him in the face,
   And horribly devours his mangled flesh,
   Which, still avenging Nature's broken law,
   Kindled all putrid humours in his frame,                             _215
   All evil passions, and all vain belief,
   Hatred, despair, and loathing in his mind,
   The germs of misery, death, disease, and crime.
   No longer now the winged habitants,
   That in the woods their sweet lives sing away,--                     _220
   Flee from the form of man; but gather round,
   And prune their sunny feathers on the hands
   Which little children stretch in friendly sport
   Towards these dreadless partners of their play.
   All things are void of terror: Man has lost                          _225
   His terrible prerogative, and stands
   An equal amidst equals: happiness
   And science dawn though late upon the earth;
   Peace cheers the mind, health renovates the frame;
   Disease and pleasure cease to mingle here,                           _230
   Reason and passion cease to combat there;
   Whilst each unfettered o'er the earth extend
   Their all-subduing energies, and wield
   The sceptre of a vast dominion there;
   Whilst every shape and mode of matter lends                          _235
   Its force to the omnipotence of mind,
   Which from its dark mine drags the gem of truth
   To decorate its Paradise of peace.'
   
   NOTES:
   _204 exhaustless store edition 1813.
   _205 Draws edition 1813. See Editor's Note.
   
   9.
   
   'O happy Earth! reality of Heaven!
   To which those restless souls that ceaselessly
   Throng through the human universe, aspire;
   Thou consummation of all mortal hope!
   Thou glorious prize of blindly-working will!                         _5
   Whose rays, diffused throughout all space and time,
   Verge to one point and blend for ever there:
   Of purest spirits thou pure dwelling-place!
   Where care and sorrow, impotence and crime,
   Languor, disease, and ignorance dare not come:                       _10
   O happy Earth, reality of Heaven!
   
   'Genius has seen thee in her passionate dreams,
   And dim forebodings of thy loveliness
   Haunting the human heart, have there entwined
   Those rooted hopes of some sweet place of bliss                      _15
   Where friends and lovers meet to part no more.
   Thou art the end of all desire and will,
   The product of all action; and the souls
   That by the paths of an aspiring change
   Have reached thy haven of perpetual peace,                           _20
   There rest from the eternity of toil
   That framed the fabric of thy perfectness.
   
   'Even Time, the conqueror, fled thee in his fear;
   That hoary giant, who, in lonely pride,
   So long had ruled the world, that nations fell                       _25
   Beneath his silent footstep. Pyramids,
   That for millenniums had withstood the tide
   Of human things, his storm-breath drove in sand
   Across that desert where their stones survived
   The name of him whose pride had heaped them there.                   _30
   Yon monarch, in his solitary pomp,
   Was but the mushroom of a summer day,
   That his light-winged footstep pressed to dust:
   Time was the king of earth: all things gave way
   Before him, but the fixed and virtuous will,                         _35
   The sacred sympathies of soul and sense,
   That mocked his fury and prepared his fall.
   
   'Yet slow and gradual dawned the morn of love;
   Long lay the clouds of darkness o'er the scene,
   Till from its native Heaven they rolled away:                        _40
   First, Crime triumphant o'er all hope careered
   Unblushing, undisguising, bold and strong;
   Whilst Falsehood, tricked in Virtue's attributes,
   Long sanctified all deeds of vice and woe,
   Till done by her own venomous sting to death,                        _45
   She left the moral world without a law,
   No longer fettering Passion's fearless wing,--
   Nor searing Reason with the brand of God.
   Then steadily the happy ferment worked;
   Reason was free; and wild though Passion went                        _50
   Through tangled glens and wood-embosomed meads,
   Gathering a garland of the strangest flowers,
   Yet like the bee returning to her queen,
   She bound the sweetest on her sister's brow,
   Who meek and sober kissed the sportive child,                        _55
   No longer trembling at the broken rod.
   
   'Mild was the slow necessity of death:
   The tranquil spirit failed beneath its grasp,
   Without a groan, almost without a fear,
   Calm as a voyager to some distant land,                              _60
   And full of wonder, full of hope as he.
   The deadly germs of languor and disease
   Died in the human frame, and Purity
   Blessed with all gifts her earthly worshippers.
   How vigorous then the athletic form of age!                          _65
   How clear its open and unwrinkled brow!
   Where neither avarice, cunning, pride, nor care,
   Had stamped the seal of gray deformity
   On all the mingling lineaments of time.
   How lovely the intrepid front of youth!                              _70
   Which meek-eyed courage decked with freshest grace;--
   Courage of soul, that dreaded not a name,
   And elevated will, that journeyed on
   Through life's phantasmal scene in fearlessness,
   With virtue, love, and pleasure, hand in hand.                       _75
   
   'Then, that sweet bondage which is Freedom's self,
   And rivets with sensation's softest tie
   The kindred sympathies of human souls,
   Needed no fetters of tyrannic law:
   Those delicate and timid impulses                                    _80
   In Nature's primal modesty arose,
   And with undoubted confidence disclosed
   The growing longings of its dawning love,
   Unchecked by dull and selfish chastity,
   That virtue of the cheaply virtuous,                                 _85
   Who pride themselves in senselessness and frost.
   No longer prostitution's venomed bane
   Poisoned the springs of happiness and life;
   Woman and man, in confidence and love,
   Equal and free and pure together trod                                _90
   The mountain-paths of virtue, which no more
   Were stained with blood from many a pilgrim's feet.
   
   'Then, where, through distant ages, long in pride
   The palace of the monarch-slave had mocked
   Famine's faint groan, and Penury's silent tear,                      _95
   A heap of crumbling ruins stood, and threw
   Year after year their stones upon the field,
   Wakening a lonely echo; and the leaves
   Of the old thorn, that on the topmost tower
   Usurped the royal ensign's grandeur, shook                           _100
   In the stern storm that swayed the topmost tower
   And whispered strange tales in the Whirlwind's ear.
   'Low through the lone cathedral's roofless aisles
   The melancholy winds a death-dirge sung:
   It were a sight of awfulness to see                                  _105
   The works of faith and slavery, so vast,
   So sumptuous, yet so perishing withal!
   Even as the corpse that rests beneath its wall.
   A thousand mourners deck the pomp of death
   To-day, the breathing marble glows above                             _110
   To decorate its memory, and tongues
   Are busy of its life: to-morrow, worms
   In silence and in darkness seize their prey.
   
   'Within the massy prison's mouldering courts,
   Fearless and free the ruddy children played,                         _115
   Weaving gay chaplets for their innocent brows
   With the green ivy and the red wallflower,
   That mock the dungeon's unavailing gloom;
   The ponderous chains, and gratings of strong iron,
   There rusted amid heaps of broken stone                              _120
   That mingled slowly with their native earth:
   There the broad beam of day, which feebly once
   Lighted the cheek of lean Captivity
   With a pale and sickly glare, then freely shone
   On the pure smiles of infant playfulness:                            _125
   No more the shuddering voice of hoarse Despair
   Pealed through the echoing vaults, but soothing notes
   Of ivy-fingered winds and gladsome birds
   And merriment were resonant around.
   
   'These ruins soon left not a wreck behind:                           _130
   Their elements, wide scattered o'er the globe,
   To happier shapes were moulded, and became
   Ministrant to all blissful impulses:
   Thus human things were perfected, and earth,
   Even as a child beneath its mother's love,                           _135
   Was strengthened in all excellence, and grew
   Fairer and nobler with each passing year.
   
   'Now Time his dusky pennons o'er the scene
   Closes in steadfast darkness, and the past
   Fades from our charmed sight. My task is done:                       _140
   Thy lore is learned. Earth's wonders are thine own,
   With all the fear and all the hope they bring.
   My spells are passed: the present now recurs.
   Ah me! a pathless wilderness remains
   Yet unsubdued by man's reclaiming hand.                              _145
   
   'Yet, human Spirit, bravely hold thy course,
   Let virtue teach thee firmly to pursue
   The gradual paths of an aspiring change:
   For birth and life and death, and that strange state
   Before the naked soul has found its home,                            _150
   All tend to perfect happiness, and urge
   The restless wheels of being on their way,
   Whose flashing spokes, instinct with infinite life,
   Bicker and burn to gain their destined goal:
   For birth but wakes the spirit to the sense                          _155
   Of outward shows, whose unexperienced shape
   New modes of passion to its frame may lend;
   Life is its state of action, and the store
   Of all events is aggregated there
   That variegate the eternal universe;                                 _160
   Death is a gate of dreariness and gloom,
   That leads to azure isles and beaming skies
   And happy regions of eternal hope.
   Therefore, O Spirit! fearlessly bear on:
   Though storms may break the primrose on its stalk,                   _165
   Though frosts may blight the freshness of its bloom,
   Yet Spring's awakening breath will woo the earth,
   To feed with kindliest dews its favourite flower,
   That blooms in mossy banks and darksome glens,
   Lighting the greenwood with its sunny smile.                         _170
   
   'Fear not then, Spirit, Death's disrobing hand,
   So welcome when the tyrant is awake,
   So welcome when the bigot's hell-torch burns;
   'Tis but the voyage of a darksome hour,
   The transient gulf-dream of a startling sleep.                       _175
   Death is no foe to Virtue: earth has seen
   Love's brightest roses on the scaffold bloom,
   Mingling with Freedom's fadeless laurels there,
   And presaging the truth of visioned bliss.
   Are there not hopes within thee, which this scene                    _180
   Of linked and gradual being has confirmed?
   Whose stingings bade thy heart look further still,
   When, to the moonlight walk by Henry led,
   Sweetly and sadly thou didst talk of death?
   And wilt thou rudely tear them from thy breast,                      _185
   Listening supinely to a bigot's creed,
   Or tamely crouching to the tyrant's rod,
   Whose iron thongs are red with human gore?
   Never: but bravely bearing on, thy will
   Is destined an eternal war to wage                                   _190
   With tyranny and falsehood, and uproot
   The germs of misery from the human heart.
   Thine is the hand whose piety would soothe
   The thorny pillow of unhappy crime,
   Whose impotence an easy pardon gains,                                _195
   Watching its wanderings as a friend's disease:
   Thine is the brow whose mildness would defy
   Its fiercest rage, and brave its sternest will,
   When fenced by power and master of the world.
   Thou art sincere and good; of resolute mind,                         _200
   Free from heart-withering custom's cold control,
   Of passion lofty, pure and unsubdued.
   Earth's pride and meanness could not vanquish thee,
   And therefore art thou worthy of the boon
   Which thou hast now received: Virtue shall keep                      _205
   Thy footsteps in the path that thou hast trod,
   And many days of beaming hope shall bless
   Thy spotless life of sweet and sacred love.
   Go, happy one, and give that bosom joy
   Whose sleepless spirit waits to catch                                _210
   Light, life and rapture from thy smile.'
   
   The Fairy waves her wand of charm.
   Speechless with bliss the Spirit mounts the car,
   That rolled beside the battlement,
   Bending her beamy eyes in thankful ness.                             _215
   Again the enchanted steeds were yoked,
   Again the burning wheels inflame
   The steep descent of Heaven's untrodden way.
   Fast and far the chariot flew:
   The vast and fiery globes that rolled                                _220
   Around the Fairy's palace-gate
   Lessened by slow degrees and soon appeared
   Such tiny twinklers as the planet orbs
   That there attendant on the solar power
   With borrowed light pursued their narrower way.                      _225
   
   Earth floated then below:
   The chariot paused a moment there;
   The Spirit then descended:
   The restless coursers pawed the ungenial soil,
   Snuffed the gross air, and then, their errand done,                  _230
   Unfurled their pinions to the winds of Heaven.
   
   The Body and the Soul united then,
   A gentle start convulsed Ianthe's frame:
   Her veiny eyelids quietly unclosed;
   Moveless awhile the dark blue orbs remained:                         _235
   She looked around in wonder and beheld
   Henry, who kneeled in silence by her couch,
   Watching her sleep with looks of speechless love,
   And the bright beaming stars
   That through the casement shone.                                     _240
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTES ON QUEEN MAB.
   
   
   SHELLEY'S NOTES.
   
   1. 242, 243:--
   
   The sun's unclouded orb
   Rolled through the black concave.
   
   Beyond our atmosphere the sun would appear a rayless orb of fire in the
   midst of a black concave. The equal diffusion of its light on earth is
   owing to the refraction of the rays by the atmosphere, and their
   reflection from other bodies. Light consists either of vibrations
   propagated through a subtle medium, or of numerous minute particles
   repelled in all directions from the luminous body. Its velocity greatly
   exceeds that of any substance with which we are acquainted: observations
   on the eclipses of Jupiter's satellites have demonstrated that light
   takes up no more than 8 minutes 7 seconds in passing from the sun to the
   earth, a distance of 95,000,000 miles.--Some idea may be gained of the
   immense distance of the fixed stars when it is computed that many years
   would elapse before light could reach this earth from the nearest of
   them; yet in one year light travels 5,422,400,000,000 miles, which is a
   distance 5,707,600 times greater than that of the sun from the earth.
   
   1. 252, 253:--
   
   Whilst round the chariot's way
   Innumerable systems rolled.
   
   The plurality of worlds,--the indefinite immensity of the universe, is a
   most awful subject of contemplation. He who rightly feels its mystery
   and grandeur is in no danger of seduction from the falsehoods of
   religious systems, or of deifying the principle of the universe. It is
   impossible to believe that the Spirit that pervades this infinite
   machine begat a son upon the body of a Jewish woman; or is angered at
   the consequences of that necessity, which is a synonym of itself. All
   that miserable tale of the Devil, and Eve, and an Intercessor, with the
   childish mummeries of the God of the Jews, is irreconcilable with the
   knowledge of the stars. The works of His fingers have borne witness
   against Him.
   
   The nearest of the fixed stars is inconceivably distant from the earth,
   and they are probably proportionably distant from each other. By a
   calculation of the velocity of light, Sirius is supposed to be at least
   54,224,000,000,000 miles from the earth. (See Nicholson's
   "Encyclopedia", article Light.) That which appears only like a thin and
   silvery cloud streaking the heaven is in effect composed of innumerable
   clusters of suns, each shining with its own light, and illuminating
   numbers of planets that revolve around them. Millions and millions of
   suns are ranged around us, all attended by innumerable worlds, yet calm,
   regular, and harmonious, all keeping the paths of immutable necessity.
   
   4. 178, 179:--
   
   These are the hired bravos who defend
   The tyrant's throne.
   
   To employ murder as a means of justice is an idea which a man of an
   enlightened mind will not dwell upon with pleasure. To march forth in
   rank and file, and all the pomp of streamers and trumpets, for the
   purpose of shooting at our fellow-men as a mark; to inflict upon them
   all the variety of wound and anguish; to leave them weltering in their
   blood; to wander over the field of desolation, and count the number of
   the dying and the dead,--are employments which in thesis we may maintain
   to be necessary, but which no good man will contemplate with gratulation
   and delight. A battle we suppose is won:--thus truth is established,
   thus the cause of justice is confirmed! It surely requires no common
   sagacity to discern the connexion between this immense heap of
   calamities and the assertion of truth or the maintenance of justice.
   
   'Kings, and ministers of state, the real authors of the calamity, sit
   unmolested in their cabinet, while those against whom the fury of the
   storm is directed are, for the most part, persons who have been
   trepanned into the service, or who are dragged unwillingly from their
   peaceful homes into the field of battle. A soldier is a man whose
   business it is to kill those who never offended him, and who are the
   innocent martyrs of other men's iniquities. Whatever may become of the
   abstract question of the justifiableness of war, it seems impossible
   that the soldier should not be a depraved and unnatural being.
   
   To these more serious and momentous considerations it may be proper to
   add a recollection of the ridiculousness of the military character. Its
   first constituent is obedience: a soldier is, of all descriptions of
   men, the most completely a machine; yet his profession inevitably
   teaches him something of dogmatism, swaggering, and sell-consequence: he
   is like the puppet of a showman, who, at the very time he is made to
   strut and swell and display the most farcical airs, we perfectly know
   cannot assume the most insignificant gesture, advance either to the
   right or the left, but as he is moved by his exhibitor.'--Godwin's
   "Enquirer", Essay 5.
   
   I will here subjoin a little poem, so strongly expressive of my
   abhorrence of despotism and falsehood, that I fear lest it never again
   may be depictured so vividly. This opportunity is perhaps the only one
   that ever will occur of rescuing it from oblivion.
   
   FALSEHOOD AND VICE.
   
   A DIALOGUE.
   
   Whilst monarchs laughed upon their thrones
   To hear a famished nation's groans,
   And hugged the wealth wrung from the woe
   That makes its eyes and veins o'erflow,--
   Those thrones, high built upon the heaps
   Of bones where frenzied Famine sleeps,
   Where Slavery wields her scourge of iron,
   Red with mankind's unheeded gore,
   And War's mad fiends the scene environ,
   Mingling with shrieks a drunken roar,
   There Vice and Falsehood took their stand,
   High raised above the unhappy land.
   
   FALSEHOOD:
   Brother! arise from the dainty fare,
   Which thousands have toiled and bled to bestow;
   A finer feast for thy hungry ear
   Is the news that I bring of human woe.
   
   VICE:
   And, secret one, what hast thou done,
   To compare, in thy tumid pride, with me?
   I, whose career, through the blasted year,
   Has been tracked by despair and agony.
   
   FALSEHOOD:
   What have I done!--I have torn the robe
   From baby Truth's unsheltered form,
   And round the desolated globe
   Borne safely the bewildering charm:
   My tyrant-slaves to a dungeon-floor
   Have bound the fearless innocent,
   And streams of fertilizing gore
   Flow from her bosom's hideous rent,
   Which this unfailing dagger gave...
   I dread that blood!--no more--this day
   Is ours, though her eternal ray
   Must shine upon our grave.
   Yet know, proud Vice, had I not given
   To thee the robe I stole from Heaven,
   Thy shape of ugliness and fear
   Had never gained admission here.
   
   VICE:
   And know, that had I disdained to toil,
   But sate in my loathsome cave the while,
   And ne'er to these hateful sons of Heaven,
   GOLD, MONARCHY, and MURDER, given;
   Hadst thou with all thine art essayed
   One of thy games then to have played,
   With all thine overweening boast,
   Falsehood! I tell thee thou hadst lost!--
   Yet wherefore this dispute?--we tend,
   Fraternal, to one common end;
   In this cold grave beneath my feet,
   Will our hopes, our fears, and our labours, meet.
   
   FALSEHOOD:
   I brought my daughter, RELIGION, on earth:
   She smothered Reason's babes in their birth;
   But dreaded their mother's eye severe,--
   So the crocodile slunk off slily in fear,
   And loosed her bloodhounds from the den....
   They started from dreams of slaughtered men,
   And, by the light of her poison eye,
   Did her work o'er the wide earth frightfully:
   The dreadful stench of her torches' flare,
   Fed with human fat, polluted the air:
   The curses, the shrieks, the ceaseless cries
   Of the many-mingling miseries,
   As on she trod, ascended high
   And trumpeted my victory!--
   Brother, tell what thou hast done.
   
   VICE:
   I have extinguished the noonday sun,
   In the carnage-smoke of battles won:
   Famine, Murder, Hell and Power
   Were glutted in that glorious hour
   Which searchless fate had stamped for me
   With the seal of her security...
   For the bloated wretch on yonder throne
   Commanded the bloody fray to rise.
   Like me he joyed at the stifled moan
   Wrung from a nation's miseries;
   While the snakes, whose slime even him DEFILED,
   In ecstasies of malice smiled:
   They thought 'twas theirs,--but mine the deed!
   Theirs is the toil, but mine the meed--
   Ten thousand victims madly bleed.
   They dream that tyrants goad them there
   With poisonous war to taint the air:
   These tyrants, on their beds of thorn,
   Swell with the thoughts of murderous fame,
   And with their gains to lift my name
   Restless they plan from night to morn:
   I--I do all; without my aid
   Thy daughter, that relentless maid,
   Could never o'er a death-bed urge
   The fury of her venomed scourge.
   
   FALSEHOOD:
   Brother, well:--the world is ours;
   And whether thou or I have won,
   The pestilence expectant lowers
   On all beneath yon blasted sun.
   Our joys, our toils, our honours meet
   In the milk-white and wormy winding-sheet:
   A short-lived hope, unceasing care,
   Some heartless scraps of godly prayer,
   A moody curse, and a frenzied sleep
   Ere gapes the grave's unclosing deep,
   A tyrant's dream, a coward's start,
   The ice that clings to a priestly heart,
   A judge's frown, a courtier's smile,
   Make the great whole for which we toil;
   And, brother, whether thou or I
   Have done the work of misery,
   It little boots: thy toil and pain,
   Without my aid, were more than vain;
   And but for thee I ne'er had sate
   The guardian of Heaven's palace gate.
   
   5. 1, 2:--
   
   Thus do the generations of the earth
   Go to the grave, and issue from the womb.
   
   'One generation passeth away, and another generation cometh; but the
   earth abideth for ever. The sun also ariseth, and the sun goeth down,
   and hasteth to his place where he arose. The wind goeth toward the
   south, and turneth about unto the north; it whirleth about continually,
   and the wind returneth again according to his circuits. All the rivers
   run into the sea; yet the sea is not full; unto the place from whence
   the rivers come, thither they return again.'--Ecclesiastes, chapter 1
   verses 4-7.
   
   5. 4-6.
   
   Even as the leaves
   Which the keen frost-wind of the waning year
   Has scattered on the forest soil.
   
   Oin per phullon genee, toiede kai andron.
   Phulla ta men t' anemos chamadis cheei, alla de th' ule
   Telethoosa phuei, earos d' epigignetai ore.
   Os andron genee, e men phuei, e d' apolegei.
   
   Iliad Z, line 146.
   
   5. 58:--
   The mob of peasants, nobles, priests, and kings.
   
   Suave mari magno turbantibus aequora ventis
   E terra magnum alterius spectare laborem;
   Non quia vexari quemquam est iucunda voluptas,
   Sed quibus ipse malis careas quia cernere suave est.
   Suave etiam belli certamina magna tueri
   Per campos instructa, tua sine parte pericli;
   Sed nil dulcius est bene quam munita tenere
   Edita doctrina sapientum templa serena,
   Despicere undo queas alios, passimque videre
   Errare atque viam palantis quaerere vitae;
   Certare ingenio; contendere nobilitate;
   Noctes atque dies niti praestante labore
   Ad summas emergere opes, rerumque potiri.
   O miseras hominum mentes! O pectora caeca!
   
   Lucret. lib. 2.
   
   5. 93, 94.
   
   And statesmen boast
   Of wealth!
   
   There is no real wealth but the labour of man. Were the mountains of
   gold and the valleys of silver, the world would not be one grain of corn
   the richer; no one comfort would be added to the human race. In
   consequence of our consideration for the precious metals, one man is
   enabled to heap to himself luxuries at the expense of the necessaries of
   his neighbour; a system admirably fitted to produce all the varieties of
   disease and crime, which never fail to characterize the two extremes of
   opulence and penury. A speculator takes pride to himself as the promoter
   of his country's prosperity, who employs a number of hands in the
   manufacture of articles avowedly destitute of use, or subservient only
   to the unhallowed cravings of luxury and ostentation. The nobleman, who
   employs the peasants of his neighbourhood in building his palaces, until
   'jam pauca aratro jugera regiae moles relinquunt,' flatters himself that
   he has gained the title of a patriot by yielding to the impulses of
   vanity. The show and pomp of courts adduce the same apology for its
   continuance; and many a fete has been given, many a woman has eclipsed
   her beauty by her dress, to benefit the labouring poor and to encourage
   trade. Who does not see that this is a remedy which aggravates whilst it
   palliates the countless diseases of society? The poor are set to
   labour,--for what? Not the food for which they famish: not the blankets
   for want of which their babes are frozen by the cold of their miserable
   hovels: not those comforts of civilization without which civilized man
   is far more miserable than the meanest savage; oppressed as he is by all
   its insidious evils, within the daily and taunting prospect of its
   innumerable benefits assiduously exhibited before him:--no; for the
   pride of power, for the miserable isolation of pride, for the false
   pleasures of the hundredth part of society. No greater evidence is
   afforded of the wide extended and radical mistakes of civilized man than
   this fact: those arts which are essential to his very being are held in
   the greatest contempt; employments are lucrative in an inverse ratio to
   their usefulness (See Rousseau, "De l'Inegalite parmi les Hommes", note
   7.): the jeweller, the toyman, the actor gains fame and wealth by the
   exercise of his useless and ridiculous art; whilst the cultivator of the
   earth, he without whom society must cease to subsist, struggles through
   contempt and penury, and perishes by that famine which but for his
   unceasing exertions would annihilate the rest of mankind.
   
   I will not insult common sense by insisting on the doctrine of the
   natural equality of man. The question is not concerning its
   desirableness, but its practicability: so far as it is practicable, it
   is desirable. That state of human society which approaches nearer to an
   equal partition of its benefits and evils should, caeteris paribus, be
   preferred: but so long as we conceive that a wanton expenditure of human
   labour, not for the necessities, not even for the luxuries of the mass
   of society, but for the egotism and ostentation of a few of its members,
   is defensible on the ground of public justice, so long we neglect to
   approximate to the redemption of the human race.
   
   Labour is required for physical, and leisure for moral improvement: from
   the former of these advantages the rich, and from the latter the poor,
   by the inevitable conditions of their respective situations, are
   precluded. A state which should combine the advantages of both would be
   subjected to the evils of neither. He that is deficient in firm health,
   or vigorous intellect, is but half a man: hence it follows that to
   subject the labouring classes to unnecessary labour is wantonly
   depriving them of any opportunities of intellectual improvement; and
   that the rich are heaping up for their own mischief the disease,
   lassitude, and ennui by which their existence is rendered an intolerable
   burthen.
   
   English reformers exclaim against sinecures,--but the true pension list
   is the rent-roll of the landed proprietors: wealth is a power usurped by
   the few, to compel the many to labour for their benefit. The laws which
   support this system derive their force from the ignorance and credulity
   of its victims: they are the result of a conspiracy of the few against
   the many, who are themselves obliged to purchase this pre-eminence by
   the loss of all real comfort.
   
   'The commodities that substantially contribute to the subsistence of the
   human species form a very short catalogue: they demand from us but a
   slender portion of industry. If these only were produced, and
   sufficiently produced, the species of man would be continued. If the
   labour necessarily required to produce them were equitably divided among
   the poor, and, still more, if it were equitably divided among all, each
   man's share of labour would be light, and his portion of leisure would
   be ample. There was a time when this leisure would have been of small
   comparative value: it is to be hoped that the time will come when it
   will be applied to the most important purposes. Those hours which are
   not required for the production of the necessaries of life may be
   devoted to the cultivation of the understanding, the enlarging our stock
   of knowledge, the refining our taste, and thus opening to us new and
   more exquisite sources of enjoyment.
   
   ...
   
   'It was perhaps necessary that a period of monopoly and oppression
   should subsist, before a period of cultivated equality could subsist.
   Savages perhaps would never have been excited to the discovery of truth
   and the invention of art but by the narrow motives which such a period
   affords. But surely, after the savage state has ceased, and men have set
   out in the glorious career of discovery and invention, monopoly and
   oppression cannot be necessary to prevent them from returning to a state
   of barbarism.'--Godwin's "Enquirer", Essay 2. See also "Pol. Jus.", book
   8, chapter 2.
   
   It is a calculation of this admirable author, that all the conveniences
   of civilized life might be produced, if society would divide the labour
   equally among its members, by each individual being employed in labour
   two hours during the day.
   
   5. 112, 113:--
   
   or religion
   Drives his wife raving mad.
   
   I am acquainted with a lady of considerable accomplishments, and the
   mother of a numerous family, whom the Christian religion has goaded to
   incurable insanity. A parallel case is, I believe, within the experience
   of every physician.
   
   Nam iam saepe homines patriam, carosquo parentes
   Prodiderunt, vitare Acherusia templa petentes.--Lucretius.
   
   5. 189:--
   
   Even love is sold.
   
   Not even the intercourse of the sexes is exempt from the despotism of
   positive institution. Law pretends even to govern the indisciplinable
   wanderings of passion, to put fetters on the clearest deductions of
   reason, and, by appeals to the will, to subdue the involuntary
   affections of our nature. Love is inevitably consequent upon the
   perception of loveliness. Love withers under constraint: its very
   essence is liberty: it is compatible neither with obedience, jealousy,
   nor fear: it is there most pure, perfect, and unlimited, where its
   votaries live in confidence, equality, and unreserve.
   
   How long then ought the sexual connection to last? what law ought to
   specify the extent of the grievances which should limit its duration? A
   husband and wife ought to continue so long united as they love each
   other: any law which should bind them to cohabitation for one moment
   after the decay of their affection would be a most intolerable tyranny,
   and the most unworthy of toleration. How odious an usurpation of the
   right of private judgement should that law be considered which should
   make the ties of friendship indissoluble, in spite of the caprices, the
   inconstancy, the fallibility, and capacity for improvement of the human
   mind. And by so much would the fetters of love be heavier and more
   unendurable than those of friendship, as love is more vehement and
   capricious, more dependent on those delicate peculiarities of
   imagination, and less capable of reduction to the ostensible merits of
   the object.
   
   The state of society in which we exist is a mixture of feudal savageness
   and imperfect civilization. The narrow and unenlightened morality of the
   Christian religion is an aggravation of these evils. It is not even
   until lately that mankind have admitted that happiness is the sole end
   of the science of ethics, as of all other sciences; and that the
   fanatical idea of mortifying the flesh for the love of God has been
   discarded. I have heard, indeed, an ignorant collegian adduce, in favour
   of Christianity, its hostility to every worldly feeling! (The first
   Christian emperor made a law by which seduction was punished with death;
   if the female pleaded her own consent, she also was punished with death;
   if the parents endeavoured to screen the criminals, they were banished
   and their estates were confiscated; the slaves who might be accessory
   were burned alive, or forced to swallow melted lead. The very offspring
   of an illegal love were involved in the consequences of the
   sentence.--Gibbon's "Decline and Fall", etc., volume 2, page 210. See
   also, for the hatred of the primitive Christians to love and even
   marriage, page 269.)
   
   But if happiness be the object of morality, of all human unions and
   disunions; if the worthiness of every action is to be estimated by the
   quantity of pleasurable sensation it is calculated to produce, then the
   connection of the sexes is so long sacred as it contributes to the
   comfort of the parties, and is naturally dissolved when its evils are
   greater than its benefits. There is nothing immoral in this separation.
   Constancy has nothing virtuous in itself, independently of the pleasure
   it confers, and partakes of the temporizing spirit of vice in proportion
   as it endures tamely moral defects of magnitude in the object of its
   indiscreet choice. Love is free: to promise for ever to love the same
   woman is not less absurd than to promise to believe the same creed: such
   a vow, in both cases, excludes us from all inquiry. The language of the
   votarist is this: The woman I now love may be infinitely inferior to
   many others; the creed I now profess may be a mass of errors and
   absurdities; but I exclude myself from all future information as to the
   amiability of the one and the truth of the other, resolving blindly, and
   in spite of conviction, to adhere to them. Is this the language of
   delicacy and reason? Is the love of such a frigid heart of more worth
   than its belief?
   
   The present system of constraint does no more, in the majority of
   instances, than make hypocrites or open enemies. Persons of delicacy and
   virtue, unhappily united to one whom they find it impossible to love,
   spend the loveliest season of their life in unproductive efforts to
   appear otherwise than they are, for the sake of the feelings of their
   partner or the welfare of their mutual offspring: those of less
   generosity and refinement openly avow their disappointment, and linger
   out the remnant of that union, which only death can dissolve, in a state
   of incurable bickering and hostility. The early education of their
   children takes its colour from the squabbles of the parents; they are
   nursed in a systematic school of ill-humour, violence, and falsehood.
   Had they been suffered to part at the moment when indifference rendered
   their union irksome, they would have been spared many years of misery:
   they would have connected themselves more suitably, and would have found
   that happiness in the society of more congenial partners which is for
   ever denied them by the despotism of marriage. They would have been
   separately useful and happy members of society, who, whilst united, were
   miserable and rendered misanthropical by misery. The conviction that
   wedlock is indissoluble holds out the strongest of all temptations to
   the perverse: they indulge without restraint in acrimony, and all the
   little tyrannies of domestic life, when they know that their victim is
   without appeal. If this connection were put on a rational basis, each
   would be assured that habitual ill-temper would terminate in separation,
   and would check this vicious and dangerous propensity.
   
   Prostitution is the legitimate offspring of marriage and its
   accompanying errors. Women, for no other crime than having followed the
   dictates of a natural appetite, are driven with fury from the comforts
   and sympathies of society. It is less venial than murder; and the
   punishment which is inflicted on her who destroys her child to escape
   reproach is lighter than the life of agony and disease to which the
   prostitute is irrecoverably doomed. Has a woman obeyed the impulse of
   unerring nature;--society declares war against her, pitiless and eternal
   war: she must be the tame slave, she must make no reprisals; theirs is
   the right of persecution, hers the duty of endurance. She lives a life
   of infamy: the loud and bitter laugh of scorn scares her from all
   return. She dies of long and lingering disease: yet SHE is in fault, SHE
   is the criminal, SHE the froward and untamable child,--and society,
   forsooth, the pure and virtuous matron, who casts her as an abortion
   from her undefiled bosom! Society avenges herself on the criminals of
   her own creation; she is employed in anathematizing the vice to-day,
   which yesterday she was the most zealous to teach. Thus is formed
   one-tenth of the population of London: meanwhile the evil is twofold.
   Young men, excluded by the fanatical idea of chastity from the society
   of modest and accomplished women, associate with these vicious and
   miserable beings, destroying thereby all those exquisite and delicate
   sensibilities whose existence cold-hearted worldlings have denied;
   annihilating all genuine passion, and debasing that to a selfish feeling
   which is the excess of generosity and devotedness. Their body and mind
   alike crumble into a hideous wreck of humanity; idiocy and disease
   become perpetuated in their miserable offspring, and distant generations
   suffer for the bigoted morality of their forefathers. Chastity is a
   monkish and evangelical superstition, a greater foe to natural
   temperance even than unintellectual sensuality; it strikes at the root
   of all domestic happiness, and consigns more than half of the human race
   to misery, that some few may monopolize according to law. A system could
   not well have been devised more studiously hostile to human happiness
   than marriage.
   
   I conceive that from the abolition of marriage, the fit and natural
   arrangement of sexual connection would result. I by no means assert that
   the intercourse would be promiscuous: on the contrary, it appears, from
   the relation of parent to child, that this union is generally of long
   duration, and marked above all others with generosity and self-devotion.
   But this is a subject which it is perhaps premature to discuss. That
   which will result from the abolition of marriage will be natural and
   right; because choice and change will be exempted from restraint.
   
   In fact, religion and morality, as they now stand, compose a practical
   code of misery and servitude: the genius of human happiness must tear
   every leaf from the accursed book of God ere man can read the
   inscription on his heart. How would morality, dressed up in stiff stays
   and finery, start from her own disgusting image should she look in the
   mirror of nature!--
   
   6. 45, 46:--
   
   To the red and baleful sun
   That faintly twinkles there.
   
   The north polar star, to which the axis of the earth, in its present
   state of obliquity, points. It is exceedingly probable, from many
   considerations, that this obliquity will gradually diminish, until the
   equator coincides with the ecliptic: the nights and days will then
   become equal on the earth throughout the year, and probably the seasons
   also. There is no great extravagance in presuming that the progress of
   the perpendicularity of the poles may be as rapid as the progress of
   intellect; or that there should be a perfect identity between the moral
   and physical improvement of the human species. It is certain that wisdom
   is not compatible with disease, and that, in the present state of the
   climates of the earth, health, in the true and comprehensive sense of
   the word, is out of the reach of civilized man. Astronomy teaches us
   that the earth is now in its progress, and that the poles are every year
   becoming more and more perpendicular to the ecliptic. The strong
   evidence afforded by the history of mythology, and geological
   researches, that some event of this nature has taken place already,
   affords a strong presumption that this progress is not merely an
   oscillation, as has been surmised by some late astronomers. (Laplace,
   "Systeme du Monde".)
   
   Bones of animals peculiar to the torrid zone have been found in the
   north of Siberia, and on the banks of the river Ohio. Plants have been
   found in the fossil state in the interior of Germany, which demand the
   present climate of Hindostan for their production. (Cabanis, "Rapports
   du Physique et du Moral de l'Homme", volume 2 page 406.) The researches
   of M. Bailly establish the existence of a people who inhabited a tract
   in Tartary 49 degrees north latitude, of greater antiquity than either
   the Indians, the Chinese, or the Chaldeans, from whom these nations
   derived their sciences and theology. (Bailly, "Lettres sur les Sciences,
   a Voltaire".) We find, from the testimony of ancient writers, that
   Britain, Germany, and France were much colder than at present, and that
   their great rivers were annually frozen over. Astronomy teaches us also
   that since this period the obliquity of the earth's position has been
   considerably diminished.
   
   6. 171-173:--
   
   No atom of this turbulence fulfils
   A vague and unnecessitated task,
   Or acts but as it must and ought to act.
   
   'Deux examples serviront a nous rendre plus sensible le principe qui
   vient d'etre pose; nous emprunterons l'un du physique at l'autre du
   moral. Dans un tourbillon de poussiere qu'eleve un vent impetueux,
   quelque confus qu'il paraisse a nos yeux; dans la plus affreuse tempete
   excitee par des vents opposes qui soulevent les flots,--il n'y a pas une
   seule molecule de poussiere ou d'eau qui soit placee au HASARD, qui
   n'ait sa cause suffisante pour occuper le lieu ou elle se trouve, et qui
   n'agisse rigoureusement de la maniere dont ella doit agir. Un geometre
   qui connaitrait exactement les differentes forces qui agissent dans ces
   deux cas, at las proprietes des molecules qui sent mues, demontrerait
   que d'apres des causes donnees, chaque molecule agit precisement comme
   ella doit agir, et ne peut agir autrement qu'elle ne fait.
   
   'Dans les convulsions terribles qui agitent quelquefois les societes
   politiques, et qui produisent souvent le renversement d'un empire, il
   n'y a pas une seule action, une seule parole, une seule pensee, une
   seule volonte, une seule passion dans las agens qui concourent a la
   revolution comme destructeurs ou comme victimes, qui ne soit necessaire,
   qui n'agissa comme ella doit agir, qui n'opere infailliblemont les
   effets qu'eile doit operer, suivant la place qu'occupent ces agens dana
   ce tourbillon moral. Cela paraitrait evident pour une intelligence qui
   sera en etat de saisir et d'apprecier toutes las actions at reactions
   des esprits at des corps de ceux qui contribuent a cette
   revolution.'--"Systeme de la Nature", volume 1, page 44.
   
   6. 198:--
   
   Necessity! thou mother of the world!
   
   He who asserts the doctrine of Necessity means that, contemplating the
   events which compose the moral and material universe, he beholds only an
   immense and uninterrupted chain of causes and effects, no one of which
   could occupy any other place than it does occupy, or act in any other
   place than it does act. The idea of necessity is obtained by our
   experience of the connection between objects, the uniformity of the
   operations of nature, the constant conjunction of similar events, and
   the consequent inference of one from the other. Mankind are therefore
   agreed in the admission of necessity, if they admit that these two
   circumstances take place in voluntary action. Motive is to voluntary
   action in the human mind what cause is to effect in the material
   universe. The word liberty, as applied to mind, is analogous to the word
   chance as applied to matter: they spring from an ignorance of the
   certainty of the conjunction of antecedents and consequents.
   
   Every human being is irresistibly impelled to act precisely as he does
   act: in the eternity which preceded his birth a chain of causes was
   generated, which, operating under the name of motives, make it
   impossible that any thought of his mind, or any action of his life,
   should be otherwise than it is. Were the doctrine of Necessity false,
   the human mind would no longer be a legitimate object of science; from
   like causes it would be in vain that we should expect like effects; the
   strongest motive would no longer be paramount over the conduct; all
   knowledge would be vague and undeterminate; we could not predict with
   any certainty that we might not meet as an enemy to-morrow him with whom
   we have parted in friendship to-night; the most probable inducements and
   the clearest reasonings would lose the invariable influence they
   possess. The contrary of this is demonstrably the fact. Similar
   circumstances produce the same unvariable effects. The precise character
   and motives of any man on any occasion being given, the moral
   philosopher could predict his actions with as much certainty as the
   natural philosopher could predict the effects of the mixture of any
   particular chemical substances. Why is the aged husbandman more
   experienced than the young beginner? Because there is a uniform,
   undeniable necessity in the operations of the material universe. Why is
   the old statesman more skilful than the raw politician) Because, relying
   on the necessary conjunction of motive and action, he proceeds to
   produce moral effects, by the application of those moral causes which
   experience has shown to be effectual. Some actions may be found to which
   we can attach no motives, but these are the effects of causes with which
   we are unacquainted. Hence the relation which motive bears to voluntary
   action is that of cause to effect; nor, placed in this point of view, is
   it, or ever has it been, the subject of popular or philosophical
   dispute. None but the few fanatics who are engaged in the herculean task
   of reconciling the justice of their God with the misery of man, will
   longer outrage common sense by the supposition of an event without a
   cause, a voluntary action without a motive. History, politics, morals,
   criticism, all grounds of reasonings, all principles of science, alike
   assume the truth of the doctrine of Necessity. No farmer carrying his
   corn to market doubts the sale of it at the market price. The master of
   a manufactory no more doubts that he can purchase the human labour
   necessary for his purposes than that his machinery will act as they have
   been accustomed to act.
   
   But, whilst none have scrupled to admit necessity as influencing matter,
   many have disputed its dominion over mind. Independently of its
   militating with the received ideas of the justice of God, it is by no
   means obvious to a superficial inquiry. When the mind observes its own
   operations, it feels no connection of motive and action: but as we know
   'nothing more of causation than the constant conjunction of objects and
   the consequent inference of one from the other, as we find that these
   two circumstances are universally allowed to have place in voluntary
   action, we may be easily led to own that they are subjected to the
   necessity common to all causes.' The actions of the will have a regular
   conjunction with circumstances and characters; motive is to voluntary
   action what cause is to effect. But the only idea we can form of
   causation is a constant conjunction of similar objects, and the
   consequent inference of one from the other: wherever this is the case
   necessity is clearly established.
   
   The idea of liberty, applied metaphorically to the will, has sprung from
   a misconception of the meaning of the word power. What is power?--id
   quod potest, that which can produce any given effect. To deny power is
   to say that nothing can or has the power to be or act. In the only true
   sense of the word power, it applies with equal force to the lodestone as
   to the human will. Do you think these motives, which I shall present,
   are powerful enough to rouse him? is a question just as common as, Do
   you think this lever has the power of raising this weight? The advocates
   of free-will assert that the will has the power of refusing to be
   determined by the strongest motive; but the strongest motive is that
   which, overcoming all others, ultimately prevails; this assertion
   therefore amounts to a denial of the will being ultimately determined by
   that motive which does determine it, which is absurd. But it is equally
   certain that a man cannot resist the strongest motive as that he cannot
   overcome a physical impossibility.
   
   The doctrine of Necessity tends to introduce a great change into the
   established notions of morality, and utterly to destroy religion. Reward
   and punishment must be considered, by the Necessarian, merely as motives
   which he would employ in order to procure the adoption or abandonment of
   any given line of conduct. Desert, in the present sense of the word,
   would no longer have any meaning; and he who should inflict pain upon
   another for no better reason than that he deserved it, would only
   gratify his revenge under pretence of satisfying justice? It is not
   enough, says the advocate of free-will, that a criminal should be
   prevented from a repetition of his crime: he should feel pain, and his
   torments, when justly inflicted, ought precisely to be proportioned to
   his fault. But utility is morality; that which is incapable of producing
   happiness is useless; and though the crime of Damiens must be condemned,
   yet the frightful torments which revenge, under the name of justice,
   inflicted on this unhappy man cannot be supposed to have augmented, even
   at the long run, the stock of pleasurable sensation in the world. At the
   same time, the doctrine of Necessity does not in the least diminish our
   disapprobation of vice. The conviction which all feel that a viper is a
   poisonous animal, and that a tiger is constrained, by the inevitable
   condition of his existence, to devour men, does not induce us to avoid
   them lass sedulously, or, even more, to hesitate in destroying them: but
   he would surely be of a hard heart who, meeting with a serpent on a
   desert island, or in a situation where it was incapable of injury,
   should wantonly deprive it of existence. A Necessarian is inconsequent
   to his own principles if he indulges in hatred or contempt; the
   compassion which he feels for the criminal is unmixed with a desire of
   injuring him: he looks with an elevated and dreadless composure upon the
   links of the universal chain as they pass before his eyes; whilst
   cowardice, curiosity, and inconsistency only assail him in proportion to
   the feebleness and indistinctness with which he has perceived and
   rejected the delusions of free-will.
   
   Religion is the perception of the relation in which we stand to the
   principle of the universe. But if the principle of the universe be not
   an organic being, the model and prototype of man, the relation between
   it and human beings is absolutely none. Without some insight into its
   will respecting our actions religion is nugatory and vain. But will is
   only a mode of animal mind; moral qualities also are such as only a
   human being can possess; to attribute them to the principle of the
   universe is to annex to it properties incompatible with any possible
   definition of its nature. It is probable that the word God was
   originally only an expression denoting the unknown cause of the known
   events which men perceived in the universe. By the vulgar mistake of a
   metaphor for a real being, of a word for a thing, it became a man,
   endowed with human qualities and governing the universe as an earthly
   monarch governs his kingdom. Their addresses to this imaginary being,
   indeed, are much in the same style as those of subjects to a king. They
   acknowledge his benevolence, deprecate his anger, and supplicate his
   favour.
   
   But the doctrine of Necessity teaches us that in no case could any event
   have happened otherwise than it did happen, and that, if God is the
   author of good, He is also the author of evil; that, if He is entitled
   to our gratitude for the one, He is entitled to our hatred for the
   other; that, admitting the existence of this hypothetic being, He is
   also subjected to the dominion of an immutable necessity. It is plain
   that the same arguments which prove that God is the author of food,
   light, and life, prove Him also to be the author of poison, darkness,
   and death. The wide-wasting earthquake, the storm, the battle, and the
   tyranny, are attributable to this hypothetic being in the same degree as
   the fairest forms of nature, sunshine, liberty, and peace.
   
   But we are taught, by the doctrine of Necessity, that there is neither
   good nor evil in the universe, otherwise than as the events to which we
   apply these epithets have relation to our own peculiar mode of being.
   Still less than with the hypothesis of a God will the doctrine of
   Necessity accord with the belief of a future state of punishment. God
   made man such as he is, and than damned him for being so: for to say
   that God was the author of all good, and man the author of all evil, is
   to say that one man made a straight line and a crooked one, and another
   man made the incongruity.
   
   A Mahometan story, much to the present purpose, is recorded, wherein
   Adam and Moses are introduced disputing before God in the following
   manner. Thou, says Moses, art Adam, whom God created, and animated with
   the breath of life, and caused to be worshipped by the angels, and
   placed in Paradise, from whence mankind have been expelled for thy
   fault. Whereto Adam answered, Thou art Moses, whom God chose for His
   apostle, and entrusted with His word, by giving thee the tables of the
   law, and whom He vouchsafed to admit to discourse with Himself. How many
   years dost thou find the law was written before I was created? Says
   Moses, Forty. And dost thou not find, replied Adam, these words therein,
   And Adam rebelled against his Lord and transgressed? Which Moses
   confessing, Dost thou therefore blame me, continued he, for doing that
   which God wrote of me that I should do, forty years before I was
   created, nay, for what was decreed concerning me fifty thousand years
   before the creation of heaven and earth?--Sale's "Prelim. Disc. to the
   Koran", page 164.
   
   7. 13:--
   
   There is no God.
   
   This negation must be understood solely to affect a creative Deity. The
   hypothesis of a pervading Spirit co-eternal with the universe remains
   unshaken.
   
   A close examination of the validity of the proofs adduced to support any
   proposition is the only secure way of attaining truth, on the advantages
   of which it is unnecessary to descant: our knowledge of the existence of
   a Deity is a subject of such importance that it cannot be too minutely
   investigated; in consequence of this conviction we proceed briefly and
   impartially to examine the proofs which have been adduced. It is
   necessary first to consider the nature of belief.
   
   When a proposition is offered to the mind, it perceives the agreement or
   disagreement of the ideas of which it is composed. A perception of their
   agreement is termed BELIEF. Many obstacles frequently prevent this
   perception from being immediate; these the mind attempts to remove in
   order that the perception may be distinct. The mind is active in the
   investigation in order to perfect the state of perception of the
   relation which the component ideas of the proposition bear to each,
   which is passive: the investigation being confused with the perception
   has induced many falsely to imagine that the mind is active in
   belief,--that belief is an act of volition,--in consequence of which it
   may be regulated by the mind. Pursuing, continuing this mistake, they
   have attached a degree of criminality to disbelief; of which, in its
   nature, it is incapable: it is equally incapable of merit.
   
   Belief, then, is a passion, the strength of which, like every other
   passion, is in precise proportion to the degrees of excitement.
   
   The degrees of excitement are three.
   
   The senses are the sources of all knowledge to the mind; consequently
   their evidence claims the strongest assent.
   
   The decision of the mind, founded upon our own experience, derived from
   these sources, claims the next degree.
   
   The experience of others, which addresses itself to the former one,
   occupies the lowest degree.
   
   (A graduated scale, on which should be marked the capabilities of
   propositions to approach to the test of the senses, would be a just
   barometer of the belief which ought to be attached to them.)
   
   Consequently no testimony can be admitted which is contrary to reason;
   reason is founded on the evidence of our senses.
   
   Every proof may be referred to one of these three divisions: it is to be
   considered what arguments we receive from each of them, which should
   convince us of the existence of a Deity.
   
   1st, The evidence of the senses. If the Deity should appear to us, if He
   should convince our senses of His existence, this revelation would
   necessarily command belief. Those to whom the Deity has thus appeared
   have the strongest possible conviction of His existence. But the God of
   Theologians is incapable of local visibility.
   
   2d, Reason. It is urged that man knows that whatever is must either have
   had a beginning, or have existed from all eternity: he also knows that
   whatever is not eternal must have had a cause. When this reasoning is
   applied to the universe, it is necessary to prove that it was created:
   until that is clearly demonstrated we may reasonably suppose that it has
   endured from all eternity. We must prove design before we can infer a
   designer. The only idea which we can form of causation is derivable from
   the constant conjunction of objects, and the consequent inference of one
   from the other. In a case where two propositions are diametrically
   opposite, the mind believes that which is least incomprehensible;--it is
   easier to suppose that the universe has existed from all eternity than
   to conceive a being beyond its limits capable of creating it: if the
   mind sinks beneath the weight of one, is it an alleviation to increase
   the intolerability of the burthen?
   
   The other argument, which is founded on a man's knowledge of his own
   existence, stands thus. A man knows not only that he now is, but that
   once he was not; consequently there must have been a cause. But our idea
   of causation is alone derivable from the constant conjunction of objects
   and the consequent inference of one from the other; and, reasoning
   experimentally, we can only infer from effects causes exactly adequate
   to those effects. But there certainly is a generative power which is
   effected by certain instruments: we cannot prove that it is inherent in
   these instruments; nor is the contrary hypothesis capable of
   demonstration: we admit that the generative power is incomprehensible;
   but to suppose that the same effect is produced by an eternal,
   omniscient, omnipotent being leaves the cause in the same obscurity, but
   renders it more incomprehensible.
   
   3d, Testimony. It is required that testimony should not be contrary to
   reason. The testimony that the Deity convinces the senses of men of His
   existence can only be admitted by us if our mind considers it less
   probable that these men should have been deceived than that the Deity
   should have appeared to them. Our reason can never admit the testimony
   of men, who not only declare that they were eye-witnesses of miracles,
   but that the Deity was irrational; for He commanded that He should be
   believed, He proposed the highest rewards for faith, eternal punishments
   for disbelief. We can only command voluntary actions; belief is not an
   act of volition; the mind is even passive, or involuntarily active; from
   this it is evident that we have no sufficient testimony, or rather that
   testimony is insufficient to prove the being of a God. It has been
   before shown that it cannot be deduced from reason. They alone, then,
   who have been convinced by the evidence of the senses can believe it.
   
   Hence it is evident that, having no proofs from either of the three
   sources of conviction, the mind CANNOT believe the existence of a
   creative God: it is also evident that, as belief is a passion of the
   mind, no degree of criminality is attachable to disbelief; and that they
   only are reprehensible who neglect to remove the false medium through
   which their mind views any subject of discussion. Every reflecting mind
   must acknowledge that there is no proof of the existence of a Deity.
   
   God is an hypothesis, and, as such, stands in need of proof: the onus
   probandi rests on the theist. Sir Isaac Newton says: Hypotheses non
   fingo, quicquid enim ex phaenomenis non deducitur hypothesis vocanda
   est, et hypothesis vel metaphysicae, vel physicae, vel qualitatum
   occultarum, seu mechanicae, in philosophia locum non habent. To all
   proofs of the existence of a creative God apply this valuable rule. We
   see a variety of bodies possessing a variety of powers: we merely know
   their effects; we are in a state of ignorance with respect to their
   essences and causes. These Newton calls the phenomena of things; but the
   pride of philosophy is unwilling to admit its ignorance of their causes.
   From the phenomena, which are the objects of our senses, we attempt to
   infer a cause, which we call God, and gratuitously endow it with all
   negative and contradictory qualities. From this hypothesis we invent
   this general name, to conceal our ignorance of causes and essences. The
   being called God by no means answers with the conditions prescribed by
   Newton; it bears every mark of a veil woven by philosophical conceit, to
   hide the ignorance of philosophers even from themselves. They borrow the
   threads of its texture from the anthropomorphism of the vulgar. Words
   have been used by sophists for the same purposes, from the occult
   qualities of the peripatetics to the effluvium of Boyle and the
   crinities or nebulae of Herschel. God is represented as infinite,
   eternal, incomprehensible; He is contained under every predicate in non
   that the logic of ignorance could fabricate. Even His worshippers allow
   that it is impossible to form any idea of Him: they exclaim with the
   French poet,
   
   Pour dire ce qu'il est, il faut etre lui-meme.
   
   Lord Bacon says that atheism leaves to man reason, philosophy, natural
   piety, laws, reputation, and everything that can serve to conduct him to
   virtue; but superstition destroys all these, and erects itself into a
   tyranny over the understandings of men: hence atheism never disturbs the
   government, but renders man more clear-sighted, since he seas nothing
   beyond the boundaries of the present life.--Bacon's "Moral Essays".
   
   La premiere theologie de l'homme lui fit d'abord craindre at adorer les
   elements meme, des objets materiels at grossiers; il randit ensuite ses
   hommages a des agents presidant aux elements, a des genies inferieurs, a
   des heros, ou a des hommes doues de grandes qualites. A force de
   reflechir il crut simplifier les choses en soumettant la nature entiere
   a un seul agent, a un esprit, a una ame universelle, qui mettait cette
   nature et ses parties en mouvement. En remontant de causes en causes,
   les mortels ont fini par ne rien voir; at c'est dans cette obscurite
   qu'ils ont place leur Dieu; c'est dans cat abime tenebreux que leur
   imagination inquiete travaille toujours a se fabriquer des chimeres, qui
   les affligeront jusqu'a ce que la connaissance da la nature les detrompe
   des fantomes qu'ils ont toujours si vainement adores.
   
   Si nous voulons nous rendre compte de nos idees sur la Divinite, nous
   serons obliges de convanir que, par le mot "Dieu", les hommes n'ont
   jamais pu designer que la cause la plus cachee, la plus eloignee, la
   plus inconnue des effets qu'ils voyaient: ils ne font usage de ce mot,
   que lorsque le jeu des causes naturelles at connues cesse d'etre visible
   pour eux; des qu'ils perdent le fil de ces causes, on des que leur
   esprit ne peut plus en suivre la chaine, ils tranchent leur difficulte,
   at terminent leurs recherches en appellant Dieu la derniere des causes,
   c'est-a-dire celle qui est au-dela de toutes les causes qu'ils
   connaissent; ainsi ils ne font qu'assigner une denomination vague a une
   cause ignoree, a laquelle leur paresse ou les bornes de leurs
   connaissances les forcent de s'arreter. Toutes les fois qu'on nous dit
   que Dieu est l'auteur de quelque phenomene, cela signifie qu'on ignore
   comment un tel phenomene a pu s'operer par le secours des forces ou des
   causes que nous connaissons dans la nature. C'est ainsi que le commun
   des hommes, dont l'ignorance est la partage, attribue a la Divinite non
   seulement les effets inusites qui las frappent, mais encore les
   evenemens les plus simples, dont les causes sont les plus faciles a
   connaitre pour quiconque a pu les mediter. En un mot, l'homme a toujours
   respecte les causes inconnues des effets surprenans, que son ignorance
   l'empechait de demeler. Ce fut sur les debris de la nature que les
   hommes eleverent le colosse imaginaire de la Divinite.
   
   Si l'ignorance de la nature donna la naissance aux dieux, la
   connaissance de la nature est faite pour les detruire. A mesure que
   l'homme s'instruit, ses forces at ses ressources augmentent avec ses
   lumieres; les sciences, les arts conservateurs, l'industrie, lui
   fournissent des secours; l'experience le rassure ou lui procure des
   moyens de resister aux efforts de bien des causes
   qui cessent de l'alarmer des qu'il les a connues. En un mot, ses
   terreurs se dissipent dans la meme proportion que son esprit s'eclaire.
   L'homnme instruit cesse d'etre superstitieux.
   
   Ce n'est jamais que sur parole que des peuples entiers adorent le Dieu
   de leurs peres at de leurs pretres: l'autorite, la confiance, la
   soumission, et l'habitude leur tiennent lieu de conviction et de
   preuves; ils se prosternent et prient, parce que leurs peres leur out
   appris a se prosterner at prier: mais pourquoi ceux-ci se sont-ils mis a
   genoux? C'est que dans les temps eloignes leurs legislateurs et leurs
   guides leur en ont fait un devoir. 'Adorez at croyez,' ont-ils dit, 'des
   dieux que vous ne pouvez comprendre; rapportez-vous-en a notre sagesse
   profonde; nous en savons plus que vous sur la divinite.' Mais pourquoi
   m'en rapporterais-je a vous? C'est que Dieu le veut ainsi, c'est que
   Dieu vous punira si vous osez resister. Mais ce Dieu n'est-il donc pas
   la chose en question? Cependant las hommes se sont toujours payes de ce
   cercle vicieux; la paresse de leur esprit leur fit trouver plus court de
   s'en rapporter au jugament des autres. Toutes las notions religieuses
   sent fondees uniquement sur l'autorite; toutes les religions du monde
   defendent l'examen et ne veulent pas que l'on raisonne; c'est l'autorite
   qui veut qu'on croie en Dieu; ce Dieu n'est lui-meme fonde que sur
   l'autorite de quelques hommes qui pretendent le connaitre, et venir de
   sa part pour l'annoncer a la terre. Un Dieu fait par les hommes a sans
   doute bosom des hommes pour se faire connaitre aux hommes.
   
   Ne serait-ce donc que pour des pretres, des inspires, des metaphysiciens
   que serait reservee la conviction de l'existence d'un Dieu, que l'on dit
   neanmoins si necessaire a tout le genre humain? Mais trouvons-nous de
   l'harmonie entre les opinions theologiques des differens inspires, ou
   des penseurs repandus sur la terre? Ceux meme qui font profession
   d'adorer le meme Dieu, sent-ils d'accord sur son compte? Sont-ils
   contents des preuves que leurs collegues apportent de son existence?
   Souscrivent-ils unanimement aux idees qu'ils presentent sur sa nature,
   sur sa conduite, sur la facon d'entendre ses pretandus oracles? Est-il
   une centree sur la terre ou la science de Dieu se soit reellement
   parfectionnee? A-t-elle pris quelqne part la consistance et l'uniformite
   que nous voyons prendre aux connaissances humaines, aux arts les plus
   futiles, aux metiers les plus meprises? Ces mots d'esprit,
   d'immaterialite, de creation, de predestination, de grace; cette foule
   de distinctions subtiles dont la theologie s'est parteut remplie dans
   quelques pays, ces inventions si ingenieuses, imaginees par des penseurs
   qui se sont succedes depuis taut de siecles, n'ont fait, helas!
   qu'embrouiller les choses, et jamais la science la plus necassaire aux
   hommes n'a jusqu'ici pu acquerir la moindre fixite. Depuis des milliers
   d'annees ces reveurs oisifs se sont perpetuellement relayes pour mediter
   la Divinite, pour deviner ses voies cachees, pour inventer des
   hypotheses propres a developper cette enigme importante. Leur peu de
   succes n'a point decourage la vanite theologique; toujours on a parle de
   Dieu: on s'est egorge pour lui, et cet etre sublime demeure toujours le
   plus ignore et le plus discute.
   
   Les hommes auraient ete trop heureux, si, se bornant aux objets visibles
   qui les interessent, ils eussent employe a perfectionner leurs sciences
   reelles, leurs lois, leur morale, leur education, la moitie des efforts
   qu'ils ont mis dans leurs recherches sur la Divinite. Ils auraiant ete
   bien plus sages encore, et plus fortunes, s'ils eussent pu consentir a
   laisser leurs guides desoeuvres se quereller entre eux, et sonder des
   profondeurs capables de les etourdir, sans se meler de leurs disputes
   insensees. Mais il est de l'essence de l'ignorance d'attacher de
   l'importance a ce qu'elle ne comprend pas. La vanite humaine fait que
   l'esprit se roidit contra des difficultes. Plus un objet se derobe a nos
   yeux, plus nous faisons d'efforts pour le saisir, parce que des-lors il
   aiguillonne notre orgueil, il excite notre curiosite, il nous parait
   interessant. En combattant pour son Dieu chacun ne combattit en effet
   que pour les interets de sa propra vanite, qui de toutes les passions
   produites par la mal-organisation de la societe est la plus prompte a
   s'alarmer, et la plus propre a produire de tres grandes folies.
   
   Si ecartant pour un moment les idees facheuses que la theologie nous
   donne d'un Dieu capriciaux, dont les decrets partiaux et despotiques
   decident du sort des humains, nous ne voulons fixer nos yeux que sur la
   bonte pretendue, que tous les hommes, meme en tramblant devant ce Dieu,
   s'accordent a lui donner; si nous lui supposons le projet qu'on lui
   prete de n'avoir travaille que pour sa propre gloire, d'exiger les
   hommages des etres intelligens; de ne chercher dans ses oeuvres que le
   bien-etre du genre humain: comment concilier ces vues et ces
   dispositions avec l'ignorance vraiment invincible dans laquelle ce Dieu,
   si glorieux et si bon, laisse la plupart des hommes sur son compte? Si
   Dieu veut etre connu, cheri, remercie, que ne se montre-t-il sous des
   traits favorables a tous ces etres intelligens dont il veut etre aime et
   adore? Pourquoi ne point se manifester a toute la terre dune facon non
   equivoque, bien plus capable de nous convaincre que ces revelations
   particulieres qui semblent accuser la Divinite d'une partialite facheuse
   pour quelques-unes de ses creatures? La tout-puissant n'auroit-il donc
   pas des moyens plus convainquans de se montrer aux hommas que ces
   metamorphoses ridicules, cas incarnations pretendues, qui nous sont
   attestees par des ecrivains si peu d'accord entre eux dans les recits
   qu'ils en font? Au lieu de tant de miracles, inventes pour prouver la
   mission divine de tant de legislateurs reveres par les differens peuples
   du monde, le souverain des esprits ne pouvait-il pas convaincre tout
   d'un coup l'esprit humain des choses qu'il a voulu lui faire connaitre?
   Au lieu de suspendre un soleil dans la voute du firmament; au lieu de
   repandre sans ordre les etoiles et les constellations qui remplissent
   l'espace, n'eut-il pas ete plus conforme aux vues d'un Dieu si jaloux de
   sa gloire et si bien-intentionne pour l'homme d'ecrire, d'une facon non
   sujette a dispute, son nom, ses attributs, ses volontes permanentes en
   caracteres ineffacables, et lisibles egalement pour tous les habitants
   de la terre? Personne alors n'aurait pu douter de l'existence d'un Dieu,
   de ses volontes claires, de ses intentions visibles. Sous les yeux de ce
   Dieu si terrible, personne n'aurait eu l'audace de violer ses
   ordonnances; nul mortel n'eut ose se mettre dans le cas d'attirer sa
   colere: enfin nul homme n'eut eu le front d'en imposer en son nom, ou
   d'interpreter ses volontes suivant ses propres fantaisies.
   
   En effet, quand meme on admettrait l'existence du Dieu theologique et la
   realite des attributs si discordans qu'on lui donne, l'on n'en peut rien
   conclure, pour autoriser la conduite ou les cultes qu'on prescrit de lui
   rendre. La theologie est vraiment "le tonneau des Danaides". A force de
   qualites contradictoires et d'assartions hasardees, ella a, pour ainsi
   dire, tellement garrotte son Dieu qu'elle l'a mis dans l'impossibilite
   d'agir. S'il est infiniment bon, quelle raison aurions-nous de le
   craindre? S'il est infiniment sage, de quoi nous inquieter sur notre
   sort? S'il sait tout, pourquoi l'avertir de nos besoins, et le fatiguer
   de nos prieres? S'il est partout, pourquoi lui elever des temples? S'il
   est maitre de tout, pourquoi lui faire des sacrifices et des offrandes?
   S'il est juste, comment croire qu'il punisse des creatures qu'il a
   rempli de faiblesses? Si la grace fait tout en elles, quelle raison
   aurait-il de les recompenser? S'il est tout-puissant, comment
   l'offenser, comment lui resister? S'il est raisonnable, comment se
   mattrait-il en colere contre des aveugles, a qui il a laisse la liberte
   de deraisonner? S'il est immuable, de quel droit pretendrions-nous faire
   changer ses decrets? S'il est inconcevable, pourquoi nous en occuper?
   S'IL A PARLE, POURQUOI L'UNIVERS N'EST-IL PAS CONVAINCU? Si la
   connaissance d'un Dieu est la plus necessaire, pourquoi n'est-elle pas
   la plus evidente et a plus claire?--"Systeme de la Nature", London,
   1781.
   
   The enlightened and benevolent Pliny thus publicly professes himself an
   atheist:--Quapropter effigiem Dei formamque quaerere imbecillitatis
   humanae reor. Quisquis est Deus (si modo est alius) et quacunque in
   parte, totus est sensus, totus est visus, totus auditus, totus animae,
   totus animi, totus sui...Imperfectae vero in homine naturae praecipua
   solatia ne deum quidem posse omnia. Namque nec sibi potest mortem
   consciscere, si velit, quad homini dedit optimum in tantis vitae poenis:
   nec mortales aeternitata donare, aut revocare defunctos; nec facere ut
   qui vixit non vixerit, qui honores gessit non gessarit, nullumque habere
   in praeteritum ius, praeterquam oblivionis, atque (ut facetis quoque
   argumentis societas haec cum deo copuletur) ut bis dena viginti non
   sint, et multa similiter efficere non posse.--Per quae declaratur haud
   dubie naturae potentiam id quoque esse quad Deum vocamus.--Plin. "Nat.
   Hist." cap. de Deo.
   
   The consistent Newtonian is necessarily an atheist. See Sir W.
   Drummond's "Academical Questions", chapter 3.--Sir W. seems to consider
   the atheism to which it leads as a sufficient presumption of the
   falsehood of the system of gravitation; but surely it is more consistent
   with the good faith of philosophy to admit a deduction from facts than
   an hypothesis incapable of proof, although it might militate with the
   obstinate preconceptions of the mob. Had this author, instead of
   inveighing against the guilt and absurdity of atheism, demonstrated its
   falsehood, his conduct would have been more suited to the modesty of the
   sceptic and the toleration of the philosopher.
   
   Omnia enim per Dei potentiam facta sunt: imo quia naturae potentia nulla
   est nisi ipsa Dei potentia. Certum est nos eatenus Dei potentiam non
   intelligere, quatenus causas naturales ignoramus; adeoque stulte ad
   eandem Dei potentiam recurritur, quando rei alicuius causam naturalem,
   sive est, ipsam Dei potantiam ignoramus.-- Spinosa, "Tract.
   Theologico-Pol." chapter 1, page 14.
   
   7. 67:--
   
   Ahasuerus, rise!
   
   'Ahasuerus the Jew crept forth from the dark cave of Mount Carmel. Near
   two thousand years have elapsed since he was first goaded by
   never-ending restlessness to rove the globe from pole to pole. When our
   Lord was wearied with the burthen of His ponderous cross, and wanted to
   rest before the door of Ahasuerus, the unfeeling wretch drove Him away
   with brutality. The Saviour of mankind staggered, sinking under the
   heavy load, but uttered no complaint. An angel of death appeared before
   Ahasuerus, and exclaimed indignantly, "Barbarian! thou hast denied rest
   to the Son of man: be it denied thee also, until He comes to judge the
   world."
   
   'A black demon, let loose from hell upon Ahasuerus, goads him now from
   country to country; he is denied the consolation which death affords,
   and precluded from the rest of the peaceful grave.
   
   'Ahasuerus crept forth from the dark cave of Mount Carmel--he shook the
   dust from his beard--and taking up one of the skulls heaped there,
   hurled it down the eminence: it rebounded from the earth in shivered
   atoms. "This was my father!" roared Ahasuerus. Seven more skulls rolled
   down from rock to rock; while the infuriate Jew, following them with
   ghastly looks, exclaimed--"And these were my wives!" He still continued
   to hurl down skull after skull, roaring in dreadful accents--"And these,
   and these, and these were my children! They COULD DIE; but I! reprobate
   wretch! alas! I cannot die! Dreadful beyond conception is the judgement
   that hangs over me. Jerusalem fell--I crushed the sucking babe, and
   precipitated myself into the destructive flames. I cursed the
   Romans--but, alas! alas! the restless curse held me by the hair,--and I
   could not die!
   
   '"Rome the giantess fell--I placed myself before the falling statue--she
   fell and did not crush me. Nations sprang up and disappeared before
   me;--but I remained and did not die. From cloud-encircled cliffs did I
   precipitate myself into the ocean; but the foaming billows cast me upon
   the shore, and the burning arrow of existence pierced my cold heart
   again. I leaped into Etna's flaming abyss, and roared with the giants
   for ten long months, polluting with my groans the Mount's sulphureous
   mouth--ah! ten long months. The volcano fermented, and in a fiery stream
   of lava cast me up. I lay torn by the torture-snakes of hell amid the
   glowing cinders, and yet continued to exist.--A forest was on fire: I
   darted on wings of fury and despair into the crackling wood. Fire
   dropped upon me from the trees, but the flames only singed my limbs;
   alas! it could not consume them.--I now mixed with the butchers of
   mankind, and plunged in the tempest of the raging battle. I roared
   defiance to the infuriate Gaul, defiance to the victorious German; but
   arrows and spears rebounded in shivers from my body. The Saracen's
   flaming sword broke upon my skull: balls in vain hissed upon me: the
   lightnings of battle glared harmless around my loins: in vain did the
   elephant trample on me, in vain the iron hoof of the wrathful steed! The
   mine, big with destructive power, burst upon me, and hurled me high in
   the air--I fell on heaps of smoking limbs, but was only singed. The
   giant's steel club rebounded from my body; the executioner's hand could
   not strangle me, the tiger's tooth could not pierce me, nor would the
   hungry lion in the circus devour me. I cohabited with poisonous snakes,
   and pinched the red crest of the dragon.--The serpent stung, but could
   not destroy me. The dragon tormented, but dared not to devour me.--I now
   provoked the fury of tyrants: I said to Nero, 'Thou art a bloodhound!' I
   said to Christiern, 'Thou art a bloodhound!, I said to Muley Ismail,
   'Thou art a bloodhound!'--The tyrants invented cruel torments, but did
   not kill me. Ha! not to be able to die--not to be able to die--not to be
   permitted to rest after the toils of life--to be doomed to be imprisoned
   for ever in the clay-formed dungeon--to be for ever clogged with this
   worthless body, its lead of diseases and infirmities--to be condemned to
   [be]hold for millenniums that yawning monster Sameness, and Time, that
   hungry hyaena, ever bearing children, and ever devouring again her
   offspring!--Ha! not to be permitted to die! Awful Avenger in Heaven,
   hast Thou in Thine armoury of wrath a punishment more dreadful? then let
   it thunder upon me, command a hurricane to sweep me down to the foot of
   Carmel, that I there may lie extended; may pant, and writhe, and die.!"'
   
   This fragment is the translation of part of some German work, whose
   title I have vainly endeavoured to discover. I picked it up, dirty and
   torn, some years ago, in Lincoln's-Inn Fields.
   
   7. 135, 136:--
   
   I will beget a Son, and He shall bear
   The sins of all the world.
   
   A book is put into our hands when children, called the Bible, the
   purport of whose history is briefly this: That God made the earth in six
   days, and there planted a delightful garden, in which He placed the
   first pair of human beings. In the midst of the garden He planted a
   tree, whose fruit, although within their reach, they were forbidden to
   touch. That the Devil, in the shape of a snake, persuaded them to eat of
   this fruit; in consequence of which God condemned both them and their
   posterity yet unborn to satisfy His justice by their eternal misery.
   That, four thousand years after these events (the human race in the
   meanwhile having gone unredeemed to perdition), God engendered with the
   betrothed wife of a carpenter in Judea (whose virginity was nevertheless
   uninjured), and begat a son, whose name was Jesus Christ; and who was
   crucified and died, in order that no more men might be devoted to
   hell-fire, He bearing the burthen of His Father's displeasure by proxy.
   The book states, in addition, that the soul of whoever disbelieves this
   sacrifice will be burned with everlasting fire.
   
   During many ages of misery and darkness this story gained implicit
   belief; but at length men arose who suspected that it was a fable and
   imposture, and that Jesus Christ, so far from being a God, was only a
   man like themselves. But a numerous set of men, who derived and still
   derive immense emoluments from this opinion, in the shape of a popular
   belief, told the vulgar that if they did not believe in the Bible they
   would be damned to all eternity; and burned, imprisoned, and poisoned
   all the unbiassed and unconnected inquirers who occasionally arose. They
   still oppress them, so far as the people, now become more enlightened,
   will allow.
   
   The belief in all that the Bible contains is called Christianity. A
   Roman governor of Judea, at the instance of a priest-led mob, crucified
   a man called Jesus eighteen centuries ago. He was a man of pure life,
   who desired to rescue his countrymen from the tyranny of their barbarous
   and degrading superstitions. The common fate of all who desire to
   benefit mankind awaited him. The rabble, at the instigation of the
   priests, demanded his death, although his very judge made public
   acknowledgement of his innocence. Jesus was sacrificed to the honour of
   that God with whom he was afterwards confounded. It is of importance,
   therefore, to distinguish between the pretended character of this being
   as the Son of God and the Saviour of the world, and his real character
   as a man, who, for a vain attempt to reform the world, paid the forfeit
   of his life to that overbearing tyranny which has since so long
   desolated the universe in his name. Whilst the one is a hypocritical
   Daemon, who announces Himself as the God of compassion and peace, even
   whilst He stretches forth His blood-red hand with the sword of discord
   to waste the earth, having confessedly devised this scheme of desolation
   from eternity; the other stands in the foremost list of those true
   heroes who have died in the glorious martyrdom of liberty, and have
   braved torture, contempt, and poverty in the cause of suffering
   humanity. (Since writing this note I have some reason to suspect that
   Jesus was an ambitious man, who aspired to the throne of Judea.
   
   The vulgar, ever in extremes, became persuaded that the crucifixion of
   Jesus was a supernatural event. Testimonies of miracles, so frequent in
   unenlightened ages, were not wanting to prove that he was something
   divine. This belief, rolling through the lapse of ages, met with the
   reveries of Plato and the reasonings of Aristotle, and acquired force
   and extent, until the divinity of Jesus became a dogma, which to dispute
   was death, which to doubt was infamy.
   
   CHRISTIANITY is now the established religion: he who attempts to impugn
   it must be contented to behold murderers and traitors take precedence of
   him in public opinion; though, if his genius be equal to his courage,
   and assisted by a peculiar coalition of circumstances, future ages may
   exalt him to a divinity, and persecute others in his name, as he was
   persecuted in the name of his predecessor in the homage of the world.
   
   The same means that have supported every other popular belief have
   supported Christianity. War, imprisonment, assassination, and falsehood;
   deeds of unexampled and incomparable atrocity have made it what it is.
   The blood shed by the votaries of the God of mercy and peace, since the
   establishment of His religion, would probably suffice to drown all other
   sectaries now on the habitable globe. We derive from our ancestors a
   faith thus fostered and supported: we quarrel, persecute, and hate for
   its maintenance. Even under a government which, whilst it infringes the
   very right of thought and speech, boasts of permitting the liberty of
   the press, a man is pilloried and imprisoned because he is a deist, and
   no one raises his voice in the indignation of outraged humanity. But it
   is ever a proof that the falsehood of a proposition is felt by those who
   use coercion, not reasoning, to procure its admission; and a
   dispassionate observer would feel himself more powerfully interested in
   favour of a man who, depending on the truth of his opinions, simply
   stated his reasons for entertaining them, than in that of his aggressor
   who, daringly avowing his unwillingness or incapacity to answer them by
   argument, proceeded to repress the energies and break the spirit of
   their promulgator by that torture and imprisonment whose infliction he
   could command.
   
   Analogy seems to favour the opinion that as, like other systems,
   Christianity has arisen and augmented, so like them it will decay and
   perish; that as violence, darkness, and deceit, not reasoning and
   persuasion, have procured its admission among mankind, so, when
   enthusiasm has subsided, and time, that infallible controverter of false
   opinions, has involved its pretended evidences in the darkness of
   antiquity, it will become obsolete; that Milton's poem alone will give
   permanency to the remembrance of its absurdities; and that men will
   laugh as heartily at grace, faith, redemption, and original sin, as they
   now do at the metamorphoses of Jupiter, the miracles of Romish saints,
   the efficacy of witchcraft, and the appearance of departed spirits.
   
   Had the Christian religion commenced and continued by the mere force of
   reasoning and persuasion, the preceding analogy would be inadmissible.
   We should never speculate on the future obsoleteness of a system
   perfectly conformable to nature and reason: it would endure so long as
   they endured; it would be a truth as indisputable as the light of the
   sun, the criminality of murder, and other facts, whose evidence,
   depending on our organization and relative situations, must remain
   acknowledged as satisfactory so long as man is man. It is an
   incontrovertible fact, the consideration of which ought to repress the
   hasty conclusions of credulity, or moderate its obstinacy in maintaining
   them, that, had the Jews not been a fanatical race of men, had even the
   resolution of Pontius Pilate been equal to his candour, the Christian
   religion never could have prevailed, it could not even have existed: on
   so feeble a thread hangs the most cherished opinion of a sixth of the
   human race! When will the vulgar learn humility? When will the pride of
   ignorance blush at having believed before it could comprehend?
   
   Either the Christian religion is true, or it is false: if true, it comes
   from God, and its authenticity can admit of doubt and dispute no further
   than its omnipotent author is willing to allow. Either the power or the
   goodness of God is called in question, if He leaves those doctrines most
   essential to the well-being of man in doubt and dispute; the only ones
   which, since their promulgation, have been the subject of unceasing
   cavil, the cause of irreconcilable hatred. IF GOD HAS SPOKEN, WHY IS THE
   UNIVERSE NOT CONVINCED?
   
   There is this passage in the Christian Scriptures: 'Those who obey not
   God, and believe not the Gospel of his Son, shall be punished with
   everlasting destruction.' This is the pivot upon which all religions
   turn:--they all assume that it is in our power to believe or not to
   believe; whereas the mind can only believe that which it thinks true. A
   human being can only be supposed accountable for those actions which are
   influenced by his will. But belief is utterly distinct from and
   unconnected with volition: it is the apprehension of the agreement or
   disagreement of the ideas that compose any preposition. Belief is a
   passion, or involuntary operation of the mind, and, like other passions,
   its intensity is precisely proportionate to the degrees of excitement.
   Volition is essential to merit or demerit. But the Christian religion
   attaches the highest possible degrees of merit and demerit to that which
   is worthy of neither, and which is totally unconnected with the peculiar
   faculty of the mind, whose presence is essential to their being.
   
   Christianity was intended to reform the world: had an all-wise Being
   planned it, nothing is more improbable than that it should have failed:
   omniscience would infallibly have foreseen the inutility of a scheme
   which experience demonstrates, to this age, to have been utterly
   unsuccessful.
   
   Christianity inculcates the necessity of supplicating the Deity. Prayer
   may be considered under two points of view;--as an endeavour to change
   the intentions of God, or as a formal testimony of our obedience. But
   the former case supposes that the caprices of a limited intelligence can
   occasionally instruct the Creator of the world how to regulate the
   universe; and the latter, a certain degree of servility analogous to the
   loyalty demanded by earthly tyrants. Obedience indeed is only the
   pitiful and cowardly egotism of him who thinks that he can do something
   better than reason.
   
   Christianity, like all other religions, rests upon miracles, prophecies,
   and martyrdoms. No religion ever existed which had not its prophets, its
   attested miracles, and, above all, crowds of devotees who would bear
   patiently the most horrible tortures to prove its authenticity. It
   should appear that in no case can a discriminating mind subscribe to the
   genuineness of a miracle. A miracle is an infraction of nature's law, by
   a supernatural cause; by a cause acting beyond that eternal circle
   within which all things are included. God breaks through the law of
   nature, that He may convince mankind of the truth of that revelation
   which, in spite of His precautions, has been, since its introduction,
   the subject of unceasing schism and cavil.
   
   Miracles resolve themselves into the following question (See Hume's
   Essay, volume 2 page 121.):--Whether it is more probable the laws of
   nature, hitherto so immutably harmonious, should have undergone
   violation, or that a man should have told a lie? Whether it is more
   probable that we are ignorant of the natural cause of an event, or that
   we know the supernatural one? That, in old times, when the powers of
   nature were less known than at present, a certain set of men were
   themselves deceived, or had some hidden motive for deceiving others; or
   that God begat a Son, who, in His legislation, measuring merit by
   belief, evidenced Himself to be totally ignorant of the powers of the
   human mind--of what is voluntary, and what is the contrary?
   
   We have many instances of men telling lies;--none of an infraction of
   nature's laws, those laws of whose government alone we have any
   knowledge or experience. The records of all nations afford innumerable
   instances of men deceiving others either from vanity or interest, or
   themselves being deceived by the limitedness of their views and their
   ignorance of natural causes: but where is the accredited case of God
   having come upon earth, to give the lie to His own creations? There
   would be something truly wonderful in the appearance of a ghost; but the
   assertion of a child that he saw one as he passed through the churchyard
   is universally admitted to be less miraculous.
   
   But even supposing that a man should raise a dead body to life before
   our eyes, and on this fact rest his claim to being considered the son of
   God;--the Humane Society restores drowned persons, and because it makes
   no mystery of the method it employs, its members are not mistaken for
   the sons of God. All that we have a right to infer from our ignorance of
   the cause of any event is that we do not know it: had the Mexicans
   attended to this simple rule when they heard the cannon of the
   Spaniards, they would not have considered them as gods: the experiments
   of modern chemistry would have defied the wisest philosophers of ancient
   Greece and Rome to have accounted for them on natural principles. An
   author of strong common sense has observed that 'a miracle is no miracle
   at second-hand'; he might have added that a miracle is no miracle in any
   case; for until we are acquainted with all natural causes, we have no
   reason to imagine others.
   
   There remains to be considered another proof of Christianity--Prophecy.
   A book is written before a certain event, in which this event is
   foretold; how could the prophet have foreknown it without inspiration?
   how could he have been inspired without God? The greatest stress is laid
   on the prophecies of Moses and Hosea on the dispersion of the Jews, and
   that of Isaiah concerning the coming of the Messiah. The prophecy of
   Moses is a collection of every possible cursing and blessing; and it is
   so far from being marvellous that the one of dispersion should have been
   fulfilled, that it would have been more surprising if, out of all these,
   none should have taken effect. In Deuteronomy, chapter 28, verse 64,
   where Moses explicitly foretells the dispersion, he states that they
   shall there serve gods of wood and stone: 'And the Lord shall scatter
   thee among all people, from the one end of the earth even to the other;
   AND THERE THOU SHALT SERVE OTHER GODS, WHICH NEITHER THOU NOR THY
   FATHERS HAVE KNOWN, EVEN GODS OF WOOD AND STONE.' The Jews are at this
   day remarkably tenacious of their religion. Moses also declares that
   they shall be subjected to these curses for disobedience to his ritual:
   'And it shall come to pass, if thou wilt not hearken unto the voice of
   the Lord thy God, to observe to do all the commandments and statutes
   which I command thee this day; that all these curses shall come upon
   thee, and overtake thee.' Is this the real reason? The third, fourth,
   and fifth chapters of Hosea are a piece of immodest confession. The
   indelicate type might apply in a hundred senses to a hundred things. The
   fifty-third chapter of Isaiah is more explicit, yet it does not exceed
   in clearness the oracles of Delphos. The historical proof that Moses,
   Isaiah, and Hosea did write when they are said to have written is far
   from being clear and circumstantial.
   
   But prophecy requires proof in its character as a miracle; we have no
   right to suppose that a man foreknew future events from God, until it is
   demonstrated that he neither could know them by his own exertions, nor
   that the writings which contain the prediction could possibly have been
   fabricated after the event pretended to be foretold. It is more probable
   that writings, pretending to divine inspiration, should have been
   fabricated after the fulfilment of their pretended prediction than that
   they should have really been divinely inspired, when we consider that
   the latter supposition makes God at once the creator of the human mind
   and ignorant of its primary powers, particularly as we have numberless
   instances of false religions, and forged prophecies of things long past,
   and no accredited case of God having conversed with men directly or
   indirectly. It is also possible that the description of an event might
   have foregone its occurrence; but this is far from being a legitimate
   proof of a divine revelation, as many men, not pretending to the
   character of a prophet, have nevertheless, in this sense, prophesied.
   
   Lord Chesterfield was never yet taken for a prophet, even by a bishop,
   yet he uttered this remarkable prediction: 'The despotic government of
   France is screwed up to the highest pitch; a revolution is fast
   approaching; that revolution, I am convinced, will be radical and
   sanguinary.' This appeared in the letters of the prophet long before the
   accomplishment of this wonderful prediction. Now, have these particulars
   come to pass, or have they not? If they have, how could the Earl have
   foreknown them without inspiration? If we admit the truth of the
   Christian religion on testimony such as this, we must admit, on the same
   strength of evidence, that God has affixed the highest rewards to
   belief, and the eternal tortures of the never-dying worm to disbelief,
   both of which have been demonstrated to be involuntary.
   
   The last proof of the Christian religion depends on the influence of the
   Holy Ghost. Theologians divide the influence of the Holy Ghost into its
   ordinary and extraordinary modes of operation. The latter is supposed to
   be that which inspired the Prophets and Apostles; and the former to be
   the grace of God, which summarily makes known the truth of His
   revelation to those whose mind is fitted for its reception by a
   submissive perusal of His word. Persons convinced in this manner can do
   anything but account for their conviction, describe the time at which it
   happened, or the manner in which it came upon them. It is supposed to
   enter the mind by other channels than those of the senses, and therefore
   professes to be superior to reason founded on their experience.
   
   Admitting, however, the usefulness or possibility of a divine
   revelation, unless we demolish the foundations of all human knowledge,
   it is requisite that our reason should previously demonstrate its
   genuineness; for, before we extinguish the steady ray of reason and
   common sense, it is fit that we should discover whether we cannot do
   without their assistance, whether or no there be any other which may
   suffice to guide us through the labyrinth of life (See Locke's "Essay on
   the Human Understanding", book 4 chapter 19, on Enthusiasm.): for, if a
   man is to be inspired upon all occasions, if he is to be sure of a thing
   because he is sure, if the ordinary operations of the Spirit are not to
   be considered very extraordinary modes of demonstration, if enthusiasm
   is to usurp the place of proof, and madness that of sanity, all
   reasoning is superfluous. The Mahometan dies fighting for his prophet,
   the Indian immolates himself at the chariot-wheels of Brahma, the
   Hottentot worships an insect, the Negro a bunch of feathers, the Mexican
   sacrifices human victims! Their degree of conviction must certainly be
   very strong: it cannot arise from reasoning, it must from feelings, the
   reward of their prayers. If each of these should affirm, in opposition
   to the strongest possible arguments, that inspiration carried internal
   evidence, I fear their inspired brethren, the orthodox missionaries,
   would be so uncharitable as to pronounce them obstinate.
   
   Miracles cannot be received as testimonies of a disputed fact, because
   all human testimony has ever been insufficient to establish the
   possibility of miracles. That which is incapable of proof itself is no
   proof of anything else. Prophecy has also been rejected by the test of
   reason. Those, then, who have been actually inspired are the only true
   believers in the Christian religion.
   
   Mox numine viso
   Virgineei tumuere sinus, innuptaque mater
   Arcano stupuit compleri viscera partu,
   Auctorem paritura suum. Mortalia corda
   Artificem texere poli, latuitque sub uno
   Pectore, qui totum late complectitur orbem.--Claudian, "Carmen Paschale".
   
   Does not so monstrous and disgusting an absurdity carry its own infamy
   and refutation with itself?
   
   8. 203-207:--
   
   Him, still from hope to hope the bliss pursuing
   Which from the exhaustless lore of human weal
   Draws on the virtuous mind, the thoughts that rise
   In time-destroying infiniteness, gift
   With self-enshrined eternity, etc.
   
   Time is our consciousness of the succession of ideas in our mind. Vivid
   sensation, of either pain or pleasure, makes the time seem long, as the
   common phrase is, because it renders us more acutely conscious of our
   ideas. If a mind be conscious of an hundred ideas during one minute, by
   the clock, and of two hundred during another, the latter of these spaces
   would actually occupy so much greater extent in the mind as two exceed
   one in quantity. If, therefore, the human mind, by any future
   improvement of its sensibility, should become conscious of an infinite
   number of ideas in a minute, that minute would be eternity. I do not
   hence infer that the actual space between the birth and death of a man
   will ever be prolonged; but that his sensibility is perfectible, and
   that the number of ideas which his mind is capable of receiving is
   indefinite. One man is stretched on the rack during twelve hours;
   another sleeps soundly in his bed: the difference of time perceived by
   these two persons is immense; one hardly will believe that half an hour
   has elapsed, the other could credit that centuries had flown during his
   agony. Thus, the life of a man of virtue and talent, who should die in
   his thirtieth year, is, with regard to his own feelings, longer than
   that of a miserable priest-ridden slave, who dreams out a century of
   dulness. The one has perpetually cultivated his mental faculties, has
   rendered himself master of his thoughts, can abstract and generalize
   amid the lethargy of every-day business;--the other can slumber over the
   brightest moments of his being, and is unable to remember the happiest
   hour of his life. Perhaps the perishing ephemeron enjoys a longer life
   than the tortoise.
   
   Dark flood of time!
   Roll as it listeth thee--I measure not
   By months or moments thy ambiguous course.
   Another may stand by me on the brink
   And watch the bubble whirled beyond his ken
   That pauses at my feet. The sense of love,
   The thirst for action, and the impassioned thought
   Prolong my being: if I wake no more,
   My life more actual living will contain
   Than some gray veteran's of the world's cold school,
   Whose listless hours unprofitably roll,
   By one enthusiast feeling unredeemed.--
   
   See Godwin's "Pol. Jus." volume 1, page 411; and Condorcet, "Esquisse
   d'un Tableau Historique des Progres de l'Esprit Humain", epoque 9.
   
   8. 211, 212:--
   
   No longer now
   He slays the lamb that looks him in the face.
   
   I hold that the depravity of the physical and moral nature of man
   originated in his unnatural habits of life. The origin of man, like that
   of the universe of which he is a part, is enveloped in impenetrable
   mystery. His generations either had a beginning, or they had not. The
   weight of evidence in favour of each of these suppositions seems
   tolerably equal; and it is perfectly unimportant to the present argument
   which is assumed. The language spoken, however, by the mythology of
   nearly all religions seems to prove that at some distant period man
   forsook the path of nature, and sacrificed the purity and happiness of
   his being to unnatural appetites. The date of this event seems to have
   also been that of some great change in the climates of the earth, with
   which it has an obvious correspondence. The allegory of Adam and Eve
   eating of the tree of evil, and entailing upon their posterity the wrath
   of God and the loss of everlasting life, admits of no other explanation
   than the disease and crime that have flowed from unnatural diet. Milton
   was so well aware of this that he makes Raphael thus exhibit to Adam the
   consequence of his disobedience:--
   
   Immediately a place
   Before his eyes appeared, sad, noisome, dark;
   A lazar-house it seemed; wherein were laid
   Numbers of all diseased--all maladies
   Of ghastly spasm, or racking torture, qualms
   Of heart-sick agony, all feverous kinds,
   Convulsions, epilepsies, fierce catarrhs,
   Intestine stone and ulcer, colic pangs,
   Demoniac frenzy, moping melancholy,
   And moon-struck madness, pining atrophy,
   Marasmus, and wide-wasting pestilence,
   Dropsies and asthmas, and joint-racking rheums.
   
   And how many thousands more might not be added to this frightful catalogue!
   
   The story of Prometheus is one likewise which, although universally
   admitted to be allegorical, has never been satisfactorily explained.
   Prometheus stole fire from heaven, and was chained for this crime to
   Mount Caucasus, where a vulture continually devoured his liver, that
   grew to meet its hunger. Hesiod says that, before the time of
   Prometheus, mankind were exempt from suffering; that they enjoyed a
   vigorous youth, and that death, when at length it came, approached like
   sleep, and gently closed their eyes. Again, so general was this opinion
   that Horace, a poet of the Augustan age, writes:--
   
   Audax omnia perpeti,
   Gens humana ruit per vetitum nefas;
   Audax Iapeti genus
   Ignem fraude mala gentibus intulit:
   Post ignem aetheria domo
   Subductum, macies et nova febrium
   Terris incubuit cohors,
   Semotique prius tarda necessitas
   Lethi corripuit gradum.
   
   How plain a language is spoken by all this! Prometheus (who represents
   the human race) effected some great change in the condition of his
   nature, and applied fire to culinary purposes; thus inventing an
   expedient for screening from his disgust the horrors of the shambles.
   From this moment his vitals were devoured by the vulture of disease. It
   consumed his being in every shape of its loathsome and infinite variety,
   inducing the soul-quelling sinkings of premature and violent death. All
   vice rose from the ruin of healthful innocence. Tyranny, superstition,
   commerce, and inequality were then first known, when reason vainly
   attempted to guide the wanderings of exacerbated passion. I conclude
   this part of the subject with an extract from Mr. Newton's "Defence of
   Vegetable Regimen", from whom I have borrowed this interpretation of the
   fable of Prometheus.
   
   'Making allowance for such transposition of the events of the allegory
   as time might produce after the important truths were forgotten, which
   this portion of the ancient mythology was intended to transmit, the
   drift of the fable seems to be this:--Man at his creation was endowed
   with the gift of perpetual youth; that is, he was not formed to be a
   sickly suffering creature as we now see him, but to enjoy health, and to
   sink by slow degrees into the bosom of his parent earth without disease
   or pain. Prometheus first taught the use of animal food (primus bovem
   occidit Prometheus (Plin. "Nat. Hist". lib. 7 sect. 57.)) and of fire,
   with which to render it more digestible and pleasing to the taste.
   Jupiter, and the rest of the gods, foreseeing the consequences of these
   inventions, were amused or irritated at the short-sighted devices of the
   newly-formed creature, and left him to experience the sad effects of
   them. Thirst, the necessary concomitant of a flesh diet' (perhaps of all
   diet vitiated by culinary preparation), 'ensued; water was resorted to,
   and man forfeited the inestimable gift of health which he had received
   from heaven: he became diseased, the partaker of a precarious existence,
   and no longer descended slowly to his grave. ("Return to Nature".
   Cadell, 1811.)
   
   But just disease to luxury succeeds,
   And every death its own avenger breeds;
   The fury passions from that blood began,
   And turned on man a fiercer savage--man.
   
   Man, and the animals whom he has infected with his society, or depraved
   by his dominion, are alone diseased. The wild hog, the mouflon, the
   bison, and the wolf; are perfectly exempt from malady, and invariably
   die either from external violence or natural old age. But the domestic
   hog, the sheep, the cow, and the dog, are subject to an incredible
   variety of distempers; and, like the corruptors of their nature, have
   physicians who thrive upon their miseries. The supereminence of man is
   like Satan's, a supereminence of pain; and the majority of his species,
   doomed to penury, disease, and crime, have reason to curse the untoward
   event that, by enabling him to communicate his sensations, raised him
   above the level of his fellow-animals. But the steps that have been
   taken are irrevocable. The whole of human science is comprised in one
   question:--How can the advantages of intellect and civilization be
   reconciled with the liberty and pure pleasures of natural life? How can
   we take the benefits and reject the evils of the system, which is now
   interwoven with all the fibres of our being?--I believe that abstinence
   from animal food and spirituous liquors would in a great measure
   capacitate us for the solution of this important question.
   
   It is true that mental and bodily derangement is attributable in part to
   other deviations from rectitude and nature than those which concern
   diet. The mistakes cherished by society respecting the connection of the
   sexes, whence the misery and diseases of unsatisfied celibacy,
   unenjoying prostitution, and the premature arrival of puberty,
   necessarily spring; the putrid atmosphere of crowded cities; the
   exhalations of chemical processes; the muffling of our bodies in
   superfluous apparel; the absurd treatment of infants:--all these and
   innumerable other causes contribute their mite to the mass of human
   evil.
   
   Comparative anatomy teaches us that man resembles frugivorous animals in
   everything, and carnivorous in nothing; he has neither claws wherewith
   to seize his prey, nor distinct and pointed teeth to tear the living
   fibre. A Mandarin of the first class, with nails two inches long, would
   probably find them alone inefficient to hold even a hare. After every
   subterfuge of gluttony, the bull must be degraded into the ox, and the
   ram into the wether, by an unnatural and inhuman operation, that the
   flaccid fibre may offer a fainter resistance to rebellious nature. It is
   only by softening and disguising dead flesh by culinary preparation that
   it is rendered susceptible of mastication or digestion; and that the
   sight of its bloody juices and raw horror does not excite intolerable
   loathing and disgust. Let the advocate of animal food force himself to a
   decisive experiment on its fitness, and, as Plutarch recommends, tear a
   living lamb with his teeth, and plunging his head into its vitals slake
   his thirst with the steaming blood; when fresh from the deed of horror,
   let him revert to the irresistible instincts of nature that would rise
   in judgement against it, and say, 'Nature formed me for such work as
   this.' Then, and then only, would he be consistent.
   
   Man resembles no carnivorous animal. There is no exception, unless man
   be one, to the rule of herbivorous animals having cellulated colons.
   
   The orang-outang perfectly resembles man both in the order and number of
   his teeth. The orang-outang is the most anthropomorphous of the ape
   tribe, all of which are strictly frugivorous. There is no other species
   of animals, which live on different food, in which this analogy exists.
   (Cuvier, "Lecons d'Anat. Comp". tom. 3, pages 169, 373, 448, 465, 480.
   Rees's "Cyclopaedia", article Man.) In many frugivorous animals, the
   canine teeth are more pointed and distinct than those of man. The
   resemblance also of the human stomach to that of the orang-outang is
   greater than to that of any other animal.
   
   The intestines are also identical with those of herbivorous animals,
   which present a larger surface for absorption and have ample and
   cellulated colons. The caecum also, though short, is larger than that of
   carnivorous animals; and even here the orang-outang retains its
   accustomed similarity.
   
   The structure of the human frame, then, is that of one fitted to a pure
   vegetable diet, in every essential particular. It is true that the
   reluctance to abstain from animal food, in those who have been long
   accustomed to its stimulus, is so great in some persons of weak minds as
   to be scarcely overcome; but this is far from bringing any argument in
   its favour. A lamb, which was fed for some time on flesh by a ship's
   crew, refused its natural diet at the end of the voyage. There are
   numerous instances of horses, sheep, oxen, and even wood-pigeons, having
   been taught to live upon flesh, until they have loathed their natural
   aliment. Young children evidently prefer pastry, oranges, apples, and
   other fruit, to the flesh of animals; until, by the gradual depravation
   of the digestive organs, the free use of vegetables has for a time
   produced serious inconveniences; FOR A TIME, I say, since there never
   was an instance wherein a change from spirituous liquors and animal food
   to vegetables and pure water has failed ultimately to invigorate the
   body, by rendering its juices bland and consentaneous, and to restore to
   the mind that cheerfulness and elasticity which not one in fifty
   possesses on the present system. A love of strong liquors is also with
   difficulty taught to infants. Almost every one remembers the wry faces
   which the first glass of port produced. Unsophisticated instinct is
   invariably unerring; but to decide on the fitness of animal food from
   the perverted appetites which its constrained adoption produces; is to
   make the criminal a judge in his own cause: it is even worse, it is
   appealing to the infatuated drunkard in a question of the salubrity of
   brandy.
   
   What is the cause of morbid action in the animal system? Not the air we
   breathe, for our fellow-denizens of nature breathe the same uninjured;
   not the water we drink (if remote from the pollutions of man and his
   inventions (The necessity of resorting to some means of purifying water,
   and the disease which arises from its adulteration in civilized
   countries, is sufficiently apparent. See Dr. Lambe's "Reports on
   Cancer". I do not assert that the use of water is in itself unnatural,
   but that the unperverted palate would swallow no liquid capable of
   occasioning disease.)), for the animals drink it too; not the earth we
   tread upon; not the unobscured sight of glorious nature, in the wood,
   the field, or the expanse of sky and ocean; nothing that we are or do in
   common with the undiseased inhabitants of the forest. Something, then,
   wherein we differ from them: our habit of altering our food by fire, so
   that our appetite is no longer a just criterion for the fitness of its
   gratification. Except in children, there remain no traces of that
   instinct which determines, in all other animals, what aliment is natural
   or otherwise; and so perfectly obliterated are they in the reasoning
   adults of our species, that it has become necessary to urge
   considerations drawn from comparative anatomy to prove that we are
   naturally frugivorous.
   
   Crime is madness. Madness is disease. Whenever the cause of disease
   shall be discovered, the root, from which all vice and misery have so
   long overshadowed the globe, will lie bare to the axe. All the exertions
   of man, from that moment, may be considered as tending to the clear
   profit of his species. No sane mind in a sane body resolves upon a real
   crime. It is a man of violent passions, bloodshot eyes, and swollen
   veins, that alone can grasp the knife of murder. The system of a simple
   diet promises no Utopian advantages. It is no mere reform of
   legislation, whilst the furious passions and evil propensities of the
   human heart, in which it had its origin, are still unassuaged. It
   strikes at the root of all evil, and is an experiment which may be tried
   with success, not alone by nations, but by small societies, families,
   and even individuals. In no cases has a return to vegetable diet
   produced the slightest injury; in most it has been attended with changes
   undeniably beneficial. Should ever a physician be born with the genius
   of Locke, I am persuaded that he might trace all bodily and mental
   derangements to our unnatural habits, as clearly as that philosopher has
   traced all knowledge to sensation. What prolific sources of disease are
   not those mineral and vegetable poisons that have been introduced for
   its extirpation! How many thousands have become murderers and robbers,
   bigots and domestic tyrants, dissolute and abandoned adventurers, from
   the use of fermented liquors; who, had they slaked their thirst only
   with pure water, would have lived but to diffuse the happiness of their
   own unperverted feelings! How many groundless opinions and absurd
   institutions have not received a general sanction from the sottishness
   and intemperance of individuals! Who will assert that, had the populace
   of Paris satisfied their hunger at the ever-furnished table of vegetable
   nature, they would have lent their brutal suffrage to the
   proscription-list of Robespierre? Could a set of men, whose passions
   were not perverted by unnatural stimuli, look with coolness on an auto
   da fe? Is it to be believed that a being of gentle feelings, rising from
   his meal of roots, would take delight in sports of blood? Was Nero a man
   of temperate life? could you read calm health in his cheek, flushed with
   ungovernable propensities of hatred for the human race? Did Muley
   Ismael's pulse beat evenly, was his skin transparent, did his eyes beam
   with healthfulness, and its invariable concomitants, cheerfulness and
   benignity? Though history has decided none of these questions, a child
   could not hesitate to answer in the negative. Surely the bile-suffused
   cheek of Buonaparte, his wrinkled brow, and yellow eye, the ceaseless
   inquietude of his nervous system, speak no less plainly the character of
   his unresting ambition than his murders and his victories. It is
   impossible, had Buonaparte descended from a race of vegetable feeders,
   that he could have had either the inclination or the power to ascend the
   throne of the Bourbons. The desire of tyranny could scarcely be excited
   in the individual, the power to tyrannize would certainly not be
   delegated by a society neither frenzied by inebriation nor rendered
   impotent and irrational by disease. Pregnant indeed with inexhaustible
   calamity is the renunciation of instinct, as it concerns our physical
   nature; arithmetic cannot enumerate, nor reason perhaps suspect, the
   multitudinous sources of disease in civilized life. Even common water,
   that apparently innoxious pabulum, when corrupted by the filth of
   populous cities, is a deadly and insidious destroyer. (Lambe's "Reports
   on Cancer".) Who can wonder that all the inducements held out by God
   Himself in the Bible to virtue should have been vainer than a nurse's
   tale; and that those dogmas, by which He has there excited and justified
   the most ferocious propensities, should have alone been deemed
   essential; whilst Christians are in the daily practice of all those
   habits which have infected with disease and crime, not only the
   reprobate sons, but those favoured children of the common Father's love?
   Omnipotence itself could not save them from the consequences of this
   original and universal sin.
   
   There is no disease, bodily or mental, which adoption of vegetable diet
   and pure water has not infallibly mitigated, wherever the experiment has
   been fairly tried. Debility is gradually converted into strength;
   disease into healthfulness; madness, in all its hideous variety, from
   the ravings of the fettered maniac to the unaccountable irrationalities
   of ill-temper, that make a hell of domestic life, into a calm and
   considerate evenness of temper, that alone might offer a certain pledge
   of the future moral reformation of society. On a natural system of diet,
   old age would be our last and our only malady; the term of our existence
   would be protracted; we should enjoy life, and no longer preclude others
   from the enjoyment of it; all sensational delights would be infinitely
   more exquisite and perfect; the very sense of being would then be a
   continued pleasure, such as we now feel it in some few and favoured
   moments of our youth. By all that is sacred in our hopes for the human
   race, I conjure those who love happiness and truth to give a fair trial
   to the vegetable system. Reasoning is surely superfluous on a subject
   whose merits an experience of six months would set for ever at rest. But
   it is only among the enlightened and benevolent that so great a
   sacrifice of appetite and prejudice can be expected, even though its
   ultimate excellence should not admit of dispute. It is found easier, by
   the short-sighted victims of disease, to palliate their torments by
   medicine than to prevent them by regimen. The vulgar of all ranks are
   invariably sensual and indocile; yet I cannot but feel myself persuaded
   that when the benefits of vegetable diet are mathematically proved, when
   it is as clear that those who live naturally are exempt from premature
   death as that nine is not one, the most sottish of mankind will feel a
   preference towards a long and tranquil, contrasted with a short and
   painful, life. On the average, out of sixty persons four die in three
   years. Hopes are entertained that, in April, 1814, a statement will be
   given that sixty persons, all having lived more than three years on
   vegetables and pure water, are then IN PERFECT HEALTH. More than two
   years have now elapsed; NOT ONE OF THEM HAS DIED; no such example will
   be found in any sixty persons taken at random. Seventeen persons of all
   ages (the families of Dr. Lambe and Mr. Newton) have lived for seven
   years on this diet without a death, and almost without the slightest
   illness. Surely, when we consider that some of those were infants, and
   one a martyr to asthma now nearly subdued, we may challenge any
   seventeen persons taken at random in this city to exhibit a parallel
   case. Those who may have been excited to question the rectitude of
   established habits of diet by these loose remarks, should consult Mr.
   Newton's luminous and eloquent essay. ("Return to Nature, or Defence of
   Vegetable Regimen". Cadell, 1811.)
   
   When these proofs come fairly before the world, and are clearly seen by
   all who understand arithmetic, it is scarcely possible that abstinence
   from aliments demonstrably pernicious should not become universal. In
   proportion to the number of proselytes, so will be the weight of
   evidence; and when a thousand persons can be produced, living on
   vegetables and distilled water, who have to dread no disease but old
   age, the world will be compelled to regard animal flesh and fermented
   liquors as slow but certain poisons. The change which would be produced
   by simpler habits on political economy is sufficiently remarkable. The
   monopolizing eater of animal flesh would no longer destroy his
   constitution by devouring an acre at a meal, and many loaves of bread
   would cease to contribute to gout, madness and apoplexy, in the shape of
   a pint of porter, or a dram of gin, when appeasing the long-protracted
   famine of the hardworking peasant's hungry babes. The quantity of
   nutritious vegetable matter, consumed in fattening the carcase of an ox,
   would afford ten times the sustenance, undepraving indeed, and incapable
   of generating disease, if gathered immediately from the bosom of the
   earth. The most fertile districts of the habitable globe are now
   actually cultivated by men for animals, at a delay and waste of aliment
   absolutely incapable of calculation. It is only the wealthy that can, to
   any great degree, even now, indulge the unnatural craving for dead
   flesh, and they pay for the greater licence of the privilege by
   subjection to supernumerary diseases. Again, the spirit of the nation
   that should take the lead in this great reform would insensibly become
   agricultural; commerce, with all its vice, selfishness, and corruption,
   would gradually decline; more natural habits would produce gentler
   manners, and the excessive complication of political relations would be
   so far simplified that every individual might feel and understand why he
   loved his country, and took a personal interest in its welfare. How
   would England, for example, depend on the caprices of foreign rulers if
   she contained within herself all the necessaries, and despised whatever
   they possessed of the luxuries, of life? How could they starve her into
   compliance with their views? Of what consequence would it be that they
   refused to take her woollen manufactures, when large and fertile tracts
   of the island ceased to be allotted to the waste of pasturage? On a
   natural system of diet we should require no spices from India; no wines
   from Portugal, Spain, France, or Madeira; none of those multitudinous
   articles of luxury, for which every corner of the globe is rifled, and
   which are the causes of so much individual rivalship, such calamitous
   and sanguinary national disputes. In the history of modern times, the
   avarice of commercial monopoly, no less than the ambition of weak and
   wicked chiefs, seems to have fomented the universal discord, to have
   added stubbornness to the mistakes of cabinets, and indocility to the
   infatuation of the people. Let it ever be remembered that it is the
   direct influence of commerce to make the interval between the richest
   and the poorest man wider and more unconquerable. Let it be remembered
   that it is a foe to everything of real worth and excellence in the human
   character. The odious and disgusting aristocracy of wealth is built upon
   the ruins of all that is good in chivalry or republicanism; and luxury
   is the forerunner of a barbarism scarce capable of cure. Is it
   impossible to realize a state of society, where all the energies of man
   shall be directed to the production of his solid happiness? Certainly,
   if this advantage (the object of all political speculation) be in any
   degree attainable, it is attainable only by a community which holds out
   no factitious incentives to the avarice and ambition of the few, and
   which is internally organized for the liberty, security, and comfort of
   the many. None must be entrusted with power (and money is the completest
   species of power) who do not stand pledged to use it exclusively for the
   general benefit. But the use of animal flesh and fermented liquors
   directly militates with this equality of the rights of man. The peasant
   cannot gratify these fashionable cravings without leaving his family to
   starve. Without disease and war, those sweeping curtailers of
   population, pasturage would include a waste too great to be afforded.
   The labour requisite to support a family is far lighter' than is usually
   supposed. (It has come under the author's experience that some of the
   workmen on an embankment in North Wales, who, in consequence of the
   inability of the proprietor to pay them, seldom received their wages,
   have supported large families by cultivating small spots of sterile
   ground by moonlight. In the notes to Pratt's poem, "Bread, or the Poor",
   is an account of an industrious labourer who, by working in a small
   garden, before and after his day's task, attained to an enviable state
   of independence.) The peasantry work, not only for themselves, but for
   the aristocracy, the army, and the manufacturers.
   
   The advantage of a reform in diet is obviously greater than that of any
   other. It strikes at the root of the evil. To remedy the abuses of
   legislation, before we annihilate the propensities by which they are
   produced, is to suppose that by taking away the effect the cause will
   cease to operate. But the efficacy of this system depends entirely on
   the proselytism of individuals, and grounds its merits, as a benefit to
   the community, upon the total change of the dietetic habits in its
   members. It proceeds securely from a number of particular cases to one
   that is universal, and has this advantage over the contrary mode, that
   one error does not invalidate all that has gone before.
   
   Let not too much, however, be expected from this system. The healthiest
   among us is not exempt from hereditary disease. The most symmetrical,
   athletic, and longlived is a being inexpressibly inferior to what he
   would have been, had not the unnatural habits of his ancestors
   accumulated for him a certain portion of malady and deformity. In the
   most perfect specimen of civilized man, something is still found wanting
   by the physiological critic. Can a return to nature, then,
   instantaneously eradicate predispositions that have been slowly taking
   root in the silence of innumerable ages?--Indubitably not. All that I
   contend for is, that from the moment of the relinquishing all unnatural
   habits no new disease is generated; and that the predisposition to
   hereditary maladies gradually perishes, for want of its accustomed
   supply. In cases of consumption, cancer, gout, asthma, and scrofula,
   such is the invariable tendency of a diet of vegetables and pure water.
   
   Those who may be induced by these remarks to give the vegetable system a
   fair trial, should, in the first place, date the commencement of their
   practice from the moment of their conviction. All depends upon breaking
   through a pernicious habit resolutely and at once. Dr. Trotter asserts
   that no drunkard was ever reformed by gradually relinquishing his dram.
   (See Trotter on the Nervous Temperament.) Animal flesh, in its effects
   on the human stomach, is analogous to a dram. It is similar in the kind,
   though differing in the degree, of its operation. The proselyte to a
   pure diet must be warned to expect a temporary diminution of muscular
   strength. The subtraction of a powerful stimulus will suffice to account
   for this event. But it is only temporary, and is succeeded by an equable
   capability for exertion, far surpassing his former various and
   fluctuating strength. Above all, he will acquire an easiness of
   breathing, by which such exertion is performed, with a remarkable
   exemption from that painful and difficult panting now felt by almost
   every one after hastily climbing an ordinary mountain. He will be
   equally capable of bodily exertion, or mental application, after as
   before his simple meal. He will feel none of the narcotic effects of
   ordinary diet. Irritability, the direct consequence of exhausting
   stimuli, would yield to the power of natural and tranquil impulses. He
   will no longer pine under the lethargy of ennui, that unconquerable
   weariness of life, more to be dreaded than death itself. He will escape
   the epidemic madness, which broods over its own injurious notions of the
   Deity, and 'realizes the hell that priests and beldams feign.' Every man
   forms, as it were, his god from his own character; to the divinity of
   one of simple habits no offering would be more acceptable than the
   happiness of his creatures. He would be incapable of hating or
   persecuting others for the love of God. He will find, moreover, a system
   of simple diet to be a system of perfect epicurism. He will no longer be
   incessantly occupied in blunting and destroying those organs from which
   he expects his gratification. The pleasures of taste to be derived from
   a dinner of potatoes, beans, peas, turnips, lettuces, with a dessert of
   apples, gooseberries, strawberries, currants, raspberries, and in
   winter, oranges, apples and pears, is far greater than is supposed.
   These who wait until they can eat this plain fare with the sauce of
   appetite will scarcely join with the hypocritical sensualist at a
   lord-mayor's feast, who declaims against the pleasures of the table.
   Solomon kept a thousand concubines, and owned in despair that all was
   vanity. The man whose happiness is constituted by the society of one
   amiable woman would find some difficulty in sympathizing with the
   disappointment of this venerable debauchee.
   
   I address myself not only to the young enthusiast, the ardent devotee of
   truth and virtue, the pure and passionate moralist, yet unvitiated by
   the contagion of the world. He will embrace a pure system, from its
   abstract truth, its beauty, its simplicity, and its promise of
   wide-extended benefit; unless custom has turned poison into food, he
   will hate the brutal pleasures of the chase by instinct; it will be a
   contemplation full of horror, and disappointment to his mind, that
   beings capable of the gentlest and most admirable sympathies should take
   delight in the death-pangs and last convulsions of dying animals. The
   elderly man, whose youth has been poisoned by intemperance, or who has
   lived with apparent moderation, and is afflicted with a wide variety of
   painful maladies, would find his account in a beneficial change produced
   without the risk of poisonous medicines. The mother, to whom the
   perpetual restlessness of disease and unaccountable deaths incident to
   her children are the causes of incurable unhappiness, would on this diet
   experience the satisfaction of beholding their perpetual healths and
   natural playfulness. (See Mr. Newton's book. His children are the most
   beautiful and healthy creatures it is possible to conceive; the girls
   are perfect models for a sculptor; their dispositions are also the most
   gentle and conciliating; the judicious treatment, which they experience
   in other points, may be a correlative cause of this. In the first five
   years of their life, of 18,000 children that are born, 7,500 die of
   various diseases; and how many more of those that survive are not
   rendered miserable by maladies not immediately mortal? The quality and
   quantity of a woman's milk are materially injured by the use of dead
   flesh. In an island near Iceland, where no vegetables are to be got, the
   children invariably die of tetanus before they are three weeks old, and
   the population is supplied from the mainland.--Sir G. Mackenzie's
   "History of Iceland". See also "Emile", chapter 1, pages 53, 54, 56.)
   The most valuable lives are daily destroyed by diseases that it is
   dangerous to palliate and impossible to cure by medicine. How much
   longer will man continue to pimp for the gluttony of Death, his most
   insidious, implacable, and eternal foe?
   
   Alla drakontas agrious kaleite kai pardaleis kai leontas, autoi de
   miaiphoneite eis omoteta katalipontes ekeinois ouden ekeinois men gar o
   phonos trophe, umin de opson estin..."Oti gar ouk estin anthropo kata
   phusin to sarkophagein, proton men apo ton somaton deloutai tes
   kataskeues. Oudeni gar eoike to anthropou soma ton epi sarkophagia
   gegonoton, ou grupotes cheilous, ouk ozutes onuchos, ou traxutes odontos
   prosestin, ou koilias eutonia kai pneumatos thermotes, trepsai kai
   katergasasthai dunate to baru kai kreodes all autothen e phusis te
   leioteti ton odonton kai te smikroteti tou stomatos kai te malakoteti
   tes glosses kai te pros pepsin ambluteti tou pneumatos, exomnutai ten
   sarkophagian. Ei de legeis pephukenai seauton epi toiauten edoden, o
   boulei phagein proton autos apokteinon, all autos dia seauton, me
   chesamenos kopidi mede tumpano tini mede pelekei alla, os lukoi kai
   arktoi kai leontes autoi osa esthiousi phoneuousin, anele degmati boun e
   stomati sun, e apna e lagoon diarrexon kai phage prospeson eti zontos,
   os ekeina...Emeis d' outos en to miaiphono truphomen, ost ochon to kreas
   prosagoreuomen, eit ochon pros auto to kreas deometha, anamignuntes
   elaion oinon meli garon oxos edusmasi Suriakois Arabikois, oster ontos
   nekron entaphiazontes. Kai gar outos auton dialuthenton kai
   melachthenton kai tropon tina prosapenton ergon esti ten pechin
   kratesai, kai diakratepheises de deinas barutetas empoiei kai nosodeis
   apechias...Outo to proton agprion ti zoon ebrothe kai kakourgon, eit
   ornis tis e ichthus eilkusto kai geusamenon outo kai promeletesan en
   ekeinois to thonikon epi boun ergaten elthe kai to kosmion probaton kai
   ton oikouron alektruona kai kata mikron outo ten aplestian stomosantes
   epi sphagas anthropon kai polemous kai phonous proelthon.--Plout. peri
   tes Sarkophagias.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTE ON QUEEN MAB, BY MRS. SHELLEY.
   
   Shelley was eighteen when he wrote "Queen Mab"; he never published it.
   When it was written, he had come to the decision that he was too young
   to be a 'judge of controversies'; and he was desirous of acquiring 'that
   sobriety of spirit which is the characteristic of true heroism.' But he
   never doubted the truth or utility of his opinions; and, in printing and
   privately distributing "Queen Mab", he believed that he should further
   their dissemination, without occasioning the mischief either to others
   or himself that might arise from publication. It is doubtful whether he
   would himself have admitted it into a collection of his works. His
   severe classical taste, refined by the constant study of the Greek
   poets, might have discovered defects that escape the ordinary reader;
   and the change his opinions underwent in many points would have
   prevented him from putting forth the speculations of his boyish days.
   But the poem is too beautiful in itself, and far too remarkable as the
   production of a boy of eighteen, to allow of its being passed over:
   besides that, having been frequently reprinted, the omission would be
   vain. In the former edition certain portions were left out, as shocking
   the general reader from the violence of their attack on religion. I
   myself had a painful feeling that such erasures might be looked upon as
   a mark of disrespect towards the author, and am glad to have the
   opportunity of restoring them. The notes also are reprinted entire--not
   because they are models of reasoning or lessons of truth, but because
   Shelley wrote them, and that all that a man at once so distinguished and
   so excellent ever did deserves to be preserved. The alterations his
   opinions underwent ought to be recorded, for they form his history.
   
   A series of articles was published in the "New Monthly Magazine" during
   the autumn of the year 1832, written by a man of great talent, a
   fellow-collegian and warm friend of Shelley: they describe admirably the
   state of his mind during his collegiate life. Inspired with ardour for
   the acquisition of knowledge, endowed with the keenest sensibility and
   with the fortitude of a martyr, Shelley came among his fellow-creatures,
   congregated for the purposes of education, like a spirit from another
   sphere; too delicately organized for the rough treatment man uses
   towards man, especially in the season of youth, and too resolute in
   carrying out his own sense of good and justice, not to become a victim.
   To a devoted attachment to those he loved he added a determined
   resistance to oppression. Refusing to fag at Eton, he was treated with
   revolting cruelty by masters and boys: this roused instead of taming his
   spirit, and he rejected the duty of obedience when it was enforced by
   menaces and punishment. To aversion to the society of his
   fellow-creatures, such as he found them when collected together in
   societies, where one egged on the other to acts of tyranny, was joined
   the deepest sympathy and compassion; while the attachment he felt for
   individuals, and the admiration with which he regarded their powers and
   their virtues, led him to entertain a high opinion of the perfectibility
   of human nature; and he believed that all could reach the highest grade
   of moral improvement, did not the customs and prejudices of society
   foster evil passions and excuse evil actions.
   
   The oppression which, trembling at every nerve yet resolute to heroism,
   it was his ill-fortune to encounter at school and at college, led him to
   dissent in all things from those whose arguments were blows, whose faith
   appeared to engender blame and hatred. 'During my existence,' he wrote
   to a friend in 1812, 'I have incessantly speculated, thought, and read.'
   His readings were not always well chosen; among them were the works of
   the French philosophers: as far as metaphysical argument went, he
   temporarily became a convert. At the same time, it was the cardinal
   article of his faith that, if men were but taught and induced to treat
   their fellows with love, charity, and equal rights, this earth would
   realize paradise. He looked upon religion, as it is professed, and above
   all practised, as hostile instead of friendly to the cultivation of
   those virtues which would make men brothers.
   
   Can this be wondered at? At the age of seventeen, fragile in health and
   frame, of the purest habits in morals, full of devoted generosity and
   universal kindness, glowing with ardour to attain wisdom, resolved at
   every personal sacrifice to do right, burning with a desire for
   affection and sympathy,--he was treated as a reprobate, cast forth as a
   criminal.
   
   The cause was that he was sincere; that he believed the opinions which
   he entertained to be true. And he loved truth with a martyr's love; he
   was ready to sacrifice station and fortune, and his dearest affections,
   at its shrine. The sacrifice was demanded from, and made by, a youth of
   seventeen. It is a singular fact in the history of society in the
   civilized nations of modern times that no false step is so irretrievable
   as one made in early youth. Older men, it is true, when they oppose
   their fellows and transgress ordinary rules, carry a certain prudence or
   hypocrisy as a shield along with them. But youth is rash; nor can it
   imagine, while asserting what it believes to be true, and doing what it
   believes to be right, that it should be denounced as vicious, and
   pursued as a criminal.
   
   Shelley possessed a quality of mind which experience has shown me to be
   of the rarest occurrence among human beings: this was his UNWORLDLINESS.
   The usual motives that rule men, prospects of present or future
   advantage, the rank and fortune of those around, the taunts and
   censures, or the praise, of those who were hostile to him, had no
   influence whatever over his actions, and apparently none over his
   thoughts. It is difficult even to express the simplicity and directness
   of purpose that adorned him. Some few might be found in the history of
   mankind, and some one at least among his own friends, equally
   disinterested and scornful, even to severe personal sacrifices, of every
   baser motive. But no one, I believe, ever joined this noble but passive
   virtue to equal active endeavours for the benefit of his friends and
   mankind in general, and to equal power to produce the advantages he
   desired. The world's brightest gauds and its most solid advantages were
   of no worth in his eyes, when compared to the cause of what he
   considered truth, and the good of his fellow-creatures. Born in a
   position which, to his inexperienced mind, afforded the greatest
   facilities to practise the tenets he espoused, he boldly declared the
   use he would make of fortune and station, and enjoyed the belief that he
   should materially benefit his fellow-creatures by his actions; while,
   conscious of surpassing powers of reason and imagination, it is not
   strange that he should, even while so young, have believed that his
   written thoughts would tend to disseminate opinions which he believed
   conducive to the happiness of the human race.
   
   If man were a creature devoid of passion, he might have said and done
   all this with quietness. But he was too enthusiastic, and too full of
   hatred of all the ills he witnessed, not to scorn danger. Various
   disappointments tortured, but could not tame, his soul. The more enmity
   he met, the more earnestly he became attached to his peculiar views, and
   hostile to those of the men who persecuted him.
   
   He was animated to greater zeal by compassion for his fellow-creatures.
   His sympathy was excited by the misery with which the world is burning.
   He witnessed the sufferings of the poor, and was aware of the evils of
   ignorance. He desired to induce every rich man to despoil himself of
   superfluity, and to create a brotherhood of property and service, and
   was ready to be the first to lay down the advantages of his birth. He
   was of too uncompromising a disposition to join any party. He did not in
   his youth look forward to gradual improvement: nay, in those days of
   intolerance, now almost forgotten, it seemed as easy to look forward to
   the sort of millennium of freedom and brotherhood which he thought the
   proper state of mankind as to the present reign of moderation and
   improvement. Ill-health made him believe that his race would soon be
   run; that a year or two was all he had of life. He desired that these
   years should be useful and illustrious. He saw, in a fervent call on his
   fellow-creatures to share alike the blessings of the creation, to love
   and serve each other, the noblest work that life and time permitted him.
   In this spirit he composed "Queen Mab".
   
   He was a lover of the wonderful and wild in literature, but had not
   fostered these tastes at their genuine sources--the romances and
   chivalry of the middle ages--but in the perusal of such German works as
   were current in those days. Under the influence of these he, at the age
   of fifteen, wrote two short prose romances of slender merit. The
   sentiments and language were exaggerated, the composition imitative and
   poor. He wrote also a poem on the subject of Ahasuerus--being led to it
   by a German fragment he picked up, dirty and torn, in Lincoln's Inn
   Fields. This fell afterwards into other hands, and was considerably
   altered before it was printed. Our earlier English poetry was almost
   unknown to him. The love and knowledge of Nature developed by
   Wordsworth--the lofty melody and mysterious beauty of Coleridge's
   poetry--and the wild fantastic machinery and gorgeous scenery adopted by
   Southey--composed his favourite reading; the rhythm of "Queen Mab" was
   founded on that of "Thalaba", and the first few lines bear a striking
   resemblance in spirit, though not in idea, to the opening of that poem.
   His fertile imagination, and ear tuned to the finest sense of harmony,
   preserved him from imitation. Another of his favourite books was the
   poem of "Gebir" by Walter Savage Landor. From his boyhood he had a
   wonderful facility of versification, which he carried into another
   language; and his Latin school-verses were composed with an ease and
   correctness that procured for him prizes, and caused him to be resorted
   to by all his friends for help. He was, at the period of writing "Queen
   Mab", a great traveller within the limits of England, Scotland, and
   Ireland. His time was spent among the loveliest scenes of these
   countries. Mountain and lake and forest were his home; the phenomena of
   Nature were his favourite study. He loved to inquire into their causes,
   and was addicted to pursuits of natural philosophy and chemistry, as far
   as they could be carried on as an amusement. These tastes gave truth and
   vivacity to his descriptions, and warmed his soul with that deep
   admiration for the wonders of Nature which constant association with her
   inspired.
   
   He never intended to publish "Queen Mab" as it stands; but a few years
   after, when printing "Alastor", he extracted a small portion which he
   entitled "The Daemon of the World". In this he changed somewhat the
   versification, and made other alterations scarcely to be called
   improvements.
   
   Some years after, when in Italy, a bookseller published an edition of
   "Queen Mab" as it originally stood. Shelley was hastily written to by
   his friends, under the idea that, deeply injurious as the mere
   distribution of the poem had proved, the publication might awaken fresh
   persecutions. At the suggestion of these friends he wrote a letter on
   the subject, printed in the "Examiner" newspaper--with which I close
   this history of his earliest work.
   
   TO THE EDITOR OF THE 'EXAMINER.'
   
   'Sir,
   
   'Having heard that a poem entitled "Queen Mab" has been surreptitiously
   published in London, and that legal proceedings have been instituted
   against the publisher, I request the favour of your _insert_ion of the
   following explanation of the affair, as it relates to me.
   
   'A poem entitled "Queen Mab" was written by me at the age of eighteen, I
   daresay in a sufficiently intemperate spirit--but even then was not
   intended for publication, and a few copies only were struck off, to be
   distributed among my personal friends. I have not seen this production
   for several years. I doubt not but that it is perfectly worthless in
   point of literary composition; and that, in all that concerns moral and
   political speculation, as well as in the subtler discriminations of
   metaphysical and religious doctrine, it is still more crude and
   immature. I am a devoted enemy to religious, political, and domestic
   oppression; and I regret this publication, not so much from literary
   vanity, as because I fear it is better fitted to injure than to serve
   the sacred cause of freedom. I have directed my solicitor to apply to
   Chancery for an injunction to restrain the sale; but, after the
   precedent of Mr. Southey's "Wat Tyler" (a poem written, I believe, at
   the same age, and with the same unreflecting enthusiasm), with little
   hope of success.
   
   'Whilst I exonerate myself from all share in having divulged opinions
   hostile to existing sanctions, under the form, whatever it may be, which
   they assume in this poem, it is scarcely necessary for me to protest
   against the system of inculcating the truth of Christianity or the
   excellence of Monarchy, however true or however excellent they may be,
   by such equivocal arguments as confiscation and imprisonment, and
   invective and slander, and the insolent violation of the most sacred
   ties of Nature and society.
   
   'SIR,
   
   'I am your obliged and obedient servant,
   
   'PERCY B. SHELLEY.
   
   'Pisa, June 22, 1821.'
   
   ***
   
   
   [Of the following pieces the "Original Poetry by Victor and Cazire", the
   Poems from "St. Irvyne, or The Rosicrucian", "The Posthumous Fragments
   of Margaret Nicholson" and "The Devil's Walk", were published by Shelley
   himself; the others by Medwin, Rossetti, Forman and Dowden, as indicated
   in the several prefatory notes.]
   
   VERSES ON A CAT.
   
   [Published by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858; dated 1800.]
   
   1.
   A cat in distress,
   Nothing more, nor less;
   Good folks, I must faithfully tell ye,
   As I am a sinner,
   It waits for some dinner                                             _5
   To stuff out its own little belly.
   
   2.
   You would not easily guess
   All the modes of distress
   Which torture the tenants of earth;
   And the various evils,                                               _10
   Which like so many devils,
   Attend the poor souls from their birth.
   
   3.
   Some a living require,
   And others desire
   An old fellow out of the way;                                        _15
   And which is the best
   I leave to be guessed,
   For I cannot pretend to say.
   
   4.
   One wants society,
   Another variety,                                                     _20
   Others a tranquil life;
   Some want food,
   Others, as good,
   Only want a wife.
   
   5.
   But this poor little cat                                             _25
   Only wanted a rat,
   To stuff out its own little maw;
   And it were as good
   SOME people had such food,
   To make them HOLD THEIR JAW!                                         _30
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: OMENS.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "Shelley Papers", 1833; dated 1807.]
   
   Hark! the owlet flaps his wings
   In the pathless dell beneath;
   Hark! 'tis the night-raven sings
   Tidings of approaching death.
   
   ***
   
   
   EPITAPHIUM.
   
   [LATIN VERSION OF THE EPITAPH IN GRAY'S ELEGY.]
   
   [Published by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847; dated 1808-9.]
   
   1.
   Hic sinu fessum caput hospitali
   Cespitis dormit juvenis, nec illi
   Fata ridebant, popularis ille
   Nescius aurae.
   
   2.
   Musa non vultu genus arroganti                                       _5
   Rustica natum grege despicata,
   Et suum tristis puerum notavit
   Sollicitudo.
   
   3.
   Indoles illi bene larga, pectus
   Veritas sedem sibi vindicavit,                                       _10
   Et pari tantis meritis beavit
   Munere coelum.
   
   4.
   Omne quad moestis habuit miserto
   Corde largivit lacrimam, recepit
   Omne quod coelo voluit, fidelis                                      _15
   Pectus amici.
   
   5.
   Longius sed tu fuge curiosus
   Caeteras laudes fuge suspicari,
   Caeteras culpas fuge velle tractas
   Sede tremenda.                                                       _20
   
   6.
   Spe tremescentes recubant in illa
   Sede virtutes pariterque culpae,
   In sui Patris gremio, tremenda
   Sede Deique.
   
   ***
   
   
   IN HOROLOGIUM.
   
   [Published by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847; dated 1809.]
   
   Inter marmoreas Leonorae pendula colles
   Fortunata nimis Machina dicit horas.
   Quas MANIBUS premit illa duas insensa papillas
   Cur mihi sit DIGITO tangere, amata, nefas?
   
   ***
   
   
   A DIALOGUE.
   
   [Published (without title) by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858;
   dated 1809. Included in the Esdaile manuscript book.]
   
   DEATH:
   For my dagger is bathed in the blood of the brave,
   I come, care-worn tenant of life, from the grave,
   Where Innocence sleeps 'neath the peace-giving sod,
   And the good cease to tremble at Tyranny's nod;
   I offer a calm habitation to thee,--                                 _5
   Say, victim of grief, wilt thou slumber with me?
   My mansion is damp, cold silence is there,
   But it lulls in oblivion the fiends of despair;
   Not a groan of regret, not a sigh, not a breath,
   Dares dispute with grim Silence the empire of Death.                 _10
   I offer a calm habitation to thee,--
   Say, victim of grief, wilt thou slumber with me?
   
   MORTAL:
   Mine eyelids are heavy; my soul seeks repose,
   It longs in thy cells to embosom its woes,
   It longs in thy cells to deposit its load,                           _15
   Where no longer the scorpions of Perfidy goad,--
   Where the phantoms of Prejudice vanish away,
   And Bigotry's bloodhounds lose scent of their prey.
   Yet tell me, dark Death, when thine empire is o'er,
   What awaits on Futurity's mist-covered shore?                        _20
   
   DEATH:
   Cease, cease, wayward Mortal! I dare not unveil
   The shadows that float o'er Eternity's vale;
   Nought waits for the good but a spirit of Love,
   That will hail their blest advent to regions above.
   For Love, Mortal, gleams through the gloom of my sway,               _25
   And the shades which surround me fly fast at its ray.
   Hast thou loved?--Then depart from these regions of hate,
   And in slumber with me blunt the arrows of fate.
   I offer a calm habitation to thee.--
   Say, victim of grief, wilt thou slumber with me?                     _30
   
   MORTAL:
   Oh! sweet is thy slumber! oh! sweet is the ray
   Which after thy night introduces the day;
   How concealed, how persuasive, self-interest's breath,
   Though it floats to mine ear from the bosom of Death!
   I hoped that I quite was forgotten by all,                           _35
   Yet a lingering friend might be grieved at my fall,
   And duty forbids, though I languish to die,
   When departure might heave Virtue's breast with a sigh.
   O Death! O my friend! snatch this form to thy shrine,
   And I fear, dear destroyer, I shall not repine.                      _40
   
   NOTE:
   _22 o'er Esdaile manuscript; on 1858.
   
   
   ***
   
   
   TO THE MOONBEAM.
   
   [Published by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858: dated 1809.
   Included in the Esdaile manuscript book.]
   
   1.
   Moonbeam, leave the shadowy vale,
   To bathe this burning brow.
   Moonbeam, why art thou so pale,
   As thou walkest o'er the dewy dale,
   Where humble wild-flowers grow?                                      _5
   Is it to mimic me?
   But that can never be;
   For thine orb is bright,
   And the clouds are light,
   That at intervals shadow the star-studded night.                     _10
   
   2.
   Now all is deathy still on earth;
   Nature's tired frame reposes;
   And, ere the golden morning's birth
   Its radiant hues discloses,
   Flies forth its balmy breath.                                        _15
   But mine is the midnight of Death,
   And Nature's morn
   To my bosom forlorn
   Brings but a gloomier night, implants a deadlier thorn.
   
   3.
   Wretch! Suppress the glare of madness                                _20
   Struggling in thine haggard eye,
   For the keenest throb of sadness,
   Pale Despair's most sickening sigh,
   Is but to mimic me;
   And this must ever be,                                               _25
   When the twilight of care,
   And the night of despair,
   Seem in my breast but joys to the pangs that rankle there.
   
   NOTE:
   _28 rankle Esdaile manuscript wake 1858.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE SOLITARY.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870;
   dated 1810. Included in the Esdaile manuscript book.]
   
   1.
   Dar'st thou amid the varied multitude
   To live alone, an isolated thing?
   To see the busy beings round thee spring,
   And care for none; in thy calm solitude,
   A flower that scarce breathes in the desert rude                     _5
   To Zephyr's passing wing?
   
   2.
   Not the swart Pariah in some Indian grove,
   Lone, lean, and hunted by his brother's hate,
   Hath drunk so deep the cup of bitter fate
   As that poor wretch who cannot, cannot love:                         _10
   He bears a load which nothing can remove,
   A killing, withering weight.
   
   3.
   He smiles--'tis sorrow's deadliest mockery;
   He speaks--the cold words flow not from his soul;
   He acts like others, drains the genial bowl,--                       _15
   Yet, yet he longs--although he fears--to die;
   He pants to reach what yet he seems to fly,
   Dull life's extremest goal.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO DEATH.
   
   [Published (without title) by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858; dated 1810.
   Included (under the title, "To Death") in the Esdaile manuscript book.]
   
   Death! where is thy victory?
   To triumph whilst I die,
   To triumph whilst thine ebon wing
   Enfolds my shuddering soul?
   O Death! where is thy sting?                                         _5
   Not when the tides of murder roll,
   When nations groan, that kings may bask in bliss,
   Death! canst thou boast a victory such as this--
   When in his hour of pomp and power
   His blow the mightiest murderer gave,                                _10
   Mid Nature's cries the sacrifice
   Of millions to glut the grave;
   When sunk the Tyrant Desolation's slave;
   Or Freedom's life-blood streamed upon thy shrine;
   Stern Tyrant, couldst thou boast a victory such as mine?             _15
   
   To know in dissolution's void
   That mortals' baubles sunk decay;
   That everything, but Love, destroyed
   Must perish with its kindred clay,--
   Perish Ambition's crown,                                             _20
   Perish her sceptred sway:
   From Death's pale front fades Pride's fastidious frown.
   In Death's damp vault the lurid fires decay,
   That Envy lights at heaven-born Virtue's beam--
   That all the cares subside,                                          _25
   Which lurk beneath the tide
   Of life's unquiet stream;--
   Yes! this is victory!
   And on yon rock, whose dark form glooms the sky,
   To stretch these pale limbs, when the soul is fled;                  _30
   To baffle the lean passions of their prey,
   To sleep within the palace of the dead!
   Oh! not the King, around whose dazzling throne
   His countless courtiers mock the words they say,
   Triumphs amid the bud of glory blown,                                _35
   As I in this cold bed, and faint expiring groan!
   
   Tremble, ye proud, whose grandeur mocks the woe
   Which props the column of unnatural state!
   You the plainings, faint and low,
   From Misery's tortured soul that flow,                               _40
   Shall usher to your fate.
   
   Tremble, ye conquerors, at whose fell command
   The war-fiend riots o'er a peaceful land!
   You Desolation's gory throng
   Shall bear from Victory along                                        _45
   To that mysterious strand.
   
   NOTE:
   _10 murderer Esdaile manuscript; murders 1858.
   
   ***
   
   
   LOVE'S ROSE.
   
   [Published (without title) by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858; dated 1810.
   Included in the Esdaile manuscript book.]
   
   1.
   Hopes, that swell in youthful breasts,
   Live not through the waste of time!
   Love's rose a host of thorns invests;
   Cold, ungenial is the clime,
   Where its honours blow.                                              _5
   Youth says, 'The purple flowers are mine,'
   Which die the while they glow.
   
   2.
   Dear the boon to Fancy given,
   Retracted whilst it's granted:
   Sweet the rose which lives in Heaven,                                _10
   Although on earth 'tis planted,
   Where its honours blow,
   While by earth's slaves the leaves are riven
   Which die the while they glow.
   
   3.
   Age cannot Love destroy,                                             _15
   But perfidy can blast the flower,
   Even when in most unwary hour
   It blooms in Fancy's bower.
   Age cannot Love destroy,
   But perfidy can rend the shrine                                      _20
   In which its vermeil splendours shine.
   
   NOTES:
   Love's Rose--The title is Rossetti's, 1870.
   _2 not through Esdaile manuscript; they this, 1858.
   
   ***
   
   
   EYES: A FRAGMENT.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870;
   dated 1810. Included (four unpublished eight-line stanzas) in the
   Esdaile manuscript book.)]
   
   How eloquent are eyes!
   Not the rapt poet's frenzied lay
   When the soul's wildest feelings stray
   Can speak so well as they.
   How eloquent are eyes!                                               _5
   Not music's most impassioned note
   On which Love's warmest fervours float
   Like them bids rapture rise.
   
   Love, look thus again,--
   That your look may light a waste of years,                           _10
   Darting the beam that conquers cares
   Through the cold shower of tears.
   Love, look thus again!
   
   ***
   
   
   ORIGINAL POETRY BY VICTOR AND CAZIRE.
   
   [Published by Shelley, 1810. A Reprint, edited by Richard Garnett, C.B.,
   LL.D., was issued by John Lane, in 1898. The punctuation of the original
   edition is here retained.]
   
   A Person complained that whenever he began to write, he never could
   arrange his ideas in grammatical order. Which occasion suggested the
   idea of the following lines:
   
   1.
   Here I sit with my paper, my pen and my ink,
   First of this thing, and that thing, and t'other thing think;
   Then my thoughts come so pell-mell all into my mind,
   That the sense or the subject I never can find:
   This word is wrong placed,--no regard to the sense,
   The present and future, instead of past tense,
   Then my grammar I want; O dear! what a bore,
   I think I shall never attempt to write more,
   With patience I then my thoughts must arraign,
   Have them all in due order like mutes in a train,                    _10
   Like them too must wait in due patience and thought,
   Or else my fine works will all come to nought.
   My wit too's so copious, it flows like a river,
   But disperses its waters on black and white never;
   Like smoke it appears independent and free,                          _15
   But ah luckless smoke! it all passes like thee--
   Then at length all my patience entirely lost,
   My paper and pens in the fire are tossed;
   But come, try again--you must never despair,
   Our Murray's or Entick's are not all so rare,                        _20
   Implore their assistance--they'll come to your aid,
   Perform all your business without being paid,
   They'll tell you the present tense, future and past,
   Which should come first, and which should come last,
   This Murray will do--then to Entick repair,                          _25
   To find out the meaning of any word rare.
   This they friendly will tell, and ne'er make you blush,
   With a jeering look, taunt, or an O fie! tush!
   Then straight all your thoughts in black and white put,
   Not minding the if's, the be's, and the but,                         _30
   Then read it all over, see how it will run,
   How answers the wit, the retort, and the pun,
   Your writings may then with old Socrates vie,
   May on the same shelf with Demosthenes lie,
   May as Junius be sharp, or as Plato be sage.                         _35
   The pattern or satire to all of the age;
   But stop--a mad author I mean not to turn,
   Nor with thirst of applause does my heated brain burn,
   Sufficient that sense, wit, and grammar combined,
   My letters may make some slight food for the mind;                   _40
   That my thoughts to my friends I may freely impart,
   In all the warm language that flows from the heart.
   Hark! futurity calls! it loudly complains,
   It bids me step forward and just hold the reins,
   My excuse shall be humble, and faithful, and true,                   _45
   Such as I fear can be made but by few--
   Of writers this age has abundance and plenty,
   Three score and a thousand, two millions and twenty,
   Three score of them wits who all sharply vie,
   To try what odd creature they best can belie,                        _50
   A thousand are prudes who for CHARITY write,
   And fill up their sheets with spleen, envy, and spite[,]
   One million are bards, who to Heaven aspire,
   And stuff their works full of bombast, rant, and fire,
   T'other million are wags who in Grubstreet attend,                   _55
   And just like a cobbler the old writings mend,
   The twenty are those who for pulpits indite,
   And pore over sermons all Saturday night.
   And now my good friends--who come after I mean,
   As I ne'er wore a cassock, or dined with a dean.                     _60
   Or like cobblers at mending I never did try,
   Nor with poets in lyrics attempted to vie;
   As for prudes these good souls I both hate and detest,
   So here I believe the matter must rest.--
   I've heard your complaint--my answer I've made,                      _65
   And since to your calls all the tribute I've paid,
   Adieu my good friend; pray never despair,
   But grammar and sense and everything dare,
   Attempt but to write dashing, easy, and free,
   Then take out your grammar and pay him his fee,                      _70
   Be not a coward, shrink not to a tense,
   But read it all over and make it out sense.
   What a tiresome girl!--pray soon make an end,
   Else my limited patience you'll quickly expend.
   Well adieu, I no longer your patience will try--                     _75
   So swift to the post now the letter shall fly.
   
   JANUARY, 1810.
   
   
   2.
   
   TO MISS -- -- [HARRIET GROVE] FROM MISS -- -- [ELIZABETH SHELLEY].
   
   For your letter, dear -- [Hattie], accept my best thanks,
   Rendered long and amusing by virtue of franks,
   Though concise they would please, yet the longer the better,
   The more news that's crammed in, more amusing the letter,
   All excuses of etiquette nonsense I hate,                            _5
   Which only are fit for the tardy and late,
   As when converse grows flat, of the weather they talk,
   How fair the sun shines--a fine day for a walk,
   Then to politics turn, of Burdett's reformation,
   One declares it would hurt, t'other better the nation,               _10
   Will ministers keep? sure they've acted quite wrong,
   The burden this is of each morning-call song.
   So -- is going to -- you say,
   I hope that success her great efforts will pay [--]
   That [the Colonel] will see her, be dazzled outright,                _15
   And declare he can't bear to be out of her sight.
   Write flaming epistles with love's pointed dart,
   Whose sharp little arrow struck right on his heart,
   Scold poor innocent Cupid for mischievous ways,
   He knows not how much to laud forth her praise,                      _20
   That he neither eats, drinks or sleeps for her sake,
   And hopes her hard heart some compassion will take,
   A refusal would kill him, so desperate his flame,
   But he fears, for he knows she is not common game,
   Then praises her sense, wit, discernment and grace,                  _25
   He's not one that's caught by a sly looking face,
   Yet that's TOO divine--such a black sparkling eye,
   At the bare glance of which near a thousand will die;
   Thus runs he on meaning but one word in ten,
   More than is meant by most such kind of men,                         _30
   For they're all alike, take them one with another,
   Begging pardon--with the exception of my brother.
   Of the drawings you mention much praise I have heard,
   Most opinion's the same, with the difference of word,
   Some get a good name by the voice of the crowd,                      _35
   Whilst to poor humble merit small praise is allowed,
   As in parliament votes, so in pictures a name,
   Oft determines a fate at the altar of fame.--
   So on Friday this City's gay vortex you quit,
   And no longer with Doctors and Johnny cats sit--                     _40
   Now your parcel's arrived -- [Bysshe's] letter shall go,
   I hope all your joy mayn't be turned into woe,
   Experience will tell you that pleasure is vain,
   When it promises sunshine how often comes rain.
   So when to fond hope every blessing is nigh,                         _45
   How oft when we smile it is checked with a sigh,
   When Hope, gay deceiver, in pleasure is dressed,
   How oft comes a stroke that may rob us of rest.
   When we think ourselves safe, and the goal near at hand,
   Like a vessel just landing, we're wrecked near the strand,           _50
   And though memory forever the sharp pang must feel,
   'Tis our duty to bear, and our hardship to steel--
   May misfortunes dear Girl, ne'er thy happiness cloy,
   May thy days glide in peace, love, comfort and joy,
   May thy tears with soft pity for other woes flow,                    _55
   Woes, which thy tender heart never may know,
   For hardships our own, God has taught us to bear,
   Though sympathy's soul to a friend drops a tear.
   Oh dear! what sentimental stuff have I written,
   Only fit to tear up and play with a kitten.                          _60
   What sober reflections in the midst of this letter!
   Jocularity sure would have suited much better;
   But there are exceptions to all common rules,
   For this is a truth by all boys learned at schools.
   Now adieu my dear -- [Hattie] I'm sure I must tire,                  _65
   For if I do, you may throw it into the fire,
   So accept the best love of your cousin and friend,
   Which brings this nonsensical rhyme to an end.
   
   APRIL 30, 1810.
   
   NOTE:
   _19 mischievous]mischevious 1810.
   
   
   3. SONG.
   
   Cold, cold is the blast when December is howling,
   Cold are the damps on a dying man's brow,--
   Stern are the seas when the wild waves are rolling,
   And sad is the grave where a loved one lies low;
   But colder is scorn from the being who loved thee,                   _5
   More stern is the sneer from the friend who has proved thee,
   More sad are the tears when their sorrows have moved thee,
   Which mixed with groans anguish and wild madness flow--
   
   And ah! poor -- has felt all this horror,
   Full long the fallen victim contended with fate:                     _10
   'Till a destitute outcast abandoned to sorrow,
   She sought her babe's food at her ruiner's gate--
   Another had charmed the remorseless betrayer,
   He turned laughing aside from her moans and her prayer,
   She said nothing, but wringing the wet from her hair,                _15
   Crossed the dark mountain side, though the hour it was late.
   'Twas on the wild height of the dark Penmanmawr,
   That the form of the wasted -- reclined;
   She shrieked to the ravens that croaked from afar,
   And she sighed to the gusts of the wild sweeping wind.--             _20
   I call not yon rocks where the thunder peals rattle,
   I call not yon clouds where the elements battle,
   But thee, cruel -- I call thee unkind!'--
   
   Then she wreathed in her hair the wild flowers of the mountain,
   And deliriously laughing, a garland entwined,                        _25
   She bedewed it with tears, then she hung o'er the fountain,
   And leaving it, cast it a prey to the wind.
   'Ah! go,' she exclaimed, 'when the tempest is yelling,
   'Tis unkind to be cast on the sea that is swelling,
   But I left, a pitiless outcast, my dwelling,                         _30
   My garments are torn, so they say is my mind--'
   
   Not long lived --, but over her grave
   Waved the desolate form of a storm-blasted yew,
   Around it no demons or ghosts dare to rave,
   But spirits of peace steep her slumbers in dew.                      _35
   Then stay thy swift steps mid the dark mountain heather,
   Though chill blow the wind and severe is the weather,
   For perfidy, traveller! cannot bereave her,
   Of the tears, to the tombs of the innocent due.--
   
   JULY, 1810.
   
   
   4. SONG.
   
   Come [Harriet]! sweet is the hour,
   Soft Zephyrs breathe gently around,
   The anemone's night-boding flower,
   Has sunk its pale head on the ground.
   
   'Tis thus the world's keenness hath torn,                            _5
   Some mild heart that expands to its blast,
   'Tis thus that the wretched forlorn,
   Sinks poor and neglected at last.--
   
   The world with its keenness and woe,
   Has no charms or attraction for me,                                  _10
   Its unkindness with grief has laid low,
   The heart which is faithful to thee.
   The high trees that wave past the moon,
   As I walk in their umbrage with you,
   All declare I must part with you soon,                               _15
   All bid you a tender adieu!--
   
   Then [Harriet]! dearest farewell,
   You and I love, may ne'er meet again;
   These woods and these meadows can tell
   How soft and how sweet was the strain.--                             _20
   
   APRIL, 1810.
   
   
   5. SONG.
   
   DESPAIR.
   
   Ask not the pallid stranger's woe,
   With beating heart and throbbing breast,
   Whose step is faltering, weak, and slow,
   As though the body needed rest.--
   
   Whose 'wildered eye no object meets,                                 _5
   Nor cares to ken a friendly glance,
   With silent grief his bosom beats,--
   Now fixed, as in a deathlike trance.
   
   Who looks around with fearful eye,
   And shuns all converse with man kind,                                _10
   As though some one his griefs might spy,
   And soothe them with a kindred mind.
   
   A friend or foe to him the same,
   He looks on each with equal eye;
   The difference lies but in the name,                                 _15
   To none for comfort can he fly.--
   
   'Twas deep despair, and sorrow's trace,
   To him too keenly given,
   Whose memory, time could not efface--
   His peace was lodged in Heaven.--                                    _20
   
   He looks on all this world bestows,
   The pride and pomp of power,
   As trifles best for pageant shows
   Which vanish in an hour.
   
   When torn is dear affection's tie,                                   _25
   Sinks the soft heart full low;
   It leaves without a parting sigh,
   All that these realms bestow.
   
   JUNE, 1810.
   
   
   6. SONG.
   
   SORROW.
   
   To me this world's a dreary blank,
   All hopes in life are gone and fled,
   My high strung energies are sank,
   And all my blissful hopes lie dead.--
   
   The world once smiling to my view,                                   _5
   Showed scenes of endless bliss and joy;
   The world I then but little knew,
   Ah! little knew how pleasures cloy;
   
   All then was jocund, all was gay,
   No thought beyond the present hour,                                  _10
   I danced in pleasure's fading ray,
   Fading alas! as drooping flower.
   
   Nor do the heedless in the throng,
   One thought beyond the morrow give[,]
   They court the feast, the dance, the song,                           _15
   Nor think how short their time to live.
   
   The heart that bears deep sorrow's trace,
   What earthly comfort can console,
   It drags a dull and lengthened pace,
   'Till friendly death its woes enroll.--                              _20
   
   The sunken cheek, the humid eyes,
   E'en better than the tongue can tell;
   In whose sad breast deep sorrow lies,
   Where memory's rankling traces dwell.--
   
   The rising tear, the stifled sigh,                                   _25
   A mind but ill at ease display,
   Like blackening clouds in stormy sky,
   Where fiercely vivid lightnings play.
   
   Thus when souls' energy is dead,
   When sorrow dims each earthly view,                                  _30
   When every fairy hope is fled,
   We bid ungrateful world adieu.
   
   AUGUST, 1810.
   
   
   7. SONG.
   
   HOPE.
   
   And said I that all hope was fled,
   That sorrow and despair were mine,
   That each enthusiast wish was dead,
   Had sank beneath pale Misery's shrine.--
   
   Seest thou the sunbeam's yellow glow,                                _5
   That robes with liquid streams of light;
   Yon distant Mountain's craggy brow.
   And shows the rocks so fair,--so bright--
   
   Tis thus sweet expectation's ray,
   In softer view shows distant hours,                                  _10
   And portrays each succeeding day,
   As dressed in fairer, brighter flowers,--
   
   The vermeil tinted flowers that blossom;
   Are frozen but to bud anew,
   Then sweet deceiver calm my bosom,                                   _15
   Although thy visions be not true,--
   
   Yet true they are,--and I'll believe,
   Thy whisperings soft of love and peace,
   God never made thee to deceive,
   'Tis sin that bade thy empire cease.                                 _20
   
   Yet though despair my life should gloom,
   Though horror should around me close,
   With those I love, beyond the tomb,
   Hope shows a balm for all my woes.
   
   AUGUST, 1810.
   
   
   8. SONG.
   
   TRANSLATED FROM THE ITALIAN.
   
   Oh! what is the gain of restless care,
   And what is ambitious treasure?
   And what are the joys that the modish share,
   In their sickly haunts of pleasure?
   
   My husband's repast with delight I spread,                           _5
   What though 'tis but rustic fare,
   May each guardian angel protect his shed,
   May contentment and quiet be there.
   
   And may I support my husband's years,
   May I soothe his dying pain,                                         _10
   And then may I dry my fast falling tears,
   And meet him in Heaven again.
   
   JULY, 1810.
   
   
   9. SONG.
   
   TRANSLATED FROM THE GERMAN.
   
   Ah! grasp the dire dagger and couch the fell spear,
   If vengeance and death to thy bosom be dear,
   The dastard shall perish, death's torment shall prove,
   For fate and revenge are decreed from above.
   
   Ah! where is the hero, whose nerves strung by youth,                 _5
   Will defend the firm cause of justice and truth;
   With insatiate desire whose bosom shall swell,
   To give up the oppressor to judgement and Hell--
   
   For him shall the fair one twine chaplets of bays,
   To him shall each warrior give merited praise,                       _10
   And triumphant returned from the clangour of arms,
   He shall find his reward in his loved maiden's charms.
   
   In ecstatic confusion the warrior shall sip,
   The kisses that glow on his love's dewy lip,
   And mutual, eternal, embraces shall prove,                           _15
   The rewards of the brave are the transports of love.
   
   OCTOBER, 1809.
   
   
   10. THE IRISHMAN'S SONG.
   
   The stars may dissolve, and the fountain of light
   May sink into ne'er ending chaos and night,
   Our mansions must fall, and earth vanish away,
   But thy courage O Erin! may never decay.
   
   See! the wide wasting ruin extends all around,                       _5
   Our ancestors' dwellings lie sunk on the ground,
   Our foes ride in triumph throughout our domains,
   And our mightiest heroes lie stretched on the plains.
   
   Ah! dead is the harp which was wont to give pleasure,
   Ah! sunk is our sweet country's rapturous measure,                   _10
   But the war note is waked, and the clangour of spears,
   The dread yell of Sloghan yet sounds in our ears.
   
   Ah! where are the heroes! triumphant in death,
   Convulsed they recline on the blood sprinkled heath,
   Or the yelling ghosts ride on the blast that sweeps by,              _15
   And 'my countrymen! vengeance!' incessantly cry.
   
   OCTOBER, 1809.
   
   
   11. SONG.
   
   Fierce roars the midnight storm
   O'er the wild mountain,
   Dark clouds the night deform,
   Swift rolls the fountain--
   
   See! o'er yon rocky height,                                          _5
   Dim mists are flying--
   See by the moon's pale light,
   Poor Laura's dying!
   
   Shame and remorse shall howl,
   By her false pillow--                                                _10
   Fiercer than storms that roll,
   O'er the white billow;
   
   No hand her eyes to close,
   When life is flying,
   But she will find repose,                                            _15
   For Laura's dying!
   
   Then will I seek my love,
   Then will I cheer her,
   Then my esteem will prove,
   When no friend is near her.                                          _20
   
   On her grave I will lie,
   When life is parted,
   On her grave I will die,
   For the false hearted.
   
   DECEMBER, 1809.
   
   
   12. SONG.
   
   TO [HARRIET].
   
   Ah! sweet is the moonbeam that sleeps on yon fountain,
   And sweet the mild rush of the soft-sighing breeze,
   And sweet is the glimpse of yon dimly-seen mountain,
   'Neath the verdant arcades of yon shadowy trees.
   
   But sweeter than all was thy tone of affection,                      _5
   Which scarce seemed to break on the stillness of eve,
   Though the time it is past!--yet the dear recollection,
   For aye in the heart of thy [Percy] must live.
   
   Yet he hears thy dear voice in the summer winds sighing,
   Mild accents of happiness lisp in his ear,                           _10
   When the hope-winged moments athwart him are flying,
   And he thinks of the friend to his bosom so dear.--
   
   And thou dearest friend in his bosom for ever
   Must reign unalloyed by the fast rolling year,
   He loves thee, and dearest one never, Oh! never                      _15
   Canst thou cease to be loved by a heart so sincere.
   
   AUGUST, 1810.
   
   NOTE:
   _11 hope-winged]hoped-winged 1810.
   
   
   13. SONG.
   
   TO -- [HARRIET].
   
   Stern, stern is the voice of fate's fearful command,
   When accents of horror it breathes in our ear,
   Or compels us for aye bid adieu to the land,
   Where exists that loved friend to our bosom so dear,
   
   'Tis sterner than death o'er the shuddering wretch bending,          _5
   And in skeleton grasp his fell sceptre extending,
   Like the heart-stricken deer to that loved covert wending,
   Which never again to his eyes may appear--
   
   And ah! he may envy the heart-stricken quarry,
   Who bids to the friend of affection farewell,                        _10
   He may envy the bosom so bleeding and gory,
   He may envy the sound of the drear passing knell,
   
   Not so deep is his grief on his death couch reposing,
   When on the last vision his dim eyes are closing!
   As the outcast whose love-raptured senses are losing,                _15
   The last tones of thy voice on the wild breeze that swell!
   
   Those tones were so soft, and so sad, that ah! never,
   Can the sound cease to vibrate on Memory's ear,
   In the stern wreck of Nature for ever and ever,
   The remembrance must live of a friend so sincere.                    _20
   
   AUGUST, 1810.
   
   
   14. SAINT EDMOND'S EVE.
   
   Oh! did you observe the Black Canon pass,
   And did you observe his frown?
   He goeth to say the midnight mass,
   In holy St. Edmond's town.
   
   He goeth to sing the burial chaunt,                                  _5
   And to lay the wandering sprite,
   Whose shadowy, restless form doth haunt,
   The Abbey's drear aisle this night.
   
   It saith it will not its wailing cease,
   'Till that holy man come near,                                       _10
   'Till he pour o'er its grave the prayer of peace,
   And sprinkle the hallowed tear.
   
   The Canon's horse is stout and strong
   The road is plain and fair,
   But the Canon slowly wends along,                                    _15
   And his brow is gloomed with care.
   
   Who is it thus late at the Abbey-gate?
   Sullen echoes the portal bell,
   It sounds like the whispering voice of fate,
   It sounds like a funeral knell.                                      _20
   
   The Canon his faltering knee thrice bowed,
   And his frame was convulsed with fear,
   When a voice was heard distinct and loud,
   'Prepare! for thy hour is near.'
   
   He crosses his breast, he mutters a prayer,                          _25
   To Heaven he lifts his eye,
   He heeds not the Abbot's gazing stare,
   Nor the dark Monks who murmured by.
   
   Bare-headed he worships the sculptured saints
   That frown on the sacred walls,                                      _30
   His face it grows pale,--he trembles, he faints,
   At the Abbot's feet he falls.
   
   And straight the father's robe he kissed,
   Who cried, 'Grace dwells with thee,
   The spirit will fade like the morning mist,                          _35
   At your benedicite.
   
   'Now haste within! the board is spread,
   Keen blows the air, and cold,
   The spectre sleeps in its earthy bed,
   'Till St. Edmond's bell hath tolled,--                               _40
   
   'Yet rest your wearied limbs to-night,
   You've journeyed many a mile,
   To-morrow lay the wailing sprite,
   That shrieks in the moonlight aisle.
   
   'Oh! faint are my limbs and my bosom is cold,                        _45
   Yet to-night must the sprite be laid,
   Yet to-night when the hour of horror's told,
   Must I meet the wandering shade.
   
   'Nor food, nor rest may now delay,--
   For hark! the echoing pile,                                          _50
   A bell loud shakes!--Oh haste away,
   O lead to the haunted aisle.'
   
   The torches slowly move before,
   The cross is raised on high,
   A smile of peace the Canon wore,                                     _55
   But horror dimmed his eye--
   
   And now they climb the footworn stair,
   The chapel gates unclose,
   Now each breathed low a fervent prayer,
   And fear each bosom froze--                                          _60
   
   Now paused awhile the doubtful band
   And viewed the solemn scene,--
   Full dark the clustered columns stand,
   The moon gleams pale between--
   
   'Say father, say, what cloisters' gloom                              _65
   Conceals the unquiet shade,
   Within what dark unhallowed tomb,
   The corse unblessed was laid.'
   
   'Through yonder drear aisle alone it walks,
   And murmurs a mournful plaint,                                       _70
   Of thee! Black Canon, it wildly talks,
   And call on thy patron saint--
   
   The pilgrim this night with wondering eyes,
   As he prayed at St. Edmond's shrine,
   From a black marble tomb hath seen it rise,                          _75
   And under yon arch recline.'--
   
   'Oh! say upon that black marble tomb,
   What memorial sad appears.'--
   'Undistinguished it lies in the chancel's gloom,
   No memorial sad it bears'--                                          _80
   
   The Canon his paternoster reads,
   His rosary hung by his side,
   Now swift to the chancel doors he leads,
   And untouched they open wide,
   
   Resistless, strange sounds his steps impel,                          _85
   To approach to the black marble tomb,
   'Oh! enter, Black Canon,' a whisper fell,
   'Oh! enter, thy hour is come.'
   
   He paused, told his beads, and the threshold passed.
   Oh! horror, the chancel doors close,                                 _90
   A loud yell was borne on the rising blast,
   And a deep, dying groan arose.
   
   The Monks in amazement shuddering stand,
   They burst through the chancel's gloom,
   From St. Edmond's shrine, lo! a skeleton's hand,                     _95
   Points to the black marble tomb.
   
   Lo! deeply engraved, an inscription blood red,
   In characters fresh and clear--
   'The guilty Black Canon of Elmham's dead,
   And his wife lies buried here!'                                      _100
   
   In Elmham's tower he wedded a Nun,
   To St. Edmond's his bride he bore,
   On this eve her noviciate here was begun,
   And a Monk's gray weeds she wore;--
   
   O! deep was her conscience dyed with guilt,                          _105
   Remorse she full oft revealed,
   Her blood by the ruthless Black Canon was spilt,
   And in death her lips he sealed;
   
   Her spirit to penance this night was doomed,
   'Till the Canon atoned the deed,                                     _110
   Here together they now shall rest entombed,
   'Till their bodies from dust are freed--
   
   Hark! a loud peal of thunder shakes the roof,
   Round the altar bright lightnings play,
   Speechless with horror the Monks stand aloof,                        _115
   And the storm dies sudden away--
   
   The inscription was gone! a cross on the ground,
   And a rosary shone through the gloom,
   But never again was the Canon there found,
   Or the Ghost on the black marble tomb.                               _120
   
   
   15. REVENGE.
   
   'Ah! quit me not yet, for the wind whistles shrill,
   Its blast wanders mournfully over the hill,
   The thunder's wild voice rattles madly above,
   You will not then, cannot then, leave me my love.--'
   
   I must dearest Agnes, the night is far gone--                        _5
   I must wander this evening to Strasburg alone,
   I must seek the drear tomb of my ancestors' bones,
   And must dig their remains from beneath the cold stones.
   
   'For the spirit of Conrad there meets me this night,
   And we quit not the tomb 'till dawn of the light,                    _10
   And Conrad's been dead just a month and a day!
   So farewell dearest Agnes for I must away,--
   
   'He bid me bring with me what most I held dear,
   Or a month from that time should I lie on my bier,
   And I'd sooner resign this false fluttering breath,                  _15
   Than my Agnes should dread either danger or death,
   
   'And I love you to madness my Agnes I love,
   My constant affection this night will I prove,
   This night will I go to the sepulchre's jaw
   Alone will I glut its all conquering maw'--                          _20
   
   'No! no loved Adolphus thy Agnes will share,
   In the tomb all the dangers that wait for you there,
   I fear not the spirit,--I fear not the grave,
   My dearest Adolphus I'd perish to save'--
   
   'Nay seek not to say that thy love shall not go,                     _25
   But spare me those ages of horror and woe,
   For I swear to thee here that I'll perish ere day,
   If you go unattended by Agnes away'--
   
   The night it was bleak the fierce storm raged around,
   The lightning's blue fire-light flashed on the ground,               _30
   Strange forms seemed to flit,--and howl tidings of fate,
   As Agnes advanced to the sepulchre gate.--
   
   The youth struck the portal,--the echoing sound
   Was fearfully rolled midst the tombstones around,
   The blue lightning gleamed o'er the dark chapel spire,               _35
   And tinged were the storm clouds with sulphurous fire.
   
   Still they gazed on the tombstone where Conrad reclined,
   Yet they shrank at the cold chilling blast of the wind,
   When a strange silver brilliance pervaded the scene,
   And a figure advanced--tall in form--fierce in mien.                 _40
   
   A mantle encircled his shadowy form,
   As light as a gossamer borne on the storm,
   Celestial terror sat throned in his gaze,
   Like the midnight pestiferous meteor's blaze.--
   
   SPIRIT:
   Thy father, Adolphus! was false, false as hell,                      _45
   And Conrad has cause to remember it well,
   He ruined my Mother, despised me his son,
   I quitted the world ere my vengeance was done.
   
   I was nearly expiring--'twas close of the day,--
   A demon advanced to the bed where I lay,                             _50
   He gave me the power from whence I was hurled,
   To return to revenge, to return to the world,--
   
   Now Adolphus I'll seize thy best loved in my arms,
   I'll drag her to Hades all blooming in charms,
   On the black whirlwind's thundering pinion I'll ride,                _55
   And fierce yelling fiends shall exult o'er thy bride--
   
   He spoke, and extending his ghastly arms wide,
   Majestic advanced with a swift noiseless stride,
   He clasped the fair Agnes--he raised her on high,
   And cleaving the roof sped his way to the sky--                      _60
   
   All was now silent,--and over the tomb,
   Thicker, deeper, was swiftly extended a gloom,
   Adolphus in horror sank down on the stone,
   And his fleeting soul fled with a harrowing groan.
   
   DECEMBER, 1809.
   
   
   16. GHASTA OR, THE AVENGING DEMON!!!
   
   The idea of the following tale was taken from a few unconnected German
   Stanzas.--The principal Character is evidently the Wandering Jew, and
   although not mentioned by name, the burning Cross on his forehead
   undoubtedly alludes to that superstition, so prevalent in the part of
   Germany called the Black Forest, where this scene is supposed to lie.
   
   Hark! the owlet flaps her wing,
   In the pathless dell beneath,
   Hark! night ravens loudly sing,
   Tidings of despair and death.--
   
   Horror covers all the sky,                                           _5
   Clouds of darkness blot the moon,
   Prepare! for mortal thou must die,
   Prepare to yield thy soul up soon--
   
   Fierce the tempest raves around,
   Fierce the volleyed lightnings fly,                                  _10
   Crashing thunder shakes the ground,
   Fire and tumult fill the sky.--
   
   Hark! the tolling village bell,
   Tells the hour of midnight come,
   Now can blast the powers of Hell,                                    _15
   Fiend-like goblins now can roam--
   
   See! his crest all stained with rain,
   A warrior hastening speeds his way,
   He starts, looks round him, starts again,
   And sighs for the approach of day.                                   _20
   
   See! his frantic steed he reins,
   See! he lifts his hands on high,
   Implores a respite to his pains,
   From the powers of the sky.--
   
   He seeks an Inn, for faint from toil,                                _25
   Fatigue had bent his lofty form,
   To rest his wearied limbs awhile,
   Fatigued with wandering and the storm.
   
   ...
   ...
   
   Slow the door is opened wide--
   With trackless tread a stranger came,                                _30
   His form Majestic, slow his stride,
   He sate, nor spake,--nor told his name--
   
   Terror blanched the warrior's cheek,
   Cold sweat from his forehead ran,
   In vain his tongue essayed to speak,--                               _35
   At last the stranger thus began:
   
   'Mortal! thou that saw'st the sprite,
   Tell me what I wish to know,
   Or come with me before 'tis light,
   Where cypress trees and mandrakes grow.                              _40
   
   'Fierce the avenging Demon's ire,
   Fiercer than the wintry blast,
   Fiercer than the lightning's fire,
   When the hour of twilight's past'--
   
   The warrior raised his sunken eye.                                   _45
   It met the stranger's sullen scowl,
   'Mortal! Mortal! thou must die,'
   In burning letters chilled his soul.
   
   WARRIOR:
   Stranger! whoso'er you are,
   I feel impelled my tale to tell--                                    _50
   Horrors stranger shalt thou hear,
   Horrors drear as those of Hell.
   
   O'er my Castle silence reigned,
   Late the night and drear the hour,
   When on the terrace I observed,                                      _55
   A fleeting shadowy mist to lower.--
   
   Light the cloud as summer fog,
   Which transient shuns the morning beam;
   Fleeting as the cloud on bog,
   That hangs or on the mountain stream.--                              _60
   
   Horror seized my shuddering brain,
   Horror dimmed my starting eye.
   In vain I tried to speak,--In vain
   My limbs essayed the spot to fly--
   
   At last the thin and shadowy form,                                   _65
   With noiseless, trackless footsteps came,--
   Its light robe floated on the storm,
   Its head was bound with lambent flame.
   
   In chilling voice drear as the breeze
   Which sweeps along th' autumnal ground,                              _70
   Which wanders through the leafless trees,
   Or the mandrake's groan which floats around.
   
   'Thou art mine and I am thine,
   'Till the sinking of the world,
   I am thine and thou art mine,                                        _75
   'Till in ruin death is hurled--
   
   'Strong the power and dire the fate,
   Which drags me from the depths of Hell,
   Breaks the tomb's eternal gate,
   Where fiendish shapes and dead men yell,                             _80
   
   'Haply I might ne'er have shrank
   From flames that rack the guilty dead,
   Haply I might ne'er have sank
   On pleasure's flowery, thorny bed--
   
   --'But stay! no more I dare disclose,                                _85
   Of the tale I wish to tell,
   On Earth relentless were my woes,
   But fiercer are my pangs in Hell--
   
   'Now I claim thee as my love,
   Lay aside all chilling fear,                                         _90
   My affection will I prove,
   Where sheeted ghosts and spectres are!
   
   'For thou art mine, and I am thine,
   'Till the dreaded judgement day,
   I am thine, and thou art mine--                                      _95
   Night is past--I must away.'
   
   Still I gazed, and still the form
   Pressed upon my aching sight,
   Still I braved the howling storm,
   When the ghost dissolved in night.--                                 _100
   
   Restless, sleepless fled the night,
   Sleepless as a sick man's bed,
   When he sighs for morning light,
   When he turns his aching head,--
   
   Slow and painful passed the day.                                     _105
   Melancholy seized my brain,
   Lingering fled the hours away,
   Lingering to a wretch in pain.--
   
   At last came night, ah! horrid hour,
   Ah! chilling time that wakes the dead,                               _110
   When demons ride the clouds that lower,
   --The phantom sat upon my bed.
   
   In hollow voice, low as the sound
   Which in some charnel makes its moan,
   What floats along the burying ground,                                _115
   The phantom claimed me as her own.
   
   Her chilling finger on my head,
   With coldest touch congealed my soul--
   Cold as the finger of the dead,
   Or damps which round a tombstone roll--                              _120
   
   Months are passed in lingering round,
   Every night the spectre comes,
   With thrilling step it shakes the ground,
   With thrilling step it round me roams--
   
   Stranger! I have told to thee,                                       _125
   All the tale I have to tell--
   Stranger! canst thou tell to me,
   How to 'scape the powers of Hell?--
   
   STRANGER:
   Warrior! I can ease thy woes,
   Wilt thou, wilt thou, come with me--                                 _130
   Warrior! I can all disclose,
   Follow, follow, follow me.
   
   Yet the tempest's duskiest wing,
   Its mantle stretches o'er the sky,
   Yet the midnight ravens sing,                                        _135
   'Mortal! Mortal! thou must die.'
   
   At last they saw a river clear,
   That crossed the heathy path they trod,
   The Stranger's look was wild and drear,
   The firm Earth shook beneath his nod--                               _140
   
   He raised a wand above his head,
   He traced a circle on the plain,
   In a wild verse he called the dead,
   The dead with silent footsteps came.
   
   A burning brilliance on his head,                                    _145
   Flaming filled the stormy air,
   In a wild verse he called the dead,
   The dead in motley crowd were there.--
   
   'Ghasta! Ghasta! come along,
   Bring thy fiendish crowd with thee,                                  _150
   Quickly raise th' avenging Song,
   Ghasta! Ghasta! come to me.'
   
   Horrid shapes in mantles gray,
   Flit athwart the stormy night,
   'Ghasta! Ghasta! come away,                                          _155
   Come away before 'tis light.'
   
   See! the sheeted Ghost they bring,
   Yelling dreadful o'er the heath,
   Hark! the deadly verse they sing,
   Tidings of despair and death!                                        _160
   
   The yelling Ghost before him stands,
   See! she rolls her eyes around,
   Now she lifts her bony hands,
   Now her footsteps shake the ground.
   
   STRANGER:
   Phantom of Theresa say,                                              _165
   Why to earth again you came,
   Quickly speak, I must away!
   Or you must bleach for aye in flame,--
   
   PHANTOM:
   Mighty one I know thee now,
   Mightiest power of the sky,                                          _170
   Know thee by thy flaming brow,
   Know thee by thy sparkling eye.
   
   That fire is scorching! Oh! I came,
   From the caverned depth of Hell,
   My fleeting false Rodolph to claim,                                  _175
   Mighty one! I know thee well.--
   
   STRANGER:
   Ghasta! seize yon wandering sprite,
   Drag her to the depth beneath,
   Take her swift, before 'tis light,
   Take her to the cells of death!                                      _180
   
   Thou that heardst the trackless dead,
   In the mouldering tomb must lie,
   Mortal! look upon my head,
   Mortal! Mortal! thou must die.
   
   Of glowing flame a cross was there,                                  _185
   Which threw a light around his form,
   Whilst his lank and raven hair,
   Floated wild upon the storm.--
   
   The warrior upwards turned his eyes,
   Gazed upon the cross of fire,                                        _190
   There sat horror and surprise,
   There sat God's eternal ire.--
   
   A shivering through the Warrior flew,
   Colder than the nightly blast,
   Colder than the evening dew,                                         _195
   When the hour of twilight's past.--
   
   Thunder shakes th' expansive sky,
   Shakes the bosom of the heath,
   'Mortal! Mortal! thou must die'--
   The warrior sank convulsed in death.                                 _200
   
   JANUARY, 1810.
   
   NOTES:
   _114 its]it 1810.
   _115 What]query Which?
   
   
   17. FRAGMENT, OR THE TRIUMPH OF CONSCIENCE.
   
   'Twas dead of the night when I sate in my dwelling,
   One glimmering lamp was expiring and low,--
   Around the dark tide of the tempest was swelling,
   Along the wild mountains night-ravens were yelling,
   They bodingly presaged destruction and woe!                          _5
   
   'Twas then that I started, the wild storm was howling,
   Nought was seen, save the lightning that danced on the sky,
   Above me the crash of the thunder was rolling,
   And low, chilling murmurs the blast wafted by.--
   
   My heart sank within me, unheeded the jar                            _10
   Of the battling clouds on the mountain-tops broke,
   Unheeded the thunder-peal crashed in mine ear,
   This heart hard as iron was stranger to fear,
   But conscience in low noiseless whispering spoke.
   'Twas then that her form on the whirlwind uprearing,                 _15
   The dark ghost of the murdered Victoria strode,
   Her right hand a blood reeking dagger was bearing,
   She swiftly advanced to my lonesome abode.--
   I wildly then called on the tempest to bear me!
   
   ...
   ...
   
   ***
   
   
   POEMS FROM ST. IRVYNE, OR, THE ROSICRUCIAN.
   
   ["St. Irvyne; or The Rosicrucian", appeared early in 1811 (see
   "Bibliographical List"). Rossetti (1870) relying on a passage in
   Medwin's "Life of Shelley" (1 page 74), assigns 1, 4, 5, and 6 to 1808,
   and 2 and 4 to 1809. The titles of 1, 3, 4, and 5 are Rossetti's; those
   of 2 and 6 are Dowden's.]
   
   ***
   
   
   1.--VICTORIA.
   
   [Another version of "The Triumph of Conscience" immediately preceding.]
   
   1.
   'Twas dead of the night, when I sat in my dwelling;
   One glimmering lamp was expiring and low;
   Around, the dark tide of the tempest was swelling,
   Along the wild mountains night-ravens were yelling,--
   They bodingly presaged destruction and woe.                          _5
   
   2.
   'Twas then that I started!--the wild storm was howling,
   Nought was seen, save the lightning, which danced in the sky;
   Above me, the crash of the thunder was rolling,
   And low, chilling murmurs, the blast wafted by.
   
   3.
   My heart sank within me--unheeded the war                            _10
   Of the battling clouds, on the mountain-tops, broke;--
   Unheeded the thunder-peal crashed in mine ear--
   This heart, hard as iron, is stranger to fear;
   But conscience in low, noiseless whispering spoke.
   
   4.
   'Twas then that her form on the whirlwind upholding,                 _15
   The ghost of the murdered Victoria strode;
   In her right hand, a shadowy shroud she was holding,
   She swiftly advanced to my lonesome abode.
   
   5.
   I wildly then called on the tempest to bear me--'
   
   ...
   
   NOTE:
   1.--Victoria: without title, 1811.
   
   
   2.--ON THE DARK HEIGHT OF JURA.
   
   1.
   Ghosts of the dead! have I not heard your yelling
   Rise on the night-rolling breath of the blast,
   When o'er the dark aether the tempest is swelling,
   And on eddying whirlwind the thunder-peal passed?
   
   2.
   For oft have I stood on the dark height of Jura,                     _5
   Which frowns on the valley that opens beneath;
   Oft have I braved the chill night-tempest's fury,
   Whilst around me, I thought, echoed murmurs of death.
   
   3.
   And now, whilst the winds of the mountain are howling,
   O father! thy voice seems to strike on mine ear;                     _10
   In air whilst the tide of the night-storm is rolling,
   It breaks on the pause of the elements' jar.
   
   4.
   On the wing of the whirlwind which roars o'er the mountain
   Perhaps rides the ghost of my sire who is dead:
   On the mist of the tempest which hangs o'er the fountain,
   Whilst a wreath of dark vapour encircles his head.
   
   NOTE:
   2.--On the Dark, etc.: without title, 1811;
       The Father's Spectre, Rossetti, 1870.
   
   
   3.--SISTER ROSA: A BALLAD.
   
   1.
   The death-bell beats!--
   The mountain repeats
   The echoing sound of the knell;
   And the dark Monk now
   Wraps the cowl round his brow,                                       _5
   As he sits in his lonely cell.
   
   2.
   And the cold hand of death
   Chills his shuddering breath,
   As he lists to the fearful lay
   Which the ghosts of the sky,                                         _10
   As they sweep wildly by,
   Sing to departed day.
   And they sing of the hour
   When the stern fates had power
   To resolve Rosa's form to its clay.                                  _15
   
   3.
   But that hour is past;
   And that hour was the last
   Of peace to the dark Monk's brain.
   Bitter tears, from his eyes, gushed silent and fast;
   And he strove to suppress them in vain.                              _20
   
   4.
   Then his fair cross of gold he dashed on the floor,
   When the death-knell struck on his ear.--
   'Delight is in store
   For her evermore;
   But for me is fate, horror, and fear.'                               _25
   
   5.
   Then his eyes wildly rolled,
   When the death-bell tolled,
   And he raged in terrific woe.
   And he stamped on the ground,--
   But when ceased the sound,                                           _30
   Tears again began to flow.
   
   6.
   And the ice of despair
   Chilled the wild throb of care,
   And he sate in mute agony still;
   Till the night-stars shone through the cloudless air,                _35
   And the pale moonbeam slept on the hill.
   
   7.
   Then he knelt in his cell:--
   And the horrors of hell
   Were delights to his agonized pain,
   And he prayed to God to dissolve the spell,                          _40
   Which else must for ever remain.
   
   8.
   And in fervent pray'r he knelt on the ground,
   Till the abbey bell struck One:
   His feverish blood ran chill at the sound:
   A voice hollow and horrible murmured around--                        _45
   'The term of thy penance is done!'
   
   9.
   Grew dark the night;
   The moonbeam bright
   Waxed faint on the mountain high;
   And, from the black hill,                                            _50
   Went a voice cold and still,--
   'Monk! thou art free to die.'
   
   10.
   Then he rose on his feet,
   And his heart loud did beat,
   And his limbs they were palsied with dread;                          _55
   Whilst the grave's clammy dew
   O'er his pale forehead grew;
   And he shuddered to sleep with the dead.
   
   11.
   And the wild midnight storm
   Raved around his tall form,                                          _60
   As he sought the chapel's gloom:
   And the sunk grass did sigh
   To the wind, bleak and high,
   As he searched for the new-made tomb.
   
   12.
   And forms, dark and high,                                            _65
   Seemed around him to fly,
   And mingle their yells with the blast:
   And on the dark wall
   Half-seen shadows did fall,
   As enhorrored he onward passed.                                      _70
   
   13.
   And the storm-fiends wild rave
   O'er the new-made grave,
   And dread shadows linger around.
   The Monk called on God his soul to save,
   And, in horror, sank on the ground.                                  _75
   
   14.
   Then despair nerved his arm
   To dispel the charm,
   And he burst Rosa's coffin asunder.
   And the fierce storm did swell
   More terrific and fell,                                              _80
   And louder pealed the thunder.
   
   15.
   And laughed, in joy, the fiendish throng,
   Mixed with ghosts of the mouldering dead:
   And their grisly wings, as they floated along,
   Whistled in murmurs dread.                                           _85
   
   16.
   And her skeleton form the dead Nun reared
   Which dripped with the chill dew of hell.
   In her half-eaten eyeballs two pale flames appeared,
   And triumphant their gleam on the dark Monk glared,
   As he stood within the cell.                                         _90
   
   17.
   And her lank hand lay on his shuddering brain;
   But each power was nerved by fear.--
   'I never, henceforth, may breathe again;
   Death now ends mine anguished pain.--
   The grave yawns,--we meet there.'                                    _95
   
   18.
   And her skeleton lungs did utter the sound,
   So deadly, so lone, and so fell,
   That in long vibrations shuddered the ground;
   And as the stern notes floated around,
   A deep groan was answered from hell.
   
   NOTE:
   3.--Sister Rosa: Ballad, 1811.
   
   
   4.--ST. IRVYNE'S TOWER.
   
   1.
   How swiftly through Heaven's wide expanse
   Bright day's resplendent colours fade!
   How sweetly does the moonbeam's glance
   With silver tint St. Irvyne's glade!
   
   2.
   No cloud along the spangled air,                                     _5
   Is borne upon the evening breeze;
   How solemn is the scene! how fair
   The moonbeams rest upon the trees!
   
   3.
   Yon dark gray turret glimmers white,
   Upon it sits the mournful owl;                                       _10
   Along the stillness of the night,
   Her melancholy shriekings roll.
   
   4.
   But not alone on Irvyne's tower,
   The silver moonbeam pours her ray;
   It gleams upon the ivied bower,                                      _15
   It dances in the cascade's spray.
   
   5.
   'Ah! why do dark'ning shades conceal
   The hour, when man must cease to be?
   Why may not human minds unveil
   The dim mists of futurity?--                                         _20
   
   6.
   'The keenness of the world hath torn
   The heart which opens to its blast;
   Despised, neglected, and forlorn,
   Sinks the wretch in death at last.'
   
   NOTE:
   4.--St. Irvyne's Tower: Song, 1810.
   
   
   5.--BEREAVEMENT.
   
   1.
   How stern are the woes of the desolate mourner,
   As he bends in still grief o'er the hallowed bier,
   As enanguished he turns from the laugh of the scorner,
   And drops, to Perfection's remembrance, a tear;
   When floods of despair down his pale cheek are streaming,            _5
   When no blissful hope on his bosom is beaming,
   Or, if lulled for awhile, soon he starts from his dreaming,
   And finds torn the soft ties to affection so dear.
   
   2.
   Ah! when shall day dawn on the night of the grave,
   Or summer succeed to the winter of death?                            _10
   Rest awhile, hapless victim, and Heaven will save
   The spirit, that faded away with the breath.
   Eternity points in its amaranth bower,
   Where no clouds of fate o'er the sweet prospect lower,
   Unspeakable pleasure, of goodness the dower,                         _15
   When woe fades away like the mist of the heath.
   
   NOTE:
   5.--Bereavement: Song, 1811.
   
   
   6.--THE DROWNED LOVER.
   
   1.
   Ah! faint are her limbs, and her footstep is weary,
   Yet far must the desolate wanderer roam;
   Though the tempest is stern, and the mountain is dreary,
   She must quit at deep midnight her pitiless home.
   I see her swift foot dash the dew from the whortle,                  _5
   As she rapidly hastes to the green grove of myrtle;
   And I hear, as she wraps round her figure the kirtle,
   'Stay thy boat on the lake,--dearest Henry, I come.'
   
   2.
   High swelled in her bosom the throb of affection,
   As lightly her form bounded over the lea,                            _10
   And arose in her mind every dear recollection;
   'I come, dearest Henry, and wait but for thee.'
   How sad, when dear hope every sorrow is soothing,
   When sympathy's swell the soft bosom is moving,
   And the mind the mild joys of affection is proving,                  _15
   Is the stern voice of fate that bids happiness flee!
   
   3.
   Oh! dark lowered the clouds on that horrible eve,
   And the moon dimly gleamed through the tempested air;
   Oh! how could fond visions such softness deceive?
   Oh! how could false hope rend, a bosom so fair?                      _20
   Thy love's pallid corse the wild surges are laving,
   O'er his form the fierce swell of the tempest is raving;
   But, fear not, parting spirit; thy goodness is saving,
   In eternity's bowers, a seat for thee there.
   
   6.--The Drowned Lover: Song. 1811; The Lake-Storm, Rossetti, 1870.
   
   ***
   
   
   POSTHUMOUS FRAGMENTS OF MARGARET MCHOLSON.
   
   Being Poems found amongst the Papers of that noted Female who attempted
   the life of the King in 1786. Edited by John Fitzvictor.
   
   [The "Posthumous Fragments", published at Oxford by Shelley, appeared in
   November, 1810. See "Bibliographical List".]
   
   ADVERTISEMENT.
   
   The energy and native genius of these Fragments must be the only apology
   which the Editor can make for thus intruding them on the public notice.
   The first I found with no title, and have left it so. It is intimately
   connected with the dearest interests of universal happiness; and much as
   we may deplore the fatal and enthusiastic tendency which the ideas of
   this poor female had acquired, we cannot fail to pay the tribute of
   unequivocal regret to the departed memory of genius, which, had it been
   rightly organized, would have made that intellect, which has since
   become the victim of frenzy and despair, a most brilliant ornament to
   society.
   
   In case the sale of these Fragments evinces that the public have any
   curiosity to be presented with a more copious collection of my
   unfortunate Aunt's poems, I have other papers in my possession which
   shall, in that case, be subjected to their notice. It may be supposed
   they require much arrangement; but I send the following to the press in
   the same state in which they came into my possession. J. F.
   
   
   WAR.
   
   Ambition, power, and avarice, now have hurled
   Death, fate, and ruin, on a bleeding world.
   See! on yon heath what countless victims lie,
   Hark! what loud shrieks ascend through yonder sky;
   Tell then the cause, 'tis sure the avenger's rage                    _5
   Has swept these myriads from life's crowded stage:
   Hark to that groan, an anguished hero dies,
   He shudders in death's latest agonies;
   Yet does a fleeting hectic flush his cheek,
   Yet does his parting breath essay to speak--                         _10
   'Oh God! my wife, my children--Monarch thou
   For whose support this fainting frame lies low;
   For whose support in distant lands I bleed,
   Let his friends' welfare be the warrior's meed.
   He hears me not--ah! no--kings cannot hear,                          _15
   For passion's voice has dulled their listless ear.
   To thee, then, mighty God, I lift my moan,
   Thou wilt not scorn a suppliant's anguished groan.
   Oh! now I die--but still is death's fierce pain--
   God hears my prayer--we meet, we meet again.'                        _20
   He spake, reclined him on death's bloody bed,
   And with a parting groan his spirit fled.
   Oppressors of mankind to YOU we owe
   The baleful streams from whence these miseries flow;
   For you how many a mother weeps her son,                             _25
   Snatched from life's course ere half his race was run!
   For you how many a widow drops a tear,
   In silent anguish, on her husband's bier!
   'Is it then Thine, Almighty Power,' she cries,
   'Whence tears of endless sorrow dim these eyes?                      _30
   Is this the system which Thy powerful sway,
   Which else in shapeless chaos sleeping lay,
   Formed and approved?--it cannot be--but oh!
   Forgive me, Heaven, my brain is warped by woe.'
   'Tis not--He never bade the war-note swell,                          _35
   He never triumphed in the work of hell--
   Monarchs of earth! thine is the baleful deed,
   Thine are the crimes for which thy subjects bleed.
   Ah! when will come the sacred fated time,
   When man unsullied by his leaders' crime,                            _40
   Despising wealth, ambition, pomp, and pride,
   Will stretch him fearless by his foe-men's side?
   Ah! when will come the time, when o'er the plain
   No more shall death and desolation reign?
   When will the sun smile on the bloodless field,                      _45
   And the stern warrior's arm the sickle wield?
   Not whilst some King, in cold ambition's dreams,
   Plans for the field of death his plodding schemes;
   Not whilst for private pique the public fall,
   And one frail mortal's mandate governs all.                          _50
   Swelled with command and mad with dizzying sway;
   Who sees unmoved his myriads fade away.
   Careless who lives or dies--so that he gains
   Some trivial point for which he took the pains.
   What then are Kings?--I see the trembling crowd,                     _55
   I hear their fulsome clamours echoed loud;
   Their stern oppressor pleased appears awhile,
   But April's sunshine is a Monarch's smile--
   Kings are but dust--the last eventful day
   Will level all and make them lose their sway;                        _60
   Will dash the sceptre from the Monarch's hand,
   And from the warrior's grasp wrest the ensanguined brand.
   Oh! Peace, soft Peace, art thou for ever gone,
   Is thy fair form indeed for ever flown?
   And love and concord hast thou swept away,                           _65
   As if incongruous with thy parted sway?
   Alas, I fear thou hast, for none appear.
   Now o'er the palsied earth stalks giant Fear,
   With War, and Woe, and Terror, in his train;--
   List'ning he pauses on the embattled plain,                          _70
   Then speeding swiftly o'er the ensanguined heath,
   Has left the frightful work to Hell and Death.
   See! gory Ruin yokes his blood-stained car,
   He scents the battle's carnage from afar;
   Hell and Destruction mark his mad career,                            _75
   He tracks the rapid step of hurrying Fear;
   Whilst ruined towns and smoking cities tell,
   That thy work, Monarch, is the work of Hell.
   'It is thy work!' I hear a voice repeat,
   Shakes the broad basis of thy bloodstained seat;                     _80
   And at the orphan's sigh, the widow's moan,
   Totters the fabric of thy guilt-stained throne--
   'It is thy work, O Monarch;' now the sound
   Fainter and fainter, yet is borne around,
   Yet to enthusiast ears the murmurs tell                              _85
   That Heaven, indignant at the work of Hell,
   Will soon the cause, the hated cause remove,
   Which tears from earth peace, innocence, and love.
   
   NOTE:
   War: the title is Woodberry's, 1893; no title, 1810.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT: SUPPOSED TO BE AN EPITHALAMIUM OF FRANCIS RAVAILLAC
   AND CHARLOTTE CORDAY.
   
   'Tis midnight now--athwart the murky air,
   Dank lurid meteors shoot a livid gleam;
   From the dark storm-clouds flashes a fearful glare,
   It shows the bending oak, the roaring stream.
   
   I pondered on the woes of lost mankind,                              _5
   I pondered on the ceaseless rage of Kings;
   My rapt soul dwelt upon the ties that bind
   The mazy volume of commingling things,
   When fell and wild misrule to man stern sorrow brings.
   
   I heard a yell--it was not the knell,                                _10
   When the blasts on the wild lake sleep,
   That floats on the pause of the summer gale's swell,
   O'er the breast of the waveless deep.
   
   I thought it had been death's accents cold
   That bade me recline on the shore;                                   _15
   I laid mine hot head on the surge-beaten mould,
   And thought to breathe no more.
   
   But a heavenly sleep
   That did suddenly steep
   In balm my bosom's pain,                                             _20
   Pervaded my soul,
   And free from control,
   Did mine intellect range again.
   
   Methought enthroned upon a silvery cloud,
   Which floated mid a strange and brilliant light;                     _25
   My form upborne by viewless aether rode,
   And spurned the lessening realms of earthly night.
   What heavenly notes burst on my ravished ears,
   What beauteous spirits met my dazzled eye!
   Hark! louder swells the music of the spheres,                        _30
   More clear the forms of speechless bliss float by,
   And heavenly gestures suit aethereal melody.
   
   But fairer than the spirits of the air,
   More graceful than the Sylph of symmetry,
   Than the enthusiast's fancied love more fair,                        _35
   Were the bright forms that swept the azure sky.
   Enthroned in roseate light, a heavenly band
   Strewed flowers of bliss that never fade away;
   They welcome virtue to its native land,
   And songs of triumph greet the joyous day                            _40
   When endless bliss the woes of fleeting life repay.
   
   Congenial minds will seek their kindred soul,
   E'en though the tide of time has rolled between;
   They mock weak matter's impotent control,
   And seek of endless life the eternal scene.                          _45
   At death's vain summons THIS will never die,
   In Nature's chaos THIS will not decay--
   These are the bands which closely, warmly, tie
   Thy soul, O Charlotte, 'yond this chain of clay,
   To him who thine must be till time shall fade away.                  _50
   
   Yes, Francis! thine was the dear knife that tore
   A tyrant's heart-strings from his guilty breast,
   Thine was the daring at a tyrant's gore,
   To smile in triumph, to contemn the rest;
   And thine, loved glory of thy sex! to tear                           _55
   From its base shrine a despot's haughty soul,
   To laugh at sorrow in secure despair,
   To mock, with smiles, life's lingering control,
   And triumph mid the griefs that round thy fate did roll.
   
   Yes! the fierce spirits of the avenging deep                         _60
   With endless tortures goad their guilty shades.
   I see the lank and ghastly spectres sweep
   Along the burning length of yon arcades;
   And I see Satan stalk athwart the plain;
   He hastes along the burning soil of Hell.                            _65
   'Welcome, ye despots, to my dark domain,
   With maddening joy mine anguished senses swell
   To welcome to their home the friends I love so well.'
   
   ...
   
   Hark! to those notes, how sweet, how thrilling sweet
   They echo to the sound of angels' feet.                              _70
   
   ...
   
   Oh haste to the bower where roses are spread,
   For there is prepared thy nuptial bed.
   Oh haste--hark! hark!--they're gone.
   
   ...
   
   CHORUS OF SPIRITS:
   Stay, ye days of contentment and joy,
   Whilst love every care is erasing,                                   _75
   Stay ye pleasures that never can cloy,
   And ye spirits that can never cease pleasing.
   
   And if any soft passion be near,
   Which mortals, frail mortals, can know,
   Let love shed on the bosom a tear,                                   _80
   And dissolve the chill ice-drop of woe.
   
   SYMPHONY.
   
   FRANCIS:
   'Soft, my dearest angel, stay,
   Oh! you suck my soul away;
   Suck on, suck on, I glow, I glow!
   Tides of maddening passion roll,                                     _85
   And streams of rapture drown my soul.
   Now give me one more billing kiss,
   Let your lips now repeat the bliss,
   Endless kisses steal my breath,
   No life can equal such a death.'                                     _90
   
   CHARLOTTE:
   'Oh! yes I will kiss thine eyes so fair,
   And I will clasp thy form;
   Serene is the breath of the balmy air,
   But I think, love, thou feelest me warm
   And I will recline on thy marble neck                                _95
   Till I mingle into thee;
   And I will kiss the rose on thy cheek,
   And thou shalt give kisses to me.
   For here is no morn to flout our delight,
   Oh! dost thou not joy at this?                                       _100
   And here we may lie an endless night,
   A long, long night of bliss.'
   
   Spirits! when raptures move,
   Say what it is to love,
   When passion's tear stands on the cheek,                             _105
   When bursts the unconscious sigh;
   And the tremulous lips dare not speak
   What is told by the soul-felt eye.
   But what is sweeter to revenge's ear
   Than the fell tyrant's last expiring yell?                           _110
   Yes! than love's sweetest blisses 'tis more dear
   To drink the floatings of a despot's knell.
   I wake--'tis done--'tis over.
   
   NOTE:
   _66 ye]thou 1810.
   
   ***
   
   
   DESPAIR.
   
   And canst thou mock mine agony, thus calm
   In cloudless radiance, Queen of silver night?
   Can you, ye flow'rets, spread your perfumed balm
   Mid pearly gems of dew that shine so bright?
   And you wild winds, thus can you sleep so still                      _5
   Whilst throbs the tempest of my breast so high?
   Can the fierce night-fiends rest on yonder hill,
   And, in the eternal mansions of the sky,
   Can the directors of the storm in powerless silence lie?
   
   Hark! I hear music on the zephyr's wing,                             _10
   Louder it floats along the unruffled sky;
   Some fairy sure has touched the viewless string--
   Now faint in distant air the murmurs die.
   Awhile it stills the tide of agony.
   Now--now it loftier swells--again stern woe                          _15
   Arises with the awakening melody.
   Again fierce torments, such as demons know,
   In bitterer, feller tide, on this torn bosom flow.
   
   Arise ye sightless spirits of the storm,
   Ye unseen minstrels of the aereal song,                              _20
   Pour the fierce tide around this lonely form,
   And roll the tempest's wildest swell along.
   Dart the red lightning, wing the forked flash,
   Pour from thy cloud-formed hills the thunder's roar;
   Arouse the whirlwind--and let ocean dash                             _25
   In fiercest tumult on the rocking shore,--
   Destroy this life or let earth's fabric be no more.
   
   Yes! every tie that links me here is dead;
   Mysterious Fate, thy mandate I obey,
   Since hope and peace, and joy, for aye are fled,                     _30
   I come, terrific power, I come away.
   Then o'er this ruined soul let spirits of Hell,
   In triumph, laughing wildly, mock its pain;
   And though with direst pangs mine heart-strings swell,
   I'll echo back their deadly yells again,                             _35
   Cursing the power that ne'er made aught in vain.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT.
   
   Yes! all is past--swift time has fled away,
   Yet its swell pauses on my sickening mind;
   How long will horror nerve this frame of clay?
   I'm dead, and lingers yet my soul behind.
   Oh! powerful Fate, revoke thy deadly spell,                          _5
   And yet that may not ever, ever be,
   Heaven will not smile upon the work of Hell;
   Ah! no, for Heaven cannot smile on me;
   Fate, envious Fate, has sealed my wayward destiny.
   
   I sought the cold brink of the midnight surge,                       _10
   I sighed beneath its wave to hide my woes,
   The rising tempest sung a funeral dirge,
   And on the blast a frightful yell arose.
   Wild flew the meteors o'er the maddened main,
   Wilder did grief athwart my bosom glare;                             _15
   Stilled was the unearthly howling, and a strain,
   Swelled mid the tumult of the battling air,
   'Twas like a spirit's song, but yet more soft and fair.
   
   I met a maniac--like he was to me,
   I said--'Poor victim, wherefore dost thou roam?                      _20
   And canst thou not contend with agony,
   That thus at midnight thou dost quit thine home?'
   'Ah there she sleeps: cold is her bloodless form,
   And I will go to slumber in her grave;
   And then our ghosts, whilst raves the maddened storm,                _25
   Will sweep at midnight o'er the wildered wave;
   Wilt thou our lowly beds with tears of pity lave?'
   
   'Ah! no, I cannot shed the pitying tear,
   This breast is cold, this heart can feel no more--
   But I can rest me on thy chilling bier,                              _30
   Can shriek in horror to the tempest's roar.'
   
   ***
   
   
   THE SPECTRAL HORSEMAN.
   
   What was the shriek that struck Fancy's ear
   As it sate on the ruins of time that is past?
   Hark! it floats on the fitful blast of the wind,
   And breathes to the pale moon a funeral sigh.
   It is the Benshie's moan on the storm,                               _5
   Or a shivering fiend that thirsting for sin,
   Seeks murder and guilt when virtue sleeps,
   Winged with the power of some ruthless king,
   And sweeps o'er the breast of the prostrate plain.
   It was not a fiend from the regions of Hell                          _10
   That poured its low moan on the stillness of night:
   It was not a ghost of the guilty dead,
   Nor a yelling vampire reeking with gore;
   But aye at the close of seven years' end,
   That voice is mixed with the swell of the storm,                     _15
   And aye at the close of seven years' end,
   A shapeless shadow that sleeps on the hill
   Awakens and floats on the mist of the heath.
   It is not the shade of a murdered man,
   Who has rushed uncalled to the throne of his God,                    _20
   And howls in the pause of the eddying storm.
   This voice is low, cold, hollow, and chill,
   'Tis not heard by the ear, but is felt in the soul.
   'Tis more frightful far than the death-daemon's scream,
   Or the laughter of fiends when they howl o'er the corpse             _25
   Of a man who has sold his soul to Hell.
   It tells the approach of a mystic form,
   A white courser bears the shadowy sprite;
   More thin they are than the mists of the mountain,
   When the clear moonlight sleeps on the waveless lake.                _30
   More pale HIS cheek than the snows of Nithona,
   When winter rides on the northern blast,
   And howls in the midst of the leafless wood.
   Yet when the fierce swell of the tempest is raving,
   And the whirlwinds howl in the caves of Inisfallen,                  _35
   Still secure mid the wildest war of the sky,
   The phantom courser scours the waste,
   And his rider howls in the thunder's roar.
   O'er him the fierce bolts of avenging Heaven
   Pause, as in fear, to strike his head.                               _40
   The meteors of midnight recoil from his figure,
   Yet the 'wildered peasant, that oft passes by,
   With wonder beholds the blue flash through his form:
   And his voice, though faint as the sighs of the dead,
   The startled passenger shudders to hear,                             _45
   More distinct than the thunder's wildest roar.
   Then does the dragon, who, chained in the caverns
   To eternity, curses the champion of Erin,
   Moan and yell loud at the lone hour of midnight,
   And twine his vast wreaths round the forms of the daemons;           _50
   Then in agony roll his death-swimming eyeballs,
   Though 'wildered by death, yet never to die!
   Then he shakes from his skeleton folds the nightmares,
   Who, shrieking in agony, seek the couch
   Of some fevered wretch who courts sleep in vain;                     _55
   Then the tombless ghosts of the guilty dead
   In horror pause on the fitful gale.
   They float on the swell of the eddying tempest,
   And scared seek the caves of gigantic...
   Where their thin forms pour unearthly sounds                         _60
   On the blast that sweets the breast of the lake,
   And mingles its swell with the moonlight air.
   
   ***
   
   
   MELODY TO A SCENE OF FORMER TIMES.
   
   Art thou indeed forever gone,
   Forever, ever, lost to me?
   Must this poor bosom beat alone,
   Or beat at all, if not for thee?
   Ah! why was love to mortals given,                                   _5
   To lift them to the height of Heaven,
   Or dash them to the depths of Hell?
   Yet I do not reproach thee, dear!
   Ah, no! the agonies that swell
   This panting breast, this frenzied brain,                            _10
   Might wake my --'s slumb'ring tear.
   Oh! Heaven is witness I did love,
   And Heaven does know I love thee still,
   Does know the fruitless sick'ning thrill,
   When reason's judgement vainly strove                                _15
   To blot thee from my memory;
   But which might never, never be.
   Oh! I appeal to that blest day
   When passion's wildest ecstasy
   Was coldness to the joys I knew,                                     _20
   When every sorrow sunk away.
   Oh! I had never lived before,
   But now those blisses are no more.
   And now I cease to live again,
   I do not blame thee, love; ah, no!                                   _25
   The breast that feels this anguished woe.
   Throbs for thy happiness alone.
   Two years of speechless bliss are gone,
   I thank thee, dearest, for the dream.
   'Tis night--what faint and distant scream                            _30
   Comes on the wild and fitful blast?
   It moans for pleasures that are past,
   It moans for days that are gone by.
   Oh! lagging hours, how slow you fly!
   I see a dark and lengthened vale,                                    _35
   The black view closes with the tomb;
   But darker is the lowering gloom
   That shades the intervening dale.
   In visioned slumber for awhile
   I seem again to share thy smile,                                     _40
   I seem to hang upon thy tone.
   Again you say, 'Confide in me,
   For I am thine, and thine alone,
   And thine must ever, ever be.'
   But oh! awak'ning still anew,                                        _45
   Athwart my enanguished senses flew
   A fiercer, deadlier agony!
   
   [End of "Posthumous Fragments of Margaret Nicholson".]
   
   ***
   
   
   STANZA FROM A TRANSLATION OF THE MARSEILLAISE HYMN.
   
   [Published by Forman, "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1876; dated 1810.]
   
   Tremble, Kings despised of man!
   Ye traitors to your Country,
   Tremble! Your parricidal plan
   At length shall meet its destiny...
   We all are soldiers fit to fight,                                    _5
   But if we sink in glory's night
   Our mother Earth will give ye new
   The brilliant pathway to pursue
   Which leads to Death or Victory...
   
   ***
   
   
   BIGOTRY'S VICTIM.
   
   [Published (without title) by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858; dated
   1809-10. The title is Rossetti's (1870).]
   
   1.
   Dares the lama, most fleet of the sons of the wind,
   The lion to rouse from his skull-covered lair?
   When the tiger approaches can the fast-fleeting hind
   Repose trust in his footsteps of air?
   No! Abandoned he sinks in a trance of despair,                       _5
   The monster transfixes his prey,
   On the sand flows his life-blood away;
   Whilst India's rocks to his death-yells reply,
   Protracting the horrible harmony.
   
   2.
   Yet the fowl of the desert, when danger encroaches,                  _10
   Dares fearless to perish defending her brood,
   Though the fiercest of cloud-piercing tyrants approaches
   Thirsting--ay, thirsting for blood;
   And demands, like mankind, his brother for food;
   Yet more lenient, more gentle than they;                             _15
   For hunger, not glory, the prey
   Must perish. Revenge does not howl in the dead.
   Nor ambition with fame crown the murderer's head.
   
   3.
   Though weak as the lama that bounds on the mountains,
   And endued not with fast-fleeting footsteps of air,                  _20
   Yet, yet will I draw from the purest of fountains,
   Though a fiercer than tiger is there.
   Though, more dreadful than death, it scatters despair,
   Though its shadow eclipses the day,
   And the darkness of deepest dismay                                   _25
   Spreads the influence of soul-chilling terror around,
   And lowers on the corpses, that rot on the ground.
   
   4.
   They came to the fountain to draw from its stream
   Waves too pure, too celestial, for mortals to see;
   They bathed for awhile in its silvery beam,                          _30
   Then perished, and perished like me.
   For in vain from the grasp of the Bigot I flee;
   The most tenderly loved of my soul
   Are slaves to his hated control.
   He pursues me, he blasts me! 'Tis in vain that I fly:                _35 -
   What remains, but to curse him,--to curse him and die?
   
   ***
   
   
   ON AN ICICLE THAT CLUNG TO THE GRASS OF A GRAVE.
   
   [Published (without title) by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858; dated
   1809-10. The poem, with title as above, is included in the Esdaile
   manuscript book.]
   
   1.
   Oh! take the pure gem to where southerly breezes,
   Waft repose to some bosom as faithful as fair,
   In which the warm current of love never freezes,
   As it rises unmingled with selfishness there,
   Which, untainted by pride, unpolluted by care,                       _5
   Might dissolve the dim icedrop, might bid it arise,
   Too pure for these regions, to gleam in the skies.
   
   2.
   Or where the stern warrior, his country defending,
   Dares fearless the dark-rolling battle to pour,
   Or o'er the fell corpse of a dread tyrant bending,                   _10
   Where patriotism red with his guilt-reeking gore
   Plants Liberty's flag on the slave-peopled shore,
   With victory's cry, with the shout of the free,
   Let it fly, taintless Spirit, to mingle with thee.
   
   3.
   For I found the pure gem, when the daybeam returning,                _15
   Ineffectual gleams on the snow-covered plain,
   When to others the wished-for arrival of morning
   Brings relief to long visions of soul-racking pain;
   But regret is an insult--to grieve is in vain:
   And why should we grieve that a spirit so fair                       _20
   Seeks Heaven to mix with its own kindred there?
   
   4.
   But still 'twas some Spirit of kindness descending
   To share in the load of mortality's woe,
   Who over thy lowly-built sepulchre bending
   Bade sympathy's tenderest teardrop to flow.                          _25
   Not for THEE soft compassion celestials did know,
   But if ANGELS can weep, sure MAN may repine,
   May weep in mute grief o'er thy low-laid shrine.
   
   5.
   And did I then say, for the altar of glory,
   That the earliest, the loveliest of flowers I'd entwine,             _30
   Though with millions of blood-reeking victims 'twas gory,
   Though the tears of the widow polluted its shrine,
   Though around it the orphans, the fatherless pine?
   Oh! Fame, all thy glories I'd yield for a tear
   To shed on the grave of a heart so sincere.                          _35
   
   ***
   
   
   LOVE.
   
   [Published (without title) by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858; dated 1811.
   The title is Rossetti's (1870).]
   
   Why is it said thou canst not live
   In a youthful breast and fair,
   Since thou eternal life canst give,
   Canst bloom for ever there?
   Since withering pain no power possessed,                             _5
   Nor age, to blanch thy vermeil hue,
   Nor time's dread victor, death, confessed,
   Though bathed with his poison dew,
   Still thou retain'st unchanging bloom,
   Fixed tranquil, even in the tomb.                                    _10
   And oh! when on the blest, reviving,
   The day-star dawns of love,
   Each energy of soul surviving
   More vivid, soars above,
   Hast thou ne'er felt a rapturous thrill,                             _15
   Like June's warm breath, athwart thee fly,
   O'er each idea then to steal,
   When other passions die?
   Felt it in some wild noonday dream,
   When sitting by the lonely stream,                                   _20
   Where Silence says, 'Mine is the dell';
   And not a murmur from the plain,
   And not an echo from the fell,
   Disputes her silent reign.
   
   ***
   
   
   ON A FETE AT CARLTON HOUSE: FRAGMENT.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870;
   dated 1811.]
   
   By the mossy brink,
   With me the Prince shall sit and think;
   Shall muse in visioned Regency,
   Rapt in bright dreams of dawning Royalty.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO A STAR.
   
   [Published (without title) by Hogg, "Life of Shelley", 1858; dated 1811.
   The title is Rossetti's (1870).]
   
   Sweet star, which gleaming o'er the darksome scene
   Through fleecy clouds of silvery radiance fliest,
   Spanglet of light on evening's shadowy veil,
   Which shrouds the day-beam from the waveless lake,
   Lighting the hour of sacred love; more sweet                         _5
   Than the expiring morn-star's paly fires:--
   Sweet star! When wearied Nature sinks to sleep,
   And all is hushed,--all, save the voice of Love,
   Whose broken murmurings swell the balmy blast
   Of soft Favonius, which at intervals                                 _10
   Sighs in the ear of stillness, art thou aught but
   Lulling the slaves of interest to repose
   With that mild, pitying gaze? Oh, I would look
   In thy dear beam till every bond of sense
   Became enamoured--                                                   _15
   
   ***
   
   
   TO MARY WHO DIED IN THIS OPINION.
   
   [Published by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870;
   dated 1810-11.]
   
   1.
   Maiden, quench the glare of sorrow
   Struggling in thine haggard eye:
   Firmness dare to borrow
   From the wreck of destiny;
   For the ray morn's bloom revealing                                   _5
   Can never boast so bright an hue
   As that which mocks concealing,
   And sheds its loveliest light on you.
   
   2.
   Yet is the tie departed
   Which bound thy lovely soul to bliss?                                _10
   Has it left thee broken-hearted
   In a world so cold as this?
   Yet, though, fainting fair one,
   Sorrow's self thy cup has given,
   Dream thou'lt meet thy dear one,
   Never more to part, in Heaven.                                       _15
   
   3.
   Existence would I barter
   For a dream so dear as thine,
   And smile to die a martyr
   On affection's bloodless shrine.                                     _20
   Nor would I change for pleasure
   That withered hand and ashy cheek,
   If my heart enshrined a treasure
   Such as forces thine to break.
   
   ***
   
   
   A TALE OF SOCIETY AS IT IS: FROM FACTS, 1811.
   
   [Published (from Esdaile manuscript with title as above) by Rossetti,
   "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870. Rossetti's title is "Mother
   and Son".]
   
   1.
   She was an aged woman; and the years
   Which she had numbered on her toilsome way
   Had bowed her natural powers to decay.
   She was an aged woman; yet the ray
   Which faintly glimmered through her starting tears,                  _5
   Pressed into light by silent misery,
   Hath soul's imperishable energy.
   She was a cripple, and incapable
   To add one mite to gold-fed luxury:
   And therefore did her spirit dimly feel                              _10
   That poverty, the crime of tainting stain,
   Would merge her in its depths, never to rise again.
   
   2.
   One only son's love had supported her.
   She long had struggled with infirmity,
   Lingering to human life-scenes; for to die,                          _15
   When fate has spared to rend some mental tie,
   Would many wish, and surely fewer dare.
   But, when the tyrant's bloodhounds forced the child
   For his cursed power unhallowed arms to wield--
   Bend to another's will--become a thing                               _20
   More senseless than the sword of battlefield--
   Then did she feel keen sorrow's keenest sting;
   And many years had passed ere comfort they would bring.
   
   3.
   For seven years did this poor woman live
   In unparticipated solitude.                                          _25
   Thou mightst have seen her in the forest rude
   Picking the scattered remnants of its wood.
   If human, thou mightst then have learned to grieve.
   The gleanings of precarious charity
   Her scantiness of food did scarce supply.                            _30
   The proofs of an unspeaking sorrow dwelt
   Within her ghastly hollowness of eye:
   Each arrow of the season's change she felt.
   Yet still she groans, ere yet her race were run,
   One only hope: it was--once more to see her son.                     _35
   
   4.
   It was an eve of June, when every star
   Spoke peace from Heaven to those on earth that live.
   She rested on the moor. 'Twas such an eve
   When first her soul began indeed to grieve:
   Then he was here; now he is very far.                                _40
   The sweetness of the balmy evening
   A sorrow o'er her aged soul did fling,
   Yet not devoid of rapture's mingled tear:
   A balm was in the poison of the sting.
   This aged sufferer for many a year                                   _45
   Had never felt such comfort. She suppressed
   A sigh--and turning round, clasped William to her breast!
   
   5.
   And, though his form was wasted by the woe
   Which tyrants on their victims love to wreak,
   Though his sunk eyeballs and his faded cheek                         _50
   Of slavery's violence and scorn did speak,
   Yet did the aged woman's bosom glow.
   The vital fire seemed re-illumed within
   By this sweet unexpected welcoming.
   Oh, consummation of the fondest hope                                 _55
   That ever soared on Fancy's wildest wing!
   Oh, tenderness that foundst so sweet a scope!
   Prince who dost pride thee on thy mighty sway,
   When THOU canst feel such love, thou shalt be great as they!
   
   6.
   Her son, compelled, the country's foes had fought,                   _60
   Had bled in battle; and the stern control
   Which ruled his sinews and coerced his soul
   Utterly poisoned life's unmingled bowl,
   And unsubduable evils on him brought.
   He was the shadow of the lusty child                                 _65
   Who, when the time of summer season smiled,
   Did earn for her a meal of honesty,
   And with affectionate discourse beguiled
   The keen attacks of pain and poverty;
   Till Power, as envying her this only joy,                            _70
   From her maternal bosom tore the unhappy boy.
   
   7.
   And now cold charity's unwelcome dole
   Was insufficient to support the pair;
   And they would perish rather than would bear
   The law's stern slavery, and the insolent stare                      _75
   With which law loves to rend the poor man's soul--
   The bitter scorn, the spirit-sinking noise
   Of heartless mirth which women, men, and boys
   Wake in this scene of legal misery.
   
   ...
   
   NOTES:
   _28 grieve Esdaile manuscript; feel, 1870.
   _37 to those on earth that live Esdaile manuscripts; omitted, 1870.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO THE REPUBLICANS OF NORTH AMERICA.
   
   [Published (from the Esdaile manuscript with title as above) by
   Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1870; dated 1812.
   Rossetti's title is "The Mexican Revolution".]
   
   1.
   Brothers! between you and me
   Whirlwinds sweep and billows roar:
   Yet in spirit oft I see
   On thy wild and winding shore
   Freedom's bloodless banners wave,--                                  _5
   Feel the pulses of the brave
   Unextinguished in the grave,--
   See them drenched in sacred gore,--
   Catch the warrior's gasping breath
   Murmuring 'Liberty or death!'                                        _10
   
   2.
   Shout aloud! Let every slave,
   Crouching at Corruption's throne,
   Start into a man, and brave
   Racks and chains without a groan:
   And the castle's heartless glow,                                     _15
   And the hovel's vice and woe,
   Fade like gaudy flowers that blow--
   Weeds that peep, and then are gone
   Whilst, from misery's ashes risen,
   Love shall burst the captive's prison.                               _20
   
   3.
   Cotopaxi! bid the sound
   Through thy sister mountains ring,
   Till each valley smile around
   At the blissful welcoming!
   And, O thou stern Ocean deep,                                        _25
   Thou whose foamy billows sweep
   Shores where thousands wake to weep
   Whilst they curse a villain king,
   On the winds that fan thy breast
   Bear thou news of Freedom's rest!                                    _30
   
   4.
   Can the daystar dawn of love,
   Where the flag of war unfurled
   Floats with crimson stain above
   The fabric of a ruined world?
   Never but to vengeance driven                                        _35
   When the patriot's spirit shriven
   Seeks in death its native Heaven!
   There, to desolation hurled,
   Widowed love may watch thy bier,
   Balm thee with its dying tear.                                       _40
   
   ***
   
   
   TO IRELAND.
   
   [Published, 1-10, by Rossetti, "Complete Poetical Works of P. B. S.",
   1870; 11-17, 25-28, by Dowden, "Life of Shelley", 1887; 18-24 by
   Kingsland, "Poet-Lore", July, 1892. Dated 1812.]
   
   1.
   Bear witness, Erin! when thine injured isle
   Sees summer on its verdant pastures smile,
   Its cornfields waving in the winds that sweep
   The billowy surface of thy circling deep!
   Thou tree whose shadow o'er the Atlantic gave                        _5
   Peace, wealth and beauty, to its friendly wave, its blossoms fade,
   And blighted are the leaves that cast its shade;
   Whilst the cold hand gathers its scanty fruit,
   Whose chillness struck a canker to its root.                         _10
   
   2.
   I could stand
   Upon thy shores, O Erin, and could count
   The billows that, in their unceasing swell,
   Dash on thy beach, and every wave might seem
   An instrument in Time the giant's grasp,                             _15
   To burst the barriers of Eternity.
   Proceed, thou giant, conquering and to conquer;
   March on thy lonely way! The nations fall
   Beneath thy noiseless footstep; pyramids
   That for millenniums have defied the blast,                          _20
   And laughed at lightnings, thou dost crush to nought.
   Yon monarch, in his solitary pomp,
   Is but the fungus of a winter day
   That thy light footstep presses into dust.
   Thou art a conqueror, Time; all things give way                      _25
   Before thee but the 'fixed and virtuous will';
   The sacred sympathy of soul which was
   When thou wert not, which shall be when thou perishest.
   
   ...
   
   ***
   
   
   ON ROBERT EMMET'S GRAVE.
   
   [Published from the Esdaile manuscript book by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887; dated 1812.]
   
   ...
   
   6.
   No trump tells thy virtues--the grave where they rest
   With thy dust shall remain unpolluted by fame,
   Till thy foes, by the world and by fortune caressed,
   Shall pass like a mist from the light of thy name.
   
   7.
   When the storm-cloud that lowers o'er the day-beam is gone,          _5
   Unchanged, unextinguished its life-spring will shine;
   When Erin has ceased with their memory to groan,
   She will smile through the tears of revival on thine.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE RETROSPECT: CWM ELAN, 1812.
   
   [Published from the Esdaile manuscript book by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887.]
   
   A scene, which 'wildered fancy viewed
   In the soul's coldest solitude,
   With that same scene when peaceful love
   Flings rapture's colour o'er the grove,
   When mountain, meadow, wood and stream                               _5
   With unalloying glory gleam,
   And to the spirit's ear and eye
   Are unison and harmony.
   The moonlight was my dearer day;
   Then would I wander far away,                                        _10
   And, lingering on the wild brook's shore
   To hear its unremitting roar,
   Would lose in the ideal flow
   All sense of overwhelming woe;
   Or at the noiseless noon of night                                    _15
   Would climb some heathy mountain's height,
   And listen to the mystic sound
   That stole in fitful gasps around.
   I joyed to see the streaks of day
   Above the purple peaks decay,                                        _20
   And watch the latest line of light
   Just mingling with the shades of night;
   For day with me was time of woe
   When even tears refused to flow;
   Then would I stretch my languid frame                                _25
   Beneath the wild woods' gloomiest shade,
   And try to quench the ceaseless flame
   That on my withered vitals preyed;
   Would close mine eyes and dream I were
   On some remote and friendless plain,                                 _30
   And long to leave existence there,
   If with it I might leave the pain
   That with a finger cold and lean
   Wrote madness on my withering mien.
   
   It was not unrequited love                                           _35
   That bade my 'wildered spirit rove;
   'Twas not the pride disdaining life,
   That with this mortal world at strife
   Would yield to the soul's inward sense,
   Then groan in human impotence,                                       _40
   And weep because it is not given
   To taste on Earth the peace of Heaven.
   'Twas not that in the narrow sphere
   Where Nature fixed my wayward fate
   There was no friend or kindred dear                                  _45
   Formed to become that spirit's mate,
   Which, searching on tired pinion, found
   Barren and cold repulse around;
   Oh, no! yet each one sorrow gave
   New graces to the narrow grave.                                      _50
   For broken vows had early quelled
   The stainless spirit's vestal flame;
   Yes! whilst the faithful bosom swelled,
   Then the envenomed arrow came,
   And Apathy's unaltering eye                                          _55
   Beamed coldness on the misery;
   And early I had learned to scorn
   The chains of clay that bound a soul
   Panting to seize the wings of morn,
   And where its vital fires were born                                  _60
   To soar, and spur the cold control
   Which the vile slaves of earthly night
   Would twine around its struggling flight.
   
   Oh, many were the friends whom fame
   Had linked with the unmeaning name,                                  _65
   Whose magic marked among mankind
   The casket of my unknown mind,
   Which hidden from the vulgar glare
   Imbibed no fleeting radiance there.
   My darksome spirit sought--it found                                  _70
   A friendless solitude around.
   For who that might undaunted stand,
   The saviour of a sinking land,
   Would crawl, its ruthless tyrant's slave,
   And fatten upon Freedom's grave,                                     _75
   Though doomed with her to perish, where
   The captive clasps abhorred despair.
   
   They could not share the bosom's feeling,
   Which, passion's every throb revealing,
   Dared force on the world's notice cold                               _80
   Thoughts of unprofitable mould,
   Who bask in Custom's fickle ray,
   Fit sunshine of such wintry day!
   They could not in a twilight walk
   Weave an impassioned web of talk,                                    _85
   Till mysteries the spirits press
   In wild yet tender awfulness,
   Then feel within our narrow sphere
   How little yet how great we are!
   But they might shine in courtly glare,                               _90
   Attract the rabble's cheapest stare,
   And might command where'er they move
   A thing that bears the name of love;
   They might be learned, witty, gay,
   Foremost in fashion's gilt array,                                    _95
   On Fame's emblazoned pages shine,
   Be princes' friends, but never mine!
   
   Ye jagged peaks that frown sublime,
   Mocking the blunted scythe of Time,
   Whence I would watch its lustre pale                                 _100
   Steal from the moon o'er yonder vale
   Thou rock, whose bosom black and vast,
   Bared to the stream's unceasing flow,
   Ever its giant shade doth cast
   On the tumultuous surge below:                                       _105
   
   Woods, to whose depths retires to die
   The wounded Echo's melody,
   And whither this lone spirit bent
   The footstep of a wild intent:
   
   Meadows! whose green and spangled breast                             _110
   These fevered limbs have often pressed,
   Until the watchful fiend Despair
   Slept in the soothing coolness there!
   Have not your varied beauties seen
   The sunken eye, the withering mien,                                  _115
   Sad traces of the unuttered pain
   That froze my heart and burned my brain.
   How changed since Nature's summer form
   Had last the power my grief to charm,
   Since last ye soothed my spirit's sadness,                           _120
   Strange chaos of a mingled madness!
   Changed!--not the loathsome worm that fed
   In the dark mansions of the dead,
   Now soaring through the fields of air,
   And gathering purest nectar there,                                   _125
   A butterfly, whose million hues
   The dazzled eye of wonder views,
   Long lingering on a work so strange,
   Has undergone so bright a change.
   How do I feel my happiness?                                          _130
   I cannot tell, but they may guess
   Whose every gloomy feeling gone,
   Friendship and passion feel alone;
   Who see mortality's dull clouds
   Before affection's murmur fly,                                       _135
   Whilst the mild glances of her eye
   Pierce the thin veil of flesh that shrouds
   The spirit's inmost sanctuary.
   O thou! whose virtues latest known,
   First in this heart yet claim'st a throne;                           _140
   Whose downy sceptre still shall share
   The gentle sway with virtue there;
   Thou fair in form, and pure in mind,
   Whose ardent friendship rivets fast
   The flowery band our fates that bind,                                _145
   Which incorruptible shall last
   When duty's hard and cold control
   Has thawed around the burning soul,--
   The gloomiest retrospects that bind
   With crowns of thorn the bleeding mind,                              _150
   The prospects of most doubtful hue
   That rise on Fancy's shuddering view,--
   Are gilt by the reviving ray
   Which thou hast flung upon my day.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT OF A SONNET.
   
   TO HARRIET.
   
   [Published from the Esdaile manuscript book by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887; dated August 1, 1812.]
   
   Ever as now with Love and Virtue's glow
   May thy unwithering soul not cease to burn,
   Still may thine heart with those pure thoughts o'erflow
   Which force from mine such quick and warm return.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO HARRIET.
   
   [Published, 5-13, by Forman, "Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1876;
   58-69, by Shelley, "Notes to Queen Mab", 1813;
   and entire (from the Esdaile manuscript book) by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887; dated 1812.]
   
   It is not blasphemy to hope that Heaven
   More perfectly will give those nameless joys
   Which throb within the pulses of the blood
   And sweeten all that bitterness which Earth
   Infuses in the heaven-born soul. O thou                              _5
   Whose dear love gleamed upon the gloomy path
   Which this lone spirit travelled, drear and cold,
   Yet swiftly leading to those awful limits
   Which mark the bounds of Time and of the space
   When Time shall be no more; wilt thou not turn                       _10
   Those spirit-beaming eyes and look on me,
   Until I be assured that Earth is Heaven,
   And Heaven is Earth?--will not thy glowing cheek,
   Glowing with soft suffusion, rest on mine,
   And breathe magnetic sweetness through the frame                     _15
   Of my corporeal nature, through the soul
   Now knit with these fine fibres? I would give
   The longest and the happiest day that fate
   Has marked on my existence but to feel
   ONE soul-reviving kiss...O thou most dear,                           _20
   'Tis an assurance that this Earth is Heaven,
   And Heaven the flower of that untainted seed
   Which springeth here beneath such love as ours.
   Harriet! let death all mortal ties dissolve,
   But ours shall not be mortal! The cold hand                          _25
   Of Time may chill the love of earthly minds
   Half frozen now; the frigid intercourse
   Of common souls lives but a summer's day;
   It dies, where it arose, upon this earth.
   But ours! oh, 'tis the stretch of Fancy's hope                       _30
   To portray its continuance as now,
   Warm, tranquil, spirit-healing; nor when age
   Has tempered these wild ecstasies, and given
   A soberer tinge to the luxurious glow
   Which blazing on devotion's pinnacle                                 _35
   Makes virtuous passion supersede the power
   Of reason; nor when life's aestival sun
   To deeper manhood shall have ripened me;
   Nor when some years have added judgement's store
   To all thy woman sweetness, all the fire                             _40
   Which throbs in thine enthusiast heart; not then
   Shall holy friendship (for what other name
   May love like ours assume?), not even then
   Shall Custom so corrupt, or the cold forms
   Of this desolate world so harden us,                                 _45
   As when we think of the dear love that binds
   Our souls in soft communion, while we know
   Each other's thoughts and feelings, can we say
   Unblushingly a heartless compliment,
   Praise, hate, or love with the unthinking world,                     _50
   Or dare to cut the unrelaxing nerve
   That knits our love to virtue. Can those eyes,
   Beaming with mildest radiance on my heart
   To purify its purity, e'er bend
   To soothe its vice or consecrate its fears?                          _55
   Never, thou second Self! Is confidence
   So vain in virtue that I learn to doubt
   The mirror even of Truth? Dark flood of Time,
   Roll as it listeth thee; I measure not
   By month or moments thy ambiguous course.                            _60
   Another may stand by me on thy brink,,
   And watch the bubble whirled beyond his ken,
   Which pauses at my feet. The sense of love,
   The thirst for action, and the impassioned thought
   Prolong my being; if I wake no more,                                 _65
   My life more actual living will contain
   Than some gray veteran's of the world's cold school,
   Whose listless hours unprofitably roll
   By one enthusiast feeling unredeemed,
   Virtue and Love! unbending Fortitude,                                _70
   Freedom, Devotedness and Purity!
   That life my Spirit consecrates to you.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET.
   
   TO A BALLOON LADEN WITH KNOWLEDGE.
   
   [Published from the Esdaile manuscript book by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887; dated August, 1812.]
   
   Bright ball of flame that through the gloom of even
   Silently takest thine aethereal way,
   And with surpassing glory dimm'st each ray
   Twinkling amid the dark blue depths of Heaven,--
   Unlike the fire thou bearest, soon shalt thou                        _5
   Fade like a meteor in surrounding gloom,
   Whilst that, unquenchable, is doomed to glow
   A watch-light by the patriot's lonely tomb;
   A ray of courage to the oppressed and poor;
   A spark, though gleaming on the hovel's hearth,                      _10
   Which through the tyrant's gilded domes shall roar;
   A beacon in the darkness of the Earth;
   A sun which, o'er the renovated scene,
   Shall dart like Truth where Falsehood yet has been.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONNET.
   
   ON LAUNCHING SOME BOTTLES FILLED WITH KNOWLEDGE INTO THE BRISTOL CHANNEL.
   
   [Published from the Esdaile manuscript book by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887; dated August, 1812.]
   
   Vessels of heavenly medicine! may the breeze
   Auspicious waft your dark green forms to shore;
   Safe may ye stem the wide surrounding roar
   Of the wild whirlwinds and the raging seas;
   And oh! if Liberty e'er deigned to stoop                             _5
   From yonder lowly throne her crownless brow,
   Sure she will breathe around your emerald group
   The fairest breezes of her West that blow.
   Yes! she will waft ye to some freeborn soul
   Whose eye-beam, kindling as it meets your freight,                   _10
   Her heaven-born flame in suffering Earth will light,
   Until its radiance gleams from pole to pole,
   And tyrant-hearts with powerless envy burst
   To see their night of ignorance dispersed.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE DEVIL'S WALK.
   
   A BALLAD.
   
   [Published as a broadside by Shelley, 1812.]
   
   1.
   Once, early in the morning, Beelzebub arose,
   With care his sweet person adorning,
   He put on his Sunday clothes.
   
   2.
   He drew on a boot to hide his hoof,                                  _5
   He drew on a glove to hide his claw,
   His horns were concealed by a Bras Chapeau,
   And the Devil went forth as natty a Beau
   As Bond-street ever saw.
   
   3.
   He sate him down, in London town,                                    _10
   Before earth's morning ray;
   With a favourite imp he began to chat,
   On religion, and scandal, this and that,
   Until the dawn of day.
   
   4.
   And then to St. James's Court he went,                               _15
   And St. Paul's Church he took on his way;
   He was mighty thick with every Saint,
   Though they were formal and he was gay.
   
   5.
   The Devil was an agriculturist,
   And as bad weeds quickly grow,                                       _20
   In looking over his farm, I wist,
   He wouldn't find cause for woe.
   
   6.
   He peeped in each hole, to each chamber stole,
   His promising live-stock to view;
   Grinning applause, he just showed them his claws,                    _25
   And they shrunk with affright from his ugly sight,
   Whose work they delighted to do.
   
   7.
   Satan poked his red nose into crannies so small
   One would think that the innocents fair,
   Poor lambkins! were just doing nothing at all                        _30
   But settling some dress or arranging some ball,
   But the Devil saw deeper there.
   
   8.
   A Priest, at whose elbow the Devil during prayer
   Sate familiarly, side by side,
   Declared that, if the Tempter were there,                            _35
   His presence he would not abide.
   Ah! ah! thought Old Nick, that's a very stale trick,
   For without the Devil, O favourite of Evil,
   In your carriage you would not ride.
   
   9.
   Satan next saw a brainless King,                                     _40
   Whose house was as hot as his own;
   Many Imps in attendance were there on the wing,
   They flapped the pennon and twisted the sting,
   Close by the very Throne.
   
   10.
   Ah! ah! thought Satan, the pasture is good,                          _45
   My Cattle will here thrive better than others;
   They dine on news of human blood,
   They sup on the groans of the dying and dead,
   And supperless never will go to bed;
   Which will make them fat as their brothers.                          _50
   
   11.
   Fat as the Fiends that feed on blood,
   Fresh and warm from the fields of Spain,
   Where Ruin ploughs her gory way,
   Where the shoots of earth are nipped in the bud,
   Where Hell is the Victor's prey,                                     _55
   Its glory the meed of the slain.
   
   12.
   Fat--as the Death-birds on Erin's shore,
   That glutted themselves in her dearest gore,
   And flitted round Castlereagh,
   When they snatched the Patriot's heart, that HIS grasp               _60
   Had torn from its widow's maniac clasp,
   --And fled at the dawn of day.
   
   13.
   Fat--as the Reptiles of the tomb,
   That riot in corruption's spoil,
   That fret their little hour in gloom,                                _65
   And creep, and live the while.
   
   14.
   Fat as that Prince's maudlin brain,
   Which, addled by some gilded toy,
   Tired, gives his sweetmeat, and again
   Cries for it, like a humoured boy.                                   _70
   
   15.
   For he is fat,--his waistcoat gay,
   When strained upon a levee day,
   Scarce meets across his princely paunch;
   And pantaloons are like half-moons
   Upon each brawny haunch.                                             _75
   
   16.
   How vast his stock of calf! when plenty
   Had filled his empty head and heart,
   Enough to satiate foplings twenty,
   Could make his pantaloon seams start.
   
   17.
   The Devil (who sometimes is called Nature),                          _80
   For men of power provides thus well,
   Whilst every change and every feature,
   Their great original can tell.
   
   18.
   Satan saw a lawyer a viper slay,
   That crawled up the leg of his table,                                _85
   It reminded him most marvellously
   Of the story of Cain and Abel.
   
   19.
   The wealthy yeoman, as he wanders
   His fertile fields among,
   And on his thriving cattle ponders,                                  _90
   Counts his sure gains, and hums a song;
   Thus did the Devil, through earth walking,
   Hum low a hellish song.
   
   20.
   For they thrive well whose garb of gore
   Is Satan's choicest livery,                                          _95
   And they thrive well who from the poor
   Have snatched the bread of penury,
   And heap the houseless wanderer's store
   On the rank pile of luxury.
   
   21.
   The Bishops thrive, though they are big;                             _100
   The Lawyers thrive, though they are thin;
   For every gown, and every wig,
   Hides the safe thrift of Hell within.
   
   22.
   Thus pigs were never counted clean,
   Although they dine on finest corn;                                   _105
   And cormorants are sin-like lean,
   Although they eat from night to morn.
   
   23.
   Oh! why is the Father of Hell in such glee,
   As he grins from ear to ear?
   Why does he doff his clothes joyfully,                               _110
   As he skips, and prances, and flaps his wing,
   As he sidles, leers, and twirls his sting,
   And dares, as he is, to appear?
   
   24.
   A statesman passed--alone to him,
   The Devil dare his whole shape uncover,                              _115
   To show each feature, every limb,
   Secure of an unchanging lover.
   
   25.
   At this known sign, a welcome sight,
   The watchful demons sought their King,
   And every Fiend of the Stygian night,                                _120
   Was in an instant on the wing.
   
   26.
   Pale Loyalty, his guilt-steeled brow,
   With wreaths of gory laurel crowned:
   The hell-hounds, Murder, Want and Woe,
   Forever hungering, flocked around;                                   _125
   From Spain had Satan sought their food,
   'Twas human woe and human blood!
   
   27.
   Hark! the earthquake's crash I hear,--
   Kings turn pale, and Conquerors start,
   Ruffians tremble in their fear,                                      _130
   For their Satan doth depart.
   
   28.
   This day Fiends give to revelry
   To celebrate their King's return,
   And with delight its Sire to see
   Hell's adamantine limits burn.                                       _135
   
   29.
   But were the Devil's sight as keen
   As Reason's penetrating eye,
   His sulphurous Majesty I ween,
   Would find but little cause for joy.
   
   30.
   For the sons of Reason see                                           _140
   That, ere fate consume the Pole,
   The false Tyrant's cheek shall be
   Bloodless as his coward soul.
   
   NOTE:
   _55 Where cj. Rossetti; When 1812.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT OF A SONNET.
   
   FAREWELL TO NORTH DEVON.
   
   [Published (from the Esdaile manuscript book) by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887; dated August, 1812.]
   
   Where man's profane and tainting hand
   Nature's primaeval loveliness has marred,
   And some few souls of the high bliss debarred
   Which else obey her powerful command;
   ...mountain piles                                                    _5
   That load in grandeur Cambria's emerald vales.
   
   ***
   
   
   ON LEAVING LONDON FOR WALES.
   
   [Published (from the Esdaile manuscript book) by Dowden,
   "Life of Shelley", 1887; dated November, 1812.]
   
   Hail to thee, Cambria! for the unfettered wind
   Which from thy wilds even now methinks I feel,
   Chasing the clouds that roll in wrath behind,
   And tightening the soul's laxest nerves to steel;
   True mountain Liberty alone may heal                                 _5
   The pain which Custom's obduracies bring,
   And he who dares in fancy even to steal
   One draught from Snowdon's ever sacred spring
   Blots out the unholiest rede of worldly witnessing.
   
   And shall that soul, to selfish peace resigned,                      _10
   So soon forget the woe its fellows share?
   Can Snowdon's Lethe from the free-born mind
   So soon the page of injured penury tear?
   Does this fine mass of human passion dare
   To sleep, unhonouring the patriot's fall,                            _15
   Or life's sweet load in quietude to bear
   While millions famish even in Luxury's hall,
   And Tyranny, high raised, stern lowers on all?
   
   No, Cambria! never may thy matchless vales
   A heart so false to hope and virtue shield;                          _20
   Nor ever may thy spirit-breathing gales
   Waft freshness to the slaves who dare to yield.
   For me!...the weapon that I burn to wield
   I seek amid thy rocks to ruin hurled,
   That Reason's flag may over Freedom's field,                         _25
   Symbol of bloodless victory, wave unfurled,
   A meteor-sign of love effulgent o'er the world.
   
   ...
   
   Do thou, wild Cambria, calm each struggling thought;
   Cast thy sweet veil of rocks and woods between,
   That by the soul to indignation wrought                              _30
   Mountains and dells be mingled with the scene;
   Let me forever be what I have been,
   But not forever at my needy door
   Let Misery linger speechless, pale and lean;
   I am the friend of the unfriended poor,--                            _35
   Let me not madly stain their righteous cause in gore.
   
   ***
   
   
   THE WANDERING JEW'S SOLILOQUY.
   
   [Published (from the Esdaile manuscript book) by Bertram Dobell, 1887.]
   
   Is it the Eternal Triune, is it He
   Who dares arrest the wheels of destiny
   And plunge me in the lowest Hell of Hells?
   Will not the lightning's blast destroy my frame?
   Will not steel drink the blood-life where it swells?                 _5
   No--let me hie where dark Destruction dwells,
   To rouse her from her deeply caverned lair,
   And, taunting her cursed sluggishness to ire,
   Light long Oblivion's death-torch at its flame
   And calmly mount Annihilation's pyre.                                _10
   Tyrant of Earth! pale Misery's jackal Thou!
   Are there no stores of vengeful violent fate
   Within the magazines of Thy fierce hate?
   No poison in the clouds to bathe a brow
   That lowers on Thee with desperate contempt?                         _15
   Where is the noonday Pestilence that slew
   The myriad sons of Israel's favoured nation?
   Where the destroying Minister that flew
   Pouring the fiery tide of desolation
   Upon the leagued Assyrian's attempt?                                 _20
   Where the dark Earthquake-daemon who engorged
   At the dread word Korah's unconscious crew?
   Or the Angel's two-edged sword of fire that urged
   Our primal parents from their bower of bliss
   (Reared by Thine hand) for errors not their own                      _25
   By Thine omniscient mind foredoomed, foreknown?
   Yes! I would court a ruin such as this,
   Almighty Tyrant! and give thanks to Thee--
   Drink deeply--drain the cup of hate; remit this--I may die.
   
   ***
   
   
   EVENING.
   
   TO HARRIET.
   
   [Published by Dowden, "Life of Shelley", 1887. Composed July 31, 1813.]
   
   O thou bright Sun! beneath the dark blue line
   Of western distance that sublime descendest,
   And, gleaming lovelier as thy beams decline,
   Thy million hues to every vapour lendest,
   And, over cobweb lawn and grove and stream                           _5
   Sheddest the liquid magic of thy light,
   Till calm Earth, with the parting splendour bright,
   Shows like the vision of a beauteous dream;
   What gazer now with astronomic eye
   Could coldly count the spots within thy sphere?                      _10
   Such were thy lover, Harriet, could he fly
   The thoughts of all that makes his passion dear,
   And, turning senseless from thy warm caress,--
   Pick flaws in our close-woven happiness.
   
   ***
   
   
   TO IANTHE.
   
   [Published by Dowden, "Life of Shelley", 1887. Composed September, 1813.]
   
   I love thee, Baby! for thine own sweet sake;
   Those azure eyes, that faintly dimpled cheek,
   Thy tender frame, so eloquently weak,
   Love in the sternest heart of hate might wake;
   But more when o'er thy fitful slumber bending                        _5
   Thy mother folds thee to her wakeful heart,
   Whilst love and pity, in her glances blending,
   All that thy passive eyes can feel impart:
   More, when some feeble lineaments of her,
   Who bore thy weight beneath her spotless bosom,                      _10
   As with deep love I read thy face, recur,--
   More dear art thou, O fair and fragile blossom;
   Dearest when most thy tender traits express
   The image of thy mother's loveliness.
   
   ***
   
   
   SONG FROM THE WANDERING JEW.
   
   [Published as Shelley's by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847, 1 page 58.]
   
   See yon opening flower
   Spreads its fragrance to the blast;
   It fades within an hour,
   Its decay is pale--is fast.
   Paler is yon maiden;                                                 _5
   Faster is her heart's decay;
   Deep with sorrow laden,
   She sinks in death away.
   
   ***
   
   
   FRAGMENT FROM THE WANDERING JEW.
   
   [Published as Shelley's by Medwin, "Life of Shelley", 1847, 1 page 56.]
   
   The Elements respect their Maker's seal!
   Still Like the scathed pine tree's height,
   Braving the tempests of the night
   Have I 'scaped the flickering flame.
   Like the scathed pine, which a monument stands                       _5
   Of faded grandeur, which the brands
   Of the tempest-shaken air
   Have riven on the desolate heath;
   Yet it stands majestic even in death,
   And rears its wild form there.                                       _10,
   
   ***
   
   
   TO THE QUEEN OF MY HEART.
   
   [Published as Shelley's by Medwin, "The Shelley Papers", 1833, and by
   Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition; afterwards suppressed
   as of doubtful authenticity.]
   
   1.
   Shall we roam, my love,
   To the twilight grove,
   When the moon is rising bright;
   Oh, I'll whisper there,
   In the cool night-air,                                               _5
   What I dare not in broad daylight!
   
   2.
   I'll tell thee a part
   Of the thoughts that start
   To being when thou art nigh;
   And thy beauty, more bright                                          _10
   Than the stars' soft light,
   Shall seem as a weft from the sky.
   
   3.
   When the pale moonbeam
   On tower and stream
   Sheds a flood of silver sheen,                                       _15
   How I love to gaze
   As the cold ray strays
   O'er thy face, my heart's throned queen!
   
   4.
   Wilt thou roam with me
   To the restless sea,                                                 _20
   And linger upon the steep,
   And list to the flow
   Of the waves below
   How they toss and roar and leap?
   
   5.
   Those boiling waves,                                                 _25
   And the storm that raves
   At night o'er their foaming crest,
   Resemble the strife
   That, from earliest life,
   The passions have waged in my breast.                                _30
   
   6.
   Oh, come then, and rove
   To the sea or the grove,
   When the moon is rising bright;
   And I'll whisper there,
   In the cool night-air,                                               _35
   What I dare not in broad daylight.
   
   ***
   
   
   NOTES ON THE TEXT AND ITS PUNCTUATION.
   
   In the case of every poem published during Shelley's lifetime, the text
   of this edition is based upon that of the editio princeps or earliest
   issue. Wherever our text deviates verbally from this exemplar, the word
   or words of the editio princeps will be found recorded in a footnote. In
   like manner, wherever the text of the poems first printed by Mrs.
   Shelley in the "Posthumous Poems" of 1824 or the "Poetical Works" of
   1839 is modified by manuscript authority or otherwise, the reading of
   the earliest printed text has been subjoined in a footnote. Shelley's
   punctuation--or what may be presumed to be his--has been retained, save
   in the case of errors (whether of the transcriber or the printer)
   overlooked in the revision of the proof-sheets, and of a few places
   where the pointing, though certainly or seemingly Shelley's, tends to
   obscure the sense or grammatical construction. In the following notes
   the more important textual difficulties are briefly discussed, and the
   readings embodied in the text of this edition, it is hoped, sufficiently
   justified. An attempt has also been made to record the original
   punctuation where it is here departed from.
   
   1.
   THE DAEMON OF THE WORLD: PART 1.
   
   The following paragraph, relating to this poem, closes Shelley's
   "Preface" to "Alastor", etc., 1816:--'The Fragment entitled "The Daemon
   of the World" is a detached part of a poem which the author does not
   intend for publication. The metre in which it is composed is that of
   "Samson Agonistes" and the Italian pastoral drama, and may be considered
   as the natural measure into which poetical conceptions, expressed in
   harmonious language, necessarily fall.'
   
   2.
   Lines 56, 112, 184, 288. The editor has added a comma at the end of
   these lines, and a period (for the comma of 1816) after by, line 279.
   
   3.
   Lines 167, 168. The editio princeps has a comma after And, line 167, and
   heaven, line 168.
   
   1.
   THE DAEMON OF THE WORLD: PART 2.
   
   Printed by Mr. Forman from a copy in his possession of "Queen Mab",
   corrected by Shelley's hand. See "The Shelley Library", pages 36-44, for
   a detailed history and description of this copy.
   
   2.
   Lines 436-438. Mr. Forman prints:--
   Which from the exhaustless lore of human weal
   Draws on the virtuous mind, the thoughts that rise
   In time-destroying infiniteness, gift, etc.
   Our text exhibits both variants--lore for 'store,' and Dawns for
   'Draws'--found in Shelley's note on the corresponding passage of "Queen
   Mab" (8 204-206). See editor's note on this passage. Shelley's comma
   after infiniteness, line 438, is omitted as tending to obscure the
   construction.
   
   1.
   ALASTOR; OR THE SPIRIT OF SOLITUDE.
   
   "Preface". For the concluding paragraph see editor's note
   on "The Daemon of the World": Part 1.
   
   2.
   Conducts, O Sleep, to thy, etc. (line 219.)
   The Shelley texts, 1816, 1824, 1839, have Conduct here, which Forman and
   Dowden retain. The suggestion that Shelley may have written 'death's
   blue vaults' (line 216) need not, in the face of 'the dark gate of
   death' (line 211), be seriously considered; Conduct must, therefore, be
   regarded as a fault in grammar. That Shelley actually wrote Conduct is
   not impossible, for his grammar is not seldom faulty (see, for instance,
   "Revolt of Islam, Dedication", line 60); but it is most improbable that
   he would have committed a solecism so striking both to eye and ear.
   Rossetti and Woodberry print Conducts, etc. The final s is often a
   vanishing quantity in Shelley's manuscripts. Or perhaps the compositor's
   hand was misled by his eye, which may have dropped on the words, Conduct
   to thy, etc., seven lines above.
   
   3.
   Of wave ruining on wave, etc. (line 327.)
   For ruining the text of "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions, has
   running--an overlooked misprint, surely, rather than a conjectural
   emendation. For an example of ruining as an intransitive (= 'falling in
   ruins,' or, simply, 'falling in streams') see "Paradise Lost", 6
   867-869:--
   Hell heard th' insufferable noise, Hell saw
   Heav'n ruining from Heav'n, and would have fled
   Affrighted, etc.
   Ruining, in the sense of 'streaming,' 'trailing,' occurs in Coleridge's
   "Melancholy: a Fragment" (Sibylline Leaves, 1817, page 262):--
   Where ruining ivies propped the ruins steep--
   "Melancholy" first appeared in "The Morning Post", December 7, 1797,
   where, through an error identical with that here assumed in the text of
   1839, running appears in place of ruining--the word intended, and
   doubtless written, by Coleridge.
   
   4.
   Line 349. With Mr. Stopford Brooke, the editor substitutes here a colon
   for the full stop which, in editions 1816, 1824, and 1839, follows
   ocean. Forman and Dowden retain the full stop; Rossetti and Woodberry
   substitute a semicolon.
   
   5.
   And nought but gnarled roots of ancient pines
   Branchless and blasted, clenched with grasping roots
   The unwilling soil. (lines 530-532.)
   Editions 1816, 1824, and 1839 have roots (line 530)--a palpable
   misprint, the probable origin of which may be seen in the line which
   follows. Rossetti conjectures trunks, but stumps or stems may have been
   Shelley's word.
   
   6.
   Lines 543-548. This somewhat involved passage is here reprinted exactly
   as it stands in the editio princeps, save for the comma after and, line
   546, first introduced by Dowden, 1890. The construction and meaning are
   fully discussed by Forman ("Poetical Works" of Shelley, edition 1876,
   volume 1 pages 39, 40), Stopford Brooke ("Poems of Shelley", G. T. S.,
   1880, page 323), Dobell ("Alastor", etc., Facsimile Reprint, 2nd edition
   1887, pages 22-27), and Woodberry ("Complete P. W. of Shelley", 1893,
   volume 1 page 413).
   
   1.
   THE REVOLT OF ISLAM.
   
   The revised text (1818) of this poem is given here, as being that which
   Shelley actually published. In order to reconvert the text of "The
   Revolt of Islam" into that of "Laon and Cythna", the reader must make
   the following alterations in the text. At the end of the "Preface"
   add:--
   
   'In the personal conduct of my Hero and Heroine, there is one
   circumstance which was intended to startle the reader from the trance of
   ordinary life. It was my object to break through the crust of those
   outworn opinions on which established institutions depend. I have
   appealed therefore to the most universal of all feelings, and have
   endeavoured to strengthen the moral sense, by forbidding it to waste its
   energies in seeking to avoid actions which are only crimes of
   convention. It is because there is so great a multitude of artificial
   vices that there are so few real virtues. Those feelings alone which are
   benevolent or malevolent, are essentially good or bad. The circumstance
   of which I speak was introduced, however, merely to accustom men to that
   charity and toleration which the exhibition of a practice widely
   differing from their own has a tendency to promote. (The sentiments
   connected with and characteristic of this circumstance have no personal
   reference to the Writer.--[Shelley's Note.]) Nothing indeed can be more
   mischievous than many actions, innocent in themselves, which might bring
   down upon individuals the bigoted contempt and rage of the multitude.'
   
   2 21 1:
   I had a little sister whose fair eyes
   
   2 25 2:
   To love in human life, this sister sweet,
   
   3 1 1:
   What thoughts had sway over my sister's slumber
   
   3 1 3:
   As if they did ten thousand years outnumber
   
   4 30 6:
   And left it vacant--'twas her brother's face--
   
   5 47 5:
   I had a brother once, but he is dead!--
   
   6 24 8:
   My own sweet sister looked), with joy did quail,
   
   6 31 6:
   The common blood which ran within our frames,
   
   6 39 6-9:
   With such close sympathies, for to each other
   Had high and solemn hopes, the gentle might
   Of earliest love, and all the thoughts which smother
   Cold Evil's power, now linked a sister and a brother.
   
   6 40 1:
   And such is Nature's modesty, that those
   
   8 4 9:
   Dream ye that God thus builds for man in solitude?
   
   8 5 1:
   What then is God? Ye mock yourselves and give
   
   8 6 1:
   What then is God? Some moonstruck sophist stood
   
   8 6 8, 9:
   And that men say God has appointed Death
   On all who scorn his will to wreak immortal wrath.
   
   8 7 1-4:
   Men say they have seen God, and heard from God,
   Or known from others who have known such things,
   And that his will is all our law, a rod
   To scourge us into slaves--that Priests and Kings
   
   8 8 1:
   And it is said, that God will punish wrong;
   
   8 8 3, 4:
   And his red hell's undying snakes among
   Will bind the wretch on whom he fixed a stain
   
   8 13 3, 4:
   For it is said God rules both high and low,
   And man is made the captive of his brother;
   
   9 13 8:
   To curse the rebels. To their God did they
   
   9 14 6:
   By God, and Nature, and Necessity.
   
   9 15. The stanza contains ten lines--lines 4-7 as follows:
   There was one teacher, and must ever be,
   They said, even God, who, the necessity
   Of rule and wrong had armed against mankind,
   His slave and his avenger there to be;
   
   9 18 3-6:
   And Hell and Awe, which in the heart of man
   Is God itself; the Priests its downfall knew,
   As day by day their altars lovelier grew,
   Till they were left alone within the fane;
   
   10 22 9:
   On fire! Almighty God his hell on earth has spread!
   
   10 26 7, 8:
   Of their Almighty God, the armies wind
   In sad procession: each among the train
   
   10 28 1:
   O God Almighty! thou alone hast power.
   
   10 31 1:
   And Oromaze, and Christ, and Mahomet,
   
   10 32 1:
   He was a Christian Priest from whom it came
   
   10 32 4:
   To quell the rebel Atheists; a dire guest
   
   10 32 9:
   To wreak his fear of God in vengeance on mankind
   
   10 34 5, 6:
   His cradled Idol, and the sacrifice
   Of God to God's own wrath--that Islam's creed
   
   10 35 9:
   And thrones, which rest on faith in God, nigh overturned.
   
   10 39 4:
   Of God may be appeased. He ceased, and they
   
   10 40 5:
   With storms and shadows girt, sate God, alone,
   
   10 44 9:
   As 'hush! hark! Come they yet?
   God, God, thine hour is near!'
   
   10 45 8:
   Men brought their atheist kindred to appease
   
   10 47 6:
   The threshold of God's throne, and it was she!
   
   11 16 1:
   Ye turn to God for aid in your distress;
   
   11 25 7:
   Swear by your dreadful God.'--'We swear, we swear!'
   
   12 10 9:
   Truly for self, thus thought that Christian Priest indeed,
   
   12 11 9:
   A woman? God has sent his other victim here.
   
   12 12 6-8:
   Will I stand up before God's golden throne,
   And cry, 'O Lord, to thee did I betray
   An Atheist; but for me she would have known
   
   12 29 4:
   In torment and in fire have Atheists gone;
   
   12 30 4:
   How Atheists and Republicans can die;
   
   2.
   Aught but a lifeless clod, until revived by thee (Dedic. 6 9).
   
   So Rossetti; the Shelley editions, 1818 and 1839, read clog, which is
   retained by Forman, Dowden, and Woodberry. Rossetti's happy conjecture,
   clod, seems to Forman 'a doubtful emendation, as Shelley may have used
   clog in its [figurative] sense of weight, encumbrance.'--Hardly, as
   here, in a poetical figure: that would be to use a metaphor within a
   metaphor. Shelley compares his heart to a concrete object: if clog is
   right, the word must be taken in one or other of its two recognized
   LITERAL senses--'a wooden shoe,' or 'a block of wood tied round the neck
   or to the leg of a horse or a dog.' Again, it is of others' hearts, not
   of his own, that Shelley here deplores the icy coldness and weight;
   besides, how could he appropriately describe his heart as a weight or
   encumbrance upon the free play of impulse and emotion, seeing that for
   Shelley, above all men, the heart was itself the main source and spring
   of all feeling and action? That source, he complains, has been dried
   up--its emotions desiccated--by the crushing impact of other hearts,
   heavy, hard and cold as stone. His heart has become withered and barren,
   like a lump of earth parched with frost--'a lifeless clod.' Compare
   "Summer and Winter", lines 11-15:--
    'It was a winter such as when birds die
    In the deep forests; and the fishes lie
    Stiffened in the translucent ice, which makes
    Even the mud and slime of the warm lakes
    A wrinkled clod as hard as brick;' etc., etc.
   
   The word revived suits well with clod; but what is a revived clog?
   Finally, the first two lines of the following stanza (7) seem decisive
   in favour of Roseetti's word.
   
   If any one wonders how a misprint overlooked in 1818 could, after
   twenty-one years, still remain undiscovered in 1839, let him consider
   the case of clog in Lamb's parody on Southey's and Coleridge's "Dactyls"
   (Lamb, "Letter to Coleridge", July 1, 1796):--
    Sorely your Dactyls do drag along limp-footed;
    Sad is the measure that hangs a clog round 'em so, etc., etc.
   
   Here the misprint, clod, which in 1868 appeared in Moxon's edition of
   the "Letters of Charles Lamb", has through five successive editions and
   under many editors--including Fitzgerald, Ainger, and Macdonald--held
   its ground even to the present day; and this, notwithstanding the
   preservation of the true reading, clog, in the texts of Talfourd and
   Carew Hazlitt. Here then is the case of a palpable misprint surviving,
   despite positive external evidence of its falsity, over a period of
   thirty-six years.
   
   3.
   And walked as free, etc. (Ded. 7 6).
   
   Walked is one of Shelley's occasional grammatical laxities. Forman well
   observes that walkedst, the right word here, would naturally seem to
   Shelley more heinous than a breach of syntactic rule. Rossetti and,
   after him, Dowden print walk. Forman and Woodberry follow the early
   texts.
   
   4.
   1 9 1-7. Here the text follows the punctuation of the editio princeps,
   1818, with two exceptions: a comma is _insert_ed (1) after scale (line
   201), on the authority of the Bodleian manuscript (Locock); and (2)
   after neck (line 205), to indicate the true construction. Mrs. Shelley's
   text, 1839, has a semicolon after plumes (line 203), which Rossetti
   adopts. Forman (1892) departs from the pointing of Shelley's edition
   here, placing a period at the close of line 199, and a dash after
   blended (line 200).
   
   5.
   What life, what power, was, etc. (1 11 1.)
   The editio princeps, 1818, wants the commas here.
   
   6.
   ...and now
   We are embarked--the mountains hang and frown
   Over the starry deep that gleams below,
   A vast and dim expanse, as o'er the waves we go. (1 23 6-9.)
   With Woodberry I substitute after embarked (7) a dash for the comma of
   the editio princeps; with Rossetti I restore to below (8) a comma which
   I believe to have been overlooked by the printer of that edition.
   Shelley's meaning I take to be that 'a vast and dim expanse of mountain
   hangs frowning over the starry deep that gleams below it as we pass over
   the waves.'
   
   7.
   As King, and Lord, and God, the conquering Fiend did own,--(1 28 9.)
   So Forman (1892), Dowden; the editio princeps, has a full stop at the
   close of the line,--where, according to Mr. Locock, no point appears in
   the Bodleian manuscript.
   
   8.
   Black-winged demon forms, etc. (1 30 7.)
   The Bodleian manuscript exhibits the requisite hyphen here, and in
   golden-pinioned (32 2).
   
   9.
   1 31 2, 6. The 'three-dots' point, employed by Shelley to indicate a
   pause longer than that of a full stop, is introduced into these two
   lines on the authority of the Bodleian manuscript. In both cases it
   replaces a dash in the editio princeps. See list of punctual variations
   below. Mr. Locock reports the presence in the manuscript of what he
   justly terms a 'characteristic' comma after Soon (31 2).
   
   10.
   ...mine shook beneath the wide emotion. (1 38 9.)
   For emotion the Bodleian manuscript has commotion (Locock)--perhaps the
   fitter word here.
   
   11.
   Deep slumber fell on me:--my dreams were fire-- (1 40 1.)
   The dash after fire is from the Bodleian manuscript,--where, moreover,
   the somewhat misleading but indubitably Shelleyan comma after passion
   (editio princeps, 40 4) is wanting (Locock). I have added a dash to the
   comma after cover (40 5) in order to clarify the sense.
   
   12.
   And shared in fearless deeds with evil men, (1 44 4.)
   With Forman and Dowden I substitute here a comma for the full stop of
   the editio princeps. See also list of punctual variations below (stanza
   44).
   
   13.
   The Spirit whom I loved, in solitude
   Sustained his child: (1 45 4, 5.)
   The comma here, important as marking the sense as well as the rhythm of
   the passage, is derived from the Bodleian manuscript (Locock).
   
   14.
   I looked, and we were sailing pleasantly,
   Swift as a cloud between the sea and sky;
   Beneath the rising moon seen far away,
   Mountains of ice, etc. (1 47 4-7.)
   The editio princeps has a comma after sky (5) and a semicolon after away
   (6)--a pointing followed by Forman, Dowden, and Woodberry. By
   transposing these points (as in our text), however, a much better sense
   is obtained; and, luckily, this better sense proves to be that yielded
   by the Bodleian manuscript, where, Mr. Locock reports, there is a
   semicolon after sky (5), a comma after moon (6), and no point whatsoever
   after away (6).
   
   15.
   Girt by the deserts of the Universe; (1 50 4.)
   So the Bodleian manuscript, anticipated by Woodberry (1893). Rossetti
   (1870) had substituted a comma for the period of editio princeps.
   
   16.
   Hymns which my soul had woven to Freedom, strong
   The source of passion, whence they rose, to be;
   Triumphant strains, which, etc. (2 28 6-8.)
   The editio princeps, followed by Forman, has passion whence (7). Mrs.
   Shelley, "Poetical Works" 1839, both editions, prints: strong The source
   of passion, whence they rose to be Triumphant strains, which, etc.
   
   17.
   But, pale, were calm with passion--thus subdued, etc. (2 49 6.)
   With Rossetti, Dowden, Woodberry, I add a comma after But to the
   pointing of the editio princeps. Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839,
   both editions, prints: But pale, were calm.--With passion thus subdued,
   etc.
   
   18.
   Methought that grate was lifted, etc. (3 25 1.)
   Shelley's and Mrs. Shelley's editions have gate, which is retained by
   Forman. But cf. 3 14 2, 7. Dowden and Woodberry follow Rossetti in
   printing grate.
   
   19.
   Where her own standard, etc. (4 24 5.)
   So Mrs. Shelley, "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions.
   
   20.
   Beneath whose spires, which swayed in the red flame, (5 54 6.)
   Shelley's and Mrs. Shelley's editions (1818, 1839) give red light
   here,--an oversight perpetuated by Forman, the rhyme-words name (8) and
   frame (9) notwithstanding. With Rossetti, Dowden, Woodberry, I print red
   flame,--an obvious emendation proposed by Fleay.
   
   21.
   --when the waves smile,
   As sudden earthquakes light many a volcano-isle,
   Thus sudden, unexpected feast was spread, etc. (6 7 8, 9; 8 1.)
   With Forman, Dowden, Woodberry, I substitute after isle (7 9) a comma
   for the full stop of editions 1818, 1839 (retained by Rossetti). The
   passage is obscure: perhaps Shelley wrote 'lift many a volcano-isle.'
   The plain becomes studded in an instant with piles of corpses, even as
   the smiling surface of the sea will sometimes become studded in an
   instant with many islands uplifted by a sudden shock of earthquake.
   
   22.
   7 7 2-6. The editio princeps punctuates thus:--
   and words it gave
   Gestures and looks, such as in whirlwinds bore
   Which might not be withstood, whence none could save
   All who approached their sphere, like some calm wave
   Vexed into whirlpools by the chasms beneath;
   This punctuation is retained by Forman; Rossetti, Dowden, Woodberry,
   place a comma after gave (2) and Gestures (3), and--adopting the
   suggestion of Mr. A.C. Bradley--enclose line 4 (Which might...could
   save) in parentheses; thus construing which might not be withstood and
   whence none could save as adjectival clauses qualifying whirlwinds (3),
   and taking bore (3) as a transitive verb governing All who approached
   their sphere (5). This, which I believe to be the true construction, is
   perhaps indicated quite as clearly by the pointing adopted in the
   text--a pointing moreover which, on metrical grounds, is, I think,
   preferable to that proposed by Mr. Bradley. I have added a dash to the
   comma after sphere (5), to indicate that it is Cythna herself (and not
   All who approached, etc.) that resembles some calm wave, etc.
   
   23.
   Which dwell in lakes, when the red moon on high
   Pause ere it wakens tempest;-- (7 22 6, 7.)
   Here when the moon Pause is clearly irregular, but it appears in
   editions 1818, 1839, and is undoubtedly Shelley's phrase. Rossetti cites
   a conjectural emendation by a certain 'C.D. Campbell, Mauritius':--which
   the red moon on high Pours eve it wakens tempest; but cf. "Julian and
   Maddalo", lines 53, 54:--
   Meanwhile the sun paused ere it should alight,
   Over the horizon of the mountains.
   --and "Prince Athanase", lines 220, 221:--
   When the curved moon then lingering in the west
   Paused, in yon waves her mighty horns to wet, etc.
   
   24.
   --time imparted
   Such power to me--I became fearless-hearted, etc. (7 30 4, 5.)
   With Woodberry I replace with a dash the comma (editio princeps) after
   me (5)retained by Forman, _delete_d by Rossetti and Dowden. Shelley's (and
   Forman's) punctuation leaves the construction ambiguous; with
   Woodberry's the two clauses are seen to be parallel--the latter being
   appositive to and explanatory of the former; while with Dowden's the
   clauses are placed in correlation: time imparted such power to me that I
   became fearless-hearted.
   
   25.
   Of love, in that lorn solitude, etc. (7 32 7.)
   All editions prior to 1876 have lone solitude, etc. The important
   emendation lorn was first introduced into the text by Forman, from
   Shelley's revised copy of "Laon and Cythna", where lone is found to be
   turned into lorn by the poet's own hand.
   
   26.
   And Hate is throned on high with Fear her mother, etc. (8 13 5.)
   So the editio princeps; Forman, Dowden, Woodberry, following the text of
   "Laon and Cythna", 1818, read, Fear his mother. Forman refers to 10 42
   4, 5, where Fear figures as a female, and Hate as 'her mate and foe.'
   But consistency in such matters was not one of Shelley's
   characteristics, and there seems to be no need for alteration here. Mrs.
   Shelley (1839) and Rossetti follow the editio princeps.
   
   27.
   The ship fled fast till the stars 'gan to fail,
   And, round me gathered, etc. (8 26 5, 6.)
   The editio princeps has no comma after And (6). Mrs. Shelley (1839)
   places a full stop at fail (5) and reads, All round me gathered, etc.
   
   28.
   Words which the lore of truth in hues of flame, etc. (9 12 6.)
   The editio princeps, followed by Rossetti and Woodberry, has hues of
   grace [cf. note (20) above]; Forman and Dowden read hues of flame. For
   instances of a rhyme-word doing double service, see 9 34 6, 9
   (thee...thee); 6 3 2, 4 (arms...arms); 10 5 1, 3 (came...came).
   
   29.
   Led them, thus erring, from their native land; (10 5 6.)
   Editions 1818, 1839 read home for land here. All modern editors adopt
   Fleay's cj., land [rhyming with band (8), sand (9)].
   
   30.
   11 11 7. Rossetti and Dowden, following Mrs. Shelley (1839), print
   writhed here.
   
   31.
   When the broad sunrise, etc. (12 34 3.)
   When is Rossetti's cj. (accepted by Dowden) for Where (1818, 1839),
   which Forman and Woodberry retain. In 11 24 1, 12 15 2 and 12 28 7 there
   is Forman's cj. for then (1818).
   
   32.
   a golden mist did quiver
   Where its wild surges with the lake were blended,-- (12 40 3, 4.)
   Where is Rossetti's cj. (accepted by Forman and Dowden) for When
   (editions 1818, 1839; Woodberry). See also list of punctual variations
   below.
   
   33.
   Our bark hung there, as on a line suspended, etc. (12 40 5.)
   Here on a line is Rossetti's cj. (accepted by all editors) for one line
   (editions 1818, 1839). See also list of punctual variations below.
   
   34.
   LIST OF PUNCTUAL VARIATIONS.
   Obvious errors of the press excepted, our text reproduces the
   punctuation of Shelley's edition (1818), save where the sense is likely
   to be perverted or obscured thereby. The following list shows where the
   pointing of the text varies from that of the editio princeps (1818)
   which is in every instance recorded here.
   
   DEDICATION, 7. long. (9).
   
   CANTO 1.
   9. scale (3), neck (7).
   11. What life what power (1).
   22. boat, (8), lay (9).
   23. embarked, (7), below A vast (8, 9).
   26. world (1), chaos: Lo! (2).
   28. life: (2), own. (9).
   29. mirth, (6).
   30. language (2), But, when (5).
   31. foundations--soon (2), war-- thrones (6), multitude, (7).
   32. flame, (4).
   33. lightnings (3), truth, (5), brood, (5), hearts, (8).
   34. Fiend (6).
   35. keep (8).
   37. mountains-- (8).
   38. unfold, (1), woe: (4), show, (5).
   39. gladness, (6) 40 fire, (1), cover, (5), far (6).
   42. kiss. (9).
   43. But (5).
   44. men. (4), fame; (7).
   45. loved (4).
   47. sky, (5), away (6).
   49. dream, (2), floods. (9).
   50. Universe. (4), language (6).
   54. blind. (4).
   57. mine--He (8).
   58. said-- (5).
   60. tongue, (9).
   
   CANTO 2.
   1. which (4).
   3. Yet flattering power had (7).
   4. lust, (6).
   6. kind, (2).
   11. Nor, (2).
   13. ruin. (3), trust. (9).
   18. friend (3).
   22. thought, (6), fancies (7).
   24. radiancy, (3).
   25. dells, (8).
   26. waste, (4)
   28. passion (7).
   31. yet (4).
   32. which (3).
   33. blight (8), who (8).
   37. seat; (7).
   39. not--'wherefore (1).
   40. good, (5).
   41. tears (7).
   43. air (2).
   46. fire, (3).
   47. stroke, (2).
   49. But (6).
   
   CANTO 3.
   1. dream, (4).
   3. shown (7), That (9).
   4. when, (3).
   5. ever (7).
   7. And (1).
   16. Below (6).
   19. if (4).
   25. thither, (2).
   26. worm (2), there, (3).
   27. beautiful, (8).
   28. And (1).
   30. As (1).
   
   CANTO 4.
   2. fallen--We (6).
   3. ray, (7).
   4. sleep, (5).
   8. fed (6).
   10. wide; (1), sword (7).
   16. chance, (7).
   19. her (3), blending (8).
   23. tyranny, (4).
   24. unwillingly (1).
   26. blood; (2).
   27. around (2), as (4).
   31. or (4).
   33. was (5).
   
   CANTO 5.
   1. flow, (5).
   2. profound--Oh, (4), veiled, (6).
   3. victory (1), face-- (8).
   4. swim, (5)
   6. spread, (2), outsprung (5), far, (6), war, (8).
   8. avail (5).
   10. weep; (4), tents (8).
   11. lives, (8).
   13. beside (1).
   15. sky, (3).
   17. love (4).
   20. Which (9).
   22. gloom, (8).
   23. King (6).
   27. known, (4).
   33. ye? (1), Othman-- (3).
   34. pure-- (7).
   35. people (1).
   36. where (3).
   38. quail; (2).
   39. society, (8).
   40. see (1).
   43. light (8), throne. (9).
   50. skies, (6).
   51. Image (7), isles; all (9), amaze. When (9, 10), fair. (12).
   51. 1: will (15), train (15).
   51. 2: wert, (5).
   51. 4: brethren (1).
   51. 5: steaming, (6).
   55. creep. (9).
   
   CANTO 6.
   1. snapped (9).
   2. gate, (2).
   5. rout (4), voice, (6), looks, (6).
   6. as (1).
   7. prey, (1), isle. (9).
   8. sight (2).
   12. glen (4).
   14. almost (1), dismounting (4).
   15. blood (2).
   21. reins:--We (3), word (3).
   22. crest (6).
   25. And, (1), and (9).
   28. but (3), there, (8).
   30. air. (9).
   32. voice:-- (1).
   37. frames; (5).
   43. mane, (2), again, (7).
   48. Now (8).
   51. hut, (4).
   54. waste, (7).
   
   CANTO 7.
   2. was, (5).
   6. dreams (3).
   7. gave Gestures and (2, 3), withstood, (4), save (4), sphere, (5).
   8. sent, (2).
   14. taught, (6), sought, (8).
   17. and (6).
   18. own (5), beloved:-- (5).
   19. tears; (2), which, (3), appears, (5).
   25. me, (1), shapes (5).
   27. And (1).
   28. strength (1).
   30. Aye, (3), me, (5).
   33. pure (9).
   38. wracked; (4), cataract, (5).
   
   CANTO 8.
   2. and (2).
   9. shadow (5).
   11. freedom (7), blood. (9).
   13. Woman, (8), bond-slave, (8).
   14. pursuing (8), wretch! (9).
   15. home, (3).
   21. Hate, (1).
   23. reply, (1).
   25. fairest, (1).
   26. And (6).
   28. thunder (2).
   
   CANTO 9.
   4. hills, (1), brood, (6).
   5. port--alas! (1).
   8. grave (2).
   9. with friend (3), occupations (7), overnumber, (8).
   12. lair; (5), Words, (6).
   15. who, (4), armed, (5), misery. (9).
   17. call, (4).
   20. truth (9).
   22. sharest; (4).
   23. Faith, (8).
   28. conceive (8).
   30. and as (5), hope (8).
   33. thoughts:--Come (7).
   34. willingly (2).
   35. ceased, (8).
   36. undight; (4).
   
   CANTO 10.
   2. tongue, (1).
   7. conspirators (6), wolves, (8).
   8. smiles, (5).
   9. bands, (2)
   11. file did (5).
   18. but (5).
   19. brought, (5).
   24. food (5).
   29. worshippers (3).
   32. west (2).
   36. foes, (5).
   38. now! (2).
   40. alone, (5).
   41. morn--at (1).
   42. below, (2).
   43. deep, (7), pest (8).
   44. drear (8).
   47. 'Kill me!' they (9).
   48. died, (8).
   
   CANTO 11.
   4. which, (6), eyes, (8).
   5. tenderness (7).
   7. return--the (8).
   8. midnight-- (1).
   10. multitude (1).
   11. cheeks (1), here (4).
   12. come, give (3).
   13. many (1).
   14. arrest, (4), terror, (6).
   19. thus (1).
   20. Stranger: 'What (5).
   23. People: (7).
   
   CANTO 12.
   3. and like (7).
   7. away (7).
   8. Fairer it seems than (7).
   10. self, (9).
   11. divine (2), beauty-- (3).
   12. own. (9).
   14. fear, (1), choose, (4).
   17. death? the (1).
   19. radiance (3).
   22. spake; (5).
   25. thee beloved;-- (8).
   26. towers (6).
   28. repent, (2).
   29. withdrawn, (2).
   31. stood a winged Thought (1).
   32. gossamer, (6).
   33. stream (1).
   34. sunrise, (3), gold, (3), quiver, (4).
   35. abode, (4).
   37. wonderful; (3), go, (4).
   40. blended: (4), heavens, (6), lake; (6).
   
   1.
   PRINCE ATHANASE.
   
   Lines 28-30. The punctuation here ("Poetical Works", 1839) is supported
   by the Bodleian manuscript, which has a full stop at relief (line 28),
   and a comma at chief (line 30). The text of the "Posthumous Poems",
   1824, has a semicolon at relief and a full stop at chief. The original
   draft of lines 29, 30, in the Bodleian manuscript, runs:--
    He was the child of fortune and of power,
    And, though of a high race the orphan Chief, etc.
   --which is decisive in favour of our punctuation (1839). See Locock,
   "Examination", etc., page 51.
   
   2.
   Which wake and feed an ever-living woe,-- (line 74.)
   All the editions have on for an, the reading of the Bodleian manuscript,
   where it appears as a substitute for his, the word originally written.
   The first draft of the line runs: Which nursed and fed his everliving
   woe. Wake, accordingly, is to be construed as a transitive (Locock).
   
   3.
   Lines 130-169. This entire passage is distinctly cancelled in the
   Bodleian manuscript, where the following revised version of lines
   125-129 and 168-181 is found some way later on:--
    Prince Athanase had one beloved friend,
    An old, old man, with hair of silver white,
    And lips where heavenly smiles would hang and blend
    With his wise words; and eyes whose arrowy light
    Was the reflex of many minds; he filled
    From fountains pure, nigh overgrown and [lost],
    The spirit of Prince Athanase, a child;
    And soul-sustaining songs of ancient lore
    And philosophic wisdom, clear and mild.
    And sweet and subtle talk they evermore
    The pupil and the master [share], until
    Sharing that undiminishable store,
    The youth, as clouds athwart a grassy hill
    Outrun the winds that chase them, soon outran
    His teacher, and did teach with native skill
    Strange truths and new to that experienced man;
    So [?] they were friends, as few have ever been
    Who mark the extremes of life's discordant span.
   The words bracketed above, and in Fragment 5 of our text, are cancelled
   in the manuscript (Locock).
   
   4.
   And blighting hope, etc. (line 152.)
   The word blighting here, noted as unsuitable by Rossetti, is cancelled
   in the Bodleian manuscript (Locock).
   
   5.
   She saw between the chestnuts, far beneath, etc. (line 154.)
   The reading of editions 1824, 1839 (beneath the chestnuts) is a palpable
   misprint.
   
   6.
   And sweet and subtle talk they evermore,
   The pupil and the master, shared; (lines 173, 174.)
   So edition 1824, which is supported by the Bodleian manuscript,--both
   the cancelled draft and the revised version: cf. note above. "Poetical
   Works", 1839, has now for they--a reading retained by Rossetti alone of
   modern editors.
   
   7.
   Line 193. The 'three-dots' point at storm is in the Bodleian manuscript.
   
   8.
   Lines 202-207. The Bodleian manuscript, which has a comma and dash after
   nightingale, bears out James Thomson's ('B. V.'s') view, approved by
   Rossetti, that these lines form one sentence. The manuscript has a dash
   after here (line 207), which must be regarded as 'equivalent to a full
   stop or note of exclamation' (Locock). Editions 1824, 1839 have a note
   of exclamation after nightingale (line 204) and a comma after here (line
   207).
   
   9.
   Fragment 3 (lines 230-239). First printed from the Bodleian manuscript
   by Mr. C.D. Locock. In the space here left blank, line 231, the
   manuscript has manhood, which is cancelled for some monosyllable
   unknown--query, spring?
   
   10.
   And sea-buds burst under the waves serene:-- (line 250.)
   For under edition 1839 has beneath, which, however, is cancelled for
   under in the Bodleian manuscript (Locock).
   
   11.
   Lines 251-254. This, with many other places from line 222 onwards,
   evidently lacks Shelley's final corrections.
   
   12.
   Line 259. According to Mr. Locock, the final text of this line in the
   Bodleian manuscript runs:--
   Exulting, while the wide world shrinks below, etc.
   
   13.
   Fragment 5 (lines 261-278). The text here is much tortured in the
   Bodleian manuscript. What the editions give us is clearly but a rough
   and tentative draft. 'The language contains no third rhyme to mountains
   (line 262) and fountains (line 264).' Locock. Lines 270-278 were first
   printed by Mr. Locock.
   
   14.
   Line 289. For light (Bodleian manuscript) here the editions read bright.
   But light is undoubtedly the right word: cf. line 287. Investeth (line
   285), Rossetti's cj. for Investeth (1824, 1839) is found in the Bodleian
   manuscript.
   
   15.
   Lines 297-302 (the darts...ungarmented). First printed by Mr. Locock
   from the Bodleian manuscript.
   
   16.
   Another Fragment (A). Lines 1-3 of this Fragment reappear in a modified
   shape in the Bodleian manuscript of "Prometheus Unbound", 2 4 28-30:--
    Or looks which tell that while the lips are calm
    And the eyes cold, the spirit weeps within
    Tears like the sanguine sweat of agony;
   Here the lines are cancelled--only, however, to reappear in a heightened
   shape in "The Cenci", 1 1 111-113:--
    The dry, fixed eyeball; the pale quivering lip,
    Which tells me that the spirit weeps within
    Tears bitterer than the bloody sweat of Christ.
   (Garnett, Locock.)
   
   17.
   PUNCTUAL VARIATIONS.
   The punctuation of "Prince Athanase" is that of "Poetical Works", 1839,
   save in the places specified in the notes above, and in line 60--where
   there is a full stop, instead of the comma demanded by the sense, at the
   close of the line.
   
   ROSALIND AND HELEN.
   
   1.
   A sound from there, etc. (line 63.)
   Rossetti's cj., there for thee, is adopted by all modern editors.
   
   2.
   And down my cheeks the quick tears fell, etc. (line 366.)
   The word fell is Rossetti's cj. (to rhyme with tell, line 369) for ran
   1819, 1839).
   
   3.
   Lines 405-409. The syntax here does not hang together, and Shelley may
   have been thinking of this passage amongst others when, on September 6,
   1819, he wrote to Ollier:--'In the "Rosalind and Helen" I see there are
   some few errors, which are so much the worse because they are errors in
   the sense.' The obscurity, however, may have been, in part at least,
   designed: Rosalind grows incoherent before breaking off abruptly. No
   satisfactory emendation has been proposed.
   
   4.
   Where weary meteor lamps repose, etc. (line 551.)
   With Woodberry I regard Where, his cj. for When (1819, 1839), as
   necessary for the sense.
   
   5.
   With which they drag from mines of gore, etc. (line 711.)
   Rossetti proposes yore for gore here, or, as an alternative, rivers of
   gore, etc. If yore be right, Shelley's meaning is: 'With which from of
   old they drag,' etc. But cf. Note (3) above.
   
   6.
   Where, like twin vultures, etc. (line 932.)
   Where is Woodberry's reading for When (1819, 1839). Forman suggests
   Where but does not print it.
   
   7.
   Lines 1093-1096. The editio princeps (1819) punctuates:--
   Hung in dense flocks beneath the dome,
   That ivory dome, whose azure night
   With golden stars, like heaven, was bright
   O'er the split cedar's pointed flame;
   
   8.
   Lines 1168-1170. Sunk (line 1170) must be taken as a transitive in this
   passage, the grammar of which is defended by Mr. Swinburne.
   
   9.
   Whilst animal life many long years
   Had rescue from a chasm of tears; (lines 1208-9.)
   Forman substitutes rescue for rescued (1819, 1839)--a highly probable
   cj. adopted by Dowden, but rejected by Woodberry. The sense is: 'Whilst
   my life, surviving by the physical functions merely, thus escaped during
   many years from hopeless weeping.'
   
   10.
   PUNCTUAL VARIATIONS.
   The following is a list of punctual variations, giving in each case the
   pointing of the editio princeps (1819):--heart 257; weak 425; Aye 492;
   There--now 545; immortally 864; not, 894; bleeding, 933; Fidelity 1055;
   dome, 1093; bright 1095; tremble, 1150; life-dissolving 1166; words,
   1176; omit parentheses lines 1188-9; bereft, 1230.
   
   JULIAN AND MADDALO.
   
   1.
   Line 158. Salutations past; (1824); Salutations passed; (1839). Our text
   follows Woodberry.
   
   2.
   --we might be all
   We dream of happy, high, majestical. (lines 172-3.)
   So the Hunt manuscript, edition 1824, has a comma after of (line 173),
   which is retained by Rossetti and Dowden.
   
   3.
   --his melody
   Is interrupted--now we hear the din, etc. (lines 265-6.)
   So the Hunt manuscript; his melody Is interrupted now: we hear the din,
   etc., 1824, 1829.
   
   4.
   Lines 282-284. The editio princeps (1824) runs:--
   Smiled in their motions as they lay apart,
   As one who wrought from his own fervid heart
   The eloquence of passion: soon he raised, etc.
   
   5.
   Line 414. The editio princeps (1824) has a colon at the end of this
   line, and a semicolon at the close of line 415.
   
   6.
   The 'three-dots' point, which appears several times in these pages, is
   taken from the Hunt manuscript and serves to mark a pause longer than
   that of a full stop.
   
   7.
   He ceased, and overcome leant back awhile, etc. (line 511.)
   The form leant is retained here, as the stem-vowel, though unaltered in
   spelling, is shortened in pronunciation. Thus leant (pronounced 'lent')
   from lean comes under the same category as crept from creep, lept from
   leap, cleft from cleave, etc.--perfectly normal forms, all of them. In
   the case of weak preterites formed without any vowel-change, the more
   regular formation with ed is that which has been adopted in this volume.
   See Editor's "Preface".
   
   8.
   CANCELLED FRAGMENTS OF JULIAN AND MADDALO. These were first printed by
   Dr. Garnett, "Relics of Shelley", 1862.
   
   9.
   PUNCTUAL VARIATIONS.
   Shelley's final transcript of "Julian and Maddalo", though written with
   great care and neatness, is yet very imperfectly punctuated. He would
   seem to have relied on the vigilance of Leigh Hunt--or, failing Hunt, of
   Peacock--to make good all omissions while seeing the poem through the
   press. Even Mr. Buxton Forman, careful as he is to uphold manuscript
   authority in general, finds it necessary to supplement the pointing of
   the Hunt manuscript in no fewer than ninety-four places. The following
   table gives a list of the pointings adopted in our text, over and above
   those found in the Hunt manuscript. In all but four or five instances,
   the supplementary points are derived from Mrs. Shelley's text of 1824.
   
   1. Comma added at end of line:
   40, 54, 60, 77, 78, 85, 90, 94, 107,
   110, 116, 120, 123, 134, 144, 145,
   154, 157, 168, 179, 183, 191, 196,
   202, 203, 215, 217, 221, 224, 225,
   238, 253, 254, 262, 287, 305, 307,
   331, 338, 360, 375, 384, 385, 396,
   432, 436, 447, 450, 451, 473, 475,
   476, 511, 520, 526, 541, 582, 590,
   591, 592, 593, 595, 603, 612.
   
   2. Comma added elsewhere:
   seas, 58; vineyards, 58;
   dismounted, 61;
   evening, 65;
   companion, 86;
   isles, 90;
   meant, 94;
   Look, Julian, 96;
   maniacs, 110;
   maker, 113;
   past, 114;
   churches, 136;
   rainy, 141;
   blithe, 167;
   beauty, 174;
   Maddalo, 192;
   others, 205;
   this, 232;
   respects, 241;
   shriek, 267;
   wrote, 286;
   month, 300;
   cried, 300;
   O, 304;
   and, 306;
   misery, disappointment, 314;
   soon, 369;
   stay, 392;
   mad, 394;
   Nay, 398;
   serpent, 399;
   said, 403;
   cruel, 439;
   hate, 461;
   hearts, 483;
   he, 529;
   seemed, 529;
   Unseen, 554;
   morning, 582;
   aspect, 585;
   And, 593;
   remember, 604;
   parted, 610.
   
   3. Semicolon added at end of line:
   101, 103, 167, 181, 279, 496.
   
   4. Colon added at end of line:
   164, 178, 606, 610.
   
   5. Full stop added at end of line:
   95, 201, 299, 319, 407, 481, 599, 601, 617.
   
   6. Full stop added elsewhere:
   transparent. 85;
   trials. 472;
   Venice, 583.
   
   7. Admiration--note added at end of line:
   392, 492;
   elsewhere: 310, 323,
   
   8. Dash added at end of line:
   158, 379.
   
   9. Full stop for comma (manuscript):
   eye. 119.
   
   10. Full stop for dash (manuscript):
   entered. 158.
   
   11. Colon for full stop (manuscript):
   tale: 596.
   
   12. Dash for colon (manuscript):
   this-- 207;
   prepared-- 379.
   
   13. Comma and dash for semicolon (manuscript):
   expressionless,-- 292.
   
   14. Comma and dash for comma (manuscript):
   not,-- 127.
   
   
   PROMETHEUS UNBOUND.
   
   The variants of B. (Shelley's 'intermediate draft' of "Prometheus
   Unbound", now in the Bodleian Library), here recorded, are taken from
   Mr. C.D. Locock's "Examination", etc., Clarendon Press, 1903. See
   Editor's Prefatory Note, above.
   
   1.
   Act 1, line 204. B. has--shaken in pencil above--peopled.
   
   2.
   Hark that outcry, etc. (1 553.)
   All editions read Mark that outcry, etc. As Shelley nowhere else uses
   Mark in the sense of List, I have adopted Hark, the reading of B.
   
   3.
   Gleamed in the night. I wandered, etc. (1 770.)
   Forman proposes to _delete_ the period at night.
   
   4.
   But treads with lulling footstep, etc. (1 774.)
   Forman prints killing--a misreading of B. Editions 1820, 1839 read silent.
   
   5.
   ...the eastern star looks white, etc. (1 825.)
   B. reads wan for white.
   
   6.
   Like footsteps of weak melody, etc. (2 1 89.)
   B. reads far (above a cancelled lost) for weak.
   
   7.
   And wakes the destined soft emotion,--
   Attracts, impels them; (2 2 50, 51.)
   The editio princeps (1820) reads destined soft emotion, Attracts, etc.;
   "Poetical Works", 1839, 1st edition reads destined: soft emotion
   Attracts, etc. "Poetical Works", 1839, 2nd edition reads destined, soft
   emotion Attracts, etc. Forman and Dowden place a period, and Woodberry a
   semicolon, at destined (line 50).
   
   8.
   There steams a plume-uplifting wind, etc. (2 2 53.)
   Here steams is found in B., in the editio princeps (1820) and in the 1st
   edition of "Poetical Works", 1839. In the 2nd edition, 1839, streams
   appears--no doubt a misprint overlooked by the editress.
   
   9.
   Sucked up and hurrying: as they fleet, etc. (2 2 60.)
   So "Poetical Works", 1839, both editions. The editio princeps (1820)
   reads hurrying as, etc.
   
   10.
   See'st thou shapes within the mist? (2 3 50.)
   So B., where these words are substituted for the cancelled I see thin
   shapes within the mist of the editio princeps (1820). 'The credit of
   discovering the true reading belongs to Zupitza' (Locock).
   
   11.
   2 4 12-18. The construction is faulty here, but the sense, as Professor
   Woodberry observes, is clear.
   
   12.
   ...but who rains down, etc. (2 4 100.)
   The editio princeps (1820) has reigns--a reading which Forman bravely
   but unsuccessfully attempts to defend.
   
   13.
   Child of Light! thy limbs are burning, etc. (2 5 54.)
   The editio princeps (1820) has lips for limbs, but the word membre in
   Shelley's Italian prose version of these lines establishes limbs, the
   reading of B. (Locock).
   
   14.
   Which in the winds and on the waves doth move, (2 5 96.)
   The word and is Rossetti's conjectural emendation, adopted by Forman and
   Dowden. Woodberry unhappily observes that 'the emendation corrects a
   faultless line merely to make it agree with stanzaic structure, and...is
   open to the gravest doubt.' Rossetti's conjecture is fully established
   by the authority of B.
   
   15.
   3 4 172-174. The editio princeps (1820) punctuates:
   mouldering round
   These imaged to the pride of kings and priests,
   A dark yet mighty faith, a power, etc.
   This punctuation is retained by Forman and Dowden; that of our text is
   Woodberry's.
   
   16.
   3 4 180, 188. A dash has been introduced at the close of these two lines
   to indicate the construction more clearly. And for the sake of clearness
   a note of interrogation has been substituted for the semicolon of 1820
   after Passionless (line 198).
   
   17.
   Where lovers catch ye by your loose tresses; (4 107.)
   B. has sliding for loose (cancelled).
   
   18.
   By ebbing light into her western cave, (4 208.)
   Here light is the reading of B. for night (all editions). Mr. Locock
   tells us that the anticipated discovery of this reading was the origin
   of his examination of the Shelley manuscripts at the Bodleian. In
   printing night Marchant's compositor blundered; yet 'we cannot wish the
   fault undone, the issue of it being so proper.'
   
   19.
   Purple and azure, white, and green, and golden, (4 242.)
   The editio princeps (1820) reads white, green and golden, etc.--white
   and green being Rossetti's emendation, adopted by Forman and Dowden.
   Here again--cf. note on (17) above--Prof. Woodberry commits himself by
   stigmatizing the correction as one 'for which there is no authority in
   Shelley's habitual versification.' Rossetti's conjecture is confirmed by
   the reading of B., white and green, etc.
   
   20.
   Filling the abyss with sun-like lightenings, (4 276.)
   The editio princeps (1820) reads lightnings, for which Rossetti
   substitutes lightenings--a conjecture described by Forman as 'an example
   of how a very slight change may produce a very calamitous result.' B.
   however supports Rossetti, and in point of fact Shelley usually wrote
   lightenings, even where the word counts as a dissyllable (Locock).
   
   21.
   Meteors and mists, which throng air's solitudes:-- (4 547.)
   For throng (cancelled) B. reads feed, i.e., 'feed on' (cf. Pasturing
   flowers of vegetable fire, 3 4 110)--a reading which carries on the
   metaphor of line 546 (ye untameable herds), and ought, perhaps, to be
   adopted into the text.
   
   22.
   PUNCTUAL VARIATIONS.
   The punctuation of our text is that of the editio princeps (1820),
   except in the places indicated in the following list, which records in
   each instance the pointing of 1820:--
   
   Act 1.--empire. 15; O, 17; God 144; words 185; internally. 299; O, 302;
   gnash 345; wail 345; Sufferer 352; agony. 491; Between 712; cloud 712;
   vale 826.
   
   Act 2:
   Scene 1.--air 129; by 153; fire, 155.
   Scene 2.--noonday, 25; hurrying 60.
   Scene 3.--mist. 50.
   Scene 4.--sun, 4; Ungazed 5; on 103; ay 106; secrets. 115.
   Scene 5.--brightness 67.
   
   Act 3:
   Scene 3.--apparitions, 49; beauty, 51; phantoms, (omit parentheses) 52;
             reality, 53; wind 98.
   Scene 4.--toil 109; fire. 110; feel; 114; borne; 115; said 124;
             priests, 173; man, 180; hate, 188; Passionless; 198.
   
   Act 4.--dreams, 66; be. 165; light. 168; air, 187; dreams, 209; woods 211;
           thunder-storm, 215; lie 298; bones 342; blending. 343; mire. 349;
           pass, 371; kind 385; move. 387.
   
   THE CENCI.
   
   1.
   The deed he saw could not have rated higher
   Than his most worthless life:-- (1 1 24, 25.)
   Than is Mrs. Shelley's emendation (1839) for That, the word in the
   editio princeps (1819) printed in Italy, and in the (standard) edition
   of 1821. The sense is: 'The crime he witnessed could not have proved
   costlier to redeem than his murder has proved to me.'
   
   2.
   And but that there yet remains a deed to act, etc. (1 1 100.)
   Read: And but : that there yet : remains : etc.
   
   3.
   1 1 111-113. The earliest draft of these lines appears as a tentative
   fragment in the Bodleian manuscript of "Prince Athanase" (vid. supr.).
   In the Bodleian manuscript of "Prometheus Unbound" they reappear (after
   2 4 27) in a modified shape, as follows:--
   Or looks which tell that while the lips are calm
   And the eyes cold, the spirit weeps within
   Tears like the sanguine sweat of agony;
   Here again, however, the passage is cancelled, once more to reappear in
   its final and most effective shape in "The Cenci" (Locock).
   
   4.
   And thus I love you still, but holily,
   Even as a sister or a spirit might; (1 2 24, 25.)
   For this, the reading of the standard edition (1821), the editio
   princeps has, And yet I love, etc., which Rossetti retains. If yet be
   right, the line should be punctuated:--
   And yet I love you still,--but holily,
   Even as a sister or a spirit might;
   
   5.
   What, if we,
   The desolate and the dead, were his own flesh,
   His children and his wife, etc. (1 3 103-105.)
   For were (104) Rossetti cj. are or wear. Wear is a plausible emendation,
   but the text as it stands is defensible.
   
   6.
   But that no power can fill with vital oil
   That broken lamp of flesh. (3 2 17, 18.)
   The standard text (1821) has a Shelleyan comma after oil (17), which
   Forman retains. Woodberry adds a dash to the comma, thus making that
   (17) a demonstrative pronoun indicating broken lamp of flesh. The
   pointing of our text is that of editions 1819, 1839, But that (17) is to
   be taken as a prepositional conjunction linking the dependent clause, no
   power...lamp of flesh, to the principal sentence, So wastes...kindled
   mine (15, 16).
   
   7.
   The following list of punctual variations indicates the places where our
   pointing departs from that of the standard text of 1821, and records in
   each instance the pointing of that edition:--
   
   Act 1, Scene 2:--Ah! No, 34; Scene 3:--hope, 29; Why 44;
                    love 115; thou 146; Ay 146.
   
   Act 2, Scene 1:--Ah! No, 13; Ah! No, 73; courage 80; nook 179;
          Scene 2:--fire, 70; courage 152.
   
   Act 3, Scene 1:--Why 64; mock 185; opinion 185; law 185; strange 188;
                    friend 222;
          Scene 2:--so 3; oil, 17.
   
   Act 4, Scene 1:--wrong 41; looked 97; child 107;
          Scene 3:--What 19; father, (omit quotes) 32.
   
   Act 5, Scene 2:--years 119;
          Scene 3:--Ay, 5; Guards 94;
          Scene 4:--child, 145.
   
   
   THE MASK OF ANARCHY.
   
   Our text follows in the main the transcript by Mrs. Shelley (with
   additions and corrections in Shelley's hand) known as the 'Hunt
   manuscript.' For the readings of this manuscript we are indebted to Mr.
   Buxton Forman's Library Edition of the Poems, 1876. The variants of the
   'Wise manuscript' (see Prefatory Note) are derived from the Facsimile
   edited in 1887 for the Shelley Society by Mr. Buxton Forman.
   
   1.
   Like Eldon, an ermined gown; (4 2.)
   The editio princeps (1832) has Like Lord E-- here. Lord is _insert_ed in
   minute characters in the Wise manuscript, but is rejected from our text
   as having been cancelled by the poet himself in the (later) Hunt
   manuscript.
   
   2.
   For he knew the Palaces
   Of our Kings were rightly his; (20 1, 2.)
   For rightly (Wise manuscript) the Hunt manuscript and editions 1832,
   1839 have nightly which is retained by Rossetti and in Forman's text of
   1876. Dowden and Woodberry print rightly which also appears in Forman's
   latest text ("Aldine Shelley", 1892).
   
   3.
   In a neat and happy home. (54 4.)
   For In (Wise manuscript, editions 1832, 1839) the Hunt manuscript reads
   To a neat, etc., which is adopted by Rossetti and Dowden, and appeared
   in Forman's text of 1876. Woodberry and Forman (1892) print In a neat,
   etc.
   
   4.
   Stanzas 70 3, 4; 71 1. These form one continuous clause in every text
   save the editio princeps, 1832, where a semicolon appears after around
   (70 4).
   
   5.
   Our punctuation follows that of the Hunt manuscript, save in the
   following places, where a comma, wanting in the manuscript, is supplied
   in the text:--gay 47; came 58; waken 122; shaken 123; call 124; number
   152; dwell 163; thou 209; thee 249; fashion 287; surprise 345; free 358.
   A semicolon is supplied after earth (line 131).
   
   PETER BELL THE THIRD.
   
   Thomas Brown, Esq., the Younger, H. F., to whom the "Dedication" is
   addressed, is the Irish poet, Tom Moore. The letters H. F. may stand for
   'Historian of the Fudges' (Garnett), Hibernicae Filius (Rossetti), or,
   perhaps, Hibernicae Fidicen. Castles and Oliver (3 2 1; 7 4 4) were
   government spies, as readers of Charles Lamb are aware. The allusion in
   6 36 is to Wordsworth's "Thanksgiving Ode on The Battle of Waterloo",
   original version, published in 1816:--
   But Thy most dreaded instrument,
   In working out a pure intent,
   Is Man--arrayed for mutual slaughter,
   --Yea, Carnage is Thy daughter!
   
   1.
   Lines 547-549 (6 18 5; 19 1, 2). These lines evidently form a continuous
   clause. The full stop of the editio princeps at rocks, line 547, has
   therefore been _delete_d, and a semicolon substituted for the original
   comma at the close of line 546.
   
   2.
   'Ay--and at last desert me too.' (line 603.)
   Rossetti, who however follows the editio princeps, saw that these words
   are spoken--not by Peter to his soul, but--by his soul to Peter, by way
   of rejoinder to the challenge of lines 600-602:--'And I and you, My
   dearest Soul, will then make merry, As the Prince Regent did with
   Sherry.' In order to indicate this fact, inverted commas are _insert_ed at
   the close of line 602 and the beginning of line 603.
   
   3.
   The punctuation of the editio princeps, 1839, has been throughout
   revised, but--with the two exceptions specified in notes (1) and (2)
   above--it seemed an unprofitable labour to record the particular
   alterations, which serve but to clarify--in no instance to modify--the
   sense as indicated by Mrs. Shelley's punctuation.
   
   LETTER TO MARIA GISBORNE.
   
   Our text mainly follows Mrs. Shelley's transcript, for the readings of
   which we are indebted to Mr. Buxton Forman's Library Edition of the
   Poems, 1876. The variants from Shelley's draft are supplied by Dr.
   Garnett.
   
   1.
   Lines 197-201. These lines, which are wanting in editions 1824 and 1839
   (1st edition), are supplied from Mrs. Shelley's transcript and from
   Shelley's draft (Boscombe manuscript). In the 2nd edition of 1839 the
   following lines appear in their place:--
   Your old friend Godwin, greater none than he;
   Though fallen on evil times, yet will he stand,
   Among the spirits of our age and land,
   Before the dread tribunal of To-come
   The foremost, whilst rebuke stands pale and dumb.
   
   2.
   Line 296. The names in this line are supplied from the two manuscripts.
   In the "Posthumous Poems" of 1824 the line appears:--Oh! that H-- -- and
   -- were there, etc.
   
   3.
   The following list gives the places where the pointing of the text
   varies from that of Mrs. Shelley's transcript as reported by Mr. Buxton
   Forman, and records in each case the pointing of that original:--Turk
   26; scorn 40; understood, 49; boat-- 75; think, 86; believe; 158; are;
   164; fair 233; cameleopard; 240; Now 291.
   
   THE WITCH OF ATLAS.
   
   1.
   The following list gives the places where our text departs from the
   pointing of the editio princeps ("Dedication", 1839; "Witch of Atlas",
   1824), and records in each case the original pointing:--
   DEDIC.--pinions, 14; fellow, 41; Othello, 45.
   WITCH OF ATLAS.--bliss; 164; above. 192; gums 258; flashed 409;
   sunlight, 409; Thamondocana. 424; by. 432; engraven. 448; apart, 662;
   mind! 662.
   
   EPIPSYCHIDION.
   
   1.
   The following list gives the places where our text departs from the
   pointing of the editio princeps, 1821, with the original point in each
   case:--love, 44; pleasure; 68; flowing 96; where! 234; passed 252;
   dreamed, 278; Night 418; year), 440; children, 528.
   
   ADONAIS.
   
   1.
   The following list indicates the places in which the punctuation of this
   edition departs from that of the editio princeps, of 1821, and records
   in each instance the pointing of that text:--thou 10; Oh 19; apace, 65;
   Oh 73; flown 138; Thou 142; Ah 154; immersed 167; corpse 172; tender
   172; his 193; they 213; Death 217; Might 218; bow, 249; sighs 314;
   escape 320; Cease 366; dark 406; forth 415; dead, 440; Whilst 493.
   
   HELLAS.
   
   A Reprint of the original edition (1822) of "Hellas" was edited for the
   Shelley Society in 1887 by Mr. Thomas J. Wise. In Shelley's list of
   Dramatis Personae the Phantom of Mahomet the Second is wanting.
   Shelley's list of Errata in edition 1822 was first printed in Mr. Buxton
   Forman's Library Edition of the Poems, 1876 (4 page 572). These errata
   are silently corrected in the text.
   
   1.
   For Revenge and Wrong bring forth their kind, etc. (lines 728-729.)
   '"For" has no rhyme (unless "are" and "despair" are to be considered
   such): it requires to rhyme with "hear." From this defect of rhyme, and
   other considerations, I (following Mr. Fleay) used to consider it almost
   certain that "Fear" ought to replace "For"; and I gave "Fear" in my
   edition of 1870...However, the word in the manuscript ["Williams
   transcript"] is "For," and Shelley's list of errata leaves this
   unaltered--so we must needs abide by it.'--Rossetti, "Complete Poetical
   Works of P. B. S.", edition 1878 (3 volumes), 2 page 456.
   
   2.
   Lines 729-732. This quatrain, as Dr. Garnett ("Letters of Shelley",
   1884, pages 166, 249) points out, is an expansion of the following lines
   from the "Agamemmon" of Aeschylus (758-760), quoted by Shelley in a
   letter to his wife, dated 'Friday, August 10, 1821':--
   to dussebes--
   meta men pleiona tiktei,
   sphetera d' eikota genna.
   
   3.
   Lines 1091-1093. This passage, from the words more bright to the close
   of line 1093, is wanting in the editio princeps, 1822, its place being
   supplied by asterisks. The lacuna in the text is due, no doubt, to the
   timidity of Ollier, the publisher, whom Shelley had authorised to make
   excisions from the notes. In "Poetical Works", 1839, the lines, as they
   appear in our text, are restored; in Galignani's edition of "Coleridge,
   Shelley, and Keats" (Paris, 1829), however, they had already appeared,
   though with the substitution of wise for bright (line 1091), and of
   unwithstood for unsubdued (line 1093). Galignani's reading--native for
   votive--in line 1095 is an evident misprint. In Ascham's edition of
   Shelley (2 volumes, fcp. 8vo., 1834), the passage is reprinted from
   Galignani.
   
   4.
   The following list shows the places in which our text departs from the
   punctuation of the editio princeps, 1822, and records in each instance
   the pointing of that edition:--dreams 71; course. 125; mockery 150;
   conqueror 212; streams 235; Moslems 275; West 305; moon, 347; harm, 394;
   shame, 402; anger 408; descends 447; crime 454; banner. 461; Phanae,
   470; blood 551; tyrant 557; Cydaris, 606; Heaven 636; Highness 638; man
   738; sayest 738; One 768; mountains 831; dust 885; consummation? 902;
   dream 921; may 923; death 935; clime. 1005; feast, 1025; horn, 1032;
   Noon, 1045; death 1057; dowers 1094.
   
   CHARLES THE FIRST.
   
   To Mr. Rossetti we owe the reconstruction of this fragmentary drama out
   of materials partly published by Mrs. Shelley in 1824, partly recovered
   from manuscript by himself. The bracketed words are, presumably,
   supplied by Mr. Rossetti to fill actual lacunae in the manuscript; those
   queried represent indistinct writing. Mr. Rossetti's additions to the
   text are indicated in the footnotes. In one or two instances Mr. Forman
   and Dr. Garnett have restored the true reading. The list of Dramatis
   Personae is Mr. Forman's.
   
   THE TRIUMPH OF LIFE.
   
   1.
   Lines 131-135. This grammatically incoherent passage is thus
   conjecturally emended by Rossetti:--
   Fled back like eagles to their native noon;
   For those who put aside the diadem
   Of earthly thrones or gems...,
   Whether of Athens or Jerusalem,
   Were neither mid the mighty captives seen, etc.
   In the case of an incomplete poem lacking the author's final
   corrections, however, restoration by conjecture is, to say the least of
   it, gratuitous.
   
   2.
   Line 282. The words, 'Even as the deeds of others, not as theirs.' And
   then--are wanting in editions 1824, 1839, and were recovered by Dr.
   Garnett from the Boscombe manuscript. Mrs. Shelley's note here
   runs:--'There is a chasm here in the manuscript which it is impossible
   to fill. It appears from the context that other shapes pass and that
   Rousseau still stood beside the dreamer.' Mr. Forman thinks that the
   'chasm' is filled up by the words restored from the manuscript by Dr.
   Garnett. Mr. A.C. Bradley writes: 'It seems likely that, after writing
   "I have suffered...pain", Shelley meant to strike out the words between
   "known" [276] and "I" [278], and to fill up the gap in such a way that
   "I" would be the last word of the line beginning "May well be known".'
   
   MISCELLANEOUS POEMS.
   
   1.
   TO --. Mrs. Shelley tentatively assigned this fragment to 1817. 'It
   seems not improbable that it was addressed at this time [June, 1814] to
   Mary Godwin.' Dowden, "Life", 1 422, Woodberry suggests that 'Harriet
   answers as well, or better, to the situation described.'
   
   2.
   ON DEATH. These stanzas occur in the Esdaile manuscript along with
   others which Shelley intended to print with "Queen Mab" in 1813; but the
   text was revised before publication in 1816.
   
   3.
   TO --. 'The poem beginning "Oh, there are spirits in the air," was
   addressed in idea to Coleridge, whom he never knew'--writes Mrs.
   Shelley. Mr. Bertram Dobell, Mr. Rossetti and Professor Dowden, however,
   incline to think that we have here an address by Shelley in a despondent
   mood to his own spirit.
   
   4.
   LINES. These appear to be antedated by a year, as they evidently allude
   to the death of Harriet Shelley in November, 1816.
   
   5.
   ANOTHER FRAGMENT TO MUSIC. To Mr. Forman we owe the restoration of the
   true text here--'food of Love.' Mrs. Shelley printed 'god of Love.'
   
   6.
   MARENGHI, lines 92, 93. The 1870 (Rossetti) version of these lines is:--
   White bones, and locks of dun and yellow hair,
   And ringed horns which buffaloes did wear--
   The words locks of dun (line 92) are cancelled in the manuscript.
   Shelley's failure to cancel the whole line was due, Mr. Locock rightly
   argues, to inadvertence merely; instead of buffaloes the manuscript
   gives the buffalo, and it supplies the 'wonderful line' (Locock) which
   closes the stanza in our text, and with which Mr. Locock aptly compares
   "Mont Blanc", line 69:--
   Save when the eagle brings some hunter's bone,
   And the wolf tracks her there.
   
   7.
   ODE TO LIBERTY, lines 1, 2. On the suggestion of his brother, Mr. Alfred
   Forman, the editor of the Library Edition of Shelley's Poems (1876), Mr.
   Buxton Forman, printed these lines as follows:--
   A glorious people vibrated again:
   The lightning of the nations, Liberty,
   From heart to heart, etc.
   The testimony of Shelley's autograph in the Harvard College manuscript,
   however, is final against such a punctuation.
   
   8.
   Lines 41, 42. We follow Mrs. Shelley's punctuation (1839). In Shelley's
   edition (1820) there is no stop at the end of line 41, and a semicolon
   closes line 42.
   
   9.
   ODE TO NAPLES. In Mrs. Shelley's editions the various sections of this
   Ode are severally headed as follows:--'Epode 1 alpha, Epode 2 alpha,
   Strophe alpha 1, Strophe beta 2, Antistrophe alpha gamma, Antistrophe
   beta gamma, Antistrophe beta gamma, Antistrophe alpha gamma, Epode 1
   gamma, Epode 2 gamma. In the manuscript, Mr. Locock tells us, the
   headings are 'very doubtful, many of them being vaguely altered with pen
   and pencil.' Shelley evidently hesitated between two or three
   alternative ways of indicating the structure and corresponding parts of
   his elaborate song; hence the chaotic jumble of headings printed in
   editions 1824, 1839. So far as the "Epodes" are concerned, the headings
   in this edition are those of editions 1824, 1839, which may be taken as
   supported by the manuscript (Locock). As to the remaining sections, Mr.
   Locock's examination of the manuscript leads him to conclude that
   Shelley's final choice was:--'Strophe 1, Strophe 2, Antistrophe 1,
   Antistrophe 2, Antistrophe 1 alpha, Antistrophe 2 alpha.' This in itself
   would be perfectly appropriate, but it would be inconsistent with the
   method employed in designating the "Epodes". I have therefore adopted in
   preference a scheme which, if it lacks manuscript authority in some
   particulars, has at least the merit of being absolutely logical and
   consistent throughout.
   
   Mr. Locock has some interesting remarks on the metrical features of this
   complex ode. On the 10th line of Antistrophe 1a (line 86 of the
   ode)--Aghast she pass from the Earth's disk--which exceeds by one foot
   the 10th lines of the two corresponding divisions, Strophe 1 and
   Antistrophe 1b, he observes happily enough that 'Aghast may well have
   been intended to disappear.' Mr. Locock does not seem to notice that the
   closing lines of these three answering sections--(1) hail, hail, all
   hail!--(2) Thou shalt be great--All hail!--(3) Art Thou of all these
   hopes.--O hail! increase by regular lengths--two, three, four iambi. Nor
   does he seem quite to grasp Shelley's intention with regard to the rhyme
   scheme of the other triple group, Strophe 2, Antistrophe 2a, Antistrophe
   2b. That of Strophe 2 may be thus expressed:--a-a-bc; d-d-bc; a-c-d;
   b-c. Between this and Antistrophe 2a (the second member of the group)
   there is a general correspondence with, in one particular, a subtle
   modification. The scheme now becomes a-a-bc; d-d-bc; a-c-b; d-c: i.e.
   the rhymes of lines 9 and 10 are transposed--God (line 9) answering to
   the halfway rhymes of lines 3 and 6, gawd and unawed, instead of (as in
   Strophe 2) to the rhyme-endings of lines 4 and 5; and, vice versa, fate
   (line 10) answering to desolate and state (lines 4 and 5), instead of to
   the halfway rhymes aforesaid. As to Antistrophe 2b, that follows
   Antistrophe 2a, so far as it goes; but after line 9 it breaks off
   suddenly, and closes with two lines corresponding in length and rhyme to
   the closing couplet of Antistrophe 1b, the section immediately
   preceding, which, however, belongs not to this group, but to the other.
   Mr. Locock speaks of line 124 as 'a rhymeless line.' Rhymeless it is
   not, for shore, its rhyme-termination, answers to bower and power, the
   halfway rhymes of lines 118 and 121 respectively. Why Mr. Locock should
   call line 12 an 'unmetrical line,' I cannot see. It is a decasyllabic
   line, with a trochee substituted for an iambus in the third foot--Around
   : me gleamed : many a : bright se : pulchre.
   
   10.
   THE TOWER OF FAMINE.--It is doubtful whether the following note is
   Shelley's or Mrs. Shelley's: 'At Pisa there still exists the prison of
   Ugolino, which goes by the name of "La Torre della Fame"; in the
   adjoining building the galley-slaves are confined. It is situated on the
   Ponte al Mare on the Arno.'
   
   11.
   GINEVRA, line 129: Through seas and winds, cities and wildernesses. The
   footnote omits Professor Dowden's conjectural emendation--woods--for
   winds, the reading of edition 1824 here.
   
   12.
   THE LADY OF THE SOUTH. Our text adopts Mr. Forman's correction--drouth
   for drought--in line 3. This should have been recorded in a footnote.
   
   13.
   HYMN TO MERCURY, line 609. The period at now is supported by the Harvard
   manuscript.
   
   JUVENILIA.
   
   QUEEN MAB.
   
   1.
   Throughout this varied and eternal world
   Soul is the only element: the block
   That for uncounted ages has remained
   The moveless pillar of a mountain's weight
   Is active, living spirit. (4, lines 139-143.)
   This punctuation was proposed in 1888 by Mr. J. R. Tutin (see "Notebook
   of the Shelley Society", Part 1, page 21), and adopted by Dowden,
   "Poetical Works of Shelley", Macmillan, 1890. The editio princeps
   (1813), which is followed by Forman (1892) and Woodberry (1893), has a
   comma after element and a full stop at remained.
   
   2.
   Guards...from a nation's rage
   Secure the crown, etc. (4, lines 173-176.)
   So Mrs. Shelley ("Poetical Works", 1839, both editions), Rossetti,
   Forman, Dowden. The editio princeps reads Secures, which Woodberry
   defends and retains.
   
   3.
   4, lines 203-220: omitted by Mrs. Shelley from the text of "Poetical
   Works", 1839, 1st edition, but restored in the 2nd edition of 1839. See
   above, "Note on Queen Mab, by Mrs. Shelley".
   
   4.
   All germs of promise, yet when the tall trees, etc. (5, line 9.)
   So Rossetti, Dowden, Woodberry. In editions 1813 (editio princeps) and
   1839 ("Poetical Works", both editions) there is a full stop at promise
   which Forman retains.
   
   5.
   Who ever hears his famished offspring's scream, etc. (5, line 116.)
   The editio princeps has offsprings--an evident misprint.
   
   6.
   6, lines 54-57, line 275: struck out of the text of "Poetical Works", 1839
   (1st edition), but restored in the 2nd edition of that year. See Note 3 above.
   
   7.
   The exterminable spirit it contains, etc. (7, line 23.)
   Exterminable seems to be used here in the sense of 'illimitable' (N. E.
   D.). Rossetti proposes interminable, or inexterminable.
   
   8.
   A smile of godlike malice reillumed, etc. (7, line 180.)
   The editio princeps and the first edition of "Poetical Works", 1839,
   read reillumined here, which is retained by Forman, Dowden, Woodberry.
   With Rossetti, I follow Mrs. Shelley's reading in "Poetical Works", 1839
   (2nd edition).
   
   9.
   One curse alone was spared--the name of God. (8, line 165.)
   Removed from the text, "Poetical Works", 1839 (1st edition); restored,
   "Poetical Works", 1839 (2nd edition). See Notes 3 and 6 above.
   
   10.
   Which from the exhaustless lore of human weal
   Dawns on the virtuous mind, etc. (8, lines 204-205.)
   With some hesitation as to lore, I reprint these lines as they are given
   by Shelley himself in the note on this passage (supra). The text of 1813
   runs:--
   Which from the exhaustless store of human weal
   Draws on the virtuous mind, etc.
   This is retained by Woodberry, while Rossetti, Forman, and Dowden adopt
   eclectic texts, Forman and Dowden reading lore and Draws, while
   Rossetti, again, reads store and Dawns. Our text is supported by the
   authority of Dr. Richard Garnett. The comma after infiniteness (line
   206) has a metrical, not a logical, value.
   
   11.
   Nor searing Reason with the brand of God. (9, line 48.)
   Removed from the text, "Poetical Works", 1839 (1st edition), by Mrs.
   Shelley, who failed, doubtless through an oversight, to restore it in
   the second edition. See Notes 3, 6, and 9 above.
   
   12.
   Where neither avarice, cunning, pride, nor care, etc. (9, line 67.)
   The editio princeps reads pride, or care, which is retained by Forman
   and Woodberry. With Rossetti and Dowden, I follow Mrs. Shelley's text,
   "Poetical Works", 1839 (both editions).
   
   NOTES TO QUEEN MAB.
   
   1.
   The mine, big with destructive power, burst under me, etc. (Note on 7 67.)
   This is the reading of the "Poetical Works" of 1839 (2nd edition). The
   editio princeps (1813) reads burst upon me. Doubtless under was intended
   by Shelley: the occurrence, thrice over, of upon in the ten lines
   preceding would account for the unconscious substitution of the word
   here, either by the printer, or perhaps by Shelley himself in his
   transcript for the press.
   
   2.
   ...it cannot arise from reasoning, etc. (Note on 7 135.)
   The editio princeps (1813) has conviction for reasoning here--an obvious
   error of the press, overlooked by Mrs. Shelley in 1839, and perpetuated
   in his several editions of the poems by Mr. H. Buxton Forman. Reasoning,
   Mr. W.M. Rossetti's conjectural emendation, is manifestly the right word
   here, and has been adopted by Dowden and Woodberry.
   
   3.
   Him, still from hope to hope, etc. (Note on 8 203-207.)
   See editor's note 10 on "Queen Mab" above.
   
   1.
   A DIALOGUE.--The titles of this poem, of the stanzas "On an Icicle",
   etc., and of the lines "To Death", were first given by Professor Dowden
   ("Poetical Works of P. B. S.", 1890) from the Esdaile manuscript book.
   The textual corrections from the same quarter (see footnotes passim) are
   also owing to Professor Dowden.
   
   2.
   ORIGINAL POETRY BY VICTOR AND CAZIRE.--Dr. Garnett, who in 1898 edited
   for Mr. John Lane a reprint of these long-lost verses, identifies
   "Victor's" coadjutrix, "Cazire", with Elizabeth Shelley, the poet's
   sister. 'The two initial pieces are the only two which can be attributed
   to Elizabeth Shelley with absolute certainty, though others in the
   volume may possibly belong to her' (Garnett).
   
   3.
   SAINT EDMOND'S EVE. This ballad-tale was "conveyed" in its entirety by
   "Cazire" from Matthew Gregory Lewis's "Tales of Terror", 1801, where it
   appears under the title of "The Black Canon of Elmham; or, Saint
   Edmond's Eve". Stockdale, the publisher of "Victor and Cazire", detected
   the imposition, and communicated his discovery to Shelley--when 'with
   all the ardour natural to his character he [Shelley] expressed the
   warmest resentment at the imposition practised upon him by his
   coadjutor, and entreated me to destroy all the copies, of which about
   one hundred had been put into circulation.'
   
   4.
   TO MARY WHO DIED IN THIS OPINION.--From a letter addressed by Shelley to
   Miss Hitchener, dated November 23, 1811.
   
   5.
   A TALE OF SOCIETY.--The titles of this and the following piece were
   first given by Professor Dowden from the Esdaile manuscript, from which
   also one or two corrections in the text of both poems, made in
   Macmillan's edition of 1890, were derived.
   
   ***
   
   
   A LIST OF THE PRINCIPAL EDITIONS OF SHELLEY'S POETICAL WORKS,
   
   SHOWING THE VARIOUS PRINTED SOURCES OF THE CONTENTS OF THIS EDITION.
   
   1.
   (1) Original Poetry; : By : Victor and Cazire. : Call it not vain:--they
   do not err, : Who say, that, when the poet dies, : Mute Nature mourns
   her worshipper. : "Lay of the Last Minstrel." : Worthing : Printed by C.
   and W. Phillips, : for the Authors; : And sold by J. J. Stockdale, 41,
   Pall-Mall, : And all other Booksellers. 1810.
   
   (2) Original : Poetry : By : Victor & Cazire : [Percy Bysshe Shelley : &
   Elizabeth Shelley] : Edited by : Richard Garnett C.B., LL.D. : Published
   by : John Lane, at the Sign : of the Bodley Head in : London and New
   York : MDCCCXCVIII.
   
   2.
   Posthumous Fragments : of : Margaret Nicholson; : Being Poems Found
   Amongst the Papers of that : Noted Female who attempted the Life : of
   the King in 1786. : Edited by : John Fitz-Victor. : Oxford: : Printed
   and sold by J. Munday : 1810.
   
   3.
   St. Irvyne; : or, : The Rosicrucian. : A Romance. : By : A Gentleman :
   of the University of Oxford. : London: : Printed for J. J. Stockdale, :
   41, Pall Mall. : 1811.
   
   4.
   The Devil's Walk; a Ballad. Printed as a broadside, 1812.
   
   5.
   Queen Mab; : a : Philosophical Poem: : with Notes. : By : Percy Bysshe
   Shelley. : Ecrasez l'Infame! : "Correspondance de Voltaire." : Avia
   Pieridum peragro loca, nullius ante : Trita solo; iuvat integros
   accedere fonteis; : Atque haurire: iuratque (sic) novos decerpere
   flores. : Unde prius nulli velarint tempora nausae. : Primum quod magnis
   doceo de rebus; et arctis : Religionum animos nodis exsolvere pergo. :
   Lucret. lib. 4 : Dos pou sto, kai kosmon kineso. : Archimedes. : London:
   : Printed by P. B. Shelley, : 23, Chapel Street, Grosvenor Square. :
   1813.
   
   6.
   Alastor; : or, : The Spirit of Solitude: : and Other Poems. : By : Percy
   Bysshe Shelley : London : Printed for Baldwin, Cradock, and Joy,
   Pater-:noster Row; and Carpenter and Son, : Old Bond Street: : By S.
   Hamilton, Weybridge, Surrey : 1816.
   
   7.
   (1) Laon and Cythna; : or, : The Revolution : of : the Golden City: : A
   Vision of the Nineteenth Century. : In the Stanza of Spenser. : By :
   Percy B. Shelley. : Dos pou sto, kai kosmon kineso. : Archimedes. :
   London: : Printed for Sherwood, Neely, & Jones, Paternoster-:Row; and C.
   and J. Ollier, Welbeck-Street: : By B. M'Millan, Bow-Street,
   Covent-Garden. : 1818.
   
   (2) The : Revolt of Islam; : A Poem, : in Twelve Cantos. : By : Percy
   Bysshe Shelley. : London: : Printed for C. and J. Ollier,
   Welbeck-Street; : By B. M'Millan, Bow-Street, Covent-Garden. : 1818.
   
   (3) A few copies of "The Revolt of Islam" bear date 1817 instead of
   1818.
   
   (4) 'The same sheets were used again in 1829 with a third title-page
   similar to the foregoing [2], but with the imprint "London: : Printed
   for John Brooks, : 421 Oxford-Street. : 1829."' (H. Buxton Forman, C.B.:
   The Shelley Library, page 73.)
   
   (5) 'Copies of the 1829 issue of "The Revolt of Islam" not infrequently
   occur with "Laon and Cythna" text.' (Ibid., page 73.)
   
   8.
   Rosalind and Helen, : A Modern Eclogue; : With Other Poems: : By : Percy
   Bysshe Shelley. : London: : Printed for C. and J. Ollier, : Vere Street,
   Bond Street. : 1819.
   
   9.
   (1) The Cenci. : A Tragedy, : In Five Acts. : By Percy B. Shelley. :
   Italy. : Printed for C. and J. Ollier, : Vere Street, Bond Street. :
   London. : 1819.
   
   (2) The Cenci : A Tragedy : In Five Acts : By : Percy Bysshe Shelley :
   Second Edition : London : C. and J. Ollier Vere Street Bond Street :
   1821.
   
   10.
   Prometheus Unbound : A Lyrical Drama : In Four Acts : With Other Poems :
   By : Percy Bysshe Shelley : Audisne haec, Amphiarae, sub terram abdite?
   : London : C. and J. Ollier Vere Street Bond Street : 1820.
   
   11.
   Oedipus Tyrannus; : or, : Swellfoot The Tyrant. : A Tragedy. : In Two
   Acts. : Translated from the Original Doric. : --Choose Reform or
   civil-war, : When thro' thy streets, instead of hare with dogs, A
   CONSORT-QUEEN shall hunt a KING with hogs, : Riding on the IONIAN
   MINOTAUR. : London: : Published for the Author, : By J. Johnston, 98,
   Cheapside, and sold by all booksellers. : 1820.
   
   12.
   Epipsychidion : Verses Addressed to the Noble : And Unfortunate Lady :
   Emilia V-- : Now Imprisoned in the Convent of -- : L' anima amante si
   slancia fuori del creato, e si crea nel infinito : un Mondo tutto per
   essa, diverso assai da questo oscuro e pauroso : baratro. Her Own Words.
   : London : C. and J. Ollier Vere Street Bond Street : MDCCCXXI.
   
   13.
   (1) Adonais : An Elegy on the Death of John Keats, : Author of Endymion,
   Hyperion etc. : By : Percy B. Shelley : Aster prin men elampes eni
   zooisin eoos. : Nun de thanon, lampeis esmeros en phthimenois. : Plato.
   : Pisa : With the Types of Didot : MDCCCXXI.
   
   (2) Adonais. : An Elegy : on the : Death of John Keats, : Author of
   Endymion, Hyperion, etc. : By : Percy B. Shelley. : [Motto as in (1)]
   Cambridge: : Printed by W. Metcalfe, : and sold by Messrs. Gee &
   Bridges, Market-Hill. : MDCCCXXIX.
   
   14.
   Hellas : A Lyrical Drama : By : Percy B. Shelley : MANTIS EIM' ESTHAON
   'AGONON : Oedip. Colon. : London : Charles and James Ollier Vere Street
   : Bond Street : MDCCCXXII. (The last work issued in Shelley's lifetime.)
   
   15.
   Posthumous Poems : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley. : In nobil sangue vita
   umile e queta, : Ed in alto intelletto on puro core; : Frutto senile in
   sul giovenil fiore, : E in aspetto pensoso anima lieta. : Petrarca. :
   London, 1824: : Printed for John and Henry L. Hunt, : Tavistock Street,
   Covent Garden. (Edited by Mrs. Shelley.)
   
   16.
   The : Masque of Anarchy. : A Poem. : By Percy Bysshe Shelley. Now first
   published, with a Preface : by Leigh Hunt. : Hope is Strong; : Justice
   and Truth their winged child have found. : "Revolt of Islam". : London:
   : Edward Moxon, 64, New Bond Street. : 1832.
   
   17.
   The Shelley Papers : Memoir : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley : By T. Medwin,
   Esq. : And : Original Poems and Papers : By Percy Bysshe Shelley. : Now
   first collected. : London: : Whittaker, Treacher, & Co. : 1833.
   (The Poems occupy pages 109-126.)
   
   18.
   The : Poetical Works : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley. : Edited : by Mrs
   Shelley. : Lui non trov' io, ma suoi santi vestigi : Tutti rivolti alla
   superna strada : Veggio, lunge da' laghi averni e stigi.--Petrarca. : In
   Four Volumes. : Vol. 1 [2 3 4] : London: : Edward Moxon, Dover Street. :
   MDCCCXXXIX.
   
   19.
   (1) The : Poetical Works : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley: [Vignette of
   Shelley's Tomb.] London. : Edward Moxon, Dover Street. : 1839.
   (This is the engraved title-page. The printed title-page runs:--)
   
   (2) The : Poetical Works : of Percy Bysshe Shelley. : Edited : By Mrs.
   Shelley. : [Motto from Petrarch as in 18] London: : Edward Moxon, Dover
   Street. : M.DCCC.XL.
   (Large octavo, printed in double columns. The Dedication is dated 11th
   November, 1839.)
   
   20.
   Essays, : Letters from Abroad, : Translations and Fragments, : By :
   Percy Bysshe Shelley. : Edited : By Mrs. Shelley. : [Long prose motto
   translated from Schiller] : In Two Volumes. : Volume 1 [2] : London: :
   Edward Moxon, Dover Street. : MDCCCXL.
   
   21.
   Relics of Shelley. : Edited by : Richard Garnett. : [Lines 20-24 of "To
   Jane": 'The keen stars,' etc.] : London: : Edward Moxon & Co., Dover
   Street. : 1862.
   
   22.
   The : Poetical Works : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley: : Including Various
   Additional Pieces : From Manuscript and Other Sources. : The Text
   carefully revised, with Notes and : A Memoir, : By William Michael
   Rossetti. : Volume 1 [2] : [Moxon's Device.] : London: : E. Moxon, Son,
   & Co., 44 Dover Street, W. : 1870.
   
   23.
   The Daemon of the World : By : Percy Bysshe Shelley : The First Part :
   as published in 1816 with "Alastor" : The Second Part : Deciphered and
   now First Printed from his own Manuscript : Revision and Interpolations
   in the Newly Discovered : Copy of "Queen Mab" : London : Privately
   printed by H. Buxton Forman : 38 Marlborough Hill : 1876.
   
   24.
   The Poetical Works : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley : Edited by : Harry
   Buxton Forman : In Four Volumes : Volume 1 [2 3 4] London : Reeves and
   Turner 196 Strand : 1876.
   
   25.
   The Complete : Poetical Works : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley. : The Text
   carefully revised with Notes and : A Memoir, : by : William Michael
   Rossetti. : In Three Volumes. : Volume 1 [2 3] London: : E. Moxon, Son,
   And Co., : Dorset Buildings, Salisbury Square, E.C. : 1878.
   
   26.
   The Poetical Works : of Percy Bysshe Shelley : Given from His Own
   Editions and Other Authentic Sources : Collated with many Manuscripts
   and with all Editions of Authority : Together with Prefaces and Notes :
   His Poetical Translations and Fragments : and an Appendix of : Juvenilia
   : [Publisher's Device.] Edited by Harry Buxton Forman : In Two Volumes.
   : Volume 1 [2] London : Reeves and Turner, 196, Strand : 1882.
   
   27.
   The : Poetical Works : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley : Edited by : Edward
   Dowden : London : Macmillan and Co, Limited : New York: The Macmillan
   Company : 1900.
   
   28.
   The Poetical Works of : Percy Bysshe Shelley : Edited with a Memoir by :
   H. Buxton Forman : In Five Volumes [Publisher's Device.] Volume 1 [2 3 4
   5] London : George Bell and Sons : 1892.
   
   29.
   The : Complete Poetical Works : of : Percy Bysshe Shelley : The Text
   newly collated and revised : and Edited with a Memoir and Notes : By
   George Edward Woodberry : Centenary Edition : In Four Volumes : Volume 1
   [2 3 4] [Publisher's Device.] London : Kegan Paul, Trench, Trubner and
   Co. : Limited : 1893.
   
   30.
   An Examination of the : Shelley Manuscripts : In the Bodleian Library :
   Being a collation thereof with the printed : texts, resulting in the
   publication of : several long fragments hitherto unknown, : and the
   introduction of many improved : readings into "Prometheus Unbound", and
   : other poems, by : C.D. Locock, B.A. : Oxford : At the Clarendon Press
   : 1903.
   
   The early poems from the Esdaile manuscript book, which are included in
   this edition by the kind permission of the owner of the volume, Charles
   E.J. Esdaile, Esq., appeared for the first time in Professor Dowden's
   "Life of Percy Bysshe Shelley", published in the year 1887.
   
   One poem from the same volume; entitled "The Wandering Jew's Soliloquy",
   was printed in one of the Shelley Society Publications (Second Series,
   No. 12), a reprint of "The Wandering Jew", edited by Mr. Bertram Dobell
   in 1887.
   
   ***
   
   
   INDEX OF FIRST LINES.
   
   A cat in distress :
   A gentle story of two lovers young :
   A glorious people vibrated again :
   A golden-winged Angel stood :
   A Hater he came and sat by a ditch :
   A man who was about to hang himself :
   A pale Dream came to a Lady fair :
   A portal as of shadowy adamant :
   A rainbow's arch stood on the sea :
   A scene, which 'wildered fancy viewed :
   A Sensitive Plant in a garden grew :
   A shovel of his ashes took :
   A widow bird sate mourning :
   A woodman whose rough heart was out of tune :
   Ah! faint are her limbs, and her footstep is weary :
   Ah! grasp the dire dagger and couch the fell spear :
   Ah! quit me not yet, for the wind whistles shrill :
   Ah, sister! Desolation is a delicate thing :
   Ah! sweet is the moonbeam that sleeps on yon fountain :
   Alas! for Liberty! :
   Alas, good friend, what profit can you see :
   Alas! this is not what I thought life was :
   Ambition, power, and avarice, now have hurled :
   Amid the desolation of a city :
   Among the guests who often stayed :
   An old, mad, blind, despised, and dying king :
   And can'st thou mock mine agony, thus calm :
   And earnest to explore within--around :
   And ever as he went he swept a lyre :
   And, if my grief should still be dearer to me :
   And like a dying lady, lean and pale :
   And many there were hurt by that strong boy :
   And Peter Bell, when he had been :
   And said I that all hope was fled :
   And that I walk thus proudly crowned withal :
   And the cloven waters like a chasm of mountains :
   And when the old man saw that on the green :
   And where is truth? On tombs? for such to thee :
   And who feels discord now or sorrow? :
   Arethusa arose :
   Ariel to Miranda:--Take :
   Arise, arise, arise! :
   Art thou indeed forever gone :
   Art thou pale for weariness :
   As a violet's gentle eye :
   As from an ancestral oak :
   As I lay asleep in Italy :
   As the sunrise to the night :
   Ask not the pallid stranger's woe :
   At the creation of the Earth :
   Away! the moor is dark beneath the moon :
   
   Bear witness, Erin! when thine injured isle :
   Before those cruel Twins, whom at one birth :
   Beside the dimness of the glimmering sea :
   Best and brightest, come away! :
   Break the dance, and scatter the song :
   Bright ball of flame that through the gloom of even :
   Bright clouds float in heaven :
   Bright wanderer, fair coquette of Heaven :
   Brothers! between you and me :
   'Buona notte, buona notte!'--Come mai :
   By the mossy brink :
   
   Chameleons feed on light and air :
   Cold, cold is the blast when December is howling :
   Come, be happy!--sit near me :
   Come [Harriet]! sweet is the hour :
   Come hither, my sweet Rosalind :
   Come, thou awakener of the spirit's ocean :
   Corpses are cold in the tomb :
   
   Dares the lama, most fleet of the sons of the wind :
   Dar'st thou amid the varied multitude :
   Darkness has dawned in the East :
   Daughters of Jove, whose voice is melody :
   Dear home, thou scene of earliest hopes and joys :
   Dearest, best and brightest :
   Death is here and death is there :
   Death! where is thy victory? :
   Do evil deeds thus quickly come to end?
   Do you not hear the Aziola cry? :
   
   Eagle! why soarest thou above that tomb? :
   Earth, ocean, air, beloved brotherhood :
   Echoes we: listen!
   Ever as now with Love and Virtue's glow :
   
   Faint with love, the Lady of the South :
   Fairest of the Destinies :
   False friend, wilt thou smile or weep :
   Far, far away, O ye :
   Fiend, I defy thee! with a calm, fixed mind :
   Fierce roars the midnight storm :
   Flourishing vine, whose kindling clusters glow :
   Follow to the deep wood's weeds :
   For me, my friend, if not that tears did tremble :
   For my dagger is bathed in the blood of the brave :
   For your letter, dear [Hattie], accept my best thanks :
   From all the blasts of heaven thou hast descended :
   From the cities where from caves :
   From the ends of the earth, from the ends of the earth :
   From the forests and highlands :
   From unremembered ages we :
   
   Gather, O gather :
   Ghosts of the dead! have I not heard your yelling :
   God prosper, speed, and save :
   Good-night? ah! no; the hour is ill :
   Great Spirit whom the sea of boundless thought :
   Guido, I would that Lapo, thou, and I :
   
   Hail to thee, blithe Spirit! :
   Hail to thee, Cambria! for the unfettered wind :
   Hark! the owlet flaps her wing :
   Hark! the owlet flaps his wings :
   Hast thou not seen, officious with delight :
   He came like a dream in the dawn of life :
   He wanders, like a day-appearing dream :
   Hell is a city much like London :
   Her hair was brown, her sphered eyes were brown :
   Her voice did quiver as we parted :
   Here I sit with my paper, my pen and my ink :
   'Here lieth One whose name was writ on water' :
   Here, my dear friend, is a new book for you :
   Here, oh, here :
   Hic sinu fessum caput hospitali :
   His face was like a snake's--wrinkled and loose :
   Honey from silkworms who can gather :
   Hopes, that swell in youthful breasts :
   How eloquent are eyes :
   How, my dear Mary,--are you critic-bitten :
   How stern are the woes of the desolate mourner :
   How sweet it is to sit and read the tales :
   How swiftly through Heaven's wide expanse :
   How wonderful is Death :
   How wonderful is Death :
   
   I am afraid these verses will not please you, but :
   I am as a spirit who has dwelt :
   I am drunk with the honey wine :
   I arise from dreams of thee :
   I bring fresh showers for the thirsting flowers :
   I dreamed that, as I wandered by the way :
   I dreamed that Milton's spirit rose, and took :
   I faint, I perish with my love! I grow :
   I fear thy kisses, gentle maiden :
   I hated thee, fallen tyrant! I did groan :
   I love thee, Baby! for thine own sweet sake :
   I loved--alas! our life is love :
   I met a traveller from an antique land :
   I mourn Adonis dead--loveliest Adonis :
   I pant for the music which is divine :
   I rode one evening with Count Maddalo :
   I sate beside a sage's bed :
   I sate beside the Steersman then, and gazing :
   I sing the glorious Power with azure eyes :
   I stood upon a heaven-cleaving turret :
   I stood within the City disinterred :
   I weep for Adonais--he is dead' :
   I went into the deserts of dim sleep :
   I would not be a king--enough :
   If gibbets, axes, confiscations, chains :
   If I esteemed you less, Envy would kill :
   If I walk in Autumn's even :
   In the cave which wild weeds cover :
   In the sweet solitude of this calm place :
   Inter marmoreas Leonorae pendula colles :
   Is it that in some brighter sphere :
   Is it the Eternal Triune, is it He :
   Is not to-day enough? Why do I peer :
   It is not blasphemy to hope that Heaven :
   It is the day when all the sons of God :
   It lieth, gazing on the midnight sky :
   It was a bright and cheerful afternoon :
   
   Kissing Helena, together :
   
   Let there be light! said Liberty :
   Let those who pine in pride or in revenge :
   Life of Life! thy lips enkindle :
   Lift not the painted veil which those who live :
   Like the ghost of a dear friend dead :
   Listen, listen, Mary mine :
   Lo, Peter in Hell's Grosvenor Square :
   
   Madonna, wherefore hast thou sent to me :
   Maiden, quench the glare of sorrow :
   Many a green isle needs must be :
   Melodious Arethusa, o'er my verse :
   Men of England, wherefore plough :
   Methought I was a billow in the crowd :
   Mighty eagle! thou that soarest :
   Mine eyes were dim with tears unshed :
   Monarch of Gods and Daemons, and all Spirits :
   Month after month the gathered rains descend :
   Moonbeam, leave the shadowy vale :
   Muse, sing the deeds of golden Aphrodite :
   Music, when soft voices die :
   My coursers are fed with the lightning :
   My dearest Mary, wherefore hast thou gone :
   My faint spirit was sitting in the light :
   My head is heavy, my limbs are weary :
   My head is wild with weeping for a grief :
   My lost William, thou in whom :
   My Song, I fear that thou wilt find but few :
   My soul is an enchanted boat :
   My spirit like a charmed bark doth swim :
   My thoughts arise and fade in solitude :
   My wings are folded o'er mine ears :
   
   Night, with all thine eyes look down! :
   Night! with all thine eyes look down! :
   No access to the Duke! You have not said :
   No, Music, thou art not the 'food of Love' :
   No trump tells thy virtues :
   Nor happiness, nor majesty, nor fame :
   Not far from hence. From yonder pointed hill :
   Now had the loophole of that dungeon, still :
   Now the last day of many days :
   
   O Bacchus, what a world of toil, both now :
   O happy Earth! reality of Heaven :
   O Mary dear, that you were here :
   O mighty mind, in whose deep stream this age :
   O pillow cold and wet with tears! :
   O Slavery! thou frost of the world's prime :
   O that a chariot of cloud were mine! :
   O that mine enemy had written :
   O thou bright Sun! beneath the dark blue line :
   O thou immortal deity :
   O thou, who plumed with strong desire :
   O universal Mother, who dost keep :
   O wild West Wind, thou breath of Autumn's being :
   O world! O life! O time! :
   Offspring of Jove, Calliope, once more :
   Oh! did you observe the black Canon pass :
   Oh! take the pure gem to where southerly breezes :
   Oh! there are spirits of the air :
   Oh! what is the gain of restless care :
   On a battle-trumpet's blast :
   On a poet's lips I slept :
   On the brink of the night and the morning :
   Once, early in the morning :
   One sung of thee who left the tale untold :
   One word is too often profaned :
   Orphan Hours, the Year is dead :
   Our boat is asleep on Serchio's stream :
   Our spoil is won :
   Out of the eastern shadow of the Earth :
   Over the utmost hill at length I sped :
   
   Palace-roof of cloudless nights! :
   Pan loved his neighbour Echo--but that child :
   People of England, ye who toil and groan :
   Peter Bells, one, two and three :
   Place, for the Marshal of the Masque! :
   Poet of Nature, thou hast wept to know :
   Prince Athanase had one beloved friend :
   
   Rarely, rarely, comest thou :
   Reach me that handkerchief!--My brain is hurt :
   Returning from its daily quest, my Spirit :
   Rome has fallen, ye see it lying :
   Rough wind, that moanest loud :
   
   Sacred Goddess, Mother Earth :
   See yon opening flower :
   Serene in his unconquerable might :
   Shall we roam, my love :
   She comes not; yet I left her even now :
   She left me at the silent time :
   She saw me not--she heard me not--alone :
   She was an aged woman; and the years :
   Silence! Oh, well are Death and Sleep and Thou :
   Silver key of the fountain of tears :
   Sing, Muse, the son of Maia and of Jove :
   Sleep, sleep on! forget thy pain :
   So now my summer task is ended, Mary :
   So we sate joyous as the morning ray :
   Stern, stern is the voice of fate's fearful command :
   Such hope, as is the sick despair of good :
   Such was Zonoras; and as daylight finds :
   Summer was dead and Autumn was expiring :
   Sweet Spirit! Sister of that orphan one :
   Sweet star, which gleaming o'er the darksome scene :
   Swift as a spirit hastening to his task :
   Swifter far than summer's flight :
   Swiftly walk o'er the western wave :
   
   Tell me, thou Star, whose wings of light :
   That matter of the murder is hushed up :
   That night we anchored in a woody bay :
   That time is dead for ever, child! :
   The awful shadow of some unseen Power :
   The babe is at peace within the womb :
   The billows on the beach are leaping around it :
   The cold earth slept below :
   The curtain of the Universe :
   The death-bell beats! :
   The death knell is ringing :
   The Devil, I safely can aver :
   The Devil now knew his proper cue :
   The Elements respect their Maker's seal! :
   The everlasting universe of things :
   The fierce beasts of the woods and wildernesses :
   The fiery mountains answer each other :
   The fitful alternations of the rain :
   The flower that smiles to-day :
   The fountains mingle with the river :
   The gentleness of rain was in the wind :
   The golden gates of Sleep unbar :
   The joy, the triumph, the delight, the madness :
   The keen stars were twinkling :
   The odour from the flower is gone :
   The old man took the oars, and soon the bark :
   The pale stars are gone :
   The pale stars of the morn :
   The pale, the cold, and the moony smile :
   The path through which that lovely twain :
   The rose that drinks the fountain dew :
   The rude wind is singing :
   The season was the childhood of sweet June :
   The serpent is shut out from Paradise :
   The sleepless Hours who watch me as I lie :
   The spider spreads her webs, whether she be :
   The starlight smile of children, the sweet looks :
   The stars may dissolve, and the fountain of light :
   The sun is set; the swallows are asleep :
   The sun is warm, the sky is clear :
   The sun makes music as of old :
   The transport of a fierce and monstrous gladness :
   The viewless and invisible Consequence :
   The voice of the Spirits of Air and of Earth :
   The warm sun is failing, the bleak wind is wailing :
   The waters are flashing :
   The wind has swept from the wide atmosphere :
   The world is dreary :
   The world is now our dwelling-place :
   The world's great age begins anew :
   Then weave the web of the mystic measure :
   There is a voice, not understood by all :
   There is a warm and gentle atmosphere :
   There late was One within whose subtle being :
   There was a little lawny islet :
   There was a youth, who, as with toil and travel :
   These are two friends whose lives were undivided :
   They die--the dead return not--Misery :
   Those whom nor power, nor lying faith, nor toil :
   Thou art fair, and few are fairer :
   Thou art the wine whose drunkenness is all :
   Thou living light that in thy rainbow hues :
   Thou supreme Goddess! by whose power divine :
   Thou wert not, Cassius, and thou couldst not be :
   Thou wert the morning star among the living :
   Thrice three hundred thousand years :
   Thus to be lost and thus to sink and die :
   Thy beauty hangs around thee like :
   Thy country's curse is on thee, darkest crest :
   Thy dewy looks sink in my breast :
   Thy little footsteps on the sands :
   Thy look of love has power to calm :
   'Tis midnight now--athwart the murky air :
   'Tis the terror of tempest. The rags of the sail :
   To me this world's a dreary blank :
   To the deep, to the deep :
   To thirst and find no fill--to wail and wander :
   Tremble, Kings despised of man :
   'Twas at the season when the Earth upsprings :
   'Twas at this season that Prince Athanase :
   'Twas dead of the night, when I sat in my dwelling :
   'Twas dead of the night when I sate in my dwelling :
   
   Unfathomable Sea! whose waves are years :
   Unrisen splendour of the brightest sun :
   
   Vessels of heavenly medicine! may the breeze :
   Victorious Wrong, with vulture scream :
   
   Wake the serpent not--lest he :
   Was there a human spirit in the steed :
   We are as clouds that veil the midnight moon :
   We come from the mind :
   We join the throng :
   We meet not as we parted :
   We strew these opiate flowers :
   Wealth and dominion fade into the mass :
   Weave the dance on the floor of the breeze :
   Weep not, my gentle boy; he struck but me :
   What! alive and so bold, O Earth? :
   What art thou, Presumptuous, who profanest :
   What Mary is when she a little smiles :
   What men gain fairly--that they should possess :
   'What think you the dead are?' :
   What thoughts had sway o'er Cythna's lonely slumber :
   What was the shriek that struck Fancy's ear :
   When a lover clasps his fairest :
   When May is painting with her colours gay :
   When passion's trance is overpast :
   When soft winds and sunny skies :
   When the lamp is shattered :
   When the last hope of trampled France had failed :
   When winds that move not its calm surface sweep :
   Where art thou, beloved To-morrow? :
   Where man's profane and tainting hand :
   Whose is the love that gleaming through the world :
   Why is it said thou canst not live :
   Wild, pale, and wonder-stricken, even as one :
   Wilt thou forget the happy hours :
   Within a cavern of man's trackless spirit :
   Worlds on worlds are rolling ever :
   Would I were the winged cloud :
   
   Ye congregated powers of heaven, who share :
   Ye Dorian woods and waves, lament aloud :
   Ye gentle visitations of calm thought :
   Ye hasten to the grave! What seek ye there :
   Ye who intelligent the Third Heaven move :
   Ye wild-eyed Muses, sing the Twins of Jove :
   Yes! all is past--swift time has fled away :
   Yes, often when the eyes are cold and dry :
   Yet look on me--take not thine eyes away :
   You said that spirits spoke, but it was thee :
   Your call was as a winged car :   西風頌
   雪萊
   1
   哦,狂暴的西風,秋之生命的呼吸! 
   你無形,但枯死的落葉被你橫掃, 
   有如鬼魅碰到了巫師,紛紛逃避:
   黃的,黑的,灰的,紅得像患肺癆,
   呵,重染疫癘的一群:西風呵,是你 
   以車駕把有翼的種子催送到
   黑暗的鼕床上,它們就躺在那裏, 
   像是墓中的死穴,冰冷,深藏,低賤,
   直等到春天,你碧空的姊妹吹起
   她的喇叭,在沉睡的大地上響遍,
   (喚出嫩芽,象羊群一樣,覓食空中) 
   將色和香充滿了山峰和平原。   
   不羈的精靈呵,你無處不遠行; 
   破壞者兼保護者:聽吧,你且聆聽!
   2
   沒入你的急流,當高空一片混亂, 
   流雲象大地的枯葉一樣被撕扯 
   脫離天空和海洋的糾纏的枝幹。   
   成為雨和電的使者:它們飄落 
   在你的磅礴之氣的蔚藍的波面, 
   有如狂女的飄揚的頭髮在閃爍, 
   從天穹的最遙遠而模糊的邊沿 
   直抵九霄的中天,到處都在搖曳 
   欲來雷雨的捲發,對瀕死的一年  
   你唱出了葬歌,而這密集的黑夜 
   將成為它廣大墓陵的一座圓頂, 
   裏面正有你的萬鈞之力的凝結;   
   那是你的渾然之氣,從它會迸涌 
   黑色的雨,冰雹和火焰:哦,你聽!
   3
   是你,你將藍色的地中海喚醒, 
   而它曾經昏睡了一整個夏天, 
   被澄澈水流的迴旋催眠入夢,   
   就在巴亞海灣的一個浮石島邊, 
   它夢見了古老的宮殿和樓閣 
   在水天輝映的波影裏抖顫,  
   而且都生滿青苔、開滿花朵, 
   那芬芳真迷人欲醉!呵,為了給你 
   讓一條路,大西洋的洶涌的浪波   
   把自己嚮兩邊劈開,而深在淵底 
   那海洋中的花草和泥污的森林 
   雖然枝葉扶疏,卻沒有精力;   
   聽到你的聲音,它們已嚇得發青: 
   一邊顫慄,一邊自動萎縮:哦,你聽!
   4
   哎,假如我是一片枯葉被你浮起, 
   假如我是能和你飛跑的雲霧, 
   是一個波浪,和你的威力同喘息,   
   假如我分有你的脈搏,僅僅不如 
   你那麽自由,哦,無法約束的生命! 
   假如我能像在少年時,凌風而舞   
   便成了你的伴侶,悠遊天空 
   (因為呵,那時候,要想追你上雲霄, 
   似乎並非夢幻),我就不致像如今   
   這樣焦躁地要和你爭相祈禱。 
   哦,舉起我吧,當我是水波、樹葉、浮雲! 
   我跌在生活底荊棘上,我流血了!   
   這被歲月的重軛所製服的生命 
   原是和你一樣:驕傲、輕捷而不馴。
   5
   把我當作你的竪琴吧,有如樹林: 
   儘管我的葉落了,那有什麽關係! 
   你巨大的合奏所振起的音樂   
   將染有樹林和我的深邃的秋意: 
   雖憂傷而甜蜜。呵,但願你給予我 
   狂暴的精神!奮勇者呵,讓我們合一!   
   請把我枯死的思想嚮世界吹落, 
   讓它像枯葉一樣促成新的生命! 
   哦,請聽從這一篇符咒似的詩歌,   
   就把我的話語,像是灰燼和火星 
   從還未熄滅的爐火嚮人間播散! 
   讓預言的喇叭通過我的嘴唇   
   把昏睡的大地喚醒吧!要是鼕天 
   已經來了,西風呵,春日怎能遙遠? 
   1819年 
   查良錚 譯 
     
  Ode to the West Wind 
   Percy Bysshe Shelley 
    
   --------------------------------------------------------------------------------
   I
   0 wild West Wind, thou breath of Autumn's being,
   Thou, from whose unseen presence the leaves dead
   Are driven, like ghosts from an enchanter fleeing,
   Yellow, and black, and pale, and hectic red,
   Pestilence-stricken multitudes: 0 thou,
   Who chariotest to their dark wintry bed
   The wingèd seeds, where they lie cold and low,
   Each like a corpse within its grave,until
   Thine azure sister of the Spring shall blow
   Her clarion o'er the dreaming earth, and fill
   (Driving sweet buds like flocks to feed in air)
   With living hues and odours plain and hill:
   Wild Spirit, which art moving everywhere;
   Destroyer and Preserver; hear, 0 hear!
   
   II
   Thou on whose stream, 'mid the steep sky's commotion,
   Loose clouds like Earth's decaying leaves are shed,
   Shook from the tangled boughs of Heaven and Ocean,
   Angels of rain and lightning: there are spread
   On the blue surface of thine airy surge,
   Like the bright hair uplifted from the head
   Of some fierce Maenad, even from the dim verge
   Of the horizon to the zenith's height,
   The locks of the approaching storm. Thou dirge
   Of the dying year, to which this closing night
   Will be the dome of a vast sepulchre
   Vaulted with all thy congregated might
   Of vapours, from whose solid atmosphere
   Black rain, and fire, and hail will burst: 0 hear!
  
   
   III
   Thou who didst waken from his summer dreams
   The blue Mediterranean, where he lay,
   Lulled by the coil of his crystalline streams,
   Beside a pumice isle in Baiae's bay,
   And saw in sleep old palaces and towers
   Quivering within the wave's intenser day,
   All overgrown with azure moss and flowers
   So sweet, the sense faints picturing them! Thou
   For whose path the Atlantic's level powers
   Cleave themselves into chasms, while far below
   The sea-blooms and the oozy woods which wear
   The sapless foliage of the ocean, know
   Thy voice, and suddenly grow grey with fear,
   And tremble and despoil themselves: 0 hear!
  
   
   IV
   If I were a dead leaf thou mightest bear;
   If I were a swift cloud to fly with thee;
   A wave to pant beneath thy power, and share
   The impulse of thy strength, only less free
   Than thou, 0 Uncontrollable! If even
   I were as in my boyhood, and could be
   The comrade of thy wanderings over Heaven,
   As then, when to outstrip thy skiey speed
   Scarce seemed a vision; I would ne'er have striven
   As thus with thee in prayer in my sore need.
   Oh! lift me as a wave, a leaf, a cloud!
   I fall upon the thorns of life! I bleed!
   A heavy weight of hours has chained and bowed
   One too like thee: tameless, and swift, and proud.
  
   
   V
   Make me thy lyre, even as the forest is:
   What if my leaves are falling like its own!
   The tumult of thy mighty harmonies
   Will take from both a deep, autumnal tone,
   Sweet though in sadness. Be thou, Spirit fierce,
   My spirit! Be thou me, impetuous one!
   Drive my dead thoughts over the universe
   Like withered leaves to quicken a new birth!
   And, by the incantation of this verse,
   Scatter, as from an unextinguished hearth
   Ashes and sparks, my words among mankind!
   Be through my lips to unawakened Earth
   The trumpet of a prophecy! 0 Wind,
   If Winter comes, can Spring be far behind?  |  
  |